LS* Edward III. Women Servants rom an old MSS. | of tho 17lh Century Gentleman and Ladies of rank in the 15th Century. , Henry XI. and Becket. | Soldiers of the llth Century. * Gentleman in time of I Pikeinan and Musketeer of the I Officer and Sergeant in the reign W William III. J 17th Century. | of George 1. Lady Handson. | Queen Anne of Denmark. | Gentleman and Lady in time of Charles I- Sesostris, or Rameses the Great. See page 657. - Ruiiu of Hougomont Battle Ground of Warterloo. Sir Isaac Newton's Birth-plnce. 1 Pompeii Restored Restoration of the Roman Forum. Battle Monument, Baltimore. U. S. Military Academy, West Point. POPULAR CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY, ANCIENT AND (MODERN, FORMING A COPIOUS HISTORICAL DICTIONARY . CELEBRATED INSTITUTIONS, PERSONS, PLACES., AND THINGS ; WITH NOTICES OF THE PRESENT STATE OF THE PRINCIPAL CITIES, COUNTRIES, AND KINGDOMS OF THE KNOWN WORLD: TO WHICH IS ADDED A CHRONOLOGICAL VIEW MEMORABLE EVENTS, EARTHQUAKES, VOLCANIC ERUPTIONS, STORMS, CONFLAGRATIONS, DISEASES, FAMINES, INVENTIONS, DISCOVERIES, BATTLES, TREATIES, SET- TLEMENTS, ORIGINS OF RELIGIOUS SECTS, ETC. BY F. A. DURIVAGE. v ILLUSTRATED BY ENGRAVINGS. HARTFORD: PRINTED AND PUBLISHED BY CASE, TIFFANY & BTJRNHAM 1844. Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1841, by CASE, TIFFANY AND Co., in the Clerk's Office of the District Court of Connecticut. ">' '' f ' * -.,4J^ PREFACE. EVERY general reader, has frequent occasion to consult some authority, for historical, and biographical dates and facts. The only works, suitable for such a purpose, are the Encyclopedia of Lieber, Rees, Brewster, and others, of a similar kind. These are costly and extensive works, and are therefore in the hands of comparatively few persons ; beside, they are too cumbrous for easy and frequent reference. The importance then, of a volume like the present, that may lie familiarly upon the table, or the shelf ; ready at call to answer the thousand questions that arise on historical points, is too plain to require discussion. Its utility, at all events its convenience, even to those who possess ample libra- ries, and* whose minds are stored with historical data, appears to the writer to be great. But it is more especially designed for family use, and for the young. The author considers the matter in this point of view. Every reader of a book, a magazine, or newspaper, meets with frequent references to historical subjects, which he knows nothing about, or obscurely remembers, or but partially understands. If he has %t hand, a volume which will readily answer any inquiries which arise in his mind, he will turn to it, and thus remove his igno- rance, or clear away the doubt and obscurity which rest upon his 2 PREFACE. understanding. If he has no such work at easy command, he will in most cases let the matter pass. The present volume, is particularly designed to supply to every general reader, such a book of reference as is here alluded to.' It is believed, that if tolerably wejl executed, it cannot fail of being acceptable. It is particularly commended to the attention of parents, that in the absence of any other suitable work, ih.s may be placed within the reach of their children, and that the habit of consulting it as a dictionary of history, and historical biography, whenever curiosity, doubt, or question may suggest, be inculcated upon them. The store of pji^l^e practical know- ledge that will thus be laid up, will be of iilj,, 'able value. It is not however, as a mere book of relVrciu that this volume is offered to the public. The materials, are, it is true, extracted to a great extent, from books familiar to the public. The author, however, has gathered many traits, anecdotes and adventures, from less common sources, and interspersing throughout its pages, these and other illustrative sketches, he has sought to enliven the work, and thus render it more amusing, attractive, and readable, than mere books of reference usually are. Many of the articles are more extensive than in the voluminous Encyclopedias, before mentioned. Many interesting topics, not found in them, are also introduced. The history of our own country, will be found fully treated of, under different heads. The lives of eminent political characters in all ages, as well as the lives of those, whose great- ness in science or literature inscribed their names upon the ages in which they flourished, are given ; some of them at considerable PREFACE. length. Many characteristic anecdotes of these persons are Intro- duced. Several topics, as Druids, El Dorado, Knighthood, 'Chiv- alry, Fanes, &c. &:c., which are frequently alluded to in books, .are treated of with particularity. .The Chronological View at the end of the volume, will be found to: contain a great amount of interesting and valuable knowledge. I B some instances, from the nature of the case, facts are repeated here, which have appeared in other parts of the volume. They are, however, given, with the view of rendering this portion of the work as complete in itself, as possible. The reader by ri,v ^ug his eye over the pages of the Chrono- logical View, wi' 1 y see the plan upon which it is arranged. He will find it i contain, beside many other things, the chro- nology o'f the following topics. Abdications, Ambassadors, Agriculture, Alliances, Architecture, Astronomy from the earliest times, Balloons, Battles, Sieges, &.C., Bible, Cholera, Circumnavigators, Commerce, Congress, Conspiracies, Councils, . Discoveries, geographical, in modern times, Founding of Cities, Towns, King f doms, and States, Earthquakes, Eminent Persons, in all ages ; ancient and modern, Engraving, Eras, Famines in all parts of the world, Fires in different places, Frosts in various places, Fruits introduction of, Gardening, Hieroglyphicks, PREFACE. Hurricanes in different countries, Poet Laureats, Labor, price of at various times, Popes, Laws, Courts of Justices, Oaths, Rain, violent. Taxes, &c. Rebellions, Libraries, Religious Orders, Sects, &c. Living Characters of eminence, Revolutions, Longevity, instances of ancient and Sculpture, modern, Sea Fights, Manufactures, Ships and Ship Building Massacres in all ages, Silk, manufacture of, Meteors and Meteoric Stones, Slave trade, Military and Religious Knights and Sovereigns of different countries, Titles of Honor, Storms in different countries, Mount Auburn, Taxation, Painting, Treaties in modern times, Pedestrians, Wars. Beside the above topics, there are many others, exhibiting the dates of important inventions, discoveries, and improvements in arts and sciences, and remarkable and interesting events, generally. The work is arranged with a view to compress a groat amount of matter into the smallest compass, that the bulk of the volume may not render it inconvenient, and that its expense may not hinder its general circulation. In preparing so extensive a publication for the press, the author cannot hope that he has wholly escaped error, or that some omis- sions may not be noticed. But he trusts that the volume may be found sufficiently accurate and complete, to fulfil the proper design of such a work, and that it may prove a valuable accession to the means of diffusing useful knowledge. A POPULAR CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. AAR AARON, the first high-priest of the Jews, sonoi'Amram and Jochebed,wasthe brother of Moses, and three years his elder, being born about 1574 B. C. When God had determined to free the Israelites from the cruel bondage of the Egyptians, he sent Aaron and Moses to the court of Pharaoh to announce his will. The awful annunciation served only to confirm the obduracy of the Egyptian tyrant, and he would not yield his faith, until miracles were shown him. Then, at the command of God, Aaron changed his rod into a serpent, but the magi- cians of the court did likewise, each of their rods becoming a serpent. Aaron's rod swal- lowed up those of the sorcerers, but still the heart of the king was hardened. On the refu- sal of the monarch to permit the departure of the Israelites, and at the command of the Lord, the waters of Egypt were changed into blood; the plague of frogs, the murrain of beasts, the plague of hail, locusts, and other calamities, bore witness to the of God. The born of the Egyptians, but those of the Israelites were spared. Aaron was gifted with great eloquence which was displayed upon various occasions, when he manifested his zeal in his mission. The departure of the Israelites, and their miraculous preservation, are too well known to require particular notice here. Moses, when he went to receive the laws from God on mount Sinai, was accompanied by Aaron, Na- dab, Abihu, and seventy of the eld"ers of Israel, to whom God showed himself; but Moses alone remained forty days. Giving way to the cla- mors of the people, Aaron made them an idol out of the ornaments and trinkets furnished by the women and children, the image being in the form of a calf, like the ox Apis worshipped by the Egyptians. When Moses returned from the mount, he reproached Aaron, whose fault appears to have been want of firmness, for he was terrified at the power and just indignation angel of the Lord smote the first- AAR the threats of the idolaters. The punishment 0^ those who rebelled was exemplary, 23,000 being slain in one day. Aaron and his four sons became priests of the Lord, and the cere- mony of their assumption of the holy office was as august as the occasion demanded. Aaron never entered the land of promise, a punish- ment for his disbelief in the power of God to produce water from the rock. When the Is- raelites arrived at Mount Hor, Moses, Aaron, and Eleazar, his son. ascended it in obedience to the commands of the Lord. There, in the sight of the people, Moses unrobed the high priest, and clad Eleazar in his garments. Aaron then sank into the arms of his brother, and died, aged one hundred and twenty -three years, forty of which he passed as priest, the office being made hereditary in his family. AARON, or Haroun al Raschid, was one of the most celebrated of the Saracenic caliphs, and the territories which he governed extended from Egypt to Khorassan. He was no less distinguished for* his taste, and the encourage- ment he afforded to literature and the arts, than for his power. He was the second son of the caliph Mahadi, and succeeded his elder brother, Hadi, A. D. 786. He differed, in so many re- spects, from the despots of the east, that he obtained the name of al Raschid, the Just, al- though many of his deeds would seem to destroy his claims to the title. The caliph was fond of personally ascertaining the condition of his people, when, divested of the dazzling attributes of rank, he feared no concealment on their part. Many instances of the wisdom and jus- tice of his decisions have comedown to us, and, among others, the following. A merchant, having lost a purse containing a large sum of money, caused the loss to be proclaimed, with an accurate description of the purse and the value of its contents, offering a large reward to the person who should find and restore it to the owner. After some days had elapsed, a poor CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. AAR laborer presented himself before a magistrate with the purse, and claimed of the merchant (who was summoned) the reward which belong- ed to him. The merchant, rejoiced at finding his money, thought to avoid payment of the reward, by declaring that the purse contained, in addition to the money, an emerald of great value, which the finder must be compelled to restore. The poor laborer was overwhelmed by this assertion, and the magistrate appeared at a loss, but the caliph, who was present in disguise, advanced and decided the case. " Since," said he, " the merchant declares that the purse which he lost, contained a sum of money and an emerald, and since the finder of this purse swears, and the seal upon the purse proves, that he has taken no precious gem, this cannot be the purse which the mer- chant has lost. Let then its present holder endeavor to discover the real owner, and, failing to do so, appropriate the prize ; and let the mer- chant make diligent search for the money and the emerald which he has lost ; the present pro- perty being, as he has proved, none of his." Haroun was an ardent lover of learning, and caused it to be disseminated throughout his realms. He was a warm admirer of the an- cient classics, and translations of the IHad and Odyssey, with other works of antiquity, made his people acquainted with the beauties of Greek and Roman literature. He invaded the Greek empire no fewer than eight times, con- quering in 802, the emperor Nicephorus, who had refused to pay him the customary tribute. The Greek monarch was compelled to pay a heavier 'tribute to the caliph, and promise not to rebuild the frontier towns which had been ruin- ed and plundered. The caliph's destruction of the family of the Barmecides displays the stern resolution of a despot. He had experienced the cares of Yahia, the head of the Barmecide family, who had superintended his education, and the eldest of Yahia's sons was a general who had served his country well ; the second was GiafFer, the caliph's prime vizier, and the two other, sons were in responsible and digni- fied stations. The Barmecides were in favor with all classes, and GiafFer stood high in the graces of the caliph. Indeed, so warmly at- tached was the latter to his vizier, that, for the Bake of enjoying his company with that of his beloved sister Abassa, he united them in mar- riage, but placed capricious restrictions upon their intimacy. On the disobedience of the pair, all the violent passions of the caliph were aroused. He publicly sacrificed GiafFer to his resentment, 6 ABB and impoverished the whole family. Haroun, at* the height of splendor and fame, sent an emhjas- sy to the emperor Charlemagne, bearing, among other presents, a water-clock, an elephant, and the keys of the holy sepulchre at Jerusalem. ' j The caliph was seized with a mortal illness while preparing^ to depart upon a military ex- pedition, and died at Tous. in Khorassan, in the 47th year of his age, and the Ji3d of his reign. .None of the caliphs of the Saracens ever attained the height of power and popularity which Haroun al Raschid gained, and, although some of his acts are inexcusable, yet, consid- ering the examples furnished by his age, and the preceding, we cannot withhold from him a large share of praise. Haroun is one of those characters, which are equally the delight of his- tory and romance, and while the graver acts of his reign employ the pen of the rigid annalist, his varied adventures are themes for the gay eloquence of such works as the Arabian Nights Entertainments. ABAUZIT, Firmin, a Protestant author of celebrity and learning, was born in Languedoc, 1(179, and died in 17U7, having for a long time filled the office of public librarian at Geneva. His writings are principally upon theological subjects, and he was distinguished for accuracy and penetration. His knowledge was great and embraced the whole circle of the sciences. Wise and modest, he was pronounced a " great man" by Voltaire, himself as learned as Abauzit, although destitute of that unaffected piety which formed so bright an ornament to the character of the latter. ABBAS, Shah, the Great, ascended the throne of Persia in. 1589, and distinguished him- self in arms, wresting Ormus from the Portu- guese in 1G22, aided, however, by the Brilish. During his reign, Ispahan became the capital of Persia. His death took pliioe in Ki'^M. ABBASSIDES. The caliphs, who, during the 8th and 9th centuries, made Bagdad their capital, are distinguished in history as the Mas- sides. Their sway extended over Persia. Arabia, and Syria. The caliph Al-Mansur, iii7t^, built Bagdad, and raised the Saracenic empire to its highest point of splendor and fame. Al-Modi, to whom the empire was transmitted, did not permit its reputation to wane, and. under Ha- roun al Raschid, the dignity of the Caliphate ?rved and adorned. After Haroun, \\as preser Al- Al-Amin, and Al-Mamun. Under Al- Motasser the governors of several provinces as- serted their independence, and Bagdad alone was governed by the caliph. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ABB ' ABBEt", or monastery, is a house erected for the dwelling of males orfemales who have taken the monastic vow, which binds them to relinquish all worldly interests, and devote themselves to the performance of religious duties, living in a j3T state of celibacy. St. Anthony, in the 4th cen- tury, instituted the monastic life, and, in the ' same century, St. Pachomius founded regular I communities of religious professors. A monas- ' tery receives its title from that of the ecclesi- iastic governing it. An abbey is governed by an abbot, or abbess, a priory, by a prior, or prior- ess, &c. The term nunnery, is applied to a re- ligious house inhabited by females. The buildings inhabited by different religious communities, were originally of the plainest kind, but increased in extent and splendor with their revenues, until, from the humble dwellings of unpretending ecclesiastics, they became the abodes of luxury, brilliant with costly architec- ' tural decorations, and hiding, within their lofty walls, the revels of men whose piety was but a cloak for unlimited indulgence. The buildings constituting an Abbey or monastery, consisted principally of churches, cloisters, refectories, chapters, parlors, dormitories, courts, gardens, &c. The choir and interior buildings of con- - vents were, and are still, fenced in by grates, and inaccessible to visiters. The churches consisted of the choir, an altar, a nave, isles, chapels, and a tower. The cloister comprehends the galleries or covered porticoes of a monastery in which the monks take their exercise, and surrounds an open space, which is generally devoted to the cultivation of flowers, neatly distributed in parterres, interspersed with grass- plots, and refreshed by careful irrigation. The cloisters were sometimes adorned with valua- ble paintings, and were generally finished spe- cimens of art. The refectory of an abbey, is the hall in which the fathers eat. The refectory furnished at first frugal fare, and the holy fa- thers did not tarry long in it, but with the declension of ecclesiastical simplicity, the cha- racter of their meals was changed, and they made the walls of their eating-room ring with the merriment created by high living and rich wines. The refectory of the Abbey of Saint Dennis at Paris, has been celebrated for its architectural beauty. The chapter is a place of greater or less ex- tent, built for the reception of assemblies to discuss the private affairs of the house, and provided with seats, and a great table. The chapters are ordinarily ornamented with splen- did pictures. The parlor is a kind of cabinet, ABB where visitors converse with the monks or nuns through a kind of grated window. Formerly convents contained parlors, in which novices ''were allowed the privilege of conversing to- gether, at hours of recreation, but even then they were overheard by their superiors, who were provided with places for eaves-dropping. The dormitories are wings in the building, which contain the cells of its inhabitants. They are generally commodious, and have broad and well-litrhted staircases, from regard to the weak- ness of the aged, and are situated in the second story, in order to render them airy and healthy. Here the monks enjoy their brief repose, from which they are awakened to acts of devotion, or to bend in solitude before the crucifix, with its accompanying mementoes of mortality, ap- pearing lost in the reveries of religious enthusi- asm. The gardens of monasteries, generally exhibit neatness, and are not the least favorite appendage to the dwellings of the monks. The monks, in the ages of general darkness, that is from 600 to 1500, preserved in their monasteries many valuable volumes, and kept alive the spark of learning, which, but for their exertions, would have been extinguished. Re- ligious houses were, for ages, the sole deposi- tories of literature and science, and their inhab- itants were actively employed in the duties of education. In England, one person or more in each convent, was appointed to instruct pupils, and these were the children of those neighbors who chose to send them. They were instructed in grammar and church music, free of expense. In the nunneries, females were taught to read and work, and the daughters of noblemen and gentlemen, as well as of the poorer people, were indebted to the nuns for a large part of whatever knowledge they possess- ed. Many poor descendants of noble families looked to monasteries for refuge, and having taken the vow, made use of the influence of friends, to gain high ecclesiastical offices. Ma- ny of the monks were men driven to enter reli- gious houses by the pangs of remorse, and who hoped to expiate a career of crimes, by seclu- sion from the world, and the observance of the most austere rites of the church. These as well as some who were unaffectedly pious, lived a blameless life, but there were others whose profligacy was unrepressed, because hidden by that veil of hypocrisy which they closely drew around them. Many monks were skilful paint- ers, as the richly illuminated manuscripts of other days prove, and numerous were the le- gends of saints, gorgeously blazoned upon pages CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ABB 8 of vellum, that filled the shelves of the holy fathers. Living a life of undisturbed seclusion, those who possessed a literary turn, had ample time to indulge their propensity, though very few literary works of any merit have issued from the monasteries. The year 306 is that in which the earliest monasteries were established in Egypt, under the conduct of St. Anthony, and hence sprang hortly afterwards, many others in various pla- ces. In 3GO, the earliest, monastery in France, that of Saint Martin, was established. In the beginning monasteries were inhabited by lay- men. For more than six centuries all the eastern monasteries were independent of each other, and governed by abbots who were an- swerable to their bishops only. In the ninth century under Louis the Mild, many monasteries were united under the government of St. Ben- edict, hut on the death of this abbot, the houses again separated, and remained independent of each other". In the tenth century St. Odo, bishop of Cluny, united to this abbey many monasteries, placing them under the conduct of the abbot of Cluny. The first monasteries, in times of trouble and darkness, preserved the spirit of religion, and were 'sanctuaries in which piety and learning sought refuge from the ig- norance, irreligion and persecutions of the world. A mild light, denied to the rest of mankind, was shed upon those who took upon themselves the fulfilment of monastic vows. The con- duct of the monks was regulated by the plain commands of the Scriptures, and antiquity was followed in the celebration of religious ceremo- nies, and the practice of Christian virtues. The monks, as remarked above, were, for many cen- turies, the preservers of literature, many valua- ble works of the present day having been rescued from destruction by monastic libraries. Since the revival of letters, and the triumph of the Reformation, monasteries have ceased to be aught but burdensome to the Catholic countries in which they still exist. A comparative glance at ;i Catholic and a Protestant country, will at onco expose the evil effects of these establish- ments at present. The enormous abuses oflhe monastic system in England, called loudly for reform, when Henry VIII applied himself lo the work witli an unsparing hand, and in 1534 .1 all tin- monasteries in England. At this time the hospitality of the monks was un- limili-il, and a multitude of idle gentry subsisted wholly upon it, passing their lives 111 truing from one religious house to another. The change made by Henry, proved of incalculable ABB advantage to the state and the country in gen- eral. The suppression of the greater houses produced the king a yearly income of 100,000_ in addition to an immense treasure in plate and jewels. Before their dissolution, the monks had a greater revenue than that seized by the king, part of which, accruing from pensions, he did not immediately secure. The number of monks at this time in England, in the monasteries, and in chapels and hospitals belonging to them, was computed at 50,000. The council of Castile, in the project for re- form, which was presented to Philip III in 1619, supplicated the king to obtain from the pope a diminution of the nmrxber of religious orders aud monasteries which were daily in- creasing, and producing the most mischievous results. They encouraged idleness, said the council, because the majority sought the monas- teries less as a pious retreat, than as affording opportunity for idleness, and a shelter from want. The strength and preservation of the kingdom depended on the number of useful and industrious men, which was diminished by the monastic institutions. Meanwhile the expenses of state fell wholly upon secular shoulders, while the monks were exempt from taxes, and retain- ed with a firm grasp the immense wealth which they accumulated. The destruction of monas- teries, was felt at the time as a serious evil, but every nation which lias converted them to the use of the public, has been a gainer, and at the expense of temporary evil, has enjoyed a lasting good. " It is an undeniable fact." says Vol- taire, " that there is no catholic kingdom in which a proposal has not been often made to restore to the stale a portion of those citizens of which monasteries have deprived it, but statesmen are rarely struck with a distant uti- lity, sensible though it may be, particularly when the future advantage is balanced by pre- sent difficulty." At thisenlightened period' there is but one opinion with regard to tiie destruc- tion of monasteries, and that is, that they were unworthy of approbation in the beginning, and that their continuance would have been a very serious obstacle to the improvement and pros- perity of those countries, which have risen to opulence and happiness since their downfall. The age for the admission into the monastic state, was fixed at sixteen years, by the Council of Trent, the decrees of which were issued, in W&ccessive sessions, from 1545 to 15GH. The diminution of the papal power, and the enlight- ened spirit of the age, in the'ldth century, exert- ed a strong influence upon the public mind with HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL ABB regard to monasteries in Catholic countries, and they lost many of their privileges and much of the protection previously given them by law. Joseph II. of Austria, in 1781, abolished some orders of monasteries, and limited the number of inmates in others. In France thev were all abolished in 1790. During the reign of Napoleon, all the states incorporated with France, as well as other Catholic countries of Europe, abolished them, with the exception of Spain, Portugal, Naples, Austria. Poland, and Russia. Recent events have contributed to improve their condition in Italy, and Pius VII. procured means for the maintenance of old, and the foundation of new ones in France, Bavaria, and Naples, while in Austria they have become extinct. ABBOT. The word abbot is derived from the Hebrew ab, father, and signifies the Supe- rior of a monastery erected into an abbey. The abbots were one degree above the laymen. They were originally subject to the bishops, but attempting t<\_ obtain independence, were punished by the enactment of some severe laws by the council of Chalcedon. They were not, however, wholly unsuccessful, many of them obtaining the title of lord, the privilege of wear- in!' the mitre, and other badges of distinction. The different classes are thus named, Abbots, mitred and not mitred ; croziered and not croziered : oecumenical, cardinal, &c. The mi- tred abbots were ordered by Pope Clement IV. to wear only a mitre adorned with gold, leaving jewels to the bishops. The croziered abbots bear the crozier, or pastoral staff. The oecum- enical, or universal abbots are known only to the Greeks. At present, abbots are distinguish- ed into regular and commendatory, the former of whom are actual monks, while the latter are seculars who have previously undergone the ton- sure, or shaving of the crown of the head, and bind themselves to take orders when they come of age. The monks under his jurisdiction pay unconditional obedience to the abbot, whose office requires him to manage the affairs of the abbey, regulate the conduct of the brotherhood, and see that the rules of the order are not in- fringed. From the 6th century the bishops were priests, and from the year 787, had the power of conferring the lower orders of priesthood. ABBOT, George, born in 1562, and made arch- bishop of Canterbury in 1610. He strenuously opposed some measures of King James, thereby disproving the assertion that he owed his rise to acts more worthy of a courtier than an ecclesiastic. Having the misfortune to kill a ) ABD game-keeper of lord Zouch, he ever afterwards lasted upon Tuesday, the day on which the unhappy event took place. Though deprived of his office by Charles I. in consequence of his opposition to a project of the king, he was re- stored to it by parliament, and died at the age of seventy -one in 1633. ABBOT, Charles, viscount Colchester, a man of considerable talent as an author and orator, was speaker of the British House of Commons, from 1302 to 1817. He was born in 1775, and died in 1H29. ABBESS. An abbess is the superior of a convent of nuns, and has the authority of an abbot. The abbesses are incapacitated from performing the spiritual functions of the priest- hood, although some abbesses, in former times, confessed their nuns, a privilege which thev are said to have forfeited by the unwarrantable curiosity which they displayed. The institution of abbots was prior to that of abbesses, since the first virgins who devoted themselves to the service of God, remained in their paternal dwellings. In the 4th century they assembled in monasteries, but it was not until the time of Pope Gregory that they had buildings appro- priated exclusively to them. The abbess was anciently chosen by the community from among the oldest and most talented nuns : she received the blessing of the bishop, and her authority was perpetual. Some abbesses enjoyed the privilege of selecting a priest to perform the spiritual duties, the exercise of which was denied to themselves. These were the power of ordain- ing, the administration of the sacraments, bap- tism, 'confirmation, the eucharist or Lord's supper, penance, extreme unction, and matri- mony. Extreme unction in cases of mortal disease, is performed by anointing the head, hands, and feet with consecrated oil, at the same time offering up prayers for the soul of the dying. ABBT, Thomas, a German philosophical writer, of great merit, born at Ulm in Suabia, 173d. and died in 1766. ABDALLEE, Shah, emperor of Eastern Persia, was the determined opponent of the Great Mogul, and victorious at Panniput in 1761. ABDALONIMUS, a descendant of the Sido- nian kings, but so poor as to be compelled to cul- tivate the soil for subsistence. The excellence of his character and conduct, induced Alexan- der, on taking Sidon, to place him upon the throne, from which Strato was banished, and extend his dominions. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ABE 10 ABE ABEL, the twin brother of Cain and the se- cond son of Adam. The character and occu- pations of the brothers were different. Abel was keeper of a flock of sheep, while Cain was a husbandman, and tilled the earth for a support. In process of time Abel brought to the Lord an offering of the firstlings of his flock, which proved acceptable in his eyes. Cain's offering of the fruit of the ground was displeas- ing to his Maker, and his anger at beinjj re- jected, was unrepressed. It was not without cause that the Lord slighted the offering of Cain, for, observing his displeasuie, he said ; " Why art thou wroth, and why is thy counte- nance fallen? If thou doest well, shalt thou not be accepted? and if thou doest not well, sin lieth at the door." From the moment of his rejection, a dark project occupied tire mind of Cain, and he regarded his brother with eyes of hatred and menace. When they were in the field together, the fierce Cain sprang upon his gentler brother, and slew him. This was tin- first murder committed on the earth. A mo- ment after the commission of the evil deed, fear fell upon the murderer, and the voice of God, asking for his brother Abel, smote upon his heart, like a tone of thunder. He endeavored to evade the inquiry, but drew down upon his head the just denunciation of the offended Deity. For the sake of Cain, the earth was cursed, and forbidden to yield him its fiuils without intense labor, and the criminal was made a fugitive and vagabond on the face of the earth. Yet, that his life might be spared, a mark was fixed upon him, and the Lord said, " Whosoever slayeth Caiu vengeance shall be taken on him sevenfold.' The belief of some of the fathers of the Christian church that Abel died unmarried, gave rise to the sect of Abelitcs, Abelians, or Abelonians, who remained single, but" adopted children and educated them after their own manner and in their own principles. Near Hippo, in Africa, this society flourished in the latter part of the 4th century, and their follow- ers at the present day. are found in the persons of the Shakers. ABEL, son of Valdirnir II. king of Den- mark, gained the sc.eptre by assassinating his brother Eric in J5250. A revolt of the Prisons caused the loss of his life. His appellation was certainly a misnomer. ABELARD, Peter, properly Abailard, a monk who was famous for his learning ;md his unfortunate love for the beautiful Heloise. He was born in 1071), in the village of Palais, near Nantes. He early relinquished his claims to his father's estates, in favor of his brothers, and devoted himself to the study of literature and the sciences. At Paris his lame was great, and here he established a school, lecturing on rhet- oric and other subjects to iarge and admiring audiences. When his fame was greatest, he forgot his duty and his character in the society of Heloise, the niece of Fulbert, a canon of the city. He atoned for his misconduct by marry ing the object of his affections ; but her removal to the convent of Argenteuil, exasperated Ful- bert and drew down upon Abelard, his fierce vengeance. Heloise finally took the veil at Argenteuil, a ceremony by which a nun renoun- ces the world, and pledges herself to the obser- vance of religious vowe. She afterwards be- came abbess of the Paraclete, a religious house founded by Abelard. Abelard was accused by his enemies of promulgating heretical doctrines, but succeeded in vindicating himself. After his refutation of the charges of his adversaries, he lived in strict seclusion, when the pangs of grief, acting upon a constitution broken by injury and the severity of mo'iastic discipline, Suit an end to his existence. He died at the ab- ey of San Marcel at Chalons-Stir-Saune, at the i. ACHMET III, son of Mahomet IV, was HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ACH 17 raised to the throne of the Ottoman empire, in 1705, by the revolt of the janisaries, who de- posed his brother, Mustapha II. Achmet, al- though he apprehended and punished the leaders of the revolt, yet availed himself of the fruits of their crime. His reign, however, was by no means passed in tranquillity, and repeated changes of the viziers marked the insecurity ACR felt by the monarch. Achmet placed his prin- cipal reliance on the power of gold, which he sometimes used for good ends. When Chalei XII had been defeated at Pultowa, he was hos- pitably received at the Turkish court, where his intrigues soon kindled the flame of war between Russia and Turkey ; but Achmet III was unable to compete with Peter the Great, and the mili- tary views of his vizier, were by no means clear. When the fortunes of the czar were in the hands of the Turks on the borders of the Pruth, the Muscovite purchased of the vizier permission to retreat, but surrendered Azof to the Otto- mans. Against the Venetians, Achmet was more successful, wresting the Morea from their grasp in a single campaign. But the imperi- alists, under the able conduct of Prince Eugene of Savoy, trampled on the laurels of the Turks, and humbled the pride of their sultan. Achmet, by the loss of Peterwaradin, and the taking of Belgrade and Temeswar, was forced to sign the treaty of Passarowitz. In 1718, the sultan lost Temeswar, Orsoa, Belgrade, Servia, and part of Walachia a loss which was compensated, in the ensuing year, by his Persian successes. A re volt of the janisaries had made Achmet sultan, and a similar rebellion hurled him from the throne in 1730. The celebrated Caliph Patrona headed this revolt. Achmet went in person to seek his nephew, Mahmoud I, and, saluting him as emperor, said ; " Profit by my exam- ple : Had I always adhered to my old policy of permitting my vizier but a short stay in of- fice, I should have ended my reign as triumph- antly as I commenced it. Farewell ! may your career be happier than mine ! I commend to your especial care my son." He then went into the obscurity of that prison from which he had drawn his nephew. He died of apoplexy, on the 23d of June, 1730, 5 years and 6 months after his deposition. Acbmet possessed a bril- liant wit, and much shrewdness, with a ready turn for public business. He loved money, and was the first to levy imposts on the Turks, but he was no less attached to science, which he patronized. He established the first printing- press at Constantinople, 1727. He was fond of pleasure, and the Turks yet cherish the recol- lection of those splendid festivals at Constant! nople, which sprang from the luxury, and were graced by the presence of the sultan. Achmet gave concerts of nightingales, numbers of those birds being enclosed in cages, delighting the court with their rare and plaintive melody. ACHMET, headed a band of Turks and con- quered Egypt in 8G8. AQU1TAINE, a province of France, more recently called Guienne, and now forming the departments of Gironde, and of Lot and Ga- ronne. Here the Visigoths established a king- dom in the early part of the 5th century. ACRE, called also, Jkka, St. Jean d' Acre, and, in the middle ages, Ptolemais, is a city and harbor situated on the coast of Syria, lately the capital of a Turkish pachalic, and now be- longing to Egypt. The famous mount Car- mel overlooks the city, which contains 16,000 inhabitants, and is the emporium of the cotton trade of Syria. Its harbor is good, although containing many sandbanks. During the crusades, the troops engaged in the Holy Wars made it their principal landing-place ; Acre was the seat of the Knights of St. John, till 1291, and from this order arose the French name of St. Jean d' Acre. Here the Turks, un- der the command of Djezzar, pacha of the place, assisted by the British fleet under the command of Sir Sydney Smith, sustained a siege, during Bonaparte's Egyptian campaign After hav- ing succeeded in tranquillizing the various places which he had taken and garrisoned, Bonaparte framed a system of government for Etrypt upon French models. On the 12th of February, 1799, he inarched at the head of 18,000 men from Cairo to Syria, took El-Arish, a fait in the desert, and afterwards Jaffa, where he caused tne Turkish prisoners to be shot. The inhabitants of Naplous, were also subdued without much difficulty, and from them he ob- tained provisions which were absolutely necessa- ry to the success of his meditated siege of St. Jean d' Acre. At Safet he again proved himself the child of fortune, being completely victorious. Bat while indulging the hope of an easy victo- ry, the English fleet under Sir Sydney Smith appeared before Acre, and, besides supply ing the Turks with ammunition, reinforced the garrison with several hundred infantry and artillery. The French fought with their usual gallantry. They made many assaults, rushing forward regardless of danger, trusting in their courage and their bayonets, but they were met with equal gallantry and invariably repulsed. The vexation of Bonaparte was boundless ; he con CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ADA 18 ADA tinually planned new attacks, which were baf- fled, and repulsed with great loss to the French. In vain did the well-directed guns of the besieger's artillerists pour a heavy fire upon the Turks. The batteries were wrapped in constant flame but the garrison held bravely out, until the siege was finally raised. During the siege, Bonaparte was by no means inactive, he met the enemv 40,000 strong, upon the plain of Fiuli, with 23,000 men. On the 16th and 17th of April, in the vicinity of the Jordan, the terri- ble battle of Mount Tabor was fought. On the re- treat of the French from St. Jean d' dcre, it is said that a body of French soldiers, who were sick of the plague, were poisoned by order of Bona- parie ; but this has been frequently denied. Of the kindness of Bonaparte to his sick soldiers we have many proofs. Very recently, Louis Phi- lippe, the present king of the French, having his attention called to an old veteran who had been in the army of Napoleon, rode up and shook hands with him. The old man was not nattered. " When I was sick with the plague at Jaffa," said he, bluntly, " the emperor shook hands with me but he didn't have gloves on." The siege of St. Jean d'Acre lasted 61 ikivs. and was attended with great loss to botli parties. The place was besieged and cantured by the Pacha of Egypt in 1832. ACTIUM, a promontory now called Capo di Fiffolo,orJlzio,ontlie gulf of Arta,on the west- ern coast of Greece, at the extremity of Acarna- nia. Here was fought the most memorable na- val battle- of antiquity, since the stake was the empire of the world, B. C. 31. The leaders of the hostile forces were Mark Antony and Oc- tavius. The latter had 80,000 infantry. 12,000 cavalry, and 260 ships of war, while Antony had 100,000 infantry, 12,000 cavalry, and 220 ships of war. The battle was hotly contest- ed. The conduct of Cleopatra, the beautiful Egyptian queen, who had captivated Antony, proved disadvantageous to him, for. seized with a panic, she fled from the battle with her sixty galleys, the most brilliant vessels brought into action. Antony, whose energies had been prostrated by a course of dissipation, followed the queen, and a disgraceful rout among the troops on shore completed his ruin, while the sovereignty of the world was the prize of Octa- vius, afterwards Augustus Ccesar. ADAM, the father of mankind, formed of clay by God, on the sixth day of the creation of the world. His history is related in Genesis. ADAMS, John, was born at Braintree, Mas- sachusetts, October 19, 1733. He was the descendant of those whom persecution for con- science' sake had driven from their firesides in England. Henry Adams, the great grand-father of John, came to America in 1630. Mr. Adams having evinced an uncommon fondness for learning, was prepared by Mr. Marsh, preceptor of Josiah Quincy, for entrance into Harvara College, where he distinguished himself by strength of mind, application, and spotless mo- rality. He was graduated in 1755, and re- ceiled the degree of Master of Arts in 1758. He commenced the study of law at Worcester with Mr. James Putnam, defray ing his expenses by his income as instructor in Greek and La- tin. Massachusetts had long been the scene of a continual struggle ; the British agents striving to extend their power and the colonists con- tending for freedom. In 1758 Mr. Adams, leaving the office of Col. Putnam, entered that of Jeremiah Gridley. attorney-general, who had previously directed the law studies of James Otis, and who, in allusion to his two talented pupils, said, " I have trained up two young eagles, who are, one day or other, to pick out my eyes." In 1759 Mr. Adams was admitted to the Suffolk bar, and commenced practice in Quincy. In 1761, he was admitted to the degree of barrister at law, and very soon afterwards his father's decease put him in pos- session of a small landed property. In_ the February of this year the British cabinet enjo'ined the Massachusetts custom-house officers to exe- cute their oppressive acts of trade, applying to the Supreme provincial judicature for writs of assistance, a kind of general search-warrants. The applications made in consequence to the court at Salem were resisted on the ground of their unconstitutionality. When it was deter- mined to argue the matter by counsel in Bos- ton, Mr. Otis was engaged to defend the rights of the Salem and Boston merchants, and, that lie might, do it with the more freedom, he relin- quished his office of advocate-general in the court of admiralty a lucrative station. Mr. Adams, who took a deep interest in the affair, was present at the discussion, and thus eulo- gizes the orator. i; Otis was a flame of fire ! With a promptitude of classical allusion, a depth of research, a rapid summary of historical events ,ind dates, a profusion of legal authori- ties, a prophetic glance of his eyes into futurity, and a rapid torrent of impetuous eloquence, he hurried away all before him. American, in- dependence intg ihvn "ml tin re born." In 1764, he married Abigail Smith, daughter of the Rev. William Smith of Weymouth, a HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ADA 1 lady of great beauty and worth, whose pat- riotism and piety rendered her worthy of her husband. Mr. Adams published in the Boston Gazette several articles under the title of "An Essay on Canon and Feudal Law," which were reprinted in England, and gained great com- mendation. The author was then unknown. In the year 1765 he removed to Boston, where his business was highly prosperous. The friends of the crown attempted to purchase his apostasy by the offer of the office of advocate- general in the court of admiralty, but he refused " decidedly and peremptorily, though respectfully." He was appointed, in 1769, chairman of the committee chosen by the town of Boston to draw up instructions to their rep- resentatives to resist the unpardonable and in- creasing encroachments of the crown. At this time the indignation of the friends of liberty was excited by the presence of an armed force in the town, while a band of hirelings surround- ed the state-house, and cannon were directed against its doors. Mr. Adams displayed his sense of honor and firmness by advocating the cause of the soldiers who, when attacked by the mob, in State Street, on the 5th of March, fired upon them and killed several. Such was the excitement of the public mind that a word in defence of the British was almost sure of being punished by the loss of popularity, and yet Mr. A. in company with Josiah Quincy. and Mr. Blowers, scrupled not to defend the soldiers on their trial. In consequence of this, all were acquitted but two, who, being found guilty of man-slaughter, were dismissed with a slight branding. In May, 1770, Mr. Adams received a proof that his popularity was undiminished, by his triumphant election to the legislature of his native stale. The active part which he took in resisting despotism in every shape, and espousing the cause of his countrymen in every way, brought him under the displeasure of governor Hutchinson, who negatived the choice of Mr. Adams as counsellor, in 1773. In 1774, Gcv. Gage rejected him, and he was soon chosen member of the committee employed to prepare resolutions on the Boston port-bill. In consequence of the dissolution of the Assembly by Gage, Mr. Thomas Gushing, Mr. Samuel Adams, Mr. John Adams and Mr. Robert Treat Paine, were chosen to the first continental congress. Mr. Adams's friend Sewall, who held the post of attorney-general of the prov- ince, and had espoused the ministerial side of the question, told him that the power of Great Britain was immense, that she would abide by & ADA her measures and carry them through, and that opposition would involve the malcontents m ruin. Mr. Adams's reply was characteristic; "I know," said he, "that Great Britain has determined on her system, and that very de- termination determines me on mine. You know that I have been constant and uniform in my opposition to her designs. The die is now cast. I have passed the Rubicon. Sink or swim, live or die, survive or perish with my country is my fixed, unalterable determina- tion." Mr. Adam* to k his seat in Congress the first day of the session, September 5, 1774. The ensuing year, when the news of the af- fairs of Lexington and Concord had reached Congress, when they had determined on war, and were looking for a commander-in-chief, general Ward was proposed, and Mr. Adams was the only one who dissented, and urged the nomination of Washington. The next day Washington was nominated and chosen unan- imously. On May 6, 1776, Mr. Adams moved a resolution, recommending the colonies " to adopt such a government as would, in the opinion of the representatives of the people, best conduce to the happiness and saiety of their constituents and of America." It was not without a hard struggle that this passed on the ISthof the same month, and preluded Lee'a daring resolution of the 7th of June following, declaring the dissolution of the connexion with Great Britain. On the 4th of July, the Declar- ation of Independence, with but few alterations from the words of Mr. Jefferson, passed. The committee which had been chosen to prepare it was composed of Thomas Jefferson, John Adams, Benjamin Franklin, Roger Sherman, and Robert R. Livingston. Mr. Jefferson and Mr. Adams were deputed a sub-committee to prepare the instrument, and the former did so at the instigation of the latter. The declaration did not pass without the most strenuous oppo- sition by many members of Congress, includ- ing some leading and able men. Mr. Adams overcame all arguments offered against it, by an overwhelming torrent of splendid eloquence. In the words of Mr. Jefferson. " the great pillar of support to the declaration of independence, and its ablest advocate and champion on the floor of the house, was John Adams." His speech on the subject of independence is said to have been unrivalled. One of the most dis- tinguished orators of the present day, Mr. Webster, has done honor to the style and sen- timents of Mr. Adams, in alluding to his bright CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ADA est effort. He tells us that he spoke right on, and that the torrent of his manly reasoning carried conviction along with it. Mr. Webster gives what we may weft suppose to be a portion of Mr. Adams's speech, concluding with this powerful and patriotic language. " Sink or swim, live. or die, survive or perish, I am for the declaration. Living, it is my living senti- ment, and, by the blessing of God, it shall be my dying sentiment Impendence now and independence forever ! " Un the recall of Mr. Silas Deane, who, with Dr. Franklin, arid Mr. Arthur Lee, was a com- missioner at the court of Versailles, Mr. Adams was appointed to fill his place, Nov. 28, 1777. Mr. Adams, embarking on board the Boston frigate, arrived safely at his place of destina- tion, notwithstanding the efforts of an English fleet to intercept him. On his return, being chosen member of the convention to form a plan of government for Massachusetts, he was placed upon the sub-committee whose task it was to draught the plan of a constitution. The general project and some particular features of the plan belong to Mr. Adams. He went abroad again upon public business and visited Holland and France. The definitive treaty of peace which he visited Paris to negotiate, in 1762, with Dr. Franklin, Mr. Jay, Mr. Laurens, and Mr. Jefferson for colleagues, was ratified, Jan. 14, 1734. The next year Mr. Adams was ap- pointed the first minis'ter to London. Having returned to the United States, he was chosen vice-president, the first elected under the new constitution, and was re-elected in 1793. On the resignation of Washington, Mr. Adams was chosen president, entering upon office, March 4, 17!)7. The administration of Mr. Adams was not popular, and at the expiration of his term of four years, March 4th. 1801, Mr. Jefferson, his adversary, was found to be elected by a majority of one vote. After Mr. Adams's retirement from public life, he occupied himself with literary and agricultural pursuits at his seat at Quincy,and, with the exception of a severe affliction, the loss of his wife, his days glided calmly away until the 4th of July, 182b'. On that day he died, with the sentiment upon his lips which he had uttered with such force fifty years before upon the floor of Congress independence forever ! On the morning of that eventful day. the penis of the bells, and the report of cannon awakened him. He was asked if he knew what day it was. " Oh! yes" replied he " it is the glori- ous 4th of July God -bless it God bless you 20 ADA all ! " In the course of the day, he said " it is a great and glorious day ! " Before his death, he said " Jefferson survives." He was mist! staken. On that very day, an hour after noon. Jetferson breathed his last. ADAMS, Samuel, a distinguished character in our revolution, was born^in Boston, Sept. 27th, 1722. Pie was descended from a family which had been among the earliest settlers i,i New-England. Mr. Adams received his edu- cation at Harvard College, and was graduated with the usual academical honors, in 1740. On taking the degree of A. M. he discussed the following question ; " Whether it be lawful to resist the supreme magistrate, if the common- wealth cannot be otherwise preserved?" and maintained the affirmative with great ability. He commenced the study of divinity but found his attention completely absorbed by politics, which then excited an universal interest. Hia sentiments soon endeared him to the patriotic farty, who placed him in the legislature in 7(J(J. From that time forward he distinguished himself as one of the most active, able, and uncompromising advocates of independence. He was on every committee, his hand was em- ployed upon every report, and his voice heard upon every subject, involving opposition to the tyrannical measures of the colonial government. The enemies of America heard that Mr. Adams was poor, and those among them who believed in the omnipotence of British gold, asked why this demagogue was not silenced bv a bribe. Governor Hutchinson answered " Such is the obstinacy and inflexible disposition of the man, that he can never be conciliated by any ofh'ce or . His talents are said to have been of a high order, and his memory uncommonly retentive, in proof of which it is alleged that he could repeat a book, from beginning to end, which he had once read with attention. His learning was exten- sive, and his military talents great. His good qualities, however, were not more numerous than his evil propensities, and he never gained the esteem of his predecessor Trajan. It was to Plotina, the wife of Trajan, who forged a will in which Adrian was named her husband's successor, that he owed his elevation to the throne, A. D. 117. In Britain, he built a wall between Carlisle and Newcastle, to guard the Britons from the incursions of the Caledonians. Having quelled a rebellion of the Jews, he built a city called ./Elia on the ruins of Jerusalem. He has been accused of a too great love of pleasure, and of irresolution and cowardice. He purchased peace of some warlike tribes that had attacked Illviia. He travelled on foot through the provinces of his kingdom, wishing to in- spect personally the administration of justice. But to gain popularity he scrupled not to de- scend to the mean familiarity of bathing with his subjects. He showed his contempt of Christianity by erecting a statue to Jupiter on the spot where Jesus rose from the dead, and one to Venus on Mount Calvary. At I!ai;c, he was seized with dysentery and wished to terminate his agonies bv suicide. On being prevented, he exclaimed, that the lives of others were in his hands, but not his own. He died July 10th, 13d, in the >5d year of his age, and the'21st of his reign. Six Popes have borne the name of Adrian. ADRIANOPLE, in Turkish, Edrcne. is situ- ated on the banks of the Maritza. formerly He- brus, a navigable river of Ronielia, anciently Thrace. Its nilly situation renders it a pleasant residence, and its palace, valley, and mosques, a splendid one. Nearly a third of the popula- tion, 100.000. are Greeks. Its most important export is oil of roses, the best of which it fur- nishes. The city was built by Adrian, and in the 4th century successfully resisted the Goths. Amurath took it in 1360, and it became the capital and residence of the Ottoman rulers, for a century, until its fame yielded to that of Con- stantinople. The treaty of Adrianople conclud- ed, Sept. 14, 1829, terminated the war between Russia and the Porte. ADRIATIC SEA, or Gulf of Venice, washes the shores of Italy, Illyria, Dalmatia, Albania and Epirus. It is 200 leagues long, and 50 broad. The doge of Venice, claiming the ex- clusive sovereignty of this sea, formerly wedded it annually with sing-ular and splendid ceremo- nies, throwing a ring into its waves. This was done upon Ascension day. jEGINA, now Eghinu an island thirty miles in circumference, in the Saronic srulf, formerly independent, wealthy, and famed for the com- mercial spirit of its" inhabitants. Its capital bore the same name. jELFRIC, the brave and talented archbishop of Canterbury, who lived in the 10th century. He translated the historical books of the Old Testament, and distinguished himself for his resistance to the Danes. His death took place in 1005. jELIANUS, CLAUDIUS; a native of Italy, who flourished A. D. 221. He wrote in Greek and has transmitted to posterity two works, one a natural history, the other a vol- ume of anecdotes and tales. JEMIL1US PAULUS, a brave end noble Roman, father of Scipio Africanus the Younger. He defeated Perseus, king of Macedon, and celebrated his success by a triumph. B. C. It38 ; which was rendered memorable by the death of his two sons, and the heroic fortitude with which he bore their loss, thanking the gods that they were chosen for victims, so that the Roman people might be shielded from calamity. jENEAri, a Trojan prince, whose his tory has been rendered doubtful by the tales of the poets. He is the hero of the jJEneid wer Egypt and the Delta, was covered with water, and consequently Egypt was but a limited tract of land. The accounts which ancient writers give of the early history of Egypt are so contradic- tory and improbable, that it is needless to allude to them in a work which professes to deal wira HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. AFR 29 AFR matters of fact. Menes, the first king of Egypt, is said to have conferred great benefits upon his subjects. He redeemed a vast extent of land from the waters, was the spiritual instructer of the Egyptians, introduced splendor, and founded solemn and magnificent feasts. After many vears of uninterrupted prosperity, Egypt fell under the sway of some rude adventurers who founded the dynasty of the Hycsos or shepherd kings, which commenced about 2048 years B. C., and lasted until the year 1825 B.*C., when the shepherd kings were expelled. Jacob settled in the land of Goshen, 1706 B. C. The departure of the Israelites happened, according to some writers, during the reign of Amenophis, the Pharaoh who pursued them into the Red Sea, and was overwhelmed by its returning waters. It must be remembered that Pharaoh was a title borne by all the kings of Egypt in common. Egypt was divided into twelve kingdoms after the death of Sethon, 675 years B'. C. Psammetichus made himself master of the whole country in 6GO B. C. After a prosperous reign he was succeeded by Fha- raoh-Necho, his son, 616 B. C. This monarch was defeated by the famous Nebuchadnezzar, king of Babylon. 525 years B. C., Egypt was made tributary to Persia by Cambyses. the son of Cyrus. The Egyptians revolted, but were again subjugated. Another revolt was success- ful, and fora short time the Egyptians enjoyed their independence, but 350 years B..C., Ar- taxerxes Ochus restored the Persian dominion. 331 B. C. Alexander the Great compelled the Egyptians to submit to his arms. On the death of this great conqueror, Ptolemy, one of his generals, took possession of the kingdom, 323 years B. C. and founded the dynasty of the Ptolemies, which lasted until the defeat of An- tony and the death of Antony and Cleopatra, when E^ypt became a Roman province in the year B. C. 30, and the 2d of the reign of Augus- tus. In the year 640. Egypt was conquered by Amron, general of OmarTcaliph of the Saracens. The library of Alexandria, which had been collected with care, and contained manuscripts of immense value, was consumed by the orders of Omar. Egypt was in the hands of the Saracens until" A. D. 1174, when Saladin es- tablished the Turkish empire in Africa. The Mamelukes obtained the supremacy in 1250. In 1517. Egypt passed from the hands of the Mamelukes, being joined to the Turkish do- minions by the Sultan Selim. It is now gov- erned by an independent prince. Egypt was the theatre of a determined strug- gle between the French and English, when the star of Napoleon first began to shed its light upon the destinies of Europe. In the contest, some memorable battles were fought. In that of the Pyramids, the Mameluke cavalry was almost wholly annihilated by the prowess of the French infantry. The ancient Egyptians, notwithstanding their character for wisdom and learning, were grossly idolatrous, worshipping animals, and regarding as sacred, oxen, cats, crocodiles, sheep, &c. The advantage taken of this superstitious char- acter by Cambyses is well known. Placing in front of his ann^the animals worshipped by the Egyptians, he advanced against them boldly, be- ing" well aware that they would not strike a blow for fear of injuring the creatures they adored. The ancient government of Egypt was the subject of eulogy among all nations, and legis- lators from various countries came to Egypt to examine its institutions in order thence to gather hints for the improvement of their own. The fertility of the land, the variety of the fruits, and the thousand natural advantages which it possesses, might, by judicious manage- ment, make Egypt one of the most wealthy and flourishing countries in the world. A liberal government and enterprising public officers, would soon restore it to the rank which it once held. As a commercial country, it possesses inestimable facilities. Bees are now carefully reared ; honey forming an important article of trade. The verdure of Upper Egypt generally withers at the end of four or five months, and commences earlier than in Lower Egypt. In consequence of this, the Lower Egyptians col- lect the bees of several villages, in large boats; each hive having a mark by which the owner can recognise it. The men having charge of them then commence the gradual ascent of the Nile, stopping whenever they come to a region of herbage and flowers. At break of day the bees issue from their cells in thousands, and busily collect the sweets of the flowers which are spread in luxuriant profusion around them, returning to their hives laden with honey, and issuing forth again in quest of more, several times in the course of the day Thus for three or four months, they travel in a land of flowers, and are brought back to the place whence they started, with the delicious product of the sweet orange-flowers which perfume the Said, the roses of Faioum, and the jessamines of Arabia. The sugar-cane is an Egyptian production, and one of great value ; olive and fig-trees, produc- ing the most delicious fruit, and palm-trees are CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. AFR 30 AFR also found in abundance. The palm is one of the most useful of the Egyptian trees. The fruit is agreeable, and the bark, as well as the leaves and rind of the fruit, yield materials for cordage and the sails of the boats. The Mam- eluke javelins are made of the ribs of the branches of this tree. The condition of the poor people of Egypt is deplorable. The tyranny of their rulers wrests from them the fruit of their hard labors, and leaves them but a miserable sustenance which they can hardly be supposed to enjoy. Rice and"^ corn they cannot eat, for all that they raise must be carried to their maKers, who leave them for food dourra, or Indian millet, of which they form a very unpalatable and coarse kind of bread without any leaven. With the addi- tion of water and raw onions, this is their food throughout the year. They know no luxury beyond a meal of the above articles improved by a little honey, cheese, sour milk, and dates. A shirt of coarse linen dyed blue, and a black handkerchief rolled around ong it, fo rm their cos- cloak, a cloth bonnet, with a long red woollen handk tume. It will not be expected that we shall attempt any history of the various other states and nations of Africa, in an article which must necessarily be little more than a brief general view of the country. The Barbary States pre- sent but little to interest us. The Turks did not displace the Saracens in Africa until the beginning of the 16th century, when the latter began to be fearful that, without the assistance of the Turks, they should be enslaved by the Spaniards. At first, the Turks stretched over the Saracens the protecting arm of power, but when the danger was averted, the power was employed in enslaving them. The Mohamme- dan nations upon the shore of the Mediterra- nean have, at various times, rendered them- selves formidable by their piracies. The Alge- rines were most notorious for their sea-robberies. The United States, indignant at the presump- tion of the dey of Algiers, who levied tribute from Americans, resolved to compel, instead of purchasing, forbearance from the Algerines, who soon found that they were wholly unable to cope with our naval power. The French expedition fitted out against Algiers, just before Charles X. was compelled to quit his throne and country, was completely triumphant, and the dey, permitted to retire with his private treasure, went to Italy to pass the remainder of his life. The French still retain possession of Algiers. Of the numerous kingdoms and tribes inhab- iting the interior of Africa, we have ample descriptions in the works of the enterprising travellers who have recently made so many discoveries in a country hitherto comparatively unknown. A mere enumeration of the names of these would be tedious, and more, it would be vain to attempt. The celebrated Mungo Park, who fell a victim to the ardor of scien- tific research, describes the inhabitants of the interior df Africa as being of three races, viz : the Mandingoes or proper negroes, native child- ren of Nigritia ; the Foulahs, or white ^Ethiopi- ans of Ptolemy and Pliny ; and the Moors. These last are Mohammedans, bigoted, intoler- ant, treacherous, and bloody. Agriculture forms the principal occupation of the negroes, while the Moors, true to their ancestral character, are either wandering shepherds or roving mer- chants, with no fixed habitation. In writing or in reading the history of Africa, what painful reflections are suggested by the contemplation of that infamous traffic which has brought so much misery upon the natives of this country ! Africans have been regarded as degraded and worthless beings, who have no claim upon the kindness of the inhabitants of other countries, and whom it was even meritori- ous to enslave. It has been asserted in general terms, that " all the inhabitants of the globe have some good as well as ill qualities, except the Af- ricans.". Their want of proper education, the tyranny of their rulers, and the innumerable defects of their governments, have contributed to keep them in a state of degradation, for which they were not originally intended. Alas ! how many of their crimes may we not trace to European agency ! The joyous disposition even of an African slave manifests itself after the first pangs of captivity and sad recollection have passed "a way. If. then, amidst the worst evils, the gaiety of the African is not wholly banished, may we not imagine that lie would enjoy enviable happiness if placed under a just and enterprising government, and permitted to display his native energies and powers? Much has been done to alleviate the condition of the blacks, and England, together with a large portion of America, has abolished that slavery which the worldly interests of men induced thorn so long to continue. The American Col- onization Society have established a colony on the western coast of Africa, on which they have bestowed the name of Liberia. Thither are sent manumitted slaves, and, after having strug- gled against manifold obstacles, the colony is HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. AFR 31 AGA now in a very flourishing condition, enjoying the fruits of useful knowledge and religion. The trade in gold and ivory is carried on upon the western coast, in barter for woollen and linen manufactures, hardware, and spirituous liquors, which are the articles of exchange. The Dutch, French, and Portuguese have their various settlements for the purposes of trade. The possession of the Cape of Good Hope, being a matter of the utmost importance, was for a long time a source of contest between the Dutch and English. It was taken by the English in 1797, and after having been surrendered to the Dutch, in 1802, was again occupied by the former in 1806. and has since remained in their posses- sion. Cape Town is resorted to by ships bound to the Indian ocean, for supplies of water and provision. The Hottentots, or Bushmen, as they are called, are undoubtedly a degraded race, but instead of endeavoring to better their condition, the Europeans have contributed to prolong, and in fact consolidate their evil habits, furnishing them with spirituous liquors, the agency of which ensures their destruction, or reduces them to an abject state which is far worse than death itself. The cruelty practised on the natives by the Dutch and that too with the sanction of government almost exceeds belief. When a party of Dutch wished to settle in any spot, they proceeded to clear it by the death of the natives, with as much coolness as an American squatter would exhibit, in hewing down the forest-trees to open a place for the erection of his log-house, or in picking off with his rifle a few of the wild animals which threat- ened to be troublesome. The Dutch manner of proceeding was summary. Having selected the hut of some poor wretch as an object of destruction, they first set fire to it. Let us imagine the dismay and horror of a poor family at finding flames breaking forth around, above them, in every direction. Rushing forth, the wretched owners of the miserable dwelling would implore pity from their cruel enemies. The Dutchmen, or boors, would be too much engaged in loading their pieces and discharging them upon the males, to heed the cries of the females who, with their children, were gener- ally saved. The indifference with which the boors regard the death of the bushmen. is stri- kingly illustrated in the following anecdote. A boor, presenting himself at the secretary's office at Cape Town, after having traversed a lonely tract, was asked if he had not found the Bush- men troublesome ? " Not very," replied he, with great coolness, " I only shot four." Africa is a country, the history and geogra- phy of which may be studied with great interest and advantage. To the intelligent traveller it is replete with wonders. He lingers among the gigantic remains of ancient art and splen- dor, which abound in Egypt, with a feeling of veneration ; recalling, as he dwells upon the spot, the busy scenes of the past, the actors of which sleep beneath the dust of centuries, their perishable remains contrasting with the vast monuments of their enterprise and wealth, which, not the less surely, because at a later period, will be crumbled into atoms by the stern hand of time. Then, too, the presence of these antique relics recalls ideas of the troubled times of Israel, when the yoke of the Egyptian Pha- raoh pressed heavily upon her children, till they were rescued from the land of bondage by the power of the Omnipotent, who rolled back the strong tides of the sea, to let them pass. The contemplation of these early scenes awakens in the well-trained mind a thought of Him, of whom we know that whatever be the chance or change of time, though kingdoms may pass away, and cities be crumbled into dust, " His word endureth for ever." The peninsula of Africa forms a vast trian- gle, containing 11,500.000 square miles. It is bounded on the north by the Mediterranean ; on the east by Asia, the Red Sea, and the Indian Ocean ; and on the south and west by the Southern and Atlantic Oceans. It contains vast ranges of mountains, immense deserts, and regions inhabited by great numbers of animals. How little was known of this vast country by the ancients, and how wide a field it affords, for the investigation of modern men of science ! AGAMEMNON, leader of the Greeks in the Trojan war, was king of Mycene and Argos, son of Plisthenes, and brother of Menelaus, the seduction of whose wife lighted the flames of war. Returning, after the destruction of the city, he was murdered by his wife, Clytemnes- tra. either from jealousy, or on account of her love for another. AG AT H OGLES, an adventurer, who, although of ignoble birth, from being a private in the Sicilian army, made himself master of Sicily. B. C. 317. This he accomplished by the death of thousands of the Sicilians. Although defeated by the Carthaginians in Sicily, he carried the war into Africa, where he was suc- cessful. After having lost his sons and army, by a mutiny in Africa, he succeeded in estab- lishing tranquillity, B. C. 306. In Italy he conquered the Brutii, and took and sacked CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. AGI 3 Crotona. He was poisoned by his favorite, Maenon, who poisoned the feather with which the king usually cleansed his teeth after dinner. The effect of the poison was instantaneous and frightful the mouth and body of the monarch decaying in a few minutes. Life had not forsaken his limbs when he was thrown upon the funeral pile. He was an able ruler in the court and the battle-field, but cruel, fond of pleasure, and ambitious. AGESILAUS, a king of Sparta, and a dis- tinguished leader in the Peloponnesian war. He signalized himself by his valorous resistance to the Persians, and successfully opposed the arms of the Thebans under Epaminondas. Agesi- laus was lame and of small stature, but brave, and almost idolized by his troops. He was 84 years old at the time of his death, B. C. 360. AGHRIM, or Aughrim, a village in the county of Galway, Ireland, where the troops of William III. defeated those of James II. in a battle fought July 12, 1691. AGINCOURT, or Azincourt, a village in the department of Pas de Calais, France, where Henry V. of England, with an army of little more than 15,000 men, defeated the flower of the French troops, amounting to 70 or 100,000 men, well officered and equipped. Henry en- trenched his troops strongly, within fences of pointed stakes, then first used, and in modern times, known under the name of Cheraux de Frise. The rashness and disordered impetu- osity of the French, and the coolness and or- derly intrepidity of the English produced the same effects at Azincourt as at Poictiers. The French leader, the constable d'Albret, the count de Nevers, and the duke of Brabant, the dukes of Alencon and Bar, the counts of Vaudemont and Marie, scorning to survive defeat, rushed into the thickest of the fight, and died, with up- wards of 10,000 of their followers. The number of captives taken by the English was 14,000, a number about equal to that of the conquerors. The loss of the English was comparatively small, and the duke of York, the only person of con- sequence who fell. This nobleman was Hen- ry's uncle, and was slain in defending the king against the duke of Alencon, who rode furi- ously upon him. Alencon dashed Henry's crown from his head, with a blow of his battle- axe, and was preparing to despatch him, when the king's attendants closed around him in a steely circle, and he fell, covered with wounds, the blood pouring from every joint of his armor. This ;rreat battle was fought, Oct. 25th, 1415. AGIS IV, king of Sparta, the son of Euda- 2 AGR midas, and lineal descendant of Agesilaus. He endeavored to reform the manners and con- stitution of Sparta, but was opposed by the mass from interest, and condemned to be stran- gled. The executioner refused to perform his dreadful office, until forced to it. Agis met his fate with firmness, B. C. 241. AGKES, ST. was put to death during the reign of Diocletian, emperor of Rome. The Catholics celebrate her festival on the 21st of January. At Rome, they bring cattle to the church of St. Agnes on "this day to be blessed by the priest, a ceremony which is thought to preserve them from sickness till the next year. AGNESI, Maria Gaetana, a talented and learned lady, born at Milan, in 1718. In a Latin oration, delivered in her ninth year, she advocated the study of the ancient languages by females. At the age of eleven, she was conversant with Greek, which she spoke with great fluency, and she afterwards mastered the Oriental languages. Geometry and philosophy next engaged her attention. She was the cen- tra] ornament of the most brilliant and talented circles, and her surpassing loveliness of face and figure gave additional effect to the magic of her words. In mathematics she was no less successful than in other branches of learning, and at thirty published a treatise on the rudi- ments of analysis, thought to be the best intro- duction to Euler's works extant. She acquired sucli fame by this performance, that she was appointed, in her 32d year, professor of mathe- matics in the university of Bologna. Incessant application seems finally to have rendered her melancholy ; she renounced society, and joining the order of blue nuns, died in her fclst year, 1799. AGRICOLA, Cneius Julius, a brave and virtuous Roman commander, and a distin- guished statesman. He subjected a great part of Britain, A. D. 70. Dornitian recalled him, and he died in retirement, A. D. 93. AGRIGENTUM,nowGirgentiorAgrigenti, a town in Sicily about three miles from the coast, and forty-seven miles south of Palermo, with a population of 15,000. According to Diodorus, in its brighter days, it contained no fewer than 200,000 inhabitants. It was anciently famed for its hospitality and luxury. Its horses were celebrated. It contained many fine build ings, the most splendid of which \vas a temple to Jupiter Olympius. Ita democratic govern ment was overthrown by Phalaris, B. C. 571, but was again restored after his death. After- wards it was possessed by the Carthaginians. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. AIX 33 ALA Its antique remains attract the attention of modern travellers. AGRIPPA, Henry Cornelius a native of Cologne, born in 1486, and noted tor his acquire- ments, talents, and eccentricity. For his military services, he was knighted. He was acquainted with eight languages, and made pretensions to magic, which procured him invitations from various personages of celebrity, who sought to acquire a knowledge of futurity. After a life full of change and incident, he died at Greno- ble, in 1535. AGRIPPA I, grandson of Herod, tetrarch of Trachonites, and king of Judea. St. James perished in a persecution commenced by him. The occasion and manner of his death are rela- ted, Acts xii. 20 23, under his patronymic name of Herod. AGRIPPA, Marcus -Vipsanius, the son-in- law and friend of Augustus, whose fleet he commanded in the battle of Actium. AGRIPPINA, the elder, wife of Germanicus Caesar, whom she accompanied in his German expeditions. She was banished A. D. 33, by the cruel Tiberius, who hated her for her vir- tues and popularity, to the island of Pandataria, where she starved herself to death. AGRIPPINA, the younger, daughter of the above, was born at Cologne. She was pos- sessed of talents, but intriguing, dissolute, and ambitious. She was married to her uncle Claudius, the emperor, whom she poisoned to clear the throne for her wicked son Nero, who assassinated her, when she became troublesome after his elevation. AHASUERUS, the king of Persia, whose marriage with Esther, and protection of the Jews, are described in the Scriptures. He is probably the Artaxerxes Longimanus of the Greeks, whose reiom began B. C. 465. AHAZ, son of Jotham, and king of Judah, reigned from 743 to 728 B. C., and was con- temporary with the prophets Isaiah, Hosea, and Micah. AIGUILLON, duke d' ; a peer of France, and minister of Foreign affairs under Louis XV. He was witty, but little acquainted with political science. On the accession of Louis XVI, he was removed, and, having been soon after banished, he died in exile in 1780. AIX-LA-CHAPELLE, in German Aachen, a German city on the borders of Belgium, lying between the Rhine and the Meuse, in a rich valley encompassed by hills. The city, in 1828, contained a population of 35,800. It was the birth-place of Charlemagne according to some authors, and contains many buildings and monuments of historical interest. It was the northern capital of Charlemagne, who held a splendid court here, and was buried in its cathe- dral. Succeeding emperors conferred so many privileges on the city, that it was remarked that " the air of Aix-la-Chapelle gave freedom even to the outlaws." In diplomacy, it is famous for more than one Congress of powers, and par- ticularly for that of 1748, in which peace was concluded between England, France, Holland, and several German powers. AJACCIO, or Ajazzo, the capital and finest city of Corsica, containing o',57() inhabitants. It is famous for being the birth-place of Napo- leon. Its coral and anchovy fisheries make it a place of some commercial importance. AJAX. The name of two of the Homeric heroes (Telamon and Oileus), formidable in the Trojan war, whose history, however, is purely mythological. AKBAH, a Saracen conqueror, who over- ran Africa from Cairo to the Atlantic, was kill- ed in a revolt of the Greeks and Africans. He lived in the first century of the Hegira. AKBAR, or Akber, "Mohammed, sultan of the Moguls, in 155t>. He regained Delhi from the Patans, quelled several revolts, conquering the whole country of Bengal, and taking Cash- mere and Sind. He pardoned his son Selim, who had made an unsuccessful attempt to de- throne him. Akbar died in 1(505, of grief for the loss of one his sons. AKENSIDE, Mark ; an English poet and physician, the son of a butcher, born at New- castle-upon-Tyne, in 1721. He was intended for the ministry, but preferred the study of medicine. He never had much success in the practice of his profession, but as a poet ac- 'uired great renown. His " Pleasures of the magination," will be read as , as long as the Eng- lish language exists. He was a scholar, and a man of strict morality. He died of a fever in 1770, in the 49th year of his age. ALABAMA, a state of great importance, was very recently detached from Mississippi. In 1817, it was erected into a territorial gov- ernment, and became a slate in 1820. The rapidity with which the population of Alabama has increased, has been surprising even to those who are accustomed to behold the rapid rise of the new states of this country. It is asserted, and with truth, that no portion of the western country has exhibited so speedy an increase of population. In 1800, the inhabi- tants of that part of Mississippi which now CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ALA 34 ALA forms the state of Alabama, amounted to only 2,000, while ten years later, the same region con- tained 10,000. In J820, the number of inhabi- tants was found to amount to 127,000; and. in 1840, it reached 590,756. The length of the state is2SO miles; its breadth, 1GO ; and it con- tains 52,000 square miles. It may be well, before entering into any historical" detail, to give a brief general description of the physical appearance of the country. The land is divided into several regular terraces, or belts, as it were, which rise above each other from the gulf of Mexico. Of these the southern belt or terrace, is flat and swampy, containing several savannahs. Pine is the prevalent timber. Pleasing and varying undulations distinguish the northern belt. The greater part of Alabama is separated from Tennessee valley by abrupt and precipi- tous hills, or rather mountains, which, in some places, rise to an elevation of 2,000 feet above the gulf level. The swamps in the vicinity of Florida are numerous, and covered with cy- press, gum, and loblolly pine-trees, while the uplands are timbered with the long-leaved pine. What are termed the hummock lands, the fer- tility of which is lasting, form a belt between the pine ridges and the bottoms, and, as the French imagine that they are well adapted to the rearing of grape vines, it may not be long before these slopes will be clustered with smi- ling vineyards, and echo the joyous song of the vine-dresser, and the merriment of the autum- nal vintage. Yet corn, cotton, tobacco, beef, and pork, at present constitute the main products of the state. It is said that the culture of the sugar-cane would not be difficult in Alabama, and in it, groves of orange-trees, undoubtedly of Spanish origin, are not infrequent. The Creek Indians possess some of the most fertile portions of the country. We cannot attempt a minute history of this state, so much are its annals involved with those of other portions of the western country. The various contests between Spanish, French, and English colonists in the great valley of the Mississippi, while they prove interesting and instructive when treated of at that length which would be requisite to do them justice, involved in a general view, would prove unsa- tisfactory and destitute of all interest to the reader. Some facts relative to the early dis- coveries in the southern portion of North Amer- ica, will not be jndged misplaced, if they are introduced here. Sebastian Cabot coasted the tountry, which subsequently obtained the name of Florida, a very few years after the discovery of America by Columbus. The Spanish claim for Juan Pon^ de Leon the merit of discove- ring Florida, in 1512, at a time when he was engaged in the pursuit of that immortal foun- tain, whose waters were to restore to age the vanished bloom and strength of youth. It was on Easter Day that land appeared. As this fes- tival is called by the Spaniards Pasr.ua dc jlvres, the festival of flowers, Leon gave the name of Florida to the new discovered country. Her- rera assigns a different reason for the appella- tion in the blooming appearance of the country, which presented an astonishing variety and quantity of blossoms. The Indians whom" Leon encountered, far from being effeminate and soft, like the inhabitants of the West India Islands, were stern and warlike, exhibiting so decided a hostility to the Spaniards, that they were glad to effect a retreat. The French who settled on the borders of the Mississippi at an early period, did not meet with much success at first, and for a long time the French settleuients were insignificant and unno- ticed. Instead of drawing their support from the fertile bosom of the earth beneath their feet, they are said to have subsisted on provisions obtain- ed from France and the Spanish colonies. So slow were they in appreciating the richness of the soil, and so tenacious of established opi- nions and prejudices, that on a superficial exami- nation of facts, we are surprised to find that, in the northern and more sterile parts of North America, where a thousand obstacles presented themselves in the path of the adventurer, the work of colonization went on with the greatest rapidity. This appears to have been a wise ordi- nation of Providence. The French settlers, while they wanted the perseverance of the English, and the colonial experience of the Spaniards, had a singular facility in winning the friendship and esteem of the savages. Yet, in spite of this advantage, few of the colonies they founded at the south, went on without many interruptions, while the Spanish settle- ments were generally permanent. Mobile, now an important and flourishing town, in the lower part of Alabama, while alternately in the possession of the French and Spaniards, was little more than a mere military post. The cause of this is, perhaps, partly to be found in the character of the country around it, which abounds in dreary, swampy lands, and stagnant waters, while a barren region of pine woods is contiguous. Mobile lies on the west side of Mobile Bay, and HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ALA 35 ALA is situated on a plain of considerable elevation. A swampy island opposite the city, makes it difficult of access, but when gained, vessels remain in perfect security. No sooner did it come into the hands of the United States, than its importance was vastly increased, and its appearance changed for the better. It is now considered to be, next to New Orleans and Charleston, the largest cotton market in the country. The former monotony of its waters is banished by the continual arrival and departure of numerous steamboats, which ply upon the river above. After the English had obtained possession of the whole country east of the Mississippi, which was ceded to them by the French, in the treaty of peace concluded between France and Great Britain, Feb. 10th, 1763, they encountered the hostilitv of the Spanish, who were in posses- sion of Louisiana, and were inflamed against the English by motives of hostility and jeal- ousy. The war of the American revolution placed the British colonists in Florida in a peculiarly embarrassing and dangerous situa- tion. On the one hand they were threatened by the Spanish colonists of Louisiana, while, on the other, they feared the hostility of the new states. The Spanish colonists in turn, although fearful of the consequences of the spread of liberal principles which the success of the Americans would ensure, and aware that the discomfiture of the British in Florida would be a source of congratulation to the Americans, yet so ardently desired the conquest, that they laid aside all minor considerations, and determined on attempting it. At this time, Galvez, a gal- lant and enterprising officer, was the Spanish commander of Louisiana. He took the field against the British with 2.300 men. Natchez and Pensacola capitulated, and Galvez. in 1780, sailed against Mobile with a powerful arma- ment. A storm overtook him in the gulf, and the wreck of one of his armed vessels, with the wetting of his provision and ammunition, gave no good omen of ultimate success. Anv other commander, so circumstanced, would have despaired, but Galvez, keeping up a toler- able appearance, landed near Mobile, and halted in the momentary expectation of an attack from the British. He saw that such an attack would be ruinous, and, entertaining no doubt that the British would commence hostilities, made preparations for relinquishing his artillery and military stores, and falling back, in what order he might, upon New Orleans. Whether from want of foresight, or from cowardice, the English did not attempt to disturb him. Finding himself, much to his surprise, un- molested, Galvez took heart again, and having carefully dried his stores and ammunition, which, upon examination, were found not to have been spoiled, though badly wet, he marched upon Mobile, which was garrisoned and defended by regulars and militia. Six Spanish batteries, playing, with well-directed aim upon the place, opened a breach, and the garrison immediately capitulated ! In this af- fair, the English behaved with a hesitation and timidity, which it is but justice to say, is unusual in them. At Pensacola, only sixty miles off, General Campbell was stationed with an overwhelming force ; yet he inarched not to the relief of Mobile, until it was in the hands of Galvez. The capture of Mobile by the Spanish, fills a conspicuous page in the historj of Alabama. Towards the close of the year 1811, the troops of the United States were employed against the Indians, who formed powerful hostile combina- tions in the western country. During the war with Great Britain, many bloody engagements were fought with the Indians. After the surren- der of Detroit, an event which produced such an universal feeling of shame and degradation in the west, the Indians sent news of their triumph even to the most southerly extremity of the union, and invited the neutral tribes of the south to assume the hatchet on the side of their red brethren. The Creeks and Seminoles, with many other tribes, were not slow in responding to the summons, and became in- volved in the war, which was felt, in hostile incursions, by the entire frontier, from Ten- nessee to the bay of Mobile. Tecumseh or Tecumthe, the famous Indian chief, arming himself with the persuasive predictions of his brother, the prophet, arrived among the Creek Indians in 1812, and urged them forward to deeds of blood. The most dreadful outrages were consequently perpetrated by the Creeks along the Alabama frontier, which sufFered extremely during this war. In 1814, Mobile was attacked by the British, and defended by Major Lawrence, with a gal- lantry which has gained him no inconsiderable renown. His Spartan band of 130 men were resolved to suffer no stain to dim the brilliancy of their starred banner, and to uphold it while the life-blood ran warm in their veins. On the 12th of September, a memorable day to the garrison, intelligence was received at the fort of the landing of a pretty large force of Indi- ans and Spaniards in its vicinity. In the course CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ALA 36 ALA of that day two British brigs and sloops hove in sight, and anchored at an inconsiderable dis- tance. At half after four in the evening of the 15th, the Hermes, Charon, Sophia and Ana- conda, with ninety guns, anchored at such a distance from the fort, as to admit of firing upon it conveniently. A simultaneous land attack was begun by Captains Nicholls and Woodbine. Their fortifications were made of sand, and they brought a howitzer to bear upon the fort at point blank distance ; but they were soon compelled to abandon their position. Still a severe firing was maintained by the ships and fort. The Hermes, receiving a ra- king fire, ran ashore, was abandoned, and blew up. The Charon was almost wholly disabled. When the flag-staff of the fort was shot away, Woodbine and Nicholls, thinking the foe van- quished, rushed forward to the fort, but were awakened to a sense of their error by a mur- derous fire which sent them to the right about with enviable facility. What praise is too warm for the conduct of the few Americans who composed the garrison, when we consider the numbers and advantages of the enemy ? The 600 men who attacked the fort by sea, were supported by 90 heavy guns. Four hun- dred Indians and others made an attack in the rear. Captain Lawrence had but about a seventh of the enemy's numerical force, and 20 guns, all badly mounted, and some of them quite ineffective. Yet, while he lost but ten men, he compelled the enemy to retire with a loss of their very best ship, and 230 men. The political metropolis of Alabama is Tus- caloosa, a rapidly increasing and improving village, at the falls of the Black Warrior. The spot on which it stands, was but a short time since a wild forest, and to a person wiio had visited this unsettled woodland, the village must appear like that palace in the Arabian Nights, which was erected in a single night. The inhabitants of Alabama are justly proud of their state proud of its political and commer- cial importance, of its rapidity, growth, and character for industry. It is a slave-holding state, and contains many opulent planters, who have all the lavish hospitality which distin- guishes them wherever they may dwell. Ala- bama can boast of very few institutions, lit- erary or religious; but in the character of the people, there is a regard for literature and reli- gion, which will supply the want before long. The laws of this State exhibit no very marked difference from those of other stales. The senators serve for a term of three, and the rep- resentatives for one year. There is a supreme and a circuit court, with subordinate courts, appointed by the legislature, who choose the judges, the latter holding their offices during good behavior. The boundaries of Alabama are as follows : north by Tennessee; east by Georgia; south by Florida and the gulf of Mexico, and west by Mississippi. ALAMANNI, Luigi, a celebrated Italian poet a native of Florence, born in 1495. Being at variance with Clement VII. he fled to France to avoid the power of the pope, but returned to Florence when it became independent. When it was subjected to the Medici, he sought the protection of Francis 1. of France, and was esteemed by that monarch, and by Henry II, who employed him in several affairs of conse- quence. He died of dysentery, at Amboise. His writings embraced almost every depart- ment of poetry. ALAND, a cluster of islands in the Gulf of Bothnia, belonging to Russia. The ground is stony and the soil thin. Eighty of the islands are inhabited, and the aggregate population is more than thirteen thous island is forty miles long. e popuatio The princi ipal ALANI or Alans, a warlike tribe that left their abodes near Mount Caucasus, in Asia. when the Roman empire was declining. After 412, thev became lost among the Vandals. ALAR1C, king of the Visigoths, who plun- dered the Peloponnesus in ;$!>5. He appears first as an ally of the Romans, whose weakness he discovered and profited by. When he first threatened Rome, his forbearance was pur- chased by a ransom of 5000 pounds of gold, 30,001) po"unds of silver, 4000 garments of silk, 3000 pieces of fine scarlet cloth, and 3000 pounds of pepper. In 410, the Goths returned, penetrated the city, and sacked it. The tir.t sures which had been accumulated during a thousand years, vanished in three days beneath the hands of the rapacious conquerors. The flames destroyed works of art which the barba- rians were unable to carry oft', but Alai ic spared the churches and those who had sought refuge in them. Alaric died at u Calabnan town (Cosenza), A. D.410, when lie was preparing to lay waste Sicily and Africa. In order to con- ceal his remains from the Romans, slaves were employed to divert the waters of the BuHento, and hollow his last resting-place in the channel of the stream ; when the earth had received the body of the conqueror, the waves were permit- ted to rush in above it, and the slaves were HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL ALB 37 ALB murdered, that Alaric's secret might be in the keeping of the waters and the voiceless dead. ALBA, a city of Latium, built, according to tradition, by Ascanius, the son of JEneas. Being the rival of Rome, it was destroyed by the Ro- mans, G65 B. C. and the inhabitants were carried to Rome. ALBANI, Francesco, a painter, born at Bo- logna, in 1578, whose female forms have been highly extolled. From the effeminate charac- ter of his subjects, he was called the Jlnacreon of painters. He died in 1660, in his 82d year, having lived long enough to survive his fame. ALBANIA, a province on the coast of the Adriatic and Ionian seas, called in Turkish Jlrnumd, in Albanian, Skiperi, anciently Epirus and Illyria. It was the kingdom of Pyrrhus, and a few years back was governed by All Pacha. It is fertile and rich, and the inhabitants of the mountains are famous for courage. The wo- men in the absence of male protectors, have been frequently known to defend their homes with spirit and success. The population is about 30,000. ALBANY, or Albani, countess of, princess Louisa Maria Caroline, or Aloysia, born in 1753, in 1772, married Charles Stuart, the English pretender, whose barbarity and habitual intoxi- cation, drove her to a cloister in 1780, and received an annuity from the French court, after the death of her husband, in 1788. She died at Florence, in 1824, in her 72d year. She was buried beside Alfieri, in the church of Santa Croce. at Florence. Alfieri was tenderly attached to her, and attributed to her his inspi- ration. (See Alficri.) ALBANY, the seat of government of the State of New-York, situated on the west bank of the Hudson or North River, 144 miles north of New- York city. Population 33,721. The river is navigable to Albany, for sloops of 80 ton's, and trade with New-York is carried on by means of these. The Erie and Champlain ca- nals unite above the city, and are connected with a basin at Albany. The facility of com- munication which it possesses, renders it a great thoroughfare. Its exports are wheat, and other articles of produce. The Dutch settled Albany in 1614. It was built up with the disregard to elegance so common among the Dutch, but its modern buildings, both private and public, are beautiful and tasteful. ALBEMARLE SOUND, an arm of the sea, extending sixty miles into the eastern coast of North Carolina, connected with the Atlantic and Pamlico Sound by small inlets, and with Chesapeake Bay by a canal which passes through the Dismal Swamp. ALBERT I, emperor and duke of Austria, crowned in 1298, after defeating and slaying Adolphus of Nassau, his competitor. The rival leaders engaged in single combat, and Adol- phus exclaimed, " Your crown and life are lost !" " Heaven will decide," was the answer of Albert, as he forced his lance into the face of his adversary and unhorsed him. Albert was assassinated in 1308, by his nephew John, son of the duke of Suabia, whose paternal estates he had seized. John had often asserted bis claims, and urged them upon Albert when lie was departing for Switzerland, on account of the revolt of the Swiss. The emperor con- temptuously offered his nephew a garland of flowers. " Take this," said he, " amuse your- self with botanical investigations, but leave the cares of government to those who are old and wise enough to understand them." Albert breathed his last in the arms of a poor woman, who was sitting by the road-side at the time of his assassination. ALBIGENSES, the Protestants of Savoy and Piedmont ; in the Middle Ages, the objects of cruel persecution and of several crusades. ALBOIN, king of the Lombards, ascended the throne in 561. When an ally of the Ro- mans, he slew Cunimund, king 01 the Gepidse, whose daughter Rosamond he afterwards mar- ried. He undertook the conquest of Italy, r.nd had made great progress, when he was killed by an assassin, at the instigation of his wife Rosamond. The cause of her anger was his sending her, during one of his fits of intoxica- tion, a drinking-cup made of her father's skill], filled with wine, and compelling her, to use his words, to drink with her father. ALBRET, Jane d', daughter of Margaret, queen of Navarre, was married at the age of eleven to the duke of Cleves, but the marriage was annulled in 1548. when she espoused An- thony de Bourbon, duke of Vendome, by whom she became mother of Henry IV. In J555, her father dying, she became queen of Navarre, and in 1562, the death of her husband left her independent. She then set herself to establish the Reformation in her kingdom, although opposed by France and Spain. She expired suddenly, at Versailles, in 1572, and her death was attributed to poison. ALBUHERA, a village in Estremadura, si- tuated on the Albuhera, 12 miles S. S. E. of Badajoz. Here the English marshal, Beres- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ALC 38 ALE ford, gained a victory over the French, under Soult, May 16th, 18)1. ALBUQUERQUE, the name of two Portu- guese brothers, distinguished for bravery, who took Cochin, in India, in 1505. Francis was lost on his passage home. When Alphonso captured Ormus, an island at the entrance of the Persian Gulf, the king of Persia demanded the tribute which he had been accustomed to receive from the princes of the island. Upon this, Albuquerque laid before the ambassadors a sword and a bullet, saying haughtily, " this is the coin in which Portugal pays her tribute." After a rash and unsuccessful attempt upon Calicut, he took Goa and Malacca. The envy of courtiers, and the suspicions of king Emman- uel, did not spare even the distinguished merit of Albuquerque, who died at Goa, in 1515, after his ungrateful master had deprived him of his place, and appointed his personal enemy, Lopez Soarez, to fill it. ALCjEUS, a Greek lyric poet, born at Mity- lene in Lesbos, and contemporary with Sappho. He engaged in war with ardor, and his lays breathe tne divine enthusiasm of liberty. ALCALA DE HENAREZ, a city of Spain, in New Castile, situated on the river Henarez, 15 miles E. N. E. of Madrid. It was called by the ancients Complutum. Here was printed the first Polyglot Bible, called the Complutensian Polyglot, which cost Cardinal Xirnenes 250,000 ducats. A copy of it sold at Paris, in 1817, for j 676 sterling. " ALCIBIADES, an Athenian general, famous for his enterprise, gallantry, versatility, and natural foibles. He was the son of Clinias and Dinomache, and was born at Athens, about -150 B. C. He was educated in the house of Peri- cles, who was too much occupied with state affairs to pay much attention to ! revolution in France drove Alfieri from a coun- try he loved, to his native land, where he resi- ded at Florence till his death, in 1803. He was an ardent lover of freedom, but he mourned over the crimes perpetrated in her name. Alfie- ri's talents were great, but misapplied, and his tragedies are rather valuable as indicating his powers, than as establishing his fame. ALFRED THE GREAT, king of England, was born 849, and died UOO. He was the young- est son of Ethel wolf, king of the West Saxons, and was born at Wantage, in Berkshire. He went to Rome at the age of five years, and was anointed by the Pop, although he then had an elder brother. However, in 872. lie ascended the throne. This was an unpropitions time, for the power of the Danes was then great and employed in harassing the Saxons, whose coun- try they ravaged in various directions. Alfred concluded some treaties with them, but they were not kept, and, unable to make head against the invaders, he was compelled to fly. and in concealment to await a moment when his re-appearance would be advantageous for his country. In the disguise of a harper, lie penetrated the Danish camp to gain informa- tion of tiie strength and hopes of his foes, and having satisfied himself of both, directed his nobles and their vassals to assemble at Soivrood. Here lie headed the troops, and, attacking the Danes at Eddington. gained a signal victory. He permitted those Danes, who were willing to embrace the Christian religion, to remain in the kingdom of East Anglia, which he surrendered to them. He built forts to secure his subjects, augmented and strengthened his navv, and established the prosperity of London on' a firm basis. He defeated the Danes who still per; sistcd in attempting to obtain footing in Eng- < land, and made his name a terror to the pirates. He had fought fifty-six battles by sea and land, in every one of which In- was personally enga- ged. His zeal for the reformation of laws and manners is as honorable to him as his military prowess. He composed a code of laws, institu- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. I ALG 47 ALG e trial by jury, and divided England into was endowed with hereditary power by one of and tithings. So successful were his the Fatiniite Caliphs. The Zcirites, as they itions that it is said the crime of robbery were called, ruled until 1148, when Roger, king was unknown, and the most valuable goods of Sicily, and the Moravites, possessed them- might be exposed upon the highway, without selves, at different times, of the whole of the any dread of thieves. Alfred formed a parlia- territory of Hassan Ben Ali. Algiers was an merit which met at London semi-annually. independent sovereignty after 1270. Ferdi- He was an ardent lover of learning, and was nand, who fitted out an expedition against the himself a distinguished scholar. To promote it, Barbary powers, in 1509, subdued Algiers, and he invited learned men from all parts, and erected a strong castle on an island which corn- established schools throughout his kingdom, manded the entrance of the city. Horuc and He is said to have been the founder of the Uni- Hagradin, after the death of Ferdinand, were versity of Oxford, or, at least, to have exalted summoned by the Algerines, and, appearing it to a height which it had never before attained, with a strong squadron, were received with University-college sprang from his liberality, every demonstration of joy. But Horuc caused He composed several works, and translated the emir Selim Entani to be strangled, and others for the benefit of his subjects. Among himself to be proclaimed king, in 1518, by the his translations may be mentioned Boetius's Turks, whose intolerance and cruelty drove the Consolations of Philosophy. He was industri- natives to seek for assistance from the Span- ous and fond of order, dividing the twenty-four iards, but the fleet of the latter was destroyed hours into three equal portions ; one devoted by storm. Horuc Barbarossa was killed before to religious duties, another to public affairs, Oran, where the Spanish governor defeated his and the third to rest. Alfred laid the foun- troops, and killed 1500 Turks, dation of the navy of England, by build- Hagradin, his successor, being satisfied of his ing galleys of a size superior to that of any inability to defend himself against the Chris- of the age. In private life, he was distinguished tians, in 1519 sought the protection ofthe Sultan by piety, affability, and cheerfulness. His Soliman, who accepted his proposals, made him person was commanding and stately. Pacha, and gave him 10,000 Janisaries. The ALGIERS, Regency of, was founded about Spaniards found their position on an island J5J8, by two brothers, Horuc and Hagradin, untenable, and, in 1519, it was connected with or Khair Eddin, both of whom were surna- the main land by a mole. Charles V under- med Barbarossa or Red- Beard. The Christian took the siege of Algiers, in the latter part of knights, having warred against the states of 1541. It was defended by Hassan, who had northern Africa, and almost annihilated the been honored with the office of Pacha, after the Moorish commerce, Selim and Soliman exhort- death of Hagradin, and who heard with some ed their subjects to make reprisals, and to annoy alarm that Charles meditated an attack with their Christian foes by committing extensive 200 sail, and 30,000 men. The ships and camp piracies. The call was obeyed without reluc- of the Christians were destroyed by storms tance, and the Mohammedans, crowded beneath of uncommon violence, the destructive effects the crescent, prepared to extend the terror of which were followed by the ravages of earth- of their name upon the seas. The piratical quakes. Charles lost his cannon, military stores, republic founded by the fierce chieftains above- and baggage, and was compelled to abandon named, was the strong hold of religious fanati- some of-his scattered troops, while 15 ships of cism and authorised piracy. The barks ofthe war, 140 transports, and 8000 men perished in Corsairs swept the seas in triumph, and the the storm. This success inspired the Moors Algerines distinguished themselves above the with the liveliest joy, but they attributed it en- inhabitants of the other Barhary states, by the tirely to the pious exertions of Sid-Atica, a fierce perseverance with which they pursued Maraboot, who employed himself diligently in their career of crime. A foreign soldiery elected beating the sea with his stick, until the waves their chief in Algiers, and the Dey, chosen as lost alf patience, and rising in a body, destroyed a general, was the first among his equals and the Christian fleet. The worthy old gentleman the ruler of the native races. The soldiers were was buried with great solemnity, and his bones not permitted to marry, and had no participa- rest beneath a monument erected by his coun- ties in the government. The city of Algiers trymen. They are said to be gifted with the jAUezira) was built by Zeiri,an Arab ofdistinc- magic power of his stick, and, employed upon tion, in 944, and the family of this able man the waves with proper emphasis, capable of 5 CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ALG 48 raising the wind to an incredible extent. Anti- quity furnishes a belief in the efficacy of chas- tising the waters, for Xerxes, enraged at the turbulence of the Grecian waves, caused them to be whipped with rods. In 1703, the Spaniards unsuccessfully renew- ed the war with Algiers. The Algerines easily repelled the English, French, and Dutch, the first of whom made a treaty with Algiers, whose pride they humbled in 1816. The year before, two United States' frigates had captured a piratical frigate and brig of war, belonging to the Algerines, and compelled them not only to renounce their claim to all tribute, but to make indemnification for the losses which we had experienced from their piracies. In 1S17, the Algerines penetrated the North Sea, and there, with surprising audacity, captured ships which did not belong to tributary powers, or to those who were exempted from their depredations by treaty. Prisoners taken by these Corsairs were treated with the greatest severity, and only permitted to be ransomed at enormous prices. Towards the latter part of their career, the pirates professed to consider captives not in the light of slaves, but as prisoners of war. Their treatment, however, instead of being ameliora- ted was more harsh than ever, and the corsairs, although they respected the flags of America and other strong powers, in violation of their treaties, warred witli the ships of weaker states, and enforced the superiority of might over right. The jealousy of the European Stairs for a long time favored the encroachments <.f the Algerines, until the French prepared for conflict with stern decision. One of the last events in the reign of Charles X, was the entire prostration of the power of Algiers. TheDov, with his personal treasures, and women, was permitted to retire, and selected Italy as a retreat. The French secured their conquest and estab- lished a government upon their own principles. During th'> prosperity of Algiers, a struggle was kept up with the Sublime Porte about, the appointment of the deys, and the Sultan finally relinquished the claim of choosing (hem, and retained but a nominal authority over Algiers. The deys, whenever they displeased the fero- cious soldiery they affected to rule, were di and put to death. The lives of these men were proverbially short. 'but we admit an exception in the person of Mohammed III who died in 17'Jl, after a reign of '1 years, at th" age of !i;?. Omar I'ar.ha, the opponent of Lord Exmonth, was murdered in 1817. Accordingly. Ali llo- dy a, his successor, shut himself up in the castle ALH of Casaba, where, by means of his fifty -six can- non, and a garrison on which he could rely, he maintained the ascendancy over the city and the cruel Turkish troops, who had mur- dered Omar. Hussein, successor of Hodya, rendered cautious by experience, likewise occu- pied this strong castle. The government of Algiers was despotic, the dey possessing un- limited power, but being assisted by a Divan composed of his chief officers of state, and first ministers. The common soldiers elected the Dey, but no election was permitted without unanimity in the electors. Therefore, when there was a difference, the majority compelled the weaker party to concur with them. The new Dey espoused the principle of proscription, and frequently put to death incumbents, for the sake of making State offices open to his parti- zans. He held a court of justice on four days in the week, where proceedings were summary, and condemnation was followed by punishment at no long interval. The State of Algiers lies between Tunis and Fez. The city, which is strongly fortified, is on the sea-coiist. Algiers contains 89,300 square miles. ALH A MA, anciently Artigis Julia, a town of Granada, in Spain, situated on the Motril, 15 miles from" Granada. Population, G,UO(). The medicinal baths and romantic" scenery of this place have rendered it noted, but its fame rests upon its historical remembrances. This " Key of Granada," was taken by the Span- iards, in HH1, after n most spirited resistance on the p-ii-i et' the valiant Moors. ALHAMBRA. Tlu> AllUmbra was the for- tified palace of the Moorish kinv* of Gra- nada a possession to which they clung with their litest irr.isn, r.nd which was the best beloved spot. in their terrestrial paradise. The meaning <>f the Moorish name is the iu:n CITY, and it was so called in consequence of the color of th materials employe.! in ImildiiK.r. The Spanish term it ihe Hierru fli. or Snowy Mountain. The fortress was- (it one time capa- ^ hie of. rty'thousand mop. Above * the palace is (he llnpso of the Generalif, a Moorish building, while a church dedicated to St. Helena, frowns the ascent. Tii"rcare two pnlac.es, the old Moorish palace, and that com- menced by Charles V. The former exhibit* HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL ALH 49 AI.I remains of the splendor of the arts among the infidels. A striking portion of the palace is the Court of Lions which is an hundred feet in length, and fifteen in breadth, surrounded by a beautiful colonnade seven feet broad at the sides, and ten at the ends. Two splendid por- ticoes, fifteen ieet square, project into this court. The square is paved with tiles the colonnade with white marble. The walls are covered with tiles placed checker-wise, which gives them a highly fanciful appearance. The columns, upon which the roof and gallery rest, are grotesquely ornamented and irregularly distributed. The capitals abound with curious devices, among which, however, there is no representation of animal life. The fountain, consists of twelve ill-shaped lions, bearing on their backs a large basin, out of which rises a smaller one. Here, when the pipes were in order, water gushed from the inner basin, and, passing through the lions, communicated hv channels with other apartments. The fountain is of white marble and inscribed with Arabian distiches, like the following, " fe'ees't thou how the water flows copiously like the Nile?" "The fair princess that walks by th-is garden, covered with pearls, ornaments its beauty so much, that thou mayest doubt whether it be a fountain that flows or tears of her admirers.'' The hall beyond the colonnade on the south side was the place chosen bv Abouabdoulah for the execution of the Abencerrages, and their bleeding heads fell, as fast as they were decapi- tated, into the limpid waters of the fountain. The hall of the Two Sisters, (Torre de las dos Hermanns), was named from two beautiful slabs of white marble, inserted in the pavement. EL Tocador, or the Tiring Tower, was appropria- ted to the toilette of the Sultana, who. in one part, had a marble slab in the floor perforated with holes, to admit vapor and perfumes, for the purification of her person. The king's bed- chamber was furnished with fountains to cool the atmosphere, and the royal baths were com- modious and superb. Beneath were vaults used as a cemetery by the Moorish monarch. The regret of the Moors at leaving this place, which wealth, art, and taste, had brought to a degree of splendor which satisfied the imagina- tion, can easily be conceived. They never ceased to offer up prayers in their mosques for their restoration to Granada. After it fell into the hands of the believers. Alhambra continued to be a royal demesne. Charles V abandoned it as a residence in consequence of earthquakes ; and Philip V, with his beautiful queen Eliza- beth of Parma, was the last royal tenant of this princely abode. Subsequently it became infested by a lawless population which was ex- pelled, but, owing to the culpable negligence of officers, the palace was permitted to fall into decay from which the Moorish portion was partially icscued by the exertions of the French troops garrisoned in it. The French, on their departure, blew up part of the walls and de- stroyed its importance as a military post. To the historian, the poet, the antiquary, and the artist, this relic of Moorish splendor possesses an indisputable interest. ALL the cousin, and son-in-law of Moham> med. When Mohammed assembling his kins- men, and making known to them his pretended mission, asked, who would be his vizier ; Ali, then only 14 years of age, started up and ex- claimed : " I will ! Let but a man advance against thee, I will pluck out his eyes, dash in his jaws, break his legs, and tear up his belly. O prophet, I am thy vizier." So well did he keep his word, that he was called the Lion of the Lord, the ever-rictorious. He should have succeeded Mohammed, but being opposed suc- cessfully by Omar and Othman, he formed a sect of his own, and gained many followers On the death of Othman, he was declared Ca liph,but was assassinated in a mosque, atCufa, in the C3d year of his age, 669. ALI, pacha of Yanina, commonly called AH Pacha, was born of a noble family inTepeleni, in 1744. and at the age of sixteen", when distin- guished for beauty and darincr. headed the troops whom the death of his father left with no other leader. Being defeated, he commen- ced robber, but was so unsuccessful, that he was forced to pawn his sabre to keep himself from starving. As he was sitting, ruminating upon the hardness of his destiny, and carelessly turning up the ground with his staff, he struck upon something hard. Curiosity induced him to search further, and he dug up a chest of gold ! He now equipped a band of followers whose crueltv and rapacity made them formidable. Having rendered some service to the Porte, he was made governor of some provinces in Greece, but maintained himself in almost inde- pendent sovereignty. Indeed lie boasted that he never had a master, and " Laughed to scorn the death firman, Which others tremble but to scan." He became a formidable military potentate between 1790 and 1*21. In 1822, his capital, Yanina, being taken, he was put '.o death by CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ALL 50 ALP order of the Sultan. He was brave and able, but cruel, rapacious, false, ambitious and suspicious. Pouqueville says that he had a Greek lady, Euphrosyne, and fifteen oth^r wo- men thrown into the sea, because he suspected that they exerted an undue influence over his son. If he wished to possess himself of a beau- tiful Greek girl, he sent his executioner to her parents, with this message : " Your daughter has found favor in the eyes of Ali." They were then forced to surrender her, or fly. ALICANT, (anciently Lucentum) a city and port of Spain, on the Mediterranean sea, Ion. 29 w..lat. 38^21 N. Population 25,300. Its harbor is good, and it is the centre of commerce between Spain and Italy. ALLEN, Ethan, brigadier-general in our revolutionary army, born at Salisbury, Con- necticut. His parents removed to Vermont, when he was quite young, and here he received the greater part of his education. Prior to the commencement of hostilities he had given proofs of daring and enterprise. Soon after the battle of Lexington, (1775), incompliance with the request of the legislature of Connecticut, he headed two hundred and thirty Green Moun- tain boys, and marched against the fortresses of Ticonderoga and Crown Point. At Castle- ton he was to have been joined by a reinforce- ment under Arnold, but the latter, unable to raise the proposed force, set forward with the Spartan band of Allen. On the night of the 9th of May, Allen landed eighty-three men near the fort, having with difficulty procured boats for the purpose. Day surprised him be- fore his rear guard was brought over, and he found himself compelled to attack the place. He concluded an animated speech by saying, " I am going to lead you forward but the at- tempt is desperate and I wish to urge no man onward against his will. Those who will fol- low me, poise firelocks !" Every firelock was immediately poised. On then, my boys!" said Allen, and led the central file to the wicket gate. He was opposed by a sentry , but brought his men through the covered way, and formed them on the parade. The commanding officer, Captain de la Place, was undressed. Allen, holding his sword over him, demanding the surrender of the fortress. "In whose name?" asked the commander. " In the name of the Great Jehovah, and the continental Congress." On the same day by the capture of Crown Point, and the only armed vessel on Lake Champlain, that important lake was placed in his power. In conjunction with Brown, he attempted the reduction of Montreal, but being attacked by the British before Colo- nel Brown's troops came up, he was defeated and made prisoner. He was treated with great barbarity in hi.s captivity carried to England, and then to Halifax thence to New York, where he remained a year and a half, before he was exchanged for Col. Campbell. His health having been greatly impaired, he returned to Vermont where he was appointed to command the militia. His patriotism was firm, and he indignantly rejected the bribes offered by the British. He died suddenly, at his estate at Colchester, February 13th, 178!). He published some pamphlets, one of which contained an open declaration of infidelity. He adopted the most absurd ideas of the ancients, with regard to the transmigration of souls ; but if we may be permitted to believe the following anecdote, his avowal of atheism was insincere. When his daughter was dying, she sent for him, and said ; " Father, I am about to die: shall I be lieve in what you have taught me, or in the Christian principles my mother teaches ?" Af- ter a moment of convulsive agitation, he replied : " BelieVe in what your mother has taught you." ALMAZEZ, a town of Spain, carried by assault by the British, under General Sir Row- land Hill, 1812. ALMEIDA, a strong fortress in Portugal, in the province of Beira, on the Coa, near the Spanish borders, containing 2,750 inhabitants. It is famous for the defeat of the French, under Masse ria, by the British under Lord Wellinn-- ton,18ll. ALOADDIN, the old man of the mountains, was prince of the Arsacides, or Assassins. He resided in a castle between Antioch and Da- mascus, and his followers professed a blind devotion to his will. ALP ARSLAN, the lion's whelp, second Sultan of the Seljukiati dynasty, succeeded to the throne in 101W. He defeated the Greeks under Romanus Diogenes, their emperor. He was stubbed in 1072, by a desperate prisoner whom he had sentenced to death. ALPHONSO. Ten kings of Castile bore this name. The tenth was an astronomer of great repute. ALPHONSO IIl,the Great, king of Leon and Asturias. succeeded his father in S(it>, at the age of eighteen. He was successful against the Moors, but the decline of his life was ren- dered unlnppy by civil disturbances. His sons, instigated by the queen, waged war against him, and were only quelled with a vast loss on HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ALP 51 ALT both sides. Alphonso abdicated in favor of his son Don Garcia, but did not resign his paternal care of the kingdom, for when the Moors threatened it, he headed the Spanish troops, gained a decisive victory and died at Zamora, 912, sixty-four years old. ALPS, the loftiest ridge of mountains in Eu- rope, whose branches connect with nearly all the European mountains. Mount Blanc, the highest mountain in Europe, is 15,31)4 feet (English) high ; the great St. Bernard, 10,7*0. Separating Italy from Spain, France and Germany, it would seem as if they opposed an insurmountable bar- rier to the march of conquest ; but they have been several times crossed by large armies, the expeditions of Hannibal and Bonaparte being the most celebrated. Bonaparte, when first consul of the French republic, passed the great St. Bernard, in the year 1800. Before the allies even knew of his departure, lie was in Valais, at the house of convalescence belonging to the monks of St. Bernard ; there he remained three days, acquiring a knowledge of the local obstacles which he had to surmount. From mount St. Bernard, the army began to meet with obstacles which only genuine enthu- siasm enabled them to contend against. They had to draw their artillery filong narrow paths, in many places almost perpendicular ; and over mountains of snow. A very small force would have arrested their progress, but they met no opposition. They reached St. Peter, near the great mountain St. Bernard, on the 15th of May, General Borthier acting as Bonaparte's lieutenant. Here the whole park of artillery was collected. The mountain they had to pass over was all wild and barren, with a vast extent of snow and ice, mingled with terrific silence. Over this frightful mountain the mind of Bona- parte conceived the possibility of passing his army with all its artillery, baggage, &c. The cannon, caissons, forges, &,c. were immedi- ately dismounted piece by piece ; a number of trees were hollowed like troughs, in which the pieces of cannon might safely slide, and five or six hundred men drew them up these tremen- dous heights ; the wheels were carried on poles ; sledges conveyed the axle-trees ; and empty caissons and mules were loaded with the ammunition-boxes made of fir. The consul took no more baggage than was absolutely necessary. Five hours were con- sumed in climbing as high as the monastery of the Bernadines, where the good fathers gave each individual a glass of wine ; this, though frozen, was to them delicious, and not one 5* would have exchanged it for all the gold of Peru. There were still six leagues to go, and the rapidity of the descent made that distancs truly terrible ; men and horses constantly fall- ing, and often recovering with the greatest dif- ficulty. The march commenced at midnight, and did not finish till about nine o'clock the next evening. For nearly fourteen leagues the army had scarcely had a meal, or any repose, yet, at the end of the journey, sleep hung so heavily even upon the most robust of them, that they resigned themselves to it without a strug- gle, or a thought of their evening repast. Bona- parte traversed a portion of the way attended only by a peasant. He was dressed in the little grey surtout and cocked hat, in which artists delight to represent him. He conversed with his companion, and learning that his wishes centered in the possession of a little farm, in- ternally resolved to gratify them. The farm was presented to the peasant, whose delight and surprise may be readily imagined. ALSACE, previously to the revolution, was a province of France. On the east, it was bounded by the Rhine, separating it from Swa- bia, on the south by Switzerland and part of Tranche Comte ; on the west, by Lorraine, and on the north by the Palatinate of the Rhine. The fertility of this province is surprising, it being the land of corn, oil. wine, flax, tobacco, fruits of various descriptions, a country of woodland and pasturage. Among its mineral productions are silver^ copper, iron, and lead. The " arrowy Rhine," is the principal river of Alsace, but it has several lakes. The common language of the country people is German, though French is understood and occasionally spoken. The ancient inhabitants of this pro- vince were the Rauraci Sequani,and Medioma- trici. The Celts lost it to the Romans, from %vhom it passed to the Germans, and was won by Clovis, in 496. In 8C9, it became a pro- vince of Germany, and was governed by Ger- man dukes, and under them, by Counts, who, a century before the extinction of dukes, as- sumed the name of landgraves. By the peace of Paris, Nov. 20th, 1815, Landau, a part of Alsace, was separated from France, to which it had been annexed by the treaty of Ryswick, and now again forms part of Germany. The chief city is Strasburg. and the principal pro- ductions wine, copper, iron, tobacco, flax, mad- der, &. &c. ALTON A, after Copenhagen, the largest city of Denmark. It is situated on the Elbe, in the dutchy of Holstein, two miles from Hamburg CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. AMB 52 ALVA, Ferdinand Alvarez, duke of, descen- ded from a noble family, born in 1508, distin- guished himself in the career of arms at the awe of seventeen, and was at the siege of Pavia. Charles V made him a general, and he was commander at the siege of Mentz, where he fought with desperate but unavailing valor, for the siege was raised. He was noted for exces- sive cruelty and superstition. In the campaign against the pope, Alva compelled the pontiff to sue for peace, and then went to Rome to sup- plicate pardon for the offence. In 1567, he was sent to the Low Countries by Philip II to reduce them to the Spanish yoke. The cru- elty of The Bloody Tribunal, a council which he established, deluged the United Provinces in their best blood. At first the arms of Alva were successful, but the malcontents afterwards gainincr head, he relinquished the government where he was afterwards employed. In Por- tugal, he acquired renown by his success in drivinor Don Antonio from the throne. He died in 1582. A MADE US, the name of several of the counts of Savoy, of whom Amadeus VI was the most famous. He lent his powerful aid to John, king of France, against Edward of England ; and was the ally of John Paleologus, (emperor of Greece) , in 1365. His reign of forty years was glorious, and his death in 1383, deeply lamented. AM AZONS. A ncient writers give this name to tribes of armed and warlike women of which they enumerate three nations, the African, Asiatic, and Scythian. Their arms were bows and arrows, and they admitted no men into their community. The accounts of them are entirely fabulous. Amazania, in South Ameri- ca, derived its name from the supposition of early travellers that it was peopled by armed women. AMBOYNA, the largest and most productive of the Molucca or Spice Islands, the centre of the nutmeg and clove trade, in the Indian ocean. It is 30 or 40 miles in length. The in- habitants are wild and rude, much given to drinking. The population of Ambovna, when taken by the English, in 17%, was "about -!"..- 252; 17,813 being Protestants. In KJ24, the merchants of the English factory were tortured and put to death by the Dutch. Tlie United Provinces refused satisfaction to James I and Charles I, but paftd to Cromwell 30J,00() pounds as a small iinilomnity. AMBROSE, St. anoted father of the church, born in Gaul, 340. His future greatness was au- AME gured from the circumstance of bees swarming about the lips of the infant in his cradle, as they did about the mouth of Plato. AMERICA, including a vast extent of terri- tory, embracing every variety of climate, and bearing within it, besides its precious ore and gems, the germs of immense wealth, remained undiscovered until the llth of October, 1492, when Christopher Columbus, a native of Ge- noa, who had sailed from Spain with three fiiiull vessels under the patronage of Ferdinand and Isabella, the Castilian monarch, first beheld a light on the shore of the new Continent, two hours before midnight. On the ensuing day he set foot in the New World. Columbus felt the importance of the discovery, asyerecting the cross, and surrounded bv his crew and the wild and wonder-stricken natives, he took possession of the new country in the name of the sove- reigns of Spain. The Christian adventurers did not fail to kneel upon the sand, and offer up their thanks for having been preserved through the perils of a long voyage, and favored with the most brilliant success to compensate for all their perils. This island was called Guajuihani, by the natives, a name which Co- lumbus altered to St. Salvador, and was one of the Bahama islands. It is worthy of remark, that the vast conti- nent which Columbus discovered was not call- ed by his name, but derived its appellation from Amerigo Vespucci, a Florentine navigator, who made some subsequent discoveries, in company with Alonzo de Ojeda, in 141)9. Co lumbus did not rest satisfied with his first suc- cessful voyage or the fame which he acquired by it. but he undertook others. He was, how- ever, in the end, the victim of jealousy and in- gratitude. The Spanish colonists at Hispaniola. became discontented and preferred complaints against him, sending home accusations and remonstrances by every ship that sailed to Spain. In consequence of this, Don Francisco de Bobadilla, was sent out by the court, and invested temporarily with the chief power, be- ing permitted to use his own judgment in quel- ling the disturbances of the colonies. This person scrupled not to arrest Columbus and put him in irons, from which he would not suffer himself to be freed, when he was carried on board the vessel, which was to bear him to Spain. " No," said he, when the attendants offered to remove them ; " the truth must be apparent, and my patrons nre too noble, too gen- erous to overlooK me. Then, if fortune again smiles upon me, these will serve as affecting HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. AME 53 AME memorials of sorrow past : I will not part with them, and I even wish that, when I am no more, they maybe suspended "over my sepulchre." When he again set foot in Spain, he might have exclaimed, in the language of the poet ; On tin riurap uest li lorae and honor V Columbus was liberated immediately by royal order, and received at court with great respect. But though Bobadilla was recalled, Columbus in vain supplicated to be restored to his go- vernment ; he was put off by vague promises, and the post finally given to Don Nicholas Ovando, a practical as well as accomplished man. Thus, after three momentous voyages, and the acquisition of much fame, he found himself displaced and thwarted in a point in which he conceived his honor concerned, and his hard-earned authority torn from his posses- sion. But it was not. the nature of Columbus to sink under his misfortunes ; on the contrary with four small caravels, the largest being but of seventy tons burthen, he set out on his fourth voyage of discovery with the intention of com- pleting the circumnavigation of the irlobe, vis- iting the Indies, of which Vasco da Gama had fiven so inspiriting an account. Leaving Ca- iz on the 9th of May, 1502. he reached Mar- tinique, one of the windward islands, June loth. Having touched at Cuba, he pursued a south- westerly course, until he reached Guanaja, an island on the coast of Honduras, whose inhabi- tants had attained a pretty high degree of civi- lization. Their persons were covered with cotton garments dyed with a variety of bright and pleasing colors. He mentions a curious occur- rence as taking place here. He had been pre- sented, among other animals, with a peccary, or American pig, and one of those monkeys with prehensile tails, indigenous to America. The peccary being thrown in the way of the monkey, the latter, by a dexterous use of its tail, confined the jaws of the pig in such a man- ner as to expose it helplessly to the action of the monkey's claws. " This appeared to me so strange." Columbus writes to his patrons, " that I thought fit to write it down for the informa- tion of your majesties." The admiral, in his endeavors to discover a strait leading to the Pacific Ocean, encountered great hardships and fatigues, which had a bane- ful influence upon his health, and was finally shipwrecked. Ovando was himself averse to succoring Columbus, after a messenger had acquainted him with the peril of his situation ; but the people of Hispaniola were so well-dis- posed towards the admiral, that, for the sake of maintaining his own reputation, he was forced to send him relief. Columbus, arrived at St. Domingo, met with a reception such as to banish for a brief space, the remembrance of his sufferings, but his bodily weakness could not be disguised. When sufficiently recovered, he set sail for Spain, arriving there on the 7th day of November, 1504. The services of this distinguished man were indeed important. In his third voyage he had discovered the continent of America ; in his last, had received intelligence of the immense wealth of Mexico, which was destined to in- crease to an enormous extent, the revenue of Spain. Columbus vainly looked for the reward of his services; he had stipulated that certain dignities and an income should be his, but he found himself in hopeless indigence. His kind patroness, the queen, was no more, and her husband, stern and selfish, disregarded the claims of the enterprising navigator. He evaded the request of Columbus to be restored to the vice-royalty of which he had been deprived, and repeated disappointments, in connexion with his bodily infirmities, hastened the death of the latter, which took place at Valladolid, on the 20th of May, 1506. The claims to the first discovery of the New World, advanced by Amerigo Vespucci, appear to be without foun- dation. He made, however, four voyages, and was the first to publish an account of the new countries. The work which he issued became very popular and was soon translated into sev- eral different languages. Hence, for convey- ing a vast sum of information to mankind, Amerigo Vespucci, attained a greater degree of celebrity than he merited, and, by the concur- rence of all classes, gave his name to that ex- tensive and important country which another had discovered. Various navigators, fired by the accounts of the new world, and by the fame which Colum- bus had acquired, entered the lists of honor, determined to make themselves celebrated. Vincent Yanez Pinzon, one of the companions of Columbus, discovered Brazil, although Pe- dro Alvarez Cabral is generally thought to have been its discoverer. Rodrigo de Bastidas, and the pilot Juan de la Cosa, sailed from Cadiz in 1500, made a profitable voyatre in spite of some adverse occurrences, and added to the stock of information upon the appearance and aft~p.ii s of the New World. An English expe- dition was fitted out in 1497, under Sebastian CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY, AME 54 AME Cabot, who examined Newfoundland and the continent in the vicinity of the river St. Law- rence. Nunez de Balboa discovered the South- ern Ocean, in 1513. He was transported with delight as he beheld its waves sparkling in the light of the sun, and appearing to glitter with that gold which the natives told him abounded in the country which extended to the south. He then imagined that he had reached the In- dies, a country which it was then the greatest ambition of European adventurers to reach. He acquainted the Spanish court with his dis- covery, and solicited' an appointment propor- tionate to the extent of his services He was, however, grievously disappointed; the govern- ment of Darien was obtained by Davila, and this rival, findincr a pretext for wreaking his vengeance upon Balboa, had him executed pub- licly in 1517. There were many other voyages undertaken by the Spaniards, which, did our limits allow, we would gladly dwell upon. The enterprise and success of Magellan, among oth- ers, will not permit his name to be forgotten. The Spaniards entertained the most exag- gerated ideas of the wonders of the New World. To most of them, it appeared a realm of magic, a fairy-land, in which supernatural occurrences were by no means infrequent. Thus Juan Ponce de Leon, in 1512, fitted out three ships from Porto Rico, of which he was governor, and set forth in search of an Indian fountain which was fabled to restore all who bathed in it, even if they were tormented by the infirmi- ties of extreme old age, to the freshness, vigor, and beauty of youth. Although he failed to find the fountain, he made the discovery of Florida. We have alluded to the immense extent of America, which, including its islands, extends over about one hundred and forty degrees of latitude. The external appearance of the New World, has much which presents a very marked contrast to the superficial features of the old. A stupendous chain of elevated mountains traverses the whole continent, running from north to south, and even under the equator, where, upon the low lands the most intense heat is felt, these tall mountains elevate their heads into the region of intense cold. Every thing in the New World appears to be of greater magni- tude than the corresponding objects in the old. The lakes are vast inland oceans, exhibiting in storms, all the striking and sublime aspects of the great deep, rolling as mighty waves, and shaken by an equal convulsion. The rivers are of prodigious size, and the plains of extra- ordinary extent. Over those of South and North America, countless herds of wild cattle roam at will. The New World was inhabited by a race of men differing, in many respects, from the na- tives of the Eastern Hemisphere. The Indi- ans of North America varied, in many particu- lars, from those of the southern portion of this vast continent, and the aboriginal inhabitants of Mexico, at the time when they were first visited by the Spaniards, had attained a greater degree of refinement than was found by the Europeans in any other quarter of the New World. It is not our intention to enter into tho long agitated and unsettled question of the ori- gin of the aborigines of America ; whether the ancestors of the American Indians emigrated from the Asiatic continent, or the inhabitants of the eastern hemisphere swarmed from this, it is at present impossible for us to decide. Malte Brun has described their general per- sonal appearance with his usual ability and force in the following words : " The natives of this part of the globe are in general large, of a robust frame, well proportioned, and without defects of conformation. They have a bronzed or coppery red complexion, as it were ferru- ginous, and very like cinnamon or tannin ; thei hair black, long, coarse, shining and scanty; the beard thin, growing in tufts; the forehead short, the eyes elongated, and having the corn- ers pointing upwards to the temples ; the eye- brows high, the cheek bones projecting, the nose a little flattened, but marked ; the lips wide, the teeth serrated and sharp ; in the mouth an expression of mildness, which is con- trasted with a sombre, and severe, and even hard expression ; the head rather square, the face large without being flat, but diminishing towards the chin ; the features taken in profile, projecting and strongly marked ; the belly high, the thighs large, the legs bowed, the foot large, and the whole body squat." The North American Indians are distinguished for a quick understanding, a retentive memory, and a stoicism which would have excited the envy of the ancient Grecian philosophers. War, hunting, and fishing, are the employments of the men, who devote but little care to the cultiva- tion of the soil, which from its fertility, exacts but little. The desire of revenge is one of the most powerful excitements of the Indian. He knows not of the principle by which a Chris- tian returns good for evil. An Indian rarely, if ever, forgets an injury, and the exceptions are so few that they have been noted with somo HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. AME 55 AME care. One anecdote, in particular, appears wor- thy to be related. An Indian, having wandered far from his friends, found himself foot-worn and thirsty, in the vicinity of a white man's dwelling. The owner of the house was standing at the door. The Indian approached and begged him for a morsel of food and a cup of water to sustain his sinking frame. " Begone ! dog of an Indian !" was the surly reply of the European. Some years after this, the Englishman, being on a hunting excursion, lost himself in the forests. At the moment when he had relinquished al- most all hope, he perceived an Indian wigwam, and having applied for shelter, was welcomed with ready hospitality. The Indian hunter to whom the cabin belonged, busied himself in making every arrangement for the comfort of his guest. His horse was fed and cared for, a supper was provided him, and, when the hour of rest arrived, a bed of soft skins invited him to repose his weary limbs. In the morning, when the white man signified his desire to de- part, the Indian offered to be his guide. Hav- ing conducted him to the outskirts of the for- est, the Indian pointed out his path. The European thanked him, and prepared to take his leave. " Stay yet a moment," said the In- dian : " I clearly perceive that you do not know me, but I know you well. Do you not recollect that some ten years since, a poor In- dian presented himself at your door and entreat- ed you to give him a morsel of bread and a cup of water ? You refused him. I am that red man. I swore to be revenged. Am I not ? Now go thy ways, and forget not to tell thy white brethren, that there is at least one Indian who can practice what they preach?'' We are unable to give a minute description of the Indians ; the horrors of their wars, the fortitude of the captives, tortured at the stake, the adoration they pay to the Great Spirit, their superstitions and their sufferings, must be pour- trayed by other pens. From the time of the first European settlements in this part of Amer- ica, the number of the Indians has dimi- nished rapidly, and they are now reduced to a mere handful, whom the wave of emigration is fast rolling to the shores of the Western Ocean. They have seen their hunting-grounds dimi- nished, their forests swept away by their white foes, and the smoke of the Christian village ri- sing where once their council-fires blazed. But in Mexico and many parts of South America, where the natives had made some progress in civilization at the time of the discovery of the continent, the Indians have become fellow-cit- izens with the whites, and the native or mixed breeds compose the mass of the population. The discovery of America awakened the en- terprise of various nations of the Old World, and they fitted out numerous expeditions to conquer and colonize. North America, which is of vast extent, its surface containing about eight mil- lions of square miles, fell into the hands of the English, French, and Spanish. .Mexico, so valuable for its mines of gold and silver, inhabi- ted at the period of its discovery by intelligent and peaceable nations, was conquered by Fer- nando Cortez, a Spanish general, who scrupled not to make use of the basest treachery, and to shed the blood of the natives like water, to ac- complish his purposes. Mexico was for a long time attached to Spain, to which it furnished immense wealth, but at present has a republi- can government which it can hardly be said to enjoy, the country is in such an unsettled state. The eastern shores of North America, were settled principally by the English. In spite of the hostility of the Indians, the ravages of dis- ease and hardship, the colonies increased rap- idly. The population of the middle portion of North America, now called the United States, was estimated, in 1775. at about 3,000,000. The number of the colonies was thirteen. Pov- erty and oppression had first driven them from their native land. New-England was peopled by Puritans, as they were called men, who, being refused the liberty of worshipping God in the form which their consciences dictated, in their own land, resolutely severed the ties which bound them to a beloved, though oppressed country, and, traversing a vast ocean, entered a land inhabi- ted by savages, and encountering every peril laid the foundation of a mighty empire in the west. The mother country afforded them no assistance, but, when, by their unaided efforts, they had established their prosperity, she sent forth magistrates to govern, or rather to oppress them, and, by heavy taxes, endeavored to wring from them the means of propping up the rotten institutions of the parent island. In 1775, the colonies took up arms in defence of their rights, declaring their independence. The colonial forces, inspired by the bravery, and directed by the wisdom of George Washington, after a con- test of eight years, vanquished the chosen troops of Great Britain, and became independent. The present form of government was determin- ed upon in the year 1789. The United States are twenty-four in number, each State having CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. AME 51 a legislature, executive and judiciary, of its own. All the States, however, are united un- der a General Government ; the legislative power being in the hands of a Congress which consists of a Senate and House of Representa- tives, the members of which are chosen by the different States which they represent. The executive power is vested in the hands of the President, assisted by subordinate officers. The President and Vice-President, are chosen by the State electors, and hold their offices for a term of four years. The United States Judiciary consists of seven Judges. The British possess an immense territory in North America, containing a while population of about a million, and a great number of In- dian tribes. The Canadas, New Brunswick, Nova Scotia, Newfoundland, and New Britain, are the principal divisions of this territory. The king of Great Britain appoints a Gover- nor-General who rules over the provinces, and in each province there is a Lieutenant-Gover- nor, and a provincial legislature. The French were the chief settlers in these countries, and retained possession of them until 1759, whan they were taken by the British. The contest for the possession of the Canadas is memorable for many gallant exploits, which arc blazoned on the page of English history. The early history of the West Indies abounds with details of the horrible cruelties of the Span- iards, who scrupled not to adopt the most in- human measures to complete the ruin of the unhappy natives. They forced them to labor in their mines, they wore out their frames by the infliction of the most dreadful fatigues, and changed the luxurious, peaceful, and happy life of the islanders, into an existence of painful toil, uncheered by a single ray of hope, or a sin- gle scene of pleasure. They caused a large number of the poor wretches to be torn to pieces by blood hounds, whose sole occupation was hunting the natives. The West Indies, with the exception of Hayti, which is inhabited by independent blacks, belong to European go- vernments. The i iches of South America awakened all the cupidity of the Spaniards, when they first began to penetrate into that portion of the con- tinent, and they treated its natives with the greatest barbarity. At the time of its conquest by Pizarro, an ambitious but unlettered Span- ish adventurer, Peru contained a numerous and civilized population. Cuzco was the seal of empire, the residence of the Peruvian Incas, or Kings. They worshipped the sun and had I AME a magnificent temple, gorgeous with gold from floor to roof. With some exceptions, these people were inoffensive and intelligent. With a force of one hundred and seventy foot sol- diers, Almagro and Pizarro entered Peru about 1513. By artifice Pizarro gained the confidence of the Peruvians, by treachery repaid it. When the poor natives were finally rouse ( d to resis- tance, the superior arms of the Europeans, ena- bled them to obtain an easy victory. The kings of Spain were envied by other European monarchs. for the possession of the richest por- tions of America ; but, as if in punishment for the crimes of conquest, Spain has been forced to behold tliose territories, obtained by guilt and cruelty, glide, one by one. froqjlier gr as P> l '^> poor and degraded, she retains but the bitter recollections of the rank she once maintained among the nations of the earth. But while Pe- ru, Bolivia, New Grenada, Chili, and other portions of South America, enjoy a republican government, Brazil is still an empire. The governments of South America are by no means firmly established, and the fluctuations' of national policy, together with the prevalence of bigotry, superstition and licentiousness, and the want of education, prevent the South Ame- rican from attaining that height of prosperity and happiness to which a liberal and enlight- ened government, a wise toleration in religion, a firm tone of morality, and an excellent system of public instruction, have raised the more fa- vored inhabitants of the United States. America is upwards of 5' ,000 miles in length, and its average breadth is 1500 to 1800 miles. It lies between the Atlantic and Pacific Oceans, extending from 5U J S. latitude, to an unknown northern latitude. The lowest estimate of the number of square miles it contains, places them at 14.323,000. North America contains Green- laud, belonging to Denmark ; British America, (including New Britain, Upper Canada, Low- er Canada, New Brunswick, Newfoundland, Prince Edward's Island, and Nova Scotia) ; the Russian possessions in the northwest; the United States ; Mexico, and Guatimala South- America contains New Grenada, Venezuela, the Equator, Guiana, Brazil, Peru, Bolivia, Chili, Buenos Ayres, or the United Provinces of La Plata, Paraguay. Uruguay, and Patago- nia. Between North and South America, lie the West India Islands. Some of the principal rivers are the St. Lawrence, Mississippi, Mis- souri, Columbia. Mackenzie, Amazon, La Plata, and Orinoco. Long chains of mountains run through North and South America. In the HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. AMI 57 AMS former are some of the largest fresh- water lakes in the world Superior, Huron, Michigan, Erie, and Ontario. Newfoundland, Cape Breton, Prince Edward's, the Bermudas, Rhode Island, and Long Island are some of the most impor- tant islands belonging to North America. AMERICUS VESPUCIUS, (Amerigo Ves- pucci), a Florentine navigator of an ancient family, born 1451. His first voyage to Ameri- ca was made under Ojeda, a year after its dis- covery by Columbus, and yet the vast continent bears his name, while that of the actual disco v-' ercr is applied to it only by poetical courtesy. Vespucci died at Seville in 1512. AMES, Fisher, an eloquent American states- man and writer, born in Dedham, Mass. April 9th, 1758. His parents were respectable. He was educated at Harvard College, which he left with a high character for industry, regular- ity and talent. After instructing a school for some years, in 1731 he commenced the practice of law, and becoming distinguished for his orato- rical powers, and his success as a political essay writer, was chosen member of the House of Representatives in the state legislature. He was next chosen Representative of Suffolk county in the Congress of the United States, in which he remained during Washington's ad- ministration. On the retirement of Washing- ton, Mr. Ames, whose health had been impair- ed, occupied himself in farming at Dedham, and practising law. But although his voice was unheard in public, his pen was not inactive, and the publication of various essays proved the interest which he continued to take in politics until the time of his death, July 4, 1808. Fisher Ames had fine features, and a commanding per- son, and his manner in speaking was expres- sive, although not characterized by studied grace. His conversational abilities are said to have been of the. highest order. AMHERST. a flourishing post town of Mas- sachusetts, in Hampshire county, 90 miles W. of Boston. Its literary institutions are Am- herst college, an academy, and a female semi- nary. AMHERST, Jeffery, lord, a British general officer, bom in 1717. He commenced his mili- tary career in 1731 , and regularly rose to the rank of field marshal. He was at Dettingen, Fountenoy, Rocoux, and commanded at the siege of Louisburg, and reduced the Canadas. He was successively Governor cf Virginia, and of the isle of Jersey, 'and Commander in Chief of the British army. He died in 179S. AMIENS, a celebrated city in Picardy, with 45,000 inhabitants. Here peace was concluded between France and England in 1801. AMPHITRYON, a fabulous prince of Thebes, said to have been the grandfather of Hercules. AMSTERDAM, the capital of Holland, at the commencement of the 13th century, was nothing more than an insignificant fishing vil- lage, composed exclusively of the huts of fish- ermen. Its growth was not very rapid, although in time it became a place of great importance. It was formerly called Ainstelerdam, the dam or dyke of the Amstel. It derives its name from the river Amstel, and is situated at its in- flux into the arm of the sea, called the Y or Wye, forming a capacious port, two leagues from the Zuyder Zea. The city stands upon a marshy soil, in consequence of which the buil- dings are raised on oaken piles ; whence the jest of Erasmus, who said, " that in his country the people lived on the tops of trees." In 1490 Mary of Burgundy encompassed the city with a brick wall, to protect it from the incursions of the inhabitants of Utrecht, who were frequent- ly involved in quarrels with the Hollanders. Soon after the erection of this wall, the city was burnt to the ground. In 1512 it was besieged by the people cf Guelderland, who, finding them- selves bafficd in their attempt to take the city, fired the vessels in the harbor. The scene pre sented by the burning ships was awfully grand ; the waters appeared like a sea of molten gold, over which a thousand volcanoes poured their volumes of fire, while the roaring of the confla- gration was like the voice of a tempest. The Anabaptists, in 1512 and 1525, filled the city with commotion and bloodshed. An insurgent chief, Van Geelen. headed a conspiracy which had for its object the subversion of the magistracy of Amsterdam, and the assumption of power by the rebels. Van Geelen fixed his head quarters in the town house, where his fanatical troops dis- played their banners, and gave every evidence that they considered their victory certain. But the burghers attacked them with great spirit and resolution, and the fanatics being surroun- ded, were put to death to a man. In 1578. Amsterdam, after a siege of ten months, capitulated to the Hollanders, stipula- ting that the Roman Catholics should be allow- ed "the free observance of their religious rites. The Protestants, however, did not maintain the agreement, but. drove the Catholics from the city, destroying the altars and the images. From that time, persons of all sects and nations came to the city, and the united exertions of all CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. AMS 56 ANA succeeded in raising it to a high rank, and ren- dering it fatuous for its opulence and industry. Amsterdam is intersected by numerous canals, which divide the city into islands, between which are built numerous bridges, of stone, and wood. Of vast commercial importance, these canals give the streets through which they pass a highly picturesque and pleasant appearance, rilling the air with freshness, and reflecting the lon<* rows of trees and houses which line their banks. Complaints, however, are made of the effluvia arising from them in calm and warm weather. The Ammarach, a canal formed by the waters of the Amstel, is the principal, and flows beneath a number of bridges of which the Pont Neuf is the most elegant. This bridge is 600 feet long and has 36 arches. A singular feature in the scenery of Amster- dam is the enclosure of the city on the side of the haven or Wye, by means of piles, which are driven into the ground, and connected with immense horizontal beams, affording openings sufficiently ample for the ingress and egress of ships. These are closed every evening. The port is a mile and a half long, and crowded with vessels whose towering masts attract the eye, and give a lively appearance to the scene. The streets of Amsterdam, although narrow, are well-paved, and exhibit that charming neat- ness, which is peculiar to the Dutch, and which is equally conspicuous in their walks and in their smart brick or stone buildings. The pop- ulation of Amsterdam is estimated at more than 200,000 persons. The government is exclusive- ly in the hands of Protestants, although there is no want of toleration to those who differ from the established tenets. The New Church, dedi- cated to St. Catharine, is said to have been be- gun in 1408, or 1414, and to have occupied a century in its erection. The interior is adorn- ed with sculpture, and the paintings on the glass windows are cf the richest description. The superb organ has been celebrated through- out the world. The church contains a marble monument, erected to the memory of Admiral Ruyter. The stadthonse is a beautiful building, erect- ed on 13,G5!> piles. It was founded in 1648. Its breadth is 2-2 fc-.-t. its depth 235, height 116. The whole of this fine building exhibits proofs of the characteristic neatness and industry of the Dutch. Beneath the stadthouse are the vaults of the Bank of Amsterdam, the prisons for debtors, criminals, ther German provinces. Their fanatical leader, John of Ley den, a tailor, defended himself in Munster for a whole year. After this, the pun- ishment of the leaders quelled the insurrection. Munster was taken, June 24, 1535. . ANACREON,a Greek lyric poet of Teos, in Ionia, who flourished 500 years B.C. Polycrates, king of Samos, was his patron until his death. At Athens he was encouraged by Hipparchus, but the fall of the latter drove him from Athens, and he passed an old age of gaiety at Abdera, where he was choked by a grape -stone in his 85th year. He was the poet of love and wine, and much honored by the Greeks. AINAXAGORAS, one of the Ionic philoso- phers, born at Clazomene, in Ionia, 500 B. C. died at Lampsacus at the age of 72. ANAXIMANDER, a disciple of Thales, whose chief study was mathematics, born at Miletus, 610 B. C., died 546 B. C. He made some scientific discoveries. ANGUS MARTIUS, succeeded Tullus Hos- tilius. the 3d king of Rome, 640 B. C. and died 618 B. C. He was a conqueror, improved the navigation of the Tiber, and established good laws. ANDALUSIA, the richest province of Spain, bounded north by Estremadura and La Mancha ; east, by Murcia ; south by the straits of Gibral- tar, and west by Portugal. It is divided into Up- per and Lower, the former of which compre- hends Granada, and the latter Jaen, Cordova, and Seville. ANDOVER. a township of Massachusetts, in Essex county, 20 miles N. of Boston, on the right bank of the Merrimack River, and water- ed by the Shawsheen. It is a pleasant and flourishing town, and contains 5,000 inhabit- ants. Its theological seminary is noted. ANDRE. Major. Among the various events which contributed to give a distinctive char- acter to the war of our Revolution, the fate of Major Andre, a young English officer, can never be forgotten, nor the sad story of the close of his life ever read without a deep and painful interest. This young man was hand- some, talented, brave, enthusiastic, generous, and accomplished, beloved by all his acquaint- ance, without distinction of country. He en- tered the royal army with high hopes, and was well fitted to adorn an elevated station. His history is connected with that of the worst traitor who ever disgraced the name of Amer- ica. This man was General Arnold. His unrepressed extravagance had led him to incur heavy debts which he saw no means of dis- charging, but by accepting the gold of the British, as the price of treason to his country. In September, 1780, Arnold was in command of West Point, a military post on the North, or Hudson river, New York, which was of vast importance to the Americans. To give noto- riety to his apostacy, Arnold had selected this fortress, which was almost impregnable from natural defences, and from fortifications, on which no care or expense had been spared. Arnold had opened a correspondence with Sir Henry Clinton, under fictitious names, and the pretence of mercantile business, through Major Andre, then holding the rank of Adjutant-Gen- eral. The young officer was conveyed up the river in the Vulture sloop of war, and, under a pass for John Anderson, came on shore in the night, and had an interview with Arnold. Morning surprised them before their business was transacted, and, as it was impossible for Andre to get on board the Vulture by daylight, he consented to remain hidden till the next night. In the course of the day, the Vulture altered her position, in consequence of a gun being brought to bear upon her, and, for this reason, the boatmen, at night, refused to take Andre on board. The young officer now found himself com- pelled to attempt to get to New York by land. Arnold gave him a pass, granting permission to John Anderson, " to go to the lines of White Plains, or lower if he thought proper, he being on public business." Changing his uniform, which he had previously worn under a surtout, for a plain coat, he mounted a horse, passed the American guards in safety, and was congratu- lating himself on his escape, when three militia men, suddenly appearing, seized his bridle- rein, and demanded his business. Surprised, and off his guard, he did not produce his pass, but hastily asked the men where they belong- ed. " Down below," was the answer, meaning New Yprk. " So do I ;" replied Andre, re- joiced to find them friends. But he was mis- taken, and being pressed, he finally declared that he was a British officer. He begged them to suffer him to pursue his way, offer- ing them gold, and a watch of great value. John Paulding, David Williams, and Isaac Van Wert, were poor men their dress bespoke it but they loved their country, and despised a bribe. They might have answered Andre, in the Words of another American, on another occasion: "your king has not gold enough to buy us." They carried Andre before Lieut. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. AND 60 AND Col. Jameson, who commanded the troops on the lines. The captors ol" Andre were rewarded by Congress with an annual pension of two hundred dollars each, and a silver medal bear- ing on one side a shield inscribed " Fidelity ;" and on the other the motto " Amor Patrite ;" love of country. Andre still passed as John Anderson. He generously wished to save Arnold, and asked permission to write to him. This the com- manding officer incautiously permitted, al- though in Andre's boots there had been found, in the hand writing of Arnold, returns of the state of the forces, and the condition of West Point, with other important papers. Immedi- ately on the receipt of the letter, Arnold escaped. He was at dinner when the letter arrived. Ab- ruptly leaving the table, he ran down a steep bank, threw himself into a boat, and was rowed to the Vulture, which immediately got under Bail, and carried the traitor to New York. Gen. Washington was soon apprized of the circum- stances, and the same express which conveyed the intelligence, carried a letter from the pris- oner, frankly avowing his name and the cir- cumstances under which he had been forced to appear as an impostor. All the American offi- cers who saw Andre, were struck with his candor and manliness, and there was not one who did not feel for his situation. The consideration of his case was referred by General Washington to a board of fourteen general officers, of which General Green was President, and Generals Steuben and La Fay- ette were members. It was decided that he ought to be regarded as a spy, and the stern rules of war, and the necessity of an example, required that he should die upon the gibbet. He begged of Washington to be allowed to die as a soldier, but the patriotism of the General refused, what his feelings would have granted. Led to the place of execution, Andre, survey- ing the instrument of his fate, asked with concern, " Must I die by this ? I am reconciled to my death, but oh! not to the mode." Re- covering his composure, he added : " It will be but a momentary pang." His count'-nanre was unruffled, and calm, to the very last mo- ment of his life ; the instant before he was launched into eternity, it exhibited a sunny serenity and high magnanimity which touched the hearts of all ! At the last moment he \V;IH asked if he wished to say any thing. " I5ut this," he replied: "You will witness to the world, that I die like a brave man." The kindest attentions were bestowed on Andre by the American officers; particularly by General Hamilton, who did all in his power to soothe him. and has described his character with his usual happy felicity. Far different was the treatment of the pious and patriotic Captain Hale, a young American officer, who was taken as a spy, and ordered to be executed the next morning. He begged the use of a bible ; which was refused ; to be allowed to write a letter to his mother ; which poor privilege was also denied him. " The Americans,' 1 said the British commander, " shall not know that they have a rebel in their army who can die with so much firmness." On the occasion of the capture of some young American officers upon Lonjj l.^i- and, they were brought before Sir Henry Clin- ton, who thus addressed them. Gentlemen, do you know that I can hang every man of you as rebels, taken in arms against the kin2i. It has two universities, and for- merly had a greater extent than it has at present. In 155!), the reformers, with mistaken zeal, de- stroyed its splendid cathedral. ANDROCLUS, or Androdus, a Dacian slave, who was exposed in the arena of a Roman cir- cus, to fight a lion ; but the animal forbore to injure him, because he had formerly extracted a thorn from his foot while in the Dacian wilds. Androclus was released, and used to lead the friendly lion about the city. ANDROMACHE, the iaithful and affection- ate wife of Hector, prince of Troy , of whom she was so fond, as to ii-cd his horses with her own hands. After his death, slu- was married to Neoptolemus, to whose share the lovely captive fell, and afterwards to Helenus. son of Priam. ANDROMEDA, daughter of Cepheus, king of Ethiopia, by Cas<,i',|><>ia. She is tabled to have been exposed by Neptune to n sea mon- ster, from which she was delivered by Perseus. An explnnation of the fable is offered in tin- supposition that she was courted by the captain of a ship, who attempted to carry her away, but was bathed by the enterprize and activity of a more faithful lover. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL ANG 61 gera. Cardinal Farnese, wished to have the halls adorned by the pencil of Raphael, to give additional beauty to this charming place. The ANGELO, Buonarotti, Michael, was of a noble and ancient family, and born at Caprese, or Chiusi, 1474. Any one of his high quali- ties would have made the fortune of an ordi- nary man. He was a distinguished painter, sculptor, architect, and poet, and ' canning of fence." The beauty of the Sistine Chapel consists principally in the perfection of his paintings. At 50 years old, he commenced painting the Last Judgment in the Sistine Chapel, in which the grand and gigantic char- acter of his mind is shadowed forth. Embrac- ing a multitude of figures in various attitudes, and with different expressions, it is an unwea- rying object of contemplation for the artist and lover of the fine arts. Between Michael An- gelo and Raphael, there was a warm rivalry, the former never forgetting that Raphael had perfected his style, only after having diligently studied the frescoes of the Sistine Chapel. The Farnesian family had built a house upon the bank of the Tiber, in the street dclla Lon- artist accepted the proposals of his eminence, but stipulated that no one should inspect his work until it was finished. But the friends of Raphael spread abroad highly-colored reports of the triumphs which the painter had achieved, praising in especial, the Banquet of the Gods, the Nuptials of Cupid and Psyche, and The Triumph of Galatea. These reports inflamed the curiosity of Buonarotti, and he swore by the Inferno of Dante, that he would gain admis- sion into the Farnesian villa, examine the works of Raphael, and prevent their completion. Michael Angelo, having discovered that Ra- phael went late to his woijk, disguised himself as an acquavitaro, vender of brandy, and taking with him a huge basket filled with biscuits and brandy, directed his steps at an early hour to the gate of the Farnesian palace. His cries of "brandy! brandy!" roused the masons the gate was opened, and the acquavitaro admitted in a twinkling. Behold, Michael Angelo in the interior of the Farnesina ! The workmen were soon busily employed upon the biscuits and the brandy, and he passed through the cor- ridors, and was soon before the frescoes of Raphael. The fine picture of Galatea attracted his attention, and. noticing a scaffold and a wall in readiness fur the painter, he ascended and drew with a piece of charcoal, a gigantic head of Jupiter, after which he left the villa precipi- tately, without stopping for his basket. When Raphael arrived at noon, on beholding the splendid head, he exclaimed, " Michael An- gelo ! " From that day he painted no more in the Farnesina, and his works remained unfin- ished. The head which Michael Angelo de- signed, remains still upon the wall, and covered with a glass, attracts the admiration of artists and connoisseurs. ANGLES, a tribe which occupied the coun- try between the Weser and the Elbe, now a part of Prussia. Their piraces made them notorious at an early period, and in the fifth century, uniting with the Saxons, their power- ful neighbors ot the north, under the name of Anglo- Saxons, they effected the conquest of England. A small tract of land near the Da- nish peninsula, where some of them remained, is called at the present day, Anaeln. ANGLESEA, or Anglesey, the Monaof the ancients, an island and county of North Wales, situated in the Irish Sea. It has a population of 4b,U25. Its length is 24 miles, and its breadth 17. The fertility of the soil adapts it for graz- ing, and grain and cattle are its principal pro- ducts. Over the strait of Menai which separates it from Wales, a fine suspension bridge has been erected. ANGOLA, a country of Western Africa, including the range of coast from 1 to 12 deg. S., from which 40,OUO slaves are obtained an- nually. The Portuguese settled there in the middle ages. ANGORA, Ancyra, or Angoura; a city of Natolia, or Asia Minor, 212 miles from Con- stantinople, and containing, perhaps, 50,000 souls. Its hilly environs are thickly studded with delicious gardens, but the once strong fortifications of this delightful city, are decayed. The Angora shawls rival those of Cashmere ; the hair of the native goat furnishing the mate- rials. A considerable manufacture of these is carried on, although the trade of the place is no longer what it was. It is built on the site of the ancient Ancyra. Here Bajazet, the famed sultan of the Ottomans, was taken pris- oner by Tamerlane, in 1402. ANICH, Peter, a poor peasant of the Tyrol, whose aptness for the study of astronomy and geography was not developed until he was 28 years old. He was born in 1723, at Oberpor- fess, near Inspruck, and died in 1766. He was encouraged by the Jesuits, and made a celestial and terrestial globe, with several math- ematical instruments, remarkable for neatness. Under the patronage of the empress Maria Theresa, he drew a map of the Tyrol. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ANN { ANJOU, anciently a fertile, well- watered, and productive province of France, now form- ing the department of Maine and Loire. Be- fore the revolution, it was estimated to con- tain upwards of 90,000 families. Angers is the chief town. The province has alternately be- longed to the crown, and been bestowed upon princes of the blood. Louis XV conferred it on his crrandson, Stanislaus, count of Provence, afterward Louis XVIII. ANKERSTRCEM, John Jacob, the murderer of Gustavus III. Originally a page at the Swedish court, he was at length raised to the rank of ensign of the royal guards. He joined a conspiracy the members of which thirsted for the blood of their monarch. Ankerstroem wish- ed to make the deed of blood his own, but the Counts Horn and Ribbing contended for it; .ots were drawn, and Ankerstrcem obtained the post of murderer. At a masquerade at Stock- holm, he accomplished his purpose by dischar- ging a pistol at the king. Having been disco- vered and condemned, he was scourged in prison for several successive days, dragged on a cart to the scaffold, and executed April 29, 1792, glo- rying in the deed, and bearing all his sufferings with singular fortitude. He died at the age of 31 years. ANNA, a heathen goddess, in whose honor the Romans instituted festivals. Several fabu- lous explanations of the origin of these celebra- tions have been given, but the most probable is the least remarkable ; viz. that Anna was an industrious old lady of Bovillje, and her apoth- eosis the reward of her kindness in daily supplying the Romans at Mount Sacer with cakes. ANNA, Ivanowna, empress of Russia, daugh- ter of Ivan, and niece of Peter the Great. She succeeded Peter II. son of the unfortunate Alexis, in 1730. Anna displayed great boldness in the very commencement of her reign, refused to renounce a single privilege enjoyed by the czars, and proclaimed herself autocrat of all the Russias. She waged war against the Persians, Poles, and Turks. She was born in 1693, and died 1740. ANNAPOLIS, a city and port of entry in Ann Arundel county, Maryland. It is situa- ted on the S. W. side of the Severn, two miles from its mouth, forty miles E. N. E. of Wash- ington. Population 270'~. It is the seat of the state government and contains several fine public buildings, .'innapolis Royal, is a city of Nova Scotia with a good harbor. ANNE, queen of England, second daughter 2 ANS of James II, previously duke ofYork, born 1664. In 1683, she married prince George, brother of Christian V of Denmark. In 166d, she joined the party which invited the prince of Orange to aid in dethroning his father-in-law. She as- cended the throne, on the death of her slsle 1 - Mary, and of William III, in 1699. During her reign Gibraltar was taken by the English. Her brother James (the pretender), vainly attempted to set foot in Scotland, and Anne, with great reluctance, set a price upon his head. She seems privately to have entertained for a long time the hope of securing the succession to her brother, and was much grieved when convinced of the futility of such expectations. Anne died July 20th, 1714, her dving words being, " O, my dear brother, how 1 pity thee !" She pos- sessed moderate abilities, but was amiable as a wile, mother, and sovereign, and distinguished by the grateful title of good Queen Anne. Her reign was made brilliant by the successes of the English arms, and the writings of the authors of the day. among whom, were Pope and Addison. ANNE of Austria, queen of France, was daughter of Philip III, of Spain. She became the wife of Louis XIII, in 1615, but lived upon bad terms with him. On the death of Louis, she became sole regent during the minority of her son, Louis XIV, but made herself unpopu- lar among her subjects by reposing unbounded confidence in Cardinal "Mazarin. Affairs as sumed so threatening an aspect, that she was compelled to leave Paris. Tranquility was re- stored at length, and when her son assumed the reins of power, in 1661, she went into retire- ment in v.-hich she lived till her death, in 1666. ANNE, daughter of John III, duke ofCleves, was married to Henry VIII of England, who fell in love with her picture. He was soon however, disgusted \\iitli the Flanders mure, as, he contemptuously termed her, and she quietly returned to her native land, where she died in 1557. hnppy in escaping the deatli which the santminary" tyrant inflicted upon Anne Boleyn. ANSELM, a distinguished archbishop of Canterbury, (England,) who, in the early part of the 12th century, maintained the powers of the church, in opposition to those ofjhe crown. ANSGAR, or Anshgar, a saint of the Ro- mish church, born in Picardy. in 800. died in 8(55. He was called the Apostle of the .\<,rth, from his zeal and success in introducing Chris tianitv into Denmark and Sweden. ANSON. George, lord, was born in 1697, at Shugboroucrn manor, in Staffordshire, England, and entered the navy at an early age. In his HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ANS 63 '27th year he obtained the rank of post-captain, and when, in 1739, a war with Spain appeared inevitable, he was made commander of a fleet in the South Sea. He sailed Sept. 18th, 1740, but encountering a violent storm, was prevented, for three months, from doubling Cape Horn, and was rejoined at Juan Fernandez, by only three of his vessels in a wretched condition. The ori- ginal number was eight, five men of war, and three smaller vessels. He sailed for the coast of Peru, made some prizes, and burned the town of Paita, but, failing to intercept the annual Ma- nilla galleon, found himself compelled to burn his booty, and destroy all of his vessels but one. Having equipped this one (the Centurion), he retreated to Tinian, one of the Ladrone islands. After having met with some disasters, he finally sailed for Macao, which he reached in safety, and there formed the plan of taking Acapulco. To accomplish this bold purpose, he gave out that he had returned to England, and this deceptive report circulated with great rapidity. Meanwhile, he directed his course to the Philippines, cruising in the vicinity of Cape Espiritu Santo. After about a month, the long expected galleon appeared, and, con- fident in her superior strength, eagerly com- menced the fight. The British fought with that cool, dauntless valor, for which they are distinguished. and succeeded in making aprize of the galleon, which was worth 400,000. The whole amount of the booty previously ta- ken was 000,000. Anson then returne'd to Macao, where he disposed of his prize. The Chinese were inclined to insult his flag, but he maintained his rights with his characteristic pertinacity. From Macao, he sailed for Eng- land, which he readied June 15lh, 1744, hav- ing escaped the French fleet which lay in the channel. A nson's perilous voyage threw new light upon geography and navigation, and con- ferred lasting benefits upon the cause of science. He was liberally rewarded for his bravery and perseverance, being made, soon after his return, rear-admiral of the blue, and at no great distance from that period, rear-admiral of the white. In ] 747.he gained a brilliant victory over the French admiral, Jonquiere, off Cape Finisterre, and was consequently raised to the peerage with the title of Lord Anson, baron of Soberton. L* Invinci- ble and La Gloire, two French vessels, were ta- ken by Anson on this occasion, and the captain of the former, on surrendering his sword, said, " Monsieur, vous avez xaincu I' Invincible, et la Gloire vous suit." " Sir, you have conquered the Invincible, and Glory follows you." 6* ANT Lord Anson was made first lord of the admi- ralty, four years after his elevation to the peer- age. In 1758, he commanded the fleet before Brest, protecting the landing of the English, and receiving them after their repulse. He died in 1762. ANSTEY, Christopher, a poet of the 18th century, born in 1724, died in 1805. His New Bath Guide, published in 17G6, became imme- diately popular from its humor, wit, and origi- nality. ANTAEUS, the fabulous son of Neptune and Terra (the Earth), of gigantic stature. He re- sided in Libya, where he challenged every stranger to single combat. What made him peculiarly formidable, was the circumstance of the renewal of his strength by his mother, eve- ry time he was thrown to the earth. Hercules, having found out the secret of his prowess, overcame him by lifting him in the air, and crushing him in his iron grasp. The dwelling of this monster was adorned with the skulls 01 his vanquished adversaries. ANTENOR, a noble Trojan, who makes a conspicuous figure in the Iliad of Homer. He escaped, like Jilneas, and is said to have found- ed Patavium, the modern Padua. ANTHONY, St., the Great, first institutor of the monastic life. His native place was Coma, a town of Upper Egypt, where he was born, A. D. 251. In 235, he retired into soli- tude from a devotional spirit, and in 305, estab- lished the first community of monks. Being disappointed in his attempts to gain the honor of martyrdom at Alexandria, he left the cotta- ges of his monks to the care of his pupil Pacho- mius, and. in company with two of the brethren, retired to a very remote desert, where he died, A. D. 356. The disease, called from him St. Anthony's fire, is a malady of peculiar violence with frightful accompaniments, in which every limb attacked, becomes withered, shrunk, and blackened, as if under the influence of flame. The life of St. Anthony in the wilderness, is said to have been fearfully eventful, being passed in combats with devils. The exploits of the saint are frequently made the subject of paintings, by Catholic artists. The order of Anthony was established, which, even in the 18th century, numbered thirty convents, npt one of which is extant at present. ANTIBES, an old town of Provence, on the Mediterranean, with a safe and commodious harbor. Population, 5570. It was founded 340 B. C by the Massilians. who gave it the name of Antipolis. In 1747, it successfully resisted CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ANT 64 ANT the Auslrians and English. In modern history it is noted as being the only place where the French troops refused to join Napoleon on his landing in 181"), after his escape from Elba. ANTIGONE, a daughter <5f (Edipus, king of Thebes, by his incestuous connexion with Jocasta. Antigone was the faithful guide of CEdipus, after his loss of sight ; having buried the corpse of her brother Polynices, against the express commands of Creon, the tyrant ordered her to be buried alive, but she killed herself before the execution of the sentence. (See CEdipus.) ANTIGONUS, Gonatas, son of Demetrius Poliorceles, a prince of a peaceable disposition, but compelled to enter into war, first with the Gauls, then with Pyrrhus of Epirus. When his son brought him the head of the latter, he expressed great indignation, and interred the body with all the respect due to a great warrior. He died at the age of eighty, B. C. '213. ANTIGONUS, general of Alexander the Great, after whose death he attempted to gain the sovereignty of Asia, but was defeated and fell at Ipsus. 301 B. C. ANTINOUS, a Bithynian youth, of whom the emperor Adrian was excessively fond. When the latter was on his travels, Antinous threw himself into the Nile and was drowned, but whether the act was committed with the intention of saving the life of the emperor, or from weariness of existence, has not yet been decided. The grief of Adrian was intense, and the honors of divinity were, by his command, paid to his yountr and" unfortunate favorite. He named a newly-discovered star Antinous, and gave this name to cities, while various images of the lost youth emanated from the hands of different artists. Those which have come down to us bearing the name of Antinous. are distin- guished for a languid loveliness, and a round- ness of contour, which r**e rabies the traits of female rather than manly beauty. ANT1OCH, or Antakia. This city anciently bore a variety of names viz. .-liitiochia, Antigo- nia, T/iffjpolis, Suleucis, Epiplianc. and Rrlilutii. It is in Syria, filly miles west of Aleppo, 011 the Orontes, twenty-one miles from the sea. The population is less than iJO.OOU, the houses low, and the land neglected. The appearance of the city is melancholy, and no remains recall the splendors of the day when it was the third city in the world, for beauty, greatness, and popu- lation. It was built by Antiochus anil Selencus Nicanor, partly on a hill, and partly in a plain. It was for a great length of time the residence nfthc Macedonian kings of Syria, and the Ro- man governors, when Syria became a province of the empire. In the crusades it was famous for the defeat of the Turks, in 1098, by Godfrey and the crusaders. ANTIOCHUS. Several distinguished kings of Syria bore this name. The first was the ge- neral of king Philip, a Macedonian by birth, whose fame was eclipsed by that of his son Se- leucus. AntiochusSoter, the son of Seleucus, was unsuccessful in war, but is chiefly distin- guished by his passion for his step-mother, the beautiful Stratonice. His struggles to quell his misplaced affection, threw him into a lingering disorder, the cause of which lie was unwilling to divulge. Erasistratus, the king's physician, penetrated his secret in the following manner. As he was holding the hand of his patient, he perceived by the accelerated motion of his pulse on the entrance of Stratonice, that love for her was the cause of his disorder. The king, to save the life of his son, relinquished to him his. young and lovely bride. Antiochus the Great succeeded his brother, Seleucus Ceraunus. 244 years B. C. Molo, governor of Media, felt the power of his arms, and Ptolemy Philopater was by him compelled to give up the whole ol Svria. Over the Parthians, also, he was completely triumphant, and, favoring the cause of Hannibal, he made war upon the Romans. He was, how- ever, dispirited by ill-success in the commence- ment of this contest, and not fully comprehen- ding or seconding the views of the Carthaginian general, was several times defeated, but signally at Magnesia, the Consequence of which \vas the conclusion of a pe'ace disgraceful to the Syrian monarch. He was killed in an attempt to plun- der a temple of Jupiter. ANTIOCHUS EPIPHANES, second son of the preceding, oppressed the Jews cruelly and laid siege to Alexandria. He was compelled to desist by the interference of the Romans in be- half of their ally Ptolemy. Nothing can show in a more striking light the terror of the Roman name, than the following anecdote. When Antiochus was on the point of marching .against Ptolemy, Popilius L^nus arrived at his court as unbiiMador from the Roman Senate. He was instructed to command Antiochus to relinquish his hostile project. Any other but a Roman citi- zen would have been awed at the presence of the courtiers ami army of the king, sitting as he was, surrounded bv all the imposing splen- dors of a re!u!t', below, and Louisville above, are convenient land- ing places. B-Ucsviile, on White river, Fabre Bluff, on the Washita, and Fulton on the Reel river, will become important places as the country is settled. The Ozark mountains run through the State from east to south west. The soil on the rivers is fertile, the other parts generally are barren. Cotton, and Indian corn are the staple produc- tions Wild fovvls, and animals, are abundant. A variety of minerals are found in the State. A national road from Memphis to Little Rock, is in progress, which will be a great convenience. The Spaniards and French formed settlements on the Arkansas, more than a hundred years ago. After this tract was purchased by the United States, it constituted a part of Louisiana, and afterwards was attached to Missouri Ter- ritory under its present name. Us limits on the west were the Rocky Mountains, until they were curtailed by treaties with the Chcrokecs. In 1836, it was admitted into the Union as a State. The constitution provides that when slaves are tried for crimes; they shall have an impartial jury, and suffer the same punishment, if convicted, as free whites would have done, e.nd no other. It also provides that no lotteries shall be established; and the sale of lottery tickets in the State is prohibited. Population in 1840, 97,574. ARK WRIGHT, Sir Richard, at first an hum- ble barber, is celebrated !is the inventor of the spinning jennv. In 17(17. he quitted his bar- ber's shop, rind in the village of Warrington, commenced with a kind of perpetual motion, which attracted the notice of a watch-maker named Ka-ii, who rrave him encouragement, and advised him to direct his attention to machinery for spinning wool. Finding their means inade- quate, they received assistance from Mr. Ather- ton, of Liverpool. Arkwright completed a machine which was patented in I7(>!l, but the p:\tent was set aside in ITS."). After meeting with uome disappointments, he successfully estab- lished himself at Nottingham, where he was con- nected with a Scotchman by the name of Dale. Being attacked by oilier manufacturers of Eng- land, he used to say, " that he would put a razor into the hands of a Scotchman that should shave them ali.'' After separating from Dale Arkwrighl carried on his works alone with ex- traordiiiary success. On his death, in 1.7H2, his property v.'as found to amount to 500,000. Thus, by hi* extraordinary inventive powers, did this man rise from poverty, to affluence and honor. The excellence of his invention is suf- ficiently proved by the fact, that, since his time, no material improvement has been made in the mode of spinning cotton by water ma- chinery. ARMADA. (Spanish); a fleet of ships of war; but particularly applied to the vast arma- ment fitted out against England in the time of Elizabeth (1588), by Philip II. It consisted of 150 large ships, with 20,000 soldiers, 8,250 sea- men, and 2,000 volunteers. The number of guns was 2(150, some of them of extraordinary calibre. The English navy at that time con- sisted of but 30 ships of war. It was reinforced, however, by voluntary exertions. Providence gave the first blow to this mighty enterprise ; the fleet was dispersed by tempests, some ships sunk, and others dashed against the rocks. The size, too, of the Spanish vessels, prevented them from acting with advantag-e on the seas in which they were engaged. Loru 1 Admiral How- ard, ably seconded by the officers under him, attacked and beat the fleet for several days, and very few of the Spanish vessels entered port again. Sir Francis Drake, Captain Hawkins, and others, greatly distinguished themselves at this time. The preparations on land, superin- tended by the queen herself, were fully commen- surate to those at sea. ARMENIA, a country of Asia, containing 106,000 square miles, lies south of Mount Cau- casus. It was anciently divided into Major and Minor, but is now divided into several provinces. The Kuphratos and Tigris, are the principal riv- ers. The soil is better adapted for grazing than agriculture, although the fruits of the south are very line. The inhabitants are Armenians, wan- dering Turcomans, Turks. Greeks, and Jews. The Armenians are Christians, sober and tem- perate, and occupied in commercial pursuits. The early history of Armenia is not well known. The Assyrians. Medes, IVisians, and Macedo- nians, by turn* possessed it. After the death of Alexander, it was united to Syria, of which it formed a part until it revolted from Antiochus HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ARN 75 ARE the Great, when it was possessed by two differ- ent rulers and divided into Armenia Major and Minor. Tigranes, king of the former, in 95 B. C., reduced Armenia Minor, and other provinces, and united the two countries. Under him it became tributary to Rome, in 63 B. C., and Trajan made it a Roman province in 100. After Sapor, king of Persia, vainly attempted its con- quest from the Romans, it was governed by native princes, until the Arabians conquered it in about 650. It was conquered by the Seljukian Turks about 1046, after which it suffered many^ changes, till it was reduced by the prince of Kharasm in 1201, who was driven out of it by Genghis Khan in 1215. In 1335, the Ilkanian dynasty began here, and continued till 1385, when Armenia was conquered by Tamerlane, from whom it was soon after recovered by the Ilkanian princes. On the death of Ahrned Jalayr, the last of the line, in 1405, Kara Yusef, the chief of the Turcomans, got possession of it. This dynasty had the name of the Black Sheep, and in 14,38, it fell by conquest to the family of the White Sheep. In 1500, it was conquered by Ishmael Sosi, and reduced by Sell m I in 1514, since which time the Turks have had possession of all. except the eastern part, which belongs to Persia, and the northern part, belonging to Russia. ARM1NIUS, in German, Hermann, the de- liverer of Germany from the Roman yoke, was born IS B. C. He was educated at Rome, and honored by Augustus with the knighthood, and the rights of citizenship. But from attachment to the' land of his birth, he instigated the Ger- mans to revolt. After various fortunes, he was assassinated in the 37th year of his age. ARNOLD, Benedict, a distinguished char- acter in the American revolution, was a native of Connecticut, and early engaged in the strug- gle between the colonies and the mother coun- try, espousing the cause of the former, lie distinguished himself in the early actions of the war, by a reckless bravery which gained him general applause He was at the taking of Ticonderoga, and his expedition to Canada has been celebrated as a great military enter- prise. The troops marched to Canada by the way of Maine, encountering the severity of mid-winter, threading tangled forests, and suf- fering every hardship. In 1777, Arnold dis- playe'd great gallantry, and bore a conspicuous part in those efforts which led to the capitula- tion of Burgoyne. When possessed of authority in Philadelphia, in 1778, a marked change mani- fested itself in his conduct. He plunged into expensive pleasures, soon became involved in debt, and saw no means of escaping from his embarrassments, but by flying into the arms of the British, and earning their'gold, by treason to his country. Having been reprimanded by Washington for misbehaviour, he shook off all allegiance to his struggling country, and solici- ted and obtained the command of West Point, for the basest of purposes. (See Andre). After joining the enemy, he published two manifes- toes, in which he attributed the change in his opinions to the declaration of independence, and the alliance of America with France, al- though long after the adoption of these meas- ures, he had fought beneath the Colonial co lors, had been wounded at Quebec, and was pledged to support the cause of his country. A large sum of money, and the rank of brigadier- general in the British army, were the rewards of his apostacy. After his treason, he made war upon his former friends more after the manner of a bandit chieftain, than that of a high-souled warrior. Upon the recognition of the independence of the United States, Arnold retired to England, where he died, towards the close of the 18th century, an object of universal contempt. In the country for' which he had given up his own, his reception was any thing but flattering. The British monarch did all in his power to make him acceptable but failed. On one occasion, he desired to make Arnold known to the high-minded earl of Balcarras, and personally led them together. After go- ing through the usual form of introduction, Arnold extended his hand to the earl. " What, sir!" said the latter to the king, at the same time drawing himself up to his proudest height; ' is this the traitor Arnold ?" lie then walked haughtily away " The hand of Douglas was his own." Arnold challenged the Earl they met, and Arnold, who fired first, missed his antagonist. The proud nobleman, instead of discharging his pistol, dashed it to the ground. " Stay, my lord," exclaimed Arnold, <: you have not had your shot !" " No," replied the earl indignant- ly, " I leave you to the hangman." ARRAGON, the real mot, re tains to the pre- sent day the name of kingdom. It is bounded north by the Pyrenees, northwest by Navarre, west by Castile, south by Valencia, and east by Catalonia. Population (in 1800) 685,030. A part of the country is mountainous, stony, and sandy, but some portions are fertile and pro- 'ductive. The inhabitants are hardy, industrious, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ART active, and patriotic. The kingdom was founded about 1035, by Ramiro. Ferdinand, the last king, united Arragon and Castile, in 1474, and thereby laid the foundation of the present Spanish mo- narchy. ARRIA, the heroic wife of Foetus, the Ro- man consul, who, being sentenced to kill him- self, by Claudius, hesitated to commit the fatal act. Arria, perceiving his reluctance, plunged a dagger into her own heart, then, drawing it forth, and presenting it to her husband, said, " My Foetus, it is not painful !" ARTA XERXES I, surnamed Longimanus, from the length of his arms, ascended the throne of Persia, B. C. 465. During his reign peace was restored between Fersia and Athens, after a war of fifty-one years. He is generally sup- posed to have been the Ahasuerus of Scripture. He died, B. C. 425. ARTAXERXES II, surnamed Mnemon, from the retentiveness of his memory, began his reign B. C. 405. Cyrus, his brother, assembled a powerful army and marched to Babylon to op- pose him, but he was met, defeated, and slain, by Artaxerxes. The latter defeated the Spar- tans and compelled them to relinquish their possessions in Asia. He was killed by his son in 301. ARTAXERXES HI (Ochus), waded to the throne through the blood of his kindred. He ?uelled the various revolts raised against him. n Egypt he was guilty of great cruelty and extravagance. He slew Apis, and, together with some of his soldiers, fed upon its flesh. He was poisoned by his general. Bagons, who threw his flesh to the cats, and causeo 1 sword handles to be made from his bones. ARTEMISIA I, queen of Caria, personally assisted Xerxes against the Greeks. Her me- mory was honored by a monument erected by the Spartans. ARTEMISIA II, queen of Caria, wife of Mausolus, to whom she erected after his death, the celebrated Mausoleum a funeral monu- ment. It was an oblong square, 411 feet in compass, 130 fret high, and adorned with 3t> columns. Artemisia did not long survive her husband, by whose side she was interred, 351 B.C. ARTHUR, a prince of ancient Britain, whose story Hume thinks has some foundation in fact. He was born about 501, and died 542. The institution of an order of chivalry, called the knights of the round table, is attributed to him, and~also the establishment of Christianity at York. 76 ASI ARUSPICES or Haruspices, priests among the Romans who foretold futuie events by ob- serving the entrails of the animals sacrificed, and the manner in which the victim behaved. They existed from the time of Romulus to that of Constantine (337 A. D.), when all soothsaying was prohibited on pain of death. Their number at this time was 70. ASHANTEE, a nation of negroes, on and near the Gold Coast of Guinea. They are in the vicinity of Cape Coast Castle, the British set- tlement at Sierra Leone. Warlike and unyield- ing they carried on a bloody war with the Eng- lish in 1824, in which General McCarthy lost his life. The kingdom of the Ashantecs has been in existence one hundred years. The king has a band of devoted attendants . one hun- dred in nuinber, who are slain upon his tomb, that he may be properly accompanied on his arrival in the infernal regions. His 3333 wives are regarded with reverence, and on that mystical number the safety of the state depends. The em- pire of Ashantee, consisting of several conquered states, has a population cf 3,000.1)00 souls. The Ashantees display some ingenuity and taste in their architecture, and manufacture cloths which are skilfully dved in brilliant colors. Comassie, the residence "of the king, has been forcibly de- scribed bv nn intelligent traveller. " A pros- pect of tlie capital, (if such it may be called,) at last opened in front of us ; it was a partial glimpse, at the distance of twenty or thirty paces, of a few mud-built hovels, surrounded in part by plantations, and some straggling walls of the same material, covering a contract- ed space gained from the surrounding waste." ASIA. To Asia we may trace the origin of nil the arts, and from this country sprang the first human couple, designed for a happy immor- tality, which was forfeited by their disobedience. Thence originated the various tribes and na- tions, which have since spread over the whole fnce of the srlobe. and peopled it with inhabit- ants. The extent of this vast region has been estimated at 16,009,000 square miles, and its population at 400,000,000. The principal parts into which it is divided, are Arabia, Asiatic Turkey. Persia. India, Tartary, Asiatic Russia, China. Japan, Barman Empire, Siani. Annam ; the Sunda Islands. .Moluccas. Philippines, Mal- dives. &c. In Arabia the earl}' events of Jew- ish history occurred, and in this country, in particular, the Christian reader feels a peculiar interest, and a curiosity which is hot disap- pointed by the story of the wild scenes which have been, from time to time, exhibited in this HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ASI 77 ASI historical region. Lying between the Red Sea and the Persian Gulf, being about 1400 miles in length, from north to south, and somewhat less in breadth ; it contains an extensive territory of varied fertility, now sterile, and now pro- ductive, inhabited by a numerous population. The capital of Arabia is Mecca, whose wild and circumscribed valley is more celebrated than many regions of the most luxuriant fertility : it is the birth-place of Mohammed. This re- markable man , destined to exert so great an in- fluence upon the fortunes of his fellow-beings, and the! condition of the world, was born in 571 . It was not until he had attained the prime of life that he ventnred to reveal his divine commission, having, probably, desired to bring his plans to perfection before he attempted an imposture, on the success of which the fate of millions depended. He pretended to have re- ceived a commission directly from God. He declared that he' was the prophet of God. and acted under the immediate instructions of the Almighty. His doctrines were written in a book called the Koran, a copy of which, splen- didly bound, and decorated, he declared that he had received from the angel Gabriel. The suc- cess of his attempt was at first doubtful but Mohammed enlisted mankind in his cause by every motive which could mislead poor weak humanity, ever ready to be led astray. After having been compelled to seek safety in flight, he obtained a small army which gradually increas- ed, and enabled him to take the field, with irre- sistible force, against his enemies. To those who fell in battle he promised a voluptuous immor- tality a sensual paradise, where cooling foun- tains tempered the warm air, and where the exertions of the faithful were rewarded by the charms of the divine Houris. He inculcated the doctrine of an irresistible destiny declar- ing that ages before his birth, the time of each man's death was fixed ; and by impressing on his followers a belief in this absurd idea, he enabled them to perform deeds of unequalled bravery, rushing to the charge with an impetu- osity almost supernatural, and courting death as the passport to those transports which were to have no transitory existence, but a blessed immortality. Backed by followers whom his instructions inspired with unequalled bravery, the daring impostor beheld his arms completely triumphant. His death took place at the age of 62, and his sceptre passed into the hands of Abu-bekr, his father-in-law. The caliphs, who filled the throne after the death of Abu-bekr, being men of consummate skill, and great tal- ents, contributed to confirm the opinions origin- ated by Mahomet, and to ensure the endurance of his religion. The Arabians of the present day still profess Mohammedanism. In the early ages of this belief, they contributed to its extension, making converts by threats instead of argu- ments.'' They offered to the wavering, the Koran or the sabre their religion or the grave. The Saracens, as they were called, thus made them- selves feared, and attained a wonderful degree of power, which was destined to decline as the star of Turkish empire arose over the nations of the east. The Mohammedans do not deny the truth of the sacred writings, but they pervert them in an abominable manner. At Mecca they pretend to show the very well, which re- stored the child of Hagar in the wilderness. Mecca is thronged with the Mohammedan pil- grims, as the Koran requires every Mohamme- dan to make a pilgrimage to this city once in his life. Mohammed was buried at Medina. Asiatic Turkey is divided at present, into several parts. Syria includes Palestine, or the Holy Land, a country which, as being the thea- tre of so many wonderful and appalling events, is still visited with intense interest, and holds a conspicuous place in the history of the world. In the southeast portion of Asiatic Turkey, lies the ancient and famous Mesopotamia. Assyria was one of the earliest and most noted monar- chies of Asia. The splendor of the Assyrians has been celebrated by all historical writers. To trace the fortunes and varied events of this kingdom alone, would require a much greater space than we can devote to the general view of Asia. The mighty kingdom of Babylon gave lustre to Asia in its early days. During the reign of the queen Semiramis its fame was at the highest. This sovereign possessed fewer feminine than masculine attributes, and yet shone no less conspicuosly in the court than the camp. She did much to beautify her city, and to extend the fame and powe'r of her kingdom. ' The hanging gardens of Babylon, in which trees of great size were supported on terraces at ah elevation far above the earth, constituted one of the wonders of the ancient world. Semi- ramis penetrated far into India, and was wound- ed in a desperate combat with one of the In- dian kings. Bagdad, the once celebrated seat of the Saracenic caliphs, to the splendor of which Haroun al Raschid greatly contribut- ed has lost most of its former magnificence. Here, when the star of the Saracenic empire was at its zenith, literature and the arts flour- ished under the protection of the caliphs. Poet- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ASI 78 ASI ry and romance shed a charm over every day existence, and music, with other arts, received the most assiduous cultivation and encourage- ment. We can but briefly allude to the reigns and events which have distinguished Asiatic Tur- key the fate of the celebrated queen Zenobia, who was compelled to grace the triumph of the emperor Aurelian, after victory had smiled upon the Roman banners as they waved over the Asiat- ic plains the siege of Jerusalem by Titus the destruction of the sacred temple, with all its magnificence the wild enthusiasm of the cru- saders who made Jerusalem the rallying point for the chivalry of Europe in the holy wars the siege and "fall of that Troy, of which now not the slightest trace remains. Changed, in- deed, is the face of all that was formerly glo- rious in these ancient countries ! The footsteps of Time are deep, and his ravages lastinor. A wretched village, inhabited by a handful of Turks, usurps the spot where once rose in splendor, Ephesus ; that Ephesus which was the pride of Asia Minor that Ephesus which St. Paul has celebrated by his epistle which contained the superb temple of Diana, fired by Erostratus, that he might immortalize his name. " Great is Diana of the Ephesians !" was the cry of the proud inhabitants. Ages have past and the idol and the idolaters have passed away. Persia has. ever been a country of great in- terest, and its early history is crowded with events of importance. Chance and change were not unfelt by its inhabitants of former days. The early Persians were hardy, tempe- rate, and well educated. Education received early and strict attention among them, and their Magi, or wise men, are famous in the history of learning. A more detailed history of Persia will be found in another portion of this volume. The present condition of the Persians is hap- pier than it has been for a long time past, for until very lately, it was a battle-ground for rival chieftains and contending factions. The khans or chiefs attained their elevation to the throne by a wanton expenditure of blood and life. At a more distant period (1380), when Ispahan' was the capital of Persia, and famous for its com- merce and splendor, it was taken by Tamerlane, and 70,000 persons slain by the cruel Tartars. The modern Persians exhibit a very marked difference from those of the early ages, from whom they are descended. The latter, stern, temperate, and warlike, disregarded both the luxuries and elegancies of life. Inured to toil, living upon the plainest food, and taught to face death and danger without quailing, they be- came formidable to their neighbors, and acquir ed for themselves a military reputation, which only their subsequent degeneracy could destroy. At the time of the invasion of Greece by Xerxes, the Persian monarch relied more upon the immense numbers of his army and their splendid equipments, than upon their valor. The event proved the superiority of the Greeks, sternly brave, and proudly patriotic. In later times, the Persians have shown themselves de- voted to luxury, refinement, and the more ele- gant arts of pe'ace. Gay, polished, and affable, they unite much that is pleasing, with much that is unprepossessing in their character and manners. While distinguished for their volu- bility and wit, their habitual disregard of truth, and practice of flatten', detract much from their many amiable qualities. Persia abounds with the hallowed remains of antiquity. Among the most celebrated ruins which occur are those of the ancient Persepolis, a city formerly of im- mense extent, and conspicuous in the history of Alexander of Macedon. It was the royal palace of this city that the Grecian conqueror, inflamed with wine, and urged by the wild per- suasion of an abandoned woman, destroyed by fire, aided by his companion. She beheld the flames rolling around the most beautiful edifi- ces, consuming splendid palaces, and hurling to the ground lon- gances and the common comforts of life. What their Lycurgus was to them, Solon was to the Athenians. Solon was one o those great characters, whom their countrymen regard with veneration for ages, and whose memory they recall even in the midst of oppression, and the darkness of dis- grace. He was one of those rare spirits, who:v virtues and self-possession are most conspicu- ous when most needed, and whose knowledge, like the lamp of the glow-worm, shines bright- ost. when the darkness is most heavy. At a time (B. C. 043) when the turbulence and am- bition of the archons threatened the Athenians with a multitude of evils, all eyes were turned upon Solon, as the pilot who alone could guide the vessel of state through the rocks and surges that surrounded it. He was at once created archon extraordinary with unlimited power, for his high character and calm demeanor inspired confidence among the people he wa,s destined to assist. Solon introduced a mild code of laws, in opposition to that of Draco, whose appalling se- verity had raised him many enemies. The gov- ernment was placed in the hands of a senate of four hundred members chosen by the people. After an acquittal of their debts, the people were divided into four classes. The members of the three first classes were eligible to office, while those of the fourth, whose poverty wus thought to incapacitate them from serving, were yet al- lowed the privilege of voting in the popular as- semblies. The power of the commonwealth was vested in these assemblies, but there was a restrictive influence in the senate. Solon, al- though mild, was just, and a great lover of truth. When Thespis was exhibiting theatrical entertainments on his cart at Athens, Solon asked him if he were not ashamed of giving utterance to so many untruths? ' Nay," re- plied the actor, " they were but in jest." il In jest !" exclaimed Solon, indignantly ; " you lit- tle know the danger and the guilt of jesting with so sacred a thing as truth !" . Whatever merit we may be dispose! to allow the constitution of Solon, framed as it was at a very early period, it was much too artificial to be permanently successful. Solon lived to see this. During his retirement iVo'u Athens, factions disturbed the peace of the people, and Solon, afler having vainlv endeavored to stem the current, retired to thn'isle of Cyprus, where he died, B. C. T/iO. The change of government \\-.\-; 'fi'rr.ted by Pisistratus, a popular but ambi- tious man, v.'ho headed the poorer class of peo- EJe a class who considered themselves pecu- arly oppressed by the constitution <>f Solon nnd gained possession of the supreme power. The "phn.-i of the usurper possessed a plausi- bilitv ai:d brilliancy which were calculated to product no insignificant effect upon the minds of men. His ben 'Vulenre w:ss undoubted. At his den'h. PJajstratus bequeathed his power to his two sons, ffcipparehns and Hippias, who, for a long time, by a liberal patronage of the arts, and of learned men, gave a brilliancy to their administration which was unhappily not P HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ATH 83 ATH destined to endure. Among the most brilliant ornaments of the court was Anacreon, the ele- gant, though effeminate poet of love and wine. The cruelty of Hippias at length roused the spirit of the Athenians, who broke forth into an open revolt, in which Hipparphus was slain, and Hippias banished. Hippias finally sought refuge at the court of Darius ; the king of Per- sia endeavored to procure his recall from the Athenians, whose refusal was the commence- ment of the war between Greece and Persia. When the tyrants ceased to trouble the tran- quillity of Athens, it became necessary to guard against future abuses. Calisthenes accordingly effected some changes in the laws of Solon, in- creasing the number of the divisions of the people to 10, and of the members of the senate to 500. The smiling appearance of the Athe- nian vineyards and olive plantations gave strik- ing proof of the industry and prosperity of the people. In the midst of happiness and success, the hostility of the Persians threatened them with ruin. But the bravery of the Athenians was not wasted in words, and they joined against the invaders with heart and hand. When the heralds of Darius came with the in- solent demand of earth and water, they were seized and thrown, the one into a ditch and the other into a well, whence they were contempt- uously told to satisfy their wants. The troops of Darius entered Attica, encamping at Mara- thon, a small town upon the sea-coast. Against an army of one hundred and ten thousand horse and foot, the brave Militiades led forth a band often thousand Athenians, who were victorious in the most sacred of causes. Afterwards when Xerxes poured his forces into Greece, the Athe- nians, under Themistocl'es, were triumphant, and the victory of Salamis bore witness to the terrible energy" and roused sp : it of freemen. Y<>t it is painful to mark the fickleness and ingrati- tude of the Athenians. One would think that while Marathon was remembered} the services of Militiades could not be forgotten. Yet so it was and the noble Athenian, in consequence of misfortune, was thrown into a prison where he perished. Mietides. whose virtue procured him the surname of " the just," was banished by ostracism, without any adequate cause. The practice of ostracism was so called, because the citizens wrote upon a tile, or fhdl (ostmhoii) the names of those who were obnoxious to them. The shells being counted, the person whose name occurred most frequently, was banished. Themistocles was also persecuted and forced to seek refuge at the Persian court; yet, so fond was he of his ungrateful country, that rather than serve against her, lie killed himself. It was men like these who reflected a lustre on the Athenian name. When the Persians no longer had the audacity to threaten Greece, but had been humbled to the dust, the glory of the Athenians brightened, day by day. The peo- ple saw with delight the extension of their pri- vileges and the respect with which their claims were received. All classes, feeling the benefit of equal institutions, labored in common for .the aggrandisement of their country. Members of all classes were now made eligible to office, and the poor felt that they stood upon an equal foot- ing with the rich, and might, by exertion, rise superior to them. The period from the Persian war, B. C. 500, to the time of Alexander, B. C 330, includes days of uncommon splendor in the history of Athens. Cimon and Pericles intro- duced elegance into Athens, and the age of Pericles is commonly quoted as the golden era of the country. The arts under the liberal patronage of Pericles, flourished to a great de- gree, and under the fostering care of those in power, magnificent temples sprang up in every direction, the marble breathed, the pencil glow- ed, and the lips of the orator and poet were gifted with a kindling eloquence. Yet, in the midst of much apparent prosperity, the founda- tion of misfortune was laid. The abundance of wealth was not without a deteriorating influ- ence, and the Athenians became so enamored of the elegancies of life, that they began to pre fer them to manliness and independence. Pe- ricles was at the zenith of his greatness B. C. 444. He engaged in the Peloponnesian war> the end of which was, that tli Lacedaemonians, ever more hardy if not more brave than the ele- gant Athenians, made themselves masters of Athens, and granted peace to the vanquished on the most humiliating conditions. For eight months the Athenians groaned under the yoke of the thirty magistrates, or as they were called the Thirty Tyrants, whom the Lacedaemonians imposed upon them, and kept under the protec- tion of their garrison. The man who led to the overthrow of this oppression, was Thrasy- bulus. Again the star of Athens rose to the zenith, bright as if no cloud had ever covered it and hid its silvery brilliancy beneath a veil. The Athenians joined the Thebans against Sparta, and were successful. They were yet to feel, however, the importance of a power hitherto unacknowledged or despised. Philip of Macedon descendedTrom the north. In vain did Demosthenes urge the Athenians to die in CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ATH 84 ATH defence of their liberty. In vain did this ex- traordinary man hurl his tremendous anathe- mas against Philip he was doomed to see the subjugation of his countrymen. Demosthenes was one of the most renowned of the Grecian orators, and rendered famous by the persever- ance with which he overcame all obstacles. He early had an impediment in his speech, which he overcame by speaking with pebbles in his mouth. The weakness of his voice he conquered by de- claiming upon the sea-shore, where the dashing of the waters resembled the tumultuous noises of a popular assembly. Demosthenes was a warm patriot, proud of the independence of his country, and determined to use all his powers in support of it. Philip was neither daunted by eloquence, nor repulsed by bravery. The battle of Cherona?a, B. C. 33d, struck a death blow to Grecian liberty. From that time, Athens re- mained, with the other states of Greece, depend- ant upon the Macedonian power for existence. She did not sink without a struggle, but all her struggles were of no iivail against the giant power which had prostrated her, and lettered her with bonds of adamant. When Athens was taken by Cassander, the oligarchy was restored, and Demetrius Phale- reus enjoyed the office of Governor of the state for 10 years. Being obnoxious to the Atheni- ans, they entreated the assistance of Demetrius Poliorcetes, who, having taken the city, restored the ancient constitution, and received from the Athenians all the honors and marks of affection which gratitude could devise or bestow. Yet, with their characteristic fickleness, when he had gone to war, the}' closed the city against his return. He took the city, but forgave its inhabitants, contenting himself by leaving a garrison in the havens of Munychia and the Piraeus. The Athenians recovered their free- dom, but were again subdued bv Gomitas. They joined the Achaoan league, disuniting themselves from the Macedonians. The Ro- mans gladly availed themselves of the co-opera- tion of the Athenians against Philip, arid con- firmed the freedom which they were so anxious to maintain. The Romans, disposed to be friend- ly towards them, were changed into enemies by their espousal of the cause of Mithridati-s, kit";- of Pontus, who waired war against Ihe Italian power. After having drawn down upon them- selves the vengeance of Rome, the Atheni- ans trembled for the consequences of their con- duct. Sylla took their city, and tiie show of liberty which it afterwards retained, was but a bitter mockery. Vespasian made Athens a Roman Province, and it was included in the empire of the east, after the division of the Roman empire into eastern and western. But it. was destined to feel the terror of that power, beneath which the queen of cities was pros- trated to the dust. Alaric, the Goth, A. D. 396, conquered and devastated the country. From this period, the liberty of Athens existed but in the recollection of the past. In 420 A. D.. paganism was abolished in Athens, and the Parthenon converted into a church of the Virgin Mary. In 145G, the Caliph Omar gained possession of it. A black eunuch held the place which Pericles once adorned, and the Parthenon, no longer a Christian church, was forced to answer as a mosque. In 1(J87, the Venetians besieged Athens, and some of the works of the immortal Phidias, the sculptor, were destroyed by the explosion of a magazine, fired by a bomb thrown into the Parthenon by the besiegers. On the 29th of September, Athens came into the hands of the Venetians, after its inhabitants had suffered severely from the siege, but was again relinquished to the Turks in 1(!K?. From the erection of many barbaric structures, some of the most valuable remains of antiquity have been covered and concealed, to be brought to light by the re searches of the curious of later days. From the Turks, the Greeks of Athens experienced a milder treatment than many of their brethren, and were permitted to retain many of their ancient observances. In ]H&>, the Acropolis sustained a long siege, which was terminated by its falling into "the hands of the patriots. News of this was heard with delight by nil the Greeks, who loved their country^ and rejoiced to behold, " The flag of freedom wave once more Above thu lolly Parthenon." The present condition of Greece is too well known to require many words upon the subject. After a hard struggle a struggle which called for the exertion of great, fortitude, and the dis- play of uncommon' bra very tin 1 interference of Christian pjwers. coronated the Turks to retire from their prey. The government of Greece was finally (published as a limited monarchy. Tlu> modern Athenians have lost neilh.T th.' intelligence, nnr gayety, which dis- tinguished their ancestor:;, but they have less love of i loi v. and fewer peculiarities of char- acter. The Athenians have few memorials of the triumphs of their countrymen in the arts, since the various nations which have, at differ- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL ATL 85 ATL ent times, possessed themselves of Athens, have not scrupled to tear from it its most valu- able monuments. Robberies have been per- petrated with impunity, although the people nave regarded the removal of almost every ornament, with great indignation. The ruins of the Parthenon yet repay the curiosity of travellers. This was a temple dedicated to Minerva, and was the pride of Athens in for- mer days. It was 217 feet long. 98 broad, and 65 feet high. When the Persians entered Athens, they marked their rude triumph by the destruction of this temple, which Pericles re- built, 444 years B. C. It contained the famous statue of the goddess Minerva, which was sculptured by Phidias; was formed of ivory and gold, and 46 feet high. This magnificent figure cost about 576,004 dollars. Hence we may estimate the wealth of the ancient Greeks. The Athenians, like the Romans, fell, only when wealth had corrupted them, and simple and temperate manners had given way at the approach of luxury and extravagance. When, it is conceived poor and proud of honest indigence, their pro zon, the azure of the air, and that of the ocean appear blended The bridal of the sea and sky. Yet more impressive is the aspect of the deep sea in a tempest ; when the elements are awakened from their slumber, and abroad in their terrible strength, and the wild winds of heaven sport with gigantic mountains of water, heaving them to and fro, with the ease of zeph yrs sporting with dew-drops. The saltness of the vast extent of waters (the surface of the whole ocean being computed to amount to 147,000,000 square miles, and the quantity of the whole being 21,372,626 cubic miles,) pre- serves it perpetually fresh, and contributes to invigorate the health of all who dwell upon its borders, or its waves. The formation of the bed of the Atlantic, from latitude 200 south, up to the north pole, has been ascribed to the concussion of immense perty was merely adequate to the supply of their wants, they were independent; but when this happy simplicity was banished, they found themselves a degraded people, and sunk be- neath the weight of their fetters. ATHOS, a mountain of Macedonia, now Agion Oros, or Monte Santo, in the Turkish province of Salonica. On its sides, are many hermitages, and twenty monasteries, with 6000 monks, chiefly Russians, of the order of St. Basil. Some of the monasteries are said to contain very ancient and valuable manuscripts. Not long since., a manuscript of the eighth century, a translation of the Bible into the Georgian language by St. Euphemius, was dis- covered here. The summit of this mountain is about 6,900 feet above the level of the sea. At the foot of it, Xerxes caused a trench a mile and a half long, to be cut and filled with sea- water. This was for the passage of his fleet, and of such width that two ships could sail abreast. ATLANTIC OCEAN. There is not in the multitude of natural wonders, a more sublime spectacle, than that afforded by the world of waters, under whatever view it is contem- plated. Impressive and beautiful it is, when stretched out in the tranquil and golden repose of an unbroken calm, reflecting the^till splen- dor of the heavens by day, or their diamond brilliancy by night. Far as the eye can reach, there is no ripple on the wave, and at the hori- of water, produced by the deluge, when, , the waters of the great Southern Ocean below the equator, rushed upon the northern hemisphere. Mr. Kirwan says that the inspection of a map is sufficient to convince any one, that this vast space was formed by the force and pressure of the waters. From Cape Frio to the river of the Amazons, in South America, there is a vast protuberance answer- ing to the incurvation of the African shore from the river of Congo to Cape Palmas ; while, from the Straits of Gibraltar to Cape Palmas, there is an immense protuberance, correspond- ing to the incurvation between New York and Cape St. Roque. This conjecture is thought probable, since the depression caused by such an immense body of water could not be other- wise than enormous, considering the shock and weight of the opposing body. Until the successful issue of the voyages of Columbus, it was imagined that there was one unbroken extent of water between the western shores of Europe and Africa, and the East Indies; and the great navigator himself ima- gined that he had reached the Indian, realms, by a shorter route than that pursued by the Portuguese The name of the Atlantic Ocean is connected with a tradition, which is lost in the night of antiquity, and which, reaching the Greeks from the Egyptians, has beei\ commemorated by Plato. It was said that there originally existed an isle called Atlantis, which rose from the bosom of the ocean, and surpassed in extent Asia, and Libya together. The circumstance of Plato's testimony has CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ATL 66 AUG caused a controversy among modern authors respecting the situation and nature of Atlan- tis. Of course, it is impossible to determine the situation of an isle which existed before the ages r*' history, but still we cannot disre- gard the truth of the tale. What interest had the Greeks in imagining a fable, which bore no relation to their history, and which was not calculated to affect their religious belief? Why should the Greeks have adopted it? "The islanders," says Plato, " subdued Libya, Egypt, and Europe, as far as Asia Minor ; at last, .Atlantis was swallowed by the waters, and for a long time afterwards, the sea was full of earth and sand-banks, in the vicinity of the place which the island had occupied." This last pas- sage proves the existence of a tradition of a terrible outbreak of the waters of the Atlantic Ocean, which overwhelmed Atlantis. The equinoctial current, in the Atlantic, is a westwardly motion of the waters in the tropi- cal seas. Between the tropics, and particularly from the coast of Senegal to the Caribbean Sea, the general current flows from east to west. This current was known to the navigators of a very early age. The mean rapidity of the equi- noctial current is 9 or 10 miles in 24 hours. At 28 north latitude, and nearly as far south, this western equinoctial current is felt, although feebly. The current which rushes through the Cuba and Bahama, or Florida channels, and coasts the United States and Nova Scotia to about 45 degrees north latitude, is called the Gulf Stream. The whole course of this ocean river, is about 15,000 miles in extent. The rapidity of its motion is variable ; but greatest in the Bahama channel. The depth of the Atlantic is various, being, in some parts unfathomable. Its saltness and specific gravity diminish gradually from the equator to the poles. Near the British islands, the salt is said to be one thirty-eighth of the weight of the water. The temperature of the Atlantic is influenced, considerably, by the masses of ice which float from the northward towards the equator, reaching frequently the 40th degree of latitude. Dangerous as are these icebergs to the mariner, they yet pre- sent a splendid appearance as they float onwards to southern latitudes, gleaming in the sunbeams, which, while they impart a dazzling brilliancy, hasten the dissolution of the floating m The continual melting of portions, gives a very fanciful appearance to the icebergs, which is heightened by the rivulets pouring from point to point, like the streams trickling down a cavern of stalactites. Passages between North America and Europe in the month of June and July, are sometimes rendered perilous by the frequency of icebergs from the north- ward. ATTICA, a country of ancient Greece, is a peninsula, united with Bceotia towards the north, and partially with Megaris on the west. At Cape Sunium, now Colonna, it projects far into the ./Egean Sea. The earliest inhabitants lived in a savage state, until the arrival of Ce- crops, with an Egyptian colony, B. C. 1550. Athens, the capital of Attica, and, for a long time the most refined city of the ancient world, gave the name of Athenians to residents in At- tica. (See Athens.) Attica was famous for its gold and silver mines, which constituted the best part of the public revenues, and were worked by 20,000 men. The inhabitants were numbered, in the 16th Olympiad, at 31,000 citizens, and 400,000 slaves, in 174 villages, some of which were considerable towns. ATTILA, king of the Huns, flourished be- tween 434 and 453. He rendered the Greek empire tributary, and invaded France, but was defeated on the Maine. He threatened Rome, but was induced to retire. Attila was given to excess, and died 453. His body was put in three coffins the outer of iron, the next of silver, and the inner one of gold. His personal appearance has been described by Jornandes. lie had a large head, a flat nose," broad shoul- ders, and a short, misshapen body. AUGEAS, in fable, a king of Elis, whose stable contained 3,000 oxen, and had not been cleansed for thirty years. Hercules was re- quired to clean it, which he did by turning the river Alplieus into it. A UGEREAU, Pierre Francois Charles, duke of Castiglione, marshal of France, was one of those men who emerged from obscurity, and obtained a high rank among the officers that surrounded Napoleon, giving such unrivalled brilliancy to his court and camp. Augereau was the son of a fruit merchant, and was born at Paris, 1757 ; serving, as soon as lie was able, as a carbineer in the French army. Having sub- soquentlv entered the Neapolitan service, he was banished from Naples, in 1792. He then served as a volunteer in the army of Italy, and attracted the attention of all by his bravery, and military talent. In 17!M, we hfid him a general of brigade, and, in 17:H>, general of division. He distinfbished himself, at the pass of Mille- simo, and^at Lodi, and took part in some of the most brilliant achievements of the French. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. AUG 87 AUG In the battle of Arcoli, finding the French columns wavering, Augereau seized a standard, rushed into the thickest of the battle, and gained the victory. In 1799, he was chosen member of the council of five hundred. He was en- trusted by Bonaparte with the command of the army in Holland, joined Moreau, and fought with varying fortune, until the campaign was ended by the battle of Hohenlinden. In 1803, he was appointed to head the expedition against Portugal, which enterprise failed. Returning to Paris, he was named, in 1804, marshal of the empire, and grand officer of the legion of honor. In 1805, he was in Germany, contribu- ting to the successes of the French. Wounded in the battle of Eylau, he was forced to return to France. In 1811, he had a command in Spain. In 181 3, he was engaged in the battle of Leipsic. After the success of the allies, Louis XVIII named him a peer; in consequence of his speaking disrespectfully of Napoleon after his fall, the latter, on his return from Elba, declared him a traitor. Augereau took no active part in affairs until the return of the king, when he resumed his seat in the chamber of peers. He died of the dropsy, June llth, 181G. AUGSBURG, 35 miles northwest of Munich, capital of the Bavarian circle of the Upper Danube. It is a place of some commercial im- portance, and has 3-1,000 inhabitants. It is famous as the place where the Lutherans, in 1530, protested against the persecutions of Charles V, and were hence called Protestants. AUGUSTA, a pleasant town in Maine, the seat of the state government. It is situated on the Kennebeck river, 56 miles N. N. E. of Port- land. Population, in 1830, 3,980. Augusta (Georgia), a city opposite to, and connected with. Hamburg, S. C. It has a flourishing com- merce. Situated on an elevated plain, it has an air of great neatness. Population, in 1830, C696. AUGUSTIN, or Austin, Saint, has been surnamed the "Apostle of the English." The time at which he flourished, was the reign of Ethelbert, towards the close of the sixth cen- tury. Pope Gregory was induced to send Au- gustin into England with 40 monks, to intro- duce Christianity into the Saxon kingdoms. Ethelbert was then seated on the throne of Kent, to which he had succeeded on the death of his father Hermandie, about 560. After a short, determined struggle, he had rendered all of the states, with the sole exception of North- umberland, dependant. Ethelbert formed a matrimonial alliance with France, claiming in 8* marriage the hand of Bertha, a Christian prin- cess, from her father, Caribert, king of Paris. The princess, distinguished for her piety and virtue, exacted a promise from her husband that she should not be molested in the enjoy- ment of her religion, and that, on the con- trary, she should be permitted to bring over to England with her a French bishop. Ethel- bert, who was tenderly attached to her, made no objections, and the French bishop was re- ceived with every mark of respect. The con- duct of the queen was such as to reflect honor on herself and the court of her husband, and excited the admiration of Ethelbert and his subjects. The king could not but perceive the salutary influence of Christianity, and was strongly prepossessed in its favor. Pope Greg- ory, the Great, received the intelligence of the favourable disposition of the king with un- feigned gladness, and immediately dispatched a mission of forty monks, headed by the cele- brated Augustin. Augustin found the king ready to lend a willing ear to all his arguments, and displayed, in a striking and happy light, the truth and beauty of the gospel. The king was not long in avowing his entire belief in the doctrine of Christianity. With his subjects, Augustin was no less successful ; they embraced the true religion with readiness, and crowded to baptism. 3 It is said that Augustin baptized no fewer than ten thousand in one day. His reputation for miraculous power (for he was said to have the ability of curing the blind and deaf), had doubtless no little influence with the multitude, but still it was clear that there was a happy spirit abroad. In regarding his efforts for the extension of gospel truth, we should never overlook the circumstance that he per- mitted no force to be used. There were none of those threats held out to the wavering, which have disgraced the Romish church in many ages the fagot and the scourge were never once alluded to by Saint Augustin. Yet with many of his disinterested motives, there mingled some ambitious views. He desired to be made archbishop of Canterbury, with su- Ereme authority over all the churches in Eng- md. The pope was by no means disposed to refuse any of his requests, considering that he had fairly earned any distinction which it was in his power to bestow. The archiepiscopal pall was granted him with permission to establish 12 sees in the province. The British bishops in Wales refused to acknowledge the authority of the church of Rome, under whose jurisdiction CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. AUG 88 they had never placed themselves. They were descendants of the British converts of the second century, and sternly resolved to maintain their independence. Augustin urged threatened. The bishops were neither pliant nor timid, and adhered to their original determination. A dreadful tragedy was now acted ; 1200 Welsh monks being ruthlessly put to the sword. Au- gustin was suspected not only of having sanc- tioned, but of having instigated the massa- cre. He had been irritated by the refusal of the Welsh ecclesiastics to unite with the Eng- lish church, and he thought their contumacy deserving of the severest punishment. He died in 604 or 614, and his relics were deposited with care in the cathedral of Canterbury. The good effects of the introduction of Christianity into England were immediately perceiveo. The adoption of a pure religion, was immedi- ately followed by the spread of knowledge and civilization ; those laws which were enacted, were generally observed, and a spirit of union manifested itself throughout the kino-dom. AUGUSTUS, Caius Julius Csesar Octavius, son of Caius Octavius and Accia, niece of Juli- us Ceesar. He was born during the consulate of Cicero, 65 years B. C. His education was carefully attended to, and he was adopted by Julius Caesar. He was studying eloquence at Apollonia in Epirus, when his uncle was assas- sinated, and at nineteen years of age, placing himself at the head of the veterans, he marched to Rome, which he found distracted by the republicans and the followers of Antony and Lepidus. Here he announced publicly his adoption, and took his uncle's name, to which he added that of Octamanus Antony treated him with a contempt, which the magistrates and leading men were far from feeling, and Octavius joined the army that was sent against Antony after his proscription. Thinking it politic, however, to conciliate him, he joined Antony, and, with Lepidus. formed the trium- virate which was to last for five years, each enjoying an equal share of authority. Octavius sacrificed Cicero to the malice of liis associates, and Rome became the theatre of the most san- guinary tragedies. Brutuaand Cassius having been defeated, a new partition of spoils took place, Octavius and Antony obtaining the Ro- man empire, while Lepidus was forced to con- tent himself with the African provinces, and was finally deposed. Octavius gave his sister Octavia in marriage to Antony. The conduct and fate of Antony have been related. (See .'In- tony.) Octavius was soon firmly established in AUR the empire. The senate gave him the title of Augustus, and, finding his power confirmed, he seems to have endeavored strenuously to ren der his conduct worthy of his dignity. He made excellent regulations for the safe conduct of the government. ; reducing the number of senators from 1000 to 600, and raising the degree of wealth, which was to qualify them for a seat. He set about the reform of the public manners and morals, and carried his arms successfully into Gaul, Germany, and the east. In the lat- ter part of his reign, however, he met with severe losses in Germany, when Arminius rous- ed his enthralled countrymen to arms. The emperor displayed great sensibility when he heard that three of his legions under Varus. had been cut to pieces by the Germans, A. D. 9, and often exclaimed, in tones of agony, "O Varus, give me back mv legions 1" He died at Rome, A. D. 14. in the 76th year of his age, and 14th of his reign. On the np- proach of death, he called for a mirror, and ar ranged his hair. He then asked those about him, if he had played his part well? On their answering in the affirmative, he said, after the manner of the actors, " Then farewell and applaud !" He greatly improved the appear- ance of the capital, and it was truly said, that " he had found Rome brick, and left it marble." He liberally patronized men of letters, and Jiu^ustan age is a phrase applied to any era distinguished for literature and the arts. Vir- gil and Horace were among the brightest orna- ments of his reign. Two conspiracies formed n^ainst him mfscarried, the leader of one, China, being generously pardoned by his mas- ter. The emperor's private griefs were heavy, and he suffered great misery from the debauch- eries of his daughter Julia. AURELIAN. emperor of Rome, distinguish- ed for his military talents and severity, was the son of a peasant of lllyricum, and having served with distinction under Valerian II, and Claudi- us II, was recommended as his successor by the latter. He was raised to the throne to the sat- isfaction of all. He subdued Zenobia, queen of Palmyra, and erected a new wall round Rome, but was assassinated. A. D. '2?.'. AURENG-ZEP.E (ornament of t/if throne) was born October 20. 1619. His father. Shah Jehan, succeeded to the throne when Aureng- zebe was in his ninth year. In youth, lie was distinguished by his great sanctity of appear- ance, and he used all the arts of hypocrisy to cloak his designs. He looked forward to the pos- session of the throne of Hindostan, in the life- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. AUS 39 AUS time of his father. In 1658, he seized Agra, and imprisoned his father. Having murdered his rel- atives in succession, he ascended the throne in 1659, and took the name of Aalem Guyr. Not- withstanding his crimes in gaining the throne, he governed with ability and success. He greatly enlarged his dominions, and became so formidable, that all the eastern princes sent him ambassadors. He died at the age of 89, bequeath- ing his possessions to his sons. Wars broke out immediately after his decease, and many of the conquered provinces sought their former independence. AUSTERLITZ, or Slawkow, a town of Moravia, in the circle of Brunn, is situated 12 miles E. S. E. of Brunn, and 112 E. S. E. of Prague. This town has been rendered famous by the battle fought in its neighborhood, on the 2d day of December, 1805, in which the troops of France, under the command of the emperor Napoleon, defeated the combined forces of Rus- sia and Austria, headed by their respective emperors. The combined troops amounted to 100,000 men, of whom one fourth were Austri- ans ; while Napoleon had but 80,000, twenty battalions of which, with forty pieces of artil- lery, he kept back as a reserve. At sunrise the battle began, and, shortly afterwards, a most furious cannonade wrapped the combatants in fire and smoke. The repeated discharge of two hundred pieces of cannon created an uproar which appalled all but those engaged in the work of death. At one o'clock in the afternoon, the French were victorious, and the Russians and Austrians retreated. The French found themselves in possession of forty stands of col- ors, and 120 pieces of cannon, while twenty generals, and upwards of 30,000 prisoners were taken. An artillery officer of the Russian Imperial guard, having just lost his guns, met the emperor Napoleon: "Sire," said he, "order me to be shot, for I have lost my pieces." " Young man," replied the emperor, " I appre- ciate your tears ; but you may have been de- feated by my army and yet have indisputable claims to glory." The French artillery caused a heavy loss to the enemy, and Napoleon, in noticing their exploits, said : " Your success has given me great pleasure, for I do not forget that in your ranks I commenced my military career." The soldiers called this battle the day of the three Emperors, while Napoleon named it the day of Jlusterlitz. The commence- ment of the action was striking. The emperor, surrounded by his marshals, in brilliant uni- forms,_ refrained from giving his orders until the first rays of the sun shot a splendor on the scene, and the horizon became illumina- ted. He then issued his orders distinctly but rapidly, and the marshals parted at full gallop, each to his corps. The emperor, passing in front of several regiments, thus addressed them : " Soldiers ! we must finish this campaign by a thunder-clap, which will astound our enemies and crush their pride !" Thousands of hats waved on bayonets, and cries of vine I'cmpe- reur ! (long live the emperor!) were the signals of attack. "Never," says Napoleon, "was field of battle more dreadful." On the 4th of December, Napoleon had an interview with the emperor of Germany, in which an armistice, and the principal conditions of peace were agreed upon. Meanwhile, the French troops haying nearly surrounded the retreating Russians, Savary, Napoleon's aid-de camp, was dispatched to the emperor of Russia, to inform him that he could retire in safety if he adhered to the capitulation, retreating by stages regulated by the emperor, and would evacuate Germany and Poland. " On this con- dition," added Savary, " I am commanded by the emperor to repair to our advanced posts, which have already turned you, and give them his orders to protect your retreat, the ernperor wishing to respect the friend of the first con- sul." " What guarantee must I give you ?" " Sire, your word." " I give it." Orders were accordingly given, and the retreat of the Rus- sians protected. AUSTRALIA is the fifth division of the world, including New Holland, Van Diemen's Land, New Guinea, the Admiralty islands, New Britain, Solomon isles, Queen Charlotte's isl- and, New Hebrides or Terra del Santo Espi- ritu, New Caledonia, New Zealand, the Pelew, Caroline or New Philippine islands, Marian or Ladrone, Monteverdos, Mulgrave, Fisher, Friendly, Bligh's, Navigators, bociety, Mar- quesas, Washington, and Sandwich islands. These are sometimes divided into Australasia and Polynesia. Magellan discovered the Lad- rone or Marian islands, March 6, 1521, and the Spanish navigators continued the discoveries which the Portuguese had commenced. The Dutch in the 17th century, took up the task, but Cook, the English navigator, contributed the largest quota ot information with regard to Australia. This division of the globe is inhabit- ed by an infinity of tribes, of various disposi- tions and habits. In many islands reformation of manners has been effected through the exer- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. AUS tions of European and American missionaries, while in others the condition of the natives is deplorable. The Sandwich islanders have made the greatest progress. AUSTRIA. The Austrian dominions have not always been of their present extent, which is very great. The empire of Austria, now con- tains, in addition to the Archdutchy, Bohemia, Moravia, Austrian Silesia, Galicia, with the Bukowine ; Hungary, including Transylvania, Sclavonia, and Austrian Croatia ; Austrian Ita- ly, and Dahnatia, with Cattaro, Ragusa, and their islands. Over this extensive territory the house of Austria now holds proud and undispu- ted sway. The house of Austria was indebted for its rise to power, to the good fortune of successive marriages the beauty of its daughters ; whence it came to be a common saying, that " Venus was more favorable to it than Mars." The fortunes of the house of Austria began first to brighten in the fifteenth century, and origina- ted with the poor and undistinguished counts of Hapsburg, who were possessed of a ciicuin- scribed territory of little value in the canton of Berne, Switzerland. The powerful house of Zaerlingen and Kyburg, becoming extinct, Ro- dolph of Hapsburg, lord of the greater part of Switzerland, was summoned to assume the im- perial diadem and purple in 1273. In A. D. 1298, the imperial throne was filled by another member of the house of Austria, the emperor Albert. This monarch deputed harsh and ty- rannical governors to rule the Swiss, and, in consequence of continued oppression, that brave people revolted in 1307, headed by the famous Tell. Frederick, son of Albert, found himself forced to relinquish the empire into the hands of Louis of Bavaria. The crowns of Germany, Hungary, and Bohemia, were united in the per- son of Albert II, duke of Austria, who ascended the throne on the death of his father, A. D. 1436. Hungary and Bohemia were his by inheritance, and the empire by universal suffrage. The emperor Maximilian, grandfather of Charles V, married the heiress of Burgundy, in consequence of which alliance, the Nether- lands were subjected to Austiia in 1477. In 1490, the marriage of his son Philip to the heir- ess of Castile and Arragon, led to the junction of the broad domains of Spain with the already ample territories of Austria. Charles V, desir- ous of retiring from public life and passing his days in gloomy seclusion, resigned the crown in 1556, and Philip II, his son, gained posses- sion of Spain and the Netherlands. Ferdinand, 90 AUS the brother of Charles V, received Austria, Bo- hemia, and Hungary. He also had been cho- sen emperor of Germany. The house of Aus- tria was noted for its bigotry and cruel in- tolerance. In 1570, Maximilian granted lib- erty of conscience (a great grant in a monarch !) to the Protestants of Austria, but those in other portions of his dominions, particularly in Bohe- mia, were most cruelly persecuted. In their distress the Protestant German princes sought the assistance of the famous Gustavus Adol- phus, king of Sweden. This famous warrior, the ' Lion of the North,' as he was called, broke upon the empire like a whirlwind, and its very foundations tottered beneath the shock. France, espousing the cause of the Protestants, hoped thus to weaken the power of Austria, and the country experienced no release from the tumults and horrors of war, until the treaty of West- phalia was signed in l(!4rf. The sword was idle for a time, but the war with France broke out afresh during the reign of Leopold I, and was continued under his sue-, cessor. The Turks, emboldened by success, in 1688, pushed their arms into the heart of the empire, and the walls of Vienna echoed back the clangour of the oriental cymbals. The siege of Vienna by the Turks, is" a memorable and impressive event. In the war of the allies with France. Joseph I, son of Leopold, joined with heart and hand, and acquired a share of their good fortune. His queen was a daughter of John Frederick, duke of Hanover. Charles VI dying without issue, on the 20th of October, 1740, the extinction of the male line of the house of Austria was the signal for the move- ment of the elector of Bavaria. He seized the kingdom of Bohemia, was elected emperor in 1742. and died in 1745. Francis of Lorraine, son of Leopold duke of Lorraine, succeeded to the Austrian dominions in right of bis queen, Maria Theresa, daughter of Charles VI. The throne is still occupied by his descendants. He was elected emperor in 1745, and the crown, though nominally elective, descended to his successors with the regularity of an hereditary sovereignty. The emperor Joseph II, made his reign con- spicuous by his designs for the good of his subjects. He aimed at the most extensive and important reformations, but was not uware of the strength of those prejudices and evils, which presented themselves in his path at the very outset, and continued to obstruct it through- out the whole of his career. Tiie education of Joseph had been carefully attended to, and at HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. AUS 91 AUS the age of nineteen, he was married to Isabella, infanta of Parma. In 1764, he was crowned king of the Romans. The death of his first wife whom he loved with a more than usual fond- ness, was a severe blow to him, but in 1765, he married the sister of the elector of Bavaria. It was in this year that he ascended the throne, without encountering the slightest opposition. Having always displayed a military ambition, he was now happy in re-modelling his armies and perfecting their discipline, not restricting his reformation to the army but making it felt in all the departments of government. After having returned from a tour through his own dominions, and through Prussia, Italy, France, and Russia, he set apart one day in each week forbearing the complaints and peti- tions of all, even the meanest of his subjects. " It behoves rne," said he, "to do justice : and it is my invariable intention to render it to all the world, without respect of persons." It is a pity that he forgot this maxim when he accepted the invitation of the royal anatomists, and assisted in the dismemberment of Poland, in 1771. Jo- seph encouraged the liberty of the press, and even permitted strictures to be made on his own conduct and measures, provided they were not couched in the language of coarse pasquinade. " If," said he, " they be founded in justice, we shall profit by them ; if not, we shall disregard them." Many curious adventures are said to have occurred to the emperor, when, as was his cus- tom, he drove about his one horse cabriolet in the garb of a private citizen. One day, as he r was riding thus alone, he was accosted famil- " iarly by a soldier who mistook him for a man of the middle class, and asked the emperor to give him a ride. " Willingly," exclaimed Jo- seph, " jump in comrade, for I am in something of a hurry." The soldier sprang into the cab- (u riolet, and sovereign and subject sat side by jb,;. side on the same seat. The soldier was loqua- cious. " Come, comrade !" said he, slapping the emperor familiarly on the back ; " Are you food at guessing?" " Perhaps I am," replied oseph; "try me." "Well, then, my boy, conjure up your wits, and guess what I had for breakfast this morning." " Sour krout." "Come, none of that! try again, comrade." " Perhaps a Westphalia ham," said the empe- ror, willing to humour his companion. " Bet- ter than that !" exclaimed the soldier. " Sau- sages from Bologna, and Hockheimer from the Rhine ?" " Better than that d'ye give it up?" "I do." "Open your eyes and ears then," said the soldier bluntly, " I had a phea- sant, by Jove ! shot in emperor Joe's park, ha ' ha !" When the exultation of the soldier had subsided. Joseph said quietly : " I want to try your skill in guessing, comrade. See if you can name the rank I hold." " You're a no hang it ! you're not smart enough for a cornet." " Better "than that," said the emperor. " A lieutenant?" "Better than that." "A cap- tain?" "Better than that." "A major?" " Better than that." " General ?" " Better than that." The soldier was now fearfully agi- tatedhe had doffed his hat, and sat bare- headed he could hardly articulate. " Pardon me, your excellency, you are Field Marshal." " Better than that," replied Joseph. " Lord help me !" cried the soldier, " you're the em- peror !" He threw himself out of the cabriolet and kneeled for pardon in the mud. The cir- cumstances were not forgotten by either, for the emperor often laughed over it heartily, and the soldier received a mark of favor which he could not forget. On another occasion, Joseph, turning a corner shortly, ran the wheel of his vehicle against an old woman's fruit-stall, and upset it, scattering the good things in every direction . The rag- ged urchins in the immediate vicinity fell upon the tempting fruit, and hastily gathering it, eat it, mud and all. As soon as the old woman gained her feet, she gave utterance to a volley of abuse, and the emperor was glad to escape and permit the predatory youths of the suburbs to take their share of the vituperative epithets of the enraged fruit-seller. As soon as he had reached his palace, Joseph despatched some of his officers to make reparation to the old wo- man. Surrounded by a group of men in splen did uniforms, the old lady was terrified when they informed her that the driver of the cabrio- let was her emperor. Indistinct ideas of halters and executioners were flitting across her mind, when she was awakened to the reality, by the sight of a purse full of gold pieces, which the officers threw upon her table. She opened her lips to bless the emperor, but his messengers had put spurs to their horses, and were seen galloping off in the distance. " I think," said the emperor. " she has no reason to complain, for she has been amply paid, and has had the pleasure of abusing me unmercifully, while I heard her with the patience of a saint." Va- rious events occurred to disturb the tranquillity of Joseph during his reign, and he died on the aOth of February, 1790. His good qualities far exceeded his defects, and the glorious actions CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. AUS S lie performed, have given him a high rank among the great and good rulers of mankind. Francis II was crowned emperor in 1792. In 1795, when the second division of Poland took place, Austria received an immense accession of territory. In 1797, she relinquished to France her possessions in the Netherlands as well as the dutchies of Milan and Mantua. To com- pensate for this, the greater part of the Vene- tian states were transferred to Austria. The military power of France was so formidable, that even the strongest sovereignties of Europe fear- ed they should be unable to resist its encroach- ments. The French threatened to attain the em- pire of the world by rapid strides. Involved in the wars of 1799 and 1805, Austria met with repeated defeats and continued discomfiture. After she had lost the great battles of Marengo and Hohenlinden, Ulm and Austerlitz, her Venetian possessions, the Tyrol, and other ter- ritories were wrested from her grasp. In 18^4, Francis II, assumed the name of Francis I, as hereditary emperor of Austria, and subse- quently relinquished all claims to the empire of Germany. In 1809, Austria took the field against Napoleon, but having to contend, not only against the French, but against Russia, and the confederation of the Rhine, found her- self defeated, and when Bonaparte entered the capital, was compelled to relinquish again immense territories. After a hopeless inaction of some years, the failure of Napoleon's Rus- sian expedition roused the Austrians to arms, and the subsequent success of the allied pow- ers restored the power and splendor of the Aus- trian empire, which gained the addition of some Italian terr-.tories. Of the subject kingdoms and states of Austria, a detailed account will not be looked for. Hungary comes first in rank. Thr Romans conquered Dacia and ren- dered it trOutary ; and, after them, the Huns, Avars, an< other Sclavonic tribes, successively conquered it. Since 1563 it has continued an ap- panage o^ the house of Austria. Transylvania came ; n*o possession of the Austrians in 1U91J. Croatia, anciently a part of Illyricum, was an- nexed to Austria in 1540. Sclavonia, also an- ciently a part of Illyricum, fell into the hands of the Austrians in 1067. The crown of Bo- hermapassed to the house of Austria in 1526. The history of Venice is highly interesting, and perhaps even a sketch of it may not prove otherwise. The Veneti of the opposite shore, flying from the barbarians, founded Venice in the fifth century. The first doge was elected in 697. Each island, previous to that date, AZO having been governed by a tribune. Towards the close of the 12th century the Venetian aris- tocracy seized the reigns of government. In 12l 1-1, "the Venetians, having extended their commerce, and become masters of many Gre- cian provinces, were celebrated for their im- mense wealth, and allowed to be the first commercial people of the world. This pre- eminence was destroyed by the success of the Portuguese, to whom the commerce of the East Indies was opened, and the power of Ve- nice declined with great rapidity, and there now remains but the tradition of what it was. AVATAR, in Hindoo mythology, the in carnation of the deity. The" Hindoos believe that numerous incarnations have taken place ; ten of which, the incarnations of Vishnu, the Supreme Deity, are celebrated in sacred poems. AVERNUS, a lake in the kingdom of Naples, anciently believed to be the entrance to hell. AVIGNON, a city of the department of Vau- cluse, France, on the Rhine, containing 30,000 inhabitants, and some silk manufactories and other works. The country is fruitful and pleas- ant. The city and district once belonged to the Popes, but in 1790 was annexed to the French Republic. AYESHA, the favorite of Mohammed. Af- ter his death, opposing the succession of AH, she was taken prisoner, but dismissed. She died in 077. AZOPH, or Azof, a town and fortress belong- ing to the Russians, on an island at the junc- tion of the river Don with the sea of Azof. It contains about 1000 inhabitants. The sea of Azof is a bay of the Black Sea. The sea is 210 miles long. AZORES, or Western Islands, a group of islands lying between Europe and America. The principal island is Terceira. Present pop- ulation more than 200,000. They were dis- covered by, and have ever since belonged to the Portuguese, by whom, however, they are not properly appreciated. It is difficult to de- termine the exact time of their discovery, as several dates are given, concerning which a warm controversy has been waged. It is, how- ever, certain that they were discovered prior to 1449. The name Azores, i. e. Hawk Islands, was given from the abundance of falcons (azrrres) found here by the Portuguese. In 14(itj these islands were presented to the dutchess of Burgundy, by her brother, the prince of Portu gaj. They were colonized afterwards by Ger- mans andjflerainge, who appear, however, al- ways to have acknowledged the sovereignty of HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BAB 93 the king of Portugal. The Azores are recog- nised at sea from a great distance, by Pico, a tall mountain, which, like the Peak of Tene- riffe, towers far above the deep, and stands a lasting landmark to mariners. The islands arc subject to earthquakes and volcanic eruptions, and, in 1574, St. George's, Pico, Fayal, and Terceira, although detached and distant from each other, were violently convulsed. The ocean overflowed from the shock, which pro- duced eighteen little islands. A similar con- vulsion of nature occurred in July, 1638, and after a commotion of six weeks, an island of nearly six miles in circumference, arose near St. Michaels, but was subsequently absorbed. In 1720, the most horrible and tumultuous scenes occurred, and, amidst an almost unequal- led combination of horrors causing the death of many persons from fright an island nearly as large as that of 1633, emerged from its sub- marine birth-place. The islands are supposed to rest on volcanic foundations, which extend to the western shores of Portugal, though the com- munication may be in many parts obstructed. B. BAAL, Bel ; a Babylonian or Phrenician god, concerning whom there is sucli a variety of opinions, that there is no small difficulty in de- termining his character. Some consider him as a mortal, the founder of Babylon, and deified for his exertions in the establishment of that mon- archy. Besides the Babylonians and Assyrians, the Persians, Tyrians, and others, worshipped him BABER, or Babour. sultan ; he was a de- scendant of Tamerlane, sovereign of Cabul, and founder of the Mogul dynasty in Hindostan, in 15-25. -lie took Behar, and died in 1530. BABYLONIA, now Irak Arabi, an Asiatic empire of antiquitv, bounded north by Media, .Armenia, and Mesopotamia; east by Susiaim; south by the Persian Gulf, and Chaldea, and "Vrest by Arabia Deserta. The Euphrates or Frat, and Tio-ris. two great rivers, irrigate this fertile and level region. The old capital, Bab- ylon, was of prodigious extent. The walls, 350 feet high, and 87'feet thick, were cemented with bitumen, and were more than 60 miles in circuit. They had an hundred brazen gates, and two hundred'and fifty towers. Its ruins, which are cumbrous and tasteless, exist in the pacha- lie of Bagdad, near Hella, a village on the east- ern bank" of the Euphrates, with 6 or 7000 in- habitants. The haiiging gardens of Babylon were famous in ancient times. The Babylo- BAC nians formed a distinct nation, and had attained a high degree of refinement as early as 2000 B. C. Nimrod was the founder of the empire, accord- ing to the Mosaic record. Belus, Nirius, and Semiramis were famous conquerors, and the latter caused the capital to be embellished and improved. The learning of the Babylonians was celebrated at an early age. Under Nabo- n : das, the empire lost much of its strength and splendor, and Cyrus destroyed its capital, and annexed it to Persia, in 536. In A. D. 640 it was conquered by the followers of Mohammed, who built Bagdad on the Tigris, and made it the capital. Holagou, a prince of the Tar- tars, expelled the caliphs in 1256, and in 1534 Bagdad was taken by the Turks. Shah Abbas won it from them, but in 1631), the whole of Bab- ylon fell into the hands of the Turks, who yet possess it. BACCHUS, the heathen God of wine, son of Jupiter and Semele. His festivals in Greece and Rome were celebrated by both sexes, and disgraced by intoxication and excesses of va- rious kinds. BACHAUMONT, Frangois le Coigneux de, born at Paris, 1624, died in the same city, 1702. He was counsellor of Parliament, arid opposed to the court party in the disturbances of 1648. He said that the members of the parliament put him in mind of the little boys that played with slings in the street, who dispersed on the ap- pearance of a police officer, but collected as soon as he was out of sight. Pleased with this comparison, the enemies of Mazarin adopted hat-bands in the form of a sling (fronde), and hence were denominated Frondcurs. Ba- chaumont was distinguished for his talent for writing epigrams and lively songs, many of which are extant. BACON, Francis, baron of Verularn, a dis tinguished philosopher, born at London, 1561, ana died in 1626. He was entered in the university of Cambridge, in his 13th year, and distinguished himself for his early proficiency in the sciences At 16 lie wrote against the Aristotelian philosophy, and at 19 his work Of the State of Europe, attracted general at- tention from the clearness of perception and maturity of judgment which it displayed. At the age of 28 his legal reputation was such that he was appointed counsel extraordmary to the queen a post of more honor than profit. The Earl of Essex befriended Bacon, and pre- sented him with an estate in land, but the lat- ter abandoned his benefactor when he had fallen into disgrace. In parliament, towards the close of Elizabeth's reign, he forsook the independent CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BAG 94 BAD course which he had previously pursued, and be- came a follower of the court. He stood nigh in the good graces of James 1 I, and was knighted by him in 1003. His marriage was fortunate, and he at length saw himself free from those pecuniary embarrassments by which he had been so long shackled. In 1G17 he was made lord keeper of the Seals ; in lG19,lord high chancellor of England, and ba- ron Verulam, and not long afterwards, viscount of St. Albans. -He had not now the plea of neces- sity for making offices and privileges venal, but he was charged with receiving money for them. Rather than submit toa trial which would stamp his name with indelible disgrace, he confessed his cruilt, supplicated the lenity of his peers, and oegged to be dismissed with the luss of his office. His sentence was severe but just. He was sentenced to pay a fine of 40,000, to be imprisoned in the Tower as long as the king should choose, declared incapable of office, for- bidden to take his seat in parliament, or to show himself within the verge of the court. He was soon released from the Tower, but did not long survive his fall. His errors sprang more from weakness, than from avarice or want of princi- ple, for he displayed through life a strong sym- pathy for virtue, if he did not have firmness enough to be faithful to her cause. He exam- ined the whole circle of the sciences, and en- deavored to free them from the academical sub- tilties which had impeded their progress. ' My name and memory," he says in his will, " I be- queath to foreign nations, and to my own coun- trymen, after some time be passed over." BACON, Nathaniel, an Englishman of good understanding and education, who came to Vir- ginia in 1G75, and excited a rebellion against the royal government, which cost the colony 100,000. BACON, Roger, an English monk, born at Ilchester in 1214, and gifted with great talents. He made many discoveries in the sciences, which caused him to be regarded as a sorcerer by the common people, whose prejudices were espoused by the clergy, against whom Bacon had openly spoken. He was imprisoned in con- sequence of their denunciations, and, at one ti^iif. kept in confinement for ton years. He died in 1 \iLi2. He was probably the inventor of the telescope, and had an idea of gunpowder, for he distinctly says in one of his works that thunder and lightning could be imitated by means of char- coal, sulphur, and saltpetre. He was well vers- ed in the Greek, Hebrew, and Latin languages, the last of which he wrote with facility and elegance, and, although not free from many of the prejudices of his age, was altogether a very extraordinary man. Many of the old Englisn ballads and romances contain accounts of the wonderful exploits of Friar Bacon, who is gifted with magical arts of the most tremendous na- ture. The " Famous Historic of Fryei Bacon," towards the conclusion, informs us that Friar Bacon broke his magic glass, burned his books of tjie ' Black Art/ devoted himself to theologi- cal studies, and lived in a cell wliich he had excavated in a church wall. " Thus lived he two yeeres space in that cell, never coming forth : his meat and drink he received in at a window, and at that window he did discourse with those that came to him ; his grave he digged with his own nayles, and was laid there when he died." ' He lived most part of his lite a magician, and died a true Penitent Sinner, and an Ancho- rite." BACTRIANA,or Bactria, now Khorassan. before the time of Cyrus was a powerful king dom, and gave to the Persians their mythology and architecture. It lay between tiie Oxus, Scythia, Mount Paropamisus. and Margiana; but little is now known concerning this region After the destruction of the Persian monarchy, it was held by tho Parthians and Scythians, cuttii they were expelled by the Huns. BADAJOZ, or Badaiox, the Pax Augusta of the Romans, is on the left bank of the Guadi- ana, and contains 14, 000 Inhabitants. It is the capital of Eslremadura, a Spanish province, and is 8'2 miles N. N. W. of Seville. It is celebrat- ed for the defeat of the Spaniards in J109, by Joseph, king of Morocco ; and for its capture by the British, after a bloody conflict, on the Cth of April. 1612. BADEN, a grand-duchy, of Germany, con- taining 1,150,000 inhabitants, on an area of 5.800 square miles. Baden was erected into arrraml- duchy , with large accessions of territory, in . and now forms one of the states of the Germa- , nic confederation. BAD [A. Domingo,' a Spaniard, and political agent of (iodoy and Napoleon, who from ij^^^l to 1808, travelled in the Mohammedan tries bordering on the Mediterranean. He pro- j fessed Mohammedanism, and assumed the nameJH of Mi. Reij el rfLassi, under which his travels were published. Burckhardt, the oriental traveller, rives the following account of him : ' 1 le c.-.iled himself .Hi Bey, and pretended to have bf'en born of Tunisian parents, in Spain, and termit the growth of vegetation in April and May. Bar- ley, wheat, ngs, grapes, olives, oranges, pom- egranates, melons, Cyprus, cedar, and almond trees, spring from the luxuriant soil. The sugar-cane, palm-tree, and lotus are abundant; and, in the early part of the spring, the country is bright and fragrant with roses, from which the purest ottar is obtained. The domestic animals are of the most valuable kind, and wild ones are found in abundance. Among the minerals of the mountains, are silver, copper, iron, lead, and antimony. Salt is abundant. The commerce between these and the European states on the borders of the Mediterranean, is by no means inconsiderable. Jn antiquitv, the countries now composing the Barbary States, were distinguished for the activity of the in- habitants in commercial pursuits. The Car- thaginians were the most wealthy and en- terprising of the possessors of these places, but the Romans, Vandals, and Arabians, did not permit commerce to be prostrated. Now, a country capable of sixty millions of inhabi- tants, contains barely ten millions and a half. The patriotism of the Carthaginians induced them to labor for the promotion of the best interests of their country, but their power could not stand against that of a nation of victorious and hardy warriors. The Romans endeavored to make the most of their conquered provinces, and the vast influx of wealth, which conquest poured in upon them, subdued that stern spirit of temperance which had carried their banners in triumph through the troubled tide of war. Then came the Vandals and Arabians, who endeavored to render the possessions they wrested from the Romans as available as possi- ble. The present population of the Barbary States, is composed of Moors, Jews, who carry on the greater part of the business done here, Turks, and Bedouin Arabs. The last, the descend- ants of the Saracenic conquerors of the country, have a fine, manly appearance. Their habits are migratory, and they dwell in tents, 10 or 100 families gathering together, each family being under the government of a sheik. They are generally at war with the Berbers, the descendants of the original inhabitants of the country, who are represented as predatory, treacherous, and cruel. On these, and on the collectors of tribute, the Arabs wage war, and, when their hands are not full of personal quar- rels, enter the service of any chieftain who may require them. The Moors are Moslems, indo- lent, unsociable, luxurious, superstitious, and uncultivated. They treat the Jews, whom they despise and hate, with great harshness. In addition to the races above enumerated, there are manv negroes in Barbary. BARCA, a desert, with a few fertile spots, on the northern coast of Africa, between Tri- poli and Egypt ; containing 300,000 inhabi- tants. It is subject to .Tripoli. BARCELONA, capital of Catalonia, and one of the largest cities in Spain, contains 120.000 inhabitants. It is built in the form of a crescent, arid stands on the shores of the Mediterranean, long. 2 W E. ; and lal. 41 2?' N. Linens and laces, guns, pistols, and swords are among, its manufactured articles. The harbor is commodious, but rather difficult of access. Wine and brandy are exported in large quantities. The amount of imports and exports is probably 7.000,000 dollars. Its cit- adel, built in 1714, liM B secret connection with the fort of San Carlos ; and it may be considered as a strongly-fortified place. Until the twelfth century, Barcelona was under the government of its own counts, and afterwards united with the kingdom of Arragon, but with- drew and united to the French crown in 1(540. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BAR 99 BAR fn 1652. it again submitted to the Spanish gov- ernment, but was taken by the French in 1697. Its restoration was made at the peace of Rys- wick. It is famous for the resolute, but una- vailing defence it made against the troops of Philip V, under the command of the duke of Berwick, in 1714, when the sufferings of the inhabitants were unparalleled. In 1809, it was taken by the French, and remained in their power until 1814. In 1821, the yellow fever committed great ravages in it. The candor of a Barcelona galley-slave, is always brought to remembrance on seeing the name of this city. The duke of Ossuna, as he passed by Barcelo- na, having obtained leave from the king of Spain to release some slaves, went on board the galley, and, passing through the benches of slaves at the oar, asked several of them what their offences were. Every one excused him- self; one saying he was put there out of malice ; another by the bribery of the judge ; but all of them unjustly. Among the rest was a little sturdy fellow ; and the duke asked him what he was there for? " Sir," said-lie, " I cannot deny that I am justly sent here ; for I wanted money, and so I took a purse from the high-way, to keep me from starving." Upon this, the duke struck him gently with a little stick he had in his hand, saying, " You rogue, what do you do among so many honest men ? Get you gone out of their company." BARDS. The Bards, among Celtic nations, in battle, raised the war-cry of their people, and in peace, sang the exploits of their warriors. They appear to have acted, as the heralds, legislators, and priests of the free Celtic tribes of Europe, until the gradual progress of south- ern despotism and civilization, drove them into the strongholds of the Welsh, Irish, and Scotch mountains, which echoed to the w.'d notes of their harps, and the patriotic songs of the inspired poets. The ; r music and poetry kept alive the spark of national patriotism and enthusiasm, and inspired a stern resistance to the attacks of despotism. Hence Edward I, of England, caused the Welsh bards to be slain, as the instigators of sedition. The poems of Ossian, a Highland bard, have been preserved, and translated by Macpherson, who was sus- pected of being their author, but an investiga- tion of the subject by a literary committee, has clearly proved their authenticity. Of these poems, Bonaparte was passionately fond, and the influence they exerted upon his style, may be traced in many of his declamatory harangues. 3ARFLEUR, a sea-port in France, 12 miles east of Cherburg, which, in 1340, was taken and pillaged by Edward III, of England, who ruined its importance as a sea-port, by destroy- ing its harbor. Here William the conqueror embarked for England. BARLOW, Joel, an American poet and diplomatist, was born at Reading, Connecticut, about 1755. He was educated at Dartmouth and Yale colleges, where he distinguished him- self by his poetical talent. In the college vacations, he served as a volunteer, and was present at the battle of White Plains. His first publication was a collection of minor pieces called American Poems. After leaving college, he was licensed to preach as a Congregational minister, and became a chaplain in the Ameri- can army. His patriotic lays are said to have exerted a happy influence upon his country- men. His Vision of Columbus, which was afteiwards expanded into the Columbiad, met with a flattering reception, both in America and England. The first edition was printed in 1787. His version of the Psalms was highly successful. To further the sale of his poeoi, and the psalms, he became a bookseller, at Hartford, but quitted the business as soon as he had effected his object. In Europe,' whither he went to effect the sale of some land in Ohio, he made himself conspicuous by the publica- tion of some prose and poetical works of a political nature. He also found time to write a mock heroic poem, in three cantos, called Hasty Pudding, and this was doubtless the hap- piest of his efforts. ,The commercial specula- tions in which he .engaged, proved highly suc- cessful. In 1795, he was appointed American consul at Algiers, concluded a treaty of peace with the dey,and procured the liberation of all the American citizens, who were held as slaves within that territory. By the conclusion of a similar treaty at Tripoli, he was enabled to redeem and send home all the American pris- oners found there. In 1797, he returned to Paris, where, by commercial speculations, he amassed a very considerable fortune. In Paris, he lived in sumptuous style, and lost no oppor- tunity of serving his countrymen. When the rupture between America / and France took place, on account of the maritime spoliations of the latter, he endeavored to adjust the differ- ences between them. After an absence of nearly W years, he returned to his country early in the year 1805. In 1808, appeared his Columbiad, a splendid volume, ornamented with engravings, executed by London artists. It was so expensive a work, that but few copies CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BAR 100 BAR were sold. In 1811 , Barlow was appointed min- ister plenipotentiary to the French government. In 1812, while repairing to Wilna, in order to have a conference with the emperor Napoleon, he died of an inflammation of the lungs, Oct. 2, at Zarnawica, an obscure Polish village. BARNEY, Joshua, whose name stands high in the list of our naval heroes, was born at Baltimore, Maryland, July 6th, 1759. He was put into a retail shop at an early age, but man- ifesting a dislike for that employment, went to sea. At 16 years of age, the illness of the captain and discharge of the mate of a vessel, on board of which he was, put him in command of her, a station which he retained for eight months. At the commencement of the revo- lutionary war, he espoused the cause of the colonies, and was made master's-mate on board the Hornet sloop-of-war, Capt. William Stone. In 1775, the Hornet was concerned with Hop- kins's fleet, in the capture of New Providence, one of the Bahama Islands. In 1776, in con- sequence of his conduct in the engagement between the American schooner Wasp and the English brig Tender, which was captured un- der the guns of two hostile vessels, he was presented with a lieutenant's commission, being then not 17 years of a( )KA, or BASRAH, a city of Irak, sit- uated half way between the junction of the Ti- gris with the Euphrates and the Persian Gulf, 210 miles S. W. of Ispahan. Its commerce is extensive. It was built by the Caliph Omar, and has lw?cn alternately occupied by Turks and Persians. BASTILE, anciently a castle in Paris, where prisoners wen- confined by the authority of Lettres de Cachets, that is, letters of arrest, written in the king's name, with blanks for the names of individuals, which were to be filled up by the ministers who possessed these letters. Heads of families among the nobility, who wished to confine any unworthy member of the family, claimed the privilege of confinement by a lettre de cachet, and this privilege was next claimed by the ministers of government, to be used for the punisluncnt of lefractory servants and others. It will easily be conjectured that it was not long before unprincipled ministers abused this right by imprisoning worthy per- sons, who, in the actual discharge of their du- ties, had incurred the displeasure of men of power by thwarting their interests. In fact the use of the lettres de cachet was the main-stay of despotism, and used not merely by the throne, but by many of its satellites. Men were im- prisoned for offences too trifling to be register- ed, and remained 30 or 40 )~ears in the Bastile, or even till death, without any examination be- ing instituted into the charges on which they were imprisoned. (See Iron Mask). At the com- mencement of the French Revolution, the at- tention of the people was called to this enor- mity. In July, 1789, they assembled in force and attacked the Bastile. which surrendered after a few hours. The Governor was murdered. The prisoners were feasted in Paris, and the building was finally completely demolished. Its building was commenced in 13G9 by Charles V. and fimshod in 13ti3 by his successor. M. Mercier has given an interesting account of a prisoner who was confined for some expressions of disrespect towards Louis XV. He was set at liberty by the ministers of Louis XVI. He had been in confinment for 47 years, and had borne up against the horrors of his prison- house with a manly spirit. His thin, white, and scattered hairs, had acquired an almost iron rigidity, and his body was firm and com- pact as the stone which environed him. The day of his liberation, his door was flung wide open, and a strange voice announced to him his freedom. Hardly comprehending the mean- ing of the words, he rose and tottered through the courts and halls of the prison , which ap- peared to him interminable. His eves by de- grees became accustomed to the light of day, but the motion of the carriage which was "to convey him to his former abode appeared unen- durable. At length, supported by a friendly arm, he reached the street in which lie had once resided, but on the spot formerly occupied by his house, stood a public building, and no- thing remained in that quarter that he re- cognized. None of the living beings of the vast city knew him ; his liberty was a worthless gift, and In- wept for the solitude of hie dungeon. Accident brought in his way an old domestic, a superannuated porter, who had barely strength suliicient to discharge the duties of his office, lie did not recognize his master, but told him 1h.it hit! wife had died of grift' thirty years be- 'iis children iiatl gone abroad, and that not one of his relations remained. Overcome HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BAT 103 BAV by this intelligence, the captive supplicated the minister to take him back to the dungeon from which he had ben liberated, and the man of of- fice was moved to tears by his misery. The old porter became his companion, as he was the only person who could converse to him of the friends he had lost, but so wretched was the iso- lated condition of the victim of the Hostile, that he died not long after his liberation. BAT AVI A, a city and seaport of the island of Java, on the north coast of which it is situ- ated, near the western end. It is the capital of all the Dutch East Indies : Ion. 106 54 ' E. ; lat. 6 12' S. Pop. in 1824. when it was con- siderably reduced, 53,861 . The inhabitants are Chinese, Balinese, natives of Celebes, Javanese, Malavs, Europeans, and slaves. The Dutch founded the city in 1619, and after being taken by the British in 1811. it was again restored to the Dutch in 1816. The bay would be good if it were easily accessible. The town is built on a low marshy foundation, at the junction of small rivers, and some of the canals in the streets contain stagnant water. Hence origin- ates the intermittent fever, which is so fre- quently fatal to strangers. Batavia has an im- mense trade, and its architectural beauty pro- cured it the name of Queen of the East, but recent alterations have much defaced it. The quarter of the native population is exceedingly mean, while the European houses are neat rather than elegant. The stadt-house, and places of public worship are not particularly distinguished by grandeur or beauty. BAT AVIANS, a German tribe, the aborig- inal inhabitants of Holland, particularly of the island in the Rhine called Batavia. which was conquered by the Salian Franks towards the end of the third century. The Batavian repub- lic was formed in 1798, bv a change in the con- stitution of the United Provinces, effected by the French. It continued in existence till Louis Bonaparte ascended the throne of Holland, 1806. BATH. This city of England was anciently- called by the Romans Aquae, Soils, Fontes Calidi, Thermo;, Bodonia, and Bathonia. The Britons gave it the name of Caer Badun, or Bladon ; the Saxons. Hat Bathun, and Jlchamannum. It is in Somersetshire, 107 miles W. of London, and is situated on the river Avon, in a narrow valley. Its hilly environs are pleasant, and it opens on the north-west into beautiful and wide meadow-lands. The population, in 1831, was 50,800. Its baths were highly esteemed by the Romans, and are so at the present day. The splendid cathedral, which is of Gothic architec- ture, is the finest specimen of the sort in Eng- land. The places for public worship are uuiner- ous, and few cities are more prolific in sources of amusement. BATH, a post-town and port of entry in Lincoln county, Maine. It is situated on the W. side of the Kennebeck, 12 miles from the sea, has great commercial advantages and is engaged in ship-building. The population, in 1840, was 5,141. BATH, KNIGHTS OF THE, an English militaiy order, the origin of which is uncertain. By the statutes prepared when it was revived by Georare I, in 1725, the number of knights was fixedl at 38 viz. the sovereign and 37 knights-companions. BAUTZEN, or BUDESSIN, capital of Up- per Lusatia, situated on a height washed by the Sproe. It contains 11.500 inhabitants. The Catholics and Lutherans worship together in the large cathedral, the former possessing the altar and the latter the nave. On the 20th and 21st of May, 1813, Napoleon here defeated the army of Prussians and Russians, whose master- ly retreat left him little advantage. In the eve- ning of the 21st the field of battle presented a grand but terrible spectacle, more than 16,000 men being stretched in their last sleep, and the scene illuminated by the red glare of 30 burning villages. BAVARIA, a kingdom of Germany , a waste in the time of Csesar, and a Roman province (Vindelicia and Noricum) under Augustus. At the end of the fifth century, a confederacy was formed by several Gorman tribes, under the name of Boiaorians, Ratisbon being their chief seat. Their country was called Noricura, and was never subject to the Ostrogoths. They be_- caine subject however to the Franks, when the latter gained possession of Rhsetia. Otho the Great, who, after the death of Charlemagne, anjl the occurrence of convulsions incidental to the division of the empire, gained possession of Bavaria, died in 1183. Louis I. !m successor, enlarged his territories, and added the Palatin- ate of the Rhine. Bavaria was divided into Upper and Lower, in 1255 ; Maximilian I. a dis- tinguished leader of the league against the Pro- testants, gained the upper palatinate in 1623. He died in 1651. After the battle of Blenheim, the emperor treated Bavaria as a conquered country. Charles VII, elected Emperor of Ger- many in 1742, received homage as King of Ba- varia, but in 1743 the states of Bavaria were constrained to swear homage to Mariu Theresa. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BAV 104 BAY In the war of 1743, Charles' fortunes sank rapid- but a few fragments of her fine army survived' ly, and he was forced to abandon Bavaria. His the expedition to Moscow. In Ibl3 the king son and successor, Maximilian Joseph III as- of Bavaria abandoned the confederation of the sumed. like his father, the title of archduke of Rhine and turned his arms against Napoleon. Austria, but making peace with Austria, in The kingdom of Bavaria is at present one of 1745, received from Francis all the Bavarian the principal of the secondary continental pow- territories which had been conquered by that ers. Bavaria, exclusively of the part west of power. Maximilian Joseph devoted himself to the Rhine, is bounded north by Hesse-Darm- the promotion of the interests of his people, and stadt. Hesse-Cassel, the Saxon principalities favored their industry by every means in his of Meiningen, Hildburghausen. and Cpburg. power ; the foundation of the Academy of Sci- Reuss. and the kingdom of Saxony ; east and ences at Munich proves his liberality, and the south by Austria, and west by Wurtemberg, Ba- extension of his views. den, and Hesse-Darmstadt. The kingdom con- By the treaties of the house of Wittelsbach, tains 4,238,000 inhabitants. The people are in- and the terms of the peace of Westphalia, the dustrious and education has made much pro- right of succession reverted to the palatinate, gress. Agriculture is the chief branch of indus- on the extinction of the Wittelsbach Bavarian try. The government is administered to general line in the person of Maximilian Joseph, who satisfaction. died 30th of December, 1777, but the claims of BAYARD, Pierre du Terrail, Chevalier de, Austria to Lower Bavaria were enforced by called Le Chcralicr sans pcuret sans reprochc, (the arms, and Charles Theodore, in 1778, was per- knight without fear and without reproach). He suaded formally to renounce the Bavarian sue- was born in castle Bayard, near Grenoble, 147(i, cession. The Duke of Deux-Ponts, however, of one of the most ancient families in Dau- the presumptive heir, relying on the encour- phiny. Educated under the eye of his uncle, the agement afforded by Frederick II, refused to ac- bishop of Grenoble, he early displayed those knowledge the surrender of the succession. This traits for which he was afterwards so much be was the cause of the Bavarian war of succes- loved and celebrated. Modest, pious, affectiori- sion which was terminated by a treaty of peace, ate, tender, brave, and honorable, all who be- sig^ied May 13th, 1779, in consequence of war held him augured well of his future career, being declared against Austria by Russia, when Charles VIII, who saw him at Lyons, manag- Bavaria was secured to the elector palatine of ing a stately steed with ease and grace, begged Bavaria. The Austrians yet coveted the coun- him of the duke of Savoy, whose page he then try, and, in 1784, Joseph II proposed to ex- was, and committed him to the care of Paul cf change the Austrian Netherlands for Bavaria, Luxemburg, count de Ligny. He won his ear- with the sum of 3,000,000 florins for the Elector liest laurels in tournaments, but he was destined and the Duke of Deux-Ponts, and the title of to shine upon redder fields of glorj', and at the king of Burgundy. This, however, was formal- age of 18 accompanied Charles Vlli to Italy, and ly refused by the duke of Deux-Ponts. who de- took a standard in the battle of Verona. When, clared he would never barter away the inher- in the reign of Louis XII. he was taken pris- itance of his ancestors. Charles Theodore re- oner by following some flying adversaries into vived the order of Jesuits, and restrained the Milan, Ludovico Sforza generously returned freedom of the press, and on the breaking him his horse and arms, and dismissed him out of the French revolution, the elector se,nt without ransom. His exploit at the bridge over troops to aid the empire. In It'M Bavaria be- the Garigliano was worthy of a Roman in came the theatre of war. Maximilian Joseph, Rome's lest days, for like Horatius Codes he duke of Deux-Ponts, now came into possession gallantly defended 'the bridge against the victori- of Bavaria. At the beginning of the war of ous Spaniards, until the French army were eafe. 180. r >, the elector joined the French with 30,000 On account ofcthis action, he had for his coat of troops, and at the peace of Presburg received a arms a porcupine, with the following motto: vast addition of territory, and the title of king. Vires agminis itnns liabet. alone In- lias an A matrimonial alliance connected the inter- army's strength. When Julius 11 declared him- ests of Bavaria still more closely with those of Bolf against France. Bayard hastened to the as- France. The king of Bavaria took part against Distance of the duke of Ferrani. 1 )ef>-at.ed in his the Prussians and Austrians, in 180(i and 1809. attempt to take the Pope pris'<;> r. he yet stem- In the war of 1812 between France and Russia, ly refused to listen to an oflvr to betray him. Bavaria brought 30,000 men into the field, and He was wounded in the assault on Brescia, and HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BAY 105 BE A carried into the house of a nobleman, who had fled leaving his wife and two daughters expos- ed to the brutal insults of a licentious soldiery. Bayard protected them faithfully, refusing their offers of reward, and returning, as soon as he was cured, to the French camp, whose stay and hope. Gaston de Foix, had been killed in conse- quence of neglecting the advice of Bayard. The latter received a second wound in the retreat from Pavia, which it was thought would prove mortal. On learning this, the gallant Chevalier said, in the true spirit of a warrior, " 1 grieve not to die. but to die in my bed like a woman/' The military misfortunes of the latter part of the reign of Louis XII did not cast a shadow on the glory of Bayard, but his personal bra- very was conspicuous even in reverse. He was ever the foremost in the charge, and the last in the retreat. Francis I had no sooner ascended the throne, than he gave proof of the confi- dence he reposed in Bayard, by sending him into Dauphiny to open a passao-e for his army over the Alps, and through Piedmont. Bay- ard captured Prosper Colonna, who lay in wait for him, hoping to surprise him. Elated with this success, in the battle of Marignano to which it was a prelude, he performed prodigies of val- or by the side of the king, who emulated the bravery of the gallant chevalier. After this day of glory Francis received knighthood from the sword of Bayard. Bayard defended the town of Meziere, when Charles V invaded Champagne, with such spirit and resolution, that at Paris he was called the Sartor of his Country. He received from the hands of the kkig the order of St. Michael, and a company of 100 men to command in his own name, an honor never before conferred but on princes of the blood. Bayard reduced to obedience the revolted Genoa, but the fortunes of the French changed, and they were obliged to retreat. Bonnivet, the commander, his rear-guard beat- en, and himself severely wounded, committed the care of the army to the gallant Bayard. Compelled to pass Sesia in the presence of a superior force, Bayard, the last man in the re- treat, was combating the Spaniards, when a stone from a blunderbuss shattered his back- bone, and he exclaimed, " Jesus Christ, my God, I am a dead man !" He was removed at his request under the shadow of a tree ; <; from this spot," said he, ; ' I can behold the enemy." He confessed his sins to his squire, and, in default of a crucifix, kissed the hilt of his sword. Bidding a farewell to his friends, his king, and his country, he died, surrounded by admiring and weeping friends and enemies, April 30th, 1524. His enemies, who retained possession of the body, embalmed it, and re- stored it to his countrymen, by whom it was consigned to a tomb in a church of the Minor- ites, near Grenoble. A simple bust, and a Latin inscription, mark the place of his repose. BAYARD. James A., an eminent American lawyer and politician, born at Philadelphia-, in 1767. He was educated at Princeton College. As a representative in Congress, he distin- guished himself by his patriotism and ability in debate. He was sent to Europe as one of the commissioners to treat for peace in 1813, but after the treaty of Ghent, the state of his health induced him to return home with all possible speed. He accordingly embarked at Havre, in May, IslS, arrived in the United States, and died in the bosom of his family. BAYLE. Pierre, a French writer, born at Carlat, in Languedoc, in 1047. He died in 1706, at the age of 59. His Historical and Crit- ical Dictionary (Dictionnaire historiqiie ct cri- tique), is his most important work. This was originally published in 2 vols. fol., and displays the logic and learning fbr which the author is so celebrated. Fie modestly called it, " an ill-digested compilation of passages tacked to- gether by the ends.'' Voltaire calls him " the first of logicians and sceptics," but adds, that his warmest apologists cannot deny, that there is not a page in his controversial writings, which does not lead the reader to doubt, and often to scep- ticism. He himself says. ' my talent consists in raising doubts ; but they are only doubts." BAYONNE, a large city about two miles from the bay of Biscay, at the confluence of the IS'ive and Ardour. It is in the French depart- ment of the Lower Pyrenees, and was formerly the capital of a district of Gascony. Population, 14.600. Bayonne has considerable commerce with Spain, and is much engaged in the cod and whale fishery. Its hams, wines, and chocolate, are famous. Here in 1605, ^Napoleon met the king of Spain, Charles IV, and the prince of the Asturias, when the two last were induced to sign an agreement, bv which they and the king's children renounced their rights in the European and Indian territories of Spain, in favor of Bonaparte. BEATON,Daviil, archbishop of St. Andrew's, and cardinal, born in 1494. On the corona- tion of the young queen Mary, he renewed his c:'ie! persecutions of the heretics, and, among others, brought George Wishart, the famous Protestant preacher, to the stake . Seated at his CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BEA 106 BED window, he beheld with fiendish joy the cruel sufferings of this estimable man. He was openly licentious, and, although endowed with some good qualities, was disgraced by flagrant vices. He was murdered in his chamber, May 29, 1546. BEATTIE, James, a miscellaneous wri- ter, and pleasing poet, born at Lawrence- kirk, in Kincardine county, in J735, died in August, 1803. The poem by which he w.'ill be remembered as a follower of the Muses, is the Minstrel, the first book of which was published in 1770. He wrote a work on the Evidences of Christianity, and some controversial works, in which, however, he did not shine so much as iu his poems. BEAUFORT, a pleasant sea-port, and post- town of South Carolina, in a district of the same name, situated on Port Royal island, at the mouth of the Coosawhatchie, sixty miles N. E. of Savannah; population about 1000. It contains 3 churches, and a respectable seminary. BEAUFORT, Henry, cardinal, brother of Henry IV king of England, bishop of Lincoln, afterwards of Winchester, and chancellor of the kingdom. In 1431, he crowned Henry VI, in the great church of Paris. He is strongly sus- pected of having directed the assassination of Humphrey duke of Gloucester. He died in 1447. BEAUMARCHAIS, Pierre Augustin Caron de ; artist, politician, projector, painter, mer- chant, and dramatist. He was son of a watch- maker, and born at Paris, in 1732. He was teacher of the harp to the daughters of Louis XV, and by a wealthy marriage, laid the foun- dation cf his immense fortune. His Eugene, Mere Coupalile, Mariage dc Figaro, and Bur- bier de Seville, keep possession of the stage in several languages. His Memoirs exhibit Beau- marchais in hid true character. He increased his fortune by his contract to supply the United States with military stores, during the revolu- tionary war. He died in 17iJ ( J. BEAUMONT, Francis, and FLETCHER, John, two English dramatic writers of great power, who united their interests and wrote conjointly. Beaumont, born in 1535, died in XJIG; Fletcher, born in 1576, died in 1625, of ihe plague, in London. They used to frequent ale-houses, as Shakspeare is said to have done, lor the sake of studying human nature, and were once arrested in a very dramatic manner. They were disputing in an ale-hoase about the fate of a king in one of rheir plays, one insist- ing upon his assassinati'.-Ti. the other on his n. fiome of thcij uninitiated audi- tors procured their arrest, imagining that a conspiracy against the reigning sovereign was on foot. BECKET, Thomas, a celebrated Roman Catholic prelate, was born in London, in llli) He was the son of a merchant by the name of Gilbert, who, while a prisoner in the East, is said to have engaged the affections of a Sara- cen lady ; she followed the merchant to Lon- don, where he married her. Becket's advance- ment was rapid he was a favorite with Henry II, who made him tutor to his son in 1158, and heaped spiritual and temporal honors upon him. He rivalled royalty in the splendor of his liv- ing. On his election to the see of Canterbury, in 1162. he resigned the office of chancellor, and assuming all the arrogance of sovereign pontiff, lent himself to oppose the reformation intended by the king among the clergy. Their enormi- ties had disgusted the whole kingdom ; and the archbishop screened the most abandoned, under the pretext that they were not amenable to the civil power. After a series of hostilities between the king and himself, many references to the pope, excommunications and anathemas, recon- ciliations and fresli quarrels, on the archbish- op's refusal to withdraw his excommunication of some bishops, which was felt to lie very hard upon them, the king, in a fit of passion, re- proached his courtiers for permitting him to be BO long and so ignobly tormented. On this, four knights went down to Canterbury, and killed Becket before the altar as he was at the vesper-service. December 29th, 1170. The per- petrators of this deed were finally admitted to penance, but the king was compelled to expiate his guilt at the tomb of the archbishop, who was canonized two years after his death. He became a popular saint, and miracles were abundant at his tomb, which was much visited by pilgrims till the reformation. BEDE, or Beda, commonly called the Vener- able Bede, an English ecclesiastic of the 8th century, was bornln the neighborhood of Wear- mouth, in the year 672, or 673, and pursued his studies in the monastery of St. Peter, Wear- mouth. He died in May, A. D. 735. His En- glish Ecclesiastical History, his greatest and most popular work, was translated by Alfred the Great of England. He was modest and moderate, and, although a monk, wished to have the number of monasteries lessened. Bede led a life of pious and studious retirement, and on the day of his death, he was dictating a transla- tion of the gospel of St. John, to his amanuensis. ' Master," said the young man, as he raised his HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BEL 107 BEL eyes, " there is but one more sentence want- ing." Bede bade him write rapidly, and when the scribe said, " it is done," replied, " It is in- deed done," and expired a few minutes after- wards in the act of prayer. BEDFORD, John, duke of, the third son of Henry IV of England. In 1422, he commanded the English army in France, and the same year was named regent of that kingdom for Henry VI, whom he caused to be crowned at Paris. He defeated the French fleet near Southampton, entered Paris, b^eat the duke of Alencon, and made himself master of France. The greatest stain upon his character, is his cruelty to the Maid of Orleans, whom he caused to be burnt in the market-place of Rouen. He died at Rouen, in 1435. BEEJAPOOR, (the city of victory) a large province of Deccan, between 15 and 18 degrees of north latitude. The soil is fertile and it is well watered. Four fifths of the country be- long to the Mahrattas. Population 7,000,000. BEERING, Vitus, a captain in the Russian navy, who in the year 1 728, explored the coasts of Kamtschatka, and proved that Asia was dis- joined from America. He died on a desolate island, during a voyage of discovery, December 8, 1741. The stra'it between Asia and Amer- ica, has received the name of Beering's straits from him. The uninhabited island on which he died, is called Beering's Island. BEGUINES, females who bound themselves to obey the rules of an ecclesiastical order, forming societies for purposes of devotion and charity, living together in beguinages, without taking the monastic vows. They originated in Germany and the Netherlands, towards the end of the llth century. They flourished most in the 12th century, and some of their societies still exist in the Netherlands. BEIRA, a well-watered and fertile province of Portugal, bounded on the north chiefly by the river Douro, on the east by Spain, on the south by the Tagus. and the Portuguese Estre- madura, and by the Atlantic on the west. Pop- ulation 900.000. BELEM (properly Bethlehem), a quarter of Lisbon, formerly a market-town, commanding a fine view of the harbor and sea. It was long the residence of the royal family. The torrede Belem, a tall tower, rises out of the river Tago ; and no ships are permitted to pass by it unvisi- ted. BELGIANS, were a collection of German and Celtic tribes. They inhabited the country extending from the Atlantic ocean to the Rhine, 10 and from the Marne and Seine, to the southern mouth of the Rhine, which is united with the Meuse. Caesar has borne witness to the bravery of the Belgians, particularly of those who resided on the northern frontiers of Germany, declaring that they were the most valiant of the Gauls. BELGIUM ; the name of that part of the Netherlands which formerly belonged to Aus- tria, and recently made a part of the kingdom of the Netherlands. It is now an independent kingdom, the revolution of the Parisians in 1830, having inspired the Belgians with a similar spirit. The present monarch is Leopold I. BELGRADE, an important commercial city of Servia, with 30,000 inhabitants, situated at the confluence of the Save with the Danube. It is well fortified, commanding the Danube, and is at present occupied by a Turkish garri- son. It has been an object, for the attain- ment of which the hostile nations have strug- gled during the various wars between Austria and Turkey. At different times, it has been possessed by Greeks, Hungarians, Bulgarians, Bosnians, Servians, and Austrians. The siege of Belgrade by the Turks, in 1442 and 1456, are noted events in military annals. In 1809, it was taken by the revolutionary Servians, and it is the largest and most important city of the Servian state. BELGRANO, Manuel, a native of Buenos Ayres, who took an active part in the events which secured the independence of South America. He died, deeply deplored, in 1820. BELISARIUS, general of the armies of the emperor Justinian. He defeated a superior force of Persians, in the year 530, and in the the year after he took Carthage, and made prisoner Gelimer, king of the Vandals. Beli- sarius entered Constantinople in triumph. He was next sent against the Goths in Italy, and arriving on the coasts of Sicily, took Cata- nia, Syracuse, Palermo, and other places. He then proceeded to Naples, which he took, and marched to Rome. After this he conquered Vitiges, king of the Goths, sent him to Con- stantinople, and refused the crown which was offered him. For his exploits he was regarded as the saviour of the empire, and medals are extant with this inscription, Belisarius Gloria. Romanorum, (Belisarius, the glory of the Ro- mans). Having fallen under suspicion of Jus- tinian, he was deprived of his property and honors, but there is reason to believe that he was subsequently restored to them. Marmon- tel, in his romance (Belisarius), adopts a story which is related by no cotemporary historian CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BEL 108 BEM that he was deprived of his eyes by his cruel master, and forced to beg his bread in the streets of Constantinople. Others say that he was im- prisoned in a tower, whence he used to let down a bag by a rope, addressing, the passen- gers in the following words : Date Bclisario obolum, quern virtus evexit, invidia deprcssit. (Give an obolus to Belisarius, whorn virtue ex- alted, but envy crushed.) ' He died in 5(5,1. BELKNAP, Jeremy, an American clergy- man, born in June 1744, educated at Harvard college, and ordained pastor of the church in Dover, New Hampshire, 1767. For some years previous to his death, which took place in 17D8, he officiated in a church in Boston. He was an easy and correct writer, and hie reputation rests on his History of New Hampshire, and two vol- umes of his unfinished American Biography. He was one of the founders of the Massachu- setts Historical Society. BELLE-ISLE, or Belle-Tsle-en Mer, ancient- ly Vindilis, an island in the bay of Biscay, about nine miles long, 115 miles from the western coast of France. The soil is various. It con- tains three towns, and several small villages. Palais is the capital. It is famous for a sea- fight fought in 1751), between the English un- der Hawke, and the French under Connans, in which the former gained a decisive victory. The island was afterwards taken, but restored at the peace of 1763. BELLE-ISLE, an island N. E. of the gulf of St. Lawrence, with two small harbors. It is 21 miles in circuit. BELLE-ISLE, marshal, a celebrated general in the war to maintain the Pragmatic Sanction, who rendered himself famous by a fine retreat from Prague. BELLONA, the goddess of war. She was also called Duellonia, and was the sister of Mars, whose chariot she drove through bat- tles with a bloody scourge, her hair hanring in wild disorder. AtComana she had 300 priests. The priests used their own blood in their sacri- '.is fierce deity. BELL-ROCK, or Inch Cape, a dangerous rock of Scotland, nearly opposite ihe river Tay, the light-house upon which, finished in ]81 1, is of admirable construction. In former ages, the monks of Aberbrothock, suspended a bell upon this rock, which, bi-inir i\u\. and sent to Kamtschatka. On his voyage thither, he saved the vessel. during a storm, and thus, on his arri- val, secured a favorable reception from the gov- ernor, NilofF. whose family he instructed in the French and German languages. In May. 1771, he left Karntschatka. accompanied by Aphanasia, the governor's daughter, and ninety-six other persons, sailing for Formosa, whence he departed for Macao. Here he lost many of his compan- ions, and the fa.ithful and unfortunate Aphana- sia. Arrived in France, he was commissioned to found a colony in Madagascar, where he ar- rived in June, 1774. He was not long in gain- ing the good will of the natives, who appointed him their ampansacabe, or king ; while the women acknowledged the sovereignty of his wife. He went to Europe to seek a powerful ally, but was forced by the persecution of the 10* French ministry, to enter the Austrian service. In the battle of Habelschwerdt, 1778, he com- manded against the Prussians. In 1784, receiv- ing assistance from private persons in London and America, and leaving his wife in the latter country, he set out for Madagascar, and arrived in 1785. Here he commenced hostilities against the French, and the authorities of the Isle of France sent a force against him ; in contending against which he was wounded mortally, May 23, 1786. The fate of Benjowsky's only son was singular he is said to have been devoured by the rats of Madagascar. BENNINGTON, a post-town in a county of the same name, Vermont, is 37 miles. N. E. of Albany. It is a place of considerable trade, and of some manufacturing importance. Popula- tion (1840). 2,671. Here two celebrated battles were fought, Aug. 10, 1777, in which 1(300 Ame- rican militia-men, under general Stark, defeated the British troops. BENTHAM, Jeremy, an English lawyer, whose political and philosophical writings have acquired a great deal of celebrity, particularly in France -, born in 1749, died in 1832. BENTLE Y, Richard, a celebrated English di- vine and classical scholar, was born in 1002. His father was a blacksmith, and he received his ear- liest instruction from his mother, a woman of much talent. He entered St. John's college, Cambridge , at the age of 14. Having preached with success, he was appointed keeper of the royal library, at St. James's, in 1G93. He was victorious in a controversy with the Hon. Charles Boyle, afterwards the earl of Orrery, relating to the genuineness, of the- Epistles of Phalaris. Bentley was opposed by. the whole host of wits, Pope, Swift, Garth, Atterbury, Conyers Middleton, &c., but he satisfactorily proved that the Epistles were not the production of the tyrant of Agrigentum, who lived more than five centuries B. C. ; but of some late so- phist, who borrowed the name of Phalaris. The tyrant Phalaris had a hollow brazen bull,in which, when hot, he used to place those who were un- fortunate enough to displease him, and whose cries were thus made to resemble the roarings of the animal. Conyers Middleton, whose enmi- ty to Bentley arose from the epithet of fiddling Conyers, applied to him while an university stu- dent, was suspected of being the author of a pun- ning caricature representing Bentley on' the point of being thrust into the brazen bull of Pha- laris, and exclaiming, " I had ratiier be roasted than Boyled." Bentley was presented by the crown to the mastership of Trinity college, Cam CYCLOPEDIA OP HISTORY. BER 112 BER bridge, worth nearly 1000 a year ; and. in 1701, he was called to the arch-dcaconry of Ely. Among the accusations brought against him, as head of the college, he was accused of embez- zling monev, a charge which occasioned a law- suit that was terminated in the doctor's favor near twenty years afterwards. He was appointed Regius professor of divinity, in ]71G. In 1720, he published his edition of Terence and Phos- drus, his notes to which brought on a dispute with bishop Hare, on the metres of Terence, when Srir Isaac Newton observed that, ' two dignified clergymen, instead of minding their duty, had fallen out about a play-book." Bent- ley's edition of Paradise Lost, with conjectural emendations, liis last work, was considered a failure. He died, July 14, 1742, with the repu- tation of a distinguished scholar and critic. BERANGER, Pierre Jean de. a lyric poet, of the class which the French call clianson- irier song- writer. , He was born Aug. 19. 1780. His grandfather, a poor tailor, intended that he should learn the printing business, but he was patronized by Lucien Bonaparte, and proved highly successful as a follower of the muses. A temporary imprisonment served but to in- crease his reputation. In his least ambitious compositions there are startling flashes of the highest kind of poetry, which appear more bril- liant, from the suddenness of their appearance. " Bgranger," said Benjamin Constant, " writes sublime odes when he imagines he is only com- posing simple songs." December 11, 1828, he was sentenced by the court of correctional po- lice, to pay a sum equivalent to about 1800 dol- lars, and to suffer nine months' imprisonment, for satirising the king and the church in his poems. BERCHTOLD, Leopold, count, born in 1758. He was a distinguished philanthropist, and spent thirteen years in travelling through Europe, and four in Asia and Africa, to relieve the distresses of humanity. The result of his benevolent in- quiries has been given to the public in different works. He died July 20, 1809. on his estate at Buchlan. in Moravia, where he had fitted up an hospital for sick and wounded Austrian soldiers. BERESFORD, William. barcn,duke of El- vas,and Marquis of Campo Mayor, a distinguish- ed British general. In 1810 he defeated "Soult at Albufera. In 1812, having a command under Wellington, he shared in the dangers and glory of the battles of Vittoria. Bayonne, and Tou- louse. May 13, 1814, he entered Bordeaux with the duke of Angoulemc. Having returned from Brazil, whither he was sent in 1815, he was en- Uufited with an important mission to Rio Ja- neiro.' Being in Portugal, in 1817. he incurred the hatred of the Portuguese military, on ac- count of his rigor in punishing a conspiracy against the British army and the regency. In 1820 he was dismissed by Hie Cortes. He went to Brazil, and to England, and afterwards again appeared in Lisbon, in 182G, \\here he was em- ployed to quell a rebellion. BEREZINA, a river in the Russian province of Minsk, famous for the passage of the French army under Napoleon , Nov. 26 and 27, It 1 2. The ice with which the morasses on both sides of the river were covered, was not strong enough to bear. The Russian army were threatening the fugitives, whose discipline was lost, and who, despairing of escaping by means of the two crowded bridges, trusted themselves to floating masses of ice, and were lost. 7500 men and five generals, according to the Russian account ; were taken. BERG, a duchy of Germany, containing .GCO inhabitants, formerly belonging to the elector cf Bavaria, but given to the king of Prussia, by the congress of Vienna, in 1815. BERGHEM, Nicholas, a famous painter born at Harlem, in 1684, died in KK'. His land- scapes and representations of anhnnls, are much valued. His name originated in the following manner. Once, when pursued* by his father, he fled for safety to the workshop" of Van Goyen, who shouted" to his pupils. ' lit ._'.' hi in''' (hide him) ; and this expression was adopted as his name. BERKELEY, doctor George, bishop of Cloyne in Ireland, famous for his ideal theory. He maintains that there is nothing material, and that objects which are called sensible mate- rial objects, are not external but only impres- sions made upon the mind by an act" of God, acrordinjf to cfrt-in Imry < . -,. ' ieb are invariable. Lor.. "When Bishop Bob-Icy sai.i tilt-re :is no matter, And pro\cd it, 'twas no matter what he Miid." He was bcrn at Kilcrin. Ireland. IC84. and died in 17."):',. In furtherance of his project lor con- verting the American savages to Christianity, l;y the establishment of a college in the Bermu- da Islands, he considerably impaired his large fortune. ;>nd spent seven years in his efforts "to that end. He remained some time in Rhode Island. Berkeley was acquainted with almost every branch of knowledge. His character was .much respected, and Pope who was much attach- ed to him, says that he had " every virtue under Heaven." His Treatise on the Principles of HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BER 113 BER Human Knowledge is the most celebrated of his philosophical works. BERLICHINGEN, Gotz, or Godfrey von, with the iron hand, a brave and honorable Ger- man knight of the middle ages, who headed the rebellious peasants (in the Peasant War), against their oppressors. Before this time, having lost his right hand, he had substituted one made of iron. He died July 23, 15(52. His autobiogra- phy has been published at Nuremberg. BERLIN, this line city and royal residence, the capital of the Prussian dominions, is situa- ted in the province of Brandenburg, on the Spree, 127 feet above the level of the sea. ft is 12 miles in circuit, including 5 towns, and 5 suburbs. In 1832, it contained 253,00 J inhab- itants, among whom were 5,030 Jews, 4,000 Catholics, and more than 15,000 Calvinists. Berlin Proper, was built in ] 163, by the mar- grave Albert the Bear. Koln or Cologne, on the Spree, was so called from the Kollnen (piles), on which the Vandals had built their huts. Frled- richsircrder was founded by the elector Fred- eric William the Great. .Yeupr Dorotheenstadt was built by the same elector and named in honor of his wife. Friedriclisstailt, founded, in 1633, by the elector Frederic III, is the most extensive division of this vast city. The num- ber of its public establishments of various kinds, makes Berlin very interesting. The Univer- sity of Berlin, founded in 1809, when Prussia was groaning beneath the yoke of the French, is at present one of the first literary institutions of the European continent. Berlin has 22 squares and market-places, 15 gates (that of Brandenburg, modelled on the Propylffium at Athens, but larger, being the most beautiful). 27 parish churches, 37 bridges, &c. In 1817, the Eublic buildings were 174 in number ; the inanu- ictories 61. In the great hospital of La Chtiri.ti, there were, in 13I6~ 5114 patients. The royal hospital admits upwards of 1000 inmates. On the top of the Mountain of the Cross, before the Halle gate, a monument of iron was erected in 1820, in commemoration of the wars against France. Berlin has 100 public, and 50 private elementary schools. In Id31, there were 1937 students in the university of Berlin. BERMUDAS or Sowers' Islands, a clus- ter of about 400 small islands in the Atlantic Ocean, for the most part barren and insignifi- cant. They were discovered by Juan Bermudas, a Spaniard, in 1522. In 1609, Sir George Somers, an Englishman, who was wrecked here, founded the first settlement. Many are so unimportant as to have no name, but the principal islanrls are St. George, containing Georgetown, St. David, Cooper, Ireland. Som- erset, L->ng Island, Bird Island, and None- such. The air is healthy and invigorating to invalids, the winter being hardly apparent. The islands, however, are subject to frequent storms. The soil is generally rich and fertile, yielding two harvests of corn annually. Ship- building is the principal occupation of the isl- anders. The whole shore is surrounded by rocks, dry at low water, but covered at high tide. The Bermudas extend about 45 miles from north to south. They are 230 leagues S. K. of Cape Fear, in North Carolina. Popula- tion, 3.:>00 whites, and 4, GOO slaves. BERN, the largest canton of Switzerland, contains 350,000 inhabitants, with a capital of the same name. The town was founded in the 12th century, by Cuno von Bubenberg. A great increase of population was manifest in the 13th century, ft was, in 1218, declared a free city of the empire by Frederic II, and the charter, confirming its privileges, is still preserved. In 1291, the citizens of Bern, under Ulrich von Bubenberg, made war against their own nobil- ity. The nobles of Austria, finding that the city formed an asylum for those who were suf fering from their oppression, entered into a league to destroy it. but their splendid and powerful army was defeated by the citizens, under the conduct of the gallant Rodolph von Erlaeh, June 21, 1339. In 1353. Born entered into the Helvetic league. In 1405, part of the town was destroyed by fire, but afterwards re- built. In 152-\ "the inhabitants espoused the cause of the reformation, and, in the war with Savoy, conquered the Pays de Vaud. The pros- perity of Bern was proverbial, but, on March 5, 1798, 30,000 French troops defeated the army of the Bernese and their confedei-ales,and the gates of Bern, for the first time, opened to an enemy. It was then shorn oi' half its possessions. At present, the sovereign power is vested in the hands of a bailiff, and the greater and lessercoun cils of the city and republic of Bern, which con- sist of 200 members, chosen from the city, and 99 from the towns and country. The northern part of this canton is hilly ; the plains and valleys are beautiful, and the whole is in a high state of cultivation. The canton furnishes 5,824 men to the army of the Swiss confederacy. The city has 17,620 inhabitants, and the eleva- tion on which it stands, is washed by the Aar. Some of its public buildings are very elegant. Its university, economical, and historicalsoci- eties are important, and the public library con- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BER 114 BER tains a valuable collection of books, both prin- ted and in manuscript. Trade and commerce are flourishing. Among the manufactures, are woollen cloths, printed linen, silk-stuffs, &c. BERNARD, of Clairvaux; an influential ecclesiastic, born at Fontaines, in Burgundy, 1091. He was of noble family, and became a monk in 1113, and in 1115, the first abbot of Clairvaux. He was austere, eloquent, and bold, and had the reputation of being a prophet. He was called a honeyed teacher. Bernard was the principal promoter of the crusade of 114(5. Lu- ther says of him, " if there ever has been a pious monk who feared God, it was St. Bernard ; whom I hold in much higher esteem, than I do all other monks and priests throughout the globe." Bernard died in 1153, and was canon- ized in 1174. BERNARD, Great St.; a mountain, 11,000 feet high, between the Valais and the valley of Aosta. The two hospitia on the Great and Little St. Bernard, were built by Bernard de Menthon, a Savoyard nobleman, in 9(i2. They are under the care of the canons of the Augus- tine order, who are indefatigable in the discharge of their duties. Upwards of 9000 persons annu- ally pass over the mountain, all of whom re- ceive refreshments in the hospitia. The monks are assisted in their search for travellers, by their great dogs, whose lives are shortened by their painful labors. .Owing to the severity of the weather, the dead bodies in the vault decay so slowly, that their features' are frequently re- cognized by friends, after the lapse of years. In the church of the Great St. Bernard, is the monument of General Desaix, who fell at Marengo. He was embalmed by order of the first consul. The sculptor has represented this warrior wounded, and sinking from his horse into the arms of his aid. On the stairs of the convent stands the statue of Desaix in marble. BERNINI, Giovanni Lorenzo, born at Na- ples, in 1598. He has been called the Michael Angelo of modern times, on account of his suc- cess as a painter, statuary, and 'architect. He was patronized by several popes, and, although he went to Paris on the invitation of Louis XIV, he returned to Rome, and died, exhausted by his labors, November 28, HiSO, at the age of r-2. He left a fortune of about 3,300,000 francs to his children. So early did his talents shine forth, that at the age of * years, he executed the head of a child in marble, which was thought a fine production. He was not 18 years old when he completed his Jlpollo and Daphne, a work which he examined at the close of life, and declared that he had made little progress since that time. So true it is that genuine enthu- siasm often supplies the place of experience. Among his numerous works, are the palace Barberini ; the belfry of St. Peter, arid the mon- ument of Urban Vllfv The tomb of Alexander VII, one of his most masterly works, he execu- ted in his 70th year. BERR1, or Berry, Charles Ferdinand, duke of, second son of the count d'Artois, late Charles X, of France, born at Versailles. Jan. 24th, 1778. He fled from the revolutionary tempest, but was actively engaged in the scenes at Paris, in 1814, on the return of the Bourbons, and vainly endeavored to secure the fidelity of the troops in and about Paris, when Napoleon returned from Elba. He was assassinated in 1620, by Louvel, who had long sought to extir- pate the house of Bourbon, and met his death with great firmness. The opera house, near which the crime was committed, was pulled down, and a column erected on the spot. BERSERKER. in Scandinavian mythology, a descendant of the fight-handed S'tarkadeV, and the beautiful Alfhilde. Disdaining the protection of mail in battle, he obtained his name, which signifies, the armorless. In battle, his rage was ungovernable. He married the daughter of king Swafurlam, whom lie had slain, and had 12 sons who equalled him in fierceness. BERTH1ER, Alexander, prince of Neuf- chatel and Wagrarn. marshal, vice-constable of France, &c.. born at Paris. 1753. At an early age, he served under La Fayette, in America. He was a great favorite of Napo- leon, under whom he acted as chief of his staff, assisting in those great victories which made Fiance master of Italy, Germany, and Prussia. On the. return of "the Bourbons, he retired to Germany, where he put an end to his existence, by" throwing himself from a window. BERTRAND, Henri Gratien, count, gene- ral of division, aid-de-camp of Napoleon, grand marshal of the palace, &c. He early distin- guished himself in the engineer corps, and in 1804, gave Napoleon evidence of his ability. From that time he served near the person of Napoleon, particularly at Austerlitz,*-here he was the emperor's aid-de-camp. He and his family shared the last res after his full. BERWICK, James Fitz-James, duke of; was born in 1(>70. He distinguished himself HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BEZ 115 BIR as a general in the Bourbon cause in Spain, where he won the battle of Almansa, and cap- tured Barcelona, after a resistance, by the citi- zens, of fifteen months. BESSARABIA, a Russian province, situated on the Black Sea, between the northern arm of the Danube, the Pruth, and the Dniester, fertile and extensive. It contains 800,000 in- habitants. BETHANIA, or Bethany, a village at the foot of Mount Olivet, about 2 miles east of Je- rusalem, where Lazarus was raised from the dead, and where the ascension of Jesus Christ took place. The house and grave of Lazarus, as well as the dwelling of Mary Magdalene, are pointed out to travellers. BETHESDA, a pool in Judea, in the vicinity of which the sick lay, waiting to be cured on the moving of the waters. The Jews had an idea that an angel descended at times into it, and stirred up the waves, after which the first who entered was cured. The name signifies house of mercy. There were porticoes or halls on its borders. The pool appears to have been composed of red-colored mineral water, which received its healing properties from the red earth at the bottom. BETHLEHEM, a village of Palestine, a part of Syria, in the pachalic of Damascus, five miles from Jerusalem, where our Savior was born. Here also, David first saw light. It is at the foot of a hill covered with olive trees and vines. The church of the empress Helena, a, splendid edifice, is built over the spot where Christ is said to have been born. The manger is shown under the choir of a convent church. BEZA, or de Beze, Theodore, after Calvin, the most distinguished among the Calvinistic preachers of the IGth century, born 1519. At the age of 20, he published his Latin poems, collected under the title of Juvenilia, a work of which he was afterwards ashamed. At an early age he was dissipated, but reformed by marriage, and a dangerous illness. He distin- guished himself in the service of the reformed church, and, in 15G4, became Calvin's succes- sor. Vain were the efforts of his adversaries to gain an advantage over him. His truth and wit were a splendid defence, and at the age of 78 years, his intellectual faculties appeared as clear as ever. The pope made him brilliant offers, but he nobly rejected them. He died Oct. 13, 1G05, of old age. He was the author of many works, among which his History of Calvinism in France, from 1521 to 15G3, is still read with satisfaction. BID ASSOA , a boundary river between Spain and France, containing the isle of Pheasants, where the peace of the Pyrenees was concluded in 1G59. BIEVRE, Marquis de, marshal, bom in 1747, died in 1789. He served in the life-guard of the king of France, and was much celebrated for his wit, which he displayed in ready re- partees and puns. When presented to Louis XV, the following dialogue took place. Louis. Give me a specimen of your wit. B. Give me a subject, sire. Louis. Take me. B. Sire, the king is no subject. B1LLINGTON, Elizabeth, Mrs. a celebrated English singer, born in 1770, died in 1817. She appeared in public at the age of 14, and was received with great applause. BINGEN ; a town on the left bank of the Rhine, opposite Rudesheim ; population 3,300. In its vicinitv is the famous Mouse Tower, connected with which is the following tale. In a time of great famine, bishop Hatto played the usurer, to the distress and ruin of many poor people. For this he is said to have met a most dreadful punishment. Thousands on thousands of mice pouring into his dwelling^ compelled him to seek refuge in his tower on the. Rhine. But here he enjoyed but a brief interval of rest. The army of mice swam the river, scaled the rocky precipice, and leaped into the tower, at every cranny, grate, and loop-hole. The bishop attempted to pray, but his utterance failed he listened to the noise of the mice as they swiftly approached his turret- chamber. At length they gained an entrance, and devoured the prelate, tearing the flesh from his bones, and leaving him a mere skeleton. BIRCH, Thomas, a historian and biographer of the 18th century, born in London, in 1705. His father, a quaker, designed his son for hia own profession, that of a coffee-mill maker. Young Birch, however, preferring a literary life, adopted it, took orders in 1730, and ob- tained a living in Essex, in 1732. He was assisted by some coadjutors in preparing the General Historical and Critical Dictionary, completed in 10 vols. folio, in 1741. His life was laborious, and in the course of it, he pub- lished many historical and biographical works. He was killed by a fall from his horse, in 1765. BIR EN, Ernst John von. duke of Courland, born 1G87, died 1772. He is said to have been the son of Buhren, a peasant of Courland. He gained the favor of Anna, duchess of Courland, aftq^wards empress of Russia, by his beauty and accomplishments, and when his CYCLOPEDIA OP HISTORY. BIR 116 BLA was raised to the throne, was not forgotten by her. While in power, he w^ s fierce, resentful, and ambitious, and caused the death of 11,000 persons. After the death of Anna, a conspi- racy was formed against him, and he was ban- ished to Siberia. But he was recalled on the accession of Elizabeth, daughter of Peter the Great, to the throne. After another exile, of 22 years, he was again recalled by Peter III, and, during the reigri of Catherine II, continued to enjoy the royal favor until his death. BIRMAN EMPIRE. The Birman Empire is a powerful state of Further India, having an area of 200,000 square miles, with a popu- lation of about 4,000,000. It contains many conquered provinces, and includes the king- doms of Ava, Pegu, part of Laos, and some other adjacent states in the north. On the north it is bounded by Thibet, Assam, and China ; on the west a chain of lofty moun- tains separates it from the British possessions. The Birmans of Ava, made themselves inde- pendent of Pegu, in the 16th century, but were reconquered in the 18th. The spirit of inde- pendence, however, was abroad, and Alompra, one of the leaders of the Birmans, kindled anew the flame of revolt in 1753, and conquered the city of Ava. Various fortunes followed, till Alompra finally made himself master of the city of Pegu. This monarch, whose abili-. ties were all devoted to the good of -his subjects, died in 1760, at the age of 50 years, leaving his throne to his son Namdogee, who inherited his father's spirit and talent, and died in 17(14. Shambuan, the regent, usurped the throne in 1771, and was victorious in a war with China, during which Siam, which he had previously conquered, regained its independence. In 177u, this prince left his empire, greatly extended, to his son Chengenza, who, in consequence of excessive debauchery, was dethroned and put to death in 1782. Shembuan Menderagan, the 4th son of Alompra, was placed by the revolution on the throne. In 1783, he subdued Arracan. A war with Siam, in which he next engaged, re- sulted, in 1793, in the submission of that king- dom upon certain terms. The refusal on the East India Company to deliver up some Bir- man refugees, who were robbers, brought on a war with Shembuan, which was soon amicablv concluded. Shembuan's grandson ascended the throne in 18Hi. In 1820, a war which had broken out between the Binnese and English, ended in a treaty, by which the king of the white elephant and the golden feet (titled of the monarch of Birmah), ceded to the British East India Company large tracts on the west ern coast of his empire, including Arracan, Merguy, Tavay, and Yea. Assam became independent, and Rangoon was declared a free port. The latter has a population of 30,000. The Birmans are gay, irritable, active, and fond of show. No man is permitted to have more than one wife, and capital punishment is extended to confirmed opium eaters, and drunk- ards in general. The bodies of the dead are burned. The commerce of the Birmese is ex- tensive, and the merchants make use of bars of silver and lead in the place of coin. The people are fond of amusements, particularly dramatic spectacles. Education is not wholly neglected among them, every one learning arithmetic, reading, and writing. The clergy are literarv men, famous for temperance, and the renunciation of all indulgences. The civil and criminal code is very judicious. The standing army is small. The empire is divided into 7 provinces. BIRMINGHAM, a great manufacturing town of Warwickshire. England, on the river Rea, 109 miles N. N. W. of London. Popula- tion in 1831. 146,986. The upper part of the town is well built, and pleasant, while the lower is crowded with workshops, warehouses, and old buildings. BIRON, Charles de Gontaut, duke of; an intriguing nobleman in the reign of Henry IV, of France, tried on a charo-e"of treason, and beheaded July 31 st, l(>i ','. BITHYNIA. an ancient country of Asia Mi- nor, also called Bcbrycia. It lay on the Pontus Euxinus, the Thracinn Bosphorus, and the Pro- pontis. and was bounded on the south by Phry- gia. Af'te the death of Prusias I, it was in- vaded by Croesus, subjugated by the Persians, and conquered by Alexander "the Groat, 334 years B. C. It afforded for some time an asylum to Hannibal, who was at last delivered up. Ni- comedesjthe last king, bequeathed the kingdom to the Romans, B. C. 75. In 1298, the Otto- man Turks founded an empire here; previous to which, the Seljuks had conquered it in the llth century. BLACKLOCK, Thomas, a poet and clergy- man, born at Annan, in Dumfries county, in J721. Although deprived of sight, he became famous for his acquirements, and took a high station among the literati of Scotland. He died July 17iU, at the age of 70. BLACK8TONE. Sir William, knight, and L. L. 1).. an English lawyer of great celebrity, and a writer on the British constitutionj was HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BLA 117 BLA born in London, in 1723. He was the son of Mr. Charles Blackstone, a silk-mercer, but being left an orphan, was brought up and educated by Mr. Thomas Bigg", his uncle, a surgeon, lie left Pembroke college, Oxford, with a high reputation, and, in 1740, after faith- ful preparatory study, was admitted to the bar, and conunenced practice. His progress was slow, owing to his deficiency in elocution; and he accordingly determined to forsake the prac- tice of the law, and retire to his fellowship at Oxford. His lectures, in which he called attention to the want of provision for instruc- tion in the laws and constitution of the coun- try, were delivered with effect, and continued for a series of years. In 1759., when several of his legal works had attracted the attention of the public, he resumed the practice of the law, and found that honors and emoluments poured in upon him. In 176!. he v.'as chosen member of parliament from Hindon, made king's coun- sel, and solicitor-genera! to the queen ; about this time, also, he married. In 1785, the first volume of his Commentaries on the Laws ot' England appeared, and v.'as pronounced supe- rior to any work upon the same subject which had before been published. In 1770 he was made one of the justices of common pleas, and he died in his 57th year, 1730. In private life this dis- tinguished lawyer was affable and benevolent, greatly devoted to business, in which he dis- played activity and intelligence. BLAIR. Hugh, an eloquent divine and suc- cessful author, was born at Edinburgh in 1718, and made preacher of the high church in that city in 1758. Having acquired a high reputa- tion by his lectures on composition, he was made professor of rhetoric and belles-letters in 17(52. In private life, he was a kind father, friend* and husband, and, living temperately, enjoyed happiness till his death which took place in 1800. BLAIR. Robert, a Scotch clergyman, author of " The Grace." Born at Edinburgh in 1699; he died in 174(5. BLAKE, Robert, an English admiral in the time of the Commonwealth, born at Bridgewa- ter in 1599, died in 1657. He defended Taun- ton against Goring, blocked up Prince Rupert in Kinsale harbor, pursued him to Lisbon, en- gaged him at Malaoa. and destroyed nearly his whole fleet. He afterwards reduced the Scilly isles and Guernsey, defeated Van Tromp in two engagements, demolished the castle of Tu- nis, and burned the Spanish fleet in the harbor of Santa Cruz. The terror of his name was so great, that it was used by the Dutch and Span- iards to quell their children. BLAKE LEY, Johnston, born in Ireland in 17S1 , was a distinguished naval officer in the service of the United States. His father came to America, and settled in Wilmington, North Carolina. Blakeley entered the university of North Carolina, but, the death of his father hav- ing deprived him of support, was forced to leave it before he had completed his course. In 1800 he received a midshipman's warrant, and in Idl3 was appointed to the command of the Wasp. In an action with His Britannic Ma- jesty's ship Reindeer, he took her in 1!) minutes, but was forced to abandon her, as she was so completely cut up. The loss of the Americans in killed and wounded was 21 ; that of the enemy, 67. After an engagement with the brig Avon, which was forced to strike, although three other English vessels were in sight, the Wasp was spoken by a vessel off the Western Isles/sLnce which time she has not been iieard of. Blake- ley left an only daughter, who was educated by the state of North Carolina. BLAXCHARD, Francois, one of the earliest aeronauts, born at Andelys, France, in 1738. He showed an early fondness for mechanics, and in his 16th year, invented a self-moving carriage, which carried him 18 miles. In his 19th year he invented a hydraulic machine, and soon Jifterwards, a sort of flying-ship. When the Montgolfiers made their discoveries, Blan- chatd oagerly made use of them. In 1785 he crossed the channel from Dover to Calais, with doctor Jeffries, a gentleman of Boston in the United States. At one time the balloon sank so rapidly, that although the Aeronauts had lightened the car by tlirowing over all superflu- ous articles, even their clothes, they were in danger of losing their lives. However, the voyage was finally accomplished in safety, and Blanch.ird was presented by the king of France with 12,000 francs, and a pension of 1200. In the same year he made use of a parachute in Lon- don. His 4C'th ascent was made in the city of New York, 1706. In 1798, he went up from Rouen in a large balloon with 16 persons. He died in 1809, after having made more than 66 aeronautic voyages. JIadame Blanchard, after his death, continued to make voyages in the air. In June, 1819, she ascended from Paris, and was thought to be in safety, when her balloon took fire from some fireworks which she carried with her ; she fell from an immense height, and was dashtd to pieces in the Rue de Provence. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BLO 118 BOE BLENHEIM or Blindheim, a village in the circle of Upper Danube, in Bavaria, on the Danube. It is celebrated for the important victory obtained there by the allies under the duke of Marlborough and prince Eugene, over the French, commanded by marshals Tallard and Marsin, and the elector of Bavaria. In the war of the Spanish succession, Louis XIV, with the elector of Bavaria for his only ally, was forced to contend against the strength of Holland, England, Austria, Savoy, Portugal, and the German empire. At the battle of Blen- heim,- which was fought August 13, 1704, the allied forces amounted to about 52,000, and the French to 56,000, with great advantage of situation ; the latter, however, were completely beaten, and 11,000 corpses left upon the field of battle. Among other ensigns of victory were 100 pieces of cannon, 24 mortars, 129 colors, 171 standards, 17 pair of kettle-drums, 3GOO tents, 34 coaches, 300 mules laden with the rich equi- page and plate, the military chest, the dispensa- tory, &c. ; 25 brass pontoons, and a number of carriages laden with provisions and ammuni- tion. BLONDEL, the servant, friend, and musical instructor of the lion-hearted Richard I, of England. Richard having been confined in.the castle of Lowenstein, by the duke of Austria, Blondel wandered through Palestine and Ger- many in search of his royal master. He finally discovered the place of his confinement, by placing himself beneath the grated window of his tower, and singing one of the lays which he had formerly taught the king. He had complet- ed the first stanza, when, to his great delight, be heard the voice of Richard, replying in the same strain. He delivered the king from bondage, and received the title of ihe faithful Blondel. BLOOD, Thomas, commonly called colonel Blood, a disbanded officer of Oliver Cromwell ; notorious for his attempt to steal the crown and regalia from the tower. He was almost success- ful. Charles II pardoned him. and even bestow- ed an estate of 500 per annum on him, while poor Edwards, keeper of the regalia, who was severely wounded in defending them, was pass- ed by unnoticed. BLOOMFIELD, Robert, an English poet, born at Honington, in 1766. He was the son of a tailor, and, in 1781, he was sent to London, with his brother, to learn the shoe-making trade ; he visited various places of public 'worship, the theatre, and a debating society, and found his faculties developed in a striking manner. His brother, hearing him one day repeat a song which he had composed, induced him to cfTer it to the editor of the London Magazine, by whom it was accepted and published. His poem of the " Farmer's Boy," composed during a brief residence in the country, was published by Ca- pel Lofil. to whom it was first shown. The ver- sification in this, as well as in the ether poems of Bloomfield, is easy and correct. He was made, by the duke of Grafton, under-sealer for the Seal Office, but ill-health compelled him to relinquish this situation. He afterwards work- ed at his trade, and engaged in the book-trade, but became bankrupt, lie died in Aiif. 1623. BLUCHER, Marshal, a celebrated Prussian general, who distinguished himself in the wars with France, particularly in 1813, 1814, and 1815, and who by his timely arrival on the field of Waterloo, with a large body of cavalry, decided the victory. The Russians', in allu- sion to his promptitude in attack, called him gen- eral Forward, a name which is always applied to him by his admirers. He died Sept. 12, 1819. BOADICEA, or Bonduca, a British heroine, queen of the Iceni. Her husband, for the secu- rity of his family, had uuide the Roman emperor co-heir with his daughters. But the Roman of- ficers took possession of her palace, exposed the princesses to the brutality of the soldiers, and scourged the queen in public. Boadicea, urged to revenge by this usage, assembled her country- men, and, in a masculine harangue, roused them to madness, by describing her own, her daugh- ters' and her country's injuries, stormed London, and put to the sword 70.000 strangers. Sueto- nius Paulinus defeated the Britons, and Boa- dicea poisoned herself in despair. A. I). (50. BOCCACCIO, Giovanni, a famous Italian author, born at Paris, 1313. His Decameron fixed his reputation, and the name of Boccaccio, according to Mazzuchelli, is equivalent to a thousand encomiums. The death of his friend and instructor, Petriirch, was a severe shock to him, and he died not more than a year after, at Certaldc-, Dec. 21,1375. BOCHICA, founder of the Indian empire of Cundinamarca. the Manco Capacofthe Muisca Indians. He introduced the worship of the sun. and persuaded the inhabitants of the Valley of Bogota to cultivate the soil. BODLEY, Sir Thomas ; founder of the Bod- leian library at Oxford, born at Exeter in 1544, died in I(il2. at London. BOE11HAVE, Hermann, one of the most fiimous physicians of the ]<-'th century, born at Woorhout, near Leyden, Dec. ](>(!, died in 1738. People came to him from all parts of HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BOH 119 BOH Europe tor advice, and a Chinese mandarin between the Danube and the Moldau. The Bo- wrote to him with the address, ' to Boerhave, hemians are highly patriotic and public spirited. the celebrated physician of Europe." His pro- In 1HI&J they had &ti>6 public establishments for perty amounted, at his death, to '2,000,000 florins, instruction. The kingdom derives its name BOETHIUS, Anicius Manlius Torquatus Se- from the Boii, a Celtic nation, who settled there verinus, a man whose services, rewards, vir- about 600 B. C. About the middle of the 4th tues, and unhappy end have made him famous, century it was inhabited by Germans, who were was born at Rome or Milan, about 470, A. D. governed by their own dukes. Charlemagne Having received an admirable education and im- made Bohemia tributary, but it did not long re- proved himself by travel, he' was taken into favor main so. The first king received his title from by Theodoric, king of the Ostrogoths, and ra- the emperor Henry IV, and in 1310 the house of pidly raised to the iiighest offices of the empire. Luxemburg succeeded to the throne. In 1526, His strict justice and uncompromising integrity Bohemia reverted to the house of Austria, by having acquired for him the hatred of the rapa- whom it hivs been ever since held. Bohemia cious and unprincipled Goths, the king became produced the first reformers, among whom were prejudiced against him, and had him arrested, im- John Huss, and Jerome of Prague. " BOHEMIA, dynasties of. prisoned, and executed, A. D. 526 or 527. Hi most celebrated work on the Consolations of Phi- DUKES. A.D. losophy, consisting of prose and verse, was com- Czechus or Zecko (a Sclavonian conqueror), 550 posed by him in prison. Alfred the Great, of Cracus 1 565 England, translated it for the benefit of his peo- ple. BOGOTA, at the time the Spaniards con- Cracus II Libussa (princess), Premislaus (her husband, a peasant),. Nezamistus Wnislaus .!,7li quered South America, was one of the most civilized states of the country, and inhabited by ^' e z c e k z ,^ islaus '.'.".'."757 the Muisca Indians. The valley of Bogota, Hostwit or MiiclVost '."........................... ..809 famous for its fertility, was filled-with Indians, Borziwoi 1 890 who rivalled in civilization the inhabitants ^tugmir 901 of Cuzco. They traced their prosperity to the ^ra'fisfau S sY .V.V.V.V.V.V.V.V.'.'. '.'.*.'.'.'.'.'.'. '.920 instructions of Bochica. Gonzalo Ximenes di Wenceslatu V.'.V.'.'.V.".V.V.'.V.'.".V.'.'.V.'..'.'.'.'.".'.'.'.'.'.'926 Quesada effected their conquest. Boleslaus 1 938 BOGOTA, or Santa Fc de Bogota; a city of B le s| aus -^ South America, formerly capital of the vice- j^ r ^|f r "* '.'.'.'.'.'.'. !".!.'io02 royalty of New Grenada, but now capital of the udalric.'.'.'.".'.'.'.'.'."".".'.'.'.'."..'.'.'.V.V.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.".V.V.'.'.'ini2 republic of that name. Long. 74 3 15' W. ; lat. liretislaus 1 1037 4 36' N. The population has been variously iMjitigneus 11. 1055 estimated from 30 to 60,000. It lies on an ele- ,^^ : f' S 'inco vated plain to the east of the Andes, and con tains, besides a superb cathedral, many fine buildings. The lands in the environs of Bo- gota yield two harvests annually. BOHEMIA, Boeheirn, Bojenheim, a kingdom Bretislaus If 1093 U'ladislatis 1 1100 liomvvoi II 1101 8uatopluc 1107 liorzi vvoi II (restored), : . .1109 . . Wladislaus II 1124 of Europe, bounded on the,nortiiby Lusatia and Sobieslaus 1 1125 Misnia, on the east by Moravia and Silesia, on ^{"^|f"" 8 ,F \{% the south by Austria and Bavaria^ and on the fteteriek .'l!73 west by Bavaria. It contains above 3,860,000 Conrad 'll'.'.'.".'.'.'.!'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.!!'.!'.!'.'.'.'.'.".'.'.'.!".'.'.'.'.'.1190 inhabitants, of whom a large portion are Jews. VVence-slaus II 1191 Bohemia is surrounded by mountains and eo- vviacUslau? 1 v"* 1196 vered with forests. All kinds of grain and fruits are exported. The mines yield silver, copper, K tin, garnets, and other precious stones, iron, vvSnceSimt ILH* 1230 arsenic, alum, antimony, sulphur, &,c. Manu- Premislnus Ottocar II '.'.'.'. !!l253 factories are established in various parts of the Interregnum 1273 country. Bohemia contains 16 circles, besides Wenceslaus IV 1284 the city of Prague, governed by officers who are He^'ry^Carinthia '.".'.'.'.'.. !.'.'.'...'.'.'..... V.!!!!!!!.1306 appointed yearly. In 1826 a rail-road was laid John'of Luxemburg........ ...................... 1310 11 ; CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BOL 120 BOL Charles IV, Emperor of Germany ............ A. D. 1346 witty, and in her last moments, self-possessed. Wenceslaus VI .................................. 1378 S ne sent her last message to the king," says A&fAu,Vrii:::::::::::::::::r/::::::::::::itS Hume and acknowledged the obligations Wladishius V .................................... 1446 which she owed him in uniformly continuin George Podiehrad ................... ............ 1458 her advancement. From a private gentle- \\lailislaus VI .................................. 14/1 woman, you have made me, first, a marcliion- Louis . . .1516 , ? * 1-Vrdinand'l of AustVia, emperor .......... ........ 1526 ess then a queen ; and, as you can raise me no higher in tins world, you are now sending me BOILEAU, Despreaux Nicholas, bom at to be a saint in heayen." Crosne, near Paris,in 163G. After having studi- BOLlNGBROKE. Henry St. John, viscount, cd at the colleges of Harcourt and Beauvais.he born at Battersea, in 11)72, of an ancient and entered upon the career of law which lie soon distinguished family. His brilliant talents, ele- relinquished for the more congenial pursuit of gant manners, and personal attractions, secured belles-lettres. His satire, Les Jidimx a Paris, him a warm welcome in society ; but, uuhap- first displayed his talents. He published many pily, until his id year his career was stained works, his Art Pottique, being the most popular, with those vices which spring from the impetu- He was opposed by many writers, to coulbund ous temper of youth. His marriage with a whom he- wrote his unrivalled mock-heroic beautiful heiress did not produce the happiness poem, the Lutrin. He died of the dropsy in which his parents had locked for. and the young 171 1. couple separated forever after a short connexion. BOIS-LE-DUC, the French name for the The moment he obtained a seat in the house of Dutch Hcrtogenlosh, a fortified city of the Ne- commons he distinguished himself by industry, therlands. with 17,300 inhabitants, at the con- activity, eloquence, and strong judgment, in tiuence of the Dommel and the Aa. It has 1704 he was made secretary at war, but when many manufactories, a lyceum.and 15 churches, the whigs came into place, lie sent in his resig- It was founded in 1164. In the religious wars nation. The whig party being prostrated, Bo- of the loth century it suffered much. The lingbroke received the department of foreign Dutch gained possession of it in 1G29. Near affairs, and concluded the peace of Utrecht. Bois-le-Duc, in 17D-J, the British army was de- During the height of party ce-ntontu n between feated by the French. In the same year it sur- the whigs and tories. immediately alter the con- rendered to Pichegru, and was taken by Bulow, elusion of peace, a quarrel occurred between the Prussian General, in January, 1814. Bolingbrcke and the Eail <;f Oxlcrd, then lord BOJACA, BATTLE OF, was fought near high treasurer, and Queen Anne, provoked the bridge of Bojaca, a South American town with the latter, dismissed him, four days before not far from the city of Tunja. The Spaniards her death, and made Bo lingbroke prim" minis- under Barreyro were defeated by the united ter. The scene was speedily reversed by the forces of Venezuela and New Granada, com- death of Anne. George 1 ascended the throne, manded by Bolivar. It took place Aug. 7th, the whigs triumphed, and Bolingbroke. learn- 1819, and decided the independence of New ing that his enemies intended to brhig liirn to Granada. the scaffold, fled to France. Bolingbroke went BOLEYN. or BOLEN, Anne, second wife to Lorraine, and was made Secretary of State of Henry VIII of England. She was probably by the Pretender (James III), who." however, born about 1500. She was the daughter of Si'r becoming displeased with him, deprived him of Thomas Boleyn. Her early years were spent in his dignity and conferred it tu the duke of Or- attendance on the wife of Louis XII of France, mond. on whose death she became maid of honor to He returned to England in 1723. opposed queen Catherine. Henry, having procured a the ministry for eight years, and again went to divorce from his wife, married her privately, France. In France, in 17. were blamed for attacking revealed reli- famous Eliznbeth. The tyrant conceiving a gion. In 171:8. he return, d t..> hi.s country, passion for Jane Seymour, caused Anne to be where he died of a lingering and painful dis- tried for high treason and intidehtv. She suf- ease in 1751. in his dOtli year". fered on the scaffold. May 1'Jth. 1386, Henry BOLIVAR, Simon, the most prominent actor considering it an act of great clemency to save in the events which produced the independence her from the stake. She was beautiful, gay, and of a large portion of South America. He was HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL BOL 121 BOL born in the city of Caraccas, July 24th, 1763, of a distinguishes and noble Venezuelan family. After acquiring the elements of a liberal educa- tion in South America, he visited Spain, and spent some time in travelling in Europe, chief- ly in the south of France. Returning for a while to Madrid, he married, and carried his wife to his native land, where he thought to enjoy in peace the comforts of domestic life. The death of his wife put an end to his blissful visions, and he again went to Europe, partly to dissipate his grief. On his return, he travelled through the United States, where his love of libertv settled into an indelible passion, and we find him actively engaged in promoting the early movement in Caraccas (April, 1810) and receiving a colonel's commission from the su- preme junta then established. He sided with the patriots of Venezuela, and, after the declar- ation of independence, July 5, 1811, served under General Miranda, against a party in Va- lencia, who declared against the principles and measures of the revolutionists. After some ill success in Venezuela, which is attributable to treachery rather than want of talent on his part. Bolivar obtained a passport and escaped to Curacoa. He could not, however, content himself with* being a calm, cold, and in- vulnerable spectator of events in which the lives and fortunes of his countrymen were risk- ed, and accordingly he came to Carthagena in 1812, and entered 'into the service of the pat- riots of New Grenada. His expedition against TenerifFe, on the river Magdalena, was suc- cessful, he drove the Spaniards before him in his triumphant advance, and entered the city of Ocana in triumph, thus inspiring general confidence in the patriot cause, and attracting the attention of all to it and to himself. He next expelled the Spanish forces from Cucu- ta, and conceived the plan of freeing Vene- zuela from the Spaniards, a task which he ac- complished by the 4th of August, 1313. At the assembly of Caraccas. Jan. 2, 1814, the power, which was vested in the hands ef Bolivar as commander of the liberating army, was confirm- ed. If we carefully trace the military career of Bolivar, we shall find him alternately meeting with success, and struggling with reverse ; dis- playing, both in triumph and defeat, the noble daring of a gallant warrior, the rare talents of a military chieftain, and the unyielding perse- verance of a true patriot. At length he nad the satisfaction of beholding the arms of the patri- ots triumphant in every quarter, their banners moving onward in pride and splendor, and the phalanx of opposition becoming daily more and more feeble. In May, 1826, Bolivar presented to the cou- gress of Upper Peru, which had formed the independent state of Bolivia, the constitution which, at their request, he had prepared. Mean- while a rebellion had broken out in Venezuela, headed by Paez. who considered himself aggriev- ed, and the fair fruits of liberty, won with many a day of bloody toil, appeared in danger of being lost. It was Bolivar alone who could and did quell this insurrection. The Bolivian code, which, among its prominent features, provided that the executive authority should be vested in the hands of the president for life, was adopted as the constitution of Bolivia, Dec. 9, 1826. and Bolivar, then absent, was declared its presi- dent. If the provisions of the Bolivian code had alarmed the friends of liberty, what was their terror when they beheld Bolivar, whom they suspected of ambitious designs, placed for "life at the head of the government. The Colombian auxiliary army, then in Peru, rapid- ly revolutionized the government, and induced the Peruvians to renounce the Bolivian code. Strenuous opposition to Bolivar was made in Colombia by the republicans who imagined that he was ready to emulate the career of Napoleon, although he had repeatedly expressed a wish to retire from the presidency.. However, in 1828, a decree, dated Bogota, Ausr. '27. gave him the supreme power in Colombia. The authority reposed in him gave the republicans no little alarm, but Bolivar did not live long to exercise it. Looking back upon his career, we can now dispassionately estimate his character, and, if there appear occasionally a desire to exalt him- self above his fellows, we must grant him that rare union of civil and military abilities, that courage in adversity and moderation in pros- peritv. which was alone capable of achieving the regeneration of his country. BOLIVIA, a country of South America, bounded northwest by Peru, east by Brazil, south by Buenos Ayres or the United Prov- inces of South America, and west by the Pa- cific ocean and Peru. It is mountainous, and contains rich silver mines, t'huquisaca, or La Plata, is the capital. The population is about 1,200,000. The battle f.f Ayacucho, fought Dec. ( Jth. 1824, in which the Viceroy La Serna was defeated by General Antonio Jose de Sucre, achieved the independence of Bolivia. The powers of government are distributed into four sections the electoral, legislative, executive, and judicial. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. RON 122 BON BOLOGNA is one of the largest, oldest, and richest cities in Italy. It was anciently called Bononia, Felsinia. and is surnarned la Grassa (the fat). It is situated at the foot of the Apennines between the Reno and Savena, containing about 71,300 inhabitants and many manufactories. It is the capital of a delegation of the same name, and the secular concerns are administered by a cardinal legate, while the spiritual are in the care of an archbishop. A gonfaloniere chosen every two months, with a council of fifty sen- ators and eight citizens, forming a republican government, manages the city affairs. The in- habitants of Bologna submitted to the Pope in 1538, being worn and harassed by the incessant contentions of the nobility. A Bolognese am- bassador resides at Rome, for the purpose of preventing the sovereign pontiif from pass- ing beyond the limits which the constitution permits. The Pope canjmpose no tax on the inhabitants of Bologna, and is only entitled to the excise on wine. At the same time the Bo- lognese elect a judge to the high court of ap- peals at Rome. On the whole, the city can boast with truth of the proud word Libertas, which encircles her armorial bearings. The renowned university of Bologna, winch once contained 10,000 students, has at present but 300. Among the buildings which ornament the chief place of the city is the senate hall, which contains a number of works of art, and 200 folio volumes in manuscript written by Ulysses Aldovrandus, as materials for future works. Its market is famous for the sculpture of its fountain, and the flavor of its sausages, presenting equal attractions to the artist and the epicure. Besides the cathedral of St. Pe- tronio, there are 73 other churches. BOMBAY, a presidency, island, and city in British India on the western coast of Hindos- tan. The population of the city is 101 ,550. The city is surrounded with fortifications, and stands upon a narrow neck of land, a mile in length. The trade of this plaoe is very considerable. The American Board of Commissioners Cor For- eign Missions, had, in 1828, four missionaries and a printing press here, with JG schools for boys, and 10 for girls, containing in all 2G2G pupils. Bombay was obtained by the Portu- guese in 1530, and ceded to the English in JGG1, under whom it has become a strong and flourishing place. BONAPARTE. (See Napoleon.) BONIFACE, the name of several popes. Boniface I succeeded Zozimus in 418, and was maintained in the pontifical chair by the emperor Honorius against his rival Eulalius. He died in 422. Boniface II succeeded Felix IV in 530. He was born at Rome, but his father was a Goth. He compelled the bishops in a council to allow him to nominate his successor, and ac- cordingly he selected Vigil ; but a second council disavowed the proceedings of Ihe first. Boni- face VI came to the chair 896, and died of the gout a fortnight after. Boniface VII assumed the chair alter having murdered Benedict VI and John XIV. He was acknowledged sove- reign poritifi' in 984, and died a few months after. Boniface VIII, after the resignation of Celestine, was elected 1294. He commenced his pontificate by imprisoning his predecessor, and laying Denmark under an interdict. He also excommunicated the Colonnas as heretics, and preached a Crusade against them. He ex- cited the princes of Germany to revolt against Albert, and laid France under an interdict. Philip appealed to a general council, and sent his army into Italy, and took the Pope prisoner. He died at Rome a few months afterwards. BONIFACE, St., first spread Christianity and civilization among the Germans. His ori- ginal name was Winifred, and he was born in England in G80. In 732 he was made arch- bishop and primate of all Germany. He was lulled by barbarians at Dockum,in West Fries- land, in 75"), in his 75th year. BONN, the capital of the Prussian govern- ment of Cologne, on the left bank of the Rhine. The university , in 1829, contained 1000 students. BONNER, Edmund, an English prelate, who received several clerical preferments from Car- dinal Wolsey. Henry VIII made him one of his chaplains, and sent him to Rome to obtain from the Pope a divorce from queen Catharine. There he was so insolent that the pontiff threatened to throw him into a cauldron of boil- ing lead, and thus compelled him to quit Rome. He persecuted the Protestants with great cru- elty, and Elizabeth imprisoned him in the 3Iar- shalsea. where he died in 15G9. BONNEVAL, Claude Alexander, count de, known also by the name of Jlckmct Pasha, was born in ]G72. He was descended from an illus- trious fo-mily in France, and married the daugh- ter of the Marsha] de Biron. He was disgraced, however, by his incessant pursuit of sensual pleasure. He quitted the French army to servo under Prince Eugene ; but, having quarrelled with that general, he entered the service of the Turks, among whom he obtained a military command, with a high salary, and the rank of pacha with three tails. He won a great victory HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BOO 123 BOR over the imperial army on the banks of the Danube. He died in 1747. BONPL A ND. Aima, a French naturalist, who accompanied Humboldtto America in 1799, and discovered GOOO new species of plants. He, re- turned to France, and thence went again to South America in 1618. In 1820, he founded a colony of Indians, at Santa Anna, on the east bank of the Parana, and succeeded in planting the Paraguay tea, which drew upon him the notice of doctor Francia, dictator of Paraguay, 200 of whose soldiers surprised and seized the naturalist. He was held captive, and made to serve as physician to the garrison of a fort; but was released in 1831. BOONE, Daniel, a native of Virginia, was one of the first to penetrate the savage wilds of Kentucky, on an expedition to explore which, lie departed with five companions, May 1 , 17t)9. Bonne, with John Stewart, was captured by the Indians, not long after their arrival in Kentucky, but soon managed to escape. Their compan- ions had returned home, whither they would have followed them, but for the timely arrival of Squire Boone, Daniel's brother, with refresh- ments. Stewart being soon after slain, the two Boones remained, the only white men in the wilderness. In 177;?. Boone with his own, and five other families, and a body of 40 men, took up the march of emigration from Virginia to Kentucky ; but in consequence of the hostility of the Indians, they returned to the settlements on Clinch River. In 1775 Boone built a fort at Silt Spring, on the southern bank of the Ken- tucky, on the site of Boonesborough. After sustaining several sieges, he was taken by the savyges, Feb. 7, 177?, while hunting with some of his men. The Indians soon learned to re- spect and value Boone, who was adopted by one of the chiefs of Chiliicothe, but the thoughts of his wife and children induced our adven- turer to attempt an escape. After travelling for four days, taking but one meal, he arrived at Boonesborough, which was 160 miles distant from the place of his captivity. On the 8th of August an attack on the fort was commenced by a body of Indians and Canadian French, which continued till the 20th, when the siege was abandoned. This was the last attempt made upon Boonesborough. From 1782 till 1798, Boone lived alternately in Kentucky and Virginia. In 1798, having obtained from the Spanish government a grant of land in Upper Louisiana, he removed thither with his children and friends, who were also presented with land. He settled on the Mis- 11* souri, beyond the limits of other settlements, and employed himself in the wild life of the forest, hunting and trapping, until Sept. 1822, when he expired, in his e5th year. He had for a long time been sensible of the approach of death, and had a coffin made cut of a favorite cherry-tree, which he brought to a high de- gree of polish by continual rubbing. BORA, Catherine von, a nun, who married Luther about 1524, when he had laid aside the cowl, and she the veil. BORDENTOWN, a pleasant town of New Jersey, on the east side of the Delaware, 2C miles IN. E. of Philadelphia, the residence of Joseph Bonaparte, Count de Survilliers. BORGHESE, princess, originally Marie Pau- line Bonaparte, the favorite sister of Napoleon, botn at Ajacio, Oct. 20, 1782. After becom- ing the widow of General Leclerc. she married prince Camillo Borghese, with whom she did not live on good terms. She died 1825. Her whole property amounted to 2,000,000 francs. She was uncommonly beautiful, and Canova re- presented her as the goddess of beauty, a Venus which almost rivalled the antique. BORGIA, Ceesar, son of pope Alexander VI, an infamous character. On his father's acces- sion to the papacy in 14C2, he was invested with the purple. Being jealous of his brother Fran- cis, he contiived to have him drowned. Hav- ing renounced the cardinalship. he was made duke of Romagna in 1501 , and leagued with Louis XII of France. On the death of his father, he was sent prisoner to Spain, but made his escape, and died fighting under the walk of Biano, in 1507. BORNEO, next to New Holland, the largest island in the world, is about 800 miles long, and 700 broad. The population has been estimated at from 3 to 5 millions. Lcn. 109= to 119 E. ; lat. 7 3 N. to 4 C 20' S. The insalubrity of the cli- mate has restrained Europeans from exploring it, and consequently not much information has been collected with regard to it. The chain of mountains coutains numerous crystals, and is thence called Crystal Mountain. Earthquakes and volcanoes are frequent in the island. The mountain breezes and the rains moderate the heat, which is by no means excessive. Gold, di- amonds, pearl, iron, copper, tin, and other min- erals are found here. The fruits are fine and abundant. The inhabitants are Malays, Javan- ese, Bujis cr natives of Celebes, and" descend- ants of Arabs, governed by despotic chiefs called Sultans. They are said to be intelligent, but treacherous. The Dutch have succeeded CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BOS 124 BOS in forming permanent establishments on the island, and derive their chief profit from pep- per and diamonds. The town of Borneo, on the northwest part of the island, 10 miles from the sea, contains 3000 houses, and is the resi- dence of a Sultun, formerly the sovereign of the entire island. BORNOU, a kingdom of Central Africa, hounded JN. by Kanem and the desert, east by lake Tchad, south by Mandara, and west by Soudan. The seasons are divided into dry and rainy. The heat is occasionally excessive. The country contains 13 large and well-built towns. The Shouaas are Arabians, arrogant, and de- ceitful ; the Bornou people have negro features, and are timorous and addicted to pilfering. The government is in the hands of the powerful sheikh of the Koran. The domestic and wild animals are numerous. The minerals are un- important. Strips of cotton pass current in the country instead of coin. BORROMEI ISLANDS (Isoh dd Canigti or Rabbit Isles) are four small islands in Lake M aggiore in Upper Italy. The lake is 30 miles long, and 7 or y broad. The islands are loaded with artificial ornaments, and luxurious groves. In 1(>71 Viteliano Borromeo caused garden-soil to be spread over the naked rocks, and terraces to be walled up. Isola Bella is near the shore, and contains a splendid palace, the occasional dwellincr-place of Count Borromei. BOSCAWEN, Edward, a British admiral. Hi> particularly distinguished himself, at the taking of Porto Bello, and the siege of Car- thagena. He also signalized himself under Anson, off Cape Finisterre ; and at the taking of Madras, Cape Breton, and Louisburg. He died in 1701, having received in succession all the honors of his profession. BOSNIA, a Turkish province, with the title of kingdom, which is bounded north by Scl:ivo- nia, east by Servia, south by Dahnatia and the Adriatic Sea, and west by Croatia. It contains a5,000 inhabitants, t\_v.o thirds Christians, and one third Turks, besides Jews and Gipsies. The soil is fertile, the cattle fine, and the iron of the mountains extensively used in the man- ufacture of guns and sword blades. In the 12th and 13lh centuries, Bosnia belonged to Hungary. In ]:!), Stephen, king of Servia, took it. "it gained its independence, but in 140J, became tributary to the Turks, and in 14fi:5. was con- quered by Mohammed V, who caused its last king, Stephen I, to be flayed alive. It has since remained part of the Turkish dominions. BOSPHORUS, an ancient kingdom, called from the straits on both sides of which it was situated. BOSSUET, Jacques Benigne, bishop of Meaux, born at Dijon, 1627, became one of the most celebrated ecclesiastics of the 18th cen- tury. He was pious, severe in doctrine and practice, eloquent, and learned. He died in 1704. BOSTON, the capital of Massachusetts, and largest city of the New-England States. It is situated at the bottom of Massachusetts bay, at the mouth of Charles river; Ion. 71 4' W. ; lat. 42* 22' N. Population (in 1840) 03,383. Its extent, inclusive of the peninsula of South Boston, is nearly three square miles. The harbor is capacious and gemmed with many islands, some of which are fortified. The bridg- es, with a sinjjle exception, are of wood ; the dam leading from the western part -of the city to Roxbury. being of stone and earth. Two of the bridges are free, and the rest are sup- ported by tolls. The streets are quite narrow and irregular, although improvements are rapid- ly making in their condition wherever prac- ticable. Many of the houses jive built of brick, some wholly of hammered gn-.mte, and some of both these materials. Few recent buildings are of wood. The state-house, on a hill which com- mands a view of the city and its environs, is a large building of brick , and contains a fine mar- ble statue of Washington, executed by Chantry. Other public buildings are the county Court- House built of stone, Faneuil Hall, called "the Cradle of Liberty,'' from the public meetings held there previous to the revolution ; the Mas- sachusetts General Hospitnl, the Faneuil Hail Market, various churches and school-houses, a house < f industry, a house of correction, a county jail, and throe theatres. Tremont Ho- tel is one of the finest specimens of architec- ture in the city. The city is divided into twelve wards; the municipal government is vested in a jnayor, eight aldermen, and a common council of for- ty-eight members. Measures of a legislative character are adopted by a concurrent act of the board of nldermen and common council, whiK> the executive functions are exercised by the mayor and aldermen. These oiliceis are chosen annually by the citizens voting in their wards. The' city charter is of recent origin, bearing the date of 1821. There is a po- lice court of three justices, before whom minor offences are tried, while a single judge holds the municipal court, which has jurisdiction over all criminal cases, tried by jury, which are not HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BOS 125 BOS capital. The annual expenses amount to about 300,000 dollars. The public schools are under the care of a school committee, consisting of the mayor and aldermen and twelve members, annually chosen by the citizens. The library of the Boston AthensEum contains about 30,000 volumes. Boston contains numerous literary, scientific, v and charitable societies. It is the second commercial city of the United States. The goods imported annually amount to about $ 13,000,0^)0, and the exports to about $9,000,- 000. The common is the principal public square. It is surrounded by the mall, !i hand- some gravelled walk, fenced in, and shaded with fine elm trees, and contains about fifty acres. The periodicals of Boston have attained a high reputation, and are worthy of the literary char- acter of the city. The North American Re- view, a quarterly publication, is distinguished for the candor and talent of its criticisms, and the ability with which it defends our institu- tions and country, against the assaults which are occasionally made by prejudiced foreigners. Boston was ibunded in 1630. William Black- stone was the first settler. It was called by the Indians Shawmut, and by the early colonists Tri-mountain, from its three prominent hills. The first church was built in 1(533. The Mid- dlesex canal, leading from Charles river to the Merrimack, and thus forming a navigable chan- nel to Concord in New Hampshire, was, until recently, the only means of transportation to and from the interior, with the exception of the common roads. There have now been com- menced and partly finished, a rail-road from Boston to Lowell, one to Worcester, and one to Providence, in the state of Rhode Island. From the year 1783, the population has doubled once in about 23 years. In the reign of Charles II, the charter of Massachusetts was declared for- feited by a decree of the Court of Chancery, and Sir Edmund Andros was appointed the first royal governor. In April, IGrii), the Bostonians seized upon the governor a:ul imprisoned him, having first taken possession of the fort, and castle in the harbour. In a little more than a month afterwards, the ne\vs of the revolution in England, was welcomed in Boston with general exultation. In 1765, when the obnoxious stamp act passed, the person appointed to distribute the stamps, was compelled to decline the office, and the house of the lieutenant-governor was de- stroyed by the mob. On the breaking out of these tumults, which appeared to threaten the down- fal of authority, Boston was forced to receive a large military and naval force, which it was thought would quell the spirit of insubordina- tion. The citizens regarded the soldiers with little favor, and they only wanted a pretext to show their hostility openly. March 5th, 1770, a ser- geant's guard in King (now State) street, being pressed upon and pelted by the mob, fired and killed five men. After the tax had been im- posed on tea, the Americans resolved, if pos- sible, to prevent the landing and sale of it. When three of the tea ships arrived, December 1C, 1773, a party of men disguised as Indians, went on board and threw all the tea overboard. In the following spring, the port of Boston was closed by act of Parliament, and the impor- tation and exportation of goods prohibited. The general court held its sittings in Salem, and more troops together with a military governor, were sent to Boston. In 1775, after the battles of Lexington and Bunker Hill, British troops, to the number of 10,01)0 men, were besieged in Boston, until the March following. During this siege the inhabitants suffered greatly, for many who wished to leave the town were not permitted to do so, but forced to stay against their will, and treated as tories by the Ameri- can army on their entrance. The British offi- cers amused themselves by acting plays in Faneuil Hall, the " cradle of liberty," being fitted up tastefully on the occasion. General Burgoyne wrote a farce called the Boston Block- ade, in which the yankets were severely satiri- zed, and a happy triumph of the royal arms predicted. The sarcasms on the weakness of the Americans with which this piece was inter- spersed, received a curious commentary in the frequent explosions of the shells which were thrown into the town by the besiegers. A can- non ball entered the tower of Brattle street church, where it is still preserved. Boston was distinguished for its early adherence to the cause of liberty, and was the birth-place of sev- eral of the most talented and uncompromising enr-mies of despotism. BOS WELL, James, the friend and biogra- pher of Johnson, was a native of Scotland, and studied at the universities of Glasgow and Utrecht. He was born at Edinburgh, in 1740, and died in 1705. He was acquainted with many eminent literary men, and his introduc- tion to Johnson lie calls the moist important event of his life. His life of Johnson is accu- rate and minute, abounding with literary anec- dote and personal detail. It was first published in 1790, and has since been repeatedly re-print- ed. The late edition, edited by Croker, is the most valuable. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BOU 126 BOU BOSWORTH, a small town of Leicester BOUILLF,, Francois Claude Amour, Mar- county, England, in the vicinity of which is quis de, a French loyalist general, who, among Boswoilh field, memorable for the battle fought other services, suppressed a dangerous insur- here in 1458, between Richard III and the earl rection at Metz, and assisted Louis XVI in his of Richmond, afterwards Henry VII, in which attempt to escape from France. For his avowal the latter was victories, and Richard, after hav- of this transaction, a price was set upon his ing performed prodigies of valour, and cloven head, whereupon he took a commission in the from helm to heel two of Richmond's standard- Swedish service. He died in 1800. bearers, thus disproving the tale of his withered BOURBON, the royal house of the kings of arm. was finally slain. The brows of Rich- France, who obtained the throne in the j crson mond were encircled on the field of battle with of Henry IV. in 15DO. The kings of this house the diadem which was stricken from the casque were Henry' IV, Louis X11I, XIV, XV, XVI, of Richard. This battle ended the bloody con- XVII. XVl'lI, and Charles X. The Bourbon tentions of the rival roses, the red and white family obtained the kingdom of Spain, in Ihu person of Philip V (of Anjf u), and maintained badges of York and Lancaster. BOTHNIA, East and West, t, provinces be- themselves in possession after a long nnd bloody longing, the former to Russia, and the latter to war, called the war for the Spanis-h successicn. Sweden. East Bothnia contains 70,000 in- BOURBON, Charles, duke of, or Constablo habitants, and previous to 180!), belonged to of Bourbon, son of Gilbert, ccunt of Mrntpem Sweden. West Bothnia cont t \ins 56,000 in- sier, and Clara of^ Gonzaga, born in 1 16!). A) habitants, is tolerably fertile, but subject tosud- the age of twenty-six, he received the sword or' den frosts. Constable from Francis I, and distinguished BOTH WELL, James Hepburn, earl of, re- himself at Marignano, but soon nfter iell infij markable in the history' of Scotland, for his disgrace. On this, he associated with Charles V, connexion with queen Mawyand his supposed and the king of England, against his sovereign* share, at least, in the muffler of Henry Darn- The plot being discovered, he fled into Italyj ley, her husband. When that unfortunate nnd was beyond the territories of France, when prince was blown up in the house where he Francissent to demand the swoid which he wor>; slept, suspicion fell strongly on Bothwell and as constable, and the badge of his order. Iv the queen. Bothwell was tried, but nothing the words of his reply, we may trace the deej could be fixed on him, and he was acquitted, onguish of his heart " The king deprived me After this he seized Mary near Edinburgh, and of my sword at Valenciennes when he gave the carried her prisoner to Dunbar castle, where command of the vanguard to d'Alcnccn : th; they were married. During these iniquitous badjre of my OH.'CI I Iell under my pillow at proceedings, Bothwell procured a divorce from Chahtelles." He became Commander-in-chief his wife. Mary soon after created him earl of of the imperial troops in Italy, but was killed i!\ Orkney. But a confederacy among the lords the successful assault on Rome, May 2d, *" being formed against him, he retired to the Ork- He fell, it is said, by a shot fired by Benvenuto neys, and from thence to Denmark, where he Cellini. He died excommunicated, in the 38th died in 1577, confessing- it is said his own guilt, year of his age. and the queen's innocence of Darnley's murder. BOURBON, isle of, an island in the Indian BOUDINOT, Elias. was born at Philadel- ocean, about 400 miles east of Madagascar. It phia, May 2A, 1740. He became eminent at contains 17,000 whites, 6,000 free negroes, and the bar, was chosen member of Congress in (JO ,000 slaves. It is productive, but sutlers from 1777, and its president in 1782. Eor six years the want of good harbours. Its origin is sup- he was in the house of representatives, and for posed to be volcanic. -Lf, I'iton tie J\'ci<)5, cost the allies 20,000 men. Louis XIV possession of it in 164!. gave it .its present name, sent him an order commanding him to surren^ Afler remaining for a time in the hands of the der, but he concealed it till he had no longer English, it was restored to the French in 1815. the means of defence. BOURBONNAIS, a former province of HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BOY 127 BOY France, lying between the Nivernais, Berry, and Burgundy, forming the present department of Allier. BOURDEAUX, the chief city in the French department of the Gironde, lying on the left bank of the Garonne, and containing 100.000 inhabitants. It is a city of great antiquity, and distinguished for its gloomy splendor. It has nineteen gates, and some magnificent cathe- drals. It annually exports 100.000 hogsheads of wine, and 20,000 of French brandy. With the exception of Nantes, it has the greatest share in the American and French trade of any other city. Its academy of sciences has a lib- rary of 55,000 volumes. The Romans called this place Burdigaia. In the 5th century it was in the hands of the Goths, and pillaged and burned bv the Normans. When Louis VII mar- ried Eleanora, daughter of the last duke of Gui- enne, it fell into the hands of the French. When the princess was repudiated, it came into the hands of the duke of Normandy, afterwards king of England, her second husband. It was restor- ed to France under Charles VII, in 1451. Dur- ing the revolution it was devastated by the ter- rorists, as being the seat of the Girondists. Bo- naparte's continental system bore heavily upon the trade of the inhabitants of Bourdeaux, and accordingly they willingly declared themselves in favor of the Bourbons, March l'2th. 1814. BOVVDOIN, Jarnes, governor of Massachu- setts, was born at Boston, in 17:V),ltj() inhabitants, and 150 towns. The Suevi, first, and then the Sclavonians inhabited it. The latter were barbarians, but, in tiie 10th century. were conquered by Henry I, and converted to Christianity. The margraves of Brandenburgh raised themselves to be dukes of Prussia. The mark passed through varion? hands, till in the fifteenth century it came into those of the ancestors of the present royal fam- ily of Prussia. The elector, Frederick Wil- liam, enlarged it by the annexation of several towns and districts. The old Mark, having been ceded to Napoleon, in 1807, formed a part of the kingdom of \Vestphalia, until 1814, when it was restored to Prussia. Potsdam, the capital of the province, contains 30,000 in- habitants. BRANDY WINE, a small river, taking its rise in Pennsylvania, which, after a course of forty-five miles, flowing through the state of Delaware, joins the Christiana, two miles be- low Wilmington. The Brandy wine mills are noted. But the river is known in history, for a battle fought in its vicinity, September 11, 1777, between the British and Americans, in which the latter sustained a defeat with a loss of 900 in killed and wounded. BRATTLEBOROUGH, a flourishing post- town in Windham county, Vermont, on the Connecticut, 41 miles north of Northampton. Population, in 1840. 2,624. It contains two parishes, each having a pleasant village. Them are here an academy, a large printing establish- ment, various manufactories, and a flourishing trade. Here the Americans established fort Dummer, in 1724. which was the first settle merit made by them in Vermont. BRAZIL, an extensive and ricli country of South America, bounded on the north by Ven- ezuela. Guiana, and the Atlantic Ocean; east and southeast by the Atlantic Ocean, and west by Buenos Ayres, or the United Provinces of La Plata, Bol'ivia, and Pern. Its extent, from north to south, is about. 2,300 miles, and from east to west, nearly 2.000 miles. With a terri- tory somewhat larger than the whole of the United States, possessing extraordinary wealth and fertility, it is inhabited by but five millions of people, exclusive of the Indians, concerning wh )in little information has been acquired. The different provinces are thus named : J'er- namlwco, Bahia, Minus Gcrai-s. Rio Janeiro, Ft. Paul, Rio Grande. Maranham, Para. Matto Grosso, and Govns. Such was the'di vision of Brazil in ]?1 7 and l-l v . but. in ]*-!(',, it was divided into eighteen different 'provinces. Brazil contains sonic of the largest rivers in the world ; the Awn/on, To- Mul San Francisco being the most promi- nent. There is much variety of climate, but generally it is healthy; and the salubrity of the vast elevated plains is unequalled by that I = HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BRA 129 BRE of any other region on the face of the globe. The richness of its wood and water, the profu- sion of its diamonds and gold, and its general healthiness, make it the El Dorado of the ima- gination. In the beds of the rivers are found to- pazes, chrysoberyls, other precious stones, and gold. The trees are of every description, adapted to cabinet-work, ship-building, and dyeing ; while coffee, oranges, sugar, tobacco, indigo, and rice, are raised in abundance. Brazil was discovered, April 24, 1500, by Pedro Alvarez de Cabral, who at first named it Santa Cruz (the Holy Cross), but king Eman- uel, the Portuguese" sovereign, called it Bra- zil, from the quantity of red wood which it produced. The Portuguese at first undervalued this country, and sent thither only criminals, and the refuse of their population, but the Jews, who had been banished to Brazil in 1543, hav- ing successfully introduced the culture of the sugar-cane, Thomas de Souza was sent over by the court of Lisbon, and began to find some good points about the country, although it had n >i yielded the desired gold. After temporary misfortunes, the colonists prospered, but the Portuguese had to conten-1 against nations (France, Spain, and the United Provinces;, whose jealousy was aroused by the accounts they heard of the richness and fertility of the Portuguese possessions. The Dutch met with great success in Brazil, but became the*friends of the Portuguese, when the latter shook off the Spanish yoke and gained their independence. They still retiined the seven provinces they had conquered, and hence arose the division of the country into the Brazils ; but a pecuniary compensation induced them to resign their claims to the Portuguese. The diamond mines were n-ot discovered till 1732. The prosperity of Brazil has not been what it might he made under an enlightened government. The con- flicting interests of various bodies of its inhabi- tants ; the unequal pressure of state burthens, and other causes, have tended to weaken and distract it. In 180(5. the court of Portugal re- moved here, but in 1821, the king returned to Lisbon. Don Pedro, son of the king of Por- tugal, then governed Brazil under the title of emperor. But having abdicated in favor of his infant son, Pedro II, he is now in Europe, and the Brazilian government is conducted, during the minority of the prince, by a council of regency. The army of Brazil was composed, in 1824, of 30,000 regular troops, and 50,000 militia, in addition to a regiment of negroes. The navy, two years later, consisted of 9(5 ships. The revenue has been recently estimated at 116,000,000. A large part of the population '1,000,000 are. negro slaves, and many slaves are yet constantly imported into this country. The most cultivated part of the population are the merchants of the maritime ports, the Euro- peans and Creoles, forming the true aristocracy of the country. The inhabitants arc Roman Catholics, with the exception of the independ- ent native tribes, in the vast regions of the interior. BREDA, a fortress in Dutch Brabant, for- merly of immense importance. It has sus- tuine'd several memorable sieges. In 1590, it was taken bv Maurice, prince of Orange, and retaken by the Spaniards, under Spinola, in 1625, after a siege of 10 months. The French, during the revolution, gained possession of it, but it was abandoned by them in 1813. BREMEN, a free city on the Weser, conspic- uous in the Hanseatic league. The inhabitants embraced Calvinism in Io(j2. It is pleasant and prosperous, with a population of 38,000. BRENNER, a high mountain of the Tyrol, over which runs the road to Italy. In 1809, the Tyrolese gallantly defended their rough precipices against the French, and severely harassed their march. BRENNUrf. Several chieftains of ancient Gaul bore this name, which is said to have been a title of dignity and honor. One, having ravaged Lombardy and Tuscany, marched to Ronie, which he surrendered to plunder. The garrison held out in the citadel, which would have been taken at midnight by the foe, but for the noise made by the sacred geese of Juno, that were watchful even while the dogs slept. Bren- nus was then offered a thousand pounds weight oi\"ld to spare the capital, and quit the territo- ries of the republic. He threw into the scale which held the weights, his sword and helmet, haughtily exclaiming," Wo to the vanquished." The treaty was ended by the timely arrival of the exiled Camillus, who refused the payment of even a pound of gold as ransom. " Rome." said he proudly, " is to liberate herself with iron and not wi'th gold." He gave battle to the Gauls, and routed them, about 390 B. C. BRESCIA, a city of Lombardy, containing 31.000 inhabitants. Its manufactures are, and have long been extensive, and its soil is remark- able for fertility. From the hands of the Vene- tians, it fell into those of the French, and finally the Austrians. Under the sway of the Venetian republic, the inhabitants were un/uly, although particularly favored by government. In 1796, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BRI 130 BRI as Bonaparte was quitting Brescia, the muni- cipal officers, who accompanied him to the gate of the city, said that the Brescians loved liberty more than the rest of the Italians. " Yes," said the general, sarcastically, " they love to talk of it to their women." BRESLAU, capital of Silesia, is situated on the Ohlaw; population, 83,8GO. More than four thousand Jews reside here. The architec- tural beauty of the city has been celebrated. It contains 20 catholic churches, and 84 literary institutions. Its commerce is considerable. Here the Prussians were defeated by the Aus- trians in 1757. BREST, anciently Brivates Portits, and Gc- sobrivatc, a French seaport in the department of Finisterre, with a fine harbor constructed by Cardinal Richelieu, in 1631. It is well for- tified, and its dock-yards and magazines com- mand admiration. It contains 25.8G5 inhabi- tants. It was attacked in ](J94 by a British fleet and army, which were repulsed with a loss of 1300 men and their comtnander. BRIAREUS, a fabled giant, son of Uranus and Terra, with 100 arms and 50 heads. BRIENNE, a town in the department of the Aubc, at the academy of which Napoleon' learned the first principles of the military art. Here it was that his power was maintained the longest, and only fell with a convulsive struggle. BRIGALIER, Abb6, lived during the reign of Louis XIII. The superstitions of his time are displayed by some passages in his lite. He was almoner to Mademoiselle de Montauban, and spent 30,000 crowns to become an adept in the magic art. without accomplishing his end. Being with the court at Compiegne, a lady who had purchased a piece of red silk. instead of green, begged the Abbe to change it. to the color she wished. Rather than lose his repu- tation as a magician, Brigaiier bought a piece of green silk and gave it to the lady, who vv;s astonished at his success, and forthwith circu- lated the tale. By various tricks of legerde- main, he maintained his credit as a sorcerer, so that the archbishop of Paris gravely commanded him to desist from his unhallowed occupations. BRISSOT DK WARVILLE, Jen n Pierre, a prominent character in the history of the French revolution, whose writings (.ended greatly to bring monarchical power into disrepute. lie V.MS the son of a pastry-cook, and was born in 1754. At the age of 30, he was imprisoned in the Bastile, for a work which treated of prohibited subjects. After numerous changes of action and residence, which the nature ot his works, and the fluctuating state of his popularity rendered necessary, having been engaged some time in England, some time with the duke of Orleans, and some tuna in America, he was at last guil- lotined with ms friends, by the faction of Rob- espierre, in 171'3. BRISTOL, an important commercial city of England, on the river Avion, witli (in 1831) 103,889 inhabitants. Its distance west from London is 117 miles. It is of great antiquity, and was called by the ancient Britons Caer Briio. The cathedral is part of a monastery, founded by {Stephen, in 1146. BRISTOL, R. I., is a. pleasant and flourishing sea-port town, capital of a county of the same name, 15 miles south of Providence. It is a place of considerable trade, with a population, in 1830, of 3,054. It contains an academy, public library, and 4 houses of public worship. The Indians called it Pucunuckct and Suiram. BRITAIN (so called because the inhabitants adorned their bodies with brit, paint), was little known until the invasion of Julius Ciesar, who conducted his army into this country, on the pre- text of punishing the Britons for the aid which they had given to the (iauls, in 55 B. C. The inhabitants wen- l.hcu ferocious and warlike, clad in skins, and armed with clubs, and even the iron-breasted Roman legions quailed at first before the horrid front whirh the infu- riated .natives presented to their invaders. The Romans kept possession of Britain 500 years, during which many improvements were introduced, and the manners of the people be- came assimilated to those of their conquerors. This, however, was not effected without much bloodshed. The Romans having, in the fifth century, quilted Britain, to defend their other territories, invaded by the Goths and Vandals, the Britons were attacked by the Scots, and sought the assistance of the Saxons and An- gles. These defeated the Scots, but made themselves inaslers also of the kingdom, and gave it the name of Anglia, or England. Eng- land was divided, bv the Saxons, into seven dis- tinct kingdoms, erJled the Saxon Heptarchy, some of vfhich were established in the fifth, and others in I he sixth century ; most of them con- tinued till 8(10. v.lien Egbert reigned alone. The states generally acknowledged the supe- riority of one monarch, railed the king of Brit- ain. "The ki: n -I.'M, ;md ended in 827. : Surrey : be- gan 4!il , ended about (iOl). West Suronij con- tained Cornwall, Devonshire, L)or.setshirc,Wilt- Briton Romanized. Early Britoi Dn Richard III. I A Soldier of I Lady and Gentleman I Lady and Gentleman in dress I Henry VIII. | in time of Henry VI. | of Glueen Mary's Reign. Sea Captain in time I Lady during the I A Cavalier. I Charles I. and his Glueen. of Charles I. Commonwealth. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BRI 131 BRI shire, Hampshire, and Berkshire : began 519, ended 1060. East Saxony contained Essex, Middlesex, and part of Hertfordshire: began 527, ended 747. Jforthumberlandcontaincd Lan- cashire, Yorkshire, Durham, Cumberland, Northumberland, and part of Scotland, as far as Edinburgh Frith : began 547, ended about 729. East dnglia, contained Norfolk, Suffolk, and Cambridgeshire : began 575, ended 973. Mercia, or, the Middle kingdom, contained Gloucester- shire. Herefordshire,Worcestershire, Warwick- shire, Leicestershire, Rutlandshire, Northamp- tonshire, Lincolnshire, Huntingdonshire, Bed- fordshire, Buckinghamshire, Oxfordshire, Staf- fordshire, Shropshire, Nottinghamshire, Ches- hire, and part of Hertfordshire : began 582, ended 827. These several kingdoms, at the dates specified, were merged in those of their more powerful neighbors. England, from 653, suffered many invasions from the Danes, who several times made them- selves masters of it. Tiiey were finally expell- ed (1041), and the Saxon government restored in the person of Edward the Confessor. Dur- ing this time flourished Canute, Harold, and Hardicanute. In 1066, the Normans, under William the Conqueror, obtained possession of the kingdom, having defeated the English under Harold, in the battle of Hastings. By this cir- cumstance, the whole moral and political con- stitution of England underwent an important change. The Norman principle of lordship and vassalage was introduced and enforced, and it was not until after some generations, that the barons themselves, feeling the chain of passive submission too galling, gave the first impulse to that spirit, which burst the fetters of feudal- ism. To the time of king John, the history of England is little else than an account of the acts of the kings done with a direct view to acquire and sustain this unnatural authority. The first William did almost nothing else. His brother perished while hunting in the New Forest, which his father had depopulated for that amusement. Henry relaxed a little, as well as Stephen, to support his usurpation. Henry II employed his power advantageously in his conquest of Ireland. King John, after many feeble attempts at continued despotism, was compelled, by the exasperated barons, to sign what was afterwards called the Magna Charta (Great Charter) ; which renounced some of the most odious prerogatives of royalty, and extended a moderate share of liberty to the barons of the realm. John, however, involved the nation, with himself, in odious submissions 12 to the pope, the influence of which it cost England and her succeeding kings many strug- gles to counteract. Civil liberty increased un- der his successor, a weak and contemptible prince, and the first traces of a house of com- mons may he perceived in this reign. By the military ardor of Robert, duke of Normandy, the crown had been given up to the second brother, in consideration of money ad- vanced on his expedition to Palestine. On Robert's attempt to recover it in the succeeding reign, he was taken and confined for the re- mainder of his life in Cardiff Castle. With this exception, the history of England presents little of importance in connection with its for- eign policy, till Henry 11 provoked a war with Scotland, in which their king, William, was taken prisoner, and only re-obtained his crown by doing homage for it as a vassal. This reign was also distinguished by two great acqui- sitions of territory ; Ireland by arbitrary con- quest, and Guienne and Poitou by marriage. During this period, however, the power of the church of Rome had so increased as to over- shadow the crown ; Thomas a Becket, arch- bishop of Canterbury, evincing its arrogance and determination to dictate in matters tem- poral as well as spiritual. Some of the finest counties in the north of England, were actu- ally held bv the Scotch, by the empty cere- mony of vassalage. By the treachery of John, Normandy was Tost to the English crown, the pope was constituted the virtual lord of his dominions, and Lewis, prince of France, was actually encouraged to assume the title. The reign of Henry III was occupied in the monarch's disputes with his barons, and extor- tions from the Jews. The dependency of Scot- land was confirmed by the violent imposition of Baliol upon the throne, his subsequent con- finement, and the decided overthrow of the Scotch forces that opposed the English. All, however, was recovered by the gallantry of Robert Bruce. Edward III, by his successes at Cressy and Poictiers, and that at Durham, obtained for England much glory at much expense, and two royal captives, but little solid advantage, while the campaign in Spain occa- sioned the death of the Black Prince, and ulti- mately that of his father in 1 377. In this reign, and m one private individual, we find the fiist dawn of the reformation. Wickliff, under the protection of John of Gaunt, the king's brother, began those denunciations of the papal abuses, which, in the end, overthrew that cor- rupt and foreign dominion in England. It was CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BRI 132 BRI during the absence of Richard II. in quelling a disturbance in Ireland, that the people, vexed with continual exaction, and offended at the injustice of the king to his cousin, the duke of Lancaster, invited the latter from banishment, to control the operations of the king and his advisers. He landed, usurped the crown, mur- dered the king, quelled the insurrections conse- quent, and captured the heir to the Scottish throne. The feats of his successor, Henry V, in gain- ing the crown of France, and the reverses of his son, who lost it. form the principal features of their respective reigns ; except that to the latter are to be added the civil contentions with the deposed line for the possession of the throne, their success, and the old kind's murder. Rich- ard III, who followed Edward IV and Edward V of the house of York, was himself succeeded by Henry VII. of the other line, who, by marry- ing the daughter of Edward IV, united the two houses. Henry VIII, though perhaps the great- est tyrant that ever filled the English throne, made a new era in the history of the country, in its total emancipation from papal authority. The power, however, of which he had deprived the pope, he seized for himself, and was, at least, as vigorous in its exercise. The next reign ratified and enlarged his acts in favor of the protestant religion ; and, although the bigot Mary for a time rebound the chains, and rekin- dled the fires of persecution, the reformation was too firmly established to be overthrown. and her successor, Elizabeth, settled it upon a foundation, which will endure as long as the conviction of its necessity exists. During all this time, from the death of Ed- ward III, the foreign relations of England, though continually fluctuating, were never con- siderably changed. Henry VIII, in league with the pope and the emperor, made some con- quests in France, and his generals defeated and slew James IV, of Scotland, at Flodden-field ; and, in his successor's reign, an expedition into that country was executed at the desire of the late king, on a fruitless expedition to induce the Scots to marry the princess Mary to Ed- ward V. In the reign of Mary, Calais was lost by treachery. Elizabeth intrigued with Scot- land, but fought with Spain. Her defence of her kingdom against the celebrated Armada, in 1588, would of itself, stamp her reign with glory. The attack on Cadiz by the earl of Essex, was eminently successful, and the other enterprises of her admirals were very conside- rable. She also supported the protestants of Germany against Austria, and the Dutch against the Spaniards. On Elizabeth's death, the English and Scottish crowns became united in the person of James I, a vain and pedantic prince. The imprudence of his son and successor, Charles I, brought him to the scaffold hi 104^, and a republican form of government was established under the protector, Oliver Cromwell. During this period, however, England maintained a high rank in the scale of nations, and Cromwell showed himself as well qualified to govern aa to gain. The usurpation was perhaps a harsh medicine to the constitu- tion, but its operation was short, and its effects even salutary. Charles II \vrrs restored in KK.iO. The people of England by this time understood the rights of the subject, as well as the duties of the monarch, and when James II attempted to rule absolutely, and to overthrow the religion of the country, a bloodless revolution forced him to abdicate the throne, and set upon it his son-in-law, William, an avowed Protestant. The liberties of the people took deeper root by his confirmation of their bill of rights. In thi'-t reign an expedition, headed by the king, was sent out to reduce Ireland, and a war waged with France, not generally successful, but in whicli there appeared some brilliant sparks of enterprise, and one or two fair incidents of good fortune. It was in the reign of his successor, Anne, that the age of English chivalry seem- ed to revive, and the military mania of the two rival nations to be renewed. The valor and skill of JMarlborough triumphed over the most splen- did arrays of military might under Louis XIV. (iVrmany was saved. Gibraltar taken, and Dun- kirk ceded, in a course of victories as brilliant as any which the pen of the historian records. It was also in this memorable reign that the union of Scotland with England took plure. The succession of the house of Hanover now took place. The short reign of George I was principally noted for its domestic and foreign inquietude. The rein'n of George II \vas dis- tinguished by the battle of Dettingen, fought by the king in person ; the defeat of the pretender : the military contests with France; the naval triumphs over that kingdom and Sp;:in: the cap- ture of Goree in Africa, and the conquest of French America. The most inuv>rtant feature of the reiirn of George III. was the loss of America, produced by t.'ie odious tyranny of England. *Ai le of eight years, in which she saw her vast armies and fleets de- feated l,y the bravery of a nation of patriots, Great Britain was compelled to relinquish her HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL BRI 133 BRI wledge th The peace of Europe, which had been settled at Aix-la-Chapelle, was now broken by the diffe- rent powers siding- with the combatants, and thus England was at once involved in war with France, Spain, and Holland, while the dissen- sions of party at home increased to an alarming height. The war was, however, concluded by a treaty with those powers in 1783. The war of the French re volution forms actually a sec- ond period of this reigu. The first direct in- terference on the part of the British, was in two unsuccessful expeditions under the duke of York and Sir S. Hood, and in the capture of some French West India islands, and of Pondicherry in India. In the latter country very great ad- vantages were acquired over the natives ; Tip- poo Sultan was entirely defeated and killed, and Seringapatam captured. France, having disposed of her continental enemies, began to act on the offensive, and un- dertook an invasion of Ireland, seven ships of the line having, with that intent, anchored in Bantry Bay. The war in the mean time had di- vidpd the sentiments of the people, and strong dissatisfaction was manifested by the revolution" ary party. The ministers were firm in their measures, and the king's life was put in danger on his going to parliament. Two attempts at negotiation failed, and the internal difficulties were increased by the stoppage of the bank, the mutiny of the fleet, and the menace of rebellion in Ireland. The first evil was palliated, but the two last were not suppressed without much bloodshed. The intentions of the Frencli were, however, defeated ; 1800 men who had landed in Ireland, surrendered, and the English fleet re- covered its reputation by a victory over the Span- iards, and by the celebrated battle of the Nile, in 1796. These events having raised the spirits of the continental powers, Austria, Prussia, and Turkey joined England against France, while Ireland was pacified by a show of much promise which was to be effected by an union. The allies were defeated at Marengo, with great slaughter, and the English, at the request of the grand Signior, agreed to evacuate Egypt, and made an unsuccessful attempt upon the Boulogne flotilla. Such was the state of things, when, in 1801. both countries found it convenient to con- clude peace. The war recommenced in 1803, by the loss on the English side of Hanover, and the sei- zure of the British in France, which was re- taliated by the seizure of French vessels and seamen. To oppose the increasing power of the new French emperor, Mr. Pitt was chosen minister. In the mean time the most advanta- geous treaties had been concluded with the na- tive states of India, and the French defeated by lord Nelson in the great and decisive naval en- gagement of Trafalgar, in 1805. Nelson, who lell in the engagement, was honored with a magnificent public funeral. This was the last trophy of those great preparations, which Mr. Pitt had made to support his system by the overthrow of that of the French, an object which in the sequel, they certainly accomplished. Pitt died in 1800, and Mr. Fox, his great poli- tical opponent and successor, in the same year. During this period, the successes in other parts had been partial ; but, at home, a triumph over injustice and inhumanity was obtained in the ab- olition of the slave-trade. The new ministry per- sisting in pressing the Catholic claims, received his majesty's intimation to resign. It was at this juncture, in 1808, that Britain made herself a party to reinstate the imbecile Bourbon of Spain. The campaign was commenced by Sir Arthur Wellesley (now lord Wellington), with the repulse of Junot at Virneira ; but the de- feat and death of Sir John Moore, at Corunna, followed. Though the English under Sir Ar- thur Wellesley were still in force in Portugal, and had obtained some advantages, they had to contend equally with the weakness of the Span- iards and the power of the French. They therefore entrenched themselves behind their lines at Torres Vedras. Two expeditions of different fortune took place at this time ; one to the south of Italy, and the other to the island of Walcheren. Several valuable captures in other parts were made. At this period (1810), the insanity of the king in- capacitated him from governing, and his son, the dissipated prince oi Wales, was appointed regent. The war in Spain was still carried on with determination, but with partial success. The reorganization of the Spanish and Portu- guese armies, and the reviving spirit of the Cortes, changed the aspect of arl'Mrs. Meanwhile, Russia. Prussia, and Sweden had entered into alliance with England, who supplied them with vast subsidies to support their armies. Holland, also, by the assistance cf England, had risen on its masters, and Napoleon, pressed by the allies, and having suffered immense losses in Rus- sia, was obliged to give way, and armies en- tered France on two sides. Lord Wellington, proceeding through Spain, passed the Pyrenees through almost unremitted conflict, invested Bayonne, occupied Bourdeaux, defeated Soult CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BRI 134 BRI before Toulouse, and there received the news- of the capture of Paris, and the cessation of hostil- ities. Meanwhile England had been also en- gaged in a war with America, which was prose- cuted on the plea of her assumed right to search our vessels for deserters. The treaty of peace was signed at Ghent in 1814. The next year Great Britain was again called into active co-operation with the other confede- rates, to depose Napoleon, who had returned in triumph from Elba, and resumed the throne of France without opposition. After the victory at Waterloo, the allies entered Paris, and rein- stated Louis XVIII on the throne, while Napo- leon surrendered himself'to an English ship, and was sent to St Helena, where he was de- tained until his death, in 1820. The accession of George IV, January 29, 1620, the trial and death of queen Caroline, and the disturban- ces at her funeral ; the scarcity and distress in Ireland and England, are facts of equal interest and notoriety. George IV died in 1830, and was succeeded by his brother, William IV, who, as, duke of Clarence, had served for a long time in the navy. The accession of the " sailor-king," as he is popularly termed, was hailed with joy by the friends of liberal principles, and the pro- gress of parliamentary and popular reform, is rapid. " The American mind," says an intelligent writer, " appears to have already achieved an entire victory over that of England, even on English ground. The whole British community, the living, thinking, feeling; mov- ing, acting mass denominated the. Public, is thoroughly penetrated, imbued, saturated, if we may use the expression, with American principles. They have already swept down the Test and Corporatigkacts ; the restraints on the Catholics ; the Bnpdstained criminal code ; colonial slavery ; the Chinese monopoly, and above all, the old constitution of the House of Commons. They are now fast undermining tlio bank; -the national debt; the church; the peerage and the throne. They already carry all before them in the House of Commons, the real seat of the government. occupy the minis- terial benches, and thence issue their decrees, in the name of tiie king. The great modern en- gine for nviintairiinjr political influence. 'which has been well described as a Fourth Estate, more important and powerful than the other three put together. the press, is almost wholly with them. The adversary still presents a feeble show of resistance in the House of Lords, and a few journals hang out here ;md there the grand hailing sign of distress. It is even rumored that the conqueror of Waterloo is buckling on his rusty armor, and dreaming of a new ca- reer of domestic conquest. But what can a few gouty old gentlemen effect against the will of the people ? Even Wellington, though backed by the redoubtable Christopher North, would find himself as powerless, in Such a contest, as the renowned knight of La Mancha and his squire, in their encounter with the windmills." England, Wales, Scotland, and Ireland, with the adjacent islands, form the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Ireland. The colonial de- pendencies of Great Britain are of immense importance, and found in every quarter of the lobe. The government is a limited monarchy, ic king being an hereditary sovereign. The parliament, the legislative branch of govern- ment. consists of the House of Lords, compos- ed of hereditary peers, and a House of Com- mons, which is elective. The navy of England consists of nearly six hundred ships. The fleet furnished by British ports with which Ed- ward I'l besieged Calais, was composed of 748 vessels, manned by J4,!)5G sailors. The fleet of Henry V. designed to invade France (1415), consisted of 1500 vessels. The national dfcbt of England amounts to 780 millions sterling. The climate of England is moist, but the soil generally fertile, and tiie agricultural and min- eral productions of the greatest importance. Among the last are coal, copper, tin, and iron. BRITAIN, dynasties of. The following is the succession of sovereigns under the Heptarchy find United Kingdom. The kingdom of KENT contained only the county of Kent; its kings were 1. llengist, who becan ...................... A. D. 454 .. 3. Octa .......................................... 512 4. V mbrick ...................................... M4 5. Ethelbert ..................................... 568 t;. Kdliald ........... ............................ 6)6 7 . I ; i coiubert ..................................... 640 H. K'Ti.ert ........................................ 6fi4 '.). I,..rh:iire ...................................... '<' ; * 1<. Kdrlck ........................................ 684 Jl. Withdred ..................................... 685 ]2 ( Kodbcrt and j 705 "' ? KtlKjIi.ort \ .............................. j:i. r.lhelbert alone ............................... 743 14. Aldrii; ........................................ 760 IT,. Kikebert 1'ren ................................ 794 10. Cudrmi ....................................... 799 17. Hitldred ...................................... 805 It ended in 823, and its first Christian king was Ethelbert. The kingdom of SOUTH SAXONY contained the counties of Sussex and Surrey. 1. Ella began to reign ....................... A. o. 49 HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BRI 135 BRI 514 It ended in 827, and its first Christian king was 59i) Edwin. 2. Cissa 3. Chevelin , 5 Ceofuph ^597 '^ le kingdom of MERCIA contained the coun- ' I Cinigsil" ("" m ties of Huntingdon, Rutland, Lincoln, North- **' ( Ciuicelm j ampton, Leicester, Derby, Nottingham, Oxford, 7. Canowiilch 643 Chester, Salop, Gloucester, Worcester, Staf- 8. Adelwwh... 648 ^ Warwick> Buckingham, Bedford, and It ended in G85, and its first Christian king was Hertford. Adelwach. j. Creda began to reign .A. D. 585 The kingdom of EAST SAXONT contained the 2. Wibba. 595 counties of Essex and Middlesex. 3 - Cheorlas 616 4. Peuda b25 1. Erchenwin began to reign A. D. 527 5. Peada 056 2. Sledda 587 (j. Wolfhere 659 3. Sebert 598 7. Ethelred 675 (Lexred ) 8. Keured 694 4. ? Se ward [ 616 9. Ceolred 709 ( Sigebert) ]0. Ethelbald 716 5. Sigebert the Little 623 11. Offa 757 6. Sigebert the-Good 653 12. Egfryd 794 7. Switbelme 655 13. Oeuolf 795 8. Sphere and Sebbi 665 14. Rerelme 819 9. Sebbi , 683 15. Ceol wolf 819 . ( Sigherd and j 694 l(i. Eurnulf 821 iu - ( Leofrid j "" ]7. Ludecan 823 11 Offa 700 18. YVhiglafe 825 13 - Suithred 746 Jt ended in 827,and its first Christian king was 11. Sigered . .'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.".'.'.'.'.".'.".'.'.'.'.'799 Peada. I, f nded ,. 8,7, and to fc ,t C,,r,,Uan king , J^lf^ >, ? *&* Vhe'kinptem Of NOBTH...1.M..KD Contain- ^ e lf^;jt,T.T:I.. ... 575 ed Yorkshire, Durham. Lancashire, Westmore- 2 " TitflhTs"!. land, Cumberland, and Northumberland; its 3! Redwald'. '.'.'.'...*.'.'.'..'. '. 599 kings were 4. Erpenwald 624 5. Sigebert 036 1. Ella, or Ida, whose reign commenced A. D.547 I Fgrik ) 2- Adda 559 6. j Annas \ b44 3. Clappea 566 7. Ethelhere 654 4. Theodwald 572 3. Ethwald 656 5. Fridulph 573 9. Advvulf 664 6. Theodorick 579 10. Alswald 683 7 Athelrick , 586 n. Beorna and Ethelbert 749 8 Athelfrid 593 12. Beorna alone 758 9 Edwin 617 jrt. Ethelred 761 10 Osric ; i.33 14. Ethelbert 790 12 Oswy ld .'.' .'.'.'.'.'.'.".'.'.'.'.'.".'.'.'.'.'.".'.'.'.".'.'.".".'.'.' .'.'.'.'.'.'.'643 '* ended in 792 > and its first Christian king was is! Ethel w'a'r'd !!!!!!.'!!.'.'.'.'!.'.'.'.' .' .' .' .' .' .' .' .' .' .' .' .' .' .' .' '.'.653 Redwald . - 14. Eafrid 670 The kingdom of WEST SAXONY contained the 15. Alkfrid 680 count j es o f Cornwall, Devon, Dorset, Somer- 15: ^wfeaV.'.V.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.V.V.".':.'.':. .........'.'7?6 -et, Wilts, Hants, and Berks. 18. Osrick 718 1. Cedric began to reign A. D. 519 19. Ceolnphe 730 2. Kenrick 534 20. Egbert 737 3. Cheroline 560 21. Osswulph 758 4. Ceolric 592 22. Edilwald 759 5. Ceoluph 598 23. Alured 765 6. Kingills and duinthelin 611 24. Ethelred * 774 7. Ceonowalch 643 25. Alswald 1 779 8. Adelwalch 648 26. Osred II 789 9. Sexburga 672 27. Ethelred restored 790 10. Censua, Esewin, and Centwin 674 28. Osbald 796 11. Ceadwald 686 29. Ardulph 797 12. Ina : 688 30. AHwaldll 807 13. Adelard V 726 31. Andred , 810 14. Cudred 740 12* CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BRI 136 BRO )5. Sigehert and Cenulph i. D. 754 the empeior Claudius, from Britain. Britanni- itj. Brithick 784 C7 > ' gl)ert '::""':":".""' By the intrigues of Agrippina, the second wife It ended in S28, and its first Christian king was J ciaudius^e was poisoned, after having been Kmgills. excluded from the succession. THE HEPTARCHY UNITED. BROOKLYN, a city of the state cf New Ejjiert.... A. D. 827 York, in King's county. Long Island, separated Ethel i baui . ! ! ' " ! ! ! 1 ! ' ! " :*'*''''' '.ew from the cit y of Npw York by the East River. Elhelbert l[..........'............................K60 The population of Brooklyn is rapidly increas- Ethelred 86(j i n cr with its manufactures and trade." In 1S40 ESiu,VK^;::::::::::::::::::::::::::::::::^ il contained 36,221 inhabitants. At the com- Atlielstan !&9 menccrnent of the present year Brooklyn re- Edmund..'.'.*.'.'.'.'.'. 94(> ceived a city charter. The houses of iecent Edred iM7 date are spacious and elegant, and the heights Ej" a Y '.'"973 which overhang the river and command a view Ed ward't'he" JlHrty'r'.V.V.'.'. ".'.'.'.'.'.'.".'.'.'.".'.'.".'.'.'.'.'.'. '.".'.975 of New York, are studded with neat and pretty Ethelred II ". 979 dwellings, embowered in shrubbery and flowers. S^eyn |[;| The healthiness of Brooklyn, and its contiguity Edmund'l'ro'nsi'de'.'.".'.' '.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.' .'.'.Y.'.'.'lOIti to New York ; have tended to inciease its popu- Harold !".'...'.'.'.' 103(i lation largely within a few years. Between this Hardicanute 1041 place and Flatlmsh. the Americans sustained a Edward the Confessor 1K42 disastrous defeat during the war of the revolution. al1 1UU BROOKS, John, a revolutionary officer and SINCE THE CONQUEST. eminent physician, born in Medford", Mass. 1752. William the Conqueror 1006 j]i s father was a farmer. After completing his Henry"!. US '". "^ ::::'.:::'.'.:::'.l\M professional studies, he joined with ardor the Stephen..... ....'............'.................... IKi'i driay, and was among the first to fight for Henry II 1154 the freedom of America. On the retreat of the John'* I I JU9 ^ r ' l ' s '' fr0111 Lexington, the comp:niy v.hich he Ileliry'Vll 1216 commanded had no small share in contributing Edward I. ........ .'....... ....................... 1272 to the annoyances of that humiliating flight. Edward 11 K:U7 Brooks enjoyed the confidence and esteem of Edward III 1307 o nera i Washington, arid had a colonel's corn- Henry IV.'.'.'. '.'.K99 mission, when the army was disbanded, and he Henry V.. '.'......'.'..'.'.".'.'.'.'.'.......'........'.'...'.. 1413 retired to the practice of his profession. The Henry VI 1422 rank of major-general of militia was conferred Edward 'v^ 1483 UJ1on mm > nnt * ne showed, in the insurrection Richard 111.'.'.*.".'.".", '.'.'.1483 f 17cfO. that he had forgotten none of his for Henry VII ]4g5 mer vigor and address. He was chosen to suc- Henry Vlll 15(;9 C red Governor Strong, and died, highly respect- Mar ;....'.'.'. '.'.'.'.'.'. '.'.'. '.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'. V.'.'.'.V.'. '.".'.'.'.'. V! 1553 ed and esteemed, in the 73d year of his age, Elizabe'th... '..... '.'.'.'.'.".'.'.'.'.'.'.".'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.''."'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.1?)58 March, l.-i-">. James I H;o:i BROWN. Charles Brockden.a distintruished | r ; h "' es J; |fM novelist, born in Philadelphia, in 1771 He was Jhumeli II..V.V.V.' '.!l685 originally destined for the law, but the delicacy Mary' II ...............'.'.'............. ...V. '.'.'.' .'."h -1) of his constitution and his natural timidity pre- William III K89 vented his pursuing a legal career. He was """ JI (I 7 the author of ieveral nuvels. which possess a George II.. '.'.'.'.'. ...... ............ ...'......'... ...1727 fascinating power, p.lthoujrli their scenes are George Il'l .'.'.'. .'...'.. .1760 generally painful and'unnatural. Arthur Mer- GeorgelV 1SJO V y n an d Edgar Huntly are, perhaps, the best. m 1V "^ Brown edited several periodicals, and his literary labors greatly impaired his health, and hasten- ed the progress of the consumption of which he BRITANNICUS Cesar, Tiberius Claudius died in 160'K at the age of 3b. Germanicus. called after the return of his father, BROWN, William, a native of Ireland, who HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BRU 137 BRU came to the United States at the age of 14, in J793, and was for a long time engaged at sea in the merchant service. After being captured by the English, he found himself, in Idl4, at Buenos Ayres, in the command of a British merchant ship. He immediately joined the re- publican navy, and gained great fame by his various daring exploits. BROWNE, Maximilian Ulysses, count, a soldier of the imperial army, finally field-mar- shal of Austria. Between 1745 and 1757 he ran a career of glory. He died of wounds re- ceived at the battle of Prague, 1757. BRUCE, James, a native of Scotland, born 1730, distinguished himself by his travels in Africa. He died in 1794. He claims the hon- or of having been the first European who be- held the spurces of the Nile. His veracity has been often doubted, but his accounts have been confirmed by more recent travellers. BRUCE, Robert, the competitor of Baliol for the crown of Scotland. He regarded Wallace, the celebrated Scottish warrior and patriot, as an ambitious man, who.:<- ;ir' ; only dic- tated by self-interest. He accordingly fought beneath the banners of England, on the field of Falkirk. After that eventful battle, Wal- lace had a meeting with him on the banks of Carron. and convinced him of the elevation of his views. Bruce, softened even to weeping, swore to espouse the cause of his country. BRUCE. Robert, son of the preceding, was one of the Scotch nobles in the train of Edward I. when he returned to London in 1305, exult- ing in his successes over the Scotch. A con- spiracy was formed to place Bruce on the throne, and, through imminent danger, he es- caped to Scotland, and raised the standard of his country. Defeated, his wife a prisoner, his three brothers hanged, it was thought that he himself had yielded up his life. But he had only retired for a season, and, reappearing, he put himself at the head of a brave army, and was completely victorious at Bannockburn, June 24. 1314. This victory decided the inde- pendence of his country. After his claim had been again disputed by the English, Edward III coii irmed the independence of the Scottish crown, by renouncing all claims to it in 1329. The haughty spirit of the Scottish nobles is well illustrated in the following anecdote. When, in consequence of their encroachments on the lands of the king and commons, they were re- quired by Bruce to show their titles to their possessions, they drew their swords, and cried ; " We purchased them, not with gold, but iron ; and these are the instruments by which we hold them." BRUNN, capital of Moravia, and of the circle of Brunn, a manufacturing place, with a population of 33,00& BRUNSWICK, Frederick William, duke of, born in 1771. He joined the war against France in J60(>, and continued, throughout his life, the determined enemy of Napoleon. His black Brunsvvickers, so called from their dress and equipments being entirely black, held out upon the continent as long as resistance was of any avail, and finally their duke retired to Eng- land. In 1615, he again appeared in arms, and fell at Quatre-bras, on the IGth of June. His death was atoned for by the bravery of his black huzzars. BRUSSELS, the capital of the kingdom of Belgium, with a population of 106,000. It is a pleasant city, and was held by the French from 1794 to 1614. It is distinguished for its build- ings, its canals, its fountains, and its manufac- tories. The carpets made here are highly val- ued. BRUTUS, Lucius Junius, a celebrated Ro- man. He was the son of Marcus Junius by a daughter of Tarquin the Elder. When his father and brothers were beheaded by Tarquin, Bru- tus saved himself by feigning idiocy, whence his surname, signifying t/ie Brute, was given him. He continued this appearance until Lu- cretia killed herself in consequence of the vio- lence of Sextus Tarquin. This was the time for Brutus to rouse the Romun people to action, and display the energy of his mind. By his exertions the Tarquin.s were expelled and the monarchy changed for a republic. The con- sulship was then instituted, and Brutus and Collatinus, the husband of Lucretia, were chosen the first to hold that dignity. When his sons joined in the conspiracy to restore the Tar- quins, Brutus, convinced of their guilt, ordered theirexecution, that this example might confirm the liberty of Rome. The same year he was slain at the head of his troops, fighting against Aruns, the son of Tarquin, who also fell in the encounter. This took place, B. C. 500. Bru- tus was mourned by the whole Roman people. BRUTUS, Marcus Junius, lineally descend- ed from the above, whose republican princi- ples he seemed to inherit. In the civil wars he joined Pompey, although the latter was his father's murderer, only because he looked upon him as just an.d patriotic in his claims. After the battle of Pharsalia, Ca;sar not only spared Brutus, but made him one of his friends. He CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BUC 133 BUC however, forgot the favor when Csesar dis- played his ambition and tyranny, and con- spired with many of the citizens of Rome, to stab Ca;sar in the senate-house. Brutus was forced to retire into Greece by the excite- ment created by Antony. Here he gained many friends, but was soon pursued by Antony, ac- companied by the young Octavius. A battle was fought at Philippi. Brutus, who command- ed the right wing of the republican army, de- feated the enemy ; but Cassius, on the left, was overpowered, and Brutus found himself sur- rounded by the soldiers of Antony. He, how- ever, made his escape, and soon after fell upon his sword. B. C. 42. It is said that, previous to this battle, a spectral figure twice the size of life, appeared to Brutus, and warned him of his fate. BUCCANEERS. The French and English freebooters of America acquired so great no- toriety, thn;r roiiline- racnt, was the composition of his unrivalled Pil- grim's Progress, a religious allegory, bearing the impress of a strong mind, and an ardent imagination. Bunyah died in 1U88. BURCKHARD, John Louis, famous for his travels in Africa, born in Bale in J784. His coun- try being oppressed by France, he went to London in 1 800. and was engaged by the African Associa- tion to explore Africa from the north. To fa- cilitate his progress in Nubia and other parts of the country, lie assumed the character of a Sy- rian Turk, and so thoroughly acquainted with the manners and religion of the East was lie. that he underwent an examination by two learn- ed Jurists, and was pronounced by them a learned and true Mussulman. He died at Cairo, April lf>, 1817, and was buried with greatsplen- dor. He was the first modern traveller who reached Shendy in Soudan, the Meroc of the ancients. His travels were published in 181!*. BURGOS, in Spain, the capital city of Old Castile, and once a royal residence, on the bank of the Arlanzon, containing 10,000 inhabitants. Its superb Gothic cathedral is of so great size, that service can be performed in its eight cha- pels, at the same time. It was captured by the British troops in the campaign of ]813. BURGOYNE, John, the natural son of lord Bingly, a general in the English nrmy, and an agreeable dramatist. He entered the army at an early age. and, in 17(i2, had the command of a body of troops sent to Portugal for the defence of that kingdom against, the Spaniards, lie dis- tinguished himself in the American war by the taking of Ticonderoga. but after two severe engagements, was forced to surrender, with his whole army, to General Gates, in 1777. BURGUNDIANS, a tribe of Germans, a branch of the Vandals, who occupied a part of France, in the 5th century, which has since been called Burgundy. It was long an inde- pendent state, but was attached to France in the latter part of the loth century, on the death of Charles the Bold. The independent dukes of Burgundy rendered their name illustrious, and many of them were distinguished for the possession of bravery and other high qualities. BURKE, Edmund, a statesman and great political writer, was born at Dublin, January 1, 1730. lie was contemporary with Pitt and Fox, whose political principles he alternately avowed. After finishing his education at Trinity college, he entered his name at the Temple as ;: law stu- dent, but devoted himsejf 1p literature. His political career commenced by his accompa- nying Hamilton secretary of the lord-lieutenant of Ireland, to Dublin, and on his return he was Birth-place of Robert Burns. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BUR made private secretary to the Marquis of Rockingham. On the fall of the llockingham ministry, he wrote a pamphlet on the subject, and became an active member of the opposition, being chosen for Bristol, in 177-1, without ex- pense. His speeches in the senate had now eclipsed even the reputation of his writings, and \vere delivered with a 'vehemence which it was difficult to resist. On the return of the Rock- mgham administration, Mr. Burke for a short time filled the office of paymaster-general, but he resigned the post, upon the succession of lord Shclburne to the premiership. The leading features of his subsequent political life, in which he held no office, are his impeachment of War- ren Hastings ; his opposition to the limited re- gency in 1788 ; his prediction of the effects of the French revolution : and his separation from Mr. Fox upon those sentiments." This was his last great political act, all his subsequent ones being to establish and defend it. On this sub- ject lie published several pamphlets, the merit of which obtained him a pension, and many se- vere reflections from his opponents, to which he replied in " a letter to a Noble Lord," replete with sarcastic irony, fie died Julv 8th, 1797, having previously vacated his seat'for Malton. Mr. Burke had a most commanding oratory, to enhance which, he spared no incidental act of gesticulation and manner. On one occasion, he is said to have drawn forth and brandished a dagger, to give a greater effect to his words. BURLINGTON, a town in Vermont, situa- ted on Burlington bay. at the entrance of Onion river into lake Champlain. In 1840, it con- tained 4,271 inhabitants. Its commerce is very extensive. It is a pleasant place, has several public buildings, and a university, the reputa- tion of which is established. It is the capital of Chittenden county. BURNri, Robert, one of the most popular of Scottish bards. He was the son of a gardener, and was born near the town of Ayr, January 25, 1759. He had some instruction and was fond of reading. His poetical talent was first displayed in some amatory verses, and his con- versational talents caused him to be sought for by convivial parties, which tended to fix his habits of dissipation. The publication of his poems procured him a sum of money larger than he anticipated, and a high literary reputation. He was enabled to take a farm near Dumfries, and at the same time procured the office of ex- ciseman. He married the early object of his affections, the " bonnie Jean." of whom he has written so tenderly in the most musical of his 141 BYL verses. She survived the poet who immortali- zed her name, and died within the year 1834. Burns might have prospered and enjoyed a long life, had he but listened to the advice and remon- strances of his friends, and forsaken those ruin- ous indulgences which produced, or at least hastened his death, which took place July 21, 1706. His fate was that which usually awaits the intemperate. Burns was emphatically the poet of truth and of nature. It was a court bard (Cowley), who declared to Charles II that poets succeed best in fiction, and however true the assertion might be with regard to life own writings, it is disproved by those of Burns. His most beautiful poems were" composed in the spirit of truth, and glow with the fire of real feeling and passion. Full of affectionate and sad remembrances, he composed the verses" to Mary in Heaven," commencing; " My Mary, clear, departed shade, Where i's thy blissful place of rest ? Sees't thou thy lover lowly laid, Hear'st thou the groans that rend his breast?" In this he celebrates their last meeting. The Mary of Burns was a peasant-girl, whose ac- quirements merely enabled her to read her Bible and psalm-book, and who walked bare-footed to their try sting-place, and yet she inspired the most enthusiastic attachment in a man whose intellect cast a glory upon the hills, and woods, cjid streams of his native land, and a halo round the objects of his love, which will endure as long as the human breast is warmed with the glow of social and patriotic feeling. BUSACO, a convent in Portugal, celebrated for the repulse of the French under Massena, by the English under Lord Wellington, in 1810. BUTLER. Samuel, an English poet, the son of a farmer, born in Strenzham, Worcestershire, in 1G12. His poem of Hudibras, in which the weak points of the Puritans are happily expos- ed brought the author into notice, but did not better his circumstances, and he died poor in 1680. BYLES, doctor Mather, a clergyman of Bos- ton, born in 1706. He was for sometime pastor of Hollis street church, but was removed from his pulpit, in consequence of his Tory principles. His political opinions subjected him to a tem- porary imprisonment on board a guardship. He was however released, but a guard put over him in his own house. The guard was remo-- ved.and then replaced in consequence of further complaint against him. Finally, the presence CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BYR 142 BYR of the sentinel was dispensed with. It was on this occasion, that the doctor happily remarked that he had been "guarded, regarded, and dis- regarded." When two selectmen stuck last in the slough opposite his house, he said to them ; " Gentlemen. I have several times complained of this nuisance, and am therefore pleased to see you stirring in the matter." Byles corres- ponded with i'ope, Lansdowne, and Watts, and possessed some poetical talents. His essays and poems were collected, and published in a volume. He died July 5, 1768. BYNG, George, an English admiral, born in JGM. He became rear-admiral in 1703. In 170(', he relieved Barcelona, besieged by the uuke oP Anjou; and in 1708, frustrated the efforts of the French to assist the Pretender by an invasion. In 17.18, he defeated the Spanish fleet off Sicily. For these, and other services, he received many offices and honors, and was made Viscount Torrington. He died in I ?:!:{. BYNG, John, an English admiral, son of the preceding, served under his father in many ex- peditions, and, although esteemed an able sea- man and a brave man, was ruined by popular animosity. Failing in his attempts to relieve Minorca, in 1755, he was tried by a court-mar- tial, and, although recommended to mercy, shot in 1757. After party fury had subsided, and his conduct had .been dispassionately ex- amined, his intentions were allowed to have been good, his courage indisputable, and his death the consequence of rancorous misrepre- sentation from personal dislike. His conduct in his last momonis confirmed no part of the evi- dence against him; it was cool, determined, dignified, and resigned. Immediate posterity honored him as a British admiral, his connex- ions, as a man of honor, and it was obtained from among the secrets of ministerial intrigue, that he was the victim of ministerial coward- ice, undeserving of the disgrace of an execu- tion, and obedient to orders which the men in office had not the courage to avow. Byng showed, in his last moments, the fearlessness of his disposition, and the elevation of a mind that dreaded only disgrace. BYRON, George Gordon, lord, one of the most. celebrated English poets of modern days, was born in London, January 22, 1788. His mother was a Scotch heiress, only daughter of i.irdori, Esq. of Gight, and his father un Byron, or, as he was popularly termed, for his reckless profligacy, Mad Jack Byron of the Giianls. Tne parents of the poet lived unhappily together, and the heartless liber- tine who transmitted so many failings to his son. squandered the property of the woman he had married for her wealth, and reduced her to com- parative poverty. Economy induced Mrs. By- ron to take up her residence at Aberdeen in 171)0, where her son was placed at school. Her management of young Byron was any thing but judicious, and in her fits of passion, she even reproached him with the lameness of one of his feet, a deformity ,which, although trifling, was severely felt by the sensitive poet, and even en- gendered many of his misanthropic views. It was rarely that lie alluded to it in a jesting way. In his youth, however, lie was acquainted with a child who had a similar defect, and used to say to his nurse, in the Scotch dialect which h; 1 had acquired : " see the twa laddies vvi' the twa club feet ganging up the high street." His rambles among the Highlands of Scotland had a strong effect upon his imagination, and proba- bly kindled the spark, which afterwards bright- ened to a flame. In one of his poems, he says : " Long have I roamed through lands which are not Adured the Alps, and loved the Appenine, [mine, Jievered 1'aniassus, and beheld the steep Jove's Ida and Olympus crown the deep ; But 't was not all long a encounter all the temptations and annoyances inseparable from public educa- tion. School-boys are not famous for feeling, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. BYR 143 BYR and the lameness of Byron was perpetually called to mind by the rudest practical sarcasms. He would often wake, and find his lame foot plunged in a pail of water. Through Harrow, he fairly " fought his way." " I had," said he, in one of his conversations with captain Med- win, " a spirit that ill brooked the restraints of school discipline ; for I had been encouraged by servants in all my violence of temper, and was used to command. Every thing like a task was repugnant to my nature, and I came away a very indifferent classic, and read in nothing that was useful. That subordination, which is the soul of all discipline, 1 submitted to with diffi- culty ; yet I did submit to it ; and I have al- ways retained a sense of Drury's kindness, which enabled me to bear it and fagging too. The duke of Dorset was my fag. 1 was not a very hard task-master. There were times at which, if I had riot considered it as a school, I should have been happy at Harrow. There is one spot I should like to see again : I was particularly delighted with the view from the churchyard, and used to sit for hours on the slile leading into the fields ; even then I form- ed a wish to be buried there." " There were two things that strike me at this moment, that I did at Harrow. I fought lord Calthorpe for writing Atheist ! under my name ; and pre- vented the school-room from being burnt dur- ing a rebellion, by pointing out to the boys the names of their fathers and grand-fathers on the walls." In October, 1805, the young lord entered Cambridge university, where he was little dis- tinguished for application, and showed no great respect for academic honors. He even evinced his contempt for them by keeping a young bear in his room, which he said he was training for a fellowship. In his 20th year be took up his abode at Newstead Abbey, a fine old building which he proceeded immediately to repair. His " Hours of Idleness," now appeared, a collection of poems written during his minority, which was attacked by the Edinburgh Review, with a degree of malignity and violence, that provoked the youthful bard to vindicate his reputation in a satire entitled " English Bards and Scotch Reviewers." This severe and sweeping philip- pic appeared a few days after he had taken his seat in the House of Lords, and gained the fa- vor of the public in a short time. He soon after went abroad, travelling through Portugal. Spain, and Greece. The scenes through which he passed are finely described in " Childe Harold's Pilgrimage." In the east he swam from Sestts 13 to Abydos, and prided himself greatly on this daring feat. He returned to England in 1811, after an absence of two years. He hastened to Newstead, but arrived too late to close the eyes of his mother. About this period, the acquaintance between himself and the poet Thomas Moore commenced an ac- quaintance which afterwards ripened into the warmest friendship. On the 29th of February, 1812, appeared the two first cantos of " Childe Harold," and the success and sale of the work was instantaneous. The hero, a proud but mel- ancholy wanderer, satiated with sensual pleas- ure, was at once recognised as a delineation of the noble author, notwithstanding his decisive denial. The Giaour, the Bride of Abydos, and the Corsair, poems, in all of which the author displayed his unrivalled talents, and accurate knowledge of eastern customs and manners, followed at short intervals. Of one of these 20,000 copies were sold in one day. On the 2d of January, 1815, Byron married Miss Mil- banke, daughter of Sir Ralph Milbanke. The marriage was unhappy, and after various quar- rels, and much distress, the parties separated. Ada, the daughter of unhappy parents, was taken from Byron, who, in 18J(3, left England forever. He gave in conversation the follow- ing melancholy account of his situation imme- diately before leaving England : " In addition to all my other mortifications, my affairs were irretrievably involved, and almost so as to make me what they wished. I was compelled to part with Newstead, which I never could have ven- tured to sell in my mother's lifetime. As it is, I shall never forgive myself for having done so; though I am told that the estate would not now bring half so much as I got for it. This does not at all reconcile me to having parted from the old Abbey. I did not make up my mind to this step but from the last necessity. I had my wife's portion to repay, and was determined to add 10,000 more of my own to it, which I did. I always hated being in debt, and do not owe a guinea. The moment I put my affairs in train, and in little more than eighteen months after my marriage, I left England, an involuntary exile, intending it should be forever." After a residence in Italy, where his dramas, and many poems were written, and where he was alternately dissolute and temperate, the re- volution in Greece engaged his attention, and he determined to embark his person and fortune in the cause of liberty. He was received in Greece with enthusiasm, and proceeded to Mis- solonghi, where his reception was most gratify CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. BYR 144 BYZ ing to his feelings. He immediately formed a brigade of 500 feuliotes. He was aware of the dissensions existing among the Greeks, but was confident of their ultimate success. He was urged to go to Zante, on account of the un- healthiness of Missolonghi. " I cannot quit Greece," he wrote to a friend, " while there is a chance of my being even of (supposed) utili- ty. There is a stake worth millions such as I am, and while I can stand at all, I must stand by the cause. While I say this, I am aware of the difficulties, dissensions, and defects of the Greeks themselves ; but allowance must be made for them by all reasonable people." On the 9th of April, while riding on horse- back, he was overtaken by a rainstorm, and the feverish cold he took was the precursor of a fa- tal malady. He died April 19th, 124 ; his last thoughts, as his words indicated, were with his wife and child. His funeral was solemnized in Missolonghi, and his death publicly mourned in Greece. His body was conveyed to England, and interred at Hucknall church, near New- Btead Abbey. The exterior of the coffin bore the following inscription : GEORGE GORDON NOEL BYRON, LORD BYRON OF ROCHDALE ; BORN IN LONDON, JAN. 22, 1788. DIED AT MISSOLONGHI, IN WESTERN GREECE, APRIL 19, 1824. Most of Lord Byron's vices sprang from his freedom from all control at an age, when he most stood in need of friendly advice and friendly restraint, to guard him from those evils which beset young men, and particularly, young men of rank, in the outset of their career. Yet his reckless gallantry, and laxity of morals, did not efface fine traits of feeling, benevolence, and a respect for virtue. His attachment to his daughter Ada was sincere and lasting ; and he often spoke of his wife with affectioA and re- spect. Medwin says that his absent daughter oc- cupied much of his thoughts. " He opened his writing desk, and showed me some hair, which he told me was bia child's. During our ride and drive this evening, he declined our usual amusement of pistol-firing, without assigning a cause. He hardly spoke a word during the first half-hour, and .it was evident that some- tiling weighed heavily on his mind. There was a sacredness in his melancholy that I dared not interrupt. At length he said : " This is Ada's birth-day, and might have been the happiest day of my life ; as it is !" He stopped, seem- ingly ashamed of having betrayed his feelings. He tried in vain to rally his spirits by turning the conversation ; but he created a laugh in which he could not join, and soon relapsed into his former reverie. It lasted till we came with- in a mile of the Argive gate. There our si- lence was all at once interrupted by shrieks that seemed to proceed from a cottage by the side of the road. We pulled up our horses, to inquire of a contadino standing at the little gar- den-wicket, lie told us that a widow had just lost her only child, and that the sounds pro- ceeded from the wailings of some women over the corpse. Lord Byron was much affected, and his superstition, acted upon by a sadness that seemed to be presentiment, led him to au- gur some disaster. " 1 shall not be happy." said he, " till I hear that my daughter is well. I have a great horror of anniversaries ; people only laugh at it. who have never kept a register of them. I always write to my sister on Ada's birth-day. I did so last, year ; and. what was very remarkable, -.ny letter readied her on my wedding-day, and her answer reached me at Ravenna on my birth-day. Several extraordi- nary things have happened to me on my birth- day ; so they did to .Napoleon ; and a more won- derful c;rcii:i:^:ri'.v still occurred to Marie Antoinette." That Lord Byron should have joined to his religious scepticism some supersti- tious weaknesses, will surprise many ; yet it should seem no incompatibility. There is little or no connection bcUveen reason and sentiment, and all imaginative jx-rsons are liable to this dis- ease : for superstition is the malady of man- himself, only as he is an imaginative animal. Byron once consulted a conjuror, more out of sport than curiosity. He was told that two years would be fatal to him, his twenty -seventh, and his thirty-seventh. In the first he married, in the second he died. BYZANTIUM, named from Byzas. its founder, was situated on the Thracian Baspho- rus, near the small bay of Keras. with three harbors, on the site of the present city of Constan- tinople. The Thracians, Bithyn'sms, and Gauls, attacked this nourishing place, but. after its suf- ferings in the Peloponnesian war. its prospects brightened, and during the reign of Constan- tine the Great, it was'made the capital of the empire of Rome. The Byzantine empire is a name given to the Eastern Roman empire. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL CAD 145 CJEB CABOT, George, a native of Massachusetts, born at Salem in 1752, whose patriotism and perseverance have gained him a high rank in the list of Americans, who have distinguished themselves in the legislative halls of our eman- cipated states. His views of political economy were clear and enlightened. He died at Bos- ton, highly respected, April 18th, 1823. CABOT, or Gabotto, Sebastian, a celebrated navigator, son of John Cabot, was born at Bris- tol, in 1467. He was the discoverer of Florida. He visited the eastern side of the island of New- foundland. John Cabot and his son, Sebas- tian, discovered, on the 24th of June, 1497, the shores of Newfoundland. The neighboring island received the name of St. John, because it was discovered upon the festival of that saint. After having sailed in the English service, Se- bastian went to Spain in 1520, where he was furnished with vessels with which he ascended the river la Plata. He made other voyages also in Spanish vessels. He returned to Eng- land, however, and was graced with various dignities, and entrusted with the direction of the merchant's company formed for the pur- pose of making discoveries. He superintended VVilloughby's expedition in ]553, and an act of Edward VI, dated 1549, grants him a pension of 16(3, a considerable sum if we consider the value of money at that period. He is supposed to have died in 1557. CABUL, capital of Afghanistan, a city of great antiquity, but meanly built. The inhab- itants are Usbecks, Afghans, and Hindoos. The surrounding country is rich in fruits and flow- ers. In 1739 it was taken by Nadir Shah, and plundered by his troops. In 1774 it fell into the hands of Ahmed Shah Abdally, whose son Timour Shall made it the capital of Afghanis- tan. Population 80,000. CABULISTAN. (See Afghanistan.) CACHET, Lettres de. (See Bastile.) CADE, John, a native of Ireland, wiio, hav- ing been compelled to fly to France, return- ed to England in 1450, assumed the popular name of John Mortimer, and raised a formida- ble force at the head of which he placed him- self. He promised to lay down his arms, if the grievances of which he' complained were re- dressed ; but losing his authority over his fol- lowers they committed various outrages which were resented by the well-disposed part of the community. The rebels were defeated, a price was set on Cade's head, and he was killed by one Iden, a gentleman of Sussex. Many of his followers were brought to punishment. CADMUS. This name belongs to several characters of Mythology and history. One, a Phoenician, brought a colony of his country- men to Greece, and introduced letters there, B. C. 1550. CADWALADER, John, a distinguished mil itary officer born in Philadelphia. He command- ed the Pennsylvania troops in the winter of 1777, and enjoyed "the confidence of General Wash- ington. At the battles of Princeton, Brandy- wine, Germantown, and Monmouth, he served as a volunteer or acted in his command, and died in 17d6. CAEN, a French city with 39,140 inhabit- ants, important as the centre of considerable trade and manufactures, and containing several literary, scientific and charitable institutions. It is 132 miles N. W. of Paris. Caen was an- ciently the capital of Lower Normandy, and the favorite residence of William the Con- queror, who was buried in the Mbaye-aux-hom- mes, which he built. Caen was taken by Ed- ward III of England, who met with a desperate resistance. In 144d it passed from the hands of the English into those of .Charles VII of France. In 1562 Admiral de Coligni took it for the Protestants, and in 1715 it was occupied by the Prussians for a brief space. CAESAR, Caius Julius, descended from the illustrious family of Julia, which traced its ori- gin to ^neas and Venus, was born 100 B. C. In his infancy he witnessed the civil wars of Sylla and his maternal uncle, Marius. When Caesar had arrived at man's estate, Sylla, then at the height of power, could not excuse his crime in being the nephew of Marius, and the relation of China. He was proscribed and his sentence revoked only by means of the earnest solicitations of the vestals, and the credit of his family. Sylla is said to have declared, in yielding to their urgency, that they would one day repent having saved the life of a young man, in whom he beheld the spirit of more than one Marius. Young Caesar commenced his military career in Asia. Returning to Rome after the death of Sylla, he gained applause and popularity by his eloquence, an art in which Appollonius of Rhodes was his instruc- tor. While absent from Rome, pursuing his studies, he learned that Mithridates had attack- ed the provinces of the allies of Rome, and ao- coi vjjngly, leaving Rhodes for the continent, he assembled troops and led them against the king of Pontus, whom he vanquished. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CJES 146 C^ES On his return to Rome, finding Pompey at the head of the senate and the republic, and fearing that his connexion with the partisans of Marius might prove disadvantageous to him, he joined the Pompeian party. The office of military tribune, and afterwards that of questor, were conferred upon Caesar. Upon pronouncing the funeral eulogium on his aunt Julia, while enjoying the latter dignity, he pro- duced the images of Marius, which had not seen the light since the dictatorship of Sylla. When promoted to the dignity of edile, he caused the statues and trophies of Marius to be replaced. At this period he was accused of aiming at the supreme power, but the people, whose tastes he flattered, vaunted liis devotion and courage, and the zeal with which he hud discharged his official duties, and the multitude did not forget the magnificent spectacles for which they were indebted to him, and the am- ple arrangements which he had made for the accommodation of the spectators at the public shows. When the conspiracy of Cataline was discovered. Ctesar had the hardihood to recom- mend the conspirators to mercy, and sustained his opinion with a warmth which gave rise to a suspicion that he was not altogether a stranger to the plot. So strongly did the tide of indig- nation set against him, that the knights who composed the guard on that day, waited only for a sign from Cicero to kill him ; but the lat- ter, fearing that it would be impossible to sub- stantiate his guilt, saved him from their fury. Caesar, while engaged in ambitious schemes, mingled in the dissipation of the day, and con- cealed under the exterior of a man of pleasure the traits of a determined foe to liberty. On the death of Metellus, Caesar obtained the office of high priest, although two power- ful men were his competitors. On the day of the election, seeing his mother in tears, he em- braced her, and said ; " Today you will see me a high priest, or an exile." Shortly after this, Clodius having been accused of attempting to corrupt the fidelity of Cccsar's wife, he divorc- ed her, and said, " The wife of Cajsar must not even be suspected." He was then pretor, after- wards the government of Spain fell to his lot. A saying of his at this time proved that he then entertained the most ambitious ideas. At a poor village in the Alps, some of his friends asked if, in that miserable place, power and rank occasioned discussion. " I had rather," said he to them, ' IK- the first even in t: ' ; place, than the second in Rome." He was by no means idle in his government, but made many conquests while he did not neglect his private interests, for he extorted money enough to pay his enormous debts, and enable him to purchase a vast number of creatures. To obtain the consulate, he reconciled Cras- sus and Pompey, and made nsc of both. Al- though he had a colleague, he governed with absolute authority. Bibulus who was associated with him, and vainly opposed his wishes, wittily declared " that the Romans were not under the consulate of Ctesar and Bibulus, but under the consulate of Julius and Csesar." Caesar gained popularity by procuring the distribution of the lands of Campania. Shortly after the union of Pompey with Julia, the'daughter of Ca>sar, the latter obtained the government of the Gauls and Illyria, with the command of four legions. He triumphed over the Gauls, the Helvetians, the brave Bel- gians, and others, carried his arms beyond the Rhine, and raised the Roman eagles in the hitherto unconqnered Britain. During the ten years of the Gallic war, Caesar is said to have possessed himself of 800 towns, and to have tri uniphed in arms over 3,000,000 men. In the midst of his victories, he was ever mindful of his own interests, and robbed even altars and temples to increase his wealth. He is said to have quoted with approbation this sentence of Euripides ; ' ; violate justice only for the sake of ruling." The soldiers were gained by the most liberal presents, and it seemed as if the army was the depositary of the immense wealth which Cirsar was accumula- ting. Thus the troops were the soldiers of Ca?sar, and not of the republic. Rome had become venal every thing was for sale, and Caesar was the purchaser of every thing.. He had come to Ravenna with a legion, when the senate sent bin) a decree, the p'urport of which was, that if, in a limited time, Cossar did not relinquish his command, he should be treated as the enemy of the commonwealth. Three tribunes of Caesar's party, among them Mare Antony, having been expelled from the senate for opposing this decree, fled to the camp of Co?sar in the garb of slaves. War was now declared. The senate com- manded the consuls to look to the safety of the republic, and Caesar ordered his troops to ad- vance to the Rubicon, a small river, separating Cisalpine Gaul from Italy. The republic, which both parties invoked, was no more than a name ; Caesar and Pompey were both heads of factions, who sought to elevate themselves above the laws. Learning the d^feree of the HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. C.ES 147 C^ES senate, Caesar marched directly to the Rubicon. There, the risks he was about to incur, and the evils he was about to bring upon his country, held his mind in suspense for a long time ; but, after having reflected upon the hate and ani- mosity of his enemies, and upon his own strength, he dashed forward, exclaiming ; "the die is cast." His soldiers followed him. Arrived at Rimini, the terror of his arms spread to Rome, where disorder prevailed. Conflicting opin- ions distracted the city, and all energy seemed sunk in the consideration of the greatness of the danger, and the insufficiency of the means of defence. Pompey left Rome, with the consuls, princi- pal senators, &c., and, from Capua, went to Dyrrachium, to which last place he escaped, under cover of night, leaving the whole of Italy in the power of Caesar. The latter, sending his lieutenants to take possession of Sardinia and Sicily, advanced to Rome. The only act of violence which he committed, was the sei- zure of the public treasure, deposited in the temple of Saturn. Pompey's party had idly imagined that the removal of the key was a sufficient safeguard. The tribune Metellus opposed the passage of Csesar, who threatened him with death, sternly adding, " this is an act easier for me to execute, than to name." The tribune retired, and Caesar found in the money the means of subjugating a victorious people. Having subdued Pompey's lieutenants in Spain, Coesar was named dictator. He then went to Greece for the purpose of crushing Pompey. Crossing the sea in a mere fishing boat, he was exposed to great danger, and animated the pilot by the memorable exclamation ; " fear nothing ! you carry Cssar and his fortunes !" The fate of Pompey and of the republic was decided by the battle of Pharsalia, fought 48 B. C., in which Ctesar was completely victorious. He pursued Pompey to Egypt', but was indignant when the head of his unfortunate rival was brought him by his assassins. While he was in Alexandria, detained by the charmsof Cleopatra, and the differences existing between the members of the family of Ptolemy, he witnessed the breaking out of a sedition which shortly became an open war, and called for the exertion of all his energy. After remaining some months in Egypt, he marched against Pharnaces, king of Pontus, whom he defeated with a celerity well expressed in his own words ; " veni, ridi, mci ;" I came, 1 saw, I conquered. There still remained to be conquered some for- midable enemies ; Scipio, Labienus, Cato. and 13* Juba, the king of Mauritania, had powerful armies in Africa. After a campaign in which Ctesar displayed all his skill, Africa no longer sheltered a Roman opposed to him, except Cato, who shut himself up in Utica, and pre- ferred death to submission. (See Cato.) Caesar, who admired elevation of soul, envied Cato the glory of his death, and wept for his fate, as he had shed tears at that of Pompey. The conqueror, after having subjected Africa, and ordered the rebuilding of Carthage, returned to Italy, where he was received with the acclama- tions of the senate and Roman people. Four triumphs were decreed to him. His liberality was felt by the people for whose amusements he- prepared festivals and shows. Notwithstanding the two sons of Pop- pey mustered a strong force in Spain, but were attacked in the plains of Munda, by Cae- sar, and signally defeated, so obstinate was the battle, that Crosar himself declared that he fought less for victory than life, but from the moment that both were secure, every thing was in his power. He re entered Rome, the mas- ter of the world. The triumph which he then obtained for having vanquished Romans excited secret murmurs among the people and senators, but no one dared to utter a complaint in public. The senate decreed him extraordinary honors and unlimited authority. He was declared consul for 10 years, and perpetual dictator: they gave him the titles of emperor, and father of his country. His person was declared sacred and inviolable. He had the privilege of being present at spectacles in a gilded chair, with a crown of gold upon his head. The decree of the senate provided that, even after his death, this chair and the crown of gold should be con- spicuously placed at all spectacles in honor of his memory. There was now but one thing wanting the title of king. He is said to have deliberated whether he should take it. He preserved the republican forms in the midst of an absolute government, and showed himself as able to maintain power, as to gain it. " His clemency," says Montesquieu, " was insulting. It was considered that he did not pardon, but disdained to punish." Having by victory obtained the highest power, he wished to enjoy it as if it had been transmitted to him, and sought too soon to banish the inqui^ides which almost invariably trouble a poww of recent growth. " I had rather," said he, "die at once, than live always in fear." He sent away his Spanish guard, contrary to the adffce of his best friends, and trusting too readily the CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. 148 CAL assertions of his flatterers, who declared, " that after having put an end to the civil wars, the republic was more interested than he was, in his safety." His death was caused by this want of caution. He had formed a plan for conquering the Partisans, and was on the eve of departing for Asia. His partisans, to reconcile the Romans to his assumption of the title of king, circulated a report that the books of the Sibyls declared, that the Parthians could only be subjugated by the Romans, when their leader was a king. The rumor gave the enemies of Caesar a pre- text for seeking his death. A conspiracy was formed against him, at the head of which were Brutus and Cassius, whom he had made pretors. The assassination was to take place on the ides of March, the day on which Ctesar, according to report, was to assume the royal title. The conspiracy was not so secret as to pre- vent the circulation of some reports with regard to it, but Ccesar refused to take any precaution. Moved, however, by the tears and entreaties of his wife Calphurnia, he had made up his mind to remain at home, when Decimus Bru- tus, by representing to him the importance of presenting himself at the senate-house, changed his resolution. As he was leaving his house, a certain Artemidorus placed in his hand a paper containing an exposure of the whole plot. Being unable to read this and other let- ters from the pressure of the crowd about him, Caasar gave them to his secretaries. He had no sooner entered the senate-house, than he was surrounded by the conspirators. Cimber, under pretext of respect, siezed the skirt of his robe, a signal which Casca responded to by stabbing Csesar in the shoulder. The weapon was caught by the intrepid victim, who ex- claimed ; " Wretch ! what art thou doing ?" Cffisar, though repeatedly wounded, defended himself against his assassins, until Brutus struck him, when, fixing his eyes upon him, he mournfully exclaimed ; " and thou, too, Bru- tus ?" Then, folding his head in his mantle, he fell, pierced with thirty -three wounds, at the base of Pompey's statue, March 15, 43 years B. C. He was then 56 years old. The body of Caesar, abandoned by all, was carried home by three slaves. When his will was read from the fcibune, the people made the air ring with theiVcries of grief and anger. The funeral cciOTJonies were distinguished by uncommon magnificence. The senate, who dared not de- fend him in his hour of need, placed him among the gods, and ordered that his laws should be immutable. The results of this assassination were deplorable, for jealousy, ambition, and personal anger armed the greater part of the murderers, and but few among them were ani- mated by a love of liberty. Ccesar, with many faults and foibles, possessed many fine traits, and was fitted by nature to command. His erudition was considerable, and his commen- taries are models of good writing. CAFF A, a port of the Crimea, formerly a considerable place, but now of little importance. It was captured by the Turks in 1475. In 1775, the Russians took it by storm. In 1763, it was annexed to the Russian empire, and is now called by the Russians, Feodosia, from its an- cient name, Thcodosiu. CAFFRARIA, a region of Africa, little known, which includes a tract of country lying in the north-east of the territories of the Cape Colony. CAIPH AS, the high priest of the Jews when Christ was crucified. CAILLIE, Rene, a native of France, cele- brated for his travels in Africa. He won the prize offered by the Geographical Society of Paris to the man who should first reach Tim- buctoo; and, besides other rewards, was pre- sented with the cross of the legion of honor. CAIN, the first murderer, the eldest born of Adam and Eve. For the particulars of his his- tory, see Genesis. CAIRO or Kahira, the capital of Egypt. It contains a population of 350,000, including Arabs or Mohammedans, Copts, Mamelukes, Greeks, Syrians, Armenians, Jews, &c. It is said to have been founded in 973. The Sara- cens having neglected Alexandria, Cairo be- came the capital of Egypt, and is the seat of an extensive commerce. CALABRIA, a mountainous but fertile country, the inhabitants of which are sunk in barbarism. It forms the southern part of Italy, and contains d!K),000 inhabitants. It anciently formed a part of Magna Grcecia, and was cele- brated for the refined luxury of its inhabitants. At. the city of Pizzo,Murat was seized, October 13th, 1815. CALAIS, a sea-port town of France, in the British channel, opposite to Dover. It is strongly fortified, and contains .10,450 inhabi- tants. In the 12th century it was a village belonging to the counts of Boulogne. In 1346, Edward III. of England, after his great victory of Cressy, laid siege to it, and concerted his measures so well, that his adversaries could not throw succors into the place. Nearly 2,000 of HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CAL 149 CAL the wretched inhabitants, who had been sent out of the place to lessen the consumption of provisions, came to the camp of the besiegers. Edward gave each of them a hearty meal, and two shillings, and provided for their future safety- Calais was obliged to surrender to the English, remained in their possession until 155d, when it was invested and attacked by the duke of Guise, and, after a siege of eight days, was obliged to capitulate. Durinof the operations of Francis I, and the duke of Bour- bon, against the emperor Charles V, of Ger- many, a congress was held at Calais, under the mediation of Henry VIII, of England, which proved unsuccessful. CALCUTTA, the capital of the British India, situated on the west branch of the Hoogly, an arm of the Ganges, which is navigable to the city for vessels of any size. The first settle- ment of the English was made here in 16'JO; the climate was at first very unhealthy, but it has since improved. The population is very great. The Black Hole (which see), is con- verted into a warehouse. The commerce is very extensive. CALDERON (Don Pedro Calderon de la Barca Henao y Riano), a Spanish poet and dramatist, born at Madrid, 1601, and died 1637. He served in a military capacity, but afterwards embraced the clerical profession. He was the author of 300 plays. CALEDONIA, New ; a country of North America, west of the Rocky mountains, inhab- ited by the Td-cullies, or," as the whites call them, Carriers, whose number is five thousand. CALEDONIA, New, a large island in the Pacific Ocean, the access to which is difficult and dangerous; discovered by Cook in 1774. The inhabitants are represented as mercenary and treacherous, resembling in appearance the negroes of Africa. They eat, among other articles of food, the nokee spider. The longi- tude of the island is 163 to 1(37 east; lat. 20 to 22 26' S. It is from 220 to 250 miles long, and 50 broad. CALICUT, a city of Hindostan, formerly capital of a kingdom of the same name. It was taken and destroyed by Tippoo Saib, but rebuilt by the English. CALIFORNIA, Old or Lower; a territory of Mexico, comprising a peninsula which is separated from the main land by the Gulf of California. In some places, the soil is covered with a luxuriant vegetation, while in others, barren rocks, and sterile tracts of land present no object upon which the eye can rest with pleasure. The population of the territory is about 14,000, on an area of nearly 40.000 square CALIFORNIA, New or Upper, likewise a territory of Mexico, lies upon the north Pacific Ocean, north of Old California. It has an area of 375,000 square miles, containing a population of 25,000. The soil is fertile, and the woods and waters never fail to yield hunters an abund- ance of game and fish. CALfGULA, Caius Caesar Augustus Ger- manicus, a Roman emperor, was the son of Germanicus and Agrippina, and born A. D. 12. He received its surname from the Caligce (half boots) which he wore. His life, with a single exception, presented only a series of acts of horrible cruelty, disgusting absurdity, and dar- ing impiety. The reputation of his father at first disposed the Romans to think favorably of the son, but after a few hollow displays of clem- ency and liberality, he showed himself in his true light, and, even while a boy, committed incest. He married and repudiated several wives, the last of whom, Cassonia, retained a firm hold upon his affections. His murders were numerous, and rendered memorable by the rank of the victims and the relation which they bore to him. It was Caligula, who wished that the " people of Rome had but one head, that he might sever it at a blow." If the cruelties of the tyrant call forth our indignation, his unmanly follies excite our con- tempt. His treatment of his horse Incitatus exhibited the ridiculous part of his character. This animal had a gorgeous stable, a house to entertain visitors, and frequently dined at the emperor's table, when he was presented with wine and gilded oats. His master even med- itated elevating him to the consulship. Cali- gula appeared in public in the attributes of various divinities, male as well as female, and claimed homage as a Venus and a Mars. Among his absurdities may be reckoned the bridge of boats built from Baioe to Puteoli ; his expedition against Britain, when the soldiers gathered cockle-shells for spoils, and lastly, his design of decimating the German army for a revolt. To this last act the world owed its deliverence from the monster who was mur- dered by Chojrea and Cornelius Sabinus, tary tribunes, A. D. 41. CALIPH. The successors of uniting secular and spiritual functions inmeir persons, assumed the title of Caliph or vice- gerent Many of them were distinguished by brilliant qualities of mind and person, by the s mur s, jnili ^fcd inmei CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CAL 150 CAL patronage of the arts and literature, and by ex- CALMUCS, a branch of the Mongol race of tensive conquests. The most noted among great antiquity. Their tribes are scattered ; in them will be noticed under separate heads, as 1759, a part of them, consisting of] 800 families, Haroun al Raschid. settled on the Wolga, and placed themselves CALIPHS, list of under the protection of the Russian eovern- THE FIRST FOUR CALIPHS. merit, to whom they paid voluntary allegiance. I (Abdallah Ebm Abu Koafas', ) R9O Others are settled in different parts; many of ir ~j or Father of the Virgin. \ A ' D " 632 them are Mohammedans. Their personal ap- Omar 634 pearance is far from pleasinnr and their habits 2{ iman ;::.:v:.::::v::::.v.:v*i; : '.v.v.v: % extremely rude. CALIPH OF THE FAMILY 'OF 'MOHAMMED. CALONNE, Charles Alexander de, an emi- Hassan or Al-Hassan-(So of Mi and Fatima).. . . 660 "ent French statesman, born at Douai m 1734, CALIPHS OF THE HOUSE OF OMMUAH. succeeded to the management of an empty Moawiyah I 661 treasury in 1783, and skilfully met the claims Moaw? ah II 084 u P on ^> without adding to the burthens of the AbdaNah Ebn'zobeYr;'n'ot' ofVlie ho'Jse of Omm'i-" people. He advised the abolition of the pecu- yah, is saluted Caliph of Meca 684 niary exemptions enjoyed by the nobility, cler- Merwan I 684 gy, and magistracy. He was, however, obliged AMV-iVid e i -05 to retire from the ven g pan ce of thos e bodies. Soliman .. .V. V. '. '.V. V. '. '.'.'. V.V. .'.'... .....'... .'..' 715 He a ' et ^ m 1802- Omar n!!!!!!!!!!!. ..!.!'.!..!!!'.!!.!!!!!.!!!!!'. 7is CALVARY, in Hebrew, Golgotha, tiiepiace Jzid It 720 of the skull, a mountain in the vicinity of Jeru- AlvVaTid ii 743 salem > on which our Savior Jesus Christ was Jezid III. . . .\V.V.V.V.'.V.V.'.V.V.V.'.V.'.'.'.V.V.'.'.'.'.'.' 744 crucified. Ibrahim 744 CALVIN, John, second leader ofth&Reform- Merwan II 744 ation in the 16th century, was born at Noyon, CALIPHS OF THE FAMILY OF AL ABBAS. j u i y ]5 15C j) and was destined for the church ^^5S^%. b ^)V::::;7;;.:.7S * an - rly a f >!> e ^ p resented waiiabe*,. Al Mahadi 775 nee in the cathedral of his native place, when Musa al Hadi 785 he was but twelve years old. His progress was Haroun al Raschid (the just) 786 rap id, but it was not long before he received ^ST"" !?2 the seeds of the new doctrines. In 153:5,he was AlMamun clo . . " ^. . ' , ... Al Motasem 833 involved in a persecution with his friend Mi- Al Vathek Billah (by the grace of God) 842 chael Cop, who had defended the reformed doc- Al Motawakkel Alallah 847 trines j n a public discourse. Obliged to quit Al ItoSS?UUh!v;iJ"'t^'I"I!XI!"il"I" 8(33 France, he repaired to B;\le, in 1534, where he Al Motaz 866 composed his famous Institution of Christianity. Al Mohadi Billah 869 He was induced to write this by the persecu- A j ^!? n \ ed l A ' a , 1 , l! \'' ? tions of Protestants, which disgraced the reign Al Hotbftdflfl Ilillah .... &!>2 /.-rt * f n Al Molltaphi Billah 902 of Francis I, of trance. Although received in Al Moctader Billah .......'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'. 908 different places with marks of respect, Calvin Al Klher Billah 932 found the warmest welcome and the safest asy- Al M,maki Bmali!.'!!!!!!;!;!'.'!'.!!'.'.!!!!'.'.'.!!!!.' 941 lum ^ Geneva - Aftersome agitation, the new Al Mostakplii Ilillah'.'.*.'. .'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.".'.'.'.'.'.'.'.". 944 doctrine was generally received at Geneva. On Al Moti l.illah .' ....'.'."".'.'.'.'.'. 946 the refusal of Calvin and Farel, to comply with A'Tay l.illah 974 the decrees of the council of Lausanne, the Al Raver Beamriilah " " l(m magistrates compelled them to leave the city in Al Moktiidi Beamrillah.V.'.V.V*.V.'.V'.'.'.'.'.V.'.".'.'*.'l075 15JB. At Strasbourg, Calvin's reception was Al Mostader Billah 1094 favorable, but he turned a longing look upon Al K ' MV!M illa1 ' llv Gene va. He was finally invited to return, and AlKnti neamril'la.y.'.'.'.'.V.'. '.'."'.'.'.'. '.V.'.'.'.V.V.'l 136 h. CAPE OF GOOD HOPE. Some notice cf the settlements in this part of Africa has been given already. (See Africa.) The Cape, near- ly at the southern extremity of Africa, long in the hands of the Dutch, was found, on the con- quest by the English, in the year 1705, to be 550 English miles in length, and 233 in breadth. The soil is various, but generally fertile ; ani- mals are numerous, and fish abound along the coast. The average annual amount of exports is about 1,000,000. This flourishing colony was originally founded by the Dutch. Van Riebeck. surgeon of one of the Dutch company's ships, having touched at the Cape, was struck with the extent of the bay, capable of containing more than one hundred vessels ; its situation 3 , halfway between Europe arid India; and the nature of the soil, which seemed proper for every kind of cultivation. On his return, he communicated his ideas to the company, who approved of his plan, and gave him full powers to carry it into execution. Van Riebeck ac- cordingly embarked with four vessels, and. after arriving at the Cape, purchased from the inhab- itants land for an establishment, for which he gave them merchandize, to be selected at their own choice, to the value of 50,000 florins. In the year 1805, the Cape was taken, for the second time, by the English, in whose hands it still remains. CAPE VERDE ISLANDS, a group of Af- rican islands, in the Atlantic, opposite to, and 3[>0 mi'les from Cape Verde, belonging to Por- tugal. Their number has been variously stated from 10 to 14. The air is unwholesome, but some portions of the soil is fertile. Rain is unf'requent, and the drought has been so severe, that numbers of the inhabitants have perished from the consequent famine, an instance of which occurred recently. On tli.it occasion, provis- ions were liberally supplied by voluntary con- tributions from the citizens of the United States. The salt manufactured at Mayo, a small island, is exchanged for flour, and this trade is chiefly carried on by means of American vessels. CAPERNAUM, a town of Palestine, on the sea of Tiberias, for some time the residence of our Savior, and in the vicinity of which he delivered his sermon on the mount. It was on the f-ast of Galilee. CAPET. The family name of a royal race, 3G members of which have reigned in France, and 82 in other European slates. The word signifies bratid-hfiid, or perhaps, broad-hat, and was first given to Hugh, son of llmyh the (.'rent. duke of France, ana c<>int of Paris, by his adherents, in the 10th century. CAPITOL. (Capitolium) now Campidoglio, the citadel of ancient Rome, situated on the C.-ipitoline hill. orTarpeian rock. It was plan- ned by Tarquinius Prisons, who commenced it B. C. 614. It was built upon four acres of HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL CAP 157 CAR ground ; the front was adorned with three rows of pillars, and the sides with two. The ascent to it from the ground was by an hundred steps. The magnificence and richness of this temple are almost incredible. It was several times destroyed by fire, and as frequently rebuilt ; Domitian raised the lost and most splendid temple of all, in which the gilding alone amount- ed to nearly 4,000?. sterling. The capitol was in the form of a square, extending nearly 200 feet on each side ; it was the highest part of the city, and strongly fortified. The gates were of brass, and the tiles gilt. The prodigious gifts and ornaments with which it was occasionally endowed, almost exceed belief. Augustus pre- sented to it at one time, 2,000 pounds weight of gold, and jewels to the value of 2,000,OUO/. sterling. A few vestiges of this building still remain ; the Campidotrlio is a modern edifice. CAPO D'ISTRIA, John, count of, a native of Greece, was born at Corfu, in 1780. He entered the diplomatic service of Russia, and was entrusted with several important missions. Having displeased the Russian government by taking the part of the Greeks when their strug- gle for liberty commenced; he retired from public service in 1822, arid was living at Geneva in 1827, when he was elected president of the Greek republic. In this responsible station, his measures appear to have been directed by pure patriotism, and his talents to have been of a high order, although the weakness of the state, and the disorders which reigned throughout Greece, rendered it impossible to form an accu- rate estimate of his abilities. His assassination is too recent an event to require description. CAPPADOCIA, a province of Asia, once of great importance as an independent kingdom, at times, although nominally dependent upon Persia, whose satraps governed it. The Pontus Euxinus lay upon the north, Armenia on the east, Cilicia and Syria on the south, and Lyca- oniaon the west. It was divided mtoC'appadocia Maears to have constantly revolved in the orbit of peace and equanimity ; alternately the pupil of her father, and the preceptress of her brothers, she enjoyed the privileges of home without its restrictions, tasted all the sweets of friendship, unimbittered by jealousy, and, what is more extraordinary, attracted the homage of the great, without submitting to humiliation or incurring reproach. Among the causes of this rare felicity, something may be ascribed to a philosophic temperament, and still more to strict moral discipline, eminently distinguished by directness and steadiness of purpose. To the latest period of her existence (she died in her 89th vear), she retained her aptitude to study, and even persevered in the laudable habit of yielding a portion of every day to classical lite- rature. Nor did she ever cease to cherish that spirit of independence that taught her to -value the privileges of home. In her annual visits to the metropolis, she resisted every solicitation to do- mesticate herself in the mansions of the great, choosing rather to return to her plain lodging, where sne enjoyed in its full extent, the pri- vileges of her own fireside. It would not be easy to find a female character exactly corres- ponding with that of Miss Carter ; perhaps the portrait of the princess Palatine, the friend of Penn and Descartes, offers the closest resem- blance ; and, like madame Dacier, her prevail- ing quality was modesty. To her learning. An- cient Greece, would, perhaps, have raised a votive statue; in Rome her accomplishments would have been eulogized in a funeral oration ; in modern Italy her rare attainments might have secured her progress to academic honors. In England not even a funeral tribute was offered to her memory, no enthusiasm being there in- spired by a female scholar. The purity of her character, her moral worth, her benevolence and dignity, are justly valued. As the translatress of Epictetus, she is cer- tainly less popularly admired, than as the cor- respondent of Miss Talbot and Mrs. Montague ; and the charm of this epistolary collection con- sists in the living sketches which it offers of those who have gone before us, and who. in many respects, are essentially different from the pre- sent age. Curiosity is at once stimulated and gratified by the careless, yet faithful portraiture which these volumes present to us, of bishops and generals and scholars ; fine gentlemen and elegant ladies, strikingly different from those we are now accustomed to meet in parallel lines of society. CARTHAGE, a celebrated city of Africa, the rival of Rome, and long the mistress of Spain, Sicily, and Sardinia. The precise time of its foundation is unknown, yet most writers agree that it was built by Dido about 8(i9 years before the Christian era, or, according to others, 72 or 93 years before the foundation of Rome. This city and republic flourished for several centuries, and attained the zenith of its glory under Hannibal and Hamilcar. During the first Punic war it contained no fewer than 700,000 inhabitants. It maintained three famous wars against Rome, called the Punic wars, in the third of which it was totally destroyed by ^cipio, the second Africanus, B. C. I4G, and only 5000 inhabitants were found with- in the walls. It was 23 miles in circumference, and when it was set on fire by the Romans, it burned incessantly for 17 days. After the de- struction of Carthage, Utica became powerful, and the Romans thought themselves secure ; and as they had no rival to dispute with them in the field, they fell into indolence and inacti- vity. Coesar planted a small colony on the ruins of Cartilage, and Augustus sent thither 3000 men. Adrian, after the example of his impe- rial predecessors, rebuilt a portion of it, and gave it the name of Adrianopolis. Carthage was conquered from the Romans by the arms of Genseric, A. D. 439, and it was for more than a century the seat of the Vandal em- pire in Africa, and fell into the hands of the Sa- racens, in the 7th century. Cartilage was gov- erned as a republic, and had two persons chosen annually, with supreme authority. The Car- thagenians were very superstitious, and offered human victims to their gods; an unnatural cus- tom, which their allies vainly endeavored to induce them to abolish. Their riches and com- merce were immense, and their naval power, at one time, supreme. They bore the character of a faithless and treacherous people, and the proverb Punica fides (Cartluigenian faith), is well known. CARTHAGENA, a sea-port of Spain, and one of the finest ports in the Mediterranean. It is on the east of Murcia, and contains 37.000 inhabitants. It was taken by the Romans un- der Scipio, notwithstanding the defence of the Carthagenians, A. D. 554. The commerce of Carthagena suffered greatly during the domina- tion of the Moors, but it was partially restored by the exertions of Philip II of Spain. CARTHAGENA, a sea-port of New Grena- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CAS 163 CAS da, South America, and capital of the province of Carthagena. It is situated on an island, with a fine harbor, some handsome edifices, and 20.000 inhabitants. CARVER, Jonathan, was born in Connecti- cut, in 1732. He served in the expedition against Canada, and, on the conclusion of peace in 1763, set forth with the intent of exploring the territory acquired by Great Britain, beyond the Mississippi. He did not accomplish his object, but made himself acquainted with re- gions then and still comparatively unknown. He went to England, but was obliged to deliver up his maps and papers to the plantation-office. Having kept copies, however, he published them at Boston, where he died in want, 17dO, aged 48 years. CAREY, Lucius. Viscount Falkland, a young English nobleman, who was born in 1610. His juvenile irregularities were terminated by an early marriage with a young lady to whom he was sincerely attached. In parliament he dis- tinguished himself by an independent course, although lie ultimately espoused the royal cause, and perished at the battle of Newbury, at the age of 34. His private character endeared him to all. He was fond of study, and once observ- ed : "I pity unlearned gentlemen on a rainy day." His literary remains add to his general reputation. CARUS, Marcus Aurelius. a Roman empe- ror, was born at Narbonne, about the year 230. He rose to a military command by his virtues, and was elected emperor on the death of Pro- bus, in 283. He defeated the Sarmatians and Persians, and was killed the same year, by light- ning, according to some ; but according to oth- ers, he perished in the flames of his tent, which was consumed by the work of an incendiary. CASAS, Bartholomew de las, a Spanish pre- late, the apostle of the Indians, came to Ameri- ca with Columbus, but returned, and having distinguished himself in his theological studies, was rewarded with preferment. His life was passed in laboring to protect and improve the natives of the New World, and he received the grateful title of protector of the Indians. CASHMERE, a province of the Seik con- federacy, in Asia, containing 2.000,000 inhabit- ants. It is surrounded by the Himmalaya and Hindoo Koh mountains, and abounds with the most striking and romantic views. The air is temperate, and, from the profusion of its flow- ers, the fertility of its soil, and the variety of its productions, it is most justly called the paradise of India. The religion is that of Brama, the inhabitants being Hindoos, although their mas- ters, the Afghans, are professed Mohammedans. Cashmere, the capital, on the Be hat, contains 200,000 inhabitants. The shawls of Cashmere are the most splendid and costly. CASIMIR. The name of several kings of Poland. Casimir the Great, succeeded Ladis- laus in 1333. He took several places from John, king of Bohemia, successfully opposed the Teu- tonic knights, and made himself master of Lit- tle Russia. He united to his warlike qualities, many of the virtues of a great monarch, and, from his devotion to their interests, was called Peasants' Kins. He died in 1370. CASSANDRA, also, Alexandria, daughter of Hecuba and Priam, king of Troy. She re- ceived the gift of prophecy from Apollo, who loved her, but as she refused to fulfil the condi- tions upon which the knowledge was imparted, the offended deity deprived her predictions of the power of commanding belief. Thus, when she foretold the fall of Troy, her words were discre- dited. Troy was taken, Cassandra dishonored at the altar by Ajax, and afterwards dragged away as the slave and companion of Agamemnon, with whom she was slain by Clytemnestra, but not until she had become the mother of the twins Teledamus and Pelops. CASSIUS, Longinus Caius, was the friend of Brutus, and opposed to the interests of Caesar, to whom, however, he surrendered after the battle of Pharsalia. When he perceived that Cffisar aimed at supreme power, he joined the conspiracy. " The lean and hungry Cas- sius," as Shakspeare calls him, was among the first to strike the master of the world with his dagger. He married the sister of Brutus, and in the distribution of the provinces, obtained Africa as his share. He was defeated with Brutus at Philippi, and killed himself, B. C. 42. CASTILE, a province of Spain, which is subdivided into the intendancies of Madrid, Guadalaxara, Cuenca. Toledo, and La Mancha, whose capitals have the same name with the ex- ception of the last, of which Ciudad Rodrigo is the capital. The climate of this province is temperate, and the soil is naturally productive, although the scattered inhabitants pay but little attention to agriculture. Old Castile, another province of Spain, is of the same length as New Castile, 220 miles, but only 120 broad, while the latter is 1(30 miles in breadth. It is subdivided into the intendancies of Avila, Segovia. Soria, and Burjros. The united population of Old and New Castile is 2,177,800. CASTINE, a sea-port town of Maine, and CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CAT 164 CAT capital of Hancock county. In 1840 it had 1,188 inhabitants. Its trade is flourishing. C ATA LINE, Lucius Sergius, a celebrated Roman, descended from a noble family. When he had squandered away his fortune by his de- baucheries and extravagance, and been refused the consulship, he secretly meditated the ruin of his country, and conspired with many high- born Romans, as dissolute as himself, to murder the Senate, plunder the treasury, and set Rome on fire. This conspiracy was timely discovered by the consul Cicero, whose eloquence at this crisis will never be forgotten. Cataline, after he had declared his intentions in the full senate, and attempted to vindicate himself, on seeing five of his accomplices arrested, fled to Gaul, where his friends were raising a powerful army to support him. The remaining conspirators were punished. Petreius, at the head of the consular troops, defeated the rebels in Etruria, Jan. 5, B. C. G2, in a hotly contested battle which cost Cataline his life. The crimes of this man were of the blackest dye, murder and licentiousness marking every stage of his career. CATALONIA, anciently Tarraconensis, a fertile province of Spain, bounded north by France, east and southeast by the Mediterra- nean, southwest by Valencia, "and west by Ar- ragon. Its form is that of a triangle. Some idea of its extent may be formed from the amount of its population, which has been esti- mated at 858,618. CATANIA, anciently Catnna, a city of Sicily, 47 miles southwest of Messina, with a population of 50,000. It is situated at the foot of mount ./Etna, and is subject to earthquakes, one of which, occurring in 1693 destroyed 18,000 people, and by overwhelming the old city in lava, laid the foundation for the present city, which contains several large public building's. The principal exports are grain, oil, wine, &c. CATHARINE, the daughter of Charles VI of France, was claimed by the victorious Hen- ry V of England, whose hand she accepted. After the death of Henry, she became the wife of Owen Tudor, and had a son named Edmund, who became the father of Henry VII. She died in 1431. CATHARINE of Arragon, youngest daugh- ter of Ferdinand and Isabella, sovereigns of Arragon and Castile, was born in 14811 In l.MM she was married to Arthur, son of Heiirv VII. and on his death, five months after, to Henry. Krince of Wales, afterwards Henry VIII. By im she had several children, who died young, with the exception of Mary, afterwards queen of England. Henry repudiated her on pretence of religious scruples grounded on her former marriage. She maintained her rights with dig- nity, and died at Kimbolton castle, in 1536. CATHARINE De Medici, the only daughter of Lorenzo de Medici, duke of Urbino, and wife of Henry, duke of Orleans, son of Francis I. She was the mother of three successive kings of France, and one Queen of Navarre. In 1559 she became a widow, and her son Francis succeeded to the throne, during whose rcigii, her influence was supplanted by the Guises. On the accession of her other son, Charles IX, in his eleventh year, she acquired the chief au- thority, and brought eternal infamy on her name by her horrible treachery to the Huguenots, and the massacre of St. Bartholomew's day. She died in 1589. She was very extravagant, seem- ingly incapable of setting bounds to her expen- ditures. When upbraided with her prodigality she would exclaim : " One must live !" She was stained with many and most odious vices. CATHARINE I, empress of Russia, the most noted female sovereign of modern days. Her early history is involved in great obscurity. It is said that she was a peasant-girl of Livonia, born about 1G8C, and that having lost her pa- rents at an early age, she was taken under the protection of a respectable clergyman who super- intended her education till his death. She then travelled to Marienburg to seek her fortune, and there married a Swfdish dragoon, who was killed on the very day of their nuptials, at the siege of that place in i702. From the hands of one of the Russian officers, she passed into those of prince MeazikofT. who found it useful to his political designs to introduce her to the Czar Peter. She first became his mistress, and after- wards his wife, and although she was suspected of infidelity, she was left, at his death, possessor of the throne, and was declared empress in 1725. She cnrried into execution the great designs which had been left unfinished by her husband, and died in 1727, being then but forty -two years old : intemperance, however, is supposed to have shortened her days. CATHARINE II, empress of Russia, boni in 17'<>!. was the daughter of the prince of An- halt-Zerbst, and originally named Sophia Au- irust.il. Her wlenta were of the highest order. Soon after her marriage with the grand duke of Russia, in 1745. that prince suspecting her of infidelity, formed an attachment to the daugh- ter of Count WoronzofT. and, on his accession to the throne in 17G1, discovered liis intention HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CAT 165 CAT of divorcing Catharine, and marrying the ob- ject of his illicit passion. At this juncture a conspiracy was formed between Catharine and the army ; Peter was surprised, compelled to sign a renunciation of the throne, kept as a prisoner, and soon after strangled. History evidently clears Catharine of a direct participa- tion in this crime, though the impunity of the murderers proves that she did not regret its commission. She, however, countenanced the friends of Peter, and pardoned the countess of Woronzoff. At the commencement of her reign she con- ciliated the affections of her subjects, and cul- tivated the arts of peace; in 1764, her favorite, Poniatowski, was crowned king of Poland, and Ivan, who had been IS years in a state of mental imbecility, died in prison. In 17G8, she enter- ed into war with the Porte, which she termin- ated with reputation and advantage in 1774; and having quelled a revolt under the cossack PugatscheiF, devoted herself to the improve- ment and prosperity of her kingdom. In 1780 she engaged in the armed neutrality to protect the trade in the Baltic. In 1733 she seized on the Crimea, and having formed a league with Ger- many, intimidated the Porte from making re- prisals. At length, however, war was declared, Oczakow was ^stormed, Ismael taken after a sanguinary struggle, the Turkish force in the Black Sea destroyed, and a peace concluded which guaranteed Oczakow to the empress. Her last great measure was the reducing and dismemberment of Poland, in consequence of a revolt. She was a woman the brilliancy of whose talents was obscured by the indulgence of many cross propensities. She died ot apo- plexy. Nov.. 17%. CATO. Marcus Portiua. commonly called the Censor, was born at Tusculum, 23'2 B. C. He dis- tinoruished himself in the army at the age of 17, and was remarkable for his temperance and abstinence. In Sicily and Africa, as military tribune and qurestor, he was noted for the fidel- ity with which he discharged his duties. Being chosen censor, he opposed Valerius Flaccus, his colleague, in his attempt to repeal the Oppian law, which was once passed for the suppres- sion of luxury. He conducted the war in fur- ther Spain with great success, and took no part of the spoils to his own share. On his ar- rival at Rome he was honored with a triumph. As consul he manifested his dislike to luxury, in whatever shape it was presented. He also distinguished himself by his hatred to Car- thage, always concluding his speeches in the senate with the expression. " Preterea censeo Carthaginem esse ddendam." (Besides I think it necessary to destroy Carthage.) He died B. C. 147. In his old age he gave himself up to social enjo3 r ments. CATO, Marcus Portius, surnamed of Utica ( Uticcnsis) from the place of his death, was the great-grandson of the preceding, and born about 93 B. C. The virtues he displayed in his early childhood seemed to prognosticate his future greatness. At the age of fourteen, he earnestly asked his preceptor for a sword to stab the tyrant Sylla. He served in the army against the insurgent gladiator Spartacus, and though his services entitled him to the office of tribune, he never applied for it, till he saw it in danger of being filled unworthily. He was very jealous of the safety and liberty of the republic, and watched carefully over the conduct of Pompey, whose power and influence were great. In the conspiracy of Cataline he supported Cicero, and was instrumental in procuring the capital pun- ishment of the conspirators. When the provinces of Gaul were decreed for five years to Csesar, Cato observed to the sen- ators, that they had introduced a tyrant into the capital. Being sent to Cyprus against Ptolemy, by the influence of his enemies, who hoped to injure his reputation, his prudence extricated him from every danger. That prince submitted to him, and, after a successful campaign, Cato was received at Rome with the most distin- guished honors, which he, however, modestly declined. He strenuously opposed the first tri- umvirate between CfBsar, Pompey. and Cras- sus. and foretold to the Roman people all the misfortunes that soon after followed. After re- peated applications he was made pretor. but un- successfully applied for the office of consul. When Caesar had passed the Rubicon, Cato advised the Roman senate to deliver the care of the republic into the hands of Pompey, and when his advice had been complied with, fol- lowed him. with his son to Dyrrachium, where, after some inconsiderable success there, he was entrusted with the care of the ammunition, and the command of 15 cohorts. After the battle of Pharsalia, Cato took command of the fleet, and when he heard of Pompey 's death on the coast of Africa, he traversed the deserts of Libya, to join himself to Scipio. He, however, refused to take the command in Africa, but when he heard of Scipio's defeat, fortified him- self in Utica. Ciesar approached the city, but Cato disdained to fly, and strengthening his resolution by reading Plato's treatise on the CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CEC 166 CEL immortality of the soul, gave himself the fatal wound, B. C. 44. Caasar, on hearing of his fate, exclaimed : " I envy thee thy death, since thou couldst begrudge me the pleasure of saving thy life." Lucari mentions this virtuous Roman in the following line: Victrix causa displacuit, sed victa Catoni : which is thus literally rendered in prose The successful cause pleased the gods, but the un- successful Cato. A statue was erected to his memory in Utica. CAUCASUS, a vast chain of mountains in Western Asia, inhabited by a great variety of tribes. It is of immense extent, lying between the Black and Caspian seas, and covering 127,140 square mik's, being 644 miles long, and, at the widest, 1S4 miles broad. CAVENDISH, William, the first duke of De- vonshire, was born in 1640. He distinguished himself in the house of commons against the court, and was a witness in favor of Lord Rus- sell, with whom he offered to exchange clothes to enable him to effect his escape. In 1684 he succeeded to the title of earl of Devonshire, and about the same time was fined 30,000 and imprisoned in the king's bench for assaulting Col. Culpepper, who "had insulted him, and whom he dragged by the nose from the pres- ence chamber, lie gave bond for the payment of the fine, which, however, he saved by the arrival of the prince of Orange. In 1689 he was made a privy-counsellor, and at the coro- nation of William lie served as lord-high-stew- ard. He was rewarded with the title of duke of Devonshire, and during the king's absence, after the death of the queen, was appointed one of the regency. He died in 1707. CAXTON, William, an Englishman who introduced the art of printing into his native country in 1474. He died in 1492. CAYENNE, or French Guiana, a French colony in South America. It is bounded as follows ; north and northeast by the Atlantic ocean, east and south by Brazil, and west by Dutch Guiana. Population 18,400. Beside the main production, Cayenne pepper , this province yields sugar, cotton, coffee, cocoa, indigo, maize, cassia, and vanilla. The French colonized Cay- enne in 1635. After having 1 fallen into the hands of the Eng- lish and the Dutch, it revolted to its original possessors in 1677. CECIL, William, Lord Burlcigh, a celebrat- ed statesman, born in 1521. He was dismissed from the office which he held under Henry VIII, upon the accession of Mary, but held several appointments under Elizabeth. After being privy-counsellor, secretary of state, and master of the court of wards, he was chosen chancellor of Cambridge, and raised to the peer- age. He died in 1598 CECIL, Robert, earl of Salisbury, son of the- preceding, on account of lu's deformity, and weak constitution, received the rudiments of his education at home. In 1588 he served in the fleet against the Spanish Armada, and in 1591 was knighted, and sworn of the privy - council. In 1596 he was appointed secretary of state, to the great disgust of the earl -of Essex. The year following he was ambassador in France, and in 1599 succeeded his father in the court of wards. He kept up a secret cor- respondence with kin jr Jrmif.s. whom he pro- claimed on the death of Elizabeth, in conse- quence of which he became the favorite of that monarch. On the death of earl Dorset, in 1608, lie became lord high treasurer, discharging the duties of the office with fidelity, arid dying from excessive exertion in 1612. CECILIA. One of the Romish saints of this name is considered the inventor of the organ. and is said to have suffered martyrdom A I). 22(1. CECROPS,a native of Sais, in Egypt, came to Attica 1550 B. C. founded the city of Athens, instructed the uncivilized Greeks, introduced the worship of Minerva, and laid the foundation of the future prosperity of Greece. He died after a reign of 50 years. CELEBES, an island in the East Indian Ocean, 500 miles long, and 200 broad, contain- ing several separate states. The fruits and flowers of this island are abundant, and num- bers of wild animals are found here. The Dutch who possess a part of the island, obtain here gold, ivory, sandal wood, rice, cotton, camphor, ginger, long pepper, and pearls. CELLINI. Bcnvenuto, united the talents and skill of a sculptor, engraver, and goldsmith. He- was born in Florence in 1500. and enriched his native city with his works. Wild, fiery, and impetuous, although honest, he was frequently involved in quarrels in which he entirely dis- regarded the rank and strength of his oppo- m:nts. At the siogo of Rome, according to his own account, he killed the constable of Bour- bon. Although he behaved with gallantry dur- ing the siege, he was accused of secreting the Roman crown jewels, and imprisoned. Francis. 1, having procured bwtelease, invited him to the French court, but Florence was not to be 'orgot- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CER 167 CER ten by the sculptor, and thither he returned, and died in 1570. CELSUS, a Roman medical writer and prac- titioner, who flourished in the Augustan age. CELT^E, one of the ancient nations or Gal- lia, whose country extended from Brittany to the Alps and Rhine. Their government was aristocratical, and their aptitude for warlike pursuits great. CELTiBERIA, an ancient country in the N. E. part of Spain along the Iberus. The Celti- berians were completely subdued by the Ro- mans in the Sertorian war. CENTAURS, an ancient people of Thessaly on Mount Pelion. As little was known with re- gard to their actual history, they formed the favorite theme of writers of fable, and tradition- ary tales, being represented as half horse and half man, and being, according to some, the offspring of an intermixture of the human and brute races, or, according to others, the child- ren of Ixion and the Cloud. They were prob- ably young men who, having learned to break and ride horses, hunted the wild bulls that rav- aged the neighborhood of Mt. Pelion, during the reign of Ixion. Hence they were called Centaurs. In fables, Hercules, Theseus, and Pirithous, are said to have contended against CENTRAL AMERICA, formerly the king- dom of Guatimala, is bounded N. by Mexico and the bay of Honduras, E. by the Carribbean sea, and the province of Veragna, and S. W. by the Atlantic ocean, and has a population of 2,000,000. The country is mountainous, con- taining numerous volcanic summits, the soil fertile, and the products various. The republic is a confederacy consisting of the states of Gua- timala, Salvador, Honduras, Nicaragua, and Costa Rica, and declared itself independent in 1821, after some sanguinary struggles. The original inhabitants were the Tolteoas Indians from Mexico, whom it was found no easy task by the Spaniards to expel. These people, like the Mexicans, had made considerable advances in the arts, as their buildings of various des- criptions proved. CERBERUS, a three-headed dog, with snaky hair, the offspring of Echidna, and the giant Typhon, and the untamed guardian of the gate of hell. Hercules subdued him, although the furies could not. CERIGO, a small island in the Mediterra- nean, near the Morea, and belonging to the Ionian republic, it was anciently called Cythera, and was sacred to Venus. 15 CERVANTES SAAVEDRA, Michael, was born of a noble family, at Alcala de Henares, in New Castile, in 1547. He early cultivated poetry, and preserved, throughout his life, a strong inclination for the muses. In 1561), Cervantes, in the flower of his age, went to seek in Italy, glory or fortune. He first enter- ed the service of Cardinal Acquaviva, in the capacity of page. The war between the grand seignior and the Venetians, offered him a field more worthy of his birth and courage. He was enrolled beneath the banners of "the duke of Paliano, Mark Antony Colonna, general of the naval force sent to succor the island of Cyprus. This expedition was unfortunate ; but, in the following year, the victory of Lepanto reestab- lished the naval honor of Christendom, and Cervantes lost his left hand in this engagement whose glory he shared. In 1575 he was taken by a corsair and carried to Algiers, where he suffered the evils of slavery for six years. The tale of The Captive, inserted in his novel of Don Quixotte describes vividly the scenes through which he passed. His marriage followed close upon the publication of Galatea, in 1584. This novel celebrates his mistress Catharine Salazer y Palacios. His pen then became the only sup- port of Cervantes. The gloomy reign of Philip II, and that of his successor Philip III, were unfavorable to the efforts of genius, but while the latter of these monarchs filled the throne, the inimitable novel of Don Quixotte made its appearance. The first part appeared at Madrid, in 1605, and the second in 1615. The other works of Cervantes are forgotten in the contem- plation of this. The history of the knight of La Mancha still excites the interest of people of all countries, of all ranks, and of all ages. Who delights not to recall his principal adventures the at- tack on the windmills the affair of the puppets the affray with the wine-skins the vigil of arms the scene of his studies ? This celebrat- ed work was written in prison, Cervantes hav- ing become obnoxious to the authorities of La Mancha, who procured his imprisonment by the employment of one of the thousand arts known to the civil functionaries of Spain. He revenged himself by making his hero a towns- man of his judges, and in choosing their coun- try for the theatre of his exploits. Cervantes died at Madrid, on the 23d of April, 1616, in his 69th vear. He was interred pursuant to his own directions, in the church of the fraternity of the trinity in that city. His intimate friends mourned for the virtuous citizen, and the man CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY CHA 168 CHA of worth. The wits of his day, who had decri- ed his talents, did not consider his loss an irre- parable one, and were far enough from believ- ing that Spain would one day have only the romance of Don Quixotic to oppose to the mas- ter-works of other nations. CEUTA, anciently Septa, a town of Fez, on the African coast of the Mediterranean, with 8.000 inhabitants. It is opposite to Gibraltar, and belongs to Spain, although gained by the Portuguese in 1415. CEVENNES, or Sevennes,a chain of moun- tains in the south of France, forming a branch of the Alps ; the highest summits are somewhat more than 6,200 feet high. CEYLON, or Seilan, an island on the Coro- mandel coast. The climate is generally healthy, the soil fertile, and the variety of its productions surprising. In the bosom of the earth are found precious metals, the rocks are enriched with valuable gems, and the tropical fruits grow wild here. About 340,000 pounds of cinnamon are annually exported to England. In the re- cesses of the forests are found elephants, leop- ards, jackalls, monkeys, &c. The number of inhabitants exceeds 1,000,000. The Cinga- lese, who form a portion, are divided into castes like the Hindoos, and profess the religion of Buddha. " Ceylon," says bishop Heber " might be one of the happiest, as it is one of the loveli- est, spots in the universe, if some of the old Dutch laws were done away, among which, in my judgment, the most obnoxious are the mo- nopoly of Cinnamon, and the compulsory labor of the peasants on the high roads, and other species of corcies." The Portuguese, who early settled here, so exasperated the natives, that the Cingalese took part with the Dutch, who succeeded in expelling them in IGoli. The Dutch, being regarded in the light of benefactors, were re- warded with lavish grants of territory, but repaid kindness by ingratitude, and bloody wars arose, in which the Europeans were invariably victorious. In 1795, the English took posses- sion of this island, which was formerly ceded to them in IcUfi, and completely subjected in 181 5. CIIALD./EA, an ancient country of Asia, near the junction of the Tigris ;md Euphrates; it was the southerly part oi'Bahylonia, and was extremely fertile. The Chaldeans were ;.u Asiatic tribe originally, and possessed great astronomical knowledge. It was they 'who founded the mighty empires of Babylon and Asyria. The knowledge, of which they boasted, was eventually confined to the priests, who added to their sciences the arts of prophecy, magic, &c. CHALONS. The name of two considerable cities in France, Chalons-sur-Saone, and Cha- lons-sur-Marne, situated on the Saone and Marne. The last mentioned and most import- ant, contains 12.413 inhabitants, and was an- ciently called Catalaunum. CHAMPAGNE, formerly a province of France, now forming several departments. It is highly fertile and produces fine wines; it contains 1.200,000 inhabitants, and is 11)5 miles long, and 135 broad. CH AMPE, John, a native of Loudon county (Va.). At the age of 24, in the year 177(5, he entered the revolutionary army with the rank of sergeant-major, in Lee's cavalry. His repu- tation for resolution and address was such, that he was selected to attempt the seizure of Ar- nold, that the execution of the traitor might save the life of Andre. His orders were given him, he left the American camp as a deserter, arrived at New York after a perilous journey, and, after being closely examined by Sir Henry Clinton, was admitted to serve under him. He failed in the attempt to accomplish his object, and went to Virginia with the royal troops. Escaping, he rejoined his friends, after many hardships. When Washington took command of the army, during the administration of Pre- sident Adams, it was his intention to bring Chainpe into the field at the head of a company, but he learned to his grief, that the gallant fej- low had died in Kentucky. CHAMPLAIN, Samuel de ; a French naval officer, who founded Quebec and Montreal in Canada, of which he was governor-general, He died in Ki:'>4. CHAMPLAIN, a lake of the United States, lying between New York and Vermont, I'M miles long, and from 1 to 10 miles broad. The Richelieu or Sorellc forms the outlet by which its waters are discharged into the St. Lawrence. Here, on the 1 Hh of September, 1]4, Com. Macdonough, the commander of an American fleet, crained a complete victorv over the British. CI1AMPOLL10N (the yoUnger), a French- Hum, who has done more than any other man of science towards explaining 'Hieroglyphics of Egypt. His death, in ltv.2. in the midst of his triumphant researches, was regri-ttecl as an almost, irrepnrnble loss'. CHANTREY, Francis, a distinguished Eng- lish sculptor, whose peculiar talent was devel- oped at an early age. His works are numerous ; HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL CHA 169 CHA one of them, a statue of Washington, is placed in the State-house at Boston. CHAPEL HILL, a town of Orange county, North Carolina, the seat of the university of North Carolina, a well-endowed and respecta- ble institution. CUARLEROI, or Charles sur Sombre, a town in the Belgian province of Hainau, for- merly Charnoy ; contains 3,744 inhabitants. It was founded by Charles, king of Spain, in 16G(i. After passing successively from Spain to France, and Austria, it remained in the hands of France, after the battle of Fleurus, until 1814. In 1815, Bonaparte chose this place as the first point of attack on the Prussians, who were driven from it, June 15, and compelled to retreat to Fleu- rus. CHARLES I, called Charlemagne, a com- pound word, signifying Charles the, Great, king of France, emperor of the East, was born in 742, at the chateau of Saltzburg, in Upper Ba- varia. He was the son of queen Bertrade and Pepin the Short, on the death of whom, in 7G8, he was crowned king, sharing France with Carloman, his younger brother; but the condi- tions of the partition were frequently changed without ever giving mutual satisfaction, and the nobles, who had long sought to weaken the royal authority, would, without doubt, have profited by the animosity which existed between these two princes, if the death of Carloman, which took place in 771 , had not given Charle- magne an opportunity of becoming sole king of France, by preventing the succession of his nephews. Their mother fled with them to Italy, and found a protector in Desiderius, king of the Lombards. *They fell into the hands of Charlemagne, on the taking of Verona, and of their future fate, history says nothing. If Pepin had need of courage, activity and extreme prudence to found a new dominion, Charlemagne found it necessary to enchain the minds of men by fear and admiration, for the means employed to effect usurpation, had en- feebled the sovereign power. The people of Aquitania were the first who tried to aim at independence. Charlemagne marched against them with a small force, but he relied upon Carloman, his brother, to whom a part of Aquitania belonged, and who, in con- sequence, was compelled to unite with him. Carloman found him at the appointed spot, at the head of his troops, but fearing to fall before the power of his brother, Carloman hastily retraced his steps. Abandoned thus, unexpect- edly, in a manner which could not fail to en- courajre the rebels, Charlemagne did not hesi- tate for a moment : without considering the number of his followers, nor that of his enemies, he pursued his way, gained a brilliant victory (770), arranged the affairs of Aquitania with a promptitude and foresight which displayed the energy of a great man, and the skill of a politi- cian, and disconcerted the tributary princes of France, who thought to profit by the youth of the monarch. When Charlemagne found him- self sole master of France, he formed the pro- ject of subjugating the Saxons. These people, who were still pagans, occupied a large portion of Germany ; like all barbarous nations, they preferred plunder to fixed establishments, and they were divided into many tribes, whom it was difficult to unite in the same interest. Charlemagne began to wage war upon them in 772, and did not complete Iheir subjugation until 804 ; so obstinately did they resist, for 32 years, the conqueror who, sometimes indulgent to imprudence, and often severe to cruelty, as eager to convert as to conquer them, was in re- ality master of their country only, when he had reduced it to a desert. The two most cele- brated chiefs of the Saxons were Witikind and Alboin, who finally embraced Christianity in 783. The cruelties of Charlemagne to the Saxons, resembles despair; and his indulgence to them proves that, pressed by other affairs, he was willing to make any concession which could bring him off with honor. While he was fighting on the banks of the Weser, pope Adrian implored his succors against Desiderius, king of the Lombards, who sought to possess himself of Ravenna, and urged the pope to crown the sons of Carloman, in order to display Charlemagne in the light of an usurper of the throne of his nephews, and thus stir up a large portion of France against him. Flying to the scene of action with the rapidity which the danger rendered necessary, Charle- magne seized the person of Desiderius, sent him to end his days in a monastery, and caused himself to be crowned king of Lombardy, in 774. Thus ended that kingdom which shortly afterwards took its ancient name of Italy, but which preserved the laws it had received from the Lombards. Charlemagne passed into Spain in 778, be- sieged and took Pampeluna, and made himself master of the country of Barcelona ; but his troops, on their return, were defeated in the pass of Roncesvalles, by a part of the Saracens, and the mountain Gascons, the unruly tributa- ries of Charlemagne, who were so intractable, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CHA CHA Iliat more than thirty years afterwards, strong forces were required to oppose them. At this battle, fell the famous Roland, whose fate has been celebrated by romance writers and poets. The disaffection of the inhabitants of Aquitania having induced Charlemagne to give them a separate monarch, he chose the youngest of his sons, Louis, well known as Louis the Mild, 778. At the same time the continual efforts of the Lombards and Greeks to recon- quer Italy, and the want of fidelity in his nobles, made him feel the necessity of rallying them about the throne, and he gave them for a king, Pepin. the second of his sons ; the eldest, who bore the name of Charles, remained with him to assist him in his expeditions. He had another son, Pepin, whose mother he had repu- diated. This son, having been convicted of taking part in a conspiracy against him, was devoted to the monastic life. On his return from Spain, Charlemagne found himself obliged to march against the Saxons, and each year renewed the necessity of a warlike expedition. He caused 4,500 of them to be put to death ; a ferocious revenge which only served to prolong and invigorate their resistance. Thence he went to Rome to have his two sons, Pepin and Louis, crowned by the pope, thus confirming the people in the belief that the head of religion could alone ren- der the royal power legitimate and sacred. The year 7!)0, the 27th of his reign, was the first which he passed without taking up arms, and this peace lasted only until the spring of the following year. Charlemagne had formed the project of re-establishing the empire of the west. The empress Irene, who reigned at Constantinople, in order to prevent the dis- memberment of the empire, proposed to Charle- magne to unite their children, which would have placed Europe under one government. Her proposal was accepted, but ambition im- pelled Irene to dethrone her own son in order to seize the power herself, and she offered her hand to Charlemagne. This singular union, which ambition alone could suggest and carry into effect, would have presented a new spec- tacle to the world, had not the empress been herself hurled from her throne. Charlemagne was crowned emperor of the west, by pope Leo III, in the year 800; and, although his journey to Rome had no other object, he af- fected to be much surprised at the honors which were heaped upon him. He was declared Ccr.- *tar and Augustus ', the ornaments of the ancient Roman emperors were decreed to him ; all the consecrated forms were followed ; nothing was forgotten but the fact that it was impossible that an empire should subsist, the power of which was shared by the children of the deceased monarch. Charlemagne, after having made one of his sons a monk, had the misfortune to lose, in 810, Pepin, whom he had created king of Italy; the year following, Charles, the eld- est followed his brother to the grave ; there only remained, of his legitimate children, Louis, king of Aquitania, whom he associated with him in the empire in 813, his great age and his infirmities making him feel that he was approaching the termination of his career. Pie died the 28th of January, 814, in the 71st year of his age, and the 47th of his reign. By his will, made in 806, confirmed by the French lords, assembled at Thionville, and signed by Pope Leo, Charlemagne divided his estates among his three sons. He left his subjects the power of choosing a successor, after the death of the princes, provided he was of the blood royal. He provided that they should not have recourse to the trial by battle, in the case of dispute, but to that of the cross. This judg- ment consisted, in doubtful circumstances, in conducting to church two men, who stood upright with their elevated arms crossed, during the celebration of divine service, and ihe vic- tory was gained by the party whose champion remained motionless in this attitude the long- est This is still called the judgment of God. Charlemagne was buried at Aix-la-Chapelle. His body is said to have been disposed in the following manner. He was sealed upon a throne of gold, clad in his imperial habits. He had a crown upon his head, and was girt with his sword. He held a chalice in his hand, the book of the Evangelists upon his knees, his sceptre and gold buckler at his feet. The sepulchre was filled with pieces of gold, perfumed and sealed, and above a superb triumphal arch was raised, with this epitaph : " Here rests the body of Charles, the great and orthodox emperor, who gloriously enlarged the kingdom of the French, and goverr years." Charlema_ and of learned men. rned it ha Charlemagne was ppily for forty -seven s a friend of letters CHARLES 1, king of England, an unfor- tunate monarch, whose disasters were prepared for him by his predecessors, and by the increas- ing spirit of liberty, precipitated and increased by the alternate obstinacy and fickleness of his disposition. He ascended the throne in 1(525, and found that his reign was likely to be troub- led by a strong opposition ; but he could not HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CHA 171 CHA find courage to make those concessions which the people were disposed to demand of royalty. The friends of liberty, and the puritans, were disposed to view with a stern eye, the stand which the king took. They had already im- peached his favorite minister, and his unsuc- cessful attempt to relieve Rochelle in 1627, increased their enmity. Charles, blinded by the monarchial doctrines of his father James, although he saw that his popularity was daily declining, took no steps to gain the affections and confidence of his people. The parliament refused to sanction the wishes of the monarch, and passed the famous bill of rights, which he was obliged to confirm. Having made peace with France and Spain, Charles determined to rely on his own resour- ces, but resorted to the desperate expedient of levying ship money. This, and the king's attempt to force the liturgy on the Scotch, brought upon him the opposition of Hampden and the covenanters, to both of whom he was forced to submit. After several parliaments had been called and dissolved, Charles called the long parliament of 1040. The earl of Straftbrd and archbishop Laud were impeached, and the fury of the puritans was excited against the church and the bishops. The signal for insurrection was given by the king going him- self to the house and demanding the persons of five members whom he accused of treason. Civil war broke out ; many engagements took place, with various success, but on the king's defeat at Naseby, he retired to Oxford, and on the approach of Fairfax, the parliamentary gen- eral, threw himself on the protection of the Scots, who sold him to the parliament. The army, now divided from the parliament, con> veyed him to Hampton court, whence he es- caped with the intention of quitting the king- dom, but was retaken and brought back. Charles now professed himself ready to grant all the terms demanded for his release, except the abolition of episcopacy. He was in conse- quence arraigned for high treason, tried, and condemned. His conduct during his trial was a noble pattern of Christian meekness and firm- ness, and this he retained to his death. He was beheaded at Whitehall, on the 30th of January, 1648. CHARLES II. king of England, son of Charles 1, and Henrietta Maria of France, was horn in 1630, and was at the Hague when his father was executed. The Scots, who had betrayed the father, sent an invitation to the son. which he accepted, and was crowned at 15* Scone, in 1651, when he was obliged to take the covenant. But he had no mean opponent in Cromwell, who defeated the Scotch at Dun- bar, and Charles at Worcester. The appear- ance of the two armies was strikingly con- trasted. The parliamentarians were remarkable for the plainness of their dress and equipments, their hair being cropped close (whence their appellation of round heads), and nothing merely ornamental appearing on their persons. The cavaliers, on the contrary, despising the aus- terity of their antagonists, were distinguished by their long curling locks, the finish of their equipments, and the reckless gayefy of their bearing. From the battle of Worcester, Charles made his escape, and lay hidden in the thick branches of an oak in Boscobel wood, while his pursuers actually seated themselves under the tree. After many journeyings, in various dis- guises, he escaped to France. In 1660, by the management of general Monk, he was restored ; and with him licentiousness and infidelity returned in a full tide. In 1662, he married the princess of Portugal, by whom he had no children, although his illegitimate offspring were numerous. With the exception of the sale of Dunkirk to supply his extrava- gances, the acts of Charles's reign can scarcely be considered as his own, and belong rather to the history of his country. He lived in the unbridled indulgence of his appetites, interfer- ing little in matters of state policy. The few he meddled with were of an odious nature. Charles died of an apoplectic fit, February 6, 1685, and by receiving, in his last moments, the sacrament from a popish priest, proved that he lived a hypocrite as well as a libertine. By affability and wit, by going abroad without ostentation, and mixing with the lowest of his subjects, Charles obtained a certain degree of popularity, and the name of the Merry Monarch distinguished him during his life. His wit was ready and pleasant, as Rochester, whose dispo- sition much resembled the monarch's, happily expressed in the epigram, in which he speaks of Charles as one " Who never said a foolish thing, And never did a wise one." Chailes and his courtiers being one day present at the exhibition of a man who daringly climbed to the point of Salisbury cathedral, and planted a flag there, the king said to his favorite, " Faith ! Rochester, this man shall have a patent, that no one may do this but himself!" CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CHA 172 CHA CHARLES, Edward, of the Stuart family, commonly called The Pretender, was the grand- son of James II, and was born at Rome in 1720. In 1745, he landed in Scotland, and published a manifesto, exhibiting the claims of his father to the English throne. He was joined by seve- ral Highland chiefs, and entering Edinburgh, caused his father to be proclaimed. Charles Edward was passing the night in the village of Stateford, and had thrown himself upon his couch in a state of agitation, which prevented his sleeping for more than two hours. As soon as he learned that Edinburgh was occupied by the Highlanders of Lochiel, Keppoch, Arlshied, and O'Sullivan, he mounted his horse, and on the given signal, the army was in readiness to enter the city. The Castle still held out for the house of Hanover. To avoid the balls of the enemy who commanded the most direct road, the prince and his followers, diverging from the main loute, came by the way of Duddingston to the royal park which they entered through a breach in the wall. The royal park, the favorite pro- menade of James VII, when he was at Edin- burgh, being then duke of York, comprises Arthur's Seat, which seems to shelter Holy- rood-House at its feet, the basaltic rocks of Salisbury crags, the hermitage of St. Anthony, and the valley of St. Leonard, spots to whi<:h poetry and romance have given an interest that history has failed to confer. From an eminence near the hermitage, Charles could contemplate, for the first time, the palace of his ancestors, with its quadrangu- lar court, and the round towers of the principal facade. No .alteration had taken place since the time of James VII. The entire building was standing, and the standard of the Stuarts waved proudly in the wind that swept over the majestic pile. The Gothic Chapel only was in ruins, as if to remind the prince that, in the revolution of 1088, the war was particularly directed against the faith of his grandfather, who decorated this place with such pornp. Charles dismounted. Already the park and the surrounding gardens were filled with a dense crowd of all ranks, ages, and parties. They were many merely curious spectators, but more mere Jacobites, and th'- latter hastened to con- gratulate the prince, who received them with ease, and that smiling look of pleasure,, which is so seductive to all. The historian Hume confessed, that the presence of Charles moved more than one whig. His youth, his fine form, his light locks, his delicate complexion, so different from the bil- ious hue that characterized the countenances of his ancestry, the perfect oval of his face, his intelligent blue eyes, the correct arch of his eyebrows, his regular nose and mouth of aris- tocratic diminutiveness, were all curiously an- alyzed by the spectators. Some troubled whigs declared that there was in the countenance of the prince an air of melancholy, which was a presage of disaster in the midst of his triumph ; >ut the Jacobites, and particularly the ladies of Edinburgh and Perth, were in raptures at the graces of their Charlie, as he was familiarly and popularly termed. They delighted to dwell upon his picturesque costume. Upon his vest of tartan plaid, glittered the national star of the order of St. Andrew ; a scarf of gold and azure served him as a baldrick. and to his neat blue velvet cap was attached the white cockade, which called to mind the rose of Lancaster. When he mounted the splendid bay charger which had been presented to him by' the duke of Perth, the acclamations of the spectators redoubled, for the prince was, in fact, a most accomplished cavalier. "Our hero looks like Robert Bruce," cried the Jacobites, arid they were not deceiving themselves, for the portrait of Bruce at Holyrood served to verify the resemblance. In the midst of an enthusiasm, which might almost be called general. Charles could well forgot, in this concourse of his father's subjects, the hostile terms of ichig and tory, and saw around him only Scotchmen, interested, like himself, in severing the bonds imposed upon Scotland, under the specious namo of the Union. In all the manifestoes of the Stuait family, since 1715, they appealed as frequently to the tnemory of national independence, as to the claims of their house. Thus, when Charles Edward was approaching the irate of the palace, he was suddenly met by a hoary-headed irentle- man. James Hepburn of Keith, who was known to be opposed from principle to the ' right divine of kings," and who had more than once haugh- tily blamed the government of James VII. This gentleman, who was esteemed by all par- ties, was the first to show himself the partisan of Charles Edward, whom he regarded as the champion of the deliverance of Scotland. Hep- burn wished to be, in a manner, his herald into the palace of his fathers, and drawing his sword, he marshaled tin- prince with dignity to the apartment destined lor his reception. Still, at intervals, the hostile cannon of the castle, growled upon the city, as if to still the exulting shouts of the people. A ball, directed HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CHA 173 CHA at the palace shattered a tower, to the indigna- tion of the populace who knew that the Eng- lish soldiery would dishonor, without remorse, the most precious monument of their ancient city. With what emotions must Charles Edward have explored the royal halls of Holyrood, con- demned for GO years, to a kind of solitary wid- owhood, by the exile of his family. In the first gallery he beheld that long range of royal portraits, which the pride of Edinburgh holds so dear. In adjacent apartments he found the first traces of that beautiful queen, whose tragic fate alone occupies the inind, even among the multitude of historical and fabulous images. Here were her bed and curtains, the chairs where she was seated, those which she herself embroidered and alas ! was there not the im- perishable stain of Rizzio's blood ? Tiie shouts of the people, eager to behold their prince, more than once banished the re- flections in which Charles Edward was indulg- ing, and forced him to appear at the windows and show himself to the citizens of Edinburgh. A part of the crowd was called off to assist at the ceremony at the Cross of the High-street, now destroyed a place where the proclama- tion of public acts had taken place from time immemorial. The gallery in which the heralds and pursuivant at arms, clad in their official costume, appeared, was decorated with tapes- try. A troop of Highlanders were formed in lines two deep on each side of the street, the trumpets sounded a flourish, the bagpipes played their pibrochs, and when the crowd was silenced, James VIII was proclaimed, the commission appointing Charles Edward regent read, as well as the manifesto of the prince, dated Paris, May 16, 1745. The innumerable windows of the houses in the High-street, some of which were more than ten stories high, \vere filled with la- dies, who waved their white handkerchiefs, to excite the shouts of. the people ; the attach- ment to the legitimate monarch appeared univer- sal, as if the faults of the dynasty had been ex- piated by its misfortunes. While the heralds were proclaiming James and his son, at the foot of the gallery, the lady Broughton of Murray, a woman of uncommon beauty j appeared upon a splendid horse, with a drawn sword in her hand, like a heroine of Ariosto or Tasso, while other ladies distributed white ribbons to their brothers and admirers. Charles Edward was at first successful de- feating general Cope at Preston Pans, but he returned to Edinburgh and wasted his time in idle parades. Being, however, joined by seve- ral discontented chiefs, he marched as far as Manchester, but hearing that the king was about to take the field, he returned to Scotland, and defeated the English forces under Hawley, at Falkirk. In the mean time the duke of Cum- berland advanced to Edinburgh, and thence to Aberdeen, the pretender retreating before him. At length the two armies met alCulloden, when, after an obstinate conflict, in which the High- landers displayed signal courage, the royal army was successful, and the rebels fled, leaving 3,000 of their number dead upon the field. A well-authenticated anecdote of this battle strikingly displays the simplicity and ferocity of the Highlanders. An English officer, hav- ing fallen into the hands of a muscular adver- sary, who had thrown away his musket, and was brandishing a broadsword, supplicated for quarter. " Quarter ! quarter !" cried the irri- tated Highlander, " I hae nae the time to quar- ter ye, sae ye must een be contentit to be cuttit in twa", suiting the action to the word. Charles Edward wandered for a long time in disguise, chiefly among the Hebrides, and final- ly "effected his escape to France, Nothing throws a clearer light on the fidelity and honor of the Scotch, than the fact, that, although Charles was frequently at the mercy of some of the poorest mountaineers, the high price which was set upon his head, could not tempt them to betray him. One time, after having been with- out food for days, his dress torn to tatters, by his briery hiding-places, Charles, finding him- self near the house of a whig gentleman, sought shelter in it. " I am your political opponent," said the high-minded whig ; " but I am also your fellow man. I scorn to take advantage of your distress, and will protect you as long as you choose to remain beneath my roof." He kept his word, and even furnished the unhappy prince with a disguise which facilitated his es- cape. This feeling of forbearance to Charles, after his defeat, was manifested in a higher quarter. King George being at a ball, a lady, who did not know him, asked him to drink to the health of the pretender. " Willingly," re- plied the king ; " I cannot refuse to drink to the health of every unfortunate prince." With the defeat of the pretender ended all the hopes of the unfortunate Stuart family. Charles Edward died at Florence, in 1788. CHARLES X, Gustavus, king of Sweden, ascended the throne on the abdication of Chris- tiana, in 1654. He obtained over the Poles the famous victory of Warsaw, besides taking a CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY, CHA 174 CHA number of important places. The Poles, call- ing to their assistance Muscovy, England, and Denmark, obliged the king of Sweden to con- clude a peace ; but the war breaking out again, Charles took Cronenburgh, and laid siege to Copenhagen} his navy having been defeated, he was obliged to return home, and died in 1660. CHARLES XI, of Sweden, was born in 1665. On his accession a peace was concluded with Denmark, but in 1674, in the war with that power, he lost several places, which were restored at the peace of Nimeguen. He mar- ried the sister of the king of Denmark, and died in 1697. CHARLES XII, of Sweden, son and suc- cessor of the preceding, was born in 1682. He came to the throne at the age of 15. and, at his coronation, snatched the crown from the hands of the archbishop of Upsal, and placed it on his own head. He was well educated, and very fond of bodily exercises. The commencement of his reign, however, gave no splendid proof of genius or talent. But, on the formation of a confederacy against him by Russia, Denmark, and Holland, he seemed to arouse from his slumber. He himself gave the casting voice in the council for the most vigorous measures, and immediately prepared to carry them into effect. He renounced at once even limited enjoyments, support the charac- ter he had marked out for himself. Of the con- and bent all his energies to i federated powers, he attacked each in turn, beginning with Denmark, which produced a peace with that power. In 1700 he obtained a brilliant victory over the Russians at Narva ; although his force con- sisted of only 8,000 men, he attacked them in their intrenchments, slew 30,000 and took 20,000 prisoners. His next enterprise was against Poland, and after several battles, he dethroned Augustus, and placed Stanislaus upcn the throne, lie obtained some signal advantages over Peter the Great, but at length experienced a terrible defeat at Pultowa, in 1709. Almost all his troops were either slain or taken prison- ers ; he himself was wounded in the leg, and carried off in a litter. Charles sought an asylum in Turkey, where he was hospitably received by" the grand seign- ior, who provided for him a residence at Ben- der. He availed himself of his asylum to per- suade the grand seignior to enter into a war with Russia, and employed much money, much time, and many menaces to induce it. His con- duct was, at length, so violent, that he was or- dered to leave the Turkish territories. This he refused to obey. The sultan then directed that he should be forced away ; but Charles, with his retinue, resisted the attack of the Janizaries, till superiority of numbers obliged him to take shelter in his house, which he defended with great spirit, and did not yield till the premises were in flames. He then sallied out, sword in hand, but being entangled by his long spurs, he fell and was taken prisoner. After having been confined as a prisoner six months, he finally set out on his return to his own dominions. In 1716 he invaded Norway, but after pene- trating to Christiana, was obliged to return to Sweden. He resumed the attack in the winter of 1718, but was killed by a cannon-shot at the siege of Frederiekshall, December 11, aged 36 years, having reigned 21 . Charles was liberal, active and firm, but rash, obstinate, and cruel. At the battle of Narva, he had several horses shot under him, and as he was mounting upon a fresh one, he said, " These people find me exercise." When he was besieged at Stralsund, a bomb fell into the house while he was dictating to his secretary, who immediately dropped his pen, and started up in a fright. " What is the mat- ter?" said the king, calmly. " The bomb ! the bomb ! sire," said the agitated secretary. " Well, sir," resumed Charles, " what has the bomb to do with what I was dictating to you? Goon." When struck by the ball that caused his death ; he instinctively grasped his sword-hilt as if seeking for revenge. Charles was exceeding temperate, abjuring wine, and living frequently upon the coarsest bread. No woman ever ex- erted any influence over him. His dress con- sisted of an old cloak, a blue coat with brass buttons, a plain waistcoat and breeches of leath- er, high boots with spurs, and long leather gloves. CHARLES XIV, of Sweden, originally Jean Baptiste Jules Bcrnndotte,-$eTVcd with distinction in the armies of Napoleon, and was chosen to fill the throne of Sweden. But from the mo- ment of his elevation by the Swedes, he ceased to live for any thing but the good of the nation, which had adopted him. CHARLES I, king of Sicily and Naples, born in 1220, was the son of Louis VIII, of France. Having married the daughter of the count of Provence, he thereby became his suc- cessor, and added to his dominions the coun- ties of Anjou and Maine. He was taken pris- oner, with his brother Louis, in Egypt, in 1248. On his return he defeated Manfred, the usurp- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CHA 175 CHA er of the Sicilian crown, and assumed the title of king of Naples. He also defeated his rival, Conradin, duke of Suabia. and took him and the duke of Austria prisoners. Charles, on this occasion, brought infamy on his name, by caus- ing his royal captives to be put to death, at Naples, on a public scaffold. After this he laid the prince of Tunis under tribute, and quelled the Ghibellines. In 1276, he gained the title of king of Jerusalem, and meditated an expedition against Constantinople. But his arbitrary con- duct occasioned a general insurrection in Sicily, where 8,000 of the French were massacred on Easter-Monday, 12^2. This massacre is known by the name of the " Sicilian vespers," the bell for evening prayers being the signal of revolt. The Sicilians then chose Peter of Arragon for their king. Charles died in 1235. CHARLES MARTEL, son of Pepin Heris- tel, and mayor of the palace under Chilperic and Thierry IV, kings of France. He gained many victories, the principal of which was over the Saracen general, Abdalrahman, in 732. On the death of Thierry, in 737, no successor was appointed, and Charles conducted the govern- ment as duke of the Franks. He died in 741, and left his dominions between his sons Carlo- man and Pepin ; the latter of whom became the first king of France of the Carlovingian race, which name was taken from the founder, Charles Martel. CHARLES IV, emperor of Germany, was the son of John of Luxemburg, and grandson of the emperor Henry VII. He ascended the throne in 1347. In his reign the golden bull was given at the diet of Nuremburg, in 1 35G, which established the Germanic constitution. Charles died in 1378. He was a learned man and a great patron of letters. CHARLES V, emperor of Germany, and king of Spain (in the latter capacity, Charles I), was born at Ghent, in 1500. He succeeded to the kingdom of Spain in 1516, and to the empire on the death of Maximilian, in 151!'. Francis I. of France, disputed with him the latter title, and their rivalry occasioned a vio- lent war in 1521. Charles was joined by Henry VIII of England, and after several important actions, took Francis prisoner at the battle of Pavia. A peace having been concluded in 1529, Charles turned his arms against Africa, where he defeated Barbarossa, entered Tunis, and re-established Muley-Hassan on the throne. Soon after this he renewed hostilities against France, ravaging Champagne and Picardy, till he was at length obliged to retire, and peace was restored in 1538. In 1541 he attempted the conquest of Algiers, but his fleet was dis- persed by a storm, and the emperor was obliged to return in disgrace. He again leagued with England against France, but fortune was not so favorable to him as she had formerly been, and he was glad to enter into a treaty in 1545. The prolestant princes of Germany confederated against him, and obtained liberty of conscience for those of their religion. In 1556 he resigned the crown to his son Philip, and retired into a monastery in Estremadura, where he passed the remainder of his days in religious exercises, mechanical pursuits, and gardening. He died in 1558. He encouraged artists, and once picked up a pencil which Titian had diopped. and pre- sented it to him, saying : " That Titian was worthy of being served by an emperor." As a pious penance, he caused himself to be wrapped in a shroud, and placed in a coffin, and thus celebrated his own obsequies. This ceremony hastened his death. CHARLES THE BOLD, duke of Burgun- dy, the son of Philip the Good, was born in 1433. There were constant wars between him and Louis XI, king of France, who instigated Charles's subjects, the Liegois, to revolt against him. Charles seized on Guelderland and Zut- phen. and afterwards invaded Switzerland, but his army was put to the rout and his baggage taken by the Swiss. He collected another army, but was again defeated, and slain while besieging Nancy, in 1477. As he was that day puttingon his helmet, the golden lion which formed the crest, fell to the ground, and he exclaimed, " Ecce iiiaynmn signum Dei .'" Bekold the sign of God! CHARLES IX, of France, son of Henry II and Catharine of Medici, was born in 1550, and succeeded to the throne in 1560 ; his mother conducted the government ; but she so abused her trust that the protestants revolted, and a civil war ensued, in which the insurgents were unsuccessful. The massacre of St. Bartholo- mew's ensued. It is said that Charles repented of this horrid crime on his death-bed, in 1574. CHARLES X, Philip, king of France and Navarre, ascended the throne, which had been filled by his brothers, the unfortunate Louis XVI and Louis XVIII, in September, 1824. He bore for some time the title of count qfJlrtois, and afterwards that of monsieur. He was fond of expensive pleasures, and distinguished for the mildness of his manners. Charles was crowned at Rheims. being anointed with the holy oil, which it was absurdly pretended had CYCLOPEDIA OP HISTORY. CHA 176 CHA \>ecn brought from heaven by a dove. He swore to maintain the charter, but he had not been long seated on the throne, before he began to play those " fantastic tricks," which seems to belong peculiarly to the province of legitimacy. The press, that vast moral engine at which tyrants tremble, became obnoxious to the monarch, and a censorship was established in 1827. The king, however, showed himself rather favorably dis- posed to the Greeks, which produced him a temporary popularity. The ministry of prince Polignac, however, caused great indignation, on account of the arbitrary tone of the measures adopted ; and the unwarrantable prosecution of the liberal press, hastened the revolution of 1830, when the Parisians overcame the royal troops, and the French legislature exiled Charles X, imprisoned the ministers for life, and seated Louis Philippe on the throne. CHARLES EMANUEL I, duke of Savoy, surnamed the Great, was born in 15G2. Though of a week constitution, he was of an enterpris- ing spirit, and, taking advantage of the internal commotions of France, in the reign of Henry III, he seized part of Dauphiny and Provence ; on the death of that monarch, he aspired to the crown, but was disappointed. A war broke out, and the French troops took possession of -part of Savoy. By the mediation of the pope, how- ever, peace was concluded. The duke made a treacherous attempt to seize Geneva, but bis troops were repulsed, and the prisoners that were taken, were hung up by the Genevans as robbers. On the death of Francis, duke of Mantua, in 1613, this restless prince laid claim to the succession, but was obliged to relinquish it. The French persuaded him to turn his urms against Genoa, and he gained some advantages, but the interference of Spain effected a peace. He aspired to the imperial crown, and made an attempt on the duchy of Montserrat, which in- volved him in a war with Franc* and Spain. He died in Ki30, it is supposed of grief for the loss of Pignerol. CHARLESTON, a city ajid sea-port of South Carolina, with 29,261 inhabitants, a large pro- portion of whom are slaves. It is the largest town in South Carolina, and the emporium, not only of that state, but of a considerable part of North Carolina. It is situated on a tongue of land formed by the confluence of Cooper and Ashley rivers, at a distance of about seven miles from the ocean. .Much taste is evinced in its public buildings, and an idea of elegance and comfort is conveyed b'y the appearance of its private houses, which are mostly of brick, and generally furnished with piazzas. It is a place of much wealth and commerce. CHARLESTOWN, a town of Middlesex county, Massachusetts, with 10,872 inhabitants, is separated by Charles River from Boston, from the centre of which it is one mile distant. The Navy Yard is one of the largest in the United States. On Bunker Hill, in this town, was fought a memorable battle, June 17, 1775. On the evening of June 16th. Col. Prescott re- ceived orders to fortify Bunker Hill, but Gen. Putnam, who had the command of the expedi- tion, finding Breed's Hill more suitable, the requisite fortifications were rapidly thrown up on that height. We must now give a glance at the respective forces of the contending parties. The British troops were well equipped and offi- cered, possessed all the advantages of strict dis- cipline, and were by no means distrustful of the issue of the contest. The American army, on the other hand, had been hastily called togeth- er, was composed of men, who had few ideas of military combinations, and whose weapons were generally fowling-pieces without bayonets, but who were all animated by one spirit. Their leaders were beloved and respected by them, and were men of tried truth and nerve Putnam, Stark, Pomeroy, Warren, and Prescott men whose names yet call a glow into the bosom of every patriot. The British weie not aware of the existence of the redoubts until the morning of the ]7th, when their ships-of-war, floating batteries, and the guns of Copps Hill, opened a severe fire on the Americans. At one o'clock, the troops un- der Howe landed in Charlestown, and were soon after reinforced, which swelled their num- ber to about 5,000 men, with six field-pieces. The provincial troops amounted to perhaps 2,000 men with two field-pieces. " Don't fire," said Putnam to his men, " till you can see the whites of their eyes." The British approached unmolest- ed till they came within close gun-shot, when the tremendous fire of the provincials drove them back with great, slaughter. In the second attack, Charlcslown was set on fire and burned to the ground, adding its raging flames to the other horrors of the battle scene. As the ammu- nition of the Americans was nearly exhausted, the third attack carried the redoubt, although the provincials resisted the British with the butt-ends of their muskets, and slowly retreat- ed from the hill. The Americana lost L15 killed, (among them general Warren), 305 wounded, arid 30 made prisoners. The British lost 1054 in killed and wounded. On the 17th of June, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CHA 177 CHA ] 825, the corner-stone of a monument was laid with great ceremony, and the work bids fair to be speedily completed, in a style worthy of the great event which it commemorates. CHARLOTTE, Augustus, daughter of queen Caroline and George IV, a beautiful, amiable, and accomplished lady, became, at the age of 20, the wife of prince Leopold of Coburg, May a, 1816. They were tenderly attached to each other. November 5, 1817. the unfortunate prin- cess, in becoming the mother of a child that did not survive her. lost her life. The physician who had attended her, shot himself. The prin- cess was beloved by the English nation, and her death deeply lamented. CHARON, in mythology, the son of Erebus and Nox. He was the ferryman of hell, being supposed to carry the dead across the waves of Acheron, Cocytus. and the Styx, receiving an oboius in pay. This coin was placed in the mouth of the dead, as, without it, it was thought that the deceased would be condemned to long arid restless wanderings on the dreary banks of Acheron. Charon was represented as an old man, of a forbidding aspect, dressed in rao-s. CHARYBDIS, the rapacious daughter of Neptune and Terra, whom Jupiter changed into a whirlpool. The whirlpool in the Sicilian Sea, whose origin was thus related in mythology, is no longer dreaded by mariners, who formerly were frequently wrecked upon the opposite rock, Scylla, in attempting to escape from Cha- rybdis ; the latter is now called Calofaro and La Rema. CHASE, Samuel, a distinguished American, who was born in Maryland, April 17, 1741, and was one of the signers of the declaration of in- dependence. In 1796, he was made by Wash- ington an associate judge of the Supreme Court of'the United States. Having been impeached by the House of Representatives, he was ac- quitted by the Senate. He died June 9, 1811, with a hio-h reputation. CHATHAM, William Pitt, earl of, was the son of Robert Pitt, Esq., of Boconock, in Corn- wall, and born November 15, 1708. On quit- ting the university, he went into the army as cornet, but soon left the military life. and. in 1735, obtained a seat in parliament for Old Sa- rum. His eloquence was first displayed on the Spanish convention, in 1738, and, in a short time, Sir Robert Walpole found him the most powerful opponent he had ever encountered. The dowager duchess of Marlborough, left Mr. Pitt a legacy of 10.000L for his conduct at this period. In 1746. he was made vice-treasurer of Ireland, and the same year paymaster gen- eral of the army. In 1755, he resigned his places ; but the year following, he was appointed secretary of state for the southern department. In this post, however, he did not remain long, on account of some difference with the king ; but such was his popularity, that his majesty found it necessary to recall him. In 1757, he became prime minister, in which situation he gave a new turn to affairs, and by the vigor of his measures, subverted the power of France in Europe, Asia, and America. In the midst of his glory, George II died, and Mr. Pitt resigned the helm to lord Bute ; when his lady was created a peeress, and he himself rewarded with a pension. In 1766, he was created a peer, by the title of earl of Chatham, and at the same time was made lord-privy-seal, which place he resigned two years afterwards. During the war of our revolution, he opposed the ministers, and in a speech on the subject of the independence of the colonies, April 7, 1778, exerted himself so energetically, as to fall ex- hausted into the arms of those around him. He died on the llth of the following month. A public funeral and monument were voted by parliament ; an annuity of 4000Z. was annexed to the earldom of Chatham, and his debts were discharged. CHATTERTON, Thomas, a youth whose early talents and fate have excited great inter- est, was born at Bristol, in 1752, of poor parents. In his twelfth year he wrote a poem of some merit, and at the age of sixteen, successfully imitated the style of antique English writers, and introduced to the world as works of great antiquity, the fruits of his own mind. The reception he met with in London, led him to form the most extravagant hopes, which were, however, never realized, for the wretchedness of his situation induced him to commit suicide by poison at the age of 18, in 1770. The poems which he wrote at 15, he published under the name of Rowley. His works form a collection in three volumes, and have gone through many editions. CHAUCER. Geoffrey a celebrated English poet, was the son of a merchant, and was born in London, in 1328. At the age of 18, his Court of Love gained him celebrity. He was high in favor with Edward III, and married the sister of lady Catharine Swynford, afterwards the wife of the duke of Lancaster. He filled several responsible offices, and was sent abroad as am- bassador. His fortunes varied with those of the party to which he was attached, but he CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CHA 178 CHE finally lived in the pleasant retirement of Don- nington castle, where he died in 1400. His Canterbury Tales are his most celebrated pro- duction. CHAUNCY, Charles, a minister of Boston, Massachusetts, was the son of the erudite and excellent president Chauncy, of Harvard Uni- versity, where he was educated. He was born Jan. 1, 1705, and was ordained pastor of the first church in Boston, in 1727. He died in his 83d year, Feb. 10th, 1787. His learning, inde- pendence, and patriotism were constantly and clearly displayed. The works which he has left behind, bear incontrovertible proofs of his talents. He was the particular friend of Doctor Cooper, of Boston, and an anecdote which re- gards the two gentlemen, is worthy of preserva- tion. It must be kept in mind that Doctor Chauncy was habitually absent like many liter- ary men, and that Dr. Cooper was famous for inviting brother clergymen to officiate for him ; so much so, that it was currently reported that lie used to walk out upon Boston neck every Saturday afternoon, and invite the first gentle- man with a black coat whom he saw coming into town, to preach for him. Knowing these facts, a negro servant of Dr. Chauncy determined to turn them to his own account. This fellow was in want of a coat, but as he had high ideas of his own importance, he wished, if possible, to obtain a new garment, instead of being habit- ed in the dark, discarded vestments of his wor- thy master. After having, one morninor, brought the usual supply of wood into Dr. Chauncy's study, he remained standing, and the doctor, although rather busy, was not long noticing him. The following conversation then took place. " Well, Sambo, what do you want ?" " Want a coat, sar. De old one so patched to pieces, I Traid to go nowheres." "Very well, Sambo, go to Mrs. Chauncy, and tell her to give you one of mine." The doctor resumed his studies, but Sambo retained his position. His master observing him a second time, but forgetting what had just passed between them, again asked ; " What do you want, Sambo?" " O ! just a coat, sar. Old coat full of holes." " Very well ; go to Mrs. Chauncy, and she will give you one of mine." A second time the doctor resumed his book, but finding the black still stationary, he began to recall what had passed, and exclaimed, with some asperity ; " Well sir, why don 't you go>" " 'Canse I Traid, Massa Chauncy." - "Afraid? of what?" "Why, sar, I 'fraid to wear a black coat, 'cause no no it won 't do I can 't tell you. sar." " I insist upon it." " Well then, if I must sir, Traid, 'cause oh no ! massa, you '11 be so angry.'' " I wish I had my cane here !" exclaimed the doctor. Sambo, finding, from his impatient glance at- the tongs, that there was a possibility of his finding a substitute, cried out; "Oh! sar! nebber mind de cane, I '11 tell you why I 'fraid to wear one of your coats / 'fraid if I had annoder black coat that doctor Cooper icill ask me to preach, for him." The doctor burst into laughter. " Go, go. Sarnbo, and ask Mrs. Chauncy to buy a coat of whatever color you fancy !" Sambo hastened off", grinning with delight, to get a scarlet coat, and Dr. Chauncy ran to Dr. Cooper to tell him of the whole affair. CHERBOURG, or Cherburg, a French sea- port, on the Channel, containing 18,443 inhab- itants. In 1418, it was taken by Henry V, and near it took place the famous naval battle of La Hogue, between the French and English in 1G92. Cherburg is remarkable for Its vast breakwater, and its extensive basin and docks, constructed by the French government. CHERSON, a Russian city, capital of the government of Chesson, on "the Dnieper, til) miles from its mouth. It was founded in 1778, and contains 12.0UO inhabitants. CHESAPEAKE BAY is from 7 to 20 miles broad, and 190 miles long, extending northerly through Virginia and Maryland, two of the United States. CHESTERFIELD, Philip Dormer Stan- hope, earl of. a distinguished statesman, orator, and author, born in London, 1694, died in 1773. In private life he was distinguished by his grace and wit, and also notorious for his irregu- larities. In parliament and in the house of lords, as ambassador to Holland, and lord-lieu tenant to Ireland, he was successful and popu- lar. His letters to his son have been censured for their immoral tone, although et-lt-brutcd for their elegance. Johnson called Chesterfield a wit among lords, and a lord among wits. Of the conduct of the earl as lord-lieutenant, we have favorable accounts. When the advocates of intolerance preached persecution, he answered their counsels by an apothegm and a ban mot he quoted Cicero, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CHI 179 CHI when they quoted Nassau he ave them par- ties for their politics suppers tor their sophis- try he forced them to swallow his measures with his claret and he stopped the mouths of many with good dinners, on -whom good argu- ments would have been thrown away. When Lord Chesterfield arrived in Ireland, all the Catholic places of worship were closed. A Mr. Fitzgerald saying mass in the obscure garret of a condemned house, an immense crowd had assembled, and the floor giving way, the officiating priest, with many of his flock, were buried in the ruins, and the greater number were maimed and wounded. Lord Chesterfield, horror-struck at the event, ordered that all the chapels in the capital should be opened on St. Patrick's day, and they have never since been closed. A zealous protestant, thinking to pay his court to the lord-lieutenant, came to inform him that one of his coachmen was a Roman Catho- lic, and went privately to mass. " Does he, indeed?" said his lordship, "then I shall take care that he never drives me there !" The bishop of Waterford relates that the vice-treasurer, Mr. Gardiner, a man of good character, and considerable fortune, waited upon lord Chesterfield one morning, and in a great fright told him that he was assured upon good authority that the people in the province of Connaught were actually rising; upon which the viceroy looked at his watch, and with great composure answered him, " It is nine o'clock and time for them to rise ; I believe, therefore, that your news is true." Lord Chesterfield preserved a Catholic population in the most perfect peace and obedience, during the whole of that rebellion, which in Protestant England and Presbyterian Scotland, had nearly restored the Stuarts to the throne they had forfeited by their blind and bigoted attachment to papal institutions. CHILI, a republic of South America, which is divided into eight provinces. The eastern part of Chili is mountainous, and 14 volcanic summits here elevate themselves from the lofty chain of the Andes. Innumerable small and rapid rivers irrigate the rich soil, and the serene climate is remarkable for its healthiness. The mineral and vegetable productions are valuable and abundant. Exclusive of the in- dependent Indians, the population has been estimated at 1,200,000. The Roman Catholic is the established religion. Pedro de Valdivia, who was sent thither by Pizarro, overcame the opposition of the abori- 16 ginees, and founded several cities in the north and south, but the Araucanians defeated the Spaniards, and having taken their leader pris- oner, put him to death. It was many years before the Spaniards were permitted by the Indians and Dutch to enjoy quiet possession of Chili. In 1809, a revolutionary movement took place, and the party which espoused the cause of 'independence was, at first, successful ; but in 1814, nearly the whole country was subdued by a royalist army from Peru. Chili remained under the control of the royalists until 1817, when General San Martin, with a body of troops from Buenos Ayres, entered the country, and being joined by the people generally, de- feated the royalists in several engagements. The independence of the country was finally achieved at the battle of Maypu, April 5, 1817. The government has since experienced many changes, and even now remains in an unsettled state. CHILLINGWORTH, William, a celebrated protestant divine and controversial writer. He was born at Oxford, 1G02, and died in 1C44, having been appointed chancellor of Salisbury, in July, 1638. CHIMBORAZO, a mountain in the republic of the Equator, one of the highest summits of the Andes, its elevation being 21,440 feet above the level of the sea. CHIMERA, a monster said to have ravaged Lycia, and to have been killed by Bellerophon. Her form was a mixture of incongruous parts. CHINA is a vast country of Asia, bounded on the north by Chinese Tartary. from which the famous Chinese wall separates it ; on the east, by the Eastern Sea ; on the south by the Chinese Sea, and Further India ; and on the west by an extensive and sandy desert, and long ridges of mountains, which divide it from Western Tartary and Thibet. Inclusive of the tributary countries, and those states which have voluntarily placed themselves under the protection of China, the population amounts to nearly 200 million inhabitants, which are scattered over a surface of about 5.250.000 square miles. The subjected coun- tries are Mantchouria, Mongolia, and Tourfan ; the protected ones, Thibet, Bcotan, Corea, and Loo-choo. China Proper is divided into 18 provinces. The Kiau-Ku,or Yang-tse, and the Hoang-Ho, or Yellow River, are the two prin- cipal rivers of China. The former is more than 2,500 miles long. The face of the country is greatly diversified ; the northern and western parts being the most broken. The climate, in CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CHI 180 CHI general, is healthy, although the northern part is cold, and the southern hot. The soil is fertile, and the prevalent crop, at least in the south, is rice. Besides this, tea, barley, and other grain, are abundantly raised. The commerce is very extensive ; the principal articles of export being tea, silk, nankins, porce- lain, and the valuable vegetable productions of the east. The imperial canal, and the Chinese wall, are monuments of Chinese skill and in- dustry. The religion of China is Buddhism, or the religion of Fo. "The language of the Chi- nese is peculiar, the number of characters being 40,000. The Chinese are, to a certain degree, well educated, but revengeful, timid, vain, and artful. Polygamy is permitted, and the condi- tion of females wretched in the extreme. Poor parents are permitted to drown their female children, and this is done without remorse. The Chinese is, on the whole, by far the best Asiatic government of Asia. It is better, far, than any of the Mohammedan despotisms ; it is better than any government that the Hin- doos ever possessed, and it is far preferable to the Theocracies of the Birmans, Siamese, and other Chinese nations. The absence of a pow- erful and influential priesthood, and of an hered- itary and privileged aristocracy, as well as of petty principalities with delegated and heredi- tary authority, may be stated as among the leading causes of the prosperity of the Chinese empire. The government of China is patriarchal ; the emperor has the title of" Holy Son of Heaven, sole Governor of the earth, and Great Father of his people." But it is patriarchal on the largest scale of which there is any record, for the family consists of nearly two hundred million members. China may be considered as a huge school-house, the master having the birch con- stantly in his hand, frequently using it, and delegating his authority to thousands of ushers, e equally liberal in i the rod, although the chief, is not the only , who are equally liberal in its application. But instrument of government There is the unique, or wooden ruff, a kind of portable stocks or pillory, very convenient to the executors of the law, but exceedingly inconvenient to the wear- er, who can neither sleep nor lie down fur it. Then there is imprisonment in cages ; further- more decapitation, not however very frequent ; and in extreme cases their crucifixion, or as it is technically called, the death by painful and slow means. The grand panacea, however, after all, is the od. The general application of this vigorous instrument of administration, is hy no means confined to China, but embraces the other coun- tries of the east, from Japan to Bengal, includ- ing about 300,000.000 of people, or nearly one half the human race. There the rod. under its various appellations of bamboo, cane, cudgel, or birch, is actively at work from morning till night, and afterwards, from night till morning. The Grand Patriarch canes his first ministers ; the prime minister canes his secretary of slate ; the secretaries of state admonish the lords of the treasury, by belaboring their backs; these enforce their orders to the first lord of the admiralty by applying what is equal to the cat O T nine tails. Generals cane field officers, and field officers the captains and subalterns. Of course the common soldiers of the celestial em- pire are caned by every body. The husbands cane their wives, and the "wives cane their children. Of course the Chinese and their neighbors may be truly described as well-flogged nations. Without going back to that remote antiquity, to which the Chinese historians pretend, it will be sufficient to credit records of this empire from 2,000 years B. C. Prior to that period, five dynasties are computed, at the head of the first of which was Y u-Ta. Ching-tang was the founder of the second dynasty, named Chang, B. C. 17(57, and was celebrated for his wisdom, moderation, and singular merit. This dynasty, after the reign of '-fcTemperors, was terminated, like the former, bv the vices of him who last filled the throne. " The third dynasty, named Chew, or Cheva, B. C. 1 1:2:2. consisted of 35 emperors, some of whom exhibited virtues de- serving of high applause, while the faults and vices of others excited the vengeance of the people. During the reign of Ching, the second em peror of the 4lh dynasty, called Tsin, B. C. 25f>, the great wall was built. Elated with his own exploits, he formed the design of making posterity believe that he was the first omperor that filled the Chinese throne; and for this purpose, ordered all the historical books, which enninined the fundamental records and laws of the ancient governments, to lie burned, and 400 of the learned to be put to death, for having at- tempted to save some of the proscribed vc" umes. The, chieflian of banditti, Lieu-pang, troyed the last emperor of the fourth dynasty, atjd founded the fifth, called Ham_r, in hi own person., B. C. 207. He proved himsel worthy of the throne by his moderation HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL CHI 181 CHI clemency, and was one of the few emperors who governed for themselves. Under the rest, factions were formed, one of which, known by the appellation of the yellow-caps, made itself master of the empire, which ended in its dismem- berment. The sixth dynasty was begun by a prince descended from Lieu-pang, A. D. 220, and ended with his grandson, who, ardent and courageous, sustained for sometime his father's tottering throne, which was attacked from every quarter. At length, seeing affairs tend to a most fatal crisis, the emperor, deficient in courage, still refused to fight ; and the young prince, af- flicted at his cowardice, retired to the hall of his ancestors, slew his wife, and then himself. The emperor tamely surrendered to Song-chau, his rival, who granted him a petty sovereignty. Shi-tsu-vu-ti, the son of the rebel Song-ch.au, was the founder of the seventh dynasty, and preserved by his arms the ernpire they had ac- quired for him. After a series of fifteen empe- rors, during whose reign Nankin became the capital of the empire, this dynasty terminated in Nagan-Ti, an indolent prince, unworthy of a crown. In his reign, a man named Lyen-Hu, whose employment was that of selling shoes, enlisted as a soldier, became a general, and at last usurped the throne. His race consisted of eight emperors. Kanti, the founder of the ninth dynasty, obtained the throne by the murder of two princes, A. D. 479, but did not long enjoy the fruits of his wickedness. He was more remarkable for his learning than his military exploits. His son enacted the famous law which prohibited the mandarins remaining more than three years in the same place. This dy- nasty did not produce more than five emperors. The tenth dynasty comprehends only four sovereigns beginning with Syau-gwen, the prime minister and assassin of the last prince, A. D. 502. He was active, industrious, and vigilant. The last emperor but one attached himself to the religion of Fo, and while his at- tention was absorbed in the mysteries taught by the disciples, his prime minister attacked him in his capital. At length the sovereign awoke from his religious reveries, took up arms, march- ed round the ramparts, examined the position of the enemy, and exclaimed, " All is lost, it is all over with the sciences !" He then set fire to his library, which consisted of 140.000 vol- umes, and surrendered to the conqueror, who put to death both him and his son. Like his predecessor, the founder of the] 1th dynasty, A. D. 557, was extremely attached to the bon- ses. His race produced only five emperors, the last of whom was dethroned by the prime min- ister of the western empire. The three emperors who composed the 12th dynasty, commencing A. D. 589, performed great actions, and are renowned in history. The first, ivho had no pretensions to learning, was endowed with a solid and penetrating mind. He loved his people, and Uuilt public granaries, which were annually filled with rice and corn by the opulent, to be distributed to the poor in times of scarcity. Kong-ti was dethroned by Si-gwen, A. D. 017, the same year in which he was crowned. The son of this man, on arriv- ing at the emperor's palace was astonished at its magnificence, and said, " No : such a stately edifice must not be suffered to stand any longer, as it is good for nothing but to corrupt the heart of a prince, and render him effeminate." After this reflection, he ordered the whole build- ing to be set on fire and reduced to ashes. Tai-tsong, his son, was one of the greatest and wisest princes that ever graced the Chinese throne. Tai-tfu, the assassin and successor of the 20th sovereign of this race, established the 14th dynasty, A. D. 907, but did not live long to enjoy the fruit of his crime. He was slain by his eldest son, who was himself killed by his brother Moti. Anarchy raging in the em- pire, an able general, supported by a powerful party, attacked Moti, who, being vanquished, committed suicide, and his family became ex- tinct. Chwang-tsong, the victorious general, assumed the character of emperor, and founded the loth dynasty, A. D.<'23. During his reign, block-printing was invented among the is d ign, Chi- nese. This dynasty produced four emperors, the last of whom, being pursued by the mur- derers of his father, burned himself, together with his family. Of the emperors of the two succeeding dynasties, commencing A. D. u >fimporta who narrate little more than the accession to nothing of tance is recorded by historians, the throne, and death of the several sovereigns. Tai-tou was the founder of the 18th dynasty, A. D. 951, and had a profound veneration for Confucius, to whose tomb he paid a visit. His son, Chi-tsong, imitated all his virtues, and, when at the very summit of human grandeur, still retained a modest deportment. Tay-tou, the founder of the 19th dynasty, A. D. 960, was worthy of his exaltation, and possessed all the qualities to render a state happy and flourish- ing. Under Ching-tsong, the third emperor of the dynasty, the number of persons employed in cultivating the land was computed to be about 22,000,000 CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CHI 182 CHI go Ch Under Li-tsou, the 14th emperor, who was himself by no means warlike, his generals ex- pelled the eastern Tartars, who retreated nearly into their own territories, but returned and con- quered CH.na, which they still possess. Shi- tsu, the founder of the 20th dynasty, A. D. 1279, though a Tartar, and the first foreign prince that reigned over the Chinese, effectual- ly reconciled them to his government, and even endeared himself to them, by observing their ancient laws and customs, by his equity and justice. His successors, till the ninth, in whom terminated the race, established the religion of Fo in China. One of them invited the grand lama from Thibet, whom he received with the most extraordinary ceremonies: and with the lamas entered also magic, dancing girls, and de- bauchery, which in the end perverted the wise vernment. A servant of the bonses, named u, headed a revolt, and compelled the emperor Shunti to flee, with whom ended the Tartar dynasty of Ywen, which was succeded by that of Ming, founded by Chu, who, ascending the throne, took the name of Tay-tsu, A. D. 1368. The piety of the new emperor equaled his wis- dom and penelration. The catastrophe of this race, which ended with the 13th emperor, was announced and preceded by continual commo- tions during several reigns. .The nobles of the empire called in against the insurgents the Man- chew or eastern Tartars, who again possessed themselves of the Chinese throne. This memo- rable revolution happened in the year 1644. The nobility had imagined that they should find the Tartars' merely auxiliaries, who would assist them in placing a Chinese emperor on the throne ; but when these allies had compelled the rebels to lay down their arms, they consid- ered the empire as a fair reward for their labor. However, the Chinese princes of the blood did not tamely submit to this usurpation. Several competitors arose against Shun-chi, the first Manchew emperor; but, though hostilities weie carried on with gieat obstinacy by sea and land, the vigor of the Tartars completely prevailed over every adversary. Shun-chi was succeeded by his son Kang-hi, A. D. 10(51. This prince was not only endow- ed with all the qualifications requisite to render him worthy of the imperial diadem, hut was also very happy in the choice that his 1'itln r had made of iour noble guardians, who studied to preserve the empire in a nourishing and peaceable condition. Kang-hi was succeeded by his son Yong-shing, A. D. 1722, who as- cended the throne at the age of forty-five, and who reigned with absolute power, and was greatly dreaded by his subjects. The death of this emperor took place, A. D. 1735. This prince was succeeded by Kieu-hong, who, after a happy, peaceable, and long reign of sixty- three years, died on the llth of February, 1799. On his death, Kia-king, the fifth of the Tartan dynasty, ascended the throne. He died in 1820, and was succeeded by the present emperor, hia second son, Taia-Kwang. CHINA, Dynasties of. The Ilia Dynasty, 2207 to 1767, B. C. The Shang'Dy nasty, 17G7 to 1122. The Tchuen Dynasty. 1122 to 256. The Tasin Dynasty, 256 to 257, B. C. The Hang Dynasty, 207, B. C. to 220, A. D. From 220 to 260, China was divided into three kingdoms, the Shohang dynasty, 220 to 263; that of the Goei in the north, 220 to 265, and that of the El in the south, 220 to 280. The Tsin Dynasty, 265 to 420. The U-ta Dynasties, 420 to 589. The Sui Dynasty, 589 to 617. The Tang Dynasty, 617 to 907. The Hehu-u-ta Dynasty, 907 to 960. The Song Dynasty, 960 to 1279. The Mogul Khans, 1279 to 1368. The Ming Dynasty, 1368 to 1644. The Tsin. She was remarkable for acts and habits foreign to her sex, viz. learning, murder, mid apostasy. Her conduct was so flagrant, that she found it difficult to procure ai\ asyhnn in any state, after having been exclud- ed from her own. She died at Koine. CHRISTOKIIK, Henri, king of Hayti, was born October G, 17G7. In early life he was a slave and passed from ihe hands of one master to another, being successively a cook, and an overseer. The French were conquered by the exertions of Dessalines and Christophe, the latter of whom was general-in-chief of the ar- my duiing the short-lived imperial government of the former. In JHOG. an insurrection broke out in Hayti, in which Dessalines, the emperor, was killed by the negroes whom he had provok- ed by his cruelty and oppression. His succes- sor, Christophe, assumed the humbler title of chief of the government, and in that capacity opened the commerce of his dominions to neu- tral nations, by a proclamation distinguished for its liberal spirit and enlightened views. In 1811 Christophe changed the republic into a monarchy, and proclaimed himself king of Hayti. A 'short time before his coronation he created a nobility consisting of princes, dukes, counts, and barons, to give greater splendor to the ceremony. He created a legion of honor, called the order of St. Henri, and altered the HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CIC 185 C1D name of his capital from Cape Francois to Cape Henri. His troops, at this time, amounted to about 10,000 men, all negroes, and his fleet con- sisted of one forty -four-gun frigate, nine sloops of war, and a number ot schooners. On the 12th December, 1820, Christophe, hearing that his troops had abandoned him. shot himself through the head, and the opposite party immediately proclaimed a republican government. CHRISTOPHER, ST., commonly called St. Kitts, a West India island, discovered by Co- lumbus in 1493. Its length is 15 miles. It is a valuable possession of Great Britain, and con- tains 2:?,!)00 inhabitants. CHRYSOSTOM, ST., one of the fathers of the church, an eloquent and pious man, who died 407. CHURCH. States of the, the dominions of the Pope, are situated in the centre of Italy, between Naples, and Lombardy, and Tuscany, and the Tuscan and Adriatic Seas, and con- tains 17,185 square miles, occupied by 2,460,000 inhabitants. CHURCH, Benjamin, a native of Duxbury, Massachusetts, was born in 1639, and distin- guished himself by his address and daring in the Indian wars. His services during king Philip's war were great, and he commanded the party that killed the sachem of Mount Hope, in August, 1676. He died in his 78th year, Jan. 17, 1718. CHURCHILL, Charles, a famous English poet, born 1731, died in 1764. His political sa- tires were received with great applause, and his Prophecy of Famine, a Scotch pastoral, contain- ing a severe satire upon the Scots, was read with eagerness, and procured notoriety for its author. CIBBER, Colley, an English actnr and dra- matist, was born in London in 1671. and died in 1757, seven years after he quitted the theatre. His comedy of the Careless Husband received even the approbation of the bitter Pope. CICERO, Marcus Tullius, the celebrated orator, born at Arpinum 106 B. C., was the son of a Roman knight. In Sicily he exercised the qusestorship with equity and moderation, and freed the Sicilians from the tyranny and avarice of Verres. He discharged the offices of edile and prcetor, and stood for the consulship, at a time when Catiline was making the most vigor- ous efforts to oppose him. Catiline, with many dissolute and desperate Romans, had conspired t against his country, and planned the murder of Cicero himself. The plot being discovered chiefly by the efforts of Cicero, he commanded Catiline to leave the city, and the desperate traitor march- ed forth to meet the 20.000 men that were assent bled to support his cause. The rebels were de- feated, and the conspirators capitally punished. After this memorable deliverance, Cicero receiv- ed the thanks of the people, and the title of father of Ids country and second founder of Rome. The vehemence with which he attacked Clo- dius, proved injurious to him; and when his enemy was made tribune, Cicero was banished from Rome, though 20,000 young men were ready to attest his innocence." After an absence of 16 months, during which he had been favor- ably received wherever he presented himself, he was recalled, and entered Rome to the uni- versal satisfaction. When he was sent, with the power of proconsul to Cilicia, his integrity and prudence made him successful against the enemy, and on his return he was honored with a triumph, which, however, the factions pre vented him from enjoying. During the civil wars between Caesar and Pompey, he joined the latter, and followed him to Greece. When victory had declared in fa vor of Cocsar, at the battle of Pharsalia, Cicero went to Brundusiuni, and was reconciled to the conqueror, who treated him with great humani- ty. From this time Cicero retired into the country, and seldom visited Rome. After the assassination of Caesar, Cicero recommended a general amnesty, and was strongly in favor of having the provinces decreed to Brutus and Cassius, but finding the interest of the republi- cans decrease, and Antony come into power, he retired to Athens. He soon after returned, but lived in perpetual fear of assassination. The enmity of Antony finally proved fatal to him ; and Augustus, Antony, and Lepidus, to destroy all causes of quarrel, and each to des- patch his enemies, produced their lists of pro- scription. Cicero was among the proscribed. He fled but was pursued, and put to death in his 64th year, B. C. 43. Cicero was a sincere patriot, and was unquestionably one of the brightest ornaments of the age in which he lived. His eloquence was winning, and his pen possessed the power of his tongue. His ora- tions and philosophical works are models of style. Cicero possessed a sparkling wit, and many of his Ion-mots have descended to pos- terity. CID, Don Rodrigo Dias, count of Bivar, sur- named the Cid (a Moorish word, signifying lord), one of the most renowned knights of Spain, was born in 1026 and signalized himself against the Moors, winning the esteem of his CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CIN 186 CLA countrymen who bestowed upon him the title of Campcador (incomparable). On the acces- sion of Sancho to the throne of Castile, the knight of Bivar accompanied him to the siege of Zamora, whence he brought back the troops and the dead body of the warrior monarch, who fell by treachery. Alfonso, the brother of Sancho, was then placed on the throne, after swearing that he had no participation in the murder of Sancho. His last exploit was the capture of Saguntum, and he died at Valencia, 101(9. He was buried at Castile, and near him lies interred his beloved and faithful charger, Babieca. CILK^'IA, a country of antiquity, south of Mount Taurus, between Pamphylia and Syria, the coast of \vhich was inhabited by a piratical race. The Macedonians, Syrians, and Romans successively possessed it, and it was a province of the Roman empire from the time of Vespa- sian till the fall of Rome. CIMBRI,or Cimmerians, an ancient tribe of the Germans, the first of that people with whom the Greeks became acquainted. Their origin is doubtful ; they were warlike, and made them- selves formidable to other nations. CIMON, an Athenian, son of Miltiades and Hegesipul, famous for his debaucheries in his youth, and the reformation of his morals when he arrived at years of discretion. He behaved with great courage at the battle of Salamis, and rendered himself popular, by his munificence and valor. He defeated the Persian fleet, took 200 ships, and totally routed their land-army, on the same day. Cimon afterward lost his popularity, and was banished by the Athenians, who declared war against the Lacedsemonians; but having been recalled from his exile, recon- ciled LacedaRmon and his country. He was afterwards appointed to carry on the war against Persia; gave battle to the enemy on the coast of Asia, and totally destroyed their fleet. He died as he was besieging the town of Citium, in Cyprus, B. C. 441), in the 51st year of his age. CINCINNATI, a flourishing city in the stale of Ohio, on the north bank of the Ohio, con- taining, in 1840, 46,382 inhabitants. It was founded in 178'J, and its growth has been aston- ishingly rapid. It contains very extensive manufacturing establishments. Its population at present exceeds 30,000. CINC1NNATUS, Lucius Quintus, a cele- brated Roman. Having been informed, as he ploughed his field, that the senate had chosen him dictator, he left his farm with regret, and repaired to the assistance of his countrymen, whom he found hard pressed by the Volsci and jEqui. He conquered the enemy and returned to Rome in triumph; and, sixteen days after his appointment, laid down his office, and re- turned to his agricultural employments. In his 80th year he was again summoned against Praneste, as dictator, and after a successful campaign, resigned the unlimited power, which had been reposed in him. He flourished about 400 years B. C. CINNA, Lucius Cornelius, a Roman consul who leagued with Marius to deluge Rome with blood. He was stoned to death. CIRCASSIA, a country of Asia, lying be- tween the Black and the Caspian Sea. The Circassians are Mohammedans, and are under the protection of Russia. They are a warlike race. The females are celebrated for their beau- ty, and are esteemed the brightest ornaments of an eastern seraglio. Circassia contains about 550,000 inhabitants. CISALPINE REPUBLIC. This name was given by Bonaparte to a republic which receiv- ed its constitution in 1797, and which finally included a territory of more than ](>,337 square miles, inhabited by three and a half millions of inhabitants. It included, among other districts, Austrian Lombardy, the Mantua and Vene- tian provinces, Bergamo, Brescia, Crema, Ve- rona, and Rovigo, the duchy of Modena, the Principality of Massa and Carrara, Bologna, 'errara, Messola, and Romagna. CLAPPERTON, Captain Hugh, an officer in the English navy, born at Annan, in Scot- land, in 1788. Having served with distinction, he was anxious to join doctor Oudney , and Uen- ham, in their expedition to Africa. After ac- quiring a vast fund of information in regard to the interior of Africa, he returned to England, but died in the vicinity of Soccatoo, while on a second expedition of discovery, April 13th, 1S27. Richard Lander was his servant. CLARE, John, a peasant of Northampton- shire, England, was born at Helpstone, July 13th, 1793. His talents displayed themselves as early as his 13th year. A collection of his poems wns published in J 819, and their recep- tion bv the public was highly flattering. Rais- ed by "his pen from abject poverty, Clare soon saw himself in possession of a comfortable property. CLARENDON, Edward Hyde, earl of, lord high chancellor of England, was born 1008, and^ educated at Oxford. 'He became chancellor oC exchequer and member of the privy council HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CLA 187 CLE under Charles I, and was loaded with honors by Charles II. Having, however, lost the royal favor, he was deprived of his offices ; threatened with impeachment, and compelled to fly to France, where he died, at Rouen, in 1674. CLARKE, George Rogers, an American officer, who was engaged against the Indians, throughout the revolutionary war, on the fron- tiers of Virginia. In 1778, he was appointed to command a force for the protection of Illinois. He built fort Jefferson on the eastern bank of the Mississippi, and in 1781, received a gener- ral's commission. He died in 1817, near Louis- ville, Kentucky. The following anecdote is related of him in an authentic work. The Indians came in to the treaty of fort Washington in the most friendly manner, ex- cept the Shawalianees, the most conceited and warlike of the aborigines, the first in at a battle, the last at a treaty. Three hundred of their finest warriors set off in all their paint and feathers, and filled the council-house. Their number and demeanor, so unusual at an occa- sion of this sort, was altogether unexpected and suspicious. The United States' stockade mus- tered 70 men. In the centre of the hall, at, a little table, sat the commissary-general, Clarke, the indefatigable scourge of these very wander- ers, General Richard Butler, and Mr. Parsons. There was also present a Captain Denny, who, I believe, is still alive, and can attest this story. On the part of the Indians, an old council- sachem and a war-chief took the lead. The latter, a tall, raw-boned fellow, with an impu- dent and villanous look, made a boisterous and threatening speech, which operated effectu- ally on the passions of the Indians, who set up a prodigious whoop at every pause. He concluded by presenting a black and white wampum, to signify they were prepared for either events, peace or war. Clarke exhibited the same unaltered and careless countenance he had shown during the whole scene, his head leaning on his left hand, and his elbow resting on the lable. He raised his little cane, and pushed the sacred wampum off the table, with very little ceremony. Every Indian, at the same time, started from his seat with one of those sudden, simultaneous, and peculiarly sav- age sounds, which startle and disconcert the stoutest heart, and can neither be described nor forgotten.' At this juncture, Clarke arose. The scrutinizing eye cowered at his glance. .He stamped his foot on the prostrate and in- Suited symbol, and ordered them to leave the hall. They did so apparently involuntarily. They were heard all that night, debating in the bushes near the fort. The raw-boned chief was for war, the old sachem for peace. The latter C vailed, and the next morning they came k and sued for peace. CLAUDIUS I, emperor of Rome, the son of Drusus, and the successor of the infamous Ca- ligula. He made some conquests in Britain, and built several noble structures in Rome. He was poisoned by his wife Agrippina, who wish- ed to place her son, Nero, on the throne, A. D. 54. He was then 03 years of age. CLEMENT. This name has been borne by several popes. Clement XIV, suppressed the order of the Jesuits, and gave many proofs of great liberality in religious matters. He is best known by his real name, Gauganelli. He died in 1775. CLEMENT, Jacques, a weak-headed enthu- siast, who assassinated king Henry III, of France. CLEOMBROTUS, king of Sparta, killed in a battle fought with Eparninondas at Leuctra, B.C. 371. CLEOMENES. This name was borne by three kings of Sparta. The first delivered Athens from the tyranny of the Pisistratido3, but killed himself in a fit of insanity, B. C. 491. The reign of the second was distinguished for nothing but an uninterrupted tranquillity. Cleomenes III, was the son and successor of Leonidas, and began to reign, B. C. ~J30. En- gaging in a war with the Achaans, he was defeated, and obliged to fly into Egypt, where he destroyed himself in prison, B. C. 219. CLEOPATRA, queen of Egypt, and one of the most famous and fascinating female sove- reigns of antiquity, was the daughter of Ptole- my Auletes, and the sister and wife of Ptolemy Dionysius, who deprived her of her share in the kingdom, and drove her to seek protection of the Romans. She exerted all the influence of her beauty to win the heart and gain the favor of Csesar, and she was successful. Ptole- my was defeated and drowned. He left the throne to his sister, who removed her younger brother by poison. Cleopatra visited Rome during the lifetime of Csesar, but was forced to quit it by the clamors of the populace. After the battle of Philippi, she was summoned by Antony to appear before him to answer to the charge brought against her of having assisted Brutus. When she made her appearance be- fore Antony, the charms of her person and mind ensnared him. and made him forget the attractions of his wife. At the battle of Acti- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CLI 188 CLI um she fled, and her paramour was defeated. He afterwards committed suicide, and died in her arms. Cleopatra, to avoid gracing the tri- umph of the conqueror, applied an asp to her breast, and died of the wound, B. C. 30. .She was a woman of great talents, but of a most ambitious and extravagant spirit. In a convi- vial contest with Antony, to see which of them could expend the most money on an entertain- ment, she snatched one of her pearl ornaments, valued at 10,00(M. and dissolving it in a cup of vinegar, swallowed the contents. Few scenes of antiquity can have surpassed the splendor of her appointments, when she floated over the waves of the river Cydnus, to meet Antony. She came to judgment, but, she came in the pride of beauty, and anticipated triumph. Her galley glowed with gold ; odors filled its silken sails, and the loveliest girls of Egypt, performed the part of mariners. Beneath an awning on the deck, lay the queen, in th'e slight drapery with which painters and sculptors sometimes invest the goddess of beauty. Silver oars struck the water to the dulcet sound of music, and beneath and about them sported the fair representatives of marine deities. CLERFAYT, Francis Sebastian Charles Jo- seph de Croix, count of, an Austrian general. In 1792, he commanded the Austrian troops against France, and after taking Longwy and Stenay, retired into the Low Countries. Here he lost the famous battle of Jemappes ; but his retreat across the Rhine was a masterpiece of skill. Under the command of the prince of Coburg, he gained considerable advantages at Altenhaven, Quievrain, Hausen, and Far- mars, and decided the victory of Nerwinden. With General Richegru, he disputed every foot of ground, till the inferiority of his forces obliged him to abandon the country. In 1795, he took the command of the army of Mayence, forced the French camp, and took a number of prisoners. He was following the victory with ardor, when he received at Manheim, an order to desist. On this he gave in his resignation, and retired to Vienna, where he died in 1798. CLIFFORD, George, the third earl of Cum- berland, a nobleman distinguished by his naval enterprises in the reign of queen Elizabeth. He did groat damage to the Spanish settle- ments and trade. He died in 1605. CLIFTON, William, a young poet of great promise, who died enrly. He was born in Philadelphia, in 1772, and died in 1799. CLINTON, Sir Henry, an English general, who came to America in 1773. He was en- gaged, during the revolutionary war, both in the northern and southern states. Being super- seded, he returned to England in 17ti2, and died in 1795. CLINTON, James, the fourth son of Charles Clinton, was born in Ulster county, New York, Aug. 9, 1736. His education was excellent, and he served with distinction in the English and French war of 1756, and in the revolution- ary war. After the close of the war, he became a senator of the United States. He died in 1812. CLINTON, George, youngest brother of the preceding, was born July 15, 1739. In the old French war. and the war of independence he displayed great gallantry. Having studied law, he was admitted to practice in due time, and was chosen governor of New York, in 1777, and he continued in office 18 years, and could have served a much longer time, but declined re-election. He was chosen vice president of the United States, and held the office till the time of his death in 1812. CLINTON, De Witt, was born at Little Britain, Orange county, New York, in 1769. He studied law, was elected, successively, mem- ber of the state legislature, of the senate of the union, and mayor of New York, being obliged to retire from the office, after filling it many years, by the violence of party spirit. In 1817, he was chosen governor of New York, on which occasion his previous opponents gave him their votes, from a sense of his merit ; he was re- elected in 1820. Clinton was one of the prime movers of the canal scheme, and having satis- fied himself that there was no danger of that being defeated, in 1822, he declined again en tering the elective lists. Having been deprived of his seat in the board of canal commissioners, by the animosity of his political opponents, a revolution in public feeling took place which enabled his friends to elect him governor over Colonel Young, by an overwhelming majority. In 1826, he was again elected, but died in 1828. CLTVE, Robert, lord, was born in 1725, in Shropshire. Lord Clive became eminent for his successes in India, but was originally merely a writer in the company's service. He assisted in the Tanjore war, in 1747. and in 17.~>1, took A root by a coup de main, and relieved Tritch- inopoly. He afterwards took ForWPFilliam in I'diiral, defeated Surajah Dowlah. and placed Jaffier AH Cawn upon the throne. Honors were heaped upon him in consequence of thes|'* achievements, and he was made president oi ** HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL'. COB 189 COL Bengal. After defending himself with spirit against the charge of abusing his power, he gave way to depression, and destroyed himself, in 1774. CLOTILDE DE VALLON CHALIS, Mar- guerite Elenore, a talented poetess and amiable woman, who lived in the early part of the 15th century. In 1421 she married Berenger de Surville, a young knight in the service of Charles VII, who was killed before Orleans, 10 years after. The date of her death is uncer- tain. CLOUD, St. a village six miled east of Paris, and a royal residence, the palace having been improved and embellished by Napoleon. CLOVIS, king of the Franks, born 4(>5, suc- ceeded his father Childeric in 481. He em- braced Christianity and was publicly baptized. He defeated the Goths, subdued several provin- ces, and fixed the royal residence at Paris, lie died in 511, after a reign of 30 years. CLYMER, George, a patriotic and talented American gentleman, one of the signers of the declaration of independence, was born in Phila- delphia in 1739. Mr. Clyiner was one of the projectors of the bank established for the soie purpose of conveying rations to the army. Per- ceiving the good effects of a national bank, in 1760, when elected a second time to Congress, he strenuously advocated its establishment. In 1734 he filled a seat in the legislature of Penn- sylvania, and as a member of the convention, he assisted in framing the present federal consti- tution. When, in 1791, the famous bill imposing a duty on spirits distilled within the United States, was passed, Clymer was placed at the head of the Pennsylvania excise. He was en- gaged, with others, to negotiate a treaty with" the Indians in 17!iG. He was afterwards ap- pointed president of the academy of arts, and of the Philadelphia bank. He died in 1813. CLYTEMNESTRA. a daughter of Tynda- rus, king of Sparta, by Heda, and twin-sister of Helen. In the absence of her husband, Agamemnon, at the siege of Troy, ^Egisthus made his court to her, and publicly lived with her. Her infidelity reached the ears of Aga- memnon, but he was prevented from carrying his schemes of vengeance into execution, being murdered by the traitress and her paramour on his return home. After this crime, Clytemnes- tra publicly married ^gisthus. who ascended the throne of Argos. She was killed by her son Orestes. COBURG, a Saxon principality in central Germany. COCHIN-CHINA, composed of the king- doms of Cambodia, Cochin-China Proper, and Tonquin, is 1000 miles long, and from 70 to 220 miles broad. It is governed by a king. The inhabitants are hardy, but treacherous, and the country is fertile. Little attention is paid to re- ligion, although that of Fo is professed by the lower orders. The commerce of the country is great and increasing. A portion of the country was conquered and colonized by the Chinese B. C. 214. After the Chinese yoke had been thrown off, and various commotions had taken place, three brothers of low rank, (the Tay- sons), having defeated and killed the king of the country, found a powerful opponent in his son Gialong, who eventually re-cr.nquered the country after a prolonged struggle, and left it in its present state, to Meng-mencr. COURUS, the son of Melanthus. and last king of Athens, who, learning that the Oracle had assured the Heraclidse that their good for- tune depended on sparing his life, rushed into the midst of the hostile array in disguise, and was slain. COKE, Sir Edward, a famous English law- yet who flourished in the ICth century. COLBERG, a fortress and sea-port of Prus- sian Pomerania". frequently besieged, and mem- orable for its gallant defence against the French in 1807. COLCHESTER, a town cf England, in Es- sex, on the river Colne, the Colonia of the an- cients, containing 16.000 inhabitants. It is said to have been the birth-place of Helena, the mother of Constantine. In the reign of Mary, many persons were put to death here on account of their religious principles ; and. in 1648, the town was besieged by the forces of the parlia- ment, and so reduced, that 730 horses were de- livered up for provisions, and dogs 'and cats were sold at an enormous price. The town at length surrendered. COLIGNY, Gaspard de, admiral of France, born in 1516. He served with distinction un- der the gallant Francis 1 and Henrv II, by both of whom he was honored and rewarded. He was chief of the Calvinists against the Guises, to whom he continued formidable even after re- peated defeats. Ooligny was the first who fell in the atrocious massacre of St. Bartholo- mew's day, in 1572. His head was sent by Catharine of Medicis to the pope. COLLING WOOD, Cuthbert.bnron, an Eng- lish admiral, was born at Newcastle-upon-Tyne, in 1748. In 1761, he entered the naval service, in which he passed through all the regular steps CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. COL 190 COL of promotion, till he was made post captain, and commanded the Prince, admiral Boyer's flag- ship, on the 1st of June, 1794. After this he bore a part with Nelson, in the action off Cape St. Vincent, February 14th, 1797. In 1804 he was made vice-admiral of the blue, and served with Cornwallis in the tedious but important block- ade of Brest. At length, after many and va- rious services. Collingwood became second to Nelson, in the battle of Trafalgar. On this oc- casion, his ship, the Royal Sovereign, com- menced the fight in such a manner as to draw from the commander these expressions : " Look at that noble fellow ! observe the style in which he carries his ship into action !" After the loss of Nelson, the command de- volved upon Collingwood at a critical period, und how well he secured by his prudence what had been so gloriously won, needs not here be related. He "was now advanced to be vice-ad- miral of the red. confirmed in the command of the Mediterranean fleet, and created a peer of Great Britain, by the title of baron Collingwood. He died oft' Minorca, on board the Ville de Paris, March 7, 1810; and his body was carried to England, and interred in St. Paul's cathedral. COLLINS, William, an English poet, was the son of a hatter of Chichester, where he was born about 17'20. Aller completing his college course, he published his Oriental Eclogues, and went to London in 1744. His fortunes having driven him to the bottle, he died in 17,>G. COLLOT D' HERBOIS, Jean Marie, an actor who was hissed from the stage, mnde him- self infamous during the French revolution by conducting the massacres at Lyons. He was banished to Guinea atler the fall of Robespierre, and died inl7';)6. COLMAN, GEORGE, a dramatic writer, was born at Florence, where his father was an English envoy, in 1733. He was a fine scholar ana writer. His death took place in 1794. COLOGNE, an ancient city, capitol of the Prussian government of Cologne, contains G4,000 inhabitants. It possesses many attrac- tions for the antiquarian, and is of great com- mercial importance. COLOMBIA, late a republic of S America, comprising a surface of 1,100,000 square miles, embraced all the countries formerly known by the names of New Grenada, and Venezuela, or Caraccas, and Quito. The republic of Co- lombia was subdivided into the departments of the Isthmus, Magdalena, Zulia, Venezuela, Ori- noco, Cauca, Cundinamarca, Boyaca, A pure, The Equator, Guayaquil, Assuay. Population is about 2,700,000. The Orinoco and Magdale- na, the latter of which is 1,000 miles long, are the principal rivers. The face of the country is greatly diversified, the elevated portions of it being healthy, while in the low parts, the climate is hot and noxious. The soil of the low valleys is rich, and produces abundantly, cotton , tobac- co, corn, coffee, and tropical fruits The precious metals and stones are found in the mountains. The Andes, in some parts, reach an elevation of 21,000 feet. After a fierce contest the royal party was subdued, and a junction of the three provinces abovementioned. effected under a federal constitution. But in 18'29, the confede- ration fell to pieces, and three new states, an- swering to the old Spanish colonial divisions, have be^n formed of the fragments, viz. : New Grenada, comprising the five departments of The Isthmus, Magdalena. Cauca. Cundin.-.mar- ca, and Boyaca ; The Equator, composed of the three departments of The Equator, Guayaquil, and Assuay ; and Venezuela, including the other four departments. COLOSSUS of Rhodes. There are many contradictory accounts of this gigantic bronze statue of Apollo, which was of such extraordi- nary height, that the ancients assure us that vessels, with all their sails set went between its legs. It was about 100 feet high, and is said to have been modelled by Chares of Lindus, a dis- ciple of the famous Lysippus, who was occupied 12 years upon the work. B. C. 223, it was over- thrown by an earthquake, which committed great ravages, particularly in Caria, and the isle of Rhodes. COLUMBIA, the seat of Government of South Carolina, situated on the Congaree, con- taining 4,295 inhabitants. Many ot its public edifices are very handsome. COLUMBIA. District of, 10 miles square, is situated on both sides of the Potomac. "Whole population, in 1840,43,712. It contains Alex- andria, Washington, and Georgetown, and be- came the seat of government of the Union, in 1890. COLUMBUS, Christopher. Some account of this celebrated navigator will be found in another portion of this work. (See .-Inn //,-,,). He was a native of Genoa, born about 1435, of poor parents, who educated him with care. At the age of 14 lie went to sea. having evinc- ed an early attachment to a sailor's life. A :r.;inst the Mohammedans and Venetians he fought with great bravery and skill. Having conceiv- ed the design of a western passage to India, he for a long time sought for patronage without HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. COM 191 CON avail ; but after struggling 18 years, was at length aided by Ferdinand and Isabella, and sailed with three small vessels, the Pinta, J\"ina, and Pinzon, August 3, 14!i2. Land was discov- ered on the llth of October, which proved to be the island of Guanahani, named by Colum- bus, St. Salvador. Cuba was discovered on the 28th of October. Columbus was the first to announce liis own discovery, and was received in Spain with signal favor. He was created a grandee of the realm and loaded with other honors. September 25, 1493, he sailed from Cadiz, on his second voyage, with a fleet of 17 sail. He built a town called Isabella at Hispa- niola, but encountered man} 1 obstacles and diffi- culties in his new voyage of discovery. Mean- while that envy, winch never fails to pursue true merit, stirred up clamors against Columbus, which were stifled, however, by his return to Spain in 1496, with valuable treasures. In 14PW he departed on his third voyage. Arrived in the new world, he found his enemies still exas- perated against him, and they scrupled not to represent him to his sovereigns as endeavoring to make himself independent. Their stories were believed, Francis de Bobadilla was sent to Hispaniola, and the admiral and his brothers put in irons, and sent to Spain. There the honor and fidelity of Columbus became appa- rent, nnd he was nominally reinstated in his dignities. But the disposition of the sovereigns towards him was altered. Nicolo de Ovando y Lares, was sent to Hispaniola as governor, and Columbus, now sought only to obtain the fulfil- ment of the royal promises with regard to the furtherance of his expedition, imagining that the continent he had discovered was Asia, and hoping to find a way to the East Indies by the isthmus of Darien. His fourth voyage, com- menced March !), 1502, with few iacilities, proved, on the whole, disastrous, and Columbus, after being wrecked, and surrounded by dangers, returned to Spain. Neglected by his former patrons, his spirits sank, and he died atVallado- lid, May 20th, 150fi,in the 70th year of his oge. He was buried in the city of St. Domingo, but his remains were afterward removed to the ca- thedral of Havana, in Cuba. Columbus had a noble and pleasing countenance and form, and was eloquent, amiable, and pious. COMMODUS ANTOMUS, Lucius JElius Aurelius, emperor of Rome, son of Marcus Au- relius, was born A. D. 1(51. At 16 years of age he was associated with his father in the govern- ment, and in A. D. 180, ascended the 'throne. He surpassed in profligacy and cruelty all his wicked predecessors. He maimed and disem- bowelled his subjects for pleasure. From his great strength he bore a strikmg resemblance to the statues of Hercules, in tlie dress of whom he appeared. He debauched his own sisters, and mixed with the vilest and most degraded of the human race. Having exhausted the treasury by his extravagance, he replenished i by imposing enormous taxes on the people Habited like a slave, he drove his own chariot and fought as a gladiator, 735 times. He was strangled by his favorite gladiator, Narcissus, in CONCORD, the seat of government of New Hampshire, situated on both sides of the river Merrimack, 63 miles northwest from Boston, containing 4,898 inhabitants. CONCORD, a village of Middlesex county, Massachusetts, 13 miles north of Boston. At Concord and Lexington the first armed resist- ance was made to the troops of Great Britain, April 19th, 1775. CONDE, Louis de Bourbon, prince of, was the son of Charles of Bourbon, duke of Ven- dome, and was born in 1530. He signalized himself at the battle of St. Quintin, and became leader of the discontented Huguenots. He was wounded at the battle of Dreux, in 1562, and slain in that of larnac, in 15C9. CONDE, Louis, prince of, commonly called tne great, was born at Paris in ] 621 . At the age of 22 he gained the battle of Rocroi against the Spaniards, and captured Thionville and other places. He next entered Germany where he gained innumerable laurels. Being recalled thence, he was sent into Catalonia, but failed in his attempt to take Lerida. In 1648, he defeated the Imperialists in Flanders with prodigious slaughter. In the civil war Conde at first ad- hered to the court, but afterwards opposed it without success. He refused to accede to the peace, and entered into the service of the Span- iards in the Low Countries, where his military exploits were uncommonly splendid. At the peace of the Pyrenees, in 1659, he obtained his pardon, and served his country with his wonted activity and success. He contended with the prince of Orange in the Netherlands, and was wounded in the memorable passage of the Rhine. The conquest of Tranche Compte was also chiefly owing to him. After the death of Turenno. he carried on the war against Germany with advantage. He died in 16d7 at Fontaine- bleau. CONFEDERATION OF THE RHINE. In 1806, the emperor Napoleon, having deter- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CON 192 CON mined that there should not exist, on the conti- nent, any power capable of opposing his designs, contrived to dismember the German empire, and induce the emperor to abandon his title of emperor of Germany. In pursuance of these views, a new union was formed by several of the German princes, under the naine of the Confederation of the Rhine. The kings of Ba- varia and Wirtemburg, the arch-chancellor, the elector of Baden, the Duke of Berg, the land- grave of Hesse Darmstadt, the princes of Nassau- Weilbourg, of Nassau- Usingen, of Ho- henzollcrn, Heckingen, Siegmaringen. Saim- Sahn, Salm-Kysburif, Isenburg, Birstein. and Lichtenstein, the duke of Aremberg, and the count of Leyen, published at Ratisbon, a decla- ration, purporting that as the Germanic con- stitution then existing, could afford no guaran- tee for the public tranquillity, the contracting parties had agreed, that their states should be for ever separated from the Germanic body, and united by a particular confederation, under the title of ' The Confederate States," of which the emperor of the French was constituted the head and protector. The treaty of confederation was projected and drawn up at Paris, and ratified at Munich, on the 2T)th of July, 1806 : it contained 40 articles relative to the territories, which each of the contracting parties was to possess, and other important particulars. Every continental war, in which either France or any of the confede- rate states should be engaged, was to be com- mon to all ; the contingent to be furnished by each of the members, was determined in the following proportion ; France, 200,000 men, Bavaria 30,000, Wirtemburg 12.000, Baden 8.000, Berg 5,000, Darmstadt 4,000, Nassau and the other states 4,000. By this confederation, the Germanic body was completely dissolved, and a very consider- able part of its members ranged themselves un- der the banners of V ranee. The emperor, t rin- cis II, in consequence of this organization, resigned his title of Emperor of Germany, and tofck that of Emperor of Austria. Thus was dissolved, the German, or as it was styled in diplomatic language, the Holy Roman Empire ; 1006 years after Charlemagne received the im- perial title and crown, from the hands of the pope of Rome. CONGO, a kingdom of Africa, in Lower Guinea, whicli is under the sway of the Portu- guese. It is rich and fertile. It was discover- ed in 1 lr-'7 by Diego Cam, a Portuguese. The native government is despotic. CONGREVE, William,.a celebrated English dramatist and poet, born in 1(170 and died in 172!). His plays are replete with wit and hu- mor. CONNECTICUT, one of the United States; bounded north by Massachusetts, cast by Rhode Island, south by Long Island Sound and west by New York, and containing 309,948 inhabit- ants. Among the manufactures of Connecti- cut, may be mentioned tin ware, cotton goods, clocks, nails, glass, hats, buttons,' and firearms. The seat of government is alternately at Hart- ford and New Haven. Yale College i-i New Haven is one of the most flourishing institu- tions in the United States. Connecticut colony and New Haven colony, originally under sepa- rate governments, were united in llilio. The present state constitution was formed in 1818. CONSTANTINE THE GREAT, (Caius Flavius Valerius Aurelius Claudius Constan- tine),son of the emperor Constantius Chlorus, by Helena, was born about the year 'J74. On the death of his father, in 300, he was proclaim- ed emperor by the army. He defeated the Franks, atler which he crossed the Rhino, and committed great ravages in Belgium. Constari- tine married Fausta, the daughter of Mnximian, in 306. His father-in-law, taking advantage of his absence from Aries, where he held his court, seized the treasury, and assumed the imperial title, but being taken prisoner by Constantine. strangled himself. A war now broke out be- tween Constantino r.iid Maxentius, the son of Maximum, the former reduced Italy, and de- feated Alaxentins, who was drowned in the Tiber. At this period the era of Constaiitine's conversion to Christianity is fixed. As he was riding at the head cf his troops, an immense cross of exceeding brightness is said to have appeared above the horizon, bearing this inscrip- tion : " IN THIS CONQUEU." Constantine was no lender nn infidel. lie now entered Rome in triumph, and re- ceived from the senate the title of Augustus, in conduction with Licinius and Maximin. the fnr- mer of whom married his sister, Constantia. A civil war shortly after broke out between Li cinius and Maximin, in which the latter was slain. Licinius then formed a conspiracy against Constantine, whicli U'iiiir disr.ivered. war en- sued between them, in which Constantine was successful, and peace was concluded. A second war broke out in 323, and terminated in the de- feat of Licinius, and his resignation of the im- perial dignity. Not l;mg afterwards he wa strangled! HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL CON 193 CON Constantine now began to show his regard for the religion he had adopted, by building nu- merous churches, and journeying 1o Jerusalem to visit the Holy Land, where he erected a mag- nificent church at Bethlehem. With this zeal for religion he blended courage and justice. He conquered the Goths, founded Constantinople, and performed many actions that entitle him to the name of Great. But he sullied his charac- ter by putting to death his son Crispus. He died in 337. CONSTANTINOPLE, called, by the Turks, Istambol, and by other Oriental nations, Con- stantino, the capital of the Turkish empire, is situated on the European side of the Bosphorus. Its circuit, including the suburbs, is about 35 miles, and the number of inhabitants, by the most moderate computation, 630,000 Greeks, Arme- nians, Jews, and Turks. It was built upon the ruins of the ancient Byzantium by Constantine the Great. It became afterwards the capital of the Greek empire ; and, having escaped the de- structive rage of the barbarous nations, it was the greatest as well as the most beautiful city in Europe, and the only one. during the Gothic ages, in which there remained any image of the ancient elegance in manners and arts. It de- rived great advantages from its being the ren- dezvous of the Crusaders ; and, being then in, the zenith of its. glory, the European writers, in that age. speak of it with astonishment. Dur- ing the third Crusade, a revolution happened at Constantinople, which divided the eastern em- pire for 58 years. Alexius Angclus, surnamed the tyrant, having dethroned Isaac II, placed himself upon the throne of Constantinople, in 1195; and Alexius, son of Isaac, applied to the French and Venetians, who passed that way to the Holy Wars, to assist him in the recovery of his father's empire. They accordingly , in 1203, re- duced Constantinople, after a siege of eight days, and replaced Isaac on the throne. The next year, Alexius Dacus Murzoufle assassinat- ed the emperor, whom the Crusaders had re- established, and seized the crown. On hearing this, the French returned, attacked the city, re- duced it in three days, deposed Murzoufle. and chose Baldwin, count of Flanders, emperor. He had four successors, the last of whom, Baldwin II, was deposed in 1262, by Michael Paleologus. In the mean time Theodore Las- caris, who had been charged by the clergy to take arms against the tyrant Murzoufle. finding Constantinople in the power of the French, re- tired with his wife and family to Nice, where, in 1204, he was crowned emperor, and formed a small empire out of that of Constantinople. He had but three successors, the last of whom, John Ducas, was deprived of his sight in 1255, by order of Michael Paleologus, his preceptor, who usurped the throne in 125!), and in 12b'2 made himself master of Constantinople, so that the empire was re-united. He continued till 1453, when Constantinople was taken by Mohammed II, sultan of the Ottoman Turks ; since which it has remained the seat of their empire. Constantinople is at this day one of the finest cities in the world, from its situation and pon. It is frequently called the Porte by way of emi- nence. The city has met with many disasters from convulsions, earthquakes, and the plague. CONSTITUTION, the English, which owes its foundation to the era of the conquest, has been made the model of most of the constitu- tions enjoyed by republican states. The Bill of Rights, which was the basis of the English con- stitution, was passed in the time of their revo- lution. and contained the following provisions: 1. The pretended power of suspending laws, or the execution of laws by regal authority, without the consent of Parliament, is illegal : 2. That the pretended power of dispensing with laws, or the execution of laws by regal au- thority, as it hath been assumed and exercised of late, is illegal : 3. That the commission for erecting the late court of commissioners for ecclesiastical causes, and all other commissions and courts of like nature, are illegal and perni- cious : 4. That levying money for, or to the use of the crown, by pretence of prerogative, without grant of Parliament, for longer time, or in all other manner than the same is, and shall be granted, is illegal : 5. That it is the right of the subjects to petition the king, and that all commitments and prosecutions for such peti- tioning, are illegal : 6. That the raising or keeping a standing army within the kingdom in time of peace, unless it be with consent of parliament, is against law : 7. That the sub- jects which are Protestants, may have arms for their defence, suitable for their conditions, and as allowed by law : 8. That election of mem- bers of Parliament ought to be free : 1). That the freedom of speech, and debates or proceed- ings in Parliament, ought not to be impeached or questioned in any court or place out of par- liament : 10. That excessive bail ought not to be required, nor excessive fines imposed, nor cruel and unusual punishments inflicted : 11. That jurors ought to be duly empannelled and returned ; and that jurors which pass upon men in trials for high treason, ought to be free-hold- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CON 194 CON ere 12. That all grants and promises of fines and forfeitures of particular persons, before conviction, are illegal and void : 13. And that for the redress of ail grievances, and for the amending, strengthening, and preserving of laws, parliaments ought to be held frequently. CONSTITUTION OF THE UNITED STATES, as proposed to the Convention held at Philadelphia, \7th September, 1787, and since ratified bij the several States with amendments. ARTICLE I. Section 1. All legislative powers herein granted, shall be vested in a Congress of the United States, which shall consist oFa Sen- ate and House of Representatives. Sec. 2. The House of Representatives shall be composed of members chosen every second year by the people of the several States ; and the electors in each State shall have the qualifica- tions requisite for electors of the most numer- ous branch of the State Legislature. No person shall be a representative who shall not have attained to the age of twenty-five years, and been seven years a citizen of the United States, and who shall not, when elected, be an inhabitant of that State in which he shall be chosen. Representatives and direct taxes shall be ap- portioned among the several States which may be included within this Union, according to their respective numbers, which shall be determined by adding to the whole number of free persons, including those bound to service for a term of years, and excluding Indians not taxed, three- fifths of all other persons. The actual enume- ration shall be made within three years after the first meeting of the Congress of the United States, and within every subsequent term often years, in such a manner as they shall by law direct. The number of Representatives shall not exceed one for every 30,000, but each State shall have at least one representative. When vacancies happen in the representa- tion from any State, the Executive Authority thereof shall issue writs of election to fill such vacancies. The House of Representatives shall choose their Speaker and other officers ; and shall have the sole power of impeachment. Sec. 3. The Senate of the United States shall be composed of two Senators from eacli State, chosen by the Legislature thereof, for six years : and each Senator shall have one vote Immediately after they shall be assembled in consequence of the first election, they sball be divided as equally as may be into three classes. The seats of the Senators of the first class shall be vacated at the expiration of the second year, of the second class at the expiration of the fourth year, and of the third class at the expi- ration of the sixth year, so that one third may be chosen every second year ; and if vacancies happen by resignation, or otherwise, during the recesa of the Legislature of any state, the Exec- utive thereof may make temporary appoint- ments until the next meeting of the Legisla- ture, which shall then fill such vacancies. No person shall be a Senator who shall not have attained to the age of thirty years, and been nine years a citizen of the United States, and who shall not, when elected, be an inhabi- tant of that State for which he shall be chosen. The V ice-President of the United States shall be President of the Senate, but shall have no vote, unless they be equally divided. The Senate shall choose their other officers, and also a President pro ttmpore, in tiie absence of the Vice-President. or when he shall exercise the office of President of the United States. The Senate shall have the sole power to try fill impeachments. When sitting for that purpose, they shall be on oath or affirmation. When the President of the United States is tried, the chief justice shall preside : And no person shall be convicted without the concurrence of two- thirds of the members present. Judgment, in cases of impeachment, shall not extend further than to remsval from office, and disqualification to hold and enjoy any office of honor, trust or prefit under the United States ; but the party convicted shall nevertheless be liable and subject to indictment, trial, judgment and punishment according to law. Sec. 4. The times, places and manner of holding elections for Senators and Representa- tives, slnill be prescribed in each state by the Legislature thereof: But the Congress may at any time by law make or alter such regula- tions, except as to the places of choosing Sen- ators. The Congress shall assemble at least once in every year, and such meeting shiill he on the first Monday in December, unless they shall by law appoint a different, <1 -:v. Sec. 5. Each House shall be the judge of the elections, returns and qualifications of its own members, and a majority of each shall consti- tute a quorum to do business ; but a smaller number may adjourn from d;sy to day. and may be authorised to compel the attendance of ab- sent members, in such manner, and under such penalties as each House may provide. Each House may determine the rules of its HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CON 195 CON proceedings, punish its members for disorderly behavior, and, with the concurrence of two- thirds, expel a member. Each House shall keep a journal of its pro- ceedings, and from time to time publish the same, excepting such parts as may, in their judgment, require secrecy ; and the yeas and nays of the members of either House on any question, shall, at the dosire of one-fifth of those present, be entered on the journal. Neither house, during the session of Congress, shall, without the consent of the other, adjourn for more than three days, nor to any other place than that in which the two houses shall be sitting. Sec. 6. The Senators and Representatives shall receive a compensation for their services, to be ascertained by law. and paid out of the treasury of the United States. They shall, in all cases, except treason, felony and breach of the peace, be privileged from arrest during their attend- ance at the session of their respective Houses, and in going to or returning from the same ; and for any speech or debate in either House, they shall not be questioned in any other place. No Senator or Representative shall, during the time for which he was elected, be appointed to any civil office under the authority of the United States, which shall have been created, or the emoluments whereof shall have been increased during such time ; and no person holding any office under the United States, sh'ill be a member of either House during his continuance in office. Sec. 7. All bills for raising revenue shall originate in the House of Representatives ; but the Senate may propose or concur with amend- ments as on oilier bills. Every bill which shall have passed the House of Representatives and the Senate, shall, before it become a law, be presented to the President of the United States : if he approve, he shall sign it ; but if not. ho shall return it, with his objections, to that House in whicli it shall have originated, who shall enter the objections at large on their journal, and proceed to reconsider it. If, after such reconsideration, two-thirds of that House shall agree to pass the bill, it shall be sent, together with the objections, to the other House, by which it shall likewise be re- considered, and if approved by two-thirds of that House, it shall become a law. But in all such cases, the votes of both Houses shall be determined by yeas and nays ; and the names of the persons voting for and against the bill, shall be entered on the journal of each House 17* respectively. If any bill shall not be returned by the President within ten days (Sundays ex- cepted) after it shall have been presented to him, the same shall be a law, in like manner as if he had signed it. unless the Congress by their adjournment prevent its return, in which case it shall not be a law. Every order, resolution or vote to which the concurrence of the Senate and House of Repre- sentatives may be necessary (except on a ques- tion of adjournment) shall be presented to the President of the United States; and before the same shall take effect, shall be approved by him, or being disapproved by htm, shall be repassed by two-thirds of the Senate and House of Repre- sentatives, according to the rules and limita- tions prescribed in the case of a bill. Sec. 8. The Congress shall have power To lay and collect taxes, duties, imposts and ex- cises, to pay the debts and provide for the com- mon defence and general welfare of the United States ; but all duties, imposts and excises shall be uniform throughout the United Stales: To borrow money on the credit of the United States : To regulate commerce with foreign nations, and among the several States, and with the Indian tribes : To establish an uniform rule of naturalization, and uniform laws on the subject of bankrupt- cies throughout the United States : To coin money, regulate the value thereof, and of foreign coin, and fix the standard of weights and measures : To provide for the punishment of counter- feiting the securities and current coin of the United States: To establish post-offices and post-roads : To promote the progress of science and useful arts, by securing, for limited times, to authors and inventors, the exclusive right to, their re- spective writings and discoveries: To constitute tribunals inferior to the supreme court : To define and punish piracies and felonies committed on the high seas, and offences against the law of nations : To declare war. grant letters of marque and reprisal, and make rules concerning captures on land and water : To raise and support armies ; but no appro- priation of money to that use shall be for a longer term than two years : To provide and maintain a navy : To make rules for the government and regu lalion of the land and naval forces CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CON 196 CON .alhng forth execute the laws of the Union, suppress insur- rections, and repel invasions : To provide for organizing, arming and disci- plining the militia, and for governing such part of them as may be employed in the service of the United States, reserving to the States re- spectively the appointment of the officers, and the authority of training the militia according to the discipline prescribe'd by Congress : To exercise exclusive legislation in all cases whatsoever, over such district (not exceeding ten miles square) as may, by cession of partic- ular States, and the acceptance of Congress, become the seat of the government of the United States, and to exercise like authority over all places purchased by the consent of the legisla- ture of the State in which the same shall be, for the erection of forts, magazines, arsenals,, dock-yards, and other needful buildings : And To make all laws which shall be necessary and proper for carrying into execution the foregoing powers, and all other powers vested by this Constitution in the government of the United States, or in any department or officer thereof Sec. 9. The migration or importation of such persons as any of the Stales now existing shall think proper to admit, shall not be prohibited by the Congress prior to the year one thousand eight hundred and eight ; but a tax or duty may be imposed on such importation, not exceeding ten dollars for each person. The privilege of the writ of habeas corpus shall not be suspended, unless when in cases of rebellion or invasion the public safety may re- quire it. No bill of attainder or ex post facto law shall be passed. No capitation, or other direct tax shall be laid, unless in proportion to the census or enu- meration herein before directed to be taken. No tax or duty shall be laid on articles export- ed from any State. No preference shall be given by any regula- tion of commerce or revenue to the ports of one State, over those of another : Nor shall vessels, bound to or from one State be obliged to enter, clear, or pay duties in another. No money shall be drawn from the treasury, but in consequence of appropriations made by law ; and a regular statement and account of the receipts and expenditures of all public money shall be published from time to time. No title of nobility shall be granted by the United States : And no person holding any office of profit or trust under them, shall, with- out the consent of the Congress, accept of any present, emolument, office, or title of any kind whatever, from any king, prince, or foreign state. Sec. 10. No State shall enter into any treat}', alliance or confederation ; grant letters oi'marque and reprisal ; coin money ; emit bills of credit ; make any thing but gold and silver coin a ten- der in payment of debts ; pass any bill of attain- der, ex post facto law, or law impairing the obligation of contracts, or grant any title of nobility. No State shall, without the consent of the Congress, lay any imposts or duties on imports, or exports, except what may be absolutely ne- cessary for executing its inspection laws ; and the net produce of all duties and imposts, laid by any State on imports or exports, shall be for the use of the treasury of the United States; and all such laws shall be subject, to the revision and con- trol of the Congress. iN'o State shall, without the consent of Congress, lay any duty of ton- nage, keep troops, or ships of war in time of peace, enter into tiny agreement or compact with another State, or with a foreign power, or engage in war, unless actually invaded, or in such imminent danger as will not admit of delay. ARTICLE II. Sec. 1. The Executive power shall be vested in the President of the United States of America. He shall hold his office during the terns of four years, and, together with the Vice-President, chosen for the same term, be elected as follows : Each state shall appoint, in such manner a.s the legislature thereof may direct, a number of Electors, equal to the whole number of Senators and Representatives t:> which the State may be entitled in the Congress ; but no Senator or Representative, or person holding an office of trust or profit under the United Stales, shall be appointed an Elector. The Electors shall meet in their respective States, and vote by ballot for two persons, of whom one at least slidl not be an inhabitant of the same State with themselves. And they shall make a list of all the persons voted for, arid of the number of votes for each; which list they shall sign and certify, and trans- mit, sealed, to the seat of the government of the United States, directed to the President of the Senate. The President of the Senate shall, in the presence of the Senate and House of Repre- sentatives, open all the certificates, and the votes shall then be counted. The person having the HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CON 197 CON f^rcatest number of votes shall be the President, if such number be a majority of the whole num- ber of Electors appointed; and if there be more than one who have such majority and have an equal number of votes, then the House of Repre- sentatives shall immediately choose by ballot one of them for President ; and if no person have a majority, then from the five highest on the list, the said House shall in like manner choose the President. But in choosing the President, the votes shall be taken by States, the represen- tation from each State having one vote : a quo- rum for this purpose shall consist of a member or members from two-thirds of the States ; and a majority of all the States shall be necessary to a choice. In every case, after the choice of the President, the person having the greatest num- ber of votes of the electors shall be the Vice- President. But if there should remain two or more who have equal votes, the Senate shall choose from them by ballot the Vice-President. (See 12l.h Amendment.) The Congress may determine the time of choosing the Electors, and the day on which they shall give their votes ; which day shall be the same throughout the United States. No person, except a natural born citizen, or a citizen of the United States, at the time of the adoption of this Constitution, shall be eligible to the office of President ; neither shall any per- son be eligible to that office who shall not have attained to the age of thirty -five years, and been fourteen years a resident within the United States. In the case of the removal of the President from office, or of his death, resignation, or ina- bility to discharge the powers and duties of the said office, the same shall devolve on t!>e Vice- President ; and the Congress may bv law pro- vide for the case of removal, death, resignation, or inability, both of the President and Vice- President." declaring what officer shall then act as President ; and such officer shall act accord- ingly, until the disability be removed, or a Pre- sident shall be elected. The President shall, at stated times, receive for his services, a compensation, which shall neither be increased nor diminished during the period for which he shall have been elected ; and he shall not receive, within that period, any other emolument from the United States, or any of them. Before he enter on the execution of his office, he shall take the following oath or affirmation : " I do solemnly swear (or affirm), that I will faithfully execute the office of President of the United States ; and will, to the best of my abil- ity, preserve, protect and defend the Constitu- tion of the United Stales." Sc-c. 2. The President shall be commander in chief of the army and navy pf the United States, and of the militia of the several States, when called into the actual service of the United States ; he may require the opinion, in writinir, of the principal officer in each of the executive departments, upon any subject relating to the duties of their respective offices ; and he shall have power to grant reprieves and pardons for offences against the United States, except in cases of impeachment. He shall have power, by and with the advice and consent of the Senate, to make treaties, pro- vided two-thirds of the Senators present concur ; and he shall nominate, and by and with the advice and consent of the Senate, shall appoint ambassadors, other public ministers and con- suls, judrres of the Supreme Court, and all other officers of the United States, whose appoint- ments are not herein otherwise provided for, and which shall be established by law. But the Congress may by law vest the appointment of such inferior officers as they shall think pro- per in the President alone, in the courts of law, or in the heads of departments. The President shall have power to fill up all vacancies that may happen during the recess of the Senate by granting commissions which shall expire at tiie end of their next session. Sec. 3. He shall from time to time give to the Congress information of the state of the Union, and recommend to their consideration such measures as lie shall judge necessary and expe- dient : He may, on extraordinary occasions, convene both Houses, or either of them ; and in case of disagreement between them, with re- spect to the time of adjournment, he may ad- journ them to such time as he shall think proper : He shall receive Ambassadors and other public Ministers : He shall take care that the laws be faithfully executed, and shall commission all the officers of the United States. Sec. 4. The President, Vice-President, and all civil officers of the United States, shall be re- moved from office on impeachment for, and conviction of, treason, bribery or other high crimes and misdemeanors. ARTICLE III. Section 1. The Judicial power of the United States shall be vested in one Su- preme Court, and in such Inferior Courts as the Congress may from time to time ordain and es- tablish. The Judges, both of, the Supreme and Inferior Court, shall hold their offices during CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CON 198 CON good behavior ; and shall, at stated times, re- ceive for their services a compensation, which shall not be diminished during their continu- ance in office. Sec. 2. The judicial power shall extend to all cases, in law and equity, arising under this Con- stitution, the laws of the United States and treaties made, or which shall be made, under their authority; to all cases affecting ambassadors, other public ministers and consuls ; to all cases of admiralty and maritime jurisdiction ; to con- troversies to which the United States shall be party ; to controversies between two or more States, beticeen a State and citizens of another State, between citizens of different Slates, be- tween citizens of the same State, claiming lands under grants of different States, and between a State, or the citizens thereof, and foreign states, citizens or subjects. In all cases, affecting ambassadors, other pub- lic ministers and consuls, and those in which a State shall be party, the Supreme Court shall have original jurisdiction. In all the other cases beforementioned, the Supreme Court shall have appellate jurisdiction, both as to law and fact, with such exceptions, and under such regula- tions, as the Congress shall make. The trial of all crimes, except in cases of im- peachment, shall be by jury; and such trial shall be held in the State where the said crimes shall have been committed ; but when notcom- milled within any State, the trial shall be at such place or places as the Congress may by law have directed. Sec. 3. Treason against the United States shall consist only in levying war against them, or in adhering to their enemies, giving them aid and comfort. No person shall be convicted of treason unless on the testimony of two witness- es to the same overt act, or on confession in open court. The Congress shall have power to declare the punishment of treason ; but no attainder of treason shall work corruption of blood, or for- feiture, excepting during the life of the person attainted. ARTICLE IV. Section 1. Full faith and cred- it shall be given, in each State, to the public acts, records, and judicial proceedings of every other State. And the Congress may, by general laws, prescribe the manner in which such acts, records and proceedings shall be proved, and the effect thereof Sec. 2. The citizens of each Slate shall be en- titled to all privileges and immunities of citizens in the several States. A person charged in any State with treason, felony, or other crime, who shall flee from jus- tice, and be found in another State, shall, on demand of the executive authority of the Stale from which he fled, be delivered up, to be re- moved to the State having jurisdiction of the crime. No person, held to service or labor in one Stale, under the laws Ihereof. escaping into anoth. er, shall, in consequence of any law or regula- tion therein.be discharged from such service or labor ; but shall be delivered up on claim of the party to whom such service or labor may be due. Sec. 3. New States may be admitted by the Congress into this Union ; but no new State shall be formed or erected within the jurisdic- tion of any other State ; nor any State he formed by the junction of two or more States or parts of States, without the consent of the Legislature of the States concerned, as well as of the Con. gress. The Congress shall have power to dispose of, and make a'll needful rules and regulations re. specting the territory or other property belong- ing to the United States : And nothing in this Constitution shall be so construed, as to preju- dice any claims of the United States, or of any particular State. Sec. 4. The United States shall guarantee to every State in this Union, a republican form of government ; and shall protect each of them against imasion ; and on application of the Le- gislature, or of the Executive (when the Legis- lature cannot be convened) against domestic violence. ARTICLE V. The. Congress, whenever two- thirds of both Houses shall deem it necessary, shall propose amendments to this Constitution, or, on the application of the Legislatures of two-thirds of the several States, shall call a con- vention for proposing amendments, which, in either case, shall be valid, to all intents and purposes, as part of this Constitution, when ratified by the Legislatures of three-fourths of the several States, or by conventions in three- fourths thereof, as the one or the other mode of ratification may be proposed by the Congress; provided, that no amendment, which may be made prior to the year one thousand cirlit hun- dred and eight, shall in any manner affect the first and fourth clauses in the ninth section of the first article ; and that no Slat,-, without its consent, shall be deprived of its equal suffrage in the Senate. ARTICLE VI. All debts contracted, and en HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CON 199 CON tered into, before the adoption of this Constitu- tion, shall be as valid against the United States, under this Constitution, as under the Confede- ration. This Constitution, and the laws of the United States which shall be made in pursuance there- of, and all treaties made, or which shall be made, under the authority of the United States, shall be the supreme law of the land ; and the judg- es, in every state, shall be bound thereby, any thing in the Constitution or laws of any State to the contrary notwithstanding. The senators and representatives before men- tioned, and the members of the several State Le- gislatures, and all executive and judicial officers, both of the United States and of the several States, shall be bound, by oath or affirmation, to support this Constitution ; but no religious test shall ever be required as a qualification to any office or public trust under the United States. ARTICLE VII. The ratification of the Con- ventions of nine States, shall be sufficient for the establishment of this Constitution between the States so ratifying the same. AMENDMENTS. Article the first. Congress shall make no law respecting an establishment of religion, or prohibiting the free exercise thereof; or abridging the freedom of speech, or of the press ; or the right of the people peace- ably to assemble, and to petition the govern- ment for a redress of grievances. Article the second. A well-regulated militia being necessary to the security of a free State, the right of the people to keep and bear arms shall not be infringed. Article the third. No soldier shall in time of peace be quartered in any house without the consent of the owner, nor in time of war. but in a manner to be prescribed by law. Article the fourth. The right of the people to be secure in their persons, houses, papers, and effects, against unreasonable searches and seizures, shall not be violated, and no warrants shall issue, but upon probable cause, supported by oath or affirmation, and particularly describ- ing the place to be searched, and the persons or things to be seized. Article the fifth. No person shall be held to answer for a capital or otherwise infamous crime, unless on a presentment or indictment by a grand jury, except in cases arising in the land or naval forces, or in the militia when in actual service in time of war or public danger ; nor shall any person be subject for tho same offence to be twice put in jeopardy of life or limb ; nor shall be compelled in any criminal case to be a witness against himself, nor be depriv- ed of life, liberty, or property, without due pro- cess of law ; nor shall private property be taken for public use, without just compensation. Article the sixth. In all criminal prosecutions, the accused shall enjoy the right t a speedy and public trial, by an impartial jury of the State or district wherein the crime shall have been committed, which district shall have been previously ascertained by law, and to be in- formed of the nature and cause of the accusa- tion; to be confronted with the witnesses against him ; to have compulsory process for obtaining witnesses in his favor, and to have the assistance of counsel for his defence. Article the seventh. In suits at common law, where the value in controversy shall exceed twenty dollars, the right of trial by jury shall be preserved, and no fact, tried by a jury, shall be otherwise re-examined in any court of the Unit- ed States, than according to the rules of com- mon law. Article the eighth. Excessive bail shall not be required, nor excessive fines imposed, nor cruel and unusual punishments inflicted. Article the ninth. The enumeration in the Constitution, cf certain rights, shall not be con- strued to deny or disparage others retained by the people. Article the tenth. The powers not delegated to the United Slates by the Constitution, nor prohibited by it to the States, are reserved to the States respectively, or to the people. Article the eleventh. The judicial power of the United States shall not be construed to ex- tend to any suit in law or equity, commenced or prosecuted against one of the United States by citizens of another State, or by citizens or subjects of any foreign State. Article the twelfth. The Electors shall meet in their respective States, and vote by ballot for President and Vice-President, one of whom, at least, shall not be an inhabitant of the same State with themselves ; they shall name in their ballots the person voted for as President, and in distinct ballots the person voted for as Vice- President ; and they shall make distinct lists of all persons voted ibr as President, and of all persons voted for as Vice-President, and of the number of votes for each, which lists they shall sign and certify, and transmit sealed to the seat of the government of the United States, directed to the President of the Senate ; the President of the Senate shall, in the presence of the Senate and House of Representatives, open all the cer- tificates, and the votes shall then be counted : the CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. COO 200 COR person having the greatest number of votes for President, shall be the President, if such num- ber be a majority of the whole number of Elec- tors appointed ; and if no person have such ma- jority, then from the persons having the high- est numbers, not exceeding three, on the list of those voted for as President, the House of Rep- resentatives shall choose immediately, by ballot, the President. But in choosing the President, the votes shall be taken by States, the Repre- sentation from each state having one vote ; a quorum for this purpose shall consist of a mem- ber or members from two-thirds of the States, and a majority of all the States shall be necessa- ry to a choice. And if the House of Represent- atives shall not choose a President whenever the right of choice shall devolve upon them, before the fourth day of March next following, then the Vice-President shall act as President, as in the case of the death or other constitutional disability of the President. The person having the greatest number of votes as Vice-President, shall'be the Vice-Pres- ident, if such number be a majority of the whole number of Electors appointed ; and if no person have a majority, then from the two high- est numbers on the list, the Senate shall choose the Vice-President : a quorum for the purpose shall consist of two-thirds of the whole number of Senators, and a majority of the whole num- ber shall be necessary to a choice. But no person constitutionally ineligible to the office of President, shall be eligible" to that of Vice-President of the United States. CONTI, Armand de Bourbon, first an eccle- siastic, then a soldier, opposed his brother the great Conde. After being successively govern- or of Guienne, general of the armies in Catalo- nia, and governor of Languedoc. he died, in 1G66. COOK, James, a famous English navigator, born in a village of Yorkshire, in 1728, "early went to sea. In the Mercury, of which he was master, he was present at the taking of Quebec. He was employed in several important services, and explored the South Sea Islands in 17G9. From New Zealand, he sailed to New Holland, New Guinea, and Batavia, returning home in 1771. His next voyage to the southern hemis- phere was commenced in 1772. in two ships, the Resolution and Adventure, the latter being commanded by Captain Furneaux. On this voyage Cook discovered the island of New Georgia, and returning, July 30, 1775, was well received and rewarded for his services. In July, 1770, he sailed to determine the long agitated question of a northern -passage to the Pacific ocean, but the attempt was abandoned as impracticable, and the Resolution and Dis- covery anchored at the Sandwich islands, on their return, November 20, 1773. Their recep- tion was at first favorable, but when Cook went on shore to seize the king of Owyhee, with the intention of keeping him as a hostage, till one of the B>nglish boats, stolen by the savages was restored, he was attacked by the natives, one of whom felled him by a club, and then des- patched him with a dag'ger. This event occur- red on the 14th of February, 1779. COOPER, Anthony Ashley, first earl of Shaftesbury, and an eminent statesman, was born 1621 . Although a royalist he accepted a commission from parliament, but contributed to the restoration of the king, and was according- ly rewarded. Having been acquitted on his trial for high treason in 1681. he died in Hol- land in 16*8. COOPER. Samuel, a clergyman of Bost6*n, who died in 1783 in the 59th year of his age. He was patriotic and talented. (See Chauncey.) COPENHAGEN, the capital of Denmark, on the east coast of the island of Zealand, one of the finest cities in Europe, has a good har- bor, an extensive commerce, and 110.000 in- habitants, although formerly but a poor fishing village. It was threatened by Charles XII, who, however, gave up the idea of besieging it. The city has suffered severely from several confla- gration^. In 1801 it was bombarded by the British under Lord Nelson. A flag of truce alone saved it from destruction. It was again attacked in 1807 by the English under admiral Gambler. After severe firing, which commenc- ed on the 2d of September, a capitulation was settled on the 8th, and the citadel, dock-yards, batteries, vessels, and naval stores, taken pos- session of by the British COPLEY, John Singleton, a self-taught paint- er, a native of Boston, where he was born in 17.38. He went to England in 1776. where he met with great encouragement, and died in London in 1815. The death of Lord Chatham in the House of Lords, after his immortal speech in favor of America, is one of his best perform- ances. COPLEY. John Singleton, was born in Bos- ton. Mass., May 21, 1772, went to England in ]77", and became Lord Lyndhurst, and Lord High Chancellor of England. CORD AY D' ARMANS, Marie Anne Char- lotte, a beautiful and courageous young l;idy, belonging to an ancient and respectable family HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. COR 201 COR of Caen in Normandy, who assassinated the in- famous Marat on the llth of July, 1793. She gained admittance to him in the bath, and while he was listening to the pretended details of a conspiracy, she stabbed him to the heart. When she was guillotined a few days afterwards, a voice from the crowd exclaimed : " She is great- er than Brutus !" CORDOVA, the name of a province and town of Buenos Ayres. The latter contains about 10,000 inhabitants. COREA, a kingdom of China, 500 miles long, and 150 broad. The government is royal but the king pays a tribute to China. The religion is that of Fo. Population from six to eight millions CORFU, anciently called Drepanum, and Corcyra, an island near the coast of Albania, in the Mediterranean, 45 miles long,.containing U0,000 inhabitants. It is fruitful and healthy. It is one of the islands of the Ionian republic. CORLNNA, a famous poetess of Tanagra, in Bostia. contemporary with Pindar. CORINTH, a famous city of Achaia, situated on the isthmus of the same name. The popu- lation is at present about 2,000. It was founded by Sisyphus, son of JEolva, B. C. 2610. Co- rinthus. son of Pelops, gave his name to the city. The inhabitants were once famed for their power, wealth and intelligence, and found- ed Syracuse in Sicily, which they afterward de- livered from oppression. Corinth was destroyed by the Roman consul, Mummius, 14(> B. C. The consul, who was no judge of the fine arts, assured the soldiers, who had charge of the in- comparable paintings sent from Corinth, to Rome, that if they injured them, he should make them furnish new ones. Julius Ca'sar vainly attempted to restore the city to its for- mer importance. The government, at fust monarchical, was changed 779 B. C., and it be- came the head of the Achtean league. In 1453 it fell into the hands of the Turks. CORIOLANUS, the surname of Caius Mar- cius, given him for his victory over Corioli. Af- ter having served his country faithfully, and received many wounds in her service, he was refused the consulship, and, indignant at the ingratitude of his countrymen, who afterwards banished him, he joined the Volsci. a warlike nation, hostile to the Remans. Coriolanus ter- rified the Romans by approaching their capital at the head of a powerful army of Volscians. The offended Roman refused to listen to pro- posals made in the ho*pe of inducing him to withdraw, and pitched his camp within five miles of the city. His enmity against his country would have been fatal, had not his wife, Volumnia. and his mother, Veturia, aided by the presence of his children, prevailed upon him to withdraw his" army. Coriolanus, in yielding to his mother, and raising her from her suppliant posture, pronounced a sentence which was pro- phetic of his fate : "Oh! my mother, you have saved Rome, but you have destroyed your son." The Volscians, indignant at the treachery of Coriolanus, put him to death in the place ap- pointed for his trial, B. C. 488. CORK, a city of Ireland, capital of Cork county, situated on the Lee, with a population of 107,058. It is a large and flourishing place, and was built by the Danes in the (5th century. After the revolution of 1GS8, it was occupied by James II, but taken by the earl of Marl borough, in 1690. CORNEILLE Peter, a French author who flourished in the time of Louis XIV, and was the founder of French tragedy. CORNELIA, mother of the Gracchi, a Ro- man matron who lived about 130 years B. C. A lady of Campania having shown her jewels to Cornelia, in paying a visit to the latter request- ed to see her jewels in return. At that mo- ment her boys entered the room, and the noble Cornelia, pointing them out to her visiters, ex- claimed : " these are my jewels !" At her death the Romans, mindful of her worth, erected a monument to her memory. CORN WALLIS, Charles, marquis of, born in 1738, entered the English army at an early age. and rose rapidly. Although not unfavora- bly disposed to America, he accepted a com- mand in the royal army, and distinguished him- self by his bravery. On his return, being appointed governor-general of Bengal he fought with success and defeated Tippoo Saib. He was again made governor of India, but died in 1805. at Ghazopore, soon after his arrival. CORSICA, the third Italian island in point of size, lies north of Sardinia, about 50 miles north from Tuscany, and contains 195,000 in- habitants. It is generally mountainous, but the numerous valleys are "extremely fertile. The Corsicans know not how to develope the various resources of their island. They are in an almost barbarous state, recklessly brave, jevengeful, fond of freedom, and indolent. Corsica has been successively occupied by the Carthage- nians.the Romans, the Goths, the Saracens, the Franks, the Pope, the Pisanese, the Genoese, the French, and the English, falling into the hands of the last in 1794. The English, how CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. COT 202 CRA ever, did not long retain possession of the island, and it was again restored to France. CORTEZ, Fernando, the conqueror of Mex- ico, was born in 1485, in Estreniadura. He came to the West Indies in high hopes, and Ve- lasquez, governor of Cuba, gave him the com- mand of an expedition designed for the reduc- tion of Mexico, which consisted of 10 ships, COO men, 10 small field-pieces, and 18 horses. With this small armament he accomplished his enterprise, in 1519, and added the empire of Mexico to that of Spain. He took Montezuma prisoner, although received with hospitality, and the unfortunate king was killed by his own sub- jects in an attack on the Spaniards. The con- duct of the conquerors so exasperated the In- dians that they compelled Cortez to quit the city with great loss, but he regained it after some hard fighting. On the capture of Guatimczin, son of Montezuma, the city surrendered, and the empire of Mexico was at an end. At this juncture another commission arrived to deprive Cortez of his command, and he, having return- ed to Spain to procure redress, died in obscurity, in 1554. CORUNNA, a seaport of Spain, in the pro- vince of Galicia, with two fine harbors, and a population of 4,000. Here the British, on the eve of embarking, were attacked by the French under Soult, and general Sir John Moore was killed. COSSACKS, the name of several warlike tribes that inhabit the southern provinces of Russia, and form an effective portion of the Russian cavalry. Their horses are small hut hardy, and will travel for a whole campaign from 50 to 70 miles a, day. They fight in little bands, and their arms are long lances, bows and- arrows, sabres, and pistols or guns. The regi- ments or pullts are from 500 to 3,000 strong. The chief is called a litthnan. A large body of thenxwho had previously been in the service of the czar, joined Charles XII, in 1708. COTOPAXI,a famous volcanic mountain of the Andes, in Quito, the height of which is 18,898 feet above the level of the sea. " At the port of Guayaquil, 52 leagues distant, in a straight line, from the crater, we heard, day and night, the noise of this volcano, like continued discharges of a battery ; and we distinguished these tremendous sounds even on the Pacific ocean." Hninlioldt. COTTIN, Sophia, whose maiden name was Ristand, was born in France, in 177:5, and mar- ried at the age of 17, soon after which her hus- band died, and she devoted herself to literature to soften her grief. Among her works Elizabeth, cr the Exiles of Siberia, is the most popular and pleasing. The talented author died in 1807. COURLAND, formerly an independent duchy, now belonging to Russia. It is situated on the Baltic, and contains 581 ,300 inhabit- ants. COURTRAY or Cortrijk, anciently Corto- rirfcum, a town of Belgium. 22 miles southwest of Ghent, famous for'the battle fought in its vincinity. in 1302, between the Flemings and French. The latter were defeated with great loss, and, from the fact that 4COO gilt spurs were found upon the field, the engagement was call- ed the BATTLE or THE STUKS. COWLEY, Abraham, an English poet, the son of a grocer, born in 1018, died in 1GC7. He was nn easv writer, and patronized by royalty. COWPEX William, the poet, son of the Rev. John Cowper. was born at Berkhamstead, Herts. IVovember 2(3, 1731. 'His education was acquired at. a public school, where the girlish timidity and delicacy of the poet subjected him to i-.onst.ant ugony from the tyranny and rough- ness of his school-fellows He studied law, and obtained the place of clerk of the Hnu.se of Lords, but when the time approached for him to enter upon the duties of his oflice, his terror at presenting himself before the peerage. n<,t only induced him to relinquish the place, but produced a fit of sickness. About this time his religious fears brought on a temporary derange- ment. He published several volumes of poems, with various success. His death took place in April. 'M!0. Of nil his poems the humorous ballad of John Gilpin, and the Task, are the best. CRABBE, George, a popular British poet, was born Dec. 21, 1754, at Aldborough in Suf- folk. He was intended for a surgeon and actu- ally opened a shop to which luTconnned him- self for some time, although barely making his expenses. In 1778, he went to London as a literary adventurer, but was for a long time unsuccessful. When a prison was in near view, and ruin appeared to threaten him, he conceived the idea of writing to Edmund Burke, for assist- ance and advice. That great man nt once be- came his friend and patron, urged him to per- severe, and induced him to study divinity and take orders. Thenceforth his circumstances were comfortable. He married the object of his earlv alTer.tions, devoied himself to literature, received the applause due to a genius of the highest order, and continued to use his pen till his death in 1833. His Borough and Talcs of HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CRI 203 CRO the Hall are justly celebrated. Another poet has truly called Crabbe " Nature's sternest painter, but her best." CRANMER, Thomas, archbishop of Canter- bury, who aided the progress of the reformation in England. But he was the slave of the king, and never permitted conscience to interfere with the wishes of the crowned tyrant. He joined the partisans of lady Jane Grey, and was accordingly sent to the Tower on the ac- cession of Mary. Having been accused of blasphemy, perjury, incontinence, and heresy, he was executed March "21, 1556. CRASSUS, Marcus Licinius, a Roman con- sul, distinguished for some gallant actions, and active in crushing. the gladiatorial revolt which was headed by Sparticus. He was slain by the Parthians. B. C. 53. CRECY, or Cressy en Ponthieu, a town of France, 10 miles north of Abbeville, where was fought a famous battle between the French and English, in which the latter, led by Edward III, and his son, the brave Black Prince, were com- pletely victorious, August 26. 1346. CREEKS, or Muskogees, a tribe of Indians who lately inhabited the eastern part of Alaba- ma, but have no\y mostly removed beyond the Mississippi. They have made some progress in agriculture, and the arts of civilization. CRICHTOiN, James, a Scotch gentleman, born in 1550, of a good family, who, from his pro- ficiency in the arts and sciences, particularly music and manly '.'jcercises, was stiled the Ad- mirable. He travelled in France and Italy, and in Mantua, having pleased the duke, was appointed preceptor to his son. During the carnival of 1583, Crichton, while playing upon his guitar, was attacked in the streets by i masked band, against which he defended himself with his customary spirit, until he re- cognised his pupil in the leader. Throwing iiimself upon his knees, he presented his sword to the young nobleman, who stabbed his pre- ceptor to the heart. The motives which im- pelled him are unknown. CRILLON, Louis de Balbe, surnamcd the Fearless, a celebrated French commander, born of a noble family, in Provence, in 1541. He was the friend of Henry IV. He distin;niif,hed himself at the sie^e of Calais, and against the Huguenots, and the Turks. ' ; Pcnds-toi, Irate Crillon nous azims comb/tKu a .Iryues, ct tu ny 6tais pas ;" " Hang thyself, brave Crillon, we have fought at Arques, and thou wast ab- sent," was Henry's laconic announcement of 18 one of his most brilliant victories to his favored friend. In 1592, he successfully defended Villebceuf, with an inferior force against Marshal Villars, and when called upon to surrender, gallantly ansv.-ered ; " Crillon is within, and Villars with- out." The assailants were unsuccessful. One day, hearing a sermon in which the sufferings of Christ were forcibly described, he seized the handle of his sword and cried, " Where weri thou, Crillon ?" He died in 1G16. CROATIA, an Austrian kingdom, contain- ing 9,000 square miles, and 850,W)0 inhabitants. The Croats have made but little progress in the arts. Their country is fruitful and productive. CRCESUS, king of Lydia. famed for his immense wealth. Being defeated by Cyrus, king of Persia, B. C. 548, he was conducted to the stake, but saved his life by repeating, in the hearing of Cyrus, the words of Solon, thaf " no man could be pronounced happy till his death." CROMWELL, Oliver, a distinguished char- acter in English history, was born of a good family at Huntingdon, April 25, 1599, and re- ceived a careful education. He met with sev- eral narrow escapes when a child. Among other occurrences, a huge ape seized the infant and carried it to the house-top, refusing, for a long time, to relinquish his prey. He always retained a vivid recollection of a gigantic female figure which appeared at his bedside and foretold his future greatness. The excesses in which Cromwell indulged on quitting the university, were ended by his marriage with Elizabeth Bouchier, daughter of a baronet of Essex, at the age of twenty -one. In 1625, he was chosen to a seat in parlia- ment, and then, as well as in 1628, gained dis- tinction by the energy with which he opposed the measures of the royalists and the bishops. In 1640, after a temporary retirement, he was re- turned from Cambridge, and became a frequent speaker, always opposing the court, and attack- ing the church. In 1G42, when hostilities were determined upon, Cromwell raised a troop of horse, and seized the plate of the university at Cambridge to defrav the expenses of the war. He soon acquired the rank of Colonel, and the .superior courage of his troops, procured for them at Marston Moor the name of Iron- sides. He alsa distinguished himself at the battle of JVewbury (1643). He had now gained so great an influence, that when the famous self-denying ordinance was passed, by which all members of either house, were excluded from CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. CRO 204 CRU command in the army, Cromwell was particu- larly excepted. He was constituted lieutenant- general, and by his skill and courage the battle of Naseby was won in 1645, and decided the fate of the royalists. This victory was followed by a series of successes for which he was voted a pension of 2,50(H. per annum, and the thanks of the house. Charles I was betrayed by the Scotch to the parliament. Cromwell contrived to get him into his power ; he then turned out of the house those members who were not likely to be gained over to his purpose, so that no ob- stacle remained to the trial of the king. He acted in this with great address, was present at the scene by gazing sternly at the body of Ch ragc arles trial and execution, and concluded the tragic gaz in his coffin. After suppressing a mutiny in the army, Cromwell, in 1040, went to Ireland, which he subdued, and leaving Ireton as deputy, returned to England in 1650. Being appointed corn- mander-in-chief against the Scots, who had arrived to restore Charles II, he gained the battle of D unbar. Sept. 3, 1650, and that day, twelvemonth, defeated the royal forces at Wor- cester. He now began to carry into execution his favorite project, by moulding the army to his will ; and I. ;n, at one stroke, entering with 300 soldiers, Ire dismissed the parliament, and dissolved the Council of State ; afterwards he called one composed of his own officers. He next convened a mock representation of the nation, composed of 123 persons, who, being his own creatures, agreed to resign their au- thority. On this, the council of officers declared him Lord Protector of the commonwealth of England, Scotland, and Ireland. The follow- ing year he called a parliament, but finding the members refractory, he made each member take an oath of allegiance to him. and dissolved them after a session of five months. In 1(556, another parliament confirmed his title, and sanctioned his proceedings. He was inaugurated with great pomp. In 1058. he convened the two houses, and addressed them in the form ordina- rily employed by the kings of England. He dissolved this assembly, and in the August of the same year, his favorite daughter, Mrs. Claypolo, bitterly reproached him for his con- duct. He now experienced all the dread which tyrants feel, went constantly armed, and was horror-struck at the publication of a pamphlet by Colonel Titus, entitled Killing JVo Murdt:r, in which the author endeavored to prove his assassination a public duty. These circumstances are supposed to have produced a slow fever, of which he died Sep- tember 3, 1 658, in the 59lh year of his age. His body was interred in Westminister abbey, from which it was taken at the Restoration, and hanged on the gibbet and afterwards buried beneath it. CROMWELL, Thomas, earl of Essex, son of a blacksmith at Putney, in Surrey, was born about the year 14!)0. Early in life he became clerk to the English factory at Antwep, which he left to serve in Italy, where he fought be- neath the banners of the constable of Bourbon. Returning home, he was taken into the service of Cardinal Wolsey, who procured him a seat in the House of Commons. When Wolsey fell, Cromwell became a servant of the king, was raised to the office of Chancellor of the exche- quer, and, in 1534, made secretary of state, and master of the rolls. About this time he was also elected Chancellor of Cambridge. The next year he was appointed visitor-general of the monasteries. In 153G, he was made lord keeper of the privy-seal, and the same year advanced to the peerage by the title of Lord Cromwell ; and the papal supremacy being abolished, he was nominated the king's vicar- general in Ihe convocation. In 1537, he was appointed chief-justice itinerant of all the for- ests beyond Trent, elected knight of the gartar, and made dean of Wells. To these honors was added the gran! of many manors after the dissy- lution of the monasteries, and, in 1539. be was created earl of Essex. Soon after, his fortune declined as fast, as it had jisen. His ruin was hastened by the marriiige winch he projected between Henry and Anne of Cloven, and he was sent to the Tower, where he was deserted by all his friends except Cranmer, who, how- ever, c7. DANIEL, a Hebrew prophet, a man of strict virtue, and supernatural powers, for whose his- tory the reader is referred to the old Testament. DANTE or Durantc Jllighicri, was born in Florence in 1265. As a scholar and a soldier he was early celebrated, and as the lover of Be- atrice Portinari (who died in 12UO), no less fa- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. DAN 209 DAR nious. He was married the year after the death of Beatrice, but he never forgot her. At the time of the troubles between the Bianchi and Neri in Florence, Dante espoused the cause of the former, and his property was confiscated. He went from place to place restless, and un- happy, loathing a state of dependence, yet un- able to retrieve his fortune. He died at Raven- na, Sept. 14, 1321. The fame of his Divina Commedia is imperishable, and the Florentines, who had persecuted him during his life-time, paid him the highest honors at his death. " His characters were those of his own period, with whose history the public were acquainted, and whose families and descendants were alive, and frequently in the enjoyment of wealth and pow- er. But the position in which he placed them, threw an interest round their story, stronger than could have been produced by the adven- tures of any individual, however illustrious, of a more remote date. The terror and pity, and in some cases the vengeance of the Italians was awakened, when the shadowy forms of their contemporaries were made to pass in review before them, stripped of those external advan- tages which while living had rendered them respected, and had cast a veil over their crimes. The cruel husband shrunk from the picture of his murdered wife, herself condemned to perdi- tion, yet prophecying that for him was destined the lowest pit in'hell. The son beheld his fa- ther plunged in eternal wo, yet continuing to feel a tender interest in his welfare. The treacherous assassin, who still occupied his place among the nobles of the land, trembled at seeing himself represented as in hell, while, according to the bold supposition of the poet, a demon animated his body. The 'mighty mantle' itself was no protection to the wearer. Pope Nicholas III, plunged head foremost in the flames, was represented as waiting there for the arrival of his guilty successors. The effect was indescribable. Some, unable to en- dure the contempt of their countrymen, con- demned themselves to voluntary exile ; some, struck with terror and despair, died broken- hearted; and others fell victims to the private vengeance of the poet's friends." D ANTON, a French revolutionary leader, who on the fall of Robespierre, was condemned to the scaffold. His character was a singular mixture. Although talented, brave, and mag- nanimous, he was also weak, cruel, and parsi- monious. DANTZIC, a chy of West Prussia, on the Vistula, containing 54,000 inhabitants. It was founded in the 12th century. In 1709 it was ravaged by the plague, and in 1734 taken by the Russians and Saxons. May 1607 the French captured it after a long siege. It was occupied by a French garrison until Napoleon's disas- trous campaign in Russia, after which it was blockaded, and bravely defended by general Rapp. It surrendered, however, and in 1814, reverted to Prussia. DARDANELLES, the four castles on the European and Asiatic sides of the Hellespont, which is called the " Strait of the Dardanelles." DARFUR or DARFOOR, the name of a large kingdom between Abyssinia and Bornou, in central Africa. The inhabitants are Moham- medans, half barbarous, extensively engaged in commerce, and living under a despotic govern- ment. > DARIEN, a town of Georgia, which con- tained in 1830. about 500 inhabitants. DARIUS. The name of several sovereigns of Persia, of whom the fiist is the most celebra- ted. Darius I, a noble satrap of Persia, was the son of Hystaspes, and conspired with six other noblemen, to destroy Smerch's, the usurp- er of the Persian crown. After the death of the usurper, it was agreed among the conspira- tors that he whose horse first neighed, should be appointed king. In consequence of this singular resolution, the groom of Darius led his master's horsf with a mare to the place near which the seven noblemen were to pass. On the morrow before sunrise, when they proceed- ed all together, the horse of Darius neighed, and he was saluted by his companions ting. He soon showed himself fitted to grace a throne. He took Babylon, and conquered Thrace ; was defeated by the Scythians, but favored by for- tune in his campaign against the Indians. The burning of Sardis, which was a Grecian colony, incensed the Athenians and a war was kindled between them and the Persians, in which the latter were unsuccessful. Undismayed at the disaster at Marathon and his immense losses, Darius resolved to lead his troops to Greece in person, but died in the midst of his warlike pre- parations, B. C. 485. DARIUS III. surnamed Codomanus. the son of Arsanes and Sysigambis, was descended from Darius Nothus. He was no sooner seated on the throne than Alexander of Macedon inva- ded his kingdom. The Persians were defeated in the battles of the Granicus and Issus, in the last of which, Darius, leaving- his wife, children , and mother, fled in disguise on the horse of his armour-bearer, and was saved by the darkness CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY, DAV 210 DEA of the night. Being again defeated in the bat- tle of Arbcla, Darius in despair fled to Media, where he was killed by Bessus, the perfidious governor of Bactria, and was found by the Macedonians in his chariot, expiring of his wounds, B. C. 331. DARWIN, Erasmus, an English physician and poet, born in 1721, at Elton, was the au- thor of the Botanic Garden, and other celebrated works. He died in 1802. DAVENAiNT, Sir William, an English poet of the 17th century, the author of Gondibcrt, a heroic poem, and a theatrical writer and man- ager under Charles II. DAVID, king of Israel, one of the most re- markable characters in Jewish History. The occurrences of his life are detailed in scripture. DA VI D, Jacques Louis, a French painter, bnrn at Paris in 1 750, died at Brussels in 1 825. Da- vid, though an uncompromising democrat,voting for the death of Louis XVI, was the first painter of the Emperor Napoleon, and was exiled on his fall. Among his finest works are Paris and Helen, the Rape of the Sabine women, and Napoleon crossing the Alps. His best perform- ances in portrait painting are the numerous likenesses of his imperial patron. The original sketch for one of these, which indeed was never afterwards finished, was taken during the last few hours of unlimited power possessed by Napo- leon in Paris. The greater part of the preced- ing day and night had been spent in arrang- ing the final operations of the campaign which terminated in the battle of Waterloo. When now past midnight, instead of retiring to repose, the emperor sent for David, to whom he had promised to sit, and who was in waiting in an apartment of the Tuileries. " My friend," said Napoleon, to the artist ; " there are yet some hours till four, when we are finally to review the defences of the capital ; in the mean time, faitts votre possible (do your utmost), while I read these despatches." But exhausted nature could hold out no longer ; the paper dropped from the nerveless hand, and Napoleon sank to sleep. In this attitude the painter has represent- ed him : the pale and lofty forehead, the care- worn features, the relaxed expression, the very accompaniments bear an impress inexpressibly tender and melancholy. With the dawn Na- poleon awoke, and springing to his feet, was about to address David, when a taperjust expir- ing in its socket, arrested his eye. Folding his arms on his breast, an usual posture of thought, he contemplated its dying struggles, when, with the last gleam, the rays of the morning sun penetrated through the half-closed window- curtains. " Were I superstitious." said Napo- leon, a faint smile playing about his beautiful mouth, " the first object on which my sight has rested this day, might be deemed ominous; but," pointing" to the rising sun, " the augury is doubtful at least the prayer of the Grecian hero will be recorded we shall perish in light." DAVIDSON, Lucretia Maria, a young Amer- ican girl, who displayed great talents tor com- position at the age of 4 years. She died of incessant application, August 27, 1825. She was born at Plattsburg, on Lake Champlain, September 27th, 1808. Her Amir Kkan and other poems, were published in a volume. DA VIE, William Richardson, a distinguished character in the American revolution. He held the rank of general, and was afterwards gov- ernor of North Carolina, and envoy to France. He was born in England, 1756, and died at Camden (S. C.), in 1820. DAVILS, Samuel, a distinguished American divine, president of Nassau Hall, born in Dela- ware, Nov. 3, 1724, died in 17C2. DAVIS, John, an English navigator, who gave his name to the Straits which lie between Greenland and New Britain, which he entered in endeavoring to discover the northwest pas sage. He was killed t>y the Japanese in 1605. DAVOUST, Louis Nicholas; duke of Aner- stadt and prince of Eckrnuhl, marshal and peer of France, born in 1770, died in ]823. He studied with Bonaparte, and served under him in his most brilliant campaigns. He only sub- mitted to Louis XVII, when the hopes of Na- poleon were destroyed. DAVY, Sir Humphrey, a distinguished Eng- lish chemist, born in 1779, at Penzance, Corn- wall, died at Geneva, 1819. His experiments on the nature of explosive gas, to which his atten- tion was directed by the frequent accidents oc- curing to mines from fire damps, resulted in the invention of the safety-lamp. Other important discoveries were made by this distinguished man. DEAD SEA, or Asphaltites (the hike of Bitumen), a piece of water in Palestine, 180 miles in circuit, which occupies the space whereon the condemned cities of the vale of Siddim stood. The following account of it is from the pen of a late traveller. " After the pil- grims had bathed in the Jordan, we left them and turned down to the south, in company with three or four other English travellers, and a guard from the governor, to visit the Dead Sea HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. DEC 211 DEL We rode across plains of barren sand for an hour and a half, when we stood upon the banks of this memorable lake. Without any refer- ence to what others have said, I can testify to the following facts. The water is perfectly clear and transparent. The taste is bitter, and salt far beyond that of the ocean. It acts upon the tongue and mouth like alum, and smarts in the eye like camphor, and produces a burning pricking sensation over the whole body, ft stiffened the hair of the head much like poma- tum. The water has a much greater specific gravity than the human body, and hence, no efforts cause us to sink below the surface ; and standing perpendicularly, you would not de- scend lower than the arms. Although there was evidence in the sands thrown upon the beach, that in great storms there were waves, yet there appeared to be some foundation for ihe reports of its immobility. Notwithstanding there was a considerable breeze, the water lay perfectly lifeless. Historians say that large quantities of bitumen were gathered from the surface of this lake ; and is it not quite possi- ble, to say the least, that it formerly existed in such quantities as to spread over the whole face of the sea. and thus effectually prevent the wind from interrupting its death-like quietude ? Modern travellers state that there is very little of this substance now to be found, and certainly we saw nothing like it. We saw no fish or liv- ing animals in the water, though birds were flying over it in various directions unharmed. We all noticed an unnatural gloom hanging not merely over the sea. but also over the whole plain below Jericho. This is mentioned also by ancient historians. It had the appearance of the Indian summer of the valley. Like a vast funeral pall let down from heaven, it com- pletely shuts out all prospect, at a short dis- tance down the sea. DECATUK, Stephen, an American naval commander, born in Maryland, January 5th, 1779. Soon after his entrance into the navy (1793), he received a first lieutenancv, and for his gallant conduct in recovering the frigate Philadelphia, in the harbor of Tripoli, was pro- moted to the rank of Captain. He successively commanded the Constitution, the Congress, the Chesapeake, and the United States. 'With the latter he captured the Macedonian, October 25th, 1812. In the war with Algiers (1815), Decatur terrified the regency into submission in 48 hours ; was equally successful at Tripoli ; and procured the renunciation of tribute, and an agreement on the part of the Barbary pow- ers, to regard captives as prisoners of war and not slaves. Decatur was killed in a duel by Commodore Barron, March 22, 1820. DECIUS, the name of a Roman Consul who devoted himself to death in battle, to save his country, B. C. 340. Also a Roman emperor, who reigned from A. D. 249, till Dec. 251. He persecuted the Christians. DEFOE, Daniel, an English author of great celebrity, born at London in 1663. His politi- cal and commercial speculations having prov- ed unfortunate, he turned his entire attention to literature. It is unnecessary to enumerate here the various works which he produced it will be sufficient to mention his most popular production, the Life and Surprising Adventures of Robinson Crusoe, which he is falsely said to have stolen from the papers of Alexander Sel- kirk, a Scottish mariner, long the solitary in- habitant of the island of Juan Fernandez. He died in April, 1731. DEJANIRA, daughter of ^Eneus, king of Calydon, an ^Etolian city ; the wife of Hercules, and the innocent cause of his death. The Centaur, Nessus. whom Hercules killed for insulting Dejanira, in dying, gave her a tunic dipped in his blood, which he said would restore to her the affections of her husband if he put it on. When she considered herself in danger from his inconstancy, she sent Hercules the garment, which he no sooner put on than a mor- tal poison penetrated to his vitals, and he died 10 DELAWARE ; one of the United Statea, bounded north by Pennsylvania ; east by Dela- ware bay, and river ; south and west by Mary- land. Its three counties are subdivided into 25 hundreds. The Legislature consists of a Senate and House of Representatives. The surface is. with few exceptions, level. Articles of pro- duce, wheat, Indian corn, rye, barley, oats, flax, buckwheat, and potatoes Its first settlers were the Swedes and Fins, in 1G27. The Dutch gained possession of it, but the English in 1664 became the masters of it. It was granted to William Penn, and remained a separate estab- lishment until the revolution. Its constitution was adopted in 17'J2, and amended in 1831. Population 78,085 including 2,605 slaves. DELHI, a province and city of Hindoston, containing about 5,000.000 inhabitants, Hin- doos, Mohammedans, and Seiks. It is very fer- tile, and a large and valuable portion of it belongs to the British. The city contains many splendid edifices. It was taken by the Moham- medans in IIL'3, and sacked by .Nadir Shall, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. DFM 212 DEM in 1739, since which the inhabitants have been the victims of rapine and slaughter, among the contending parties. DELOS, the central island of the Cyclades, famed in ancient times for the number and skill of its artists, and for the splendid temple and oracle of Apollo. It was the birth-place of Apollo, and his sister Diana, and according to fable, raised as an asylum to the mother, Lato- na, when she was pursued from place to place by the implacable Juno. DELPHI, the seat of the oracle of Apollo, situated in Phocis, on the southern side of Par- nassus. The fount of inspiration was said to be a chasm from which issued an intoxicating vapor. This was discovered by a shepherd. A temple was built over the cave, and the tri- pod of the goddess (sometimes called Pythoness from Pythius the surname of Apollo) was placed where she could breathe the ascending vapor. She was agitated with extreme fury ; she howled and vowed, her eyes sparkled, and she gave every evidence of being inspired by divinity. The Pythian games were celebrated in the vicinity of Delphi, which is now the village of Castri. Under the head of JEsop (which see), some remarks have been made upon the nature of the responses of the oracles. DELUGE, the flood, or inundation of waters by which God destroyed mankind and animals in the time of Noah, and in which, as St. Peter says, only eight persons were saved. Accord- ing to M. Basuage, this took place in 1650th year of the world ; the rain commenced on the 17th of November, and the waters reached their height on the 27th of March. Almost all savage nations, even those sunk the deepest in barba- rism, have a tradition of an universal deluge. A traveller among the Indians of the northwest coast of A rnerica learned this from one of the eavages, and asked him how long ago it occur- red ? The savage scooped up from the floor of his cabin a handful of sand, and promptly re- plied ; " as many moons ago as there are grains of sand in this heap." DEMETRIUS, surnamed Soter, son of Sel- eucus Philopater, the son of Antiochus the Great, king of Syria. His father gave him as a hostage to the Romans. After the death of Seleucus, Antiochus Epiphanes, the deceased monarch's brother, usurped the kingdom of Syria, and was succeeded by his son Antiochus Eupater. This usurpation displeased Deme- trius, who was detained at Rome ; he therefore procured his liberty on pretence of going to hunt, and fled to Syria, where the troops re- ceived him as their lawful sovereign, B. C. 1(52. He put to death Eupater, and Lysias, and established himself on his throne by cruelty and oppression. Alexander Balas, the son of Antiochus Epiphanes, laid claim to the crown of Syria, and defeated Demetrius in battle in the 12th year of his reign. DEMETRIUS, a Macedonian, son of Antigo- nus and Stratonica, surnamed from his suc- ' cesses, Poliorcetes, or the destroyer of towns. ' At the age of 22, he was sent by his father against Ptolemy, who had invaded Syria. He was defeated near Gaza, but soon repaired his loss bv a victory over one of the generals of the enemy. He afterwards sailed with a fleet of 250 ships to Athens, and restored the Athenians to liberty, by freeing them from the power of Cassander and Ptolemy, and expelled the gar- rison, which was stationed there under Deme- trius Phalereus. After this successful expedi- tion, he besieged and took Munychia, and defeated Cassander at Thermopylae. This un- common success raised the jealousy of the suc- cessors of Alexander ; and Seleucus, Cassander, and Lysimachu'/, united to destroy Antigonus and his son. Their hostile armies met at Ipsus, B. C. 3D1. Antigonus was killed in the battle ; and Demetrius, after a severe loss, retired to Ephesus. His ill success raised him many enemies ; and the Athenians, who lately adored him as a god. refused to admit him into their city. He soon after ravaged the territories of Lysimachus, and reconciled himself to Seleu- cus to whom he gave his daughter, Stratonice, in marriage. Athens now labored under tyran- ny ; and Demetrius relieved it and pardoned its inhabitants. The loss of his Asiatic possessions recalled him from Greece, and he established himself on the throne of Macedonia, 294 B. C. Here he was continually at war with the neighboring states ; and the superior power of his adversa- ries obliged- him to leave Macedonia, after he had filled the throne seven years. He passed into Asia and attacked some of the provinces of Lysimachus with various success ; but fam- irio and pestilence destroyed the greatest part of his army, and he retired to the court of Seleucus for support and assistance. He met with a kind reception, but hostilities between them soon began ; and after he had gained some advantages over his son-in-law, Deme- trius was totally forsaken by his troops in battle, and became an easy prey to'the enemy. Though ho was kept in confinement by his son-in-law, yet he lived like a prince, ana passed his time HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. DEN 213 DES Jn hunting, and in every laborious exercise. His son Anttgonus offered Seleucus all his pos- sessions, and even his person, to procure his father's liberty ; but all proved unavailing, and Demetrius died in the 54th year of his ao-e. B. C. JW4. DEMOCRITUS. a philosopher of Abdera, who was born about 494, B. C. He is com- monly called the laughing philosopher, because he was said to have been in the habit of amus- ing himself with the follies of mankind, while Heraclitus (the weeping philosopher) wept at them. He placed the chief good in a tranquil mind. DEMOSTHENES, an Athenian orator, son of a sword cutler, born about 331, B. C., famous to have risen to the highest reputation by per- severance in overcoming the apparently insur- mountable obstacles which opposed him. (See Miens.) He was the determined opponent of Philip of Macedon. continually urging the Athe- nians to resist him. The orations which he delivered on these occasions were termed Phi- lippics, a name since applied to all satirical orations. Finding the cause of liberty prostra- ted, he took poison and died 319, B. C., at the age of 00 years. DENHAM, Dixon, lieutenant-colonel in the British army, associated with Captain Clapper- ton, and Doctor -Oudnev, for the purpose of exploring Central Africa. Soon after being appointed lieutenant-governor of Sierra Leone! he died, in 1825. DENMARK, the larger part of which is a peninsula, is generally level and fertile. The climate is temperate. Among the vegetable productions are oats, barley, beans, pease, and potatoes. The commercial exports are princi- pally grain, horses, cattle, beef, pork, butter, and cheese. The population of the kingdom is about 2.000.000. The Danes are a brave peo- Ele, but addicted to self-indulgence. The early istory is obscure and uninterestinc-, contain- ing merely the adventures of predatory war- riors, whose pre-eminence consisted in ferocity and courage. They invaded England, and established two kingdoms there. Margaret. the daughter of Waldemar, often called the Semiramis of the north, in 1337. united in her own person, the crowns of Sweden, Denmark, and Norway. This union, however, did not continue longer than the beginning of the Kith century, when Christian II, was obliged to renounce all claims to Sweden. Christian VII was unequal to the labors of government; and placed the whole burden of government on his ministers. The situation of Denmark, when the affairs of Bonaparte began to assume an unfavorable appearance, was critical, but Den- mark concluded a treaty of peace with Sweden and Great Britain in 1814. All the conquests were restored with the exception of Heligoland, and Swedish Pomerania and the isle of Rugen were added, in consideration of the stipulated annexation of Norway to Sweden. In 1815, the king joined the German confederacy. The government is an absolute monarchy. DANNIES, Joseph, born in Boston 1768, and educated at Harvard College, possessed a bril- liant genius which he evinced in several papers which he edited. He wanted industry and dis- cretion, and died in 1812. of disease produced by irregularity and anxiety. DEcfAIX DE VOYGOUX, Louis Charles Antoine, a French general, was born of a noble family at St. Hilare de Agat, in Bretagne, in 1768. He served under Pichegru and Moreau, and commanded under Bonaparte in Upper Egypt, a division of troops destined to pursue and keep in awe the Mamelukes, whom he attacked and put to flight near the pyramids of Saccara, in Upper Egypt. At the battle of Marengo, the success of which was the result of his opportune arrival on the field, he was killed. June 14. 1800. DESCARTES, Rene, born at La Haye, in Touraine, in 1596, and died at Stockholm in 1(550. As a soldier, mathematician, and ori- ginal philosopher, he greatly distinguished him- self. DESEAD A., Desirada, or Desiderada, one of the small Caribbee islands, discovered by Co- lumbus in 1494. DESEZE, Raymond, the talented advocate who defended the unfortunate Louis XVI. On the restoration of the Bourbons, lie was loaded with honors. DESHOULIERES, Antoinette ; a French literary lady of oreat acquirements, who lived in Paris from 16:18, till 1694. DESMONL1NS, Benoit Camille, a French revolutionist, who was condemned to death by the revolutionary tribunal in June, 1794. DESPARD, Edward Marcus, a colonel in the English army, who served in America and elsewhere, but who was refused p-iyment for his services when he applied for it in England. This induced him to form a conspiracy against the government, which was discovered in the November of 1802, and punished. DESSAIX, Joseph-Marie, Count, a native of Savoy, where he was born in 1764, and dia- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. DEV 214 DID tinguished for his military services in the French army. At the siege of Toulon he bore a part. He was appointed by Napoleon general of di- vision, and grand officer of the legion of honor. DESSALINES, Jean-Jacques^ emperor of Ilayti, was originally a slave. After the French had been expelled from the island in 1^03. Des- salines was appointed governor general, but as- sumed the title and state of emperor ; but hav- ing been cruilty of many attrocities, he was kiRed by a soldier, Oct. 17, 18(Hi. DETROIT, a city, port of entry, and capital of Michigan. It is situated between lakes Erie and St. Clair. on the west side of the river De- troit. Pop. 9,102. It is well built and defend- ed by fort Shelby. It was settled by Canadian French in 1683, and in 1812, was taken by the British, but remained only a short time in their power. DEUX-PONTS, in German, ZweibrUcken, anciently Bissoiis, a Bavarian city, the capital of a dutchy containing 70,000 inhabitants. DEVEREUX, IJ'obert, earl of Essex, born in J5G7, was educated at Cambridge, and intro- duced at Court at an early age. He soon won the regard of Queen Elizabeth, and on his re- turn from a campaign in the Low Countries, he was made master of horse. The last of his two expeditions against Cadiz failed from a misunderstanding between him and Raleigh. Returning, Essex was made earl- marshal of England,~and master-general of the ordnance. Essex was impetuous and indiscreet. At the zenith of royal favor, he took no care of his actions. At the council-board, ho contradicted the queen, who gave him a smart box on the ear; when he rose in extreme wrath, clapped his hand upon his sword, and swore that he would not have taken such an affront even from Henry VIII. In Ireland, he made a composition with the rebels, and quitted his government, without leave for either proceeding. On his return to London he was taken, tried, and beheaded, Feb- ruary 25, 1601. While in prison he>is said to have entrusted to the countess of Nottingham a ring which he had received from the queen, when high in favor, with the promise to pardon any offence on its presentation. Contrary to her pledge, the countess retained the ring, but confessed her guilt upon her death-bed, on which Elizabeih is said to have exclaimed, " God may forgive you, but I never will !" His son, after having served Charles 1, joined the parliamentary party, but did not enjoy a high degree of favor, and died suddenly in 1646. DE WITT, John, grand pensioner of Hol- land, a famous statesman, was born in lh'25. He imbibed from his father a hatred for tiie house of Orange. Accordingly in the war between England and Holland, he attempted to abolish the statholdership, and succeeded in separating that office from that of captain general. He was forced, however, to make some conces- sions, and beheld, with mortification. William procure the post of commander-in -chief. De Witt resigned his employments when William was chosen stadtholder, to the joy of all, and being thrown into prison, was murdered by the populace, who broke in upon him. Aug. 20, 1672. DEXTER, Samuel, a distinguished orator, lawyer, and statesman, was born at Boston, Mass., in 1761. and was educated at Harvard College. He studied law. but was soon chosen to the state legislature, and thence transferred to congress, where his abilities and patriotism were properly appreciated. L'nder President Adams he was at first secretary at war, and then of the treasury. Declining the public offices which weie afterwards cliered him, he employed himself in the lucrative and honora- ble profession of the !=iw. being entrusted with cases of the utmost importance. He died at Athens. N. Y. Iel6, aged 55. DIANA, the daughter of Latona, and twin sister of Apollo, born at Delos. She was t he- goddess of hunting and remained unmarried. She was called Lucinn. lii/thia. or Jno Prcmu- ba, and Trivia; Trif units', because Luna or the moon in heaven, Diana on earth, and Prosper- pine or Hecate in hell. Her other names were Argrotcta, Ort/iia. Taurica. Delin. C'yniliia. Ari- ri&, and she is supposed to have been the /* of the Egyptians. DIDO, "the founder of the city of Carthage. also called Elisa, was a daughter of Beius, King of Tyre, and married Sichauis, or Sichurbas, her uncle, a priest of Hercules. Pygmalion, the successor of Belus, murdered the husband of Dido, for the sake of his wealth, and with a number of Tyrians. the unhappy queen set sail to found a colony in some distant land. A storm drove them upon the African shore and there Dido built her citadel, and soon had the satisfaction of finding the colony in a thriving condition. The persecutions of Jarbas, king of Mauritania, who wished to marry her, prov- ed fatal to her. for having vowed to her hus- band, never to wed a second lime, she ascend- ed a funeral pile, and peri.sht- d in the flames. For this action she was called Didn. or Valiant Woman. Her connection with /Kiieus was a HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. DIG 215 DIO fable, since they were not even contemporaries. (See Carthage and Africa.) DIEMEN, Anthony Van, governor-general of the Dutch East India settlements, born in 1593. He went to the Indies as a clerk, but rose with great rapidity. His administration was judicious and successful. He died in 1645. DIEMEN'S (VAN) LAND, an island in the South Ocean, which Tasnian, the Dutch navigator, who discovered it in 1633, named after the governor of Batavia. It contains 50,000 inhabitants. It is separated from New Holland by Bass's Straits, the width of which is about 90 miles. Its productions and inhabit- ants differ little from those of New Holland. DIGBY, Sir Kenelm, son of Sir Everard Digby, who was condemned and executed for his participation in the gunpowder plot, was born at Gothurst, in Buckinghamshire, in 1603. He was educated at Oxford, and was originally a protestant, but was converted to the llomisli religion in 163b'. He was one of the gentlemen of the bed-chamber to Charles I, commissioner of the navy, and governor of the Trinity- house. He fought against the Venetians at Scuderoon. DIJON, the capital city of the former duchy of Burgundy and now of the department of Cote-de'Or. It is situated at the confluence of Ouche and Suzon. Pop. 25.350. DIOCLETIAN, a famous Roman emperor, born of an obscure family of Dalmatia, first a common soldier, then general, and proclaimed emperor 234 A. D. He made Maximan, a com- rade, his colleague, and created two subordinate emperors, Galerius and Constantitius, with the, title of Caesars. Some of the acts of his reign are meritorious, but he disgraced himself by a persecution of the Christians. After a reign of 21 years, he voluntarily and publicly abdicated the throne at Nicomedia, May 1 , A. D. 305, and his colleague shortly after followed his example. He found sufficient pleasure in the cultivation of his little garden, and died in 313. DIODATI, John, a protestant divine, profes- sor of theology at Geneva, where he died in 1649. DIODORUS, Siculus (the Sicilian), a Greek historian of the time of Julius Csesar and Au- gustus. DIOGENES, of Sinope, who flourished in the fourth century. B. C. was a famous Cynic philosopher, one of that sect that sternly op- posed luxury and immorality, discarding all superfluities. Diogenes humorously ridiculed the follies of his countrymen ; and made even 19 the objects of his satire laugh at his practical jests and lessons. He perambulated the streets of Athens in the garb and manner of a sturdy beggar, and slept in a tub. He was rigidly tem- perate, and despised the forms of polite society. While at Corinth Alexander the Great paid him a visit, but was astonished at the indiffer- ent air of the philosopher. He made an offer of service, but Diogenes replied, " I only want you to stand out of my sunshine." His inde- pendence made such an impression on the Ma- cedonian that he cried, " if I were not Alexan- der, 1 should wish to be Diogenes." He once carried a lantern about Athens at mid-day, and being asked why he was doing so, answered, " I am looking for a man." Being asked what was the most "dangerous animal ? he answer- ed, " Among wild ones, the slanderer ; among tame, the flatterer." Plato having described man as a two-legged animal without feathers, and received applause for the definition, Dio- genes plucked a live fowl, and carrying it to the academy, exclaimed : "here is Plato's man!' He died at a great age, 324 years B. C. Had this itinerant philosopher lived in these degen- erate days, he would have become obnoxious to the police as a vagrant, and found it extremely difficult to avoid the stocks, the work-house, or the tread-mill. DIOMEDES. 1. A king of Bistones, who is fabled to have fed his horses upon human flesh, and to have therefore been killed by Hercules. 2. A Grecian hero, king of Argos, who led his subjects to the siege of Troy. After the war he went to Italy where he is said to have lived to a good old age. DION of Syracuse, was related to Dionysius, and often gave him advice. The tyrant ban- ished him to Greece, where he raised troops, and entering the harbor of Syracuse with only two ships, reduced it in three days. The tyrant fled, and Dion retained the power in his own hands, but was murdered by a false friend, Calippus of Athens, B. C. 354. DIONYSIUS I, or the Elder : from the rank of a common soldier raised himself to the throne of Syracuse. He was inimical to the Cartha- ginians and fought against them with various success. His tyranny and cruelty rendered him so odious to his subjects, that he lived in con- stant dread of assassination, and never permit- ted even his wife and children to enter his presence until their garments had been search- ed for concealed weapons. He is said to have built a subterraneous cave, called the ear of Dionysius, because it was built in the form of a CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. DJE 216 DOD human ear, concentrated the sound of voices within it } and conveyed them distinctly to the ear of Dionysius. The artists employed upon the work were killed for fear of their disclosing the secrets of its construction, and the use to which it was applied. Dionysius was constantly betraying his un- happine'ss. When one of his flatterers, Dam- ocles, was discoursing on his magnificence, riches, and power, Dionysius said to him, " These things seem to delight you ; make a trial of my place, by way of experiment." Damocles was instantly arrayed in the imperial purple, and surrounded. bj the king's guards, while every knee was bent to do him homage. In the midst of this show, Dyonysius ordered a naked sword to be hung from the ceiling by a horse-hair^ directly over the royal throne, where Damocles was silting at a feast. From that moment the courtier-king lost his appetite, his joy vanished, and he begged to be restored to the security of his former "condition. Diony- sius thus tacitly acknowledged that his happi- ness was poisoned by a dread of the punish- ment which was due his iniquity and cruelty. He died of poison administered at the instiga- tion of his son, B. C. 3G8. He was very vain, and imagined that he possessed liternry "talents of a high order, although his poetical effusions were lamentable failures. DIONYSIUS, the Younger, was the son of Dionysius I. By the advice of Dion, Plato was invited to court, and the philosopher endea- voured to instil into the tyrant's mind some of those precepts which were his own guide through life. The king neglected his advice, ( and after suffering for his frankness, Plato quitted him in disgust. Driven from the throne he had disgraced, B. C. :io7, he again re- turned to it after an absence of ton years, bit lost it a second time, and finally went to Co- rinth, where to support himself, he kept a _ school, that, as Cicero observes, he might still be a tyrant. We can readily imagine the suffer ings of the wretched urchins upon the interior and exterior of whose heads the ex-king labor- ed. His pupils, we are told, were few. nor can we wonder that the pedagogue was so poorly patronised. DIONYSIUS, one of the judges of the Are- opagus at Athens, was converted to Christian- ity by the apostle Paul, and was first bishop of Athens. He was the author of some polemical writings, and suffered martyrdom. DJEZZAR, (butcher) Achmet, pacha of Acre, originally a slave; aided by the English, he checked the career of Napoleon, in Svria, and died in 1804. DODD, William, an English clergyman, born in 1729 ; he was popular as a preacher, and as an author, and was appointed one of the king's chaplains, which place he lost by being convicted of offering a bribe to obtain prefer- ment. He would have succeeded well in the world, had it not been for his extravagant ex- cesses, which led him into continual embarrass- ments. In 1777 he was convicted of forging the name of his patron. Lord Chesterfield, an!i was hanged at Tyburn, evincing, in prison, sin- cere contrition for his crime : forgery is no longer a capital crime in England. DODINGTON, George TBubb, (lord Mai- combe Regis.) was the son of a gentleman of fortune, and was born in H>!>1. He enjoyed many posts of hon^r and emolument under dif- ferent parties, and he did not scruple to avow opeijly his political tergiversations. He was advanced to the peerage in 17G1 , and died in the following year. liubb Dodington was ec- centric, generous, convivial, and magnificent in private life. Many anecdotes are related of him. For the amusement of the young prince of Wales he used to suffer himself to be rolled up in blankets, and trundled down the stairs Before he took the name. of Dodington. he was one day lamenting to Lord Chesterfield the shortness of his patronymic, Bubb. " Yo.u can easily remedy it." said his lordship, "call your- self Silh/btib' mid that will do very well."" He winced under the whimsical satire, which an opponent issued under the title of Jl Grub vpon Bubb. When his fortune increased, he built himself a splendid villa, which, if cost consli- tuted elegance, would have been a model. But Bubb had no taste, and his villa was a failure. The second story appeared much too heavy for the first ; for, while the latter was ornamented in the lightest style, the suite of rooms above was adorned with marble fire-places, marble slabs, and massy wninscottin?. The proprietor, in showing this to a friend one day, said. " Thev tell me. sir, that this is out of place, p.nd ought to be down stairs." Make yourself perfectly easy." was the consolatory answer : ' it it-ill fnon be there !'' DODSLEY, Robert, an English poet and dramatist, born at Mansfield. Notts, in 1703. He was at first a stocking-weaver, then a foot- man, and his first volume was a collection en- titled the Muse in Lirery. He acquired a very handsome fortune, by his efforts as author and bookseller, and retired to Durham, where he HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL DOR 217 DRA died in 17(54. His Economy of Human Life is well known. DOMINGO St., now Hayti, an island of the West Indies, 390 by 60 to 150 miles ; area 30,000 square miles. Principal towns, Cape Haytien, the Mole, Port Republican (Port au Prince) and St. Domingo. Population about 1 ,000,000. It was discovered by Columbus 1492, and here the first European settlement was made. It bore the name of Hayti, among the natives, and was afterwards called ITispaniola. It formerly be- longed to France anfl Spain. Since 1822, it has formed an independent republic, the slaves hav- ing risen in 1 79 1 , and driven out their white mas- ters with dreadful slaughter. It has a fine cli- mate, good harbors, and is on the whole advanc- ing in wealth and the improvement of society. DOMINIC DE GUZMAN, St. was born in Spain in 1170, and died at Bologna in 1221. He was the founder of the order of Dominicans, and converted 100,000 souls to the true faith. DOMINICA, one of the Caribbee islands, belonging to Great Britain. Population 19,800, of whon 15,400 are slaves. It was discovered by Columbus on Sunday, Nov. 3, 1493. DOMITIAN, Titus Flavius Sabinus, son of Vespasian, and brother of Titus, whom, ac- cording to some accounts, he destroyed by poison, was born A. D. 51, and ascended the throne A. D. 81. The beginning of his reign promised tranquillity to his people, but their hopes were soon found to be without founda- tion. He perished by the hands of an assassin, the 18th of September, A. D. 96, in the 45th year of his age, and the loth of his reign. He was the last of the twelve Csesars. DONNE, John, an English poet and divine of some celebrity, was the son of a merchant, and was born in London in 1573. His educa- tion was obtained at Oxford and Cambridge. Originally a Catholic, in his .19th year he ab- jured the Romish religion, and was made secre- tary to the lord chancellor Ellesmere, whose favor he lost by a clandestine marriage with his niece. The juvenile pair appear to have foreseen all the consequences of their union, for the doctor en- dorsed a paper in the following manner : John Donne, Anne Donne, undone. His prospects, however, brightened ; he took orders and became one of James's chaplains, and died in March, 1631. His Latin verses are elegant, but his prose compositions are pedantic though profound, and his English versification far from melodious. DORIA, Andrew, a Genoese commander, born at 1468. After having been employed by several princes, he received a command in Corsica, which island he completely reduced. He gained wealth and honor in his attacks upon the Barbary States. On the breaking out of the revolution in Genoa, he went into the ser- vice of France, and next into that of the pope; but on the capture of Rome he returned to Francis I, who made him the general of his gal- leys, and admiral of the Levant. The French having become masters of Genoa, in 1528, Do- ria succeeded in delivering the republic from a foreign yoke, received the office of doge for life, and was rewarded with the title of " Father of hiscoyntry." He next carried his arms through the Mediterranean in the service of Charles V, and died in 1560, full of years and honors. DORT, a commercial town of Soreth Hol- land, with 18,000 inhabitants, built upon an isl- and on the Meowe and Biesbosch, formed by an inundation. The resolutions of the synod of Dort, held here by the Protestants in 1618 and 1619, form the present code of the Dutch Re- formed Church. DOVER, a town of New Hampshire, capital of Strafford county, 40 miles E. of Concord. Pop. 5,458. The Pjscataqua and Cochecho supply water for the manufactories. Dover is the oldest town in the state, having been settled in 1623. DOVER, a post-town'of Delaware, and seat of the state government. Population 3,790. DOVER, a strongly fortified town of Eng- land, opposite to Calais. Pop. 11,924. Dover is one of the Cinque ports. DRACO, arclion and lawgiver of Athens, flourished about 600 years B. C. The extreme severity of his laws prevented their observance He was very popular, and fell a victim to the favor of his countrymen, for, being in the thea- tre at A'gina, the people gave him the cus- tomary token of approbation by throwing their caps and garments upon him. and such was the number of these that he was smothered under their weight. He was buried under the theatre. DRAKE, Sir Francis, an English navigator, born near Tavistock. in Devonshire in 1545. After having served under his relation, Sir John Hawkins, he obtained the command of two ships, with which he sailed to the West Indies in 1570. He made another expedition in 1572, and gained considerable advantages over the Spaniards. Having served with distinction in Ireland, he was introduced to Queen Eliza- beth. In 1577 he made another voyage to the Spanish settlements in America, on the Pacific, and sailed as far as 48 north latitude, discover- ing the country called New Albion. He then went to the East Indies, and having doubled the CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. DRU 218 DRU Cape of Good Hope, returned to Plymouth in 1580, after an absence of three years, and was knighted by the queen. In 15b5 he sailed again for the West Indies, where he took sev- eral places from the Spaniards, and returned laden with wealth. In 1587 he made an attack on Cadiz, and destroyed a quantity of shipping. The year following, as vice-admiral under lord Howard, he contributed to the destruction of the armad^jf After this he went to the West Indies with .Sir John Hawkins, but the two command- ers disagreeing in their plans, little was done, in consequence of which Drake became melan- choly and died of a slow fever. Dec. 30, 159G. DRAYTON, William Henry, a native of South Carolina, was born in 1742. In 1771, when counsellor for the province, he defended the rights of his country. In 1775 he was chosen president by the provincial congress, and the next year chief justice of the colony. In 1777 he was made president of South Carolina, and the next year was chosen member of Congress. His death took place in September, 177i). His private virtues, powerful political writings, and unshaken patriotism, entitled him to the esteem and respect of his countrymen. DRESDEN, in Germany, on the Elbe, con- tains 70,000 inhabitants. Here, on the 23th of August, 1813, Napoleon defeated the allies and forced them to retire to the Bohemian fron- tier. On the Cth of November, Marshal St. Cyr was blockaded in Dresden, and after an ineffectual negotiation with Schwartzenburg, surrendered his whole force, amounting to 30,000 men. DRUIDS, The. Among the ancient inhabit- ants of England and of France, formerly called Gaul, as well as among some other nations of antiquity, the Druids were priests or ministers of religion. They were also the instructers of die young and were the only learned men of the nations to which they belonged. Although these men flourished long after civilization had made great progress among neighboring nations, yet they did not make use of writing, but their scholars were obliged to get by heart all their lessons from hearing them repeated by their masters the Druids. This was a very tedious way of {retting forward, and we are not at all surprised that it took twenty years of a man's life to acquire a very limitedistock of learning. In general, little was known about very an- cient tribes and nations, until the Romans in- vaded their countries, and conquered them. So it is from the Romans that we have derived our knowledge of the habits, character and religion of the Druids. The Druids of Britain were verv celebrated. 'fhere has been much dispute about the de- rivation of the word Druid, but it is most proba- ble that it comes from an old British word, dru, meaning oak, because the Druids held the oak- tree almost sacred ; it was their favorite tree, and their groves contained no other. Little is known concerning them before the age of Julius Crcsar, the Roman who invaded Britain after having subdued Gaul, about 54 years B. C. Caesar says that they were divid- ed "into several classes ; the priests, the sonth- sayers, the poets, and the judges, and instruct- ors of vouth. The" priests, those Druids who were called so by way of distinction, had the charge of the religious ceremonies. They worshipped their gods, and offered sacrifices to them upon altars. Their temples or places of worship, were very singular. They were generally circles of vast standing pillars, over which they sometimes laid huge stones making a circle in the air. In the middle stood the altar-stone. Of this kind was the celebrated Stone-henge, at Salisbury, in England, of which our readers have doubtless seen pictures, and read descrip- tions. In the island of Anglesea. near the northern extremity of Wales, there are Druid- ical pillars yet remaining. This island is sup- posed to have been the residence of the chief, or arch-Druid of Britain. The Druids had a very wrong idea about reli- gion. They thought that the common people could not understand the simple and rational principles of religion, and so they invented fool- ish fables and superstitions, and deluded the people to worship the sun, and be idolaters. They had fires sacred to the sun, like the Sriests of Baal, of whom we read in the Holy tble. The Druids were criminal enough to sacrifice human beings to their gods, and this cruelty, which they persisted in, notwithstanding all remonstrance, was the cause of their destruc- tion. The poets, or bards, according to some, did not properly belong to the class of Druids, because they cfid not Inix religion with their son^s. They inspired the people to warlike actions and sang the praise of patriotism and bravery. The Druids studied astronomy, and made great proficiency in the science. We all know what terror and astonishment an eclipse, or any singular appearance in the sky. creates among an ignorant people who do not know the causes of these things, or the = :JJ HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. DRU 219 DKU means of finding out beforehand, at what time they will happen. Persons among such peo- ple who can foretell any occurrence, even a change of the seasons, are looked upon as in- spired with a knowledge more than human. By such arts, the Druids extended and strengthened their influence over the people. The soothsayers even pretended to be acquaint- ed with the intentions of Divine Providence. The Roman soothsayers, or fortune-tellers, pre- tended to foretell events by the appearance of the entrails of beasts, that were sacrificed on their altars. In the same way, but with much greater cruelty, the Druidical soothsayers, examined the bleeding bodies of human victims. When the Roman Suetonius determined to Can end not only to the ceremonies of the ids, but to the priests themselves, they took refuge in the island of Anglesey. Here they were determined to make a bold resistance. Having some hopes of gaining a victory over the Romans, they kindled large fires, in which they intended to consume the Roman prison- ers, should they take any. Suetonius landed near Parthamel. The Druids, in great numbers, encircled the army of their countrymen, urging them to be brave and praying for the vengeance of Heaven upon the invaders. The scene was rendered nore terrific to the Romans, by the appearance of the British women who were dressed in black, and ran yelling to and fro, brandishing torches. However, the Romans were brave men, and they conquered. They cut down the sacred groves of oak ; they demolished the temples of the Druids, and cruelly threw them into their own fires. The Druids, who were the judges in all cases which required a recourse to law v settled these matters by their opinion, from which there was no appeal except to the arch-druid. As the Druids were thought to receive knowledge and instruction directly from the gods, they had the power of making, altering and executing laws. Any person, who desired to possess the great power of the order, could become Druids, but only by a long course of very strict study, and a life of privation which not many had patience to go through. The schools of the Druids in Britain were very famous, before the invasion of the Romans. Even youth from Gaul came thither to be in- structed in the branches which they taught. Scholars took an oath not to betray the secrets artd learning which they were taught, and thus we may see how selfish was the system of the . 19* Druids, and how much opposed it was to the extension of knowledge. Students always resided with their teachers and school-fellows, and were forbidden to con- verse with any others. Academies were numer- ous, one being attached to almost every temple of note. Instruction was conveyed in verse. The whole circle of the sciences with which the Druids were acquainted was taught in 20,000 verses, which pupils were 20 years in committing to memory. Besides an acquaintance with arithmetic, geometry, astrology, astronomy, geography, na- tural philosophy, and politics, they professed a knowledge of the arts of magic, and whosoever refused obedience was declared accursed. The Druidesses or female priests were divided into classes. The first class was composed of females, who never married, and who pretended to have the power of foretelling events, and performing miracles. These were held in great regard. Then there was a second class of married wo- men, who spent the greater part of their lives in the performances of religious ceremonies, among the Druids. The third class of Druid esses consisted of those who did the meanest work about the temples. The Druids measured time, not by the days but the nights, guided by the changes of the moon. They had so great a veneration for the oak, that they never per- formed any ceremony without being adorned with garlands woven of its leaves. Those who professed a knowledge of medicine would never betray the secrets by which they cured the sick. They were, without doubt, only acquainted with the healing powers of a few herbs. They placed great faith in the virtues of the plant misletoe. probably from its growing on the oak tree. They called it by a British name, mean- ing " all-heal." The efficacy of this plant they thought depended on certain ceremonies to be observed in gathering it. Among the annual festivals of the Gauls and Britons, was that in which the arch-druid cut the misletoe from the oak. This ceremony was conducted with great pomp. When they found an oak, which had the rare plant upon it, they made preparations for a banquet beneath. Two milk-white bulls were tied to it by the horns, and then the arch- druid, dressed in a snowy robe, ascended the oak, and detached the misletoe with a golden knife. Sacrifice and feasting followed. On every May-day a festival, in honor of the sun, was held. The sun was called Bel, Belinus, and some other names. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. DRU The existence of a law, forbidding the in structions of the Druids to be written, sho 1 that they were acquainted with the art of writ- ing. We are told that in writing, they made use of the characters of the Greek alphabet, with which they were acquainted, before the invasion of the Romans, getting their know- ledge from the Greek merchants of Mar- seilles. The Gauls and Britons never went upon any warlike expedition without first pray- ing to some god for assistance. When a victory was gained, a certain portion of the spoils was set apart for that god who had, as the people thought, enabled them to be successful. The priests were, of course, to direct to what use these spoils should be put, and a large share of them were, without doubt, reserved for them- selves. The Druids too often possessed them- selves of the offerings made in the temples of the gods. Besides the money there received for giving instruction in the sciences, for curing diseases, and for giving judgment in law-suits, the priests of each temple claimed every year, certain dues from all the families in their dis- trict. They hit upon a very cunning method to secure the payment of these taxes. Every family on the last evening of October was obliged by law to put out all its fires, and to pay its yearly dues at the temple. On the first of November, those who had payed punctually, received some of the sacred fire from the altar to kindle theirs at home. Delinquents were not allowed to take any fire, and if any one lent it to them, or even conversed with them, lhat person was punished in the same manner, and not allowed to enjoy the protection of justice or the pleasures of society. The Druids were greatly restricted in their privileges when Brit- ain was a province in the hands of the Romans, and they resented with great warmth, the order which the emperors of Rome issued, that no more human victims should be slain at the altars. After the loss they experienced in the isle of Anglesey, Glyears A. C., they made no figure in Britain. The few priests, who were determined still to persevere in the rites of their order, fled to Scotland, Ireland, and the smaller British Islands, in which they kept up their authority some time. Even after the Druids ceased to exist, the superstitions they had spread gave trouble to those who wished to make the people believe in the Gospel. In the reign of Canute the Great, during the eleventh century, it was found necessary to provide by law against these wretched superstitions. " We strictly forbid all our subjects," says the king, " to wor- DUD ship the gods of the Gentiles; that is to say, the sun, moon, fires, rivers, fountains, hills, bi trees or woods of !iny kind." DRUSES, a warlike geoplc of Syria, 100,000 in number, inhabiting mountains, Libanus and Anti-Libanus. Their origin is traced to abrut the commencement of the 12lh century. They are in fact a religious sect, professing Moham- medanism. They reached the summit of their power under Fakardin, who, being taken pris- oner by the Turks, was strangled in 1631. Thenceforth they were the vassals of the Turks DRYDEN. John, a voluminous author, born in the parish 'of Aldwinkle-All-Saints, in' 1631, and died May 1. 1700. Although many of his productions are exceedingly licentious, a fault of the age in which he lived, in private life, he bore an unblemished character. He was the court poet to Charles II, and produced a great number of dramas. DUBLIN, the metropolis of Ireland, is situ- ated on both sides of the Liffey, about a mile from Dublin Bay. It is a beautiful city, reck- oned the second in the British dominions. The public buildings are of stone, and few cities contain an equal number of magnificent edifi- O(^. The University of Dublin, or Trinity College is a well-endowed institution. Popula- tion of Dublin 2(15,316. DUBO1S, Cardinal, the son of an apothecary^ was born at a smalltown in Limousin, in 1G56. He became prime minister to the duke of Or- leans, regent of France, by the basest of means, flattering the vices of his master. His negotia- tions were generally advantageous. He died August 10, 1723. DUDLEY, Edmund, an English statesman, born in 1462. He became an eminent lawyer, and received various employments from Henry VII, but for various acts of oppression, on the accession of Henry VIII, he was sent to the tower with his associate. Sir Richard Emson, tried, and beheaded in 1510. DUDLEY, John, duke of Northumberland, son of the preceding, was born in 1502, and restored in blood in 1511. He becnme the favorite of Henry VIII, and he married his son Loid Guilford. to Lady Jane Grey, when he found that Edward VI was dying. Lady Jane Grey was prevailed upon to accept the fatal crown, but Mary's adherents proved too pow- erful for her party, and the duke of Noithum- berland died upon the scaffold, August 22d, 1553. DUDLEY, Robert, earl of Leicester, son of the preceding, was born in 1532. He was HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. DUM 221 DUN condemned with his father, but pardoned, and afterwards restored in blood by queen Mary. In the reign of her successor, he was made master of the horse, knight of the garter, and a member of the privy council. In 1560, his lady died not without suspicion of violence, it being generally believed that Dudley aspired to the hand of his sovereign. The story of the un- happy countess is beautifully told in the well- known ballad of Cumnor Hall. The following are the concluding verses ; The death-bell thrice was heard to ring, An serial voice was heard to. call, And thrice the raven flapped his wing Around the towers of Cumnor Hall. The mastiff howled at village door, The oaks were shattered on the green ; Woe was that hour for never more That hapless countess e'er was seen. And in that manor now no more Is cheerful feast and sprightly ball, For ever since that dreary hour Have spirits haunted Cumnor Hall. The village maids, with fearful glance, Avoid the ancient moss-grown wall ; Nor ever lead the merry dance Among the groves of Cumnor Hall. Full many a traveller oft hath sighed, And pensive wept the countess' fall, As wandering onwards they 've espied The haunted towers of Cumnor Hall ! Elizabeth proposed to Dudley, Mary queen of Scots, as a wife, but that unfortunate princess indignantly rejected him. In 1564, he was created earl of Leicester ; soon after which, he was elected chancellor at Oxford. About 1572, he privately married lady Douglas Howard, but he never acknowledged her, and even forced her to marry another. In 1575, the earl entertained the queen magnificently at his castle of Kenilworth in Warwickshire, but of- fended her very much by marrying the countess of Essex. In 1585, he was appointed governor of the Protestant Low Countries, but returned the same year by the queen's command. In 1588, he was appointed to the chief command of the forces at Tilbury, and died September 4th, of the same year. DUMMER, Jeremy, a powerful political writer, was born at Boston, and graduated at Harvard College in 1699. He then went abroad, studied at Utrecht, distinguished him- self in England, and was appointed agent for the Colony of Massachusetts. His pamphlet in defence of the New England charters, is admirable. He died in 1739. DUMOURIEZ, Charles Francois, was born of a noble family at Cambray, in 1739. Be- coming general in the French army, he gained the battle of Jemappe over the Austrians, Nov. 6, 1792. He soon after appeared before Brus- sels, which opened its gates. On the 15th of March, 1793. in a general engagement with the Austrians at Nerwinden, he was totally defeat, ed, and meeting with other disasters, incurred the displeasure of the convention, which des- patched four commissioners empowered to arrest him. These he caused to be delivered up to the Austrians, and he himself fled to the allies for protection. Ke received a pension from the British government, and died at Turyille park, England, March 14, 1823. He published nu- merous political pamphlets in addition to his memoirs. DUNCAN, Adam, viscount, a British naval officer, distinguished for his courage, was born in Scotland in 1731. He entered the navy at an early age, and obtained a lieutenant's com mission in 1755. In 1759, he was made master and commander ; and. in 1761, appointed post captain, in which station he shared in the hon ors of the reduction of the Havannah. In 1779, he commanded the Monarch in Rodney's vie* tory over the Spaniards. In 1789, he was made rear-admiral of the blue ; and in 1794 being made vice-admiral of the white, he took the command of the North Sea fleet. After watching the Dutch fleet in the Texel for two years, a mutiny in the fleet, compelled him to return to England, and enabled the enemy to put to sea. This news restored Duncan's men to a sense of their duty, they engaged the enemy on the llth of October, off Camperdown. and completely de- feated them, taking the Dutch admiral, De Win* ter, and eight ships. For this achievement he was made a viscount, and received a grant of 2000/. a year. He died August 4, 1804. DUNDAS, Henry, viscount Melville, son of Lord Arniston, was born in 1740, and educated at the university of Edinburgh. In 1763, he was admitted a member of the faculty of advo- cates ; in 1773, was appointed solicitor general, and in 1777, joint-keeper of the signet for Scotland. He had various other appointments, but resigned his places in 1801, when he was created viscount Melville. When Mr. Pitt came into power a second time, he was made CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. DWI 222 EAS first lord of the admiralty, but was impeached in 1805, for crimes and misdemeanors in his former situation as treasurer of the navy. He was, however, acquitted, and died in Scotland, May 27, 1811. DUNKIRK, a commercial city 1 in* French Flanders, with 24,900 inhabitants, about 27 miles from Calais. It was taken fjom the Span- iards by Marshal Turenne, 4th of June, and transferred to the English on the ]7th, in 1658. In 1662, it was sold by Charles II to Louis XIV, for-400,OOOZ. In 1666, an engagement, which lasted four days, took place between the English and French fleets off Dunkirk. At the peace of Utrecht, William III exacted from the French an engagement to block up the harbor, which was but partially complied with. Since the peace of 1783, Dunkirk has, however, been the unmolested resort of armed ships of war, and smuggling vessels at all times. In 1793, the duke of York was defeated by Houchard near Dunkirk. DUQUESNE, a French admiral under Louis XIV, born at Dieppe, in 1610. He was iieroic, pious, and mild, and died at Paris in Kx-d. DUROC, Michael, a friend and favorite offi- cer of Napoleon, duke of Friuli, grand-marshal of the palace, senator, general of division, grand cordon of the legion of honor, and other orders, was born in 1772. Under Napoleon, in Italy, in Egypt, and in Germany, he distinguished himself, being, the greater part of the time, aide-de-camp to the emperor. He was killed in entering the village of Merkersdorf, after the battle of Bautren, May 23, 1813. DWIGHT, Timothy, an eminent divine, born at Northampton, in Massachusetts, in 1752, and was graduated at Yale College, in which institution he was afterwards tutor. He serv- ed in the army as chaplain, and about the close of the revolutionary war was elected a member of the state legislature. Mr. Dwight then kept a school in Greenfield, Connecticut, where he was ordained minister in 1783. In 1794, he published the poems of Greenfield Hill, and the Conquest of Canaan, both of which were republished in England. In 1795, he suc- ceeded the Reverend Doctor Styles as Presi- dent of Yale College, filling also the office of Professor of Theology. He died January llth, 1817. His System of Theology is a learned and valuable work EAST INDIES. The east was visited at an early period by the Phosnecians, and Alexander the Great made extensive conquests there in 327 B. C. In modern times the Portuguese made discoveries in 1497, .and conquests and settlements in J506. In the reign of queen Elizabeth, 1591, an English vessel arrived at the East Indies after a long voyage in which two consorts perished. The commander, Capt. Lancaster, was brought home in another ship, his sailors having mutinied and seized his own. The information which he gave produced a mercantile voyage, and the first East India company's charter, on Dec. 31, 1600. their stock consisting of 72,OOOZ. They fitted out four ships, and meeting with success, they have continued ever since. A new company was established 1698; the old one re-established, 1700; agreed to give government 400,()00i a year, for five years, to continue unmolested, Feb. 1769; India bill passed, 1773; sent judges from England thither, 1774. Dutch East India Company es- tablished 1594. East India Company at Copen- hagen established, 1612; another at Embden, 1750; in Sweden, 1731 ; charter of the English East India Company renewed 1813 and 1833. The British possessions in India are immense and have been acquired in defiance of justice and humanity. Edmund Burke accuses the Britons " of having sold every monarch, prince, and state in India, broken every contract, and ruined every prince and every state who had trusted them." There are three presidencies, those of Bengal, Madras, and Bombay, contain- ing an aggregate population of 130,000.000. In taking a survey of the modern history of India, it is impossible to guard against a feeling of surprise. This vast country presents to the ob- server a spectacle which is entirely new in the annals of the world. Two thousand strangers, belonging to a small isle of the Atlantic ocean, are distributed among a people differing in every thing from them. These strangers draw from the country a revenue of 22 millions ster- ling ; they fill the highest offices of state ; they have power over 90 millions of inhabitants, and exercise an indirect authority over 40 millions, who are governed by native princes. Their 300,000 soldiers are distributed over a space which is almost as largo as all Europe. The chiefs of this vast empire have neither crown nor sceptre. Subjected in their own country to the same laws as other citizens, placed under the same power, their rise is as silent as their Nelson's Pillar Dublin. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. EDI 223 EDW fall ; they reign or die unknown to their sub- jects. These masters these kings are mer- chants ! they compose the English East India Company. EASTON, a post-town of Pennsylvania, 73 miles W. of New York. Population, 3,530. EASTPORT, a seaport and post-town of Maine, on Moose Island on Posamaquoddy bay. Population, 2,450. It is a flourishing place, and its exports consist of lumber and provisions. EATON, William, was born at Woodstock, Connecticut, Feb. 23, 17G4. After serving in the army at an early age, he prepared himself for entrance into Dartmouth college. In 1792 he received a captain's commission in the army, and in 1797 was appointed consul for the king- dom of Tunis. He engaged in the war with Tri- poli, hoping to re-instate Hamet Bashaw on the throne, which had been usurped by his brother. With a force of 400 men of different nations, Eaton crossed from Alexandria to Derne, over- coming serious obstacles. Derne was taken, the Tripolitan army repulsed, but, in the midst of triumph Eaton learned that peace had been concluded between the United States and Trip- oli. On his return to the United States, he was received with great favor. Aaron Burr in vain endeavored to obtain his aid in his conspiracy, and on his trial Eaton testified fully against him. In 181 1 he fell a victim to habits of intemperance. ECBATANA,the magnificent metropolis of Media, was built by Leleucus. ECKMUHL; a Bavarian village on the La- ber, where Napoleon defeated the Austrians, April 22, 1809. EDGAR, a Saxon, king of England, son of Edmund, and brother of Edwin, h|s immedi- ate successor. He ascended the throne at the age of 16 years in 959. He governed with vigor and success, and secured the proper ad- ministration of justice by giving it his personal attention. EDINBURGH, the metropolis of Scotland, was a town of some note in 854. It is a mile and a half from the Frith of Forth. Its environs are hilly. The houses of 'the old town, in some instances, rise to the height of 14 stories. It is famous as a seat of learning, containing a uni- versity and several courts of justice. In 1437 it became the royal residence of the Scottish kings. The strong castle was probably built by king Edwin. Leith, though two miles dis- tant may be properly called the harbor of Ed- inburgh. Population of the city and suburbs 138,235. EDMUND II, surnamed Ironside, king of England, succeeded Ethebred his father, in 1016. He was defeated by Canute, who became king of England on his death, which is supposed to have been caused by poison. .EDRED, son of Edward the Elder, succeed- ed to the throne of England on the murder of his brother, Edmund I, in 947. He quelled the Danes and Northumbrians, and compelled Mal- colm to do homage for the crown of Scotland. Yet he was priest-ridden, and a slave to Dun- stan, abbot of Glastonbury. He died after a reign of nine years. EDWARD, the Elder, king of England, suc- ceeded his father. Alfred the Great, in 90] . He was successful against the Danes and Welsh, and died -in 925. EDWARD, THE MARTYR, king of Eng- land, son of Edgar, whom he succeeded in 975. He was stabbed, while hunting, by a*|rvant of Elfrida, his step-mother, who wished to raise her own son, Ethelred, to the throne. ^ He reigned only four years. EDWARD I, (of the Norman line), king of England, son of Henry III, after signalizing himself in the civil wars, and in Palestine, sub- dued Wales in 1284. In the dispute for the Scotish throne in 1291 , he decided for Baliol. Franco and Scotland having threatened to in- vade his territories, he adopted vigorous meas- ures to oppose them, and in 12:)7, inarched into Scotland where he obtained great success ; but tarnished his fame by condemning to death Sir William Wallace, for his heroic devotion to his country. He died July 7, 1307, as he entered Scotland to punish the inhabitants for their re- volt. He was then in 69th year of his age and the 35th of his reign. EDWARD II. king of England, succeeded his father Edward I. in 1307, but was governed by unworthy favorites. His queen, Isabella of France, raised a rebellion, took him prisoner, and had him murdered in Berkley Castle, Sept. 21,1327. EDWARD III, son of the preceding, was proclaimed king in 1327, being then only 14 years of age. He joined tiie party against Mor- timer, his mother's paramour, who was execu- ted, while the guilty queen was confined to her own house. , He invaded France, and won the famous battle of Crecy, while his son, the Black Prince, crowned his fame by the victory at Poictiers. The death of Edward III happened on the 21st of June, 1377, about a year after that of his illustrious son. EDWARD IV was proclaimed king of Eng- land in 1461. He was the son of Richard, duke CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. EDW 224 EGY of York. In the year of his accession, on the 29th of March, was fought the decisive battle of Towton, in which the forces of Edward, termed the Yorkists, were victorious over the Lancas- trians. Margaret again took the field against him unsuccessfully, but her husband, the im- becile Henry VI. remained a prisoner in the tower of London. In 1470 Edward was com- pelled to fly to the continent, and was declared to be an usurper and traitor by the parliament. He soon afterwards returned, landed at Raven- spur, and marched without molestation, to Lon- don. He was readily admitted, and his rival Henry again fell into his hands. On the 14th of April, 1471, he defeated the earl of War- wick at Barnet ; and, on the 4th of May, gain- ed a decisive victory over the forces of queen Margaret at Tewksbury ; in consequence of which hjfeiwas firmly established on the throne. Whefraie captive queen and her son were led into the royal presence, Edward asked the young prince, how he dared to invade his dominions. On receiving a spirited answer he struck the prince in the face, and the royal youth was im- mediately massacred by the attendant nobles. Margaret and her husband ended their days in prison. After opposing France without much advantage, Edward died April 9, 1483, having reigned 23 years, in the 42d year of his age. EDWARD V, son of the preceding, suc- ceeded him in his 14th year, in 1483. His un- cle, the duke of Gloucester, regent, caused the young king and his brother to be smothered in ing king and "the Tower. EDWARD VI, kin* of England, the son of Henry VIII by lady Jane Seymour, was born in 1538. He imbibed a zeal for the reformation from his maternal uncle, the great duke of Som- erset, and he furthered its cause with firmness during his reign, which, however, was too short to be of much benefit to the nation. He died of a consumption at Greenwich. July (>, 1553, having settled the crown upon lady Jane Grey. EDWARDS, Jonathan, an American cler- gyman, and distinguished metaphysician, was born in East Windsor, Connecticut. Oct. 5, 1703, and was educated at Yale College. In 1751 ho was chosen president of the college at Princeton, New Jersey, where he died,- in Jan- uary, 1758. He had previously preached at New York, and Northampton, and filled the office of missionary among the Indians at Stock- bridge, Massachusetts. His Treatise on Reli- gious Ji/ections, and his works On Free Will, and Original Sin, have gained him a permanent reputation. EGBERT, the last king of the Saxon Hep- tarchy, and the first monarch of England, was the eighteenth king of the West Saxons. He was harassed by repeated invasions of the Danes, and died in 838. EGEDE, John, a celebrated missionary, born in Denmark in 1686 and died in 1758, having devoted himself to the sacred task of spreading the light of revealed religion among the Green- landers. The dictates of duty frequently led him to peril his life, but the consciousness of rectitude, and the triumphs of success, sweet- ened his toil, and shed joy upon his earthly pil- grimage. EGYPT. This country is called by the Arabs Mezr, by the Turks 3 Kabit, and by the Copts Kfitmi. It was formerly one of the mightiest empires on the face of the globe, and the birth-place of learning and many of the arts. A large portion of the article on Africa (which see) is devoted to a sketch of the ancient history of Egypt. Egypt is now a Turkish viceroyalty, and its ruler bears the title of pacha or viceroy, but is in fact, entirely independent of the Sultan. A large portion of the country which he governs is unpeopled, and derives its interest from the past alone. Yet Egypt with the surprising fer tility of some portions and vast natural re sources, might, under a liberal, enlightened, and enterprising government, attain a high degree of wealth and prosperity. An iron despotism now prostrates the energy of the people, and the possessors of a country which is capable of every improvement, sit down contented with a beggar's lot. Egypt is bounded N. by the Mediterranean, E. by the Red Sea and Arabia, S. by IS'ubia, and W. by Barca and the desert. It comprises 200,000 square miles which are peopled by about 3,000,000 of inhabitants. It is divided into three parts, Upper Egypt (Said), Middle Egypt (Vostmd), and Lower Egypt (Eahari) i including the Delta. The only valuable portion of the land is that which is 'watered by the Nile and its brandies. The cultivated part of Upper Egypt is a nnrrow strip inclosed by ridgea of mountains. The Nile annually overflows its banks, leaving a fertilizing mud or slime. The inundation commences about the middle of June, and increases until the latter part of August. The productions of the country are maize, rice, wheat, barley, sugar -*ane, indigo, cotton, flax, dates, &c. The inhabitants are Copts, descendants of the original iice, Arabs. Turks and Jews. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. EGY 225 EGY Egypt is one of the oldest kingdoms in the world. Here the children of Israel were held in slavery from the death of Joseph in 1(535 B. C., to 14U1 B. C. In 1445 Lower Egypt was conquered by the Canaanites, who lied from Joshua when he dispossessed them of their own country. Upper Egypt was divided at this time into a great number of kingdoms which were united about 1157; and the shepherd kings were driven out of Egypt by Anosis in 1070. About 1000, Lesac or Sesostris, king of Egypt, made rapid and extensive conquests. The Ethiopians conquered Egypt, and retained pos- session of it for 40 years. The Assyrians also conquered it, but the whole of it was regained by Psaumetichua. It again became the prey of a foreign con- queror, when Nebuchadnezzar, king of Babylon, entered it. The dynasty of the Ptolemies held it for a long time, Cleopatra gave her kingdom brilliancy, but the Romans mastered it 30 B. C. When the hold of Rome was relinquished, the Saracens, under Omar, seized it, 040. The Fatiinites gave place to the Mamelukes in 1250. These last were foreign soldiers, employed by the Fatimite princes, and they held the kingdom until it was wrested from them by belim I, emperor of the Turks, in 1517. In 17:16, the French, having resolved to attack the British possessions in India, it was determined to seize upon Egypt that, by carrying on the commerce of the East through the lied Sea, the new French Colony should become the grand mart where all Europe might be supplied with Indian articles, cheaper than they could be rendered by the British, while, as a military post, it could, at all times, transport auxiliaries to the coast of Coromandel. On the 20th of May , 1 798, Bona- parte put to sea on board the 1'Orient of 120 guns, bearing the flag of admiral Brueys, who was to take command of the fleet then assemb- ling from the different ports of France, and which was to consist often 74's, 2 ships of 80 guns, 2 Venetian vessels of G4 guns, 14 frigates, 72 Corvettes, &c., and 400 transports from Tou- lon, Genoa, Ajaccio, Civita Vecchia an arma- ment containing 40,000 soldiers, and 10,000 sailors. On the evening of the 1st of July, Bonaparte made arrangements for landing at Marabout. They were at a distance of about three leagues from the shore ; the wind was northerly, and blew with violence, and the debarkation peril- ous and difficult ; the sea was covered with boats which stemmed the impetuous waves and cur- rents. Early in the morning (July 2), the gen- eral-in-chief landed at the head of the foremost troops, who formed, with the greatest prompti- tude in the desert, about three leagues from Alexandria. Afler some slight skirmishes, he advanced and invested Alexandria, where he established himself on the 5th, by a capitulation of the city and fortress. Having garrisoned Alexandria, which was left in the command of general Kleber, the army marched to Gizeh. Rosetta and other places, having been garrisoned by the French. Near the pyramids Bonaparte found that Murad Bey had assembled all his forces to oppose the further progress of the French. The Mamelukes, amounting to 10,000, fought with desperate but unavailing courage. Part of them were put to the sword or drowned in the Nile, while the remnant, under the con- duct of Murad Bey, retreated to Upper Egypt. The Battle of the Pyramids was a hard-fought conflict. Bonaparte entered Cairo in triumph. and was waited upon by the magistrates and chief men. The French troops were now finned into 3 divisions, one of which, under General Dessaix, was sent to pursue the fugi- tive Mamelukes ; the second was left at Cairo, and the third followed Ibrahim Bey, who had fled, and so precipitately, that he could not be overtaken. Returning to Cairo, Bonaparte em- ployed himself in arranging the details of the government of Lower Egypt, sending garri- sons, establishing lazarettos, &c. Soon after the battle of the Nile, an insurrec tion broke out in Cairo which Bonaparte has- tened to quell. When the French gained their victory at Aboukir, and took the fort from the enemy, their power in Egypt appeared to be firmly established. Soon after this, the losses of the French in Italy, and the dangers which appeared to threaten France, induced Bona- parte to return home, a privilege which was granted him in the commencement, and the chief command was committed to Kleber in a general order, dated Aug. 22, 1799. One day Massena. haying asked what sort of a man gen- eral Kleber, of whom such various accounts had been given, in reality was, the first consul re- plied : " Picture to yourself a man of lofty stat- ure, of an imposing figure the finest military man you ever saw; talented, well-instructed, and capable of forming a correct judgment of any thing at a glance ; a man who. like you, has commenced his career in a good school the infantry and who is a good manoeuverer, al- though educated in Austria ; but indolent, ex- cessively proud, and sarcastic. He is a man, who, in time of war, by trifling and joking, and CYCLOPEDIAOF HISTORY. EGY 226 EGY heaping ridicule on all with whom he deals, suffers himself to go to the very edge of the ditch; when, generally, his self-love comes to the rescue, his talent rallies, and he sometimes does very fine things, as you have been told." The condition of the French troops becoming every moment more critical, after various con- ferences with Sir Sidney Smith, it was agreed that after a truce of three months, the French should evacuate Egypt, and accordingly the treaty was signed at El-Arish, Jan. 24, 1800. Kleber wrote a letter to the French directory, stating the miserable condition of the French army, and urging the ratification of the treaty of E'1-Arish. This letter, however, fell into the hands of the English admiral Keith, and having been transmitted to the British government, they refused to allow the French any means of saving themselves, except by surrendering as prisoners of war. Sir' Sidney Smith hastened to inform the French of the views of his gov- ernment. A few days after, the lieutenant of the Tiger (an English vessel), sent ^general Kleber a letter, written by admiral Keith, un- der date of Minorca, Jan. 8, notifying to him the onlv conditions on which the British gov- ernment, would recognise the capitulation. General Kleber, shortly before this, enslaved by a secret spirit of jealousy, which perhaps, he dared not confess to himself, had been fol- lowing blindly a fatal path, in which his fame was threatened. A better day arose ; the hon- or of his nation was menaced, and the French troops were perfidiously commanded to lay down their arms. The "discontented Kleber Kleber, the humorist instantly became another man. The patriotic Frenchman, the able and heroic leader, re-appeared. The order of the day was conveyed by the letter of admiral Keith, and Kleber contented himself with add- ing these words: " Soldiers ! the only reply to insolence like this is victory ! Prepare to fight." And never were soldiers better prepared. In- dignation ran through every rank. The Turks should pay dearly for the bad faith of their al- lies. Kleber declared that he should regard the least advance on the part of the Turks as a hos- tile movement. Disregarding this warning, Youssef-Pacha, the grand vizier, repaired to El- Hancka with his whole army. His van-guard was within two leagues of Cairo. Finnans cir- culated in the provinces and even in Cairo it- self, excited the people to insurrection. Civil and religious influences increased the danger of the French. Time pressed, the troops sum- moned by Kleber, appeared in small detach- ments, but still they were animated by one spirit. 10,000 men did not hesitate to attack an army which the Turks and English them- selves have estimated at from 40 to ()0,000. At the ancient Heliopolis, Kleber prepared for combat. How well he was seconded may be inferred from the names of the officers next in command to him, viz. Rcgnier, Friant. Le- clerc, Belliard, Donzelot, and La Grange. With a trifling 'loss on their part, the French routed the enemy, arid killed and wounded 6,000. The French were again in firm posses- sion of a reconquered country, and Murad Bey became their faithful ally. Writers who think to honor Kleber, by rep- resenting him as the enemy of Bonaparte, affect to say, that he conceived the resolution of keep- ing Lgypt, " out of hatred to the man who had usurped the sovereignty in France." To ob- scure the glory of him whom they accuse, they darken the character of the man they would eulogize. They say also, with very little truth, that"" the talents of Kleber had excited the jeal- ousy of Bonaparte." But what points of com- parison could i>e established between them? What victories had Kleber gained to rank them with the two campaigns of Italy, or the single one of Egypt? Kleber had never commanded in chief. Often had the chief command been offered him, and as often had he refused a sin- gular trait of that pride which disdains to com- mand, and yet will not bend to obedience. Em- ployed in a secondary rank by preference, he revenged himself for this voluntary inferiority by epigrams upon the officer above him, whe- ther Beurnonville, Jourdan, or Moreau himself. In Egypt liis powers of sarcasm were employed in vain against a man who feared them not. If, at a later period, he denounced Bonaparte to the executive Directory, lieliad before, in a frank and bold letter, denounced, if we may use the expression, the Directory to general Bonaparte, and this was the political confidence of a clear- sighted man, who, beholding in the General, the future fortunate leader of a party, predicted the fate which awaited him. On his part, the General, appreciating Kleber, made use of him without fear, and pardoned his faults in consid- eration of his good qualities He feared not to debase himself in making advances. ^Some re- proaches, addressi d to Kleber on the subject of Iris administration in Egypt having wounded his feelings to such a degree that he was about to leave the army, Bonaparte wrote ; <: On the soil of Egypt, the clouds pass away in six hours : were. they on my side, they should dissipate in Interior of the Palr.ce at Dresden. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. EGY 227 EHR three." This was the conduct of Bonaparte towards the man whose rivalry he was accused of fearing. Kleber made many wise regulations to strengthen his administration. Meanwhile Europe had heard the news of the battle of Heliopolis and its results. The violation of national rights had yielded to the British gov- ernment but unsavory and bloody fruits, and they could not but regard with regret the de- struction of a fine Ottoman army 40,000 strong. General Kleber, having gained, by chance, mi- nute information of the views of the English, was taking a course which gave general satis- faction, when the dagger of a Mussulman assas- sin deprived the army of a leader, and France of the possession of Egypt. The fatal news circulated with rapidity ; grief and indignation were general, and at the end of some hours the criminal was seized, and it was proved that the murderer, Suliman El-Alepi, who was sent from Gazah to Cairo, was only a fanatic subaltern, who, intoxicated with temporal and spiritual promises, and maddened by the incendiary fir- mans of the Turkish government, pretended to punish, in the person of Kleber, the enemy of the prophet, and the conqueror of the grand vizier. After the revolt of Cairo in 1798, the Scheiks having come to implore the pardon of Bonaparte, the latter treated with peculiar respect an old man of the parly, the Scheik Sada. He raised him, kissed, and embraced him. When they had retired, he said to Kleber ; " Do you know that old fellow whom* I honored so?" "No," answered Kleber, " He is the ring-leader of the insurrection." " The deuce ! I would have shot him " When, in 1800, Kleber, having re- taken Cairo with an armed force, exacted as a punishment an extraordinary contribution of 4,000,000 francs, this same Sheick refused to pay the sum which was assessed upon him. In the first movement of anger, Kleber gave orders to have him bastinadoed, but, soon after, recollect- ing the conduct of Bonaparte, recalled them too late. When General Bonaparte heard of Kle- ber's deatli, his first words were : " This conies of the bastinado administered to the Scheik Sada." And in reality the assassin had been concealed in the mosque forty days. Similar fanatics had been previously sent to stab Bona- parte, but the Scheiks had prevented them. The command of the French army devolved on general Abdallah Menon. In 1801 the English, determined to drive the French from Egypt, fitted out an expedition of which the 20 army was commanded by Sir Ralph Abercrom- bie, and the fleet by Lord Keith. On the 23d of February, 1801, the fleet weighed anchor, and on March 1 was anchored in Aboukir bay. On the 8th they landed, and on the 18th gained possession of the fort. On the 521st, general Menon attacked the English, but was complete- ly defeated by them after a well-contested en- gagement. During the charge of cavalry, Sir Ralph Abercrombie was mortally wounded; after having despatched his aides-de-camp he was alone, and some French dragoons attacked him, threw him from his horse, and attempted to cut him down. The gallant general, how- ever, sprang up and wrested the sword from his antagonist, who was bayoneted by a soldier of the 42d. He died on the 28th, on board lord Keith's ship. General Hutchinson succeeded to the com- mand and resolved to reduce Lower Egypt. By the 19th of April, fort Sulien and Rosetta were captured, and the British proceeded to Rhama- nich, where the French made a stand, but were vanquished, and retreated towards Cairo. On the llth of May the army continued its march, and, on the 15th, intelligence being received that Belliard was in full march from Cairo, Hutchinson resolved to anticipate the attack ; and, on the 16th, the Turks commenced the onset, the French took post in a wood of date trees near Elmenayer, but were compelled to retreat. The British were now joined by great numbers of Arabs. The camp was placed at Gizeh, and dispositions were made for invading Cairo ; but the French garrison offered to ca- pitulate. A convention was accordingly con- cluded on the 28th of June, with certain stipu- lations, but Menon not acceding to the surrender of Alexandria, Hutchinson invested that city with the co-operation of lord Keith and Coote, which enabled him to surround it, and Menon capitulated. Four weeks after the evacuation of Egypt by the French, the preliminaries of a treaty of peace were signed at London. The Egyptians were much attached to the French, and regretted them extremely, for both Bona- parte and Kleber, did all in their power, during their brief term of possession, to ameliorate the condition of the country. EHRENSTRCEM, a Swedish officer who was concerned in the conspiracy against the regency in 1793, for the purpose of raising the young king to the throne prematurely, ana was conducted to the scaffold, where he was about to bend to the fatal stroke, when it was an- nounced that his sentence was changed to per- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ELD 2 petual imprisonment. He was released by Gustavus IV. ELBA (the ancient llva), a small island in the Mediterranean, near the coast of Tuscany, to which it now belongs. It is 60 miles in cir- cumference, and contains iron, silver, load- stone, and marble. The climate is mild. This island was allotted to Napoleon in 1814, on his abdication of the crown of France. He quitted it February 20, 1815. EL DORADO. When the zeal for travels, conquests, and discoveries in America, first be- gan to develop itself among the Spaniards and other nations of Europe, those who thirsted for adventure and aggrandizement were not con- tent with the actual wonders of the New World, but they taxed their imaginations for the cre- ation of realms in which the splendors of fairy- land were surpassed. Various circumstances contributed to add authority and influence to these fables. The tale that is oftentimes repeat- ed, is generally regarded as true, particularly when the narrators are skilful, and have weighty reasons for disguisinor the truth. These were not wanting with regard to the fable of El Dorado, or the Golden Region. It was believed, current- ly, that somewhere in Guiana, there existed a kingdom the wealth of which surpassed that of any known region on the face of the globe. Along the whole coast of the Spanish Main, it was believed that, in the interior of the country, there existed a land whose importance and riches it was impossible to exaggerate. These rumors are said to have had reference to the kingdom of Bogota and Tunja, now New Gre- nada. What was rather singular with regard to El Dorado, was, that the nearer adventurers approached to it, the farther off it appeared to be. The Peruvians had accounts of its exist- ence in the Nuevo Reyno ; the adventurers of that country believed that it existed in Peru. In fact it appeared like the blessed isle of Indian song, which actually fled from the footsteps of pursuers. Imagination, however, soon supplied the pro- per data. Tired of profitless wanderings, the gold hunters fixed upon a certain region (in Guiana,) as the locality of the kingdom of El Dorado. Nor was it a very difficult matter to make maps of the country, to crowd it with lakes and rivers, to refine its inhabitants, to perfect its arts, and to heighten its splendor. The story ran thus. After the fall of the Incas, a younger brother of Atabalipa, collecting what treasures he could lay hands upon, fled to an inland country, and founded a magnificent em- 28 ELD pire. This potentate was indifferently styled the Great Paytiti, the Great Moxo, the Enim or Great Paru. From interested motives, men of intelligence and reputation scrupled not to confirm the tales of this empire, and lend the sanction of their names to the most absurd and puerile fictions. Thus Sir Walter Raleigh, aware of the important results of colonizing Guiana, lured adventurers onward by display- ing before them the most enticing pictures of the Gilded Monarch and his realm. He even did not hesitate to attempt to pass upon Queen Elizabeth as facts, the monstrous fables, which his heated mind was alone capable of receiving. An unblushing impostor asserted that he had himself been in Manoa, the capital of the imaginary kingdom, and that in the street, of silversmiths, no fewer than three thousand workmen were employed. This traveller was very minute in his details, and produced a map which he had projected, and which was marked ";ith the situation of a hill of gold, one of silver, and one of salt. The gorgeous palace of the emperor was held on high by magnificent and symmetrical pillars of porphyry and alabaster, and encircled by galleries which were formed of ebony and cedar, curiously wrought. At about the period of Raleigh's first expedition, it was believed at Paraguay that the court of the Great Moxo had been actually discovered and visited. At this time the description of the interior varied a little from that which we have just given above. A vast lake of exquisite transparency and softness reflected the palace, which was built upon an island in its centre. The material of the edifice was snow-white marble of a peculiar brilliancy. Two towers guarded the entrance, standing on each side of a superb column, which shot up to the height twenty-five feet, and bore- upon its capital an immense silver moon, while two living lions were attached by massy chains of solid gold to its pedestal. These animals, like the dragons of a fairy-tale, defended the entrance to a place which outshone the realms of fairy. We know not whether an acquaintance with magic was necessary to quiet the vigilance of these wild guards, or whether they were well-bred crea- tures, disposed to make allowances for the curi- osity of visiters. and permit them an easy en- trance into the palace of El Dorudo. Be that as it may having passed those guards, you entered a quadrangle, where you could not fail to be de- lirfhted with the freshness and shade of the green trees, and the fragrant coolness and musical murmur of a silver fountain, which gushed and HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL ELD 229 ELD gleamed through four golden pipes. A small copper gate, the bolt of which shot into a massy rock, hid the interior of the palace. This pass- ed, the splendor of the internal arrangements dazzled and delighted. A vast altar, formed of solid silver, supported an immense golden sun, before which, four lamps were kept perpetually burning. The lord of this magnificence was called El Dorado, literally, The Gilded, from the savage splendor of his costume, his naked body being daily anointed with costly gum, and then heap- ed with gold dust, until he presented the appear- ance of a golden statue. " But," Oviedo sagely remarks, " as this kind of garment would be uneasy to him while he slept, the prince washes himself every evening, and is gilded anew in the morning, which proves that the empire of El Dorado is infinitely rich in mines." This fable had its origin in the peculiar rites intro- duced by the worship of Bochica, as the high priest of this sect was accustomed, every morn- ing, to anoint his hands and face with grease, and then heap them with gold dust. Another custom, spoken of by Humboldt, may have fiven rise to the fable of the gilt man. This istinguished traveller says, that in the wilder parts of Guiana, where painting the body is used instead of the practice of tatooing, the Indians smear their bodies with the fat of tur- tles, and then cover them with pieces of mica of a metallic lustre, brilliantly white as silver, and red as copper, so that they appear robed in a garment covered with gold and silver embroidery, when seen from a little distance. Although productive of much mischief, the expeditions undertaken in the hope of discover- ing El. Dorado did considerable service to the cause of science ; and thus, by the agency of fiction, many important truths were brought to light. We shall speak of the different expedi- tions fitted out in search of El Dorado, the last of which, incredible as it may seem, was set on foot as lately as the year 1775. From this we may judge how firm was the belief in the exist- ence of this fairy-land. The earliest enter- prises of this nature attempted to reach the realm of the Great Moxo, somewhere in the direction of the eastern back of the Andes of New Granada. The captains Anasco and Am- pudia, were despatched by Sebastian de Belal- cazar, in 1535, to discover the valley of Dorado, in consequence of the flaming descriptions which an Indian of Tacumga had given of the riches and splendor of the Zaque, or the king of Cundmamarca. Diaz de Pineda (in 1530) gave rise to the idea that there were, to the eastward of the Nevados of Tunguragua, Cay- ambe and Popayan, immense plains where the precious metals were found in abundance, and where gold, in particular, was so plentiful, that the inhabitants converted massy plates of it into armor. In 1539, Gonzalo Pizarro, inflamed by the account of these treasures, set forth in search of them, and by chance, made the discovery of the American cinnamon trees. Francisco de Orellana set forth to reach the river of Ama- zons by the Napo. Expeditions were fitted out simultaneously from Venezuela, New Granada, Quito, Peru, Brazil, and the Rio de la Plata^ having, for their sole object, the conquest of Dorado. The incursions to the south of Gua- viare, the Rio Fragua, and the Caqueta, were declared to have procured proof not only of the existence of the city of El Dorado, but of the immense riches of the Manoas, the Omaguas, and the Guaypos. We discover proofs of ac- curate knowledge and careful research in the narratives of the voyages of Orellana, George von Specier, Hernan Perez de Quesada, and Philip von Huten, undertaken in 1536, 1542, and 1545, although there is no lack of exagger- ation and fable likewise. Those who sought the town of the Gilded Monarch, directed their steps to two points situated on the northeast and southwest of the Rio Negro ; viz. to Parima, the early abode of the Manoas, who dwelt upon the banks of the Jurubesh. There exists now very little doubt that the whole of the country lying between the Amazon and Orinoco, was compre- hended under the general name of the Provin- ces of the Gilded King. The first voyage of Sir Walter Raleigh was undertaken in 1595. That enterprising and romantic man, who was in high favor with Queen Elizabeth of England, was tired of the dull realities of the Old World, and thirsted for adventure. He embraced. the idea of El Dorado with ardor, as holding out something worthy of his attention. It is true that he had no definite ideas about the situation of the fabled kingdom, but he rushed into the adventure with the enthusiasm and ardor which distinguished him. He was, of course, disappointed, and pro- bably found the affair, Gilded king, lake, city, palace, lions, gold mountains, and all, what we, in these commonplace, and degenerate days, should term a bubble or a hoax. Sir Wal- ter Raleigh was a courtier, well versed in the ways of the world, and he cared not to endure the mortification of being ridiculed or pitied, on his return, for the failure of the expedition. He was determined to sacrifice truth to what he CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ELD 230 ELD considered expediency. Besides, he had formed the project of colonizing Guiana, which he saw would produce the happiest results, and he thought, that by holding out the golden purse of El Doraf!n, he should induce many to patron- ise his scheme. We shall briefly trace the course of Sir Wal- ter Raleigh, when, after having collected from Antonio de Berrio, whom he took prisoner in his incursion on the island of Trinidad, in 1595, and others, the sum of the knowledge possessed at that time upon the subject of Guiana and the adjacent countries, he set forth upon his celebrated expedition. He then entertained no doubts of the existence of the two great lakes, and the kingdom of the famous Inca, which was supposed to have been founded near the sources of the river Essequibo. Passing the river Gua- vapo, and the plains of Chaymas, Raleigh stop- ped at Morequito, where he was informed by an old man that there was no doubt that foreign nations had entered Guiana. The cataracts of Carony, a. river which was supposed to be the shortest way to Macureguari and Manoa, towns situated on the banks of lakes Cassipa and Rupunuwini or Dorado, terminated this expedition. We must be permitted to doubt almost every assertion made by Raleigh with regard to the results of this voyage. He was determined that his cause should lose nothing from excessive modesty, and consequently the style in which he speaks of Manoa is highly inflated. He heard of inland seas which he compares to the Caspian, and of " the imperial and golden city of Ma- noa." He styles the ruler of the magnificent country, "the emperor Inga of Guyana-," and says that he had erected palaces of the most daz- zling magnificence, said to surpass by far the superb palaces of his Peruvian ancestors. Ra- leigh, in his endeavors to influence the queen, neglected neither the arts of flattery, nor the embellishments of fiction. He says that to the barbarous nations he encountered, he showed the picture of the Queen, at which they exhib- ited "transports of joy." He asserts'that he was informed that at the time of the conquest of Peru, there were prophecies " in their chief- eat temples," which foretold the loss of the empire and the restoration of the Ingas (Incas) by Englishmen. He tells her Majesty that the Inca would probably pay yearly to England the sum of three hundred thousand pounds ster- ling, if she would place in his towns garrisons of three or four thousand English, under pre- tence of defending him against all enemies. " It seemeth to me," he adds. " that this empire of Guiana is reserved for the English nation.' From 1595 to 1617, Raleigh made four succes- sive voyages to the Lower Orinoco. These at- tempts, which, however they were represented in England, were well understood in South America to have been fruitless, damped the ardor of adventurers who had formed projects for entering and conquering El Dorado. From this time there appeared none of those great combinations, and important expeditions which at first owed their origin to warm chimerical ideas; but at the same time, the golden hopes which had been awakened did not entirely dis- appear, and solitary enterprises were occasion- ally undertaken, under the sanction of various provincial governors. In 1637, and 1638, father Acana, and father Fritz, severally undertook journeys to the lands of the Manoas, which were thought to be rife with gold, and by the magnificent accounts which they put in circulation, contrived to in- flame anew the imaginations of adventurers. Very recently it was believed that the plains of Macas, to the east of the Cordilleras, contained the ruins of Logrono, a town situated in a gold region of prodigious value. In 1740, an idea was current that by going up the river Esse- quibo, Dorado might be reached from Dutch Guiana. The imagination of Don Manuel Cen- turion, governor of ranto Thome del Angostura, having been warmed by the current fables of the splendid lake of Manoa. the very existence of which was apochryphal, determined to set on foot some serious investigations. He used all his powers to awaken in the minds of the colo- nists an ardor equal to his own. An Ipurucoto Indian, by name Arimuicajpi, descended the Rio Carony, and, for reasons of his own, by the most bare-faced impositions, induced the Span- iards to believe that the tales of El Dorado hardly did justice to the splendor of the coun- try of the Great Moxo. He declared that the whitish light in the clouds of Magellan, in the southern skv, was the reflection of the silvery rocks around which the waves of the Lake Pa- rima swept " This was describing in a very poetical manner," says Humboldt, " the splendor of the micaceous and talcky states of his coun- try." A well-meaning Indian chief, popularly term- ed Captain Jurado. endeavored to check the progress of the delusion, and tried to undeceive Governor Onturion. The nd venturers em- barked upon the Caura and Rio Paragua, but hot only were disappointed in their expecta- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ELD 231 ELD tions. but encountered the most dreadful suffer- the belief. Acunha says that north of the junc- ings which occasioned the death of several tion of the Curuputuba and Amazon, the im- hundred persons. Notwithstanding the disad- mense mountain of Paraguaxo, when the rays vantageous effects of these expeditions, they of the sun fell upon it, displayed the most beau- brought to light many important geographical tiful colors, emitting from time to time, tre- facts. In 1775-1780, Nicholas Rodriguez and mendous bellowings. The Indians, who were Antonio Santos, two men noted for their en- accustomed to fasten upon their skins gold terprise, were employed by the Spanish gov- spangles and powder, informed the Spaniards, ernor, and reached the Uraricuera and Rio that they obtained it by tearing up the grass Branco, after encountering many perils ; but, and earth in a certain plain, and washing it. of course, did not attain their objects. But it is possible that what was imagined to be The frequent occurrence of mica in Guiana gold, was no other than mica, which the natives contributed to confirm the opinions of those who of Rio Caura are said still to use by way of orna- believed it to be a region rich with gold, and menting their bodies, and heightening the effect thus, as in many other cases, want of scientific of their painting. knowledge led to the most absurd ideas, and In tracing the progress of the famous delusion the most deplorable results. The peak of Mount of El Dorado, we cannot fail to be surprised at Calitamini at sunset gleams as if it were in- the credulity of some adventurers, and the au- crusted with precious metal, or ornamented dacity of others. The expedition of Sir Walter with a coronet of diamonds. The islets of mica- Raleigh^was without doubt, the most important slate in the Lake Amucu, are fabled by the na- undertaken ; and the influence which it exerted tives, to increase the silver gleams of the clouds was beneficial in deterring men from making ia the southern sky by their powerful reflection, those combined efforts which could not have Raleigh says that every mountain, and every failed in terminating ruinously. We cannet stone in the forests of Orinoco, had all the spark- doubt, that Raleigh was himself grossly deceiv- ling brilliancy of the precious metals. Those ed, nor that he endeavored to practice upon irho gave the most glowing descrip- others the imposition from which he had him- 3 say tha were those who, on other subjects, made no misrepresented things for a good end, and the travellers who gave the most glowing descrip- others the imposition tions of the riches of Guiana and EL Dorado, self suffered. It is no excuse to say that he scruple of violating truth for the sake of enhanc- delinquency of this celebrated man in this re- ing the effects of their narrations. Diego de spect weakens considerably the interest which Ordaz, the famous Conquistador of Mexico, in the concluding events of his life are calculated 1531, undertook a voyage of discovery along to awaken. the banks of the Orinoco. This gentleman boast- Th,e following is briefly his own description ingly declared that he had taken sulphur out of of Guiana. The empire of Guiana is directly the Peak of Popocatepetl, and was allowed by the east from Peru towards the sea, and lieth under emperor, Charles V, to carry a flaming volcano the equinoctial line, and it hath more abund- in his coat of arms. He obtained a commission to ance of gold than any part of Peru, and as many, rule over all the country which he could subdue or more great cities than ever Peru had when it by his arms between Brazil and the coast of flourished most. It is governed by the same Venezuela, and began his voyage by the mouth laws, and the emperor and people observe the of the river Maranon. Here the natives dis- same religion, and the same form and policies played to his admiring eyes, " emeralds as big in government as was used in Peru, not differ- as a man's fist." These were doubtless no other ing in any part ; and as I have been assured by than pieces of compact feldspar, a mineral found such of the Spaniards as have seen Manoa, the in great profusion at the mouth of the river imperial city of Guiana, which the Spaniards Topayas. The Indians informed Ordaz that in call El Dorado, that for the greatness, the riches, travelling to the westward he would find a and for. the excellent seat, it far exceedeth any mountain of emerald, but a shipwreck destroyed of the world, at least of so much of the world the hopes of the party. as is known to the Spanish nation. Itisfound- The Spanish adventurers firmly believed in ed upon a lake of salt water of two hundred the existence of mountains composed, princi- leagues long, like unto Mare Caspium (the Cos- pally, if not wholly, of gold, silver, emerald, plan Sea); and if we compare it to that of Peru, &c. Sometimes, natural appearances, easily and but read the report of Francisco Lopez, and explained, gave rise to these illusions, but fre- others, it will seem more than credible. Ra- quently, there was no foundation whatever for leigh repeats the wonderful stories told of 20* CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ELI 232 ELI Manoa by Martinez, a Spaniard who informed him that he had spent seven months in the empire and who first gave it the name of El Dorado. Martinez gave by no means a flatter- ing character to the inhabitants of Guiana, who, he said were a set of inveterate drunkards. According to him, at times of solemn festival, the higher officers of the empire caroused with the king. All who pledged him were stripped, and having their bodies anointed with a costly balsam, the servants of the emperor blew gold dust upon them, making use, for this purpose of certain hollow canes or reeds. Then glitter- ing from head to foot, they sat down by twen- ties and hundreds, and drank sometimes for six or seven days. Martinez said that he named the empire El Dorado on account of the quan- tity of gold which he found in the temples, and throughout the city ; plates, armor, and shields, being formed of the precious metal. Raleigh speaks of a race whose heads did not appear above their shoulders, and adds, " though it may be thought a mere fable, yet for mine own part I am resolved it is true.' " They are called Ewaipanoma. They are reported to have eyes in their shoulders, and their mouths in the middle of their breasts, and that a long train of hair groweth backward between their should- ers." These people, however, were not pre- tencied to be the inhabitants of the empire of the Gilded King. Though we cannot fail to regret the waste of labor and life which the fable of El Dorado caused. Yet it must be confessed that it led to many scientific discoveries : But while many facts were brought forward, they were so mixed up with fables, defying almost "all attempts to separate the evil from the good, that we cannot be much surprised at the erroneous ideas which prevailed up to a very late period. The pene- tration and knowledge of the nineteenth cen- tury have dissipated the golden clouds whicli overhung the haunted region of Guiana, and the Great Moxo, by common consent, is for ever banished to the dreamed realms of fiction. ELEUSIS (now Lcpsina), was anciently, next to Athens, the principal city of Attica. It was here that the festivals of Ceres, the goddess of Nature, termed the Eleusiniun Mysteries, were secretly celebrated in her temple which was sur- rounded by high walls. The manner of their celebration is unknown. ELIJAH, the prophet, who rebuked the idol- atries of Ah.ab, king of Israel, and Jehosaphat, king of Judah. He did not experience the a fiery chariot. For his history see the 1st and 2d Books of Kings. ELIO, Francisco Xavier. a Spaniard who opposed Napoleon in Spain, and the revolution- ists in South America. On the restoration of Ferdinand VII, of Spain, lie declared himself in favor of absolute monarchy, and committed many atrocities in putting down liberal princi- ples. The revival of the constitution of Cadiz put an end to his career. He was tried for excit- incr a movement in favor of absolute monarchy, and put to death, Sept 3d. I-:;--'. ELIOT. John, a native of England, was born in 1604, and was educated at Cambridge. He came to America in 1631 . and was settled as minister of the church in Roxbury, Massachu- setts. He mastered the Indian language, and published nn Indian Bible and grammar, and was indefatigable in preaching the gospel to the savages. The great apostle and friend of the Indians died May 20, 1690. His works were voluminous. EL1OTT, George Augustus. lord Heathfield, was born at Stubbs, in Scotland, in 1718, and educated at Leyden. after which he entered into the Prussian service. Having returned to Scotland, he joined, in 1733, the corps of engi- neers, and afterward became adjutant to a corps of horse-grenadiers, in which capacity he dis linguished himself at Dettingen where he was wounded. In this regiment he rose to the rank of lieutenant-colonel; and, in 1757. was ap- pointed to the command of a regiment of light- horse, which lie had himself raised. On his return from Germany, he was sent to Havana, and, at the peace, the king conferred on his regiment the title of" royal." In 1775, he was appointed commander-in-chief in Ireland, and was soon after made governor of Gibraltar, which fortress he bravely defended against the combined forces cf France and Spain. Pie died at Aix-la-Chapelle, July 6th, 17 ( JO. He never indulged in the pleasures of the table, his food consisting of vegetables and water. Ever vigilant and active, he never slept more than four hours at a time. ELIS, a district in the western part of the Peloponnesus, bounded east by Arcadia, south by Messenia. ELIZABETH, queen of England, one of the most distinguished of female sovereigns, the daughter of Henry VIII, by Anne Boleyn, was born in 1533. She was educated in the" protes- tant religion, and, by the last will of her father, was nominated third in the succession. Dur- pangs of death, but was taken up to heaven in ing the reign of Mary, she was treated with HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ELI 233 ELL great severity, and attempts were made to draw her into a snare on the subject of religion, so as to prosecute her for heresy; but by uncommon prudence she escaped these designs. She had received an admirable education, and was well versed in classical literature for which she had an unaffected fondness. In 1558, on the death of Mary, she succeeded to the throne. She re- fused all matrimonial overtures, yet was sup- posed to be pleased with such addresses. By the vigilance of her government she preserved her dominions in peace, repelled the attempts of the Spaniards, and was considered the patron- ess of the reformed church. "With regard to the execution of Mary, queen of Scots, she en- deavored to shift the odium from herself, and attributed it to a mistake of her secretary Da- visn, by whom the warrant was furthered. The execution of Essex (see Detcrevx) was a blow from which she never recovered. She died, March 24, 1603. Masculine as her mind was. she was yet enough of woman to be fond of flattery and dress. Shakspeare, whom she patronized, has paid her a compliment in one of '.he most pleasing of his dramas the Midsum- mer's Night's Dream. Elizabeth is the "fair vestal, throned in the west," who is proof against the arrows of Cupid. "ELIZABETH PETRO\VNA, daughter of Peter the Great and Catharine I. was born in 17U9. After the death of Anne, who appointed for her successor, Ivan, son of her niece Anne, the wife of Antony Ulrich, duke of Brunswick, the latter proclaimed herself regent during the minority of her son. A conspiracy was formed, the regent and her son imprisoned, and Eliza- beth Petrowna proclaimed empress, in 1741. Elizabeth was ambitious of being considered the most beautiful woman in her empire, and en- gaged in the seven years' war, in consequence of a personal sarcasm of Frederick the Great. She did not, however, gain any decisive advan- tage, and died Dec. 29, 1761, at the age of 52, after a reign of 20 years. Her life was passed in licentious indulgences. ELIZABETH, Philippine Marie Helene of France, Madame, the sister of Louis XVI, was born May 23d, 1764. Although mild, virtuous, benevolent, and inoffensive, she perished by the guillotine, May 10, 1794. ELIZABETHTO WN,in Essex county, New Jersey, 14 miles S. S. W. of New York, con- tains 4,184 inhabitants. It is a flourishing and pleasant place, and the oldest town in the state, having been settled by emigrants from Long Island in 1664. ELLENBOROUGH, Edward Law, lord, was born in 1748, at Great Salkeld, in Cumberland. He was educated at Cambridge, and early ad- mitted to the bar. He was counsel for Warren Hastings in 1785, assisted by Plomer and Dal- las, and his client was acquitted. His foitune was now fixed. In 1801 he was made attorney general, and the following year succeeded lord Kenyon, as lord chief justice of the king's bench, and was created baron. He died Dec. 13.1818. ELLERY, William, one of the signers of the declaration of Independence, born at Newport, R. I., Dec. 22, 1727, and was educated at Har- vard College, studied law, became a member of Congress in 1776, and served in that body until 1785. when he was appointed chief justice of the Superior Court of Rhode Island. After- wards he accepted the office of Collector of Customs in his native town, and died at the age of 92, Feb. 15, 1820. ELLIOT, Stephen, an American botanist, and man of letters, was born at Beaufort, S. C., in 1771, and educated at Yale College. He early devoted his attention to natural history. As a member of the State legislature, he was distinguished for patriotism, learning and abili- ty. He was president of the State bank, mem- ber of several literary and scientific societies, and editor of the Southern Review, and he re- ceived the degree of L.L. D. from Yale College. He died in the earlv part of 1830. ELLSWORTH,"01iver, was born at Wind- sor, Connecticut, April 29, 1745. He was the, son of a farmer, and devoted his early years al- ternately to literature and agriculture. He was educated at Yale and Princeton Colleges, the former of which he entered at the age of 17, and was admitted to the bar, after the usual prepa- ratory study, in 1771 ? inthe county of Hartford, Connecticut, and was appointed state attorney. An ardent friend of freedom, he served in the revolutionary army, was a member of the gen- eral assembly of Connecticut, and a delegate to the Congress of the United States. He was made member of the Council and judge of the Superior Court of his native state, assisted in framing the federal convention, was chosen senator in the first congress, and held his seat throughout Washington's administration. He was appointed chief justice of the United States on the resignation of Mr. Jay, and was one of the envoys sent to France in 1799, to procure the adjustment of the differences which threat- ened a very serious termination. Having re- turned to his native state, he died in 1807, in the 63d year of his age. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ENG 234 ENG ELSINORE, ELSINEUR, or HELSIN- GOER, a Danish seaport, situated on the east coast of the island of Zealand, where vessels passing up or down the Baltic stop to pay toll or procure stores. The annual amount of toll is frofn 600,000 to 700,000 dollars. Pop. 7000. EMANUELTHE GREAT, king of Portu- gal, ascended the throne in 1495. During his reign the discoveries and exploits of Portuguese navigators and commanders, opened the wealth of America and the East Indies to Portugal. Ever} 7 thing seemed to flourish, and the period merited the title which was given it "the golden age of Portugal." Etnanuel died Dec. 13, 1521. He acquired renown by his expul- sion of the Moors, and his patronage of men of letters. EMMET, Thomas Addis, born in Cork, Ire- land, in 1765. He was designed for the medical profession, but the death of his elder brother, a member of the bar, induced him to turn his at- tention to the study of the law. He pursued it with success and commenced practice in Dub- lin. In 171)5, Emmet joined the association of United Irishmen, and was arrested March 12, 1798. Oliver Bond, doctor Macneven, and oth- ers, were arrested at the same time. Emmet was imprisoned for a long time in Fort George, in the county of Nairn, Scotland, but with his wife, who had shared his confinement, having been finally liberated, he carne to New York in Nov., 1804. Emrnet here successfully prac- tised law, and in 1812 %vas appointed attorney- general of the State of New York. He died m the 03d year of his age, Nov. 14, 1827, during the trial of an important case. In private life he was beloved, and in public esteemed and respected. EMS, a watering place in the duchy of Nas- sau, which is surrounded by enchanting scenery. ENGHIEN, Louis Antoine Henri de Bour- bon, duke of, born at Chantilly, Aug. 2. 1772, was the son of Louis Henry Joseph Conde, duke of Bourbon, a descendant of the great Condo He served in various campaigns, par- ticularly distinguished himself under his grand- father. In 1804 he went to Ettenheim incog., and married the princess Charlotte de Rohan Rochefort. At this time the life of Bonaparte was threatened, and the English, in particular, hinted at his probable assassination. The duke D' Enghien, having fallen under suspicion, was arrested at Ettenheim, in the neutral territory of Baden, brought to Vincennes at midnight, tried with much informality, condemned to death, and shot the next morning, the whole affair having been conducted, to say the least, with ungenerous haste. No action of Napole- on's has excited so much discussion as this. Some writers laid the whole blame of the transaction upon the emperor, and others en- deavoring to free him altogether from the charge. An actual conspiracy, supported by English money, had been discovered at Paris, that of Georges. By this conspiracy England had been taken, by flagrantc tielicto, in Paris it- self. The same spirit which had sent Georges from London to France, was to be found in the cabinet of all the British embassies in Germany. Peculiar circumstances induced M. Real, then chief of the police, to send a trusty agent to find out whether the duke of Enghien was al- ways at Ettenheim, and what were his relations and his habits. An officer of the gendarmerie was entrusted with this mission, and this was the foundation of all the evil. On his wav to Strasburg, this officer heard it mentioned as a notorious fact, that the duke d' Enghien was in the habit of attending the theatre in that city. The spy sent to Ettenheim reached it with pre- judices which the least indications will increase. He learns that there are some emigrants in the neighborhood of the duke d' Enghien, that he invariably gives them the warmest reception when they visit him, and that the duke is fre- quently absent for days at a time. It appeared afterwards that from time to time, a passion for hunting kept the duke for several successive clays in the mountains of the Black Forest. This was not all. The imperfect pronunciation of the Germans gave the officer to suppose, then an obscure person in the suite of the duke, a M. de Thumery, was no other than general Dumourir. The union of these particulars alarmed the officer, who, with more zeal than truth, created fearful phantoms out of innocent appearances. The judgment of the first consul was obscured by the rapidity with which his imagination moved, causing him to take for in- contestible facts, stories' which had but vague conjecture for their foundation. Thus he soon arrived at his conclusions. " In GO hours one can come from Strasburg to Paris. It requires but five days to go and return. The unknown personage (afterwards proved to be Pichegru), who was received with so much respect by Georges, is the duke d' Enghien. The duke is the prime mover of the conspiracy, the soul of it, at least one of the first accomplices." These were the ideas which presented themselves tc the first consul, and it must be confessed that the supposed presence of Dumourier at Etten- heim was a circumstance of weight. The fact, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ENG 235 ENG if it had been true, and the first consul believed it to be so, would have added to the suspicions of which the duke d' Enghien was the subject. But here it may be objected that these suspi- cions were without foundation, that the first consul ought to have known it, because the charg6 of foreign affairs at Carlsruhe wrote that the duke of Enghien was leading the most quiet and retired life at Ettenheim. It will be con- ceded that his objection has little force ; for might not the duke d' Enghien be concerned in the conspiracies against Bonaparte, have an un- derstanding with the emigrants in his neigh- borhood, entertain Dumourier in his train, either under his own or another name, and yet find no occasion to change the external and reg- ular order of his life ? There was another cause which acted upon the determination of the first consul, and which has hitherto been passed over in total silence. The conspiracy against the first consul was nurtured in England, but its branches spread in every direction. In England conspirators were pen- sioned ; in Austria, battalions were raised. On one side, were plots ; on the other, conspira- cies: danger was everywhere, and perils were daily augmenting. How could the first consul imagine that the duke of Enghien, a prince of the house of France, an officer of the English army, was ignorant of the preparations wnich were on foot? In the eyes of Bonaparte the cabinets of London and Vienna acted in con- cert. How could he persuade himself that a Bourbon, placed at Ettenheim, should refuse to participate in the association ? Sir Walter 8cott himself believed that the duke was established at Ettenheim for the purpose of putting him- self at the head of the royalists in that quarter, or of presenting himself, if affairs required it, to those of Paris. The discussion between Aus- tria and France had come almost to menaces. On the 9th of March Bonaparte addressed to the emperor of Germany a summons to explain himself. On the 10th was given the fatal order relative to the duke of Enghien. Who can say that these two ideas were strangers to each other? That the greatness of the perils which surrounded Bonaparte did not contribute to the violence of the means which he employed to oppose them, and make his enemies tremble ? Who would venture to assert that Austria, al- ways so intimately connected with England, had no knowledge, not assuredly of the plots of as- sassination, but of the various hostile plans em- ployed against the first consul, and did not hold herself in readiness to yield to the current of events ? In the midst of these circumstances, the reports of the agent sent to Ettenheim were submitted to the first consul. Instantly a fear- ful resolution was taken, and the order given for the seizure of the duke. How was this resolution taken ? Was it the result of a sudden movement on the part of Bonaparte, or was it determined by the delibe- rations of a council ? The orders for the min- ister of war were dictated, at 10 P. M. by the first consul on issuing from a cabinet confer- ence at which were present the two consuls, Talleyrand, the chief justice, and Fouche, who was then only a senator. Had they been as- sembled by special convocation, or by chance ! This is of little consequence. But what passed at this conference ? It is here the interpreta- tions of jealousy and hate begin. Is it true, as some memoirs have asserted, that the minister of foreign affairs, after a report upon the gene- ral state of Europe, concluded by counselling the violation of a neutral territory ? Is it true, as some have asserted, that Fouche, in order to create embarrassment, and make himself neces- sary in the post which he had formerly occu- pied, warmly advocated a measure which he would soon be the first to denounce ? Is it true that the opposition of Cambaceres to the seizure of the duke upon a neutral territory, drew down upon him the famous apostrophe of Bonaparte ; " you have become very avaricious of the blood of the Bourbons." Bonaparte might have said : " The Bourbons have sworn to destroy me, they have devoted my heart to the steel of their satellites, they have willed my assassination. Well ! let them tremble in turn ! I I can also assassinate. I have only to stretch forth my hand to seize one of them I idill seize him, I will destroy him, and they shall feel that they can no longer at- tempt my life with impunity." Perhaps, " in the very whirlwind of his passion," an infernal spirit, in vofrder to strengthen him, may have whispered cool reflections : " The divorce be- tween France and the eldest branch of the Bourbons seems definitive. The state of inac- tion to which the princes of this branch have been condemned has destroyed all sympathy between them and heroic France. The name of Conde, on the contrary, recalls more vividly, the glory of arms. It recalls even the last wars. The grandfather and the grandson have fought among the brave, against the brave. There is here a possibility of reconciliation a germ of sympathy. It is this branch which I must de- stroy, even to the list shoot, .t will be a CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ENG 236 EPA crime, a great crime, but a state crime, a po- litical crime. It will spread consternation in France even amonor my most devoted friends; it will stupify all Europe ; but only for a mo- ment; for to-morrow, other occurrences will concentrate the attention of all Europe, to-mor- row it will be apprised of the new crimes of England, and the death of the duke of Enghien will be lost in the various events which fortune seems to prepare expressly for the purposes of concealment and oblivion." On the 15th of March the duke of Enghien was seized at Ettenheim and brought to Stras- burg. From Strasburg he was, on the Idth transferred to Paris, where he arrived the 20th, and thence was sent to the castle of Vincennes. The governor of Paris appointed a council of war which assembled in the night. The prince was condemned to death, and the sentence was immediately executed. In a proceeding dicta- ted by policy legal formalities are rarely observ- ed. They were not in the case of the duke of Enghien. The prisoner of St. Helena contin- ually justified himself by saying that the prince was tried " by a competent tribunal." The competence of the tribunal is a very doubtful matter, but could it be settled, according to the wishes of Napoleon, there would still remain in this affair, the infraction of the laws which pro- tect the accused. The duke had no defender. Napoleon, it is true, has said, " If guilty, the commission did right in condemning him to death. If innocent, it should have acquitted him, for no order can justify the conscience of a judge." What a lesson for magistrates, for commissions or counsels of war, which should be tempted to make the scales of justice move in accordance with the interests or the passions of governments. ENGLAND contains 40 counties, with a population of 13,089,338. The counties are Northumberland, Cumberland, Durbaja, York- shire, Westmoreland, Lancashire^BEheshire, Shropshire, Herefordshire, Monmouthshire, Nottinghamshire, Derbyshire, Staffordshire, Leicestershire, Rutlandshire, Northampton- shire, Warwickshire, Worcestershire, Glou- cestershire, Oxfordshire, Buckinghamshire, Bedfordshire, Lincolnshire, Huntingdonshire, Cambridgeshire, Norfolk, Suffolk, Essex, Ilert- forshire, Middlesex, Surry, Kent, Sussex, Berkshire, Wiltshire, Hampshire, Dorsetshire, Somersetshire, Devonshire, Cornwall. The as- pect of the country is various, but generally pleasantly diversified with hills and verdant plains. The climate, though moist and change- able, is healthy. The agricultural productions are grain, wool, horned cattle, arid horses. Among the minerals are coal, copper, tin, iron, and lead. The inland navigation of England is admirable for the number and excellence of its canals, and the communication between commercial places is facilitated by the perfect condition of the roads. The commerce of England exceeds that of any other nation on the face of the globe, and the English have in consequence been naturally called " a nation of shopkeepers." The six most important articles of manufacture are woollens, cotton, silk, hardware, earthenware, and glass. Epis- copacy is the established religion, but there is a great number of dissenters, Catholics, inde- pendents, Presbyterians, Baptists, Methodists, Quakers, Unitarians. Swedenborgians, and Jews. Education in England is by no means neglected, the Universities of Oxford and Cam- bridge being the richest institutions in the world. The exports of Great Britain amount annually to 37,000,000, and the imports to about 25,000,000. (For the history of Eng- land, ttc. See Britain.) ENGLAND NEW; this name was given by Charles I, of England, to that part of N. America which now includes the States of Maine, Vermont, New Hampshire, Massachu- setts, Rhode-Island, and Connecticut. ENOCH, a patriarch who lived before the deluge. ENOS, the son of Seth.and father of Ci> nan. He lived to the age of IHJ5 years. EPAMINONDAS, a famous Theban des- cended from the ancient kings of Bceotia He was celebrated for his private virtues and mili- tary accomplishments. His love of truth was so great that he was never known to give utterance to a falsehood. He formed a most sacred and inviolable friendship with Pelopidas whose life he saved in battle. 15y his advice Pclopidas delivered Thebes from the power of Lacedasmon. This was the signal of war. Kpuininondas was placed at the head of the Theban armies, und~ defeated the Spartans in the celebrated battle of Leuctra, about 370 B. C. Epaminondas entered the territories of Lacedcemon with 50,000 men. Here he gained many friends and partisans, but, at his return from Thebes, he was seized as a traitor for violating tho laws of his country. While he was making the Theban army victorious on every side, he neglected the law which forbade any citizen to retain in his hands the supreme power for more than one month, and all his HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. EPI 237 ERA eminent services seemed unable to redeem him from death. He paid implicit obedience to the laws of his country, and only begged of his judges that it might be inscribed on his tomb, that he had suffered death for saving his coun- try from ruin. This animated reproach was felt; he was pardoned, and invested again with sovereign power. He was successful in a war with Thessaly, and again engaged against the Lacedaemonians. The hostile armies met near Mantinea 363 B. C. and while Epaminondas was fighting bravely in the thickest of the enemy, he received a fatal wound in the breast, and ex- pired with joy on hearing that the Bceotians had obtained the victory. On hearing his friends regret that he had left no children, he said; " I leave behind me two immortal daugh- ters, the victories of Leuctra and Mantinea. EPEE, Charles Michael, abbe de 1', was born at Versailles in 1712. None of the teachers who had been successful with deaf and dumb pupils, had published accounts of their method, so that De L' Epee was not indebted to them for the mode of instruction which he first employed upon two sisters. His zeal in the cause of those who were destitute of speech and hearing led him into pecuniary embarrassment. One incident in his life is peculiarly interesting. He met, one day, in the streets of Paris a deaf and dumb youth in the garb of a beggar whom he was convinced was the heir of the rich fami- ly of the Count of Solar. A law-suit followed, which was at first successful, but when the friends of Solar were dead, his property was again wrested from him, and he was compelled to enlist in the army as acuraissier. Del' Epee died in 1780. EP1IESUS, the capital city of Ionia, famous for its splendid temple dedicated to the worship of Diana. This superb temple occupied 229 years in its erection, was 425 feet long, 2JO broad and adorned with an immense number of lofty columns. It was burned by Erostratus 356 years B. C. to perpetuate his name. The paltry village of Aiasoluk occupies the site of the ancient city. EPICTETUS, a stoic philosopher, born at Hieropolis, in Phrygia, A. D. 90. He was the slave of Epaphroditus, a freedman of Nero. His master once struck him a severe blow upon the leg. " You will break it," was the calm reply of the stoic. The brute repeated the blow and broke it. " Did I not tell you so ? " was the quiet exclamation of the philosopher. He was afterwards freed, and made governor of Cappadocia A. D. 134. EPICURUS, was born at Gargettus, near Athens, :*12 B. C. In the 36th year of his age he opened his school in an Athenian garden. He taught his scholars that the siimmum Uonum consisted in happiness ; but that happiness did not spring from sensual enjoyments but from a practice of the virtues. He commended wis- dom, was temperate, moderate, gentle, firm, and fearless of death. He died 270 B. C., and had many followers. EPIRUS, a province on the borders of Greece, the most southerly portion of the modern Alba- nia. This country was first inhabited by the Chaones, and the kingdom of Epirus may be said to have begun with Pyrrhus the son of Achilles, about the year UOO B. C About 2dO B. C. another Pyrrhus, king of this country, distinguished himself greatly by his wars with the Romans, in favor of the Tarentines. Upon the death of Deodamia, the last of this race, about the year 24U B. C., the Epirots formed themselves into a republic, which was reduced by Paulus Amilius, the Roman general, all the towns destroyed, and the inhabitants enslaved in one day. Upon the taking of Constantino- ple, in 1204, Michael Angelus seized this coun- try, and his posterity held it till it was taken by the Turks under Amurath II, in 1432. In 1447, Castriot (Scanderbeg) revolted from the Turks, but the country was finally reduced by Mohammed II, in 146t>. EQUATOR, Republic of the, a South Amer- ican state, composed of the three southwestern departments of the former republic of Colombia ; Ecuador, Assuay, and Guayaquil. It lies be- tween Brazil on the east, Peru on the South, New Granada on the north, and the Pacific Ocean on the. west, having an area of 325,000 square miles, and a population of 650,000 souls. The eastern part is uninhabited or occupied by independent Indians. The capital of the re- public is Quito, with 70,000 inhabitants. This section formerly constituted the audiencia of Quito, dependent upon the vice-royalty of New Granada. In 1823 it was delivered from the Spanish yoke by the brilliant victory of Pichin- cha gained by the patriot general Sucre, and it joined tiie Colombian confederacy. When that state fell to pieces in 1830, it declared itself an independent state. ERASMUS, Desiderius, a man celebrated for his learning, was born at Rotterdam in 1467. At the age of 17 he assumed the monas- tic habit, but subsequently obtained a dispen- sation from his vows. He travelled through many countries, but was received with the CYCLOPEDIA OP HISTORY. ESC 238 EST greatest kindness by Henry VIII, of England, and was for a short time professor of Greek at Oxford. Erasmus died 1536. Besides his the- ological works, and his editions of the classics, he published an Encomium on Folly, which has been often reprinted. His letters are of histori- cal value. EREBUS, the son of Chaos and Darkness, the brother and husband of night, and the father of Day and Light. He was transformed into a river which flows through the infernal regions. - ERFURT, a fortress in Thuringia, belonging to Prussia; the town contains at present 2 1 ,330 inhabitants. It was founded in the 5th century. It maintained a kind of independence, until the 17th century, when the elector of Mente gained possession ol it. In 1814 it was granted to Prus- sia by the Congress of Vienna. Erfurt was famous for the meeting between Napoleon and the Emperor Alexander witli many other kings and princes. This was in September 1608, and Napoleon's object was the pacification of all Europe. He was now at the summit of power and glory and he stood upon the very pinnacle of grandeur, with a feeling of intense enjoy- ment. " Come to Erfurt," he wrote exulting'ly to Talma, " and you shall play to a icliole pit full ERSKINE, Thomas, lord Erskine, a celebrat- ed lawyer, was the son of David Henry Erskine, tenth Earl of Buchan, and was born in the year 1750. It was not until after he served some years in the army and navy that he embraced the legal profession at the age of 2b'. In 1778, he was admitted to the bar, and his success was both speedy and triumphant. During 25 years he enjoyed an extensive practice. He was appointed attorney general to the prince of Wales, and, in 1802, keeper of his seals for the duchy of Cornwall. He died in 1823, Many of his speeches and some political works have been published. His popularity may be infer- red from the fact that his pamphlet, entitled A view of the Causes and Consequences of the War with France, went through 48 editions. ERZERUM, ARZERUM, or ARZ-ROUM, anciently .tfrze,the capital of Turkish Armenia, and of a pachalic of the same name, situated near the head of the Euphrates, 250 miles N. N. E. .f Aleppo, contains about 100,000 inhabitants, Turks, Greeks, Armenians, and Persians It is a well built place and enjoys considerable trade. Its manufactures are numerous. ESCURIAL, a magnificent palace, situated on the ascent to the chain of mountains bound- ing Old Castile, 22 miles from Madrid. It was erected by Philip II, in commemoration of the victory of"St. Qucnlin, gained over the French in l. r )5'7. The battle was fought on the day of the festival of St. Lawrence, and the palace was dedicated to this saint, whose instrument of martyrdom, a gridiron, is immortalized in the disposition of the buildings composing the Es- curial. It is said to have cost 50,000.000 dollars, and contains many noble works of art. ESNEH, ESNE, or ASNA. a city of Upper Egypt, 27 miles S. of Thebes, standing on the site of Latopolis. and containing some superb ruins. ESQUIMAUX, dwarfish tribes of North America, occupying the northern coast of Amer- ica, from prince William's sound to the borders of the Atlantic on the coast of Labrador. They live by hunting and fishing, and are alike des- titute of laws and religion. They formerly put to death widows and orphans, and those who, from age or misfortune, were incapable of gain- ing a subsistence. ESSEQUIBO, a settlement of English Gui- ana, on the borders of a river of the same name, ceded to Great Britain in 1814. The soil is fertile and well cultivated. ESSEX, earl of, (see Devereux). E8TACHAR. or ESTAKAR, or ISTA- CHAR, a town of Persia, KiO miles S. S. E. of Ispahan, near which are the ruins of the an- cient Persepolis, the residence of the Persian kings. EiSTA ING, Charles Henry, count d', a French admiral and lieutenant general of the French armies before the breaking out of the revolution, was the descendant of a noble French family, and commenced his career in the West Indies. He was twice taken prisoner by the English. He was vice-admiral in the American war, and was appointed a commander of the national guards in 178U, but was guillotined in 1793. ESTHER, a Jewish girl who became the queen of Ahasuerus, the luxurious monarch of Persia. (For the particulars of her story see the book of Esther). ESTHONIA, or the GOVERNMENT OF REVAL, part of the province of Livonia, be- longing to Russia, and containing 302,000 in- habitants. After 1385 the country was sold to the Teutonic knights, and formed a part of Li vonia, subject for a century to Sweden, but ulti mainly reverting to the Russians. ESTREMADURA, a Spanish province, is bounded N. by Leon and Old Castile, E. by New Castile, S. by Andalusia, and W. by For- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. EUG 239 EUL tugal. It is extremely fertile and contained, in 1797, 423,393 inhabitants. ESTREMADURA. a province of Portugal, bounded N. by the province of Beira, E. and S. by Alentejo, and VV. by the ocean. It is 124 miles long, and 77 broad. It is generally fertile, and contains 700.500 inhabitants. ETHIOPIANS. This name was anciently applied to all nations having a dark skin, and was not confined to Africans, but was also appli- ed to Asiatics. Ethiopia being one of the names of Abyssinia, it was applied to the inhabitants. ETON, a village of England, in Bucks, sep- arated by the Thames from Windsor. It con- tains 3,230 inhabitants. Its college is well-en- dowed, and was founded in 1440. ETRURIA, the country of the Etruscans, now Tuscany, was bounded N. by the river Magna, E. by the Apennines, S. by the Tiber, and W. by the Mediterranean. The Etruscans at a very early age had received the arts from Greece, and produced some most beautiful spe- cimens. They gave to the Romans their early religious usages and architecture, and finally became the victims of Roman ambition. In 1801 the name of Etruria was restored, and the country was made a kingdom and re- mained so until amalgamated with the French empire, by a senatorial decree of May 30, 1808. The next year Eliza, the sister of Napoleon, received this territory, with the title of grand- duchess of Tuscany. In 1814 its ancient rulers regained it. ETTENHEIM, a small town of the duchy of Baden, with 2630 inhabitants. Here the duke of Enghien was arrested. EUCLID, the father of mathematics, was born at Alexandria, about 300 B. C. EUERGET^E (benefactors), a name given to the JigriaspcE or .Irimaspi, a tribe of the Per- sian province of Drangiana. on account of their having saved the army of Cyrus when in dan- ger of perishinor for want of provisions. EUGEN E, Francis, of Savoy, fifth son of Eu- gene Maurice, duke of Savoy-Carignan, was born at Pans in 1663. His mother was Olym- pia Mancmi. niece to Cardinal Mazarin. He was educated for the church, but after the death of his father, and the exile of his mother, he and his brother Philip went to Vienna, where they met with a gracious reception. In the war which broke out with Turkey, prince Philip fell in battle, and left his command to Eugene, who signalized himself at the siege of Vienna in 1683, as he did afterwards at Buda. He next served against the French in Italy ; and in 1697 21 commanded the army in Hungary, where he gained a splendid victory, in which the Turks lost above 30.000 men. with their commander the grand vizier. On the breaking out of the war occasioned by the disputes about the Span- ish succession, Eugene commanded the Impe- rialists in Italy, where he was opposed to Vil- leroi, whom he made prisoner. After this he acted in conjunction with Marlborough. In 1712 the prince carne to England to prevail upon the court to continue the war, hut could not succeed. Compelled to act on the defensive, he exerted himself to the utmost; and, in 1714. settled preliminary articles with marshal Villars at Rastadt, which ended soon after in a general peace. In 1716 the war with the Turks was renewed, and the prince again took the field in Hungary, where he attacked the enemy in their camp, and obtained a complete victory, which was followed by the capture of Temeswar and Bel- grade. From this time to 1733 Eugene re- mained at Vienna, employed in the cabinet ; but in that year he assumed the command in Italy, where he experienced various success in the contest with the combined pt>wers of France, Spain, and Sardinia. He was found dead in his bed, April 10, 1736. EUGENE DE BEAUHARNAIS, the son of viscount Alexander Beauharnais and Jose- phine, afterwards empress of France, was born September 3, 1731. In the French revolution he entered the army, and when his mother was married to Bonaparte, accompanied the latter to Italy and Egypt. He distinguished himself in many campaigns. In 1805 he was made prince o"f France and viceroy of Italy. In 1807 he was declared prince of Venice, and Napo- leon's heir to the kingdom of Itily. During the retreat from Moscow, his good conduct, with that of Nev, saved the army from total destruction. After the fall of Napoleon, he surrendered Italy to the Austrians, and went to Munich to his father-in-law, the king of Ba- varia. Thenceforth he took no share in the for- tunes of Napoleon. He was created duke of Leuchtenburg, and the principality of Eichstedt was bestowed upon him. He died at Munich, Feb. 21, 1824. EULER, Leonard, a mathematician of Bale, born in 1707. He was educated at the univer- sity of his native place. In his 19th year he gained a prize from the academy of Paris for the best treatise on the masting of vessels. He took the department of Mathematics in the academy of St. Petersburg, and published a CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. EUR 240 EZE vast number of treatises. In the Paris Academy of Sciences he gained ten prizes. In 1741 he became professor in the Berlin academy, but returned to St. Petersburg where he died in 1783 in the office of director of the mathematical department. Throughout his life, he received honors from all quarters. He was cheerful and amiable in private life, although the last 17 years of his existence were past in total blindness. EUPHRATES, PHRAT, or FRAT, one of the largest and most celebrated rivers in Asia, 1,500 miles long, and is navigable for ships of 500 tons to Bassard. It rises in the mountains of Armenia. EURIPIDES, a celebrated tragic poet, in great favor with Archelaus, was born at Salamis on the day that the army of Xerxes was routed by the Athenians. He wrote 75 tragedies, only nineteen of which are extant. Euripides was called Misogynes for his hatred of women, and particularly ~6f his own wife. In the 75th year of his age, he was torn to pieces by dogs. EUROPE, the least 'extensive, but ths most improved of the four quarters o/ the globe, is situated between 36 and 71 N. latitude; hav- ing from south to north a breadth of about 2,000 miles and from east to west a length of nearlv 3000. It contains about three millions and a half of square miles, with a population of 330 million, and is bounded by the sea in all direc- tions except the east where it joins Asia. The following is a list of the principal States of Europe, with the religion and government of each. Relitrimi. Goremmrr.t. Russia. Greek Church. Monarchy. Sweden. Lutheran. Lim. Monarchy. Denmark. Lutheran. Monarchy. Prussia. Protestant. Monarchy. Great Britain. Protestant. Lim. Monarchy. Netherlands. Prot. and Cath. Lim. Monarchy. Belgium. Prot. and Cath. Lim. Monarchy. Switzerland. Prot. and Cath. Republic. Hanover. Lutheran. Monarchy. Saxony. Lutheran. Lim. Monarchy. Wurtuinberg. Lutheran. Lim. Monarchy. % r tate".' Sl " a " \ rr tes tant. Lim. Monarchy. Bavnrin. Catholic. Lim. Monarchy. Austria. Catholic. Ab. Monarchy. Franc.-. Catholic. Lim. Monarchy. Spain. Catholic. Monarchy. PortuiMl. Catholic. Monarchy. Sardinia. Catholic. Monarchy. .Naples. Catholic. Monarchy. Sl Chiirci| lhe | Calholic - Monarchy. Ilajian Sma.l j Calholic noMnby . Ionian Islands. Greek Church. Repuhlic. Turkey. Mohammedan. Despotism. Greece. Greek Church. Lim. Monarchy. EUSTATIA, ST.; one of the Leeward island*. 8 miles S. W. of St. Christopher's, a vast rock 29 miles in circumference. Population, 18,000. The Dutch settled here in 1(00. It was suc- cessively in the hands of the English. French, Dutch, English, (a second time), and was re- stored to the Dutch in 1G97. In 1781 Admiral Rodney reduced the inhabitants to poverty, under pretence of their having supplied the United States with provisions. The island was retaken by the French, again submitted to tin 1 English in 180!>. and was again restored to the Dutch in 1814. EUTROP1US, Flavius. a Latin author, who nourished about A. D. 360; his Abridgment of the History of Rome is dedicated to the empe- ror Valens, to whose time it extends. EVE ; the first woman, wife of Adam, and created from a rib taken from his side. (See Mam.) E WING, John, a celebrated American divine and mathematician, was born in Cecil county, Maryland, June 22, 1732. and was graduated at Princeton college in 1755. After completing his education, he was for a short time tutor in the college, and instructed the philosophical classes of the college of Philadelphia, wkere lv was settled as pastor of tiie first presbyterian congregation in 175'.'. He v.-ent to England in 1773 to obtain subscriptions for an Academy, and received the, degree of D. D. from the uni- versity of Edinburgh. On his return to Amer- ica in 1775. lie !i!!ed the otlice of provost of the university of Pennsylvania until his death. lie published Lectures on Natural History, and made some most, important, additions to the as- tronomical articles in the American edition of the Encijclnpa'dia liritamrira. He died Sept. 8, 18C2. in the 71st year of his age. EX ETEK. called" by the Indians Siramscot, a pleasant and flourishing town of New Hamp- shire, in Rockingham county 15 miles N. N. W. of Ntfwburyport. It has an excellent academy, founded by John Phillips in 1781. and called Phillips Exeter academy. EYLAU, Preuss. a small" town in Prussia Proper, whore a gn>;it battle between the French and Russians was fought on the 7th and 8th of Febnnrv. 1807. in which neither party gained its object. The Russians retired behind the rregel, and the French, after remaining some days on the field of battle, fell back on the Vis- EZEKIEL, the third of the great prophets, a son of Buzi. for whose history the reader is referred to the Old Testament. " HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL FAB F. 241 FAI FABIUS MAXIMUS, duintus, a celebrated Roman who, from u dull and unpromising child- hood, sprang into a maturity of valor and hero- ism, and was gradually raised by his merit to the highest offices in the state. In his first consulship he gained a victory over Ltguria, and the fatal battle of Thrasymene occasioned his election to the dictatorship. In this impor- tant office he began to oppose Hannibal, riot by fighting him in The open field like his predeces- sors, but continually harassing his army by countermarches and ambuscades, for which he received the surname of Cunctator, or Delaver. When he had laid down his office of dictator, his successors, for awhile, followed his plan ; but the rashness of Varro and his contempt for the operations of Fabius, occasioned the fatal battle of Cannee ; and, on that occasion, the Carthaginian enemy observed, that Fabius was the Hannibal of Rome. When he had made an agreement with Hannibal, for the ransom of the captives, which was totally disapproved by the Roman senate, he sold all his estates to pay the money, rather than forfeit his word to the ene- my. The bold proposal of young Scipio to carry the war from Italy into Africa, was re- garded as chimerical by Fabius, and rejected by him as too hazardous an experiment. He did not, however, live to see the success of the Ro- man arms under Scipio, and the conquest of Carthage by measures which he treated with contempt, and heard proposed with indignation. He died in his 100th year, 202 B. C., after he had been five times consul. FABRICIUS, Cains, Luscinus, a truly heroic and virtuous Roman, incorruptible at a time when wealth was almost omnipotent, and pre- serving a fearless bearing in the presence of the mightiest. He lived at a time of danger to the commonwealth, when Pyrrhus. king of Epi- rus, had come to Italy, less for the purpose of affording aid to the Tarentines, than of acquiring a military reputation by conquering the masters of the world. When he was sent on an em- bassy to Pyrrhus for the purpose of redeeming some prisoners, the king of Epirus attempted to corrupt his fidelity by a bribe, which was indig- nantly refused. The king on the next day or- dered a curtain to be suddenly drawn, display- ing to view an elephant of enormous size, a creature hitherto unknown in Italy. The brave Fabricius calmly said : " Your elephant of to- day moves me no more than vour gold of yes- terday." He died 275 B. C. " FAIRFAX, Thomas, lord ; was born at Den- ton, in Yorkshire, in 161 1 He entered into the service under lord Vere.in Holland, and on the breaking out of the civil wars took part against the king. Afterwards, however, the jealousy of Cromwell disgusted him with the Puritans, although continued in the employ of the gov- ernment. He assisted in the Restoration, was reconciled to Charles II, and died in 1671. FAIRIES. Almost all nations have, in igno- rant times, possessed a strong belief in the su- pernatural, which has been continued to the present day, among the unenlightened. Wild and terrific scenes were peopled by the imagi- nation with fierce and fearful beings, while flowery dells, sequestred glades, green and smiling forests, and pleasant water-falls, were selected as the haunts of a gentler, and more graceful race of beings, than belongs to hu- manity. Pastoral nations delighted to picture forms of miniature elegance, whose habitations were delicate and fragrant flowers. The fairy queen Titania hung like a bee or butterfly, within a hairbel, or led the gay dance by moonlight, over roses, without bending the most fragile floweret leaf beneath her fx)t8tep. The beings called fairies were at first termed elves, the word elf originating with the Saxons, who, from remote antiquity, believed in them. The Laplanders, Icelanders, and inhabitants of Finland, believed in the existence of fairies. Many affirmed that they had had intercourse with'them, and had been invited to their sub- terranean retreats, where they were hospitably entertained. The little men and women hand- ed round wine and tobacco, with which the mortal visitors were supplied in abundance, and afterwards sent them on their way, with good advice, and an honorable escort. Up to tliis time, these people boast of mingling in the magical ceremonies and dances of the fairies. The word fairy is thought, by most writers, to be derived from the Persian, and the charac- ter of the English fairies and the Persian Peris is similar. The Peris of the Orientals, are rep- resented as females of exquisite beauty, and great gentleness, who are not permitted to reside in Heaven. They are not however of earth. They live in the colors of the rainbow, among the gorgeously-tinted clouds, and are nourished by the fragrance of sweet flowers. The Dives of the Persians were spirits of the male sex, with habits and dispositions, directly contrary to those of the Peris. They were ma- levolent, cruel, and fierce, and described a* CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. FAI 242 1AI hideous in their appearance. Huge spiral horns sprang from their heads, their eyes were large and staring, their claws sharp and their fangs terrific. Covered with shaggy hair, and hav- ing long rough tails, it seemed as if they pos- sessed every deformity. The Dives warred with mankind, and pursued the Peris with un- relenting hatred. Their lives, however, were limited, and they were not incapable of feeling personal violence. The fancies of the inhabitants of tlie East, teem with supernatural beings. The Genii, spirits of vast size, were said to have been im- prisoned by Solomon, who shut them up in caskets, upon which he placed his seal. Some were thrown into rivers. A fisherman once drew one np from the bottom of a stream in his net, and the vessel being opened, a dense smoke arose from the interior. The smoke gradually assumed the vast figure of a Genius. The whole story is related in the Arabian Nights' Entertainments. Fairies of a certain class, such as the warlike elves or fays, were believed to exist by all Eu- ropean nations. During times of military en- thusiasm, the fancy of warriors saw processions of fairies, well-armed and mounted, bearing gorgeous banners ; their weapons glittering in the moonlight, or gleaming like lightning on the darkness of the night. A Bohemian le- gend says that a certain knight, travelling with a friend, met one of these nocturnal processions, and, disregarding the caution of his companion, spurred his horse forward to attack them. Horse and rider were found dead upon the spot in the morning. The Swedes asserted that there was a certain class of supernatural beings, pretty much the same as the Brownies of Scotland, who assisted the miners, labored in the shafts, and were far more ingenious than mortal workmen. The fairies of England were generally of a harmless disposition. Oberon and Titania, the fairy king and queen, were pleasant little peo- ple, with a spice of humanity in their disposi- tions. Robin Goodfellow was a mischievous little creature, but not very spiteful. He was represented like a rustic, " in a suit of leather, close to his body, his hands and face russet col- or, with a flail." The Scottish fairies were certainly guilty of great deviations from the path of honesty. One of their greatest sins was that of stealing fine children, from their cradles, and leaving in the place of a healthy infant, a rickety and de- formed being. The elves often stole away wives from their husbands, and these women were only to be regained by confronting the fairy procession on a certain night, within a clay and a year, after the loss, which time was allowed the bereaved mortals for restitution. The electrical circles which are sometimes found upon the turfweie believed to be fairy rings, within which it was thought dangerous to sleep, or to be found after sunset. The Scotch fairies were of diminutive stature, of a doubtful nature, capricious and very resentful. The Scotch were afraid to speak of them dis- respectfully, and even called malicious spirits, " gude people." These fairies lived in green hills, on which they danced by moonlight. The interior of their habitations is described as presenting a most beautiful appearance, brilliant with glit- tering gold and gems, and containing every thing which a splendid fancy could contrive. But as " all is not gold that glitters," these fine appearances are said to be a show, put on to conceal a mean or repulsive reality. These little beings are admirable riders, and the best judges of horses in the world. They go about in large companies by night, when their presence is disclosed by the shrill, bell-like ringing of their bridles. When the little men find their steeds jaded, they do not scruple to continue their pleasure at the expense of mor- tals. They steal horses, and ride them almost to death. The animals are found in the morn- ing in then- stalls panting and flecked with loam, with their manes and tails matted and twisted. The shrewd reader will guess that the fairies often had to bear the blame, which belonged to careless grooms. A sailor, on the Isle of Man, who was riding to visit his sister, was invited by a party of jolly fairies who were hunting, to join them in their excursion. Not being aware of the nature of the little men, who made a gay appearance, as they swept by in green dresses, riding to the music of a mellow norn, Jack followed on, de- lighted, and only learned his danger when he arrived at his sister's house. These diminutive huntsmen used to seize upon the horses which English residents brought over to the Isle of Man, and ride them without ceremony. A gentleman of the island attributed the loss of half a dozen capital hunt- ers, to the little men in green. Sometimes they were more honest, and paid good money for horses, to which they took a fancy. A man who had a fine horse to sell, was once riding his steed among the moun- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. FAI 243 FAU tains, when a dapper little gentleman stepped up, and examined it. He made the animal show his paces, and, after some haggling about the price, bought him. All this was well enough ; but when the seller dismounted, the purchaser, having fixed himself in the saddle, sank through the earth with his bargain. The man who be- held all this, was somewhat startled, but as there -.vas no mistake about the hard red gold which lie had received from the fairy horseman, he put it in his pocket, and inarched off. The Brownies were singular beings. The Brownie attached himself to some family, per- forming menial offices with a good grace, like a hired servant. But unlike a servant, he did not labor in the hope of wages, on the contrary an offer of recompense drove this delicate gen- tleman away. He was fond of stretching him- self at length before the fire, like a dog, and this appeared to give him the highest satis- i'aclion. An amusing anecdote is told concerning this habit. A Brownie who had attached himself to a certain house, used to hover round the kitchen, uneasy if the servants sat up late, which prevented him from occupying his place upon the hearth. Sometimes the impatient Brownie appeared at the door, and admonished the servants in the following terms ' Gang a' to your beds, sirs, and dinna put out the wee grieshoch." thus anglicised, " Go to your beds, all of you, and do n't put out the few em- bers." The Brownie left the hearth at the first crow of the cock. The inhabitants of Germany believe to this day. that there exists a race called the Siille I'olke, the silent people. To every family of eminence, a family of the Sidle V'olke. is attach- ed, containing just as many members as the mortal family. When the lady of the mortal family becomes a mother, the queen of the fitille Volke enjoys the same blessing, and the silent people endeavor to ward off any injury which threatens those whom they protect. It would be impossible to enumerate all the different sprites with which superstition has filled the woods, waters, hills, and valleys of Europe. A few of the most agreeable elves have been touched upon. It is not worth while to present the darker features of a gloomy super- stition, to the contemplation of the young. The Kelpies and the wild Huntsmen ha've found no place in this sketch. The legends of the Irish are generally gay, exhibiting the character of that poor, but pleas- ant people. The Irish fairies are spruce little 21* gentlemen, and merry little ladies, who trip it away with blithe hearts, and light footsteps upon their favorite and beautiful places of re- sort. Poor people delight to describe wealth and splendor, which they do not possess, and accordingly, in the tales of the Irish, the pala- ces of the " good people," are full of gold and brilliance. FALCONER, William, a pleasing English poet, born in 1730, and brought up to the sea. An occurrence in his own life forms the ground- work of his poem tlie shipwreck. He was lost at sea. FALIERI, Marino, doge of Venice, in the 14th century, having, previously to his eleva- tion, gained some brilliant victories for the republic. Michael Steno, a young patrician, havincr conceived himself injured, revenged himself by some offensive lines directed against the honor of the doge's wife. For this he was only punished by a temporary confinement, and the doge, burning for revenge, found a plan for punishing the aristocracy and annihilating the power of the senate. This, however, was dis- covered, and Falieri put to death in 13f)5. Lord Byron and Casimir Delavigne have made this story the subject of two powerful dramas. FALK1RK, a town of Scotland, between the Forth and Clyde, where the army of Scots com- manded by Cumyn and Sir Wm. Wallace, was defeated by Edward I, of England. But in January 174G the scene was reversed by the defeat of the English. FALKLAND'S ISLANDS, a group com- prising two large and numerous small islands mountainous and boggy, in the South Atlantic ocean, East of the Straits of Magellan. The harbor of Port Louis is a convenient watering place for whale sloops. FANTIN, or FANTEE ; an African country on the gold coast, the inhabitants of which, 40.000 in number, are courageous but cunning, living under an aristocratical form of govern- ment. FAROE or FAROER ; a group in the North- ern ocean between Iceland and Shetland, be- longing to Denmark. Population (in 1812), 5209. FARQUH AR, George, an actor and soldier, but chiefly remarkable for the ability of his dra- matic works, born in Londonderry, Ireland, in 1676, died in 1707. FAUST, a goldsmith of Mentz, to whom the invention of the art of printing is attributed. He died in 1466. FAUST, doctor John, a dealer in the black CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. FAU 244 FEO art, who lived in the IGth century. He was a student of Wittemberg, but abandoned theology for magic. This personage is often confounded with the preceding. He figures in many old romances and tales, English and German. The following is a sketch of one of these, " the His- tory of lite Damnable Life and Deserved Death of Doctor John Faustus." This romance is a translation from the German. It is filled " up to the blue," with magic and supernatural hor- rors, and acquires new interest from the fact that it embodies the same old German tradition, upon which Goethe founded his wild drama of Faust. Faustus is first introduced as a student of the University of Wittemberg, where he is made Doctor of Divinity, but soon after gives himself up entirely to the study of the Black Art. He makes a compact with the devil, by which the latter is to serve him in all his desires for the space of twenty-four years, at the ex- piration of which he is to deliver himself up, body and soul, to the destroyer. This compact is written with his own blood, and straightway Mephistophiles becomes his familiar spirit. Gen- erally speaking, this spirit is obedient to the wishes of Faustus, but when the Doctor puts an improper question, or tries to do a good ac- tion, Mephistophiles dragoons him into propri- ety by a rabble rout of imps, or frightens him with a cock and a bull story about the other world, giving him a foretaste of the pleasant pastime of being " tossed upon pitchforks from one devil to another." On one occasion, in particular,a great procession of evil spirits came to torment him, in which procession Lucifer appears " in a manner of a man all hairy, but of a brown color like a squirrel, curled, and his tail turning upwards on his back as the squirrels use. I think he could crack nuts too like a squir- rel." Then a minute account is given of Faustus's journey to Tartarus, and through the air, and among the planets, and afterwards through the most famous kingdoms of the earth, whereby it appears that he, and not Columbus, was the discoverer of America. Of course the magic doctor was deeply read in all mysteries, and he certainly discourses wisely upon comets, and falling stars, and other marvels. One chapter relates " how Faustus was asked a question con- cerning Thunder." His answer is certainly very luminous for a Doctor in Divinity, and the Black Art. " It hath commonly been seen heretofore,' ' says he, " that before a thunder-clap fell a shower of rain, or "a gale of wind: for commonly after wind falleth rain, and after rain a thunder-clap, such thickness comes to pass when the four winds meet together in the heavens, the airy clouds are by force beaten against the fixed crystal firmament, but when the airy clouds meet with the firmament, they are congealed, and so strike, and rush against the firmament, as great pieces of icr> when they meet on the waters ; then each other sounded in our ears; and that we call thunder." After- wards comes a series of the Doctor's merry conceits, showing how he practised necroman- cy ; how he transported three young dukes through the air from Wittemberg to Munich ; and how one of them fell from the magic cloak, on which thev sailed through the air, and was left behind at "Munich, being ' strucken into an exceeding dumps." We are also told how he pawned his leg to a Jew ; how he eat a load of hay, and how he cheated a horse-jockey, and conjured the wheels from a clown's waggon, with many other wonders of a similar nature. And finally, we are informed that, at the end of the appointed time, the evil one carne for him between 12 and 1 o'clock at night, and after dashing his brains out against the wall, left his body in the yard, " most monstrously torn and fearful to behold." FAWKES, Guy, the principal agent in the gunpowder plot, in the reign of James I, who, being discovered, and having betrayed his ac- complices to the number of eighty, was execu- ted in 1G05. (See Gunpowder Plot.) FAYAL, one of the Azores, ten miles in diameter, containing 22.000 inhabitants. It rises in the form of a dome, and is extremely fertile. FAYETTE, General la. (See La Fayette.) FENELON, Francois de Salignac de la Motte, the venerable archbishop of Cambray, was born in 1651. He preached at the age of 15 with success, and was appointed archbishop of Cambray in H>!!4. He had great success in converting the Huguenots but it was by means of mild persuasion and not of infuriate threats. He superintended the education of the dukes of Burgundy, Anjou, and Berri, the grandsons of Louis XIV. Fenelon died in 1715. His literary productions are numerous, but his most celebrated work is Leg .irenturcs de Teldmaque, which inculcates a pure system of morality in the most pleasing and interesting manner. FEODAL or FEUDAL LAWS, the tenurp of land, by suit and service, to the lord or ownei of it, introduced into England by the Saxons about 600. This slavery increased under Wil- liam 1, 1068, who, dividing the kingdom into HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL, FER 245 FIS baronies, gave them to certain persons, and re- quired these persons to furnish the King with money and a stated number of soldiers. The feudal system was discountenanced in France by Louis XI, about 1410, was limited in Eng- land by Henry VII, in 141)5; but abolished by statute 12th Charles II, 1602. FERDINAND V,surnamed the Catholic, son of John II, King of Arragon, was born in 1453. He married Isabella, queen of Castile, but was allowed only a small share in the government. In 10 years he conquered the Moors of Grena- da, and expelled them from Spain in 1492. He acquired Naples and Navarre, and, during his reign, America was discovered by 'Colum- bus. He died in 1516 of the dropsy. His policy was despotic, and his character was stained by the introduction of the Inquisition. (See Inquisition.) FERDINAND VII, of Spain, the son of Charles IV. and Maria Louisa de Bourbon was born October 14, 1784, and in 1801, he married Maria Antonia Theresa de Bourbon, who died of a violent medicine, after having been inju- riously treated, in 1806. Ferdinand had four wives, the last of whom was Maria Christiana, daughter of Francis I, King of Naples. Fer- dinand was pardoned by Charles IV for entering into a conspiracy against his life, but the peo- ple could not be persuaded of the innocence of the monarch, or the guilt of his son, and on the 19th of March, 1808, Charles was forced to abdicate in favor of Ferdinand VII. Ferdinand was invited to Burgos by Napoleon, and abdi- cated after mature deliberation, Joseph Bona- parte being appointed to supply his place. Ferdinand remained at Valencay until the end of 18L3. On his return to Spain, he professed to entertain liberal principles, but he abolished the Cortez, and till ld2J sanctioned what is termed the reign of terror in Spain. On the entrance of the French into Spain in 1823, a regency was formed, and the king went to 'Cadiz, whence he corresponded with the enemy. After re-assuming his authority he continued his despotic proceedings. Ferdinand died in 1833. The affairs of Spain are now in an unsettled state. Don Carlos, the brother of Ferdinand, and his infant daughter being sup- ported by two opposite parties, as the true sov- ereigns. FERGUSON, James, an experimental phi- losopher, mechanist, and astronomer, was born in Keith in 1710. While a shepherd, he watch- ed the stars by night, and at an early age, constructed a celestial globe. For some years he supported himself in Edinburgh by his tal- ents as a miniature painter. In 1763 he was chosen member of the Royal Society. He died in 1776. His works are numerous. FERNANDEZ, or JUAN FERNANDEZ, a fertile island 4 leagues long, and 2 wide, 100 leagues from the coast of Chili. Here Alexan- der Selkirk, a Scotch mariner, lived alone from the year 1705 to 1709. FERR.ARA, a duchy in upper Italy, for a long time ruled by the house of Este, now forming part of the States of the Church. FESCH. Joseph. Cardinal, the uncle of Na- poleon Bonaparte, and archbishop of Lyons, was born at Ajaccio. He received various employments and honors from his illustrious nephew FEZ, part of Mauritania, formerly a distinct and powerful kingdom, but now a province of Morocco. Although fertile, the Moors permit large portion of the land to remain uncultivat ed. It contains about 890,000 square miles The city of Fez, built in 793, by Edris, con- tains about 100,000 inhabitants. FEZZAN, anciently PHAZANIA, ia a country of Africa South of Tripoli. The vege- tation is luxuriant, although the climate is un- pleasant. No exact estimate of the population has been made. It perhaps amounts to rather more than 100.000. FIELDING, Henry, was born at Sharphara Park, Somersetshire, April 22, 1707. His dra- rnatic pieces, of which he wrote a number, do not display the talent which his novels exhibit. The latter, although tainted with frequent grossness, display inimitable tact, drollery, and knowledge of life. Fielding speedily dissipated the fortune he received from his wife, and re- sorted to the bar for support. Here his success was not great, and his pen gave him the means of life. He died in Lisbon, whither he went on account of ill health, August 1754. FINGAL, an ancient prince of Morven, a province of Caledonia, born in 282. He was the determined enemy of the Romans, and is celebrated by Ossian, who represents him as his father. FINLAND, a grand principality of Russia, containing 135,000 square miles, and 1,378,500 inhabitants. But little of the soil is fit for the purposes of agriculture, and hunting forms the principal resource of the hardy population. Finland formerly belonged to Sweden, but was conquered by a Russian army in 180^. FISHER, John a Catholic bishop of Roches ter, was born in 1459. He was a prelate more CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. FLE 246 FLO eminent for his learning and virtues, than for ecclesiastical dignities and royal favor. Having refused to acknowledge the spiritual supremacy of Henry VIII, Fisher was thrown into prison, and, after twelve months confinement, was con- demned and executed, on the 22d of June, 1535. FLANDERS, formerly a province of the Austrian Netherlands, now forming the Belgic Provinces of East and West Flanders. East Flanders, contains 718,000 inhabitants; and West Flanders 580,600. Both parts are ex- tremely fertile and the Flemings are extensive- ly employed in manufactures. The Franks siezed upon Flanders about 412, and in 864 it was granted to Baldwin I, with the title of count of Flanders, the sovereignty being reserved to France. The country, by the marriage of Philip, duke of Burgundy, with Margaret, daughter of Lewis de ftfalatin, earl of Flanders, in 1369, came to the house of Burgundy ; and it passed to the house of Austria by the marriage of Ma- ry, daughter and heiress of Charles the Bold, to Maximilian, emperor of Germany. Still the sovereignty was in France till 1525, when Charles V, taking Francis I, prisoner, at Pa via, released it from that servitude. In 1556, Charles resigned these territories to his son Philip, king of Spain. The whole of this coun- try was conquered by the French in 1794 ; but only part of it now remains in their posses- sion, forming the French department of the north. FLEETWOOD, Charles, a parliamentary general in the civil wars, the son of Sir Wil- liam Fleetwood, knight^ cup-bearer to James I, and Charles I, and comptroller of Woodstock park. In 1644, the subject of this article was made colonel of horse, and governor of Bristol. He was afterwards raised to the rank of lieuten- ant-general, and had a share in the defeat of Charles II at Worcester. On the death of Ire- ton, Fleetwood married his widow, and being now related to Cromwell, was appointed deputy of Ireland, in which place he was succeeded by Cromwell's younger son Henry. Fleetwood joined in deposing Richard, and after the res- toration he became one of the council of State, and commander-in-chief of the forces, but after- ward retired to private life at Stoke Sewing- ton, where he died soon after. FLETCHER, John, son to the bishop of London, a famous dramatic writer, (see liuni- mrmt and Fletcher). FLEURUS or FLERUS ; a town of Belgi- um, in the province of Hainault, on the Sambre, six miles N. E.of Charleroi. Population 2400. Four battles have been fought here. In 1622 the troops of Spain and Germany were matched against each other. In 1690 the French defeat- ed the allies here with great loss. In 1794 the French gained a complete victory over the A us- trians, and it was on this occasion that aerosta- tion wns found to b of practical use. Coutel, the chief of the cerostatic corps, ascended with a general and adjutant, in a balloon of great size, hovered over the enemy, and reconnoitered their works. The information thus gained was conveyed to the French by means of signal flags. During the process of inflation, the fire of a battery was opened upon the assistants, and as the balloon ascended for the first time, a cannon ball passed between its neck and the gondola. Soon, however, the daring aeronauts attained a safe elevation, and could see beneath them the then harmless cannon fruitlessly dis- charging their shot into the upper air. The fourth battle, called the battle of Ligny, was fought on June 16, 1815, between the Prussians and French and was desperately contested. FLEURY, Andre Hercule de, cardinal, pre- ceptor to Louis XV. became prime minister on the disgrace and fall of his rival, the duke of Bourbon. His administration was conducted with great skill and address ; commerce and industry flourished under him, and lie had the fortune to conciliate the differences between the courts of London and Madrid. He died in 1743. FLORA, so called by the Romans, the god- dess of flowers. Her Greek name was Chloris. Her festivals were celebrated with many licen- tious practices. FLORENCE, capital of the grand-duchy of Tuscany, one of the most beautiful cities of Italy, justly deserving the name which has been bestowed on it Florence the Fair. It contains 76.000 inhabitants. It is interesting from its hisloricitl associations, and from the invaluable monuments of art which it contains, and with which the Florentine gallery is crowded. The Pitti palace, the cathedral, the church of St. Croce. the church del Carmine, &c., can never be sufficiently admired. The revival of the arts took place here, and thence the regeneration of Europe followed. FLORIAN. a French dramatic writer, novel- ist, and fabulist, married a niece of Voltaire. He was a member of the French academy, and died Sept. i:j, 17M4. FLORIDA, a territory of the 1'nited States, bounded N. by Alabama nnd Georgia, E. by the Atlantic, S. and VV. by the gulf of Mexico", 140 HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. FOR 247 FOU miles broad, and 400 miles long. It was divided into E. and W. Florida in 17(33, but at present is subdivided into counties. The largest river, the St. Johns, is navigable for 200 miles. The country, is with few exceptions, level, and fer- tile, although but little cultivated. Its majestic forests give it a peculiar and picturesque ap- pearance. Intermixed with the dark glossy leaves of the oaks appear flowers of the most vivid and varied colors. Groves of magnolias, cover immense tracts of land, bending beneath the weight of their snowy blossoms, and fill the air with perfume. Florida was discovered in 1512, by Juan Ponce de Leon, in his famous search after the fabulous fountain which was to restore health and beauty to the aged, on Palm Sunday, (Pascua Florida), and hence the name. Pop. 1840, 54,107. The French and Spaniards long made it the theatre of contest, but at length the Spaniards were established in the town and fort of St. Augustine. In 17G3, Florida was ceded to Great Britain, in exchange for the island of Cuba. In 178! the Spanish governor, don Gal- vez, conquered West Florida, which remained in the possession of Spain until the peace of 1783, whereby Great Britain relinquished both provinces to Spain. A negotiation for the trans- fer of the whole province to the United States was consummated by treaty in 1819 ; the treaty was ratified by Spain in October, 1820, and General Jackson took possession of it for the United States in February, 1821. FLOYD, William, the first delegate from New York, who signed the declaration of Amer- ican Independence, born on Long Island, Dec. 17, 1734. The inheritor of a large estate, he was one of those who, like Charles Carroll, set his all at stake, and his property was laid waste by the British troops. After having command- ed the militia of Long Island, and served as senator, he removed, in 1803, to a farm on the Mohawk river, where he. died, Aug. 4, 1821, ao-ed 87 years. FLUSHING, a fortified city, on the S. side of the island of Walcheren, in the Netherlands. Population 4,500. It carries on an active com- merce with the East Indies. It was invested by lord Chatham in 1809, and capitulated, but was evacuated by the British on the 23d of De- cember. FO, FOE, or FOHI, the founder of the Chi- nese religion, said to have been born in Cash- mere, about 1027 B. C. Miracles attended his birth, and were performed by him in after life. His priests are called, in China, Leng ; in Tar- tary, Lamas ; in Siam, Talapoins ; and in Eu- rope, Bonzes. FOLARD, chevalier Charles de, a celebrated tactician, born at Avignon in 1009. He was aide-de-camp under the duke de Vendome in 1702, was wounded in the battle of Cassano, and made prisoner at Blenheim. He next served against the Turks, and then entered into the service of Charles XII, during the latter part of his career. He died at Avignon, in 1752. FONTAINE, Jean de la, one of the most dis- tinguished literary men in the reign of Louis XIV, born in 1621. Fontaine was educated at Rheims, and went to Paris, where he lived in habits of intimacy with the wits of the age. He died at Paris, in 1G95, aged 74. The most sim- ple of men in private lite, his writings exhibit shrewdness and a knowledge of mankind, which place them above the reach of imitation. His early works are tainted with licentiousness. FONTAINEBLEAU, a town of France, 13 leagues S. S. E. of Paris, with a splendid palace and a military academy. It is famous, in di- plomatic history, as the place where several treaties have been concluded. It was here that Napoleon signed his first abdication, April llth, 1814, and bade an affectionate farewell to his devoted troops. FONTENOY, a village of Belgium, where the French, headed by Louis XV, defeated the allies under the command of the duke of Cum- berland, April 30, 1745. FOOTE, Samuel, a comic dramatist, and ac- tor, born at Truro, Cornwall, in 1721, died at Dover, in October, 1777. He was a grest mimic and a man of wit. A gentleman, who was the fortunate possessor of some fine Constantia wine, after praising its good qualities, invited Foote to taste some. A very small bottle was produced, together with a very small glass, which the nig- gardly host half filled. The wag swallowed this immediately. " Well, Foote," said his en- tertainer, " what do you think of that? It is 47 years old." " What do 1 think ?" replied the" wit ; " why, sir, I think it's very little for its age." FORLI, anciently Forum Livii, belongs to the States of the Church, contains 12,960 in- habitants, and is 14 miles S. S. W. of Ravenna. FORMOSA, an island in the Chinese sea, 240 miles long, und (30 broad, distinguished for its admirable fertility, and the quality of its fruits. FORTUNA, the sister of the Fates, the god- dess of success among the Greeks and Romans. FOULAHS, FOOLAHS, or FELLA CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. FOX 248 FOX TAHS, a nation of Central Africa, extending from the Atlantic to Darfoor. Mr. Hodgson says ; " Of all the nations of Central Africa described by captain Clapperton, the Fellatahs are the most remarkable. The publication of his first jour- ney to Soudan represented this people as inhab- iting the country of the Negroes, but differing from them essentially in physical character. They have straight hair, noses moderately ele- vated, the parietal bones not so compressed as those of the Negro, nor is their forehead so much arched. The color of their skin is a light bronze, like that of the Wadreagans, or Melano- Goetulians, and by this characteristic alone can they be classed in the Ethiopian variety of the human species. The Fellatahs are a warlike race of shepherds, and have, within a short pe- riod, subjugated an extensive portion of Soudan. The lamented Major Laing, who arrived at Timbuctoo, assures us that they were in pos- session of that far-famed city. It was an order from the Fellatah governor which compelled him to leave Timbuctoo. and to his instigation or connivance is his death probably to be attri- buted. Mungo Park was killed by a party of these people, while descending the Quorra. They may be supposed to occupy the banks of this unknown river, from its rise to its termi- nation." FOUQUIER-TINVILLE, Anthony Quen- tin, an attorney, born in 1747, rendered his name infamous during the revolution He obtained from Robespierre the post of public accuser, but was put to death as one of the revolutionary tribunal, May 7, 1795. FOX, George, founder of the society of Qua- kers, or Friends, was born at Drayton, in Lei- cestershire, in 1634. The name of Quakers was bestowed upon the sect at Derby, from their trembling method of delivery, and from their exhortations to tremble before the Lord. He was persecuted, and imprisoned several times, and died, in consequence of the hardships he had suffered in IG'JO, in the C7th year of his age. FOX, Charles Jamrs, second son of Henry Fox, first lord Holland, was born, Jan. 14, 1748. He received his education at Eton, where he distinguished himself by his classical exercises. From that seminary he removed to Hertford college, Oxford, after which he went on his travels ; and in 1768 was returned to parliament for Midhurst. In 1770 he was appointed a commissioner of the admiralty, which place he resigned in 1772, and soon after obtained a place at the treasury board. Some differences arising between him and lord North, he was dismissed in 1774, and from that time took a leading part in the opposition. ' On his first separation from the ministry,'' says Butler, " Mr. Fox assumed the character of a whig. li Almost the whole of his political life was spent in opposition to his majesty's ministers. In vehemence and power of argument he re- sembled Demosthenes ; but there the resem- blance ended. He possessed a strain of ridicule and wit, which nature denied to the Athenian ; and it was the more powerful, as it always ap- peared to be blended with argument, and to result from it. To the perfect composition which so eminently distinguished the speeches of Demosthenes, he had no pretence. He was heedless of method : having the complete command of good words, he never sought for bettor; if those, which occurred, expressed his meaning clearly and fo cibly, he paid little at- tention to their arrangement or harmony. " The moment of his grandeur was, when, after he had stated the argument of his adver- sary, with much greater strength than his ad- versary had done, and with much greater than any of his hearers thought possible, he seized it with the strength of a giant, and tore and trampled on it to destruction. If, at this mo- ment, he had possessed the power of the Athe- nian over the passions or the imaginations of his hearers, he might have disposed of the house at his pleasure ; but this was denied to him ; and, on this account, his speeches fell very short of the effect, which otherwise they must have produced." In 1780 he was elected for Westminister, which, with a slight interruption, he continued to represent to his death. When the Rocking- ham party came into power, Mr. Fox was ap- pointed secretary of state for foreign affairs. On the dissolution of this administration, by the death of the chief, a coalition was formed be- tween Mr. Fox and lord North, who, with their respective adherents, came again into office until the introduction of the India bill occasion- ed their final dismissal in 1734. In 17>8, Mr. Fox travelled, but while in Italy, he was recalled in consequence of 1 he king's insanity. On this great occasion, he maintained that the prince of Wales had a right to assume the regency : which was opposed by Mr. Pitt and the Parlia- ment. The next remarkable event in the pub- lic life of Mr. Fox was the part lie look with regard to the French revolution. That change ho hailed as a blessing, while Burke denounced it as a curse ; and this difference of sentiment HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. FRA 249 FRA produced a schism in the party which was never repaired. On the death of Mr. Pitt, in 180G, Mr. Fox came again into office, as secretary of state ; but he died Sept. 13. 1806. and his remains were interred in Westminister Abbey. FRANCE, a vast country of Europe, com- prising 213,800 square miles, 32,000,000 inhab- itants. In 1824 the total value of exports v,-as 440.542.000 francs; of imports, in the same year, 4:1l.^(.il,000 francs. In 1829, the revenue was 986,1 50,821 francs, and the expenditures, 90..1 86,1 f>8 francs. Public debt. 3,000,000,000 francs. France is divided into 86 departments ; 85 are formed of the old provinces ; the 86th was united to France in 1791. The departments formed from the six north- ern provinces are the department of the .North, Pas-de-Calais, Somme, Lower Seine, Erere, Calvados, Manche. Orne. Seine, Seine-et-Oise, Seine-et-Marne, Oise. Aisne, Aube, Upper Marne, Marne, and Ardennes. The depart- ments formed from the six provinces of the east, are Meurthe, Moselle, Meuse, Vosges, Lower Rhine. Upper Rhine, Doubs, Upper Saone, Jura, Cote-d'or, Yonne. Saone-et-Loire, Ain, Rhone, Loire. Isere, Drome, Upper Alps. The departments formed from the seven provinces of the south, are the Mouths of the Rhone, Lower Alps, Var, Upper Garonne, Tarn, Aude, Herault, Gard, Lozere, Upper Loire, Ardeche, Eastern, Pyrenees, Ariege, Lower Pyrenees. Gironde, Dordogne, Lot-et-Garonne, Lot. Ave- gron, Tarn-et- Garonne. Landes, Gers, Upper Pyrenees, Corsica. The departments formed r -om the six provinces of the west, are Cha- rente. Lower Charente, Vienne, Deux-Sevres, la Vendee, Maine-et-Loire, Ille-et-Vilaine, Cotes- du-Nord, Finesterre, Morbihan, Lower Loire, Sarthe, Mayenne. The departments formed from the eight central provinces are. Loiret, Eure-e'.-Loir. Loir-et-Cher, Indre-et-Lore. Cher, Indre, Nievre. Allier, Creuse, Upper Vi- enne, Correze, Puy-du-D6me, Cantal. and Vau- cluse. France was called by the Romans, Transal- pine Gaul, or Gatd beyond the Alps, to distin- guish it from Cisalpine Gaul, on the Italian side of the Alps. Like other countries, it soon became a desirable .object to the ambitious Ro- mans; and, after a brave resistance, was an- nexed to their empire by the invincible arms of Julius Ccesar, about 48 years B. C. Gaul continued in the possession of the Romans until the downfal of that empire, in the 5th century. About 420, under the conduct of Pharamond, the Franks, an cncient people of Westphalia, commenced the conquest of the Gauls. The Franks originated the Salic law by which the sovereignty is rendered hereditary only in the male line. The Franks and Burgundians, after establishing their power, and reducing the Gauls to a state of slavery, parceled out the lands among their principal leaders ; and succeeding kings found it necessary to confirm their privi- leges, allowing them to exercise sovereign au- thority in their respective governments, until they, at length, assumed an independence, only acknowledging the king as their head. This gave rise to those numerous principalities that formerly existed in France, and to the several parliaments ; for every province became, in its policy and government, an epitome of the king- dom. The first Christian monarch of the Franks was Clovis, son of the chivalrous Childeric, who is regarded as the true founder of the monarchy. He expelled the Romans, and gained the bril- liant victory of Tolbiac over the Germans. He is celebrated by the vow which lie made to em- brace the Christian religion at the solicitation of his wife Clotilda, and was baptized at Rheims. The first race of French kings, prior to Charle- magne, found a cruel enemy in the Saracens, who then overran Europe, and retaliated the barbarities of the Goths and Vandals upon their posterity. In the year 800, Charlemagne, king of France, the glory of these dark ages, became master of Germany, Spain, and part of Italy, and was crowned king of the Romans by the pope. He divided his empire by will among his sons, which proved fatal to his family and their posterity. Soon after this the Normans ravaged the kingdom of France, and. about the year 900, obliged the French to yield up Nor- mandy and Bretagne to Rollo, their leader, who married the king's daughter and was persuaded to profess himself a Christian. This laid the foundation of the Norman power in France : which afterwards gave a king to England, in the person of William, duke of Normandy, who subdued Harold, the last Saxon king, in the year 10GG. In the reign of Philip I, in 1060, were commenced the crusades. In 1108, Philip was succeeded by his son Louis the Fat, or Louis VI, who engaged in a war with Henry I, of England. Louis VII, surnamed the Young, marched into Champagne in the year 1137, and having surprised the city of Vetry, met with no resistance, except in the parochial church, which he caused to be set on fire; in consequence of which 1,300 persons perished in the flames. Philip II, or Philip-Augustus CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. FRA 250 FRA nis son and successor, in 1180, and Richard I, of England, undertook a joint expedition to the holy land, in 1191; but the former returning to Europe in disgust, the latter was obliged to relinquish the enterprise. Philip II was succeeded by his son, Louis the Liu n. in 1223. He was poisoned after a short reign of three years, and was succeeded in 1226, by his son Louis IX, commonly styled St. Louis, who engaged in a new crusade against the infidels in Egypt and Palestine, in which himself and his nobility were taken prisoners. Having been afterwards ransomed, he led an army against the infidels of Africa, where he died in 1270, before Tunis. His son and successor, Philip III, kept the field against the Moors, and saved the remains of the French army ; and this procured him the surname of the Hardy. In the reign of Philip IV,surnamed the Fair, who succeeded in 12e5, the Supreme tribunals, called parliaments, were instituted ; and the knights templars, a military order, that had undertaken the defence of the temple of Jerusalem, were suppressed and ex- tirpated. The fiist branch of Capetian kings ended with Charles IV, who left only a daugh- ter; and the states having solemnly decreed that all females were incapable of succeeding to the crown, Philip de Valois, the next male heir, was raised to the throne in 1328. Edward III of England having claimed the French crown, hostilities commenced, and the English gained the battle of Crecy in 1346, and Poictiers in 1356; but. about the end of the 14th century, the French recovered all the provinces which the English had conquered in France. A civil war raging. Henry V, king of England, took advantage of these disorders, and invaded France in 1415. He made himself master of Hajfleur, and gained the famous battle of Agin- court, in which the French lost an incredible number of men. In 1420 the succession to the French throne was secured to the king of Eng- land by treaty ; in consequence of which, the infant. Henry VI, was crowned king of France at Paris. By degrees, Charles VII recovered possession of the kingdom, in which he was greatly assisted oy Joan of Arc, a pretended prophetess, who raised the siege of Orleans, and defeated the English ; but being taken prisoner, this gallant girl was barbarously burned for al- leged sorcery. On the death of Charles VIII, who was the last prince of the first line of the house of Va- lois, the duke of Orleans ascended the throne, under the title of Louis XII, and was so hu- mane, generous, and indulgent to his subjects, that he obtained the appellation of Father of his people. Francis I. one of the most distin- Baished of the kings of France, succeeded him. e ascended the throne in 1515. at the age of 21, and died in 1547. He conquered the Milan- ese in 1525, but was taken prisoner at the siege of Pa via. In 1535 he possessed himself of Sa- voy, but was afterwards defeated. On the ac- cession of Francis II, commenced those civil commotions which harassed France during 30 years. The king was instigated to attempt the extirpation of the Protestants, who, by way of reproach, were denominated Huguenots. The minority and reign of Charles IX exhibited a serifs of treacheries, commotions, and assassina- tions ; and France became a field of war and bloodshed. The massacre of St. Bartholomew's disgraced the age. Henry III was a weak and debauched prince ; and in him ended the line of Valois. On his death, the crown devolved on the house of Bourbon, in the person of Hen- ry IV, king of Navarre, who was descended from Robert of France, count of Clermont, tho fifth and last son of Saint Louis. Henry was the son of Antony of Bourbon, duke of Ven- dome and Jeanne d'Albret, heiress of Navarre. He was justly styled the Great, being one of the best and most amiable of the French prin- ces; but he perished by the hand of an assassin in 1610. Unds-r the minority and in the reign of Louis XIII, France returned to its former state of disorder and wretchedness, and cardinal Rich- elieu, the prime minister, rendered the power of the crown absolute. The reign of Louis XIV, was long and brilliant. The great Conde. compelled the emperor Ferdinand III, and Christiana, queen of Sweden, to conclude the peace of Westphalia. But the unbounded am- bition of Louis rendered him odious or formi- dable to every prince in Europe. The united forces of England. Holland, and Austria, obliged him to conclude the peace of Ryswick in lti!)7. and that of Utretcht in 1713. "lie reigned 73 yours from 1G42, to 1715. William 111 was the great enemy of Louis XIV. In 1702, he organ- ized a new confederacy of the powers of Eu- rope against him, but died before hostilities commenced. The Ensrlisli duko of Marlbo- rough, who led the allied forces, gained, in 1704, the 'battle of Blenheim, which was followed by other victories. But, in 1715. this bloody and useless contest was terminated by the peace of Utretcht, though Louis succeeded in placing his grandson on the throne of Spain. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. FRA 251 FRA At the age of five years, his great grandson ascended the throne, under the title of Louis XV. In conjunction with Germany. Russia, and Sweden. France, in this reign, twice contended against Prussia and Great Britain. These wars were Concluded in 1748, and in 1763. Louis XVI assumed the crown of France in 1774, under the most unfortunate auspices. He found a court abandoned to the utmost extravagance, and the country loaded with an enormous debt. The king convoked an assembly of the nota- bles, consisting of princes, deputies chosen from among the nobility, dignified clergy, the par- liaments, and the pays d ilat. It was proposed to establish a land tax, with- out any exception in favor of the nobility or clergy. This proposal being followed by a gen- eral refusal, the assembly of the notables was dissolved, and the minister thought he could make a more advantageous bargain with the parliaments. But as the latter remonstrated, and advanced the opinion, that the right of im- posing new taxes belonged only to the states general, the king convoked them in 1789. Necker's indiscreet measure, by which it was stipulated that the numbers of the tiers etat (third estate) should be, at least, equal to that of the other two orders conjointly, threw the preponderance into the scale of the former, who could not fail to find many adherents in the superior classes. As soon as the deputies of the third order had formed themselves into a national assembly, the other orders were led away by their impulsive force, and the equilib- rium was entirely destroyed. The storm of p'opular fury gathered and broke rapidly. On the 14th of July, 1789, the Bastile was taken. On the 4th of August the privi- leges of the nobility were suppressed. On the 5th of October, 1789, the king, queen, and royal family were forced from Versailles by the mob, and brought captive to the capital. However, the monarch disconcerted the schemes of his adversaries by a free acceptance of the new constitution, which abolished the feudal system, and the titles of nobility. The situation of Louis and his family became so unsupportable under the harsh restraints which were imposed, that they contrived to escape from their im- placable enemies, but the unfortunate monarch, being recognised at St. Menehoult, by Drouet, the post-master, was stopped at Varennes, con- strained to return to Paris with his family, and to become a mere prisoner. While the king was preparing to surrender his throne and life, the jacobins caused a decree 2 to be enacted, suppressing the chasseurs and grenadiers, of whom they were afraid, as well as the staff of the national guard. All the measures which they pursued till the 10th of August, 1792, had, for their sole aim, the over- throw of the monarchy. On that day, the Mar- seillese, who had been invited to Paris to form the advanced -guard in the attack on the palace of the Tuilleries, in conjunction with the na- tional guards, fired on the devoted Swiss who composed the royal body-guard, and almost annihilated them. The king and his family sought refuge in the assembly ; it was decreed that they should be imprisoned in the Temple, and they were conducted thither. The national convention was opened on the 21st of September, and, in the first sitting abolished royalty, and proclaimed the republic The king was tried and condemned, and on the 21st of January, 1793, perished on the scaffold. " Son of St. Louis !" were the last words which his confessor, the abbe Edgeworth, addressed to him; " Son of St. Louis, ascend to heaven !' Against the French republic, the emperor and the king of Prussia had already declared war and. on the king's death, their example was followed by Great Britain and Holland, ano speedily after by Spain and Russia. While France was pressed on all sides by the different powers of Europe, this unfortunate country was a prey to all kinds of internal disorders, and to the most unbounded lice-ntiousness. Robespierre and Danton obtained a decree by which all the sans-culottts were to be armed with pikes and muskets at the expense of the rich, who were themselves to be disarmed as suspected persons. Marat, one of the principal agents in the revolution, was assassinated by Charlotte Corday. Towards the close of June, 1793. the new constitution was adopted, and greafe disturbances broke out at Lyons, Mar- seilles, and in La Vendee. Soon after the sur- render of Valenciennes to the English, the committee of public safety was established to desolate France by the most horrid butcheries and persecutions. They appiehended all sus- pected persons, and tried them by revolutionary committees, the powers of which were so un- limited, that they could readily seize on four- fifths of the population of France. One of their early victims was the unhappy Marie Antoinette, the widow of the murdered Louis. Her death was followed by the destruc- tion of the Girondists. The infamous duke o r Orleans was brought up to Paris from Mar- seilles, and being tried and condemned, braved CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. FRA 252 FRA the insults of the multitude on the way to execution. Brittany and a great part of Nor- mandy being filled with the royalists, who had acquired the denomination of ckouans. Carrier, one of the most atrocious monsters of the revolu- . tion, was sent to Nantes, where he spared nei- ther age nor sex, but put to death the aged, the infirm, and even infants. The atrocities com- mitted by the satellites of the convention in the city of Lyons, exceeded all that can be con- ceiVed; at the end of five months, nearly 0.000 persons had perished. In Paris the executions were now multiplied to such a degree, that eighty persons were fre- quently conveyed in the same vehicle to the place where they suffered. To cite the names of all the illustrious victims who fell, would far exceed our limits, and, at the same time, pre- sent too horrid a picture of human depravity. At length, Robespierre, Couthon, and iSt. Just, were brought to condign punishment. A form of government was afterwards settled by the convention ; and a council of ancients, a coun- cil of five hundred, and five rulers, called a directory, were appointed : but the other pow- ers of Europe being still in league against France, and the new government being unfor- tunate in the field, the executive power was, in 1799, vested in three consuls, of whom the first was the victorious Napoleon Bonaparte. The consulate restored the energy of the gov- ernment, and Bonaparte, having, in 1800, gained the victory of Marengo, forced Austria to con- clude the treaty of Luneville in February, 1801 ; and concluded the treaty of Amiens with Eng- land in October of tha't year ; thus restoring peace to all Europe. The British government refusing to surrender Malta, according to the treaty of Amiens, after some angry discussions the English ambassador left Paris in April, 1803, and war was recommenced. In 1604, the first consul, Napoleon Bonaparte, was crowned emperor of France by the pope ; and, in 1 "!);">, king of Italy , at Milan. He afterwards assumed the title of Mediator of Switzerland, and Pro- tector of the Confederation. of the Rhine. He made one of his brothers king of Holland, another king of Naples, a third king of Spain, and a fourth king of Westphalia. Tin's;' manifestations of ambition excited, in succession, the jealousies and fears of all Europe. Austria and Russia commenced hostilities in 180"), but were overthrown at Austerlitz : Prus- sia in 1806, but she was crushed at Jena ; Rus- sia again in the same year, but she was defeated at Fnedland ; Spain, in 1807 ; Austria, again, in 1808, but she was overthrown at Wagram , Russia, again, in 1812; and finally, Itussia. Prussia, Sweden. Austria, England, &c., invad- ed France in J814, when Napoleon abdicated, retired to the island of Elba, and the Bourbons were restored. After a year's absence, Napoleon returned to Paris, but having been defeated in the memorable battle of Waterloo, again abdi- cated the throne, and was conveyed as a stair prisoner to the island of St. Helena, where he died in 1821. The Bourbons were re-estab- lished on the throne in the person of Loui.s XVIII. brother of Louis XVI, and France relin- quished the states and provinces acquiied dur- ing the revolutionary wars. Louis XVIII died on the Kith of December. 1825, and his brother. Charles X. ascended the throne, and was crown- ed with splendor at Rheims, .May 29. l.-'Jii, after taking the solemn oath to govern according to the cliarter. But the misfortunes of the Bour- bons had not taught them wisdom. In ]83l). the tyrann v of the itncim rfffimc seemed to have re-appeated, and fetters were placed upon the press. On Tuesday morning, July 27th, the liberal journals of Pans were seized, and a rev- olution immediately broke out. In three days the glorious struggle was terminated in favor of the people. The paving-stones and tiles of the houses became weapons more formidable than sabres or muskets. The royal cavalry an they rushed upon the barracades were :i front and from above ; the young scholars of the polytechnic school, a military institution, hav- ing been dismissed without their swords, seized what arms they could rind, and ranged them- selves on the side of the people. Some com- manded the populace, others served the guns with spirit arid success. Aug. 2, the king abdi- cated, an i was permitted to leave France. The (lukt- uf Orleans was chosen king, a new min- istry appointed, and after a fair trial, the old ministry was imprisoned for life. The affairs of France now appear to be in a settled state. FRANCE, Isle of. or Mauritius; an island in the Indian ocean, (500 miles east of Mada- gascar, belonging to Great, Britain. Its cir- cumference is ITx) mile's. The climate is hot, but healthy, a large portion of the land fertile, and the whole well watered. Population in 1822, 87,603, of whom 13,475 were blacks. It was discovered in the H'.tii century by the Por- tuguese. Tlu> Dutch first settled in it, but re- linquished it, and the French took possession of the island ; but since 1810, it has been in the hands of the English. FRANCHE-COMTE,or Upper Burgundy, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL FRA 253 FRA an ancient province of France, called by the Romans, Sequania. It was wrested from the Spanish by Louis XIV, and ceded to the French by the peace of Nimeguen, in 1673. It forms the departments of the Doubs, Upper Saone, and the Jura. FRANCIS I, of France, surnamed by his subjects, the father of literature, was born at Cognac, in 1494. His father was Charles, count of Angouleme. Wishing to accomplish the projects of Louis with regard to the Milan- ese, he passed the Alps, penetrated as far as Milan, and found the Swiss encamped near Marignano. The contest was kept up for two whole days. Francis I, and the chevulier Bay- ard performed prodigies of valor, and the mar- shal of Trivulzio, who had been in eighteen actions, called this a combat of giants. The Swiss were beaten with a loss of 15,000 men, and Sforz.a ceded Milan, and retired to Franco where he died. The Swiss agreed to a per- petual treaty of peace, and long remained the faithful allies of France. Leo X, equally re- conciled, came to a conference in which the pragmatic sanction v.*as abolished, to make way for the concordats, by which the king enjoyVd the power of conferring benefices. The death of the emperor, Maximilian I. pre- sented the imperial throne to the view of Fran- cis I, and Charles, of Austria. The former never pardoned his rival for h.iving obtained it, and hence arose the interminable wars between Austria and France. The first care of Francis I, was to attach himself to Henry VIII, of Eng- land, and they had an interview near Calais ; but Charles V ruined his rival's scheme by , in the 75th year of his age, and the 47th of, his reign, and was suc- ceeded by his nephew Frederic William II. FR1EDLAND, a town of Bohemia, memo- rable for the battle fought there on \he 14th of June, 1807. between the French and Russians, which resulted in the total defeat of the latter, with immense loss. FRIENDLY ISLANDS, a group of islands in the South Pacific Ocean, 150 in number. They are very fertile, lut contain but few springs of good water. They were discovere ' in 1773 by Captain Cook, who thought the ir habitants amicable and inoffensive, although subsequent events have shown them to be capa- ble of the darkest treachery and the blackest crimes. Population 200.000. FRISIANS, -an old tribe of Germans, inhab- iting Friesland. Prussia took possession of Friesland in 1744, and East Friesland was an- noxed to Hanover in 1814. FULTON, Rolx-tf . the celebrated American engineer, was born in Pennsylvania in 1765. At an early age he exhibited a fondness for the mechanical arts, and a talent for drawing. In his 22d year, he went to England, and subse- quently to France, distinguishing himself in both countries by mechanical inventions. He returned to America in If-OG. Mr. Livingston and Fulton had built a steamboat upon the Seine in 1803, which was completely successful, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. GAM 257 GEN out. in 1807, the first attempt at steam naviga- tion in America was made upon the Hudson. The maximum speed of this was only five miles an hour. In 180K Mr. Fulton took a patent for liis invention, and in 1811 a second patent for subsequent improvements. He died February X!4th, 1615. GADSDEN, Christopher, lieutenant-gover- nor of South Carolina, was born in 1724. He was an ardent friend of liberty, and discharged tile duties of member of the provincial congress with ability and applause. He^died, Sept. 1805. in the 2d year 'of his age. GAELS, a family ot' the Celts, who from Gaul, passed over to Britain and the neighbor- ing islands. Traces of them are still found in the remote districts of Ireland and Scotland. GAGE, Thomas, the last royal governor of Massachusetts. He was lieutenant under Braddock, witnessed his defeat, and bore his body from the field of battle. In 1760 he was appointed governor of Montreal, and a few years afterwards succeeded to the chief com- mand of the British forces in America. He was the successor of Hutchinson in the office of governor of Massachusetts, and his oppressive pleasures precipitated the revolution. GALBA, Sergius or Servius Sulpicius, em- peror of Rome, was born B. C. 4, and succeed- ed Nero on the imperial throne. He rose grad- ually through various state offices although continually exposed to the jealousy of Nero, who ordered him to he assassinated, but having escaped the toils which were laid for him, he was saluted emperor A. D. 68. His avarice in- duced him to profit by the sale of offices, and his appointment of Piso Licmianus, instead of Otho, to fill the office of colleague in the gov- ernment, exasperated the soldiers, who put "him to death. A. D. 69, in the 72d.year of his age, after a reign of three months. GALICIA, and LODOMIRIA, a kingdom of Austria, which comprises 32,500 square miles, and 4,075.000 inhabitants. Also, a province of Spain, anciently Gallsscia, containing 1,795,199 inhabitants. GALILEE, the most northerly province of Palestine, the scene of many events in the Irfe of our Savior. It is now part of the govern- ment of Damascus, oppressed by Turkish tyran- ny, and infested by robbers. GAM A, Vasco da, the celebrated Portuguese navigator, who discovered the maritime way to the East Indies, by doubling the Cape of Good Hope. He lived in the reign of Emanuel the Fortunate. He was appointed viceroy of the Portuguese Indies, and died Dec. 1524, at Goa. GARDINER, bishop of Winchester, was a s!r.enuous opponent of the reformation in Eng- land. He lost his place under Henry VIII, but regained it under the bigoted Mary, whom he instigated to persecute the Protestants with fire and sword. GARR1CK, David, one of the most celebrated and talented of English performers, and the friend of doctor Johnson. He was born in 1716, and died Jan. 20, 1779, after having amassed an immense fortune by his profession. G ASTON DE FO1X, duke of Nemours, the nephew of Louis XII, was born in 1488. He ran a brilliant career in arms, and fell in the battle of Ravenna, April 11, 1512. GATES, Horatio, was born in England in 1728, and rose rapidly in the military profession. Soon after the French war he purchased an es- tate in Virginia, and was appointed adjutant- general in the continental force on the breaking out of our revolutionary war. The first move- ment of Gates, after taking command of the army that had just retreated from Canada in 1776, was to retire from Crown Point to Ticon- deroga, and this excited pretty general surprise and disapprobation. But he regained confidence by those operations which resulted in the sur render of Burgoyne and his army at Saratoga. When appointed to the command of the south- ern army in 1780, he found it weak and badly supplied, and disheartened by the aspect of af- fairs in general. His conduct at the battle of Camden. which was won by Cornwallis, sub- jected him to a temporary loss of command and legal investigation, although he was finally ac- quitted. Meantime the war had ended, and Gates removed from Virginia to New York, where he died. April 10, 180(3, in the 78th year of his age. He was talented, well intbrrned, courteous and pious. GAUL, or GALLIA, the ancient name of France. The inhabitants were naturally fierce and warlike, and resisted the Romans by whom they were finally subjugated, with great spirit. GENEVA, a canton of Switzerland, com- prising 91 square miles, and 53.5(50 inhabitants, of whom a large proportion are Protestants. The city of Geneva stands on the lake of the same name, and is divided by the Rhone which flows through it. It is famous for the manu- factures of watches, chintz, woollens, muslins, silks, porcelains, &c. After a variety of CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. GEN 258 GEO chunges, it became subject to the dukes of Sa- voy. But the citizens of Geneva, supported by the Helvetic league, resisted the attempts of the house of Savoy, with whom a permanent accommodation was effected in 1603. Under Calvin and other reformers, it eagerly embraced a pure doctrine, and became the seat of the re- formed religion. From the time of the conclu- sion of the peace with Savoy, the history of Geneva is little more than a narrative of "con- tentions between the aristocracy and democracy. GENGHIS KHAN, emperor of the Moguls, was born A. D. 1163, and received the name of Temujin. He founded in 1206 that vast em- pire, the grandeur of which was the theme of admiration throughout the worlds The leading men of the small domain left him by his father, having rebelled against him, he marched upon them "with an army of 30,000 men, and com- pletely frustrated their designs. Tartary and China fell before the power of the conqueror, whose dominions extended to the banks of the Dnieper. In the year 1225, the emperor ar- rived at the banks of the river Tula, after an absence of seven years. In the next year he defeated the king of Tanaut with the loss of 300,OuO men. He died Aug. 24, 1227, in the 63d year of his age, leaving to his children an empire 1200 leagues in length. The conquests of the great Khan were stained with the most atrocious cruelties, his march was like the pro- gress of a fiery storm, bursting over several countries at once, and involving them in ruin. According to the most moderate calculation, no fewer than 2,000.000 men fell beneath the mur- dering sword, without reckoning the numbers that affliction anti the horrors of slavery con- signed to the grave. GENUS, (Stephanie Feliciti Ducrestde St. Aubin, marchioness de Sillery) Countess de, was born near Autun, in 1746. Soon after her birth, she narrowly escaped suffocation, for a gentleman who called to see her mother, was about to sit down upon the chair on which the infant was laid, had actually divided the flaps of his coat for that purpose, and was only pre- vented by the united screams of the nurs? and mother. The literary talent of Madame de Genlis early developed itself, and induced 1hc Count de Genlis to ofl'..T her his hand, without ever having seen her. She was governess of the duke of Orleans' children, and many of her earlv works were devoted to the cause of edu- cation. She died in 1830, with a very high reputation. GENOA, a dukedom and city of Sardinia, on the Mediterranean Sea. The city contains 7G,000 inhabitants. The harbor is capacious and secure. The city is built on an elevation, and the streets are narrow, dirty, and steep.' The duchy contains 2,330 square miles, and 590,500 inhabitants. Genoa, possessed by the Lombards, after the fall of the Western Roman empire, came next into the hands of the Franks, but was erected into a republic after the down- fall of Charlemagne. Quarrels with the Pisans and Venetians occupied the Genoese for many years. The French assumed the sovereignty of Genoa, but did not long retain it. Internal dis- sensions not unfrequently enabled foreign pow- ers to seize upon"the State. In 1528 tranquillity was restored to Genoa, an aristocratical form of government established, and a doge placed at the head of the state. Sometime after this the city was convulsed by the furious contentious between the old and new nobilitv , the two por- tions into which the aristocracy was divided. By degrees Genoa lost her foreign possessions, the last of which, Corsica, revolted in 1730. During the invasion of Italy in 1797, Genoa ob- served a strict neutrality, but the dissensions of the Genoese did not escape the vigilant eye of IMapoleon ; he established a form of government on the French representative system, and gavo it the title of the Ligurian republic. In if 15 the congress of Vienna annexed Genoa to the territories of Sardinia, reserving to it its own senate and council, without the concurrence of which no taxes can be laid upon the Genoese. GEORGE I. Lewis, king of Great Britain, elector of Hanover, and duke of Brunswick- Lunenhurgh. was born May 28, 1GUU. and was the son of "Ernest Augustus and Sophia, grand- daughter of James I. He was proclaimed king of England. Aug. 1, 1714. and landed at Greenwich in the following month. At the commencement of his reign the whigs had the ascendency : both in nnd out of parliament. In ]715 a revolution broke out in f-cotland in favor of the Pretender, but was quelled without much trouble, although there were many who were decidedly opposed to the existing government. In 1715 the bill for Septennial parliaments was brouo-ht into the house of lords by the duke of Devonshire, and passed both houses. In 1718, a quadruple alliance of England, Holland, France, and Germany, was formed against Spain, and the Spanish were defeated by Sir George Byn? on the coast of Sicily. In 1720 was starte'd the celebrated South Sea scheme, which involved thousands of families in ruin. In 1721 Bishop Atterbury was seized and con HISTORICAL AND. BIOGRAPHICAL. GEO 259 GER veyed to the Tower, and afterwards banished on suspicion of treason ; the duke of Norfolk, the earl of Orrery, and others were imprisoned for participation in the plot. In 1725 the treaty of Hanover was signed to counteract the first treaty of Vienna. In 1727 the king visited his electoral dominions at Hanover, but being seized with a paralytic disorder on the road from Han- over to Holland, he was conveyed to Osna- burgh, June 11, 1727, where he died, in the 13th year of his reign. The disaffection towards the elector of Hanover, on his arrival in England was very great, and the populace gave no equiv- ocal signs of it. One time a noisy mob sur- rounded a carriage, which contained some Ger- man ladies of the court, and assailed their ears with epithets of abuse more fluent than elegant. One of the foreigners, putting her head out of the carriage-window, said, in her broken Eng- lish ; " My good peoples, we ish come for all your goods." " Yes," replied a surly fellow in the crowd, " and for all our chattels too." GEORGE II, AUGUSTUS, son of the pre- ceding, was born Oct. 30, 1683, and was created prince of Wales, Oct. 4, 1714. In 1704 he mar- ried Wilhelmina Caroline Dorothea, of Brand- enburgh-Anspach, and in 1727 succeeded George I. In 1729 the -peace of Seville was concluded with Spain, but the war with that country was renewed in 1739. In 1742 Sir Robert . Walpole resigned, after having been minister for nearly twenty years, and in the same year, the king espousing the cause of Maria Theresa, marched against the French whom he defeated in the battle of Dettingen, but without gaining much advantage. In 1745 Charles Edward, the Pretender, landed in Scot- land, but was finally defeated at Culloden. The peace of Aix-la-Chapelle was concluded in 174d. In 17f>4 the encroachments of the French in America brought on that war which resulted happily for Great Britain, and some of the suc- cesses of which in America are attributable to the bravery of the provincial troops. In the midst of general prosperity, George II died at Kensington, Oct. 25, 1760, in the 77th year of his age and 33d of his reign. He possessed no shining qualities, and despised learning. GEORGE III, king of Great Britain, eldest son of Frederick, prince of Wales, was born June 4, 1738. He succeeded his grandfather George II, Oct. 25, 1760, and married Charlotte Sophia-, princess of Mecklenburg-Strelitz, Sept 8, 1761, and both were crowned Sept. 22, in the same year. He was deranged in mind from Oct. 1788 to March 1789. On April 24, 1789, he went in procession to St. Paul's cathedral ; re- covered from a second attack, March It), 1804 ; relapsed lelO ; and died in Windsor Castle, Jan. 29, 1820, in the 82d year of his age, and 60th of his reign. GEORGE IV, son of the preceding, was bom Aug. 12, 1762. He had been regent during the insanity of his father, whom he succeeded on his death. In 1795, he had married Caroline Amelia Augusta, whose sufferings and perse- cution excited the indignation of the world against her heartless husband. Well educated and talented, he abused the gifts which were bestowed upon him, and in his youth plunged into the guiltiest excesses. Loaded with debt he at length adopted a system of retrenchment, sold his splendid racing-stud, and reduced his whole establishment. With the assistance of parliament, he extricated himself from his diffi- culties. The indignation excited by a nefarious transaction of his, which was exposed by the Jockey Club, compelled him to abandon the turf He died July 26, J830, and was succeed- ed by his brother, the duke of Clarence, under the title of Will lam IV. GEORGE CADOUDAL, a Chouan chief, who, with general Pichegru, was concerned in a conspiracy to take the life of Bonaparte when first consul. He was brought over to France in a British government vessel, but was seized by the police, tried, condemned, and executed, June 24, 1804, ao-ed 35 years. GEORGIA, one of the U. States, is bounded N. by Tennessee and North Carolina ; N. E. by South Carolina; S. E. bv the Atlantic ocean, S. by Florida, and W. by Alabama. It is 300 miles in length, and 240 in breadth, containing 60,000 square" miles. Population 691,392. The soil is like that of South Carolina, and the staple pro- ductions are the same. The Cherokees, inhab- iting the northwestern part of the state, are far advanced in civilization. The first settlement which the English made in Georgia, was in 1733, under the superintendence of James Og- lethorpe. GEORGIA, in Persian GURG1STAN, called by the natives IBERIA, a rich country of Asia, bounded by Circassia, Daghestan, Shirvan, Ar- menia, and the Black Sea. The Greek religion is the prevailing faith. The country belongs chiefly to Russia, only a small part now remain- ing in the hands of its former masters, the Turks. GERMANICUS C^SAR,ason of Claudius Drusus Nero, and Antonia, the virtuous niece of Augustus. He was adopted by his uncle Tiberius, and raised to the' highest offices of CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. GER 260 GER stale. At the time of the death of Augustus, he was employed in a war with Germany, but Tibe- rius, jealous of the hero, recalled him, although he permitted him to celebrate a triumph ibr his victories. He then sent him to the east with sovereign authority, but viewed his successes with a jealous eye. Germanicus died near An- tioch, A. D. 19, in the 34th year of his age, not without suspicion of poison. GERMANTOWN, a town of Pennsylvania, 7 miles N. of Philadelphia, memorable lor a bat- tle fought here on the 4th of October, 1777, be- tween the Americans, under Washington, and the British, J.o the disadvantage of the former. GERMANY, was formerly divided into nine circles, viz. Austria, Bavaria and Swaltia, on the si nit ii ; Franconm, in the centre ; Upper and Imcer Saxony, and Westphalia, in the north ; Upper and Ijoicer Rhine in the west. The other countries belonging to Germany, and not in- cluded in the circles, were Bohemia, JMoraeia, Silesia, and Lusatia. The secondary states of Germany form, with a part of Prussia, Austria, and some provinces of Denmark, and the Neth- erlands, the GERMANIC CONFEDERA- TION. The secondary states, are, in number, 36, of which the principal are: 1. The four kingdoms of: Hanover, Saxony, Bavaria, Wur- temberg : 2. Eight grand-duchies, viz. Hesse- Cassel, Mecklenburg Schwerin, Oldenburg, Mecklenburg Streliiz, Saxe- Weimar, Hesse- Darmstadt, Baden, Luxemburg : 4. Ten duch- ies and eleven, principalities ; 5. Four free cities : Lubeck, Hamburg, Bremen, and Frankfort on the Maine. Germany (Gcrmania) like Gaul, was ancient- ly occupied by numerous tribes, some of which were only subjugated by the Romans, after a very fierce and prolonged resistance. It was afterwards conquered Dy Charlemagne, who fixed his imperial residence in Germany. The posterity of Charlemagno inherited this country until the demise of Louis V. Otho the Illus- trious, having declined the royal dignity. Con- rad I, duke of Franconia, was ummimously elected to fill the vacant throne in ( J12. Thence, until 1800, the empire of Germany was an elec- tive monarchy. Frederic I ascended the throne in 1152, and during his reign was formed the famous league of the Hansea'ie towns for the protection of conimr-rce. Frederic II was crowned at Aix-la-Chapelle in 1218. He did much for the encouragement, of arts and lite- rature. The princes of the empire. assembled in diet, at Frankfort, elected Rudolph of llapsburg to the imperial throne in 1272. He swayed the imperial sceptre with ability for about 18 years, and died, alter a short illness, in the 73d year of his age. Albert I of Austria was invested with the diadem at Aix-la-Chapelle. in 12!>8. Under his harsh administration, the Swiss revolted, and the foundation of the Helvetic republic was laid. Henry VII of Luxemburg was elected in 1308. and now commenced the celebrated divi- sion of Guelphes and Ghibellines in the con- tests between the emperors and popes. On his death, Louis of Bavaria was recognised as law- ful possessor of (lie throne in 1330. Charles IV. king of Bohemia, received the imperial dia- dem in 13-")G. His reign was prosperous, and under his swav a spirit of opposition to the cor- rupt clergy began to manifest itself. Wences- laus, his son, succeeded him in 1378. after which Sigismund ascended the throne in 1411. He concurred with the pope in convoking the fa- mous council of Constance, by which the re- former Huss was condemned, and the war of the Hussites followed. Albert II died in a short time, and, in 1440. the electors placed up- on the imperial throne Frederic 111, duke of Austria. His son Maximilian was elected king of the Romans, and invested with the supreme dignity in 14!)3. He was an active and enter- prising prince. Charles V presented himself as a candidate for the imperial .crown in 1520. Ferdinand, the brother of Charles, succeeded him. Then came Maximilian II. the son of Ferdinand, who had already received the crown of Bohemia, and had been elected king of the Romans. On the demise of Ihis illustrious prince, his eldest son. who had been elected king of the Romans, and acknowledged as his successor to the crown of Hungary and Bohemia, succeeded to the em- pire by the name of Rodolph II. in 157ti. The emperor ceded Bohemia to his brother Matthias, who succeeded him in 1012. On the demise of Matthias. Ferdinand was declared emperor in I(ii:>, bui.on account of his fanaticism the Prot- estants renounced allegiance to him, and a war ensued which was \\nncd with sanguinary ani- mosity by both parties. Ferdinand w;is at first triumphant, and Germany began to tremble with the apprehension of slavish subjection ; Gusta- vus, king of Sweden, rushing with impetuosity into the empire, defeated the imperialists, but was slain on the plain of Lutzen. On the death of Ferdinand II. his son, Fer- dinand III, ascended the imperial throne, in 1G37, at si critical period, and succeeded in HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. GER 261 GER tranquillizing Germany, although the flames of war yet rolled unabated. France, Sweden, Den- mark, England, and some of the German states were confederated against Spain and the house of Austria. At length a treaty was concluded, since known as the peace of Westphalia. On the death of Ferdinand. Leopold I, king of Hun- gary and Bohemia, was declared duly elected to the imperial throne in 1U57. Scarcely were the troubles in the north composed, when a war with Turkey broke out, while Louis XIV of France took this opportunity of marching against the German monarch. But notwithstanding his perplexities and embarrassments, Leopold found means to render the crown of Hungary hereditary in his family, an object which had long been desired. The archduke Joseph was chosen sovereign of Hungary, elected king of the Romans, and ascended tho imperial throne in 1703. He governed with stern inflexibility, and continued the Spanish war. The arch- duke Charles was elevated to the imperial throne, by the name of Charles VI, in 1711. Anne queen of England, having expressed her pacific intentions, he had to sustain the whole weight of a war with France and Spain, unless he accepted the terms of Louis. At length, however, negotiations were commenced,, and the treat v of Utrecht re-established the general peace. Chat les died in the 2Jlh year of his age. He was the author of the Pragmatic Sanction, which secured all the possessions of the house of Austria to his daughter the archduchess Maria Theresa, and which was guaranteed by the states of the empire, and by all the great powers of Europe. The death of Charles, in 1740, was followed by very serious commotions, but the Pragmatic Sanction was preserved, and the treaty of Fus- senand Aix-la-Chapelle terminated th<> war of the Austrian succession in favor of .Maria Theresa. Two years after the conclusion of the treaty of Hubertsburg, the emperor Francis died, in the twenty-first year of his reign. He was succeeded by his son Joseph II. in 17G4 his imperial majesty' joined with Russia and Prussia in the base dismemberment of Poland, but this did not prevent hostilities from being commenced with Austria and Prussia, on ac- count of the succession to the electorate of Ba- varia. Maria Theresa, empress of Germany, queen of Hungary and Bohemia, and arch- duchess of Austria", died in 17tiO. She left her extensive possessions in the hands of a son, who promulgated a decree in favor of the lib- erty of the press, which had been hitherto much .circumscribed in the Austrian dominions. In 178IJ Joseph II published an edict for the total abolition of villanage and slavery in Bohemia, Moravia, and Silesia; and similar measures were taken soon after for the relief of the peas- ants of Austrian Poland. He also abolished the use of torture in his hereditary dominions, and died in the 25th year of his reign. He was succeeded by his brother, Leopold II, grand- duke of Tuscany, in 171H). The French revolution now attracting the attention of all the European powers, a confe- rence was held at Pilnitz between the emperor, the king of Prussia, and the elector of Saxony ; but, instead of advising an immediate attack upon France. Leopold acted with his accus- tomed moderation, and merely wished to oppose an effectual security against the tremendous hurricane which threatened Europe. However, he was afterwards persuaded to commence hos- tilities, but his designs were soon terminated by his death, in the second year of his reign. Francis II succeeded his father in 17it5i. At the instigation of the king of Prussia, he re- solved to use his utmost endeavors for the res- toration of the monarchy in France ; but the attempts of the allies were so unfortunate in the first campaign, that they commenced the second with altered views, and a feeling of in- security in consequence of previous losses. The second campaign proved more successful, but that of 17^ 1 4 was disastrous to the allies. The fourth campaign atjain raised the -hopes of the Austrians. In 17iHJ, from altered views of ex- pediency, the French turned their arms upon the Austrian possessions in Italy, where the victories of Bonaparte soon spread the terror of his name. At length the court of Vienna, finding that all expectations of effectual opposition to the French were totally unfounded, concluded, in ]7!/7, the treaty ot Campo-Formio, by which the emperor ceded to France the whole of the Netherlands, and all his former territory in Italy, but received in return the city of Venice, Istria, Dalmatia, and the Venetian islands in the Adri- atic. However the war was renewed with great vigor on both sides, and, in 17:'!J. tiie Austrians compelled the French to evacuate nearlv the whole of Italy. The brilliant successes of the archduke Charles in Germany, also, reanimated the court of Vienna, and contributed to break off the conferences at Rastadt. In the mean time, Bonaparte, having returned from Egypt, and been chosen first consul of the French re- public, the war with Austria was destined to CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. GER 262 GER take a new turn. That general, at the head of an army of reserve, marched towards Italy ; and having collected his artillery, transported it with inconceivable labor across the Alps, and ad- vanced to Milan. After reducing Pavia, and defeating the Austrians in the battle of Monte- bello, the French marched to the plain of Ma- rengo. Both the French and Imperialists ex- hibited extraordinary skill and resolution. At length the first consul, availing himself of an error which had been committed, compelled his enemies to retreat. In Germany the French had opened the campaign with similar success ; and Genera] Moreau. after defeating the Impe- rialists in several engagements, formed a junc- tion with the array of Italy, and obliged the Austrians to conclude an armistice. Soon after preliminaries of peace were signed at Paris by count St. Julien; but as Bonaparte refused to negotiate with England, the emperor would not ratify them. Hostilities were there- fore re-commenced, and the Austrians were defeated by Moreau in the decisive battle of Hohenlinden. This was followed in 1801 by the treaty of Luneville, by which the emperor ceded to France the Belgic provinces, and the whole of the country on the left side of the Rhine. In 1805, the court of Vienna entered into an alliance with Russia, the object of which appears to have been to rescue the states of Eu- rope from French predominance and oppression. The emperor, therefore, made preparation for war. Without waiting for the arrival of the Russian troops, the Austrians marched towards the banks of the Danube, where hostilities commenced, and the French, under Bonaparte, after a severe contest, succeeded in defeating the Imperialists with great loss. The Austrians retreated and Bonaparte advanced to Munich. From this time, partial engagements took place, in which the Austrians, though they fought with their accustomed bravery, were uniformly defeated. The whole Austrian army in Suabia now concentrated itself in and near Uhn ; and every- thing seemed to indicate the approach of a gen- eral and decisive battle. However, to the as tonishment and concern of all Europe, general Mack, who was in Ulm with 33,000 men, with- out striking a blow agreed to the terms of ca- pitulation offered by Bonaparte, evacuated that important fortress, and surrendered himself and his troops prisoners of war. Bonaparte was every where victorious, and the decisive battle of Austerlitz compelled the emperor Francis to conclude an armistice which was speedily followed by the treaty of Presburg. In 1^00, sixteen German princes renounced their connection whh the German empire, and signed at Paris the Confederation of the Rhine. by which they acknowledged Napoleon as their protector. This was followed, on the Gth of August, by the renunciation of the title of emperor of Ger- many, by Francis, who assumed that of emperor of Austria, and who publicly absolved all the German provinces and states from their recip- rocal duties towards the German empire. In i -! ':'. Francis, smarting under sacrifices already made, and dreading farther encroachments, re- solved to try again the chance of war. at a time when a large proportion of the military force of France was employed in completing the sub- jugation of Spain. War was declared, in pro- clamation from the archduke Charles and the emperor Francis, and these were followed by a manifesto, stating the provocations and causes of alarm given by France to Austria. The Austrians were defeated in two battles, one at Abensburg by Napoleon in person, and the other at EckmUhl ; and after these defeats, the French emperor pioceeded to Vienna which surrendered to him. But in the battle of As- pern, which followed soon after, Napoleon ex- perienced the severest check which his career had yet received. However, niter the decisive battle of Wagrain an armistice was concluded. This was followed by a peace between Austria and France, by which the emperor Francis ceded to Napoleon all these parts > cai;r< 1 a debt he owed her, when the sale of his novel the Vicar of Waketie'd. which met the approbation of Dr Johnson, alibrded him a temporary relief. An HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL GOR 265 GRA adventure which he himself met with formed the groundwork of his highly successful com- edy, She Stoops to Conquer. He put up at. the house of a gentleman, mistaking it for an inn, and amused the inmates by calling out lustily for whatever he wanted, ordering the servants, slapping his host upon the back, and asking to see the bill of fare. His mortification, on dis- covering his mistake, can easily be imagined. He died April, 1774. He was eccentric even to absurdity, and, in society showed the simpli- city of la Fontaine. Garrick, in some extempo- raneous verses, spoke of Him as " Noll, Who wrote like an an-el, but talked like poor Poll." GONZALVO, Hernandez y Aquilar de Cor- dova, commonly called the great captain, was born in 1443. This celebrated Spaniard served under Ferdinand and Isabella in the conquest of Granada, where he took several strong places from the Moors. Ferdinand gave him the com- mand of the forces which he sent into the king- dom of Naples, to succor Frederick and Al- phonso. After having gained his purpose, he returned to Spain, and then serving against the Turks wrested Zante and Cephalonia from them. He was afterwards, in consequence of his various victories, appointed viceroy of Naples, with un- limited powers. He died in 1515. GOOKIN, Daniel, major-general of Massa- chusetts from 1681 to 1667, the year of his death. He was an Englishman, but came to Virginia, in 1621, and removed to New Eng- land that he might enjoy freedom of worship Fn 1644. He is the author of the Historical Col- lections of the Indians in New England. GOIIDIUS, a king of Phrygia, who fastened the pole of his chariot with so ingenious a knot tint the oracle promised the kingdom to the man who should untie it. Alexander the Great cut it with his sword. GORE, Christopher, a governor of Massa- chusetts, born in Boston, in 1753. was the son of a mechanic. His education was completed at Harvard University; he studied law and practised it with success. He was the first United Slates attorney Tor Massachusetts, and was one of the commissioners to settle the claims on England for the spoliations commit- ted by her upon the property of the Americans. He was twice elected senator for Suffolk county in his native state, and in 1809 was chosen gov- ernor of Massachusetts, but remained in office only one year. In 1814 he was chosen United States senator, but died in retirement, March 1, 1827, in the 69lh year of his age. GOREE. a small island off the coast of Af- rica, near Cape Verd, with a military post be- longing to the French. GOTH A, formerly a Saxon duchy, contain- ing 522 square miles, and 83.000 inhabitants. In 1326 it was annexed to the duchies of Saxe- Coburg, and Saxe-Altenburg. GOTHS, aii -ancient barbarous tribe, whose origin is very uncertain. They were said to come from Scandinavia. For a long time they resided in Germany whence they finally forced their way and made themselves formidable to the Romans. Under Alaric they took and plun- dered Rome. The Goths of the east were called Ostrogoths, and those of West Visigoths. GOTTINGEN, a city of Hanover, on the Leine, 22 leagues S. S. E. of Hanover. It con- tains 10,000 inhabitants, and is famous for its university founded by King George II in 1734. GRACCHUS, Tiberius Semproni us and Caius. the sons of the celebrated Cornelia, lost their lives in attempting to reform the republic. With a winning eloquence, affected moderation, and uncommon popularity, Tiberius began to revive the Agrarian law, which had already caused dissensions among the Romans. His proposi- tion passed into a law, but he was killed in the midst of a tumult, for, happening to raise his hand to his head, his enemies declared that he signified a desire fora crown, and he was killed in the outbreak of popular fury which ensued. His brother Caius supported the cause of the people with more vehemence, and less modera- tion than Tiberius, and his success animated his resentment against the nobles. With the privileges of a tribune, he treated the patricians with contempt, and this behavior hastened his ruin. He fled with a large number of his ad- herents, but the consul Opinius attacked and defeated them, and slew their leader, B. C. 121, about thirteen years after the unfortunate end of Tiberius. GRANADA, an extensive province in the south of Spain, bordering on the sea, about 200 miles hi length. The soil of the valleys is fer- tile. The city of Granada is interesting for its historical recollections, and monuments of the past. Among the latter is the magnificent Alhambra, which has already been described. Granada has some manufactures and is the seat of an university. Population of the city 80,000. GRATTAN', Henry, a celebrated statesman, was born about 1750. 'in Dublin. He was elect- ed into the Irish parliament in 1775, and. by his powerful remonstrances obtained for his coun- try a participation in the commerce of Britain, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. GRE 266 GRE for which he was rewarded by a vote of 50,000 pounds sterling. In 17'JO he was returned for the city of Dublin, and from that time was the active leader of the opposition till the union with England, which measure he resisted with all his eloquence. When it was effected, he accepted a seat in the united house of commons for Million. In the French wars he supported government with great ability ; but his princi- pal exertions were called forth in advocating the Catholic claims, to which cause he fell a martyr, by leaving Ireland, in an exhausted state, to carry the petition, with which he was intrusted, to England. He died, soon after his arrival, May 14, 1820; and his remains were interred in Westminster Abbey. What Irish- man does not feel proud that he has lived in the days of Grattan ? Who has not turned to him for comfort from the false friends and open enemies of Ireland ? Who did not remember him in the days of its burnings, and wastings, and murders. No government ever dismayed him the world could not bribe him. He only thought of Ireland lived for no other object dedicated to her his beautiful fancy, his elegant wit, his manly courage, and all the splendor of his astonishing eloquence. He was so born, and so gifted, that all the attainments of human genius were within his reach ; but he thought the noblest occupation of man was to make other men happy and free ; and in that straight line he went on for fifty years, without one side look, without one yielding thought, without one motive in his heart which he might not have laid open to the view of God and man. He is gone ! but there is not a single day of his hon- est life of which every good Irishman would not be more proud, than of the whole political existence of the Wellington's and the Lans- downes, the annual deserters ad betrayers of their native land. GRAY, Thomas, an English poet, born in London, in 17115. After completing the course of education at Eton and Cambridge, he made the tour of Europe, returning in 1741. The remainder of his life was passed in literary re- tirement. He was for ever laying gigantic lit- erary plans, which he wanted the perseverance to execute. He wrote little and published only after mature deliberation. His Odes on A Dis- tant Prospect of Eton College, on the Progress of Poesy. The Bard, and his Elegy in a Country Church Yard, are inimitable. This distinguish- ed poet died of a gout in the stomach, JiUy 30, 1771. GREAT BRITAIN. (See Britain and Entr- land.\ GREECE. Ancient Greece, Grircia, Hellas, and jlcliaia, contained about 42.000 square miles. It was bounded on the west by the Ionian Sea, south by the Mediterranean Sea, east by the ^Egean, and north by Thrace and Dalmatia. This country has been esteemed superior to every other part of the earth, on account of the salubrity of the air, the temperature of the climate, the fertility of the soil, and, above all, the fame, learning, and arts of its inhabitants. The most celebrated of its cities were Athens, Sparta, Corinth, Thebes, Sicyon, Mycente, Delphi, Troczene, Salarnis, Megara, Pylos, !),000 inhabitants, Spaniards, mulat- toes, and mestizoes. GUADELOUPE, one of the largest and most valuable of the Caribbee Islands about 70 miles long, and 25 broad. It is divided into two parts by a channel, which runs from north to south. It was discovered by Columbus. After passing alternately from the French to the English, its possession was confirmed to the former in 1614. Population 110.000. GUANAXUATO, a rich and populous state of Mexico, containing 450,000 inhabitants on 6,300 square miles. GUANAXUATO, or Santa Fe Guanaxuato, the capital of the preceding state, is 140 miles northwest of Mexico, and contains 40.000 inhab- itants. Of these many are miners, the mines in the vicinity being uncommonly productive. The city stands at an elevation of 6,836 above the sea, and is situated in a mountainous defile. GUAT1MALA. the largest of the five states of the republic of Central America. It borders on Mexico, the gulf of Honduras, and the Pacific Ocean GUAT1MALDA, La Nueva, the seat of gov- ernment of Central America, was founded in 1775, and contains 40,000 inhabitants. It is situated on the river Vacas, near the Pacific Ocean. GUAXACA, or Oaxaca, an uncommonly rich and fertile state of Mexico, containing 600,000 inhabitants, many of whom are tribu- tary Indians. The capital town of the same, called also, Antequera, contains 40,000 inhabi- tants. GUAYAQUIL, a province of the Equator, containing about 90,000 inhabitants. G/t/u/a- quil, the capital, on the west side of Guayaquil river, has an excellent harbor. GUELPHS, the name of a family, one of two opposite factions that divided Italy about the year 1255. the partisans of papal and imperial power. The family of the Uberti were at the head of the Florentine Ghibellines, the other faction ; and the people, or rather, the republi- can party, resented their contumacy so much, that they ran to arms, broke into the palace of the Uberti. and, having killed some, forced all the Ghibellines to take refuge; in Sienna, where they were hospitably received, in direct viola- tion of a treaty between the Florentines and Siennese. GUESCLIN,Bertranddu, constable of France, and one of her most renowned generals, born in 1314, at the castle of Motte Broon ; near Ren- nes. At the age of seventeen years, he won a prize in a tournament. After the battle of Poic- tiers, and the losses of Charles, du Guesclin came forward, and redeemed the honor of hia country, wresting from the hands of the Eng- lish almost all their possessions. He died, in the midst of triumph, before Chateau-neuf-de-Rau- don, July 13, 1380. He had nothing pleasing or noble in his person, and owed his honors wholly to his own exertions. GUIANA, a country of South America, for- merly of vast extent. At present what was formerly Spanish Guiana, belongs to Venezuela, and Portuguese Guiana, to Brazil. The remaiu- ing portions are divided between the English, Dutch, and French. The animals and birds of Guiana are numerous, as are its vegetable pro- ductions. Parts of Guiana are yet wild and imperfectly known, and in its interior the El Dorado of the Spaniards was formerly believed to exist. GUILFORD, a town and sea-port of New Haven county, Connecticut, on Long Island Sound, containing 52,344 inhabitants. It has two harbors, and enjoys considerable trade. The Indian name of the place was Mtnunkatuck. GUILLOTIN, Joseph Ignatius, a French physician, born in 1738, was the inventor of the instrument for inflicting capital punishment, which bears his name. GUINEA. A large portion of the western coast of Africa bears this name. But its limits cannot be exactly defined. It is commonly divied into the Grain Coast, the Ivory Coast, the Gold Coast, and Slave Coast. GUISE ; a town and dukedom of France, in Picardy, besieged by the Spaniards in 1528. The dukes of "Guise were very important per- sonages in all the affairs of France, from the reign of Francis I, to that of Henry IV. This family was a branch of the house of Lorraine, promoted, by Francis I, in 1528, from counts of Guise, to dukes. The first thus raised was Claude, the son of Rene II. He had eight sons, among whom were Francis, duke of Guise, Clau- dius, duke of Aumale, and Rene, marquis of El- bceuf. Francis gallantly defended Metz against Charles V, and took Calais from the English. He was assassinated in 1516. He was the father of Henry, duke of Guise, and Charles, duke of Maine, &c. Henry placing himself at the head of the Holy League, was slain in the States of Blois, by the order of his prince, in 1588 CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. GUN 270 GUS Charles, the other brother, took up arms against Henry IV, till at last, in 1594, he was forced to submit to that victorious prince. Charles, the son of Henry, succeeded his father in the duke- dom, and was the father of Henry II, who was chosen king of Naples. GUNPOWDER PLOT, a conspiracy formed in the beginning of James I, of England, for the re-establishment of popery, which, were it not a fact well known to all the world, could scarcely be credited by posterity. The Roman Catho- lics had expected great favor and indulgence from Jarnes, both because he was a descendant of Mary, a rigid Catholic, and because he had shown some favor to that religion in his youth ; but they soon discovered their mistake, and were at once surprised and enraged to find James, on all occasions, express his resolution of strictly executing the laws enacted against them, and of persevering in the policy of his predecessor. This declaration determined them to destroy the king and parliament at a blow. They therefore stored in the vaults under the parliament-house, thirty-six barrels of gunpow- der, purchased in Holland, and covered them with coals and fagots. The meaning of a warning but ambiguous letter, received by lord Monteagle was first penetrated by the king. The care of searching the vaults devolved upon the earl of Suffolk, lord Chamberlain, who pur- posely delayed the search until the day before the meeting of parliament, Nov. 5. 1605. He remarked the great piles of fagots, which lay in the vault under the house of peers, and seized a man preparing for the terrible enter- prise, dressed in a cloak and boots, with a dark lantern in his hand. This was one Guy Fawkes, who had just disposed every part of the train for taking fire the next morning; the matches and other combustibles being found in his pock- ets. The whole of the design was now discov- ered ; but the atrocity of his guilt, and the des- pair of pardon, inspiring him with resolution, he told the officers of justice with an undaunted air, that had he blown them and himself up together, he had been happy. Before the coun- cil he displayed the same intrepid firmness, mixed even with scorn and disdain, refusing to discover his associates, and showing no concern but for the failure of his enterprise. But his bold spirit was at length subdued ; after having been confined to the tower for two or three days, on the nick being shown him, his courage failed him, and he made a full discovery of his accom- plices, to the number of eighty, who all suffered punishment. GUSTAVUS I, king of Sweden, commonly called Gystavvs Fasa, was imprisoned when Christian II , of Denmark, sought to enslave his country. Having escaped from prison in 1519, he arrived at Lubeck. after meeting with vari- ous difficulties. Here he was countenanced by the Senate, but failing of accomplishing his object, he was proscribed by the tyrant, and fled to Dalecarlia, where he roused the miners to revenge the wrongs of their suffering country. The young hero found the peasants prepared to receive him with open arms, and to swear to revenge the massacre at Stockholm with the last drop of their blood. The brave Dalecarlians flocked to the standard of Gustavus, who was, from this moment, irresistible. After the burn- ing of the Danish fleet, the diet assembled. Gus- tavus was proclaimed king of Sweden and of the two Gothlands, in 15'J3, and he soon suc- ceeded in establishing the doctrines of Luther in his dominions. In 1531, Christian made preparations for re- covering his throne, but his vast armament was defeated with great slaughter. In 1 54'^, Gus- tavus prevailed on the stales to render the crown hereditary in his own family. This valiant, wise, and virtuous hero, the true deliverer of his countrv, died in 150(1, at the age of 70. GUSTAVUS II, Adolphus, king of Sweden, succeeded Charles ' IX, in 1 Gil, at the age of eighteen. Gustavus having plnced the Chan- cellor Oxenstiorn at the head of the administra- tion of civil aft'airs, took charge himself of the martial operations, and, in I(jl3. prosecuted the war against Denmark with such vigor and suc- cess, that, through the mediation of Great Brit- ain and Holland, an advantageous peace was procured, by which the Danish monarch re- nounced all pretensions to the throne. He was equally successful with the Russians, who ceded to him the fine province of Livonia, and part of the province of IS'ovogorod. His hostilities, however, with his cousin Sigismund, were of longer duration, and were productive of those glorious events which procured him a conspi- cuous rank among the most distinguished war- riors of his time. The king of Poland could not forget the Swedish crown of which he had been deprived by the impolitic conduct of his f;ither and himself, and formed a plot for seiz- ing on Gustavus, who, however, avoided the snare. The Swedish rnonarch. having prepared a numerous fieri, set ^ail, and laid siege to Riga, in I (521 . Gustavus proved victorious, but allow- ed the besieged to capitulate on honorable terms. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. GW 271 HAL During a series of years he was engaged in constant warfare, which afforded him opportu- nities of training the Swedes, and forming those intrepid commanders and formidable battalions, which long kept Europe in alarm. - At length, in 1629. Gustavus gloriously terminated the war with Poland, and obtained large cessions of ter- ritory. He did not, however, long enjoy the fruits of his victories in peace. The resentment whicli he felt against the emperor, and his am- bition to curb the power of the house of Aus- tria, determined him to march an army of sixty thousand men into Germany, in 1630. He re- duced Frankfort on the Oder, and various other places, and compelled the elector of Braden- burgh to unite his troops with the Swedish battalions. He then invaded Saxony. In 1631, the imperialists awaited Gustavus at Leipzig, with an army of 40,000 men. The Swedish monarch led his troops to the attack, and, after an obstinate conflict, obtained a decisive victory. He then penetrated into Bavaria, and levied contributions on the opulent districts of Ger- many. The battle of Lutzen ensued, in 1633, on the fate of which contest, that of Europe appeared to depend. The Swedish infantry performed prodigies of valor, broke the line of the imperialists, and seized their cannon. Vic- tory had already declared for the Swedes, when Gustavus was found stretched among the slain. His death plunged Sweden into the greatest affliction, but his triumphant bands for a time supported her military reputation. GUSTAVUS 1 1 1, king of Sweden, the eldest son of Adolphus Frederic, duke of Holstein- Gottorp, was born in 174b', and succeeded to the throne on his father's death. February 12th, 1771. The country, which was convulsed throughout, was tranquillized by the prud.ent measures of Gustavus, who was wise, firm, and accomplished, although fond of pleasure, and ambitious. He determined to take part ag.iinst the French revolutionists, and thereby gave very general dissatisfaction. A conspiracy "was formed against him ; the most prominent mem- bers being the counts Horn, Ribbing, and An- karstrcem. and he was shot by the latter at a masquerade at Stockholm, March 15, 1792. GWINNETT, Burton, an Englishman, born in 1732, emigrated to Charleston (S.C.), in 1770, and was one of the signers of the Decla- ration of Independence. He settled in Geor- gia, where he took an active share in the affairs of the revolution ; and was subsequently chosen a member of the convention assembled for the purpose of framing a state constitution. He died of wounds received in a duel with General Mclntosh, May 27, 1777, in the 45th year of his age. H. HAARLEM or Haerlem, a large city of the Netherlands, on the river Spaaren, about three miles from the sea. It contains many fine pub- lic edifices, and some scientific institutions. It is a thriving place, and has 22,000 inhabitants. HABAKKUK, a Jewish prophet, who flour- ished about 600, B. C. H./EMUS, the ancient name of the range of mountains in Turkey, now called the llalkan. HA GAR, "an Egyptian slave of Abraham, and the mother of Ishmael. (For her history, vide Grncsis.) HAINAUT, or Hainault, a province of the Netherlands, containing 574,800 inhabitants, and 1683 square miles. Its soil is fruitful, and its minerals valuable and abundant. HALE, Nathan, a Captain in the American revolutionary army, born in Coventry, Con- necticut, and graduated at Yale College in 1773. After the retreat from Long Island, he exam- ined the British camp in disguise, but was ap- prehended, tried, condemned, and executed with circumstances of peculiar barbarity. (For an account of his last moments, see article An- dre.) HALICARNASSUS, the capital of Caria, in Asia Minor, now called Bodrnn, or Budroii. It was here that queen Artemisia erected the famous Mausoleum to the memory of her de- ceased husband Mausolus. HALIFAX, the capital city of Nova Scotia, on Chebucto Bay. Its fine harbor is one of the best in America. Population 16,000. It was first settled by an English colony, in 1749. HALL, Lyinan. one of the signers of the Declaration of Independence, was born in Con- necticut, in 1731, and studied medicine. He removed, however, to Georgia, where he prac- tised his profession until the breaking out of the revolution induced him to devote his property and person to the service of his country, and, in 1775, he was chosen a delegate to the gen- ral Congress, then assembled in Philadelphia. In 1762, he was chosen governor of the State of Georgia, but died in retirement in the 60th year of ins age. HALLE, a Prussian city, in the province of Saxony, on the right bank of the Saale, contain- ing 23,873 inhabitants. Its university ranks deservedly very high. It was the scene of an CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. HAM 272 HAN obstinate conflict, on the 17th of October, 1SC6, three days after the battle of Jena. HALLO WELL, a post-town in Kenncbec county, Maine, situated forty-five miles from the mouth of the river Kennebec, 54 miles N. N. E. of Portland. It is a flourishing place, and contained, in 1840, 4,625 inhabitants. HAMBURG, a free city of Germany, situ- ated on the Elbe, about 80 miles from its mouth, containing 122,000 inhabitants. It was founded in the reign of Charlemagne, and was originally a fort called Hammenburg. In 1618, it was admitted into the number of imperial towns, subject to the counts of Holstein. In 1768, however, the subjection was annulled, and Hamburg was confirmed into an independent city. In 1807, it was taken possession of by a large French garrison, and Bonaparte seized a part of its public funds. In 1810, it was incor- porated into the French empire ; and in 1813, a memorable but unsuccessful effort was made to shake off the French yoke. A contribution of $9,000,000 was then levied upon it, and the most positive orders were given to defend it, at whatever sacrifice, against the allies. This led to incalculable distress, to the destruction of the houses on the ramparts, to the seizure of con- siderable merchandise ; and, finally, of the bank funds by Davoust. At last, the city was evac- uated in May, 1814, and part of the "bank funds have been restored by the Bourbons. HAMILTON, Elizabeth, a lady of fine liter- ary talent, born at Belfast, in Ireland. July 25, 1758, died July 23, 1816. During a residence in Scotland, she acquired that knowledge of the national peculiarities of the Scotch, which she has so happily displayed in her Cottagers of Glenburnie. She published several other works, principal! v on the subject of education. HAMILTON, Alexander, was born in the island of Nevis, in 1757. At the age of sixteen, he entered Columbia college. New York, in which institution he greatly distinguished him- self. At the age of seventeen, he published political essays in favor of the colonial cause, so powerful and brilliant, that they were at first attributed to Mr. Jay, then in the prime of life. At nineteen, eager to peril his life in the cause of his beloved country, Hamilton entered the army ; he soon rose to the rank of captain of artillery, and Washington appointed him his aid-de-camp with the rank of lieutenant-colonel, when lie was but twenty years of age. At the siege of Yorktown, he was in the hottest of the fire, and headed an assault which carried one of the enemies outworks. After the war, he commenced the study of the law in New York, and was speedily admitted to practice. In 1783, he was chosen member of Congress, and distinguished himself by his ability, unwearied industry, and patriotism. After having been chosen to a seat in the Legislature of New York, he became a member of the convention, which met at Philadelphia for the purpose of framing the federal constitution. The essays which he published under the title of the Federalist, con- tributed more than any thing else to render the constitution popular. "As secretary of the trea- sury, to which office he was appointed in 1789, he gained the reputation of one of the greatest financiers of the age In 1705, he retired into private life, but in 17H8, as inspector general, he organi/ed the army intended to lepel the threatened invasion of the French, and in 1799, on the death of Washington, he .succeeded to the chief command. On June llth, 1804, inconsequence of a dis- pute between Colonel Burr and General Ham- ilton, the parties met at Hoboken, and Hamil- ton was killed by the first shot, standing on the fatal spot where his eldest son had recently been killed in a similar rencounter. HAMPDEN, or Hamden, John, a celebrated English patriot, was born in London, in 1594. He obtained a seat in the second parliament of Charles I, and in the year 1636, his resistance to the payment of the tax, called ship money, drew upon him the eyes of all men, and he be- came the champion of the disaffected. He was one of the first to take up arms against the king ; and it is not a little remarkable, that he fell in the very same field where he mustered the militia, near Brill, in Buckinghamshire. June 18. 1643. Lord Clarendon's character of him is that which Sallust gave of Catiline : " He had a head to contrive, a tongue to persuade, and a hand to execute any mischief." But this opi- nion is that of a firm supporter of legitimate abuses, for Hampden appeared to have been in- fluenced throughout his career by purely patri- otic principles. HANAU. a province .'>'>. Among its in- stitutions is a Deaf and Dumb Asylum. HASTINGS, a borough and market town of HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. HAW 275 HEB England, with 8,000 inhabitants, memorable for Massachusetts, in 1724. was graduated at Yale the battle fought in its vicinity, which gave the College, and then practised law. He was one British crown to William the Conqueror. of the ;>. blest advocates of American liberty, and HASTINGS, Warren, was born in 1733, rejected every offer made to induce him to de- at or near Dayiesford, in Worcestershire, und sert his country. Ho was elected to the legis- was sent to India, as a writer in the company's lature in 1764, but retired in 177ti, although he service in 1750. On his arrival in the East.'he still continued to inspire his countrymen by his applied himself with diligence to the duties of eloquence. He died March 10, 1788. his station, and at his leisure studied the ori- HAYNE, Isaac, a native of South Carolina, ental languages. After fourteen years residence distinguished himself by his services during the in Bengal, he returned to England ; but in 17G9 he went out as second in council at Madras, revolution. After the capture of Charleston, he took an oath of allegiance to Great Britain, with where he remained about two years, and then the express stipulation that he should not bear removed to the presidency of Calcutta. As governor-general, he was guilty of great oppres- arms against his 'country. When in violation _ of British promises, he was summoned to join sion, and~charges were brought against him in the British standard, he refused, and was in parliament, supported by such men as Sheri- consequence condemned by a court of inquiry, dan, Burke, and Fox. Hastings returned to and hanged, on the 4th of August, 17SI. England in 178b',and an impeachment followed. HA YTL (See Domingo, St.) His trial lasted nine years, and having been ac- quitted he retired from public life, amply com- pensated in a pecuniary view for the losses he had sustained. He died Aug. 22, 1818. HA YTL HEBREWS. Abraham first received the name of Hebrew from the Canaanites, among whom he dwelt. The derivation of the word is uncertain. Its signification before the time if HAVANA, or Havannah, the capital of Cuba, Jacob, or Israel, is uncertain, but it appears to and of the province and government of the have been applied afterward exclusively to the same name, is situated on the northern coast posterity of Jacob, and to have been synony- of the isl.ind, at the mouth of the river Lagira. nious with Isiaelites. After the Babylonish Population, composed of whites, rnulattoes, and captivity the appellation was changed to Jews, negroes. 112,023. The streets of the city are Their history begins, of course, with Abraham. dirty, but the strongly fortified harbor is one of the finest in the world. The public edifices of the city, particularly the Catholic churches, are very splendid The commerce of Havana is extensive and increasing. After the call of Abraham, he went at first to Canaan, which God had promised to his pos- terity, taking with him Sarah his wife, and Lot the son of his brother, and here led a wander- It was founded ing life removing in search of pasture with his pointed to the command of the Wolf, and in 1744 distinguished himself in the action of Tou- lon. In 1747, he was made admiral of the white, 1511, by Diego Velasquez, and has been flocks, from place to place, and dwelling with twice taken by the English, but was restored his familv, in tents. By the bounty of the to Spain, in 17(33. The bones of Columbus Lord, his'wealth increased, and he became rich repose in the cathedral of Havana. in flocks, in gold and in silver. He treated the HAWKE, Edward, lord, a gallant English chiefs who sought alliance with him on a foot- adrniral, the son of a barrister, was born in ing of equality. We have already spoken of 1713, and entered the naval service as a mid- the principal events of Abraham's life under shipman at the age of 12. In 1734, he was ap- the proper head ; and it is needless to recap- itulate them. Under Isaac and Jacob, the He- brews still formed a great nomadic family, without changing their habits and manners. and by the capture of a number of vessels of Jacob had twelve sons, from whom sprang the a French squadron, procured his promotion to twelve tribes of the Hebrew people. These the blue. In 1755 he was appointed vice-admi- were Reuben, Simeon, Levi, Dan. Judah, Nap- ral of the white. November 2i), 1759, he gained thali, Gad, Asher. Issachar, Zebulon, Joseph, a great victory over the French fleet, commanded and Benjamin. Joseph, having been sold to by Conflans in Quiberon bay, though it was a some merchants by his jealous brethren, was lee shore, and the sea ran high in the midst of a taken to Egypt, and rose to a high rank at the storm. He was raised to the peerage in 177ti a court of Pharaoh. This led to the emigration few years after he hid been appointed first lord of his father's family to E^ypt, about 1800 B. C. of the admiralty. He d;ed Oct. 14, 1781. During the life-time of Joseph, the Hebrews HAWLEY, Joseph, born at Northampton, were well treated, but after his death, a tvranni- 24 CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. HEB 276 HEB cal king filled the throne, and the persecutions th?y endured threatened to annihilate the na- tion. But God raised 'up a deliverer in the per- son of Moses, and the children of Israel having Jeft the land of Egypt, were conducted ever the bed of the Red Sea, and afterwards were provi- dentially preserved in the desert. When ar- rived at Mount Sinai, the Lord promulgated his lawa from the summit of that awful moun- tain. Notwithstanding the blessings which had been heaped upon them, the Hebrews murmur- ed, and became idolatrous, and were in conse- quence punished for their sins. The various' nations inimical to the Hebrews were repulsed with loss. Moses having died on Mount Nebo. before the entrance into 'the promised land, his place was filled by the warlike Joshua. The waters retired before the bearers of the ark. and the people crossed the Jordan in safety. The walls of the city of Jericho were destroyed by the Lord, and the inhabitants slain by the Isra- elites. The period of Judges abounded in he- roic exploits of individual valor, among which those of Samson are the most celebiated. At length, about 1100 B. C. the monarchy was established, Saul being the first king. Saul achieved some brilliant victories, but as he be- came disregardful of the counsels of the prophet Samuel, the latter privately anointed David, the son of Jesse, a valorous youth, whose fame eclipsed that of Saul. The rei^n of David ex- tended from 1055 to 1015. It was rendered bril- liant by victories over the Jebusites. Philistines. Amalekites, Idumceans, Moabites, Ammonites, and Zoba, but unhappy by the domestic misfor- tunes and crimes which imbittered the heart of king David. Under Solomon, his son, whose reign extended from 1015 to !J75, the nation at- tained a high degree of splendor and conse- quence, while his stern strength and pure integ- rity, sunk under the corrupting influence of wealth and luxury. Towards the latter part of his reign, Solomon, enervated by the pleasures of his seraglio, and enthralled by female favorites, permitted the worship of false gods, and forsook the Deity to whom he owed his glory. The re- volt of the ten tribes under Jerr.boarn, took place, while Rehoboam succeeded to the gov- ernment of two, Judah and Benjamin. The ten tribes formed the kingdom of Israel, the two that of Judah. Sichem, at first, and afterward Samaria , was the capital of Israel, and Jerusa- lem that of Judah. The contest between the two states was furious, and not unequal. In general the kingdom of Judah preserved the worship of the true God, while that of Israel was idolatrous. The kingdom of Israel existed 253 years after the separation, under 1!) kings, whose authority was gained and lost by violent revolutions. Shalmaneser, king of "Assyria, ended the kingdom, and carried the people cap- tive into Asia~B. C. 722. The kingdom of Judah existed under 20 kings of the house of David, until 588 B. C., when Nebuchadnezzar took Jerusalem, and carried away the inhabitants captive. During the cap- tivity flourished Daniel, Jeremiah, and other prophets, who were commissioned by God to inform the Hebrew people of the fate which awaited them. Fiom the time of the captivity they are more often known under the name of JEWS, but we continue their history here that it may be more intelligible. Their captivity was terminated by Cyrus, king of Persia, who published an edict permitting all the Jews to return !o their country, and to rebuild the tem- ple of Jerusalem. They placed the foundations of the temple ; but the Samaritans, the invete- rate enemies of the Jews, procured a suspension of their operations. Nevertheless Darius, in- formed of the edict of Cyrus, permitted the com- pletion of the temple. The Jews labored with snr-h spirit., that, four years after, the walls of Jerusalem were rebuilt, and their worship re- established JNeheiniali, beinrr choi-en governor of Judea, neglected no exertions to maintain the public observance of the laws of God. Es- ther, a Jewish maiden, having found favor in the eyes of Ahasuerus, king of Persia, this monarch confirmed the immunities of the Jews, preserved them from massacre, and severely punished their implacable enemies. In the time of the high-priest Onias, Selen- cns, king of Syria, sent Heliodorus to seize all the gold'of the. temple. He came to Jerusalem and entered the temple, intending to obey the royal command. It was in vain that the high- pr'iest represented to him that the treasures were deposites, destined for the support of thf fatherless and widows. Heliodorus turned a deaf ear to his remonstrances, and was already on the threshold of the treasury, when he be- held a white horse, richly caparisoned, whose rider wore a terrible aspect, with armor of gold. At the same time Ileliodorus was attacked by two young men of surpassing beauty, and would Irive ! ceii slain, but for the interposition of Onias. \vlio implored the pardon of the Al- inighty, and offered up a sacrifice to appease his wrath. Antiochus Epiphanes, or the Illustrious, the successor of Seleucus, an impious prince, de- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL HEB 277 HEL prived Onias of the sacerdotal office, and sold it to the n.ghestbidder. He entered Jerusalem with a powerful army, arid killed or enslaved e!0,000 men. He had the boldness to enter the temple, and to bear away the altar and golden table, the golden candlestick, the precious vessels, and all the money that the treasury contained, and even undertook to abolish the religion of the Jews, forbidding them, on pain of death, to maintain their worship, and erecting the statue of Jupiter Olympius on the altar of the temple. The Jews were forced to attend the profane sacrifices, and compelled to eat the flesh of animals prohibited by their law. Under this persecution many of the Jews yielded, but there were many who re- mained firm, and among others, Eleazer and the mother of the Maccabees, with her seven children. Eleazer, 90 years of age, would neither con- form to the usages of the idolaters, nor feign to do so. The conduct of the mother of the Mac- cabees was heroic and firm. The mother and her children were seized, and Antiochus wished to compel them to eat the flesh of swine, but they refused. Six of the children were then killed in succession, but without effecting any change in the resolution of the remainder. The king hoping to succeed with the youngest, per- sonally exhorted him to abandon the laws of his fathers, swearing to render him wealthy and happy, and make him one of his favorites ; but he failed to make the slightest impression. The child and his mother were cruelly put to death. Judas Maccabasus rendered his name formidable to the enemies of the Jews, for, having collect- ed an army of six thousand men, he performed prodigies of valor. He conquered and killed Apollonius, governor of Samaria, and the gen- eral of the Syrian army. Every where victory crowned his efforts, but the valiant leader fell in battle, after slaying many of his enemies. Jona- than and Simeon, his brothers, emulated his glory. The Jews refused to recognise Jesus Christ, who was born in the reign of Herod, king of the Jews, as the Messiah. Christ fore- told the destruction of Jerusalem, which was taken by Titus, A. D. 70, after a siege of un- parallele'd .horror. This was the signal of the complete dispersion of the Jews, in fulfillment of the divine warning. The Weimar Geographical Ephemerides gives the following estimate of the numbers of the Jews, in all parts of the world. EUROPE : in Russiaand Poland, 658,809; Austria. 453,524 ; European Turkey, 321 ,000 ;' States of the Ger- man Confederation, 13d,000 ; Prussia, 134,000; Netherlands, 80,000, France, 60,000; Italy, 3(5,000 ; Great Britain. 12,000; Cracow, 7,300; Ionian Isles, 7,000 ; Denmark, 6,000 ; Switzer- land, 1,970; Sweden, 450: total number of Jews in Europe, 1,918,053. ASIA : Asiatic Turkey, 300,000; Arabia, 200,000 ; Hindustan, 100.000; China, 60.000; Turkestan, 40,000; province of Iran, 35,000 ; Russia in Asia, 3,000 ; total, 738,000. AFRICA : Morocco and Fez, 300,000; Tunis, 130,000; Algiers, 30,000; Abyssinia, 20,000; Tripoli, 12,000; Egypt, 12,000; total, 504000. AMERICA: North America, 5,000 ; Netherlandish Colonies, 500 ; Demerara and Essequibo, 200; total, 5,700. New Holland, 50. Grand total, 3,218,000. HEBRIDES, or Western Islands.; a cluster of islands, on the western coast of Scotland, iu the Atlantic ocean, containing 70,000 inhabit- ants. The J\'erc Hebrides are a group of islands in the South Pacific ocean, discovered by Qui- ros in 1506. The}' are extremely fertile. HECTOR, the "brave son of Priam, king of Troy, and Hecuba, his wife, killed by Achilles. HECUBA, daughter of Dymas, king of Thrace, and second wife of Priam. She sur- vived the fall of Troy but a short time, and was stoned to death by the Greeks, who were exas- perated at her bitter reproaches. HEGIRA, the flight of Mohammed, from Mecca to Medina, from which era the Moham- medans begin their computation of time. They fix it on the 16th of July, A. D. 622. HELENA, the beautiful daughter of Leda, wife of Tvndarus, as it is fabled, by Jupiter, who introduced himself to her notice, in the form of a swan. She married Menelaus, whom she forsook for Paris, son of Priam, who bore her to Troy, and thus kindled the flame of war between the Greeks and Trojans. She was re- ceived by Menelaus after the fall of Troy, but on his death, was murdered by Polyxo of Ar- gos, the widow of one of the warriors killed be- fore Troy. HELENA, St. a rocky island in the Atlan- tic, on the coast of Southern Africa, 1200 miles from any land. It is 10 miles long, and 63 broad, and belongs to the English. It was the residence of the captive Napoleon from Novem- ber, 1815 to May 5, 1821 , the day of his death. Here his body is'buried, and by his side lies the sword he wore upon the field of Austerlitz. HELIOGABALUS, Marcus Aurelius Anto- ninus, a Roman emperor, son of Varius Marcel- lus, called Heliogabalus, from having been a rriest of the Sun in Phmnicia. At the age of 4, he was invested with the purple on the death CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. HEN 278 HEN of Macrmus. but his cruelty and licentiousness were such, that his subjects rose agninst him, ;tnd his head was severed from his body. March JO, A. D.222, in the eighteenth year of his age, after a reign of 3 years and 9 months. He bur- thened his subjects with the most oppressive taxes, his halls were covered with carpets of gold and silver tissue, and his mats were made with the down of hares, and the soft feathers found under the wings of partridges. He often invited the lowest of the people to share his banquets, and made them sit down on large bellows full of wind, which, by suddenly empty- ing themselves, threw the guests on the ground, and left them a prey to wild beasts. He tied some of his. favorites to a large wheel, and was particularly delighted to see them whirled round like Ixion, and alternately suspended in the air, ad plunged beneath the water. HELIOPOLIS, (city of the sun), a large and ancient city of Egypt, a little above Memphis, the stupendous remains of which yet excite at- tention. Near here a fierce battle was fought between the Turks and French, March 20, IbOO. HELLE, in fable, a daughter of Athamas, and Nephese, who, to escape from the persecu- tion of her step-mother Ino, trusted herself to the back of a golden ram from which she fell and was drowned in that part of the sea, called the Hellespont, now the Dardanelles. HELOISE, Eloise, or Louisa, the mistress and wife of Abelard, born in Paris 1101. (See Melard.) HENGIST, the first Saxon king of Kent, about the end of the 5th century. Tie was in- vited to the assistance of the Britons against the Scots and Picts, and received from the hands of Vortigern the whole of Kent, for which he gave his daughter in marriage. However, he leagued with the enemies of Britain, and committed great ravages beyond the limits of his territory. Ho died in the year 488. HENRY I, "king of France, crowned at Rheims in 1027. His mother, Constance, en- deavored to set his younger brother, Robert, upon the throne ; but, with the assistance of Robert II, duke of Normandy, Henry defeated the queen's army, and obliged his brother to content himself with the dukedom of Burgun- dy. In his time Pope Leo IX held a council at Rheims in France, and the Normans headed by Robert Guicard, took Naples and Sicilv from 1 he .Saracens. He died, Aug. 4. Kilil). HENRY IV, king of France, called tho Great, born in 1553, was son of Anthony of Bourbon, duke of Vendome. After the massa- cre of St. Bartholomew, lie signalized himself against the leaguers, and on the death of Hen- ry III, succeeded to the throne, taking the title of king of France arid Navarre. His enemies endeavored in vain to make Cardinal do Bour- bon kiriij, under the title of Charles X. In. 1589, with 4.000 men, he defeated 30,01)0 men commanded by the duke of Mayenne, and, in 1599, with 1,200 men, he routed a force of 1(!,000. He also signalized himself in several other battles, and besieged Paris, which held out against him at the instigation of the Span- iards. He was afterwards crowned at Char- tres. He defeated 18,000 Spaniards in Bur- gundy, 1594, with 1500 men, took Amiens, and reduced the leaguers whom he generously par- doned. The duke de Biron's execution, in 1602, was the only example of just severity in his reign ; and France had enjoyed peace forlG years, when Ravaillac, with a knife, stabbed the king 'in his coach at Paris, May 14, 1C10, the day after the queen's coronation. HENRY I, emperor of Germany, son of Otho, duke of Saxony, succeeded Conrad, his brother-in-law, in 919. He reduced Arnold, duke of Bavaria, and vanquished the Hungari- ans, Bohemians, Scliivonians, and Danes. He took the kingdom of Lorraine from Charles the Simple, defeated the Hungarians a second time, and killed 8,000 of their number. He died of an apoplexy in 936. HENRY III, of Franconia, snrnamed the Black, succeeded Conrad II, in 1033. He de- feated the Bohemians, that denied him tribute, in his second campaign, and restored Peter to the throne of Hungary, whence his subjects had driven him in 1043, leduced the petty princes of Italy, and made war on the Hungarians. He died at Bothfeld in Saxony, in 1056. HENRY I, of England, surnamed Beauclerc, was born in 1008, and succeeded his brother, William Rufus, in 1100. He married Matilda, daughter of Malcolm, king of Scots, in the same year. Soon after this, his brother Robert re- turned i'rorn abroad, and laid claim to the crown of England; but in 1105, Henry invaded Nor- mandy with a strong army ; took some of the principal towns ; and a battle ensuing. Robert was overthrown, taken prisoner, and sent to England. In 1109, he betrothed his daughter Maude to the emperor of Germany. In 1117 he was challenged by Louis of France, and he lost his queen. 'May 1. 1 119. In 1120, lie con- veyed his son to Normandy, to ri'crive the homage of the barons of that duchy ; on his re- turn, the young prince, his sister Maude, and HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. HEN 279 HEN all but one of the ship's company, were drowned, the vessel having been run upon a rock. This affliction shortened the life of Henry, who died Dec. 1, 1135, in theGSlh year of his age, leaving his daughter Matilda heir to all his dominions. HENRY II, king of England, was born in 1133, and having invaded England January 7, 1 153, had homage done him as successor to Ste- phen, in 1154, in which year he also began to reign. In 1170 he had his son Henry crowned king of England. In 1172 he reduced Ireland to subjection. The murder of Thomas a Becket, archbishop of Canterbury, was attributed to Henry, who was compelled to do penance forit. The latter part of his reign was troubled. In 1173 he imprisoned his queen on account of Rosamond, his mistress. He died at Chinon, near Saumur, in the 56th year of his age, and the 35th of his reign, in the course of which he displayed great bravery and wisdom. HENRY III, of England, was born Oct. 1, 1297, and was crowned at Gloucester, Oct. 28, 1216. He married Eleanor, daughter of the count of Provence, Jan. 14, 1236; pledged his crown and jewels for money when he married his daughter Margaret, to the king of Scots, 1242 ; was obliged by his nobles to resign the power of a sovereign, and sell Normandy and Anjou to the French, 1253. In 12u'l, he shut himself up in the tower of London, for fear of his nobles. In 12G4, he engaged in a contest with the nobles, but, after having experienced many reverses, was, owing to the bravery of his son, triumphant in the famous battle of Eves- ham, in which Leicester lost his life. Over- come by the cares of government, and the infir- mities of age. Henrv died at Westminster, Nov. 16,1272. HENRY IV, duke of Hereford, and grand- son of Edward III, was born in 1367 ; married Mary, the daughter of the earl of Hereford, who died in l:i',)4, bell-re he obtained the crown. In 13.37 he fought in personal combat witli the duke of Norfolk, but Richard II stopped the combat, and ordered the combatants to leave the kingdom ; the dtake of Norfolk for life, and Henry for 10 years. The latter returned to England in arms against Richard, in 1399, com- pelled him to abdicate the throne, and was crowned king of England the same year. In 1402 he was defeated by the Welsh, and in 1403, he married Joan of Navarre, widow of the duke of Bretagne. In 1403 the rebellion of the Percies began, but was soon suppressed. Henry died of the apoplexy, in Westminister, March 20, 1413, was buried at Canterbury, and was succeeded by his son. 34* HENRY V. who was born in 1383, and was crowned in 1413. In his youth he was noto- rious for all kinds of debauchery, but reformed his life on receiving the crown. In 1415 he embarked for France, and landed at Harfleur, with an immense army, part of which was de- stroyed by dysentery. The battle of Agincourt succeeded, in which the English gained a splen- did victory. In 141G, Henry pledged his regalia for 20,000/, to push his conquest, and a treaty being concluded, fixed his court at Paris in 1421; but, just as his glory had reached its summit, and both crowns devolved upon him, he died at the age of 34 years. HENRY VI, was born at Windsor, in 1421 ; ascended the throne August 31, 1422, and was proclaimed king of France the same year. Hen- ry V, previous to his death had appointed the duke of Bedford, his eldest brother, to the re- gency of France. In 1 428 the duke commenced the siege of Orleans, the first adverse blow to the English power in France, for it was saved by Joan of Arc (which see). In 1445 Henry married Margaret of Anjou, and was crowned in the same year. In 1446 Jack Cade's insur- rection broke out, and in 1452, the duke of York, who had been appointed to the regency of England by Henry V, inarched to London with an army "of 10,000 men, but retiring into Kent was followed by Henry VI, at the head of a superior force. The king soon after was incapacitated from sickness, and the duke of York was appointed lieutenant and protector of the kingdom. In 1455, however, Henry re- sumed the reins of government, and annulled the protectorship of the duke, who levied an army, though without advancing any pretension to the crown. At length a battle was fought at St. Albans on the 31st of May, when the Yorkists slew about 5,000 of their enemies; Henry fell into the hands of his adversary, and \va; obliged to surrender his authority. After various fluctuations of fortune, the duke appeared at London, and the parliament de- clared in favor of his claim, but decreed that Henry should possess the dignity during his life-time, and that the administration should, in the meanwhile, remain with the duke. Mar- garet, however, spurned this compact, collected a strong army, defeated and slew the duke, and affixed his head, encircled with a paper crown, upon the gates of York. Margaret, after some successes, was finally defeated in the memora- ble battle of Teuton, which ended in the com- plete triumph of the Yorkists, who were, how- ever, shortly to experience a reverse in the bat- tle of Hexham, 1464. Henry reascended his CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. HEN 280 HEN throne, but was finally imprisoned and murder- ed. The young son of Magaret was murdered at Tewkesbury, and the queen, after having bravely defended her husband's cause in twelve battles, dierl in France, in a miserable condition. HENRV VII, descended from John of Gaunt, and nearly allied to Henry VI, was born in 1455. He landed at Milford Haven, Aug. 7, 1-485, and having defeated the usurper Richard III, at the memorable battle of Bosworth, in the same year, was proclaimed king. In 14^(5 he married Elizabeth, daughter of Edward IV. Soon after his marriage he went into the north, where the partisa.ns of Richard were strong-, and making; hostile preparations, but they were quelled. The conspiracy of 1487, headed by Lambert Siennel, an imposter who pretended to be a Plantagenet, was also put down. Henry received, as a compromise for his claim upon the French crown 186,250. besides 25,COO crowns yearly. In 1492 the country was dis- turbed by an imposter named Osbeck, or War- benk. (See Wnrbcck.) The schemes of another imposter, named Wilford, who personated the earl of Warwick, afforded Henry a pretext for arresting the earl, and signing his death-war- rant. Henry died of a consumption in 1509. By his avarice and rapacity, he is said, at one period, to have amassed 1.800.000. HENRY VIII, was born in 1491. and suc- ceeded Henry VII in 1509. He placed himself at the head of a formidable army, 50.000 strong. and invaded France, but after an ostentatious and ineffectual campaign, concluded a truce. By the advice of Cardinal Wolsey, in whom he chiefly confided, he agreed to an interview with Francis I of France. This expensive congress was held near Calais, within the English pale, in compliment to Henry for crossing the sea. In the same year a costly tournament was held in Picardy by the two sovereigns. By tu0b means all the immense treasures of the late king were quite exhausted, and Henry relied on Wolsey alone for replenishing his r.ofiers. In 1521 Henry received the title of defender of the Faith. In 1527, Henry, who had been 18 years mar- ried to Catharine of Arragon. the widow of his brother, conceived a violent passion for the beautiful Anna Bulion, one of the queen's maids of honor, and immediately set about procuring :i divorce from his wile. But both the pope and Cardinal Wolsey were unwilling to sanction this unjustifiable scheme. Wolsey was therefore forced to give place to Thomas Cranmer, and, after being arrested, died at Leicester Abbey, not without suspicion of having been poisoned. Henry now privately, married Anna Bullen, whom he had created marchioness of Pembroke. As the monks had shown the greatest resist- ance to his wishes, he resolved at once to de- prive them of their power. Commissioners sent to examine into the state of convents and monasteries, found the religious tainted with the worst of crimes, and a geneial horror was excited in the nation. In ]5'M. a new visitation was appointed, and fresh crimes were brought to light. In less than two years from this ex- posure, Henry became possessed of all the mo- nastic revenues. In 153(>, Henry caused his innocent queen, Anna Bullen, to be put to death, and en tlu: following day he married Jane Seymour. The most cruel religious persecutions now ensued, and among the deaths of those obnoxious to the king, was "that of Sir Thomas More. Jane Sey- mour having died in child-bed. Henry contracted a marriage with Anne of Cloves. He hated her, however, from the moment he saw her ; and resolved to get rid of her and his prime- minister Cromwell together. Cromwell was accordingly arrested for'high-treason : and with- out even being heard in his own defence, was condemned and suffered on the scaffold. Anno of Cleves being divorced. Henry married Cath- arine Howard, in August l.~40", \\h<> living ac- cused of infidelity, was beheaded on Tower-hill, with the lady Rcchford. February 12, 1C-42. In 1. ">.;:', Henry married his sixth "and last wife, Catharine Parr. Though his health was declin- ing apace, yet his implacable cruelties were not less frequent. The duke of Norfolk, and his son. th'e earl of Surrey, were the last who felt the effects of thf tyrant's groundless suspicions. The latter was arrested, tried, and condemned for high-treason, notwithstanding his eloquent and spirited defence* and the .eistcnce was soon after executed upon him on Tower-hill. The parliataentmeeliDg on tin- I-Hh day of January, 1 .'-!(). a bill of attainder was iound against, the duke of Norfolk. The dtalh-warrant was made out. and immediately sent to the lieutenant of the tower. T!i (hike prepared for denth. hut was saved by the drill) of Henry. Jan. 2,^, 1547, at the ajre of 5(5. aftVr a reign of nearly IW vears. HllNllY. Patrick, son of John Henry, was born in the colony nf Virginia, May 29, 1736. Passionately addicted to field sports. Mid averse to toil of any kind, even the elements of educa- tion were mastered by him with distaste, al- though he had a strong mind, and a retentive memory. At the age of eighteen he married HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. HEN 281 HER Miss Skelton, and settled on a farm, but agri- cultural as well as mercantile pursuits, in winch he afterwards embarked, possessed no charm for him, and he was unsuccessful. As a final effort, he resolved to attempt the law, and was licensed to practise after six weeks' preparatory study. For several years his practice was lim- ited and the wants of his family extreme, but his prospects were eventually bettered. In 1765 he was elected member of the house of ourgesses, and introduced his celebrated resolu- tions on the stamp act. In the midst of the debate on the occasion, he exclaimed, " Ccesar had his Brutus, Charles the First his Cromwell, and George the Third" ' Treason ! " cried the speaker ; ' Treason, treason!" echoed from every part of the house. Henry faltered not for an instant, but. taking a loftier attitude, and fixing on the speaker an eye of fire, he added " may profit by their example. If this be treason, make the most of it." Henry served his country in various posts, was sent to the congress at Philadelphia, in 1774, took the field, and was elected governor of the commonwealth. In 1791 he retired from public life, and died in 17<)7. To his large family he left wealth and a good name. His eloquence was manly and convincing, and his voice powerful and musical. The following was his language in 1775 :: It is vain, sir, to extenuate the matter. Gentlemen may cry, peace, peace but there is no peace. The war has actually begun. " The next gale, that sweeps from the north, will bring to our ears the clash of resounding arms! Our brethren are already in the field ! Why stand we here idle ? What is it that gen- tlemen wish ? What would they have ? Is life so dear, or peace so sweet, as to be purchased at the price of chains and slavery ? Forbid it, Almighty God. I know not what course others may take, but as for me. give me liberty or give me death!" He took his scat. No murmur of applause was heard. The effect was too deep. After the trance of a moment, several members started from their seats. The cry. " to arms," seemed to quiver on every lip, and gleam from every eye! Richard II. Lee arose and supported Mr. Henry with his usual spirit and elegance. But his melody was lost amidst the agitations of that ocean, which the masterspirit of the storm had lifted up on high. That supernatural voice still sounded in their ears and shivered along their arteries. They heard, in every pause, the cry of liberty or death. They became impatient of speech their souls were on fire for action. HERCULANEVM, a city not far from Na- ples, which was buried in an eruption of Vesu- vius, in the reign of Titus, A. 1). 7i>. It has been excavated and presents a most curious and interesting spectacle. HERCULES, a fabulous Grecian hero, the son of Jupiter and Alemena, the wife of Am- phitryon, king of Thebes. In vain did the jealous Juno send two serpents to kill the young hero in his cradle, he strangled them both, and thus displayed to all the divinity of his origin. He had to "combat for a long time the enmity of Juno, who exacted of him twelve labors, independently of other signal actions which ho performed. 1. He killed the Nemean lion, to deliver the kingdom of Mycene, and wore his skin in the remainder of his exploits. 2. He slew the Lernean hydra, whose heads multipli- ed seven-fold, on being severed. 3. He brought to Eurysthens upon his shoulders the Eryman- thean boar, an animal of a prodigious size. 4. He subdued the golden-horned, and brazen- hoofed stag of Diana. 5. He destroyed with his arrows the foul Stymphalian birds of extra- ordinary size and voracity. 6. He cleansed the Augaean stables. 7. He tamed the furious bull of Crete. 8. He gave Diomodes to be de- voured by his own horses which had been fed on human flesh. 9. He vanquished the Ama- zons, whose queen, Hippolyta, he gave in mar- riage to his i'riend Theseus. 10. He brought the oxen of Geryon king of Spain, to Greece. This was only effected by killing this monarch, formidable for his triple head. 11. Hercules obtained the golden apples of the garden of the Hesperides, by killing the dragon with a hun- dred heads that guarded them. 12. He dragged away Cerebus,the three-headed dog that watch- ed the gate of hell, into which he descended twice, once with his friend. Theseus, and after- wards to seek the queen Alceste, who devoted herself to death for her husband Admetus. The centaur Nessus having insulted Dejani- ra, the wife of Hercules, the hero killed him with an arrow, the barb of which was poisoned with the blood of the Lernean hydra. The centaur, in dying, persuaded Dejanira. to give a tunic dipped in his blood, to her husband, in token of reconciliation. Hercules had no sooner clothed himself in this garment than he perceived that he was poisoned by it. He ac- cordingly, with the help of Philoctetes. built a funeral pile on Mount CEta and expired in the flames. But Jupiter received him in the ranks of the gods, and gave him in marriage Hebe, the beautiful goddess of youth. Hercules is CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. HIE 282 HIL generally represented as a robust man, leaning on his club. On his. shoulders he wears the skin of the Nemean lion, and holds in his hands the Hesperian fruit. HEROD, surnamed the Great, was born in Ascalon, Judea, B. C. 71. He was made king of Judea by means of Anthony, and rendered himself odious by his tyranny, and as he knew that the day of his dea"th would become a day of mirth and festivity, he ordered the most illus- trious of his subjects to be confined and mur- dered the very instant he expired, that every eye in the kingdom might seem to shed tears at the death of Herod. This order was never executed. He died in the 70th year of his age, after a reign of 40 years, which was rendered memorable by the birth of Christ. HESSE-CASSEL, or KURHESSEN, an electorate, member of the Germanic confedera- cy, containing (352,700 inhabitants. The soil is generally fertile, and the annual revenue about 4,500.000 guilders. HEfeSE-DARMSTADT, Grand-duchy of, contains 750,000 inhabitants. The climate is healthy , and great facilities exist for the exten- sion of commerce. HIERO I, a king of Syracuse, after his bro- ther Gelon, rendered himself odious by his ty- ranny in the beginning of his reisrn. He made war ngaiipt Theron. the tyrant of Agiigentum, and took Himera. He obtained three different crowns at the Olympic games, two in horse- races, and one in a chariot-race. The first Olympic ode of Pindar is inscribed to him. and mention is made of his horse Phrenicus, by which he was the winner of the Olympic crown . The ancient races were somewhat different from the modern. At the former, honor alone was the reward of the winner, and no one lost either his character or his money. In the latter part of his reign the conversation ofSimonidos r .Epicharmus, Pindar, &c., softened the roughness of Hiero's manners, and the severity of his government, and tended to ren- der him the patron of learning, genius, and merit. He died after a reign of 18 years, B. C. 467, leaving the crown to his brother Thrasy- bulus, who disgraced it by his tyranny. HIERO II, a descendant of Gelon, reigned about 200 years after the preceding ; was ap- pointed to carry on the war against the Cartha- ginians. He joined his enemies in besieging Messana, which had surrendered to the Romans; but. lie wns beaten by Appius Claudius, tin- Ro- man consul, and obliged to retire to Syracuse, where he was soon blocked up. Seeing all hopes of victory lost, he made peace with the Romans and proved so faithful to his engage- ments, during the fifty-nine years of his reign, that the Romans never had a more firm, or more attached ally. He died in the U4th year of his age, about li'25 years B. C. He was uni- versally regretted, and all the Sicilians showed by their lamentations that they had lost a com- mon father and a friend. He liberally patron- ized the learned, and employed the talents of Archimedes for the good of his country. HILL. Rowland, Rev., son of ir Rowland Hill, was born at Hawkestone. in 177;", and ed- ucated at Eton and Cambridge. He was a Calvinistic methodist. and took Whitfield for his model. His discourses were singular, being sometimes crowded with puns, and stories, while at others, their solemnity was unbroken. Some of his straits are mentioned in his diary. " 17(>7, Jan. 1, preached at Chesterton; we had the honor of a mob no other harm was done than the windows broke." " Thursday in a barn, for the first time, with much comfort. God send, if I am to live, this may not be my last barn. Some gownsmen were theie, but they were not permitted to do more than gnash with their teeth." Mr. Hill used to be circum- spect in receiving recruits. To a person who had a great desiie to preach, and talked about hiding" his talents, he replied that " the closer he. hid them the better." Robert Hall once re- plied to a shoemaker, who expressed a similar reluctance to hide his talents in a napkin, " the smallest pocket-handkerchief you have will do, sir." In his Afield campaigns" he used to go to largo towns on market-davs, and address the assemblage in the market houses. When he heard of a fair or a revel he preached in spite of the violence with which he was assailed, and often with success. His favorite text was, "Come ye out from among them." Harris, one of Whitfie'd's most energetic followers, re- lates of himself, that once on a journey, being tempted to desert his Master's cause, "he said, "Satan. I'll match thee for this," "and so I did." s;iid he, "for I had not ridden far. before I came to a revel, where there was a show of mountebanks, which 1 entered, and just as they were commencing, I jumped into the midst of them ami cried out. let us pray, which so thun- derstruck them, that they listened to me q:iietly, while I preached them a most tremendous ser- mon, that frightened many of them home." At Edinburgh, on the Gallon Hill, Mr. Hill preached to an assemblage of 10,000 people. The old women, as they looked out of their HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. HOL 283 HON doors at the stream of human beings, observing some soldiers amongst them, exclaimed, " Eh, sirs, what will become of us now ? The verra sodgers are ganging to hear the preaching." Mr. Hill died in April, 1833. H1NDOSTAN (See India). H I N G H A M , a flourishing to wn of Plymouth county, Mass., 14 miles S. of Boston. The manufacture of wooden ware is extensive, and the mackerel fishery gives employment to many. Population (in 1830) 3.357. HIPPIAS and HIPPARCHUS, two sons of Pisistratus, king of Athens, whom they suc- ceeded 527 B. C. Hipparchus was slain in a conspiracy 512 B. C., by Harmodius and Aris- togiton, who had devoted themselves to their country. Hippias alone now held the reins of government, but he became odious, and on the siege of Athens by the Lacedaemonians, he sur- rendered the city and retired to Ligaeum, on the Hellespont, 509 B. C. Thus Athens once more recovered its liberty. An attempt was after- wards made to restore Hippias to the govern- ment of Athens. By some authors he" is said to have perished at the battle of Marathon ; but others assert that he died at Lemnos in poverty and distress. HOPE II, Andrew, the Tell of the Tyrol, a heroic Tyrolese, who headed an insurrection of his countrymen on the 10th of April, 1809. His resistance to the French on many occasions, was chivalric, and successful. After he found farther resistance useless, he concealed himself, but was betrayed by a priest, conveyed to Man- tua, and shot, February 20, 1810. He met his fate with firmness, ri.'joicing that he had done his duty. HOHENLINDEN, a village of Bavaria, 18 mil>?s E. of Munich, remarkable for the great defeat which the Austrian army sustained here on the 3d of December, 1800, from the French, under Moreau. HOLLAND, a maritime province of the Netherlands, bounded W. by the German ocean, E. by the Zuyder Zee, and the province of Utrecht, and S. by Zealand. The agricultural wealth of the province is great. The extent of the whole is ubout 2,200 square miles, and the population 820,449. s (For its history, &c., see Netherlands.) HOLLAND, NEW, is the largest island in the world, and was formerly supposed to form part of a vast continent. It is 2,600 miles long, and 2000 miles broad. It was discovered the Dutch in Hi05,but not determined to be island until 1770, when this fact was establis by Captain Cook. The soil is very variable, some portions are extremely fertile, and others uncommonly sterile. Ids now known us Austra- lia ; and is sub-divided into New Holland and New South Wales. HOLSTEIN, a German duchy, bounded N by Sleswick, E. by the Baltic, and duchy of Lauenburg, and S. and W. by the kingdom of Hanover, from which it is separated by the river Elbe. It contains 3,285 square miles, and 3(52,300 inhabitants, mostly Lutherans. Almost the whole of the country'is fruitful. Its early history is obscure. It was conquered by Char- lemagne, formed part of a county under Lo- thaire, and was erected into a duchy, with two other counties in 1777. HOLYOKE, Edward Augustus, M. D. son of the Rev. Edward Holyoke, president of Harvard college, was born Aug. 1 , 1723, in Essex county, Mass. He was graduated at Harvard in 1746, and commenced the practice of medicine at Salem in 1749. He was distinguished in Ilia profession, and published several scientific dis- quisitions. He died March 31 , 1-29, being then over one hundred years of age. HOMER, the most celebrated poet of anti- quity, was, according to common tradition, born on the river Meles. not far from Smyrna. His father's name was Mown, and his mother's Critheis. Seven cities contended for the honor of being his birth-place : iSmyrna, Colophon, Chios, Argos, Athens, Rhodes, and Salamis. It is doubtful whether he lived in the 10th, 9th, or 8th century before Christ. Little is known of Homer. He has been represented as blind, but this must have been a misfortune occurring in his latter days, for his descriptions could only have been given by a man possessed of sight. He wandered about singing his poems, which were handed down from mouth to mouth, and from generation to generation, after his death, until they were finally transmitted to paper, and thus preserved from oblivion. HONDURAS, one of the Mexican states, bounded N. by the bay of Honduras, E. by the Caribbean Sea, S. 'by Nicaragua, and W. by Guatimala and Vera Paz. It is 890 miles from E. to W.and 150 from N. to S. The face of the country is diversified, and the soil very fertile. Part of Honduras is possessed by the Mosquito Indians, and the British have some settlements in it. HONORIUS, the first emperor of the West- ern empire of Rome, who succeeded his father Theodosius the Great, \vith his brother Arca- dius, A. D. 395. He was neither bold nor CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. HOO 284 HOW vicious, but he was of a modest and timid dis- position, unfit for enterprise, and fearful of dan- ger. He conquered his enemies by means of his generals, and suffered himself and his people to be governed by ministers who took advan- tage of their imperial master's indolence arfd inactivity. He died of the dropsy, in the 3'Jth year of his age, Aug. 15, A. D. 423. HOOD, Robin, an outlaw in the time of Rich- ard I. who dwelt chiefly in Sherwood Forest, Nottinghamshire, and was the most romantic and courteous, as well as the most powerful of bandits. He took from the rich, but he gave to the poor. It is said that he was bled to death by a nun, to whom he applied for phlebotomy, in the year 1247. HOOD, Samuel, lord viscount, was the eld- est son of the Rev. Samuel Hood, vicar of Thorncombe, in Devonshire; at which place he was born in 1724. He went to sea at the age of sixteen, and, after serving six years, was made a lieutenant. In 1754 he became a master and commander ; and, for his gallant- ry in taking a. fifty-gun ship, was made a post- captain in 175 In 1778 he was appointed commissioner of Portsmouth dock-yard, which place he resigned in 17tiO, on being made rear- admiral. With this rank he sailed to the West In- dies, where he defeated the attempt made upon St. Christopher's by count de Grasse. He also had an active part in the victory obtained over that commander on the 12th of April, 1782; for which he was created baron Hood of Cath- erington, in the kingdom of Ireland. In 1784, he was elected into parliament for Westmin- ster ; but, in J767, he vacated his seat, on being named one of the lords of the admiralty. In 1793, he was appointed to command i"n the Mediterranean, where he distinguished himself by taking possession of Toulon, and, when it was no longer tenable, destroying the arsenal, dock-yard, and shipping. After this he made himself master of Corsica, and then returned to England, where he was made a viscount, and governor of Greenwich hospital, lie died at Bath, January 27, 1816. HOOPER, William, the son of a Scotch clergyman, was born in Boston, June 17, 1742. He was one of the signers of the Declaration of Independence. He was educated at Harvard college, and studied law under Jarnes Otis, but commenced the practice of it in North Carolina. In 1773 he WHS chosen to the provincial le^is- lature from the town of Wilmington, and in 1774 was sent a delegate to the general con- gress at Philadelphia. He advocated the cause of liberty with his pen and voice, and was its prominent champion. He died in October, 17W), aged 48. HOPKINS, Stephen, a signer of the Declar- ation of independence, was born in Providence, now Scituate, March 7, 1707. He was chosen speaker of the gpneral assemblyin 1741. In 1751 he was appointed Chief Justice of the superior court of Rhode Island, and in 1774 a delegate to the general congress. Previous to this he had held for some years the office of governor of Rhode Island. In 1778, he was a fourth time chosen member of congress. He died July 13, 17c5, at the age of 78. HOPKINSON. Francis, an American author, one of the signers of the Declaration of Inde- pendence, born in Philadelphia in 1738. In 177G he was a delegate to congress from Bor- dentown, New Jersey. He also served his country by his various satirical writings, some of which are really meritorious. HORATII, thre'e Roman brothers, who dur- ing the reign of Tullus, to prevent the efl'usion of blood in a general battle, engaged the Curi- atii, three Alban brothers, to decide the contest. Two of the Horatii were slain, when the sur- viving brother feigning flight, permitted the Curiatii, who were disabled by wounds, to ap- proach him one by one, arid then slew them singly, thus deciding the contest in favor of the Romans. The conqueror stained his triumph by murdering his sister, because, amidst her coun- try's joy. she could shed tears at the death of her lover, one of the Curiatii. II OR ATI US, Codes, (the one-eyed), alone sustained the attack of the Etrurian armv, while his friends broke down the bridge OUT the Tiber that led to Rome, behind him. He then committed himself to the waves, armed as he was, and reached Rome in safety. This exploit was performed B. C. 507. HORATIUS FLACCUS, Quintus. a cele- brated Roman poet, was born at Venusium, B. C. J5. He was well educated, and fought at Phil- ippi, B. C.4'.J. Ailer the ruin of the hopes of the patriots, he lived in retirement and even refused the .splendid oilers of Augustus, preferring the peaceful solitude of his Sabine farm. He died suddenly, in the !)th year B. C., and 57th of his age. HOWARD. Thomas. earl of Surrey, and duke of Norfolk, was bom in 147:5. He was bred to arms, and soon after the accession of Henry II, was honored with the order of the garter, succeeded his brother, Sir Edward Howard, high admiral, in 1513; and the victory of HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. HOW 285 HOW Flodden-field was chiefly owing to his valor ests south of Trent. In 1601, he suppressed and skill. For this, the "title of duke of Nor- the earl of ESSPX'S rebellion, and was princi- Iblk was restored to his father, and he was pally concerned in bringing that nobleman to himself created earl of Surrey. In 1521, he went the block. Jarnes I continued him in all his to Ireland as lord lieutenant, and while there employments; and at the coronation the earl suppressed a dangerous rebellion. Notwith- acted as lord-high-steward. In 1605, he went ambassador to Spain ; and in 1613, he conveyed the princess Elizabeth, on her marriage, to Flushing. He died in 1(524, at the age of 8d. standing these services, he was sent to th tower by Henry, at the close of his reign, and kept there till the accession of Mary, when he was released, and contributed to suppress Wy alt's rebellion. He died in 1554. HOWARD. John, the philanthropist, was born at Hackney, in 1720. He was bound HOWARD, Henry, e:irl of Surrey, was the apprentice to a grocer in London ; but disliking eldest son of the preceding nobleman, by Eli- the business, and having an independent for- zibeth. daughter of Edward Stafford, duke of tune, he purchased his indentures, and made Buckingham. He was born in 1520. He was the tour of France and Italy. On his return, well educated, talented, and chivalric. While at he married a widow lady, much older than him- Florence. he issued a general challenge, nnd in self, who died about three years afterwards. In a splen:iid tournament, maintained tlje beauty of 1756. he undertook a voyage to Lisbon, to see his mistress, Geraldine, at the point of the lance, the place after the earthquake; but, on the He was completely victorious. In 1542, he voyage, the ship was taken by a French priva- served in the army, under his father, in Scot- leer, nnd carried to France. On being released, land ; and, in 1544, he went as field-marshal to Mr. Howard retired to a villa in the New For- Boulogne, where, being then knight of the est; and, in 1758. married a second time; but jrarter. he was constituted king's lieutenant and lost his lady in 1765. About this time he set- captain general. Happening, however, to prove tied at Cardington, near Bedford, where his unfortunate in an attempt upon the enemy's time was much occupied in benevolent objects, convoy of provisions, he incurred the king's and in the education of his son. In 1773, he displeasure, which hastened his ruin. Some received the office of high sheriff, which led intemperate language, used by him, was caught him to make inquiries into the state of prisons. hold of; charges were brought against him. and, With this view, he travelled over England, being found guilty, he was beheaded on Tower through France, Germany, Holland, Italy. Spain, Hill. January 10. 154(5-7. Portugal, and Turkey. He published, in 1777, HOWARD, Charles, earl of Nottingham, was a work entitled < : The State of the Prisons in th? son of William lord Howard, of EfFmgliam, England and Wales." dedicated to the House and grandson of Thomas, the second duke of of Commons. In 1780, appeared an appendix, Norfolk. He was born in 1536. He went, in with an account of the author's travels in Italy. 1559, to congratulate Francis II, of France, on He also printed a description of the Bastile, a his accession to the throne ; and. in 1569, was translation of Tuscany's new code of civil law; made general of the horse in the army sent and. in 1739, " An Account of Europe." The against" the earls of Northumberland, and West- plague was now the object of his researches, mnreland. The next year he went with a fleet and. with a design of ascertaining the nature of men-of-war to convoy the princess Anne of of this disorder, and the means of curing it, he Austria to Spain; and in 157;}, he succeeded set out for the east; but died of a malignant his father in his titles and estate. The same epidemic, at Cherson. January 29th, 1790. A year he wis installed knight of the garter, and statue has been erected to his memory in St. "made lord Chamberlain of the household ; and, Paul's cathedral. in 1535. constituted lord high admiral of Eng- HOWARD, John Eager, colonel, a gallant land. officer in the American revolution, was born in In 1533, he commanded the fleet which de- Maryland. June 4th. 1752. He principally dis- feated and dispersed the Spanish armada; and, tinguished himself in the southern campaigns, in !":>;. when another invasion was appre- and received a wound at the battle of Eutaw, hended. he was appointed commander-in chief from the envcts of which he never recovered. at sea, as the earl of Essex was on the land. In He was chosen governor of Maryland in 17H J , this expedition Cadiz was taken, and the Span^and filled the post for three years" From 17i'0, ish fleet burnt ; for which he was made earl oMtill 1803 he was a member of the Senate of the Nottingham and justice-itinerant of all the for^ United States. He died in October, 1827. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. uOW 2S6 HUN HOWE, Richard, earl, the third son of Sir HUDSON CITY, capital of Columbia coun- Emanuel Scrope, second viscount Howe, was ty, N. Y., is a flourishing place, situated on the born in 1725, and, at the age of fourteen, went east bank of the Hudson river, 117 miles north on board the Severn, part of the squadron des- of New York city. Population in 1840, 5,670. lined for the South Seas, under Anson. In It was founded in 1784. 1745, he was with admiral Vernon, and soon HUGH CAPET; duke and afterwards king after was made commander of the Baltimore of France, was the son of Hugh the Great, who sloop, in which, with another armed vessel; he dying, left him under the protection of Rich- beat off two French ships conveying troops and ard I, duke of Normandy. Lothaire, king of ammunition to the Pretender ; for which- he France, pleased with Hugh's prudence and was made a post captain. On the breaking out generosity, gave him, in 9(jO, the dukedom of of the war with France, he commanded the France, with the earldom of Paris and Poitou. Dunkirk ; with which he took the Alcide, a Louis V dying fifteen or sixteen months after Frencli 04, off Newfoundland. In 1757, he his father, Hugh Capet was proclaimed king at served under Sir Edward Hawke, and his ship, Noyon, and crowned at Rheims, !i7. Charles the Magnanime, battered the fort on the Aix, I, 'duke of Lower Lorraine, son of Louis IV, the till it surrendered. After this he was appoint- only man of the royal -blood left in France, was ed commodore of a squadron, with which he taken prisoner by Hugh, and died in {)li2. took the town of Cherburg, and destroyed the HUNGARY, the country of the Magyars, or basin. In 17CO, he was appointed colonel of the marines; and, in 1763, had a seat at the admiralty-board. In 17G5, he was made trea- surer of the navy ; and, in 1770, promoted to be rear-admiral of the blue ; in 1775, rear-admiral of the white, and afterwards vice-admiral of the Hungarians. They are represented as derived from the Huns of Altila. A complete account of ancient Hungary would present little more than the melancholy picture of a country, the perpetual seat of war. The Romans for a lime assumed the ascendant, and obtained a decided blue. France having now entered into a w#r superiority over the opposite and conflicting with- England, lord Howe was sent to America parties. The Hungarians are proved to belong to oppose D'Estaing. In 1782, he was made an to the Finnish nations, from the resemblance English viscount, and appointed to the com- that prevails between certain words of their inand of the fleet sent to the relief of Gibraltar, respective dialects. The Magyars appear to which object he accomplished. The next year have been a principal division of that great he was made first lord of the admiralty ;" but northern nation contiguous to the Altai mouri- soon resigned that station to Lord Keppel. In tains, whence issued the hordes who introduced V783, he was created an English earl. On such changes in the character of nations, Asi- the breaking out of hostilities witii France, in atic and European. 'So far as the Magyars are 1793, he was appointed to the command of the concerned, their progress from the Altai moun- channel fleet; and on the 1st of June, in the tains seems obvious. About the end of the 9th following year, he gained a complete victory century, we find a division of them entering the over the trench, who lost seven ships of the plains of Munkatz, under their loader, Almus, line. For this he received the thanks of par- whose son Arpad, was the first duke of Hun- liament; the king visited him on board his ship, gary. In a few years (H!'(5), Arpad had dispos- nresented him with a valuable sword, and made sessed several of the princes of Hungary, anc> him knight of the garter. The last service contracted alliances with others. He subduet rendered by his lordship to his country, was in a considerable portion of the Moravian king- reducing the mutinous seamen to their duty, at dom ; and, in the ardor of conquest, was for Portsmouth, in 1797. He died August 5th, attempting to establish himself in the territories 1799. of Arnulph. Arpad finally extended his con- HOWE. Sir William, brother of the preced- quests into Bavaria, Suabia, Franconia, and ingf, succeeded General Gage in the command Italy; his exertions were divided, but every- of the forces, in America, in 1775. He defeated where successful. His son Zoltan, in 907, had the Americans in the battle of Brooklyn (177G), penetrated into Alsatia, Lorraine, and France, took possession of New York, and in the Octo- While the genius of the state w.is thus aspiring ber of the same year, repelled the Americans at to eminence, the strength of others seemed pro- Germantown. He was succeeded in his com- Jiortionately paralysed, as if the unremitting mand by Clinton, in 1778, His death took kruelties characteristic of Attila were again to place in 1814. iBe feared. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. HUN 287 HUN The imputation of ferocity affixed to the name of the Huns inspired terror, till their fourth duke, Geysa, diverted their ferocious dispositions into other channels. The attention he bestowed in giving a tinge of religion to the mind and manners of his countrymen, operated as an incentive ^to their civilization. It was not until the commencement of the llth cen- tury, that a people rude, and proud of their rudeness, were induced to lay aside their bar- barous habits. Stephen, their last duke, and first king, introduced the Christian religion, and those social institutions, which, if left to operate unrestrained, give a stamp to the char- acter of a people. He died in 1033, after a reign of 41 years, during which lie had estab- lished laws iii the interior, reunited Transylva- nia to his kingdom, subjugated the Sclavi, and Bulgarians, and effected much for the amelio- ration of society and morals. On the death of Stephen, Hungary became subject to the tyranny of various princes, the country being involved, for nearly a century, in the horrors of civil war. In this distracted state of the kingdom, various usurpers aspiring fo the throne, the churches were destroyed, and the ministers of religion persecuted. Any in- tervals of peace were interrupted by the Bul- garians, Walachians, Russians, Croats, &c. re- newing their inroads. Under Ladislaus 1, 1077, the country enjoyed some tranquillity ; religion, commerce, legislation, tempered the bold inde- pendence of a dark age ; and as a warrior, he also became the temporary savior of his coun- try The race of Stephen I' became extinct with Andrew III. John Corvin or Hunniades, was justly celebrated for his military achieve- ments in his wars with Amurath II, and Moham- med II. His son, Mathias Corvin, was unan- imously elected king in 1453, and gave early indications of greot gifts and talents, adding not a little to the lustre of his father's acquire- ments. From his character, policy, military operations, and great power, he has been de- scribed as one of the most accomplished kings of Hungary. Such was the force of his mind, that his views extended to whatever could se- cure his government, and render it formidable. His ends were great, and his means prudent ; he kept both the Turks and Austrians at bay, and, as a politician and hero, was watchful over his enemies, both at home and abroad. To his other eminent qualities this king added a measure of literary reputation. He is said A have been conversant with the languages, arts, and sciences of his time ; the country flourished 25 under his establishments, civil and military, and the love of his subjects shows the great esteem in which he was held by them. Com- pared, generally, with his contemporaries in power, the energy of his mind seems worthy of admiration. lie knew how to anticipate hos- tile designs, and we find the kingdom, under his government, preponderating in the balance of Europe. Mathias had no children, and the election of a new king occasioned a scene of distress. Under Louis II. in 1516, the Turks besieged Belgrade, which surrendered to their arms ; and this was followed by various other successes. In the famous battle of Mohacs, (1520), Louis was defeated and slain, Buda was given up to pillage, and the ferocious barbari- ans, under Solyman II, after plundering the country, converted the scene of their depreda- tions into an immense desert. The country was now convulsed with disputes about the suc- cession, the archduke Ferdinand being oppos- ed by John Zapolya, who was finally seated on the throne. Zapolya died in 1540, and the Hungarians invited Ferdinand to the throne The country was again desolated and crimsoned with blood. In 1564. Maximilian II. emperor of Germany, laid claim to the crown, but it was not till 1570, that a peace was finally between the Hungarians and Germans. Joh Sigismund, son of Zapolya, was created prince of Transylvania ; and the next circumstance to be noticed and recorded, is the definitive sub- jection of the Hungarians to the imperial house of Austria. At the accession of Charles VI, emperor of Germany, a definitive treaty, in 1711, terminated all differences ; it. was not till then that every principle of internal hostility, all those evils which had proved a hindrance to civilization, disappeared. As the Hungarians are now united to the Austrian dynasty, the series of their kings is that of the emperors. After Maximilian II, they occur in the follow- ino- order: llodolph, 157G; Mathias II, 1612; Ferdinand 11,1619; Ferdinand 111,1637; Le- opold I. 1G58; Joseph I, 1705; Charles VI, 1711; Maria Theresa, 1741; Joseph 11,1780; Leopold II, 1789 ; and Francis II, now king of Hungary and emperor of Austria. The greater part of the soil of Hungary is exceedingly pro- ductive, and no country has so many mineral and medicinal springs. Its population (exclusive of Transylvania) exceeds 9,400,000. Education is not neglected. The condition of the peas- antry, however, is deplorable. HUNTINGTON, Samuel, one of the signers of the Declaration of Independence, born in CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ICE 288 IND Windham, Conn., in 1732. He was the son of a farmer, and self-educated. At the age of 22, he was admitted to practice law in his native place, but shortly afterwards removed to Nor- wich. In 1704, he was representative of Nor- wich to the General Assembly, and in the next year king's attorney ; but in 1774, was made a judge of the Superior Court. In 1775, he was chosen a member of the council of Connecticut, and in 1776, took his seat as a delegate to the general Congress. In 1779, he succeeded Mr. Jay as president of that body. In 1786, he succeeded Mr. Gnswold, as governor of Con- necticut and filled the office till his death, Jan- uary 5, 1796. HUSS, John, the celebrated reformer, was a native of Bohemia, born in 1373, and educated at the university of Prague. He early perceived the corruption of the Romish church, arid ex- posed its prevalent abuses freely, although per- secuted by several popes. He finally appeared at Constance, was tried in 1415, burned alive, and his ashes thrown into the Rhine. The rebellion of the followers of Huss lasted fifteen years, and filled Bohemia with bloodshed. HUTCHINSON, Thomas, was born in Bos- ton, in 1711, graduated at Harvard College in 1727. He was appointed Lieutenant Governor of Massachusetts in 1758, and chief-justice in 1760. In 1771 , he was made Governor of Mas- sachusetts. He was ambitious, avaricious, and hypocritical. He was succeeded by Gage in 1774, and lived in retirement at Brompton, where he died June 3d, 1780, in his 69th year. He was a writer of considerable merit. Atone time a Boston mob attacked his house which was nearly demolished. HYDER, Ally Khan, an eastern prince, the formidable enemy to the British in India. He was frequently successful, and, in 1766, his do- minions contained 70,000 square miles. He died in 1782. ICELAND, a large island in the Atlantic Ocean, near the confines of the polar circle, about 280 miles in length, belonginer to Den- mark. Christianity was introduced into it in 981. Among its curiosities is Mount Hecla, whose terrific eruptions have often caused the greatest distress among the inhabitants. The islanders are simple, irugal, industrious, and pious. The lower classes are uncommonly well informed. The staple exports are fish, oil, feathers, sulphur, and salted mutton ; and the imports wood, salt, tobacco, coffee, iron, and fishing-tackle. Population about 50,000. ILLINOIS, one of the United States ; boun- ded north by Michigan Territory ; east by Lake Michigan and Indiana; south by the Ohio, and west by the Mississippi, which rivers separate it from Missouri. It contains 58,000 square miles. Population, in 1840, 476,183. Vanda- lia is the capital. The face of the country is little broken by hills, being generally level, or only gently undulating. The soil is very fertile. The state has a school fund, and there is a col- lege at Jacksonville. The first settlements were made at Kaskaskia. and Cahokia. by the French, about 1756. In 1818, Illinois" was erected into a state. INDIA. This country was visited early by the Phoenicians, Egyptians, and other remote nations of antiquity ; afterwards conquered >n part by the Persians, subsequently by Alexander the Great, and since by the Mohammedans. The authentic history of it, however, is of no higher date than the year 100U A. D., com- mencing with the conquests of Mohammed Gazni, who possessed the eastern parts of Persia, and made twelve expeditions into Hindostan, sacking some of the principal cities, carrying off their treasure, and trying to exterminate the inhabitants, as he could not convert them to Mohammedanism. The empire soon crumbled to pieces, being held together only by conquest. From 1158 to 1398, other invasions," by the fol- lowers of Mohammed continually occurred, till the irruption of Nadir Shah, otherwise called Kouli Khan, who had raised himself from ob- scurity to the throne of Persia. One of the most remarkable invasions was that of Tamer- lane in 1398. After having carried into cap- tivity a vast number of the poor inhabitants, he caused 10,000 to be massacred in cold blood, lest they should join the enemy. In 1555, Akbar, the greatest emperor the Moguls had ever had, began to reign ; and during a series of wars, massacres, invasions, and other simi- lar pastimes of despotic princes, occupied the throne 51 years. Two princes. Jehah Guire, and Shah Jehan, succeeded ; the latter, a de- bauched character, was dethroned by Aureng- zebe. who also put three or fonr of his brothers to death. From 1660, until 1678, he kept the kingdom tranquil ; but then commenced wars against the princess of the Deccan, which con- tinued till his death, in 1707. As if his evil Seeds were to be punished in his descendants, eleven of them were raised to the throne in about as many years, and most of them assas- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL IND 289 IND sinated. In 1738, Nadir Shah, of Persia, in- vaded the empire, entered Delhi, the capital, and demanded vast sums of money as a contri- bution. In 1748, Nizem-el-Mulk, viceroy of the Deccan, died at the age of 104 yeanl; by his invitation, principally, had Nadir entered the territory of the Moguls, and destroyed the power of the emperor, as only one imperial army ever entered the field after his departure, and that was defeated by the Rohillas. Delhi, therefore, and a few miles around it, constituted almost the sole territory of the descendants of Tamerlane : while the governors of districts and provinces, under the names of rajahs, na- bobs, and a variety of others, became independ- ent sovereigns. Nizam's second son having succeeded, instead of the eldest, to his father's throne, this event first began those contests between the French and English East India Companies, that, after several year's bloody wars, terminated in the expulsion of the former from India. In 1GOO, queen Elizabeth first sent an ambassador at Akbar, to solicit commercial intercourse with his dominions. A company was formed to carry the scheme into effect ; their voyages were pretty successful, and. after having to contend with the Portuguese in sev- eral naval engagements, they at length succeed- ed in forming a factory at Surat, on the Malabar Coast, by permission of the emperor Jehaun-gier. Here they did not at first prosper, partly from the inadequacy of their funds, and partly from the enmity of the Dutch and Portuguese. Ac- cident, however, laid the foundation of their prosperity in the present important city of Cal- cutta. In 1747, the war commenced, and was carried on with spirit by both sides, Mr. dive contri- buting to the successes of the English, until, in 1755, a cessation of hostilities took place. In 1759, Calcutta was threatened by the nabob of Bengal, Surajah Dowlah, who marched 40,000 foot,30,000 horse, and 4,000 elephants against it. Cassambuzar surrendered to him at once; and Calcutta being invested, was takan in three days. This caused the tragedy of the Black Hole. (See Black Hole.) Colonel Clive, who had now a commission in the king's service, immediately on the receipt of this news, em- barked from Fort St. David's with 400 Euro- peans and 1000 Seapoys, on board admiral Watson's fleet. All the old possessions were soon regained, and the nabob was reduced to make peace, after a bold attack upon his camp. War, however, was now proclaimed against France, and Chandernagore reduced, permis- sion being obtained from the nabob for that pur- pose. Very soon afterwards, he quarreled with the company ; war with hirn also was inevita- ble : and, at the battle of Plassy, Clive, with a handful of troops, defeated his whole army. In this he was assisted by the neutrality of Meer Jaffier All Khan, who stood aloof during the engagement. On the Coromandel coast, in the mean time, affairs were going on very indiffer- ently for the English. But things again took a turn ; all the enterprises cf the French com- mander seeming to fail. His attempt upon Wandewash, in 1760, proved extremely unfor- tunate. Again the French forces attempted a stand under the walls of Cheltaput, 18 miles from the field of battle ; but finally retired into Pondicherry, their only remaining stronghold. Cheltaput, Timmery, and Areot, quickly fell into the hands of the English ; with Carical, Chellambrum, Verdachelium, Permucoil, Al- ampera. and Waldour. Pondicherry itself was invested ; the batteries opened in December, and the place capitulated January 15th, 1761, the whole of the French power in India being thus annihilated. Meer Jaffier, the nabob ot Bengal, not answering the expectations of the company was deposed, and Meer Cassim Ali Khan placed on the Musnud, or throne. War was soon declared against him but peace was finally concluded, as the English council had been guilty of great injustice. In 1707, a new enemy appeared in the Dec- can. This was no other than Hyder Ally or Hyder Naig, who had raised himself from the rank of seapoy to that of a powerful prince. For several years this prince baffled the attempts of the English to crush him, and by concentrat- ing immense forces, gained great advantages over them. In 1781, Sir Cyre Coote was ap- pointed commander-in-chief. Hyder, with two hundred thousand men, risked "a battle with him, July 1st ; but, notwithstanding his vast superiority, was routed with great slaughter. He tried another on the 27th of August, with similar ill-success and loss. Other actions ter- minated in a similar manner. In 1783, the government of Bombay determined to carry the war as close home as possible to Hyder's doors. For this purpose General Matthews invaded Canara, took nearly all the towns, and obtained immense plunder. Hyder Ally, in the mean while, had died, and Tippoo, his son, assembling an army of 150,000 men to recover the loss, appeared before Bidnore on the 7th of April, and compelled the English to capitulate. Some time before this a war had brpken out CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. JND 290 IND with the Mahrattas. At length, however, p-ace was concluded. Tippoo Sultan, for a succes- sion of years, opposed the English, and various campaigns were undertaken against him. The commanders in these bloody adventures were General Meadows, Lord Cornwaliis, and Sir Arthur Wellesly, afterwards duke of Welling- ton. The marquis of Hasting's administration was advantageous to the British, but ruinous to the native?. We draw a veil over the bloody contests, and oppressive measures, by which the natives of the East were crushed, their princes ruined and betrayed, their wealth stolen from them, and their clearest rights trampled under foot, without remorse or hesitation. The course of the British in India has been denoun- ced by the most eloquent and upright rnen in England the voice of indignation has been lifted up against the company in vain. Con- fiding in their immense wealth, steeled by their unrelenting avarice, proud in their constant success, they smile at every attempt to shake their power, or impeach their oirices ; and if the course of their conduct is no longer marked with that extended desolation and calamity which formerly distinguished it, it is because the spark of resistance is quenched in the ashes of universal ruin. (For further information, with regard to India, see the articles I'.n.-t In- dies and .Isia.) INDIANS ; a name commonly applied to the aborigines of the new continent. Those of Mexico, and parts of South America, were, when they first became known to the Span- iards, far advanced in civilization. Their ar- chitecture had little of the rudeness of a primi- tive and untaught race, and their character con- trasted favorably with that of their conquerors. The tribes of .North America, as they approach- ed the north, lost much of the refinement, which was apparent in their southern brethren. ap- pearer 1 to have little notion of the comforts of life, and took the highest delight in the dar- ing exploits of huritintr and w;ir. Each tribe had a distinctive character a peculiar physiog- nomy, and peculiar habits; but, of course,' there are certain general features, belonging to them in eominoM. We cannot devote much space to this subject, and a ^'neral ukeU:!i. only, will be < xperteil. The Cliipiieway race is the most Mu.aerous :U present. The New England tribes were Algonquins, and the NarraganseU, the Mohegans, the Delaware or Lenni Lenape, th-; Iroquois or- Six Nations, were of tlr- same stock. West of the Mississippi \ve find another family, the Sioux or Dahcotah Indians, branches of which are Winnebagoes, the Otoes, the loways, the Missouries, "the Assinniboins, the Oir.anaws, the Kansas, and the Osuges. The Sacks and Foxes, the Pawnees, the Murtarees, or L5igbcllios,lhe Mandans,the Crows and Black- ieet, the Shosonees, the Chohunnish, the Skill- oots, Echeloots, Multnomahs, Clatrops, &-c., are among the other tribes of the western country. The Chickasaws, Choctaws, and Creeks, of which latter the Seminoles are a division, in- habit the southern parts of the United States. iSorth of the Great Slave Lake, is another In- clian family comprising several divisions. All the Indian tribes are noted for their hospitality and bravery. The women perform the labors of the field, while war and hunting are considered the only occupations worthy ot the men. Every man has as many wives as he can support, and these women share his affec- tions without quarrelling or murmuring. Instan- ces of devoted attachment between two persons, however, are by no means uncommon. The Indians believe in the existence of a Supreme Being, but they never demand blessings of him, saying. He knows best what is good -for them, and content themselves with returning thanks for benefits received. But they also have, superstitious notions, and sacrifice to invisible beings. They attach 0 A. D. the Lombards entered the north of Italy, took Milan ai.d Pavia, and founded a kingdom which continued during two centuries, until overthrown by Charle- magne. After his death Italy belonged to his succes- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ITA 297 JAC sors on the imperial throne, but their tenure Grimoald 663 was precarious; the great barons laboring to ^^reVtored ^'Uir/.i'.-fr.^r.I'/.US assert their independence, and the popes to ex- Cunibert, bis son 680 tend their temporal dominions. The subsequent Cunibert' alone 1 691 history is little more than a succession of mill- J^uipertus 701 tary struggles, of little interest, until 960, when Arulma'" 3 '.'.'.'.'.'.'.'. [i;!^"***!."?!! 702 Otho I repaired, in person, to the north of Italy, Alisprandiisl '.'.'. '.'.'. '.712 granted municipal rights to the cities, and im- Luitpramlus 713 proved the interior government in general. Hildebrand 742 The whole was united to the German Empire; ^Ifus ^ "" 750 but from this compact fresh feuds and conuno- Desiderius' or'u'idier.' .' .' .' .' .' ................'...... '. .756 tions followed ; the Italian nobility were jealous Jn 774 Desiderius the last of the Lombards, of their privileges ; conspiracies were formed, WM taken prisoner by Charlemagne ; and the detected, and suppressed, and no constant aile- kingdom o ltaly WJ J united fir t to France, giance was exhibited to the German govern- an( f a ft erw ards to the Empire, till 886, when it ment or the magistracy put into authority by wag soparated from the i a ^ ter on the ' death of it. A series ot wars continued for several ages. pK.-iJ, t h P Fit In the 14th century, Italy was divided into the kingdom of Naples, the estates of the Church, Lambert. .! !' . . '. '. 1 '.'.'. '. '. '.'.'.'. '.""'.'.'.'.'.'.'. '.'.'." lie Tuscany, Parma, and Lombardy, the Genoese Louis. ...!!!!!.'"....!....".!.!!!!!."!!.'!.'!.'..!!!.'899 and the Venetian territories, and other petty Berenger 1 restored 904 states. For two centuries the Venetians and Rodolph, king of Brandy 92-3 Genoese were the most considerable commer- LB3^7T,:..^.."/.'."."/."t".*.*"'.*'.".*/.'."/.'.I"'.Iw7 cial people in Europe, and Venice, in particu- Berenger ii .....'.'.'. .350 lar, possessed large foreign colonies; and, in In 963, Berenger was deposed, by pope Leo 1194, took Constantinople and held in sore- VIII, and next year the emperor Otho I reduced reignty portions of what now constitutes Tur- i ta i y and reunited it to the empire ; to which it key in Europe and Greece. The foundation of continued nominally to belong till 1805. when the temporal power of the popes was laid about Bonaparte revived the ancient title of king of 1080, by Matilda, countess of Tuscany, who Italy. bequeathed a large portion of her dominions to ITHACA, now Thiaki. an island in the gulf pope Gregory VII. After that time the popes O f p atras , belonging to 'the Ionian republic, successively made great acquisitions of territo- Population 8000. It is celebrated as the resi- ry : but, in 1798, Rome was taken by Berliner, d ence of Ulysses. and Bonaparte annexed the papal dominions to IVICA, Iviza, or Ibiza (anciently Ebusus) a France. They were, however, restored in fertile and valuable island in the Mediterranean, 1814. (See articles, Genoa, Milan, Piedmont, belonging to Spain. It contains 190 square Rome, &c.) mije^ and 2i j0 94 inhabitants. It fell into the Odoacer, Chief of the S'. A .47,l hands f * Spaniards in 1294, and submitted Theodoric, the Ostrogoth 493 to bir John Leake, with a British squadron, in Athalaric 52u 170G. It has generally followed the fortunes of vStow tlM 5'36 the nei S aborin g islands, Majorca and Minorca. Araric '. !s40 Totila 541 J- Teias, the last of the Goths 553 Narses, governor 554 JACKSON, James, an officer in our revolu- Cleophis "".:'.'."""."":: 570 tionary army, was born in England, in 1 757, Interregnum' ofia year's iii which t'lie Loni-'j and settled in Georgia in 1772. He was en- bards were governed by dukes, j '" gaged in the attack on Savannah, when but ^ n . tlli j'! is ^ nineteen years old, and a few years afterwards Adehvaid,' w'ith'hiV mo'the'r'Theodeiinda: '.'.'. '. '. '. >,16 was chosen brigade-major of the Georgia militia. Anvald 026 After tne close of the war. tiiroughout which lie Rotharis 638 displayed great gallantry and prudence, he 5ribSi d t 653 commenced the P^tice' of law, and in 1783, PertharithuV V ' " became a member of the legislature. In 1788 Gondibert j " he was chosen governor of Georgia, but de CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. JAiM 298 JAM clined the honor, and was promoted to the rank of major-general of the militia of the state. He was afterwards chosen senator to Congress, and died in Washington, Jan. l!), IdOG. JACOB, the son of Isaac, and the Jast of the patriarchs. For his history the reader is re- ferred to the Scriptures. JAFFA, anciently Joppa, a town of Syria, in the Pachalic of Damascus, 12 leagues N. W. of Jerusalem. Population 3,<550. It was taken by Bonaparte in 17U9. JAMAICA, one of the West India islands belonging to Great Britain. It is about 150 miles long, and 40 broad ; and lies 30 leagues west of Hay ti. It is less fertile Ulsoi some other of the West India islands, but is a rich and val- uable country. It is subject to earthquakes. Sugar, rum, molasses, indigo, coflee, cotton, cocoa, pimento, and ginger are the most valua- ole articles of export. The present population is about 4] 4,000 of whom 30,000 are free people of color, and 37,000 whites. The island was discovered by Columbus, May 3,1494. In 1 Coo it was taken from the Spanish by the English under the command of Benn and Venables. In 1795 a war commenced between the maroons, the runaways of the Spanish settlers, and the white inhabitants, when the barbarous expedi- ent of using bloodhounds being resorted to, for the purpose of tracing the haunts of the negroes, they were at last compelled to surrender at dis- cretion to their enemies the whites. JAMES I, king of Scotland, was born in 13l>4. At the age of eleven years, he was sent to France, that he might escape the danger to which he was exposed by the ambition of his uncle, the duke of Albany ; but, falling into the hands of the English, he and his retinue were confined in the tower, where, however. the young prince received an excellent education. His talents were of a high order. Our distin- guished countryman, Washington Irving, has given an interesting account of him in one of the papers of the Sketch Book, which we must be permitted to condense and copy below : " 1 visited the ancient keep of the castle, where James the First of Scotland, the pride and theme of Scottish poets and historians, was for many years of his youth detained a prisoner of state. It is a large gray tower, that has stood the brunt of ages, and is still in good preserva- tion, it stands on a mound which elevates it, above other parts of the castle, and a great flight of steps into the interior. In the armory, which is a Gothic hall, furnished with weapons of va- rious kinds and ages, I was shown a coat of armor hanging against the wall, which I was told had once belonged to James. From hence 1 was conducted up a staircase to a suite of apartments of faded magnificence, hung with storied tapestry, which formed his prison, and the scene of that passionate and fanciful amour, which has woven into the web of his story the magical hues of poetry and fiction. " The whole history of this amiable but un- fortunate prince is highly romantic. The in teliigence of his capture, coming in the train of many sorrows and disasters, proved fatal to his unhappy father. " The news, we are told, was brought to him while at supper, and did so overv.helm him with grief, that he was almost readv to give up the ghost into the hands of the servants that attended him. But being carried into his bed- chamber, he abstained from all food, r.r.d in three days died of hunger and grief at Rothesay. - James was detained in captivity above eigh- teen years ; but, though deprived of personal liberty, he was treated with the respect due to his rank. He was well learnt, we are told, to fight with the sword, to joust, to tournay. to wrestle, to sinsr and dance, he was an expert mediciner, right crafty in playing both of lute and harp, and sundry other instruments of mu- sic, and was expert in grammar, oratory, and poetry." In prison he wrote the king's Quhair (Book.) " The subject of the poem is his love for the lady Jane Beaufort, daughter of the Earl of Somerset, and a princess of the blood royal of England, of whom he became enamored in the course of his captivity." " His passion for the lady Jane, as it was the solace of his captivity, so it facilitated his release, it being imagined by the Court, that a connection with the blood royal of England would attach him to its own interests. lie was ultimately restored to his liberty and crown, having previously espoused the Lady Jane, who accompanied him to Scot- land, and made him a most tender and devoted wife. " He found his kingdom in great confusion, the feudal chieftains having taken advantage of the troubles and irregularities of a long inter- regnum, to strengthen themselves in their pos- eefflHons, and j.lnr- themselves alu.ve the power of the laws. James Bought to found the basis of his power in the iiU'ecti'inH of his people. He attached the lower orders to him by Hie re- formation of abuses, the temperate and equable administration of justice, the encouragement of the arts of peace, and the promotion of every HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. JAM 299 JAM thing that could diffuse comfort, competency, and innocent enjoyment, through the humblest ranks of society. He mingled occasionally among the common people in disguise ; visited their firesides ; entered into their cares, their pursuits, and their amusements, informed him- self of the mechanical arts, and how they could best be patronized and improved ; and was thus an all-pervading spirit, watching with a benevo- lent eye over the meanest of his subjects. Hav- ing in this generous manner made himself strong in the hearts of the common people, he turned himself to curb the power of the factious nobility ; to strip them of those dangerous im- munities which they had usurped ; to punish such as had been guilty of flagrant offences ; and to bring the whole into proper obedience to the crown. For some time they bore this with ontward submission, but with secret impatience and brooding resentment A conspiracy was at length formed against his life, at the head of which was his own uncle, Robert Stewart, Earl of Athol, who being too old himself for the per- petration of the deed of blood, instigated his grandson. Sir Robert Stewart, together with Sir Robert Graham, and others of less note, to com- mit the deed. They broke into his bed-cham- ber at the Dominican convent near Perth, where he was residing, and barbarously murdered him by oft-repeated wounds. His faithful queen, rushing to throw her tender body between him and the sword, was twice wounded in the inef- fectual attempts to shield him from the assas- sin ; and it was not until she had been forcibly torn from his person, that the murder was ac- complished." This tragedy was acted Feb. 20. 1437. When the footsteps of the ruthless assassins were heard approaching the door of the royal apartment, Catharine Douglas, one of the queen's ladies, secured it for a moment, by thrusting her arm through the staple, and sustaining, will), unwa- vering fortitude, the shocks of the assailants, till her arm was broken, and the door forced. The sentiments with which Mr. Irving con- cludes his sketch of James, are best conveyed in his own beautiful language. " Others may dwell on the illustrious deeds of James as a warrior and a legislator ; but I have delighted to view him merely as the companion of his fellow men, the benefactor of the human race, stooping from his high estate to sow the sweet flowers of poetry and song in the paths of com- mon life. He was the first to cultivate the vigor- ous and hardy plant of Scottish genius, which has since been so prolific of the most wholesome 26 and highly flavored fruit. He carried with him into the sterner regions of the north, all the fer- tilizing arts of southern refinement. He did every thing in his power to win his country- men to the gay, the elegant, and gentle arts, which soften and refine the character of a peo- ple, and wreathe a grace round the loftiness of a proud and warlike spirit. He wrote many poems, which, unfortunately for the fulness of his fame, are now lost to the world ; one which is still preserved, called " Christ's Kirk of the Green," shows how diligently he had made himself acquainted with the rustic sports and pastimes, which constitute such a source of kind and social feeling among the Scottish peasantry; and with what simple and happy humor he could enter into their enjoyments. He contributed greatly to improve the national music; and traces of his tender sentiment, and elegant taste, are said to exist in. those witching airs, still piped among the wild mountains and lonely glens of Scotland. He has thus con- nected his image with whatever is most gracious and endearing in the national character ; he has embalmed his memory in song, and floated hia name down to after ages in the rich stream of Scottish melody. The recollection of these things was kindling at my heart, as I paced the silent scene of his imprisonment. I have visited Vancluse with as much enthusiasm as a pil- grim would visit the shrine at Loretfo ; but I have never felt more poetical devotion than when contemplating the old tower and the little garden at Windsor, and musing over the ro- mantic loves of the lady Jane, and the Royal Poet of Scotland." JAMES VI, king of Scotland, and I of Eng land, was the son of the unfortunate Mary, by her cousin Lord Darnley, and was born at Ed- inburgh, in JIHJC, 1550. He had Buchanan for his instructer, who, when accused of hav- ing made his pupil a pedant, replied, " that he could make nothing else of him." In 1589, he married Anne, daughter of Frederick, king of Denmark, whom he brought from Copen- hagen. In 1600, while hunting, an attempt, was made to seize his person by the earl of Gowrie, who, with his brother, was slain, while the king escaped unhurt. In 1603, he succeed- ed to the English throne ; and, the year follow- ing, the Hampton court conference, between the divines of the established church and the Puritans, was held in his presence. The next year the gunpowder plot was discovered. The condemnation and death of Raleigh was the greatest blot on the character and reign of James, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. JAN 300 JAY who also lessened his popularity by undertak- ing the defence of the Protesiants of Germany, and then abandoning their (Ruse. He died in March, 1G25. JAMES II, king of England, succeeded his brother Charles if, in 1685. A conspiracy set on foot by the duke of Monmouth, was the first disturbance in his reign. Monmouth had ever been the darling of the people, and some averred that Charles had married his mother, and owned his legitimacy on his death-bed. The duke of Argyle in the north, seconded his views, and. with Monmoiith, planned a double insur- rection, but both were defeated and executed. James suspended the exercise of the protestant religion, acknowledged the supremacy of the pope, and allowed the Jesuits to establish them- selves in the kingdom. The indignation of the people was now roused, and they hailed with joy the arrival of the prince of Orange, before whom James fled. He was hospitably received by the king of France, who aided him in his subsequent unsuccessful attempts to regain his throne. James died at St. Germain in France, 1701. JAMESTOWN, Virginia, situated on an isl- and in James river, 32 miles above its mouth. It was the first English settlement in Virginia, and was established in 1608. It is now nearly deserted.. JANIZARIES ; these formidable foot soldiers, at first the guards of the Ottoman monarchs, and for a long time the arbiters of their fate, were finally broken up in 1826, the date of their last rebellion. They were established by Amurath I, and originally consisted of the fin- est looking Christian slaves, educated in the Mohammedan religion and arms. When first formed, this new militia was consecrated in the presence of the sultan, by a dervish, who stand- ing in the front of their ranks, stretched the Bleeve of hia gown over the head of the foremost soldier, and delivered his blessing in these woids "Let them be called Janizaries (yinrri cheri, or new soldiers) ; may their countenances be ever bright; their hand victorious; their swords keen ; may their spear always hang over the heads of their enemies; and, wheresoever they go, may they return with a white face.' White and black face are common and proverbial ex- pressions of praise and reproach in the Turkish language. JANUS, a deity believed by the Romans to have the double office of opening and shutting the gate of heaven. He was represented with two faces, his temple at Rome was built in the form of a square, and was opened in time of war, and shut in time of peace. JAPAN ; an empire to the east of China, composed of a great number of islands. The Srincipal are Niphon, Kiusin or Ximo, and icoco, or Sicof. The Japanese have nominal- ly two emperors, one is the Dairi, the supreme pontiff, and oracle of religion, and the other the Cubo, a secular emperor, who is invested with absolute authority. His residence is at Jeddo, a large citv. the capital of the empire, in the island of Niphon. The Japanese are enterpris- ing, hardy, and warlike, but treacherous and proud. Their religion is idolatrous. Francis Xavier established a catholic congregation here, which was destroyed by the Dutch, in 1637. The soil is fertile and the productions various. The silks, cottons, porcelain, lackered wares, &c. are in high repute. The population of Japan is about 225 millions. JASON, son of JEson, king of Solchos, in Thessaly, famous for his share in the Argo- nautic expedition. JAVA; a large island in the eastern seas, 642 miles long, and 128 broad. In 1815 the population amounted to 5,000,000. Java was discovered by the Portuguese in 1510. But the Dutch obtained their possessions, and the island was divided between them, and the native prin- ces. It is exceedingly fertile, producing rice, cotton, coffee, pepper, sugar, drugs of all kinds, and various fruits. The coffee of this island is renowned. There are also mines of gold, rubies, diamonds, and emeralds. Batavia is a strongly fortified city, the centre of the Dutch East In- dia Company, and the residence ofa governor. In 1811 the island was taken by the British, but it was restored by the treaty of Paris in 1M4. The natives are much oppressed, and have sev- eral times revolted. JAY, John, an American statesman and jurist, was bcxn in the city of New York. Dec. 1, 1745, O. S., and was educated at King's (now Colum- bia) college. In 1768, he was admitted to prac- tice law, and in 1774 was chosen a delegate to the first provincial congress which met at Phil- adelphia. Two years aYlerwards )]< was chosen president of congress. In 1778 he \vas chosen chief justice of New York, the constitution of which he had been instrumental in framing. The next year he was sent on a mission to Spain, to procure aid and a recognition of our in- dependence. In 17r'J lie was one of the commis- sioners appointed to negotiate a treaty of peace with Great Britain. On his return, Mr. Jay was placed at the head of the department for foreign HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL JEF 301 JER affairs, in which office he continued until ap- pointed Chief Justice of the United States. In 1784 he was sent as envoy extraordinary to Great Britain, and on his return entered on the duties of office of governor of the state of New York, to which he had been elected during his absence. He died May 17, 1829. JEFFERSON, Thomas, the third president of the United States of America, was born at Shadwell, Virginia, April 2, 1743, O. S. He spent two years at William and Mary's college, and then commenced the study of the law, which he was admitted to practice in 1767. In 1769 he took his seat in the general assembly of Virginia, which the governor of Virginia dis- solved. He was then elected to fill the place of Peyton Randolph in the congress, and assumed his seat in that body, June 21, 1775. He was one of the committee appointed to draw up a Declaration of Independence, and that docu- ment, with a few alterations, is his own compo- sition. June 1, 1779, Mr. Jefferson was chosen governor of Virginia, but, after two years, he resigned, being of opinion that a military man would be better suited for the emergencies of the times. On July 5, 1784. Mr. Jefferson sailed for Paris, having been appointed by con- gress a third commissioner to negotiate treaties of commerce with other nations, Mr. Adams and Dr. Franklin being the other two. He was actively engaged until 1789 when he returned to the United States and was appointed Secre- tary of State. Dec. 1st, 1790, he resigned this office, and lived in retirement until 17b'7, when he was chosen Vice President of the United States. In 1801 he was chosen president by a majority of one, Mr. Adams being hLs competi- tor. He filled the office of chief magistrate fur eight years, when he retired to his seat at M.m- ticello, where he died on the (4th of July, Ir^, the same day on which Mr. Adams expired. He made himself known as an author in 1781, by his Notes on Virginia. In private life he was hospitable, and pleasing in his manners; in public, the unyielding, sagacious and tal- ented leader of the demorcratic party. A monu- ment of his enterprise and benevolence remains in the college established at Charlotlesville, itf which he filled the office of rector for some years. JEFFREYS, George, baron Wem, was born at Acton in Denbighshire. He was not regu- larly admitted to the bar, but being at Kings- ton assizes in the year of the plague, lGb'6, when there were scarcely any barrister's pres- ent, he was permitted to plead, and from that time continued to do so. without having his title questioned. In 1683 he was made chief justice of the King's Bench. At the accession of James II he was created baron Jeffreys of Wem, in the county of Salop ; and, on the sup- pression of the duke of Monmouth's rebellion, he was sent to try the prisoners in the west, where he committed the most shocking cruel- ties, for which, at his return, he was constituted lord chancellor of England. When the prince of Orange arrived, Jeffreys, knowing his unpop- ularity, endeavoured to escape in the disguise of a seaman, but \vas detected in Wapping, car- ried before the council, by the mob, and com- mitted to the Tower, where he died April 18, JENA, a town of Saxe-Weimar, in Thurin- gia, containing 5.000 inhabitants, memorable for the battle between the French and Prus- sians, on the 14th of October, 1806. The em- peor Napoleon headed the French troops, and prince Hohenlohe the Prussians. The battle was sanguinary in the extreme ; 250.000 or 300,000 men, of which the two armies were composed, with 700 or 800 pieces of artillery , scattered death in every direction, and exhibited one of the most awful scenes recorded in his- tory. The result was decisive in favor of the French. The Prussians lost, according to the bulletins of the French, 20,000 killed and wounded, and from 30,000 to 40.000 prisoners, with 300 pieces of cannon, 60 standards, and immense magazines of warlike stores and pro- visions. JEROME of Prague, a Bohemian reformer, was the scholar of Wickliffe, and John Huss. and began to publish their doctrines. In 1415, he was examined before the council of Con- stance, when John Huss was in prison. He contrived, however, to escape, but was taken, delivered into the hands of a macristrate, and burned. May 30. 1416. JERUSALEM, or HIEROSLYMA, (in He- brew, Salem, in Turkish, Solyman) a celebrated city of Palestine, subject to the pacha of Damas- cus. Its environs are barren and mountainous ; and the town irregularly built. The number of inhabitants is 25,000, 1300 being Mohamme- dans, and 4000 Jews. There are 61 Christian convents in the city. The church of the Holy Sepulchre has been an object of veneration and curiosity for 18 centuries. The temple of the Mohammedans is a splendid edifice. Melchise- dek is called the founder and king of Jerusa- lem. It was a long time in the hands of the Jeb- usites from whom king David took it. Solomon built the temple at Jerusalem. After his death CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. JER 302 JES Sesostris, king of Egypt, took the city, and plundered it, during Rehoboam's reign. In short, it was five times taken. Its most mem- orable siege was that by Titus, B. C. 70, when the city and the temple were entirely destroyed, and 110,UUU persons are said to have perished, and 97,000 to have been made prisoners, and afterwards either sold as slaves, or wantouly exposed, for the sport of their cruel victors, to the fury of wild beasts. Millman, the historian of the Jews, thus eloquently describes the de- struction of the temple. " It was an appalling spectacle to the Roman, what was it to the Jew ? The whole summit of the hill which command- ed the city blazed like a volrnno. One after another the buildings fell in, with a tremen- dous crash, and were swallowed up in the fiery abyss. The roofs of cedar were like sheets of flame ; the gilded pinnacles shone like spikes of red light ; the gate towers sent up tall columns of flame and smoke. The neighbouring hills were lighted up ; and dark groups of people were seen watching in horrible anxiety the pro- gress of the destruction : the walls and heights, of the upper city were crowded with faces, some pale with/ the agony of despair, others scowling unavailing vengeance. The shouts of the Roman soldiery, as they ran to and fro, and the howlings of the insurgents who were perishing in the flames, mingling with the roar- ing of the conflagration, and the thundering sound of falling limbers. The echoes of the mountains replied, or brought bark the shrieks of the people on the heights : all along the walls resounded screams and wailings ; men who were expiring with famine, rallied their remaining strength to utter a cry of anguish and desolation. " The slaughter within was even more dread- ful than the spectacle from without. Men and women, old and young, insurgents and priests, those who fought and those who entreated mercy were hewn down in indiscriminate car-' nage. The numbers of the slain exceeded that of the slayers. The legionaries had to clamber over heaps of dead, to carry on the work of extermination. John, at the head of some of his troops, cut his way through, first into the outer court of the temple, afterwards into the upper city. Some of the priests upon the roof wrenched off the gilded spikes with their sockets of lead, and used them as missiles against the Romans beknv. Afterwards they fled to a part of the wall, about fourteen feet wide : they were soon summoned to surrender ; but two of them, Matr, son of Belgo. and Jo- seph, son of Delia, plunged headlong into the flames !" In the 7th and 8th centuries, the crusaders contended fiercely for toe possession of Jeru- salem, and it was taken by Godfrey of Bou- illon. The Christians founded a kingdom there which was ended by the Turks in 1187. JESUITS, The ; the religious order of the Jesuits was founded by a military gentleman of Biscay named Ignatius Loyola. The order was sometimes called Loyolists, and sometimes Ini- ghists, from the founder's Spanish name, Inigo de Cyuipuscoa. Ignatius assembled at Rome ten of his companions, chosen, for the most part r from the University of Paris, in the year 1538. He submitted the plan of his institution, which he said was inspired by divinity, to Pope Paul A committee appointed by that pontiff to ex- amine the character of the institution, declared it inimical to the interests of the church, as well as unnecessary. The opposition to the establish- ment of the order was overcome by the Loyo- lites agreeing in addition to the three vows of poverty, celibacy, and monastic obedience, to take an oath of submission to the pope, agree- ing to go whithersoever he should direct, and to claim nothing for their support from the holy see. In the very charter, however, by which the followers of Ignatius bound themselves to the interests of the pope, they agreed blindly to obey their general. The pope finally confirmed the institution by a bull or decree, in the year 1540. The founder of the order of Jesuits beinw originally an uneducated soldier, it is snpposea that he was a mere tool in the hands of artful men, and that he was not in reality the author of the writings which bear his name. The order was confirmed under the title of the " Company of Jesus." At first the number of members was limited to sixty, but this restriction was removed, and the Jesuits multiplied rapidly. In the year 17JO. the order had 24 professed houses; 5!) houses of probation ; 340 residences ; fi!2 col leges ; 200 missions ; 150 seminaries and board ing schools; arid consisted of 19,998 Jesuits. The code of laws by which the Jesuits were governed was perfected by Layner and Aqua- viva, who succeeded Loyola as generals of the order, and were possessed of far more talent than their predecessor. Many causes contributed to ensure the sue cess of the institution. The Jesuits were re- quired to be more active than other monks, hav- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. JES 303 JES ing little to do with the usual monastic func- tions. They were soldiers devoted to the ser- vice of God and the pope. They cultivated the acquaintance of the great, and were deeply imbued with the spirit of intrigue. Loyola made the government of the institution purely monarchical. The general was chosen for life by deputies from the different provinces. His power was absolute, and no case and no indi- vidual were exempt from it. The general had a despotic power over the members of the institu- tion ; a much greater power than the head of any monastic order had ever before exercised. The Jesuits were obliged to obey their general, not only in outward observances, but to him they submitted the direction of their minds. Every novice was obliged, every six months, to manifest his conscience to his superior or to some one appointed by him ; and these novices were closely watched by others of the order, who were directed to give notice to the general of any thing important. The heads of the several houses were obliged to transmit frequent reports of the character.and conduct of the departments over which they presided, to the superior, and these reports were carefully kept and arranged, that the general might refer at once to the account of particular houses at any period. The provincials and' heads of departments of the order transmitted full and minute accounts of the civil state of the respective countries in which they resided. The number of reports annually received was fi584, or 177 reports to each province of which there were 37. The education of youth was an object which the Jesuits were particularly anxious to promote and direct, and the business of education was soon almost entirely conduct- ed by them. Jn spite of their vow of poverty, they contrived to amass vast possessions, and in the East and West Indies carried on a very lu- crative commerce. They were the confessors to monarchs and men of rank, and the influence they acquired was very great. They sought to acquire and enlarge property, and in South America, being possessed of wealthy dominions, they ruled over some hundred thousand subjects, as monarchs. They favored the passions of mankind by sanc- tioning unbridled license of manners, by the moral code they taught. Regular and severe in their own habits, they were enabled to make a selfish use of the irregularities they counte- nanced. The principal end aimed at by the Jesuits, was the establishment of the doctrines of the Romish Church, and they are said to have shrunk from no crime which could further their endeavors. They were not unacquainted with the persuasive power of the tortures of the in- quisition, in making proselytes. One of their most noted missionaries was Francis Xavier, called the " apostle of India." He sailed for the Portuguese settlements in India, in 1542. and soon spread the doctrines of the Romish church over the continent and surrounding isl- ands. It is not our intention to detail the proceed- ing of the Jesuits in the process of making for- eign proselytes, nor the controversies to which it gave rise. They were accused of making compromises with some sects, permitting them to retain profane customs and improper rites, in consideration of their publicly embracing the doctrines of the Romish church. Asweliave before hinted, it is quite as probable that as many converts were made by terror as by mild- ness, since the Jesuits were willing to do any- thing to maintain a show of success. They took possession of the fertile province of Paraguay, in the 17th century, and labored to disseminate military arts and improvements among the Indians. They introduced the com- forts of civilization among the inhabitants, and thus in the first place gained their affection and esteem. Proceeding in this manner, they grad ually strengthened their influence, so that a few priests readily ruled some hundred thousand Indians. But these priests did not maintain the purity of conduct, which they had given reason at first to suppose would be their constant guide in all their actions. They soon manifested schemes of the most daring ambition and insatiable ava- rice. They yearly sent home to the European Jesuits, immense quantities of gold, which they procured principally from Paraguay. They armed the Indians, and excited them to hatred against the Spaniards and Portuguese, evident- ly showing their intentions of making a separate jvereignty of Paraguay. In 1750, the coun irts of Madrid and Lisbon entered into a treaty for fixing the boundaries of their respective possessions, in South Amer- ica. When this treaty came to be executed in the year 1752, the Jesuits opposed it, and an- imated the Indians strenuously to resist the Portuguese and Spaniards, in the war which followed. The disgrace of the Jesuits at the Portuguese Courts originated in their conduct on this occasion. The Jesuits had no particular habit. They CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. JES 304 JES were divided into five classes; professed fa- thers, spiritual coadjutors, approved scholars, lay brothers, also termed temporal coadjutors, and novices. Some writers add a sixth class, called adjuncts, which are said to have been numer- ous, distinguished by different garments, and incorporated with the other classes. The pro- fessed father j publicly took the three vows of their order, and the fourth regarding obedience to the pope, missions, &c. The spiritual coadjutors made public vows of poverty, submission and celibacy, but omitted the vow of obedience to the head of the church. Approved scholars were those who after a novi- ciate of two years, were admitted, and had declared the three religious vows, but had not mat'.e them solemnly and publicly. These ap- proved scholars were on their way to become spiritual coadjutors, but were only admitted to that degree, and the degree of professed fathers, after two years' noviciate, seven years' study, seven years' regency , an additional year of no- viciate, and thirty-three years of age, at which time of life our Savior was crucified. The vows were binding on the part of the scholars, but the general could dispense with them if he saw proper. The order was divided into assistances, the assistances into provinces, and the provinces again into houses. The general resided at Rome, was invested with absolute authority for life, and had under him five assistants, named from the kingdom or country to which they belonged. These were the assistants of Italy, France, Germany, Portugal, and Spain. These assistants put their departments in the way of preparing and forwarding their affairs. Each province had four sorts of houses : The professed houses, which had no lands connected with them ; colleges, where instruction was given in the sciences ; residences, w here people em- ployed in any thing connected with confessions, preaching, or missions, resided, and the houses of the novices. Some of the buildings appro- priated to instruction were called seminaries, in which young Jesuits went through a course of theology and philosophy. Each province was governed by a provincial, and each house by a superior, who was called Rector in the col- leges, but superior elsewhere. Members of this order could receive no pre- ferment, except it was enjoined upon them by the pope, who did so in many instances, eight cardinals having been chosen from the Jesuits. When Henry IV, of France, was assassinated by Jean Catel, a Jesuitical scholar, this act and the writings of Guignard, one of the order, in favor of regicide, caused them to be expelled by several parliaments, and denounced as cor- rnptors of youth and enemies of government. Louis XIII again countenanced them, and Cardinal Richelieu, and Louis XIV showed them favor. In the reign of the latter monarch, they obtained the revocation of the edict of Nantes, in favor of the Protestants. The^y gained an almost complete triumph over their enemies, the Jansenists, when among other things, their refusal to administer the sacra- ment to the Jansenists, created a turn of the tide against them, which ended in their dissolu- tion. The Jesuits were tried before the grand chamber of the parliament of Paris, and lost their case, which grew out of a desire to com- pound their debts, when, having carried on great commerce in Martinico, they had sus- tained heavy losses by war. An examination into their own books, only proved the charges against them. Professing poverty, they were found to possess riches ; pretending to modera- tion and justice, they were convicted of incul- cating principles which endangered the well being of the king and realm. The Jesuits were expelled from Portugal in 1759; from France in 1764; and their society was abolished by pope Clement XIV, in 1773. Had they adhered to the principles they pro- fessed, in the outset, and merely aimed at civil izing and converting savages, and increasing knowledge at home, the institution would have been as justly celebrated, as it is now de- nounced for ambition, avarice, cruelty, and corruption. JESUS, called also CHRIST (the anointed), was born of the Virgin Mary, at Bethlehem, in the 12th year of the consulate of Augustus, four or five years before the commencement of the vulgar era. Angels had announced his birth as tidings of great joy to mankind. He was circumcised upon the 8th day. Three Magi, learned in the science of astronomy, having perceived in the firmament a singular star, knew that it was the miraculous luminary of which the prophet Balaam had spoken, and immediately left the east, and journeyed to Bethlehem to do him homage, and present their offerings. Joseph, the husband of Mary, having received divine warnings and directions in a dream, carried the infant and his mother into Egypt, to escape the fury of Herod, who ordered an inhuman massacre of all the child- ren in the land. After the death of Herod, the HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. JOA 305 JOH parents of Jesus dwelt at Nazareth, and they brought him, every year, to Jerusalem, to the feast of the Passover. When he was but twelve years old, Joseph and Mary found him, after an absence from them of three days, in the Temple, seated in the midst of the doctors, listening to them, and propounding questions. All who heard him were filled with admiration at the wisdom of his answers. Jesus commenced his public life in the thir- tieth year of his age. For the various acts of it the reader is referred to the New Testament. The close of his life affectingly displayed the love of God for men. On the eve of his death, after having supped with his disciples, he insti- tuted the Eucharist, and, having been betrayed by Judas, whose designs he had explained to one of his disciples, he suffered himself to be taken and bound, condemned to death before the Jewish tribunal, scourged and crowned with thorns, and crucified upon Mount Calvary. The body of our Lord was placed in a sepulchre of stone, sealed and guarded by the Jews, but on the third day. according to prediction, his resur- rection from the grave" took place. He dwelt upon the earth forty days, which he passed in the company of his disciples, teaching them how to spread the light of his pure religion through the nations of the earth. On the forti- eth day he ascended to heaven in the presence of more than five hundred of his disciples, where he is seated at the rio-ht hand of the Father. JEWS (See Hebrews}. JOAN OF ARC, (Jeanne d'Jlre), called the Maid of Orleans, was born of low parentage at Domremig, a village on the borders of "Lor- raine. When the affairs of France were in a deplorable state, and the city of Orleans was so closely besieged by the duke of Bedford that its fall appeared inevitable, Joan pretended to have received a divine commission to expel the invaders. At this time, a belief in the super- natural endowments was by no means uncom- mon, and. far from being confined to the lower classes, pervaded the minds of the loftiest and most pretending. Joan, on being introduced to king Charles VII, offered to raise the siege of Orleans, and conduct her prince to Rheims, there to be crowned with the usual solemnities ; at the same time demanding for herself a con- secrated sword, which had long hung suspended in the church of St. Catharine. Her request wag granted, and she fulfilled her promises, entered Orleans in triumph, and appeared, clad in a splendid suit of armor, at the coronation of Charles, which took place in the Cathedral of Rheims. The gallant maid, her mission done, now sought to retire into private life, but she was urged to stay. She yielded to the general wish with fatal facility fatal, because, having been taken with the garrison of Compeigne, she was, to the disgrace of Bedford and the English, condemned to death, and expired at the stake, in the market place of Rouen, May 30, 1431. She was never a servant, as English writers have represented ; and was a lovely girl of eighteen, when she first sought an audi- ence of Charles. An authentic portrait, yet extant, shows that she possessed a face and figure of exquisite loveliness; a countenance to which a beaming eye, and a tender expression of melancholy, imparted an interest, which rendered her fascination irresistible. JOHN I. king of England, the youngest son of Henry It, by Eleanor of Guienne, ascended the throne in 1199. The first act of his reign was to secure the provinces on the continent, which had revolted in favor of young Arthur, his nephew, whom he murdered with his own hand in prison. John having resisted the pope's nomination of Stephen Langton to the see of Canterbury, the pope revenged himself by giv- ing away "his kingdom to the king of France. This circumstance created a war, and John advanced to Dover with 60,000 men, to meet the French king, who was preparing an army to take possession of England. In this posture of affairs, the pope, whose high authority in temporal as well "fl spiritual concerns, was con- sidered to be then almost omnipotent, intimated to John, by his legate, that there was but one way to secure himself from the threatened dan- ger : which was, to put himself entirely under the papal protection, and to perform whatever the pope should command. Accordingly, John took the most extraordinary oath recorded in history, in the presence of his subjects, upon his knees, and with his hands held up, between those of the legate. By this most scandalous concession, John once more averted the threat- ened blow : but he had now incurred the detes- tation of his subjects. The barons of England formed a confederacy against him, and compelled him, on the 19th of June, 1215, to sign that famous bulwark of English liberty , the Magna Charta. John , how ever, refused to be governed by this charter This produced a second civil*war, in which the barons had recourse to the king of France for assistance. John directed his rout toward Lin- colnshire with an army, but being obliged to \ CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. JOH keep too close to the sea-shore, and not being apprised of the influx of the tide at a particular place, he lost all his carriages, treasure, and baggage. Grief for the loss he had sustained, threw him into a fever, of which he died, at Newark, in the 51st year of his age, and the 18th of his detested rei*. In 177:1 hi- u;:s appointed minister plenipotentiary of the United States to Holland, but on his way was captured by the British, nnd confined 14 months m the tower. He died Dec. 2, 1792, nearly 70 years of age. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL LAW 313 LEE LAURENS, John, lieutenant colonel, son of the preceding, was educated in England, and joined the American army in 1777. In 1780 he was sent us a special minister to France, and by his boldness in presenting to the king a memo- rial at the levee, received a definitive answer to his application for a loan which was satisfacto- rily arranged. His first essay in arms was at Brandy wine. At the battle of Germantown, he exhibited prodigies of valor, ia &ttempttng to expel the enemy from Chew'sKiouse, and was severely wounded. He was engaged at Mon- mouth,"and greatly increased his reputation at Rhode Island. At Coosahatchie, defending the pass with a handful of men, against the whole force of Provost, he was again wounded, and was probably indebted for his life to the gal- lantry of captain Wigg, who gave him his horse to carry him from the field, when incapable of moving, his own having been shot under him. He headed the light infantry, and was among the first to mount the British lines at Savannah ; displayed the greatest activity and courage dur- ing the siege of Charleston ; entered, with the forlorn hope, the British redoubt carried by storm at Yorktown, and received with his own hand, the sword of the commander; by inde- fatigable activity, thwarted every effort of the British garrison in Charleston, confining them, for upwards of 1 '2 months, to the narrow limits the very close of the war, too careless by ex- posing himself in a trifling skirmish, near Com- babee, sealed his devotion to his country by death. LAVALETTE, Marie Chamans, count de, was born in Paris, in 1760, of obscure parents ; notwithstanding which he received a good edu- cation, became the aid-de-camp of Bonaparte, and was entrusted with several important offi- ces, besides being 1 made a peer of France. In 1815, on the restoration of the Bourbons, he was tried, and condemned to death as an accomplice of Napoleon, but, the day before the execution, his heroic wife, who was permitted to visit him, changed clothes with him in prison, and the count passed the guard unnoticed, and entered the sedan-chair with his daughter. He found means to escape to Munich, but the govern- ment had the inhumanity to detain the count- ess in prison, which harshness deprived her of reason. Her husband was pardoned, and re- turned to France in 1821. LAWRENCE, James, a distinguished naval commander, was born in New Jersey, in 1781. In 1798 he entered the navy as a midshipman and, for his services iu the Tripolitan war, was made first lieutenant. Feb. 24, Itii: 1 ., Law- rence, in command of the Hornet, took the British brig of war Peacock, after an action of 15 minutes. June 1, 181 3, he sailed out of Bos- ton harbor, in command of the frigate Chesa- peake, to accept the challenge of captain Brooke of the Shannon. The result might have been easily foretold. The Chesapeake was an infe- rior vessel, and her crew shipped upon the spur of the moment, while the Shannon was a fine vessel, well manned, with a crew in perfect training. Lawrence was mortally wounded, but survived the action four days. His last words, before he was carried below, were, " Don't give up the ship !" The flag of the Chesapeake was not hauled down until almost all her officers were killed or wounded. LED YARD, John, a celebrated American traveller, born at Groton, Connecticut, in 1751 . At the age of 19 he entered Dartmouth college, for the purpose of acquiring the information necessary for his becoming a missionary among the Indians. He acquired knowledge with great facility, but so ardent a desire did he have for travel, that he soon escaped from college, shipped as a. sailor, went to Gibraltar, enlisted there, produced his discharge, and returned home in one year. He crossed the Atlantic again, work- ing his passage to Plymouth, and thence beg- ging his way to London, where he became ac- quainted %vith captain Cook, whom lie accom- panied in his last voyage. In 1782 he returned to Connecticut. Having formed a plan of making the tour of the globe on foot, departing from London to the eastward, he went as far as Irkutsk, where he was arrested, by an order from the empress, as a French spy, and con- ducted to the borders of Poland, where he was liberated, with an intimation that his presence in the dominions of the czarina was so little de- sirable, that a repetition of his visit would pro- duce a warrant for his execution. He reached London, after an absence of 15 months, in a destitute condition, at the age of 37 ; he imme- diately accepted a proposal to travel into the interior of Africa, on behalf of the African As- sociation, but he was taken ill at Cairo, and died, November, 1788. LEE, Charles, a major-general in our revo- lutionary army, was a native of "North Wales, and became an officer at the age of eleven. After distinguishing himself at Ticonderoga, and under Burgoyne in Portugal, he entered the CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. LEE 314 LEP Polish service. In 1773 he arrived at New York, and in 1775 received a commission from congress. He was taken prisoner, and re- mained some time in the hands of the British but was released Oct. 17, 1777. At the battle of Monmouth he permitted his command to re- treat ; and was reproached by Washington, to whom he used disrespectful language, was tried hy a court-martial, and sentenced to a year's suspension, Aug. 12, 1778. He died Oct. 2, 17fc2. He was an able officer, but proud, and ambitious. LEE, Richard Henry, a signer of the De- claration of Independence, was born at Stratford, Westmoreland county, Va., Jan. 20, 1732, but received his education in England. He return- ed to America in his 19th year. In the house of burgesses, he displayed his talents and patri- otism, and, in 17G5, assisted Patrick Henry's resolutions against the Stamp Act, with great xeal. In 1774 he attended the first general con- gress which assembled at Philadelphia, as one of the Virginia delegation. His services were various, and his labor incessant. June 7, 177G, he moved, " that these united colonies are, and of right ought to be, free and independent states ; that they are absolved from all allegi- ance to the British crown ; and that all politi- cal connection between them and the state of Great Britain is, and ought to be, dissolved." In 1784 he was chosen president of congress, and died, July 19, 1794. LEE, Arthur, was born in Virginia, Dec. 20, 1740. He. was educated in England, at Eton, and took the degree of M. D. at Edinburgh. In 1770 he commenced the practice of medicine in Virginia. He was afterwards a secret agent of our government at London and Paris, and, on the return of doctor Franklin to America, be- came the sole agent of Massachusetts. In 1777 he \va.s appointed by Congress commissioner to Spain, and he was subsequently employed in Prussia. He returned to America in 1780, and the next year he was chosen to the assembly, from which he went to congress. lie was called to the board of treasury, of which he con- tinued to be a member from 1784 to 1789. He died at his farm Dec. IS, 1792. LEE, Henry, general, was born in Virginia, Jan. 29, 1756, and was graduated at Princeton college in his 18th year. In 1770, he obtained the command of a troop of the Virginia light horse, and, in -1777 joined the main army, un- der Washington. His .conduct throughout the whole revolutionary struggle merits the highest praise. Ever in the front of danger, he per- formed several daring feats which have been rarely equaled. After the termination of the war.'he was alternately a member of Congress, and of the assembly of his state, of which he was governor for three successive years. He died in 1818. LEIPS1C, or properly Leipzig, a large city, founded in the 10th century, and now contain- ing 41,000 inhabitants. It is famous for its aftairs, being the centre of the German book- trade, and is alsq distinguished by its university. Here was fought an important battle between the allies and' the French, October 18th, 18l3. The whole loss of the French has been estima- ted at 60,000, that of the allies at 45 ,000 in killed and wounded. LENTULUS, a celebrated family at Rome, which produced many great men in the com- monwealth. Publius Lentulus Sura joined Cat- iline's conspiracy, was convicted, imprisoned, and afterwards executed. LEO X, (Giovanni de' Medici), a pope, was born at Florence in 1475, being the second son of Lorenzo do' Medici. At the age of 13 he was made a cardinal. He succeeded Julius II in 101:5, u:ul assumed th-: r.":v.c of Leo. Me was a' patron ot literature, and particularly en- couraged the study of the Greek language. After opposing the -king of France, he made peace with him, and. in 1515, concluded a con- cordate on the abolition of the Pragmatic sanc- tion. He died in 1521. LEOBEJN, a town in the Austrian duchy of Styria. where the convention was concluded between the French and Austrians, on the 20th of April, 1797, which terminated in the peace of Campo Formio. LEON, anciently, the kingdom of Leon, one of the great divisions of Spain, is famous for its fertility, and contains 1.215,551 inhabitants. LEONIDAS, a celebrated king of Sparta, sent by his countrymen to oppose Xerxes. When the Persian monarch demanded his arm?, Leonidas answered ; " Come and lake them ! " With his throe hundred Spartans, and a few auxiliaries, he defended the pass of Thermo- pylae against the whole Persian army. He died surrounded by heaps of slain enemies. LEPANTO, or Ainabachti, a seaport in Tur- key, on the gulf of Corinth, now the gulf of Lepanto, or gulf of Patras, with 2000 inhabi- tants. In 1475, the Venetians defended it against the Turks during a siege of 4 months. The famous sea fight of Xepnnto. between the Turks and Spaniards, in which Cervantes lost his hand, was fought Oct. 7, 1571. The Turks, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. LEV 315 LIG being at anchor in the gulf, and hearing that the Christians were bearing down upon them from Corfu, reinforced their fleet which con* sisted of 250 gallics, 70 frigates and brigantines. The Christian fleet consisted of 210 galleys, 28 transports, and 6 galeapes, furnished with heavy artillery , commanded by John of Austria, including the Spanish squadron furnished by Philip II ; the Venetian, with the flower of the nobility of Venice, and the pope's galleys. The Ottoman fleet alone was stronger than the three Christian squadrons. The two forces engaged with all the ancient and modern weapons of attack and defence, viz. arrows, javelins, grap- pling-irons, cannon, muskets, pikes, and swords. They fought hand to hand, as most of the gal- leys grappled together. Don John of Austria and V'eniero,the Venetian commander, attacked the Ottoman admiral All, and having taken him and his galley, immediately struck oiFhis head, and placed it on the top of his own flag. The Turks lost upwards of 150 vessels. Their loss in killed was about 15,000, and 5,000 Christian slaves %vere set at liberty. The Christians are said to have lost about 5,000 men. The battle lasted from six in the morning till evening, when the approaching darkness, and the rough- ness of the sea. compelled the victors to put into the nearest haven, whence they despatched couriers to all Christian courts, with the news of the triumph. LEPIDUS, Marcus ^milius, celebrated as being one of the triumvirs with Augustus and Antony. He was sent against Brutus and Cas- eius, and some time after, leagued with Mark Antony, who had gained the hearts of his sol- diers by artifice, and their commander by Ms address" He received Africa as his portion in the division of the empire ; but his indolence soon rendered him despicable in the eyes of his soldiers and of his colleagues, and Augustus, who wa.5 well acquainted with the unpopularity of LepiduS; went to iiis camp, and obliged him to resign the power to which he was entitled as triumvir. After this degrading event, he sunk into obscurity, and retired, by order of Augus- tus to Cerceii, a small town on the coast of La- tium, where he ended his days, B. C. 13, for- gotten as soon as he had fallen. LEUCTRA, a village of Boeotia, famous for the victory which Epaminondas, the Theban general, here obtained over the superior force of Celeombrotus, king of Sparta, B. C. 371. From that time the Spartans lost the ascenden- cy , which they had for sometime held in Greece. LEVEN, Loch, a lake of Scotland, 12 miles 27* in circumference, in Kinrosshire. The cast)* of Loch Leven, was granted by Robert III to Douglas, and was formerly a very strong place, capable of accommodating a numerous garrison. It was in this castle that queen Mary was con- fined after she had been separated from Both- well, and had been taken prisoner by the con- federate lords, at the battle of Carberry hill. After various ineffectual attempts, she contrived to make her escape. LEWIS, Francis, one of the signers of the Declaration of Independence, was bornin South Wales in 1715, engaged in mercantile pursuits, and came to America at the age of 21 . In 1775 he was elected to the continental congress from the state of New York. In the course of the war he fell into the hands of the British, and his estate was confiscated. He died Dec. 30, 1303, in his 89th year. LEXINGTON, a town of Massachusetts, 12 miles N. W. of Boston, where the struggle for liberty was commenced, April 19, 1775, the militia, to the number of 70, being drawn out to receive the British detachment sent to de- stroy the military stores collected by the pro- vincials. Seven Americans were killed, and three wounded. LIBERIA, a territory on the Western coast of Africa, where the American Colonization Society established a settlement of free blacks in 1820. It is at present in a flourishing condi- tion, although it has had many obstacles to con- tend against. LIEGNITZ, capital of the government of that name in Silesia, Prussia, has 9.600 inhabi- tants. On the IGth of August, 1760, the king of Prussia obtained a victory over the Austrian general Landon near this place. LIGNY, a village of the Netherlands, in the province of Namur, remarkable as the scene of an obstinate and sanguinary battle between the Prussians and the French, in June, 1815, which was the prelude to the decisive battle of Water- loo. On the 16th Blucher was attacked by Bonaparte with his whole force, except two corps under Ney, and the first corps under d' Erlon. A furious conflict ensued, in which the villages of St. Amand and Ligny fell into the possession of the French. The combatants dis- played the most determined animosity, and no quarter was asked, offered, or accepted. A des- perate attack of the Prussians, led by marshal Blucher in person, suddenly recovered St. Amand and a height in its vicinity, and the fortune of the day seemed to turn in their favor. Bonaparte instantly despatched orders to bring CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. LIS 316 LOC np the corps under d'Erlon, but ere its arrival, the French had recovered the village. Wel- lington meantime was desirous of relieving the Prussians, but he was himself attacked ; and, as the fourth corps under Bulow had not arrived, Blucher was obliged to withdraw from his po- sition at Lambref, and retire upon Tilly. LIMA, the capital of the republic of Peru, contains about 60,000 inhabitants. The manners of the inhabitants are loose, although the higher classes are well educated. It is often visited by earthquakes, of which two recent ones, in 1822, and 1828 were uncommonly destructive. LIMERICK, a city of Ireland, on the Shan- non, capital of the county of Limerick, a well- built and thriving manufacturing place, contain- ing 66,000 inhabitants. It was taken by the English in 1174. In 1651 it was reduced by Ireton, in the service of the parliament, after a vigorous siege. In 1090 it was unsuccessfully besieged by king William in person, but in 1091 it surrendered to general Ginkle, afterwards earl of Athlone. LINCOLN, Benjamin, was born at Hingham, Mass., Jan 13, 1733, old style. Atthe beginning of the revolutionary war, he was lieutenant- colonel of the provincial militia, but was soon appointed major-general in the continental forces. While with Gates's army in the north, he was wounded in the leg, and part of the main bone was necessarily removed. In the attack on Savannah, 1779, in conjunction with the French, Lincoln was repulsed. He was forced to capitulate in Charleston, in 1780, in consequence of the discontent of the inhabitants, and the troops under his command. At York- town General Lincoln distinguished himself as he had done throughout the whole of the revo- lutionary struggle. He afterwards commanded the militia that quelled Shay's rebellion. In May, 1787. he was elected lieutenant-governor of Massachusetts, and, in the summer of 1769, was appointed collector of customs in the port of Boston. He died 1810. LISLE, or LILLE (Flemish, Kyssd) a large city of France, formerly capital of French Flan- ders, and now in the department of the Nord, containing 69,860 inhabitants. Louis XIV took it from the Spaniards in 1G67 ; but notwith- standing the vast labor and expense bestowed in his reign on its fortifications, it surrendered in 1708, after a long and sanguinary siege, to the allies under the duke of Marlborough and prince Eugene. At the peace of Utrecht, it was restored to France, and in 1792, was bom- barded by the Austrians without success. LITHUANIA, formerly an independent grand-duchy, but in 15G9, annexed to Poland, seized by Russia on the dismemberment of Poland. It is fertile, and rich in minerals, while its forests abound in game. LIVINGSTON, Philip, one of the signers of the Declarationof independence. born at Albany, N. Y., January 15, 171G, was educated at Yale college, and, after graduating, became a mer- chant. In 1759 he was sent to the general pro- vincial assembly, and to congress in 1774. He likewise served as senator in the legislature of his native state, and died Jan 12, 1778, during the session of congress of which he was a mem- e LIVJNGSTON, Robert R. was born in New York City, Nov. 27, 174G, and graduated at King's college in 17G5. He studied and prac- ticed law in his native city where he enjoyed a very high reputation, was elected to the first general congress, was one of the committee to draw up the Declaration of Independence, and in 1780. was appointed secretary of foreign af- fairs. He held for several years the office of chancellor of New York. and. in 1801, was ap- pointed by president Jefferson, minister pleni- potentiary to France. Bonaparte distinguished him by peculiar favor. In lb(;5 Mr. Livingston returned to the United States, and died March 2G, 1813. He devoted the latter part of his life to the promotion of agriculture, and was presi- dent of the New York Academy of Fine Arts. LIVINGSTON, Brockholst, son of William Livingston, governor of New Jersey, was born in the city of New York, Nov. 25. 1757, and served with great distinction under Schuyler and Arnold. He went to Spain in 1779, as private secretary of Mr. Jay. On his return he studied law and was admitted to practice in April. 1783. He was made judge of the Su- prriiH' court f Now York, Jan. 8, 1802, was raised to the bench of the Supreme court of the United States, in 180(5. and died during the session of the court at Washington, March 18, l<-2:<, in the 66th year of his age. LLOYD, James, was born in Boston, in 1769, educated at Harvard college, and commenced business as a merchant. In 1808 he was elected by the legislature of Massachusetts, a senator in congress. Throughout the most trying times he displayed great calmness, patriotism, and ability. He died at New York in 1KU. LOCRIS. a country of Middle Greece, the inhabitants of which were divided into the Locri OzoltE, a Epizephyrii, the Locri, Epicnemidii, and the Locri Opuntii. They were a brave HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. LON 317 LOU and warlike people and signalized themselves by their efforts to maintain the liberty of Greece. LODJ, a large town in the government of Lombardy, belonging to Venice, on the Adda, containing 17.300 inhabitants. One of the most daring exploits that characterised the commencement of Bonaparte's military career, was performed here in 17!>6, by forcing the pas- sage of the bridge over the Adda, though de- fended by 10,000 Austrians. Napoleon always spoke of it as " that terrible passage of the bridge of Lodi." LOMBARDS, also called Longobardi, or Langobardi, originally a Scandinavian tribe, were first found by the Romans in the eastern part of the principality of Luneburg, and in the Altmark. At the close of the fifth century, they made their appearance on the north side of the Danube, and about the middle of the 6th century, the king Alboin gained great advanta- ges over the Gepid, and conquered all upper Italy, and a part of Middle Italy. Desiderius, the last king, was conquered A. D. 774 by Pe- pin of France, who subverted the kingdom of the Lombards in Italy, after it had been in ex- istence for the space of 2i)6 years. The present government of Lombardy belongs to Austria, contains nearly 2.200,000 inhabitants, and its capital is Milan. LONDON. This vast city, the metropolis of Great Britain, is situated on the banks of the Thames, about GO miles from the sea. and stands in lat. 51 31' N. and Ion. 5' 37" W. from Green- wich. The total population, including the several parishes which belong to the city, is 1 ,500,000. The streets of the city are generally wide, the houses arranged with great regard to uniformity, and well built. The royal palace, Westminster Abbey, and St. Paul's "Cathedral. are magnificent buildings. The manners of the lower classes are loose, and intemperance prevails among them to an alarming degree. London was fortified by the Romans in the year 50 ; walled in 294 : made a bishop's see 604"; re- paired by Alfred, 885. In 1090 it was not paved. In 1192 an order to build the houses of stone, and have them slated, as they were then built of wood and thached with straw, was not ob- served. In 1208 king John granted a charter to the inhabitants to choose a mayor out of their own body annually (this office having been formerly for life), to elect and remove their sheriffs at pleasure, and their common council- men annually. LONDONDERRY. Marquis of, more gene- rally known under the title of lord Castlereagh, an active statesman in the reigns of George III, and IV, by whose influence the legislative union of Ireland was effected ; and who, as secretary-of-state. promoted those measures by which the confederacy of the European powers was concentrated against Napoleon. In August, 1622, he was appointed minister from Great Britain to the congress at Verona, but two days before his intended departure, he destroyed himself in a fit of mental distraction. LONG ISLAND, or Nassau island, an island belonging to the state of New York, from which it is separated by the East river. It is 1 20 miles long, and from 10 to 20 broad. The soil of the island is admirably adapted for agriculture. LORRAINE, for a long time a fief of the German empire, and a subject of contention between France and Germany, at present forma the French departments of the Meuse, the Vos- ges, the Moselle, and the Meurthe. Square miles, 10,150; pop. 1,800,000. Its forests and mountains contain great quantities of game, and many minerals. LOUDON, or Laudon, Gideon Ernest, an Austrian general, was born at Footzen, in Livo- nia, in 1716, of a family that originally came from Scotland. He displayed great talents in the seven years' war, and was made a major- general, and invested with the order of Maria Theresa. In 1757 he contributed to the victory of Hochkirchen, and afterwaids gained that of Kunersdorf. He next defeated the Prussians at Landshut, and made himself master of Glatz. On the conclusion of the peace, he was created a baron of the empire ; in 1766, nominated an aulic counsellor ; and, in 1778, made field-mar- shal. He next commanded against the Turks ; and, in 1789 took Belgrade. He died, July 14, 1790. His modesty was proverbial. The duke of Aremberg, being once asked by the empress at a court party where Loudon was, answered ' ; There he is, as usual, behind the door, quite ashamed of possessing so much merit." LOUIS IX. king of France, commonly call- ed St. Louis, was the son of Louis VIII, and was born in 1215. Being an infant at the time of his father's death, the regency was confided to Blanche of Castile, the queen-dowager. Scarcely had Louis attained the age of 21 years, and taken the reins of government into his own hands, when Henry III of England demanded the provinces which Louis VIII had promised to restore. A tender was made of Poictou, and part of Normandy ; but Henry was resolved to try the issue of a battle, and his army was de- feated on the banks of the Charente. In 1243 CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. LOU 318 LOU Louis undertook a crusade to the Holy Land, and landed in Egypt ; Damietta was abandoned by the Saracens on the approach of his troops, who advanced to Cairo, in full confidence of success. But famine, the sword, and disease so wasted his forces, that he fell, with all his nobility, into the hands of the enemy. His ransom was the city of Damietta, and 400,000 francs. Louis remained five years in Palestine, repaired the fortifications of some cities, ran- somed nearly 1200 prisoners, but. on the news of his mother's death, he returned promptly to France, and employed himself in securing the enjoyment of peace and justice. His piety caused him to build many churches and hospit- als, and his subjects blessed a reign which ap- peared as peaceful as it was happy, when ill news from Palestine roused the enterprising spirit of the king, and another crusade was de- termined upon. He departed with his three sons, but instead of going directly to Palestine, landed at Tunis, ana commenced the siege of that place. The heat of the climate and the plague thinned the ranks of the army ; Louis lost one of his sons, and died himself at the age of 55 years, after a reign of 44. He was placed among the saints by pope Boniface VIII. LOUIS XI, the son of Charles VI, was born in 1423. In 1440 he put himself at the head of a faction called la, Praguerie, against the king, his father, with whom he afterwards became .reconciled. He was at the siege of Tartas, in ] 442. and was afterwards present at the raising of that of Dieppe, which was besieged by the English, subsequently to which he defeated (5000 Swiss, near the city of Basle. His father's death took place July 1, 1461, and Louis was crowned August 15. He removed from his court all the princes and nobility, who then en- gaged the principal persons of the kingdom iu a league, to -which they gave the name of League of the Public good (horiic du lien public.) The duke of Berry, the king's brother, the dukes of Bretagne and Bourbon, and the son of the duke of Burgundy, were the chiefs of this party. The king, who marched to defend Paris, engaged them July 2, 1465, without much advantage, but he broke up the league by a at Con- : concluded in October following flans, by which he agreed to give Normandy to his brother ; and to cede some territories to Burgundy. Louis, however, did not keep his pledges ; his brother was soon poisoned, and it was thought that Louis was the author of the atrocious deed. The young duke of Burgundy determined to revenge the death of his friend, but fell in the midst of brilliant projects, in a battle with the Swiss. Louis passed his last years in the chauteau of Plessis-les-tours, a prey to the horrors of a guilty conscience, and died there in 1483. LOUIS XII. born in 1462, succeeded to the throne of France in 1 498. He became the dupe of his allies, who prevailed on him to attempt the conquest of Genoa, Naples, and Milan, the issue of which proved unfortunate. In his war .against the Spaniards he was equally unsuc- cessful ; his array being defeated, and his fleet of observation, which was stationed oft' the coast of Catalonia, driven into port. Henry VJII of England, having waged a successful war on the French territory, suddenly broke with his allies, and, having made peace with Louis, bestowed on him the hand of his sister. In the midst of his preparations to recover the loss he had sustained in Italy, Louis died in 1515. LOUIS XIII was born in 1601, succeeded his father, Henry IV, in 1610, and, the state being placed under the regency of Mary of Medicis, the widowed queen of Henry IV. In 1611, Sully retired from the court, and was succeeded by Concini, mariechal d' Ancre. who gained' unlimited sway. He supported Mary de Medicis in all her prodigal measures; but his unpopular career was terminated by an as- sassian, and the queen mother was exiled to Blois. Richelieu reconciled the queen and Louis, and in 1624, was put at the head of the administration. He died in 1( ; 42, and his death was soon followed by that of Louis, who sur- vived the Cardinal only a few months. LOUIS XIV, son of the preceding, ascended the throne in 1643, under the regency of his mother, Anne of Austria, who chose cardinal Mazarin as her minister. In the war against Spain and Austria, the duke d' Enghien and marshal Turenne were victoriors in Germany and the Netherlands. By the peace of \\Vst phalia, in 1648, France gained Alsace, and Sundgau, Brisach. and the right to garrison Phillipsburg. In the same year began the civil war of the Frondeurs, against Mazarin, who was relieved by the great prince of Condi- . In 1650 Conde formed an independent party, but was arrested and imprisoned, and in Ki.i'j was defeated by tho royalists, wider Turenne, at the battle "of St. Antoine. In 1653, Conde joined the Spaniards, the war against whom was vigorously carried on by Turenne. By the peace of the Pyrenees, in 'l6f>!), Louis gained Roussillon and "Conflaiis, a great acquisition of HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. LOU 319 LOU territory; and, in 1660, received the daughter of Philip IV in marriage. In 1661, Mazarin died, and Louis took upon himself the affairs of government, appointing Colbert minister of finance, under whom the'arts, commerce, and manufactures greatly flourished. On the death of Philip IV of Spain, Louis began the career of those conquests which acquired him the title of Great. By virtue of his marriage with Maria Theresa of Austria, he laid claim to Cambresis Franche-Conte, Luxembourg, and a great part of the Spanish Netherlands, and entered Flan- ders at the head of an army of 35,000 men. However, the triple alliance of England, Swe- den, and Holland, compelled the French mon- arch to renounce all but Flanders, and to conclude the treaty of Aix-la-Chapelle, in 1668. Louvois now became minister of war ; and, in 1670, Louis effected the dissolution of the triple alliance; overran great part of Holland, and compelled the elector of Brandenburg to con- clude a treaty of neutrality, in 1673. In 1674, Louis, being abandoned by his former allies, formed a league with Sweden, and resolved to humble the republic of Holland. He made a sham attack on Bommel by sea ; but the prince of Conde being compelled to retreat with his army, the united provinces were lost to France. In 1675, Turenne perished before Salzbach. At length, a treatv was signed at Nimeguen, in 1678, whereby all the provinces wrested from the Dutch were restored, and Louis gained Franche-Conte, Dunkirk, and part of Flanders. In 1681, the Chambers of Re-union were erect- ed, and, in 1684, Louis seized Strasburg, Lux- emburg, and Deux Fonts. In the same year, Louis sent a fleet against Genoa ; and, in the following year, he bombarded Tripoli and Tu- nis. In 16*85 he revoked the edict of Nantes, and the Protestants were compelled to fly the kingdom for safety. In 1688, he took possession of Avignon and the Palatinate of the Rhine, which he devastated in the following year. The fortune of Louis was now on the decline. Louvois died in 16'Jl, and. in 1692, the French fleet was destroyed by the British at La Hogue. The French were, ho'wever, victorious in Spain and the Netherlands, under Vendome and Lux- emburg. In 1696, Louis concluded the peace of Turin with Savoy ; and, in the following year the peace of Rvswick was concluded, whereby Louis restored his conquests, made after the death of Charles II of Spain. In 1700 the war of the Spanish succession commenced, when Louis declared for Philip of Anjou, in opposition to Charles, archduke of Austria, sup- ported by the European confederates. War was now declared against France ; Louis was defeated at Blenheim, Ramillies, Oudenarde, and Malplaquet, and prince Eugene was every- where triumphant. Louis sued for peace in vain, but a change in the English cabinet gave a new turn to the politics of Europe ; and, in 1713. the peace of Utrecht was concluded, fol- lowed by that of Radstadt, between marshal Villars and prince Eugene, when Louis ceded his possessions in America to England, and his Italian dominions to Austria and Savoy. In 1715, Louis died, in the 72d year of his reign, at the age of 77. LOUIS XV, only five years of age at the death of the preceding monarch, was placed under the regency of the duke of Orleans. In 172(> the regency of Cardinal Henry commen- ced, on whose death, Louis took on himself the management of public aiE:irs and declared war against Germany and Hungary. After a life spent in the greatest voluptuousness, he died, an object of general odium, in 1774. LOUIS XVI. (ee France.) LOUIS XVIII, the brother of Louis XVI, displayed much energy and bravery in his struggles against Napoleon. After Napoleon had departed for Elba, Louis entered Paris on the 3d of May, 1814. On the 20th of March, 1815, the king left the Tuileries, and Napoleon re-entered Paris. On the 8th of July, Louis again returned to Paris. His death took place September 16, 1824. LOUISBURG, formerly a considerable town and fortress of the island of Cape Breton. It was taken from the French by the English fleet under Sir Peter Warren, and the provincial forces commanded by Sir William Pepperel in the year 1745; but afterwards restored to France by the treaty of Aix-la-Chapelle, in 1748. It was again taken by the English, un- der the command of admiral Boscawen, and general Amherst, in 1758, and its fortifications since demolished. It is now almost deserted. LOUISIANA, is divided into three parts. The first contains the parishes east of the Mis- sissippi, the second the parishes bordering on the west side of the Mississippi, and the third the western parishes. The southern portion of Louisiana is level, and abounds with swamps and prairies, the former of which are destitute of trees, and stretch out as far as the eye can reach, in gloomy and unbroken dreariness. But on the borders of the rivers the land is the most fertile imaginable, and yields in great CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. LUN 320 LUT abundance, cotton, sugar, and rice. Besides New Orleans, the principal towns are Baton Rouge, Alexandria, Nachitoches, St. Francis- ville, Donaldsville, &c. Education, in general, is - much neglected ; there is a Catholic college, at New Orleans, which enjoys a high reputation, and there are academies in various parts of the state. Louisiana was discovered in 1682 by La Salle, a Frenchman, and its name was bestow- ed in compliment to Louis XIV. then seated on the throne of France. It was not until 1G99 that a regular settlement was commenced at Iberville. It passed into the hands of Spain, by treaty, in 1702, but was restored to France in 1795, and was purchased by the United States in 1803, for 15,000,000 'dollars ; the vast territo- ry thus acquired includes the state of Louisiana, the State of Missouri, the territory of Arkansas, and the country beyond to the Rocky Moun- tains. Louisiana was admitted into the union as an independent state in 1812. Population 345, 590, of which 165,219 are slaves. LOWELL, a large manufacturing town of Massachusetts, 25 miles N. W. of Boston, sit- uated at the junction of the Concord and Mer- rimack rivers, containing, according to the last census, 20,981 inhabitants, but at present double that number. LUCCA, a city and duchy of Italy, originally a colony of the Romans. It has repeatedly changed masters. The city contains 22,000 inhabitants, and the duchy 143,500. The ducal power is limited by that of the senate which is annually assembled. LUCRETIA, a noble Roman matron, the wife of Collatinus, who lived in the reicrn of Tarquin the Proud. While other ladies were engaged in frivolous amusements, she was found at work in the midst of her handmaidens. Sextus, the son of Tarquin, inflamed with a base passion, gained entrance to her apartment at midnight, during the absence of her husband, and dishonored her. Lucretia, unable to sur- vive her shame, killed herself. Brutus (which see^ had the body conveyed to the forum, and delivered so moving and inspiring an address, that the populace rose against their oppres- sors, and the regal dignity was abolished in Rome. Brutus, and Collatinus, the husband of the matron, were the first consuls. LUNEVILLE, an open city of Lorraine, de- partment of the Me use, containing 12.77H in- habitants. A treaty between Austria and the French republic, was concluded here in Feb. 1801. LUTHER, Martin, was born Nov. 10, 1483, at Isleben, in Lower Saxony. In 1508, he be- came lecturer in philosophy at Wittemberg, and, while thus employed, received orders from his superiors to go to Rome, where he had ample opportunity of observing the corruptions of popery. In 1517 pope Leo X published in- dulgences to enable him to complete the build- ing of St. Peters, which measure proved the cause of an incurable breach in the Roman church. Tetxel, the Dominican, who had the sale of these pardons in Germany, behaved so scandalously, that Luther published a thesis in which he denied the validity of papal indulgen- ces. Tetzel, who was then at Frankfort, caus- ed Luther's thesis to be burnt, and published another in answer to it, which roused the indig- nation of the students of Wittemberg to such a degree, that they burned his thesis in return. Luther, in the midst of these proceedings, wrote to the pope in terms of respect, and though he did not retract his positions, he ex- pressed his readiness to submit to authority. In the meantime, the contention became fiercer between the champions for indulgences, and their opponents. The pope aggravated the matter by citing Luther to appear at Rome ; but the latter wisely declined putting himself in a place where destruction was certain. He had now secured the protection of the elector of Saxony, who. instead of giving him up, de- manded that the cause should be heard in Germany. With this the pope complied, and Cajetan was sent to Augsburg, whither Luther repaired ; but after two conferences, he left the place, from an apprehension of a' design upon his life. In 15H was held a conference at Le- ipsic, between Luther and Eck, professor of divinity at Ingolstadt, which ended without bringing the parties nearer to each other. Tne pope, on his side, became exasperated, and issued his bull of excommunication against the reformer, who caused it to be publicly burnt in the presence of the whole university of Wittemberg. On his way home from the diet of Worms, in 1521. he was carried off by a party of horsemen to one of the castles belong- ing to his friend, the elector, who adopted this method to secure him from his enemies. In this Patmos, as he called it, Luther remained ten months, and then returned to Wittemberg, where he published a sharp reply to I i^nry VIII, who had written a book ajrjiinst him, on the seven sacraments. In 152!) the emperor as- sembled a diet at Spires, to check the progress of the new opinions; and here it was that the HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. LYC 321 LYD name of Protestants first arose, from the pro- test made by the electoral princes who were m favor of the Reformation, against the rigorous measures which were proposed in this assembly. In 1534, Luther's translation of the whole bible was published ; and the same year he printed a book against the service of the mass. At> length, worn out, more by labor than age, this illustrious man died at his native place, Febru- ary 18, 1546, and his remains were solemnly in- terred in the cathedral of Wittemberg. LUTZEN, a small town of Prussian Saxony, in the government of Mcrseburg, the neighbor- hood of which is famous for two great battles, one in 1632, in which the Austrians were de- feated by Gustavus of Sweden, who was him- self killed in the action ; and the other in 1813, when the French, under Bonaparte, defeated the combined forces of Prussia and Russia. LUXEMBURG, a province of the Nether- lands, containing 293,535 inhabitants. Its cap- ital of the same name, was besieged, in 1794, by the victorious armies of France, and capitu- lated on the 17th of June, 1795. LYCURGUS, a celebrated lawgiver of Spar- ta, the son of king Eunomus, and brother to Polydectes, flourished in the latter half of the 9th century B. C. He travelled with the spirit of a philosopher, and visited Asia and Egypt without suffering himself to be corrupted by the licentiousness and luxury which prevailed there. The confusion which followed his de- parture from Sparta, having made his presence necessary, he returned home at the earnest so- licitations of his countrymen. The disorders which reigned at Sparta induced him to reform the government. Lycurgus found no difficulty in reforming the abuses of the state, and all were equally anxious in promoting a revolution which had received the sanction of heaven. This happened 884 years before the Christian era. Lycurgus first established a senate, which was composed of 28 senators, whose authority was designed to preserve the tranquillity of the state, and maintain a due and just equilibrium between the kings and the people, by watch- ing over the encroachments of the former, and checking the seditious convulsions of the latter. All distinctions of rank were destroyed, arid by making an equal and impnrtial division of the land among the members of the commonwealth, Lycurijus banished luxury, and encouraged the useful arts. The use of money, either of gold or silver, was totally forbidden, and the intro- duction of heavy brass and iron coin, brought no temptations to the dishonest, and left every individual in possession of his effects without any fear of robbery or violence. All the citizens dined in common, and no one had greater claims to indulgence and luxury than another. The intercourse of Sparta with other nations was forbidden, and few were permitted to travel. The youths were intrusted to the public mas- ter, as soon as they had attained their seventh year, and their education was left to the wis- dom of the laws. They were taught early to think, to answer in a laconic manner, to at- tempt to excel in repartee. They were encour- aged to steal, and theft was only punished for bein nr discovered. Thus we are told that a youth who'carricd off a fox beneath his cloak, permit- ted the animal to gnaw into his vitals, rather than disclose his theft by dropping the prize. These laws gave rise to a race of men distinguished for their intrepidity, fortitude and independence. After promulgating his code, Lycurgus re- tired from Sparta to Delphi, or according to others, to Crete ; and, before his departure, he bound all the citizens of Lacedtemon by a sol- emn oath, that neither they nor their posterity would alter, violate, or abolish the laws which he had established, before his return. He soon after died, and ordered his ashes to be thrown into the sea, fearful lest, if they were carried to Sparta, the citizens would consider themselves freed from the oath which they had taken, and empowered to make a revolution. The wisdom and the good effect of the laws of Lycurgus have been fully demonstrated at Sparta, where, for 400 years they remained in full force, but the legislator has been censured as cruel and impolitic. Lycurgus has been compared with Solon, the celebrated legislator of Athens, and it has been judiciously observed, that the former gave his citizens morals conformable to the laws which he had established, and that the latter had given the Athenians laws which coincided with their customs and manners. The office of Ly- curgus demanded resolution, and he showed himself inexorable and severe. In Solon, arti- fice was requisite, and he showed himself mild and even indulgent. The moderation of Lycur- gus is highly commendable, particularly when we recollect that he treated with the greatest humanity and confidence Alcander, a youth who had .put out one of his eyes in a seditious tumult. The laws of Lvcurgus were abrogated by Philopocmen. B. C. 188, but only for a little time, as they were soon after reestablished by the Romans. LYDIA, anciently Meeonia, a celebrated kingdom of Asia Minor, whose boundaries were CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. LYO 322 LYS different at different times. It received the name of Lydia from Lydus, one of its kings. It was governed by monarchs. who, after the fabulous ages, reigned 249 years, in the fol- lowing order : Ardysus began to reign 797 B. Aly quered by Cyrus B. C. 548, when the kingdom became a province of the Persian empire. 1 hree different races reigned in Lydia, the Atyadte, the Heraclidffl, and the Mermnadae. The his- tory of the first is obscure and fabulous ; the Heraclidae began to reign about the time of the Trojan war, and the crown remained in their family for about 500 years, and was always transmitted from father to son. Caudaules was the last of the Heraclidae ; and Gyges the first and Croesus the last of the Mermnadse. The Lydians were great warriors in the reign of the Mermnadse. They invented the art of coining gold and silver, and were the first who exhibited public sports, &-c. Lydia remained a part of the eastern Roman empire until 132(3, when it was conquered by the Turks. . LYMAN, Phinehas, major-general, born at Durham, about 171 G, graduated at Yale college in 1738. He was afterwards a tutor in this institution, studied law, and practised it with great success. After serving as a member of the assembly of Connecticut, he was elected to the council, and, in 1755, appointed major-general and commander-in-chief of the Connecticut forces. In the battle of lake George the com- mand devolved upon him, and he also com- manded the American forces in the expedition to Ilavannah. After spending some years in England, he returned to America, and, in 1775, embarked for the Mississippi, followed by his family. He died in West Florida, I??.- 1 . LYNCH, Thomas, Jr., one of the signers of the Declaration of Independence, was born in South Carolina, Aug. 5, 1749, and educated in England. In 1775 he joined the revolutionary army, but a severe sickness compelled him to relinquish his plan of serving his country in the field. He was elected to congress, and signed the Declaration of Independence, but his health failing, he was advised to go to St. Eustatia, and embarked at the close of the year 1779, after which date the vt'ssel was not heard of. LYONS, a large city in the south-east of France, containing 135,793 inhabitants. This city sustained a siege against the Jnrobins for several months in 1793, and after its surrender the principal inhabitants were massacred by the terrorists under Collot d'Herboia. In the spring of 1814, several severe actions took place in the neighborhood, between the French and Austri- ans ; on the return of Napoleon from Elba, in March, 1815, he was received here with accla- mation. LYSANDER, a celebrated general of Sparta, in the last years of the Peloponnesian war. He drew Ephesus from the interest of Athens, and gained the friendship of Cyrus the Younger. He gave battle to the Athenian fleet, consisting of 120 ships, at ^Egos Potamos, and destroyed it all, excepting three ships, with which the. enemy's general fled to Evagorns. king of Cy- prus. In this celebrated battle, which happened 405 years B. C., the Athenians lost 3,000 men, and with them their empire and influence among the neighboring states. Lysander well knew how to take advantage of his victory, and the following year Athens, worn out by a long war of 27 years, and discouraged by its misfortunes, gave itself up to the power of the enemy, and consented to destroy the Piraeus, to give up all its ships, except twelve, to recall all Ihose who had been banished, and, in short, to submit in every thing, to the power of Lacedopmon. Be- sides these humiliating conditions, the.govern- ment of Athens was totally changed, and thirty tyrants were set over it by Lysander. This glo- rious success, and the honor of having put an end to the Peloponnesian war. increased the pride of Lvsander. He had already began to pave his way to universal power, by establish ing aristocracy in the Grecian cities of Asia, and now he attempted to make the crown of Sparta elective. The sudden decollation of war against the Thebans saved him from the accu- sations of his adversaries, and he was sent, to gethcr with Pausanias, against the enemy. He was defeated and kilkd,3D4 years B. C., in the Bo3otian war. LYS1MACHUS, a son of Agathocles, who was among the generals of Alexander. He sided with Cassander and Seleucus against An- tigonus and Demetrius, and fought wiih them at the celebrated battle of Ipsus. He afterwards seized Macedonia, after expelling Pyrrhus from the thnnie. 15. C. 286, but his cruelty rendered him odious, and the murder of his son Agatho- cles so offended his subjects, that the most opu- lent and powerful revolted from him and ttban- doned the kingdom. He pursued them to Asia, and declared war against >el: r.i^is. who had given them a kind reception. He was killed in a bloody battle, 281 years B. C. in the *0th year of his age. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. MAC 323 MAD MACARTNEY, George, earl, celebrated in diplomatic history, principally for his embassy to China in 17[!2. He died in 180G. MACASSAR, formerly a large city of Ce- lebes, with a fine harbor. On its site now stands the little village of Vlaardingen with 1 ,000 in- habitants. The natives in the vicinity are, in general, faithful, and hospitable; their number is about 10,000. MACBETH, an usurper and tyrant, who fill- ed the Scottish throne during a part of the llth century. He murdered his kinsman, Duncan, to clear the path to royalty. He also put to death M'Gill and Banquo, the most powerful men in his dominions. Macduff becoming the object of his suspicions, escaped into England, but the inhuman tyrant wreaked his vengeance on his wife and children, whom he caused to be butchered. MacdufF and Malcolm, son of Duncan, having obtained assistance from the English, entered into Scotland, and forced Mac- beth to retreat into the Highlands, where he was soon afterwards slain in battle by Macduff. Shakspeare's Macbeth is one of the most pow- erfully drawn characters of his trao-edies. MACHIAVELLI, Nicholas, a celebrated writer, born of a noble family of Florence, in 1469. His first efforts produced a comedy called Mandragora, which proved so popular, on ac- count of its satire, at Florence, that Leo X sent for the actors to exhibit it to a Roman audi- ence. Machiavelli acquired-^however, greater fame by his political writings. By the influ- ence of the Medicis, and as a recompense for the suffering he had endured on the rack on sus- picion of a conspiracy with the Soderini against Julius, afterwards Clement VII, he was made Secretary and Historiographer to the republic of Florence. He died in 1527, of a medicine which he had taken by way of prevention. MACCABEES. (See Hcbrvcs.) MACEDONIA, now Makdonia, or Filiba Vil- ajeti, an ancient kingdom of Europe, found- ed by Caranus and Perdiccas, B. C. 800. It first became powerful under Philip and his son Alexander the Great, the last of whom gave it new splendor, subdued the neighboring states, destroyed the liberties of Greece, 338, and con- quered the Persian empire. Macedonia con- tinued in the family of Alexander, or of his generals, until 168 B. C. ; when by the defeat of Perseus it became a Roman province ; it con- tinued to belong to the Eastern empire until 1393, when the Turks under Bajazet IV invad- ed the country, which was finally conquered by them in 1429. The present inhabitants are a hardy race. Their country is rich, well-wooded and mountainous. Population, about 700,000; square miles, 15.250. MACKEAN, Thomas, was born March 19, 1734, in the county of Chester, Pennsylvania, and was admitted to the bar of the Supreme Court of Pennsylvania, in 1757. For seventeen successive years he was elected a member of the assembly. He was sent to the congress held at New York in 1765, took an active part in the revolutionary proceedings, and served in arms in New Jersey, where he greatly distin- guished himself. In 1777 he was chosen chief- justice of Pennsylvania, and was afterwards elected governor of the state. He died June 24, 1817, in his 84th year. MACPHERSON, James, a Scottish writer, was born in 1738. His fame rests upon his tianslation from the Gaelic of the poems of Ossian, the authenticity of which has been denied by many writers, but was finally par- tially allowed after a severe literary investiga- tion. The question gave rise to warm dispute between Macpherson and Dr. Johnson. Mac- pherson died in 1796. MADAGASCAR, a large island of Africa, 900 miles long, and from 120 to 300 broad. Pop. 3,000,000. It is extremely fertile. It was first visited by the Portuguese in the beginning of the 16th century. It is situated in the Indian Ocean, near the southern part of Africa, from which it is separated by the Mozambique chan- nel. Madagascar yields in abundance wheat, rice, sugar, grapes, honey, and excellent fruits. Almost all the European animals are found here in abundance. The forests are composed of a prodigious variety of trees, and furnish vast quantities of ornamental wood. Among the gums of the woods, is the valuable gum elastic. The islanders are warmly attached to liberty, but licentious and indolent. The island is di- vided among many petty kings or chiefs. The religion is Mohammedan, mingled with idola- try and Judaism. The climate is very hot, but the air is, in most parts of the country, health- ful. The French have several times attempted to form settlements, but in general unsuccess- fully. MADEIRA, an island off the western coast of Africa, belongs to Portugal. Pop. 100,000. It is situated between the straits of Gibraltar and the Canaries, is 15 leagues long ; 60 in cir- cumference. It was discovered by Zarco, a Portuguese, in 1419. It is celebrated for its ex- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MAH 324 MAH cellent wines, the best of which is known under the name of London particular. Its other pro- ductions are sugar, grain, fruits, and cattle. Funchal is the capital. MAECENAS, Caius Cilnius, the intimate friend of Augustus, and so great a patron of men of letters, that his name is proverbially used to characterize persons of the same dispo- sition. According to Horace, he was descend- ed from the kings of Etruria. Augustus, one day, being on the tribunal, passing sentence of death on several persons, Maecenas sent him a paper, with this inscription, " Come down, butcher !" which struck the emperor so forcibly that he immediately descended from his seat. Mcecenas was the patron of Virgil and Horace, who immortalized him in their works. He dis- tinguished himself also in the field, particularly at the battles of Modena and Philippi. When Augustus and Agrippa went to Sicily, Mcece- nas assumed the administration of the govern- ment, though he was not ambitious of power. He died 8 years B. C. In private life his char- acter was stained by a devotion to sensual plea- sures. MAGHELHAENS, or MAGELLAN, Fer- nando de, a Portuguese navigator, who, having served under Albuquerque, obtained the com- mand of a fleet from the emperor Charles V, and discovered the straits at the extremity of South America, which bear his name. He took possession of the Philippine islands, where he was slain in a skirmish with the natives in 1521. MAGNA CHARTA (the Great Charter), the charter extorted from king John by the English barons at Runnemede, June 15, 1215, which laid the foundation of the public rights of the people of England. MAHMOUD I, emperor of the Turks, raised from the dungeon to the throne in 1731 ; con- cluded the peace of Belgrade in 1739, by which he kept Belgrade, Servia, and Wallachia, and obtained Azof. MAHMOUD II, present emperor of the Turks, began his reign in 1808. His reign has been a good deal disturbed. His introduction of the European dress and discipline among his troops is said to be a fatal innovation. MAHOMET, or, according to the orthog- raphy and pronunciation of the orientals, Mo- hammed (the Glorified) surnamed Aboul Cas- nem, the founder of the Arabic empire, and of the religion to which he gave his name, was bom at Mecca, the 10th of November, 570, A. D-, according to the most probable opinion. He was of the tribe of the Korashites, the no- blest and the most powerful of the country. He lost his father before he was two years old, and his mother before he was eight, but their affec- tionate attention was supplied by the care of his uncle, Abu Taleb, a merchant. In the family of this friendly protector, he was employed to travel with his camels between Mecca and Sy- ria, till his 25th year, when he entered into the service of Cadiga, a rich widow, whom, though 12 years older than himself, he married three years after. Thus suddenly raised to afflu- ence and consequence above his countrymen, he formed the secret plan of obtaining for him- self the sovereign power, and judging there was no way so likely to gain his end as by ef- fecting a change in the religion of his country- men, he adopted that as his instrument. He now spent much of his time alone in a cave near Mecca, employed as he gave out, in meditation and prayer, though it is said that in reality he called to his aid a Persian Jew, well versed in the history and laws of his sect, and two Christians, one of the Jacobite, and the other of the Nestorian sect. With the help of these men he framed his Koran, or the book which he pretended to have received at differ- ent times i'rom heaven by the hands of the angel Gabriel. At the age of forty he publicly as- sumed the prophetic character, calling himself the Apostle of God. His disciples were at first very lew, consisting only of his wife, nephew, and servant, but in "the course of three years he had greatly increased the number of his follow- ers. On these he imposed tales but too well adapted to deceive ignorant and superstitious minds. He pretended to have passed into the highest heavens in one night, on the back of a beautiful ass called Al iiorak, and accompa- nied by the angel Gabriel : that he there had an interview with Adam, Abraham. Moses, and Jesus Christ, who acknowledged his superior- ity, which was confirmed to him by the Deity himself. This romance staggered even some of his best friends, and a powerful party being formed against him, he was forced lo quit Mecca, and to seek refuge in Medina. This ex- pulsion dates the foundation of his empire, and of his religion. The Mohammedans adopt it as their chronological era. calling it the Hegira, being the NJtlfday of July, A. D. C22. Mahomet had still a number of disciples, upon whom he inculcated the principle, that they were not to dispute for their religion by woids, but by the sword. No doctrine could possibly be better suited to a law le*s and wan- dering people ; it was soon carried into practice, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL MAH 325 MAI and the Jewish Arabs were the first to experi- ence its effects. Upon them Mahomet com- mitted the most shocking cruelties, numbers were put to death, others were sold for slaves, and their goods distributed among the soldiers. .A faith, thus propagated, could not but suc- ceed in a country like Arabia. His adherents were not only rewarded by plunder here, but had held out to them a felicity of the most sen- sual kind hereafter. In 027 Mahomet made a treaty with the inhabitants of Mecca, which within two years he violated, and captured the place. Having made himself master of Arabia, he extended his conquests into Syria, where he took several cities, and laid some of the princes under tribute. His career was stopped only by his death, which was supposed to be occasioned by poison, administered to him by a Jewess, and sprinkled on a shoulder of mutton, of which the prophet partook with a high relish. When .the woman was examined, she declared that she had perpetrated the deed, on purpose to try whether he was a true prophet ; an answer somewhat remarkable, as the innoxiousness of poison was one of the privileges promised by our Lord to his disciples. The poison is said to have taken effect three years after it had been administered. When he found himself dying, Mahomet caused himself to be supported to the mosque, where he celebrated the praise of God, demanded pardon for his sins, and then, mount- ing his throne, said : " If any one complaineth that I have stricken him unjustly lo ! here is ray. back, let him return the blows. If I have injured the reputation of any one, let him treat me in the same manner. If I have taken money from any one, I am here ready to restore it." H.d last words were, " Lord, pardon me ; and place me among those whom thou hast raised to grace and favor." He died the 8th of June, A. D. 6:32, having lived 63 years. He was of small stature, and of a sanguine temperament : he had a large head, regular and decided features; his eyes were large, black, and full of fire ; his forehead was large, his nose aquiline, his cheeks full, and his mouth large. His teeth were white, but set a little apart from each other, and between his eye-brows was a vein which swelled when he was in anger. Notwithstanding his corpulency, his gait was easy and graceful. After the death of Cadiga, lie had several wives and concubines, by whom he had many children, but left only one daugh- ter named Fatima, who married his successor AH, having lived to see his doctrines and his power extended over Arabia, Syria, and Persia. MAHOMET I. emperor of the Turks, was the son of Bajazct 1, and succeeded his brother Moses, in 1413. He reestablished the glory of the Ottoman empire, which had been ravaged by Tamerlane, and fixed the seat of government at Constantinople. MAHOMET IV was born in 1(142, and be- came emperor in 1649, after the tragical death of his father, Ibrahim I. He inarched in person against Poland, and having taken several places, made peace with that country on condition of receiving an annual tribute. Sobieski, however, defeated him near Choczim, and obtained so many other advantages, that a peace favorable to Poland, was concluded in 1676. The Janis- saries, attributing this and other misfortunes, to the indolence of the sultan, deposed him in 1687, and sent him to prison where he died in 16JU. MAHRATTAS,a powerful nation of moun- taineers in India, who have maintained a series of wars with the British and native powers. Their capital, Poona, was taken in 1817. The possessions of the Mahrattas formerly extended from the coast of Malabar to that of Orissa, in the Ghaut mountains, but have been much nar- rowed. MAINE, one of the United States, bounded N. W. and N. by Lower Canada; E. by New Brunswick ; S. E. and S. by the Atlantic Ocean, and W. by New Hampshire. The population, in 1840, was 501,793 The Penobscot is the prin- cipal river; and the Kennebec, a noble river, waters a large extent of fertile country. The commerce of Maine is greatly facilitated by uncommon natural advantages. The principal article of export, however, is timber, as a large portion of Maine is uncultivated, and covered with forests. Portland, now a city, is the largest place in Maine. The next in importance are Bangor, Thomaston, Bath, Hallowcll, Bruns- wick, and Eastport. At Brunswick, there is a flourishing institution, called Bowdoin college, which has .a medical school connected with it. There is a Baptist college at Waterville, and at Bangor there is a literary and theological sem- inary, supported by the Congregationalists. The first European settlers in Maine were the Eng- lish, who established themselves at York in 1630. Until 1820, Maine formed a part of Massachu- setts, under the title of the district of Maine, but at the above-mentioned period it was erect- ed into an independent state. MA1NTENON, Frances d'Aubigne, March- ioness de, grand daughter of Theodore Agrippa d'Aubigne, was born in 1G35, in the prison of CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. HAL 326 MAL Niort, where her father was confined. On his death, Frances was sent to France, being pat- ronised by her paternal aunt, Madame de Vil- lette. From her, however, she was removed by an order of court, lest she should be brought up a Protestai.t. In 1051 she married the celebrat- ed Scarron, from whom she learned the Latin, Spanish, and Italian languages. On his death, being in straitened circumstances, she accepted a pension from the queen, which was renewed to her after the death of that princess, through the favor of Madame de Montespan ; and under- took the education of Louis's children by that iady. In this situation she acquired the esteem of the king, who in 1674 purchased for her the estate of Maintenon, which name she assumed. In 1685, the king, over whom she had a com- plete ascendency, made her his wife; but the marriage was never publicly avowed. She has been accused of moving him to revoke the edict of Nantes ; but this is improbable, as it is cer- tain she exerted all her influence in behalf of the suffering Protestants. Her better actions deserve, beyond all doubt, much of the notice which has been given to the meaner part of her story. She exhibited all the characteristics of a woman striving to be great beyond the sphere of her sex. and the usual inconsistencies of famous women were very conspicuous in her : yet many of her acts were undoubtedly great. The royal institution of St. Louis, for the young and indigent female nobility, was founded by Madame de Mainte- non, and liberally endowed by the king. This was afterwards called the Society of St. Cyr, and was distinguished by many excellent regu- lations. To her influence has been attributed the settlement of that peace so salutary to the French affairs, after the destructive effects of the seven years' war, carried against all the ambitious designs and mortified impatience of the French generals. For a considerable time she lived on terms of intimacy with Fenelon, and on his recommendation patronised Madame Guon; but afterwards she joined the persecu- tors of that excellent man. On the death of Louis she retired to St. Cyr, where she died in 17J8. MALACCA, a country of India beyond the Ganges, consisting of a peninsula, 170 miles long, and 120 broad. It abounds in forests, and contains many fruit trees, which render it very valuable. MALESHERBES, Christian William La- moignon, an eminent Fiench counsellor, was born at Paris in 1721. In 1775 he was made minister of state for the interior. Under his ad- ministration numerous abuses were removed; but the year following he resigned, and travel- led into different countries, in a plain attire, and under an assumed name. Of the revolution, he conceived a hope that it would be produc- tive of good ; yet he voluntarily pleaded the cause of Louis XVI, and defended him with all the ardor of conscious rectitude. He was con- demned to death, with his daughter and grand- daughter, by the revolutionary tribunal, April 22, 17! . MALPLAQUET, Battle of. This memora- ble battle was fought on the llth of September, 1709. Of the allied troops, altogether amount- ing to almost 120,000 men, two armies had been formed : one commanded by the Duke of Marlborough, and the other by Prince Eugene, of Savoy. They were found to consist 01 165 battalions and 270 squadrons. The French troops were, for the most part, new-raised men, ill clothed, and ill mounted, but in great num- bers. To reinforce their army in Flanders, they had drawn 15,000 men from Germany ; these, and others from the Moselle, &c ; made their troops amount to 150 battalions and 300 squad- rons. Marshal Villars was commander-in-chief ; Marshal Boufflers had been sent to assist him at the battle, but without encroaching upon his authority. The manner in which the French were post- ed may be thus described. Their right wing was covered by the wood of Taisniere on one side, and bv that of Jansart on the other. The latter had "behind it thick hedges, with three ditches and artificial entrenchments one be- hind another ; the access also was difficult, be- cause of a marshy ground which lay before them. Against tins wing the Dutch "infantry were to make their attack." Their centre took up all the open space between the wood of Jan- sari and that of Sart. A hamlet towards the middle covered the depth of this centre, which was also defended by aline extending from one wood to the other. Their loft wing was posted, partly in the wood of Sart and partly behind, in the plain ; the wood served as a natural covert, besides which they had felled trees, and raised banks of earth and fascines, fortified with can- non. In the lines of their centre were open- ings, to let their cavalry advance. Their artil- lery was posted on advantageous eminences, and they had nothing in their camp to encum- ber then). The signal for the attack was given, by the HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. MAL 327 MAM discharge of 50 pieces of cannon. Prince Eu- gene then advanced with his right, to penetrate into the wood of Sart. In the charges of this wing, General Shulemburg, the Duke of Ar- gyle, and other generals, led on 86 battalions, and Count Loweem 22 other battalions, to at- tack the intrenchments in the woods of Sart and Taisniere. General Withers also, with 19 battalions, attacked the enemy in another in- trenchment beyond the woods of Taisniere and in Great Blagniere. The design in both succeed- ed : the fight, however, was long and obstinate, the enemy defending themselves with equal vig- or. The allies were repulsed more than once, but notwithstanding the barricadoes of felled trees and other impediments, the action wavering almost two hours, they saw themselves at last masters of the wood, and had penetrated so far that they could see the hind part of the in- trenchments of the enemy's centre. The attack of the left wing did not begin till half an hour after that of the right, but it last- ed longer, and was much more bloody. Thirty battalions, sustained by 15 others, Prussians, Hanoverians, or Hessians, engaged with above 70. These thirty battalions were commanded by Prince Friso of Nassau, general of the foot, and by Baron Fagel. Following his example, the troops of liis attack advanced as far as the third intrenchment. But these they could not force, as the enemy were well seconded by fresh bat- talions drawn from their centre. The assail- ants were even driven back to their own post. Nevertheless the prince led on his troops a sec- ond time, to attack those intrenchments which he had once gained and lost again. They re- covered the two first, but the third still remain- ed impregnable. When the enemy's left retir- ed, the Duke directed the Earl of Orkney, with 15 battalions, to attack and post himself in the intrenchments in the plain between the woods of Sart and Jansart. This was executed, and gave the horse an opportunity to enter them, and advance into the plain. The first squad- rons, led by the Prince of Hesse and the Prince D'Auvergne, were put into disorder by the household troops, but rallied, under the fire of those battalions. Advantages and disadvantages succeeded alternately six times, till the Prince of Hesse turning to the left, fell upon the rear of the infantry that had been engaged with the Prince of Nassau. This was the decisive stroke. On the sight of the diversion made by the Prince of Hesse, the Dutch battalions recovered new strength, broke through the third and last in- trenchment, and drove all opposition before them. In general, the French made their re- treat in good order; but three regiments of Danish cavalry made a terrible slaughter among several battalions of their right that had been surrounded. The allies pursued as far as the village of Quievrain ; the enemy lost 16 of their cannon, 20 colors, 26 standards, and left other indisputable marks of victory, including a num- ber of prisoners. Many were taken next morn- ing in Bavay and the neighboring places, weari- ness or their wounds not permitting them to follow their army. MALTA, anciently Melita, and formerly de- pendent on Sicily, is 7 leagues long and 4 broad, with a population of 80,000 inhabitants. Gozo and Comino are two small islands in its vicinity. Its capital, La Valette, is one of the strongest places in the world, and has a valuable harbor of great importance in the commerce of the Archipelago and the Levant. The island for- merly belonged to the order of Malta, or knights of St. John, whose head was a grand master, the sovereign of this little state. The French gained possession of it in 1798, but the English took it in 1800. The soil of this island, which is rock covered with a light bed of earth, pro- duces all sorts of vegetables, excellent fruits. the oranges, in particular, being famous, silk, sugar, and cotton. The climate is mild and the- air uncommonly salubrious. The Maltese are sober, fine seamen, and devoted to commerce. MAMALUKES, MAMLOUKS,or MAME- LUKES, from the Arabic Memalik, a slave, a body of cavalry, formed in Egypt 1214, from Georgian and Circassian slaves, chosen for their beauty and strength ; from 1254 they gov erned that country for 263 years, and expelled the Christians from Palestine in 1291. They remained a military body in Egypt, till the year 1810. but their chiefs were treacherously de- stroyed by Mohammed Ali in 1811. They were mounted on superb Turkish horses, which al- though spirited and full of fire, were docile, and obedient to the word and bit. The prevailing color of this breed is gray, and the unfailing tenderness with which "the horses of the Turks are treated, is repaid by astonishing fidelity on the part of these fine animals. The horses of the Mamelukes were splendidly caparisoned, and their studded trappings and rich bits rang in their gallop. The saddles had high pum- mels and cruppers, and the huge, shovel stir- rups were occasionally gilded and curiously or- namented. The riders wore full turbans, light jackets, loose short sleeves, and flowing trow- sers. Their arms were an ataghan or sabre of CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MAN 328 MAR Damascus steel, which is so finely tempered that a blade composed of it breaks in the hand of an unskilful swordsman. The Mamelukes were skilled in the use of these sabres and never gave slight wounds. Besides the ataghan, the Mameluke nad a carbine slung at his back, and a brace of pistols at his saddle-bow. At the famous battle of the pyramids, the Mamelukes were almost annihilated by the French infantry under Bonaparte. The im- penetrable squares of the French regiments received them with a most galling fire. The horses reared and plunged, and the riders fell by hundreds. In the very agony of death, while expiring upon the ground, some of the dis- mounted Moslem dragged themselves to the feet of the French troops, and cut at their legs with their long crooked sabres. Some backed their chargers upon the infantry, and caused them to strike the soldiers with their heels. But their rout was complete. Many perished in the Nile, and but a remnant escaped to Up- per Egypt. Although individually the finest cavalry in the world, they were incapable of acting in concert. MANCO CAPAC, the fictitious founder of the Peruvian monarchy, a deity, who appeared to the Peruvians, and taught them the arts of civilized life. MANLIUS, Marcus Capitolinus, a celebrated Roman consul and commander ; who, when Rome was taken by the Gauls, retired into the capitol and preserved it from a sudden attack made upon it in the night. The dogs which were kept in the capitol made no noise ; hut the geese, by their cry, awoke Manlius, who had just time to repel the enemy. Geese from that period were always held sacred among the Romans, and Manlius was honored with the surname of Capitolinus. He afterwards endeavored to sub- vert the liberties of his country, and was thrown down the Tarpeian rock, 3d3 B. C. MANLIUS, Titus Torquatus, a famous Ro- man, who displayed great courage in his youth as military tribune. In the war against the Gauls he accepted a challenge given by one of the enemy ; and having slain him, took his col- lar from his neck, on which account he assum- ed the name of Torquatus. He was the first Roman advanced to the dictatorship without being previously a consul. But he tarnished his glory by putting his son to death, for defeating the enemy without having, received orders to attack them. This gave great disgust to the Romans ; and on account of his severity in his government, all edicts of extreme rigor were called Manliana Edicta. He flourished B. C. 340. MANTINEA, a village of Greece, where, in 363 B. C. a battle was fought between the Thebans and Lacedemonians, in which Epami- nondas was killed. MARAT, Jean Paul. The name of this mon- ster revives the recollection of the worst atro- cities of the French revolution. He wrote strongly in favor of the worst of parties, and was a member of the convention. Marat, who belonged to the Mountain party, and was deep- ly implicated in their sanguinary proceedings, was assassinated by Charlotte Corday, in 1793. MARATHON, a village of Greece, 15 miles N. E. of Athens. It is famous for the battle fought in its plains in 4!>0 B. C., in which Mil- tiades, with a small Grecian force, totally de- feated the numerous army sent by Dr.rius, king of Persia, to conquer Greece. MARENGO, a village in the Sardinian duchy of Montferrat. celebrated for the victory of Bo- naparte over the Austrians in 1800. Some de- tails of this most severe conflict, which, per- haps beyond all others, established the military character of Bonaparte, then consul, are well entitled to a place in a compendium of history. The French head-quarters were removed to Voghera. which the army passed through on its way to Tortona, and took up a position round Tortona to blockade it by divisions; the ad- vance-guard quietly went round the town, and passed without any thing remarkable having taken place. If the Austrian commander was doubtful as to what line of conduct he ought to pursue, this was his time to determine; the possession of Genoa gave him choice either to fight, or shut himself up in the garrison he held ; and he should not have forgotten that so long as he held Genoa, his army had a retreat from the port, and to have kept the communi- cation open with that city should have been his chief concern. The French fought for Genoa from a knowledge of its value, and Bonaparte hastened to derive advantage from the neglect of the Austrians ; he ordered the banks of the Po opposite Valenza to be guarded, lest they should escape that way ; and the passes be- tween Piedmont and Genoa to be gained. Mas- sena and Suchet wore rapidly advancing to annoy the rear of the Austrians, and the con- sul in his letter to the inferior consuls, does not seern ignorant, of the movements in his favor by the army of Italy. The French army un- derstood that Mi-las' had evacuated Turin, and was advancing to meet them with 60,000 men. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. MAR 329 MAR General Gardanne retired to take post at Ma- rengo, on the plain of which his great body of cavalry would be of much service. The con- sul Bonaparte skirted Marengo, and was seen examining the ground with attention, by turns meditating and giving orders. The army passed that night at St. Julian's, at the entrance of the plain of Marengo : on the morning of the 14th June, some discharges of cannon roused them from their repose ; all was soon in readiness. Gardenne was attacked at seven o'clock ; the enemy showed much vigor of preparation ; a few weak points were touched on, but his intentions were unknown till late in the morning. Berthier was first in the field, and wounded soldiers arriving, owned that the Austrians were in force. General Victor's di- vision was drawn up in order of battle. Gen- eral Lannes' division formed the right wing. The French army was in two lines, and the cavalry supported its wings. The consul Bona- parte, about 1 1 o'clock hastened to the field of battle. General Desaix was ordered to support Victor. The Austrians were careful of their position near the bridge, on the Bormida ; but the principal point of action was at St. Ste- fano, from hence they could cut off the retreat of the French, and they gave their attention to this point. The division under Victor began to give way, and many corps of cavalry and in- fantry were drove back. The firing came nearer, and a sudden and dreadful discharge was heard on the Bormida ; the French were soon after seen retreating, carrying the wounded on their shoul- der.?, and the Austrians gained upon them. Bo- naparte advanced, and urged all he met with ; his presence encouraged them ; his own guards no longer continued about his person, but near him shared in the battle. The grenadiers of the consular guard advanced against the enemy : although they were only about 500 men, they still advanced, and forced every thing in their passage ; they were three times charged by the enemies' cavalry ; they surrounded their colors and wounded, and having exhausted all their ammunition, they then slowly fell back, and joined the rear guard. The army fought retreating in all directions ; the Austrians turned the right wing, the gar- rison of Tortona made a sortie, and the French were thus surrounded. The consul, in the cen- tre, encouraged the gallant corps that defended the defile which crossed the road, shut up on one side by a wood, and on the other by some thick vineyards of lofty growth; the village of Marengo was on the left. Of the French artil- lery, the few that remained had but little am- munition left. Thirty pieces of cannon, well served by the enemy, cut up the French. In the midst of this slaughter, the consul appeared to brave death. The ground was ploughed up by the enemies' shot, even between the legs of his horse ; but undaunted, and with th'e greatest coolness, he gave his orders as events requir- ed : he was urged to retire, but discovered no change. Marengo seemed the prize for which both parties contended. Gardanne flanked the corps going to attack it ; the Austrians for a mo- ment gave way, but being reinforced, marched on. General Kellerman, the younger, support- ed the left ; a regiment of dragoons routed a column of Austrian cavalry, but was charged by superior numbers, and was giving way, when two more columns advanced to his as- sistance, and took 100 prisoners. The consul being informed that the. reserve of General Desaix was not yet arrived, hasten- ed to the division of General Lannes to slacken its retreat : he tells them it was his practice to sleep on the field of battle. The enemy, however, advanced ; the retreat was absolute- ly necessary, which took place in good order, though eighty pieces of cannon were playing on them : this did not annoy the firmness of the French, they manoeuvred as though they were on a parade. At four o'clock in the afternoon, not more than 6000 infantry stood to their col- ors, and six pieces of cannon only could be made use of; one-third of the army was unable to combat, and more than another third was occupied in removing the sick and wounded, owing to the want of carriages. Every circumstance was eminently discourag ing to the French army, but their fortitude and courage changed their situation in the course of two hours afterwards. The divisons of Mounier and Desaix showed themselves ; they arrived on a gallop, after a forced march often leagues, anxious to avenge their fallen com- rades. The crowd of dead and wounded might well have damped their ardor, but one opinion only reigned among them, and they rushed on to glory. General Melas, being ignorant of what passed in the French line, and also igno- rant of the reinforcements that had timely ar- rived to their succor, changed that disposition which had given him success, and which it was his interest as well as duty to have followed up. He extended his wings, thinking, by this manoEuvre, to have cut the enemy off, but it only brought on his own disaster. "Bonaparte, whom nothing escaped, seized on this favor- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MAR 330 MAR able opportunity, and altered his plan accord- ingly. When Desaix reached the heights, the con- sul, the generals, and the staff went through the ranks inspiring confidence. This took up near an hour, while the Austrian artillery was bearing upon their ranks, and many were thus killed without moving, except to cover their comrades' dead bodies. The signal for charg- ing was at length heard. Desaix, at the head of alight battalion, threw himself upon the Aus- trians, and charged with the bayonet : all the French were in motion at once, in two lines, their fire carried every thing before it;, the ene- my were in every position overthrown. The French line now presented a formidable front ; as quick as the cannon was brought up, they made dreadful havoc among the affrighted Aus- trians ; they fell back, and their cavalry charg- ed with fury ; a powder wagon blew up, and their alarm increased; in iact, all gave way and fled. The French cavalry rushed into the plain, and advanced towards the enemy. De- saix trampled on all obstacles which opposed him. Victor carried Marengo, and flew towards the Bormida. The centre, under Murat advanc- ed into the plain ; he much annoyed the Aus- trian centre, and kept a great body of cavalry in check. Desaix cut off the left wing of the Austrians completely, and in the moment of his victory received a mortal wound. General Kellerman made GOOO prisoners, with two gen- erals and officers of the staff. Night com- ing on, the Austrians were all in disorder ; all crowded together near the centre, and many were thrown into the river, off the bridge ; their artillery intercepted their retreat. The third line of Austrian cavalry, wishing to save the infantry, came up ; a ditch separated the com- batants; the French cnossed it, and immediate- ly surrounded the two first platoons. The Aus- trians were thrown into disorder ; the pursuit continued, and they made a great many pris- oners ; the Austrian rear guard was cut to pieces. Night setting in, and the extreme fa- tigue of the horses, made Murat determine not to expose his troops more after so succesful a day's work. The armies had been fourteen hours within musket-shot of each other, and wanted rest. Victory waved on each side four times during the day, and sixty pieces of can- non were alternately won and lost. When the battle ended, the French had taken 12 stand- ards, 2G pieces of cannon, and 7000 prisoners. The Auslrians lost seven generals, 400 officers, and 6000 men killed or wounded. The French lost Generals Desaix and Watrin killed, four generals of brigade wounded, and 3000 men killed, wounded, and prisoners. The French army, when the battle commenced, was reck- oned at about 45,000 strong, with about thirty pieces of artillery. The Austrian army was from 55 to 60,000 men, including near 18,000 cavalry, and an immense train of artillery well provided. MARGARET OF ANJOU, daughter of Rene, king of Sicily, and wife of Henry VI, king of England. The duke of Gloucester hav- ing opposed her marriage, she effected his ruin, and he was strangled in prison. In the wars of the rival roses, she displayed the character of a heroine. Her husband having been taken prisoner in 1455 by the duke of York, she levied forces, defeated the duke, set Henry at liberty, and entered Lcndon in triumph. In 1460, her army was defeated at Northampton by the earl of Warwick, and Henry again became a pris- oner. The queen, however, escaped, and gath- ered another army, with which she inarched against the duke of York who fell in the bat- tle of Wakefield. She next defeated Warwick at St. Albans ; but was routed, after a bloody contest at Towton : on which she fled to France to implore succor from Louis XI, who refused her any assistance. This intrepid woman then returned to England, where she joined -several of her party, but was defeated at Hexham. In 1471 she was taken prisoner, and in 1475 she purchased her liberty by a large ransom. She then returned to France, where she died in 1482, aged 59. MARGARET, queen of Denmark and Nor- way, commonly called the Femiramis of the north, vanquished Albert at Falkoping in 13bi), and died in 1412. Albert had contemptuously termed her" the king in petticoats." MARIAMNE, the wife of Herod the Great, by whom she had two sons. Alexander and Aris- tobulus, and two daughters. Herod was very fond of Mariamne ; but she had little regard for him, especially after he put to death her bro- ther Aristobulus. When Herod went to Rome to court the favor of Augustus, he left secret orders with Joseph us, and Sohemus, to destroy Mariamne, and her mother, if any misfortune should happen to him. Mariamne having ob- tained the secret from Sohemus, upbraided Herod at his return, with his inhumanity, for which he put her to death, together with So> hemus, B. C. 22. MARINO SAN, an Italian republic in the ancient duchy of Urbino. It is one of the small- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. MAR 331 MAR est states in Europe, and contains but 7000 in- habitants, dispersed through a number of small villages. MARIUS, Caius, a celebrated Roman gen- eral. He conquered Jugurlha, kingofNumidia, and afterwards, for several successive years, car- ried on war with the Cimbri and Teutones, bar- barous nations, who attempted to subdue Italy. In his old age he engaged in a civil war with Sylla, and was compelled to flee to Africa, where he was found seated amidst the ruins of Carthage. His party becoming victorious, he returned to Rome, where he died, 86 B. C. MARLBOROUGPI, (Churchill, John) duke of, prince of the Roman empire, was born at Ashe, in Devonshire, in 1(550, and received an indifferent education, for his father took him to court at the age of 12 years. About 1666, he was made an ensign in the guards, and served for sometime at Tangier. In 1672 he was with the duke of Monmouth, who served with the French against the Dutch, and was made cap- tain of grenadiers. The conduct of Mr. Chur- chill at the battle of Nimeguen gained the par- ticular notice of Marshal Turenne, who called him the handsome Englishman. At the siege of Maestricht, his bravery was so distinguished that the French king thanked him particularly at the head of the line. Pie was made, on his return to England, lieutenant-colonel, gentle- man of the bed-chamber, and master of the robes to the duke of York. He attended that prince to Holland, and into Scotland, and about this time married Miss Jennings, a lady in waiting of Anne, afterwards queen of Great Britain. In 1682 he was made a peer, by the title of Baron Eymouth in Scotland ; and when James came to the crown, he was sent ambassador to France to announce the event. In 1685 he was created Lord Churchill of Sandridge in the county of Hertford. The same year he sup- pressed Monmouth's rebellion, and took him prisoner, and continued to serve king Jame with great fidelity, until the arrival of the princ of Orange, when he left him, but without tak ing any soldiers with him. The prince wa proud of this acquisition, gave his lordship gracious reception, and intrusted him with th sole regulation of the army. In 1689 he was sworn of the privy council, and made one of the gentlemen of the bed-chamber of the king, and created earl of Marlborough. The same year he was sent to Holland as commander of the English forces. He next served in Ireland, and reduced Cork with other strong places. But notwithstanding these important services, he was dismissed from his employments, and com- mitted to the tower; from which, however, he was soon released. The cause of this injustice has never been explained. At the commencement of queen Anne's reign, the earl came to England, whence he had been sent ambassador to Holland, and recommended a speedy war with France and Spain, which advice was followed. He then went to the con- tinent, as captain-general of the English forces, and performed many brilliant actions through- out his various campaigns, too numerous in- deed to be detailed here. At the battle of Ram- illies, May 12, 1706, he narrowly escaped death, a cannon-shot taking off the head of Colonel Singly, as he was helping the duke to his horse. In 1711 he returned to England, but was soon deprived of his employments by queen Anne, whose successor, however, restored him his military appointments. He died June 15, 1722. A distinguished poet thus mentions this great " : T\vas then great Marlb'rough's mighty soul was proved, That in the shock of charging hosts unmoved, Amidst confusion, horror, and despair, Examined all the dreadful scenes of war ; In peaceful thought the field of death surveyed, To fainting squadrons sent the timely aid ; Inspired repulsed battalions to engage, And taught the doubtful battle where to rage. So when an angel, by divine command, With rising tempests shakes a guilty land, (Such as of late o'er pale Britannia past,) Calm and serene he drives the furious blast, And pleased th' Almighty's wonders to perform, Rides on the whirlwind, and directs the storm." MARMONTEL, John Francis, an eminent French writer, born at Bort, in Limousin, in 1719. Pie was the son of a tailor, but educated at the college of Toulouse, and afterwards made an abbe. He was imprisoned in the Bas- tille for writing a satire on an influential per- son, but escaped the revolutionary fury. He died in 1798 at Abbeville. His literary char- acter depends chiefly on his Moral Tales. MARS, in ancient mythology, the son of Juno, and the god of war. He is represented with a helmet on his head, a spear in his hand, often on a car, animated with the ardor of bat tie. The Romans honored him most, and erect ed many temples to him. His priests, the Salii, celebrated his festivals by dancing, and beating their bucklers in accord to music. He was the favorite of Venus, and completely supplanted Vulcan, who, however, revono-ed himself. MARTINlCO.or MARTINIQUE, the larg- est of the Carribee islands, belonging to France, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MAR 332 MAR contains 332.865 inhabitants. The productions are sugar, tobacco, coffee, cassava, &c. The climate is very warm. MARY STUART, queen of Scots, daughter of James V, of" Scotland, and Mary of Lorraine, was born in 1532, and eight days afler her birth, inherited the throne by the death of her father. The regency refused the politic offer of Hen- ry VIII, to unite both kingdoms by the marriage of his son Edward with the heiress of Scotland. At six years of age, she was contracted to the dauphin of France, and resided at Paris till the marriage was solemnized in 1548. There she committed her first political error, in deference to the wishes of her father-in-law ; assuming the title of queen of England, on the ground of Elizabeth's illegitimacy from the unlawfulness of Catharine's divorce." Such an act could not be forgotten by a woman of Elizabeth's feelings ; and accordingly, on Mary's arrival in Scotland, on the death of Francis, Elizabeth never left unemployed a single opportunity of ruining her. Mary was also a formidable rival in point of female attraction, and Elizabeth could not forgive her competitor in being surpassed by her in beauty. Through the intrigues of Eli/.abeth, Mary, who had many offers much more suited to her rank, gave her hand to Lord Darnley, a weak but impetuous man, who was noway calculated to retain her affections. Mary, in return for his slighting and capricious conduct, gave unbe- coming countenance to an Italian musician, named Rizzio, who was invidiously supposed to share the privileges of her husband. Darnley joined some other nobles, who getting privately into the palace, burst into the queen's room, and murdered Rizzio before her face. She now transferred her favors to James Hepburn, earl Both well, to whom, although at first disagreeable to her, she seems to have given herself away, principally to accomplish her revenge upon her husband. Darnley was soon after killed by an explosion of his house from gunpowder, and the general voice of his- tory attributes the design to the Queen. Her subsequent conduct confirmed the belief: Both- well was publicly impeached for the murder, and the Q,ueen markedly implicated ; yet afler a scene of mock violence and plotted detention, she gave her hand to the alleged murderer of her husband. Neither party, however, was long allowed to reap the advantage of the con- nexion. Both well, being opposed by a powerful confederacy of the nobles, fled, and perished miserably in Norway The confederate lords then obliged Mary to sign a renunciation of her crown in favor of her son, and she herself was committed as a prisoner, and secluded from her friends. The place of her confinement in the castle of Lochleven was all but inaccessible ; but Mary's beauty had pro- cured her a friend in one of her attendants, and by his means she contrived to escape. She found herself very speedily at the head of a con- siderable body of troops, who proclaimed her pretensions, and prepared to maintain them against those of the regent. They were, how- ever, worsted in an engagement which ensued ; and Mary, panic-struck, fled towards England, and put herself under the protection of one of Elizabeth's governors. This was exactly what that princess had hoped. She, however, disguised her designs under the mask of friendship ; affected to pity the forlorn condition of the fugitive queen; and, under the idea of granting her an asylum, betrayed her into a prison. Elizabeth thus became the arbi- ter between Mary and her late subjects, and a sort of court was appointed to hear both parties, and decide between them ; but the proceedings were stopped by Mary refusing to answer the accusations brought against her. During Mary's continuance in confinement, she engaged the affection of the Duke of Nor- folk, a favorite of Queen Elizabeth, but who seems very readily to have entered into those ambitious views which such an alliance would naturally open to him. The design, however, was discovered, and Norfolk was committed to the Tower. On the promise of renouncing his scheme he was released ; but on violating it, was again committed, tried, and executed. Mary had, by the countenance she gave to this plan, rendered herself sufficiently odious to a people who almost adored the woman she was endeavoring to suppJant; and, on the discovery of a traitorous correspondence with Spain, in which Mary had coolly acceded to the plot of assassinating the Queen, the anger and violence of the Kno-lish people knew no bounds; and though it may wett be doubted whether even this act co'uld justify the subjecting of an inde- Cdent princess to trial and punishment by a ign people, the general exasperation pre- vailed, and Elizabeth, with well-feigned reluc- tance, signed the warrant for her cousin's exe- cution. Mary's character ever rose with her misfor- tunes, and now at their climax displayed a firm- ness and an energy of which her impetuous temper and fluctuating policy had excited little HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. MAR 333 MAR suspicion. After a long confinement at Cov- entry, she was removed* to Fotheringay Castle, to undergo the formality of a trial. When brought before the commissioners she disclaimed their" authority, and asserted her innocence. The commissioners, after hearing her defence, declared her guilty of conspiring the death of Elizabeth, and condemned her to death. Mary received the tidings with complacency. Many foreign powers interested themselves in her behalf; and her son James endeavored to save her life, but in vain. A warrant was sent down, and read to the royal captive, who only entreated that she might be permitted the consolations of her own reli- gion ; but even this favor was inhumanly re- fused. She was beheaded in the castle of Foth- eringay, Feb. 8, 1587, after praying to God to forgive all who had thirsted for her blood. Her remains were interred in Peterborough cathe- dral, from whence, with filial piety, th'ey were afterwards removed by her son, and deposited in Westminster Abbey. The last letter the'Queen of Scots ever ad- dressed to Elizabeth, as well as the base man- ner in which she treated it, may prove interest- ing. ' ; Madam, I thank God from the bottom of my heart that, by the sentence which has been passed against me, he is about to put an end to my tedious pilgrimage. 1 would not wish it prolonged, though it were in my power, having had enough of time to experience its bitterness. I write at present only to make three last re- quests, which, as I can expect no favor from your implacable ministers, 1 should wish to owe to your majesty and to no other. First, as in England I cannot hope to be buried according to the solemnities of the Catholic church (the religion of the ancient kings, your ancestors and mine, being now changed), and as in Scot- land they have already violated the ashes of my progenitors. I have to request, that as s'oon as my enemies have bathed their hands in my in- nocent blood, mv domestics may be allowed to inter my body "in some consecrated ground ; and alnve all, that they may be permitted to carry it to France, where the bones of the Queen, my most honored mother, repose. Thus, that poor frame which has never enjoyed repose so long as it has been joined to my" sou], may' find it at last when they will be separated. Second, as I dread the tyranny of the harsh men to whose power you have abandoned me, I en- treat your majesty that I may not be executed in secret, but in the presence of my servants and other persons who may bear testimony of my faith and fidtelity to the true church, and guard the last hours of my life and my last sighs from the false rumors which my adversa- ries may spread abroad. Third, I request that my domestics, who have served me through so much misery and with so much constancy, may be allowed to retire without molestation where- ever they choose, to enjoy for the remainder of their lives the small legacies which my poverty has enabled me to bequeath to them. I conjure you, madam, by the blood of Jesus Christ, by our consanguinity, by the memory of Henry VI!, our common father, and by the royal title which I carry with me to death, not to refuse rne those reasonable demands, but to assure me, by a letter under your own hand, that you will comply with them ; and I shall then die as I have lived, your affectionate sister and prisoner, MARY Queen of Scots." Whether Elizabeth ever answered this letter does not appear ; but it produced so little effect, that epistles from her to Sir Amias Paulet still exist, which prove that in her anxiety to avoid taking upon herself the responsibility of Mary's death, she wished to have her privately assas- sinated or poisoned. Paulet, however, though a harsh and violent man, positively refused to sanction so nefarious a scheme. Yet in the very act of instigating murder, Elizabeth could close her eyes against her own iniquity, and affect indignation at the alleged offences of another. But perceiving, at length, that no al ternative remained, she ordered her secretary Davidson to bring her the warrant for Mary's execution, and after perusing it, she deliberately affixed her signature. She then desired him to carry it to Walsingham, saying, with an iron- ical smile, and in a " merry tone," that she feared he would die of grief when he saw it. Walsingham sent the warrant to the chancellor, who affixed the great seal to it, and despatched it by Beal, with a commission to the Earls of Shrewsbury, Kent, Derby, and others, to see it put in execution. Davidson was afterwards made the victim of Elizabeth's artifice, who, to complete the solemn farce she had been playing, pretended he had obeyed her orders too quickly, and doomed him in consequence to perpetual imprisonment. From tyrants like these who would have ex- pected either mercy or justice ? Mary was per- fectly resigned to her fate, and met it like one who placed the most unwavering reliance in the efficacy of the religion she professed . After hearing the warrant for her execution, she said CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MAR 334 MAR that though " she was sorry it came from Eliza- beth, she had long been expecting the man- date for her death, and was riot unprepared to die." " For many years," she added, " I have lived in continual affliction, unable to do good to myself or to those wh'o are dear to me ; and as I shall depart innocent of the crime which has been laid to my charge, I cannot see why 1 should shrink from the prospect of immortal- ity." She then laid her hand on the New Tes- tament, and solemnly protested that she had never either devised, compassed, or consented to the death of the Queen of England. Before leaving the world, Mary felt a natural curiosity to be informed upon several subjects of public interest, which, though connected with herself, and generally known, had not penetrated the walls of her prison. She asked if no foreign princes had interfered in her behalf, if her secretaries were still alive, if it was intended to punish them as well as her, if they brought no letters from Elizabeth or others, and, above all, if her son, the King of Scotland, was well, and had evinced any interest in the fate of a mother who had always loved and never wrong- ed him. Being satisfied upon these points, she proceeded to inquire when her execution was to take place ? Shrewsbury replied that it was fixed for the next morning at eight. She ap- peared startled and agitated for a few minutes, saying that it was more sudden than she had anticipated, and that she had yet to make her will, which she had hitherto deferred, in the expectation that the papers and letters which had been forcibly taken from her would be re- stored. She soon, however, regained her self- possession; and" informing the commissioners that she desired to be left alone to make her preparations, she dismissed them for the night. Upon Bourgoine making the remark that ' more than a few hours was allowed to the meanest criminal,' she said "she must submit with resignation to her fate, and learn to regard it as the will of God." She then requested her attendants to kneel with her, and she prayed fervently for some time in the midst of them. Afterward, while supper was preparing, she employed herself in putting all the monby she had by her into separate purses, and affixed to each, with her own hand, the name of the per- son for whom she intended it. At supper, though she sat down to table, she ate little. 1 ler mind, however, was in perfect composure ; and during the repast, though she spoke little, placid smiles were frequently observed to pass over her countenance. The calm magnanimity of their mistress only increased the distress of her servants. They saw her sitting among them in her usual health, and with almost more than her usual cheerfulness, partaking of the viands that were set before her ; yet they knew that it was the last meal at which they should ever be present together ; and that the interchange of affectionate service upon their part, and of con- descending attention and endearing gentleness on hers, which had linked them to her for so many years, was now about to terminate for ever. Far from attempting to offer her conso- lation, they were unable to discover any for themselves. As soon as the melancholy meal was over. Mary desired that a cup of wine should be given to her ; and putting it to her lips, drank to the health of each of her attendants by name. She requested that they would pledge her in like manner; and each, falling on his knee, and mingling tears with the wine, drank to her, asking pardon at the same time for all the faults he had ever committed. In the true spirit of Christian humility, she not only willingly for- gave them, but asked their pardon also. The inventory of her wardrobe and furniture was then brought to her ; and she wrote in the mar- gin opposite each article the name of the person to whom she wished it should be given. She did the same with her rings, jewels, and all her most valuable trinkets ; and there was not one of her friends or servants, either present or ab- sent, to whom she forgot to leave a memorial. These duties being discharged, Mary sat down to her desk to arrange her papers, to finish her will, and to write several letters. J?he then drew up her last will and testament; and with- out ever lifting her pen from the paper, or stop- ping at intervals to think, she covered two large sheets with close writing, forgetting nothing of any moment, and expressing herself with all that precision and clearness which distinguished her style in the very happiest moments of her life. She named as her four executors- 1 the Duke of Guise, her cousin-german ; the Arch- bishop of Glasgow, her ambassador in Trance; Lesley, Bishop of Ross; and Monsiour'do Huys- seau, her chancellor. She next wrole a Idler to her brother-in-law, the King of France, in which she apologized for not being able to enter into her affairs at greater length, as she had only an hour or two to live, and had not been informed till that day after dinner that she was to be executed next morning. ' Thanks be unto God, however," she added, " I have no terror at the idea of death, and solemnly declare to you that I meet it innocent of every crime HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. MAR 335 MAR The bearer of this letter, and my other servants, will recount to you how I comported myself in my last moments." The letter concluded with earnest entreaties that her faithful followers should be protected and rewarded. Her anx- iety on their account at such a moment indi- cated all that amiable generosity of disposition which was one of the leading features of Mary's character. About two in the morning she sealed up all her papers, and said she would now think no more of the affairs of this world, but would spend the rest of her time in prayer and com- mune with her own conscience. She went to bed for some hours ; but slse did not sleep. Her lips were observed in continual motion, and her hands were frequently folded and lifted up to- wards heaven. On the morning of Wednesday, the 8th of February, Mary rose with the break of day ; and her domestics, who had watched and wept all night, immediately gathered round her. She told them that she had made her will, and re- quested that they would see it safely deposited in the hands of her executors. She likewise besought them not to separate until they had carried her body to France ; and she placed a sum of money in the hands of her physician to defray the expenses of the journey. Her earnest desire was, to be buried either in the church of St. Denis, in Paris, beside her first husband Francis, or at-Rheims, in the tomb which con- tained the remains of her mother. She ex- pressed a wish, too, that, besides her friends :ind servants, a number of poor people and children from different hospitals should be pres- ent at her funeral, clothed in mourning at her expense, and each, according to the Catholic custom, carrying in his hand a lighted taper. She now renewed her devotions, and was in the midst of them, with her servants praying and weeping round her, when a messenger from the commissioners knocked at the door, to an- nounce that all was ready. She requested a little longer time to finish her prayers, which was granted. As soon as she desired the door to be opened, the sheriff, carrying irt his hand the white wand of office, entered to conduct her to the place of execution. Her servants crowded round her, and . insisted on beinor allowed to accompany her to the scaffold. But contrary orders having been given by Elizabeth, they were told that she must proceed alone. Against a piece of such arbitrary cruelty they remon- strated loudly, but in vain ;, for a* soon as Mary passed into the gallery, the door was closed, and believing that they were separated from 29 her for ever, the shrieks of the women and the scarcely less audible lamentations of the men were heard in distant parts of the castle. At the foot of the staircase leading down to the hall below, Mary was met by the Earls of Kent and Shrewsbury ; and she was allowed to stop to take farewell of Sir Andrew Melvil, the master of her household, whom her keepers had not allowed to come into her presence for some time before. With tears in his eyes Melvil knelt before her, kissed her hand, and declared that it was the heaviest hour of his life. Mary assured him that it was not so to her. " I now feel, my good Melvil," said she, " that all this world is vanity. When you speak of me here- after, mention that I died firm in mv faith, wil- ling to forgive my enemies, conscious that I had never disgraced Scotland my native country, and rejoicinir in the thought that I had always been true to France, the land of my happiest years. Tell my son." she added, and when she named her only child, of whom she had been so proud in his infancy, but in whom all her hopes had been so fatally blasted, her feel- ings for the first time overpowered her, and a flood of tears flowed from her eyes " tell my son that I thought of him in mv last moments, and that I have never yielded,"either by word or deed, to aught that might lead to his preju- dice ; desire him to preserve the memory of his unfortunate parent, and may he be a thousand times more happj; and more prosperous than she has been." Before taking leave of Melvil, Mary turned to the commissioners, and told them that her three last requests were, that her secretary Curl, whom she blamed less for his treachery than Naw, should not be punished; that her servants should have free permission to depart to France ; and that -some of them should be allowed to come down from the apartments above to see her die. The earls answered , that they believed the two former of these requests would be grant- ed ; but that they could not concede the last, alleging, as their excuse, that the affliction of her attendants would only add to the severity of her sufferings. But Mary was resolved that some of her own people should witness her last moments. " I will not submit to the indignity," she said, "of permitting my body to fall into the hands of strangers. You are the servants of a maiden queen, and she herself, were she here, would yield to the dictates of humanity, and permit some of those who have been so long faithful to me to assist me at my death. Re- member, too, that I am cousin to your mistress, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MAR 336 MAS and the descendant of Henry VII ;' I am the dowager of France, and the anointed queen of Scotland." Ashamed of any farther opposition, the earls allowed her to name four male and two female attendants, whom they sent for, and permitted to remain beside her for the short time she had yet to live. The same hall in which the trial had taken place was prepared for the execution. At the upper end was the scaffold, covered with b'lack cloth, and elevated about two feet from the floor. A chair was placed on it for the Queen of Scots. On one side of the block stood two executioners, and on the other the Earls of Kent and Shrews- bury ; Deal and the sheriff were immediately behind. The scaffold was railed off from the rest of the hall, in which Sir Amias Paulet with a body of guards, the other commissioners, and some gentlemen of the neighborhood, amounting altogether to about two hundred persons, were assembled. Mary entered, leaning on the arm of her physician, while Sir Andrew Mi'lvil car- ried the train of her robe. She was in full dress, and looked as if she were about to hold a draw- ingroom, not to lay her head beneath the axe. She wore a gown of black silk, bordered with crimson velvet, over which was a satin mantle ; a long veil of white crape, stiffened with wire, and edged with rich lace, hung down almost, to the ground ; round her neck was suspended an ivory crucifix, and the beads which the Catho- lics use in their prayers were fastened to her girdle. The symmetry of her fine figure had long been destroyed by her sedentary life ; and years of care had left many a trace on her beau- tiful features. But the dignity of the queen was still apparent; and the calm grace of men- tal serenity imparted to her countenance at least some share of its former loveliness. With a composed and steady step she passed through the hall, and ascended the scaffold, ami listened unmoved while Deal read aloud the warrant for her death, even the myrmidons of Elizabeth looked upon her with admiration. Mary Queen of Scots, died in the forty-fifth year of her age. Her remains now repose in Westminster Abbey, about ten yards from the tomb of Elizabeth. MARYLAND, one of the southern states, divided into two parts by Chesapeake bay which extends from north. to south, and thus forms the Eastern shore and the Western sluore. Population 469,232. The eastern shore, which is low and level, is sandy, and, below the falls of the rivers, the western shore is similar. But above these the ground gradually rises until the western part of the state is quite mountain- ous. Annapolis is the seat of government, but Baltimore is the largest place in the state, and the third city in the~union. The university of Alary land, tSt. Mary's college, and Jlutger's col- lege, are all well endowed and respectable in- stitutions. There are many other seminaries in different parts of the state. The most important articles of export are flour and tobacco. Charles I, in 1C32, made a grant of this country to lord Baltimore, a Catholic, who commenced a settle- ment here with about 2'M Catholics, in 1034. MASHAM, Abigail, bed-chamber woman to queen Anne, in which situation she supplanted the duchess of Marlborough, and procured the dismissal of the whig ministry, which led to the peace of Utrecht in J713. MASIN1SSA, king of a small country in Af- rica, took part with the Carthaginians against Rome, but afterwards became the ally of the Romans, who were indebted to him for many victories. At his death he made Scijiio ^Emi- lianus guardian of his kingdom. He died B. C. MASK, IRON, or Man in the Iron Mask, tin: most singular prisoner ever confined within the walls of the Bastile ;. of whom, notwithstanding all the curiosity and conjecture that have been employed to ascertain his quality and pedigree, nothing authentic has transpired to the present time. In 1098 he was brought from the island of bt. Marguerite by Mows, de St. Mars, the newly-appointed governor of the Bastile, was at- tended with the greatest respect, maintained a sumptuous table, and had every possible indul- gence shown him until the time of his death in Nov. 19, 1703. This mysterious prisoner, on his removal to the Bastile. was carried in a litter, accompanied by several men on horseback, v.'ho had orders to put him to deatti. if he made the slightest attempt to show his face or otherwise discover himself. His face was concealed with a mask of black velvet with springs of steel, which were so constructed that he could eat without taking it off. A physician of the Bas- tile, who had often attended him, said he had never seen his face, though he had frequently examined his tongue and other parts of his body ; but added, that he was admirably well made, that his skin was brown, his voice interesting, that he was very accomplished, read much played on the guitar, and had an exquisite taste for lace and fine linen. The pains taken in his concealment show that he was a person of considerable iiuality and importance, and from the following circum- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL MAS 337 MAS stances it appears singular that he was never discovered. Whilst at St. Marguerite, he one day wrote something with his knife on a silver plate, which he threw from the window towards a boat, lying near the tower. A fisherman took up the plate and brought it to the governor, who, with great astonishment, asked the man if he had read the writing or showed it to any one ; and, although the fisherman answered in the negative, kept him in confinement until he was perfectly satisfied, after which he dismissed him, saying, " It is lucky for you that you can- not read." The abbe Papon says, in the year 177d, I had the curiosity to visit the apartment of this unfortunate prisoner : it looks towards the sea. I found in the citadel an officer in the independent company there, 79 years of age. He told me that his father had often related to him that a young lad, a barber, having seen one day something'whiie-floaUngon the water, took it up. It was a very fine shirt, written almost all over; he carried it to Mons. de St. Mars, who, having looked at some parts of the writing, asked the lad, with an appearance of auxiely, if he had not had the curiosity to read it .' He assured him he had not, but two days after- wards the boy was found dead in his bed. Immediately after the prisoner's death, his npparel, linen, clothes, mattresses, and every- thing that had been used by him, were burnt ; the walls of his room were scraped, the floor was taken up, and every precaution used that no trace of him might be left behind ; and yet there are traces. When he was on the road from St. Marguerite to his last residence, Mons. de St. Mars was overheard to reply to a question of the prisoner, relative to any design against his life. "No, prince, your life is in safety; you must only allow yourself to be conducted." A prisoner told M. la Grange Chancel that he was lodged, with other prisoners, in the room immediately over this celebrated captive, and found means of .speaking to him by the vents of the chimney ; but he refused to inform them who he was, alleging, that it would cost him his own life, as well as the lives of those to whom the secret might be revealed. Various have been the individuals supposed to have been the masked prisoner ; particularly the duke de Beaufort, the count de Vermandois, a foreign minister, and the duke of Monmouth, have been conjectured in turn. Collateral facts, neverthe- less, demonstrate that neither of these could have been the person. Voltaire, who has ex- pressly written on this mysterious affair, says, that the secret was known to Monsieur de Chamillard, and that the son-in-law of that minister conjured him on his death bed to tell him the name of the man with the mask ; but he replied it was a state secret, which he had sworn never to divulge. From the account given in a work published in Paris, in 1790, it appears that this unfortu- nate person was the twin brother of Louis XIV, born eight hours after this monarch, and who was Hie unhappy victim of superstition and cruelty. His father Louis XIII, being weak enough to give credit to the prediction of some impostors, that if the queen should be delivered of twins, the kingdom would be involved in civil war, ordered the birth of this prince to be kept a profound secret; and had him privately educated in the country as the illegitimate son of a nobleman : but on the accession of Louis XIV the young man gave indications of having discovered his parentage, of which his brother being informed, ordered him to be imprisoned for life, and to wear a mask in order to prevent his beincr recognised. MASSACHUSETTS, one of the New Ens- land states, contains 737,699 inhabitants, accord- ing to the last census. Parts of the state are very hilly. The Green mountains cross the western part of the state from N. to S. Massa- chusetts is the most commercial state of the Union, and the third as regards manufactures which are rapidly increasing. Boston is the capital, and the literary and commercial me- tropolis of the state. Other large and impor- tant towns are Salem, Lowell, New-Bedford, Newburyport, Marblehead, Beverly, Charles- town, Cambridge, Plymouth, Lynn. Nantucket, Springfield, Worcester, &c. The literary in- stitutions of Massachusetts rank deservedly high. Harvard university at Cambridge, is the oldest, and best endowed "institution in the Uni- ted States. Witli it are connected, a theologi- cal, a law, and a medical school. Its library is the largest in the United States, containing about 40,000 volumes. Williams college at Williams- town, the Collegiate Charity institution at Am- herst. and the theological seminary at Andover, are all valuable institutions, and worthy of the patronage they receive. This state comprises the two former colonies of Plymouth and Massachusetts Bay, which were united under one government in lf>92. The first English settlement was made at Ply- mouth, by 101 Puritans, who fled from religious persecution, and landed on the iron-bound coast CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MAT 338 MAZ in the severity of mid-winter, December 22d, lu'20. The men of Massachusetts were lore- most in the expeditions undertaken by the Brit- ish against the French in America. Their blood was shed before Quebec and at Louisburg. and their best and bravest were ever ready m the field to support the interests of their parent country. At length, when the oppressive meas- ures of Britain could no longer be submitted to, Massachusetts was the seat of the earliest con- flicts in favor of liberty. The plains of Lexing- ton and Concord, and the heights of Charles- town, have become hallowed by the American blood that bedewed them, and the glorious ex- ample of Massachusetts was speedily followed by the sister colonies. In 1780, an insurrection broke out under one Shays, but he was defeated at Springfield, in 1787. Since then nothing has occurred to dis- turb the tranquillity, or affect the prosperity of this flourishing and wealthy Slate. MASSANIELLO, a contraction for Thomas Aniello, the name of a Neapolitan fisherman, who headed a revolt of his countrymen, and threw off the Spanish yoke. Like many men of low origin who have suddenly risen to sove- reign power, he became bewildered bv chano-e of his fortunes, and his frenzy was "probabTv heightened by his intemperate habits, which impelled him to commit many acts of sanguin- ary viplence, and he was killed A. D. 1G4G. MASSENA, Andre, duke of Rivoli, and prince of Esslingen, marshal of France, born at Nice in 1753, was a favorite general of Napo- leon, and, in consequence of his success during his Italian campaign, was called by the emperor the darling of victory. In 1790, he defeated the Russians at Zurich, and in the following year defended Genoa during a protracted siege. In 1810 he was frustrated in his pursuit, of lord Wellington before the lines of Torres Vedras. He died in 1817. MATHIAS CORVINUS, called the great, king of Hungary and Bohemia, was Hie son of John Huuniades. The enemies of his father confined him in prison in Bohemia ; but on re- gaining his_ liberty he was elected king of Hun- gary in 1458. His election, however, was op- posed by many of the Hungarian lords, who olFere..! the crown to Frederick 111. The Turks profiting by these divisions invaded the coun- try, but were expelled by Mathias, who com- pelled Frederick to yield to him the crown of St. Stt-jiliPii, of which he had obtained posses- sion. The war was afterwards rc-ncwcd, and Mathiaa overrunning Austria, took Vienna and Neustadt, on which the emperor was obliged to make a peace in 1487. Mathias reformed many abuses, particularly with respect to duels and law-suits, and was preparing an expedition against the Turks when he died of an apoplexy in 141)0. MATILDA, or Maud, the daughter of Henry I, king of England, and wife of Henry IV. Emperor of Germany, was nominated in 1135 successor to the English throne by her father ; but in her absence Stephen usurped the title. Arriving in England with a large army in 113'J she defeated Stephen, and was acknowledged queen in a parliament held in 1141. Stephen afterwards defeated the empress, on which the national synod declared for him, and Matilda was obliged to leave the kingdom. On the death of the emperor she married Geoffrey Plantagenet, earl of Anjou, by wlmm she had a, son, afterwards Henry II, king- of England. Matilda died in 11U7, aged G7. MAXENTIUS, Marcus Aurelius Valerius, Roman emperor, was the son of Maximianus Hercules, and declared himself Augustus in 3CKJ. He was opposed by Galcrius Muximianus, who was defeated, and slew himself. Muxen- tius then marched into Africa, where he be- came odious by his cruelties. Constantino af- terwards defeated him in Italy, and he was drowned in crossing the Tiber in 312. Before the battle, Constantino adopted the cross as his standard, and after the victory, made Christianity the religion of the empire. 31 AX1MINUS, Caius Julius Verus, Emperor of Rome, was the son of a peasant in Thrace, and having displayed great courage in the Ro- man armies, he rose to command. On the death of Alexander Severus, he caused himself to be proclaimed emperor A. D. 235. He was a great persecutor ; and put to death above 4000 per- sons, on suspicion of their being concerned in a conspiracy against him. His soldiers assassi- nated him near Aquileia, A. D. 25ti. His stat tire and strength were very extraordinary ; and his disposition proportionably brutal. Forty pounds of meat, and eighteen bottles of wine, were his ordinary allowance for a day. His strength was such that he is said to have stopped a chariot in full speed with one of his fingers. MAZARIN. Julius, a Roman cardinal and minister of state, was born in Piscina jn Italy, in 1602. Being appointed Nuncio Extraordinary to France, he acquired the friendship of Riche- lieu and the confidence of Louis XIII. In Ki41, Pope Urban VIII made him cardinal ; and on the death of Richelieu, Louis appointed him HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. MEC 339 MEN Minister of State. He was also nominated one of the executors of the king's will, and had the principal management of att'airs during the mi- nority of Louis XIV; but at length the mur- murs of the people rose so much against him, that he found it expedient to quit the kingdom, and a price was set on his head. He afterwards recovered his power, and con- tinued to reader the state the most important Bervic.es, the principal of which was the restor- ing peace between France and Spain in 1659. His application to business produced a disease, of which he died ; n 1601. . MAZfc:PPA, JoLu, a Polish gentleman, born in the palatinate of Pod ilia, was educated as the page of Jean Ciisimir, aii'l, 'he back of a wild horse. "' Bring foith flu hcrsfl ! ' th Kirv'e "as brought ; In trutii, he was a nnble s'.eid, A Tartar ol th<5 Ukraine breed ; Who lixik'd as ti'oiis;!' t!:e rpeed oft!,' igln Were in his limbs ; nut he was w ; ld, Wild as the wild desr, aiid -intaught : With spur and bridle tindcfiled 'Twas but a day he had been caught ; And snorting, with erected inane, And struggling fiercely, but in vain, In the full foam of wratli and dread, To him the desert-born was led." Byron. On being loosed, the horse, which was of the Ukraine, returned thither, bearing Mazeppa, who arrived, half dead with hunger and fatigue. Some peasants afforded him succor, and he remained a long time among them, signalizing himself in many exertions against the Tartars. The superiority of his understanding acquired him the respects of the Cossacks, and, in con- sequence of his increasing reputation, the czar was constrained to make him Prince of the Ukraine. He, however, joined Charles XII, and fought for him at the fatal battle of Pultawa. In some parts of Germany, during the feudal times, an infringement of the forest-laws, was punished by chaining the offender to the back of a wild stag, which bounded away with him, through thorny thickets, and wild passes, until deathrelieved him of his sufferings. MECCA, a large city of Arabia, formerly containing 100,001) inhabitants; the present population is about GO ,000. It derives its cele- brity from being the birth-place of Mahomet, and the seat of his power, and accordingly every pious Mussulman makes a pilgrimage to it at least once in his life. Here a conspiracy was formed against the prophet, and flight was his only resource. After an exile of seven years, however, the fugitive missionary was enthroned as the prince and prophet of his native country. MEDIA, a celebrated country of Asia. It was originally called Aria, till the age of Medus, the son of Medea, who gave it the name of Me- dia. The province of Media was first raised into a kingdom by its revolt from the Assyrian monarchy, B. C. e2J ; and, after it had for some time enjoyed a kind of republican government, Deioces. by artifice, procured Himself to be called king, 700 B. C. After a reign of 53 years, he Was .succeeded by Phraotes, B. C. (J47; who was succeeded by Cyaxares, B. C. 0^5. His successor was Astyages, B. C. 585, in whose reign Cyrus became master of Media, B. C. 551 ; and ever after the country was occupied by the Persians. The Medes were warlike in the primitive ages of their power ; they encouraged poly- gamy, and were remarkable for the homage which they paid to their sovereigns, who were styled kings of kings. This title was afterwards adopted by their conquerors, the Persians ; and it was still ia use in the age of the Roman em- perors. MEDICIS, Cosmo, called the elder, the foun- der of an illustrious family at Florence, was a merchant, and was born in 1389. He acquired great wealth, which he appropriated to the nor ble purposes of advancing learning, and sup- porting learned men. He collected a noble library, which he enriched with inestimable manuscripts. The envy excited against him by his riches, raised him many enemies, by whose intrigues he was obliged "to quit his na- tive country. He then retired to Venice, where he was received as a prince. His fellow-citizens afterwards recalled him, and he bore a prin- cipal share in the government of the republic thirty years. He died in 14G4. On his tomb was engraved this inscription : The Father of his people, and the Deliverer of his Country. MEDINA, or Medina el Nebi, a city of Ara- bia, celebrated from its containing the tomb of Mahomet ; during his residence there it was at- tacked by an army of 10,000 enemies, but the prudence of Mahomet declined a general en- gacrement, and the confederates at leno-th retired. MEDINA SIDONIA, Alfonso Perez Gag- man, Duke de, commander of the celebrated Spanish armada in 1588. MENZIKOFF, Alexander, a prince of the Russian empire, was the son of a peasant, and the servant of a pastry-cook, who employed him to cry pies about the streets. His appearance CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MEX 340 MEX pleasing Peter the Great, he took him into his service. Menzikoff soon insinuated himself into the confidence of his sovereign, who made him governor of Ingria, with the rank of major- general, and at length conferred on him the title of prince. In 1713 he was accused of pecula- tion, and condemned to pay a heavy fine, which the czar remitted and restored him to favor. Under the czarina Catharine he had still more power, and his daughter was married to Peter II, who made Menzikoff duke of Cozel, and grand master of the imperial hotel. But by the intrigues of Dolgorucki, mistress of the czar, lie fell into disgrace, and was banished to his es- tate ; where he lived in such magnificence, that Peter was persuaded to send him, for his own safety, into Siberia, where he died in a poor hut, in 1729. MESSALINA, Valeria, daughter of Messala Barbatus, and wife of the Emperor Claudian. an abandoned woman. Having espoused her fa- vorite Silius, in the lifetime of her husband, she was put to death by order of the emperor, A. D. 4(i. There was another of this name, who was the third wife of Nero, after her first husband Atticus had been put to death by that tyrant. On the death of Nero she devoted the remainder of her days to study, and acquired a great reputation MESOPOTAMIA, or Diarbekr, part of the kingdom of Assyria, which was founded by Pul in 7'.!0 B. C. It underwent all the revolutions of this and the Persian empire, till it was con- quered by Trajan in 10G ; after which it several times changed masters betwixt the Romans and the Persians, but generally belonged to the lat- ter, till it was conquered" by the Saracens, to- gether with the rest of Persia, in 651. It was seized by the Seljuks in 104G, and by Genghis Khan in 1218. In 1360 Tur Ali Beg, the Turk- high. The climate on the coast is hot, and, in general, unhealthy, but upon the high table- land, it is uncommonly salubrious. A large portion of the soil is fertile, producing maize, wheat, sugar, indigo, tobacco, agave, different kinds of fruits, bananas, manioc, vanilla, cocoa, cochineal, logwood and mahogany. The an- nual produce of the rich gold and silver mines, for which Mexico is "celebrated, is about 20,000.000 dollars. One of these mines is eight miles in length, and, in one place, 1G40 feet in depth. The religion is Roman Catholic. Ed- ucation is generally neglected, although there is a university in the city of Mexico, "iThe city is well built. "its streets are wide and airy, and il contains many splendid public buildings. Pop- ulation about 168,800. A large portion of the population is composed of subdued Indians. When the Spaniards, under Cortez, com- menced the conquest of Mexico, they found the native Indians far advanced in civilization, wealthy, hospitable, liberal, and, in general, in- offensive. They appeared to have an instinc- tive dread of the ibreisrners, and vet treated them with kindness. They were willing to share their wealth with the Spaniards, but noth- ing less than the whole would satisfy the cu pidity of the Christians. Alter scenes of cruel- ty and treachery the Spanish leader completed the conquest in 1521 . The country continued under the jurisdiction of a Spanish viceroy, un- til it declared itself independent in 1820. The following description < ;' a Mexican dinner is given by a recent traveller. At dinner nothing seemed so strange to me as the manner in which the lady of the house leaves the table. It must be premised that the dining-tnbles are so high, that little men are much perplexed about get- ting their food. Our hostess, who was small and pretty fat. was sealed so that her mouth was at the edge of her plate and her shoulders under the table. As soon as her appetite was satisfied, she left the table at which we remained seated. In the centre of the room was suspended a ham- mock into which she flung herself with great nonchalance, and giving herself a slight push man, founded the dynasty called Ak Koyunlu or the white sheep, in this country. It submitted to Timur Begin 1400, but he did not retain the conquest. In 1514 it was con- quered by Ismacl Son, the Persian, was half conquered by the Turks in 1554, recovered by the Persians in 1(11 3, but completely reduced by by applying her foot to" a pillar, she swung to the Turks in 1637, when the emperor Morad and fro in this position. Soon after, one of her tk B. -ii.nl : ,t. MEXICO, or New Spain; a republic of North America, formerly belonging to Spain, and gov- erned by a viceroy. The land attains an un- common elevation in the interior, Mexico, the capital, being 7,000 feet above the ocean. The highest summit of the Cordilleras of Mexico, is the volcanic peak of Popocatepetl, 17,716 feet waiting maids brought her a cigar rolled up in paper, and after having lighted it. began to smoke it herself and then stuck it in her mis- tress' mouth. This operation W;IK performed so skilfully that the motion of the hammock did not for" a moment cease. Our pretty hostess gave a fresh impulse to her dormitory, and when the see-sawing motion had ceased, the HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. MIL 341 MIL cigar was smoked up, the lady asleep, and our dinner ended. MICHIGAN, one of the United States, con- sists of two Peninsulas, one lying between lakes Superior and Michigan, and Wisconsin Territory ; the other, between lake Michigan on the west, Huron on the east, and Ohio and Indiana on the south, the two containing at least 60,000 square miles. Both are well watered. Monroe, on the Raisin, is a thoroughfare for travellers. The principal villages arc Pontiac, Ypsilanti and Ann Arbor. Population in 1840, 212,267. MIDDLETON, Arthur, a distinguished American patriot, was born in S. Carolina, in 1743, but was educated in England. As a mem- ber of Congress, he signed the Declaration of Independence, and lost a great part of his prop- erty during the revolution. He died Jan. 1, 1787. MILAN, a duchy in the north of Italy, con- tains 2,250,000 inhabitants. It was comprised, with several other districts under the general name of Lombardy. until the 14th century, when Visconti, a Milanese nobleman, purchased the ducal title from, the reigning emperor; the marriage of his daughter to the duke of Or- leans, gave rise to the pretensions of the kings of France to this duchy. After the death of the last duke of this line. Francis Sforza, a man of family and talents, so ingratiated himself with the people, that he was unanimously chosen duke in !4.")0. On the extinction of the Sforza family a cen- tury after, the emperor Charles V gave the Milanese as a fief of the empire to his son Philip II, king of Spain, and it remained an appendage to that crown till 170(5, when a brilliant cam- paign of Prince Eugene, put it in possession of the house of Austria, to which, with the excep- tion of the Sardinian Milanese, it continued subject during !'0 years, until the victories of Bonap:irle in 17iX>" On the formation of the Cisalpine republic, the whole of Milan, divided into four departments, was comprised in it ;. but on the restoration of the old order of things, in 1814, the part belonging to the king of Sardinia, was restored, and the remainder incorporated with Austrian Italy. MILAN, capital city of the duchy of the same name, contains "many splendid public buildings, and 1:30,000 inhabitants. The French made themselves masters of it in 17%: but were driven out in 1799 by the victorious army of the Auslrians and Russians. After the battle of Marengo, Milan a^ain fell into the hands of the French, and continued the seat of their viceroy until the fall of Bonaparte in 1814. MILTIADES,an Athenian, married Hege- sipyla, the daughter of Olorus, the king of the Thracians. In the third year r>f his government his dominions were threatened by an invasion of the Scythian Nomades. whom Darius had some time before irritated by entering their coun- try. He fled before them ; but, as their hostili- ties were but momentary, he was soon restored to his kingdom. Three years after he left Cher- sonese, and set sail for Athens, where he was received with great applause. He was present at the celebrated battle of Marathon, in which all the chief officers ceded their power to him, and left the event of the battle to depend upon his superior abilities. He obtained an important victory over the more numerous forces of his adversaries ; and when he had demanded of his fellow-citizens an olive crown, as the reward of his valor m the field of battle, he was not only refused, but severely reprimanded for presumption. Some time after Miltiades was intrusted with a fleet of 70 ships, and ordered to punish those islands which had revolted to the Persians. He was successful at first ; but a sudden re- port that a Persian fleet was coining i r > attack him. changed his operations as he was besieg- ing Paros. He raised the siege and returned to Athens, where he was accused of treason, and particu- larly of holding a correspondence with the ene- my. The falsity of these accusations might have appeared, if Miltiades had been able to come into the assembly. A wound which he had received before Paros detained him at home ; and his enemies, taking advantage of his absence, be- came more eager in their accusations, and louder in their clamors. He was condemned to death : but the rigor of the sentence was retracted on the recollection of his great services to the Athe- nians, and he was put into prison till he had paid a fine of 50 talents to the state. His ina- bility to discharge so great a sum detained him in confinement, and soon after his wounds be- came incurable, and he died about 4~'.> vears be- fore the Christian era. The crimes of Miltindis were probably aggravated in the eyes of his countrymen, when they remembered how he made himself absolute in Chersoncsus ; and in condemning the barbarity of the Athenians to- wards a general who was the source of their military prosperity, we must remember th jea- lousy which ever reigns among a free and in- dependent people, and how watchful they axe CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MIR 342 MIS in defence of the natural rights which they see wrested from others by violence and oppression. M1NDEN, a town of Prussia, containing 8,960 inhabitants. Here Prince Ferdinand gain- ed a victory over the French in the campaign of 1759. The merit of the victory is principally to be ascribed to the valor and steadiness of the British troops engaged. Minden surrendered on the next day ; and the French retreated to the other side of the Weser. MINORCA, the second of the Balearic isl- ands in the Mediterranean, contains 30,000 in- habitants. It produces abundance of vegeta- bles, some wines, and oil; and has mines of iron, lead, and admirable marble. The inhabit- ants are devoted to commerce, and of the Ro- man Catholic persuasion. The climate, al- though hot, is agreeable. In 1708 the English took possession of it, and retained it till 1758, when it was retaken by a French fleet and army, after the failure of an attempt to relieve it, which led to the sentence of the unfortunate Admiral Byng. At the peace of 17G3 Minorca was restored to Britain : but in 1782 it was re- taken by the Spaniards. It was once more taken by the British in 1798 ; but was restored at the peace of Amiens in 1802. MINOS, a king of Crete, who gave laws to his subjects, B. C. 1406, which still remained in full force in the age of the philosopher Plato. His justice and moderation procured him the appellation of the favorite of the gods, the wise legislator, in every city of Greece : and, accord- ing to the poets, he was rewarded for his equity, after death, with the office of supreme and ab- solute judge in the infernal regions. M1RABKAU, Honore Gabriel, Count de, a French nobleman was born in 1749. He was born witli a club foot, a defect which has given rise to a comparison with Byron more distin- guished for ingenuity than accuracy. In addi- tion to this detect, his tongue, fastened liy the fro3num. gave little promise of oratorical success. But the size and vigor of his limbs, and the cir- cumstance of two molar teeth being already formed in his mouth, were sufficiently extraor- dinary. He was also early attacked with the small pox which left its usual impress on his face. In a letter from the marquis, his father, to the countess of Rochefort, the following pas- sage occurs : i; A fete is this day given in honor of my mother (the dowager-marchioness, widow of Jean-Antoine de Mirabeati, then 72 years of age). It is the production of my son's tutor (an indefatigable author and actor of such follies.) You will see a little monster perform therein, whom they call my son ; but who, were he the son of La Thorrillere, could not display a greater aptitude for all sorts of dcri! merit." In another letter, dated '21 st of September, 1758, he writes thus; i; My son, whose size, prattle, and ugliness are wonderfully on the increase, grows more exquisitely and peculiarly ugly from day to day , and, withal, a most indefatigable speech- ifier." At an early age he quarreled with his father, and fled from the paternal mansion, but the old count procured a lettrc de cachet, and imprisoned him. He however escaped, and lived for a long time in habits of dissipation : in proof of which the following anecdote is related. Mirabeau, one day, called up his valet to discharge him. The fellow asked the reason. <; It is this," said Mi- rabeau ; " You were drunk yesterday, as I my- self was. Now, sir, you remember you agreed to get drunk only on days when I was sober." ' ; 1 remember it," replied the vulet; ' but you will excuse me when you reflect upon the im- possibility of my obeying you for you are drunk every day." Mirabeau reflected a mo- ment, and retained the domestic. He went to Berlin towards the close of the reign of Frederic, and was there when the French revolution commenced, on which he returned home, and was elected a member of the states-general. He rendered his name me- morable by the display of the most polished and powerful eloquence. In 17!)1 he became pres- ident of the national assembly ; but died of a fever on the 2d of April following. MISSISSIPPI, one of the United States, con taining, in 1840, 375,051 inhabitants. The nci th- em paitof the country is uneven, but not moun- tainous, while the southern part is a swampy level. Cotton is the staple production. After Natchez, tin- largest town, come Jackson, Wash- injrlon. Woodville, Port Gibson, Monticello, fcc. There are two colleges in this state, one at Washington, and one at Shieldsborough. There are but few Indians in Mississippi most of the Chickasaws and Choctaws having been remov- ed beyond the Mississippi. The first settlement in this state was commenced at Natch' ?. in 1710. In 1817 Mississippi was admitted into the Union as an independent state. MISSOURI, one of the United States, con- tains 383,702 inhabitants. It is well watered, and the face of the country greatly diversified. The highest peaks of the Ozark mountains reach an elevation of 3,000 feet. The soil upon the rivers is. in general, highly productive, and the staple productions are Indian corn, grain, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. MIT 343 MIT hemp, flax, and tobacco. The lead mines of Missouri are very valuable, and yield annually about 4,000,000 pounds of lead. Jefferson is the seat of government. St. Louis is a large and flourishing town. Education has been provided for by liberal allowances. MITHRIDATES I, was the third king of Pontus. He was tributary to the crown of Per- sia, and his attempts to make himself independ- ent proved fruitless. He was conquered in a battle, and obtained peace with difficulty. Xen- ophon calls him merely a governor of Cappa- docia. He was succeeded by Ariobarzanes, 13. C. 363. The second of that name, King of Pontus, was grandson to Mithridates I. He made him- self master of Ponlus, which had been conquer- ed by Alexander, and had been ceded to Anti- gonus at the general division of the Macedonian empire among the conqueror's generals. He reigned about 26 years, and died at, the advanc- ed age of 84 years, B. C. 302. He was succeeded by his son Mithridates III. This enterprising and powerful monarch en- larged his paternal possessions by the conquest of Cappadocia and Paphlagonia, and died after a reign of thirty -six years. The fourth succeeded his father Ariobarzanes, who was the son of Mithridates III. The fifth succeeded his father Mithridates IV, and strengthened himself on his throne by an alliance with Antiochus the Great, whose daughter, Laodice, he married. He was suc- ceeded by his son Pharnaces. The sixth succeeded his father Pharnaces. He was the first of the kings of Pontus who made alliance with the Romans. He furnished them with a fleet in the third Punic war. and assisted them against Aristonicus, who had laid claim to the kingdom of Pergamus. He was murdered B. C. 123. The seventh, surnamed Eupator, and The Great, succeeded his father Mithridates VI, though only at the age of 11 years. The b^gin- ning of his reign was marked by ambition, cru- elty and artifice. He murdered the two sons whom his sister Laodice had had by Ariarathes, King of Cappadocia, and placed one of his own children, only eight years old, on the vacant throne. These violent proceedings alarmed Ni- comedes, King of Bithynia. who had married Laodice. the widow of Ariarathes. He suborned a youth to act as King of Cap- padocia, as the third son of Ariarathes, and La- odice was sent to Rome to impose upon the sen- ate, and assure them that her third son was still alive, and that his pretensions to the kingdom of Cappadocia were just and well grounded. Mithridates used the same arts of dissimula- tion. He also sent to Rome Gordius, the gov- ernor of his son, who solemnly declared before the Roman people, that the youth who sat on the throne of Cappadocia, was the third son and lawful heir of Ariarathes, and that he was sup- ported as such by Mithridates. This intricate affair displeased the Roman senate, and finally to settle the dispute between the two monarchs, the powerful arbiters took away the kingdom of Cappadocia from Mithri- dates, and Paphlagonia from JNicomedes. These two kingdoms being thus separated from their original possessors, were presented with their freedom and independence ; but the Cappado- cians refused it, and received Ariobarzanes for king. Such were the first seeds of enmity be- tween Rome and the King of Pontus. Mithridates. the more effectually to destroy the power of his enemies in Asia, ordered all the Romans that were in his dominions to be massacred. This was done in one night, and no less than 150,000 according to Plutarch, or 80,000 Romans, as Appian mentions, were made, at one blow, the victims of his cruelty. This universal massacre called aloud for revenge. Aquilius, and soon after Sylla, inarched against Mithridates with a large army. The former was made prisoner ; but Sylla obtained a victory over the king's generals, and Another decisive engagement rendered him master of all Greece, Macedonia. Ionia, and Asia Minor, which had submitted to the victorious arms of the mon- arch of Pontus. This ill fortune was aggra- vated by the loss of about 200,000 men, who were killed in the several engagements that had been fouo-ht, and Mithridates, weakened by repeated ill success by sea and land, sued for peace from the conqueror, which he ob- tained on condition of defraying the expenses which the Romans had incurred by the war, and of remaining satisfied with the possessions which he had received from his ancestors. While these negotiations 'of peace were carri- ed on, Mithridates was not unmindful of his real interests. His distress, and not his inclinations, obliged him to wish for peace. He immediate- ly -took the field with an army of 140,000 in fantry and 1(5.000 horse, which consisted of his own forces and those of his son-in-law Tigranes, King of Armenia. With such a numerous ar- my, he soon made himself master of the Ro- man provinces in Asia; none dared to oppose his conquests, as the Romans, relying on his CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MIT 344 MON fidelity, had withdrawn the greatest part of their armies from the country The news of his warlike preparations was no sooner heard, than Lucullus, the consul, inarched into Asia, and without delay block- ed up the camp of Mithridates, who was then besieging Cyzicus. The Asiatic monarch es- caped from him, and fled into the heart of his kingdom. Lucullus pursued him with the utmost celerity, and would have taken him prisoner after a battle, had not the avidity of his soldiers preferred the plundering of a mule load- ed with gold, to the taking of a monarch who had exercised such cruelties aginst their coun- trymen, and shown himself so faithless to the most solemn engagements. The appointment of Glabrio to the command of the Roman forces, instead of Lucullus, was favorable to Mithridates, and he recovered the greatest part of his dominions. The sudden arrival of Pompey, however, soon put an end to his victories. A battle, in the night, was fought near the Euphrates, in which the troops of Pontus labored under every disadvantage. An universal overthrow ensued, and Mith- ridates, bold in his misfortunes, rushed through the thick ranks of the enemy, at the head of 800 horsemen, 500 of whom perished in the attempt to follow him. Mithridates found a safe retreat among the Scythians ; and, though des- titute of power, friends, and resources, yet he meditated the destruction of the Roman em- pire, by penetrating into the heart of Italy by land. These wild projects were rejected by his fol- lowers, and he sued for peace. It was denied to his ambassadors, and the victorious Pompey declared, that to obtain it, Mithridates must ask it in person. He scorned to trust himself in the hands of his enemy, and resolved to conquer or to die. His subjects refused to follow him any longer, and they revolted from him. and made his son Pharnaces king. The son show- ed himself ungrateful to his father, and even, according to some writers, he ordered him to be put to death. This unnatural treatment broke the heart of Mithridates ; he obliged his wife to poison her- self, and attempted to do the same himself. It was in vain ; the frequent antidotes he had taken in the early part of his life strengthened his constitution against the poison, and when this was unavailing, he attempted to stab him- self. The blow was not mortal ; and a Gaul, who was then present, at his own request gave him the fatal stroke, about 63 years B. C., in the 72d year of his age. This prince, who made war against the Romans forty years, and was never entirely vanquished but by Pompey, although he had lost many battles against Lu- cullus, has been much praised. Cicero calls him the greatest of kings since the time of Alex- ander the Great. MODENA, a duchy in the north of Italy, containing 375.000 inhabitants. In 1796 the duke of Modena was expelled from his domin- ions by the French : and at the peace of Cam- po Formio, in 1797, the Modenese possessions were incorporated with the Cisalpine republic ; but in 1814 they were restored by the Congress of Vienna to the duke. MOLUCCAS, or SPICE ISLANDS, are be- tween the Sunda isles, the Philippines and New Holland. These islands were discovered by the Portuguese in loll, but now belong to the Dutch, who obtain from them sandal wood, musk, cloves. and spices. There are also mines of copper and silver, which are very productive, and delicious fruits. JIOXGULS, or MONGOLS, The. An Asi- atic tribe, who inhabited the central regions of the continent, and were little known till Gen- ghis Khan, by his conquests, immortalized their name. He extended his dominions through a ppnce of more than 800 leagues from east to west, and above J .0(10 from north to south, over the most powerful and wealthy kingdoms of Asia. It is with justice, therefore, that he is acknow- ledged to have been the greatest prince who ever filled the eastern throne. He was the son of Pisuka, who first brought under his command the greater part of the chiefs of the Mongul nations, and who designated his son by the naii'.e of Temujin, from a vanquished khan so called. After the death of his father, Temnjin mar- ried the daughter of the great Khan, who, har- boring suspicions to the prejudice of hisson-in- l;i\\', w;is dethroned, and Temujin took posses- sion of the empire. Temujin was at that time forty years of age, when, seeing himself master of very extensive dominions, he adopted the resolution of rendering his power in some de- gree lawful, by the public homage of all the princes within the precincts of his empire. Ac- cordingly, he convoked them at Kar.ikorom, his capital ; and, with the diadem encircling his brow, he advanced into the midst of this au- gust assemtilv, seated himself on his throne, and received the compliments of the khans and other nobilitv. who offered up prayers for his health and prosperity. They then confirmed to HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. MON 345 MON him and his successors the sovereignty of the Mongul empire. After some subsequent victories, a similar in- auguration took place at the head of his army, when Kockja, one of his relatives, who, by strictly practising the rigid duties of religion, had obtained the reputation of being inspired, approached the prince, and informed him, that it was the pleasure of God that he should hence- forth assume the name of Genghis Khan. However, it is probable th.it the ambition of Genghis Khan mifht have been satisfied with his dominions, had not the sovereign of the Kin, or northern part of China, imprudently demanded of him the same tribute as was paid him by princes whom he had dethroned, and whose authority he had usurped. This claim irritated the haughty conqueror, whose troops poured like a torrent over China, routed its armies, desolated the country, and amassed im- mense tre^kres. The cities, and even the royal residence, fell into the hands of Genghis Khan, who. in the short space of five years, found him- self master of all that extensive territory, and who appointed Muhuli, his experienced gen- eral, governor and lieutenant, with the title of king, which was to descend to his posterity. Genghis Khan had determined to make the domains of Mohammed, Sultan of Karazm, the boundary of his empire ; but a disagreement taking place with that sovereign, the great khan assembled all his forces, and, after defeating the sultan, besieged and took Bochara, the centre of his dominions, where all his wealth was lodged. Though Mohammed possessed a great part of Turkestan, was master of Great Bukha- ria,and Karazm. whence his monarchy derived its name, and held in possession all Persia, Per- sian Irak, and the frontiers of India, he could make no effectual opposition. The celerity and military exploits of Genghis Khnn resembled a torrent spreading devasta- tion, or rather a thunderbolt ^bursting over several countries at once, and involving them in flames and ruin. Though the sultan made every effort in his power to succor his wretched dominions, his armies were constantly defeated in general engagements; and, after eluding his pursuers, he landed on a small island in the Caspian Sea. where an acute disease, added to his grief, speedily terminated his life. His son Jalaloddin endeavored, but in vain, to avenge the cause of his father on the Mon- guls. While Genghis Khan, on one side of his empire, had fixed the Indus as its limits, his lieutenants on the other subjugated Persia, en- closed the Caspian Sea within his dominions, and carried their victorious arms as far as Ico- nium, whose sultans, with some pther Turkish sovereigns, they rendered tributary. The fur- ther enterprises of this aspiring monarch were always crowned with victory. He was constant- ly attended by prosperity, which never quitted him to his tomb. He died A. D. 1227, at the age of seventy, after a reign of twenty-two years, preserving to the last an undiminished authority over all the surrounding nations. The qualities of Genghis Khan characterized a conqueror. He possessed a genius capable of conceiving great and ardu- ous designs, and prudence equal to their execu- tion ; a natural and persuasive eloquence ; a de- gree of patience, which enabled him to endure and overcome fatigue ; an admirable temper- ance ; a superior understanding, and a penetrat- ing mind, that instantly conceived the measure proper to be adopted on every occasion. His military talents appeared in his successfully in- troducing a strict discipline and- severe police amonjj the Tartars, who till that time were unuse~d to any restraint. His laws were sirn- Ele, and suitable to a newly-formed people, who ave few complex social connections. Though some of his own children, and princes of the blood were Christians, and seme Jews and Mohammedans, they incurred no marks of his disapprobation. He instituted a grand hunt- ing-match, the model of which he left to his successors. Though Genghis Khan had declar ed his son Octa his successor, this prince refus- ed to accept the crown till it was delegated to him by the states, which did not assemble till two years after the death of his father. He com- mitted the general management of affairs to Yelu, a man of integrity and extensive know- ledge ; and he placed at the head of his armies his own brother Toley, whose talents were of singular utility in the" war which his father had left him to prosecute against the inhabitants of Southern China. Quay-yew, or Kayuk had a great respect for his mother, who, therefore, still retained a considerable share of the govern- ment. His beneficence and courage are deserv- edly applauded ; and he commanded the armies in person at the conquest of Corea, and of the nations in the vicinity of the Caspian Sea, A. ' D. J247. He died at the age of 43, after a reign of eight years. On the first day of the year 13G8, Chu was solemnly proclaimed Emperor of China, amid the greatest demonstrations of joy. Touhante- mur, naturally a coward, determined to retire CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MON 346 MON into Tartary, and, surrounded by his guards, his wives, and others of his court, took his course towards the north. Thus ended the em- pire of the Monguls in China, after they had continued in possession of that vast country during a term of 162 years. Touhantemur re- tained his sovereignty over the Monguls in Tar- tary, where he was succeeded A. D. 1370 by his son, Ayyewshilitata, against whom, and his suc- cessors, the Chinese, sustained many sanguin- ary wars, notwithstanding the great wall which separated them. At length, however, they ceas- ed to disturb each other, and lived quietly with- in their own territories. In this interval the Manchoos became formidable, and in the end subdued both the Monguls and the Chinese. MONK, George, Duke of Albemarle, was descended from the Plantagenets, and born in Devonshire in 1608. At the age of 17 he serv- ed under his relation, Sir Richard Grenville, in an expedition against Spain; and. in 1630, he went as an ensign to the Low Countries, where he obtained a captain's commission. In 1639, he attended Charles I to Scotland, and was made lieutenant-colonel ; afterwards he went to Ire- land, and for his services in the rebellion, was appointed governor of Dublin. On his return to England with his regiment, in 1643, he was made major-general in the Irish brigade, then employed in the siege of Nautwich. in Cheshire, where he was taken prisoner, and sent to the Tower. After remaining in confinement about three years, he was induced to accept a com- mission under the parliament against the Irish rebels; in which. service he performed several great exploits, but at last fell under censure, for concluding a treaty with O'Neil. Upon this he gave up the command, and retired to his estate ; But was soon called to serve with Cromwell in Scotland, where he bore a part in the battle of Dunbar ; after which he was left in the com- mand of the English forces in that kingdom. In 1653, he was joined with Blake and Dean in the naval service against the Dutch fleet, commanded by Van Tromp, with whom two desperate battles were fought that year, in both of which the English were victorious. Peace being soon after concluded, Monk returned to Scotland, where he remained during the usurp- ation of Cromwell, who regarded him with jeal- ousy, and even imparted to him, in a letter', the suspicions which he entertained of his design to restore the king. Monk took no notice of this, but watched his opportunity -. and when the authority of Richard Cromwell declined, he began his movements, and conducted them with so much judgment as to bring about that im- portant event without bloodshed or confusion. Alter this he was created Duke of Albemarle, and knight of the garter. The remainder of his life was not spent inactively ; for when hostili- ties broke out with the Dutch, he again com- manded the fleet, and fought De Rujter and Van Tromp in a tremendous battle, which last- ed three days. The duke had scarcely returned into port before he was called to London, in consequence of the dreadful fire which laid the greatest part of the capital in ashes ; and so dear was he to the people, that when lie passed along, they cried out, " If his Grace had been there, the city would not have been burned." He died Jan. 3, 1670 ; and was buried in West- minster Abbey. By his duchess, who survived him but a few months, he had one son, Christo- pher, who died governor of Jamaica, without issue, in 1688. MONMOUTII, Duke of, son (^Charles II by Lucy Waters, to whom it was said that mon- arch was secretly married. He was early placed in the army, and served some campaigns in Flanders with great reputation. His supposed claims to the crown placed him in enmity with the Duke of York, and lie lived in intimate connection with the party that promoted the famous succession bill, and with the patriots of that ajro. On "the death of his father he went abroad, and soon after landed in the west of England, publishing a proclamation, in which he took the regal title, and made noble professions in favor of liberty. Numbers flocked to his stand- ard, but his forces were overcome by the geniua of Marlborough at Bridgewater. A terrible pro- scription followed in the western counties, in which General Kirk and Judge Jefferies com- mitted frightful cruelties; and Monmouth him- self being taken to London, was tried and exe- cuted. MONTAGUE, Edward, Earl of Sandwich, was the son oif Sir Sidney Montague, and born in 1625. At the age of 18 he raised a regiment in the service of parliament, and was present in several battles; but in the Dutch war he left the army for the navy, and was associated with Blake in the Mediterranean. Afterwards he commanded the fleet in the North Sea ; but at his return was deprived of it on suspicion of being in the royal interest. Monk, however, procured him to be replaced ; and lie conveyed the king to England ; after which lft> was cre- ated Earl of Sandwich. In the war of 1664 he commanded under the Duke of York, and had HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. MON 347 MOO fi principal ^hare in the great battle of June 3, 1605. Soon after this he went to Spain, where he negotiated a peace between that country and Portugal. On the renewal of the Dutch war in 1672, he commanded a squadron under the duke of York ; but his ship taking fire, he jump- ed overboard, and was drowned. MONROE, James, a president of the United States, was born April 28, 1758, in Virginia, and educated in William and Mary College. He entered the revolutionary army as a cadet in 1776. Throughout the revolution he served with distinction, and at the age of 24, was elected a member of congress. In 1794, he was appointed minister plenipotentiary to France. On his return he filled the post of governor of Virginia, and afterwards was minister to France, to London, and to Spain, successively. On his return, he was chosen governor of Virginia, and in 1811 was appointed Secretary of fetate. In 1817 he succeeded James Madison in the presi- dency, from which office he retired at the end of his second term. He died on the 4th of July , 1831. MONTEZUMA, the king of Mexico, at the time of the invasion of the Spaniards. At a short distance from the city of Mexico, they were met by Montezuma at the head of his nobles, and surrounded by his guards and cour- tiers. Cortez was received by the emperor with hospitality and confidence which he soon for- feited : for having learned that a traditionary prophecy was current that a powerful nation, children of the sun, would chastise the country, as a punishment for their sins, he readily turn- ed the idea to his own advantage. Cortez came to the determination of seizing Montezuma in his palace, which he entered with 10 officers and soldiers. He requested Montezuma, to take up a temporary residence with the Span- iards, to which demand the monarch reluctant- ly consented. Here he suffered every indig- nity ; and Cortez, on a frivolous pretext that the monarch was the instigator of some tumults, ordered him to be fettered and thrown into prison. Montezuma remained a prisoner six months, during which period Cortez was actively em- ployed in furthering his own views. The for- mer now acknowledged himself in form a vas- sal of the Spinish king, and, a tumult arising, Cortez placed him in view of his enraged sub- jects', but in vain. The forlorn monarch was pierced by an arrow, and died broken-hearted and despairing. MONTGOMERY, Richard, a major-general in the army of the United States, born in Ire- land, in 1737. He settled in this country, after serving under Wolfe ; and having embraced the American cause, was killed in an attack upon Quebec, in 1776. MONTGOMERY, Gabriel, Count, a French nobleman, who, in 1559, had the misfortune to kill Henry II, by accidentally striking him in the eye at a tournament. He then quitted France ; but returned during the civil wars, and placed himself at the head of the Protestants. After many vicissitudes he was taken prisoner, and beheaded at Paris in 1574. MONTREAL, a city of Lower Canada, situ- ated on an island in the St. Lawrence, 180 miles above Quebec, arid 200 below lake Ontario, at the head of ship navigation. The streets are regular, the houses are built of gray stone, and present a singular appearance from being cov- ered with tin. Montreal College is a very flour- ishing institution. Pop. 35,000. MONTROSE, Marquis of, one of the most chivalrous partisans of Charles I, who after the cause of the Stuarts appeared to be hopeless, persevered in exciting insurrections in Scot- land, but being taken he was brought to Edin- burg, tried, and executed_on a gibbet 40 feet high, on the 23d of September, 1650. MOORE, Sir John, was born at Glasgow in 1761 . At the age of 15 he obtained an ensigncy in the 51st regiment of foot; of which, in 1790, he became lieutenant-colonel, and served with his corps in Corsica, where he was wounded in storming the Mozello fort at the siege of Calvi. In 1796 he went out as a brigadier-general to the West Indies, under Sir Ralph Abercromby, who appointed him to the government of St. Lucie, in the capture of which he had a princi- pal share. On his return home, m 1797, he was employ- ed in Ireland during the rebellion, and was raised to the rank of major-general. In 1799 he went on the expedition to Holland, where he was again wounded severely ; notwithstand- ing which, he soon afterwards went to the Medi- terranean ; and at the battle of Alexandria re- ceived a cut from a sabre on the breast, and a shot in the thigh. On his return to England he was made a knight of the Bath; and in 1808 was appointed to command an army in Spain, where, after a signal retreat before a superior force, he fell under the walls of Corunna, Jan. 16th, 1809. The description of the battle of Corunna, and of the death of Sir John Moore, is thus briefly given b'y Bisset. The British army reached CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MOR 348 MOR Corunna on the 12th of Jan. 1800, having lost one fourth of its numbers. Their situation was so disadvantageous that some officers suggested the proposal of terms to Soult, on condition that he should permit the troops to embark un- molested. Sir John Moore rejected the advice, and declared his resolution to accept no terms which should be in the least dishonorable to the army or to his country. In the evening of the 14th the transports from Vigo hove in sight. After the embarkation of the troops on the llith, orders were issued, that if the French did not move, the embarkation of the reserve should commence at four in the afternoon. At mid-day, the general received information that the enemy were getting under arms. Two columns of the enemy directed their march on the right wing of the British, which was dis- advantageously posted. Sir John Moore hast- ened to this part of the field, when the 4th regi- ment on the right flank was menaced by a body of the enemy who were hastening up the valley to turn it. He proceeded to direct the move- ments of the other regiments in this division, and was in the act of ordering up the guards to support the42d Highlanders, when he was struck from his horse by a cannon-ball, which carried away his left shoulder and part of the collar- bone, leaving the arm hanging by the flesh. He was borne away by six soldiers of the 42d. The troops continued to fight bravely under Sir John Hope, on whom the command devolv- ed, and at night-fall remained masters of the field. This victory was obtained under great dis- advantages ; the French force exceeded 20,000 men, well appointed and provided with cannon. The British scarcely amounted to 15,000, ex- hausted by harassing marches, and discouraged by the loss of their military chest, their stores, their baggage, their horses, their sick, their wounded, their wives and children. General Moore lived to hear that the battle was won ; and in his last moments, after an af- fecting reminiscence of his mother, expressed a hope that his country would do him justice. His body was removed at midnight to the cita- del of Corunna, wrapped in a military cloak and blankets, and buried in a grave dug in the ramparts. MORAVIA. The present population of this province of the Austrian empire, is 1,91)0,464. Its history is briefly as follows. It was ancient- ly named Quadia, and was part of the territory of the Quadi and Marcomanni, for several cen- turies the terror of the Roman frontier. Not- withstanding the many checks they received from the Romans and their barbarian neighbors, these tribes maintained their independence till they were overpowered by Attila, in the fifth century. The Sclavonians next founded a republic here ; and maintained a precarious inde- pendence, till Swatopluk united the whole of the Sclavonic republics, and founded the king- dom of Moravia ; which comprehended Bohe- mia, Lusatia, Brandenburg, Pomerania, Silesia, Dalmatia, &c. On the death of this prince, in 894, his pos- sessions were divided among his three sons, but dissensions arising among them, the Boii, or ancestors of the Bohemians, conquered part of them, and threatened the rest. In a short time, the Magyars, or invaders of Hungary, completely defeated the Moravians in 907, and thus crushed their independence. This fertile country, after being almost reduced to a desert, Avas seized on by the Dukes of Bohemia, who kept it till 1182, Avhen it again became a sepa- rate government, and was erected into a mar- quisate. Moravia next fell into the hands of the Hungarians, but their internal troubles soon obliged them to relinquish their valuable acqui- sition. Moravia for a time resumed its independence, but after various changes, became again subject to the kings of Bohemia ; and in 1527. Moravia was added to the possessions of the house of Austria, and has since been subject to the same sovereign. MORE, Sir Thomas. Chancellor of Eng- land, was the son of Sir John More, one of the judges of the King's Bench, and was born in London, in 1480. He was educated in the family of Cardinal Morton, archbishop of Canterbury: and at the age of 21 , he obtained a seat in par- liament, where he opposed a subsidy demanded by Henry VII with such spirit, as incurred the resentment of the king, who avenged himself on the judge his father, by causing him to be fined and imprisoned. When admitted to the bar, More delivered a lecture in the church of St. Lawrence, Jewry, on part of St. Augustin's Avorks, and the reputation he thereby acquired procured him to be chosen law-reader in Fur- nival's Inns. In 1508, he was made judge of the sheriffs court, and justice of peace. Henry VIII delighted in the conversation of More, and conferred upon him the honor of knighthood; besides which he made him treas- urer of the exchequer. Sir Thomas assisted the monarch in his book against Luther, and he afterwards defended it in a very able treatise. In 1523, he was chosen speaker of the House of HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL MOR 349 MOR Commons ; and in 1539, he succeeded Wolsey as loid chancellor, which office he discharged three years with scrupulous integrity. Find- ing, however, that the affair of the king's di- vorce, to which he was adverse, would involve him in difficulties, he resigned the seals, and thereby provoked the anger of Henry, who was still more irritated by his refusal to attend the coronation of Ann Boleyn. An attempt was made to implicate him in the practices of Elizabeth Barton ; and, though this tailed, he was committed to the Tower, for re fusing the oath of supremacy. After an impris- onment of twelve months, he was brought to his trial in the court of King's Bench, where, notwithstanding his eloquent defence, he was found guilty of treason, and sentenced to be beheaded. His behavior, in the interval, cor- responded with the uniform tenor of his life ; and, on July 6, 1535, he ascended the scaffold, with his characteristic pleasantry, saying to the lieutenant of the Tower, " I pray you, see me safe up ; and as for my coming down, you may let me shift for myself." In the same spirit, when he laid his head on the block, he told the executioner to wait till he had removed his beard, " For that," said he, " hath committed no treason." Thus fell this illustrious English- man, whose learning and virtue entitled him to a better fate. MOREAU, Victor, a French general, who gained great advantage over the Austrians under Kray at Mosskirk ; and, notwithstanding their gallant exertions, compelled them to re- treat with considerable loss. The subsequent actions of Bibberach and Memmingen proved Xally unfortunate to the Austrians. Moreau, r signalizing himself in many celebrated victories, and in many masterly and successful military operations on the frontiers of Italy and Germany in the campaigns of 1796 and 1799, invaded Germany in 1SOO. Here, in co-opera- tion with Bonaparte, he resumed an offensive campaign. He took possession of Munich, and laid the Bavarian territories and the duchy of Wirternberg under heavy contributions. The emperor of Austria now judged it expe- dient to sue for an armistice ; which Moreau granted on the 14th of July. The armistice expired in the November following ; and Mo- reau, on the 3d of December, gained the deci- sive victory of Hohenlinden. By a turn of circumstances Moreau is found in 1313 in alli- ance with Bernadotte, his early companion in arms, who commanded the army of the north in Germany against Napoleon. On the 28th of August, Napoleon came out of Dresden with 130,000 men to attack the allies, having de- tached a force, under Vandaziane, to seize the passes in their rear. In the assault on the pre- ceding day, Napoleon observed Moreau con- versing with the emperor Alexander and some other officers. Turning to a cannoneer, and pointing out the object of his displeasure, he said : " Send a dozen balls upon that man !" The officers obeyed. A ball struck Moreau, shattering both his legs and tearing open the belly of his horse. He bore the amputation of both limbs with great firmness, and was carried in a litter, formed by the lances of the Cossacks to Toplite, where he expired. MORGAN, Daniel, a revolutionary officer, was born in New J9rsey, but removed to Vir- ginia in 1755. He rose to the rank of brigadier- general. His riflemen rendered themselves formidable to the British throughout the strug- gle. Morgan died in 1799. MOROCCO, a large kingdom of Africa, and the chief of the Barbary states. Population, 6,000,000. It was formerly called Mauritania, and was then occupied by a hardy Nomadic race. It afterwards yielded to the Saracens; and, in the eleventh century, a chief of Laini- tuna assumed the character of a reformer of the Mahometan religion, and assembled all the neighboring tribes under his standard. His fol- lowers, called Almoravides, conquered Morocco, and even Barbary and Spain, thus establishing a vast empire entitled that of Mohgreb, or the West. In the following century they were supplanted by the Almohades ; and in 1557, an Arabian chief, one of the descendants of Maho- met, ascended the throne, which his posterity have since occupied. MORTON, (Earl of), was a chief actor in the transactions of the reign of Mary, and in the minority of James VI of Scotland. He joined in the murder of Rizzio, and after the death of King Darnley assisted to expel Mary from the throne. In 1572 he was elected Re- gent, and in 15S1 he was beheaded at Edin- burT. MORTON, John, born in Pennsylvania; in the congress of 177G he gave the casting vote in the Pennsylvania delegation in favor of the Declaration of Independence, and signed the document. He died in 1777. MORRIS, Gouverneur. was born at Morris- ania in New York, Jan. 31, 1752. He gradu- ated at the college in the city of New York in his sixteenth year, and immediately commenced the study of law. At the age of seventeen he CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MOR 350 MOS Assumed his pen and commenced his careef as a political writer. Mr. Morris, was chosen a member of the first provincial congress. lie was twice elected a member of congress by the legislature of N. York. In 1780 he established himself in I'hiladelphia in the practice of the law. In this year, he was thrown from his car- riage, and his leg was so severely injured that it was necessary to perform amputation, an op- eration which he bore with great fortitude. In 1781 he was appointed assistant financier, and performed the duties of his office with ability for three years. He was a member of the con- vention which met in 1787 for the purpose of framing a constitution for the United States. In 1790, Sir. Morris, being then in France, re- ceived credentials from General Washington as a private agent for. transacting important business with the British ministry. lie pro- ceeded to London but soon returned to Paris without having effected anything. He returned to America in 1798. Here he served some years in the senate of the United States. He married in 1800, a daugher of Thomas Randolph of Virginia, and died Nov. 6th, 1816, aged 65. Mr. Sparks, in his interesting life of Morris, thus delineates his moral qualities : His acute powers of mind, a thorough consciousness of his own strength, and his quick sense of the ridiculous, joined to a lofty independence of thought, often betrayed him into a forwardness of manner, a license of expression, and an in- dulgence of his humor, little suited to soothe the pride, or flatter the vanity, or foster the self-love of those about him. He might dazzle by his genius, surprise by his novel flights of fancy, amuse by his wit, and confound by his arguments, and thus extort the tribute of admi- ration, but fail in gaining the willing applause of love. No man was better acquainted with the forms and etiquette of society, none had moved more widely in the circles of fashion and rank, or examined with a keener scrutiny the deep fountains of the human pHs.nions, or knew better how to touch the spring of men's mo- tives, yet this rare intuition, this more rare ex- perience, and this great knowledge, did little towaids modifying the tendencies of his nature, or diverting the lirst bent of his mind. He was sometimes overbearing in conveisalion. At any rate, when he spoke he expected to bo heard. There is an anecdote illustrative of this point. At abttokfaat-table, he W;IH In el'ine cunversatron with a gentleman, to v.'hos:- harangue he had listened patiently, till it was his turn to reply. He began accordingly, but the gentleman was inattentive, and a bad listener. " Sir," said Mr. Morris, " if you will not listen to my argu- ment, I will address myself to the teapot," and went on with much animation of tone and ges- ture, till he had finished his replication. But this defect, after all, was only a spot on the surface. *****Justice, truth, charity, honor, held an uncontrolled empire in his soul, and never lost their influence or authority. MOSCOW, an extensive city of Russia in Europe, founded in the middle of the 12th cen- ftiry. Present population. 246,545. In 1382 it was besieged by Tamerlane, and it soon fell into the hands of the Tartars, who again attack- ed it in 1571. They burnt the city; but it was afterwards rebuilt, and was for a century and a half the capital of the empire, and the resi- dence of the court till 17GO. In September, 1812, the memorable confla- gration took place, by which three-fourths of the city was consumed. The general plan of the campaign in the war with the French was to abandon and destroy ; her, when the French continued to advance. id destroy ; in August and Septem- and it was thought impossible to check their progress, Count Rostopchin forewarned the in- habitants of the sacrifices they would be called on to make. The churches and the treasury were stripped of their ornaments ; the person's belonging to the public establishments were re- moved to Kasan. and barks, laden with corn, were sunk in the Moskva, to prevent their fall ing into the hands of the enemy. The decisive battle of Borodino was fought on the 8th of Sep- tember, about 70 niiles from Moscow, and the hospitals were soon filled with wounded. On the news of the retreat of the Russian army, a general movement took place in Moscow. On the 13th of September the enemy drew near, and the mass of the population of Moscow fled into the surrounding countrv. On tho l-4!h the French entered the city, and that night a firo broke out. which was soon got under. On the 15th fires burst forth from the shoj-s; and on the following night a general conflagration took place, explosions in different places, and fagots thrown from towers, showed that moans were employed to spread destruction in evory quarter. Dining the next day smoke rolled in thick clouds over the town, aiid at niy lit a vast globe of flame illuminated the atmosphere se~- era! loan-lies round. The conflagration was rapidly spread by a violent wind, the building" fell in wills a tremendous crash, and the immense stones, calcinud and blackened, only remained HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. MUC 351 MUR to denote their site. The French sentinels were, however, unable to detect the incendiaries; several stragglers were arrested, tried, and shot, but all the men taken in attempting to spread the flames, declared they had acted under the direction of Rostopchin and the director of po- lice. The French officers, on finding it imprac- ticable to extinguish the flames, authorized a systematic pillage. The plunder was immense ; but the greater part was abandoned in the dis- astrous retreat. The fire raged till the 1 9th : Bonaparte now remained at Moscow a month, in the hope of prevailing on the Russians to conclude a peace. Baffled in this attempt, he quitted the city on the 18th of October. The young guard, which formed the garrison left by Bonaparte, intrenched itself in the Kremlin ; and, having undermined part of the walls and interior buildings, blew them up on the 23d October, the day of the final evacuation. The rebuilding of the city proceeded but slowly till 1814, when the greatest exertions were made ; and by the beginning of 1818 the new city seemed to have risen from the ruins, and by the end of that year the whole was completed. (See Russia.) MOSES, a celebrated legislator and general among the Jews, well known in sacred history. He was born in Egypt 1571, B. C., he conducted the Israelites through the Red Sea, and gave them laws and ordinances, during their pere- grination of 40 years in the wilderness of Arabia. He died at the age of 120. MOULTRIE, William, major-general in our revolution, came to South Carolina from England at an early age. He served against the Indians prior to 1775, and. during the revolution dis- tinguished himself at Charleston, Beaufort, Stono, and Sullivan's island, the fort of which was named after him. He died at Charleston, Sept. 27. 1805. MUCl'US, ScsDvola, (the left-handed), Caius Mucius Cordus. When Porsenna, king of Etruria, had besieged Rome to reinstate Tar- quin in all his rights and privileges, Mucius determined to deliver his country from so dan- gerous an enemy. He disguised himself in the habit of a Tuscan, and as he could speak the language fluently, he gained an easy introduc- tion into the camp, and soon into the royal tent. Porsenna sat alone with his secretary when' Mucius entered. The Roman rushed upon the secretary and stabbed him to the heart, mistaking him for his royal master. This occasioned a noise, and Mucius, unable to es- cape, was seized and brought before the king. He gave no answer to the inquiries of the courtiers, and only told them that he was a Ro- man, and to give them a proof of his fortitude, he laid his right hand on an altar of burning coals, and sternly looking at the king, and with- out utterino- a groan, he boldly told him, that 300 young Romans like himself, had conspired against his life, and entered the camp in dis- guise, determined either to destroy him or per- ish in the attempt. This extraordinary confes- sion astonished Porsenna; he made peace with the Romans and retired from their city. Mu- cius obtained the surname of Scccvola, because he had lost the use of his right hand by burning it in the presence of the Etrurian king. MUNICH, the capital of Bavaria, contains 80,000 inhabitants. It surrendered to the Swedes and German Protestants, under Gustavus Adol phus, in 1632; in 1704, it fell into the hands ot the Austrian*. In 1741 it shared the vicissitudes of the war, and in 1796, the French army under Moreau, obliged the elector to make a separate treaty. In 1800 Moreau again occupied Bava- ria, and secured his superiority by the victor}' of Hohenlinden ; and from that time, to 1813, Bavaria remained in alliance with the French. MURAT, an officer of Napoleon's army, cre- ated grand duke of Berg and Cleves in 1806, was the son of a pastry-cook, and was born at Achers in 1771. At a very early age he was a fine horseman, and fond of military exercises. It is not surprising, therefore, that he escaped from the convent where he was placed to study the- ology, and enlisted in a regiment of dragoons. His merit raised him from the ranks and he fought under Napoleon throughout his career. On the elevation of Joseph to the Spanish throne, in 180'J, Bonaparte transferred the crown of Naples to Murat, his brother-in-law. In Dec. 1812, Murat was appointed to the chief command of the French army at Wilna, after their mem- orable but ill-fated retreat from Moscow. In 1814 Murat joined the alliance against France by opening his ports to the English, and engag- ing to assist Austria with an army of 30,000 men. In 1815 Murat, by an enterprise against the Austrians in Italy, had lost the crown of Naples. When the expedition from Elba reach- ed France, he assembled his cabinet, and de- clared his resolution to support the allies; but on learning that Bonaparte had entered Lyons, he demanded leave of the pope to march a force through his territories. Pius the VII refused : on which two Neapolitan divisions penetrated to Rome, and his holiness, hastily retiring, placed himself under the protection of the Eng- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MUR 352 NAM lish at Genoa. Murat himself advanced to An- cona, and his army marched in four columns on the routes of Bologna, Modena, Reggio, and Ferrara, while a fifth division drove the Austrian ganisons from Cesena and"Rhnini. Harassnd on all sides ay the British and Austrian forces, and having in vain solicited an armistice, he attacked Bianchi, -near Tole'htino. in which contest his army was to^lly rjiined. After a disastrous retreat of ten days, he found, on approaching Naples, that the inhabitants had declared for the King of Sicily wherever the Austrians appeared ; that Colonel Church was raising against him-an army of his late subjects ; and that every thing, in short, was going against him. Leaving his followers, who were now reduced to 4000 men, he hastened to Naples, and arrived at the palace, exhausted with fatigue. He escaped in disguise with a few adherents to the Isle of Ischia, and embarking thence for France, landed on the 25th of May at Cannes. Murat, after the battle of Waterloo, made his retreat in an open boat to Corsica. In Septem- ber, proposals were made to Joachim, that he should assume the name of a private person, that he should choose his abode either in Bohe- mia, Moravia, or Upper Austria ; and that he should engage not to quit those states without the consent of the emperor. He rejected this overture, and undertook, in imitation of Bona- parte, an expedition for the recovery of his kingdom. When he landed at Pizzo on the 8th of October, he could only muster about 30 offi- cers. Thus disappointed he proceeded to Mon- teleone. He was overtaken half-way by a very strong party, and after fighting d'espYrately, broke through his pursuers, and hastened to the beach, where he was seized and conveyed be- fore General Nanziante the commandant of Ca- labria. On the 15th, pursuant to orders from Naples, he was tried by court-martial, and found guilty of having attempted to excite rebellion and civil war; sentence of death was pronounced upon him, and executed on the same day. MURRAY, Alexander, was born at Chester- town, Maryland, in 1755. At the age of Id he commanded a merchant-vessel. At 21 he was appointed a lieutenant in the navy, but fought on shore, until he could obtain a vessel. He commanded several letters of marque during the revolutionary struggle, and served some time under Barry. When in command of the Constellation he beat off some Tripolitan gun- boats with great spirit and success. His last appointment was to the post of commandant of the navy-yard at Philadelphia. Pie died, Oct. 0, Ib21. MURRAY, (Earl of), was the natural son of James V, King of Scotland. He was a pow- erful supporter of the reformation. After the return of Mary from France, he administered her affairs until her marriage with Darnley, which he opposed by force of arms, and was obliged to flee into England. After the murder of Rizzio. he was again restored to favor. He went abroad to France on the murder of Darn- ley in t56(>. and returned on being elected re- gent by his party. This election was confirmed by parliament, and he soon established his au- thority. Mary, escaping from Lochleven Cas- tle, collected her friends, who were defeated at Langside, near Glasgow, and she was compelled to flee into England in 1508. He was support- ed by the alliance of queen Elizabeth. In ]5t>9, . he was murdered by Hamilton, a partisan of ' Mary, whose life he had spared. He dispensed justice with so much impartiality, repressed the licentious borderers with so much courage, maintained religion, and established such order and tranquillity in the country, that his admin- istration was extremely popular, and he was long and affectionately remembered by the name of the " Good Regent." N. NADIR SHAH, (see Persia.} NAMUR, a province of Belgium. The soil is remarkably fertile, and the earth yields many valuable minerals. The city of Namur, the cap- ital, is situated at the junction of the !*ambre and Meuse, 28 miles from Brussels, and con- tains 1!U50 inhabitants. In 1692, the strength of the place being discovered to the French by the treacherous Baron de Bresse, who, undei pretence of being taken, deserted the Spanish service. Louis XIV, with 80.000 men besieged it : the town was taken after a few days resist- ance. While the French continued t<> Ix'sieoi? the castle, King William III, of Great Britain, marched, with 100,000 men to its relief: but the French, being advantageously posted, de- clined battle. His majesty, however, drove them from their posts, and attempted to pass the river by means of bridges ; but, in the mean time, a great rain swelled the river, carried down the bridges, prevented his attacking them, and gave them an opportunity to take the cas- tle, which made but a feeble defence : the great- est loss of the French was at Coehorn Fort, which was valiantly defended by Colonel Coe- horn, its founder and governor, who was danger- ously wounded. The fort was surrendered, and the castle not long after, but were retaken 1695. HISTORICAL AND BI OGR AP HIC AL. NAP 353 NAP tlantic. exten- t. In NAN-KING, or Nankin, or Kiang-ning, a Chinese city, capital of Kiang-nan, 500 miles S. E. of Peking. It was formerly the imperial city, and one of the largest in the world, being 12 leagues in circuit. In 1645 its magnificent falace was destroyed by the Mantchou Tartars, ts principal ornament, the celebrated porcelain tower, was built 1411, A. D. NANTES, a city of France, c department of the Lower Loire, pie uated on the Loire, 2(3 miles from the. Population 71,739. Its manufactur sive, and its public institutions im_ history it is celebrated for the act called the Edict of Nantes, which was passed^by Henry IV, by which the Protestants enjoyed toleration in France, 1598. It was revoked by Louis XIV in IGdo ; by which bad policy 50,000 French Protestants were induced to quit France, and seek refuge in England. NAPLES, the capital and royal residence of the Two Sicilies, in Terra di La voro, containing 3(31,754 inhabitants, is charmingly situated on the brink of the most beautiful bay in the world, a scene on which is thus eloquently described by a recent traveller. It is evening and scarcely a breeze ruffles the bosom of the beautiful bay, which resembles a mirror reflecting on its glassy surface the bright sky and the thousand glittering stars with which it isstudded. Naples, with its white colonnades, seen amidst the dark foliage of its terraced gar- dens, rises like an amphitheatre ; lights stream from the windows, and fall over the sea beneath like columns of gold. The castle of St. Elmo crowning the centre ; Vesuvius, like a sleeping giant in grim repose, whose awaking all dread, is to the left ; and to the right are the vine- crowned heights of beautiful Varmero, with their palaces and villas peeping forth from the groves that surround them ; while rising above it, the convent of Camaldoli lifts its head to the skies. Resina. Portici, Castel-a-Mare, and the lovely shores of Sorrento, reach out from Vesuvius, as if they tried to embrace the isle of Capri, which forms the central object; and Pausihppo and Misenum, which in the distance seemed joined to Procidaand Ischia, advance to meet the beau- tiful island on the right. The air as it leaves the shore, is laden with fragrance from the orange-trees and jasmine, so abundant round Naples ; and the soft music of the guitar, or lively sound of the tambourine, marking the brisk movements of the tarantella, steals on the ear. But hark ! a rich stream of music, silenc- ing all other, is heard, and a golden barge ad- vances; the oars keep time to the music, and each stroke of them sends forth a silvery light ; numerous lamps attached to the boat, gives itat a little distance*, th? appearance of a vast shell of topaz floating on a sea of sapphire. Nearer and nearer draws this, splendid pageant, the music falls more distinctly- on the charmed ear and one sees .that' its dulcet sounds are pro- duced by a band of glittering musicians clothed in royal liveries. This illuminated barge is followedby another, with a silken canopy overhead, and the curtains drawn back to admit the balmy air. Cleopatra, when she sailed down the Cydnus, boasted not a more beautiful vessel ; and, as it glides over the sea, it seems impelled by the music which precedes it, so perfectly does it keep time to its enchanting sounds, leaving a bright trace be- hind, like the memory of departed happiness. But who is he that guides this beauteous bark ? His tall and slight figure is curved, and his snowy locks, falling over ruddy cheeks, show that age has bent, but not broken him : he looks like one born to command a hoary Neptune steering over his native element all eyes are fixed on him, but his follow the glittering barge that precedes him. And who is she that has the seat of honor at his side ? Her fair, large, and unmeaning face wears a placid smile ; and those light blue eyes and fair ringlets speak her of another land ; her lips, too, want the fine chiseling which marks those of the sunny clime of Italy ; and the expression of her countenance has more in it of earth than heaven. Innume- rable boats, filled with lords and ladies, follow, but intrude not on the privacy of this regal bark, which passes before us like the visions in a dream. He who steered was Ferdinand, king of the two Sicilies ; and she who sat beside him was Maria-Louisa, ex-empress of France. The climate of Naples is delightful, and such of the lazzaroni as are unable to procure shelter experience no painful results from sleeping in the open air. The nobles are opulent and lux- urious, and a love of pleasure pervades alike all classes. The necessaries of life are easily ob- tained, and the poor lazzaroni, of whom there are 30,000, lay by enough money to enable them to witness the cheap amusements of their city. During the government of Pandulph II, as Prince of Benevento, A.D. 1003, the" Normans first arrived in Italy, and established themselves in this country ; Landulph V, the son of Pan- dulph, was expelled from the government by Richard I, the Norman Count of Aversa, whi> CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. NAP 354 NAP caused himself to be proclaimed Prince of Ben- evenlo. Thus the dominion of the Lombards in this principality terminated in A. D. 1059. Richard was succeeded in the government of Benevento by Jordanus, Richard II, Robert, Richard III, Jordanus II, Robert II, and Roger, who assumed the title of king, and obtained the investiture of the dukedom of Naples. Some years after, Roger having taken Pope Innocent prisoner, obliged his holiness to confirm to him the title of king. To him succeeded William in 1154, William II in 11U6, Tancred, Count of Lecce, in 1190, Frederick in 1208, who enlarged and embel- lished the city of Naples, which he made the chief place of his residence ; and Conrad in 1250. Four years after Conrad died, and was succeed- ed by Conradin, whose army was attacked and dispersed by Manfred. In 1253 Manfred as- sumed the crown of Sicily ; and in 1206 was defeated and slain by the army of Charles of Anjou, on whom Pope Urban had conferred the title of king.. Soon after Conradin laid claim to Sicily, and marched with an army into Italy, but was entirely defeated and taken prisoner by Charles, who caused him and the Duke of Aus- tria to be publicly beheaded upon a scaffold in the market-place of Naples, A. D. 1269. Charles, by his arbitrary and oppressive gov- ernment, so entirely lost the affections of the Sicilians, that they offered their allegiance to Peter, king of Arragon, who was soon after crowned at Palermo, and from this period the history of Naples is one unvaried and uninter- esting detail of similar scenes of war and inva- sion, during nearly the space of two hundred years. At length, after a long separation, Alphonso of Arragon united both Sicily and Naples under his dominion. Upon the death of Ferdinand, Charles V succeeded to Naples, as well as to the rest of the Spanish monarchy. During his reign, and that of his successors Philip II, Philip III, and Philip IV, this country was governed by the Viceroys of Spain, and suffered greatly from their oppression. On the death of Philip IV, A. 1). 16(54, Charles II succeeded to the crown of Spain, and adopted Philip of An- jou, afterwards Philip V, as the heir of all his dominions. In 17(11) Philip succeeded to the crown of Na- ples and Sicily ; but his title was opposed by the house of Austria, and a conspiracy procured the government of Naples for Charles II, son of the emperor Leopold. However, by the con- ditions of the general peace, Naples again owned the sway of Philip in 1719; hut Sicily was given to the duke of Savoy. Some years after, the emperor, Charles VI. again seized upon Naples, and by cession obtained also Sicily. He con- tinued to reign over them for seven" 1 years, till Don Carlos, being vested with the rights of his father, who was yet alive, conquered these two kingdoms in 1734. and fixed the seat of his gov- ernment among his subjects. Don Cailos changed the face of his kingdoms, which, on his taking possession of the crown of Spain, he left in a flourishing condition to his son Ferdinand IV, in 1759. In 1767 the Jesuits were expelled from Na- ples, and were all conveyed into the pope's do- minions, the vicinity of "whose territories ren- dered every scheme of opposition fruitless. During the invasion of Italy by the French, after some immaterial hostilities, a suspension of arms was agreed to between the king of Na- ples and the republican commander in 17U6 ; and soon after a peace was concluded between the two powers. Naples being required to pay a sum of eight millions, either in money or in na- val stores. In 17C8 the king of Naples commenced hos- tilities against the French, attacked the new Roman republic, and entered Rome in triumph ; but, in the year following, he was obliged to conclude an 'armistice with the enemy on very- hard conditions. ' Naples was reduced under the power of the French in 1799, who constituted it a republic, and established a provisionary gov- ernment. However, a few months afterwards, the great successes of the Austro-llussian army forced the French to evacuate Naples ; and, by the aid of the English, the king of the Two Sicilies, who had hoisted his flag on board the Foudrovant, the English admiral's ship, was en- abled to return once more to his capital. But the victory of Bonaparte at Marengo, and the conditions of the treaty of Luneville gave the French a great ascendency in Italy. In 1805 Bonaparte issued a proclamation, de- claring that the Neapolitan dynasty had ceased to reign, and ordered his troops to subject the whole of Italy to his laws or those of his allies. In consequence of this, a French army, under the command of Joseph Bonaparte, entered Na- ples, and occupied all the principal fortresses in the kingdom. The king of Naples and the royal family were obliged to seek an asylum in Sicily. Under the prince of Hesse, (iaeta made a lonir and memorable defence against the FrencTi troops; and was taken only in conse- quence of that commander being badly wound- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. NAP 355 NAP ed, and some of his officers proving treacherous. On the translation of Joseph Bonaparte to the throne of Spain, in 1808, Joachim Murat, who had married a sister of Napoleon, was nominat- ed to the kingdom of Naples. After an extraordinary career, in which some of the martial talents and vigor of Murat were displayed, but were ill seconded by his troops, Naples was invested by land, whilst an English naval force entered its port, and compelled a surrender of the ships and arsenal. The Nea- politan commanders, and those of Austria and England, signed a convention, of which the prominent feature was the abdication of Joa- chim. Naples was occupied by the allies, who were joined by an armament of English and Sicilians ; and Ferdinand IV, king of the Two Sicilies, after an absence of nine years, was re- stored in 1815. Naples has suffered, at different periods, from earthquakes and eruptions of Vesuvius. NAPOLEON BONAPARTE, one of the most extraordinary characters recorded in his- tory, and distinguished alike for his extraordi- nary fortunes, his civil talents, and his military genius, was one of the numerous family of an advocate of Ajaccio, in Corsica, and was born there August 15, 17(59. After receiving the rudiments of a classical education, he entered the military school at Brienne where he was distinguished by the gravity of his character, and his sedulous study of the mathematics. Even his sports partook of his graver. pursuits, and we are told that he was successful in the little military operations which he undertook. On the occurrence of a day which was com- monly considered a holiday, Bonaparte's in- structers confined him and his companions to the school-grounds. The young engineer con- structed a mine with great ingenuity , which, in exploding, blew down the walls and enabled the juvenile rebels to escape. When he could en- list no y ( >unth of Nov. he effected a revolution in Paris, and was proclaimed first consul of the republic. After offers of peace to the confederates which were rejected, he crossed the Alps with an army of recruits, and in June 1800, gained the battle of Marengo and re-ac CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. NAP 356 NAP quired possession of Italy. A general peace was the consequence, in 1802 he was elected consul for life, and in May, 1804, he assumed the title of Napoleon I, emperor of the French, and in Dec. 2, was crowned at Paris by the Pope. In March, 1805, he was declared king of Italy, and in May crowned at Milan. He had previously established his military order of the Legion of Honor and distributed the crosses which were the distinguishing badges. ' Of all to whom the cross of the legion of honor was tendered, Lafayette alone had the courage to decline it. Napoleon, either from want of true perception of moral greatness, or because the detestable servility of returning emigrants had taught him to think, there was no such thing as honor or independence in man, exclaimed, when they told him that Lafayette refused the decora- tion, " What, will nothing satisfy that man, but the chief command of the National Guard of the Empire ?" Yes, much less abundantly satisfied him ; the quiet possession of the poor rem- nants of his estate, enjoyed without sacrificing his principles.' In September, 1805, the confederacy of Eu- ropean powers being renewed, he invaded Ger- many, and at Ulm captured 30,000 Austrian*. In November, he entered Vienna, and on Dec. 2, gained the battle of Austerlitz, over the em- perors of Russia and Austria, after which he concluded peace with Austria, created the elec- tors of Bavaria and Wirtemberg kings, and made his elder brother, Joseph, king of Naples. In October, 1806, he invaded Prussia, and on the 3d of that month gained a decisive victory at Jena and Auerstadt, by which the whole Prussian monarchy, and Germany to the Baltic, came under his authority. The " Man of Des- tiny " had now filled Europe with the terror of his name, the bare mention of which shook .the crowned heads of the oldest monarchies of the continent with palsied apprehension. In vain the dagger, the mine, and the bowl had been prepared for him. His star had not yet begun to decline from the zenith. Napoleon wa.s ;il- most miraculously preserved from poison. It is well known that he was an inveterate snuff- taker. When his mind was deeply engaged his snuff-box was in constant requisition. He once left his apartment for a few moments, and re- turned to tike his box from the mantel-piece. He thought the snuff felt somewhat strangely. and calling to a dog. that was lying nearTiimj administered a pinch. The poor animal soon rolled over in the agonies of death ; and Napo- leon thenceforth kept his snuff in his waistcoat pockets which he had sheathed with tin. November 20th, he promulgated at Berlin the famous decree by which he proposed to exclude the trade of Britain from all the ports of the continent. In June, 1807, having overrun Po- land, he totally defeated the emperor of Russia at Eglan and Friedland, after which an inter- view took place between them on a raft on the Niemen, followed by the treaty of Tilsit. In November of that year, he marched an army into Lisbon, driving the Portuguese court to the Brazils ; and on December 1. created his young- er brother Jerome, king of Westphalia. On May 5, 1808, was concluded the treaty by which Charles IV ceded to the emperor all his rights in the crown of Spain. Joseph, brother of" the emperor, was proclaimed king of Spain, on the 6th of June. On the 27th of September, in the same vear, Napoleon had an amicable interview with the emperor of Russia at Erfurt, and they jointly proposed peace with England , which was rejected. On the 2!)th of October, the emperor departed from Paris and placed himself at the head of the army in Spain, the right wing of which pursued Sir John Moore to Cornnna, while he inarched to Madrid and seated his bro- ther on the Spanish throne ; but in the meantime, the Austrians took the field ; Napoleon hastened to oppose them, and gained successive victories at Abensburg, Eckmuhl, and Ratisbon. On the 16th of December, 180!), he divorced the em press Josephine, and on the 2d of April. 1810, married Maria Louisa, archduchess of Austria. The 20th of March, 1811, was signalized by the birtli of !iis son who \\ us crowned king of Rome In 1812, lie assembled a great army in Po- land, and invaded Russia, and having at the Borodino, and at Moskwa, gained two bloody victories, he entered Moscow on the 14th of September ; that city, having been afterwards burned by the Russians, became untenable, and the French retreated for winter quarters towards Poland, but an early and unusual frost setting in during tlieir march, they lost their horses, were compelled to abandon "their artillery, and three li urths of the army perished or were made prisoners. On this Napoleon returned to Paris, and Poland and Prussia were occupied by the Russians. In April 1813, Napoleon again took the field against the Prussians, and gained the victories of Lutzen, Bantzen,and Wartzon ; but the Aus- trians and Bavarians joined the confederacy against him. and he was attacked at Leip.-ic by the combined armies of the European nations; being forced to abandon that city with immense loss,'~and retreat to Metz. thereby abandoning his German conquests. In 1814, the confede HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. NAP 357 NAP rates having passed the Rhine, penetrated, after various battles, to Paris, which, being surren- dered by marshals Marmont and Mortier, Na- poleon concluded a treaty with the allies at Fontaine bleau, by which he agreed to retire to the island of Elba, with provision for himself and family. In March, 1815, Napoleon embarked with GOO of his guards and made a sudden descent in Provence. On the 10th, he entered Lyons, on the 23th, Paris in triumph. His banners flew from steeple to steeple, until they finally waved in the wind from the pinnacles of Notre Dame. On the 1st of June, he held the meeting in the Champ de Mai, and soon joined the army on the Belgian frontier, where on the 16th, he de- feated Blucher at Ligny with a loss of 22,000 men. On the 18th, was fought the bloody bat- tle of Waterloo, in which the French army was completely defeated. The following account of the conduct of Napoleon at the battle of Water- loo is from the journal of a French officer. He has ruined us he has destroyed France and himself; yet I love him still. It is im- possible to be near him and not to love him : he has so much greatness of soul such majesty of manner. He bewitches all minds; approach him with a thousand prejudices, and you quit him filled with admiration : but then, his mad ambition ! his ruinous infatuation ! his obstina- cy without bounds ! Besides, he was wont to set every tiling upon a cast : his game was all or nothing I Even the battle of Waterloo might have been retrieved, had he not charged with the guard. This was the reserve of the army, and should have been employed in covering his retreat instead of attacking, but, with him, whenever matters looked desperate, he resem- bled a mad dog. He harangues the guard he puts h'nnself at its head it debouches rapidly it rushes upon the enemy. We are mowed down by grape we waver. turn our backs and the rout is complete. A general disorgani- zation of the army ensues, and Napoleon, re- turned to himself, is cold as a stone. The last time I saw him was in returning from the charge, when all was lost. My thigh had been broken by a musket shot in advancing, and I remained in the rear, extended on the ground. Napoleon passed close to me ; his nose was buried in his snuff-box, and his bridle fell loose- ly on the neck of his horse, which was pacing leisurely along. A Scotch regiment was ad- vancing at the charge in the distance. The Emperor was almost alone. Lallemande only was with him. The latter still exclaimed, " All is not lost, sire ; all is not lost ; rally, soldiers ! rally !" The Emperor replied not a word. Lallemande recognises me in passing. " What ails you, Raoul !" " My thigh is shat- tered by a musket ball." " Poor devil, how I pity you ! how I pity you ! Adieu adieu !" The emperor said not a word ! " When, after the disaster at Waterloo, Na- poleon came back in desperation to Paris, and began to scatter dark hints of dissolving the representatives Chamber, repeating at Paris the catastrophe of Moscow, and thereby endeavor- ing to rouse the people of France to one univer- sal and frantic crusade of resistance, Lafayette was the first to denounce the wild suggestion. fie proposed a series of resolutions, announcing that the independence of the nation was threat- ened, declaring the Chambers a permanent body, and denouncing 'the instant penalties of high treason against all attempts to dissolve it. The same evening he proposed, in the secret assembly of the council of state, the abdication of Napoleon. The subject was again pressed the following day ; but the voluntary act of the emperor anticipated the decision." On the 8th of July, the king returned to Pa- ris, and on the loth of July, Napoleon surren- dered himself to the English at Rochefort. He only asked permission to pass the remainder of his days in England, under an assumed name, and in a private character, but he was conveyed to St. Helena, as a prisoner of state. A few officers of his suite accompanied him. In the island he was treated with great indignity and meanness until his death which was the result of an intestine disorder, and took place May 5, 1821. In his last moments, he was delirious, and his last words tete , the Visigoths besieged this city in vain ; but it was treacherously delivered to them in 402, by count Agripin. And in 732, the Saracens being admitted into the city as friends, took posses- sion of it, and slew all except the king. In 730, Charles Martel took it from the Saracens ; since which it has been subject to the crown of France. The cathedral church is very ancient and famous, and is by some supposed" to have been a metropolitan see, since the year 309. It is dedicated to St. Justus and St. "Martyr, and renowned for its organs, and the raising of Laz- arus, painted by an eminent artist. The city is well fortified, and has only two gales. The dukes of Septima-ia, were also dukes of Nar- bonne; the counts of Toulouse, who succeeded them, Imd the same title ; and the city ;md dio- cese was governed under them by viscounts. Gaston de Foix. king of Navarre, in 1408, be- stowed the lordship of Narbonne upon John his second son, who married the sister of Louis XII. by whom he had Gaston dr F.-ix, killed at tin- bail!- of Ravenna in 1513. This Gaetcn ex- changed the city and lordship of Narbonne with his uncle, for "other lands, in 1507, by which means it became united to the crown of France HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. NAX 359 NEL NASEBY, a village of Northamptonshire, England, famous for the battle fought there in 1G45, between kin? Charles I and the parlia- mentary forces. This decisive and well dis- puted engagement was fought with nearly equal forces on both sides. The king commanded in person, and displayed all the conduct of a pru- dent general and stout soldier. Fairfax and Skippon were his opponents ; and Cromwell behaved with his usual prudence and gallantry. The royal infantry was entirely discomfited ; and, though the king cried aloud to the caval- ry, ' One charge more and we recover the day !" they could not be prevailed on to renew the combat, and the king was obliged to quit the field. The slain on the side of the parliament, however, exceeded those of the king. Among the spoils was found the king's cabinet, with copies of his letters to the queen. NASSAU, a sovereign duchy of the German empire, with an area of 1959 square miles, and a population of 303,470. The soil is extremely fertile. NATCHEZ, a city of Mississippi, on the east bank of the Mississippi, 280 miles above New Orleans. Population in 1830, 2790. This city possesses great commercial advantages, but unfortunately lias been frequently visited by the yellow fever The place is well-built, the streets are of considerable width. NATOLIA, Annatolia, or Anadoli, a fertile and productive province of Asiatic Turkey, 650 miles in length, and 400 broad, containing 270,000 square miles, and 6,000.000 inhabitants. It is also called Asia Minor, and anciently com- prised Bithynia, Paphlagonia, Galatia, Pheygia, Mysia, ^Eolia, Ionia, Lydia, Caria, Doris, Pysi- dia, Lycia, Pamphylia, Cilicia, Cappadocia, and Ponlus. NAVARINO (Neocnstro;) a fortified town on the S. W. coast of the Morea, with a large harbor. In 1715 it was in the hands of the Ve- netians who fortified it against the Turks. Here (Oct. 20, 1827) tlie combined Russian, French, and English fleet, commanded by admiral Cod- rington, destroyed the Turco-Egyptian fleet, of 214' sail, in three hours. NAVARRE, a province of Spain, with the title of kingdom, divided formerly into Upper and Lower Navarre. The latter is now in- cluded in the French department of the Lower Pyrenees, and the former forms the Spanish kingdom of Navarre. Spanish Navarre con- tains 271,285 inhabitants. NAXOS, now Naxia, in very ancient times Dia and Stongyle, the largest island of the Cy- 31 clades, contains 169 square miles, and 10,000 inhabitants. The Naxians were anciently gov- erned by kings, but they afterwards exchanged this form of government for a republic, and en- joyed their liberty till the age of Pisistratus, who appointed a tyrant over them. They were reduced by the Persians ; but in the expedition of Darius and Xerxes against Greece, they re- volted and fought on the side of the Greeks. During the Peloponnesian war, they supported the interest of Athens. The capital was also called Naxos ; and near it, B. C. 377, the Lace- daemonians were defeated by Chabrias. NEBUCHADNEZZAR 1, or JYabuchodono- sar, king of Nineveh and Babylon. He is sup- posed to be the same with Nabopolassar, gov- ernor of Babylon, who founded the kingdom of Nineveh. He sent Holophernes against Judea, who was slain by Judith. NEBUCHADNEZZAR II, king of Assyria and Babylon, is supposed to have been the son of the preceding. He invaded Judea, took Je- rusalem, and carried the treasures of the temple, and a number of captives, to Babylon. After this, he set up a golden statue in the plain of Dura, which he' commanded all his subjects to adore, on pain of being cast into a fiery furnace. Three young Jews, named Shadrach. Meshach, and Abednego, refused to submit to this idola- try, and the sentence was executed upon them; but they were preserved amidst the flames. Having lost his senses, he became an outcast from the society of men, and lived among wild beasts in the forest ; but on recovering his rea- son, he again ascended the throne and died, B. C. 562, after reigning 43 years. NECHO, king of Egypt, called in scripture, Pharaoh Necho, succeeded his father, Psamme- ticus, B. C. 616. He undertook to make a canal from the Nile to the Arabian gulf, which un- dertaking he was forced to abandon, after losing a great number of men. The ships of Necho sailed from the Red Sea, round the coast of Africa, into the Mediterranean ; and returned to Egypt, after a voyage of three years. This monarch invaded Assyria, and on his march was attacked by Josiah, king of Judah, who was slain in the battle. The king of Egypt was de- feated in his turn by Nebuchadnezzar, and obliged to return to his own country, where he died, B. C. 600. NELSON, (Horatio, Viscount), an English admiral, was the fourth son of the rector of Burnham Thorpe in Norfolk, where Horatio was born Sept. 29, 1758. At the age of twelve years he was taken to sea by his maternal un CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. NEL 360 NEL cle, Captain Suckling, of the Raisonable man- of-war. In 1773 in a voyage undertaken for the discovery of a north-west passage, the young seaman distinguished himself by his skill, cour- age, and promptitude. Soon after his return he was appointed to a station in the Seahorse, in which he sailed to the East Indies. He passed for a lieutenant in 1777, and re- ceived his commission as second of the Lowes- toff frigate ; in which he cruised against the Americans. In 1779 he obtained the rank of post captain, and was appointed to the command of the Hinchinbrooke, with which he sailed to the West Indies, and while there essentially contributed to the taking of Fort Juan in the gulf of Mexico. We find him next commanding the Boreas, having under him the Duke of Cla- rence, who was captain of the Pegasus. While thus engaged he married the daughter of William Woodward, judge of the Island of Nevis, by whom he never had any issue. On the breaking out of the war with France he was nominated to the Agamemnon of G4 guns, on board of which lie sailed to the Mediterranean, and was present at the taking possession of Toulon. He was also present at the siege of Bastia, where he served at the batteries with a body of seamen ; as he afterwards did at Calvi : and while employed before that place he lost an eye. He was so active on that station that his name was dreaded throughout the Mediter- ranean. He was with Admiral Hothain in the action with the French fleet. March 15, 1795 ; and the same year he took the island of Elba. In 1790! he was appointed commodore on board La Mi- nerve, in which frigate he captured La Sabine, a forty gun ship. Soon nfter this he descried the Spanish fleet, and steered with the intelli- gence to Sir John Jervis off St. Vincent. He had scarcely communicated the news, and shift- ed his flag" on board the Captain of 74 guns, when the enemy hove in sight. A close action ensued, which terminated in a complete victory on the side of the British, who were inferior in numbers. On this occasion Commodore Nelson attacked tlie Santissima Trinidada of 1:36 guns; and afterwards he boarded and took the San Nicolas of 8'J guns, from whence he proceeded in the same manner to the San Josef of 112 guns ; both of which surrendered to him. For his share in this glorious victorv, the commodore was honored with the order of the Bath; and having soon afterwards hoisted his flag as rear admiral of the blue, he was appointed to com- mand the inner squadron at the blockade of Cadiz. He there made a bold but unsuccessful attempt to bombard the city, heading his men himself. The next exploit in which he was engaged was an attempt to take possession of Teneriffe, which design also failed, with the loss of Cap- tain Bowen of the Terpsichore. In this expe- dition Admiral Nelson lost his right arm by a cannon shot, and was carried off to the' boat by his son-in-law Captain Nesbit. on his back. He now returned to England for the recovery of his health, and received the grant of a pension of WOOL a year. The brave admiral, however, did not long remain inactive: he rejoined Earl St. Vincent, who. on receiving intelligence of the sailing of Bonaparte from Toulon, detached Sir Horatio Nelson with a squadron in pursuit of him. After exploring the coast of Italy, this inde- fatigable commander steered for Alexandria, where to his great mortification not a French ship was to be seen. He then sailed to Sicily, and having taken in a fresh supply of water, and obtained more correct information, returned to Alexandria, which he descried August 1, 17i)e. at noon. The enemy were discovered in Aboukir Bay, lying at anchor in line of battle; and supported by strong batteries on nn Island, and strengthened by gun-boats. Notwithstand- ing this formidable appearance, the British ad- miral made the signal for battle ; and. V.y a ir.p.s- terly and bold manoeuvre, gave directions for part of his fleet to lead inside the enemy, who were thus exposed between two fires. The contest was hot and bloody. Several of the French ships were soon dismasted : and, at last the admiral's ship 1'Orient of 120 guns took fire, and blew up. The firing, however, con- tinued, but by the (lawn of day only two sail of the line were discovered with their colors fly- ing, all Ihe rest having struck. Soon after this he failed for Sicily, and from thence to Naples, where he quelled a rebellion, and restored the king. Having performed those and other im- portant services. Lord Nelson returned to Eng- land, and was received with enthusiastic joy. A confederacy of the northern powers having alarmed the government, he was employed to dissolve it. A fleet was fitted out. the com- mand of which was given t/> Admiral Sir Hyde Parker, assisted by Lord Nclsc.n. -On their ar- rival elf the CutteVat. and being refused a pas- sage. Lord Nelson r fie. red his s.Tvl.vs. for con- duct! ncr the attack on the Danish force, which was stationed to oppose MI entrance. This being accepted, he shifted his flag to the Ele HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL NEI 361 NER phant, and passed the Sound with little loss. On the 2d of April the action commenced at ten o'clock, and after a sharp conflict seventeen sail of the Danes were sunk, burnt, or taken. A negotiation was then entered into between his lordship and the Crown Prince ; in conse- quence of which the admiral went ashore, and an armistice was settled. Having accomplished these great objects, he returned to England, and was created a vis- count. In August 1SU1, he bombarded the enemy's flotilla of gun-boats at Boulogne, but without any material effect. A treaty suddenly taking place, his lordship retired, but hostilities recommencing he sailed for the Mediterranean, and in March 1803, took the command of that station on board the Victory. Notwithstanding all his vigilance, the French fleet escaped from Toulon, and was joined by that of Cadiz ; of which being apprized, he pursued them to the West Indies with a far inferior force. The combined squadrons, however, struck with ter- ror, returned without effecting any thing; and, after a partial action with Sir Robert Calder off Farrol, re-entered Cadiz. Admiral Nelson re- t,urned to England, but soon set sail to join his fleet off Cadiz. The French under Admiral Villeneuve, and the Spaniards under Gravina, ventured out with a number of troops on board, October 19, Id05, and on the 21st, about noon, the action began off Cape Trafalgar. Lord Nelson ordered 'his ship the Victory to be carried alongside his old antagonist, the Santissima Trinidada, where he was exposed to a severe fire of musketry ; and, not having the precaution to cover his coat, which was decorated with his star and other badges of distinction, he became an object for the riflemen placed purposely in the tops of the Bucentaur, which lay on his quarter. A shot from one of these entered just below his shoul- der, of which he died in about two hours. In this action the enemy's force consisted of thirty- three ships of the line, and several of extraordi- nary magnitude ; while the British were only twenty-seven. After the fall of Lord Nelson, the command devolved on Admiral Colling- wood, by whose bravery and skijl a complete victory was obtained. The remains of Lord Nelson were interred with great pomp in St. Paul's cafBedral, January 9, following. NELSON, Thomas, junior; a signer of the Declaration of American Independence, was born at York, in Virginia. Dec. 26, 1738. He received an excellent education in England, and returned to America about the close of the year 1761. After having been a member of the house of burgesses in his native state, he was chosen a member of the first congress, and le- tained his seat until 1777. At this date, the feeble state of his health obliged him tempora- rily to relinquish his seat, and as soon as he recovered, he was chosen brigadier-general and commander-in-chief of the forces of the com- monwealth. In 1779 he was re-elected to con- gress, but obliged by sickness to return home again. However, he took up arms against the IJritish and distinguished himself in several military expeditions. In 1761 he succeeded Mr. Jefferson as governor of Virginia, and through the most troubled times of the common- wealth, acquitted himself fearlessly and well. He died Jan. 4, 17f9. in his 51st year. NEPTUNE, in ancient mythology, the god of the sea, the brother of Jupiter from whom he derived his sovereignty. He is generally represented as a bearded old man, with a tri- dent in his hand, seated in a huge marine shell which is drawn over the waters by sea-horses. NERO, Lucius Domitius Ahenobarbus, after his adoption called Claudius Drusus, the son of Caius Domiluis Ahenobarbus. and Agrippina, the daughter of Germanicus, was born at An- tium, A. D. 37. He was adopted by the emperor Claudius, A. D. 50, and four years after he succeeded to him on the throne. The beginning of his reign was marked by acts of the greatest kindness and condescension, by affability, complaisance, and popularity. The object of his administration seemed to be the good of his people ; and when he was desired to sign his name to a list of mal- efactors that were to be executed, he exclaimed, I wish to kearen I could not write. He was an enemy to flattery, and when the senate had liberally commended the wisdom of government, Nero desired them to keep their praises till he deserved them. These promising virtues were soon discovered to be artificial, and Nero dis- played the propensities of his nature. He de- livered himself from the sway of his mother, and at last ordered her to be assassinated. This unnatural act of barbarity might Astonish some of the Romans, but Nero had his devoted adherents ; and when he declared that he had taken away his mother's life to save himself from ruin, the senate applauded his measures, and the people signified their approbation. Many of his courtiers shared the unhappy fate of Agrippina. and Nero sacrificed to his fury or caprice all such as obstructed his pleasure. He sacrificed to his wantonness his wife Octavia CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. NER 362 NER Popptea, and the celebrated writers, Seneca, Lucan, Petronius, &c. The Christians also did not escape his barbarity. He had heard of the burning of Troy, and as he wished to renew that dismal scene, he caused Rome to be set on fire in different places. The conflagration became soon universal, and during nine successive days the fire was unexttnguish- ed. All was desolation, nothing was heard but the lamentations of mothers whose children had perished in the flames, the groans of the dying, and the continual fall of palaces and buildings. Nero was the only one who enjoyed the general consternation. He placed himself on the top of a high tower, and he sang on his lyre the de- struction of Troy, a dreadful scene which his barbarity had realized before his eyes. He at- tempted to avert the public odium from his head, by a feigned commiseration of the miseries of his subjects. He began to repair the streets and the public buildings at his own expense. He built himself a celebrated palace, which was profusely adorned with gold, and precious stones, and with whatever was rare and exquisite. The entrance of this edifice could admit a large co- lossus of the emperor 120 feet high, the galleries were each a mile long, and the "whole was cov- ered with gold. The roofs of the dining halls represented the firmament in motion as well as in figure, and continually turned round night and day, show- ering down all sorts of perfumes and sweet wa- ters. When this grand edifice, which occupied a great part of the city, was finished, Nero said, that now he could lodge like a man. His pro- fusion was not less remarkable in all his other actions. When he went a fishing, his nets were made with gold and silk. He never ap- peared twice in the same garment, and when he undertook a voyage, there were thousands of servants to take care of his wardrobe. This continuation of debauchery and extravagance, at last roused the resentment of the people. Many conspiracies were formed against the em- peror, but they were generally discovered, and such as were accessary suffered the greatest punishments. The most dangerous conspiracy against Ne- ro's life, was that of Piso, from which he was delivered by the confession of a slave. The conspiracy of Galba proved more successful ; and the conspirator, when he was informed that his plot was known to Nero, declared himself emperor. The unpopularity of Nero favored his cause, he was acknowledged by all the Ro- man empire, and the senate condemned the ty- rant that sat on the throne to be dragged naked through the streets of Rome, and whipped ti> death, and afterwards to be thrown down from the Tarpeian rock like the meanest malefactor. This, however, was not done, Nero, by a vol- untary death, having prevented the execution of the sentence. He killed himself, A. D. G8, in the 32d year of his age, after a reign of IIJ years and eight months. Rome was filled with acclamations at the in- telligence, and the citizens, more strongly to indicate their joy, wore caps such as were gen- erally used by slaves who had received their freedom. Their vengeance was not only exer- cised against the statues of the deceased tyrant, but his friends were the objects of the public resentment, and many were crushed to pieces in such a violent manner, that one of the sen ators, amid the universal joy, said that he was- afraid they should soon have cause to wish for Nero. Though his death seemed to be the source of universal gladness, yet many of his favorites lamented his fall, and were grieved to see that their pleasures and amusements were stopped by the death of the patron of debauch- ery and extravagance. Even the king of Par- thia sent ambassadors to Rome to condole with the Romans, and to beg that they would honor and revere the memory of Nero. His statues, were also crowned with garlands of flowers, and many believed that he was not dead, but that he would soon make his appearance, and take a due vengeance upon his enemies. NERO, CLAUDIUS, a Roman general sent into Spain to succeed the two Scipios. He suf- fered himself to be imposed upon by Asdrubal, and was soon after succeeded by young Scipio lie was afterwards made consul, and intercepted Asdrubal, who was passing from Spain into Italy with a large reinforcement for his brother Annibal. An engagement was fought near the river Metaurus, in which 5(>.000 of the Cartha- ginians were left on the field of battle, and great numbers taken prisoners, 207 B. C. NKRVA COCCEIUS. a Roman emperor after the death of Domitian, A. I). !>(5. He rendered himself popular by his mildness, his generosity, and the active part he took in the management of affairs. He suffered no statues to be raised to his honor, and he applied to the use of the government all the gold and silver statues which flattery had erected to his prede- cessor. In his civil character he was the pa" tern of good manners, of sobriety, and tempe- rance. He made a solemn declaration that no senator should suffer death during his reu/u , HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. NET 363 NEW and this he observed with such sanctity, that when two members of the senate had conspired against his life, he was satisfied to tell them that he was informed of their wicked machina- tions. He also conducted them to the public spectacles, and seated himself between them, and, when a sword was offered to him, according to the usual custom, he desired the conspirators to try it upon his body. Such goodness of heart, such confidence in the self conviction of the human mind, and such reliance upon the con- sequence of his lenity and indulgence, concil- iated the affection of all his subjects. Yet, as envy and danger are the constant companions of greatness, the praetorian guards at last mu- tinied, and Nerva nearly yielded to their fury. He uncovered his aged neck in the presence of the incensed soldiery, and bade them wreak their vengeance upon him, provided they spared the life of those to whom he was indebted for the empire, and whom his honor commanded him to defend. His seeming submission was unavail- ing, and he was at last obliged to surrender to the fury of his soldiers, some of his friends and supporters. The infirmities of his age, and his natural timidity, at last obliged him to provide himself against any future mutiny or tumult, by choosing a worthy successor. He had many friends and relations, but he did not consider the aggrandizement of his family, and he chose for his son and successor, Trajan, a man of whose virtues and greatness of mind he was fully con- vinced. This voluntary choice was approved by the acclamations of the people; and the wis- dom and prudence which marked the reign of Trajan showed how discerning was the. judg- ment, and how affectionate were the intentions of Nerva for the good of Rome. He died A. D. 93. in his 72d year, and his successor showed his respect for h;s merit and his character by raising him altars and temples in Rome, and in the provinces, and by ranking him in the num- ber of the gods. Nerva was the first Roman emperor who was of foreign extraction, his fa- ther beinf a native of Crete. NETHERLANDS, a kingdom of Europe, separated from Belgium in the revolution of 1330, previously to which it contained 25,375 square miles, and 6.059,566 inhabitants. The earliest accounts of the Netherlands are from the Romans, by whom all the southern and central part (called Belgia) was kept in subjec- tion till the decline of their empire in the fifth eentury. It was formerly, under the govern- ment of counts, but being incorporated with the extensive possessions of the duke of Burgundy, 31* the Netherlands passed to Maximilian of Aus- tria, father of Charles V, who united the 17 provinces into one state ; but the bigotry of his son Philip II. produced the separation of the Dutch provinces, and great dissension and dis- tress in the others. They remained under the Spanish crown until the middle of the 17th century, when arduous exertions were made by Conde and Turenne to add them to the domin- ions of Louis XIV. The quadruple alliance, concluded at the Hague in 1608, however, put a stop to their progress, but the wars from 1072 to 1079, and 1680 to 1697, were prosecuted chiefly for the Netherlands. At length, in 1702, Louis obtained them, but the French being de- feated by the duke of Marlborough at the battle of Ramilies, in 1706, the southern provinces were brought under the powei of the allies, and assigned to Austria at the peace of Utrecht. A peace ensued, until the war of 1741 was trans- ferred to the Netherlands, and the French un- der Marshal Saxe recovered them. Bergen-op- Zoorn was captured by the French in September 1747, and Maastricht in the following year, when the successes of the British navy, and the persevering aspect of the coalition led to the peace of Aix-la-Chapelle in 1748, and the south- ern Netherlands thus became restored to Aus- tria. By the treachery of Austria in 1756 they were once more nearly ceded to France, but the scheme was not carried into effect. In the campaign of 3792 Austria again lost the Nether- lands, and though recovered in 1793, they again passed over to France in 1794. The hope of recovering them was the cause of the coalition of 179!) and 1805, both baffled in their object. The disasters of the French army in Russia in Icl2, at length, opened the long-wished-for prospect. In 1813, German}' occupied all the exertions of the allies, but in 1814 the Nether- lands were detached by a consequence of the revolution by which the Bourbons were restored: and the British cabinet accomplished the union of the seventeen provinces, and their erection into an independent state, under the prince of Orange, in 1815. The prince, therefore, as- sumed the title of king of the Netherlands, and prand duke of Luxembourg. NEW BRUNSWICK, a British province of North America. Population 110.000. In the interior of the country the soil is admirable, and the uplands are well timbered. Grass and grain are the principal agricultural productions, and the main exports are timber and fish. The river St. John's is the principal stream. NEWFOUNDLAND, an island in the North CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. NEW 364 NEW Atlantic ocean near the gulf of St. Lawrence, discovered by Sebastian Cabot in 1497. The population is estimated at about 80,000. It is 380 miles long, and from 40 to 280 broad, being of triangular shape. The face of the country is very rugged, but timber is abundant. The cli- mate IB cold and dreary. The fisheries off tho banks employ more than one hundred thousand men. St. John's, the capital, contains about 12,000 inhabitants. NEW HAMPSHIRE, one of the United States, bounded north by Lower Canada ; east by the Atlantic ocean and the state of Maine ; south by Massachusetts, and west by Connecticut river. It has an area of 7,491 miles, and a pop- ulation of 284,754 There are numerous rivers in the state, which is very mountainous, the White Mountains displaying some of the most sublime scenes to be found in this country. The chief towns are Concord, the seat of gov- ernment, Portsmouth, Dover, Walpole, Clare- mont, Hanover, Hopkinton, Salisbury, Lon- donderry, and Durham. Dartmouth College, in Hanover, and Philip's Academy at Exeter, are both flourishing institutions. Agriculture is the chief occupation of the people. John Smith discovered New Hampshire in 1614, but its name was bestowed by John Mason, to whom, and Sir Ferdinand Gorges, grants of land were made by the crown in 1622. The country was thence popularly termed the Hampshire Grants, The first settlements were made in 1623, at Dover and Portsmouth. From 1641, to 1679, the settlements formed a portion of Suffolk county, Massachusetts. Charles II separated them. It was afterwards reunited to Massa- chusetts, but finally separated in 1741. The present constitution is that which was altered in 1792, from that of 1784. NEW JERSEY, one of the United States; bounded north by New York ; east bv New York and the Atlantic Ocean ; south "by the Ocean, and west by Delaware and Pennsylva- nia. The northern part of the state is moun- tainous, but the southern level. The former is the most fertile and has soil well adapted to agricultural purposes. Iron is found among the mountains in great abundance. The chief towns are Trenton, the sent of government, Newark, New Brunswick, Elizabethtown. Bur- lington, Patterson, &-c. The college of New Jersey at Princetown is a deserving Tnstitution. Population in 1840, 373.308. The first settle- ment in this state was made at Elizabethtown in 1GC4. In 1676, the country was divided into East and West Jersey, which were separate proprietary governments, and not united until 1702, at which time the name of New Jersey was given to the colony. In the measures of our revolution this state was ever active and forward, and suffered severely from the war. NEW ORLEANS, a great commercial city of Louisiana, in the parish of Orleans, situated on the Mississippi, 105 miles from its mouth, following the course of the stream. It contains 102, 193 inhabitants. A large part of the popula- tion are French and Spaniards, and the dwel- lings and manners of the inhabitants are more European than American. It is built on ground lower than the surface of the river, and an em- bankment, called the levee, protects the city from inundation. This is 1(30 miles in length. The yellow fever periodically visits New Or- leans and commits great ravages. Early in December, 1815, a large British force entered Lake Pontchartrain, near New Orleans, defeating, after an obstinate conflict, the small American naval force stationed there. The British forces were commanded by general Packenham, the American by Major General Andrew Jackson. Several skirmishes took place in which the British suffered severely. On Sunday morning eartv, January 8, a grand attack was made by the liritish on the Ameri- can troops in their entrenchments. After an engagement of upwards of an hour, the enemy were cut to pieces to a degree almost beyond example, and fied in confusion, leaving their dead and wounded on the field of battle. The loss of the British was 700 killed, 1400 wounded, 500 taken prisoners, making a total of 2,600. The American loss in the engagement was 7 killed, and 6 wounded. Sir Edward Packen- ham and Major General Gibbs were amoncf the slain. Thi> attack was not renewed, ana in a short time the British left the coast. NEW SOUTH WALES, a British colony on the eastern coast of New Holland. This district was taken possession of by Captain Cook on his first voyage, in 1770, who gave it the name of Botany Bay. The colony, com- menced in 1778, and composed partly of con- victs, is flourishing and promises to be valuable to the mother country. Its staple commodity is wool. The revenue, in 16KB, was 1 02,577. NEWTON, Sir Isaac, justly called the cre- ator of natural philosophy, was bom at Wools- thorpe, in Lincolnshire. December 25, 1642. old style. lie evinced, in early youth, a great fondness for mechanical pursuits, and a remark' able aptitude for drawing, and constructing machinery, being his own instructor in all his HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. NEW 365 NEW pursuits. At the age of eighteen he entered Trinity College, Cambridge. Here his fond- ness for mathematical studies enabled him to make a great proficiency in them, and before completing his 23d year, he made some great discoveries in the science to which he was attached. The fall of an apple led him to a train of reflections which resulted in his eluci- dation of the principles of gravitation. It is impossible to folibvl"him through his scientific career, tracing tfut the brilliant discoveries he made in optic3,*cheinistry, tfcc. In 1G38, New- ton was elected .by his university to the con- vention parliament. In 1699, he was made master of the mint. In 1703, he was chosen president of the royal society, and in 1705, was knighted by queen Anne. He died March 20, 1727, and was interred in Westminster Abbey, when a monument was erected to his memory by his family. The following is Pope's epitaph on this great man ; Q.UEM IMMORTALEM CflSU, NATURA, TEMPUS OSTENDUNT, MoRTALEM HOC MARMOR FATETUR. Nature and all her works lay hid in night, God said, Let Newton be and all was light. This great man was mild and good natured in his private life. The following anecdote shows his character in a most amiable light. " He had constructed a small laboratory for prosecuting his chemical investigations, and seems, after his publication of his principia, to have devoted almost all his time to them. One morning (1692), he had accidentally shut up his little pet dog Diamond in his room, and, on returning, found that the animal, by upsetting a candle on his desk, had destroyed the labors of several years. On perceiving his loss, he only exclaimed, ' Oh, Diamond ! Diamond ! thou little knowest the mischief thou hast done !' " His modesty was equal to his merits. " When his friends expressed their admiration of his discoveries, he said, ' To myself, I seern to have been as a child playing on the seashore, while the immense ocean of truth lay unexplored before me.' " NEW YORK, one of the United States, is bounded north by Upper and Lower Canada ; east by Vermont, Massachusetts, and Connect- icut; south by New Jersey and Pennsylvania; and west by Pennsylvania, Lake Erie, and the Niagara river. It contains 45,058 square miles. The increase of the population is very rapid, as may be perceived from the following state- ment. Population in 1702 20,708 in 1800 586,050 in 1820 1,372,811 in 1830 1,913,604 in 1840 2,428,921 New York, ^""^Montgoraery, Kings, Hamilton, Queen's, Saratoga, Richmond, Washington, Suffolk, Warren, Westchester, Essex, Dutchess, Clinton, Putnam, Franklin, Orange, St. Lawrence, Rockland, Jefferson, Ulster, Lewis, Sullivan. Herkimer, Delaware, Oneida, Greene, Madison, Columbia, Oswego, Albany, Otsego, Rensselaer, Chenango, Schenectady, Broome, Schoharie, Cortland, Tompkins, Livingston, Tioga, Monroe, Sleuben, Orleans, Onondaga, Genesse, Cayuga, Alleghany, Seneca, Niagara, Ontario, Erie, Yates, Cattaraugus, Wayne, Chautauqua. CITIES. New York, Brooklyn, Albany (the seat of government), Troy, Utica, Hudson, Rochester. Schenectady, Buffalo. There are also 780 towns and 180 incorpo rated villages. New York contains numerous large rivers, among which may be mentioned the Hudson, Mohawk, St. Lawrence, Delaware, Susquehan na, Tioga, Alleghany, Genesee, Oswego, Niag- ara. Lakes Erie. Ontario. Champlain, George, Cayuga, Seneca, Oneida, &c. The internal navigation of the state of New York surpasses that of any other state, and is continually being improved. The Erie and Northern Canals are both great works. The surface of this state is greatly diversified. In some parts the elevation is great, and the Kaats kill mountains presents some sublime scenery. In various places are found iron ore, gypsum, limestone, marble, slate, lead, &c. Education is liberally provided for in New York, and the Columbia College in the city, Union College at Schenectady, and Hamilton College at Clinton, &c., are flourishing institu- tions. The Military Academy at West Point, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. NEW 366 NIN under the direction of the national government, is an admirable institution. These are but the most prominent. The annual expenditure made for the purpose of public education amounts to $700,000. The state finances are in a very flourishing condition ; the annual income is $ 2,000,001). The staple productions are princi- pally wheat and other grain, flour, provisions, salt, pot and pearlashes, and lumber. New York was first discovered by Henry Hudson, an English navigator, in 1609. He sailed up the river which bears his name to the distance of 150 miles, and on his return to Eu- rope, communicated the results of his enter- prise to his employers, the Dutch East India Company. Dutch trading establishments were immediately formed at \different places. The earliest establishment of the kind was Fort Orange, founded in 1613, on the site of the city of Albany. New Amsterdam (now the city of New York), was formed a few years later. The East India Company having obtained from the government of Holland a giant of the ex- clusive right to trade in America, called the country which they settled, New Netherlands. In 1664, Charles II, of England, granted to his brother, the duke of York and Albany, an extensive territory which included the colony of New Netherlands. A small armament was fitted out in England to act against the Dutch in America, who, however, speedily submitted to the English. The latter changed the names of New Amsterdam to New York, and Fort Orange to Albany. In May, 1775, the inhabit- ants of New York asserted their independence, and through the revolutionary war, took a dis- tinguished part in the struggle for liberty. NEW-YORK CITY, lies in the state of New York, and is situated on an island at the junc- tion of Hudson and East rivers, at the head of New- York bay, sixteen miles from the Atlantic Ocean. The 'island is about fifteen miles long, and one and a half broad. The Indian name of this island is Manhattan. The island con- stitutes a county of itself. Population in 1840, 312,982 The schools of New York enjoy a high reputation. There are more than 100 churches in the city, many of them handsomely built and ornamented. The charitable and lit- erary institutions are numerous. The citizens of New York came forward early in defence of their rights, and suffered severely during the revolutionary struggle. After the retreat of Washington from Long Island, the city was seized by the British who held it until the 25th of November, 1783. NEY, Michael, duke of Elchingen, prince of Moscow, marshal and peer of France, jrrand- cross of the legion of honor, knight of St. Louis, &c., was born in Alsace, in 1769. He rose from the ranks to the chief command of armies, but was more distinguished for his bravery than his tactics. He opposed Welling- ton in Spain, and pursued the British army to the lines of Torres Vedras. Me afterwards served under Napoleon in Russia, and at the great battle of the Moskwa acquired the name of " the bravest of the brave." At the return of Napoleon from Elba, the command of the royalist army was confided to him, but being threatened with the desertion of his troops, he went over to the emperor. For this he was tried on the second return of the Bourbons, con- demned, and shot. NICARAGUA, a state of the Guatimalcan confederacy, bounded north by Honduras ; east by the Caribbean Sea; south by Costa Rica, and west by the Pacific. The country is fertile, rich in forests, and the precious metals. The population is 250,000. NICHOLSON, James, an American naval officer, born at Charlestown, Maryland, in 1737. Throughout the revolutionary war. he served with distinction in our infant navy. June 2d. 1780, Nicholson, with the Trumbull, a frigate of 32 guns, manned with only ]!>!) men, fought a severe action with the British frigate Wyatt. This engagement lasted three hours, at the ex- piration of which the disabled state of the Trumbull's masts, compelled Nicholson to with- draw with a loss of nine men killed, and twen- ty-one wounded. This gallant commander died in September, 1806. N1GRITIA, Soudan, or Takrour, a name applied generally to the interior parts of Africa, which are imperfectly known. It includes many kingdoms and countries, as Bambarra. Timbuctoo, Kong, Houssa, Borgou, Yarriba, Nyffe. Fonda. Bournou, Mandara, &c. NINUS, a son of Belas, who built a city to which he gave his own name, and founded the Assyrian monarchy, of which he was the first sovereign. B. C. 205!'. Pie was very war- like, and extended his conquests from Egypt to the extremities of India and Bactriana. Ninus reigned fifty-two years, and at his death he left his kingdom to the care of his wife Semiramis, by whom he had a son. The history of Ninus is very obscure, and even fabulous according to the opinion of some. Ninus after death re- ceived divine honors, and became the Jupiter of the Assyrians and the Hercules of the dial HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. NOR 367 NOR deans. The celebrated city, the capital of As- syria, built on the banks of the Tigris by Ninus, is called Nineveh, in Scripture. It was taken by the united armies of Cyaxares and Nabopolas- ear king of Babylon. B. C. 606. NORMANDY, an ancient province in the north of France, now divided into five depart- ments, and containing 2,000,000 inhabitants. In the latter part of the ninth century the Nor- mans settled here, and were governed by their own dukes ; the most renowned of whom, was William, who achieved the conquest of Eng- land in J06G. In 1346, Normandy was overrun by Edward III; and in 1418, it was held by Henry V, who conquered the whole province, and obtained its formal cession to England by the peace of 1420. It was wrested from the English in 1449 ; and from that time Normandy was exempt from the evils of war, until the religious contests of the sixteenth century. It escaped in the revolution, though, in 1794, a Vendean army entered its western frontier; but were soon put to flight. Normandy had, until the revolution, its separate parliaments, which sat at Rouen; and its provincial laws and usages were preserved under the name of Coutumier de Normandie. NORRIS, Sir John, second son of Henry, the first Lord Norris, famous for his valor, was first trained up in military exercises under Admiral Coligni in the civil wars of France, next in Ireland, under Walter, earl of Essex, then served in the Netherlands under Matthias, arch- duke of Austria, in 1579, afterwards under the Duke of Lorrain, 1582 ; next under William of Nassau ; and, in the 27th of Queen Elizabeth was constituted colonel-general of all the horse and foot sent out of England to the relief of Antwerp, then besieged by the Spaniards, and empowered to treat with the states-general for the entertaining of the English foot appointed to serve in those parts. In the 30th of Queen Elizabeth, being then president of the council in the province of Munster, in Ireland, he had a commission giving him power to constitute such principal officers as well by sea and land, as he thought fit for the defence of the king- dom. In the 33d of Queen Elizabeth he was con- stituted captain-general of those English auxil- iaries that were sent to King Henry IV, of France, against his rebellious subjects in Bre- tagne ; and having deported himself with great prudence and courage in all these eminent employments, to the great honor of the English nation as well as of his own name, expected that upon the re-calling of Sir William Russell, knight, afterwards Lord Russell, he should have been deputy of Ireland ; but, finding that Thom- as, Lord Borough, was preferred to that com- mand, and himserf required to continue still in Munster, he became so highly discontented, as to occasion his premature death. NORTH, Frederick, second Earl of Guilford, was the eldest son of Francis, the first earl, and was born in 1732. He was educated at Eton, and at Trinity-college, Oxford ; after which he went to Leipsic. On his return home he was elected into parliament : and in 1759, he became a commissioner of the Treasury. In 1763, he succeeded Lord Bute at the head of the board ; but resigned his seat in 1765 ; and the year fol- lowing he become joint-receiver and pay-master of the forces. In 1767, he was appointed Chan- cellor of the Exchequer; and in 1770, first lord of the Treasury ; both which offices he held during the American war, till 1782. Not long after this, the same statesmen who had repeat- edly threatened his lordship with an impeach- ment, formed a coalition with him; but this motley administration lasted a very few months. In 1790, Lord North succeeded his father in the earldom, and died in 1792, having been blind some years. NORTH WEST TERRITORY, now divi- ded into the Territories of Iowa (see Iowa,) and Wisconsin. The latter is bounded on the north by the British possessions, east by lake Superior. Michigan State, and lake, south by Illinois, and west by the Mississippi. Its largest rivers are the Wisconsin or Porcupine, which falls into the Mississippi at Fort Crawford, and the Fox, which, after passing through lake Winnebago, empties into Green Bay, a large arm of lake Michigan, between Fort Howard and Navarino. Milwaukee on lake Michigan, at the mouth of Milwaukee river has the best harbor in the Ter- ritory. It is a prairie country, and like Iowa contains mines of lead and copper. The num- ber of inhabitants by the census of 1840, was 30,752. NORWAY, an extensive kingdom of the north of Europe, united to Sweden in 1814. The face of the country is broken by mount- ain ridges, the summits of which are covered with snow and ice. The climate presents the extremes of heat and cold, and a great propor- tion of the soil is barren. In fact, the wealth of Norway consists in timber, cattle, fisheries, and minerals. The chief towns are Bergen, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. NOV 368 NOV Christiana, Drontheim, Konigsberg, Christian- sand, and Fredericshall. Population, 1,150,132. Norway was divided into petty principalities until the ninth century, and was little known till 1397, when it was incorporated with Den- mark. Their peaceful union continued till 1814, when it was interrupted by the treaty which the king of Denmark was compelled to make with Great Britain, resigning the sove- reignty of Norway to the king of Sweden, to which Norway was forced to submit ; but as an integral state, and with the preservation of its constitution and laws. SUCCESSION OF PRINCES. 800 Getho. 991 Olaus I. 998 Sueno. 1011 Olaus II. In 1029, Norway was conquered by Canute the Great king of Denmark, and was woverned by Sueno, as regent. On the death of Canute, Norway recovered its independence. 1036 Magnus I, 1048 Harold I, 1066 Olaus III, 1077 Magnus II, 1110 Magnus III, 1138 Harold II, 1148 Magnus III, restored, 1158 Ingo Gibbus, 1176 IntcrrecTium, 1180 Magnus IV, 1232 Hakon I, the Tyrant, 1263 Olaus IV, 1280 Erick, 1300 Hakon II, 1315 Magnus V. 1326 Hakon III, 1328 Magnus VI, 1359 Hakon IV, 1375 Olaus V, 1387 Margaret, Queen of Denmark. In 1417, the kingdoms of Denmark and Nor- way were united, under Erick IX. NOVA SCOTIA, a British province of North America, a peninsula jutting out into the Atlan- tic, containing about 15,617 square miles. It is about 250 miles in length, and partially sepa- rated from New Brunswick by the Bay of Fundy. The country is somewhat rough, but the soil in the interior is good. The exports consist principally of fish, timber, and plaster of Paris. Halifax is the chief town. Popula- tion, 160,000, of which 30,000 belong to Cape Breton, in which is a dependancy of this prov- ince. Nova Scotia was discovered by John Cabot in 1497. The French, who gave it the name of Acadia, were the first settlers. Sir William Alexander settled in Nova Scotia in 1621, but it was surrendered to the French by Charles I, on the family alliance between him and that court in 1632. It was recovered by Major Sedgwick, under Cromwell, in 1654; delivered again to the French, by Charles II, in 1662 ; recovered by Sir William Phipps in 1690 ; ceded to France at the peace of Ryswick in 1697; but conquered again by the English in 1710, and confirmed to them by the treaty of Utrecht in 1714. Afterward, in conjunction with the Indians, the French gave great distur- bance to the English settlers in this country; but their possession was again confirmed by the treaty of Aix-a-Chapelle in 1748. ' NOVGOROD, a city of European Russia, containing 10,000 inhabitants. It is the capi- tal of a government of the same name, and for- merly enjoyed many privileges under an inde- pendent prince. It was once so rich and pow- erful, that a common proverb was, " Who can oppose God, or the great city of Novgorod?" Vithold, Great Duke of 'Lithuania, was the first, who, in 1427, obliged this city to pay a tribute of 200,000 crowns. John Basilowitz Grotsdin, tyrant of Moscovy, made himself master of it in 1477, and placed a governor in it*; and, some time after, came in person and plundered the city, carrying away with him to Moscow, 300 wag- ons loaded with gold, silver, and precious stones, and other rich goods and furniture; to which place he also transported the inhabitants of Nov- gorod, and sent Moscovites to inhabit their city. John Basilowitz, Great Duke of Moscovy, in 1569, upon a groundless suspicion of their de- signing to revolt, slew many of its inhabitants, besides a vast number that were trodden to death by a party of his horse, let in upon thorn. After having plundered the rich churcli of Sancta Sophia, and all the treasures of the other churches, he also pillaged the archbis-hopnc, and then commanded the archbishop to ride upon a white horse, with a fiddle tied about his neck r and a flute in his hand; and in this posture conducted him to Moscow. This city was taken by the Swedes in 1611, and restored to the Russians in 1634. In 1664, it was popu- lous, and a pla.co of good trade, encompassed with a timber wall, well stored with ammuni- tion and brass ordnance, and defended by a castle. This duchy, once the greatest in Rus- sia, was assigned by lot to Ruruk Varegus, their first duke, whose posterity enlarged their do- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. NUM 559 mmicns as far as the Greek empire on one side, and Norway on the other. NUMA POMPILIUS, a Sabine, the second king of Rome, reigned from 714 to 672 B. C. At the death of Romulus, the Romans fixed upon him to be their new king ; and two sen- ators were sent to acquaint him with the deci- sions of the senate, and of the people, Numa refused their offers ; and it was only at the re- peated solicitations and prayers of his friends, that he was prevailed upon to accept the royalty. The beginning of his reign was popular, and he dismissed the 300 body guards which his pre- decessor had kept around his person ; observ- ing, that he did not distrust a people who had compelled him to reign over them. He was not like Romulus, fond of war and military expedi- tions ; but he applied himself to tame he feso- city of his subjects, to inculcate in the r minds a reverence for the Deity, and to qu-11 their dissensions, by dividing all the citizens .nto dif- ferent classes. NUMANTIA, a' town of Spain, n ar the sources of the river Durius, celebrated for the war of 14 years, which, though unprotected by walls and towers, it jfcfavely maintained against the Romans. The inhabitants obtained some advantages over the Roman forces, till Scipio Africanus was empowered to finish the war, and to see the destruction of Numantia. He began the siege with an army of GftSDO men, and was bravely opposed by the bested, who were no more than 4,000 men able to- bw^arms. Both armies behaved with uncommon 1 ' valor, and the courage of the Numantines was soon changed into despair and fury. Their provi- sions began to fail, and they fed upon the flesh of their horses, and afterwards of that of their dead companions, and at last were necessitated to draw lots to kill and devour one another. The melancholy situation of theii affairs obliged some to surrender to the Roman general. Sci- pio demanded them to deliver themselves upon the morrow; they refused, and when a longer time had been granted to their petitions, they retired and set fire to their houses, and all de- stroyed themselves, B. C. 133, so that not even one remained to adorn the triumph of the con- queror. Some historians, however, deny that, and maintain that a number of Numantines de- livered themselves into Scipio's hands, and that fifty of them were drawn in triumph at Rome, and the rest sold as slaves. The fall of Numan- tia was more glorious than that of Carthage or Corinth. (EDI O. GATES, Titus, an infamous character, was born about 1619. He was the son of a Baptist preacher, and was educated at Merchant Tai- lors' school, from whence he removed to Cam- bridge, and afterwards took orders. In 1677, he turned Roman Catholic, and was admitted into the Society of Jesuits. On Bis return to Eng- land, however, he declared himself a Protest- ant, and in conjunction with one Dr. Ezrael Tongue, gave information of a pretended pop- ish plot; which met with too ready a belief, and several persons were executed. Oates was re- warded with a pension of 1200 a year; but, when James II came to the throne, he was found guilty of perjury, pilloried, whipped, and ordered to be imprisoned for life. In the reign of William III he obtained his liberty, and a pension of 400 a year. He died in 1705. OAXACA, one of the states of the Mexican confederacy, containing about 600,000 inhabit- ants. The capital, a handsome city of the same name, contains 40,000 inhabitants. The climate is temperate, and the soil extremely fruitful Gold and silver are found in abundance. OCTAVIA, a Roman lady, sister to the em- peror Augustus, and celebrated for her beauty and virtues. Her marriage with Antony was a political step to reconcile her brother and her husband. Antony proved for sometime atten- tive to her, but he soon after despised her for Cleopatra. After the battle of Actium and the death of Antony, Octavia, forgetful of the in- juries she had received, took into her house all the children' of her husband, and treated them with maternal tenderness. The death of Mar- cellus her son continually preyed upon the mind of Octavia, who died of melancholy about ten years before the Christian era. Her brqtherpaid great regard to her memory, by pronouncing himself her funeral oration. The Roman people also showed their respect for her virtues, by their wish to pay her divine honors. CEDIPUS. son of Laius, kin^ of Thrace, and Jocasta. Laius was induced to believe that his son would be his murderer, and the infant was accordingly exposed on Mount Cithacron. He was educated at the court of Polybus, king of Corinth. Being reproached by a haughty no- bleman with not being the son of Polybus, he solved to satisfy himself by making inquiries at the shrine of the Delphic oracle. The answer was as follows : " Avoid thy country if thou CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. OLY 370 OLY wouldst escape the sin of murdering thy father and marrying thy mother." OZdipus, looking on Corinth as his country, fled thence to Thebes, where he killed his father, without knowing him, and received the hand of his mother Jocasta. Discovering the horrible calamity which had be- fallen him, CEdipus put out his eyes, and died far from the scene of his misfortunes. Jocasta hanged herself. OHIO, one of the United States, bounded N. by Michigan territory and lake Erie, E. by Pennsylvania and the Ohio river, S. by the Ohio river which separates it from Virginia and Kentucky, and W. by Indiana. The population of Ohio has increased and is increasing with unexampled rapidity. In 1790 it contained but 3,000 inhabitants. In 1840, 1,519,467. There are several colleges in Ohio, all of which are flourishing. The rivers are the Ohio, Muskingum, Hock- hocking, Scioto, Miami, Maumee, Sandusky, and Cuyahoga. The eastern and southeastern parts of the state are uneven, but not mountain- ous. The soil is very fertile, yielding in abun- nance wheat, maize, rye, and other kinds of grain. The minerals are iron, coal, limestone, and freestone. Chief towns, Columbus, Chilli- cothe, Cincinnati, Steubenville, Circleville, Ma- rietta, Dayton, Cleveland, New Lancaster, &c. The first permanent settlement in Ohio was made at Marietta, April. 1788, by a party of emi- grants from New England. In 1791J the first ter- ritorial legislature was assembled at Cincinnati. In 1802 it was erected into an independent state. OLDCASTLE, Sir John, Lord Cobham, was the head of the Lollards, and esteemed by Henry IV and Henry V. The latter monarch at the instance of the Archbishop of Canter- bury, expostulated with him, and endeavored to reconcile him to the Catholic faith. But Cobham persevered in his opinion, and was at length condemned to the flames for his religious tenets. Cobham escaped from the tower and four years afterwards was retaken, hanged as a traitor, and his body burnt. OLMUTZ,f>r HOLOMAUC; a city and formerly capital of Moravia, with 12,800 inha- bitants. It was captured by the Swedes in 1642, and unsuccessfully besieged by the Prussians in 1758. Lafayette was a long time confined in the prisons of the citadel. OLYMPIAS, a celebrated woman, who was daughter of a king of Epirus, and who married Philip, king of Macedonia, by whom she had Alexander the Great. Her haughtiness, and more probably her infidelity, obliged Philip to re- pudiate her, and to marry Cleopatra, the niece of King Attains. Olympias was sensible of this injury, and Alexander showed his disapproba- tion of his father's measures by retiring from the court to his mother. The murder of Philip, which soon followed this disgrace, and which some have attributed to the intrigues of Olym- pias, was productive of the greatest extrava- gances. The queen paid the highest honor to her husband's murderer. She gathered his man- gled limbs, placed a crown of gold on his head, and laid his ashes near those of Philip. When Alexander was dead, Olympias seized the government of Macedonia ; and. to estab- lish her usurpation, she cruelly put to death Ari- dffius, with his wife Eurydice, as also Nicanor, the brother of Cassander, with 100 leading men of Macedon, who were inimical to her interest. Such barbarities did not long remain unpun- ished ; Cassander besieged her in Pydna, where she had retired with the remains of her family, and she was obliged to surrender after an obsti- nate siege. The conqueror ordered her to be accused; and to be put to death. A body of 200 soldiers were directed to put the bloody com- mands into execution, but the splendor and majesty of the queen disarmed their courage, and she was at last massacred by those whom she had cruelly deprived of their children, about 31() years before the Christian era. OLYMPIC GAMES, were celebrated by the ancient (Greeks in honor of Jupiter Olympius, on tb*.pjain opposite the modern town of Lala. They Occurred once in every four years, and the Greeks computed time from them. They always commenced on the llth of the month Hecatombceon (which nearly corresponds with our July.) No females, except the priestesses of Ceres, were permitted to witness them, death being denounced to the woman who should be present. The competitors prepared themselves by ten months' exercise in the gymnasium at Elis. The games consisted of races on horse- back and on foot, leaping, throwing the discus, wrestling, boxing, musical and poetical contests. The reward was a wreath of olives. Racing was considered in Greece a matter of the highest national importance ; had it not been so, Sophocles would have been guilty of a great fault in his Elect ra. wlu-re lie puts into the mouth of the messenger who comes to recount the death of Orestes, a long description of this sport. Of the training and management of the Olympic race-horse we are unfortunate- ly left in ignorance all that can be inferred being the Tact, that the equestrian candidates HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. OMA 371 OMA were required to enter their names and send their horses to Elis at least thirty days before the celebration of the games commenced, and that the charioteers and riders, whether owners or proxies, went through a prescribed course of exercises during the ensuing month. They had their course for full-aged horses, and their course for colts ; and their prize for which mares only started, resembling in these respects our degenerate selves. It is true that the race with riding-horses was neither so magnificent, nor so expensive, and consequently not considered so royal, as the race with chariots, yet they had their gentlemen-jockeys in those days, and noted ones too, for among the number were Philip, king of Macedon. and Hiero, king of Syracuse (see Hiero.) The want of stirrups alone must have been a terrible deficiency. But horsemanship was an art in which the Greeks excelled. Homer, although he mentions only chariots in h'u account of the siege of Troy, speaks of riding so familiarly in some parts of his Iliad and Odyssey, that it must have been practised among the Greeks before the compo- sition of either of these poems. In the fifteenth book of the Iliad, he represents the strength and activity of Ajax, when he fought in defence of the Grecian ships of war that were attacked by the Trojans, and leaped from one ship to an- other, by the readiness and address with which a skilful horseman would vault from, the back of one horse to that of another ; and Iiis ability to defend many ships at once by that of~an ac- complished rider, who is capable of managing and controlling several horses at the same time. High on the decks, with vast eisantic stride, The god-like hero stalks from side to side. So when a horseman from the watery mead (Skilled in the manage of the hounding steed,) Drives four fair coursers, practised to obey, To some great city throush the public way ; Safe in his :irt, as" side i>y siile they run, He shifts his seat, and vaults from one to one, And now to this, anil now to tint he flies ; Admiring numbers follow with their eyes. [Pope's Homer. The Olympiad, from which the Greeks began to reckon, was. according to Petavius, 1777 ; ac- cording to Usher, 1772; and according to Cal- visius, 774 B. C. Gatterer, and most of the moderns call it 776. OMAR I, the second caliph, or successor of Mahomet. He was raised to this dignity after the death of Abubeker in 03-1. Soon after his entering upon the government, he carried on wars with All, who was the lawful successor of Mahomet, and who had retired into Arabia. 32 Omar having defeated Ali, taken the city Bosra, and many other places of Arabia, turned his arms against the Christians, and entered Syria, where he gained a victory over Theodorus Bo- gairus, brother to the Emperor Heraclius, and afterwards returned victorious into Arabia. The emperor, who was then at Jerusalem, desirous to provide for his own safety, took the relics and most precious ornaments of the temple ; anH leaving Theodorus with Bahamus, retired to Constantinople. In 635. Omar gathered his forces, and marched against Damascus, which he took the year following, and afterwards all Phoanicia, and comrnilted~a thousand violences to force people to embrace his religion. The year following, a part of his army subdued Alexan- dria, and not long after all Egypt. In the mean time, Omar went in person to attack Jerusalem, and after two years' siege entered it victoriously in 633. Ornar thus reduced all Judea to his obe- dience, and Jerusalem was, from that time, pos- sessed by infidels till the conquest of it by God- frey of Bouillon in 10!)9. In 639 he subdued all Mesopotamia, and at the same time built the city of Cairo, near the ruins of Memphis, in Egypt. And lastly, in 643, he made himself master of Persia. From the time of his taking Jerusalem he made his ordinary residence in that city, and built a magnificent temple there in honor of Mahomet ; and, after having reigned ten years, he was killed by a Persian, one of his domestics, and buried at Medina in 644. OMAR II, the tenth caliph, or successor of Mahomet, was chosen after the death of his cousin, Solyman Hascoin, in the beginning of the year 721 , at the time that Constantinople was besieged. He collected all his forces, and attacked that city ; but the besieged made so stout a resistance, and so good use of their fire- works, that he was forced to raise it. And scarcely was Marvan, or Masalma, the general of the army, safe out of the channel of Con- stantinople, when a dreadful tempest destroyed most of his ships, and many others were con- sumed by fire, so that of 300 ships only fifteen escaped, five of which were taken by the Chris- tians, and the other ten proceeded with the news of this defeat to the caliph, who imagin- ing that God was angry with him for permit- ting Christians the exercise of their religion in his dominions, made all those whose- fathers or mothers were Mahometans, embrace Mahome- tanism on pain of death, and upon great pen- alties forbade the eating of swine's flesh, and use of wine. He discharged all Christians that turned Mahometans from paying taxes and eus- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ORA 372 ORA toms, and cruelly persecuted the others ; and pushed on by a false zeal, he sent letters to Leo Isauricus, the emperor of Constantinople, to embrace Mahometanism, and sent a renegade to instruct him in the way of it ; but he died soon after, having reigned two years. OPORTO, or PORTO, the second city of Portugal, lies on both sides of the Duero, about 160 miles north of Lisbon. It contains 70,000 inhabitants. It was in the possession of the French in 1808 9, and its commerce has suf- fered much from the tyrannical regulations of Don Miguel. ORACLES, Ancient, impostures of the priest- hood, supported by the policy of governments, and apparently credited by habit and education ; but constantly used to impose on the soldiery and ignorant multitudes. No institutions were more famous than the ancient oracles of Egypt, Greece, and Rome. They were impudently said to be the will of the gods themselves ; and were consulted, not only upon every important matter, but even in the affairs of private life. To make peace or war, to introduce a change of government, to plant a colony, to enact laws, to raise an edi- fice, or to marry, were all sufficient reasons to consult the pretended will of the gods. The small province of Boeotia could once boast of 25 oracles, and Peloponnesus of the same number. Not only the chief of the gods gave oracles, but in process of time heroes were admitted to enjoy the same privileges ; and the oracles of a Trophonius and an Anti- noiis were soon able to rival the fame of those of Apollo and Jupiter. The temple of Delphi seemed to claim a superiority over the other temples ; its fame was once so extended, and its riches were so great, that not only private per- sons, but even kings and numerous armies, made it an object of plunder and of rapine. The manner of delivering oracles was differ- ent. A priestess at Delphi was permitted to K renounce the oracles of the god, and her de- veryof the answers was always "attended with acts of apparent madness and desperate fury. Not only women, but even doves, were the min- isters of the temple of Dodona ; and the sup- pliant votary was often startled to hear his ques- tions readily answered by the decayed trunk, or the spreading branches of a neighboring oak. Aminon conveyed his answers in a plain and open manner ; but Ampliiaraus required many ablutions and preparatory ceremonies, and he generally communicated his oracles to his sup- pliants in dreams and visions. Sometimes the first words that were heard, after issuing from the temple, were deemed the answers of the oracles, and sometimes the nodding or shaking of the head of the statue, the motions of fishes in a neighboring lake, or their reluctance in accepting the food which was offered to them, were as strong and valid as the most express and most.jninute explanations. Some have strongly believed that all the ora- cles of the earth ceased at the birth of Christ, but the supposition is false. It was, indeed, the beginning of their decline ; but they remained in repute, and were consulted, though perhaps not so frequently, till the fourth century, when Christianity began to triumph over paganism. The oracles often suffered themselves to be bribed. Alexander did it ; but it is well known that Lysander failed in the attempt. Herodotus, who first mentioned the corruption which often prevailed in the oracular temples of Greece and Egypt, has been severely treated for his remarks by the historian Plutarch. Demosthenes is also a witness of the corruption ; and he observed, that the oracles of Greece were servilely sub- servient to the will and pleasure of Philip, king of Macedon, as he beautifully expresses it by the word Philippized. When in a state of inspiration, the eyes of the priestess suddenly sparkled, her hair stood on end, and a shivering ran over all her body. In this convulsive state she spoke the oracles of the god, oflen with loud howlinfs and cries, and her articulations were taken clown by the priest, and set in'order. Sometimes the spirit of inspiration was more gentle, and not always violent; yet Plutarch mentions one of the priestesses who was thrown into such an ex cessive fury, that not only those that consulted the oracle, 'but also the priests that conducted her to the sacred tripod, and attended her dur- ing the inspiration, were terrified, and forsook the tvmple ; and so violent was the fit, that she continued fur some days in the most agonizing situation, and at last died. At Delphos, the Pythia, before she placed herself on the tripod, used to wash her whole body, and particularly her hair, in the waters of the fountain Castalia", at the foot of Mount Par- Sho also shook a laurel-tree that grew near the place, and sometimes ate the leaves, with which she crowned herself. The priest-v-ses ahvuy- appi ated in the gar- ments of virgins, to intimate their purity ind modesty; and they were solemnly bound to observe the strictest laws of temperance and chastity, that neither fantastical dresses nor HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL ORA 373 ORA lascivious behavior might bring the office, the religion, or the sanctity of the place, into con- tempt. There was originally but one Pythia, besides subordinate: priests ; but afterwards two were chosen, and sometimes more. The most celebrated of all these is Phemonoe, who is supposed by some to have been the first who gave oracles at Delphi. The oracles were al- ways delivered in hexameter verses, a custom which was some time after discontinued. The Pythia was consulted only one month in the year, about the spring. It was always required, that those who consulted the oracle should make large presents to Apollo, and from thence arose the opulence, splendor, and the magnificence, of the celebrated temple of Delphi. Sacrifices were also offered to the divinity ; and, if the omens proved unfavorable, the priestess refused to give an answer. There were generally five priests who assisted at the offering of the sacri- fices ; and there was also ariothei who attended the Pythia, and assisted her in receiving the oracle. The most celebrated of the ancient oracles were Delphos, Delos, Aminon, Dodona, the Ro- man Augurs, and the Sibylline Books. DELPHOS, now called Castri, the capital of Phocis, in Greece, was anciently much celebrat- ed for its temple and oracle of Apollo. It was also called Pytlw by the poets, from the serpent Python, which Apollo killed in tins-place. 1'au- sanias, however, says that this name Pytho was given to the city of Delphos by Pythis, son of Delphus, and grandson of Lycorus. The Greek historians gave to this city the name of Delphos, which some suppose to have been so called from Atldyhoi. brethren, because Apollo and his brother Bacchus were both worshipped there ; and others, with greater probability, derive the name from Delphos, single or solitary, referring to the retired situation of the city among the mountains. Justin questions which was the most wor- thy of admiration, the fortification of the place, or the majesty of the god who here delivered his oracles. The temple of Apollo occupied a large space, and many streets opened to it. The first discovery which laid the foundation of the extraordinary veneration in which the oracle of Delphos was held, and of the riches accu- mulated in the temple, is said to have been occasioned by some goats which were feeding on Mount Parnassus, near a deep and large cavern, with a narrow entrance. These jroats having been observed by the goatherd, Core- tas, to frisk and leap after a strange manlier, and to utter unusual sounds immediately upon their approach to the mouth of the cavern, he had the curiosity to view it, and found luinsolf seized with the like fit of madness, skipping, dancing, and foretelling things to come. At the news of this discovery multitudes flocked thither, many of whom were possessed with such frantic enthusiasm, that they threw themselves headlong into the opening of the cavern, insomuch that it was necessary to issue an edict, forbidding all persons to approacli it. This surprising place was treated with singular veneration, and was soon covered with a kimi of chapel, which was originally made of laurel boughs, and resembled a large hut. This, ac- cording to the Phocian tradition, was surround- ed by one of wax, raised up by bees ; after this a third was -built of solid copper, said to have been the workmanship of Vulcan. This last was destroyed by an earthquake, or (according to some authors) by fire, which melted the copper ; and then a sumptuous tem- ple, altogether of stone, was erected by two ex- cellent architects, Trophimus and Agamedes. This edifice was destroyed by fire in the 58th Olympiad, or 548 years B. C. The Amphicty ons proposed to be at the charge of building another ; but the Alemeonides, a rich family of Athens, came to Delphos, obtained the honor of executing the building, and made it more magnificent than they had at first proposed. The riches of this temple, amassed by the do- nations of those who frequented it, and consult- ed the oracle, exposed it to various depreda- tions. At length the Gauls, under the conduct of Brennus, came hither for the same purpose, about 278 years B. C. ; but they were repulsed with great slaughter. Last of all, JVero robbed it of five hundred of its most precious brazen and golden statues. It nas not been ascertained at what time this oracle was founded. It is certain, however, that Apollo was not the first who was consulted here. ^Eschylus. in his tragedy of Eumenides, says, Terra was the first who issued oracles at Delphi : after her, Themis, then Phrebe, another daughter of Terra, and, as it is said, mother of Latona, and grandmother to Apollo. Pausanias says, that before Themis, Terra and Neptune had delivered oracles in this place, and some say that Saturn had also been consulted here. At length the oracle of Apollo became estab- lished and permanent ; and such was its repu- tation, and such were the multitudes from all parts that came to consult it, that the riches which were thus brought into the temple and CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ORA 374 OKA city, became so considerable as to be compared with those of the Persian kings. About the time when this oracle was first discovered, the whole mvstery requisite for ob- I. -lining the prophetic gift, is said to have been merely to approach the cavern and inhale the vapor that issued from it, and then the god inspir- ed all persons indiscriminately; but at length, several enthusiasts, in the excess of their fury, having ttirown themselves headlong into the cavern, it was thought expedient to contrive a prevention of this accident, which frequently occurred. Accordingly, the priests placed over the hole, whence the vapor issued, a machine which thsy called a tripod, because it had three feet, and commissioned a woman to seat her- nelf in it, where she might inhale the vapor without danger, because 'the three feet of the machine stood firmly upon the rock. This priestess was named Pythia, from the serpent Python, slain by Apollo, or from the Greek jm- t.hcst/tai, signifying to inquire, because people came to Delphi to consult this deity. The fe- males first employed, were virgins, selected with great precaution ; but the only qualifica- tion necessary was to be able to speak and re- peat what the god dictated. This was done by placing her ear close to one of the horns of the altar, and listening to the voice of one of Apollo's priests, to whom the question had been communicated. ' This priest, who stood near the altar, in the interior f the temple, having been assisted by his brethren in the necessary devotions and sacri- fices, opened the Book of Fate, which was de- posited in the temple, and after many prayers worked the required problems. The answer, which from the nature of the case in hand, was often conditional, being communicated to the priestess on the tripod, was, after various cere- monies, delivered to the inquiring multitude, or to the individual who came privately to con- sult the oracle. The custom of choosing young virgins con- tinued for a longtime, till one of them, who was extremely beautiful, was dishonored bv a young Thessalian. An express law was then enacted, that none should be chosen but wo- men above fifty years old. At first there was only one priestess, but afterwards there were two or three. The oracles were not delivered every day ; but gifts and sacrifices were in some cases presented for a long time, and even for a whole year; and it was only once a year, in the month bosion, which answered to the beginning of spring, that Apollo inspired the priestess. Except on this day, she was forbid- den, under pain of death, to go into the sanc- tuary to consult Apollo. Alexander, before his expedition into Asia, came to Delphi on one of those days when the sanctuary w;is shut, and entreated the priestess to mount the tripod; which she steadily refus- ed, alleging the Jaw which forbade her. The prince became impatient, and drew the priestess by force from her cell, and whilst he was con- ducting her to the sanctuary, she took occasion to exclaim, " J\fy sort, thou art invincible .' .'" As soon as these words were pronounced, Alexan- der cried out that ho was satisfied, and would have no other oracle. It is here to be observed, however, that great, but unnecessary, preparations were often marie, for giving mysieriousness to the oracle, and for commanding the respect that was paid to it. Among other circumstances relating to the sac- rifices that were offered, the priestess herself fasted three days, and before she ascended the tripod, she bathed herself in the fountain Cas- talia. She drank water from that fountain, and chewed laurel-leaves gathered near it. She was then led into the sanctuary by the priests, who placed her upon the tripod. As soon as she began to be agitated by the divine exhalation, said 1o arise from the cavern, but which was merely the vapor of incense burnt there, in order to give more mystery to the affair, her hair stood on end, her aspect be- came wild and ghastly, her mouth began to foam, r.nd her whole body was suddenly seized with violent tiemblings. Jn this condition she attempted to escape from the priests, who de- tained her by force, while her shrieks and howl- ings made the whole temple resound, and filled the bystanders with a sacred horror. At length, unable to resist the impulse of the god. she surrendered herself up to him, and at certain intervals uf tered from the bottom of her stomach, by the faculty or power of ventrilo- quism, some unconnected words, which the priests ranged in order, and put in form of verse, giving them ( i connection which they had not when they were delivered by the priestess. The oracle" being pronounced, the priestess was taken off the tripod, nnd conducted back to her cell, where she continued several days, to re- cover herself. Lucan tells us, that speedy death was frequently the consequence of her enthu- siasm. The oracles pronounced by the priestess being generally delivered to the poets, who at- tended on the occasion, and being put by them into wretched verse, gave occasion to the rail- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ORA 375 ORA lery, that " Apollo the prince of the muses, was the worst of poets." The priests and priest- esses, to whose conduct the responses of the oracle were committed, were, however, fre- quently guilty of fraud and imposture. And many instances might be mentioned, in which the Delphic priestess was not superior to cor- ruption. Hence she persuaded the Lacedaemo- nians to assist the people of Athens in the ex- pulsion of the thirty tyrants. Hence, also, she caused Demaratus to be divested of the royal dignity to make way for Cleomenes ; and sup- ported the impostor Lysander, when lie endea- vored to change the succession to the throne of Sparta. It is not improbable, that Themisto- cles, who well knew the importance of acting against the Persians by sea, inspired the god with the answer he gave, " to defend them- selves with walls of wood." These answers were likewise, on many occa- sions equivocal. Thus, when Croesus was about to invade the Medes, he consulted this oracle upon the success of the war, and received for an- swer, that by passing the river Halys, he should ruin a great empire. But he was left to conjec- ture, or to determine by the event, whether this empire was his own or that of his enemies. Such was also the same oracle's answer to Pyrrhus, l Jlio te, JEacidc, Romanes vincere posse,' which meant, " I say O son of jEacus, that thou canst overcome the Romans," or, " I say O son of JEacus, that the Romans can overcome thee." The oracle of Apollo, in Delos. was one of the most famous oracles in the world, not only for its antiquity, but for the richness of the. sacred presents dedicated to the god. and the numbers of persons that resorted hither from all parts for advice ; in which respect it surpassed not only all the oracles of other gods, but even those of Apollo himself, that of Delphos alone ex- cepted. Some writers say, that the island had the name of Delos, from the clear and simple terms in which the answers were here given by the oracle, contrary to the ambiguity observed in other places ; but it was consulted only while Apollo made Delos his summer residence, for his winter abode was at Patara, a city of Ly- cia. The presents offered by the votaries to Apollo, were laid on the altar, which, as some say, was erected by Apollo himself, when he was only four years old. and formed of the horns of goats, killed by Diana, on Mount Cyn- thus. It was preserved pflre from blood and every kind of pollution, as offensive to Apollo. The whole island was an asylum, which ex- tended to all living creatures, dogs excepted. 32* which were not suffered to be brought on shore. The native deities, Apollo and Diana, had three very magnificent temples erected for them in this island. That of Apollo, was, according to Strabo, (lib. x.) begun by Erysiapthus, the son of Cecrops, who is said to have possessed this island 1558 years B. C. ; but it was after- wards much enlarged and embellished at the general charge of all the Grecian stales. But Plutarch says, that it was one of the most state- ly buildings in the universe, and describes its altar, as deserving a place among the seven wonders of the world. The inscription in this temple, as Aristotle informs us, (Ethic. 1. i. c. 9.) was as follows : " Of all things the most beau- tiful is justice; the most useful is health; and the most agreeable is the possession of the be- loved object." Round the temple were magni- ficent porticoes, built at the charge of various princes, as appears from the still legible inscrip- tions. To this temple the neighboring islands sent yearly a company of virgins to celebrate with dancing the festival of Apollo, and his sister Diana, and to make offerings in the name of their respective cities. Delos was held in such reverence by most nations, that even the Persians, after having laid waste the other islands, and every where destroyed the temples of the gods, spared De- los ; and Datis, the Persian admiral, forbore to anchor in the harbor. The temple of Jupiter Ammon was in the deserts of Libya, nine days journey from Alex- andria. It had a famous oracle, which, accord- ing to ancient tradition, was established about 18 centuries before the time of Augustus, by two doves which flew away from Thebais in Egypt, and came, one to Dodona,and the other to Libya, where the people were soon informed of their divine mission. The oracle of Ammon was consulted by Hercules, Perseus, and others ; but when it pronounced Alexander to be the son of Jupiter, such flattery destroyed its long established reputation, and in the age of Plu- tarch it was scarcely known. The situation ot the temple was pleasant ; and there was near it a fountain whose waters were cold at noon and midnight, and warm in the morning and even- ing. There were above 100 priests in the tem- ple, but the elders only delivered oracles. There was also an oracle of Jupiter Ammon in ./Ethi- opia. Dodona was a town of Thesprotia in Epirus. There was in its neighborhood, upon a small bill called Tmarus, a celebrated >racle of Jupi CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. OR A 376 ORA ter. The town and temple of the god were first built by Deucalion, after the universal deluge. It was supposed to be the most ancient oracle of all Greece, and according to the traditions ed by Her was foundt-d by a dove. Two black doves as of the Egyptians mentioned by Herodotus, it he relates, took their flight from the city of Thebes in Egypt, one of which flew to the tem- ple of Jupiter Ammon, and the other to Dodona, where with a human voice they acquainted the inhabitants of the country that Jupiter hnd con- secrated the ground, which in future would give oracles. The extensive grove which surround- ed Jupiter's temple was endowed with the gift of prophecy, and oracles were frequently de- livered by the sacred oaks, and the doves which inhabited the place. This fabulous tradition of the oracular power of the doves, is explained by Herodotus, who observes that some Phoeni- cians carried away two priestesses from Egypt, one of whom went to fix her residence at Do- dona, where the oracle was established. It may further be observed, that the fable might have been founded upon the double meaning of the word pdeiai, which signifies doves in most parts of Creech, while in the dialect of the Epirots, it implies old women. In ancient times the oracles were delivered by the murmuring of a neighboring fountain, but the custom was after- wards changed. Large kettles were suspended in the air near a brazen statue, which held a lash in its hand. When the wind blew strong, the statue was agitated and struck against one of the kettles, which communicated the motion to all the rest, and raised that clattering and discordant din which continued for a while, and from which the priests drew their predic- tions. Some suppose that the noise was occa- sioned by the shaking of the leaves and boughs of an old oak, which the people frequently con- sulted, and from which they pretended to re- ceive the oracles. It may be observed with more probability that the oracles were delivered by the priests, who, by concealing themselves behind the oaks, gave occasion to the multitude to believe that the trees were endowed with the power of prophecy. As the ship Argo was built with some of the oaks of the forest of Dodona there were some beams in the vessel which gave oracles to the Argonauts, and warned them against the approach of calamity. Within the forest of Dodona there was a stream with a fountain of cool water, which had the power of lighting a torch as soon as it touched it. This fountain was totally dry at noon-day, and was restored to ita full course at midnight, from which time till the following noon it began to decrease, and at the usual hour was again de- prived of its waters. The oracles of Dodona were originally delivered by men, but afterwards by women. THE ROMAN AUGURS, were certain priests at Rome who foretold future events, and took their name, ab aviitm garritu. They were first created by Romulus to the number of three. Servius Tullius added a fourth, and the tri- bunes of the people, A. U. C. 454, increased the number to nine ; and Sylla added six more during his dictatorship. They had a particular college, and the chief amongst them was called Magister Collegii. Their office was honorable ; and if any one of them was convicted of any crime, he "could not be deprived of his privi- lege ; an indulgence granted to no other sacer- dotal body at Rome. The augur generally sat on a high tower, to make his observations. His face was turned towards the east, and he had the north to his left, and the south at his right. With a crooked staff he divided the face of the heavens into four different parts, and afterwards sacrificed to the gods, covering his head with his vestment. There were generally five things from which the augurs drew omens : the first consisted in observing the phenomena of the heavens, such as thunder, lightning, comets, Src. The second kind of ornen was drawn from the chirping or flying of birds. The third was from the sacred chickens, whose eagerness or in- difference in eating the bread whicfi was thrown to them, was looked upon as lucky or unlucky. The fourth was from quadrupeds, from their crossing or appearing in somo unaccustomed place. The fifth was from different casualties, which were called Dira, such as spilling salt upon a table, or wine upon one s clothes, hearing strange noises, stumbling or sneezing, meeting a wolf, hare, fox, or pregnant bitch. Thus did the Romans draw their prophecies ; the sight of birds on the left hand was always deemed a lucky object, and the words sinister ct Iccrus, though generally supposed to be terms of ill luck, were always used by the augurs in an auspicious sense. A stranj^e old woman came once to Tarqui- nius Superbus, king of Rome, with nine books, which she said were the Orarlrs of Sibyls, and proffered to sell them. But the king making some scruple about the price, she went away and burnt three of 'them ; and returning with the six, asked the same sum as before. Tarquin only laughed at the humor; upon which the old woman left him once more ; and after she had HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ORA 377 ORE burnt three others, came again with those that 'were left, but still kept to her old terms. The king began now to wonder at her obstinacy, and thinking there might be something more than ordinary in the business, sent For the augurs to consult what was to be done. They, when their divinations were performed, soon acquainted him what a piece of impiety he had been guilty of, by refusing a treasure sent to him from heaven, and commanded him to give whatever she demanded for the books that re- mained. The woman received her money, and delivered the writings, and only charging them by all means to keep them sacred, immediately vanished. Two of the nobility were presently after chosen to be the keepers of these oracles, which were laid up with all imaginable care in the capitol, in a chest underground. They could not be consulted without a special order of the senate, which was never granted, unless upon the receiving some notable defeat, upon the ris- ing of any considerable mutiny or sedition in the state, or upon some other extraordinary occasion. The number of priests in this, as in most other orders, was several times altered. The Duumviri continued till about the year of the city 388, when the tribunes of the people preferred a law, that there should be ten men elected for this service, part out of the nobility, and part out of the commons. We meet with the Decemviri all along from hence, till about the time of Sylla the dictator, when the Quindecemviri occur. It were needless to give any further ac- count of the Sibyls, than that they are generally agreed to have been ten in number ; for which we have the authority of Varro, though some make them nine, some four, some three, and some only one. They all lived in different ages and countries, were all prophetesses, and, ac- cording to common opinion, foretold the coming of our Saviour. As to the writing, Dempster tells us it was on linen. Solinus acquaints us, that the books which Tarquin bought were burnt in the conflagra- tion of the capitol, the year before Sylla's dic- tatorship. Yet there were others of their inspired writings, or at least copies or extracts of them, gathered up in Greece and other parts, upon a special search made by order of the senate ; which were kept with the same care as the former, till about the time of Theodosius the Great, when the greatest part of the senate having embraced the Christian faith, they began to grow out of fashion ; till at last Sliiicho burnt them all under Honorius, for which he is severe- ly censured by the poet Rutilius. ORDEAL. In the dark ages, when judicial proceedings were exceedingly imperfect, it was believed that on extraordinary occasions, the guilt or innocence of a suspected person would be manifested by a direct interposition of the deity, and various methods were resorted to to procure conviction or acquittal. These were termed ordeals or judgments of God. As late as the IGth centisy it was generally believed that if a murderer was forced to touch the corpse of the person he had murdered, blood would flow from the lips and wounds. The ordeal was of various kinds; that of fire, that of red hot iron, that of cold water, that of judicial pottage, that of hallowed cheese, that of boiling water, that of the cross, and that of dice laid on relics covered with a woollen cloth. There were particular masses for each species of ordeal. Fire ordeal was performed either by taking up in the hand, unhurt, a piece of red-hot iron, of one, two, or three pounds' weight ; or else by walking barefoot and blindfold, over nine red-hot ploughshares, laid lengthwise, at une- qual distances ; and if the party escaped with- out injury, he was adjudged innocent, but if otherwise, as without collusion it generally hap- pened, he was then condemned as guilty. One of these proceedings was as follows : a ball of iron was prepared, of one, two, or three pounds' weight, according to the nature of the accusa- tion. When all the prayers and religious cere- monies were finished, the ball was heated red- hot. The prisoner, having crossed himself, and sprinkled his hand with holy water, took the ball of hot iron in his hand, and carried it to the distance of nine feet ; after which his hand was placed in a bag, that was sealed and re- mained so for nine days ; at the expiration of which it was examined, in the presence of twelve persons of each party. If any marks of burning appeared upon it, the accused was found guilty ; if otherwise, he was declared innocent. The ordeal of water was performed either by plunging the bare arm up to the elbow in boil- ing water, or by casting the suspected person into a river or pond of cold water, and if he floated therein, without any action of swim- ming, it was deemed an evidence of his guilt, bat if he sunk he was acquitted. The latter ordeal was adopted with regard to witches and sorcerers and was thought infallible. The Chi- nese, Africans, Tartars, and Hindoos have their ordeals. OREGON TERRITORY, that portion of the United States territo.y which lies west of the CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ORL 78 Rocky Mountains, discovered by Gray, an American navigator, in 1790. The soil is gen- erally fertile. ORKNEY ISLANDS, or ORC ADES, a clus- ter of small islands on the northern coast of Scotland, about 67 in number, only 29 of which are inhabited. Pop. 27,179. The population of Kirkwall, (or Pomona or Mainland, the princi- pal island) is 2212. These islands are scattered over a space 50 miles long, and 30 broad. Little of the soil is adapted foi agriculture, although j->'jtffords good pasturage. Game is abundant red grouse, plovers, and snipe, eagles, wild ducks geese, solan geese or gannets, swan, &c. thronging to the Orkneys. They are mentioned by several Roman writers, and were visited by the fleets of Agricola, sent to explore the isl- and. The first inhabitants were the Picts, but they were subdued by the Norwegians or Nor- mans, at the time that that enterprising people effected conquests through almost every part of Europe. Orkney, after this, was governed by a succession of warlike earls, who constantly kept up a powerful fleet, with which they rav- aged the coasts of England, Ireland, and Scot- land ; in the latter of which, they conquered several northern counties. The black raven which was the flag of Orkney continued to be an object of terror till the time of James III of Scotland, in 1474, when the Orkneys were ceded to that monarch as part of the mar- riage portion of Margaret of Denmark ; and this treaty was afterwards confirmed on the marriage of James VI with Ann of Denmark. The piratical expeditions of the earls of Ork- ney were then suppressed, and it has long been a well regulated and peaceable portion of the British empire. ORLEANS, Louis Joseph Philip, was born in 1747, and bore the title of duke of Chartres until 1787. He was rich and handsome, and, although not deficient in intelligence, ignorant, credulous, selfish, and sensual. In the revolu- tion he took part against the royal family, ren- dering himself infamous by his libels on Marie Antoinette. After the death of the king, the Jacobins, who had no further use for him, pro- cured his condemnation by the revolutionary tribunal. He met his fate with firmness, Nov. 6, 1703. He is well known by his assumed name of EffalM. ORLOFF, Count, the favorite of Catharine II of Russia, murdered the czar Peter III, 1762. Catharine loaded him and his brothers with honors, and dignified them with the title of counts. Orloff having, however, aimed at the honftr of publicly .receiving the-ha^nd of .Cath-' arine. he was ordered to travel, together with a grant.of 10.0,0.00 rubles in ready money, a pen- sion of 50,000, a magnificent service f plate, and an estate containing 6,OQO peasants. OSTEND, a fortified and well-built seaport in the B^lgic province of'AVest Flaade'rs. Pop.- 10,500. It is noted for the sieges wlitch it ha* withstood ; particularly for^a terrible siege of three years, from July 5, 1601 , to Sept. 22, 1604, against the armiesof Spain, when the toweivwas valiantly defended b*y the troops of the prince of Orange, assisted by the forces of queen Eliza- beth, under the commjtfid of Sir Francis Vere, who was chief general for'fiye months. The loss of the Spaniards was immense,, being little short of 100,000 men ; and although they after- wards succeeded in taking the place, it was yet at such an expense of men and treasure, that this siege is justly considered as the chief cause of the ruin of their affairs in the Netherlands, and of the establishment of the independence of the United Provinces. On the death of Charles II of Spain the French seized Ostend : but in 1706. after the battle of Ramillies.it was retaken by the allies. The emperor Charles VI established an East India Company here, but it met with such a powerful opposition from the maritime powers, that after many negotiations, it was abolished in 1731. Ostend was taken by the French in 1745, but given up at the peace of Aix-la-Chapelle,in 1748. In the war of 1750 the French garrisoned the town for the empress Maria Theresa. The emperor Joseph again at- tempted to establish an East India trade, but was not very successful. In 1792 it was taken by the French, and retaken by the English in 1793. who garrisoned it for the emperor Fran- cis II. When the French conquered Belgium, Ostend fell into their hands. In the course of the war. a detachment of British troops landed, and destroyed the sluices of the canals through which the French were collecting a naval force. The detachment after effecting their object were made prisoners of war. OTHO, Marcus Salvius, a Roman emperor, descended from the ancient kings of Etruria. He was acknowledged by the senate and the Roman people, but the sudden revolt of Vitelli- us, in Germany, rendered his situation precari- ous, and it was mutually resolved that their re- spective right to the empire should be decided by arms. Otho obtained three victoiies over his enemies, but in a general engagement near Brixt'llum, his forces were* defeated, and he stabbed himself when all hopes of success were HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. OTf 379 OTT vanished, after 1 a reign of abdut three months, The remembrance of Turk, a descendant of Ja- onj;he 20th of April. A. D..C9. phet, and the father of all the nations or tribes OTH{3 I, emperor of Germany * elecfed at that inhabit Tartary, might confer on that Aixrla-Chapelle r ijj. !)3G. At the earnest sojici- branch of the Ottomans the honor of being the tation ofthe Italians, Otho repaired jn person to most ancient and illustrious in the world. Home, wheje he was-sole'fnnly crowned empe : Othman I, descended from the celebrated ror of th Romans in-9GO,. Amurath III, the eldest son of Selim, in 1575, was obliged to give large sums to appease the janisaries, who, having been accustomed, dur- ing tlie vacancy of the throne, to plunder, and even massacre their fellow-citizens, were dis- appointed on this occasion. To give employ- ment to his untractnble soldiery, he made war upon Russia, Poland, Germany, and Venice, and subdued Georgia, lie is said to have been of a quiet disposition, a lover of justice, and very zealous in his religion. He left behind him 20 sons, of whom 19 were strangled by the eldest, his successor. Mohammed 111, having thus secured to him- self the tin-one by the slaughter of his brothers, in loiKi, thought it necessary also to take away the life of all the late sovereign's wives and HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. OTT 381 OTT concubines, by whom it was possible that there should be any posthumous progeny. The in- solence of the janisaries now greatly increased, and they were perpetually revolting and fight- ing with the other soldiers. The pachas also rebelled in many provinces ; and the sultan, through fear, made peace with them, and con- firmed them in their office. Immersed in the pleasures of the seraglio, Mohammed bestowed no other attention on public affairs than was absolutely necessary. He caused his eldest son, a prince of inestimable qualities, to be put to death. Ahmed ascended the throne when he was scarcely 15 years old, in 1605, and soon demon- strated that the sceptre was not unworthily in- trusted to him. Under his reign, those fires which are so common began at Constantinople, and which seldom or never break out but when the people are discontented. Ahmed was suc- ceeded by his brother Mustapha, in 1617. His cruelties rendered him so odious, that he was deposed and sent to prison in the castle of the Seven Towers, and his nephew. Othman. placed on the throne, in 1618. Othman, discontented with his janisaries, meditated revenge against them ; and as he could not drive them from Constantinople, he formed the design of trans- ferring the seat of government into Asia. But the janisaries discovering his intention, massa- cred the grand vizier, who they supposed to be the author of the measure, imprisoned the em- peror, who was soon after put to death, and re- instated Mustapha on the throne. The uncle, however, derived very little benefit from this event. He was treated as an idiot, led about upon an ass exposed to the derision and insults of the populace, and then carried back to prison, where he was strangled by the orders of his successor. Amurath IV, brother to the unfortunate Oth- man, by intrepidity and courage repressed the turbulence of the 'janisaries, and freed himself from every kind of .rebellion, in 1621. During his reign, which lasted 17 years, he caused .1 4,000 men to be destroyed. His chief amuse- ment was to run about the streets in the night, with a sabre in his hand, and to cut down' all whom he met. He was succeeded by his bro- ther Ibrahim, in 1639, who had languished four years in prison, and who, on being restored thus unexpectedly to liberty and empire, was so intoxicated by the new pleasures which they presented, that resigning the administration of government to the former ministers, he devoted himself entirely to the luxuries of the haram. The mufti having excited a revolt among the janisaries, and Ibrahim, finding himself unable to resist, resigned the crown, and in a few days was put to death. Mohammed IV the eldest son of Ibrahim, suc- ceeded his father, in 1649. His reign was long and glorious ; but after so many years passed in prosperity, which oujrht to have established his power, he was forced to abdicate the throne, though he survived his deposition, and was not molested in his apartment, which served as a prison. The exploits of this emperor, which, if detailed at length, would fill a volume, are not so far distant from the present period as to be obscured by the veil of time. The famous siege of Candia, which subjected the ancient Crete to the dominion of the crescent, makes a con- spicuous figure in the page of history. At the beginning of the 18th century, fathers at Vi- enna were accustomed to relate to their chil- dren the battles which they had witnessed un- der the walls of that city, when Sobieski disap- pointed the hopes of the Mohammedans. Mo- hammed IV distinguished himself by his incli- nation to mercy, and seldom commanded his troops in person; which probably caused the revolt of the soldiers, who placed the crown on the head of one of his brothers. Solyman II did not seat himself on the throne without ap- prehension, in 1685; and, while receiving the usual congratulations, seemed every moment to expect his formidable brother with the execu- tioners and instruments of death. Solyman had to support a disastrous war against Germany and Venice, the misfortunes of which were at- tended with the most ruinous consequences. But Kiopruli Mustapha Pacha being appointed grand- vizier, regenerated the empire, and putting himself at the head of the main army, besieged and took the fortress of Belgrade. He died of the dropsy, and was succeeded by his brother, Ahmed II, in 1691. who had as little judgment, and as little influence in the government. Ki- opruli being killed on the banks of the Danube, when on the point of obtaining a victory, the sovereign soon followed his general to the grave. Mustapha II, son of Mohammed IV, gave new vigor to the empire, in 1695, which had languished under his predecessors. He resolved to command his troops in person, but met with a more disgraceful and more complete defeat than the Turks had ever experienced. His troops, not receiving their pay in due time, took up arms, deposed Mustapha, and invited Ahm- ed his brother to repair to the army. Ahmed III in the course of five months put CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. OTT 382 PAI to death more than 14,000 soldiers, who had taken the greatest share in the rebellion, and who were carried away in the night-time, and drowned in ine Bosphorus. A war broke out between the Porte and Russia ; that with Ger- many and Venice was rekindled; and another was carried on in Persia. These military ex- peditions, though not always unsuccessful, re- duced the empire to a state of general weak- ness, which was felt particularly in the capital : all tended to irritate the minds of men, and pro- duced a revolt that dethroned Ahmed, after a reign of 27 years. On the deposition of Ahm- ed, in 1730, and the elevation of his nephew Mohammed V, a considerable alteration took place in the mode of carrying on the govern- ment. From the time of IVfohammed II, the whole administration had been usually delega- ted to the vizier ; but as this and the preceding rebellion had originated in the overgrown pow- er and ambition of these officers, Mohammed V took the Authority into his own hands, and de- termined to change his viziers frequently. This prince was unfortunate in his battles both with the Russians and Kouli Khan, whom he was obliged to acknowledge as sophi of Persia. On the death of Mohammed, his brother Os- man came from confinement to the throne ; in 1754 ', and the kislar-aga and his secretary gain- ed the confidence of his new sovereign, and as- sumed all their former power. Osmari was suc- ceeded by Mustapha III, the son of Ahmed, in 1757, who deprived the kislar-aga of his place and influence, and attached to the vizierat great part of the emoluments formerly given to the kislar-aga. Mustapha having attacked the Russians, in 1769, a bloody war commenced with the exploits of Prince Gallitzin, who gain- ed four separate and complete victories over the Turks, whom he obliged to abandon Choczin. The Russians speedily overran Moldavia and Walachia, and gained a great naval victory off Tchesme, where the whole of the Turkish fleet was destroyed. These and other important suc- cesses of the Russians compelled tiie Turks to conclude a dishonorable peace, soon after the death of Mustapha, and the accession of his bro- ther Abdulhamid. The peace of 1774, was the first great step towards the limitation of an em- pire, originally founded, and gradually extend- ed, by rapine and injustice. On the death of Abdulhamid, in 176!), Selim III, son of Musta- pha, ascended the throne, at a time when the empire was engaged in another unsuccessful war with Russia, which terminated greatly in favor of the latter power. From this period, the most interesting and important concerns relating to the Ottoman empire, were for some time connected with the internal and civil broils, in which the celebrated Passwan Oglu, or Pez- man Ohlu, took a very active and decided part against the regular government. Civil war. which was probably iomented by the French, when they invaded Egypt, appeared likely to become general throughout Turkey ; a revolu- tion was effected by the janisaries, who deposed Selim III. and raised to the throne. Mustapha IV, in 1801, and had it not been lor the assist- ance of the English, and the regard which they paid to its interests, in the treaty of pacification, in 1802, it is probable that the Ottoman Porte would have ceased to exist as an independent nation. Russia declared war against Turkey, on the pretext of a peace concluded with Eng- land by the latter power, in ISO!), and the Turk* and Russians commenced hostilities against each other with no other apparent object than mutual ' destruction. At length, mutual ex- haustion rendered the operations on both sides languid ; and Russia finding herself invaded by the formidable power of trance, a treaty of peace was concluded with Turkey, in J8J2, which ceded the cities and districts on the left of the Pruth as the price of pacification. The present sultan, Mahmoud. has met with many losses. lie is attached to the European dress and discipline, and has introduced many improvements, which are, however, regarded merely in the li^ht of innovations by his subjects. OXENSTIERN (Axel), a Swedish states- man, was born in 15^3. He was the favorite of Gustavus Adolphus, after whose death he conducted the affairs of the kingdom with equal ability and integrity. He died in 1(554. PACA, William, one of the signers of the Declaration of Independence, horn'in Maryland Oct. 31, 1740. After graduating at the college of Philadelphia, he studied law, and commenced practice in Annapolis. From 1774 to 1778 he was a member of congress, and vacated his seat when he was appointed chief justice of the su- preme court of his state, of which he was chosen governor in 11^2. In 17^) he was appointed by Washington judge of the district court of the.' United States for Maryland, and hold that im- portant post until his death, which took place JO years alter, in the sixtieth year of his age. PAINE, Robert Trent, one of the signers ot the American Declaration of Independence, was HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. PAl 383 PAL gre ha born at Boston, in 1731. For some time after graduating from Harvard college, he kept a public school. Having studied theology, he became a chaplain in the provincial forces in 1755, but soon studied law in which he made at proficiency, and settled at Taunton. After ving served at the general representative as- sembly, he was chosen member of the continen- tal congress which met at Philadelphia in 1774. He was several years in congress, and was an active member of the committee that framed the constitution of Massachusetts. He held the office of attorney-general from the time the gov- ernment was organized until 1790, when he was made judge of the supreme court, an office which he held until 1804. He died in the 85th year of his age, May 11, 1814. PAINE. Thomas, a political and deistical writer, was born in 1737 at Thetford in Norfolk, where he was brought up to the business of a stay maker. He afterwards became an excise- man at Lewes ; but being dismissed for some mal-practices, he went to America in 1774, be- came editor of the Pennsylvania Magazine, and aided the revolution by a pamphlet called Com- mon Sense, for which he was rewarded with 500 by the legislature of Pennsylvania. He was also appointed clerk to the committee for foreign affairs. In 1780 he was appointed clerk to the assembly of Pennsylvania, and in 1785 received $3,00'J from congress, and 500 acres of land from the state of New York. In 1790 he went to London and excited con- siderable notice by his Rights of Man, written in answer to Burke's Reflections on the French Revolution. A prosecution, however, being commenced against him, he fled to France, where he was chosen a member of the national convention, but incurred the displeasure of the Jacobins for recommending a lenient course towards Louis XVI, and was thrown into prison. Here he narrowly escaped death. The jailor, when he received orders for a batch of prisoners to be carried to execution, was in the habit of marking the doors of their cells with chalk. One day, Paine had left his cell to visit a fellow- prisoner, and the door stood wide open. The drunken jailor, having occasion to single out some victims, chalked the inside of faine's door, which was afterwards closed, and thus he escaped notice, when, on the ensuing day, the devoted prisoners were delivered up to the proper authorities. By the publication of his Age of Reason, a work levelled at Revelation, he forfeited the esteem of many Americans who had been his warm friends. He fell into disre- 33 Eute, when, on his return to America, he gave imsclf up to intemperate habits. He died June 8, 1809, the victim of his excesses, and was buried on his own farm, interment on their ground having been refused by the society of Friends to whom application was made. Cob- bett, who professes an unbounded admiration for Tom Paine, dug up his bones, and carried them to England. PALESTINE, (See Hebrews'). Palestine ex- tends from Crelo-Syria to Arabia Petrea; on the west it has the Mediterranean, and on the east Arabia Deserta. The country is moun- tainous, and there is only one principal river, the Jordanes, or Jordan, which rising on Mount Hermon, falls into the lake of Gennesareth, or sea of Tiberias ; after which it loses itself in a more spacious one, Lacus Asphaltites, the Bi- tuminous Lake, or Dead Sea. On the western side of Jordan were Judsea on the south, Sama- ria in the middle, and Galilee in the north ; on the eastern side was Percea. The Philistines were mostly on the coast towards Egypt. In the kingdom of Judah stood Hierosolyma, or Jerusalem, built on several hills, the largest of which was Mount Sion ; it formed the southern part of the city. On the east of the second, or lower city, was Mount Moriah. Jerusalem, when enlarged and beautified by David, Solo- mon, &.C., became a most renowned city, and as such is mentioned by Herodotus under the name of Cadytis. Its temple on Mount Moriah, was a noble" and costly structure. Both the city and temple were destroyed by the Chalde- ans, about 600 years B. C. The second temple, which had begun to decay, was rebuilt by Her- od the Great. The destruction of Jerusalem by Titus was A. D. 70. Under Adrian, a new city, altogether Roman, and called .iElia, was built, but there was an alteration in its site. Sion, the principal quarter of the ancient city, was not comprised within the new city. It subsists at present, but in a deplorable condition, inhabited by a motley group of Turks, Jews, and Christians. A mosque has supplanted the temple. Northeast of Mount Moriah was the Mount of Olives, beyond the brook and valley of Kedron ; on the south was the valley of Hin- nom. and on the north Mount Calvary. Six miles to the southeast was Bethlehem. A rugged mountainous country lay between Jeru- salem and Jericho, famous for its balm. For this, and for their palm-trees, both Judsea and Idumaea were celebrated. Hebron, a place of high antiquity, was the sepulchre of Abraham and his family- In the lime of the crusades it CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PAM 384 PAM bore the name of St. Abraham ; and the Arabs, who always respect their primitive names, call it Cabr Ibrahim, or the tomb of Abraham. Gaza and Ascalon,on the coast, preserve their names, as also Ekron. Gath is more inland. Azotus was the ancient Ashdod. Lydda, in the inte- rior, has the name of Lod. South of it is Arim- athea. Towards the south lay Idumea, or Edom : the natives were subdued by the Macca- bees, and incorporated with the Jewish nation. In Jerome's time the country was deserted, the few inhabitants having their dwellings in cav- erns. PALMYRA, the ruins of a great city of Asia, in the desert of Syria, said to have been de- stroyed by Nebuchadnezzar. The only brilliant part of its history was under Odenathus and his queen Zenobia. It afterwards fell under the power of the Mahometans, but at what period it sank into its present state of desolation is uncertain. PAMPAS; vast plains in the southern part of Buenos Ayres, extending from the de la Plata nearly to the Andes, 750 miles long, and 450 broad. Part of these plains are covered with grass, and part with open forests. They con- tain herds of wild horses and cattle and some beasts of prey, and are inhabited by the Gua- chos, a race of men of Spanish origin wbf>*live on horseback and subsist by hunting, and the fierce Indians who lead the life of the Guachos, but are constantly at war with them. Captain _ Head's Rough Notes of some Rapid Journeys ' across the Pampas, and among the Andes, con- tains the best and most amusing account we have of them. The Guachos make use of the lasso in hunt- ing. The lasso, so called from the Spanish lazo, or noose, consists of a rope made of twisted strips of untanned hide, varying in length from fifteen to twenty yards, and is about as thick as the little finger. It has a noose or running- knot at one end, the other extremity being fast- ened by an eye and button to a ring in a strong hide belt or surcingle, bound tightly round the horse. The coil is grasped by the horseman's left hand, while the noose, which is held in the right, trails along the ground except when in use. and then it is whirled round the head with considerable velocity, during which, by a pecu- liar turn of the wrist, it is made to assume a circular form ; so that, when delivered from the hand, the noose preserves itself open until it falls over the object at which it has been aimed. The unerring precision with which the lasso is thrown, is perfectly astonishing, and to one who sees it for the first time, has a very magi- cal appearance. Even when standing still it is by no means an easy thing to throw the lasso , but the difficulty is vastly increased when it comes to be thrown from horseback and at a gallop, and when, in addition, the rider is oblig- ed to pass over uneven ground, and to leap hedges and ditches in his course. Yet such is the dexterity of the guachos or countrymen, that they are not only sure of catching the an- imal they are in chase of, but can fix, or as they term it, place the lasso on any particular part they please. Suppose that a wild bull is to be caught, and that two mounted horsemen, guassos, as they are called in Chili, or guachos on the Pampas, undertake to kill him. As soon as they dis- cover their prey, they remove the coil of the lasso from behind them, and, grasping it in the left hand, prepare the noose in the right, and dash off, at full gallop, each swinging his lasso round his head. The first who comes within reach aims at the bull's horns, and when he sees, which he does in an instant, that the lasso which he has thrown will take effect, he stops his horse, and turns it half round, the bull con- tinuing his course, till the whole cord has run out. The horse, meanwhile, knowing, by ex- perience, what is going to happen, leans over as much as he can in the opposite direction from the bull, and stands trembling in cxpecta- n of the violent tug which is to be given him by the bull, when brought up by the lasso. So great, indeed, is the jerk which takes place at. this moment, that were the horse not to lean over in the manner described, he would cer- tainly be overturned ; but standing, as he does, across the road, with his feet planted firmly on the ground, he offers sufficient resistance to stop the bull as instantaneously as if he had been shot, though, the instant before, he was running at full speed. If the intention be to kill the animal for the sake of the tallow and hide alone, as is often tin; e.Tse, one of the guachos dismounts, and running in, cuts the bull's hamstrings with a long knife which he always wears in his girdle ; n:iti. instantly afterwards, dispatches him by a dexterous cut across the back of the neck. The most surprising tiling is, the manner in which the horse, afier Icing left by his rider, manages to preserve the las: > ahvys tight; this would be less difficult if the bull were to remain always steady, but it sometimes happens that he makes violent struggles '" urbon<. Paris received only slow and partial embellishments, until the revolution, when it became essential for the new rulers (particularly Bonaparte) to concilia'; the favor of so important a city. PARK, Mungo, a native of Scotland, born near Selkirk, Sept. 10, 1771 , fell a victim to the cause of science, being murdered in Africa, while engaged in his third expedition, J805. His published travels are highly interesting. PARMA, a fine city in the north of Italy, capital of the duchy of the same name, con- taining 35,000 inhabitants. It was founded by the ancient Etrurians. In the Kith century, Paul III gave it to his son Luigi Farnese whose descendants continued to reign as dukes of Par- ma till the extinction of the male branch. In 1714, Elizabeth Farnese married Philip V of Spain, and brought him the duchy as a dowry. Her son Don Carlos took possession of it in 1731; but it being settled in 173o, that Don Carlos should be made king of the two Sicilies, the duchy of Parma and Piacenza was ceded to the emperor, and governed by the house of Austria till 1748, when they were given up to Don Philip, snn of Philip V. By the peace of Luneville, the duke of Parma was raised to the throne as king of Etruria, in 1801. In 1805, Parma and Piacenza were united to France, and on the fall of Bonaparte they were taken by the Austrians, and in 1814 were given by the treaty of Paris to Maria Louisa, the ex-empress, devolving on her death to Austria and Sardinia a provision which has since been modified by certain equivalents. PARSONS. Theophilus, was the son of a minister of By field, Mass., and was born Feb., 1750. After completing his legal studies, he opened an office in Newburyport, and assumed a high standing in his profession ; in 1806 he succeeded chief-justice Dana in the Supreme Judicial Court of Massachusetts. He died at Boston. Oct. 30, 1813. PARTHLY, this celebrated kingdom of an- tiquity was situated in the northern part of tho modern Khonissin, and >vas bounded on the N. by Hyrcarna, on the S. by Aria, on the E. bv Carmania the Desert, and on the W. by Media. The ancient Parthians wore originally a tribe of Scythians, who, being expelled from the land of their nativity, took up theirabode in this part of Asia. Arsaces, the founder of the Parthian monarchy, assumed the regal dignity B. C. 250. His son Arsaces II subdued Media, but was soon dispossessed of this acquisition. On the death of Arsaces, the government de- volved on his son Priapatius, who bequeathed the crown to his eldest son Phraates. This lawt HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. PAR 387 PAR prince subdued the Mardi, a warlike people of the east. He left the kingdom to his brother Mithridates, who soon reduced Bactria, Persia, Media, Elymais, and several other countries, and carried his victorious arms into India, even beyond tlie boundaries of Alexander's conquests. He afterwards made himself master of Babylo- nia and Mesopotamia ; and his reign is regarded as the epoch of the Parthian grandeur. We pass over a few unimportant reigns till we come to that of Orodes, who engaged in war with M. Licinius Crassus, which was attended with a vast effusion of blood, and proved ex- tremely disastrous both to the Parthians and the Romans. At length, Crassus was overthrown with a great slaughter, and his head sent to Orodes ; whilst his vanquished troops tamely surrendered or were put to the sword. Orodes sent an army to besiege the city of Antioch, which, however, the Parthians could not take. To revenge the deatli of Crassus, the Romans entered Syria, B. C. 50, and, after some partial en- gagements, succeeded in defeating Pacorus, the son of Orodes, who was killed in the battle. Oro- des appointed Phraates his successor, B. C. 36. Phraates no sooner attained to this height of power than he caused all his brothers by the daughter of Antiochus Eusebes to be put to death, and attempted to despatch Orodes also, by poison, which proving ineffectual, he ordered him to be stifled in his bed, and exercised the same cruelty upon the prime nobility, his eldest son, and the other branches of the royal family. To elude the vengeance of this barbarian, many of the Parthian nobles emigrated into Syria, and prevailed on Marc Antony to invade their un- happy kingdom. The Romans, however, were so harassed by the enemy, that they were re- duced to the most pitiable extremities, and nar- rowly escaped destruction. The Parthian monarch continuing to exercise the most wanton cruelties upon his own sub- jects, the nobles entered into a conspiracy, and chasing him from the country, conferred the sovereignty on Tiribates, one of their own body. Phraates, however, returned, and defeating his rival in a pitched battle, recovered his paternal inheritance. At length, this tyrant was poisoned by his wife, that her son Phraatices might ascend the throne. Phraatices had scarcely assumed the diadem, when his subjects, resolving to revenge the crime to which he had been accessary, rose in arms, and placed one Orodes, who was of the Arsacidan family, on the throne. This prince was assassinated. 33* On the death of Orodes II, the emperor Au- gustus was requested by the Parthians to send one of the sons of Phraates, who had been edu- cated at Rome, to assume the government. Accordingly, he sent them Vonones, but the Parthians growing weary of him, persuaded Artabanus, king of Media, to chase him from the throne. Artabanus, at length, firmly estab- lished himself in the government of Parthia, and died in the 31st year of his reign. He was suc- ceeded by his son Bardanes, who made war upon Izates, king of Adiabene, A. D. 47, who had greatly assisted in restoring Artabanus to the throne of Parthia. This ingratitude was so warmly resented by the Parthian nobles, that they caused Bardanes to be assassinated, and bestowed the crown on his brother. Gotarzes was succeeded by one Venones, governor of Media, A. D. 49. On the demise of this last prince, the government devolved on Vologeses. the son of Gotarzee, who maintained a bloody war against the Romans, on account of the crowns of Armenia and Syria, which he had bestowed on Tiridates and Pacorus, two of his brothers. Artabanus III next ascended the throne. He was succeeded by his son Pacorus. Cosdroes, the son of Pacorus, invaded Arme- nia in the beginning of his reign, and expelled Exadares, who had been placed on the throne of that country by the emperor Trajan. To re- venge this insult, Trajan inarched into the East, recovered Armenia, made himself master of Mesopotamia, pursued his route to Babylon and Ctesiphon, and bestowed their crown on Par- thanaspates, a prince of the Arsacidan family. On the death of Trajan, however, the Parthi- ans recalled Cosdroes, and chased Parthanas- paies from the throne. After a very long reign, Cosdroes was succeeded by his eldest son, Vol- ogeses II, who, after carrying on hostilities against Rome for about four years, with various success, consented to acknowledge the sove- reignty of the Roman people. On the demise of the Parthian king, his nephew Vologesee III ascended the vacant throne, and having incensed the emperor Se- verus, was stripped of his treasures, his wives, and his children. Artabanus, the son and suc- cessor of Vologeses, had scarcely established himself in the kingdom, when the emperor Ca- racalla, desirous of signalizing himself against the Parthians, sent ambassadors to demand his daughter in marriage. This was readily grant- ed ; and the king, being informed that the em- peror was coming to solemnize the nuptials, went out to meet him, with the chief of the CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PAU 388 PEL Parthian nobility, all unarmed and habited in splendid dresses. This peaceable train no soon- er approached the Roman troops, than they were attacked with the utmost fury, and Artabanus himself was compelled to elude destruction by a precipitate flight. On account of this exploit, the base Caracalla assumed the surname of Parthicus. Artabanus swore irreconcilable hatred to the perfidious emperor, and inspired the whole nation with the same spirit of vengeance. An engagement was fought between the Parthians and the Romans, which was terminated only by darkness. Ca- racalla dying, an alliance between the two em- pires was proposed, and peace was concluded. At this juncture, an enterprising Persian, named Arlaxares, after a dreadful engagement, defeat- ed Artabanus at the head of all the Parthian forces. Artaxares caused Artabanus to be put to death, and restored the empire to the Per- sians, after they had been subject to the princes of Parthia for the space of 475 years. The roy- al family of Arsaces, however, continued to reign in Armenia till the time of the emperor Justinian. PATAGONIA, a vast country occupying the southern extremity of South America, discov- ered by Magellan in 1519. The climate is cold and the natives are wandering savages. Some of the tribes are large-bodied, though not the giants which they have been described. PATNA, a celebrated city of Hindostan, and capital of the province of Bahar. On the 25th June, 1763, the British detachment stationed there for the protection of the factory, scaled the walls, and began pillaging the houses. ed They were, however, attacked by the garrison, and taken prisoners. In revenge for this affair, the Rajah gave orders that all the Europeans execution upon 40 persons, by a serjeant, who fired into the doors and windows on tiie prison- ers, while they were at dinner in the hall of the factory. On the Gth November, in the same year, the city was stormed by major Adams-, since which it has been under the British sway. PAUSANIAS, a Spartan general, who great- ly signalized himself at the battle of PhiUca, against the Persians. He was afterwards set at the head of the Spartan armies, and extended his conquests in Asia; but the haughtiness of his behavior created him many enemies, and the Athenians soon obtained a superiority in the affairs of Greece. Pausanias was dissatisfied with his countrymen, and he offered to betray Greece to the Persians, if he received in mar- riage, as the reward of his perfidy, the daugh- ter of their monarch. His intrigues were dis- covered oy means of a youth, who was intrust- ed with his letters to Persia, and who refused to go, on the recollection that such as had been em- ployed in that office before had never retijrned. The letters were given to the Ephori of Sparta, and the perfidy of Pausanias laid open. lie fled for safety to a temple of Minerva, and as the sanctity of the place screened him from the violence of his pursuers, the sacred building was surrounded with heaps of stones, the first of which was carried there by the indignant mother of the unhappy man. He was starved to death in the temple, and died about 471 years before the Christian era. PELOPIDAS, a celebrated general of Thebes, son of Hippocles No sooner had the interest of Sparla prevailed at Thebes, and the frienda of liberty and national independence been ban- ished from the city, than Pelopidas. who was in the number of the exiles, resolved to free hia country from foreign slavery. His plan was bold and animatedand his deliberations were slow. Meanwhile, Epariinondas, who had been left by the tyrants at Thebes, as being in ap pearance a worthless and insignificant j.hiloso pher, animated the youths of the city ; and at last Pelopidas, with eleven of his associates, en tered Thebes, and easily massacred the t'riemU of the tyranny, and freed the country from for- eign rtiasters. After this successful enterprise, Pelopidas was unanimously placed at the head of tiie government ', and so confident were the Thebans of his abilities as a general and a magis- trate, that they successively reelected him thir- teen times to fill the honorable office of governor of Bo3ot.ia. Epaminondas shared with him the sovereign power, and it was to their valor and prudence that the Thebans were indebted for a celebrated victory at the battle of Leuctra. In a war which Thebes carried on against Alexan- der, tyrant of Pheruc, Pelopidas was appointed commander ; but his imprudence, in trusting himself unarmed into the enemy's camp, prov- ed fitful to him. He was taken prisoner, but Epaminondas restored him to liberty. The per- fidy of Alexander irritated him, and he was killed bravely fighting in a celebrated battle in which his'troops obtained the victory, B. C. 364 years. Pelopidas is admired for his valor, as he never engaged an enemy without obtain- ing the advantage. The impoverished state of Thebes before his birth, and after his fall, plain- ly demonstrates the superiority of his genius and of his abilities; and it has been justly ob HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. PEN 389 PEN served that with Pelopidas and Epaminondas, the glory and the independence of the Thebans PELOPONNESUS, a celebrated peninsula which comprehends the most southern parts of Greece. It received its name from Pelops, who settled there \ as the name indicates, (the island of Pelops). It had been called before, Apia, Pelasgia, and Argos, and in its form, it has been observed by the moderns, highly to resemble the leaf of the plane tree. Its pre- sent name is Morea, which seems to be deriv- ed from the Greek word signifying a mulberry- tree, which is found there in great abundance. The Peloponnesus was conquered, some time after the Trojan war, by the Heraclidce or de- scendants of Hercules, who had been forcibly expelled from it. The inhabitants of this pen- insula rendered themselves illustrious like the rest of the Greeks, by their genius, their fond- ness for the fine arts, the cultivation of learn- ing, and the profession of arms; but in nothing more than by a celebrated war which they carri- ed on against Athens and her allies for twenty- seven years, and which from them received the name of the Peloponnesian war. PENN, William, was born in London, in 1644. At an early age he joined the society of friends or quakers, and was expelled from the university at Oxford as a nonconformist. His unshaken adherence to the principles he had adopted drew down upon him the indignation of his father, which was a source of grief to Penn, although it did not induce him to relin- quish the society which he had chosen. In 1668, he appeared as a preacher, and also as- sumed his pen to make known and defend his principles, for which he was fined and impris- oned. In 1681, finding no rest from perse- cution, he petitioned Charles II for the patent of a province and drew up the Constitution of Pennsylvania. He wrote to the Indians to pro.- pitiate them and assure them of his good inten- tions, and having displayed the plausibility of his scheme, induced a large number of respect- able families to embark for the New World. In 1682 Penn visited his province in person, and remained two years, regulating the affairs of Philadelphia, and establishing amicable rela- tions with his neighbors. The treaty which Penn concluded with the Indians was never violated. In 1699 he made a second visit to Pennsylvania, but the machinations of his ene- mies at home induced him to return in 1701. He died in 1718. PENNSYLVANIA, one of the United Stales, is bounded N. by New York, E. by the rivet Delaware, separating it from New Jersey ; S. E. by the state of Delaware, S. by Maryland and part of Virginia, and W. by Virginia and Ohio. It has an area of 47,000 square miles, and in 1830. it contained 1 ,348,233 inhabitants. Pop. 1840, 1,724,038. COD.NTIES. Adams Erie Northampton Allegliany Fayette Northumberland ^Armstrong Franklin Perry Beaver Greene Philadelphia Bedford Huntington Potter Uerks Indiana Pike Bradford Jefferson Schuylkill Bucks Juniatta Somerset Butler Lebanon Susquelianna Cambria Lehigh Tioga Centre Luzerne Union Chester Lycntning Venango Clearfield Lancaster Warren Columbia M'Kean Washington Crawford Mercer Wayne Cumberland Mitliin Westmoreland Dauphin Montgomery York Delaware The large rivers are the Delaware, Schuyl- kill, Susquehanna, Lehigh, Juniatta, AlleghV ny, Mononghahela, Ohio, &c. The Alleghany and Blue Mountains intersect this state. As a large portion of the state is hilly and moun- tainous, some of the soil is poor ; but a great part is admirably adapted to tillage. Among the minerals found in Pennsylvania, coal is ob- tained in the largest quantities. As a manufac- turing state Pennsylvania takes the precedence of others. The principal places are Philadel- phia, Pittsburg, Lancaster, Reading, York, Harrisburg (the seat of government). Carlisle, Easton, Chambersburg, Columbia. There are various seminaries of learning in this state, among which may be mentioned the University of Pennsylvania in Philadelphia, Dickinson College at Carlisle, Washington College at Washington, Jefferson College at Cannons- burg, and Alleghany college at Meadville, The late Stephen Girard left a fund of two million dollars which has been appropriated to a college for the education of orphans. It is situated in the city of Philadelphia, long the residence of its beneficent founder. The inhabitants of Pennsylvania are of Eng- lish, German, Irish, Scotch, Welsh, Swedish, and Dutch origin. The grant to Penn has been noticed in the preceding article. The city of Philadelphia was laid out in 168'2; but Swe- dish settlements had been made in the state as early as 1638. The rights of the native posses- sors of the soil, were respected, in every in CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PEP 390 PER stance, and they only relinquished their land on being paid fair prices. The policy of this con- duct was perceptible in the amicable disposition of the Indians. In 179!) the seat of government was removed from Philadelphia to Lancaster, and again, in 1812, to Harrisburg, where it re- mains. PEPIN, surnamed the short, king of France, the first of the second race of the French mon- archs, was the son of Charles Martel, and bro- ther of Carloman. The two brothers divided the government between them after the death of their father, but Carloman retiring afterwards into Italy, Pepin remained sole manager, and carried his design farther ; in short, seeing that all concurred to set the crown upon hisnead, and to dethrone Childeric III, he called a par- liament that he might have their consent, which was unanimously granted him, and in the mean time deputed Bouchard, bishop of VVurtzburg, and Fulrad, abbot of St. Denys, and chaplain to the prince, to go to Rome, in order to be in- formed of Pope Zachary , who was the worthiest to be on the throne, he who took no care of the affairs of the kingdom, or he who, by his pru- dence and valor, governed it wisely, and kept it from the oppressions of the enemy. Zacha- rv, who stood in need of Pepin's forces, declared io his favor. This answer being related in France, the bishops who were assembled at Soissons with Boniface, archbishop of May- ence, having the suffrage and universal consent of the grandees and people, crowned king Pe- pin on the 1st of May, 752. At the same time Childeric was deposed, and afterwards put into a monastery. After the performance of this ceremony, the new king put a stop to the revolt of his brother Griphon, and took Vannes. Pope Stephen II, who succeeded Zachary, rinding himself extremely incommoded by the Lom- bards, had recourse to Pepin, whom he came into France to see. The king received him at the castle of Poictier near Vitri, and sent him to the abbey of St. Dennis ; and some time after, this pope anointed and crowned him, with his two sons Charles and Carloman, at Ferrieres, July 28. 754. Next year Pepin went into Italy, and having forced Astulphus, king of the same Lombards, to give up all that he had taken from the church of Rome, he returned into Franco, and sent back pope Stephen into Italy ; but the Lombards failing to keep their word, the king repnssed the Alps in 75G. and constrained them to give all manner of satisfaction to the pope of Rome ; being corne back into France, he spent the rest of his life in making war upon the Sax- ons, and upon Gaifre,or Waifer, duke of Aqui- tain, whom he defeated six or seven times, till the year 768, when this prince being Ifilled bv his own subjects, the king remained master of all his dominions. Some time after, he died of a dropsy, the 24th of September, in the same year, aged 54 ; having reigned after his corona- tion by the pope 10 years. PEPIN I, of that name, king of Aquitain, was the second son of Louis the Debonnaire, and of Ermengarda, made king of Aquitain in 817, was afterwards head of the conspiracies against his father in 830 and 833. He died in the year 838, and was buried in the collegiate church of St. Radegonda in Poictiers. PEPIN II, king of Aquitain. succeeded his father in his dominions; he conducted some troops to Lotharius I, his uncle, and served him at the battle of Fontenay, in the year 841 : he was afterwards taken by Sanchus, count of Gascony, and sent to Charles the Bald, his un- cle, who put him into a monastery ; two years after which he found a way to escape, and join- ed the Normans. He plundered Poictiers. and several other places, in 857; but the Aquitains fell upon him. and having made him prisoner, delivered him to the French, who condemned him as a traitor to his country, and to Chris- tianity, and put him to death, in 864. PEPIN. kinyr of Italy, was the son of Charle- magne, and Hildegarda his second wife, born in the year 777. The king, his father, carried him to Rome, where he was baptized, and received the name of Carloman ; which pope Adrian I changed into that of Pepin, when crowning him king of the Lombards, on Easter-day, in the year 781. He, on several occasions, gave proof of his courage and bravery. In 7 ( J!>, he beat the Huns, and subdued Grimauld, duke of Bene- ventum ; he died at Milan, in the year 810. PEPIN. surnamed the Fat. mayor of the pal- ace in France, was the sou of Anchises, and frandson of St. Arnold, afterwards bishop of Ictz. He began to govern in Austrasia, and was vanquished in the year 6^1. by Eliroin : but in ti?7, he defeated kinir Thierri, and acted his part so well, that he hud all the authority in the two kingdoms, under Clovis III, Childebertand Dagobert III ; and it must be confessed, lie was worthy of the empire of the Franks. He gained several battles iiirainst Berthairns. in 6i)l ; Rad- bord, duke of Friezland, in 707; and Wiler, duke of Suabin. whom ho defeated in 701), and 712. He died in 714, near Liege. PERCEVAL Spencer, second son of John, earl of Egmont, was born in 1762. He was HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. PER 391 PER educated at Harrow School, and next at Trini- ty College, Cambridge, where he took his mas- ter's degree in 17s2, and the year following be- came a student of Lincoln's Inn. He com- menced practice as a barrister in the king's Bench, from whence he removed to the Court of Chancery. In 1796 he was made king's counsel, and about the same time attracted the notice of Mr. Pitt, by a pamphlet, proving that an impeachment of the House of Commons does not abate by a dissolution of parliament. The same year he was returned for Northamp- ton. In 1801 he was made solicitor-general, and the next year attorney -general. On the change of administration, in 1807, he was ap- pointed chancellor of the exchequer in which situation he displayed great political talents, particularly in the settlement of the regency ; but, unhappily he fell soon afterwards, in the lobby of the House of Commons, by the hands of an assassin, named Bellincrharn. May 11 , 1812. PERICLES, an Athenian of a noble family, son of Xanthippus and Agariste. When he took a share in the administration of public af- fairs, he rendered himself popular by opposing Cimon, who was the favorite of the nobility ; and to remove every obstacle which stood in the way of his ambition, he lessened the dignity and the power of the court of the Areopagus, which the people had been taught for ages to respect and to venerate. He also attacked Cimon, and caused him to be banished by the ostracism. Thucydides also, who had succeeded Cimon on his banishment, shared the same fate, and Peri- cles remained for 15 years the sole minister, and as it may be said the absolute sovereign of a republic, which always showed itself so jeal- ous of her liberties, and which distrusted so much the honesty of her magistrates. He made war against the Lacedaemonians, obtained a victory over the Sicyonians near Ne- rnaea, and waged a successful war against the inhabitants of Samos. The Peloponnesian war was fomented by his ambitious views, and when he had warmly represented the flourishing state, the opulence, and actual power, of his country, the Athenians did not hesitate a moment to un- dertake a war against the most powerful repub- lics of Greece, a war which continued for 27 years, and which was concluded by the destruc- tion of their empire, and the demolition of their walls. The arms of the Athenians were for some time crowned with success ; but an unfortunate expedition raised clamors against Pericles, and the enraged populace attributed all their losses to him, and to make atonement for their ill suc- cess, they condemned him to pay 50 talents. This loss of popular favor, did not so much affect Pericles as the recent death of all his chil- dren; and when the tide of unpopularity was passed by, he condescended to come into the public assembly, and to view with secret pride the contrition of his fellow-citizens, who uni- versally begged his forgiveness for the violence which they had offered to bis ministerial char- acter. He was again restored to all his honors ; but the dreadful pestilence which had diminished the number of his family, proved fatal to him, and about 429 years before Christ, in his 70th year, he fell a sacrifice to that terrible malady, which robbed Athens of so many of her citizens. Pericles was for 40 years at'the head of the administration, 25 years with others, and 15 alone ; and the flourishing stale of the empire during his government, gave occasion to the Athenians publicly to lament his loss, and ven- erate*his memory. As he was expiring, and seemingly senseless, his friends that stood around his bed expatiated with warmth on the most glorious actions of his life, and the victories which he had won ; when he suddenly interrupted their tears and conversation, by saying that in mentioning the exploits that he had achieved, and which were common to him with all generals, they had for- got to mention a circumstance which reflected far greater glory upon him as a minister, a general, and above all, as a man. " It is," said ne, " that not a citizen in Athens has been obliged to put on mourning on my account." PERSIA, IRAN, or CHAHISTAN, a coun- try of Asia, is bounded N. by Russia, the Cas- pian sea, and Independent Tartary, E. by Be- loochistan and Afghanistan, S. by the Persian gulf, and W. by Turkey ; containing 500,000 square miles, and 9,500 ; 000 inhabitants. The Persians profess the Mohammedan religion, of the sect of Ali. The country contains a few Guebres or Fire-worshippers. Persia has excel- lent fruits, cotton, fine wool, silk, horses, cam- els, pearls, vines; mines of precious stones and different minerals. Much of the soil is sandy. The Persians are true Asiatics effeminate and fond of pleasures; they are of small size. It anciently extended about two thousand eight hundred English miles in length, from the Hellespont to the mouth of the Indus; and about two thousand miles in breadth, from Pon- tus to the mouth of the Arabian Gulf. The Persians are supposed to have descended from CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PER 392 PER Elam. the son of Shera; and, in Scripture, they are sometimes denominated Elamiles. The first king of Elam mentioned in Scrip- ture is Chederlaomer, who conquered many of the Asiatic provinces, and held the kings of Sodom, Gomorrah, Bela, Admah, and Zeboiui, in subjection for twelve years. He was, how- ever, vanquished by the" patriarch Abraham, and lost the sovereignty of the Pentapolis. From this period to the reign of Cyrus, the his- tory of Elam or Persia is clouded with fiction. Cyrus, styled the Great, on account of his extensive conquests, and his restoration of the captive Jews, was the son of Cambyses, a Per- sian grandee, and of Mandane, daughter of As- tyages, king of the Medes. In the fortieth year of his age, he was called to the assistance of his uncle Cyaxares, who had ascended the throne of Media," and who ap- pointed him generalissimo both of the Medes and Persians. The powerful alliance formed against the Medes in 557, induced the king of Armenia to withhold his usual tribute. Cyrus, therefore, marched against him, and compelled him to pay his tribute, and to furnish his customary quota of auxiliaries. The Egyptians, Greeks, Babylonians, Thra- cians, and other nations of Lesser Asia, having entered into an alliance against Cyaxares, chose Crasus, King of Lydia, to be their general. The confederates assembled in the vicinage of the river Pactolus, and advanced to Thymbra, whither Cyrus also inarched with one hundred and thirty thousand troops, besides three hun- dred armed chariots, several moving towers, and a considerable number of camels, upon which were mounted Arabian archers. The forces of Croesus, however, were twice as numerous as those of Cyrus, and amounted to four hundred thousand men. The battle was extremely bloody, and Cyrus himself was some- time iu imminent danger ; but at length the confederates gave way on all sides. After this engagement, Cyrus took Sardis, the capital of Lydia, and made Croesus prisoner, whom he replaced on the throne. After sub- duing Syria and Arabia, he inarched against Babylon, which he reduced after a siege of two years, and put an end to the Babylonian em- pire. About two years after the reduction of Baby- lon, Cyaxares died, and left the whole govern- ment of the empire to Cyrus, 534, who at this time published the famous decree by which the Jews were permitted to return to their native country, and restored all the vessels which Ne- buchadnezzar had brought from Jerusalem. Cyrus was succeeded by his son Cambyses, who, soon after his accession to tiie throne, re- solved to undertake an expedition against Egypt, and in tiiat kingdom committed great cruelties and devastations., Cambyses was returning into Persia, to quell a revolt which had been occasioned by Smerdis, one of the magi, who pretended to be the brother of the king, when he accidentally received a wound from his sword, of which he died. The counterfeit Smerdis was injured by his excessive precautions. Cyrus having formerly caused the ears of the magi to be cut oil', this mutilation occasioned a discovery ; and a con- spiracy of seven of the principal Persian grand- ees being formed against Smerdis, he was assas- sinated. When the public tumults had subsided, the conspirators held a council on the kind of gov- ernment which should be established, and after some debate, they determined in favor of mon- archy. They agreed, therefore, to meet next morning on horseback, at an appointed place near the city, and to acknowledge him whose horse first neighed, as King of Persia. This plan was adopted, and Darius, by a stratagem of his groom, obtained the sovereignty. Darius had scarcely entered the fifth year of his reign, when he was compelled to lead all his forces against Babylon, which had revolted, and made great preparations for sustaining a regular sieire. To prevent the consumption of their provis ions, the Babylonians collected all their old men, women, and children, and strangled them without distinction, only reserving one wife for each man, and a female servant. After Babylon had been besieged a year and eight months, it was taken by the contrivance of Zopyrus, who cut off his own nose and ears, and pretending that, lie was thus mangled by the Persian monarch for advising him to relin- quish- his undertaking, was admitted into the city by the inhabitants. Having settled the affairs of Babylon, Darius undertook an expedition against the Scythians, B. C. .~>14. on pretence of revenging the calam- ities which that people had brought upon Asia, about one hundred and twenty years before. By means of a bridge of boats, he transported his army across the Bosphoriis, and subdued Thrace ; and having appointed his fleet to join him at the Ister, or Danube, he also passed over that river into Scythia. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. PER 393 PER The Scythians avoided an engagement, and retired before him, laying waste the country, and filling up all the wells and springs, till the Persian troops were quite exhausted with tedious and fatiguing marches. At last, Darius resolved to abandon this wild enterprise, and causing a great number of fires to be lighted, he left the old men and invalids in the camp, and inarched with all expedition to regain the pass of the river. The king re-crossed the Danube, and returned into Thrace, where he left Megabyzus, one of his generals, to complete the conquest of that country, and, repassing the Bosphorus, took up his quarters at Sardis. Darius having declared his son Xerxes, who was born after his father's exaltation to the throne, his successor in the kingdom, this prince made preparations against Greece, B. C. 485. He entered into an alliance with the Cartha- ginians, who were to attack the Greek colonies in Sicily and Italy, and who raised an army of three hundred thousand men in Spain, Gaul, Italy, and Africa. To prevent a repetition of a former disaster which befell the Persian fleet, Xerxes commanded a passage for his galleys to be cut through mount Athos. " He also ordered a bridge of boats to be laid across the Hellespont for the passage of his troops into Europe. Having made the necessary preparations, the Persian monarch began his" march against Greece, B. C. 4dO, with a land army of one mil- lion eight hundred thousand men. His fleet consisted of twelve hundred and seven large ships, and three thousand galleys and transports, which contained five hundred and seventeen thousand six hunclred and ten men ; so that the whole body of forces amounted to two millions three hundred and seventeen thousand six hun- dred and ten. This number was so much in- creased on the march by such nations as made their submissions, that Xerxes arrived at Ther- mopylte with two millions six hundred and forty one thousand six hundred and ten men, besides servants, eunuchs, women. &c. The Grecian fleet was victorious over that of Persia in some partial engagements, and after- wards completely at the battle of Salamis, irf which the dispersion was so general, and the defeat so decisive, that Xerxes, afraid of not being able to preserve a single vessel to carry him from Europe, made an expeditious retreat, and was conveyed into Asia in a small boat. This success inspired the other Greeks with new courage ; and they joined the Athenians and Lacedaemonians in harassing the Persians on all sides. The land-army ventured a decis- ive battle at PlaUea in Bosotia, B. C., 479, where, out of three hundred thousand, only three thou- sand Persians escaped. The dissolute conduct of Xerxes rendered him obnoxious to his sub- jects ; and he was murdered by his chief favo- rite, Artabanus, who persuaded* Artaxerxes, the king's third son, that Darius, his eldest brother, hadbeen guilty of the crime of parricide. Ar- taxerxes, therefore, killed Darius, and finding that Artabanus entertained a design against him, he ordered him to be put to death, B. C. 465. The new monarch having thus removed one formidable competitor, endeavored to secure his crown against the attempts of his brother, Hystaspes. who held the government of Bactria. Artaxerxes attacked and defeated the adherents of Artabanus. He then sent an army into Bac- tria, which had declared in favor of Hystaspes ; and though victory was doubtful in the first battle. Artaxerxes was successful in the second ; and firmly established himself in the empire. Artaxerxes died in peace, and left the succession to Xerxes. B.C. 424, the only son he had by his queen, though by his concubines he had seven- teen, among whom were Sogdianus, Ochus, and Arsites. Xerxes II had assumed the diadem only forty-five days, when, being inebriated at a pub- lic entertainment, Sogdianus seized an oppor- tunity to assassinate him. The regicide was scarcely seated on the throne, when (Jehus hav- ing declared his intention of revenging the mur- der of Xerxes, Sogdianus was deserted by all his subjects, and finally doomed to expiate his crimes by a cruel death. Ochus, being now invested with supreme au- thority, assumed the name of Darius, and is mentioned by historians under the appellation of Darius Kothus, or Darius the bastard. In this reign, the Egyptians shook oft* the Persian yoke-; and the Medes also revolted. Darius, having settled the affairs of the rebel- lious provinces, bestowed the supreme command of Asia Minor on his youngest son, Cyrus, B. C. 407, who was ordered to assist the Lacedae- monians against the Athenians. This order, however, soon exposed the weakness of the king's politics; for the Lacedaemonians, after conquering the Athenians, invaded the Persian provinces in Asia. Darius died, B. C. 404, and left the imperial diadem to his son, Arsaces, who assumed the name of Artaxerxes, and received the appella- tion of Mnemon, on account of his extraordinary CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PER 394 PER memory. Cyrus resolved to exert all his abil- ities to drive his brother from the throne, and having procured a number of Grecian auxilia- ries, marched his troops to the plains of Cunaxa, in the province of Babylon, where he found Ar- taxerxes, at the head of nine hundred thousand men, ready for battle. A sanguinary contest immediately commenc- ed ; and Cyrus, on seeing his brother, engaged him with such fury as seemed to change the battle into a single combat. The rebellious prince^ however, fell by the hands of the king and his guards. The ten thousand Greeks, under the conduct of Xenophon, effected that memorable retreat, which has always been con- sidered as a noble achievement among military operations. On the death of Darius, three of the princes, viz., Ariaspes, Ochus. ajid Arsames. became competitors for the crown. Ochus practised so effectually on the credu- lity of Ariaspes. that he poisoned himself; and Arsames was assassinated by the son of Tiriba- zus. These acts of cruelty overwhelmed Arta- xerxes with such insupportable grief that he died. Ochus concealed the death of the king, and assumed the administration of government in the name of Artaxerxes. He caused himself, in the name of the king, to be declared his suc- cessor ; and after ten months, he published the death of Artaxerxes. An insurrection in sev- eral of the provinces immediately followed ; .but the leaders of the confederacy disagreeing among themselves, the rebellion terminated without any effusion of blood. Ochus no sooner possessed absolute authority, than he began to fill his capital and the whole empire with carnage and misery. He caused Ocha, his own sister and mother-in-law, to be buried alive ; shut up one of his uncles, with a hundred of his sons and grand-sons, in a court of the palace, where they were massacred by a body of archers ; and put all the branches of the royal family to death. This insupportable tyranny occasioned another rebellion, which was not quelled without much difficulty. This revolt was scarcely terminated, when the Sidonians and other natives of Pho3- nicia joined the Cypriots and Egyptians in a confederacy against Persia. Ochus effected the reduction of Sidon, and compelled all the other cities to make submis- sions. He also reduced the city of Jericho, and having concluded a peace with the kin^s of Cyprus, he led his victorious troops into Egypt which he completely subdued. Ochus passed his time amidst every species of luxury and voluptuousness. Bagoas, an Egyptian eunuch, prevailed on the king's physician to administer a strong poi- son, instead of medicine, to his royal benefactor. Having thus accomplished his purpose, he caused the flesh of the king to be cut in pieces and thrown to dogs and cats. He then placed on the throne Arses, the youngest prince, and condemned all the rest to death. But Arses, sensible of the slavery in which he was held, concerted measures to free himself from it. Bagoas, therefore, effected his destruc- tion in the second year of his reign, 15. C. 33ti, and bestowed the imperial diadem on Darius Codomanus, who was a descendant of Darius Nothus, and at that time governor of Armenia. This prince, however, had not long enjoyed the sovereignty, when the ambitious eunuch determined to remove him, and with this design provided a deleterious potion ; but Darius, being apprised of his danger, compelled Bajjoas to drink the poison, and thus established himself on the throne. In the second year of this reiirn, Alexander, king of Macedon, crossed the Hellespont at the head of a well-disciplined army, with the design of revenging the injuries which Greece had re- ceived from the Persians during three hundred years. On his arrival at the Gninicus, he found on the opposite bank a numerous Persian army, amounting to 100,000 foot, and 10.01)0 horse. Though Alexander had not more than 30,000 foot, and 5,000 horse, he crossed the Granicua at the head of his cavalry, and attacked with impetuosity the whole Persian force. An ob- stinate conflict ensued, in which the Persians were defeated with the loss of x!,>,!>00 foot and 2,000 horse, and in which Alexander exposed his life to the most imminent danger. The invasion having assumed a serious as- pect, Darius led his army into Cilicia. B. C. 333, and advanced to the cit3 r of Issus, near which Alexander drew up his troops on an ad- vantageous ground. Darius retreated precipi- talelv^to the adjoining mountains, where he mounted a hosse, and continued his flight. Al- exander was now entire master of the field, and of the Persian camp, in which the mother, wife, and son of Darius, wero t.iken prisoners. In 331, B. C., the Persian monarch, having assembled a numerous army, prepircd f.>r bat- tle in a large plain near th-- city of Ar'uela, on the confines of Persia. The Persians com- menced tiie attack, but were totally routed, and HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. PER 395 PER Darius was again compelled to seek safety in flight. Darius, who had sought an asylum at Ecbatana, in Media, had collected another army, with which he intended to make a last effort, B. C. 330. He was, however, prevented by Bessus, governor of Bactria, and Nabarzanes, a Persian nobleman, who entered into a conspi- racy against him, and binding him with golden chains, shut him up in a covered cart, and re- treated precipitately towards Bactria. They intended, if Alexander pursued them, to deliver up the object of his resentment ; or, if they es- caped the Macedonian conqueror, to murder Darius, and usurping the imperial diadem, to renew the war. When Alexander was informed of the base designs of Bessus and Nabarzanes, he advanced with a small body of light-armed cavalry ; and, as soon as the king 01 Macedon came within sight of the enemy, they immediately took to flight, and having discharged their darts at the unfortunate Persian monarch, left him welter- ing in his blood. Thus died Darius, in the fif- tieth year of his age, and sixth of his reign, and with him ended the Persian empire, after it had existed 206 years. After the Persians had been subject to the Parthians for the space of 475 years, Artaxares, a Persian of mean descent and spurious birth, excited a revolt among his countrymen ; and, the reigning monarch "being dethroned and put to death, the Persian empire was restored. The emperor Alexander Severus, attacked and de- feated Artaxares, and wrested from him several of his provinces. Artaxares, however, recov- ered these provinces, and, after swaying the sceptre with great reputation for the space of twelve years, died in peace. He was succeeded by his son Sapor, A. D. 242, who was equally famous for his personal strength and mental abilities, but who was of a fierce, cruel, and untractable disposition. Sapor left his kingdom to his son Hormisdas, who, refusing to interfere in the affairs of the Romans, died in peace, A. D. 273, after a reign of one year and ten days. His son Vararanes I, enjoyed the regal dignity three years, without being disturbed by the Ro- mans,"or attempting to extend 'the limits of his empire. Vararanes II meditated an invasion of the Roman provinces, A. D. 277, but on the ap- proach of the Emperor Probus, he abandoned his design, and sued for peace. Vararanes III was denominated Segansaa, or king of the Segans, and was succeeded by Narses, A. D. 204, a prince of great abilities and resolution. He died in the seventh year of his reign, and was succeeded by Misdates, whose actions were not sufficiently interesting to claim the attention of posterity. Sapor II his successor, A. D. 308, was a zealous assertor of the dignity of the Persian crown, and endeavored to unite all the provinces of the ancient empire under his authority. This restless and ambitious monarch was succeeded by Artaxerxes, A. D. 380, who lived in amity with the Romans, and enjoyed the regal dignity about four years. Vararanes IV, succeeded his father Sapores, and governed his dominions eleven years. Is- digertes was deservedly celebrated for his vir- tuous disposition, and, at the death of the Em- peror Arcadius, A. D. 401, was intrusted with the care of his son Theodosius II, and the Ro- man empire. He was succeeded by his son Vararanes V, A. D. 421. In his reign, the indiscreet zeal of a Christian, who set fire to a Persian temple, renewed the war with the Romans. The Per- sian monarch obtained the assistance of the Sa- racens, and, notwithstanding the defeats which he experienced from the Romans, he rendered even victory disadvantageous to the enemy. Vararanes VI, was next invested with the diadem, A. D. 442, which he wore for seventeen years and four months. His son and successor. Peroses, being incensed against the Euthalites or White Huns, marched an army into their country ; but the Euthalites cutting off his re- treat, obliged him to swear that he would never more invade them. Peroses, however, assem- bled his forces, and marched a second time to- wards the northern frontiers ; but, the Euthalites rushing unexpectedly upon him, slew and took captive most of his army, and put him to death. The nobles bestowed the crown on his brother Valens, who, at the expiration of four years, fell a victim to the oppressive cares of government. He was succeeded by Cavades, the son of Pe- roses, A. D. 486. On the death of Cavades, his son Chosroes ascended the throne, A. D. 531 The Persian monarch, however, was almost constantly engaged in hostilities with the east- ern empire ; but, the Romans having given him a complete defeat, he was so deeply affected with his ill success, that he sickened and died. He was succeeded by his son Hormisdas, A. D. 579. Hormisdas was dethroned by a person of the royal blood, named Bindoes, who had been loaded with chains for a slight offence. The CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PER 396 PER unfortunate monarch being heard in his own defence, recommended his younger son Hor- misdas as his successor, in preference to his elder son Chosroes. The assembly, however, at the instigation of Bindoes, caused his son Hormisdas, and the prince's mother, to be cut in pieces ; and ordered the eyes of the deposed monarch to be put out with a hot iron. Chosroes II, ascended the throne, A. D. 592. On the death of the Emperor Mauritius, he took up arms against the Romans, A. D. 605, and such was his success, that, in nine years, he plundered the provinces of Syria, Mesopotamia, Phoenicia, Armenia, Cappadocia, Galacia, Paph- lagonia, and all the country as far as Chalcedon. He also ravaged Judea ; pillaged the city of m ; and sold ninety Christi Jerusale tians to the ety Jews, who put them all to death. These extra ordinary conquests induced him to make an expedition into Egypt; he reduced Alexandria and all the country toward Libya, and added the empire of Africa to that of Asia. He was defeated in several battles, and finally murdered in a dungeon by command of his own son. Siroes having ascended the throne of Per- sia, A. D. 626, concluded a treaty of perpetual peace with Heraclius ; but, he was murdered by one of his generals, after twelve months reign. His son, Ardeser, was next invested with the government, but was assassinated in the seventh month of his reign by Sarbas, com- mander-in-chief of the Persian forces, who seiz- ed the diadem for himself. A civil war, how- ever, crushed the ambitious projects of the usurper, and elevated to the throne Isdi^ertes II. A. D. 630. The reign of this prince was short and un- happy. He defended his country with becom- ing resolution against the Saracens, till the spirits of his subjects were entirely broken by- repeated defeats. At last he was slain in bat- tle ; and, in him ended the royal line of Artax- ares. With his death terminated the Persian empire, which had maintained a splendid exist- ence for upwards of 400 years. The founder of the dynasty of Shahs in Per- sfa, was Isniael, surnamed Sophi, who was de- scended in the direct male line from Ali, the son-in-law of Mohammed. In 1500 there was a great number of the sectaries of Alt among the Mohammedan? of Asia. Ismael assembled about 700, who were attached to his family ; and attacking his father's murderer, slew him in battle, and took possession of his dominions. He was a monster of inhumanity and cruelty, and reigned 23 years ; during which period be- gan the struggle for power between the Persians and the Turks. Ismael was succeeded by his son Tahmasp, A. D. 1523. He_was succeeded by Ismael II, his son, A. D. 1575. Mohammed, the brother and successor of Ismael, had spent his life in privacy, wholly devoted to religious duties ; and assumed the sceptre, A. D. 1577. Mohammed left three sons, the two eldest of whom, Hasiizeh and Ismael, merely appeared upon the throne, about 15S4, and are. scarcely numbered among the emperordw^ By the contrivance of a vizier, named Kouli Khan, Shah Abbas prosecuted the war against the Turks, which he conducted in person, with great success and glory ; retook 'fauna, and defeated his enemies in several engagements. In his dying moments, he sent for four of the chief lords of his council to his bed side, and told them that it was his will that his grandson, Mirza, should succeed him, and assume the name of his father. After assembling all the lords in the neighborhood of Ispahan, they crowned him A. D. 1023. On his accession to the throne, he assumed the name of 6afi. This prince was a second Nero, who, bearing in his countenance every mark of clemency and good- ness cherished in his heart the vicious inclina- tions of a savage and inexorable tyrant. He reigned 13 years, and left a son named Abbas, who succeeded him, and whom his father had ordered to be deprived of sight; but the com- passion of the executioner had spared him. Under Abbas II, A. D. KJ42, intoxication, passion, and an uncontrollable love of power, rendered life not more secure than under his brutal father. On the death of Abbas, his el- dest son Safi was immediately saluted emperor, A. D. 1660, but afterwards assumed the name of Solyman. Solyman died a natural death, after a "reign of ') years, A. D. 1111)4 ; and was succeeded by his son Shah Husseyn. the most merciful and most unfortunate prince of his race. History furnishes few instances of a dis- solution so entire as that of the kindom of Per- sia, under the feeble and inactive Hussovii. At length, after a series of disasters. Huseeyn was obliged to abdicate the tliron:- t> Mahmoud. Before this ceremony took place, the king tra- velled through the p'rini'ipal sl-vots of Ispahan on foot, deploring the misfortunes of his reign, and consoling the people who surrounded him, by endeavoring to excite in them hopes of bet- ter fortune under a new government. In dispossessing Husseyn, A. D. 172:}, Mah- moud avenged himself on all those, who, by HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL PER 397 PET negligence, ignorance, parly-spirit, cowardice, or treason, had contributed to the ruin of the state. The conduct of Mahmoud tended to ex- cite the odium of his subjects ; and he saw his projects defeated, and himself beginning to be treated with general hatred. In order to avert these misfortunes, which he imputed to the an- ger of heaven, he imposed on himself a sort of penance, which continued 15 days, and which had the effect of completely deranging his senses. His captains, seeing him at the point of death, turned their thoughts on Ashraf, who refused the crown, except the head of his cousin Mah- moud should be brought to him. Mahmoud, therefore, who could not have lived many hours longer, was put to death ; and the destroyer of the dynasty of the Shahs enjoy- ed his triumph only two years. Ashraf ordered all the guards, ministers, and confidants of Mah- moud, to be executed ; and did not spare even those who had placed him on the throne. About this time, Kouli Khan became distin- guished ; and having tendered his services to Tahmasp, in three campaigns he made him master of all the possessions of the Afghans. Ashraf offered to abdicate the throne, and to restore the treasures which he had inherited after Mahmoud's death ; but Kouli Khan, refus- ing to listen to any terms of accommodation, pursued his enemy even to death, and with him ended the transitory dynasty of the Afghans. Tahmasp was reestablished on the throne by the power of Kouli Khan, A. D. 1730 ; who, in a short time deposed him, and introduced into his place his infant son, by the name of Abbas III. The infant emperor dying within six months, Kouli Khan was elected to the vacant throne ; and, on his accession, took the name of Nadir Shah. The reign of this prince was marked with glory and conquest. His government was des- potic and tyrannical ; and he formed the design of a general massacre of the principal Persians. He conquered Usbec Tartary ; but was not so successful against the Daghistan Tartars. He beat the Turks in several engagements, but was unable to take Bagdad. His conduct became so intolerable, thalThe was assassinated in his own tent, in the year ] 747. Many pretenders, upon his death, started up; but the fortunate candidate was Kerim Khan, who was crowned at Tauris. in 1763. His death gave rise to another disputed succession, with civil wars, which lasted 14 years. At length, Aga Mohammed raised himself to the sove- reignty. After a short reign he died, and trans- mitted the throne to his nephew, who assumed the title of Feth Ali Shah, an accomplished prince; under whose sway, Persia may for a time enjoy some tranquillity. PERTH, a city of Scotland, capital of Perth- shire, on the Tay, 39 miles north of Edinburgh, containing 20.000 inhabitants. It is supposed to have been founded by Agricola the Roman general during his invasion of Scotland. On Feb. 21, 1437, king James I was murdered here in a monastery, by Robert Graham. In 1644 Montrose seized on Perth, after the battle of Tibbermier : it was likewise the head-quarters of the Earl of Mar and the Pretender, in 1715. PERU, are public of South America, for- merly a viceroyalty, containing 500,000 square miles, and 1,800,000 inhabitants. It is rich in mineral and vegetable productions. The popu- lation is composed of European Spaniards, Cre- oles, Mestizoes, Indians, and mulattoes. It was discovered by Pizarro, in 1524. The battle of Caxamarca, on the 10th of November, 1532, de- cided the fate of Peru; and Atahualpa, the captive monarch, was treacherously and inhu- manly put to death by the cruel and avaricious Spaniards. Pizarro, after having defeated Paula Inca, the brother of Atahualpa, entered Cusco, the capital. Quito was next taken. In 1533, Pizarro founded the city of Lima, and employed himself in establishing a form of government. While thus employed, a newenejny started up, the ambitious Almagro ; who, in a decisive battle fought near Cusco, was taken prisoner and beheaded. Two years afterwards, Pizarro was assassinated, on the 26th of June, 1541. The viceroyalty of Peru, being transmitted down from one governor to another, in a line directed more by the fortunes of war, and the vicissitudes of events, than by any regular plan of succession, terminated in June, 1621, by the capture of Lima ; and, by a declaration pub- lished in the next month, the independence of Peru was declared to be the wish of the people- PETER the Great, czar of Russia, was the son of Alexis Michaelowitz> and born May 30, 1672. On the decease of his half-brother, Feo- dor, in 1662, Peter was proclaimed czar, in con- junction with John, his eldest brother, who died in 1696, and left him in full possession of the empire. While a youth, he conceived those projects of improvement which have stamped immortality upon his name. He entered into the military life, and performed the duties of a common soldier, till, by rising gradually from the ranks to the command of a body of troops, he exhibited the duty of obedience, and the ne CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PET 398 PET cessity of discipline, in his own example. He visited Holland under a disguised name, in 1698. Here he worked as a common laborer in the dnck-yard, and then went to England. While thus engaged, the news of an insurrec- tion, exciuju by the Princess Sophia, obliged h!tn to return to Russia, where he severely punished the conspirators, and confined his sis- ter in a nunnery. In 1700 he declared war against Charles XII, of Sweden, and though unsuccessful at first, he afterwards gained such advantages as induced him to build a fortress on the Baltic, called, after him, Petersburg. In 1709, the czar obtained the victory of Pultowa, after which he conquered Livonia, Ingria, Fin- land, and part of Pomerania. But he had a narrow escape, when engaged in a contest with the Turks, who surrounded his army on the banks of the Pruth : from which perilous state he was extricated by the Empress Catharine, who entered into a treaty of peace with the grand vizier. In 1716, the czar and his consort visited Denmark and Holland, where he left Catharine while he made a journey to Paris. He died of a strangury, Jan. $8, 172o, and was succeeded by the czarina Catharine. A colossal statue was erected to his memory at St. Petersburg, by Catharine second. The huge block of granite which forms its pedestal, and which weighs upwards of fifteen tons, was conveyed from a marsh at a distance of four English miles from St. Petersburg, and two from the sea. On approaching near to the rock, the simple inscription fixed on it in bronze letters, " Petro Primo, Cat.herina Secunda, MDCCLXXXII," meets the eye. The same inscription in the Russian language appears on the opposite side. The area is enclosed within a handsome railing placed between granite pillars. " The idea," says Dr. Granville, " of Falco- net, the French architect, commissioned to erect an equestrian statue of the extraordinary man at whose command a few scattered huts of fisher- men were converted into palaces, was to repre- sent the hero as conquering, by enterprise and personal courage, difficulties almost insur- mountable. This the artist imagined might be properly represented by placing'Peteron a fiery steed, which he is supposed to have taught by skill, management and perseverance, to rush up a steep and precipitous rock, to the very brink of a precipice, over which the animal and the imperial rider pause without fear, and in an attitude of triumph. The horse rears with his fore feet in the air, and seems to be impatient of restraint, while the sovereign, turned towards the island, surveys with calm and serene coun- tenance his capital rising out of the waters, over which he extends the hand of protection. " The bold manner in which the group has been made to rest on the hind legs of the horse only, is not more surprising than the skill with which advantage has been taken of the allego- rical figure of the serpent of envy spurned by the horse, to assist in upholding so gigantic a mass. This monument of bronze is said to have been cast at a single jet. The height of the fig- ure of the emperor is eleven feet; that of the horse seventeen feet ; the general weight of the metal in the group is equal to 36,636 Eng- lish pounds. " 1 heard a venerable Russian nobleman, who was living at St. Petersburg when this monu- ment was in progress, relate, that as soon as the artist had formed his conception of the design, he communicated it to the Empress, together with the impossibility of representing to nature so striking a position of man and animal, with- out having before his eyes a horse and rider in the attitude he had devised. General Melessi- no, an officer having the reputation of being the most expert aa well as the boldest rider ol the day, to whom the difficulties of the artist were made known, offered to ride daily one of Count Alexis Orloff's best Arabians, to the summit of a steep artificial mound formed for the purpose; accustoming the horse to gallop up to it, and to halt suddenly, with his fore legs raised, pawing the air over the brink of a precipice. This dan- gerous experiment was carried into effect by the general for some days, in the presence of seve- ral spectators and of Falconet, who sketched the various movements and parts of the group from day to day, and was thus enabled to pro- duce perhaps the finest, certainly the most cor- rect statue of the kind in Europe." PETKR the Hermit, a French enthusiast of the 11 th century, who made a pilgrimage to Palestine, and, on his return to Europe, preach- ed up the crusade, for the recovery of the holy city from the infidels. His success was such as might have been expected in an ignorant age. He passed through Hungary with an immense crowd of followers, thousands of whom perished miserably. Peter, however, entered Syria, and displayed great bravery at the taking of Jerusa- lem. "He then returned to France, where lie died, in the abbey'of Noirmoutier. of which he was the founder. PETERS, Richard, was born near Philadel- phia, Aug. 522, 17-14, and was graduated at the HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. PHI 399 PHI University of Pennsylvania. He studied law, and, having served a short time, as captain in the revolutionary army, he was transferred to the board of war where his services were pub- licly acknowledged. For thirty-six years he held the station of judge of the District Court of Pennsylvania. He made many agricultural experiments, most of which were highly suc- cessful. He was particularly distinguished for a fertile fancy, and great wit, and many of his bon mots bid fair to be long remembered. One day, arriving at a tavern, he perceived the entrance occupied by two persons a very fat and a very lean man. After waiting for a long time in hopes of their making way for him, he dashed in between them, exclaiming ; " In I go, through thick and thin ! " His celebrity for wit commenced at an early age. PETRARC A, Francesco, or, as he is gener- ally termed by English writers, Petrarch, was an Italian poet and scholar, who adorned the 14th century. He was born at Arezzo in Tus- cany, July 4, 13C4. He studied law, and the- ology, entering into the ecclesiastical state in 1320. His platonic affection for the beautiful Laura led him to write amatory sonnets in his native tongue, which tributes of affection were continued after the death of the virtuous lady who inspired them. Petrarch died at Arqua, near Padua, July 18, 1374. PHILADELPHIA, is situated in a county of the same name, in the state of Pennsylvania, about five miles from the junction of the Dela- ware and Schuylkill rivers. The city was founded by William Penn in 1G82. The mem- bers of the first continental congress assembled here Sept. 5, 1774. In 1777it was in the hands of the British from Sept. 26 until the 18th of June. The population of Philadelphia, accord- ing to the last census, was 205,850. It is one of the most regular cities in the world, being handsomely built of brick, and is a place ot great trade and opulence, and, with regard to manufactures surpasses ail other cities in the United States. It contains 100 houses of pub- lic worship, many other public buildings, and numerous literary and humane institutions. PHILIP I king of France, born in 1003, was the son of Henry I crowned at Rheims, 1059. His jealousy against William the Conqueror laid the foundations of the wars between Eng- land and France. He died at Milan, July >, 1 108, having reigned 49 years. PHILIP II, king of France, surnamed Au- gustus, was born August 22, 1165. He began to reign in 1180. He made war with the Eng- 34* lish; but some time after, he undertook the crusade in 1190. He took Acre, defeated sev- enteen thousand Saracens, and returned about Christmas, 1191. In 1214, the Emperor Otho IV, a Count of Flanders, and several confed- erate princes raised an army of 150,000 men against him, when the king engaged them at Bovines, and gained the victory. The king fought with great intrepidity at Bovines, and had his horse killed under him. He died at Mante upon the Seine, July 14, J 223, after a reign of 42 years. PHILIP III, king of France, surnamed the Hardy, was the son of St. Louis. Having con quered the Saracens, he returned to France, where he was crowned in 1271. Philip went in person against the Arragoaese, and took Gi- rone, and on his return died ola malignant fever at Perpignan in the 16th year of his reign, aged PHILIP IV, king of France, surnamed the Fair, as also le Grand, born at Fontainebleau in 12G8, and succeeded his father Philip 111 in 1285. The ill conduct of James of Castillon, Earl of St. Paul, caused a sedition at Bruges. The king sent an army to reduce it, under the command of Robert earl of Artois ; but they were defeated at the battle of Courtray in 1302. Philip recovered himself in some measure again, especially on the 18th of August 1304, in the memorable battle at Mons in Puelle, where above 25,000 Flemings were slain. At length, peace was made in 1305. Philip died at Fon- tainbleau, in 1314, after a reign of 29 years. PHILIP V, king of France, surnamed the Long, youngest son to Philip the Fair, succeed- ed to the crown in 1317, but died after a reign of five years. He renewed his alliance with the Scots in 1318, and expelled the Jews out of his dominions. He died at Long-Champ, aged 2d years. PHILIP VI. king of France, succeeded in 1328. Having a dispute with Edward of Eng- land, war broke out in 1338. Next year Cam- bray was besieged by the English. The king had taken the part of Charles de Blois, his nephew, and had received homage for Britany, which John de Montfort pretended to; but the latter was supported by king Edward, who made a descent into Normandy, took Caen, and gained the victory at Cressy, in which 11 French princes, 80 barons, 1200 knights, and 30,000 soldiers were slain. The English, flushed with this victory, took Calais, which continued in their hands 210 years, till 1558. Philip VI died at Nogent le Potrou, 1350, aged 57, in the 23d CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PHI 400 PHI year of his reign. He had great courage and resolution ; but was blamed 1'or introducing the imposition upon salt. PHILIP II, of Spain, born in 1527, was son of the Em""ror Charles V, and Isabel of Portu- gal. He made a league with the English, and sent 40.000 men into Picardy, who gained a victory over 18,000 French at St. Quintin in 1557. This misfortune was repaired by the taking of Calais, Thionville and Dunkirk ; and was afterwards followed by a peace made at Chateau Cambresis in 1559. In 1580, Philip made himself master of the kingdom of Portu- gal ; and his troops contributed to the defeat of the Turks at the battle of Lepanto. He also reduced the Moors who revolted against him in 1561. He subdued Pignon or Peunon de Velez in Africa, and me isles which from him are called, the Philippine Islands. After this, Philip Bent out a fleet of above fourscore ships, which was called, the Invincible Armada, against Queen Elizabeth of England. They sailed from Lisbon, May 29, 1588, and were destroyed partly by storms, and partly by the valor of the English. This loss is said to have amounted to 10.000 men and GO ships ; but Philip received the news of it without the least discomposure. On the news being communicated to him, he answered calmly, that he thanked God, that he was able to rig out such another. Philip died at the EscuriaT, Sept. 13, 1598, aged 71. PHILli' 111, of Spain, born at Madrid, 1578, succeeded his father Philip II, in 151)8, reform- ed the courts of judicature, expelled the Moors out of Spain, and made a peace in the Low Countries, and afterwards lived in repose. He died on the 3lst of March 1(521, in the 43d year of his age, and 23d of his reign. PHILIP of Macedon, son of Argneus. suc- ceeded his father and reigned 38 years, B. C. 640. The second of that name was the fourth son of Amyntas, king of Macedonia. He was sent to Thebes as an hostage by his father, where he learnt the art of war under Eparni- nondas, and studied with the greatest care the manners and the pursuits of the Greeks. He was recalled to Macedonia, and ascended the throne. The neighboring nations ridiculing the youth and inexperience of the new king of Macedonia, appeared in arms ; but Philip soon convinced them of their error. Unable to meet them as yet in the field of battle, ho suspended their fury by presents, and soon turned his arms against Amphipolis, a colony tributary to the Athenians. Amphipolis wae conquered, and added to the kingdom of Macedonia ; and Philip meditated no less than the destruction of a republic which had rendered itself so formidable to the rest of Greece, and had even claimed submission from the princes of Macedonia. He made himself master of a Thracian colony, to which he gave the name of Philippi. In the midst of hss political prosperity, Philip did not neglect the honor of his family. Every thing seemed now to conspire to his aggrandize- ment; and historians have observed, that Philip received in one day the intelligence of three things which could gratifv the most unbounded ambition, and flatter the "hopes of the most as- piring monarch. the birth of a son, an honor- able crown at the Olympic games, and a victory over the barbarians of lllyricum. But all these increased rather than satiated his ambition ; he declared his inimical senti- ments against the power of Athens, and the in- dependence of all Greece, by laying siege to Olynthus, a place which, on account of its situ- ation and consequence, was most advantageous to the intrigues of every Macedonian prince. The Athenians sent 17 vessels and 2,000 men to the assistance of Olynthus, but the money of Philip prevailed over all their efforts. The greatest part of the citizens suffered themselves to be bribed bv the Macedonian gold, and Olyn- thus surrendered to the enemy, and was instant- ly reduced to ruins. In his" attempts to make himself master of Enbcea, Philip was unsuccess- ful ; and Phocion, who despised his gold, obliged him to evacuate an island whose inhabitants were as insensible to the charms of money, as they were unmoved at the horrors of war, and the bold efforts of a vigilant enemy. From Eubo3a he turned his arms against the Scythi- ans, but the advantages which he obtained over this indigent nation were inconsiderable. He next advanced far into Boeotia, and a gen- eral engagement was fought at Chtcronea. The fight was long and bloody, but Philip obtained the victory. At the battle of Chsronea the in- dependence of Greece was extinguished ; and Philip, unable to find new enemies in Europe, formed new enterprises, and meditated new conquests. He was appointed general of the Greeks against the Persians, and was called upon to re- venge those injuries which Greece had suffered from the invasions of Darius and of Xerxes. But. he wa stopped in the midst of his warlike preparations, being stabbed by Pausanias as he entered the theatre, at the celebration of the nuptials of his daughter Cleopatra. He was HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. PHO 401 PHO murdered in the 47th year of his age. and the 24th of his reign, 346 years before the Chris- ' PHILIP, king, Sachem of Pokanoket, was the youngest son of Massasoit. In 1G75, he commenced a war with the English, who suf- fered severely from his enmity. He was killed Aug. 12, 1670. PHILIPPINES, a group of islands in the Pa- cific ocean, 1200 in number. They were dis- covered by Magellan in 1521, and the first set- tlements were made by the Spaniards in 1570. Manilla is tiie capital of the Spanish posses- sions. The population is composed of Chinese, Spaniards, mestizoes, and natives, and amounts to about two and a half millions. These islands are fruitful and productive, but subject to rava- ges from hurricanes, earthquakes, and volcanic eruptions. PHOCION, an Athenian, celebrated for his virtues, private as well as public. He often checked the violent and inconsiderate measures of Demosthenes, and when the Athenians seemed eager to make war against Philip, king of Macedonia, 1'hocion observed that war should never be undertaken without the strongest and most certain expectations of success and victory. He was 45 times appointed governor of Athens, and no greater encomium can be passed upon his talents as a minister and statesman, than that he never solicited that high, though dangerous, office. It was through him that Greece was saved from an impending war, and he advised Alexander rather to turn his arms against Persia, than to shed the blood of the Greeks, who were either his allies or his subjects. JJut not totally to despise the favors of the monarch, he begged Alexander to restore to their liberty four slaves that were confined in the citadel of Sardis. When the Piraeus was taken, Phocion was accused of treason, and therefore, to avoid the public indignation, he fled for safety to Poly- perchon. Polvperchon sent him back to Athens, where he was" immediately condemned to drink the fatal poison. He received the indignities of the people with uncommon composure ; and when one of his friends lamented his fate, Pho- cion exclaimed, "This is no more than what I expected ; this treatment the most illustrious citizens of Athens have received before me." He died about 318 years before the Christian era. It has been observed of Phocion, that he never appeared elated in prosperity, or dejected in ad- versity ; he never betrayed pusillanimity by a tear, nor joy by a smile. His countenance was stern and unpleasant, but he never behaved with severity, his expressions were mild, and his re- bukes gentle. At the age of 80 he appeared at the head of the Athenian armies like the most active officer, and to his prudence and cool va- lor in every period of life his citizens acknow- ledged themselves much indebted. His merits were not buried in oblivion ; the Athenians re- pented of their ingratitude, and honored his memory by raising him statues, and putting to a cruel death his guilty accusers. PHOC1S, an ancient country of Greece, bounded N. by Thessaly. E. by Locris and Bceotia, S. by the Gulf of' Corinth, and VV. by Doris, and the country of the Ozolian Locrians. Phocis was rendered famous for a war which it maintained against some of the Grecian repub- lics, and which has received the name of the Phocian war. This celebrated war originated in the following circumstances : When Philip, king of Macedonia, had fomented divisions in Greece, and disturbed the peace of every repub- lic, the Greeks universally became discontented in their situation, and jealous of the prosperity of the neighboring states. The Amphictyons, who were the supreme rulers of Greece, and who at that time were subservient to the views of the Thebans, the inveterate enemies of the Phocians. showed the same spirit, and like the rest of their country.- men, were actuated by the same jealousy and ambition. As the supporters of religion, they accused the Phocians of impiety for ploughing a small portion of land which belonged to the god of Delphi. They immediately commanded, that the sacred field should be laid waste, and that the Phocians, to expiate their crime, should pay a heavy fine to the community. The inability of the Phocians to pav the fine, and that of the Amphictyons to enforce their commands by violence, gave rise to new events. The people of Phocis resolved to oppose the Amphyctvonic council by force of arms. Dur- ing two years hostilities were carried on be- tween the Phocians and their enemies, the The- bans and the people of Locris, but no decisive battles were fought. Philip of Macedonia, who had assisted the Thebans, was obliged to retire from the field with dishonor, but a more successful battle was fought near Magnesia, and the monarch, by crowning the head of his soldiers with laurel, arid telling them that they fought in the cause of Delphi and heaven, obtained a complete vic- tory. This fatal defeat, however, did not ruin the Phocians : Phayllus, took the command of CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PIC 402 PIN their armies, and doubling the pay of his sol- diers, lie increased his forces by the addition of 9,000 men from Athens, Lacedasmon, and Achaia. But all this numerous force at last proved in- effectual, the treasures of the temple of Delphi, which had long defrayed the expenses of the war, began to fail, dissensions arose among the ringleaders of Phocis, and when Philip had crossed the Straits of Thermopylae, the Phocians, relying on his generosity, claimed his protec- tion, and implored him to plead their cause be- fore the Amphictyonic council. His feeble in- tercession was not attended with success, and the Tiiebans, the Locrians, and the Thessalians, who then composed the Amphictyonic council, unanimously decreed, that the Phocians should be deprived of the privilege of sending members among the Amphictyons. The Phocians, ten years after they had un- dertaken the sacred war, saw their country laid desolate, their walls demolished, and their cities in ruins, by the wanton jealousy of their ene- mies, and the inflexible cruelty of the Macedo- nian soldiers. B.C. 348. They were not, how- ever, long under this disgraceful sentence, their well known valor and courage recommended them to favor, and they gradually regained their influence and consequence by the protection of the Athenians, and the favors of Philip. PHCENICE, or Phoenicia, a couniry of Asia, at the east of the Mediterranean, whose bound- aries have been different in different ages. Some suppose that the names of Phoenicia, Syria, and Palestine, are indiscriminately used for one and the same country. Phoenicia, according ti Ptol- emy, extended on the north as far as the Eleu- therus, a small river which falls into the Medi- terranean sea, a little below the island of Ara- dus, and it had Pelusium, or the territories of Egypt, as its more southern boundary, and Syria on the east. Sidon and Tyre were the capital towns of the country. The inhabitants planted colonies on the shores of the Mediterranean, particularly Carthage, Hippo, Marseilles, and Utica; and their manufactures acquired such a superiority over those of other nations, that among the ancients, whatever was elegant, great, or pleasing, either in apparel, or domes- tic utensils, received the epithet of Sidtmian. The Phoenicians were originally governed by kings. They were subdued by the Persians, and afterwards by Alexander, and remained tributary to his successors and to the Romans. P1CHEGRU, Charles, a French general, was born at Arbois, in 1701. in Franchecomte. His parentage was mean, but he received a good education under the monks in his native town ; after which he entered into the army, and be- came a serjeant. In the revolution he was ele- vated to the rank of a general, and in 1793 gained a victory over the combined armies at Hagenau ; in consequence of which he succeed- ed to the command of the army of the north. His most celebrated exploit was the subjugation of Holland, for which he was elected a member of the national assembly. At length he fell un- der the suspicion of being a royalist, and was banished to Cayenne, from whence he escaped to England. In the spring of 1804, he went to Paris, but Was soon seized, and thrown into a dungeon of the temple, where he probably strangled himself on the Cth of April of the same year. PICKENS, Andrew, a celebrated revolution- ary officer, born in Bucks county, Pennsylva- nia, Sept. 13, 1739. While he was still young, his residence was removed to South Carolina. He had fought against the French, and the Cherokees before the breaking out of the revo- lution. He again encountered the Indians in the revolutionary war. and acted a gallant part at the battle of Cowpens, as well as at. that of Eutaw springs. At the conclusion of the war, he served his country in various civil offices, and died, full of years and honors, Oct. 11, 1317. PICKERING, Timothy, colonel, was born at Salem, Mass.. July, 17, 1745, and was edu- cated at Harvard college. He served with dis- tinction during the revolutionary war; towards the close of which he succeeded general Greene nsqunrter-master-general, and contributed great- ly to the surrender of Corn wall is at Yorktown. In 1791 he was made postmaster-general, rind in 1794, secretary of war. In 1803 he was cho- sen senator to Congress from Massachusetts, and in 1811, when his term of office had expired, was made member of the executive council. During the last war with Great Britain, he was a member of the board of war for the defence of the state. From 1814 to 1817 he wasincon- frt>ss. Having retired to private life, he died Jan. 29. 1889 PIEDMONT, a principality of the Sardinian monarchy, containing an area of G,f>7.~> square miles, with 1,400.000 inhabitants. From 1798 ; I 302 it was attached to France. PINCKNEY, Charles Cotesworth, was born in South Carolina, but educated in England, where lie studied law. He returned to his na- tive state in J709. He held a colonel's com- mission during the revolutionary war, and aid HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. PIS 403 PIT ed in the defence of Charleston. After the con- clusion of the war he was appointed minister plenipotentiary to France, where his treatment by the French directory was insulting. He was ordered to leave the French territories. He died in 1825. PINCKNEY, Thomas, a major-general in the army of the United States, the brother of the preceding, was born in Charleston, South Caro- lina, Oct. 23, 1750. He studied law in Eng- land. During the revolution, he served with distinction, and at the conclusion of the war, was elected second governor of South Carolina. At the expiration of his term of office, he was appointed minister plenipotentiary to the court of St. James. After a few years lie was ap- pointed minister to the court of Spain. He re- turned to America in 1796, and was soon elect- ed to Congress. In the war of 1812 he received the commission of major-general. He died Nov. 2, 1828. PINKNEY, William, a distinguished Ameri- can lawyer, born at Annapolis, in Maryland, March 17. 1764. He three times went to Eu- rope as minister, and commanded a volunteer company during the war of 1812. receiving a severe wound in the battle of Bladensburg. He died Feb. 25, 1822. PISISTRATUS, an Athenian, 8 on of Hip- pocrates, who early distinguished himself by his valor in the field and by his address and elo- quence at home. After he had rendered him- self the favorite of the populace by his liberali- ty, and by the intrepidity with which he had fought their battles, particularly near Salamis, he resolved to make himself master of his coun- try. Pisistratus was not disheartened by the measures of his relation Solon, but he had re- course to artifice. The people too late per- ceived their credulity ; yet, though the tyrant was popular, two of the citizens, ^legacies and Lycurgus, conspired together against him, and by their means he was forcibly ejected from the city. The private dissensions of the friends of lib- erty proved favorable to the expelled tyrant, and Megacles, who was jealous of Lycurgus, secretly promised to restore Pisistratus to all his rights and privileges in Athens, if he would marry his daughter. Pisistratus consented, and by the assistance of his father-in-law, he was Boon enabled to expel Lycurgus, and to re-es- tablish himself. In the "midst of his triumph, however, Pisistratus felt himself unsupported, and some time after, when he repudiated the daughter of Megacles, he found that not only the citizens, but even his very troops were alien ated from him by the influence, the intrigues, and the bribery of his father-in-law. He fled from Athens, where he could no lon- ger maintain his power, and retired to Eubcea. Eleven years after, he was drawn from his ob- scure retreat by means of his son Hippias, and lie was a third time received by the people of Athens as their master and sovereign. He died about 527 years before the Christian era, after he had enjoyed the sovereign power at Athens for 33 years, including the years of his banish- ment. PITCAIRN'S ISLAND, in the South Pa- cific ocean, is 6 miles long and 3 broad, and re- markably fertile, possessing a fine climate. It was discovered by Carteret in 1767, but was then uninhabited. In 1789, however, it was settled by some of the mutineers of the English ship Bounty. The mutiny of the Bounty is of such importance as to claim our attention here. It is best described in the following extract from the voyage of captain Bligh : On the 27th of December it blew a severe storm of wind from the eastward, in the course of which we suffered greatly. One sea broke away the spare yards and spars out of the star- board mainchains ; another broke into the ship and stove all the boats. Several casks of beer that had been lashed on deck broke loose, and were washed overboard ; and it was not with- out great risk and difficulty that we were able to secure the boats from being washed away entirely. A great quantity of our bread was also damaged and rendered useless, for the sea had stove in our stern, and filled the cabin with water. On the 5th of January, 1788, we saw the island of Teneriffe about twelve leagues distant, and next day, being Sunday, came to an anchor in the road of Santa Cruz. There we took in the necessary supplies, and, having finished our business, sailed on the 10th. I now divided the people into three watches, and gave the charge of the third watch to Mr. Fletcher Christian, one of the mates. I have always considered this a desirable regulation when circumstances will admit of it, and I am persuaded that unbroken rest not only contri- butes much towards the health of the ship's company, but enables them more readily to ex- ert themselves in cases of sudden emergency. As I wished to proceed to Otaheite without stopping, I reduced the allowance of bread to two-thirds, and caused the water for drinking to be filtered through drip-slones, bought at Ten CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PIT 404 PIT eriffe for that purpose I now acquainted the ship's company of the object of the voyage, and gave assurances of certain promotion to every one whose endeavors should merit it. On Tuesday the 2tith of February, being in South latitude 2"t above six years old, had lost both their little fin- gers ; and several of the men, besides these, had parted with the middle finger of the right hand. The chiefs went off with me to dinner, and we carried on a brisk trade for yams ; we also got plantains and bread fruit. But the yams were in great abundance, and very fine and large. One of them weighed above forty-five pounds. Sailing canoes came, some of which contained not less than ninety passengers. Such a number of them gradually arrived Irom differ- ent islands, that it was impossible to get any thing done, the multitude became so great, and there was no chief of sufficient authority to command the whole. I therefore ordered a watering party, then employed, to come on board, and sailed on Sunday the '2t!th of April. We kept near the island of Kotoo all the af- ternoon of Monday, in hopes that some canoes would come off to the ship, but in this we were disappointed. The wind being northerly, we steered to the westward in the evening, to pass south of Tofoa ; and I gave directions for this course to be continued during the night. The master had the first watch, the gunner the mid- dle watch, and Mr. Christian the morning watch. This was the turn of duty for the night. Hitherto the voyage had advanced in a course of uninterrupted prosperity, and had been at- tended witJi circumstances equally pleasing and satisfactory. But a very different scene was now to be disclosed ; a conspiracy had been farmed, which was to render all our past labor K reductive only of misery and distress ; and it ad been concerted with so much secrecy and circumspection, that no one circumstance es- caped to betray the impending calamity. On the night of Monday, the watch was set as I have described. Just before sunrise, on Tuesday morning, while I was yet asleep, Mr. Christian, with the master at arms, gunner's mate, and Thomas Burkitt, seaman, came into my cabin, and seizing me, tied my hands with a cord behind my back ; threatening me with instant death if I spoke or made the least noise. I nevertheless called out as loud as I could, in hopes of assistance ; but the officers not of their party were already secured by sentinels at their doors. At my own cabin door were three men, besides the four within ; all except Christian had muskets and bayonets ; he had only a cut- lass. I was dragged out of bed, and forced on deck in my shirt, suffering great pain in the meantime from the tiirh'.nes-i with which my hands were tied. On demanding the reason of such violence, the only answer was abuse for not holding my tongue. The master, the gun* nor, surgeon." master's mate, and Nelson the gardener, were kept confined below, and tho fore hatchway was guarded bv sentinels. The boatswain and carpenter, and also the clerk, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. PIT 407 PIT were allowed to come on deck, where they saw me standing abaft the mizzen-mast, with my hands tied behind my back, under a guaid, with Christian at their head. The boatswain was then ordered to hoist out the launch, accom- panied by a threat, if he did not do it instantly, TO TAKE CARE OF HIMSELF. The boat being hoisted out, Mr. Hayward and Mr. Hallet, two of the midshipmen, and Mr. Samuel, the clerk, were ordered into it. I demanded the intention of giving this order, and endeavored to persuade the people near me not to persist in such acts of violence ; but it was to no effect; for the constant answer was, " Hold your tongue, sir, or you are dead this moment." The master had by this time sent, requesting that he might come on deck, which was permit- ted ; but he was soon ordered back again to his cabin. My exertions to turn the tide of affairs were continued; when Christian, changing the cutlass he held for a bayonet, and holding me by the cord about my hands with a strong gripe, threatened me with "immediate death if 1 would not be quiet; and the villains around me had their pieces cocked and bayonets fixed. Certain individuals were called on to get into the boat, and were hurried over the ship's side ; whence I concluded, that along with them I was to be set adrift. Another effort to bring about a change produced nothing but menaces of having my brains blown out. The boatswain and those seamen who were to be put into the boat, were allowed to collect twine, canvass, lines, sails, cordage, an eight- and-twenty gallon cask of water ; and Mr. ^ain- ael got 150 pounds of bread, with a small quan- tity of rum and wine : also a quadrant and com- pass : but he was prohibited, on pain of death, to touch any map or astronomical book, and any instrument, or any of my surveys and drawings. The mutineers having thus forced those of the seamen whom they wished to get rid of into the boat. Christian directed a dram to be served to each of his crew. I then unhappily saw that nothing could be done to recover the ship. The officers were next called on deck, and forced over the ship's side into the boat, while 1 was kept apart from every one abaft the mizzen-mast. Christian, armed with a bayonet, held the cord fastening my hands, and the guard around me stood with "their pieces cocked ; but on my daring the ungrateful wretches to fire, the}' un- cocked them. Isaac Martin, one of them, I saw had an inclination to assist me; and as he fed me with shaddock, my lips being quite parched, we explained each other's sentiments by looks. 35 But this was observed, and he Was removed He then got into the boat, attempting to leave the ship ; however, he was compelled to leturn. Some others were also kept contrary to their inclination. It appeared to me, that Christian was some time in doubt whether he should keep the car- penter or his mates. At length he determined on the latter, and the carpenter was ordered into the boat. He was permitted, though not with- out opposition, to take his tool chest. Mr. Samuel secured my journals and com- mission, with some important ship papers ; this he did with great resolution, though strictly watched. He attempted to save the time-keep- er, and a box with my surveys, drawings, and remarks, for fifteen years past, which were very numerous, when he was hurried away with " Damn your eyes, you aie well off to get what you have." Much altercation took place among the mu- tinous crew during the transaction of this whole affair. Some swore, " I'll de damned if he does not find his way home, if he gets any thing with him," meaning me ; and when the carpenter's chest was carrying away. " Damn my eyes, he will have a vessel built in a month; " while others ridiculed the helpless situation of the boat, which was very deep in the water, and had so little room for those who were in her. As for Christian, he seemed as if meditating destruction on himself and every one else. I asked for arms, but the mutineers laughed at me, and said ! was well acquainted with the people among whom I was going ; four cut- lasses, however, were thrown into the boat, af- ter we were veered astern. The officers and men being in the boat, they only waited for me, of which the master-at- arms informed Christian, who then said, " Come, Captain Bligh, your officers and men are now in the boat, and you must go with them ; if you attempt to make the least resistance, you will instantly be put to death;" and without further ceremony, I was forced over the side by a tribe of armed ruffians, where they untied my hands. Being in the boat, we were veered astern by a rope. A few pieces of pork were thrown to us, also the four cutlasses. The armorer and car- penter then called out to me to remember that they had no hand in the transaction. After having' been kept some time to make sport for these unfeeling wretches, and having under- gone much ridicule, we were at length cast adrift in the open ocean. Eighteen persons were with me in the boat, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PIT 408 PIT the master, acting surgeon, botanist, gunner, boats wauj, carpenter, master, and quarter-mas- ter's mate, two quarter-masters, the sail maker, two cooks, my clerk, the butcher, and a boy. There remained on board, Fletcher Christian, the master's male; Peter Hay wood, Edward Young, George Stewart, midshipmen ; the mas- ter-at-arms, gunner's mate, boatswain's mate, gardener, armorer, carpenter's mate, carpenter's crew, and fourteen seamen, being altogether the most able men of the ship's company. Having little or no wind, we rowed pretty fast towards the island of Tofoa, which bore north-east about ten leagues distant. The ship while in sight steered west-north-west, but this I considered only as a feint, for when we were sent away, "Huzza for Otaheite !" was fre- quently heard among the mutineers. Christian, the chief of them, was of a respect- able family in the north of England. This was the third voyage he had made with me. Not- withstanding the roughness with which I was treated, the remembrance of past kindnesses produced some remorse in hfm. While they were forcing me out of the ship, I asked him whether this was a proper return for the many instances he had experienced of my friendship? He appeared disturbed at the question, and an- swered with much emotion, " That Captain Bligh that is the thing I am in hell- I am in hell." His abilities to take charge of the third watch, as I had so divided the ship's company, were fully equal to the task. Hay wood was also of a respectable family in the north of England, and a young man of abili- ties, as well as Christian. These two had been objects of my particular regard and attention, and I had taken great pains to instruct them, having entertained hopes that, as professional men, they would have become a credit to their country. Young was well recommended ; and Stewart of creditable parents in the Orkneys, at which place, on the return of the Resolution from the South Seas in 178i), we received so many civilities, that in consideration of these alone I should gladly have taken him with me. But he had always borne a good character. When I had time to reflect, an inward satis- faction prevented the depression of my spirits. Yet, a few hours before, ray situation had been peculiarly flattering ; 1 had a ship in the most perfect order, stored with every necessary, both for health and service ; the object of the voyage was attained, and two-thirds of it now com- pleted. The remaining part had every pros- pect of success. It will naturally be asked, what could be the cause of such a revolt ? In answer, I can only conjecture that the mutineers had flattered them- selves with the hope of a happier life among the Otaheitans than they could possibly enjoy in England ; which, joined to some female con- nections, most probably occasioned the whole transaction. The women of Otaheite are handsome, mild, and cheerful in manners and conversation ; pos- sessed of great sensibility, and have sufficient delicacy to make them be admired and beloved. The chiefs were so much attached to our peo- ple, that they rather encouraged their stay among them than otherwise, and even made them promises of large possessions. Under these, and many other concomitant circum- stances, it ought hardly to be the subject of sur- prise that a set of sailors, most of them void of connections, should be led away, where they had the power of fixing themselves in the midst of plenty, in one of the finest islands in the world, where there was no necessity t;> labor, and where the allurements of dissipation are beyond any conception that can be funned of it. The utmost, however, that a commander could have expected, was desertions, such us have al- ready happened more or less ill the South Seas, and not an act of open mutiny. But the secrecy of this mutiny surpasses be- lief. Thirleen of the parly who were now with me had always liv.'d forward among the sea- men ; yet neither they, nor the messmates of Christian, Stewart, Bay wood, and Young, had ever observed anv circumstance to excite sus- picion of what wa's plotting ; and it is not won derful if I fell a sacrifice to it. my mind being entirely free from suspicion. Perhaps, had ma- rines been on board, a sentinel at my cnbin-door might have prevented it; for I constantly slept with the door open, ihat the officer of the watch might have access to rne on all occasions. If the mutiny had been occasioned by any griev- ances, either real or imaginary, 1 must have discovered symptoms of discontent, which would have put me on my guard ; but it was far other- wise. With Christian, in particular. I was on the most friendly terms ; that very day he was engaged to have dined with me ; and the pre- ceding night he excused himself from supping with me on pretence of indisposition, for which I felt concerned, having no suspicions of his honor or integrity. PITT, William, the second son of Earl Chatham, was born May 'J*. 1 ?.")!. In 1780, he obtained a seat in parliament, where he exerted HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL PIU 409 PLA the power of his eloquence against Lord North. On the removal of that minister, Mr. Pitt did not obtain a place ; but when the Earl of Shel- burne succeeded the Marquis of Rockingham, he became chancellor of the exchequer. This ministry, however, was soon displaced by the coalition of Lord North and Mr. Fox, in 1782 : but the famous India bill of the latter producing another change, at the end of 1783, Mr. Pitt be- came first lord of the treasury, as well as chan- cellor of the exchequer. Though in this situa- tion he had to encounter an extraordinary com- bination of talents and influence, he overcame all obstacles, and carried many important meas- ures, particularly his own India bill, a commer- cial treaty with France, the acts against smug- gling, and the establishment of a sinking fund. The illness of the king, in 1768, opened a new field for the energies of this great man, who, by taking constitutional ground in regard to the right of parliament to settle a regency, ingra- tiated himself with the nation, though certain of being removed when that appointment should take place. The recovery of his majesty, how- ever, fixed him more firmly in his seat. The next great event in his life was that of being called to oppose the power of revolutionary France, and to secure the nation from similar convulsions. At length he acceded to the wish that an experiment for peace should be tried, which took place in 1801, under Mr. Adding- ton ; but the event proved how fallacious were the hopes of the people; and, in 1804. Mr. Pitt was recalled to power. But his health was now in a very precarious state, and he died at Put- ney, Jan. 23, 180G. His remains were deposit- ed in Westminster Abbey. Very honorable eulogiums were pronounced on his memory by all parties, and his debts weie paid at the public expense, according to a vote of parliament. PIUS VI, Pope, or John Angelo Braschi, was born at Cesena in 1717. He succeeded Cle- ment XIV in 1775, and soon after made a re- form in the public treasury. When the empe- ror Joseph II decreed that all the religious or- ders in his dominions were free from papal ju- risdiction, Pius, apprehensive of the consequen- ces of such a measure, went in person to Vienna in 1782 ; but though he was honorably received, his remonstrances were ineffectual. The French Revolution, however, was of nu>re serious con- sequence to the papal see. The pope, having favored the allies, Bonaparte entered the eccle- siastical territory .and compelled him to purchase a peace. Basseville was then sent from the re- public to Rome, wheie the people nssa^iiinU'd him in 1793. This furnished the pretext for another visitation, and accordingly Bonaparte again entered Italy, made the pope prisoner in his capital, and hurried him over the Alps to Valence, where he died, August 29, 1799. PITTSBURG, a city, and capital of Alle- ghany county, Pennsylvania, 297 miles west by north of Philadelphia, is beautifully situated on a plain at the junction of the Alleghany and Mo- nongahela rivers. It is the great thoroughfare to the western country, and, excepting New Orleans and Cincinnati, is the first town of the vaXey of the Mississippi. It was incorporated a city in 1816. The principal cause which has contributed, aside from its eligible location, to ensure the prosperity of Pittsburg, is, the ex- haustless mass of mineral coal that exists in its neighborhood. Some of the beds are 340 feet above low water level, and about 290 above the bed of the town. The great abundance of this valuable material has converted Pittsburg into a vast workshop, and a warehouse for the immense country below, upon the Ohio and other large rivers of the valley. According to a recent es- timation there are now in operation in that city, and its immediate vicinity, nearly 100 steam engines, on which are employed some 2500 hands, and consuming about 160,000 bushels of coal per month. The city contains, according to the last census, 21,296 inhabitants. PLATA, United Provinces of the, or the Ar- gentine Republic, a republic of South America, consisting of a part of the former Spanish vice- royalty of the Rio de la Plata, or Buenos Ayres, contains 800.000 inhabitants. The country was discovered by Don Juan Diaz de Solis, in 1517, and settlements were made in 1553. The gov- ernment was at first dependant upon that of Peru. In 1810 the insurrection against Spain broke out, and in 1816 the provinces of Buenos Ayers formally declared their independence. PLATJEA, and Platoete. a town of Boeotia. near mnunt CithiEron, on the confines of Me- garis and Attica, celebrated for a battle fought there, between Mardonius the commander of Xerxes king of Persia, and Pausanias the Lace- dasmonian and the Athenians. The Persian army consisted of 300.000 men, 3,000 of which scarce escaped with their lives by flight. The Grecian army, which was greatly inferior, lost but few men, and among these 91 Spartans, 52 Athenians, and 16 Teffeans, were the only sol- diers found in the number of the slain. The plunder which the Greeks obtained in the Per CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PO1 410 POL sian camp was immense. Pausanias received the tenth of all the spoils, on account of his un- common valor during the engagement, and the rest were rewarded each according to their re- spective merit. This battle was fought on the 22d September, the same day as the battle of Mycale, 479 B. C., and by it Greece was deliv- ered from the continual alarms to which she was exposed on account of the Persian inva- sions, and from that time none of the princes of Persia dared to appear witli a hostile force be- yond the Hellespont. Plataea was taken by the Thebans, after a famous siege, in the beginning of the Peloponnesian war, and destroyed by the Spartans, B. C. 427. Alexander rebuilt it, and paid great encomiums to the inhabitants, on ac- count of their ancestors, who had so bravely fought against the Persians at the battle of Ma- rathon, and under Pausanias. POITIERS, anciently Plctani, a town of France, now capital of the department of the Vienne, containing 'Jl,5l)2 inhabitants. It is memorable for a battle between the English un- der Edward the Black prince, and the French under John II, fought here on Sept. 1 ( J, 1356. The van of the army which consisted altogether of only 8,000 men was commanded by the Earl of Warwick ; the rear by the Earls of Salisbury and Suffolk ; the main-body by the prince him- self. The first division of John's army, which consisted of 80,000 strong, was commanded by the Duke of Orleans, the king's brother ; the second by the dauphin ; the third by the king himself. A French detachment which ad- vanced first to the charge, was discomfited and overthrown, one of the marshals was slain, the other taken prisoner ; and the remainder of the detachment fell back, and put every thing into disorder. In that critical moment, the CapUtl de Buche unexpectedly appeared and attacked the dauphin's line, which "fell into confusion. Landas, Bodenai, and St. Venant, now set the example of flight, which was followed by that of the whole division. The Duke of Orleans, seized with a panic, thought no longer of fight- ing, but carried off his division by a retreat, which soon after turned into a flight. The di- vision under king John was slill, however, more numerous than the whole English army ; and the only resistance made that day was by his line of battle. The prince of Wales fell "with impetuosity on some German cavalry placed in the front; a fierce battle ensued : but the Ger- man generals, together with the Duke of Athens, falling in the engagement, that body of cavalry gave way, and left the king himself exposed to the whole fury of the enemy. The king, spent with fatigue, and overwhelmed by numbers, might easily have been slain, but every English gentleman, ambitious of taking alive the royal prisoner, spared him in the action, exhorted him to surrender, and offered him quarter. Several who attempted to seize him suffered for their temerity. In this dilemma he cried out, " Where is my cousin, the Prince of Wales ?" and seemed unwilling to become prisoner to any person of inferior rank ; but being told that the prince was at a distance, he threw down his gauntlet, and yielded himself, together with his son, to Dennis de Morbec, a fugitive knight of Arras. The moderation which Edward dis- played on this occasion, has for ever stamped his character. At a repast which was prepared in his tent for his royal prisoner, he served be- hind his chair, as if he had been one of his reti- nue. He refused to seat himself at table with his majesty : and John received, when a cap- tive, those honors which had been denied him when on a throne. POLAND, in Polish Polska; a country in the northern part of Europe. It was formerly of vast extent, and although now dismembered, a part of it retains the ancient name, and con- tains about 4,000,000 Poles. The events of the late unhappy struggle for independence, with the most powerful empire of Europe, are in the minds of every one who takes an interest in the fate of nations. The revolution commenced with etler and more favorable moments returned, in the court of Ptolemy, a prince whom he had once protected and ensured on his throne. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. FOR 414 FOR When Ptolemy was told that Pompey claimed his protection, he consulted his ministers, and had the baseness to betray and to deceive him. A boat was sent to fetch him on shore and the Roman general left his galley after an affection- ate and tender parting with his wife Cornelia. The Egyptian sailors satin sullen silence in the boat ; and when Pompey disembarked Achil- las and Septimius assassinated him. His wife, who had followed him with her eyes to the shore, was a spectator of the bloody scene ; and she hastened away from the bay of Alexandria, not to shate his miserable fate. He died B. C. 48, in the 53th or 59th year of his age, the day after his birth-day. PONDICHERRY, a city on the sea-coast of the soutli of India, since 1672 capital of a French colony, and contains 40,000 inhabitants. Inef- fectually besieged by the British, under Admi- ral Boscawen, in 1748. In 17G1 it was taken, after a tedious siege and blockade, by the army under Colonel Coote, when 2000 Europeans were made prisoners, and 500 pieces of cannon and JOO mortars taken. In 1763 it was restored to the French; in October, 1778, it surrendered to the British, under Sir H. Monro; but was again restored in 1783. PONTUS, an ancient kingdom of Asia Mi- nor. This country came into subjection to Croesus, king of Lydia, about 500 B. C., and underwent the revolutions of the Lydian and Persian empires till about 300 B. C., when it became independent of the Macedonians under Mithridates II. It grew very considerable un- der Mithridates VII, who extended his empiie overall Asia Minor; but could not retain his conquests, being defeated successively by Sylla, Lucullus, and Pompey ; and, after many dread- ful defeats, this country was disposed of by the Romans on his death in 64 B. C. Upon the taking of Constantinople by the Latins in 1204, Alexius Comnenus established at Trebisond, in this country, a new empire of the Greeks, which continued till Mohammed II put an nd to it in 145!). POPE, Alexander, a celebrated English poet, born in London, May 22, 1688. His application and talent for versification were manifested at an early age ; his Pastorals being written at the age of ](i. His translation of Homer's Iliad, his Epistle from Eloisa to Abelard, the essay on Man, and the Dunciad. are well known to every English scholar. He died May 30, 1744. His temper was soured by his bodily infirmities which were numerous. PORSENNA, or Porsena, a king of Etruria, who declared war against the Romans because they refused to restore Tarquin to his throne, and to his royal privileges. He was at first successful, the Romans were defeated, and Por- senna would have entered the gates of Rome, had not Codes stood at the head of a bridge, and supported the fury of the whole Etrurian army, while his companions behind were cutting off the communication with the opposite shore This act of bravery astonished Porsenna; but when he had seen Mutius Scaevola enter his camp with an intention to murder him, and when he had seen him burn his hand without emotion, to convince him of his fortitude and intrepidity, he no longer dared to make head against a people so brave and so generous. He made a peace with the Romans, and never after supported the claims of Tarquin. The gene- rosity of Porsenna's behavior to the captives was admired by the Romans, and to reward his humanity they raised a brazen statue to his honor. PORTUGAL; a kingdom of Europe, bound ed N. and E. by Spain, S. and W. by the At- lantic ocean. Population in 1826, 3,530,000 Anciently Lusitania, it was successively sub- ject to the Suevi, the Goths and the Moors. About the beginning of the twelfth century, it regained its liberty by the valor of Henry of Lorraine, grandson of the French monarch, who possessed it with the title of count. His son, Alphonso Henriqnez. having obtained a deci sive victory over fi\e Moorish kings, was pro- claimed king by the soldiers. On the death of Ferdinand, in 1383, the states gave the crown to his natural brother John, surnamed the Bas- tard, who was equally politic and enterprising, and in whose reign the Portuguese first projected discoveries in the western ocean. In the reign of his great-grandson, John II, who was a prince of profound sagacity and extensive views, the Portuguese made conquests in the interior of Africa, and discovered the Cape of Good Hope. Emanuel adopted the plan of his predecessors, and sent out a fleet; which, ranging through unknown seas, arrived at the city of Calicut, on the coast of Malabar ;. while others of his vessels discovered Brazil, in 1501. These princes had the merit of exciting that spirit of discovery, which led to many subsequent improvements of navigation and commerce. Their discoveries on the coast of Africa, led to the voyage of Co- lumbus, and the discovery of America. They also established valuable colonies in Africa and America, and an extensive empire in India. John III, the son of Emanuel, admitted the HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. PRE 415 PRU new-founded order of the Jesuits, which has since been a powerful engine of despotism and superstition. Sebastian his grandson, heroically led an army against the Moors in Africa, where he perished in battle. Sebastian, leaving no issue, was succeeded by his uncle, cardinal Hen- ry, who also dying without children, Philip, king of Spain, obtained the crown, A. D. 1580. InJ604, Portugal rendered itself independent in ; and John, duke of Braganza, ascended the throne, by the title of John IV. His son, Alphonso VI, was deposed on account of his cruelties ; and the sceptre was transferred to his brother. Peter II reigned peaceably thirty years; and, under the mild government of his son, John V, the arts began to flourish. In the reign of Joseph I, in 1755, the city of Lisbon was laid in ruins by an earthquake, in which 10,000 persons lost their lives. He was suc- ceeded by his (laughter, Mary Frances Isabella ; who for many years was so infirm in body and mind, that the affairs of the kingdom were managed by a regency. In 1807, the Prince Regent retired with the queen, his mother, and the rest of the royal family, to the Brazils, in South America. 'Rio de Janeiro then became the seat of the Portuguese government. Por- tugal was, however, wrested by the English out of the hands of the French in 1808. The strug- gle between Dom Pedro, and his brother Dom Miguel has ended in Portugal. Dom Pedro, having secured the crown to his daughter Don- na Maria la Gloria, expired in the midst of tri- umph. PRAGA, a town of Poland, taken by storm by General Suwarrow, in 1734, when it was plundered, set on fire, and the inhabitants and the troops of the Polish insurgents who had taken refuge there, together amounting to 20,000, were barbarously massacred. PREBLE. Edward, a celebrated American naval officer, was born in 'the part of Fal- mouth now called Portland, Maine, Aug. 15, 1761. In 177!) he obtained a midshipman's warrant on board the Protector, a state ship of 26 guns, which was captured by the English. Preble, however, was released at New York and returned home. When first lieutenant of the Winthrop sloop of war, he displayed great gallantry in cutting out a hostile brig of war in Penobscot harbor. After performing various services, in 1803 he was invested with the command of the Constitution, and being sta- tioned in the Mediterranean, he not only pre- vented a war between Morocco and the United States, but bombarded Tripoli, and brought the bashaw to terms. I 1 or this service he received the thanks of Congress, and an emblematical medal. He died Aug. 25, 1807, in the 47th year of his age. PRESCOTT, William, one of the heroes cf the American revolution, was born at Goshen, in Massachusetts, in 1726. He was a lieutenant in the continental forces at the taking of Cape Breton, in 1758, and greatly distinguished him- self on that occasion. He commanded at the battle of Bunker Hill, and was the last to leave the entrenchments. He resigned his colonel's commission in 1777, but was present at the cap- ture of Burgoyne as a voluntper under Gates. He died in 1795. PRESTON-PAlNS, a Scotch village 8 miles E. oT Edinburgh, memorable for the defeat of the royalists by the troops of the Pretender in 1745. PRUSSIA, the smallest of the great powers of Europe, contains 13.726.833 inhabitants, and ] 06.852 square miles. It is generally a level country, Silesia alone being much broken. The productions are grain, flax, hemp, &c. Nearly two-thirds of the inhabitants are Protestants, the remainder Catholics. Prussia contains many universities of high repute, and in few coun- tries are the seeds of knowledge so general- ly disseminated. This country was inhabited by the Borussi, who denominated it Borussia ; which has been corrupted to Prussia. They were conquered by the knights of the Teutonic order; whom Cassimer IV, king of Poland, compelled to acknowledge themselves his vassals ; and to allow Polish Prussia to con- tinue under the protection of Poland. Albert, Margrave of Brandenburgh, and grand master of the order, had the dukedom of Prus- sia conferred on him, by Siirismund I, king of Poland, A. D. 1525. Frederick William, elector of Brandenburgh, surnamed the Great, was freed from paying any homage to the crown of Poland. His son Frederick, raised the duchy of Prus- sia to a kingdom, A. D. 1701. His son, Frederick William, was a wise and politic prince, who amassed a prodigious treas- ure, though he maintained an army of 60,000 men. He was succeeded by his son Frederick II, who was one of the first military, political, and literary characters, that ever filled a throne ; but very despotic in the administration of his gov- ernment. His reign was pregnant with striking histo- rical events. In 1744, he added Silesia to his CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PTO 416 PTO dominions ; but in 1756, Russia, Austria, and France, leagued against him; and he main- tained against them the famous seven years' war. He was succeeded by his nephew, Frederick William III, a weak and an impolitic prince; he joined in the league against the French re- public, and then deserted his allies. Dying in 1797, he was succeeded by Frederick William IV, who unhappily revived some obso- lete pretensions to Hanover, in 1805; and, on Napoleon proposing to restore that electorate to the king of England, in 180(5, Frederick took the field ; but being totally defeated at Jena, his kingdom was conquered by Napoleon. His ally, the Emperor of Russia, came too late to his assistance ; and being himself over- thrown at Friedland, was forced to conclude a treaty at Tilsit, in 1807 ; by which the fortresses of Prussia were left in the hands of the French, till a peace with England. The French have since been expelled, and Prussia, in conjunc-' tion with the other powers of Europe, twice assisted in deposing Napoleon, and has recover- ed the conquered provinces. PTOLEMY I, surnamed Lagus, a king of Egypt, son of Arsinoe. When Alexander in- vaded Asia, the son of Arsinoe attended him as one of his generals. During the expedition, he behaved with uncommon valor, and killed one of the Indian monarchs in single combat. After the conqueror's death, in the general division of the Macedonian empire, Ptolemy obtained, as his share, the government of Egypt, with Libya, and part of the neighboring territories of Arabia. He made himself master of Ccelosyria, Phoenicia, and the neighboring coast of Syria; and when he had reduced Jerusalem, he carried about 100,000 prisoners to Egypt, to people the extensive city of Alexandria, which became the capital of his dominions. He made war with success against Demetrius and Antigonus, who disputed his right to the provinces of Sy- ria. The bay of Alexandria being dangerous of access, he built a tower to conduct the sailors in the obscurity of the night ; and that his subjects migh' be acquainted with literature, he laid the foundation of a library, which, under the suc- ceeding reigns, became the most celebrated in the world. He also established in the capital of his dominions, a society, called Museum, of which the members, maintained at the public expense, were employed in philosophical re- searches, and in the advancement of science and the liberal arts. Ptolemy died in the 84th year of liis age, after a reign of 39 years, about 284 years before Christ. The second son of Ptolemy I succeeded his father on the Egyptian throne, and was called Philadelphus by antiphrasis, because he killed two of his brothers. While Ptolemy strength- ened himself by alliances with foreign powers, the internal peace of his kingdom was disturb- ed by the revolt of Magas, his brother, king of Gyrene. The sedition, however, was stopped, though kindled by Antiochus, king of Syria ; and the death of the rebellious prince re-estab- lished peace for some time in the family of Phil- adelphus. Philadelphus died in the t>lth year of his age, 246 years before the Christian era. During the whole of his reign, Philadelphus was employed in exciting industry, and in encouraging the liberal arts and useful know- ledge among his subjects. The inhabitants of the adjacent countries were allured by promises and presents, to increase the number of the Eo-yptian subjects ; and Ptolemy could boast of reigning over 33,339 well-peopled cities. He gave every possible encouragement to com- merce; and by keeping two powerful fleets, one in the Mediterranean, and the other in the Red Sea, he made Egypt the mart of the world. His army consisted of 200,000 foot, and 40,000 horse, besides 300 elephants, and 2000 armed chariots. His palace was the asylum of learn- ed men, whom he admired and patronised. He increased the library which his father had found- ed, and showed his taste for learning, and his wish to encourage genius. This celebrated library, at his death, contained 200,000 volumes of the" best and choicest books ; and it was after- wards increased to 700,000. Part of it was burnt by the flames of Ctesar's fleet, when he set it on fire to save himself; a circumstance, however, not. mentioned by the general : and the whole was again magnificently repaired by Cleopatra, who added to the Egyptian library that of the kings of Pergamus. "It is said that the Old Testament was translated into Greek during his reign ; a translation which has been called SepUngint, because translated by the labors of 70 different persons. The third, succeeded his father Philadelphia on the Egyptian throne. He early engaged in a war against Antiochus Theus, for his unkind- ness to Berenice, the Egyptian king's sister, whom he had married with the consent of Phil- adelphia. With the most rapid success he con- quered Syria and Cilicia, and advanced as far as the Tigris; but a sedition at home stopped his progress, and he returned to Egypt loaded HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. PTO 417 PTO with the spoils of conquered nations. The last years of Ptolemy's reign were passed in peace, if we except the refusal of the Jews to pay the tribute of 20 silver talents, which their ances- tors had always paid to the Egyptian monarchs. Evergetes (as he was called by the Egyptians) died 221 years before Christ, after a reign of 25 years ; and like his two illustrious predeces- sors, he was the patron of learning, and, indeed, he is the last of the Lagides who gained popu- larity among his subjects by clemency, moder- ation, and humanity, and who commanded re- spect even from his enemies, by valor, pru- dence and reputation. The fourth succeeded his father Evergetes on the throne of Egypt, and received the surname of Philopater by antiphrasis ; because, according to some historians, he destroyed his father by- poison. He began his reign with acts of the greatest cruelty and debauchery. In the midst of his pleasures, Philopater was called to war against Antiochns, king of Syria; and at the head of a powerful army, he soon invaded his enemy's territories, and might have added the kingdom of Syria to Egypt, if he had made a prudent use of the victories which attended his arms. In the latter part of his reign, the Ro- mans, whom a dangerous war with Carthage had weakened, but at the same time roused to superior activity, renewed, for political reasons, the treaty of alliance which had been made with the Egyptian monarchs. Philopater at last, weakened and enervated by intemperance and continual debauchery, died in the 37th year of his age, after a reign of 17 years, 204 years before the Christian era. The fifth succeeded his father Philopater, as king of Egypt, though only in the fourth year of his age. The Romans renewed their alliance v/ith him after their victories over Annibal. and the conclusion of the second Punic war. When Ptolemy had reached his ]4th year, according to the laws and customs of Egypt, the years of his minority had expired. He received the surname of Epiphanes, or Illustrious, and was crowned at Alexandria, with the greatest so- lemnity. Young Ptolemy was no sooner deliv- ered from the shackles of his guardian, than he betrayed the same vices which had character- ized his father. His cruelties raised seditions among his subjects ; but these were twice quel- led by the prudence and the moderation of one Polycrates. the most faithful of his corrupt min- isters. In the midst of his extravagance, Epiphanes did not forget his alliance with the Romans ; above all others, he showed himself eager to cultivate friendship with a nation, from whom he could derive so many advantages ; and dur- ing their war against Antiochus, he offered to assist them with money against a monarch, whose daughter, Cleopatra, he had married, but whom he hated on account of the seditions he raised in the very heart of Egypt. After a reign of 24 years, 180 years before Christ, Ptolemy was poisoned by his ministers, whom he had threatened to rob of their possessions, to carry on a war against Seleucus, king of Syria. The sixth succeeded his father Epiphanes on the Egyptian throne, and received the surname of Pltilomcter, on account of his hatred against his mother Cleopatra. He made war against Antiochus Epiphanes, king of Syria, to re- cover the provinces of Palestine and Coslosy- ria, which were part^f the Egyptian domin- ions ; and after several successes, he fell into the hands of his enemy, who detained him in confinement. During the captivity of Philo- meter, the Egyptians raised to the throne his younger brother, Ptolemy Evergetes. or Pliys- con, also son of Epiphanes; but he was no sooner established in his power, than Antio- chus turned his arms against Egypt, drove out the usurper, and restored Philometer to all his ricrhts and privileges as king of Egypt. This artful behavior of Antiochus was soon compre- hended by Philometer ; and when he saw that Pelusium. the key of Egypt, had remained in the hands of his Syrian ally, he recalled his bro- ther Physcon, and made him partner on the throne, and concerted with him how to repel their common enemy. This union of interest in the two royal brothers, incensed Antiochus ; he entered Esjypt with a large army, but the Ro- mans checked his progress, and obliged him to retire. No sooner were they delivered from the impending war, than Philometer and Physcon, whom the fear of danger had united, began with mutual jealousy to oppose each other s views. Physcon was, at last, banished by the superior power of his brother ; and as he could find no support in Egypt, he immediately repaired to Rome. To excite more effectually the compas- sion of the Romans, and to gain their assist- ance, he appeared in the meanest dress, and took his residence in the most obscure corner of the city. He received an audience from the senate ; and the Romans settled the dispute be- tween the two royal brothers, by making them independent of one another, and giving the government of Libya and Cyrene to Physcon, and confirming Philometer in the possession of CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. FTO 418 PTO Egypt, and the island of Cyprus. The death of Philometer, 145 years before the Christian era, left Physcon master of Egypt, and all the de- pendent provinces. The seventh Ptolemy, surnamed Physcon, as- cended the throne of Egypt after the death of his brother Philometer ; and as he had reigned for some lirne conjointly with him, his succes- sion was approved, though the wife and the son of the deceased monarch laid claim to the crown. He ordered himself to be called Ever- getes, but the Alexandrians refused to do it, and stigmatized him with the appellation of Kakcr- getes, or evil-doer, a surname which he deserv- ed by his tyranny and oppression. A series of barbarities rendered him odious ; but as no one attempted to rid Egypt of her tyranny, the Alexandrians abandoned their habitations, and fled from a place which continually streamed with the blood of their massacred fellow citi- zens. Physcon endeavoured to re-people the city which his cruelty had laid desolate ; but the fear of sharing the fate of the former in- habitants, prevailed more than the promise of riches, rights, and immunities. He died at Alexandria in the G7th year of his age, after a reign of 2;) years, about 116 years before Christ. The eighth, surnarned Lathyrus, from an ex- crescence, like a pea, on the nose, succeeded his father Physcon as king of Egypt. He had no sooner ascended the throne, than his mother Cleopatra, who reigned conjointly with him, ex- pelled him, and placed the crown on the head of his brother, Ptolemy Alexander, her favorite son. Lathyrus, after he had exercised the great- est cruelty upon the Jews, by his conquest of Judaea, and made vain attempts to recover the kingdom of Egypt, retired to Cyprus till the death of his brother Alexander restored him to his native dominions. In the latter part of his reign, Lathyrus was called upon to assist the Romans with a navy for the conquest of Athens ; but Lucullus, who had been sent to obtain the wanted supply, though received with kingly honors, was dismissed with evasive and unsat- isfactory answers, and the monarch refused to part with troops which hs deemed necessary to preserve the peace of his kingdom. Lathyrus 'died 81 years before the Christian era, after a reign of 36 years, since the death of his father Physcon ; 11 of which he had passed with II'M mother Cleopatra on the Egyptian throne, 18 in Cyprus, and seven after his mother's de:ith. . The 12th, the illegitimate son of Lathyrus, ascended the throne of Egypt at the death of Alexander III. He received the surname of Auletes, because he played skilfully on the flute. His rise showed great marks of prudence and circumspection ; and as his predecessor, by his will, had left the kingdom of Egypt to the Ro- mans, Auletes knew that he could not be firmly established on his throne, without the approba- tion of the Roman senate ; and when lie had suffered the Romans quietly to take possession of Cyprus, the Egyptians revolted, and Auletes was obliged to fly from his kingdom, and seek protection among the most powerful of his allies. The senators of Rome decreed to re-establish Auletes on his throne ; and he was no sooner restored to power, than he sacrificed to his am- bition his daughter Berenice, and behaved with the greatest ingratitude and perfidy to Rabi- rius, a Roman who had supplied him with money when expelled from his kingdom. Au- letes died four years after his restoration, about 5J years before the Christian era. The 13th, surnamed Dionysius, or Bacchus, ascended the throne of Egypt conjointly with his sister Cleopatra, whom lie had married, ac- cording to the directions of his father Auletes. He was in the 13th year of his age, when his guardian. Pompey, after the fatal battle of Phar- salia, came to the shores of Egypt, and claimed his protection. He refused to grant the requir- ed assistance ; and by the advice of his minis- ters, lie basely murde'red Pompey. after lie had brought him to shore under the mask of friend- ship and cordiality. To obtain the favor of the conqueror of Pharsalia, Ptolemy cut off the head of Pompey; but Caesar turned with indig- nation from such perfidy, and when he arrived at Alexandria, he found the King of Effypt as faithless to his cause as to that of his"f alien enemy. Caesar sat as judge to hear the various claims of the brother and sister, to the throne; and to satisfy the people, he ordered the will of Auletes to be read, and confirmed Ptolemy and Cleopatra in the possession of Egypt, and ap- pointed the two younger children masters of the island of Cyprus. This fair and candid de- cision might have left no room for dissatisfac- tion; but Ptolemy refused to acknowledge Cae- sar as a judge or a mediator. The Rui;i;ui en- forced his authority by arms, nnd three victo- ries were obtained over the Egyptian forces. Ptolemy, who had been for some time a prisoner in the hands of Caesar, now headed Irs armies; but a defeat was fatal, and as he attempted to save his life by flight, he was drowned in the Nile, about 4(j years before Christ, and three years and eight months after the death of Au letes. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. PUN 419 PUN PUEBLA LA, or La Pucbla de los Angeles, a state of the Mexican confederacy, containing 20,000 square miles, and b!3,300 inhabitants. It anciently comprised the Indian republic of Tlascala, which the Spaniards, on their arrival in the country, found in a flourishing condition. PULAWSKI, Count Joseph, a noble-minded Pole, who having been banished from his na- tive land, entered the service of the United States, and fell in the attack on Savannah, Oct. 9, 1779. PULTAWA or POLTAWA, a fortified town of Russia, 450 miles S. W. of Moscow, with J),000 inhabitants, before which Peter the Great defeated Charles 12th of Sweden, June 27, 1709. Charles, who had been wounded in a former engagement, was much indisposed. The litter in which he caused himself to be carried was twice overturned, and the second time broken by the enemy's cannon. After an obstinate and bloody engagement, the Swedish army was en- tirely routed and dispersed; 9.000 of the van- quished were left dead on the field of battle, and a great number surrendered themselves prison- ers of war. Charles, with 300 of his guards, escaped with difficulty to Bender, a Turkish town in Moldavia. PULTENEY, William, earl of Bath, was born of an ancient family, in 1682. After trav- el ling through Europe, he was elected into par- liament, and became distinguished as a zealous whig. On the accession of George 1 he was appointed a privy-councillor, and secretary at war, being then the friend of Sir Robert Wai- pole ; but afterwards a difference arose be- tween them, and Pulteney became the leader of opposition. He also joined Bolingbroke in conducting a paper called " The Craftsman," the object of which was to annoy the minister. This produced a duel between Pulteney and Lord Hervey ; and the king was so much dis- pleased with the conduct of the former, that he struck his name out of the list of privy coun- cillors, and also from the commission of the peace. On the resignation of Walpole, in 1741, Pulteney was created Earl of Bath ; but from lhat time his popularitv ceased. He died June 8, 17G4. PUNIC WAR. The first Punic war was undertaken by the Romans against Carthage, B. C. 21)4. Sicily, an island of the highest con- sequence to the Carthaginians as a commercial nation, was the seat of the first dissensions. The Mamertini, a body of Italian mercenaries, were appointed by the king of Syracuse to guard the town of Messana ; but this tumultuous tribe, in- 36 stead of protecting the citizens, basely massa cred them, and seized their possessions. This act of cruelty raised the indignation of all the Sicilians, and Hiero, king of Syracuse, who had employed them, prepared to punish their per- fidy ; and the Mamertini, besieged in Messana, and without friends or resources, resolved to throw themselves for protection into the hands of the first power that could relieve them. They were, however, divided in their sentiments, and while some implored the assistance o^Carthage, others called upon the Romans for protection. Without hesitation or delay, the Carthaginians entered Messana, and the Romans also hastened to give to the Mamertini that aid which had been claimed from them with as much eagerness as from the Carthaginians. At the approach of the Roman troops, the Mamertini, who had implored their assistance, took up arms, and forced the Carthaginians to evacuate Messana. From a private quarrel the war became general. The Romans obtained a victory in Sicily, but as their enemies were masters atsea.the advan- tages which they gained were small and incon- siderable. Duilius at last obtained a naval vic- tory , and he was the first Roman who ever re- ceived a triumph after a battle by sea. The losses which they had already sustained induc- ed the Carthaginians to sue for peace, and the Romans, whom an unsuccessful descent upon Africa, under Regulus, had rendered diffident, listened to the proposal, and the first Punic war was concluded B. C. 241, on the following terms : The Carthaginians pledged themselves to pay to the Romans, within 20 years, the sum of o,000 Euboic talents ; they promised to re- lease all the Roman captives without ransom, to evacuate Sicily, and the other islands of the Mediterranean, and not to molest Hiero, king f Syracuse, or his allies. The Romans, to stop the progress of the Carthaginians towards Italy, made stipulations with them, by which they were not permitted to cross the Iberus, or to molest the cities of their allies the Saguntines. When Hannibal succeeded to the command of the Carthaginian armies in Spain, he spurned the boundaries which the jealousy of Rome had set to his arms, and he immediately formed the siege of Saguntum. The Romans were ap- prised of the hostilities which had been begun against their allies, but Saguntum was in the hands of the active enemy before they had taken any steps to oppose him. Without delay, B. C.218, Hannibal marched a numerous army of 90,000 foot and 12,000 horse, towards Italy, re- solved to carry on the war to the gates of Rome. f CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PUN 420 PUN The battles of Trebia, of Ticinus. and of the lake of Thrasymenus, threw Rome into the greatest apprehensions, but the prudence and dilatory measures of the dictator Fabius. soon taught them to hope for better times. Yet the conduct of Fabius was universally censured as coward- ice, and the two consuls who succeeded him in the command, pursuing a different plan of oper- ations, brought on a decisive action at Cannee, in which 45,000 Romans were left on the field of battle. This bloody victory caused so much consternation at Rome, that some authors have declared that if Hannibal had immediately marched from the plains of Cannae to the city, he would have met with no resistance, but could have terminated a long and dangerous war with glory to himself, and the most inesti- mable advantages to his country. The news of this victory was carried to Carthage by Mago, and the Carthaginians refused to believe it till three bushels of golden rings were spread be- fore them, which had been taken from. the Ro- man knights in the field of battle. Affairs now took a different turn, and Marcellus, who had the command of the Roman legions in Italy, soon taught his countrymen that Hannibal was not in vincible in the field. In different parts of the world the Romans were making very rapid conquests. Hannibal no longer appeared formid- able in Italy ; if he conquered towns in Campa- nia or Magna Grcecia, he remained master of them only while his army hovered in the neigh- borhood, and if he marched towards Rome the alarm he occasioned was but momentary, the Romans were prepared to oppose him, and his re- treat was therefore the more dishonorable. The conquests of young Scipio in Spain had now rais- ed the expectations of the Romans, and he had no sooner returned to Rome than he proposed to remove Hannibal from the capital of Italy by carrying the war to the gates of Carthage. This was a bold and hazardous enterprise, but though Fabius opposed it, it was universally approved by the Roman senate, and young Scipio was empowered to sail to Africa. The conquests of the young Roman were as rapid in Africa as in Spain, and the Carthaginians, apprehensive for the fate of their capital, recalled Hannibal from Italy. Hannibal received their orders with in- dignation, and with tears in his eyes he left Italy, where for sixteen years he had known no superior in the field of battle. At his arrival in Africa, the Carthaginian general soon collected a large army, and met his exulting adversary in the plains of Zama. The battle was long and bloody, and though one nation fought for glory, and the other for the dearer sake of lib- erty, the Romans obtained the victory, and Han- nibal, who had sworn eternal enmity to the gods of Rome, fled from Carthage after he had ad- vised his countrymen to accept the U>rrnsof the conqueror. This battle of Zama was decisive, the Carthaginians sued for peace, which the haughty conquerors granted with difficulty. During the 50 years which followed the con- clusion of the second Punic war, the Carthagi- nians were employed in repairing their losses by unwearied application and industry; but they found still in the Romans a. jealous rival and a haughty conqueror, and in Masinissa, the ally of Rome, an intriguing and ambitions mon- arch. The king of Numidia made himself mas- ter of one of their provinces ; but as they were unable to make war without the consent of' Rome, the Carthaginians sought relief by em- bassies, and made continual complaints in the Roman senate of the tyranny and oppression of Masinissa. Commissioners were appointed to examine the cause of their complaints ; but as Masinissa was the ally of Rome, the interest of the Carthaginians was neglected, and whatever seemed to depress their republic, was agreeable to the Romans. Cato, who was in the number of the commissioners, examined the capital of Africa with a jealous eye ; he saw it with con- cern, rising as it were from its ruins ; and when he returned to Rome, lie declared in full senate, that the peace of Italy would never be estab lished while Carthage was in being. The sen- ators, however, were not guided by his opinion, and the delcnda est Carthago of Cato did not pre- vent the Romans from acting with moderation. But while the senate were debating about the existence of Carthage, and while they consid ered it a dependent power, and not as an ally, the wrongs of Africa were without redress, and Masinissa continued his depredations. Upon this the Carthaginians resolved to do their cause that justice which the Romans had denied them ; they entered the field against the Nmuidians, but they were defeated in a bloody battle by Masinissa, who was then 'JO years old. In this bold measure they had broken the peace ; and as their late defeat had rendered them despe- rate, they hastened with all possible speed to the capital of Italy to justify their proceedings, and to implore the forgiveness of the Roman sen- ate. The news of Masinissa's victory had al- ready reached Italy, and immediately some forces were sent to Sicily, and frnm thence or- dered to pass into Africa. The ambassadors of Carthage received evasive and unsatisfactory HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL PUN 421 PUT answers from the senate ; and when they saw the Romans landed at Utica, they resolved to purchase peace by the most submissive terms which even the most abject slaves could offer. The Romans acted with the deepest policy : no declaration of war had been made, though hostilities appeared inevitable ; and in answer to the submissive offers of Carthage the con- suls replied, that to prevent every cause of quar- rel, the Carthaginians must deliver into their hands 300 hostages, all children of senators, and of the most noble and respectable families. The demand was great and alarming, but was no sooner granted, than the Romans made ano- ther demand, and the Carthaginians were told that peace could not continue, if they refused to deliver up all their ships, their arms, engines of war, with all their naval and military stores. The Carthaginians complied, and immediately 40,000 suits of armor, 20,000 large engines of war, with a plentiful store of ammunition and missile weapons were surrendered. After this duplicity had succeeded, the Romans laid open the final resolutions of the senate, and the Car- thaginians were then told that, to avoid hostil- ities, they must leave their ancient habitations and retire into the inland parts of Africa, and found another city, at the distance of not less than ten miles from the sea. This was heard with horror and indignation ; the Romans were fixed and inexorable, and Carthage was filled with tears and lamentations. But the spirit of liberty and independence was not yet extin- guished in the capital of Africa, and the Cartha- ginians determined to sacrifice their lives for the protection of their gods, the tombs of their forefathers, and the place which had given them birth. Before the Roman army approached the city, preparations to support a siege were made, and the ramparts of Carthage were covered with stones, to compensate for the weapons and instruments of war which they had ignorantly betrayed to the duplicity of their enemies. The town was blocked up by the Romans, and a regular siege begun. Two years were spent in useless operations, and Carthage seemed still able to rise from its ruins, to dispute for the empire of the world ; when Scipio, the descend- ant of the great Scipio, who finished the second Punic war, was sent to conduct the siege. De- spair and famine now raged in the city, and Scipio gained access to the city walls, where the battlements were low and unguarded. His entrance into the streets was disputed with un- common fury, the houses, as he advanced, were set on fire, to stop his progress ; but when a body of 50,000 persons, of either sex, had claim- ed quarter, the rest of the inhabitants were dis- heartened, and such as disdained to be prison- ers of war, perished in the flames, which grad- ually destroyed their habitations, 147 B. C. after a continuation of hostilities for three years. During 17 days Carthage was inflames; and the soldiers were permitted to redeem from the fire whatever possession they could. This re- markable event happened about the year of Rome GOG. The news of this victory caused the greatest rejoicings at Rome ; and immedi- ately commissioners were appointed by the Ro- man senate, not only to raze the walls of Car- thage, but even to demolish and burn the very materials with which they were made : and in a few days, that city which had been once the seat of commerce, the model of magnificence, the common store of the wealth of nations, and one of the most powerful states of the world, left behind no traces of its splendor, of its power, or even of its existence. PUTNAM, Israel, a distinguished American officer, who served both in the French and Eng- lish wars, was born at Salem, Mass. Jan. 7, 1718. In 1739 he settled at Pomfret. Connecti- cut, where he had purchased a tract of land. Here*he descended into a dark cavern, and kill- ed a wolf, which had committed great depreda- tions upon the flocks of the farmers. He en- tered on his first campaign in the war of 1755, being then appointed to command a company, and he received a major's commission in 1757. His services prior to the breaking out of the revolutionary war were various and valuable. The news of. this great event found Putnam at the plough. He unyoked his oxen, and set off for the scene of action. Having levied a regi- ment he was appointed major-general, and, on the retreat of the Americans from Bunker Hill, checked the pursuing forces. He was indefati- gable and ardent in the discharge of his duty, and his value was properly appreciated as we see from the important duties which were en- trusted to him. After the battle of Monmouth. he was posted at Reading, Connecticut, with orders to protect the Sound, and the garrison at West Point. On a visit to one of his outposts, attended by only 150 men, he was closely pursued by Governor Tyron, at the head of 1200 royal troops, and escaped by plunging on horseback, down a pre- cipice so steep that foot passengers descended only by an artificial stairway. Putnam com- manded the Maryland line, stationed near West Point, in the campaign of 1779. A paralytic CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PYR 422 PYR affection seized upon the right side of Putnam during the latter part of his life, but did not impair his cheerfulness and spirit. He died at Brooklyn, Connecticut, May 21), 1790, aged 72 years. PYRRHUS, a king of Epirus, was saved when an infant, by the fidelity of his servants, from the pursuit of the enemies of his father, who had been banished from his kingdom, and he was carried to the court of Glautias, king of lllyricum, who educated him with great tender- ness. Cassander, king of Macedonia, wished to despatch him, as he had so much to dread from him ; but Glautias not only refused to deliver him up into the hands of his enemy, but he even went with an army and placed him on the throne of Epirus, though only twelve years of age. About five years after, the absence of Pyrrhus to attend the nuptials of one of the daughters of Glautias, raised new commotions. The mon- arch was expelled from his throne by Neoptole- mus, who had usurped it after the death of ./Eacides ; and being still without resources, Jhe applied to his brother-in-law Demetrius for assistance. He accompanied Demetrius at the battle of Ipsus, and afterwards passed into Egypt, where, by his marriage with Antigone the daughter of Berenice, he soon obtained a sufficient force to attempt the recovery of his throne. He was successful in the undertaking, but to remove all causes of quarrel, he took the usurper to share with him the royalty, and some time after he put him to death under pretence that he had attempted to poison him. In the subsequent years of his reign, Pyrrhus engaged in the quarrels which disturbed the peace of the Macedonian monarchy ; he marched against Demetrius. By dissimulation he ingra- tiated himself in the minds of his enemy's sub- jects, and when Demetrius labored under a mo- mentary illness, Pyrrhus made an attempt upon the crown of Macedonia, which, if not then successful, soon after rendered him master of the kingdom. This he shared with Lysima- chus for seven months, till the jealousy of the Macedonians, and the ambition of his col- league, obliged him to retire. Pyrrhus was meditating new conquests, when the Tarentines invited him to Italy to assist them against the encroaching power of Rome. He gladly accept- ed the invitation, but his passage across the Adriatic proved nearly fatal, and he reached the shores of Italy, after the loss of the greatest part of his troops in a storm. At his entrance into Tarentum, B. C. 280, he began to reform the manners of the inhabitants, and bv introducing the strictest discipline among their troops, to accustom them to bear fatigue and to despise dangers. In the first battle which he fought with the Romans, he obtained the victory, but for this he was more particu- larly indebted to his elephants, whose bulk and uncommon appearance astonished the Romans and terrified their cavalry. The number of the slain was equal on both sides, and the conqueror said that such another victory would totally ruin him. He also sent Cineas, his chief min- ister, to Rome, and though victorious, he sued for peaoe. These offers of peace were refused. A second battle was fought near Asculum, but the slaughter was so great, and the valor so conspicuous on both sides, that the Romans and their enemies reciprocally claimed the victory as their own. Pyrrhus still continued the war in favor of the Tarentines, when he was invited into Sicily by the inhabitants, who labored under the yoke of Carthage and the cruelty of their own petty tyrants. His fondness for novelty soon determined him to quit Italy ; he left a garrison at Tarentum, and crossed over to Sicily, where he obtained two victories over the Carthaginians, and took many of their towns. He was for awhile suc- cessful, and formed the project of invading Af- rica; but soon his popularity vanished. He had no sooner arrived at Tarentum than he renewed hostilities with the Romans with great acrimony, but when his army of 80,000 men had been defeated by 20,000 of the enemy, under Curius, he left Italy with precipitation. B. C. 274, ashamed of the enterprise. In Epirus he attacked Antigonus, who was then on the Macedonian throne. He gained some advantages over his enemy, and was at last restored to the throne of Macedonia. He afterwards inarched against Sparta, at the re- quest of Cleonymus, but when all his vigorous operations were insufficient to take the capital of Laconia, he retired to Argos where the treach- ery of Aristeus invited him. The Argives de- sired him to retire, and not to interfere in the affairs of their republic which were confounded by the ambition of two of their nobles. He compiled with thoir wishes, but in the night he marched his forces into the, town, and might have made himself master of the place had he not retarded his progress by entering it with his elephants. The combat that ensued was obstinate and bloody, and the monarch, to fight with more boldness, and to encounter dangers with more HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. QUE 423 RAL facility, exchanged his dress. He was attacked by one of the enemy, but as he was going to run him through in his own defence, tiie mo- ther oi' the Argive, who saw her son's danger from the tr*> of a house, threw down a tile, and brought Pyrrhus to the ground. His head was cut oif, and carried to Antigonus, who gave his remains a magnificent funeral, and presented liis ashes to his son Helenas, 272 years before the Christian era. QUEBEC, city ; the capital of Lower Canada, situated on a promontory, on the northwest side of the river St. Lawrence, 180 miles below Montreal, containing about 40,000 inhabitants. ft is divided into two parts, the Upper and Lower Town. The Upper Town is built on a bold precipice of naked rock, rising to the height of 345 feet. Some of the most striking peculi- arities of the place are thus forcibly described by an American author : " Ciuebec, for an American city, is certainly a peculiar town : a military town most com- pactly and permanently built stone its sole material environed, as to its important parts, by walls and gates and defended by numerous heavy cannon garrisoned by troops, having die arms, the costume, the music, the discipline of Europe foreign in language, features, and origin, from most of those whom they are sent to defend founded upon a rock, and its higher parts overlooking a great extent of country between three and four hundred miles from the ocean in the midst of a great continent, and yet displaying fleets of foreign merchantmen, in its fine capacious bay. and showing all the bustle of a crowded seaport its streets narrow, populous, and winding up and down almost mountain declivities situated in the latitude of the finest parts of Europe exhibiting in its environs the beauty of a European capital, and yet, in winter, smarting with the cold of Sibe- ria governed by people of different language and habits from the mass of the population opposed in religion, and yet leaving that popu- lation without laxes, and in the full enjoyment uf every privilege, civil and religious." Its siege and capture in 1759, by Major Gen- eral Wolfe, was fatal both to the English and French commanders. In 1776, General Mont- gomery and Arnold attempted to take Quebec by storm, but Montgomery fell, and Arnold was compelled to retreat. QUERETARO, one of the states of the Mex- 36* ican confederacy, formed in 1824, containing 1 5,000 square miles, and 60,000 inhabitants. The climate is temperate and the productions valua- ble. Q.UINCY, Josiah, junior, was born in Bos- ton, February 23, 1744, and graduated at Har- vard College in'l 763, after which he studied law, and raised himself to eminence in his profession. Together with John Adams, Mr. Quincy defended the soldiers who fired upon the Bostonians on the 5th of March, and pro- cured the acquittal of all but two, who were punished by a slight branding. In May, 1774, he published his Observations on the Act of Parliament, commonly called the ;< Boston Port Bill," with Thoughts on Civil Society, and Standing Armies, a work of great power. In September, 1774, Mr. Quincy sailed for Lon- don, in the hopes of benefiting his country by his patriotic exertions in England. His ser- vices were indeed valuable but his application completed the prostration of his bodily powers which had been previously sapped by long and hopeless disease. He died on his voyage home, April 20th, 1775. QUITO, recently a part of the republic of Colombia, and formerly attached to New Gra- nada. It now forms the republic of the Equa- tor. The city of the same name has 90.000 inhabitants. R. RAAB, a city of Hungary, where the Aus- trians commanded by the Archduke John, were defeated by the French under Eugene Beau- harnais, viceroy of Italy, June 14th, 1809. RALEIGH, or Ralegh, Sir Walter, was born in Devonshire, in 1552. He served in the Netherlands; and in 1579, accompanied hia half-brother, Sir Humphrey Gilbert, on a voy- age to America. On his return, he distin- guished himself against the Irish rebels, and was Joined in a commission for the government of M unster. In 1584, he obtained letters patent for discov- ering unknown countries, by virtue of which he took possession of that part of America, which was afterwards called, in honor of Eliza- beth, Virginia. Soon after this he received the honor of knighthood, was elected into parlia- ment for Devonshire, made warden of the Stan- naries, and also rewarded with several grants of land in England and Ireland. In 1583, he bore an active part in the destruc- tion of the Spanish armada ; and the year fol- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. RAM 424 REE lowing he accompanied the King of Portugal to his dominions, for which the queen gave him a gold chain. In 1592, he commanded an expedition against Panama. Q oon after this he fell under the royal displeasure, on account of an amour with tl.o daughter of Sir Nicholas Throgmorton. though Raleigh acted honorably in marrying the lady. In 1595, he engaged in an enterprise for the' conquest of Guiana, where he took the city of San Josef. The year following, he dis- played great valor in the expedition against Cadiz ; and he was also appointed to a command in the armament sent out to intercept the Span- ish plate fleet, which he would have captured had he not been thwarted by the earl of Essex. The ruin of that unfortunate nobleman was hastened by Raleigh, who little thought that he was thereby preparing the way for his own destruction. On the accession of James, he was deprived of his preferments, and brought to trial at Winchester, for conspiring, with Lord Cobham and others, to place Arabella Stewart on the throne. Raleigh was condemned ; but the sentence was respited, and he lay twelve years in the Tower. In 1016, he was released, and intrusted with a squadron destined against Guiana; but the enterprise failed, after an attack on the town of St. Thome, where Sir Walter's eldest son was killed. When Raleigh landed in Eng- land, he was arrested, and sent to the Tower, from whence he endeavored to make his escape, but was taken, and received sentence of de;;th, which was carried into execution in Old Palace Yard; Oct. 29, 1018. RA MILLIES, a village of Belgium, twen- ty-six miles southeast of Brussels, celebrated for a victory gained over the French by the duke of Marlborough, May 23, 170(J. The vic- tories obtained about this" time by the allies in Spain determined Louis to assemble all his forces in Flanders and on the Rhine. Villeroy was sent to check the conquests of the Duke of Marlborough. His army was attacked by Marl- borough near the village of Ramillies with such impetuosity, that the French were scarcely assailed when they were vanquished. The troops of the royal household, however, on the right, forced the Dutch and Danish cavalry to retreat towards the left, and would have com- pletely routed them had not Marlborough hast- ened to their succor. The troops of the royal household were driven back, and their ranks broken. The detachments stationed in the village were either put to death or made pris- oners ; and Villeroi and the elector of Bava- ria escaped with great difficulty. In the tu- multuous disorder of the French troops, the fugitives who were pursued by the enemy's cavalry, were impeded in their retreat by the baggage, and great numbers of them were slain. The field of battle was strewed witli 8000 killed, and (5000 were made prisoners. Thus the most formidable army which Louis XIV had raised for a considerable time, as the last effort of his despair, melted away with the glory of the nation, of which it was the sole resource. RANDOLPH. Peyton, president of the first Congress, was born in Virginia, and received his legal education in England. In 1748, hav- ing returned to Virginia, he was appointed king's attorney-general for the colony, although but twenty-five years of aire. April 12, 17tiG, he was chosen speaker of the house of burgesses, and resigned the office of attorney-general. As soon as he joined the first continental congress, he was chosen its president. His patriotic exertions were unfortunately terminated by a stroke of apoplexy, Oct. 21, 1775. RAVAILLAC, a fanatic, who assassinated Henry IV, of France, May 1-ith, KilO. The king had got into his carriage at four in the afternoon, to pay a visit to his minister Sully. He had boon followed eight davs by the regi cide, who had a poinard in his liana, and had not .quitted the side of the carriage since its departure from the palace of the Louvre. In the rue de. la Ferronnerie, a very narrow street, the re was a stoppage which induced the mon- arch to alight from his carriage. While he was stepping out, the assassin stabbed him twice with his poinard ; tin; second blow was fatal, and the corpse was conveyed to he Lou- vre. Ravaillae was seized, and put to death by the most horrid tortures which cruelty could devise. READ. George, one of the signers of the Dec- laration of Independence, born in Maryland, in the year 1734. In 1753, he was admitted to the bar," although but nineteen years old, and he commenced the practice of the law in the town of Newcastle. Through the revolutionary war he held a scat in Congress, and was a Senator of the United States, after the adoption of tlio constitution, until 1793, when he W;IH made chief-justice of Delaware. lie died suddenly in 1798. REED, Joseph, president of the state of Penn- sylvania, was born in New Jersey, August 27, 1741. He graduated at Princeton College, and studied law. Through part of the revolutionary HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REF 425 REF war he served with distinction, having the rank of adjutant-general. In 177d, he was elected to Congress. He was now secretly offered 10,000 by the British agents, if he would exert his abilities to effect a reconciliation with the parent country. His answer deserves com- memoration. " I am not worth purchasing ; but, poor as I am, the king is not rich enough to buy me." In the same year, he was elected president of Pennsylvania; and held the office three years. He first detected and exposed the character of Arnold, whom he brought to trial for mal-practices. President Reed died on the 5th of March. 1784. REFORMATION, that great change in the corrupted system of Christianity, begun by Lu- ther in the year 1517. Leo X, when raised to the papal throne, found the revenues of the church exhausted by the vast projects of his two ambitious predecessors, Alexander VI, and Julius II. His own temper, naturally liberal and enterprising, rendered him incapable of that severe and patient economy which the situation of his finances required. On the contrary, his schemes for aggrandizing the family of Medici, his love of splendor, his taste for pleasure, and his magnificence in rewarding men of genius, involved him daily in new expenses; in order to provide a fund for which, he tried every device that the fertile invention of priests had fallen upon, to drain the credulous multitude of their wealth. Among others, he had recourse to a sale of indulgences. The right of promulgating these indulgences iu Germany, together with a share in the pro- fits arising from the sale of them, was granted to Albert, elector of Mentz, and archbishop of Magdeburg, who, as his chief agent for retail- ing them in Saxony, employed Tetzel, a Domi- nician friar of licentious morals, but of an active spirit, and remarkable for his noisy and popular eloquence. Ho, assisted by the monks of his order, executed the commission with great zeal and success, but with little discretion or de- cency ; and though by magnifying excessively the benefit of their indulgences, and by dispos- ing of them at a very low price, they carried on for some time an extensive and lucrative traffic among the crudulous and the ignorant ; the extravagance of their assertions, as well as the irregularities in their conduct came at last to give general offence. Whilst Luther was at the height of his repu- tation and authority, Tetzel began to publish indulgences in the neighborhood of Wittem- berg, and to ascribe to them the same imaginary virtues which had, in other places, imposed on the credulity of the people. As Saxony was not more enlightened than the other provinces of Germany, Tetzel met with prodigious suc- cess there. It was with the utmost concern that Luther beheld the artifices of those who sold, and the simplicity of those who bought indul- gences. The opinions of Thomas Aquinas and the other schoolmen, on which the doctrine of indulgences was founded, had already lost much of their authority with him; and the Scriptures, which he began to consider as the great stand- ard of theological truth, afforded no counte- nance to a practice equally subversive of faith and of morals. His warm and impetuous tem- per did not suffer him long to conceal such important discoveries, or to continue a silent spectator of the delusion of his countrymen. From the pulpit, in the great church at Wit- temberg. he inveighed bitter.lv against the irreg- ularities and vices of the monks who published indulgences ; he ventured to examine the doc- trines which they taught, and pointed out to the people the danger of relying for salvation upon any other means than those appointed by God in his word. The boldness and novelty of these opinions drew great attention ; and being recommended by the authority of Luther's per- sonal character, and delivered with a popular and persuasive eloquence, they made a deep impression on his hearers. Encouraged by the favorable reception of his doctrines among the people, he wrote to Albert, elector of Mentz and archbishop of Magdeburg, to whose juris- diction that part of Saxony was subject, and remonstrated warmly against the false opinions, as well as wicked lives, of the preachers of indulgences; but he found that prelate too deeply interested in their success to correct their abuses. His next attempt was to gain the suffrage of men of learning. For this purpose he published ninety-five theses, containing his sentiments with regard to indulgences. These he proposed, not as points fully estab- lished, or of undoubted certainty, but as subjects of inquiry and disputation ; he appointed a day, on which the learned were invited to impugn them, either in person or by writing; to the whole he subjoined solemn protestations of his high respect for the apostolic see, and of his implicit submission to its authority. No oppo- nent appeared at the time fixed ; the theses spread over Germany with astonishing rapidity ; they were read with the greatest eagerness ; and all admired the boldness of the man, who CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REF 426 REF had ventured not only to call in question the plenitude of pap:J power, but to attack the Do- minicans, armed with all the terrors of inquisi- torial authority. The friars of St. Augustin, Luther's own order, gave no check to the publication of these uncommon opinions. Luther had, by his piety and learning, acquired extraordinary authority among his brethren : he professed the highest regard for the authority of the pope ; his pro- fessions were at that time sincere ; and as a secret enmity subsists among all the monastic orders of the Romish church, the Augustins were highly pleased with his invectives against the Dominicans, and hoped to see them exposed to the hatred and scorn of the people. His sovereign, the elector of Saxony, the wisest.prince at that time in Germany, secretly encouraged his attempts, and flattered himself that this dispute among the ecclesiastics them- selves might give some check to the exactions of the court of Rome, which the secular princes had long, though without success, been endeav- oring to oppose. Several theses appeared in opposition to the ninety-five published by Luther ; and the argu- ments produced for his confutation were the sentiments of schoolmen, the conclusions of the canon law, and the decrees of popes. In the mean time, these novelties in Luther's doc- trines, which interested all Germany, excited little attention and no alarm in the court of Rome. Leo, fond of elegant and refined plea- sures, intent upon great schemes of policy, a stranger to theological controversies, and apt to despise them, regarded with the utmost indif- ference the operations of an obscure friar, who, in the heart of Germany, carried on a scholas- tic disputation in a barbarous style. He impu- ted the whole to monastic enmity and emula- tion, and seemed inclined not to interpose in the contest, but to allow the Augustins and Dominicans to wrangle about the matter with their usual animosity. The solicitations, however, of Luther's adver- saries, together with the surprising progress which his opinions made in different parts of Germany, roused at last the attention of the court of Rome, and obliged Leo to take meas- ures for the security of the church against an attack that now appeared too serious to be despised. For this end he summoned Luther to appear at Rome, within sixty days, before the auditor of the chamber, and the inquisitor-gen- eral, win had written against him, whom lie empowered jointly to examine his doctrines, and to decide concerning them. He wrote, at the same time, to the elector of Saxony, be- seechincr him not to protect a man whose heret- ical and profane tenets were so shocking to pious ears; and enjoined the provincial of the Augustins to check, by his authority, the rashness of an arrogant monk, which brought disgrace upon the order of St. Augustin. and gave offence and disturbance to the whole church. The professors in the university of Wittemberg, anxious for Luther's safety, wrote to the pope, and, after employing several pre- texts to excuse Luther from appearing at Rome, entreated Leo to commit the examination of his doctrines to some persons of learning and au- thority in Germany. The elector requested the same thing of the pope's legate at the diet of Augsburg ; and as Luther himself, who at that time did not even entertain the smallest suspi- cion concerning the divine origin of papal au- thority, had written to Leo a submissive letter, promising an unreserved compliance with his will, the pope gratified them so far as to em- power his legate in Germany, cardinal Cajetan, a Dominican, eminent for scholastic learning 1 , and passionately devoted to the Roman see, to hear and determine the cause. Luther, having obtained the emperor's safe conduct, immediately repaired to Augsburg. The cardinal required him. by virtue of the apostolic powers with which he was clothed, t> retract his errors with regard to indulgences and the nature of faith, and to abstain for the future from the publication of new and danger- ous opinions. Luther, fully persuaded of the truth of his own tenets, and coniinned in the belief of them by the approbation which they had met with among persons conspicuous both for learning and piety, was surprised at this abrupt mention of a recantation, before any endeavors were used to convince him that he was mistaken. He declared with the utmost firmness, that he could not, with a safe con- science, renounce opinions which lie believed to be true; nor should any consideration ever induce him to do what would be so base in itself, and so offensive to God. At the same time, he continued to express no less reverence than formerly for the authority of the apostolic see ; he signified his willingness to submit the whole controversy to certain universities which lie named, and promised neither to write nor preach concerning indulgences for the future, provided his adversaries were likewise enjoined to be silent with respect to them. All these offers Cajetan disregarded or rejected, and still HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REF 427 REF insisted peremptorily, on a simple recantation, threatening him with ecclesiastical censures, and forbidding him to appear again in his pres- ence, unless he resolved instantly to comply with what he had required. The judges before whom Luther had been required to appear at Rome, without waiting for the expiration of the sixty days allowed him in the citation, had already condemned him as an heretic. Leo had, in several of his briefs and letters, stigmatized him as a child of ini- quity, and a man given up to a reprobate sense. As every step which was taken by the court of Rome, convinced Luther that Leo would soon proceed to the most violent measures against him, he had recourse to the only expedient in his power, in order to prevent the effect of the papal censures. He appealed to a general coun- cil, which he affirmed to be the representative of the Catholic church, and superior in power to the pope, who, being a fallible man, might err, as St. Peter, the most perfect of his prede- cessors, had erred. It soon appeared that Luther had not formed rash conjectures concerning the intentions of the church of Rome. A bull of a date prior to his appeal, was issued by the pope, in which he magnified the virtue and efficacy of indul- gences ; he required all Christians to assent to what he delivered as the doctrine of the catho- lic church, and subjected those, who should bold or teach any contrary opinion, to the heaviest ecclesiastical censures. Among Lu- ther's followers, this bull, which they consider- ed as an unjustifiable effort of the pope in order to preserve that rich branch of his revenue which arose from indulgences, produced little effect. But among the rest of his countrymen, such a clear decision of the sovereign pontiff against him, and enforced by such dreadful penalties, must have been attended with conse- quences very fatiil to his cause, if these had not been prevented, in a great measure, by the death of the emperor Maximilian, whom both his principles and his interest prompted to sup- port the authority of the holy see. To this event was owing the suspension of any fur- ther proceedings against Luther for 18 months. Perpetual negotiations, however, in order to bring the matter to some amicable issue, were carried on during tint space. The manner in which these were conducted having given Lu- ther many opportunities of observing the cor- ruption of the court of Rome, he began to utter some doubts with regard to the divine original of the papal authority. A public disputation was held upon this important question at Leip- sic, between Luther and Eccius, one of hia most learned and formidable antagonists ; but it was fruitless and indecisive. Nor did this spirit of opposition to the doctrines and usurp- ations of the Romish church break out in Sax- on v alone ; an attack no less violent, and occa- sioned by the same causes, was made upon them about this time in Switzerland. The Fran- ciscans being intrusted with the promulgation of indulgences in that country, executed their commission with the same indiscretion, which had rendered the Dominicans so odious in Ger- many. They proceeded nevertheless with un- interrupted success till they arrived at Zurich. There Zuinglius, a rian not inferior to Lu- ther in zeal and intrepidity, ventured to oppose them ; and being animated With a republican boldness, he advanced with more daring and rapid steps to overturn the whole fabric of the established religion. The appearance of such a vigorous auxilfary, and the progress which he made, was at first matter of great joy to Luther. On the other hand, the decrees of the universi- ties of Cologne and Louvaine, which pronounc- ed his opinions to be erroneous, afforded great cause of triumph to his adversaries. But the undaunted spirit of Luther acquired additional fortitude from every instance of op- position ; and he began to shake the firmest foundations on which the wealth or power of the church were established. At last, on the luth of June, 1520, the bull, so fatal to the church of Rome, was issued. Forty-one pro- positions, extracted out of Luther's works, are therein condemned as heretical, scandalous, ind offensive to pious ears; all persons are for- bidden to read his writings, upon pain of ex- communication ; such as had any of them in their custody, are commanded to commit them to the flames : he himself, if he did not, within GO days, publicly recant his errors, and burn his books, is pronounced an obstinate heretic ; is excommunicated, and delivered unto Satan for the destruction of his flesh ;. and all secular princes are required, under pain of incurring the same censure, to seize his person, that he might be punished as his crimes deserved. This sentence, which he had for some time expected, did not disconcert or intimidate Lu- ther. After renewing his appeal to the general council, he published remarks upon the bull of excommunication; and being now persuaded tlint Leo had been guilty both of impiety and injustice in his proceedings against him, he boldly declared the pope to be that man of sin, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REF 428 REF or antichrist, whose appearance is foretold in the New Testament ; he declaimed against his tyranny and usurpations with greater violence than ever; he exhorted all Christian princes to shake off such an ignominious yoke ; and boasted of his own happiness in being marked out as the object of ecclesiastical indignation, because he had ventured to assert the liberty of mankind. In the following year he was re- quested to appear before his avowed enemy, the Emperor Charles V, in the diet at Worms, when, unmoved by the apprehensions of his friends, who reminded him of the fate of Huss, he instantly obeyed, and there acknowledged, that his writings had occasionally been violent and acrimonious ; but he refused to retract his opinions, until they should be proved erroneous by the scriptures. An edict, pronouncing him an excommuni- cated criminal, and commanding the seizure of his person as soon as the duration of the safe conduct which he had obtained should have ex- pired, was immediately promulgated. Freder- ick the Wise, elector of Saxony, who had all along countenanced him without professing his doctrines, now withdrew him from the storm. As Luther was returning from Worms, a troop of horsemen, in masks, rushed from a wood, seized him, and conveyed him to the castle of Wartburg, where he was concealed nine months, encouraging his adherents by his pen, and cheered in return by accounts of the rapid diffusion of his doctrines. John, the successor of Frederick, took a decisive step, and establish- ed the reformed religion in 1527 throughout his dominions. In a diet at Spires, held about the same time, the execution of the edict of Worms against the Lutherans, now too formid- able to be oppressed with impunity, was sus- pended until the convocation of a general coun- cil, to remedy the disorders of the church. But in another diet held at the same place, in 1512!), the suspension was revoked by a decree obtain- ed through the influence of Charles; who then found himself at more leisure to push forward his views against the supporters of the reform- ation. Against this new decree, six princes, and the deputies of thirteen imperial cities and towns, solemnly protested ; and from this the appellation of Protestants became common to all who embraced the reformed religion. At the diet of Augsburg, in Swabia, the following year, a clear statement of the reformed faith, drawn up by Luther and Melancthon, was pre- sented to Charles and the diet, on behalf of the Protestant members of the empire ; and hence it obtained the name of " the Confession of Augsburg." This confession was received as the standard of the Protestant faith in Germany. The same or next year, the Protestant princes made the famous league of Smalkalde, for the mutual defence of their religion, which obliged the emperor to grant the Protestant Luther- ans a toleration, till the differences in religion should be settled in a council, which he engaged himself to call in six months. The Protestant party gaining strength every day, instead of being viewed only as a religious sect, as hither- to, soon came to be considered as a political body of no small consequence ; and having re- fused the bull for convening a council at Man tua, Charles summoned a general diet at Ratis- bon, where a scheme of religion, for reconcil- ing the two parties, was examined and proposed, but without effect. At length, in 1545, the famous council of Trent was opened for accommodating the dif- ferences in religion; but the Protestants refused to attend or obey a council convoked in the name, and by the authority, of the pope, and governed by his legates. The following year Luther died, but the work of reformation which he had begun did not die with him ; for though Charles, having concluded a treaty with the pope for the destruction of the reformed reli- gion and its adherents, assembled troops on all sides, and was at first successful in the field, yet on the appearance of Maurice, elector of Saxony, in arms ngiiinst him, with a force which he was wholly unprepared to resist, he was checked in his career, and the consequences were, the " religious peace," concluded at Pas- sau, in Bavaria, in 1552, and the complete security of religious freedom to the Protestant states in Germany, which they have enjoyed ever since. During the course of these events the reformed opinions were extending their in- fluence in various other countries. Before this time, tlicv were completely adopted in Sweden, and had likewise obtained perfect toleration in Denmark, where the} 7 were adopted soon after as the doctrines of the national church. They were, also, da ilv gaining con verts in other king- doms of Europe. They acquired many friends even in Italy. They privately diffused them- selves in Spain, notwithstanding the crowded dungeons and busy flames of the Inquisition. In France they had still more ample success, where their abettors have long been contempt- uously termed Huguenots. This appellation was given to the Protestants in France in 15GO, and is supposed by some to be derived from a HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REG 429 REV gate in Tours called Huguon, where they first assembled. According to others, the name is taken from the first words of their original pro- test, or confession of faith, Hue nos venimus, &c. At Geneva, they were firmly established by Calvin ; but their principal triumph was in Great Britain, where the papal power and juris- diction were abolished by parliament, the king was declared supreme head of the church, and all the authority of which the popes were de- prived was vested in him. In England, that vast fabric of ecclesiastical dominion, which had been raised with sucli art, and of which the foundations seemed to have been laid so deep, being no longer supported by the veneration of the people, was overturned in a moment. In the reign of Edward VI, a total separation was made from the church of Rome in articles of doctrine, as well as in matters of discipline and jurisdiction. The Roman Catholics themselves are ready to admit, that the papal doctrines and authority would soon have fallen into ruin in all parts of the world, in consequence of the opposition made lothem by Luther and his adherents, had not the force of the secular arm, and the fire of the Inquisition, been employed to support tin? tottering edifice. In the Netherlands par- ticularly, the most grievous persecutions took place ; so that, by the Emperor Charles V, up- wards of 100,000 were destroyed, whilst still greater cruelties were exercised upon the peo- ple there by his son. Philip II. The formida- ble ministers of the Inquisition put so many to death, and perpetrated such horrid acts of cru- elty and oppression in Italy, &c, that most of the reformed consulted their safety by a volun- tary exile, while others returned to the religion of Rome, at least in external appearance. In France, too. the Huguenots were persecuted with unparalleled fury; and, though many princes of the blood, and of the first nobilitv, had embraced their sentiments, yet in no part of the world did the reformers suffer more. REGULUS, M. Attiliius, a consul during the first Punic war. He reduced Brundusium; and, in his second consulship, he took sixty- four, and sunk thirty, galleys of the Cartha- ginian fleet on the coast of Sicily. Afterwards he landed in Africa; and so rapid was his suc- cess, that in a short time he defeated three gen- erals, and made himself master of about two bundred places of consequence on the coast. The Carthaginians sued for peace, but the con- queror refused to grant it, and soon after he was defeated in a battle by Xanthippus, and 30,000 of his men were left on the field of battle, and 15,000 taken prisoners. Regulus was in the number of the captives, and he was carried in triumph to Carthage. He was afterwards sent by the enemy to Rome to propose an accommo- dation, and an exchange of prisoners ; and, if his commission was unsuccessful, he was bound by the most solemn oaths to return to Carthage without delay. When he came to Rome, Reg- ulus dissuaded his countrymen from accepting the terms which the enemy proposed ; and when his opinion had had due influence on the senate, he then retired to Cartilage, agreeably to his en- gagements. The Carthaginians were told that their oilers of peace had been rejected at Rome by the means of Regulus ; and, therefore, they prepared to punish him with the greatest sever- ity. His eyelids were cut off, and he was expos- ed for some days to the excessive heat of the meridian sun, and afterwards confined in a bar- rel, whose sides were every where filled with large iron spikes, till he died in the greatest agonies. His sufferings were known at Rome, and the senate permitted his widow to inflict whatever punishments she pleased on some of the most illustrious captives of Cartharge who were in their hands. She confined them also in presses filled with sharp iron points ; and was so exquisite in her cruelty, that the senate at last interfered, and stopped the barbarity of her punishments. Regulus died about 2ol years before Christ. REVOLUTION, AMERICAN. For an ac- count of the causes which produced this great event, the reader is icferred to the article United States. In the present article we shall present a somewhat detailed account of the war, touch- ing briefly, however, on those events which have been noticed under their respective heads. The first battle of the American Revolution was fought upon the 19th of April, 1775, at Lexington and Concord. Stores had been col- lected at the last named place, 18 miles from Boston, for the American army, and General Gage determined to destroy them. Wishing to do it without fightinsr, he sent out 800 grena- diers and light infantry, from Boston, at 11 o'clock in the evening of the 18th. as silently as possible. It was heard of. however, in the country. By two o'clock in the morning. 130 of the Lexington militia had assembled on the green, at the meeting-house, to oppose them. They were dismissed, but collected again be- tween four and five, at the beat of the drum. The 800 British troops came marching up the road, Major Pitcairn at their head. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 430 REV " Disperse, you rebels !" cried the major, ad- dressing the militia ; " throw down your arms, and disperse !" They did not disperse, however. He now rode forward, discharged a pistol, bran- dished his sword, and ordered his soldiers to fire. They did so, and three or four of the Americans were killed. The soldiers shouted, fired again, and then proceeded towards Con- cord. At Concord, they disabled two large cannon, threw 500 pounds of ball into wells, and staved about GO barrels of flour. They fired upon the Concord militia under Major Butterick's com- mand. Two men were killed; a skirmish fol- lowed, and the English retreated, as fast as possible, to Lexington. The people we:e com- ing upon them, by this time, from all parts of the country. The British were fired upon, on all sides, from the sheds, houses and fences. At Lexington, where they halted to rest, they were joined by 900 more troops, sent out from Boston, under Lord Percy. These brought two cannon with them; and the country people were kept back. They still fired upon the troops, however, and, being generally good marksmen, made terrible havoc. The regulars, as the En- glish troops were called, reached Charlestown at sunset, and returned the next day into Bos- ton. Sixty-five of their number had been kill- ed, one hundred and eighty wounded, and twenty-eight made prisoners. Of the provin- cials, fifty were killed, and thirty-eight wound- ed and missing. There were never more than three or four hundred of the latter fighting at one time, and these fought as they pleased, without order. The regulars were obliged to keep in the main road; but the militia, knowing every inch of the country, flanked them, and fired upon them at all the corners. The news of this first battle produced a tre- mendous excitement throughout the country. The dead were buried with great ceremony and pomp. Great bodies of militia marched towards Boston. Agreements were entered into by thousands of people, to defend the Bottonian* to the last gasp. The English forts, arsenals, magr/ines, and public money, were seized upon by the people; and more money was coined, and more troops were raised. Every body was armed, and ready for battle. When the news of the Lexington battle reached Barnstable, a company of militia started oil' for Cambridge at once. In the front rank was a. young man, the only child of an old farmer. As thi-v came to the old gentleman's house, they halU-d a moment. The drum and fife ceased. The farmer came out with his gray head bare. ' : Cod be with you all," said he ; " and you, John, if you must fight, fight like a man, or never let me see you again." The old man gave him his blessing. The poor fellow brushed a tear from his eye, and the company inarched on. The news of the battle reached a small town in Connecticut, on the morning of the Sabbath. It was nearly time to go to meeting, when the beating of a. drum, and the ringing of the bell, attracted the attention of the people. In ex- pectation that some great event was about to happen, every unusual signal had a startling effect upon the public ear. When the drum and the bell were heard, therefore, the men came running to the meeting-house green, in breathless haste. Soon the clergyman was among them, and they were all told, that some of their countrymen had been shot by the Brit- ish soldiers, at Lexington. The faces of the men, as they heard it, were pale, but not from fear; it'was immediately resolved, that thirty persons should be equipped, and set out for Boston. Those who could best go, were select- ed, and went home to make preparations. At noon, they had all returned to the little lawn in front of the meeting-house. Theie was a crowd of people around. There were friends, and acquaintances, and wives, and children. Such as were not well supplied with clothes and equipments, were immediately sup- plied by their neighbors. Among the crowd, there was one remarkable individual. This was a rich old miser, who was never known to part with his money, but with extreme reluctance. On the present occasion, his na- ture seemed changed. lie took several of the soldiers apart, whom he supposed likely to be destitute, and put into their hands about thirty dollars in hard cash ; at the same time saying, in a low voice, " Shoot the rascals ! shoot them ! If you come back, perhaps you will pay me; if not, God bless you/' "After all the arrangements were made, the soldiers entered the broad aisle of the church. An aftecting and fervent prayer was then offer- ed by the clergyman, in behalf of the country, and in behalf of these brave men. lliat were about to enter upon the dangerous chances of war. After the prayer, he made a short but animated address, encouraging the men to do their dutv. He pronounced a blessing, and then they departed. General Putnam was a farmer, and was ploughing in the tield, when the tidings from HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REV 431 REV Lexington were brought to him. He did not stay even to unharness his cattle ; but, leaving the plough in the unfinished furrow, he went to his house, gave some hasty directions re- specting his affairs, mounted his horse, and with a rapid pace proceeded to Boston. The Assembly was, at this time, sitting at Watertown, a few miles from Boston. They sent a letter, explaining the whole affair, to the English people. They complained, that the troops had long been insulting the provincials, and had now undertaken to murder them. They begged of the government to interfere, and prevent war ; but declared, they would submit to no more tyranny. They called God to witness the justice of their cause, and p'edg- ed themselves to defend each other to the last drop of blood. Letters were sent also to other Colonies. They voted to raise a large army, and, in a short time, 30,000 were assembled about Bos- ton ; thousands, who were not needed, were sent home. General Putnam commanded at Cambridge, and General Thomas at lloxbury; all intercourse between the English troops and the country ended at once. It must be considered, however, that this collection of people was very different from a well-trained army. But they were brave, and heartily devoted to the cause. The country people' supplied them with large quantities of vegetables and meat. But they went and came as they pleased. They had few uniforms : their muskets were of all sizes and shapes ; they had only sixteen cannon, and half of these were not fit for use ; and. though all the men were good marksmen, only a few regiments had been trained enough to- appeal- like regular soldiers. The same might be said of the * militia throughout the country. But they determined to make the best of themselves, of their heavy old cannon, and rusty muskets; and were in great hopes, that, by a few short battles, the English would be entirely driven from the country. The English, on the other hand, especially in England, had a mean opinion of the American courage. One of their generals promised, if they would give him five or six regiments, he would drive the whole of these cowardly rebels from one end of the continent to the other. The British troops soon began to feel a little uncomfortable in Boston. The provincials had surrounded them so completely, that no pro- visions could enter the city. Fresh meat and vegetables were very scarce ; and though they 37 had vessels enough, they could get no supplies on the coast of New England. The people every where had driven their cattle into the back country. The governor would not suffer the inhabi- tants of Boston to leave the town. He feared that, if they left, the Americans would fall upon him at once. But he promised them, at last, that, if all their arms 'should be handed in at Faneuil Hall, or some other place, they should be allowed to go away, and thirty carts should be admitted from the country to carry off their furniture. About 1800 muskets, and a great many pis- tols and bayonets, were given up accordingly ; and several of the citizens received passports, and left the town. But the 'governor soon after pretended, that the people had deceived him, in keeping back part of their arms, and he refused any more passports. The poor and sick only were suffered to go. Among these, there were several who were terribly afflicted with the small-pox. The disease spread among the militia about Boston, and the Americans were now more angry than ever, for they sus- pected this to be a matter of design on the part of General Gage. While these things were passing, the other Provinces were also preparing for war. The people of New York refused the English troops there all supplies. They armed and trained themselves, seized upon the ammunition in the arsenals, removed the women and children, and determined, if nothing else would do, to burn the whole of that large and beautiful city. In New Jersey, at the news of the Lexington battle, the people seized upon the public treas- ure, and, at Baltimore, upon about 1500 Eng lish muskets. Similar steps were taken in South Carolina, where two regiments of infan- try, (foot soldiers.) and one of cavalry, (horse- men.) were raised in a few days. There was, at this time, a great deal of diffi culty in Virginia, between the English gover- nor, Dunmore, and the Assembly. He feared the people would seize en the powder of the public magazine at Williamsburgh, and order- ed it to be carried on board a vessel called the Jasper, lying at anchor in the river James. The mob crowded about his house ; and he be gan to talk of setting free the negro slaves, and destroying the city. On the whole, it was clear, that both "the governor and the people were in a humor for fighting. They went farther than this in Connecticut. It was there resolved to undertake an expedi- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 432 REV tion to Ticonderoga, on Lake Champlain, near Canada. As this place was full of stores, and stood upon the great route by which every thing and every body passed, between Canada and the Provinces, it was important to conquer it. The Connecticut Assembly voted 1,800 dollars for the purpose ; and powder, ball, and whatever would be needed for a siege, was provided. The troops assembled with as Ijttle display as possible, at Castletown, on the banks of Wood Creek, on the great road to Ticonderoga. Some of these troops were from Connecticut, some from the Boston army, and some were people from the Green Mountains, in Vermont. These latter were called Green Mountain Boys, and were famous for skill in the use of the rifle. The capt tin of one of these companies cap- tured an English officer, a year or two afier the time we are speaking of. The Englishman complained to the American captain, that these riflemen gave the regulars a great deal of trou- ble. " They aim," said he, " at an English officer, as far as they can see his uniform plain- ly, and shoot him dead. They hardly conde- scend to kill any thing less than a corporal." " They can do better still," said the Ameri- can captain ; and he ordered up two of his riflemen. " Is your piece in good order ? " said lie to the first. " Yes, sir," answered the Green Mountaineer. He then stuck a knife in a tree, about fifty paces distant, and ordered the man to split his ball. He fired, and the ball was cut in two pieces on the edge of the knife. The other was ordered to shoot the ace of clubs out of a card; and he did so. The Englishman was amazed. These sharp-shooters had only been four weeks from their ploughs in Vermont. The leaders of the expedition against Ticon- deroga, were Colonel Ethan Allen and Colonel Easton. They were joined at Castletown by Colonel Arnold, from the Boston army. They marched on quietly, and arrived in tin- niirht on the bunk of the lake, opposite Ticonderoga. They crossed over, and landed on the other side, close by the fortress. ' They entered it under the covered way. by .. with a tremendous shout. The sol- diers of the garrison were roused, ran out, half dressed, and began firing. A hot seu!'.L>. with gun-breeches and bayonets, hand to hand, en- sued. The commander of the fort ca>ne at las'. Colonel Allen ordered him to surrender. " T > whom - " said the olh'cer, in great astonishment. " To the American Congress! " said Allen, in a voice of thunder. The commander saw it was in vain to resist, and BO he gave up the fort. Here were found 124 fine brass cannon, and a large quantity of ammunition . A hundred cannon more were taken by the Americans at Crown Point, another fort on the snme lake, defended by a small garrison. The next plan was to seize upon an English armed vessel, called a corvette, which lay anchored near fort St. John. The Americans soon rigged out a schooner. Arnold commanded it. and sail- ed with a fair wind for the fort, while Allen followed slowly, with his troops, in some flat boats. Arnold came upon the corvette, and captured it without the least difficulty. The wind sud- denly shifted, and he was far on his way back. with the prize, when he met Allen and the boats. After taking another fort at Skeensbo- rough, the officers and soldiers returned home. Meanwhile, the English were skirmishing with the provincials at Boston. There were some islands in the harbor, where the English found forage for their horses and cattle. The Americans" undertook to carry orT these cattle from Noddle's Island and Hog Island, and suc- ceeded, after some fighting. They scoured Pettick's Island and Deer Island, soon after, in the same way. The English were put to a good deal of trouble to get food. They were finally so much pressed by the American army, that General Gage found him- self obliged to make a new effort against them. The provincials hud sent 1000 men. under Colonel Piescott, to f>rtifv Bunker's Hill, in Charlestown. Instead <>f d.'hi 1 .; BO, however. by some mistake, he fortified Breed's Hill, which is nenror the city. '1 he Americans took possession of it in the evening, and worked so well, that, before morning, they had thrown up a redoubt about eio-ht rods square; and so silently, that the British knew nothing of it till day-break. The latter, when they discovered 1he redoubt, bog:in firing upon the people in the fort ; but the Americans worked on. till they raised a breastwork, reaching from the cast side of the redoubt to the bottom of the hill. As Breed's Hill commands the citv. the British saw they must either be driven off, or drive oiF the pro- vincials. They, therefore, opened a tremendous fire from the batteries and armed vessels, that floated on all the waters about Boston. Show- ers of bombs and balls wore fired. A terrible battery was raised upon Copp's Hill, opposite Breed's ; but all in vain. The Americans work- ed on, and had finished a liench. or ditch before noon, which reached to the bottom of the hill. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL REV 433 REV It was now the 17th of June, and on this day was fought the famous battle of Bunker Hill. The British were determined to make a great effort. The provincials lay ready for them on the hill. General Putnam, of Connecticut, commanded the whole force. They had mus- kets, but few of them bayonets or rifles. They were sharp-shooters, however, and were brave men as ever breathed. About noon of a terribly hot day, the whole British camp seemed to be in motion. A vast multitude of sloops and boats started from the Boston shore, covering the water far and wide. The soldiers landed at Moreton's Point, in Charlcstown, protected by their batteries behind them. Here they paraded in fine order. They were the flower of the English army, and were commanded by General Howe and General Pigot. But the Americans appeared a little too strong and too cool for them ; and they waited for a few more companies to join them. The Americans took this opportunity to pro- tect themselves still more, by pulling up some post and rail fences, which they set before them, in two rows, and filled the space between with fresh hay, which they gathered from the hill. The British began to march. The militia left to defend Charlestown, retreated. The British entered it, and set fire to the buildings. In a few moments, 500 wooden buildings were in flames. The wind blew high, and the fire streamed up, and roared in the most terrible manner. Thousands of people were gazing at the scene, from the Boston steeples, and waiting with great anxiety for the fate of the battle. There were multitudes, also, on all the high roofs and hills round about. Never was there such a bustle and stir. The English marched slowly towards the redoubt, halting now and then. "for the cannon to come up and fire. They came, at last, within musket-shot; and the re- doubt, which had been as still as the grave, till this moment, blazed all at once, with a tremen- dous volley. The British were soon thinned off, and com- pelled to retreat. Many fled for their lives, and threw themselves into the boats. The green *ield of battle was covered with dead bodies. The officers ran hither and thither, to rally the troops; and, after some time, persuaded them to march forward again. The Americans wait- ed for them qtfietly, and reeeived them once more with a flood of balls. The British fled down the hill to the shore. General Howe was alone upon the field ; all his officers being killed and wounded around him. General Clinton, wno had been watching the battle from Copp's Hill, now came to hi* aid with new troops. They made a third effoit, with more spirit than before. Clinton led on the whole body; the cannon still firing from the ships and batteries, and the flames and smoke of the burning town sweeping over them like the blast of a furnace. The powder of the Americans was now ex- hausted, and they were compelled to draw off. They retired to Prospect Hill, fighting with their muskets as if they were clubs, and there began throwing up new works. The British intrenched themselves on Bunker Hill, and neither army seemed willing to attack the other. They had had fighting enough for one day. Of 3UOO British troops, 1054 were killed or wounded. A large part of these were officers. The sharp- shooters had taken the poor fellows down like so many gray squirrels. The Americans lost five pieces of cannon. Their killed, of about 1,500 engaged in the hat- tie, amounted to ]34; their wounded to 314. General Warren was among the dead. He was a brave man, and was loved and lamented by all classes of people. An English officer, who knew him by sight, saw him in the retreat, rallying the Americans. He borrowed a gun of one of his soldiers, and, taking a fatal aim, shot him in the head, and he fell dead on the spot. The battle of Bunker Hill, as it was called, though fought on Breed's Hill, had no decisive effect; yet it roused the country, showed the Americans that they were able to contend with the regulars, and taught the British, that the provincials were not exnctly the cowards they had taken them for. The capture of Breed's Hill did them more hurt than good. They were obliged to defend it now, and they had not too many men before to defend the town. Their soldiers were also vvorn out with fatigue, and were much depressed by the hot weather. The Americans began now to fortify the town of Roxbury. Their works went up very fast, notwithstanding the continual fire of the British cannon. They 'uad plenty of food, too, while the British were near starving. The latter could get nothing on the Boston islands, or along the Massachusetts coast, but by hard fighting ; and very little by that. They were at last obliged to let most of the Bostonians pass out of the town. They had not provisions enough to keep them alive. A British sloop of war, the Falcon, Captain CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 434 REV Linzee, one day, " hove in sight," as the sailors say, off that town. She had been in search of two American schooners from the West Indies. One of these, Captain Linzee had just captured, and he now followed the other into Gloucester harbor. He anchored, and sent two barges, with fif- teen men in each, armed with muskets and swivels, and followed by a whale boat, in which was a lieutenant and six privates, with orders to seize the schooner, and bring her off. The Gloucester people saw what was going on, and brouffht out their rusty muskets along shore in great numbers. The lieutenant, with the barge- men, boarded the schooner at the cabin win- dows. The militia, however, began to blaze away at them off the shore. Three of the Brit- ish were killed, and the lieutenant was wound- ed in the thigh. He-soori made off for the Fal- con, as fast as his boat would carry him. Captain Linzee now sent a cutter and the schooner he had taken, with orders to fire on the " saucy rebels," wherever they should see them. He amused himself, meanwhile, by cannonading the town. He fired a broadside int> the thickest part of the settlement, to begin with. " Now," said he to the crew, " now, my boys, we'll aim at that dirty old church. Well done ! crack away ! one shot more ! knock 'em down ! " The balls went through the houses in every direction; but not a man, woman or child was injured. Meanwhile the men of Gloucester had gone out upon the water, and taken possession of both schooners, the cutter, the two barges, the boat, and every man in them all. They had but one killed, and two wounded. The British lost about forty men. The Continental Congress met again at Phil- adelphia, May 7, 1775.^ They were men sent from all the Colonies but Georgia; and though they had no precise right, by any law, to act for the whole country, yet the whole country were ready to obey them. They c!i >se George Washington, of Virginia, commander-in-chief of the American army, and appointed miny other officers to act under him. Among these were Gates. Lee, Schuyler and Montgomery, of .New York; Po.neroy, Heath and Thomas, <>;' Massachusetts; Greene, of llh'id" l:,h:i 1 ; i'u'rrrii, Wooster and Spi-neer. of Connecticut; Ward and Sullivan, of .N'ew Hampshire. These were some of the bravest arid lii-st men of the country. General Washington went directly to the army at Cambridge. He arrived there on the 3d of July. Though he used no parade, \venrmg only a small sword at his side, epaulettes on his shoulders, and a black cockade on his hat, he was easily known, by his fine figure and noble countenance. He was treated every where with tile greatest respect. Having reviewed the army, he found only 14,50!) men in a condition for service ; these had to defend a line of twelve miles. They were now ai ranged and trained as well and as fast as possible, no man understanding this business better than General Gates, who was an old soldier, as well as Washington. They had not 10,000 pounds of powder, at this time, in the army, being only nine charges- to a man. Had the enemy known this, and attacked them, they must have fled like a flock of deer. Great efforts were made, however, and several tons soon arrived from New Jersey. The provincials had, at this time, no riflemen; though light troops of this kind were exceeding- ly needed, to bring in recruits, and provisions, and to scour such a wild country as America then was, abounding in rivers, swamps, moun- tains, and woods. Congress soon raised a few companies in Pennsylvania and Virginia; and 1,400 of them arrived at the camp early in Au- gust. These troops had, some of them, marched five or six hundred miles, and were stout and hardy men ; many of them were more than six feet tall. They were dressed in white frocks, or rifle shirts, and round hats. They were terrible fellows for sharp-shooting ; equal to the Green Mountain Boys already mentioned. At a re- view, a company of them, on a quick march, fired their balls into marks seven inches across, at the distance of 250 yards. They often shot down the British officers, in Boston, like so many wild animals, at more than double the common musket distance. More powder was procured about this time, from the coast of Africa, in exchange for New England rum. This was managed so shrewdly, that every ounce in the British torts there, was bought up for the America:! nruiy. The Mas- s:ieh:iselts rulers passed a law," also, that no powder should be iired at any beast, bird, or mnrk ; they wished it. all to be saved for the war. Congress took measures for the coining of money, and the raising of troops; i;i all quarters. The people obeve.l !.h;: direeli us of Congress with alacrity. " Every man, from sixteen years of age to fifty, was a member of some militia company ; and one fourth part of the whole, c.-iiled minute men, were to keep themselves ready for action at a moment's notice. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REV 435 REV Captains were to be paid twenty dollars a month ; lieutenants and ensigns, thirteen ; cor- porals and sergeants, eight; and privates, six. No province was more active than Pennsylva- nia. Companies were raised in all the country towns. Many of the Quakers, even though they did not approve of fighting, were so carried away with the general feeling, as to turn out and train with the rest. Three large battalions were raised in Phila- delphia alone, besides artillery, cavalry, rifle- men, pioneers, and others. They often manoau- vred in presence of Congress. The whole city was full of the music of drums, fifes and bugles. Among others, a company was formed of eighty old Germans, who had, most of them, fought a long time before in Europe. They were called the Old Men's Company. Instead of cockades, they wore black crape, to signify their sorrow at taking up arms at such an age. The captain was near a hundred years old. and had been in seventeen battles. He had been a soldier forty years.^ The drummer was ninety- four, and the youngest in the corps was about seventy. In the county of Bristol, a regiment was raised, and they were clothed, armed, and furnished with colors bv the women. About this time, Congress took the necessary steps to keep peace with the Indian tribes. But they never employed them to fight against the English, though the English hired them to fight against the Americans. One objection that the Americans had to employing them was, that the Indian way of fighting was entirely too barbarous and cruel to be suffered among civil- ized people. Another was, that they could not be depended on. They were greedy for wages, hut so de- ceitful, that they could not be safely trusted. A story told of a sergeant, who travelled through the woods of New Hampshire, on his way to the American army, will show the character of the Indians. He had twelve men with him. Their route was far from any settlement ; and they were obliged every night to encamp in the woods. The sergeant had seen a good deal of the Indi- ans, and understood theni well. Early in the afternoon, one day, as they were marching on, over bogs, swamps and brooks, under the great maple trees, a body of Indians, more than their own number, rushed out upon a hill in front of them. They appeared to be pleased at meeting with the sergeant and his men. They considered them, they said, as their best friends. For 37* themselves, they had taken up the hatchet for the Americans, and would scalp and strip those rascally English for them, like so many wild cats. " How do you do. pro ?" (meaning broth- er,) said one ; and " How do ye do, pro?" said another ; and so they went about, shaking hands with the sergeant and his twelve men. They went off. at last ; and the sergeant, having marched on a mile or two. halted his men. and addressed them. " My brave fellows," said he, " we must use all possible caution, or, before morning, we shall all of us be dead men. You are amazed; but, depend upon me, these Indians have tried to put our suspicion to sleep. You will see more of them by and by." They concluded, finally, to adopt the follow- ing scheme for defence. They encamped for the night near a stream of water, which pro- tected them from behind. A large oak was felled, and a brilliant fire kindled. Each man cut a log of wood about the size of his body, rolled it nicc-ly up in his blanket, placed his hat on the end of it, and laid it before the fire, that the enemy might take it for a man. Thirteen logs were fitted out in this way, representing the sergeant and his twelve men. They then placed themselves, with loaded guns, behind the fallen tree. By this time, it was dark ; but the fire was kept burning till mid- night. The sergeant knew, that if the savages ever came, they would come now. A tall Indian was seen, at length, through the glimmering of the fire, which was getting low. He moved cautiously towards them, skulking, as an Indian always does. He seem- ed to suspect, at first, that a guard might be watching; but, seeing none, he came forward more boldly, rested on his toes, and was seen to move iiis finger, as he counted the thirteen men, sleeping, as he supposed, by the fire. He counted them again, and retired. Another camo u;>. and did the same. Then the whole party, sixteen in number, came up. and glared silently at the logs, till they seemed to be sat- isfied they were fast asleep. Presently they took aim, fired their whole number of guns upon the logs, yelled the horrid war-whoop, and rushed forward to murder and scalp their supposed victims. The sergeant and his men were ready for them. They fired upon them ; and not one of the Indians was left to tell the story of that night. The sergeant reached the army in safely. Treaties having been made with the Indians, Congress recommended, that the 20th day of July, 1775, should be observed, in all the Pro- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 436 REV vinces. as a day of fasting and prayer; and it Was so. The people were every where disposed to implore Heaven to prevent war, and to soften, the hearts of their enemies. In Philadelphia, Congress attended church in a body. As they were just entering the house of wor- ship, they received news from Georgia, that this Province had at last concluded to join in the common cause, with the other twelve. Un- til this time, the people there had said and done but little ; but they determined now to make amends for lost time. A Declaration of Rights was soon after writ- ten by Congress, and sent over every part of the country. It gave a history of the whole difficulty, from first to last, between England and America; and ended with an account of the burning of Charlestown, the seizure of the provincial vessels by the British, and the hiring of the savages to fight against the Americans. " We are~compelled," said they, '" to submit to tyranny, or to take up arms. We have counted the cost of this war, and have deter- mined ta be free, as our fathers have teen be- fore us, and as we trust our children shall be after us. We declare, before God, that we will defend each other, and the liberties of the whole country, to the last moment of life." This was signed by John Hancock, president, and by Clvirles Thompson, secretary, of Con- gress. The ministers read it from their pulpits in all parts of the nalion. It was read in Cam- bridge, t > a vast multitude, and General Putnam assembled his troops on Prospect Hill to hear it. This was followed by a prayer from a cler- gy mm. All the troops cried, three times, "Amen;" the artillery ti.-ed a gone nil salute, and the colors were seen flying, with the usual mottoes; on ons side, " An appeal to Heaven," and, on the other, ' lie who has brought us over will defend us." A petition was next drawn tip to the English king, and address-* were written to i '.. nf Ku.'hind. Ireland, and Canada. Congress \vrrr resolved to leave nothinf unsaid, or un- done, that offered any chance of restoring peace. The Canadians were persuaded to remain Cen- tral, taking no part on either side. The British general, C.irleton, used efforts to make them enlist as soldiers. They wore offer- ed two hundred acres of land in any part, of Arnfric-i th"v should choose, at the end of the war. K n-h m-irriod nrin was to Irivo liliy acres more for his wife, and fifty for each of his chil- dren ; with a guinea, (about five dollars,) as a bounty, at the time of enlisting. A few only were persuaded in this way ; a good many Indians, however, were hired. They collected at Montreal, in great numbers, in July, 1775. Among the rest were six famous tribes, called the Six Nations. They swore, in the presence of Carleton, to fight for the English king; and thus, soon after, the Indian war be- gan. It may seem strange, that, during the dis- turbances in the various Colonies, little or no- thing should have been done, by the English governors, to put down the rebellion. The truth is, they had no troops, and not much mo- ney, at their disposal; and. before they could be supplied, the spirit of independence had gone too far to be repressed. In Virginia, Governor Dunmorc, being com- pelled to leave Wiiiiaiasburgh, and tearing that it would not. be safe for him to remain upon the laud, went on board a royal armed vessel. Hav- ing collected a fleet, he resolved to harass the Virginians as much as possible, it" lit 1 could not govern them. He was joined by all the tories. that is. the Americans who favored the English. He laid waste the coast, at various places, in the most shocking manner, murdering and burning like a pirate. He burnt Hampton, on the bay of Hampton, among the rest, and un- dertook to establish his camp there. But the Virginians soon drove him back upon the wa- ter. He then declared all the negro slaves to bo free, and invited them to join him. A few of thorn succee K'd in d->mcv SJ . lie landed again at Norfolk, whore tiie tories were numerous; and a battle was fought, a few miles from thut city, at a place called Great Bridge, with a regiment of Virginia militia and amnte men. The governor h;id only 200 regulars about him. The rest was a mere mob, of black, white and gray. The first attack w : -h,on the; American entrenchment. T i: battle lasted some time, with a good deal of spirit. At last, the British captain was killed, and tho troops fell b:ick upon the bridge. The gov rnor did not like fighting; so, during the bittle, he con- tented himself with looking on at a distance. The negnvs loved righting as little as the gov- ernor. Th"v found it bv no means pleasant to have their flesh cut to piece.? wit!) bullets; so, after a few shots, they ran aw;iy as fiist us they could. The governor also thought it best to retreat, and, accordingly, he and his men went on board of their vessels. This affair did not serve to sweeten Governor HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REV 43? REV Dunmore's temper ; nor did it put him in a better humor, to find that his friends, the lories at Norfolk, had been handled roughly by the peo- ple there, after his retreat with his ne'gro allies. He now returned into the bay, with a ship of war, and sent a message ashore, declaring that, unless the people furnished him provisions, he should batter the town down about their ears. They refused to supply him : so he gave them notice, in the morning, to remove the women and children ; and then, with his own sloop of war, the frigate Liverpool, and two corvettes, he blazed away upon the place, till scarcely one stone was left upon Another. The provincials, to disappoint him of his provisions, burnt the whole country round about. In South Carolina, Governor Campbell ar- rived at Charleston, from England, about the same time with the news of the Lexington bat- tle. The people were on their guaro\ and he tried in vain to get the better of them, by invit- ing the tories to assist him ; but tlje tories were afraid to do so. He began to be frightened a little himself, being a man of less courage than Governor Dunmore ; so he said little or nothing for some time. To unmask him, the American leaders sent privately to him one Adam Macdonald, captain in a militia regiment. He called himself Dick Williams, and offered his services to the gov- ernor. The latter was delighted, and told him all his plans. Having heard them attentively, Adam went away, and told the whole to the persons who employed him. They immediately sent a committee, Mac- donald a;norig the number, to wait upon his excellency, and request him to show his royal commission, if he had any, as governor. He declined this proposal. There were some hints then thrown out, about putting him in confine- ment. These came to his ears, and he retreated, with very little ceremony or delay, to arj Eng- lish corvette, anchored in the harbor. The Assembly requested him to return ; but he re- fused. Nothing more was seen of him, or his gov- ernment, in Charleston. The tories were nu- merous in other sections of the Province, how- ever, and he mustered them together in great force. The people were alarmed. The miljjia were ordered out ; and the two parties were oij the eve of an engagement. But at length the tories were dispersed, and they gave no more trouble at that time. The provincials in South Carolina continued to be very active. They captured Fort John- son, on James's Island, in Charleston harbor, and placed batteries on Point Huddrel. The English ships were at last driven oft'. The next thing with the people was, to send an expedi- tion after an English vessel laden with powder, which was anchored on the bank, called the Bar of St. Augustine, a town on the coast of East Florida. ~ She was taken, and 15,000 pounds of powder were carried to Charleston. In North Carolina, the Provincial Congress raised 1000 regular militia, and 3000 minute men. The English governor, Martin, disliked the appearance of things, and endeavored to muster a force of the Irish and Scotch part of the inhabitants. lie also fortified his own house, at Newbern, with artillery. The people seized upon his cannon ; and he fled to a fort upon Cape Fear River. The provincials marched after him, led on by Colonel Ashe. He retreated on board a vessel, as the other governors had done. Colonel Ashe burnt the fort to ashes the same night. The Assembly declared the governor a traitor. He answered them in a very long letter, which they ordered to be burnt by the common hangman, A large quantity of ball and powder was found in his cellar and gardens, at Newbern. In Pennsylvania, the people prepared active- ly for war. A single mill, near Philadelphia, manufactured five hundred pounds of powder a week. Governor Tryon, after endeavoring a long time to manage the Province, followed the example of the other governors. In other parts of the country, the enemy was not asleep. One Captain Wallace, command- ing 1 an English squadron of small vessels off' Rhode Island, was doing all the damage in his power, by ravaging the coast, and making prize of the merchant vessels. His chief object seemed to be, to supply himself and his force with provisions. With this view, he made a furious attack upon the town of BrisloL and fired, from morning till night, upon their houses and churches. He bored them through and through, till, finally, the people supplied him and his squadron with fresh meat, and he sailed away. About this time, a body of American troops were sent from Massachusetts to Rhode Island, under General Lee. He was a man of great courage, and warm temper. He obliged all the inhabitants, whom he went to defend, to take the most terrible oaths, to do precisely what Congress should command ; and, at all events, to break off all intercourse with the tools of tyranny, " vulgarly called," as the oath said. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 438 REV "the fleets and armies of the king." Congress were not much pleased with this manoeuvre. It was well meant, without doubt, but it was very rough, and of no real use. On the 18th of October, 1775, Falmouth.now Portland, in Maine, was bombarded by Captain Moet, of the ship Canceaux, of 16 guns. The whole town was consumed. He had formerly received some affront in the place, and revenged himself in this way. He sent the people word at night, that he should destroy the town in the morning; they removed their furniture, and he went to work early the next day with his can- non. The town had been twice sacked by the Indians, but never suffered so severely before. The most important affair of this year, was an expedition to Canada. The provincials had done so well upon Lake Champlain, that the scheme of another expedition in the same quar- ter was much approved of. Congress hoped that, if Canada was invaded at once, many of the inhabitants would join the Americans. Three thousand men, commanded by Gener- als Montgomery, Wooster and Schayler, were fitted out. Boats were built for them on the lake, at Crown Point, and the sum of 50,000 dollars was collected, to pay the expenses. Gov- ernor Carleton, of Canada, intrenched himself, with a strong force, at the entrance of the river Sorel, whicii leads out of the lake, and which the Americans would be obliged to pass. The latter took possession of an island in the lake, at the mouth of the river, and, from that place, planned an attack on Fort St. John, where the governor was. This fort stood on the left bank of the Sorel, and commanded the passage to Canada. The Americans moved on, without cannon, to a swamp within a mile and a half of the fort. They defeated a body of In- dians, who attacked them in crossing a small river, waite to the fort. river, waited for reinforcements, and g a sm laid si Farther north, on the Sorel, was a small fort, called Charnbly. The English had no idea of the provincials passing St. John to fall upon Ohambly; but they did so; took the garrison prisoners ; obtained 124 barrels of powder for the siege of St. John, and sent the colors they had captured to Congress. Other detachments scoured the country between the Sorel and the St. Lawrence ; the Canadians supplying them every where with arms and provisions. Just at this time, Colonel Allen and Major Brown undertook an expedition against the city of Montreal, which stands on an island in the St. Lawrence. Allen found boats ready for him at Longueville, and crossed the river in the night, below Montreal. Here Brown was to have joined him with his troops, but missed his way, and Allen was left, with a small force, in the neighborhood of the city. It was just sunrise. The murmur of the city was heard at a few miles' distance, and by and by the roll of the English drums came upon the ear. The Americans now saw that they were discovered. Before long, a column of British infantry came marching down the bank of the river. There was an almost breathless silence in Allen's small band, as they came up. Even Allen himself stood fast, and gazed at them. " To the boats ! to the boats !" cried a dozen of his soldiers ; " there's a thousand of them." "Silence! every man of ye!" roared Allen, brandishing a huge horse-pistol. " The first man that turns his back upon the red coats, shall smell gunpowder." They were satisfied with this arrangement, on the whole, examined their rifles, and stood ready for the onset. " Stand your ground, boys !" shouted Allen. A party of British soldiers was moving towards them from the main body, at double quick time. " Let them come !" cried a tall, fine looking hunter at his side; "let them come!" He brought his rifle to his eye, as he spoke. "Fire!" shouted the British officer, and in- stantly the hunter dropped dead at the feet of Allen. His hardy followers shrunk back. They were sprinkled with the blood of the poor hunt- er. " Fire ! fire !" shouted Allen, with a voice of thunder. They fired, and a hot skirmish commenced. Severn! of the English fell, and several of the Americans: others fled. Some defended themselves behind rocks and trees. Allen was at last left alone, surrounded, and compelled to surrender. He brushed a few tears away for the fate of his friend, the young hunter, and marched on with the English. He was kept a prisoner more than two years, and then was exchanged for some English offi- cer, whom the Americans had taken. The irons put upon him were so fastened about him, and so heavy, that, for a long time, he could lie down only on his back. A chest was his seat by day, and his bed by night. He was sent to England, to be tried as a pri- soner of state, not as a fair and open enemy, but as a rebel. At this time, all the Americans were called rebels, and the English used to speak of hanging great numbers of them, when the war was over. Allen was a man of very large frame, and prodigious strength. He possessed great cour HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REV 439 REV age, and was much inclined to daring enter- prise. His reputation, it seems, had gone be- fore him to England ; and he was. therefore, kept in very close confinement. The people were as much afraid of him, as if he had been a whale, or a sea-serpent. They sometimes used to come and see him in his prison; but they were very shy, and, if he so much as turned round, they would run away like a flock of startled sheep. But the Americans were always on the watch. They thought it probable, that the governor would set out about this time, and were ready for him. He embarked his 800 men in a large number of boats, and undertook to cross the St. Lawrence, precisely where Allen had crossed it, at Longueville. But Colonel Warner, with three hundred of the Green Mountain sharp-shooters, and a few cannon, lay among the bushes, on the river bank, as the governor's boats came over. The Americans waited quietly till they were fairly within reach, and then poured out upon them a tremendous volley of grape-shot. The governor's party retreated in great haste, with some loss of lives ; and nothing more was seen of them. News of this defeat soon came to Major Pres- ton, the British commander of the besieged fort of St. John. He began to think it a desperate case with him. and so concluded to surrender to the American general, Montgomery. This he did on the 3d of November, 1775. He had held out like a brave man, the siege having lasted six weeks. The Americans found in this fort seventeen brass cannon, twenty-two iron ones, and a large quantity of balls and bombs. The powder had been used to the last kernel, and the provisions to the last morsel. The capture was an impor- tant one. St. John, standing on the Sorel, which leads from Lake Champlain to the St. Lawrence, commanded the passage to and from Canada ; and was, therefore, called the Key of Canada. The next movement of the Americans was, to take possession of the month of the Sorel, where it empties into the St. Lawrence. The point of land which is formed by the meeting of the two rivers, was fortified with batteries, which swept the river in such a manner, that no English vessel could pass, without being bored through and through. As the St. Law- rence is wide here, the Americans provided a fleet of boats and floating batteries, to guard the other side, and thus completely stopped the pas- sage up and down that river. Just at this time, Governor Carleton had left Montreal, which stands farther up the St. Law- rence from the sea. with a fleet of English ships under his command, and without having heard of these fortifications. What added to the dif- ficulty of his situation, was, that, the very day after he left Montreal, another body of Ameri- cans, under Montgomery himself, appeared un- der the walls of that city, and called upon the people to surrender. This detachment had marched across the country from Fort St. John. The land is flat and marshy, and their journey had been slow and difficult. It gave them great satisfaction to have reached Montreal just as the governor had gone off with his force. The city, having no defence, was compelled to surrender. General Montgomery treated the people so handsomely, that they supplied him with a large quantity of clothes for his troops. These were very much needed. It was now the middle of November, and they were weary of a long, cold march. Some of the soldiers, during this severe journey, would have gone back to their snug homes in Vermont and the other Provinces ; but General Montgomery di- vided the clothes among them, and encouraged them to proceed. Governor Carleton was now unpleasantly sit- uated on the river, with Montreal, in the posses- sion of Montgomery, above him, and the fortifi- cations at the mouth of the Sorel below. If he could have been taken, all Canada would have been easily conquered ; but he contrived, one dark night, to pass through among the floating batteries, in a small boat, with the oars muffled. Thus he escaped safely to a town on the north- ern bank, called Trois Rivieres ; and from that place he went to Quebec. The English fleet, which the governor had left behind, surrendered to the Americans, in a day or two, with a large number of soldiers and officers aboard. General Montgomery left gar- risons in Montreal, and Forts Chambly and St. John, on the Sorel, to keep the Indians in awe, and marched on to Quebec, with a small force of three hundred men. While these things wore going forward, Gen- eral Washington, in his camp at Cambridge, had conceived the plan of sending an expedi- tion iigainst Quebec, by way of a rough, wild route, known only to the backwoodsmen and hunters. This was through the District of Maine. He selected Colonel Arnold to command the expedition ; a rash but brave man, who had as- sisted, as we have seen, in the capture of Ti CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 440 REV Conderoga and Crown Point. Fourteen com- panies were put under his command ; three of riflemen, and one of artillery, under Captain Lamb, being 1 among the number. In all, there were about eleven hundred men. A few others joined them, of their own accord; and among these volunteers was Aaron Burr, afterwards vice-president. He was then 20 years of age. Maine is crossed, from north to south, as a map will show, by the river Kennebec, rising in the mountains between Maine and Canada, and emptying into the Atlantic Ocean, not far from Casco Bay, near a town now called Bath. On the other side of the same mountains, and close, therefore, by the small upper streams of the Kennebec, another river rises, called the Chau- diere. This empties into the St. Lawrence, nearly opposite Quebec. In crossing these mountains, between the sources of the two rivers, on the two sides, it is necessary to pass very steep and wild places, over marshes and torrents. No human being dwelt there then, and nobody lives there to this day. Such was the route Arnold and his brave soldiers were to travel. He left Boston in September, 1775, and ar- rived at Newburyport, near the mouth of the Merrimac. The vessels that waited for him here, conveyed him and his men to the mouth of the Kennebec. With a fresh south wind, they sailed up the river fifty miles, to a town called Gardiner. Here were two hundred bat- teaux, ready for them. These were long, light, flat boats, much used by the Canadians, hunt- ers and others, in shoal waters. Having laden these with his arms and pro- visions, Arnold proceeded up the river to Fort Wester, on the right bank. Here he divided his corps into three detachments. The rifle- men, under Cnptain Morgan, moved on forward, as a vanguard, to explore the country ; to sound the fords, that is, ascertain where the river might be crossed easily ; and to look out for the portages. These are places where the river ceases to be navigable, on account of shoals, falls, or rocks. The lading of the boats must, therefore, be carried forward upon the banks, by hand, or by beasts of burden. The batteaux are then carried on, also, till the river becomes deeper and smoother. Arnold's second detachment marched the next day after the first ; and the third detach- ment the day after that. The current of the river was rapid, the bottom rocky, and often interrupted by falls. Every hour, the water entered some of the batteaux, and damaged the provisions and arms. At every portage .and these occurred very often, the boats were to be unladen, and carried on the shoulders of the troops. In places where the river was rapid, yet free of rocks, the batteaux were hauled up slowly by soldiers on the banks, who dragged them along with ropes. The army, however, ad- vanced, and at length they had wild mountains to cross, steep precipices to climb, vast shady forests to pass under, and quagmires to wade through. They had also deep valleys -to tra- verse, where the pine trees were tossing over their heads in the stormy wind, and where the river was rushing and foaming over the rocks, with a noise like the ocean. They were sometimes a whole day in travel- ling four or five miles, with their baggage laced on their backs, and axes in their hands to hew a road through the wilderness. Some of the men died at last with weariness ; many others fell sick, and all of them were at length sorely pressed for food. .Many a young soldier, as he lay down at night, hungry and tired, on his pillow of green boughs, thought of the warm bright fire-side, where a mother was weeping for him. But these thoughts were vain. They rose in thu morning, and pressed on patiently, brave men as they were. By the time they had reached the source of Dead River, a branch of the Kennebec, their provisions were almost exhausted. The sol- diers were living, or rather starving, now. upon the poor lean dogs they had taken with them, and even this food was a luxury. At this place, Colonel Knos received orders" from Arnold to send back the sick to Boston. He took tle op- portunity to return himself, with his whole de- tachment, lie was afterwards tried for this desertion, by a court-martial, and acquitted, for the reason that the men must otherwise have starved. But Colonel Arnold inarched on. For thirty- two d-iys, not a single human dwelling was met with. The army arrived at last upon the mountains, between the Kennebec and the Chaudiere. The little food still left was divid- ed equally, and then the troops were directed to look out as l.hev could for their own living. They discovered, iinaliy, with inconceivable joy, the sources of the Clriiuiiere, ami the first log- houses of the Canadians. These people received them well, and assisted them. Arnold addressed a proclamation to the Canadians, waited for his rear guard to over HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REV 441 REV lake him, pressed on, and arrived, November Jith, at Point Levy, nearly opposite Quebec. The people of the city were as much amazed at the sight of him and his men, as if they had been so many goblins. The English colonel, Maclean, had heard of their coming, however, by. a letter, which Ar- nold had given to an Indian on the Kennebec, to carry to General Schuyler. The Indian gave U to Maclean, and the latter removed all his batteaux from the Point Le-vy -side of the river, to .the other bank. The wind blew a gale too ; and so the city had time to prepare for defence. All the people of Quebec were immediately armed, and brought within the walls soldiers or not soldiers, English, French, Scotch and Irish, regulars and marines. The wind mode- rated, and Arnold undertook to pass the river on the night of November 13th. The same day, Montgomery had taken Montreal. One hundred and fifty men remained to make ladders for scaling the city walls. The rest suc- ceeded in crossing the river. The banks being very steep here, Arnold and his men marched down upon the edge of the river towards Que- bec, and climbed the Heights of Abraham, close by the city , and almost overlooking it. Here he waited for his 150 ladder men, and hoped that the city would surrender. They were prepared for him, however; and Maclean not only refused to receive the message requiring him to surrender, but fired upon the bearer of it. Arnold had no cannon, and only six charges of powder to each man. Hearing, therefore, that Maclean was about to sally out upon him, he retired twenty miles up the river, to Point an Tremble. He met, on his march, the ship in which Governor Carleton was sail- ing down to Quebec ; and heard, when lie reach- ed the point, that he had left it but a few hours before. General Montgomery arrived here, and join- ed Arnold, on the 1st of December, 1775, after a weary march from Montreal. The weather was excessively cold, and the roads were block- ed up with snow. His force was about three hundred men ; and never were people more de- lighted to see each other, than were these three hundred, and the little band of brave fellows, who had followed Arnold. Montgomery had brought clothing for the latter ; and" they stood in great need of it, indeed. The soldiers now inarched in company, and arrived in sight of Quebec on the 5th. A sum- mons was sent to Carleton to surrender; but he ordered his troops to fire upon the bearer. Montgomery then planted a battery of six can- non within 700 paces of the walls. They were laid upon banks of snow and ice ; the pieces were small ;. and the fire had little effect. The snow had now fallen in huge drifts, and the weather was excessively cold. A council of war was called, and an immediate assault on the city was resolved upon. Two detachments, under Montgomery and Arnold, were to attack the walls of the lower part of the town. This taken, the rest WQuld probably submit without fighting. On the last day of the year 1775, between four and five in the morning, in the midst of a heavy snow- storm, the American columns advanced. An Irish captain, going his rounds upon the walls of the town, observed the guns fired by the Americans as a signal, and at once caused the drums to beat, and roused the garrison to arms. Montgomery, with his detachment, pass- ing along under Cape Diamond, came to a small battery of cannon. The guard threw down their arms, and fled. The Americans had nearly taken possession of it, but the road was impeded with immense masses of snow. Montgomery, with his own hands, opened a path for his troops. Two hundred of them came up at last, and rushed on. Just then, a cannoneer, who had fled, on seeing the Americans halt, returned to his post, at the little battery, arid, taking a match, which happened to be still burning, fired a can- non charged with gr.ape-shot. The Americans were within forty paces. Montgomery dropped dead upon the spot, and his troops soon fled. Arnold had made an assault, meanwhile, at another point. But he soon received a musket ball in the leg, which splintered the bone ; and he was carried off to the hospital, almost by force, as he was unwilling to quit the field. Captain Morgan, with two companies of riflemen, now advanced upon the battery. His sharp-shooters killed many of the English through the embra- sures. The guard fled. Morgan rushed forward, and some prisoners were taken. But here the courage of his troops failed them. Morgan alone stood firm. As the morning dawned, he rallied his riflemen with a voice of thunder, and they rushed forward. A detachment sallied out up- on them, at this moment, from the walls; and the English captain summoned them to lay down their arms Morgan aimed a musket at him, and shot him dead. The English retreated ; a hot skirmish ensued. Some ladders were planted against the walls, but a terrible fire was poured down upon the men who attempted to ascend them. A de- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 442 REV tachrnent of the British now assaulted the Amer- icans on another side, and they were compelled, at last, to surrender. Arnold, with his remaining force, retreated three miles from the city, and intrenched him- self. Governor Carleton kept within the walls of Quebec, satisfied with waiting till reinforce- ments should reach him from England, in the spring. So ended the famous assault upon Quebec. A braver man than Montgomery never fell on a field of battle. The whole country wept for his loss. Even the Canadians lamented him, and Carleton buried his body with all the hon- ors of war. Colonel Barre, and Fox, and Burke, the great orators of England, pronounced his praises in the English parliament. Congress, ordered a monument to be procured from France, and erected to his memory. Having given some account of the most im- portant events of the year 1775, the first of the war, we come now to 1776. In the winter and spring of this year, Boston was still surround- ed by the American army under Washington. The British in the town, meanwhile, were re- duced to great extremity. For fuel, they used the timber of houses, which they pulled down for the purpose. They were in want of food, and some arrned ships were ordered to Georgia, to buy up rice ; but the people of that Province opposed them with so much success, that, of eleven vessels, only two got off with their cargoes. The Old South Church, in Washington street, was entirely destroyed inside, and used as a riding-room for a regiment of dragqons. The pulpit and pews were taken out, and the floor covered with earth. The frame-work of one pew, carving, silk furniture, and* all, was taken out, and used for a pig-sty. The North Church, so called, was entirely demolished. All this time, notwithstanding there was much suffering in the town, the English officers and the tories contrived to piss tl.e time, when they were not fighting the Americans, in danc- ing, and other amusements. They had a small theatre, and, in the evening of February 8th, were acting a farce, called ' ; The Blockade of Boston.'' One figure, meant to ridicule Wash- ington, was rigged out in the most uncouth style, with a largo wig, and a long rusty sword. Another character was an American ser- geant, in his country dress^ with an olcl gun on his shoulder, eight feet long. At the moment this figure appeared, one of the British sergeants came running on the stage, and cried out, " The Yankees are attacking our works OIL Bunker Hill." The audience took it for a part of the play ; but General Howe knew it was no joke, and called out, " Officers, to your alarm-posts !" The American army, at this time about Bos- ton, was but little better provided for than the English. Many fell sick with fatigue and ex- posure. They had provisions enough from the country, to be sure, while the English troops were said to be living wholly on salt meat, and the Boston tories upon horse-flesh. But the whole number, in January, was reduced to less than ten thousand ; and these, having enlisted for a few months onlv, were everyday going home. At one time, there were hardly men enough to man the lines. As for powder, they had but four rounds to a man ; and but four small brass cannon, and a few old iron pieces, full of holes, with the wood-work broken oft". They were fitted into logs, like the barrel of a gun into the stock, and lifted up and down, and wheeled about in this way. but to some good purpose. The British laughed at these machines, at first, but they soon found them no laughing matter. They kept up a continual cannonade, in re- turn ; firing about two thousand shot and bomb- shells, it is said, in the course of a few mouths. But the whole of this firing killed only twelve Americans. It was about this time, that a party of the English officers, walking on Beacon Hill, in the course of the season, in the evening, were frightened by terrible noises in the air. They ran down the hill with the greatest despatch. It seems that they mistook the buzzing of a few beetles and bugs, for the whizzing of " air-guns." They suspected that the cunning Yankees had contrived some queer machines for killing them, without the noise of gunpowder. There were two cannon kept in a gun-house opposite the Mall, at the corner of West street, in the care of one Paddock. The British found it out, and Paddock promised to deliver them up. A party of school boys undertook to pre- vent him from doing it. The school-house was the next building to the gun-house, separated only by a yard, com- mon to both, and surrounded by a high fence. The boys contrived to outer "the gun-house windows, in the rear, in spite of an Enjrlish guard, which had been plneed before the build- ing. The guns were taken off their carriages, carried into the school-room, and placed in a large bos under the master's desk, in which wood was kept. The English soon missed the guns, and began HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REV 443 REV to search the yard. They then entered the school-house, and examined it all over, excepting the box, which the master placed his lame foot upon. They were too polite to disturb him, and excused him from rising. The boys looked on, but lisped not a word. The guns remained in the box for a fortnight, when one of the largest boys carried them away in a trunk, one eve- ning,on a wheel-barrow. A blacksmith at the south end, kept them some time under a pile of coal ; and they were at last put into a boat at night, and conveyed safely to the American camp. The condition of the American army in the earljt part of the year 1776 was miserable. They soon after received five brass cannon, small arms of all kinds, cargoes of provisions, &c. These were all captured from the British, off the coast, by American privateers. Privateers are armed vessels, fitted out by private individuals. In England, the year 1770 opened with new resolutions, on the part of the ministry, and the majority of Parliament, to continue the war. The party called the whigs, were violently op- posed to it ; but the tories, the ministry, and king, regarded the Americans as rebels, and resolved to spare no pains to punish them se- verely. They found it difficult to enlist soldiers in England, for the war was unpopular with the lower classes. Recruiting officers were sent about, the royal standard was raised in all the cities, and large bounties and wages were pro- mised ; but to little purpose. In Scotland, some thousands were raised ; and a bargain was made with some of the small states of Germany, for about seventeen thousand German troops. These were called Hessians, because a part of them came from Hesse. In the meantime, the American army at Bos- ton, began to form plans for seizing upon the town, for taking the British garrison prisoners, and for destroying their fleet in the harbor. But they kept quietly in their quarters till March, 1776 ; the British now and then sallying out on the American lines ; and the latter returning the compliment, by playing upon the town with their rusty cannon. During this month, the news came of the doings of tlie ministry in England, and of the king's violent speech, at tlie close of the session of Parliament. The whole American army was greatly excited. The speech was publicly burnt in the camp. Atthe'same time, the red ground of the American flag was changed, and, in place of it, thirteen blue and white stripes were in- serted, as an emblem of the thirteen Colonies, that were united in the struggle for liberty. These stripes are still retained in our national flag. Ther my. conduct of the king and Parliament, they re- e was something of the same feeling in Congress as in the army. Stimulated by the solved, from this time, to follow up the war, at all hazards. Hearing that an attack would be made upon New York, they urged General Washington to press, as closely as possible, the siege of Boston, so that the British might not be able to spare troops to send against New York. He wished to attack the town at once, but most of his generals opposed this plan ; and he con- cluded to fortify the heights of Dorchester, which command the entire city on the south side. Heavy batteries were opened from the Ame- rican worlds in Cambridge, Roxbury and Lech- mere Point. The bombs fell into the town every hour, and houses were constantly set on fire by them. All this was to employ the British upon that side, while the Americans, on the night of the 4th of March, secretly marched over Dor Chester Neck. The frost rendered the roads good, and such was the silence of the march, and the tremen- dous roar kept up by the batteries, that 2,000 troops passed over, with 300 loaded carts, and nothing was known of it till morning. Had the British suspected this manoeuvre, they would have taken measures to prevent it. By four o'clock in the morning, two fortifications were raised upon the two heights. The British were amazed. " These rebels have done more in one night," said General Howe, who now commanded, " than my army would have done in a week." A terrible can- nonade now opened from the British forts, and the shipping, upon the American fortifications on Dorchester Heights. But few men, howev- er, were killed ; and the Americans worked on in high spirits, taking no notice of the cannon- balls, as they came, ploughing the ground about them. General Howe saw that he must either leave the town, or dislodge the Americans from the heights. He resolved upon the latter ; but a long storm, and a very high sea, prevented his troops from crossing over. He finally conclud- ed to give up the town, and transport his whole force to Halifax, in-Nova Scotia. Knowing that his shipping might be prevented from passing out of the harbor, by the American fortifications, he prepared a great mass of stuff CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 444 REV for setting fire to the town, and then proposed to Washington and the selectmen, that if his troops were suffered to pass safely, the town should be left standing. This was agreed to. He had 150 carrying vessels, called transports, in the harbor ; and he embarked on board these, on the 17th of March, taking with him 1,500 of the A merican tories. Never was such a scene of confusion, plunder, hurrying, crying and quarrelling; there were fathers bearing their baggage, mothers leading their children, beasts of burden loaded with furniture. The vessels were crowded. The British were some days getting out of the bay ; and had the pleasure, meanwhile, of seeing the American army marched into Boston, with great rejoicing. The siege had lasted sixteen months. Pro- visions had become so scarce, that fresh fish sold at a shilling a pound ; geese at nine shil- lings apiece ; a turkey at two dollars ; hams at two shillings a pound; sheep at six dollars each ; and apples at six dollars a barrel. Two hundred and fifty pieces of cannon were left behind ; also a quantity of wheat and other grain, a good deal of coal for fuel, and 150 Horses. The English soldiers now began to think that the Americans were an enemy worth conquer- ing, and that powder was not absolutely wasted upon them, as upon so many crows. They were provoked by the treatment they had received from the sharp-shooters at Breed's Hill, and the rough compliments of the old cannon. The Americans, on the other side, now en- tered upon the war with their whole hearts. They were irritated more than ever at the con- duct of the English ministry, in hiring the Hessian soldiers. This irritation was not al- layed by the bill which had just passed through Parliament, compelling all persons found "in American vessels, to serve on board his majes- ty's ships of war. From this time, the war, on both sides, assum- ed a more determined character. A strong English force was sent to relieve Carleton. iu Canada. Arnold's whole force before Quebec, now amounted to only 3,000 men. Many of these were sick of the small-pox. General Thomas died of tin; disease. The river v,::s clear of ice, April, J77t>, and English reinforce- ments were expected every the commander of the British army, a . day or two before, for a reinforcement. " Don't be alarmed." was the answer; " with a corporal and six men, you may scour the whole coun- try ; don't be alarmed." They found themselves mistaken, however, as we have seen. Wash- ington now formed a camp at Morristown. Mil- itia came to him from all parts. The British treated their prisoners with cru- elty. Hundreds were confined in the New York prisons. They were often insulted as \ party of them was once brought before General Howe, to be tried. An English gentleman pleaded their youth in iheir favor. " It won't do," said the general; " hang up the rascals ! hang them up !" They were only cart- ed through the streets, however, seated on cof- fins. Halters were tied about their necks, and the British soldiers hooted at them. While these things were going on, late in the year 1776, at New York, Sir Peter Parker scoured the coasts of Pihode Island with a large squadron, and overran the whole Province. Meanwhile, a man by the name of Stuart was sent, by the British, among the Indians in the high, wild lands back of Virginia, and the other southern Colonies. The Cherokees were persuaded bv him to make war ; and they rushed in upon the settle- ments of the whites, burning the villages, arid scalping men, women and children. But a large American force soon marched into their own country. Their wigwams were burnt to the ground, and their cornfields trampled under foot. They were frightened at last, and begged for peace. It once happened, during the expedition against the Indians, that, the Americans hav- ing marched a long way among the hills. Major Pickens was sent ahead with twenty-five men, as a scouting party, to examine the country. One morning, as he and his party waded through the tall grass on the bank of a stream called Little River, more than two hundred Indians came rushing out on a ridge of land just above them. " Let us scalp them," cried the Indian leader to his men; ; ' they are too few to shoot. ' But Major Pickens was prepared for their onset. His men were sharp-shooters, and each man had his rifle. He ordered them not to fire until he did; to take sure aim; and, having fired, to bury themselves in the grass, and load their rifles. The Indian chief soon came up within twenty-five yards of the little band, yelling arid shaking his tomahawk. Pickens stretched out his rifle, took a deliberate aim, and shot him dead. The twenty-five brave riflemen now fired. The Indians fdl on all sides. They yelled inon> than evor, with fury and terror, dropped their tomahawks, and fell back among the trees. Even .there the rifles were too sure for them. Not an Indian could show himself over a log or a rock, but a bullet instantly whistled through him. One of them was seen running his gun through the roots of a fallen tree. A rifleman aimed at him as coolly as if he had been a wooden mark, hit him precisely in the nose, and laid him flat on his back. Another Indian HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REV 449 REV lifted the dead body, and was running off with it, for the Indians never leave the dead. when another rifleman fired, and killed him. Dozens of them were picked off in this way, and the rest fled. A few such skirmishes as these made the In- dians soon tired of fighting the Americans, to which they had been instigated by the British. The next year, when an attempt was made to set them upon the white inhabitants along the frontiers, they replied to the British emissaries, that " the hatchet was buried so deep that they could not find it." In the spring of 1777, General Howe amused himself by sending out detachments from his camp to ravage various parts of the country. On the 2Gth of April, Governor Tryon embark- ed at New York with a detachment; sailed through the Sound; and landed at Fairfield, Connecticut. They marched through the coun- try in battle array, and reached Danbury in twenty hours. As they came, the few militia who were there fled at full speed. The British began to burn and demolish every thing except the houses of the tories. Eighteen liouses were consumed ; and eight hundred barrels of pork and beef, two thousand barrels of flour, and seventeen hundred tents were carried off or destroyed. But the militia now began to mus- ter from the country round about. At Ridgefield, General Arnold blocked up the road in front of the British, who were now returning. He had with him about five hun- dred men. These brave fellows, who had' marched fifteen or twenty miles in the rain, kept up a brisk fire upon the enemy, as they came on ; and stood their ground, till the Brit- ish formed a lodgment upon a hill at their left hand. They were then obliged to give way. The British rushed on. and" a whole platoon fired at General Arnold, who was not more than thirty yards distant. His horse was killed. A soldier advanced to run him through with his bayonet ; Arnold shot him dead with his pistol, and escaped. The British lost more than two hundred men. but made good their retreat to the Sound. Congress presented General Ar- nold with a fine war-horse, richly caparisoned, for his gallantry. By way of retaliation, on the 24th of May, Colonel Meigs, an American, crossed the Sound with one hundred and seventy men. in whale- boats, and fell upon the enemy at Sagg Harbor, on Long Island. They burned twelve vessels, destroyed a large quantity of forage, killed six men, and brought off ninety prisoners, without. losing one of their own men. . They returned to Guilford, having been the distance of ninety rfilles in twenty-five hours from the time of their departure. Congress ordered an elegant sword to be presented to Colonel Meigs. General Howe made great efforts, in the spring of 1777, to persuade the Americans to enlist under him. They were promised large wages and bounties ; but very few of them could be wheedled in this way. They hated the Germans even more than they did the Eng- lish. But great numbers of militia crowded to Washington's camp, at Middle Brook, New Jer- sey. His army amounted to fifteen thousand men. He was so strongly intrenched among the hills, that Howe dared not attack him. The summer was spent in marching to and fro, in New Jersev. without effecting much. But in July, the British mustered a force of sixteen thousand men, at New York. These left there, soon after, with a large fleet. An attack was expected every where upon the coast ; but no one knew whither they were bound. Having been off at sea, with high winds, for a long time, they entered Chesapeake Bay at last, and landed at Turkey Point. They left that place September 3d, and, marching towards Philadelphia, came up with Washington's army at a place called Chad's Ford, on the river Brandy wine. Cn the llth, they had a warm skirmish, and the Americans were driven back. Congress removed to York town, Virginia; and Howe entered Philadel phia, in great triumph, September 2(ith. The Americans were defeated again at Ger- mantown, on the 4th of October. The battle began early in the morning, when nothing could be seen farther than thirty yards. Dur- ing the whole action, which lasted nearly three hours, the firing on both sides was directed by the flash of each ether's guns. The smoke of the cannon and musketry, mingled with the thick fog, rested over the armies in clouds. The Americans saved their artillery, even to a single cannon, which had been dismounted. This piece belonged to General Greene's divi- sion ; and he stopped in the midst of the re- treat, and coolly ordered it to be placed in a wagon. In this manner it was carried off. General Greene's aid-de-camp, Major Burnet wore a long cue in this battle, as the fashion then was in the army. As he turned round to attend to the cannon just mentioned, his cue was cut off by a musket ball from the enemy. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 450 REV " Don't hurry, my dear major," cried Greene, laughing ; " pray dismount, and get that long cue of yours ; don't be in haste." The English were driving after them at a tre- mendous rate, cavalry, caimon, and all. The major jumped from his horse, however, and picked up his cue. Just at that moment, a shot took off a large powdered curl from the head of Greene. The major, in turn, advised him to stop and pick it up ; but he rode on quietly, and was the last man on the field. About this time, a smart action was fought at Red Bank, on the Jersey side of the Delaware, scj-i-n miles below Philadelphia. The Ameri- c-.i-.i* Ind erected batteries here, and upon Mud i-i!f a mile distant, in the middle of B^^Hi Nothing, therefore, belonging to the j^^^^Bould pass up and down between their camp, which was now at Philadelphia, and their fleet in the river below. Two ranges of chevaux-de-frise were placed in the channel. They stretched from the isl- and nearly to the bank. Howe sent down two thousand Germans, under Col. Donop, to attack the Red Bank re- doubt. This was defended by four hundred men. This number was so small, that half the redoubt was left vacant, and a line was drawn through the middle of it. The enemy came on fiercely enough, with a brisk cannonade ; enter? ed the empty part of the redoubt, and shouted for victory.. But it was now the garrison's turn. They poured out such a tremendous fire, that the Germans, after a brief conflict, fled, with the loss of four hundred men. Their brave commander, Donop, was killed. Late in the season, however, these fortifications in the river were abandoned. Washington retired into winter quarters, at Valley Forge, sixteen miles from Philadelphia. His army might have been tracked, by the blood of their feet, in marching, without shoes or stockings, over the hard, frozen ground. Thou- sands of them had no blankets, and were oblig- ed to spend the night in trying to get warm, in- stead of sleeping. They erected log-huts fur lodgings. For a fortnight, they nearly starved. They were sometimes without bread and without meat. A person passing by the huts of these poor fellows in the evening, might h;i.vi- si-en them, through the crevices, stretching their cold hands over the fire, and a soldier occasion- ally coming in or going out, with nothing but a blanket on his shoulders. " No pay, no clothes, no provisions, no rum," said they to each other. But they loved Washington and their country too well, to desert them in these trying times. While a British force lay on the west side of Rhode Island, under General Prescott, during this last season, (1777.) one Barton, a militia major, learned their situation from a deserter, ana planned an attack upon them. He collect? ed his regiment, and asked, which of them would hazard their lives with him. If any were willing, they should advance two paces. Every man came forward ; -they knew Barton well for a brave fellow. He chose thirty-six of them, mustered five whale-boats, and started off at nine o'clock in the evening. The men promised to follow him at all hazards. lie directed them to sit perfectly still, like statues, and obey him. Barton's boat went ahead, distinguished by a long pole run out from the stem, with a handkerchief tied to it. As they rowed by Prudence Island, they heard the English guard cry, <; All's well." A noise was heard on the main land, like the trampling of horses ; but, as the night was very dark, nothing could be seen, and no man whispered a word. They now landed, and set off silently for Prescott's lodgings, which were a mile from the shore. The Americans had to pass by a house occupied by a company of troopers. " Who conies there ?" cried the sentinel. They said nothing ; and a few trees standing before them, their number could not be seen. They moved on. " Who comes there?" mut- tered the sentinel again. " Friends," replied Barton. " Friends. ' says the soldier, ' ad- vance, and give the countersign." " Poh ! poll !" said Barton ; " We have no countersign have you seen any rascals to-night ?" He rushed upon the guard, at this moment, like a lion, and threatened to blow his brains out, if he uttered a syllable. The poor fellow was hor- ribly frightened, but they took him along with them. They soon readied the house, burst in the door, and rushed forward. A British sol- dier, with only a shirt on, rushing out at the same time, ran for the cavalry house, to give the alarm. The men would not believe him, but laughed at him for being frightened at ghosts. He confessed that the creature (Barton) was clothed in white and so it passed oil'. - Is General Prescott here " shouted Barton, to the master of th> house. " i\'o. sir ! oh no, sir !" said the poor fellow, scared almost out of his wits. Nobody in the house seemed to know any thing about Prescott. " Then." shouted Barton, at the head of the staircase, " I will HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REV 451 REV burn the house down about your ears." And he seized a flaming brand from the fire place. " What noise is this :" cries somebody in the next chamber. Barton opened the door, and found an elderly gentleman sitting up in bed. " Are you General Prescott, sir?" " Yes, sir." " You are my prisoner, then," said Barton. Prescott was half dressed by the soldiers in a moment, and carried off to the shore, with a Major Barrington, who had leaped from a chamber window. They had scarcely rowed through the Eng- lish fleet, when a discharge of cannon gave the alarm. Fifty boats pursued them in the dark. They escaped, however, and, in six hours from the time of starting, landed at Warwick Point. " You have made a monstrous bold push, ma- jor," said Prescott, as they stepped ashore. "Thank you, sir," said Barton, with a bow; " we have done as well as we could." This capture occasioned great joy throughout the country. Having seen Washington's army in their winter quarters at Valley Forge, we shall now follow the northern army, under Gates, and the English under Burgoyne. through the cam- paign of 1777. The latter intended to break his way from Canada, up the river Sorel, through Lakes Champlain and George, and the river Hudson, to New York. He had under his com- mand one of the finest armies ever seen. The Americans were driven before him, from Champlain almost to Albany. Burgoyne press- ed after them ; but his route lay through the woods, and the Americans cut far TO trees on both sides of the road, so that they fell across it, and blocked it up entirely. The country was so covered with marshes, and crossed by creeks, that the British were obliged to build no less than forty bridges ; one of them was a log bridge, extending two miles across a swamp. July 30th, Burgoyne reached Fort Edward, on the Hudson. He had with his army a large number of In- dian warriors, and they ravaged the country in the most horrible manner. One of them mur- derefl a beautiful American girl, Miss McRoa. She was the daughter of a tory, and was to be married to a young English officer. The latter sent two .Indians to guide her across the wood from the fort to his own station. They quar- relled on the way, which should have special charge of her, and one of them, to terminate the dispute, sunk his tomahawk in her head, and ended her life. The spirit of the whole country was greatly excited by these things ; and an army of thir teen thousand m'en was collected under Gen- eral Gates, to oppose Burgoyne. Meanwhile, a British force, under General St. Leger, had crossed Lake Ontario, from the St. Lawrence, and laid siege to Fort Schuyler, on the southern side. General Herkimer marched northward with eight hundred militia, to relieve it. He fell into an ambuscade, however, in the woods, and was killed. In his last moments, though mortally wound- ed, he was seen sitting on a stump, still en- couraging his men. They stood firm, and sev- eral of the British Indians fell at their first fire. - The rest were so enraged, that they turned upon the lories and the British, and murdered seve- ral of them. The battle was heard at the fort, and two hundred and fifty of the Americans came out to reinforce the detachment.' The British were wholly routed. The Indians flc howling like wild beasts, and left tlu-ir blankets, tomahawks and deer-skins behind. But St. Leger, with his Indians and tories, still besieged Fort Schuyler. General Arnold was now sent, with one thousand men, to at- tack them. But this force was too small, and the Americans had recourse to a. stratagem to frighten the enemy. Colonel Brooks, after- wards governor of Massachusetts, seized upon one Cuyler, a tory, who owned a large farm- house. He was in great terror, lest the Ameri- cans should plunder him ; but Brooks agreed to let him go, and spare his property, if he would travel to Fort Schuyler, arid tell the Brit- force there, that Arnold was coming upon them with an immense army. Cuyler consented. He bored his coat through in two or three places, in the skirts, and made all haste across the woods to the British camp. He informed the Indians there, that Arnold was rushing upon them with a tremendous force ; he said he had fled before them for his life, and showed them the bullet-holes in his old coat, in proof of his story. The Indians were frightened. Nothing could persuade them to stay with St. Leger. "You told us.'' said they, " there would be no fight- ing for us ; that we should smoke our pipes ; and when you had taken the prisoners in the fort, we were to have the pleasure of cutting their throats. But this won't do." According- ly, seven or eight hundred immediately left him. He was himself so alarmed, that he fled with his troops, and left his baggage behind him. Two Indian chiefs, who, it seems, understood CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 452 REV the plot, followed them in their march, and played jokes upon the officers. One of the chiefs had loitered behind ; and just as the offi- cers reached a deep, muddy place, he came running up to them, out of breath, and cried out, " They are coming ! they are coming !" The soldiers threw down their knapsacks, and plunged through the mire as fast as they could jjOr-H^L Leger himself was completely plaster- ed with inud from head to foot. In this way, Fort Schuyler was relieved from the siege without bloodshed. The stratagem practised by the Americans, afforded a great deal of amusement to the army. About the middle of August, Burgoyne sent five hundred Hessians and one hundred Indians, under Colonel Baum, to take possession of a collection of American provisions, at Benning- ton, Vermont. But General Stark was there, luckily, with eight hundred New Hampshire and Vermont militia. Colonel Baum, finding this force greater than his own, threw up tem- porary breastworks for defence, and sent to Burgoyne for reinforcements. Several skir- mishes now followed, in which the Americans had the advantage. Animated by success, they at length ventured to make a general attack upon the breastworks of the enemy. They were without cannon, and destitute even of bayonets. The Hessians, too. fought very brave- ly for two hours. But they were now opposed by still braver men. The Americans rushed into the very flash of their cannon and musketry. Stark had said, at the outset of the battle, " My fellow soldiers, we conquer to-day, or this night Mary Stark is a widow." Such deep resolution seemed to be in the breast of every man. They could not be resisted. Multitudes of the ene- my fell before their keen and well-directed fire. Baum himself was killed, and most of his de- tachment either lost their lives, or were taken prisoners. The Americans, not expecting another ene- my, had dispersed themselves after the battle. Suddenly, a reinforcement of several hundred British troops, under Colonel Breyman, arrived at Bennington. The Americans were now near losing all they had gained. But it happened that a regiment, under Colonel Warner, reached the place soon after. These, with the militia, immediately made an attack upon the enemy. They fought till sunset, when the British re- treated, and, under cover of the night, the great- er part effected their escape. In these two engagements, four hundred of the enemy were killed and wounded, six hun- dred were taken prisoners ; and two hundred and fifty dragoon swords, eight loads of bag- gage, and twenty horses, fell into the hands of the Americans. A Vermont clergyman, at the commencement of the first day's battle, mounted a stump, and prayed for the Americans. The British heard him, and fired at him. The stump was bored through with their bullets, but the clergyman was unhurt. He stepped down. " Now give me a gun," said he ; and he fired the first shot on the American side. An old farmer in the neighborhood had five sons in the battle. He was told the next day, that one of them had come to a miserable end. "What!" cried the gray-headed patriot, "did he leave his post ? did he run from the enemy ?" " Oh no. sir ; worse than that he fell among the slain, fighting like a hero." " Then I am satisfied," said the old man; "bring him in; let me look upon my noble boy." Ihe corpse was brought in ; he wept over it. He then called for a bowl of water, and a napkin ; washed the blood away with his own trembling hands, and thanked God, that his son had died for his country. By the middle of September, the American army under Gates was within three miles of the great army of Burgoyne, on the Hudson. The latter was now severely pressed for provisions, and undertook to inarch on towards Albany. The Americans met him at Stillwater, on the 19th ; a fierce battle was fought ; and the Brit- ish could advance no farther. They pitched their camp on the plains of Saratoga, three miles above the village, within cannon-shot of the American lines. General Clinton was at this time attempting to force a passage up the Hudson, from New York , to reinforce Burgoyne. Spies and scouts were constantly passing between the two armies. One Palmer was at last caught in this business, and brought into the camp of the American general, Putnam, at Pcekskill, New York. He was found to be an American tory, and the Britisli had made him a lieutenant for his pains. Governor Tryon wrote for his release, and threatened vengeance if he were executed. Putnam addressed the following note to the governor, in reply : " SIK Nathan Palmer, a lieutenant in your service, was taken in my camp as a spy ; he was tried as a spy ; he was condemned as a HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REV 453 REV spy ; and you may rest assured, sir, he shall be hanged as" a spy. I nave the honor to be, &c. ISRAEL PUTNAM. To his Excellency Governor Tryon. P. S. Afternoon. He is hanged." Hot skirmishes now took place every day be- iween the two armies trt Saratoga. September 23d, a cannonade was kept up, with a tremen- dous roar and blaze, for three hours. The lield was strown with the killed. An English cap- tain, with forty-eight men. had the command of four fine cannon. He fought till thirty-six of his men were killed. His horses being shot down at last, the cannon were left to the Ameri- cans. Some of the American soldiers, during these skirmishes, often placed themselves in the boughs of high trees, the country being wild and woody, and played with their rifles upon the rear and flanks of%he enemy. The British officers were picked off like birds. Burgoyne himself once narrowly escaped. His aid-de- camp, General Phillips, was delivering a mes- sage to him, when he received a rifle ball in his arm. His saddle was furnished with very rich lace, and the sharp-shooter had taken him for Burgoyne. October 7th, the whole British line was driven back by a tremendous charge. The German lines stood firm to the last, and Colonel Brooks was ordered to attack them. He galloped toward them at the head of his regiment, waving his sword ; and Colonel Arnold rushed on with him. Arnold was wounded, and carried off. Brooks kept on, and the Germans were driven back. Colonel Cilley,of New Hampshire, cap- tured a cannon with his own hands, and was seen astride upon it, in the heat of the battle, shouting to his soldiers. In this battle, Burgoyne had a bullet pass through his hat, and another through the edge of his vest. The English general Frazer fought nobly for a long time. Colonel Morgan ob- served him at last, called up one of his best rifle- : pointed him out. ' Do you see that 'oking fellow," said he, "fighting like a lion ? It is Frazer. I honor the man but he must die." This was enough for the rifleman. He aimed, and Frazer was shot dead. On the 18th of October, 1777. the whole British army under Burgoyne surrendered to General Gates. There were nearly ten thou- sand men, including t Indians ; forty cannon, seven thousand muskets, and a vast quantity of tents and cartridges. The whole country was filled with rejoicing. The thanks of Congress were voted to Gates an<< jus army. But the best effect of the victory was, that the French now concluded to right with the Americans against England. Treaties between the two nations were signed February t5th, 1778, and a fast sailing schooner from France reached Casco Bay, in Maine, In about a month, with the news. It occasioned prodigious joy in Congress, in the army at Val- ley Forge, and over the whole cquntry. A French fleet arrived on the coast early in July. General Clinton knew that they were coming, and therefore thought it necessary to remove to New York. He left Philadelphia on the 18th of June, and inarched through New Jersey, to- ward the latter place. The British army had been in possession of Philadelphia for many months. Tl/eir -departure was a most welcome event to the inhabitants. The business of the city was very much interrupted while they were there, and the intercourse of the inhabi- tants with the neighboring towns and villages, was attended with much difficulty and vexation. The following is the story of "Captain Plun- kett, who escaped from the British, while they were at Philadelphia, in a curious manner. He was an American officer, and, being taken pris oner, was carried to that city, andliept in con- finement. Some years before, he had formed a very pleasant acquaintance with a young Qua- keress. She became apprized of his situation, and determined to effect his release. Accord- ingly, she privately sent him the uniform of a British officer. The captain put it on, and or- dered the guard to open the door. The latter, taking him for a British officer, allowed him to pass into the streets. He immediately went to the house of the young Quakeress, where he remained concealed for some time. His bene- factress then procured for him an old market woman's gown, bonnet and shawl. The cap- tain dressed himself in these, and, thus disguised, set out to leave the city. The British soldiers, who were on guard at "the gate, taking him for a market woman, allowed him to pass; and thus he escaped from the enemy. The Americans contrived some machines, which were filled with gunpowder, and sent down the ri ver Delaware, near to the city. They expected that these would explode, and annoy the Britisii shipping; they did, in fact, no damage, but the British were very much alarm- ed ; accordingly, they fired cannon at every thing they saw floating in the river. The Americans heard of all this, and they were very CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 454 REV much amused with it. Mr. Francis Hopkinson, a man of great wit, wrote a ballad on the sub- ject, which follows. Sir William, spoken of in the poem, was Sir William Howe, the British commander. THE BATTLE OF THE KEGS. GALLANTS, attend, and hear a friend Trill furth harmonious ditty: Strange tilings I'll tell, which laie befell In Philadelphia city. 'Twas early day, as poets say, Just when the sun was rising, A soldier stood on log of wood, And saw a thing surprising. As in a maze he stood to gaze, The truth can't be denied, sir, He spied a score of kegs, or more, Come floating down the tide, sir. A sailor too, in jerkin blue, This strange appearance viewing. First rubb'tl !ii< e^es, in great surprise, Then said, " Some mischief's brewing. "These kegs do hold the rebels bold, Pack'd up like pickled herring; And they're come down t' attack the town, In this new way of ferrying." The soldier flew, the sailor too, And, scar'd almost to dt;atli, sir, Wore out their shot's, to spread the news, M And ran till out of breath, sir. Now up and down, throughout the town, Most frantic scenes were acted ; And some ran here, and others there, Like men almost distracted. Some fire cried, which some denied, But said the earth had quaked ; And girls and boys, with Hideous noise, Ran through the streets half naked. Sir William he, snug as a flea, Lay all this time a snoring, Nor thought of harm, as he lay warm The land of dreams exploring. Now in a fright he starts upright, Awaketl by such a clatter : He rubs both eyes, and boldly cries, " Alas, what is the matter?" At his bedside he then espied Sir Erskine at command, sir ; Upon one foot he had one boot, And the other in his hand, sir. tf Arise, arise !" Sir F.rskine cries ; " The rebels more's the pity Without a boat, are all afloat, And ranged before" the city. " The motley crew, in vessels new, With Satan for their guide, sir, Pack'd up in baz<, or wooden kegs, Come driving down the tide, sir. " Therefore prepare for bloody war, These ki-gs nnst all be routed, Or surely we di-spisni shall be, And British courage doubted." TLie royal band now ready stand, All ranged in dread array, sir, With stomach stout, to see it out, And make a bloody day, sir. The cannons roar from shore to shore, The small arms make a rattle ; Since wars began, I'm sure no man E'er saw s.> strange a battle. The rebel dales, the rebel vales, With rebel trees surrounded, The distant woods, the hills and floods, With rebel echoes sounded. The fish below swam to and fro, Attack'd from every quarter; " Why sure," thought they, " the d 's to pay, 'Mongst folks above the'water." The kegs, 'tis said, though strongly made, Of rebel staves and hoops, sir. Could not oppose their powerful foes, The conquering British troops, sir. From morn to night, these men of might Display 'd amazing oourage, And when the sun was fairly down, Retired to aup their porridge. An hundred men, with each a pen, Or more, upon my word, sir, It is most true, would ''.j>' few, Their valor to record, 'iJK~' Such feats did they perform that day, Against tlie^e wicked kegs, sir, That years to come, if they get home, They'll make t.'ie.ir boasts and brags, sir. As soon as Washington heard that Clinton had left Philadelphia, he broke up his quarters at Valley Forge, and followed hard after him. A hot battle was fought on the 2-th. near Mon- mouth court-house. It did not cease till the evening. Washington slept upon his cloak under a tree, expecting more fio-huiiir in the morning; but the British marched off in the night. Sixty of their soldiers were found dead on the battle-field, without wounds. Fatigue and the excessive heat had killed them. In the beginning of this battle, one Mblly Pitcher was occupied in carrying water from a spring to a battery, where her husband was employed in loading and firing a cannon. He was shot dead at last, and she saw him fall. An officer rode up, and ordered off the cannon. " It can be of no use. now," said he. but Molly stepped up. offered her services, and took her husband's place, to the astonishment of the army. She fought well, and half pay for lift- was given her by Cono-ress. She wore an epaulette, and was called" Captain Molly, ever after. In the midst of the fight, there was a soldier, whose gun-lock was knocked off by a bullet. At the same instant, a soldier at his side was killed. He picked up (lie dead mini's musket. and was preparing to lire, when a bullet entered the muzzle of the gun, and twisted the barrel HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REV 455 REV into the shape of a cork-screw. Although the seized him by 'the collar, without drawing his bullets were flying around him like hail-stones, sword. The colonel drew a pistol from his hoi- he deliberately knelt down upon the spot, un- ster, aimed it at the Englishman's heart, and screwed the lock from the musket in his hand, killed him. The other now Seized him. on the and fastened it to his own gun, which he had other side ; a fierce struggle ensued. The colo- thrown away. In a few minutes, he was again nel received a severe sword-gash in his left arm ; prepared, and then engaged in the deadly con- but he drew his second pistol that moment with flict. his right, placed it between the Englishman's No other great battles were fought during the eyes, and killed him by a shot in the head. Colo- campaign of 1778. The armies only molested nel McLane noto stopped the flow of his own each other by sending out small detachments, blood, by crawling into a mill-pond, and at last One Gray, called " No Flint Gray," because he reached the American camp, always ordered his soldiers to carry their flints In the camp at Morristown, during the win- in their pockets, and use the bayonets only, lay ter and the spring of 1779, the Americana \vere in wait in a barn, one night, for a British party, often without meat or bread ; and they ate peas, He set guards on the road, but these fell asleep, barley, and almost every kind of horse-food, but The enemy found out his situation, rushed hay. Salt could only be got for eight dollars a in upon him, and surprised him in profound bushel: The snow was four feet deep. They slumber. Sixty-seven, out of one hundred and had nothing but a bed of straw and a blanket four of his men, were cruelly bayoneted on the at night. They made log huts in February, spot. Twenty were made prisoners, and a few which were tolerably comfortable. But many escaped. One of. these had eleven bayonet deserted, and the rest were almost discouraged, wounds in his booty ; but he lived many years Small parties were often sent out by each of afterward. the armies to annoy the other. On one occa-. Colonel McLane, of Lee's famous legion of sion, a man by the name of May hew was pur- troopers, had a narrow escape. He had planned sued through the snow by two of the British an attack on a small British force stationed on troopers. They gained fast upon him. and he a turnpike road, eight miles from Philadelphia, found he must be overtaken. So he turned and rode ahead with a single soldier, to point about, and asked, if they would give him quar- out the way for his men. It was in the gray ter. " Yes, you dog." shouted both of them, of the morning. His cqmrade suddenly shouted, "we'll quarter you." Upon this, May hew "ColoneL the British!" spurred his horse, and resolved to give them one shot. He fired at was out of sight in a moment. the foremost, who immediately yelled out. There, indeed, were the enemy all about him. " The rascal has broken my leg." Both of them They had lain in ambuscade, and thus suddenly wheeled about, and galloped away as fast as came upon him. A do/en shots were fired, but they could go. his horse only was 'wounded in the flank. This Little was done on either side during the spurred the animal on at such a furious rate, year 1779. The British main army, under that he dashed through the woods like a hawk. Clinton, was at New York; and the Americans. The colonel now came up with a farm-house by under Washington, were among the Highlands, the road-side, when a number of British officers above that city, on the river Hudson. In the observed him as he passed They thought he spring, a British force was sent to ravage the was on his way to the English army, which coast of Virginia. They destroyed every thing was directly ahead. in their way villages', shipping and stores. He dashed by, and they soon found out their The Virginians sent to the British general to mistake, and pursued him. His horse went ask, " what sort of war this was." He replied, with such speed, however, over fences and that " all rebels must be so treated." fields, and every other obstacle, that, at last, A month or two afterwards, Governor Tryon only two men continued to pursue him. These was sent to commit similar havoc in Connecti- came up with him at the ascent of a small hill, cut. Colonel Whiting had mustered the militia the three horses so exhausted, that neither could at Fairfield. Tryon came to that place, and be forced out of a walk. One of the soldiers commanded him to surrender. He gave him cried, " Surrender, you rebellious rascal, or we an hour for consideration ; but, before that will cut you to pieces." time had elapsed, his soldiers set the town The colonel made no reply, but laid his hand on fire, and a great part of it was laid in ashes, on his pistols. The man now came up, and At New Haven, all possible damage was CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 456 REV done. The haibor was covered over with feathers, poured out from the beds of the peo- ple. Desks, trunks, closets and chests were broken open ; the women were robbed of their buckles, rings, bonnets and aprons. East Ha- ven was afterwards burnt, and Norwalk shared a similar fate. At a place near Stamford, the British came upon General Putnam, who had one hundred and fifty militia-men with him, and two can- non. With these, he kept the enemy at bay tor some time. He tJien ordered the soldiers into a swamp hard by, where the British troop- ers could not follow ; and he himself rode at full gallop down a steep rock behind the meeting- bouse. Nearly one hundred steps had been hewn in it, like a flight of stairs, for the people to ascend in going to meeting. The troopers stopped at the brink, and dared not follow him. He escaped with a bullet-hole through his hat. In July, a fleet of thirty-seven snr.ill vessels was fitted out from Boston, with fifteen hun- dred militia on board, under General Wads- worth and -General Lovell. The object was, to drive the British from the Penobscot river, in Maine, where they had built a fort at a pi nee called Bagaduce then, now Castine. They were near succeeding, when a Britisli fleet ap- peared off the mouth of the river. They were obliged to leave their vessels, and most of the troops, after some fighting, escaped across the wild lands of Maine, to the settlements on the river Kennebec. On the Hudson, the Americans were more successful. On the 15th of July, Washington sent General Wayne up the river with twelve hundred men, to attack a strong British fort called Stony Point. At eleven in the evening, Wayne arrived within a mile or two of the fort. The troops were now formed into two columns. Colonel Fleury marched on in front, with one hundred and fifty volunteers, guided by twenty picked men. They marched silently, with unloaded guns and fixed bayonets. A disor- derly fellow, who persisted in loading liis gun, was run through the body by his captain. No man was suffered to fire. The fort was defended by a deep swarnp, covered with water. The troops marched through it. waist deep. They proceeded with charged bayonets, under a tremendous fire of cannon and musketry from the British, till -the two columns met m the centre of the fort. The garrison, six hundred in number, were taken prisoners, with fifteen cannon, and a large quantity of stores. The Americanslo st a hundred men : seventeen of the twenty picked men, who marched in front, were among the number. General Lincoln commanded in the Southern Provinces during 1779, the British still holding possession of Savannah. He besieged them there with the help of the French fleet, but was driven off. Prevost, the British general, him- self, met with the same bad luck in besieging Charleston. South Carolina. The people resist- ed him nobly, with some assistance from Lin- coln, and the siege was abandoned. But Prevost ravaged the country, burning and plundering without mercy. T.he tories joined him, and the negro slaves- were hired to serve him as spies and scouts. Peter Francisco, an American trooper, made himself famous at this time. A British plundering dragoon enter- ed a hut in the country, where lie happened to be, and ordered him to " deliver up every thing, or die." " I have nothing to deliver," said Peter, who was unarmed } " do as you please." li OH' with those great silver buckles on your shoes, you scoundrel !" said the dragoon. (i Take them, if you like," answered Peter: "I will not give them." The soldier stooped to cut them off with his knife, placing his sword under his arm. with the hilt towards Peter. He seized upon it. and struck the dragoon with such force as to sever his head from, his body at a single blow. Sergeant Jasper was another brave fellow, who has been mentioned before. He once went secretly, with a young friend of his. by the name of Newton, to visit his brother, a sol- dier at a British fort. As lie stayed there a day or two, his brother took him to s'ee some Amer- ican prisoners, just brought in. They were all hind-cuffed. There was a young woman among the rest, with her husband, and a beau- tiful little boy, five years old, leaning his head on her bosom, and weeping. Jasper and Newton were hardlv able to bear this. They walked to a wood "near by. " I shall not live long," said Jasper. " Why so?" said the other. " Why, the thought of that poor woman haunts me. I shall die, if I do not save them." "That is my mind, exactly," said Newton, grasping Jasper's hand. " Go on, my brave friend ; I will stand by you to tlie last." After breakfast, the prisoners were sent on towards Savannah, under a guard of ten armed men. The two friends followed them through the woods, but without arms. Thinking they would stop at the Spa, a famous spring two HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL REV 457 REV miles from Savannah, they went secretly round to that place, and concealed themselves in the bushes. By and by, the party came up, and the prisoners were suffered to rest at the spring. Two men kept guard with thek muskets, while two more came to the sprinMbr water. The others piled their arms up, and sat down at a distance. The two guards now rested their guns against a tree, and began drinking from their canteens. " Now's the time," cried Jas- per. At the same instant, the two heroes sprang from the bushes, snatched the two mus- kets, and shot down the two guards. By this time, two of the soldiers had seized upon their guns. But they were instantly knock down. Jasper and .Newton stood over the pile of guns, and ordered the other six to surrender. They were glad to do so. The American prisoners were now armed, and the hand-cuffs were taken from them, and put upon the British soldiers, and the party soon reach]) ed the American camp. During the year 1780, nothing of great conse- quence was done in the Northern Provinces. The two armies lay near each other, the British being in New York, and the Americans on the Hudson ; but no battles were fought. When the British troops took New York, and the Americans had retired some distance up the North River, De Lancey joined the British, took a' colonel's commission, and raised a regiment of horse, which was called Le Lancey's corps. The other took a captain's commission in the American army ; and now, feelings of hostility took the place of the former friendship and kind- ness that subsisted between them. The British often sent out parties to procure, in whatever way they could, cattle, sheep, &c., for food. On one occasion, such a party had collected a large number of these animals, and | succeeded in driving them within the British lines, before thev were discovered. The place to which they had conveyed their plunder, was within fifteen or twenty miles of New York, and was considered a place of security. Captain Moulton was one of the most active partisans in the 1 American army, and was often employed in enterprises which required both daring and dex- terity. Being well acquainted with the country, the posts where the British were stationed, and also the place where they had retired with their plun- der, he requested and obtained permission to * attempt its recapture. In this service, he had about one hundred men under his command. His plan was, to avoid the British posts, upon liis prey, take them by surprise, and make his retreat before any alarm could be given. Unless completely successful, the destruction of the whole party seemed inevitable. It was about thirty or forty miles from the head-quarters of the American army to the scene of action, which lay several miles within the enemy's lines. Captain M. and his party began their march about noon. He ordered several of his men to keep half a mile or more in advance, to guard against surprise. At sunset, they were about ten or fifteen miles from the place where they expected (o find the cattle. They rested till midnight, and then set off for the scene of ac- tion. They found all still and quiet on their route. When within a mile, they halted, and Captain M. gave directions as to the assault, which he intended to make soon after day-break. He ordeied his men not to fire a gun, but told them to rush upon those who guarded the cat- tle, and kill, or take them prisoners. These orders were strictly obeyed, and the surprise was complete. In less than an hour, the cattle were collected, and, with a few pris- oners, were on their way to the American camp, under the escort of twenty men, who were di- rected by Captain M. to push on as fast as possi- ble, until they had passed a large open plain, which lay in their route. He was to stay with the rest of the party, and destroy the stores which they could not convey away, and was then to follow and endeavor to overtake them, by the time they had crossed the plain. It was two hours after his first arrival, before Captain M. commenced his return. His situa- tion he knew to be extremely critical. Colonel De Lancey was stationed but ten or twelve miles distant, with his regiment of horse ; and he feared he would be upon him before he could join the rest of the party. He had just reached the plain already mentioned, when he heard the tramp of horses, and saw a troop of cavalry coming at full allop upon him. He ordered^ his men to push on, hoping to cross the plain before he was overtaken. But he had only reached the middle, when De Lancey and hut troop had come very near. Captain Moulton immediately halted, and formed his men in a hollow square, ordering the front line to kneel on one knee, and present their bayonets, resting the butt-end of the gun on the ground ; the others to present theirs over the heads of their comrades. He warned them not to fire a gun, and not to speak ; but to be unmoved, firm and steadfast. Scarcely were CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 458 REV iy thus formed, when the horse, to the num- "Are you, indeed?" said the scouts; "then her of two or three hundred, came on at full we'll see about that! " They found his papers charge, appearing as if they would ride over ^Jte in his boots. He offered them his gold watch, little band, and trample them to the earth. horse and purse, if they would release him ; but But in vain did meir riders urge them to the they told him they knew their business too well. onset. When within a rod of the bristling bay- He was carried to the camp, and though a brave onets, they recoiled, and, wheeling to the right and accomplished young man, yet he wascon- _and left, passed round the corps, and formed for demned anWianged, according to the usages of "another charge, which was made with little sue- war, as a spy. Even the Americans shed many cess. They could only bring their horses ne^ir tears for him. The scouts were handsomely re- enough to clash their swords upon the bayonets, warded. but without reaching the soldiers. A few pistols Arnold escaped from West Point in great were fired, but without effect. Colonel De L. haste. Andre had contrived to send him notice then called upon Captain M. to surrender, but of his capture. He was dining with some of his received no answer. At length the horsemen friends, when the letter came. They saw he wheeled about, and were preparing for a third was very much agitated. He started up, and charge. Captain M. then spoke to De Lancey : looked wild ; made an excuse to go out, and they " It you jnake another assault upon us, I will saw nothing more df him. He. went to New order twenty balls to be put through your heart, York, and joined the British army; was paid though we aie sacrificed the next moment!" about fifty thousand dollars, and was appointed De Lancey knew this to be no idle threat. He a general in the British service, for his intended therefore retifed with his men, and left the little Reason. His name was covered with everlast- patriot band to pursue their march. The next day, they arrived at head quarters, with their plunder and prisoners. g shame and disgrace. Even his gallantry nd decided military talents were overlooked and forgotten in his infamy. The British them- The most important event of this year, was selves despised him. After the war. he went to the treason of General Arnold. He commanded England, where he lived many years in obscu- a very strong fort at West Point, sixty miles rity and contempt. from New York, on the North River. He un- the head-quarters of General Washington dertook to deliver it into the possession of the were at Tappan. on the Hudson, at the time he British. heard of Arnold's treason. Having taken meas- Major Andre, a young British officer, went ures to put the fort in a state of security, he ap- on shore in the night from a British ship in the pointed a court-martial, to try Andre. After river, to arrange the business with Arnold. The a. very deliberate examination, he was found two officers met privately at some distance from guilty, and condemned to be hanged as a spy. the fort. Arnold agreed, for a certain sum of When the gallant young officer heard that he money, and other considerations, to surrender was condemned to be hanged, he wrote a yery the fort, with the garrison, cannon and ammu- pathetic letter to Washington, praying that he nition, into the hands of the British commander, might be shot, and die as a soldier, rather than In settling the details of this business, Andre be executed like a felon. was detained till the next day ; and then the No man had a kinder heart than General boatmen refused to carry him back. He had to Washington ; and he would gladly have ^granted return by land, and to pass by the American the request of the unfortunate young English- camp, on his way to New York. He was fur- man. But duty to his country would not per- nished with a horse, and exchanged his uniform mit him to soften the sentence of the law. He for a common coat. was very anxious to bring Arnold to justice, and He thought himself already out of danger, imagine'd that, if he could be taken, Andre might when, as he trotted quietly on through the be set free. He resolved to make an attempt, to woods, he was stopped by three Americans, who effect these desirable objects, and. having form- were scouting between the out-posts of the two ed his plan, Washington sent to Major L,ee to armies. " Who goes there ? " cried the first, repair to head-quarters, at Tappan. " I have Hoizing his bridle. Andre was frightened, and sent for you," said General Washington, "in I he scout where he belonged. " Below," the expectation that you have some one in your answered he, meaning New York. corps, who is willingto undertake a delicate and "So do I," said Andre, deceived; "I'm a hazardous project. Whoever comes forward will , British officer, in oreat haste; don't stop me." confer great obligations upon me personally, and, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REV 459 REV in behalf of the United States, I will reward him amply. No time is to be lost; he must proceed, if possible, to-night. 1 intend to seize Arnold, and save Andre. ' Major Lee named a sergeant-major of his corps, by the name of Champe, a native of Vir- ginia, a man full of bone and muscle, with a countenance grave, thoughtful, and taciturn, of tried courage, and inflexible perseverance. Champe was sent for by Major Lee, and the plan proposed. This was for him to desert ; to escape to New York ; to appear friendlv to the enemy; to watch Arnold, and, Upon some fit opportunity, with the assistance of some one whom he could trust, to seize him, and conduct him* to. a place on the river, appointed, where boats should be in readiness to bear them away. Champe listened to the plan attentively ; but, with the spirit of a man of honor and integrity, replied, " that it was not danger nor difficulty that deterred him from immediately accepting the proposal, but the ignominy of desertion, and the hypocrisy of enlisting with the enemy." To these objections Lee replied, that although he would appear to desert, yet, as he obeyed the call of his commander-in-chief, his departure could not be considered as criminal ; and that, if hg_ suffered in reputation for a time, the mat- ter. would one day ke explained to his credit. As to the second objection, it was urged, that to bring such a man as Arnold to justice, loaded with guilt as he -was ; and to save Andre, so young, so ar.complished, so beloved; to achieve so much good in the cause of his country, was more than sufficient to balance a wrong, exist- ing only in appearance. The objections of Champe were at length sur- mounted, and he accepted the service. It was now eleven o'clock at night. With his instruc- tions in his pocket, the sergeant returned to camp; and, taking his cloak, valise and orderly book, drew his horse from the picket, and mount- ed, putting himself upon fortune. Scarcely had half an hour elapsed, before Captain Carnes, the officer of the day, waited upon Lee, who was vainly attempting to rest, and informed him, that one of the patrol had fal- len in with a dragoon, who, being challenged, put spurs to his horse, and escaped. Lee, hoping to conceal the flight of Champe, or at least to delay pursuit, complained of fatigue, and told the captain that the patrol had probably mistaken a countryman for a dragoon. Carnes, however, was not thus to be quieted ; and he withdrew to assemble his corps. On examination, it was found that Champe was absent. The captain now returned, and acquainted Lee with the dis- covery, adding, that he had detached a party to pursue the deserter, and begged the Major's written orders. After making as much delay as practicable without exciting suspicion, Lee delivers his or- ders, in which he directed the party to take Champe, if possible. " Bring him alive, " said he, " that he may suffer in the presence of the army ; but kill him if he resists, or tries to escape after being taken." A shower of rain fell soon after Champe's de- parture, which enabled the pursuing dragoons to lake the trail of his horse ; his shoes, in com- mon with those of all the horses of the corps, being made in a peculiar form, and each having a private mark, which was to be seen in the path. Middleton, the leader of the pursuing party, left the camp a few minutes past twelve, so that Champe had the start of but little more than an hour a period by far shorter than had been con- templated. During the night, the dragoons were often delayed in the necessary halts to examine the road ; but, on the coining of morning, the impression of the horse's shoes was so apparent, that they pressed on with rapidity. Some miles above Bergen, a village three miles north of New York, on the opposite side of the Hudson, ou ascending a hill, Champe was seen not more than half a mile distant. Fortunately, Champe descried his pursuers at the same moment, and, conjecturing their object, put spurs to his horse, with the hope of escape. By taking a different road, Champe was, for a time, lost sight of; but, on approaching the river, he was again perceived. Aware of his danger, he now lashed his valise, containing his clothes and orderly book, to his shoulders, and prepared himself to plunge into the river, if ne- cessary. Swift was his" flight, and swift the pursuit. Middieton and his party were within a few hundred yards, when Champe threw him- self from his horse, and plunged into the river, calling aloud upon some British galleys, at no great distance, for help. A boat was instantly despatched to the sergeant's assistance, and a fire commenced upon the pursuers. Champe was taken on*board, and soon after carried to New York, with a letter from the captain of the gal- ley, fetating the past scene, all of which he had witnessed. The pursuers having recovered the sergeant's horse and cloak, returned to camp, where they arrived about three o'clock the next dny. On their appearance with the well known horse, the soldiers made the air resound with the acclaiua- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 460 REV tion that the scoundrel was killed. The agony of Lee, for a moment, was past description, lest the faithful, honorable, intrepid Champe had fallen. But the truth soon relieved his fears, and he repaired to Washington to impart to him the success, thus far, of his plan. Soon after the arrival of Champe in New York, he was sent to Sir Henry Clinton, who treated him kindly, but detained him more than an hour in asking him questions ; "to answer some of which, without exciting suspicion, re- quired all the art the sergeant was master of. He succeeded, however, and Sir Henry gave him a couple of guineas, and recommended him to Arnold, who was wishing to procure Ameri- can recruits. Arnold received him kindly, and proposed to him to join his legion. Champe, however, expressed his wish to retire from war ; but assured the general, if he should change his mind, he would enlist. Champe found means to communicate to Lee an account of his adventures; but, unfortunate- ly, he could not succeed in taking Arnold, as was wished, before the execution of Andre. Ten days before Champe brought his project to a conclusion, Lee received from him his final communication, appointing the third subsequent night for a party of dragoons to meet him at Hoboken, opposite New York, when he hoped to deliver Arnold to the officers. Champe had enlisted into Arnold's legion, from which time he had every opportunity he could wish, to attend to the habits of the gene- ral. He discovered that it was his custom to return home about twelve every night, and that, previously to going to bed, he always visited irden. During this visit, the conspirators the ga were to seize him, and, being prepared with a gag, they were to apply the same instantly. Adjoining the house in which Arnold resided, and in which, it was designed to seize and gag him. Champe had taken off several fence-pal- ings, and replaced them, so that with ease, and without noise, he could readily open his way to the adjoining alloy. Into this alley he intended to convey his prisoner, aided by his companion. one of two associates, who had been introduced by the friend to whom Champe had been origi- nally made known by letter from the com- inander-in-chief, and with whose aid and coun- sel he had so far conducted the enterprise. His other associate was with the boat, prepared at one of the wharves on the Hudson River, to re- ceive the party. Champe and his friend intended to place themselves each under Arnold's shoulder,. and thus to bear him, through the most unfrequented alleys and streets, to the boat, representing Ar- nold, in case of being questioned, as a drunken soldier, whom they were conveying to the guard-house. When arrived at the boat, the difficulties would be all surmounted, there being no dan- ger nor obsto.de in passing to the Jersey shore. These particulars, as soon as made known to Lee, were communicated to the commander-in- chief, who was highly gratified with the much desired intelligence. He requested Major Lee to meet Chanl|>e. and to take care that Arnold should not be hurt. The day arrived, and Lee, with a part^ of accoutred horses, one for Arnold, one. for the sergeant, and the third for his associate, who was to assist in securing Arnold, left the camp, never doubting the success of the enterprise, from the tenor of the last received communica- tion. The party reached Hoboken about mid- night, where they were concealed in the ad- joining wood ; Lee, with three dragoons sta- tioning himself near the shore of the river. Hour after hour passed, but no boat approached. At length the day broke, and the major re- tired to his party, "and, with his led horses, returned to the camp, where he proceeded to head-quarters, to inform the' general of the much lamented disappointment, as mortifying as it was inexplicable. Washington, having perus- ed Champe's plan and communication, had in- dulged the presumption . that at length the object of his keen and constant pursuit was sure of execution, and did not dissemble the joy which such a conviction produced. He was chagrined at the issue, and apprehended that his faithful sergeant must have been detected in the last scene of his tedious and difficult enterprise. In a few days. Lee received an anonymous letter from Charnpc's patron and friend, inform- ing him, that on the day preceding the night fixed for the execution of the plot, Arnold had removed his quarters to another part of the town, to superintend the embarkation of troops, preparing, as was rumored, for an expedition to be directed by himself; and that the American legion, consisting chiefly of American deserters, had been transferred from their barracks to one of the transports, it being apprehended that, if left on shore until the expedition was ready, many of them might desert. Thus it happened, that John Champe, instead of crossing the Hudson that night, was safely deposited on board one of the fleet of transports, from whence he never departed, until the troops HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REV 461 REV under Arnold landed in Virginia. Nor was he able to escape from the British army until after the junction of Lord Cornwallis at Petersburg, when he deserted ; and, proceeding high up into Virginia, he passed into North Carolina, and, keeping in the friendly districts of that state, sjifely joined the army soon after it had passed the Congaree, in pursuit of Lord Rawdon. His appearance excited extreme surprise among his former comrades, which was not a little increased, when they saw the cordial re- ception he met with from the late Major, now Lieutenant-Colonel Lee. His whole story was soon known to the corps, which re-produced the love and respect of officers and soldiers, hereto- fore invariably entertained for the sergeant, heightened by universal admiration of his late daring and arduous attempt. Champe was introduced to General Greene, who very cheerfully complied with the promise made by the commander-in-chief, so far as in his power ; and, having provided the sergeant with a good horse, and money for his journey, sent him to General Washington, who munifi- cently anticipated every desire of the sergeant, and presented him with a discharge from fur- ther service, lest he might, in the vicissitudes of war, fall into the hands of the enemy , when, if recognised, he was sure to die on a gibbet. When General Washington was called by President Adams, in 1798, to the command of the army, prepared to defend the country against French hostility, he sent to Lieutenant-Colonel Lee, to inquire for Champe ; being determined to bring him into the field at the head of a com- pany of infantry. Lee sent to Loudon county, Virginia, where Champe settled after his dis- charge from the army ; when he learned that the gallant soldier had removed to Kentucky, where he soon after died. We must now return to our history. Con- gress continued to make great efforts to supply the army, though the paper money they had issued was worth so little, that a soldier would give forty of these dollars for a breakfast, and a colonel's pay would hardly find oats for his horse. The merchants of Philadelphia raised a large sum of better money, however, and sent it to the arrny. The ladies of that city furnish- ed a large quantity of clothing. But the British, all this time, were overrun- ning the two Carolinas. They had taken Charleston on the llth of May, 1780, after a long siege, and a brave defence by General Lincoln. General Gates was soon after sent to take command of the southern army . He was joined by hundreds of the Carolina militia. Congress sent him some fine Maryland and Delaware troops also. They had a very long and hard march through the woods, finding nothing to eat on the way, but peaches and green corn, with now and then a flock of wild turkeys, or a drove of wild hogs. But they were brave men, and did not murmur. They even joked each other on account of their thin faces, and lank legs. . A battle took place on the 16th of August, near Camden, South Carolina, between Gates and the British under Lord Cornwallis. The former was defeated, and fled eighty miles into the back country. The lean, northern soldiers we have just mentioned, fought nobly an hour after all the rest had been routed like an army of sheep. The brave Baron De Kalb was wound- ed in eleven places. He fell from his horse, and died in the hands of the British. He was a Frenchman, and sent his compliments, in his last moments, to "his gallant Maryland and Delaware soldiers." Generals Marion and Sumpter gave the Brit- ish great trouble during this campaign. Small parties of the mountain militia joined them, and they swept down upon the enemy, wherever they could find them in small parties. The far- mers' wives furnished them pewter spoons and platters, to make into bullets ; and they forged swords of scythes and the saws of saw-mills. In October, sixteen hundred of these moun- taineers mustered together to attack a British force under Major Ferguson, who had encamp- ed not far from the mountains. P'or weeks, they had no salt, bread, or spirits; they slept upon boughs of trees, without blankets, drank only from the running streams, and lived upon wild game, or ears of corn, and pumpkins, roast- ed by their great log-fires in the woods. They were to assault Ferguson in three par- ties, and Colonel Cleaveland addressed his party in these words : " My brave boys, we have beat the red-coats and the tories, and we can beat them again. They are all cowards. You must fight, each man for himself, without orders. Fire as quick as you can, and stand as long as you can. If you must retreat, get behind the trees don't run, my fine fellows, don't run !" " iturrah for the mountaineers !" cried they, and rushed down upon the enemy. The Americans were driven back at the point of the bayonet ; but they only lay down among the logs and rocks, and, being sharp-shooters, killed more than two hundred of the enemy. Ferguson was killed himself, and eight hundred CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. REV 462 REV of his soldiers surrendered. Ten of the most savage tories, notorious rascals, were hung up on the neighboring trees. With the year 178] , on which we now enter, the war dresv rapidly toward a close. It was carried on almost entirely in the Southern Prov- inces. General Greene was appointed to com- mand the American forces in that quarter. At the time of his arrival, they were a miserable, half-starved militia, of three thousand men. They marked the frozen ground with the blood of their bare feet, and lived half the time upon frogs, taken from the swamps, wild game, rice, and wretchedly lean cattle. But they were soon reinforced ; and small parties, under Sumpter, Marion, Morgan, and others, often annoyed the forces of Cornwallis. Colonel Washington laid siege to a strong block- house near Camden, defended by a British colonel, and a hundred tories. He had no can- non, and few men ; but he carved out a few pine logs in the shape of cannon, mounted them on wheels, and summoned the tories to surren- der. They were frightened at the appearance of his big cannon, and surrendered. Not a shot was fired upon either side. On the 17th of January, Colonel Morgan, with eight hundred militia, was attacked at a place called the Cowpens, in South Carolina, by Tarleton, a famous British officer, with eleven hundred men and two cannon. The enemy rushed on with a tremendous shout. The front line of militia were driven back. Tarleton pur- sued them, at full gallop, with his troopers, and fell upon the second line. They too were giv- ing way. At this moment, Colonel Washington charged Tarleton with forty-five militia-men, mounted, and armed as troopers. The whole line now ral- lied under Colonel Howard, and advanced with fixed bayonets. The British fled. Their cannon were left behind ; three hundred British soldiers were killed and wounded, and five hundred were taken prisoners ; eight hundred muskets, sev- enty negroes, and one hundred dragoon horses, also fell into the hands of the Americans. Many British officers were killed. Morgan always told his sharp-shooters " to aim at the epaulettes, and not at the poor rascals who fought for six- pence a day." General Greene was now driven back, by Cornwallis, into North Carolina. The latter pursued him through the Province, over moun- tains and swamps, and arrived at the river Dan, just as Greene had crossed it. Cornwallis now found it necessary to turn about; and so he marched back, and Greene soon followed him with new forces. Sumpter joined him at Orangeburg, having received orders to do so during his hasty retreat before the enemy. It seems Greene could find no man in his army who would carry the mes sage to Sumpter. A country girl, named Emilj- Geiger,at last offered her services, and was sent She was taken by the British, and confined fo) the purpose of being searched. She, however, ate up the letter which she carried, piece by piece. They released her, to go home, as thej supposed ; but she took a roundabout way . reached Sumpter's camp safely, and delivered her message, in her own words. The Americans were defeated near Guilfon* court-house on the loth of March. But Corn wallis retreated soon after. He had suffered great loss, and his army was small. A militia colonel cried out in this battle, as the British were marching up, " They will surround us.' He was frightened himself, and frightened his soldiers so much, that they gave way, while the enemy were one hundred and forty yards distant . Colonel Washington, at the head of his troop ers, nearly captured Cornwallis in this battle. He was just rushing upon the British genera), when his c;ip fell from his head. As he leaped to the ground for it, the leading American officer behind him was shot through the body, and ren- dered unable to manage his horse. The animal wheeled round, and galloped off with his rider ; and the troop, supposing it was Washington's ta der, wheeled about also, and rode offat full speed. Fort Watson, between Camden and Charles- ton, surrendered, in April, with 114 men, t> General Marion. The fort was built on a mound of earth thirty feet high ; but Marion, with his mountaineers, had raised a work which over- looked it in such a manner, that not a man in the fort could show his head over the parapets, or scarcely point his musket through a hole in tiie walls, but the riflemen above would shoot him. Greene was again defeated at Camden . on the 25th of April, by nine hundred English under Lord Rawdon. But in a month or two, the British lost sb forts, and that of Augusta was among them Here there were three hundred men, as a garri son, who almost buried themselves undei ground, while the Americans were building up batteries within thirty yards, which swept the fort through and through. Greene and all his officers, and all his men, fought nobly the whole season. " I will recover the Province," said the general, " or die in the attempt." It is remarka- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REV 463 REV ble, that although his force was much inferior to that of Cornwallis, and though he was frequently defeated, yet, by his admirable mano2uvres, the result of the campaign was entirely favorable to the Americans, and injurious to the British. Greene attacked the enemy at Eutaw Springs, September 8th, and completely defeated them, killing and capturing eleven hundred of their best soldiers. In pursuing the enemy, one Manning found himself surrounded by them. He seized upon a small British officer; and, be- ing himself a stout man, placed him on his shoulders, and retreated, the English not daring to fire at him. The little officer was horribly frightened, but Manning took good care of him. The war was closed by the capture of Corn- wallis, at Yorktown, on York River, Virginia. He had left Carolina, and now expected to over- run Virginia. But in September, the Ameri- cans and French, under Washington, surround- ed him from all quarters, on the land ; while the French fleet, riding in Chesapeake Bay, blocked up the mouths of the rivers, and kept the Eng- lish fleet from coming in. It was impossible for Clinton, with all his forces at New York, to reinforce Cornwallis. Washington had kept him in fear all summer, and made him believe, till the last moment, that he was to be besieged in New York. It was not till August 24th, that Washington left his camp on the Hudson, and marched through New Jer- sey and Pennsylvania, to the head of the Chesa- peake. The French Admiral De Grasse, who had just arrived, carried the American forces down the bay to Yorktown. The army passed through Philadelphia, on this march, in the most splendid style. The line was more than two miles long. The streets were crowded with spectators; and the win- dows, to the highest stories, were filled with la- dies, waving their handkerchiefs, as the gallant troops passed by. It was a magnificent specta- cle. There was Washington, with all his sren- erals ; the French Count Rochambeau, with all his; General Knox, with one hundred fine can- non; and the whole army, pressing on with proud steps and a noble confidence. The music was beautiful ; every body thought they would conquer ; and, just at this time, news came, that the French fleet had arrived in the Chesapeake. The city rang with the shouts of the immense multitude. By the 7th of October, Cornwallis was com- pletely besieged. He had raised intrench- rnents; but the allied army, the Americans and French, had erected breast- works all about him, circle after circle, and now opened a battery of one hundred cannon. They fired day and night. The roar was terrible. The ground, for miles, shook with it ; and the bombs and shells were seen whirling and crossing each other in the dark sky, and blazing like comets. If they fell upon the ground, it was torn up for a rod around, and dozens were killed when they burst. The bombs sometimes went over the heads of the enemy, and fell among the Brit- ish vessels in the harbor, near the British works at Gloucester Point, on the other side of the river. The water spouted in columns as they fell. One night, an attack was made upon two re- doubts, which the British had built out so far, that they stood in the way of some American works just building around them. The French were ordered to take one redoubt, and the Amer- icans, under Lafayette, the other. The two parties tried to out-do each other. Lafayette carried his redoubt first, however, and sent his aid-de-camp to the leader of the French party, through all the fire of the batteries, to tell him he was in. "So will I be," said the Frenchman, " in five minutes;" and he performed his promise. Cornwallis surrendered on the 19th. His ar- my, of about seven thousand men, marched out, at two o'clock, and passed between the Ameri- can line on one side, and the French on the other, stretched out for more than a mile. They were all dressed in their most splendid uniforms, with fine music, and colors flying. The Eng- lish marched, carrying their colors bound up, with a slow and solemn step. The English general rode up to Washington, at the head of the line, and excused the absence of Cornwallis, who feigned sickness. Wash- ington pointed liim politely to General Lincoln, and the latter directed him to a large field, where the whole British army laid down their arms, and were led away prisoners. After this capture, the English gave up all hopes of success. No fighting of any consequence took place, after this, upon the land. The British troops were wholly withdrawn from the United States of America in the fol- lowing season. The terms of peace with Eng- land were settled by the British and American ambassadors at Paris, in November, 1782. The 3d of November, 1783, was fixed upon by Congress for the final disbanding of the American army. On the day previous, Wash- ington issued his farewell orders, and bade an affectionate adieu to the soldiers who had fought with him in the great struggle, which was now CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. RHO 464 RIC Soon after taking leave of the army, General Washington was called to the still more painful hour of separation from his officers, greatly en- deared to him by a long series of common suf- ferings and dangers. The officers, having previously assembled in New York for the purpose, General Washing- ton now joined them, and, calling for a glass of wine, thus addressed them : " With a heart full of love and gratitude, I now take my leave of you. I most devoutly wish that your latter days may be as prosperous and happy, as your former ones have been glorious and honorable." Having thus affectionately addressed them, he took each by the hand, and bade him fare- well. Followed by them to the side of the Hud- son, he entered a barge, and, while tears flowed down his cheeks, he turned towards the com- panions of his glory, and bade them a silent adieu. Thus ended the American Revolution. REYNOLDS, Sir Joshua, an eminent En- glish painter, born at Plympton in Devonshire, in 1723. He was particularly celebrated for his portraits, in which he rejected the stiff, formal style of his predecessors. In 1709 he was elect- ed president of the royal academy and received the honor of knighthood. He lived in habits of intimacy with Johnson, Garrick, Burke, and other eminent men of his time, and, although afflicted with incurable deafness in the latter part of his life, enjoyed conversation by means of a trumpet. In 1791 his eyesight failed, and the following year he died, at the age of seventy. Mr. Burke once observed to Sir Joshua Rey- nolds " What a delight you have in your pro- fession." " No, Sir," said Dr. Johnson, taking up the question, " Reynolds only paints to get money " Miss Hannah Moore, who was pre- sent, defending Sir Joshua, insisted that the pleasure experienced by the artist was derived from higher and more luxuriant sources than mere pecuniary consideration. " Only answer me," said the moralist, in an impressive tone, " did Leander swim the Hellespont merely be- cause he was fond of swimrninor?" RHODE ISLAND, one of the United States, bounded N. and E. by Massachusetts, S. by the Atlantic ocean, and W. by Connecticut; con- taining 1350 square miles, and 108,830 inhabi- tants. COUNTIES AND SHIRE TOWNS. Bristol - - - Bristol Kent - - - East Greenwich Newport ... Newport Providence - - Providence. Rhode Island is extensively engaged in man- ufactures. The principal article is cotton goods. The land in the vicinity of Narraganset bay is very fertile, in other parts poor. Brown Uni- versity, at Providence, is a well-endowed and flourishing institution ; and education generally receives careful attention. Roger Williams, "a minister who was driven from Massachusetts on account of his religious principles, made the first settlement in this state at Providence in 1G3G. He established a community in which persecution f r religion was unknown. The official s! -k of the state is the state of Rhode Island and Providence Plantations. The island which gives its name to the state is in Narra- ganset bay, is about 15 miles long and 3 broad, healthy and pleasant, and containing 3 town- ships, Newport, Portsmouth, and Middletown. RHODES, an island in the Grecian archi- pelago, 10 miles from the southern coast of Asia Minor, now in the hands of the Turks. It was formerly celebrated for the fertility of its soil, its consecration to the gods, and its wonderful works of art, including the celebrated Colossus (see Colossus of Rhodes). It was made a Roman province in the reign of Vespasian. In 1309 the knights of St. John held possession of it but were forced to surrender it to Soliihan II, in 1522. RICHARD I, king of England, surnamed CCEUT de Lion, was born at Oxford, llf>7, and was crowned at London Sept. 3, 1189 ; released the king and people of Scotland from their oaths of homage they had taken to his father, for 10,000 marks, Dec. 5, 1189; embarked at Do- ver, Dec. II ; set out on the crusade, and joined Philip of France on the plains of Ve/elay, June 29, 1 190 ; took Messina the latter end of the year; married Berengera, daughter of the kimr of Navarre. May 12, 1191; defeated the Cypri- ans, and took their king prisoner, 1191 ; and was taken prisoner near Vienna, on his return home, by Leopold, Duke of Austria, Dec. 20, lli)2, by whom he was detained two years, and was ransomed for 40.000J., and set at liberty at aMentz. lie returned to England March 20, 119-1. but a war breaking out between England and France, King Richard besieged the castle of Chaluz, near Li imoges, in Normandy, he was shot with an arrow, and died April (j, 1199; he was buried at Fontevraud, and suc- ceeded by his brother. RICHARD II, King of England, was born at Bourdeaux in 13o7, and succeeded King Ed- ward III in 1377. Being only eleven years old when he came to the crown, the kingdom was governed, during his minority, by his uncles, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. RIC 465 RID the Dukes of Lancaster and Gloucester. His reign was disturbed by the famous rebellion of Wat Tyler and Jack Straw. He next found himself involved in a war with the barons, who forced him at last to sacrifice his misleading fa- vorites to their revenge. But the events which . proved most fatal to him were the Duke of Gloucester's death, whom he caused^ to be smothered, and his unjust seizure of the Duke of Lancaster's goods upon his decease. Upon these provocations, Richard, having gone to Ireland to pacify a disturbance there, Henry, the young Duke of Lancaster, landed in England with some forces, which soon increased to a jrieat number by the discontented party. The Duke of York, whom King Richard had left to govern the kingdom in his absence, could gain but little assistance to oppose the Duke of Lancaster. The king's affairs now bore so dismal an aspect, that he offered to resign his crown. On this, he was conducted to London, where he was lodged in the Tower. A parliament was sum- moned at Westminster, in which King Richard was charged with the breach of his coronation oath, in thirty-two articles ; the result of which was, his solemn resignation of the crown to his cousin Henry, Duke of Lancaster, which was accepted by the parliament. Thus the house of Lancaster obtained the throne in the person of this Henry IV of that name ; till the house of York prevailing in the reign of Henry VI, the Lancasteriaa line lost the crown. Upon this resignation, King Richard was removed to Pomfret Castle, where he was soon after mur- dered, Feb. 13, 1400. RICHARD III, formerly duke of Gloucester, was the youngest brother of King Edward IV, and the last king of England of the line of York. This wicked prince, to obtain the crown and secure it when it was in his possession, spared nothing that stood in his way. Having first killed King Henry VI, and Prince Edward his son, he next procured tne death of the Duke of Clarence, his own brother, by an impeachment of high-treason in the reign of Edward IV. Ed- ward' dying, left two sons in their nonage, Ed- ward V, his next successor, and Richard. Be- fore Edward could be crowned, Richard, his uncle, seated himself on the throne by the as- sistance of the Duke of Buckingham. This being done, he had Edward and his brother, then in the Tower, smothered in their beds. There was then at the court of the Duke of Bretagne, in France, Henry, earl of Rich- mond, the next heir to the house of Lancaster, whose advancement to the crown Buckingham, with some others of the conspiracy, resolved upon ; with this sage proviso, that Henry should consent to rnarry the Lady Elizabeth, eldest daughter of King Edward IV, in order to unite the two houses of York and Lancaster ; but be- fore the plot was carried into execution, the duke being betrayed by an old servant of his, lost his head without any form of trial. Henry, in the mean time, was preparing to come over, and landed soon after with 200 men at Milford Haven. At last, with a body of 5000 men, he encountered King Richard at Bosworth, in Lei- cestershire, in 14ts5. The battle was sharp, and some time doubtful ; and at last Henry gained the day, and by this single victory obtained the crown. Richard was killed in the field, and was buried at Leicester. (See Boswrrrtk Field.) King Richard is erroneously represented as a deformed person. He was of small stature, but not otherwise noticeable. Walpole has done much towards removing some of the darker stains upon his character. RICHELIEU, (Armand Jean du Plessis), a cardinal and statesman, was born of a noble family at Paris, in 1585. He studied in the Sorbonne, and in 1607 obtained the bishopric of Lucon. He was also appointed grand-al- moner, and in 1G16 made secretary of state. When Mary de Medici fell into disgrace, Rich- elieu was banished to Avignon, where he wrote his " Method of Controversy." Being soon after recalled to court, he brought about a rec- onciliation between the king and queen, for which he was rewarded with a cardinal's hat, and appointed prime minister, in which situa- tion he displayed extraordinary talents. He subdued the Protestants, reduced Savoy, hum- bled Spain, struck terror into Germany, and commanded the admiration of all Europe. In the midst of this splendor, he died Dec. 4, J 642, and was buried at the Sorbonne, where Girardon constructed a magnificent mausoleum to his memory. RIDLEY (Nicholas), a Protestant martyr, was born in Northumberland. To qualify him- self for divinity, he went to Paris, and studied some time in the Sorbonne. On his return he was chosen proctor of the university, in which capacity he signed the declaration against the papal supremacy. He was also elected public orator, and archbishop Cranmer made him his chaplain. Soon after this he became master of Pembroke Hall, with which he held some con- siderable church preferment at Canterbury and Westminster. On the accession of Edward VI, he was consecrated bishop of Rochester; and, \ CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY ROB 466 ROB m 1550, was translated to London, where he discharged the duties of his office with unwea- ried diligence. He was also employed in all the ecclesiastical measures of that reign, par- ticularly in the compiling of the liturgy, and the framing of the articles of religion. But one of the most distinguished occurrences in the life of this great prelate, was that of inciting King Edward to endow the three great foundations of jChrist's, Bartholomew's, and St. Thomas's hospitals. It was the misfortune, however, of the bishop, to become the dupe of the Duke of Northumberland, who prevailed upon him to concur in the proclamation of Lady Jane Grey. For this he was committed to the Tower, and after a confinement of eight months, sent to Oxford, there to hold a disputation with the tri- umphant party. This mockery was followed by a degradation from the episcopal dignity, and sentence of condemnation to the flames, which he endured with the venerable Latimer before Baliol College, Oct. 15, lf>55. RIZZIO (David), a Piedmontese musician, who ingratiated himself into the favor of Mary Sueen of Scotland. He became her secretary or French despatches, and was the only avenue by which honors or emolument could be ob- tained ; at the same time that he became more and more obnoxious to the whole kingdom, particularly to the nobles. He was barbarously assassinated by Darnley, the husband of Mary, on the suspicion of a criminal intercourse be- tween her and Rizzio. ROBERT II, king of Scotland, and first of the Stuarts, succeeded David Bruce, his uncle, in 1371. At the solicitation of Charles V of France, he invaded England, took Berwick and Perth, and defeated 15,000 English, who invaded Scotland, under General Talbot. A truce being agreed upon betwixt the English and French soon after, in which the Scots were compre- hended, the English invaded the Scots before the publication, wasting the lands of the Doug- being ended, the Scots invaded England ; on which, Richard lasses and Lindsays. The truce being en II invaded Scotland with 60,000 foot and 8000 horse. The Scots, not having force enough to fight him, invaded England again, to divert him. The Scots designed to invade England again, but knowing the king to be of a peaceable in- clination, and his eldest son unfit for war, they made application to Robert, earl of Fife, the second, and levied 30,000 men privately for the expedition. The Scots divided their army into two parts ; the greatest commanded by the king's two sons, marched towards Carlisle. Douglas, with 300 horse and 2000 foot entered Northumberland. The great army carried all before them without opposition ; but Douglas, having wasted the country as far as Durham, came before New- castle, and threatened it with a siege. He staid before the town two days, which were spent in skirmishes; and at last the generals, Douglas and Percy agreed upon a personal rencounter, wherein Percy was dismounted and disarmed ; but his men coming to his rescue, he was saved. Douglas now inarched off with his men, and attacked Otterburn castle. Douglas resolved to stay there and answer Percy's challenge; who, inarching against hirn with 10.UOU men. had nearly surprised him at supper. But the alarm being given, and the Scots ad- vantageously posted, the battle began with great vigor. Douglas broke into the thick of the en- emy, and made a terrible slaughter, but before his men came up, he had received three mortal wounds. The English, at length, were totally routed, 1840 slain, 1000 wounded, and 1040 taken prisoners. The Scots carried off the Mer- cies, with four hundred prisoners of note ; dis- missed the rest; took Douglas's corpse, with those of other great men, along with them, and buried them at Melrose. This victory was ob- tained July 21 .] 388, but Douglas was so deeply lamented, "that both the Scots armies returned home as melancholy as if they had been con- quered. King Robert died April 19, 1390, in the 1 9th year of his reign. ROBERT III, called John Robert, succeeded Robert II in 1390. He was the first who cre- ated dukes in Scotland ; and his brother, the viceroy, was made Duke of Albany ; but Doug- las refused this new title. A war'happened af- terwards with England, in which the Earl of March took part with the English, who invaded the kingdom, and besieged Edinburgh castle ; the English returning without having effected their purpose, the ScotB invaded Northumber- land, and were surprised and defeated on re- turning with their spoil ; when Archibald Doug- las gathered 10,000 men, but was defeated, taken prisoner, and many of the nobles slain, by Henry Percy of Northumberland, and George earl of March abovementioned, May 7, 1401. In the mean time all things went to ruin in Scotland, by the tyranny of the governor, who starved his nephew, the prince, to death; so that the king was obliged to secure James by sending him to France; but landing at Flam- borougn in Yorkshire, he was detained prisoner by the English, contrary to the truce, which so HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ROD 467 ROM afflicted his father, that he died April 1, 1406, and the government was settled upon his broth- er ; during whose administration -the English invaded Scotland, and overran the southern counties. In 1419 auxiliaries were sent to France under the Earl of E^jchan. who defeated -the Duke of Clarence ; foBB^t the Earl of Buchan was made Lord Hi^^Pnstable of France. Robert, the governor of Scotland, died in 1420, and his son Murdo succeeded him: during whose re- gency more auxiliaries were sent to France, and Douglas was created Duke of Touraine in that kingdom ; but they were twice defeated by the English, under John duke of Bedford, who carried James I kin of Scotland with him. be- ing still prisoner sfnce his arrival at Flambo- rough. James being prevailed upon to forbid his subjects to fight against that army where he was in person, they answered, that they did not acknowledge him for their king while he was in the power of his enemy. But not long after, Murdo, the governor, "being displeased witii the insolence of his own sons^James 1 was ransomed and brought home in 1423. ROCKINGHAM, Charles Watson Went- worth, Marquis of, came into power on the dissolution of the Grenville administration, in 1765, and was appointed first Lord of the Trea- sury. He was a nobleman possessing but a mediocrity of understanding, and noway scal- culated to warrant the expectation of his long continuance in office : he was, however, a man of disinterested principles and unaffected patri- otism. The chief business of his administration was to undo all that his predecessors had done, particularly repealing the stump and cider acts. In 1766 he was succeeded in his office by the Duke of Grafton. RODNEY. Caesar, n signer of the American declaration of independence, was born at Dover. Delaware, about 1730. He successively filled the offices of high sheriff, justice of the" peace, and judge of the lo\ver courts, and represented his county in the provincial legislature. In 1775 he was made brigadier-general. In 1777 he remained for two months "in the camp near Princeton, laboriously occupied. For four years he was president of his state, but retired from office in 1782, and died the following year. RODNEY, George, Brydges, admiral, was the gon of captain Henry Rodney a naval officer. He was born in 1717, entered early into the navy, and in 1742 obtained the command of a ship. In 1749 he was appointed Governor of Newfoundland ; and on his return, in 11 rjf married the sister of the Earl of Northampton. In 1759 he was made Admiral of the Blue ; and the same year destroyed the stores, prepared at Havre de Grace, for an invasion of England. In 1761 he served on the West India station with such activity, that at the conclusion of the ,war he was made a baronet. In J768 he was elected into parliament for Northampton ; but the contest ruined his estate. In 1771 he went to Jamaica as commander-in-chtef ;. and at the expiration of the term of service, retired to France, where overtures were made to him on the part of that government, which he refused with indignation. In 1779 he was again called into employment; and the year following, by defeating the Spanish fleet, off Cape St. Vin- cent, he saved Gibraltar. After this he went to the West Indies, where, on the 12th of April, 17c2. he gained a great victory over Count de Grasse ; for which he was made a peer. He- died in London, May 24, 17 1 J2. ROE, Sir Thomas, a statesman, was born about 1 560, at Low Lay ton, in Essex, and ed- ucated at Magdalen college, Oxford ; after which lie became a student of one of the Inns of court. In 1604 he was knighted, and soon after went to make discoveries in America. In 1G14 he was sent on an embassy to the Mogul, at whose court he remained three years. In 1G21 lie went in the same capacity to Constantinople, and during his residence there, collected a num- ber of manuscripts, which he presented to the Bodleian library. In 1629, Sir Thomas negoti- ated a peace between Poland and Sweden: and it was by his advice, that Gustavus Adolphus entered Germany, where he gained the battle of Leipsic. In 1640 he was chosen to repre- sent the university of Oxford in parliament. The next year he was sent ambassador to the diet of Ratisbon, and on his return was made Chancellor of the Garter. He died in 1644. - ROME, a city of Italy, the capital of the Ro- man empire, situate on" the banks of the river Tiber, at the distance of about sixteen miles from the sea. The name of its founder, and the manner of its foundation, are not precisely known. Romulus, however, is universally supposed to have laid the foundations of that celebrated city, on the 2flth of April, according to Varro. in the year 3%1 of the Julian period, 3251 years after the creation of the worW, 753 before the birth of Christ. 431 years after the Trojan war, and in the 4th year of the sixth Olympiad. In its original state. R,ome was but a small castle on the summit of Mount Palatine ; and CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ROM 468 ROM ;he founder, to give his foDowers the appear- ance of a nation or a barbarian horde, was obliged to erect a standard as a common asylum, for every criminal, debtor, or murderer, who fled from their native country to avoid the pun- ishment which attended them. From such an assemblage a numerous body was soon collected, and before the death of the founder, the Ro- mans had covered with their habitations, the \ Palatine, Capitoline, Aventine, Esquiline hills, I with Mount Caelius, and Q,uirinalis. After many successful wars against the neigh- / boring states, the views of Romulus were di- / reeled to regulate a nation naturally fierce, war- like, and uncivilized. Under the successors of Romulus, the power of Rome was increased, and the boundaries of her dominions extended ; while one was employed in regulating the forms of worship, and inculcating in the minds of his subjects a reverence for the Deity, another was engaged in enforcing discipline among the ar- my, and raising the consequence, of the soldiers in the government of the state ; and a third made the object of his administration consist in adobninf his capital, in beautifying its edifices, and in fortifying it with towers and walls. \ During 244 years the Romans were governed by kings, but the tyranny, the oppression, and e violence of the last of these monarchs, and 'his family, became so atrocious, that a revo- [lution was effected in the state, and the demo- cratical government was established. The monarchical government existed under seven princes, who began to reign in the following order : Romulus, B. C. 753 ; and after one year's interregnum. Numa, 715 ; Tullus Hosti- lius, 672 ; Ancus Martins, 64(1 ; Tarquin Pris- cus, 616; Servius Tullius, 578; and Tarquin the Proud, 534, expelled 2S-,years after, B. C. 504 ; and this regal administration has been properly denominated tlie infancy of the Roman empire. After the expulsion of the Tarquins from the throne, the Romans became more sensible of their consequence : with their liberty they ac- quired a spirit of faction, and bepame so jealous of their independence, that the first of their con- suls who had been the most zealous and ani- mated in the assertion of their freedom, was I banished from the city because he bore the Inarne, and was of the family of the tyrants ; and -lother, to stop their suspicions, was obliged to ill down his house, whose stateliness and ;agnificence above the rest, seemed incompati- Ile with the duties and the rank of a private To the fame which their conquests and dailj successes had gained abroad, the Romans were not a little indebted for their gradual rise to superiority ; and to this may be added the poli- cy of the census, which fivery fifth year told them their actual strength, and how many citi- zens were able to bear ariiis^fcAjid, indeed, it was no small satisfaction t|^INFP't'> who were continually making war, ^P^^hat in spite of all the losses which they might sustain in the field, the increase of the inhabitants of the city was prodigious, and almost incredible : and had Romulus Jived after the battle of Actium, he would have been persuaded with diiliculty of the great number of inhabitants contained with- in those walls, which, in the most flourishing period of his reign, could scarce muster an ar- my of 3000 infantry and 300 horse. But when Rome had flourished under the consular government for about 120 years, and had beheld with pleasure the conquests of her citizens over the neighboring states and cities, which, according to a Roman historian, she was ashamed to recollect in the summit of her pow- er, an irruption of the barbariims of Gaul ren- dered her very existence prj/canous, and her name was nearly extinguished. The valor of an injured individual, Camillus, saved it from destruction, yet not before- its buildings and temples were reduced ta ashes. This celebrated event, which gave the appel- lation of another founder of Rome to Camillus. has been looked upon as a glorious era to the Romans. But no sooner were they freed from the fears of their barbarian invaders, than they turned their arms against those states which re- fused to acknowledge their superiority, or yield their independence. Their wars with Pyrrhus and the Tarentines, displayed their character in a different view ; if they "before had fought for freedom and independence, they now drew their swords for glory ; and here we may see them conquered in the field, and yet refusing to grant that peace for which their conqueror himself had sued. The advantages they gained from their battles with Pyrrhus were many. The Roman name became known in Greece, Sicily, and Africa, and in losing or gaining a victory, the Unmans were en:i!iletl to examine the ma- noeuvres, observe the discipline, and contem- plate the order and the encampments of those soldiers whose friends and ancestors had accom- panied Alexander the Great in the conquest of Asia. Italy became subjected to the Romans at the end of the war with the Tarentines, and that HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL ROM 4( period of time has been called the second age, or tha adolescence of the Roman empire. Af- ter this memorable era, they tried their strength not only with distant nations, but also upon a new element ; and in the long wars which they waged against Carthage, they were successful, and obtained the sovereignty of the sea : and though Hannibal for sixteen years kept them in continual alarms, hovered round their gates, and destroyed their armies almost before their walls, yet they were doomed to conquer, and soon to add the kingdom of Macedonia and the provinces of Asia to their empire. Yet while their conquests were so extensive abroad, we find them torn by factions at home ; and so far was the resentment of the poorer cit- izens carried, that we see the enemv at the gates of the city, while all are unwilling to take up arms and to unite in the defence of their com- mon liberty. The senators and nebles were ambitious of power, and endeavored to retain in their hands that influence which had been ex- ercised with so much success, and such cruelty, by their monarchs. This was the continual occasion of tumults and sedition. The people were jealous of their liberty. The oppression of the nobles irritated them, and the stripes to which they were too often exposed without mercy, were often productive of revolutions. The plebeians, though originally the poorest and most contemptible citizens of an indigent nation, whose food in the first ages of the em- pire was only bread and salt, and whose drink was water, soon gained rights and privileges by their opposition. Though really slaves, they became powerful in the state ; one concession from the patricians produced another, and when their independence was boldly asserted by their tribunes, they were admitted to share in the highest offices of the state, the law* which for- bade the intermarriage of plebeian and patrician families were repealed, and the meanest peasant could by valor and fortitude be raised to the dig- nity of dictator and consul. It was not till these privileges were obtained by the people from the senate, that Rome began to enjoy internal peace and tranquillity, her battles were then fought with more vigor, her soldiers were more anima- ted, and her sovereignty was more universally established. But supreme power, lodged in the hands of a factious and ambitious citizen, becomes too often dangerous. The greatest oppression and tyran- ny took the place of subordination and obedi- ence ; and from those causes proceeded the un- parralleled slaughter and effusion of blood under \) ROM a Sylla and a Marius. It has been justly ob- served, that the first Romans conquered their enemies by valor, temperance, and fort'*. -de, their moderation also and their justice were well known among their neighbors, and not only private possessions, but even mighty kingdoms and empires, were left in their power, to be dis- tributed among a family, or to be ensured in the hands of a successor. They were also chosen utopires to decide quarrels, but in this honorable^ffice they con- sulted their own interest ; they, artfully sup- ported the weaker side, that the more powerful might be reduced-juid gradually become their m. Under J. Csesar anl^Pompey, the raafe of civil war was carried to unprecedented excess : it was not merely taavenge a private injury, but it was a contest for the sovereignty ; and though each of the adversaries wore the mask of pre- tended sincerity, and professed himself to be the supporter of the republic, no less than the abo- lition of freedom and the public liberty was the aim. What Julius began, his adopted son achieved: the ancient spirit of national inde- pendence was extinguished at Rome ; and after ., ' the battle of Actium, the Romans seemed una- ble to govern themselves without the assist- ance of a chief, who, under the title of zmpera- tor, an appellation given to every commander by his army after some signal victory, reigned with as much power and as much sovereignty as another Tarquin. Under their emperors, the Romans lived a luxurious and indolent life, they had long forgot to appear in the field, and their wars were left to be waged by mercenary troops, who fought without spirit or animosity, and who were ever ready to yield to him who bought their allegi- ance sud fidelity with the greatest sums of money. Their leaders themselves were not the most prudent or the most humane ; the power which they had acquired by bribery was indeed precarious, and among a people, where not only the highest offices of the state, but even the imperial purple itself are exposed to sale, there cannot be expected much happiness*or tranquil- lity in the palace of the emperor. The reigns of the successors of Augustus were distinguished by variety ; one was the most abandoned and profligate of men. whom his own vices and extravagance hurried out of the world, while his successor, perhaps the most clement, just, and popular of princes, was sacrificed in the midst of his guards and attend ants, by the dagger of some ofiended favorite or CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ROM 470 ROM disappointed eunuch. Few indeed were the emperors of Rome whose days were not short- ened by poison, or the sword of an assassin. If one for some time h:id the imprudence to trust himself in the midst of a multitude, at last, to perish by hid own credulity, the other consult- ed his safety, but with no better success, in the innumerable chambers of his palace, and changed every day, to elude discover}', the place of his retirement After they had been governed by a race of princes, remarkable for the variety of their characters, the Roman possessions were divided into two distinct empires, by the enter- jrising Constantine, A. D. 328. Constantino- jbecame the' seat of the eastern empire, and remained in the possession of the west- emperors, and continued to be the capital their dominions. In the year 800 of the Christian era, Rome with Italy was delivered by Charlemagne, the then emperor of the west, into the hands of the pope, who still continues to hold the sovereign- ty, and to maintain his independence under the ame of the Ecclesiastical States. The original poverty of the Romans has often been disguised by their poets and historians, who wished it to appeal that a nation who were masters of the world, had had a better begin- ning than a race of shepherds and robbers. Yet it was to this simplicity they were indebted for their successes. Their houses were originally destitute of every ornament, they were" made with unequal boards, and covered with mud, and these served them rather as a shelter against the inclemency of the seasons than for relaxa- tion and ease. Till the age of Pyrrhus, they despised riches, and many salutary laws were enacted to restrain luxury and to punish indo- lence. They observed great temperance in their meals ; young men were not permitted to drink wine till they had attained their 30th year, and it was totally forbidden to women. Their national spirit was supported by pol- icy ; the triumphal procession of a conqueror along the streets amidst the applause of thou- sands, was well calculated to promote emuli- tion ; and the number of gladiators who wen: regularly introduced, notonlv in public games and spectacles, but also at "private meetings, served to cherish their fondness for war, whilst it steeled their hearts against the calls of com- passion ; and when they could trze with plea- sure upon wretches whom they forcibly obliged to murder one another, they were not inactive in the destruction of those whom they consid- ered as inveterate foes or formidable rivals in the field. In tlifir punishments, civil as well as milita- ry, the Romans were strict and rigorous ; a de- serter was severely whipped and sold as a slave, and the degradation from the rank of a soldier and dignity of a citizen was the most ignomin- ious stigma which could be affixed upon a se- ditious mutineer. The transmarine victories of the Romans proved at last the ruin of their innocence and bravery. They grew fond of the luxury of the Asiatics : and conquered, by the vices and indo- lence of those nations whom they had subdued, they became as effeminate and as dissolute as their captives. Marcellus was the first who in- troduced a taste for the fine arts among his countrymen. The spoils and treasures that were obtained in the plunder of Syracuse and Corinth, rendered the Romans partial to ele pant refinement and ornamental equipage. Though Cato had despised philosophy, and de- clared that war was the only profession of his countrymen, the Romans, by their intercourse with the Greeks, soon became fond of litera- ture ; and though they had once banished the sophists of Athens from their city, yet they be- held with rapture their settlement among them in the principal towns of Italy, after the con- quest of Achaia. They soon after began to imitate their pol- ished captives, and to cultivate poetry with suc- cess. From the valor of their heroes and con- querors, indeed, the sublirnest subjects were offered to the genius of their poets; but of the little that remains to celebrate the early victo- ries of Home, nothing can be compared to the nobler effusions of the Augustan age. There were no less than 420 temples at Rome, crowded with statues, the priests were nume- rous, and each divinity hid a particular college of sacerdotal servants. Thtir wars were de- clared in the most awful and solemn manner, and prayers were always offered in the temples for the prosperity of Rome, when a defeat had been sustained, or a victory won. The power of fathers over their children .was very exten- sive, and indeed unlimited ; they could sell them or put thorn to death at pleasure, without the forms of a trial, or the interference of tho civil magistrate. Many of their ancient fami- lies were" celebrated for the great men whom they had produced, but thc^vigorous and inter- ested part they took in the government of the republic exposed them oi'ten to danger; and some have observed that the Romans sunk into indolence and luxury when the Cornelii, the Fabii, the /Emilii, the Marcelli, Are., who had BO often supported their spirit and led them to HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ROM 471 ROM victory, had been extinguished in the bloody wars of Marius and of the two triumvirates. When Rome was become powerful, she was distinguished from other cities by the flattery of her neighbors and citizens ; a form of wor- ship was established to her as a deity, and tem- ples were raised in her honor, not only in the city but in the provinces. EMPERORS, from Julius Csesar to Jovian, dis- tinguishing the length of their reign and its commencement. It was at first nearly square, containing about 1000 houses, and was almost a mile in circum- ference; but in its most flourishing state the walls surrounded a space of 50 mfles, and it reckoned 4,000,000 of inhabitants. The gates, at the death of Romulus, were four; but at length it had no less than 37, the principal of which were Triumphalis, Esquilina, Flaminia, Carmentalis, Quirinalis and Viminalis. Romulus divided the city into three tribes; to these Servius Tullus added a fourth ; but Augustus found it necessary, for ^he better Augustus 383 ' 43 30 order and government of the city, to divide it A.D. into 14 regions or wards. Tiberius 22 14 Rome abounded with magnificent buildings ; ChiifdiiTs 14 40 Temples, Theatres, Amphitheatres, and places Nero..!" "."!.' .'.'.'.'.' 14 54 f r exercise or amusements, buildings, for the Galba, Otho and Vitellius U C9 assemblies of the people, public places, piazzas Vespasian Ift 69 or porticoes, columns, triumphal arches and Domlt'ian 15 8J trophies, aqueducts, public sewers and high- Nerva ..'.'.'.. ,'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'.'. 1 96 roads. The chief temples were the Capitol, the Trajan '.'.'. '"*.'.!"'.'.'.'.'."'' "'!'. 19 97 Pantheon, the temple of Janus, and that of ^USS-i*?!::: ::: - 161 The^Pantheori was built by Agrippa, son-in- Commodas" .'.'.' !. ''.'*'"'''.'.'"'.'.''!!""'!'' 13 ISO law to Augustus, and dcdiated to all the gods : Pertinax 1 193 it is of a circular form, and has no windows; Severus . 17 ^194 but its roof, which is in the shape of a dome, Hel?ogabai us ".'.'..'...'.'.'.'.'..'..'..'...'.'..'..'.'.'.' 4 2)8 nas an opening on the top for the admission of Alexander 13 222 h'ght. The top was covered with silver plates, Maximinus 3 235 but their place is now supplied with lead ; the Gordiaii,jun 6 238 wa lls in the inside were either solid marble, or Decins ".'!!"!' ""!'''"."!!""!'."'' b 249 incrusted; the front on the outside was covered Gallus 3 251 with brazen plates gilt; and the gate was of Gaiiienus 14 254 brass, of extraordinary work and size. It is Au'ren'u! 5 270 now ca " ed tne Rotunda, and is a Christian Tacitus...*. .".'..'..'..'.'..'.'.'.'.'. 1 275 church, consecrated to the Virgin Mary and All Probus \.\.................\\..... ....... C 276 (Saints: the ascent to it was by 12 steps; but Numenan 2 282 t he descent is now by as many, the earth c^L'a-^v-:::::;;r.-:::::::: 2 3 = 304 <7 d being ^ muc h ed b y the demolition Constantine the Great 30 307 of houses. Ihe temple of baturn served for Constantius 11 24 337 the public treasury, as being the most secure Julian 2 36 1 place in the city : here were preserved the mi- ovuin ' litary ensigns, among which were the public Valentinian succeeded in 364. when the em- records and registers, the great ivory tables, con- pire was divided into the eastern and western taining a list of all the tribes, and the schemes branches, of which the latter terminated in 476, of the public accounts. The temple of Janus and the former in 1453, when Constantinople was remarkable for its two brazen gates, one was taken by the Turks. on each side ; which were to be open in time of The following description of the city of Rome war, and shut in time of peace. There were will prove interesting and useful. numerous temples dedicated to Apollo, Juno, Rome was built on the banks of the river Mars, and other gods : there were also build- Tiber, on seven hills called Palatinus, Capito- ings called curiae, where the inhabitants of each linus, Aventinus, Quirinalis, Coslius, Viminalis, curia or parish met to perform divine service, and Esquilinus : as the city increased in size, The theatres were of a semi-circular form ; three others were added ; the Janiculum, Vatica- sometimes so large as to contain 80,000 persons : nus and Hortulorum. the seats rose one above another; and were 40* CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ROM 472 ROM divided into three ranges, appropriated to the senators, knights, and commons. Amphithea- tres were buildings of a round or oval shape, appropriated to the greater shows of gladiators, wild beast*. &c. A circus was a place used for the celebration of chariot races and other popular sports, and for making harangues ; they were usually ob- long, with ranges of seats for the convenience of the spectator's. The most remarkable was the Circus Maximus : it was a mile in circum- ference ; containing seats for 150,000 spectators, and was extremely beautiful. 'fhe NaumaehiiE were pkces for exhibiting i naval engagements, built nearly in the form of \a circus: some of them were of such amazing jextent, that considerable fleets engaged in them without inconvenience. The principal public place in Rome was the Forum Romanum ; the / Campus Martius, or field of Mars, was without / the city. The Forum was a large oblong open j space, where the tissemblies of the people were / held, where justice was administered, and pub- lie business transa^ed : it was entirely sur- rounded witli archea porticoes, within which were spacious halls called basilicse, where courts of justice might sit for the decision of private affairs. The "Campus Martius was a large plain along the Tiber, where the Roman youth prac- tised all kinds of feats of activity, and learned the use of arms : it was adorned with the s'a- tues of famous men, and with triumph;*! arches, columns, porticoes, and other magnificent, struc- tures. The piazzas, or porticoes, were amng the most splendid ornaments of the city, being supported on marble pillars, and adorned with statues. They were used chiefly for walking and riding under cover : under these also au- thors recited their works, and philosophers dis- puted. Many pillars were erected at Rome in honor of great men, or to commemorate illus- trious actions ; the most remarkable are those of Trajan and Antoninus Pius. Trajan's pillar, which is still standing in the middle of a forum, is composed of '1-1 pieces of marble, so curiously cemented as to appear but one: its height is 1'2^ feet; and it has in the inside 185 steps for ascending to the top, and 40 windows for the admission of light : its diameter at the bottom is 1'2 feet, and at the top ten feet. On the pillar are represented the warlike exploits of Trajan and his army ; on the top was a colossal statue of that emperor, 20 feet high, holding in his left hand a sceptre, and in his right hand a hollow globe of gold containing his ashes; but this has \ been taken down, and a statue of St. Peter erected in its place. The pillar of Antoninus is another of the most precious remains of an- tiquity : the sculpture and other ornaments resemble those on Trajan's pillar, but the work- manship is greatly inferior; it is 170 feet high, the steps of ascent are I'M, and the windows 5(i. Triumphal arches were erected in honor of il- lustrious generals, who had gained signal victo- ries in war: several of them are still standing. At first they were built of brick or stone, but afterwards magnificently of marble ; they had a large arched gate in the middle, and two small ones on each side, ornamented with co- lumns and statues, and various figures done in sculpture. The aqueducts were, by far, the noblest proofs of the granduer of the empire : some of these wonderful channels brought water from upwards of (>() miles through rocks and mountains, and over valleys: supported on arches in some places above 109 feet high, one row being placed above another. The common sewers were subterranean channels, constructed with amazing strength, to carry the filth of the city into the Tiber. Agrippa caused seven streams to meet together under ground in one channel, with such a rapid current as to carrv all before it: sometimes when these stream's were swelled with immoderate rains, they car- ried away huge pieces of stone and timbe'r. yet the fabric received no detriment; sometimes terrible earthquakes shook the foundations of the city, but these channels remained impregnable. The public ways were among the greatest of the Roman works, and were made with amazing labor and expense. The Via Appia was per- haps the most noble ; it was carried to a distance of 350 miles, and was made of stones from one to five feet square, but so artfully joined as to seem one ; under which there were two layers, the first of rough stones cemented with mortar, and the second of gravel. Although this road has been constructed upwards of 2,000 years, parts of it still remain entire. Romuius. soon after tlu- foundation of Rome, divided the inhabitants into three tribes, and each tribe into ten curins ; but the number of tribes was by degrees increased to :'>">. The Roman people were also divided into two ranks, called patricians and plebeians ; to which another order was afterwards added, called equit.es. The patricians were so called from the patres, or fa- thf>rs. who composed the senate ; they were like- wise called patrones, or pntrons. The plebeians were so called from plebs, the common people ; they were also termed client.es, or clients. The patricians were called patrones, and the pie- \ HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ROM 473 ROM oeians clientes because the patricians were ap- pointed to watch over and protect the plebeians, and were their counsellors and advocates ; while the plebeians, who were obliged to choose pat- rons, were expected to serve them with fidelity, to pay them all possible deference, and even to assist with money, if requisite. The equites, or knights did not at first form a distinct order in the state : they were chosen into the equestrian order by the censor, and presented with a horse at the public expense, and with a gold ring : they were taken promis- cuously from among such of the patricians and plebeians as had attained their eighteenth year, and whose fortune amounted to 3 ,291. Among the Romans there were nobiles, novi, and igno- biles; also ingenui, liberti, and libertini. The nobiles were those whose ancestors had held the office of consul, prtBtor, censor, or curule sedile: they had a right to make images of themselves, which were kept with care by their descendants, and were carried out at funerals. Those who were the first of their family, who had raised themselves to any of the above offices, were denominated homines novi, new men, or up- starts. The Romans called those ignobiles who had no images of their own. or of their ancestors. They whose parents had always been free, were called ingenui ; slaves who had been made free, were called liberti and libertini. The Romans had slaves, who not only did all domestic servi- ces, but were likewise employed in various trades and manufactures. Men became slaves by being taken in war, by being born in a state of servitude, or criminals were reduced to slavery by way of punishment. The Roman slaves were publicly sold in a market-place, and were at the absolute disposal of the buyer, not being esteemed as persons, but as things or effects. Among the Romans, those who en- deavored to ingratiate themselves with the peo- ple were called populares; while those who favored the interests of the senate, and the passions of the great, received the appellation of the optimates. but this was a distinction of party, and not of rank or dignity. The senate was the chief council of state in Rome, or a body of magistrates intrusted with the care of putting the laws into execution, and was instituted by Romulus, to be the perpetual council of his newly-formed state. At its crea- tion, it consisted of 100 persons, whom Romu- lus chose from among such of the inhabitants as were most illustrious for their birth, wisdom, and integrity. The senators were called patres, or fathers, on account of their age, gravity, and the pater- nal care they had of the state. Under the suc- cessors of Romulus, and in the time of the re- public, the number of senators was. by degrees, increased to upwards of 1,000; but Augustus reduced them to BOO. The kings had, at first, ; the sole right of naming senators; but they' were afterwards chosen by the consuls, and at last by the censors only. At first only patricians were admitted to a seat in the senate ; but afterwards the plebeians and equites were admitted. Those who were ' appointed senators, were to be possessed of an estate of not less than 9,1 7~>l. sterling, and to be upwards of 30 years of age. They were nomi- nated and- enrolled by the censors ; besides which, several great offices qualified those who filled them, for a place in the senate ; and mili- tary services sometimes procured admission. Beside a want of sufficient revenue, no one could sit in the senate who had exercised a, low trade, or whose father had been a slave. The senators were distinguished by an oblong stripe of purple, sewed on the forepart of their' senato- rial gown ; and black buskins reaching to the middle of die leg. with the letter C in silver on the top of the foot. The chief privilege of the senators was their having a particular place at the public spectacles, called orchestra ; it was next the stage in the theatre, and next the arena, or open space, in the amphitheatre. The senate was assembled at first by the kings, and after their expulsion by the consuls and praetors; it could also be summoned by the tribunes of the people, even against the will of the consuls. The kings were said at one time to act accord- ing to the counsel of the senate : afterwards Tarquin banished or put to death the senators, as he chose, and again, after the regal govern- ment was abolished, the power of the senate was raised to its highest pitch. The senate could be held only in a temple, that is, a- place consecrated by the augurs : it was assembled commonly within the city ; but it met without the walls for the reception of foreign ambassadors, and of their own generals, who were never permitted to come within the walls while in actual command. The senate assembled usually three times a month, but was often called together on other days for the des- patch of business; and in it nothing could be; done before the rising nor after the setting of/ the sun. Before the business of the senate commenced, the consul, or magistrate who presided, offered a sacrifice; and on entering the senate-house the CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ROM 474 ROM members rose to do him honor; he then propos- person might act as a priest and a judge, regu- ed the business to them. The senate was con- late the police of the city, direct the affairs of suited on every thing pertaining to the admin- the empire, and command an army. The ma- istration of the state, except the creation of gistrates of Rome were elective ; and, previous . magistrates, the passing of laws, and the deter- to their election, they were called candidati, mination of war or peace ; ail which properly from a white shining robe which they wore belonged to the Roman people. while soliciting the votes of the people. The The magistrate presiding asked the opinion candidate for an office was obliged to be present \ of every member individually, beginning with in person, and to be approved by the magis- l ; the oldest senator, or with the consuls elect; trates : he declared his intention generally a ; and all that pleased stood up and gave their year before the election ; and the interval was : judgment upon the point : but when they only spent in securing his friends, and gaining the assented to ftie opinion of another, they continu- favor of the people by every popular art. ed sitting. They who addressed the senate had The Roman magistrates were variously divid- the privilege of speaking as long as they pleased, ed : the most proper and commodious division and of introducing in their speech many things is into ordinary, extraordinary and provincial. foreign to the subject; so that when any mem- The magistrates in Rome, called ordinary, were her wished to hinder the passing of a decree, he those who were created at stated times, and protracted his speech till after sunset. As it were constantly in the republic. The chief r was not lawful for the consul to interrupt an ordinary magistrates were the consuls, praetors, orator, those who abused this right were some- censors, tribunes, sediles, and queestors. The times forced to desist from speaking by the extraordinary magistrates were such as were noise and clamor of the other senators. not constantly and statedly elected in the re- When as many as wished to address the sen- public, but arose out of some public disorder \ ate had concluded, the presiding magistrate or emergency. The extraordinary magistrates made a short report of their several opinions, were the dictator and master of horse, the de- ; and then ordered the senate to divide one party cemviri, military tribunes, and interrex. The to one side of the house, and the opposite to the magistrates of Rome were termed provinciales other ; the number being told, a majority decided when they were appointed to the government the debate. After the division of the senate, a of a province or distant part of the empire. In decree w?is made out according to the opinion the beginning of the Roman republic, the ma- of the majority, and the names of those who had gistrates were chosen only from the patricians ; been most anxious for the decree were usually but afterwards, indiscriminately, from the other prefixed to it; it was then taken to the tribunes orders. All magistrates were obliged, within of the people, for their approbation or rejection, five days after entering on their office, to swear When the opinions of the senators were ask- that they would observe the laws ; and after the ed, as related above, the decree was termed expiration of their office, they might be brought senatus consultum ; but when in cases of little to trial, if they had done any thing amiss. concern, or such as required expedition, a de- We must now only notice the Roman games, cree was made without any opinions being The Roman games, as constituting part of asked, it was called senatus consultum per dis- religious worship, were always consecrated to cessionem. A decree could be prevented from some god, and were either stated, or vowed by I passing the senate by the interposition of the generals in war, or celebrated on extraordinary tribunes of the commons ; it might be done also occasions : the most celebrated games were those \ by a magistrate of equal authority with him of the circus. The shows exhibited in the cir- who proposed the business, or when the num- cus maximus were chariot and horse races ; ber of senators required by law was not present, contests of agility and strength ; a mock fight The proceedings of the senate were private on horseback ; the combat of wild beasts ; the till Julius Ccesar appointed that they should be representation of a horse and foot battle ; and published. When affairs of secrecy were dis- the sham sea-fight. cussed, the clerks and other attendants were The charioteers were distributed into Tour not admitted ; but what passed was written by parties or factions distinguished by their diffe- j some of the senators. rent colored dress. The spectators favored one A magistrate in the Roman republic was a or the other color, as humor or caprice inclined , person invested with public authority, either them. In the time of Justinian, 30,000 men religious, civil, or military; so that the same lost their lives at Constantinople in a tumult ISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ROM raised by contention among the partisans of these several colors. These were running, leaping, boxing, wrestling, and throwing the quoit : boxers covered their hands with u kind of gloves, which had lead or iron sewed into them, to make the stroke fall with a greater weight. The combats between wild beasts were various : sometimes a tiger being matched with a lion, sometimes a lion with a bull, a bull with an elephant, a rhinoceros with a bear, &c. : men also fought with wild beasts, being either forced to it by punishment, as the primitive Christians often were ; or they fought voluntarily, or for hire. There were iiaumachiae or naval combats which were instituted for the purpose of ac- quiring naval discipline : in later times, how- ever. those who fought were composed of cap- tives or condemned malefactors, who fought to death, unless saved by the clemency of the em- peror. The gladiators were men who fought with weapons in a public circus, for the entertain- ment of the public. These shows seem to have taken their rise from the custom of slaughter- ing captives at the tombs of those slain in battle, which was supposed to appease their manes, but from which humanity recoils with horror. Gladiators were at first composed of captives, slaves, and of condemned malefactors, who were regularly trained for the combat ; yet in the more degenerate period of the empire, free- born citizens, and even senators engaged in this dangerous and disgraceful employment. The gladiators were named after the arms thev used : the most remarkable were the retiarii and the secutores. The rPtiarius wore a short tunic, with his head bare : he held in his left-hand a trident, or three-pointed spear ; and in his right, a net. with which he endeavored to entangle his adversary, that with his trident he might despatch him. The secutor, or follower, was armed with a helmet, a shield, and a sword, and was matched with the retiarius : if the latter missed his aim in throwing the net, he attempt- ed by flight to gain time for a second cast ; while the secutor pursued to prevent his design by despatching him. "The Romans were unacquainted with drama- tic entertainments, or stage-plays, for some cen- turies after the building of the city : they were first introduced at Rome on account of a pesti- lence, to appease the divine wrath : they were divided, as with us, into tragedy, comedy, and pantomime. The Roman tragedy and comedy were wholly borrowed from the Greeks, and nearly resembled ours : their chief difference ^#MW-^^ consisted in the chorus; this was usually company of actors, which remained on the stage singing and conversing on the subject in the intervals of the acts. The modern city of Rome contain inhabitants. *" 1' liTa mi" "'"^ ROMILLY, Sir Samuel, ari eminent lawyer was born March 1, 1757. In 1783 he was called to the bar. At length he rose to distinction in the Court of Chancery ; and. in the last admin- istration of Mr. Fox, was made solicitor-general. When the party to whom he was attached went out of office, he also retired. He exerted him- self in endeavoring to effect a revision of the criminal code, with a view to the limitation of capital punishments to a few heinous offences; on which subject he published an able pam- phlet ; as he also did another against the erec- tion of the office of vice-chancellor The death of this eminent man was most melancholy. Shocked at the loss of his lady, who died in the" Isle of Wight, he became delirious, and de- stroyed himself, November 2, 1818. ROMULUS, founder of Rome, was born at the same birth with Remus ; but of what pa- rents it is' impossible to say, as the account of their origin is involved in much fable and mys- tery. They undertook to build a city, hoping that it would become a warlike and powerful nation. Romulus marked with a furrow the place where he wished to erect the walls ; but their slenderness was ridiculed by Remus, who leaped over them with the greatest contempt. This irritated Romulus, and Remus was imme- diately put to death, either by the hand of his brother or one of the workmen. When the walls were built, the city was with- out inhabitants; but Romulus, by making an asylum of a sacred grove, soon collected a num- ber of fugitives, foreigners, and criminals, whom he received as his lawful subjects. Yet however numerous these might be, they were despised by the neighboring inhabitants, and none were will- ing to Form ma'triinonial connexions with them. But Romulus obtained by force what was de- nied to his petitions. The Romans celebrated games in honor of the god Consus, and forcibly carried away all the females who had assembled there to be spectators of these unusual exhibi tions. These violent measures offended the neighboring nations ; they made war against the ravishers with various success, till at last they entered Rome, which had been betrayed to them by one of the stolen virgins. A violent engage- ment was begun in the middle of the Roman forum : but the Sabines were conquered, or, ac CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ROO 476 ROS cording to Ovid, the two enemies laid down their arms when the women had rushed between the two armies, and by their tears and entreaties raised compassion in the bosoms of their parents and husbands. The Sabines left their original possessions and came to live in Rome, where Tatius, their king, shared the sovereign power with Romulus. The introduction of the Sabines into the city of Rome was attended with the most salutary con- sequences ; and the Romans, hy pursuing this plan, and admitting the conquered nations among their citizens, rendered themselves more powerful and more formidable. Afterwards Romulus divided the lands which he had ob- tained by conquest ; one part was reserved for religious uses, to maintain the priests, to erect temples, and to consecrate altars ; the other was appropriated for the expenses of the state ; and the third part was equally distributed among his subjects, who were divided into three classes or tribes. The most aged and experienced, to the num- ber of 100, were also chosen, whom the mon- arch might consult in matters of the highest im- portance, and from their age they w*re called senators, and from their authority patres. The whole body of the people were also distinguish- ed by the name of patricians and plebeians, pa- tron and- client, who by mutual interest were induced to preserve the peace of the state, and to promote the public good. Some time after, Romulus disappeared, as he was giving instructions to the senators ; and the eclipse of the sun, which happened at that time, was favorable to the rumor which asserted that the king had been taken up to heaven, 714 B. C. after a reiim of 39 years. RONCESVALLES, a valley in Navarre, where the army of Charlemagne, on their return from an expedition to that country, were at- tacked in the narrow passes of the mountains, and all that were separated from the main body were killed, among whom were several chiefs of note. ROOKE, Sir George, a gallant English ad- miral, was born in Kent in 1(>50. He entered early into the naval service, and had the com- mand of several expeditions in the reigns of King William and Queen Anne ; all of which he conducted with equal skill and courage. In 1702 he attacked the French fleet in theharbor of Vigo, and took several galleons and men-of- war, besides destroying a number of others. In 1704 he made himself master of Gibraltar ; not- withstanding which, such w&s the violence of party, Sir George was soon afterwards super seded by the Whigs, who endeavored to lessen his services by representing them as the effects of mere chance and good fortune. He died Jan- uary 24, 1709. When he made his will, some of his friends wondered at the slenderness of his circumstances, considering what employments he had been engaged in ; to whom the dying hero said, " I do not leave much, 'tis true ; but what I do leave was honestly gotten ; it never cost a seaman a tear, nor the nation a farthinov' ROSCOE, William, was born in 1732, oi humble parents, and, having received a com- mon education, was articled, at an early age, to an attorney at Liverpool. He soon mastered, by dint of hard study, the Latin, French, and Italian languages, while he, at the same time, neither neglected his business nor the study of the English Classics. His first poetical work. Mount Pleasant, was written at the age of six- teen. As a banker, Mr. Roscoe was unsuc- cessful. His most important and celebrated works are the Life of Lorenzo de' Medici, and the Life of Leo X. He died in 1831 ; arid his memory is affectionately cherished by the in- habitants of Liverpool, whose taste he endeavor- ed to improve, and whose public works he ably and strenuously supported. ROSE, George, a statesman, was the son of an episcopal clergyman at Drechin, in the shire of Angus, and was born there, in 1744. He was brought up under an uncle, who kept a school near London, after which he went into the navy, and became a purser ; but, by the in- terest of the Earl of Marchmont, he was taken from thence, and made keeper of the records in the Exchequer. Here his talents for business were soon discovered, and he was appointed to superintend the publication of the Domesday Book; after which he was employed to com- plete the journals of the Lords, in thirty-one volumes, i'olio. From this period his advance- ment was rapid, and his services were duly ap- preciated and engaged, by almost every admin- istration. Mr. Pitt, in particular, placed un- bounded confidence in his judgment on subjects of trade and finance; and, when Pitt returned to power, after the short pcucc, Mr. Rose was made president of the board of trade, and trea- surer of the navy. On the death of Mr. Pitt, another change "occurred ; but, when the ad- ministration formed by Lord Grenville retired, Mr. Rose resumed his former station, and con- tinued in it till his death, which happened at Cuil'iicls, his seat in Hampshire. Jan. 13, 1818. ROSS, George, a signer of the Declaration HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. RUS 477 RUS of Independence, born in 1730. at Newcastle, Delaware, was the son of a clergyman. At the age of eighteen, having been admitted to prac- tise law, he settled at Lancaster, Pennsylvania. He was for some years a member of Congress, and discharged the duties of his office to the entire satisfaction of his numerous constituents. In July. 1779, an attack of the gout put an end to his life in his fiftieth year. ROUEN, anciently Kothomagus, a city of France, formerly capital of the province of Nor- mandy, situated on the right bank of the river Seine, 86 N. VV. of Paris. Population 88,000. It was besieged by Henry V. of England in 1418, and taken after a siege of five months, but again fell into the hands of the French in 144vt. RUPERT Prince, the third son of Frederic, king of Bohemia, by Elizabeth, daughter of James I. He was born in 1C1U, and received an education adapted to the military service. In the civil wars of England, while his elder brother became a pensioner to the parliament, prince Rupert adhered steadfastly to his royal uncle, and defeated the rebels in several en- gagements ; for which the king honored him with the garter, and made him a peer. The prince, however, was more successful as a naval commander than on the land, particularly after the restoration, in the great Dutch war, on the conclusion of which he led a retired life, occupied wholly in scientific pursuits. He died in London in 1082, and was buried in West- minster Abbey. RUSSELL, William, first duke of Bedford, was the eldest son of Francis, the fourth earl of Bedford, and was born in 1614. He received his education at Magdalen-college, Oxford, and at the coronation of Charles I, was created knight of the oath. In the beginning of the civil war, he acted against the king, and commanded the reserve of horse in the battle of Edgehill ; but in 1645, he joined the royal standard, and fought with great bravery at the battle of Newbury. His estate, in consequence, was put under se- questration, but on his submission to the parlia- ment it was restored. He then led a private life till the return of Charles II, when he assisted at the coronation, and was made a knight of the garter. He also attended the coronation of William and Mary, and in 1G'>4. was created Duke of Bedford. " He died in 1700. RUSSELL, William, lord, third son of the preceding, was born about 1641 He received a private education under puritanical teachers. His early life, however, appears to have been rather dissipated, till he married, in 1667. the excellent daughter of Lord Southampton. On becoming a member of the House of Commons, he distinguished himself by his zeal for the ex- clusion of the Duke of York : and at length be- came so far involved in a conspiracy for effecting a revolution, that, when the Rye-house plot was discovered, an indictment was preferred against him, and he was condemned at the Old Bailey. Great exertions were made to save his life, but all without effect, and he was beheaded in Lin- coln 's-Inn-fields, July 18, 1(583. After the revo- lution an act was passed, to annul and make void the proceedings against Lord Russell. His widow, lady Rachel, died Sept. 29, 1723, at the age of 87. RUSSIA. This great empire contains half of Europe, stretches across the north of Asia, and includes vast possessions in North America, thus almost girding the entire globe. It has an area of about 8.000,000 square miles, with about G5.000,000 inhabitants. The revenue, before the last Polish rebellion, was $55.000,000, and the public debt, in 1824, $170,000,000. The subject of education has received the attention of goveuMwent. but not many years ago, even the Ri^^lt nobles were shamefully ignorant. The cWion of the peasants is deplorable: they are the property of the crown or of indi- viduals, and are transferred with estates, being considered in the light of irrational live stock. A traveller gives the following account of a curious scene which he witnessed in Russia : I had been some years in St. Petersburg before my mind had become familiarized with the bru- tal abasement of the serfs in the surrounding country. It is strange for one used to a free country, to observe the feudal system, in its strictest sense, still holding its ground in a part of the continent of Europe surrounded by en- lightened and civilized countries, which, how- ever, do not exert the least influence upon it. The Russian peasant is treated more harshly than the West Indian negro; like him, he is not his own master, like him, he has no family ; he, and his children, may be sold at any mo- ment. He is forced to die upon his natal soil, pursued through life by a tyrannical master, who often wreaks his vengeance on his slave by depriving him of the necessaries of life; he cannot go to seek subsistence in other lands, but must die. consuming himself with silent grief. Nay the peasant has no wrongs he is a mere machine, moved only by the rod of his driver. But let us drop this grave style, and look upon the sunny side of Russian manners, and nothing is so droll as the nuptial ceremonies CYCLO.PEDIA OF HISTORY. RUS 478 RUS which take place at the fete of St. Peter and St. Paul, at Petrowski, a village about 15 leagues from St. Petersburg. This festival always attracts a crowd of curi- ous spectators ; but it is difficult to penetrate into the centre of the village, in the midst of the ceremonies, without you are accompanied by a man of some authority or rank. It was with the painter of the empress mother, on whose estates the ceremony takes place, that I saw the singular spectacle. On approaching we witnessed the arrival of a crowd of young girls, eacii having a flower or a ribbon in their hair, and mounted upon little horses, some of which were forced to carry double and even treble. Their mothers accom- panied them armed with stout cudgels. The young men appeared clad in bridal garments. Nothing is as ugly as the Russian, particularly those of Petrowski, and this rendered the scene grotesque in the extreme. The young girls were drawn up in lines along the street of the village, and the suitors approached, like Turks in the slave-market of Stamboul, examined, and made CMMjarisons; and when one of them found a bea^^Bhat suit- ed him, without a word, he pusheiWIr out of the line, and shoved her into a neighboring house to await the conclusion of the bargain. Parents have no right to interfere with the choice of their children, only if the mother ob- jects to the suitor of her girl, she commonly amuses herself at his expense by giving him a sound beating with her cudgel. The Lutheran minister and the magistrate preside at these es- pousals, registering the names of the couples, and the definitive celebration of the marriages takes place about eight days after. In the ninth century, the Scandinavians, who were Danes, Normans, or Norwegians, arid Swedes, emigrated from the north, and, cross- ing the Baltic, settled in this country. These intruders were called Waregers, from which the name of Russes or Russians is derived. After subduing Courland, Livonia, and Estho- nia, the Waregers were offered the government of the whole country, and, embracing the pro- posal, deputed to the office three brothers of known abilities and valor, whose names were Ruric, Sineus. and Truwor. They reigned very amicably together, and made considerable additions to their respective territories, all of which at length devolved on Ruric, by the death of Sineus and Truwor, who left no issue. Ruric left his dominions in 878, to his son Igor, a minor, under the care of a relation named Olech, who governed with great ability and integrity during the nonage ofthe young Srince, and who undertook an expedition a"gainst onstantinople, which he besieged for some time, -and at length compelled the emperor to purchase peace at a stipulated price. On the death of Olech, Igor undertook an unsuccessful expedition against Constantinople, and after- wards ravaged and desolated the country ofthe Drevlians, by whom he was slain. Swetoslav;, the son of Igor, was a great warrior, and en- larged his dominions by the acquisition of much territory , but was basely murdered by the prince of the Petchenegans. Wolodimir I. succeeded in 97G, and impru- dently divided his dominions among his twelve sons, who became enemies to each other, and, after his death, replunged their country into all the horrors of murder, massacres, and civil wars. In 1019, Jaroslaw. who had been appointed to the government of Novogorod, assembled his % forces, and attacking his brothers, dispossessed them of their dominions, which he usurped. He also divided his territories amonir his five sons, who, being equally ambitious, and able to injure each other, renewed all the horrors of civil war, in 1106 At length, Wolodimir II, being more fortunate and more enterprising than the rest, possessed himself of the greatest part of these territories, and was declared uni- versal monarch. He transferred his power to his son Wsewold II, who plunged the state into fresh disorder, by dividing his dominions among his sons. These dissensions afforded t!ie Tar- tars an opportunity of making incursions into Russia, which they plundered and desolated, and which was also attacked by the Poles, in 1237. To complete the misery of the Russians, , the Tartars returned, and, attacking them with irresistible fury, made an entire conquest of their country. Durinir several reigns which occupy a space of more than'200 years, the miseries of a foreign yoke were aggravated by the calamities of in- testine discord and civil war. At length, in 1450, John Basilowitz I, by his invincible spirit, and refined policy, became the conqueror and deliverer of his country, and laid the foundation of that grandeur which has since distinguished Russia. Taking advantage of a war in which the Tartars were engaged, and having in the mean time considerably increased his forces, he disclaimed all subjection to that people, attacked their dominions, and made himself master of Casan, where he was crowned. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. RUS 479 RUS He was honored with the surname of Great, and assumed the title of Czar, which signifies Emperor, but which was more used by his suc- cessors. On the death of John Basilowitz in 1505, the crown ought to have devolved to his eldest son Demetrius, whom he had by a former wife ; but his widow Sophia, by various artful insinua- tions, obtained it for her own son Gabriel, who, disliking his own name, assumed that of Basilius Twansowitz. He engaged in a war with the Poles and Crim-Tartars, who, penetrating to the gates of Moscow, made the czar tremble on his throne, and obliged him to submit to their conditions. The Tartars entered Russia a sec- ond time, ravaged the country, and, making themselves masters of Moscow, compelled Basi- lius to acknowledge himself their vassal, and to promise to pay them an annual tribute. John Basilowitz II, succeeded in 1533, and was one of the greatest monarchs of Russia. He was constantly engaged in war with the Tartars, the Poles, the Swedes, the Danes, or the Turks. and was almost always successful. He left two sons ; Theodore Iwanowitz, who succeeded him, and Demetrius, an infant, placed under the tutelage of the knez Bogdam Bielski. This guardian formed the design of placing his pupil on the throne, in prejudice to his elder brother Theodore, whose simplicity and want of talents rendered him incapable of supporting the weight of a diadem. But though the nobles delivered Theodore from the enterprises of Bielski, that weak monarch suffered all the authority to centre in the hands of the knez Boris Gudenow. whose sister he had married, and who, after ordering Demetrius to be put to death, admin- istered to Theodore a slow poison. Finding his dissolution approaching, Theo- dore offered the sceptre to some of his nearest relations : but, as they all refused it. he threw it on the floor, saying, ' Let him be the emperor who picks it up." Boris Gudenow then step- ped forward, and took it, to the great dissatis- faction of the nation. In Theodore ended the family of Ruric, which had governed Russia upwards of 700 years. His reign was disturb- ed, and terminated by the re-appearance of the real or pretended Demetrius. Thinking it impossible to oppose an effectual resistance to Demetrius, Boris, in a moment of despair, took poison, of which he died. Theo- dore %vas only fifteen years of age at the time of his father's death, a'nd ascended the throne in 1005. After making his public entry into Moscow, Demetrius was crowned sovereign of 41 all the Russians. Notwithstanding these suc- cesses, a party was formed ngainst him. The conspirators declared that Demetrius was an impostor, whose design was to extirpate the nobility, to overturn the religion of Russia, and render the people slaves to Poland. An insur- gent multitude attacked the palace ; and Deme- trius, finding himself surrounded, leaped from a window, broke his thigh in the fall, was taken, and put to death. Immediately after the mur- der of Demetrius, Zuski, the leader of the con- spirators, was elected sovereign by the suffrages of the people, though the nobles and senators were divided in opinion between him and John Galitzin. Two noblemen, discontented with the gov- ernment of their country, declared that Deme- trius still existed ; and, raising an army, they combated and defeated Zuski, but were in their turn defeated, made prisoners, and put to death. To this shade succeeded a real being, who has been called a third Demetrius, and who was a schoolmaster at Socola, a small town in Polish Russia. For some time the Poles gave every assistance in their power to this pretender, and changing sides, they aided the czar in expelling the schoolmaster, who fled into Tartary, where he was afterwards assassinated. Zuski was afterwards deposed, shaven, and immured in a convent, where he died. In 1610 the crown was offered to Uladislaus, son of the king of Poland, who sent before him an army of Poles, that committed every species of devastation. At length the delays of Ulad- islaus, the insolence and licentiousness of the Jioles, and the impatience of the Russians, who saw no end of their sufferings, excited the people to discontent and insurrection. As the election of Uladislaus was rendered of no effect by his never appearing to accept the crown, the Russians proceeded to the choice of a new sovereign, and elected Michael Theodorowitz Romanow, son of Philaretus. This great and pacific prince died in the 49th year of his age, and the 33d of his reign, and beqOeathed the crown to his son, then in his IGlh year. Alexis Theodorowitz succeeded to the throne in ]fi45. and appointed as his first minister and counsellor Boris Morosau, a man till then held in estimation and respect, and possessed of great abilities, but unfortunately tainted with the spirit of ambition. Open 'traffic was made of justice; offices and employments were publicly sold. These exactions and oppressions excited the resentment of the inhabitants of Moscow, who, finding their petitions disregarded, and no CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. RUS 480 RUS grievances redressed, proceeded to the utmost excesses. This act of popular vengeance in- structed the czar to beware of reposing unlim- ited confidence in his ministers, and to guide the helm of the empire with his own hand. He employed his subsequent life in rectifying and repairing, by a mild and equitable administra- tion, the faults and errors into which he had been led in his youth, by his too great confi- dence in favorites and ministers. He died in the 46th year of his age. By his first wife, Alexis left two sons, Theodore and John, and a daughter called Sophia; and by a second, Pe- ter, and the Princess Natalia. Theodore succeeded to the throne in 1676, at the age of 19 years, and possessed all the good qualities of his father, whose example he imitat- ed in attempting to polish Russia, and to intro- duce into that country useful establishments. Theodore having appointed Peter ftis successor on the throne, to the exclusion of his elder brother. John, the intrigues of the Princess So- phia, their sister, occasioned a dreadful rebellion, which was at length terminated with proclaim- ing the two princes, John and Peter, joint sov- ereigns, and associating Sophia in tie govern- ment as co-regent in 1682. The imbecility of the elder brother, and the youth of Peter, allowed Sophia to enjoy all the honors of sovereignty. She married John to a young lady of the house of Soltikoff, and form- ed a design against the life of Peter, who, being informed of her intention, made his escape, raised troops, and caused Sophia to be impris- oned and deprived of all authority. From 161)0 Peter is to be considered as sole sovereign of Russia ; since from the period of this revolution to the year 16%, in which John died, the latter led a private and retired life. Peter the Great died 1725, at the age of fifty- three years, and was succeeded on the throne by his widow, Catharine. She left the throne to Peter II, grandson of the late czar, in 1727, whose father Peter the Great hid inhumanly condemned to suffer death. This prince was extremely beloved by his people ; and Russia has since termed his reign its happiest period dnring a hundred years On the death of Peter 1 1 in 1730. the council, the senate, the general officers, and other persons of .distinction, assembled, and elected to the throne Anne Iwanowna. duchess of Courland, and second daughter of John, Pe- ter's eldest brother. Anne successfully execut- ed many projects conceived by Peter the Great, and died at Petersburg, after a glorious and happy reign often years, A. D. 1740. Previous to her death, the late empress had declared her niece, Anne of Mecklenburg, gnnd- duchees, and her niece's son, Iwan, emperor of Russia, though he was a very remote descend- ant of the house of Romano w, and seemed rather of German than Russian extraction. However, there appeared another aspirant to the throne, who was the Princess Elizabeth, daughter of Peter the Great,and aunt to the grand duchess Anne, and who finally succeeded in the attempt. Iwan. the innocent and uncon- scious boy, who, with no ambition to rule, had been raised to the imperial purple, was dethron- ed, and immured in a dungeo:i ; and the grand duchess and her husband were imprisoned iji a fortress, where they died. Elizabeth, having thus obtained possession of the throne of Russia in 1740, bent all her thoughts to the government of the empire. However, her reign was tarnished by the insti- tution of a political court of inquisition, under the name of a secret state chancerv. empowered to examine into and punish all expressions of displeasure with the measures of government On the death of Elizabeth, Charles Peter Ul- ric. only son of the Duke of Holstein. peaceably ascended the throne of Russia in 17ti'-2. as the declared successor of the late empress, and as- sumed the title of Peter III. He was grandson to Peter the Great and Catharine 1. whose el- dest daughter, the Princess Anne, had married his father, diaries Frederic. Peter had for a longtime slighted his consort, Catharine of the house of Anhall-Zerbst, and now openly lived with the Countess of Wo- rontzoff, niece to the chancellor of that name. Catharine indulged in the greatest licentious- ness ; and, after the dismissal of Poniatowski, the Polish ambassador, with whom she had been too intimate, she carried on a criminal inter- course with Gregory OrlorF, who became an active and a zealous member of a conspiracy against the czar. To the conspiracy of Bestu- cheft", supported by his nephew, the Prince of Wolskonsky, and by Count I'anin. was added another, of which the Princess Dashkoff, a girl only eighteen years of age. wr.s the most active and spirited member. Of these factions, which acted in unison, but without the cognizance of each other, Catharine was the minnaiing spirit. At length a report was propagated, that the emperor entertained the design of declaring Prince Iwan his successor; of disowning the young grand duke, Paul Petrowitz, as his son; and of imputing Catharine for life in a prison, and substituting in her place his mistress, the Countess of Worontzoff. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL RUS 481 RUS At seven in the morning 1 of the 9th of July, 17(>2, Catharine entered the city of Petersburg in the absence of the czur; and having induced the soldiers to believe that her death, together with that of her son, had been decreed by the emperor that night, the troops took the oath of allegiance to her. She then repaired to the church of Casan, where the archbishop of No- vogorod placed on her head the imperial crown, and in a loud voice proclaimed her sovereign of all the Russias, under the name of Catha- rine II. The new empress now marched at the head of the troops against her husband, who was solacing himself with his mistress at one of his houses of pleasure, when he was informed of the event which had taken place at Petersburg. Consternation immediately pervaded his whole company. The emperor, perplexed and con- founded, ordered, countermanded, asked advice, adopted, and again rejected it, and at length set out with his mistress and aid-de-catnp to meet Catharine at the castle of Peterhoff, vainly hoping to move, by submission, the heart of a woman who was utterly devoid of pity or com- passion. The unfortunate Peter, after being inducted to write and sign a renunciation of the throne of Russia, was cast into prison, w,here a few days after he was murdered. On the death of Augustus III, king of Poland, in I7C4, Catharine, who had signed a treaty of alliance with Prussia, raised to the throne of that kingdom Stanislaus Poniatowski, her for- mer paramour, notwithstanding the murmurs and resistance of the Polish nation. During the absence of the empress at Riga, a conspiracy, real or pretended, was formed in favor of Prince Iwan, who was barbarously put to death. The purposes for which Poniatowski had been raised to the throne of Poland, began gradually to de- velop themselves ; and having traced on a map aline of demarcation, by which a great part of the Polish territory had been assigned to Russia, Catharine insisted on the recognition of these limits, and the propriety of her claim. The Poles having induced the Ottoman Porte to take up arms in their behalf, hostilities com- menced between Turkey and Russia, and the empress resolved to rend the Grecian islands from the Ottoman Porte, and to be the patroness of liberty in Greece, and the foundress of a new republic. At length the dismemberment of Poland was effected by Russia, Austria, and Prussia; and Turkey was obliged to conclude a peace on very disadvantageous terms. The ambition of Catharine again excited the jealousy and the fears of the Turkish emperor by the designs which she entertained respecting her grandson, whose name and education suffi- ciently denoted her intention. War was, there- fore, afrain declared by the Porte against Rus- sia, whose minister was shut up in the castle of the Seven Towers. Joseph II, emperor of Germany, sent 80,000 Austrians to the assist- ance of Catharine ; and every thing seemed to announce the ruin of the Ottoman power. Sur- rounding nations, however, beheld with jealousy the designs of the empress, who threatened to destroy the equilibrium of Europe, but who, notwithstanding her victories and her conquests, at length perceived that a cessation f hostilities was very desirable. Accordingly, after some time, peace was concluded between Russia and the Porte, and a bloody and expensive war terminated. The arms of Russia and Prussia were now united in partitioning the remainder of Poland ; and Frederic William, at the head of his forces, fought against Kosciusko, whose talents, courage, and despair were unavailing against multiplied and increasing numbers. After a few bloody victories, the courts of Pe- tersburg and Berlin succeeded in dividing the remains of that unhappy country ; and th* courtiers of Catharine shared among them the possessions of the proscribed. Catharine died after a long and prosperous reign, and at a time when she hoped to drive the Turks out of Europe, and to seize on the throne of Constantinople. On the death of Catharine II, in 1796, Paul Petrowitz, her son, who was at that time 43 years of age, was proclaimed emperor of Russia The first acts of the new czar were extremely popular ; and his actions seemed to contradict the report of his stern and capricious disposition. However, Paul's conduct in the first days oi his reign, was scon afterwards reversed. Paul concluded with the king of Great Bri- tain a treaty, by which they agreed to oppose, in the most efficacious manner, the successes of the French arms in extending the principles of anarchy, to promote solid and lasting peace, and to endeavor to re-establish the balance of power in Europe. For some time the Russians and their allies were fortunate ; but their suc- cesses being afterwards converted into defeats, the emperor broke off the alliance which had been concluded with the court of London. In- dignant that the British government would not acquiesce in his having appointed himself grand-master of Malta, Paul entered into an alliance with France, and excited a formidable CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. RUS 482 RUS confederacy of the maritime powers of the north against the naval interests of Great Britain, which was broken by the battle of Copenhagen. His capricious and extravagant actions, some of which bordered on frenzy, gave great offence to many of the principal nobles ; and he was murdered in the night of the 23d of March, 1801, though his death has been ascribed to an apoplectic fit. The day after his decease, his eldest son, Al- exander Paulov/itz, who was in the 24th year of his age, was proclaimed emperor of all the Russias, and issued oevera! popular ukases, in one of which he revived and confirmed all the regulations of the empress Catharine for the encouragement of industry and commerce. Bonaparte not fulfilling the secret convention which had been entered into between France and Russia, with respect to the evacuation of the kingdom of Naples by the French troops, the adjusting of the affairs of Italy, and the indemnity promised to be granted to the king of Sardinia, Alexander ordered an additional levy of land forces throughout his dominions He afterwards attempted to negotiate a general peace among the powers of Europe ; but finding this impracticable, on account of the disposition and views of Bonaparte, he joined Austria and England in the coalition against France. The Russian troops however, could riot join the Austrians till the latter had suffered several se- vere defeats. The battle of Austerlitz termi- nated unfavorably to the allies ; and the empe- ror of Germany concluding a separate peace with France immediately afler that event, the Russian troops returned into their own country. When war broke out between France and Prus- sia, the emperor Alexander ordered his forces to the assistance of the latter power. However, before they could arrive to aid *heir allies, the French had over-run Prussia, and penetrated into Poland, where they were defeated by the Russians ; but Bonaparte, having compelled his vassal princes to furnish their stipulated contin- Cts of troops, again advanced, and gained the le of Friedland, which obliged the emperor Alexander to sign the treaty of Tilsit. That treaty was soon after followed by a de- claration of war, on the part of liussta, against Great Britain ; and one immense power now occupied Europe, arranging and controlling every tiling in conformity to its views. Russia 3 , which had become the'willing instrument of French policy, not only withdrew from her al- liance with Sweden, but attacked that country. In 1808, an army of 40,000 men was sont into Finland, from which the Swedes WP-J finally expelled. By the treaty of Tilsit. Russia bound herself to accede to the continental system, and to ex- clude from her ports all British manufactures and colonial produce. Not aware of the conse- quences of his engagements, the emperor Al- exander had placed himself in a situation of great difficulty. If he attempted to fulfil the treaty by interdicting the trade between Great Britain and the Russian empire, he deprived his subjects of the best market for their produce, and roused his nobility against him. On the other hand, his apprehensions of the power of. Bonaparte were strong and well founded. He, therefore, determined on a species of compro- mise, and forbade the introduction of all British produce and manufactures into his dominions, except by special license, and in neutral ships. Soon after the differences commenced be- tween Napoleon and the emperor Alexander, the former took such measures as he thought would either awe the latter into submission, or secure victory and success in case of hostilities : he assembled large bodies in the north of Ger- many ; he kept possession of a great part of Prussia especially of the places most conven iently situated for an attack on Russian Poland; and he forcibly occupied Swedish Pomerania. Preparations were made by Russia to meet the approaching crisis; and before the commence- ment of hostilities, the force that could be brought against the French amounted to nearly 300,000 men, exclusively of the militia. On the other hand, the emperor Francis engaged to furnish 30.000 men to France in her war with Russia; the troops of the confederation of the Rhine had been raised to their stipulated quota; and the kings of Saxony and Naples had been induced to embark with Napoleon in this great enterprise. The armies of Bonaparte on the frontiers of Russian Poland amounted to at least 300,000 infantry, and 00,000 cavalry, in a state of the highest discipline and equipment, and comiuaaded by the first military talents of the age. The preparations on each side corresponded with the magnitude of the in IP rests embarked in the contest. In numbers the combatants were not, at first, on an equality ; and in disci- pline, in science, and in organization, the French possessed a great superiority. On the 9th of May, 1812, Napoleon loft Paris; and ar- riving on the banks of the Nil-men on the 22d of June, he issued to his soldiers a proclamation in his usual confident and laconic style. This HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. RUS 483 RUT was his only declaration of war. The French and their allies passed the Niemen without op- position, and obtained possession of Wilna, the capital of Lithuania. The re-establishment of the kingdom of Poland was now proclaimed, and a diet assembled under the guarantee of the French emperor; and, by these means, the na- tional enthusiasm was raised in his favor, and the ranks of his army were swelled by Polish levies. The emperor of Austria recalled his ambas- sador from Petersburg, and furnished his con- tingent of troops to the French. Russia, how- ever, acquired a new and zealous, though remote, ally in 1'Jngland, who formed a treaty of friend- ship and reciprocal defence with her, and a sim- ilar one, with Sweden. In proportion as the French advanced into the territories of Russia, the more resistance they experienced ; and sev- eral bloody engagements took place, without producing any decisive effect. The first great stand was made at the city of Smolensk, which is in the direct road to Moscow, and for the de- fence of which the Russians were posted. How- ever, in the middle of the night, after a severe engagement, a dreadful conflagration was ob- served in the city ; and the Russians abandoned Smolensk, and retired across the Dnieper. Moscow was now the great object to be con- tended for ; and the Russian main army took a strong position to cover it from the attack of Napoleon. A dreadful engagement ensued ; and the re- sult of this battle, which was nanled by the Rus- sians the Battle of Borodino, was a victory claimed by each party. The French entered Moscow seven days after this engagement ; but in order to deprive the French of a place for their winter quarterns, the governor had ordered the city to be set on fire ; and the French troops had scarcely entered the Kremlin, when Mos- cow appeared in flames in different parts. The conflagration was so extensive, and raged with such fury for several days, that not more than a tenth of the buildings remained unconsumed. The French began their retreat from Moscow, but were closely pursued by an exasperated foe. To add to their calamities a Russian winter set in with deep snow. The sufferings of the French were extreme, and their losses prodigious. I Horses died in such numbers, that the greatest part of the artillery was left behind, and the cavalry was nearly dismounted ; whole bodies of men, disabled by cold arid hunger, surren- dered without resistance to the pursuers ; and nothing appeared but disaster and dismay. It 41* is probable, that of nearly 400,000 troops engaged in this frantic expedition, not 50,000, including the Prussian and Austrian contingents, escaped out of Russia. Intoxicated by former successes, Napoleon expected that he had only on this, as on former occasions, to strike deeply into the heart of the invaded country, and that victory would hover round the wings of his eagles ; but the constancy of the Russian government, the devoted patriot- ism of the people, the valor of the Russian army, and above all, the rigors of the season, consum- mated the ruin of the legions of an ambitious chief, who,inone expedition, had thus sacrificed, of friends and foes, soldiers and peaceable in- habitants, nearly one million of his species ! The Russian armies pursued the remnant of the French armies into Germany, where the former were joined by Prussia, by the princes of Germany, and finally by Austria. Sweden also joined the league against France. The battle of Leipsic, which was gained by the allies over Bonaparte, determined the fate of Germa- ny, and shook to its foundation the mighty em- pire raised by Napoleon. By the treaty of Vi- enna, in 1815, the duchy of Warsaw, with the exception of certain provinces and districts, was ceded to the emperor of Russia, who addressed a letter to the Polish diet, announcing the fate of their country, and that he had assumed the title of king of Poland. After the death of the emperor Alexander, Dec. 1, 1825. his brother Nicholas ascended the throne. The principal events which have oc- curred since the commencement of his reign, are, the war with Turkey, and the revolt of the Poles. The latter was not crushed without a violent struggle, which cost the Russians a ter- rible effusion of blood. RUTLEDGE, John, a native of South Caro- lina, distinguished himself by his ruanly elo- quence in the first congress, and was appointed president and commander-in-chief of South Carolina, in 1776. In 177!) he was chosen gov- ernor. He died Jan. 23, 1800. RUTLEDGE, Edward, a signer of the De- claration of Independence, was born in South Carolina, Nov. 174!). He chose the profession of the law, and received a part of his legal edu- cation in England. He was a member of the continental Congress from 1774 till 1777. In 1779 Mr. Rutledge was re-appointed to Con- gress, but relinquished his seat from ill health. However, he soon took the field at the head of a company, but was taken prisoner, and re- mained in the hands of the British nearly a year. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. RYE 484 SAC In 17D8, having Retired from the practice of the law, he was elected governor of South Caro- lina, but died Jan. 23, 1600. RUYTEfc, iMichael Adrian de, a Dutch Ad- miral, was born at Flushing in 1607. In the war with England, which broke out in 1(55:2, he convoyed a rich fiVet through the channel, and brought the whole into port, after an engage- ment which lasted two days. He was "next joined in command with Van Tromp, and dis- tinguished himself as well in the great battle of three days, fought in February, 1653. as in that where Van Tromp fell in July following. In 105-?, he defeated the Swedes, for which the king of Denmark gave him a patent of nobility. At the renewal of hostilities with England, in the reign of Charles II, De Ruyter gained an advantage over Prince Rupert and Monk ; but, two months afterwards, another battle was fought, in which the Dutch were defeated. The following year, however, he avenged him- self, by riding triumphantly in the Thames, and destroying several English men-of-war at Sheer- ness. In Iii72, he attacked the combined En- glish and French fleets ; and though the battle was undecided, De Ruyter kept the sea, and convoyed home a fleet of merchantmen. The gallant commander was mortally wounded in an engagement with the French, off Messina, and died at Syracuse, April 11, 1676. His remains were interred at Amsterdam, and a monument erected to his memory. RYE-HOUSE PLOT, took its name from a farm called the Rye-house, the property of Rutnbal. one of the conspirators against the life of Charles IF. The partici^lars of this plot are, that while schemes on a very grand scale were concerting in the higher circles to check the rapid strfdes of tyrariay encroaching on the rights and liberties of the people, others of a subordinate class were hatching, which, though perhaps not exactly on equally honorable prin- ciples, were nevertheless somewhat similar ;is to their final purpose. Among the abettors of this latter clriss were Colonel Rumsey. an old republican oilicer ; lieutenant-colonel \Valcot ; Goodenough, under sheriff of London ; Fergu- son, an independent minister; and several at- torneys, merchants, and tradesmen of London. Their object wns t-> assassinate Cliarles on his way from Newmarket; but the house in which the king resided there happening to take fire, obliged him to leave that place earlier than he intended; and thus the execution of the design was prevented. SABINES. an ancient people of Italy, reck- oned among the Aborigines, or those inhabitants whose origin was not known. Some suppose that thev were originally a Lacedaemonian co- lony, who settled in that part of the country. The possessions of the Sabines were situated in the neighborhood of Rome, between the river JVar and the Anio, and bounded on the north by the Apennines and Umbria, south by Latium, east by the jfiqui, and by Etruria -on the west. The greatest part of the contiguous nations were descended from them, such as the Urn- brians, the Campanians, the Sabelli, the Osci, Sammtes, Hernici, /Equi, Marsi, Brutii, &c. The Sabines are celebrated in ancient history as being the first who took up arms against the Romans, to avenge the rape of their females at a spectacle where they had been invited. After some engagements, the greatest part of the Sabines left their ancient possessions, and mi- grated to Rome, where they settled with their new allies. They were at last totally subdued about the year of Rome 373, and ranked as Ro- man citizens. Their chief cities were Cures, Fidente, Reate, Crusturnerium, Corniculum, Momentum, Collatia, tc. The character of the nation for chastity, for purity of morals, and for the knowledge of herbs and incantations was very oreat. SACHEVEREJL; Henry. a celebrated divine, was the son of a clergyman at Marlborough, where he had his education, and afterwards be came demy of Magdalen-college, Oxford. Sach everel obtained a fellowship ; and in 170d took his doctor's degree. The following year he E reached two sermons, one at the assizes at )erby, and the other at St. Paul's, in both which he asserted, that the church was in im- minent danger. For these discourses, which were considered as iullimmatory, he was im- peached by the House of Commons, and tried before the Lords, in 1710; when being found guilty of a misdemeanor, he was suspended from {reaching for throe yours. This only increased lis popularity, and "brought the ministry into such contempt, that they were obliged to resign their places. At the expiration of the sentence the doctor was presented to the rectory of St. Andrew, Holborn. He died in 17^4. SACKVILLE, Thomas, lord Buck huret and earl of Dorset, wastht-si-n oi'.Sir Richard Sack- ville, and was born at Wit.ham, in Sussex, in \~f27. He wasedurated at Oxford, from whence he removed to Cambridge, and next to the Inner HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SAI 485 SAL Temple. On leaving the Temple he went abroad; and, after his return, was made lord Buckhurst. 1 n 15ft7 he was sent on an embassy to the United Provinces. After this he was made knight of the garter ; and chosen chancellor of Oxtbrd. On the death of Burleigh he was ap- pointed lord treasurer ; and in the next reign created earl of Dorset. He died in 1608. SACK VI LLE, Charles, sixth earl of Dorset and Middlesex, was born in 1637. In 1665 he volunteered on board the fleet: and the night previous to the engagement with the Dutch, wrote the famous song, " To all you ladies now at land." Soon after this he was made a gen- tleman of the bed-chamber by Charles II, who also sent him on several embassies. At the Revolution he was appointed lord chamberlain to king William, svhom he accompanied to Hol- land. He died at Bath, Jan. 19, 1706. SACKVILLE, lord George, viscount, the third son of the first duke of Dorset, was born in 1716. He obtained a commission in the army, and distinguished himself in the battles -of Dettingen and Fontenoy. In 1758 he was made a lieutenant-general ; but in the year fol- lowing fell into disgrace for his conduct at the battle of Alinden, owing to a mistake in the orders sent to him by prince Ferdinand. He was tried by a court-martial, and dismissed the service ; but was restored in the next reign. In 1775 he was appointed secretary of state for the American colonies ; but in 1783 he went out of office, and was created a viscount. He died in 17c5. SADLER. Sir Ralph, an English statesman, was born in 1507, at Hackney, in Middlesex. In early life he was taken into the family of Cromwell, earl of Essex, who introduced him to Henry VIII, in consequence of which he had a share in the dissolution of the monasteries, and partook of the spoil. He was also sent on an embassy to Scotland, to negotiate a marriage between prince Edward and queen Mary, but without effect. In the war which followed, BIT Ralph distinguished himself greatly, and was made a knight banneret on the field after the battle of Pinkie. He was also appointed master of the great wardrobe. At the accession of Elizabeth he was again sent to Scotland ; and when the unfortunate Mary came to England, she was committed to hia care. He died in 1587. SAINT HELENA, an island in the South Atlantic, 1200 miles west of the continent of Africa, and 1600 east of South America. The island is a rock about 21 miles in circumference, very high and very steep, and only accessible at the landing-place, in a small valley at the east side of it, "which is defended by batleries of guns ; and as the wind always blows from the south-east, if a ship overshoots the island ever so little, she cannot recover it again. St. He- lena is said to have been first discovered by the Portuguese, on the festival of the empress Helena, mother of the emperor Constantine the Great, whose name it still bears. The En- glish East India Company took possession of it in 1600, and held it without interruption till the year 1673, when the Dutch took it by surprise. The English, under the command of Captain Munden, recovered it again within the space of a year, and at the same time took three Dutch East India ships that lay in the road. This island is celebrated in modern history, as the place to which the emperor Napoleon was exiled by the confederate poweis in August. 1&15, and where he died in 1&20. Set- J\'uj,oleon.. SALAD1N, or SALAHEDDLN YUSEF BEN AYUB, was at first general of the army of Noureddin, sullan of Damascus, and in 1 164 he conquered Egypt, and married the widow of the prince of Grand Cairo. After the death of Noureddin, he was called to the government during the minority of the prince his son. Be- ing advanced to this power, he resolved to attack the Christians; and accordingly, in 1177, having raised an army, he endeavored to sur- prise Jerusalem, but was defeated with great slaughter, on the 25th of November. This loss inspiring him with levenge. in 1180 he passed the Euphrates, took several cities, as far aa Nisibis, and made himself formidable to all his neighbors. He took Aleppo in 1184. But not long after, the Christians put a stop to his con- quests, by a cessation of arms. The earl of Tripoli being jealous of Guy. king of Jerusa- lem, persuaded Saladin to break the truce; who, following his counsel, defeated the Chris- tians, the 1st of May, 1187 : and having raised an army of above 800.000 men. he obtained a second victory over them, took Guy in the flight, beheaded all the knights Templars, and of St. John, made himself master of Acre, Bairut, Giblet. Saide, and divers other places, and at last of Jerusalem. Pope Urban II, upon hearing of this news, died of grief. Saladin several times stormed the city of Tyre, but was often repulsed ; and after some other losses sus- tained from the Christians, he died in J193, in the 57th year of his age, having reigned over Egypt 22 years, and 19 as absolute master of Syria. No Asiatic monarch has filled so large CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SAL 486 SAL a space in the eyes of Europe, as the antagonist of Co3ur de Lion. He was a compound of the dignity and baseness, the greatness and the littleness of man. As the Moslem hero of the third holy war, he proved himself a skilful general and a valiant soldier. He hated the Christian cause, for he was a zealous Mussul- man. He gained the throne by blood, artifice, and treachery ; but though ambitious, he was not tyrannical ; he was mild in his govern- ment ; the friend and dispenser of justice. Wars and rebellions filled all the thoughts of Saladin, and he established no principles of suc- cession. Three of his numerous progeny be- came sovereigns of Aleppo, Damascus, and Egypt; others had smaller possessions; and the emirs and atabaks of Syria again struggled for independence. See Crusades. SALAMANCA, capital of a province of Spain in the southern part of the kingdom of Leon, contains 13,920 inhabitants. Its cele- brated university was founded in the thirteenth century by Alphonso IX of Leon. A memo- rable battle was fought here on the 23d of July, 1812, between the British, under lord Wel- lington, and the French, under Marmont. On the 16th of June, lord Wellington appeared before the city, with his main army, when the French general, leaving a force to defend the fortifications, retired with his troops across the Tormes. He afterwards attempted to relieve the forts, which had been formed into a depot of stores ; but the British general compelled him to abandon them to their fate. Major- general Clinton was now ordered to reduce them ; and this being accomplished, lord Wel- lington put his army in motion against Mar- mont, who hastily retired across the Douro. A series of skilful movements now ensued on both sides, until the 21st July, when the allied army was concentrated on the Tonnes ; the French crossed the river on the same day. and appeared to threaten Ciudad Rodrigo. During the '-2d and 23d, Marmont practised a variety of evolutions, to distract the attention of the Bri- tish general from his real plan. In aiming to surround the British, he extended and weakened his own line ; and lord Wellington, watching the progress of this error, seized the favorable opportunity for striking a decisive blow. His arrangements were soon made, and no time lost in executing them. Major-general Pakenham, with the third division, began a furious assault on the flanks of the enemy's left, in which he was supported by brigadier-general Bradford's brigade, by the fourth and fifth divisions, and by the cavalry under Sir Stapleton Cotton, in front. The French, though finely posted, and supported by cannon, were overthrown. Their centre was driven from the hill with precipita- tion ; the right wing, being joined by some fugitives, maintained a show of resistance, but they were driven in confusion from the field. The pursuit was continued till night, when the French guard was overtaken, attacked, and put to flight, the cavalry leaving the infantry to their fate. Three whole battalions surren- dered, and large quantities of stores, baggage, and ammunition, fell into the conquerors' hands. Eleven pieces of cannon, two eagles, and six colors, were also taken ; five generals, three colonels, three lieutenant-colonels, 150 officers, and 7000 soldiers, were made prisoners. The loss of the allies was about 700 killed, and 4000 wounded. SALAMIS, or SALAMINA, now COLOCRI, an island in the Saronic gulf, on the southern coast of Attica opposite Eleusis, at the distance of about a league, with a town and harbor of the same name. It was originally peopled by a colony of lonians, and afterwards by some of the Greeks from the adjacent islands'and coun- tries. It is celebrated for a battle which was fought there between the fleet of the Greeks and that of the Persians, when Xerxes invaded Attica. The Persian ships amounted to above 2000, and those of the Greeks to about 380 sail. In this engagement, which was fought on the 20th of October, B. C. 480, the Greeks lost 40 ships, and the Persians about 200, besides an immense number which were taken with all the ammunition they contained. SALISBURY, or NEW SARUM, an an- cient city of England in the county of Wilts. A parliament was summoned here in the reign of Edxvard I ; another was held in 1328, to in- quire into the state of the kingdom, then under the tyranny of queen Isabel and earl Mortimer; and it was here the latter broke in upon their deliberations with an armed force. In the first year of Richard III, Henry Stafford, duke of Buckingham, by whose influence and exertions Richard was advanced to the throne, was exe- cuted here. During the civil wars of Charles I, Salisbury was frequently laid under contribu- tions by'the contending parties. Pop. 9,876. SALLUSTIUS, C. Crispus, a Latin histo- rian born at Amiternum, in the country of the Sabines. 8(5 B. C. He received his education at Rome, and made himself known as a public magistrate in the office of qua?stor and consul. His licentiousness, and the depravity of his HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SAN 487 SAR manners, however, did not escape the censure of the age, and Saliust was degraded from the dignity of a senator, B. C. 50. A continuation of extravagance could not long be supported by the income of Saliust, but he extricated him- self from all difficulties by embracing the cause of Caesar. He was restored to the rank of senator, and made governor of Numidia. In the administration ot his province, Saliust be- haved with unusual tyranny; he enriched him- self by plundering the Africans, and at his return to Rome he built himself a magnificent house, and bought gardens, which, from their delightful and pleasant situation, still preserve the name of the gardens of Saliust. He died in the 51st year of his age, 35 years before the Christian era. SALSETTE, an island on the western coast of Hindostan. The first account we have of this island, is dated in 1330 ; it was then gov- erned by a Mahometan judge. It was taken possession of by the Portuguese in the 16th century, and by the Mahrattas in 1750. In 1773, during a rupture with the Mahrattas, it was occupied by the British troops, and has ever since remained in their possession. SAMOS. an island in the JEgean sea, on the coast of Asia Minor, from which it is divided by a narrow strait, with a capital of the same name, built B. C. 986. It was first in the pos- session of the Leleges, and afterwards of the lonians. The people of Samos were at first governed by kings, and afterwards the form of their government became democratical and oli- garchical. Samos was in its most flourishing situation under Polycrates, who had made him- self absolute there. The Sarnians assisted the Greeks against the Persians, when Xerxes in- vaded Europe, and were reduced under the power of Athens, after a revolt, by Pericles, B. C. 441. They were afterwards subdued by Eumenes, king of Pergamus, and were restored to their ancient liberty by Augii-stus. Under Vespasian. Sarnos became a Roman province. SANDWICH ISLANDS, a group in the North Pacific ocean, covering about 6000 square miles, and containing 150.000 inhabitants, were discovered by Captains Cook and Kinir in 1778, and were named bv them after Lord Sandwich. Owing to desolating wars, the present popula- tion does not exceed 150,000, although Captain King made it amount to 400,000. The princi- pal islands are Hawaii (Owhyhee), Muui (Mowee). Oahu (Woahoo), Taui (Atooi), and Nihau (Oneehow). The climate is warm, but healthy : many of the islands are volcanic. The most important vegetable productions are taro, yam, breadfruit, cocoanut, strawberry, native. and oranges, grapes, uiii. and the Tan-iison the e is'.. The Asiatic was bound- ed by Hyrcanid, the Tain!*, ami the iliixlne sea. The former ' .nMim-d the modern ki:i_r- d im> -:f RU.-MI. Poland, Lilian Mi:;, and Little Tartary; and tin- ht'.vr. Great TarUry. ' FIJI, s ml the neighbor! qgcouttlry. The S.inti:-.. tinns uere a ; ,:r.'a^e uncivilized nation, often confounded \, . ^aus. naturally \vui- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SAV 489 SAV like, and famous for painting their bodies to ap- pear more terrible in the field of battle. They were well known for their lewdness, and they passed among the Greeks and Latins by the name of barbarians. In the time of the empe- rors they became very powerful ; they disturbed the peace of Rome by their frequent incursions ; till at last, increased by the savage hordes' of Scythia, under the barbarous names of Huns, Vandals, Goths, Alans, &e., they successfully invaded and ruined the empire in the third and fourth centuries of the Christian era. SATURN, the Kronos of the Greeks, father of the gods. As destiny had foretold that he would be dethroned by one of his sons, he de- voured all that were born, with the exception of Jupiter, Neptune, and Pluto, whom their mother Rhea saved. He was dethroned by Ju- piter and sought refuge with Janus in Italy, where he occupied himself with agriculture. tfe is represented as an old man with a scythe in one hand, and an hour-glass in the other, to show that time destroys every thing, and rolls onward without interruption. SAVILLE, George, marquis of Halifax, a statesman, was born in Yorkshire, in 1G30. He was created a peer for his loyalty at the Resto- ration ; and in 1682 was raised to the dignity of a marquis, soon after which he was made lord privy seal. At the beginning of the reign of James II, he was appointed president of the council, but on refusing his consent to the repeal of the test acts, he was dismissed. In the con- vention parliament, he sat as speaker of the House of Lords, and concurred in all the meas- ures of the Revolution ; butaflerwards he joined the opposition. He died in 1695. SAVOY, an Italian duchy belonging to the Sardinian monarchy, bordering on France, Switzerland, and Piedmont, contains 3,750 square miles, and 501,165 inhabitants. The soil is poor. From the year 1000 till 1580, a long list of princes governed Savoy ; but their reigns were uninteresting, and marked by no political event of importance. In J580, Charles Ernan- uel invaded the marquisate of Saluces, which he wrested from France, and thereby gained a frontier for his capital of Turin. He was suc- ceeded by Victor Amadeus I, who waged war against the Spaniards with equal success, in lb'35. Francis Hyacinth, Charles Emanuel II, and Charles Emanuel III, were his successors. To the last of these princes, Turin owes some of her most magnificent structures ; and he also caused the amazing passage through the rock Mount Viso to be cut. Charles Emanuel was succeeded by his son Victor Amadeua II, in 1675, who persecuted his Protestant subjects, the Valdenses. with all the fury and malice of a bigot, and who was besieged in his capital, Tu- rin, by the French, till the latter had lost four- teen thousand men before the place, and the ammunition of the besieged was almost ex- hausted. The duke of Savoy was soon after joined by prince Eugene, whom he assisted in defeating the French, and driving them out of Lombardy. 'He formally resigned his crown to the prince of Piedmont, in 1730, Charles Em- anuel, his son, reserving for himself a yearly income of one hundred thousand pounds. Ac- cordingly, Charles Emanuel III succeeded him in the government ; but being persuaded by an interested minister, that his father was endeav- oring to gain over the troops, and that he held frequent conferences with physicians and apoth- ecaries, he caused him to be dragged from his bed, and carried to a house with latticed win- dows, which in every thing resembled a prison, in 1732. The old man died soon after. Some years after the commencement of the French revolution, Savoy was ceded by Charles Eman- uel IV to France, and constituted one of the de- partments, called the department of Mont Blanc. In this state it continued till the general peace, in 1814, when Savoy was restored to the family of its former possessors, in the person of Victor Emanuel, king of Sardinia. SUCCESSION OF PRINCES. 1000 Beroald the Saxon. 1027 Humbert I White Hands. 1048 Amadeus 1 Count of Maurienne. 1072 Humbert II. 1108 Amadeus II. 1148 Humbert II ihe Saint. 1188 Thomas. 1233 Amadeus III. 1253 Boniface, or Roland. 1263 Peter, or Charlemagne the Little 1268 Philip. 1285 Amadeus IV or V the Great. 1323 Edward. 132!) Aimon. 1343 Amadeus VI the Green. 1383 Amadeus VII the Red. 1391 Amadeus VIII the Pacific. 1451 Louis. 1465 Amadeus IX the Saint. 1472 Philibert I the Hunter. 1482 Charles I the Warlike. 1489 Charles II. 1490 Philip Lackland. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SAX 490 SAX 1497 Philibert II the Fair. 1504 Charles III the Good. 1553 Euianuel Philibert, Iron Hand. 1580 Charles Emanuel I the Great. 1630 Victor Arnadeus I. 1637 Francis Hyacinthus. 1633 Charles p.nanuel II. 1675 Victor Amadeus II. In 1713, the house of Savoy became regal, by the accession of Victor Amadeus to the crown of Sicily, which, in 1718, he exchanged with the emperor for Sardinia. KINGS OF SARDINIA AND DUKES OF SAVOY. 1718 Victor Amadeus II. 1730 Charles Emanuel III. ^ ' 1773 Victor Amadeus III. 1736 Charles Emanuel IV. In 1792, Savoy was seized by the French re- publicans, and made a department, under the name of Mont Blanc. In 1802, Piedmont was also annexed to that republic. KINGS OF SARDINIA 1802 Victor Emanuel. 1821 Charles Felix. 1831 Charles Albert. SAXE, Maurice, count de, a celebrated gen- eral, was born in 1696, at Dresden, being the natural son of Frederic Augustus, elector of Saxony and king of Poland, by the countess of Konigsmark. At the age of twelve years he was at the siege of Lisle, where he displayed signal courage ; as he did the following year at that of Tournay. He bore apart in the battle of Malplaquetj and in 1711 accompanied the king of Poland to Stralsund, where he swam over the river, with a pistol in his hand, insight of the enemy. On his return to Dresden, the king raised a regiment of horse for him, whicli he instructed in new evolutions. He continued to distinguish himself in the war with Sweden ; and in 1717 served against the Turks. In 1720 he obtained the rank of marechal do camp, in the French army. In 1726 he was chosen duke ofCourland; but the election being set aside, he returned to France, where he was made lieu- tenant-general in 1734. In 1741 he took Prague by assault ; in 1744 he was appointed a marshal of France ; and the next year he gained the battle of Fontcnoy. This was followed by the capture of Brussels, and the battle of Raucoux, for which the king of France made him man>- chal-general of his camps and armies. In 1747 he achieved the victory of Lahfeldt; and in 1748 took Maestricht. He died Nov. 30, 1750. SAXONY, kingdom of, is bounded N. and E. by Prussia, S. by Bohemia, W. by the Saxon principalities and Bavaria. It contains 5,800 square miles, and 1,414,528 inhabitants. The Saxons are supposed by most authors to be the ancient Catti described by Tacitus. The gov- ernment of the whole Saxon nation was vested in twelve chietlains, who were chosen annually, and who elected from among themselves ii chief judge. In time of war they chose a king, whose power ceased on the return of peace. "Charle- magne, on succeeding his father Pepin. in 772, resolved to compel the Saxons to change their religion, and embrace Christianity. Accord- ingly, he attacked and defeated them, and obliged their king, Wittekind, to Hy into Den- mark, who, finding himself totally unable to re- sist the force of the victorious Charlemagne, accepted the conditions offered him, and was baptized with his whole family, by Lullo, bish- op of Mentz. In 804. after a calamitous war of thirty years, the Saxoru were entirely subdued, when Charles had defeated them in numerous battles, and , transported many thousands to Flanders, Brabant, and other countries. The subsequent sovereigns of Saxony have uniformly asserted themselves to be descended from the illustrious Wittekind ; and the reign- ing family still pride themselves on the same origin. They reckon among their progenitors several great men who were honored with the surnames of the Grave, the Pacific, the Con- stant, the Pious, the Magnanimous, and some of whom wore crowns, whilst others declined them. From the middle of the i,.nth century, when the succession of the dukes of Saxony com- menced, to the present time, are reckoned thir- ty six, almost without interruption, and this proves that the generality of those princes at- tained an advanced age, though living chiefly amid the dangers of war. Frederic Augustus succeeded his father as elector, in 1763, at the age of thirteen years. The Saxons remained neutral in the war of 17-10, between Russia and Au.-i'.m. In 1756 they were tempted to take a p;irt by the flattering promises of Austria, but they soon had cause to repent. In the war of 1793, the contingent furnished by Saxony against France was not large, and no decided part was taken in the war until 180C, when the elector sent all his troops to the field in support of Prussia. The overthrow of that power enabled Bona- parte to attach the Saxons to his cause liy the most substantial advantages. For although the king of Saxony was under the necessity of making his peace with the conqueror, upon any HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SAY 491 SCA terms which the latter might choose to dictate to the vanquished party, yet in order to separate him from the interests of the Prussian monarch, the emperor of the French treated him with great lenity, induced him to accede to the con- federation of the Rhine, and gave him the title of king, with considerable accessions of terri- tory. Further additions were made to the king- dom of Saxony in 1809 ; but these acquisitions were only temporary. On the irruption of the allied armies into Sax- ony, in 1813, the king quitted Dresden, and identified his interests with the interests of France. After the battle of Leipsic, that city was taken by assault ; and the king of Saxony was made prisoner with his whole court. This country was afterwards placed under the provi- sional occupation of Prussia; and Frederic Wil- liam made known his intention of uniting Sax- ony to Prussia. However, the energetic conduct of the king of Saxony preserved him from total ruin. By the treaty of Vienna, in 1815, that sove- reign ceded to Prussia certain districts and ter- ritories belonging to the kingdom of Saxony; and the Saxon people, to whom the paternal sway of their king had endeared him, passed under the government of Prussia with extreme reluctance. SAY, Thomas. This distinguished naturalist, died at New Harmony, Indiana, on the 10th October, 1834. It may be fearlessly asserted that few individuals, certainly none in this coun- try, have contributed so extensively to enlarge the boundaries of Natural Science, as Mr. Say. To his native genius supported by untiring zeal, and indefatigable research, the Academy of Natural Sciences of Philadelphia is indebted for its opening reputation. Mr. Say was among the earliest members, if not one of the founders of this institution. His original communications to the society alone, in the most abstruse departments of zoolo- gy, Crustacea, insects, &c.,of the United States occupy more than 800 printed pages of their jour- nal ; his essays published in some of our leading periodical journals are equally respectable, per- haps equallv numerous. His contributions to the American Encyclopaedia, though highly val- uable, are not so generally known. His separate work, on American Entomology, and another on Conchology have met with deserved appro- bation with the learned. With the brilliant re- sults of his laborious exertions as naturalist to the two celebrated expeditions by the authority 42 of the United States government under com- mand of Major, now Lieutenant Colonel S. H. Long, the reading public is already familiar. Some years previously he accompanied Mr. Mac- lure, and other kindred spirits on a scientific excursion to the Floridas. The pages of the Academy's Journal, were subsequently enriched by details of the i'ruits of this undertaking. In the year 1825 our devoted student consent- ed in an evil hour to forego the society of his early friends, and the companions of his labors, and to remove to New Harmony on the Wabash, where he ended his useful career by a disease brought on by the peculiar climate of the coun- try ; the correspondent of the National Gazette to whom we are indebted for the above abstract, from a very interesting account of Mr. Say's life and last illness, says, " on the 10th, death came over him like a summer cloud he met the em- brace as the weary traveller falls into the arms of restoring sleep. Intellect triumphed to the last hour." SCANDERBEG, the name given by the Turks to George Castriotto, king of Albania; his father's name was John, who being reduced to extremity by Am'urath II, was forced to put five of his sons into his hands, of whom Scan derbeg was the youngest. He pleased the ty- rant, who poisoned his brothers, but spared him. Finding him endowed with very extraordinary qualities, he had him educated. Having given several instances of his courage in Arnurath's service, who was the usurper of his estates, fe'canderbeg thought it was high time to think of making use of his valor for himself against the tyrant. In this design he so dexterously deceived the governor ofCioya,the chief city of Albania, that he made himself master of that and several other places ; and in 1433 took possession of his hereditary dominion, and upon his being admit- ted to the crown declared himself a Christian. He compelled the Turks to raise the siege of Croya, and cut to pieces the forces that were sent against him. Amurath himself having laid a second siege to this place, died before the walls, without being able to take it, though he was extremely desirous of being revenged on Scanderbeg. Under Mahomet II he had seven or eight armies to contest with, but the victory was still on his side. It is said, that though he had killed above two thousand Turks with his own hand, yet was he never wounded. Ma- homet, compelled by his valor and success, made peace with him, while Scanderbeg took a jour- ney to the kingdom of Naples. The Turks, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SCH 492 SCH seeing the truce expired, laid siege again to Croya, but to no purpose ; for Scanderbeg was soon with them, and forced them to raise the siege twice. He died at Lissa, a city belonging to the Venetians, Jan. 27, 1467, in the sixty- third year of his ao-e. SCANDINAVIA, a name given by the an- cients to Norway, Sweden, Finland, and Lap- land, which they supposed to be an island. SCAURUS, M. yEmilius, a Roman consul, who distinguished himself by his eloquence at the bar, and by his successes in Spain, in the capacity of commander. He was sent against Jugurtha, and some time after was accused of suffering himself to be bribed by the Numidian prince. Scaurus conquered the Ligurians, and during his censorship built the Milvian bridge at Rome, and began to pave the road, which from him was called the ^Emilian. He was origi- nally very poor. He wrote some books, and among these a history of his own life, all now lost. His son, of the same name, made himself known by the large theatre which he built dur- ing his edileship. This theatre, which could contain 30,000 spectators, was supported by 360 columns of marble, ?8 feet in height, and adorned with 3000 brazen statues. This celebrated edi- fice, according to Pliny, proved more fatal to the manners and the simplicity of the Romans, than the proscriptions and wars of Sylla had done to the inhabitants of the city. SCHILLER, Frederic, a German poet of great reputation, was born at Manheim, a small town of Wurtemberg, Nov. 10, 1759, and was the son of a gentleman, who, having served in the armv ns a surgeon and officer, had retired to private life, and, at the date of the birth of the poet, was holding an inconsiderable post under the king of Wurtemberg. Both the parents of the poet, appear to have been persons possessed of estimable moral qualities, and no inconsiderable share of literary taste and talent. Schiller was not destitute of filial gratitude, and may be sup- posed to have expressed his own feelings in the following passage from one of his historical dramas. Don Carlos is addressincr his father Philip : " How sweet and rapturous it is to feel Oiirself exalted in a lovely soul, To know our joys make clow another's cheek, Our fears to tremble in another's heart, Our suderines bedew another's eye ! How beautiful and grand 'tis, ha ml in hand With a dear son, to tread youth's rosy path, Again to dream once more the dream of life ! How sweet and great, imperishable is The virtue of a child, to live for ages, Transmitting good unceasingly! How sweet To plant what a dear son will one day reap, To gather what will make him rich, to feel How deepone day will be his gratitude I" Schiller was placed in the school of Stuttgard, where he may be said to have educated him- self, for literature and the fine arts were under the ban of the duke of Wurtemberg, whose pedantic pedagogues vainly endeavored to turn the gigantic mind of Schiller from its natural inclination. Knowing nothing of the world but from books, forbidden to mingle in female society, and seeing in his fellow students but multiplied copies of a certain severe and soul- less model, which their preceptors continually held up for admiration and imitation, the poet turned to his own fancy for relief, and to be- guile the tedium of his unnatural life, wrote the tragedy of the Robbers, an extraordinary per- formance, full of imagination and energy, bril- liant with the light of genius and youth, but, to use the deliberate criticism of its author, " a monster, for which by good fortune the world has no original, and which I would not wish to be immortal, except to perpetuate an example of the offspring which Genius, in its unnatural union with Thraldom, may give to the world." The anonymous author of an admirable Life of Schiller thus speaks of the effect produced by the Robbers. ' ; The publication of such a work as this naturally produced an extraordinary feeling in the literary world. Translations of tiie Robbers soon appeared in almost al! the languages of Europe, and were read in all of them with a deep interest, compounded of admiration und aversion, according to the relative proportions of sensibility and judgment in the various minds which contemplated the subject. In Germany, the enthusiasm which the Robbers excited was extreme. The young author had burst upon the world like a meteor; and surprise, for a time, suspended the power of cool and rational criti- cism. In the ferment produced by the univer- sal discussion of this single topic, the poet was magnified above his natural dimensions, great as they were : and though the general sentence was loudly in his favor, yet he found detractors as well as praisers, and both equally beyond the limits of moderation. ' One charge brought against him must have damped the joy of literary glory, and stung Schiller's pure and virtuous ruind more than any other. He was accused of having injured the cause of morality by his work : of having set up to the impetuous and fir-y temperament of youth a model of imitation, which the young HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL SCH 493 SCH were too likely to pursue with eagerness, and which could only lead them from the safe and beaten tracks of duty into error and destruc- tion. It has even been stated, and often re- peated since, that a practical exemplification of this doctrine occurred, about this time, iu Ger- many. A young nobleman, it was said, of the fairest gifts and prospects, had cast away all these advantages ; betaken himself to the forests, and, copying Moor, had begun a course of active operations, which, also copying Moor, but less willingly he had ended by a shameful death. "It is now hardly necessary to contradict these theories : or to show that none but a can- didate for Bedlam as well as Tyburn could be seduced from the substantial comforts of exist- ence, to seek destruction and disgrace, for the sake of such imaginary grandeur. The Ger- man nobleman of the fairest gifts and prospects turns out, on investigation, to have been a Ger- man blackguard, whom debauchery and riotous extravagance had reduced to want ; who took to the highway, when he could take to nothing else, not allured by an ebullient enthusiasm, or any heroical and misdirected appetite for sub- lime actions, but driven by the more palpable stinmlus of importunate duns, an empty purse, and five craving senses. Perhaps, in his latter days, this philosopher may have referred to Schiller's tragedy, as the source from which he drew his theory of life ; but if so, we believe he was mistaken. For characters like him, the great attraction was the charm of revelry, and the great restraint, the gallows, before the period of Karl Von Moor, just as they have been since, and will be to the end of time. Among motives like these, the influence of the most malignant book could scarcely be discer- nible, and would be little detrimental, if it were. " Nothing, at any rate, could be faither from Schiller's intentions than such a consummation. In his preface he speaks of the moral effects of the Robbers in terms which do honor to his heart, while they show the inexperience of his head. Ridicule, he signifies, has long been tried against the wickedness of the times, whole car- goes of hellebore have been expended in vain ; and now he thinks recourse must be had to more pungent medicines. We may smile at the simplicity of this idea ; and safely conclude that, like other specifics, the present one would fail to produce a perceptible effect: but Schiller's vindication rests on higher grounds than these. His work has on the whole furnished nourish- ment to the more exalted powers of our nature ; the sentiments and images which he has shaped and uttered, tend, in spite of their alloy, lo elevate the soul to a nobler pitch; and this is a sufficient defence. As to the danger of misap- plying the inspiration he communicates, of for- getting the dictates of prudence in our zeal for the dictates of poetry, we have no great cause to fear it. Hitherto, at least, there has always been enough of dull reality, on every side of us, to abate such fervors in good time, and bring us back to the most sober level of prose, if not to sink us below it. We should thank the poet who performs such a service ; and forbear to inquire too rigidly whether there is a ' moral ' in his piece or not. The writer of a work which interests and excites the spiritual feelings of men, has as little need to justify himself by showing how it exemplifies some wise saw or modern instance, as the doer of a generous action has to demonstrate its merit, by dedu- cing it from the system of Shaftsbury, or Smith, orPaley, or whichever happens to be the favor- ite system for the age and place. The instruc- tiveness of the one, and the virtue of the other, exist independently of all systems or laws, and in spite of all." The tragedy of tliR Robbers, although written before the completion of Schiller's college course, did not appear until he had attained the age of twenty-one, and was beginning to dis- charge the duties of surgeon in the army. The spirit and popularity of the poet's performance were highly displeasing to the despotic duke of Wurtemberg. who issued an order for Schil- ler to confine himself to the studies peculiar to his profession. The youthful poet was com- pelled to suffer a week's confinement for the crime of having gone to Manheim to attend the representation of his drama, and fearing a severer punishment for the repetition of the offence, he fled to Manheim, and thence to the hospitable dwelling of Madam von Wollzogen, near Meiningen. Protected by this lady he sent forth two new plays Fiesco,and Court Intrigue and Love. He was next appointed poet to the theatre at Manheim, a post of honor and profit. At the expiration of eighteen months, Schiller growing dissatisfied with his situation, went from Manheim to Leipsic, and thence to Dres- den. At the latter place he concluded his famous tragedy of Don Carlos. " Schiller's Carlos is the first of his plays that bears the stamp of any thing like full maturity. The opportunities he had enjoyed for extending his knowledge of men and things, the sedulous practice of the art of composition, the study of purer morals, had not been without their fuU CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SCH 494 SCH effect. Increase of years had done something for him ; diligence had done much more. The ebullience of youth is now chastened into the steadfast energy of manhood ; the wild enthu- siast, that suurned at the errors of the world, has now become the enlightened moralist, that laments their necessity, o endeavors to find out their remedy. A corresponding alteration is visible in the external form of the work, in its plot and diction. The plot is contrived with great ingenuity, embodying the result of much study, both dramatic and historical. The lan- guage is blank verse, not prose, as in the former works ; it is more careful and regular, less ambitious in its object, but more certain of at- taining it. Schiller's mind had now reached its full stature : he felt and thought more justly ; he could better express what he felt and thought." "The tragedy of Carlos was received with immediate and universal approbation. In the closet and on the stage, it excited the warmest applauses 'equally among the learned and un- learned. Schiller's expectations had not been* so high; he knew both the excellences and the faults of his work : but he had not anticipated that the former would be recognised so instan- taneously. The pleasure of this new celebrity came upon him, therefore, heightened by sur- prise. Had dramatic eminence been his sole object, he might now have slackened his exer- tions ; the public had already ranked him as the first of their writers in that favorite depart- ment. But this limited ambition was not his moving principle ; nor was his mind of that sort for which rest is provided in this world. The primary disposition of his nature urged him to perpetual toil : the great aim of his life, the unfolding of his mental powers, was one of those which admit but a relative, not an absolute jress. New ideas of perfection arise as the tier have been reached ; the student is al- ways attaining, never has attained. " Schiller's worldly circumstances, too, were of a kind well calculated to prevent excess of quietism. He was still drifting at large on the tide of life : he was crowned with laurels, but without a home. His heart, warm and affec- tionate, fitted to enjoy the domestic blessings which it longed for, was allowed to form no permanent attachment : he felt that he was unconnected, solitary in the world ; cut off' from the exercise of his kindlier sympathies; or if tasting such pleasures, it was ' snatching them rather than partaking of them calmly.' The vulgar desire of wealth and station never entered his mind for an instant ; but as years progrei former were added to his age. the delights of peace and continuous comfort were fast becoming more acceptable than any other ; and he looked with anxiety to have a resting-place amid his wan- derings, to be a man among his fellowmen. " For all these wishes Schiller saw that the only chance of fulfilment depended on un- wearied perseverance in his literary occupations. Yet though his activity was unabated, and the calls on it -were increasing rather than diminish- ed, its direction was gradually changing. The drama had long been stationary, and of late been falling in Ins estimation ; the difficulties of the art, as he viewed it at present, had been over- come, and new conquests invited him in other quarters. The latter part of Carlos he had written as a task rather than a pleasure; he contemplated no farther undertaking connected with the stage. For a time, indeed, he seems to have wavered among a multiplicity of enter- prises; now solicited to this, and now to that, without being able to fix decidedly on any. The restless ardor of his mind is evinced by the number and variety of his attempts ; its fluctua- tion by the circumstance that all of them are short in extent, or left in the state of fragments. Of the former kind are his lyrical productions, many of which were composed about this period, during intervals from more serious labors. The character of these performances is such as his former writings give us reason to expect. With a deep insight into life, and a keen and comprehensive sympathy with its sorrows and enjoyments, there is combined that impetuosity of feeling, that pomp of thought and imagery which belong peculiarly to Schiller. If he had now left the drama, it was clear that his mind was still overflowing with the elements of poetry ; dwelling amTmg the grandest concep- tions, and the boldest or finest emotions ; think- ing intensely and profoundly, but decorating its th')Ughts with those graces, which other facul- ties "than the understanding are required to aftbrd. With these smaller pieces. Schiller oc- cupied himself at intervals of leisure through- out the remainder of his life. Some of them are to be classed among the finest efforts of his genius. The Walk, the Son" of the Bell, contain exquisite delineations of the fortunes and history of man ; his Rittcr von Toageiiliurg, his Cranes of Ilnjcus, his Ufro and Leander, are among the most poetical and moving ballads to be found in anv huiL r i' : '2< > ." Schiller now turned fab attention to history, his first performance in this department, being The Revolt of the Netherlands, unfortunately HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SCH 495 SCH a fragment, but written in an exceedingly pure style, and displaying throughout a most pene- trating and philosophical spirit. Of his habits the following is an interesting account. " He wrote and thought with an impetuosity ' beyond what nature always could endure. His j intolerance of interruptions first put him on the j plan of studying by night; an alluring but per- nicious practice, which began at Dresden, and was never afterwards forsaken. His recrea- j tions breathed a similar spirit : he loved to be j much alone, and strongly moved. The banks of the Elbe were the favorite resort of his j mornings; here, wandering in solitude amid j groves and lawns, and green and beautiful ! places, he abandoned his mind to delicious | musings ; watched the fitful current of his 1 thoughts, as they came sweeping through his soul in their vague, fantastic, gorgeous Ibrms; pleased himself with the transient images of ! memory and hope; or meditated on the cares and studies which had lately been employing, : and were again soon to employ him. At times, he might be seen, floating on the river in a gondola, feasting himself with the loveliness cf earth and sky. He delighted most to be there, when tempests were abroad : his unquiet spirit found a solace in the expression of his own unrest on the face of Nature ; danger lent a charm to his situation ; he felt in harmony with ; the scene, when the rack was sweeping storm- i fully across tlie heavens, and the forests were [ sounding in the breeze, and the river was rol- I ling its chafed waters into wild eddying heaps. "Yet before the darkness summoned him exclusively to his tasks, Schiller commonly de- voted a portion of the day to the pleasures of society. Could he have found enjoyment in i the flatteries of admiring hospitality, his present fame would have procured them for him in : abundance. But these things were not to Schiller's taste. Flis opinion of the" flesh-flies " of Leipzig we have already seen ; he retained the same sentiments throughout all his life. The idea of being what we call a lion is offen- sive enough to any man, of not more than com- mon vanity, and less than common understand- ing : it was doubly offensive to him. His prfde and his modesty alike forbade it. The delicacy of his nature, aggravated into shyness by his education and his habits, rendered situa- tions of display more than usually painful to him ; the digho pratercimthim was a sort of celebrity he was far from coveting. In the cir- cles of fashion, he appeared unwillingly, and seldom to advantage : their glitter and parade 42* were foreign to his disposition : their strict cere- monial cramped the play of his mind. Hem- med in, as by invisible fences, among the intri- cate barriers of etiquette, so feeble, so inviolable, he felt constrained and helpless; alternately chagrined and indignant. It was the giant among pigmies ; Gulliver, in Lilliput, tied down by a thousand packthreads. But there were more congenial minds, with whom he could associate ; more familiar scenes, in which he found the pleasures he was seeking. Here Schil- ler was himself; frank, unembarrassed, pliant to the humor of the hour. His conversation was delightful, abounding at once in rare and sim- ple charms. Besides the intellectual riches which it carried with it, there was a flow of kindliness and unaffected good humor, which can render dulness itself agreeable. Schiller had many friends in Dresden, who loved him as a man while they admired him as a writer. Their intercourse was of the kind he liked, sober, as well as free and mirthful. It was the careless, calm, honest effusion of his feelings that he wanted ; not the noisy tumults and coarse delirium of dissipation. For this, under any of its forms, he at no time showed the small- est relish." In 1789, Schiller, chiefly through the interest of his friend Goethe, was appointed Professor of History at the University of Jena, a few miles from the town of Weimar. He was then thirty years old, and married von Lengefeld of Rudol- stadt, to whom he had been engaged gome time before. In 1791 he published his History of the Thiity Years' War. An ardent admirer of Shakspeare, he thus writes in 1797 ; " I have just been reading the plays of Shak- speare, which treat of the war between the two roses; and now, after finishing Richard the Third, am filled with a real wonder. This is one of the sublimest of tragedies, and at this moment I cannot name even another of Shakspeaie's that is superior to it. The great destinies prepared in the preceding pieces are here accomplished after a truly great fashion, and according to the most sublime conception. That the subject excludes all that is feminine, tender, sentimen- tal, adds very much to the high effect : all in it is energetic and grand : nothing common disturbs the aesthetic emotion : one enjoys, as it were, the pure form of the dread tragic. A high Nemesis presides over the piece, the conscious- ness of which penetrates the mind from the be- ginning to the end. It is to be wondered at, how the poet always succeeds in forcing the CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SCH 496 SCH unpoetic matter to render up poetic booty ; and now skilfully he represents that which cannot be directly represented; 1 refer to his art in using symbols, where the reality cannot be exhibited. No play of Shakspeare reminds me so strongly ot'the Greek tragedy." Wallepstein, a drama in three parts, which cost Schiller the labor of two years, was follow- ed speedily by Mary Stuart, a work of great power, but not equalling the play which im- mediately preceded it. As there is no English version of Mary Stuart, the following anony- mous translation of Ciiieen Elizabeth's soliloquy previous to her signing the death-warrant for the execution of the queen of Scots, may be ac- ceptable as giving some idea of the tragic in- terest of the draraa from which it is extracted. Subjection to my subjects ! O, most vile Of servitudes ! I'm worn and sick at heart, With fawning on the idol I despise. When shall 1 sit upon my throne in freedom? No longer fluttering men's wishes, whims To win their praise ; nor sueing for support Tea vile rout best managed by a juggler. Ah, he who h is a puhlic lie must please, Call him not king he, only he, deserves The name, whose deed asks no man's commendation. Why have I reigned in law and justice ever, Quelling my own desires to find, when now A deed despotic must, ay, must be done, A shackle on my hands? Before the model Myself have raised, I shrink, and am condemned. II id I, like Spanish Mary, ruled these realms With iron hand, the queenly blood, which now I thirst for, might be shed and none dare murmur. Was't then my own free choice, this luckless justice? No 't was the otFspriusj of necessity The stern necessity; which sways e'en princes. This making Law tJie partner of my rcitrn Has yained my people's loec. Wtiat, but that love, CotU.l, or ca-i nom, support me on my Utrnne 1 A throne disputed, envied, circled in, Assaulted by a Most of enemies ! Europe band! all her powers to destroy me. On my po:>r hi-ad Rome's vengeful pontiff hurls The excommunicating Innn : great France Salutes me with a Judas kiss : fast, fast, O'er ocean birind a thousand giant ships, To pour the Spaniards wrath unquenchable On this lone isle, arid its devoted queen. Here then I SI-HI rl a woman 'gainst a world. In UIH extremity, I must secure Mv subjects' f'lithfiilness, at any hazard ; The b-irenes^ of my title to the "crown I must deck out with certain royal virtue* : The min*, which my own father's words have fixed Upon my birth in vain, in vain I seek To hide them ! Uiisy-finiKrcd hate, nil) by, I/iys them all h'lre ; an 1 ever li.dds before My biased eyes, this Stuart threatening spectre Thwarting, and maddening O, I'll not endure it. I nvist I will have peace. Her head shall fall. She is the fury of uiy life a spirit Of torment conjured up by Fate against me ! Where'er some lonely flower of hope or joy Blooms in my path there coils this snake of Hell. My fate's whole bhickne-s centres in one name The freezer of my friends, the thief, who hath stolen My lover's heart, the pest, that, day and night, Haunts me, and now is pulling me to eartii All blister on rny lips in that one name 'Tis MARY STUART. Puree the earth of her, And I am free free as the mountain air. [Jl Ions pause. In what succeeds the Queen re- fers to a late interview nilh her prisoner.} With what a look of scorn she eyed me ! Ha ! Didst think to blast me? Wretch! Poor, powerless wretch ! Thy glance kills not. I wield a better weapon : Its stroke is death ! it strikes, and where art thou ? [Atlcancing to the table with a quid; s'~p. and seizing the pen.] A bastard, am I ? True, while thou dost live. But babbling doubts of my imperial binh Perish with thee. (Hi it thou my subjects' sight They doubt, compare, prefer, rebel, no more, And I am hailed at once their true-born queen. [Sire sirrn.1 the paper with rapid and firm strokes; then drops the pen and starts back with a look of terror.] Mary Stuart, was followed by the Maid of Orleans, the Bride of Messina, and William Tell. Schiller died in the spring of 1805. at the age of forty-five, in the full vigor of his in- tellectual powers. SCHOMI3EKG, Charles, esteemed by Louis XIII for his many important services rendered to the crown of "France. He first signalized himself at the siege of Soimnierie. in Laninie- doc ; showed great conduct at the attack of Pas de Suse, and taking of Privas. in II'.:*) ; accom- panied the king in his voyage to Savov, in 1630 ; was dangerously wounded at the battle of Rou- vroi, in 163'2; but afterwards worsted the Span- iards in Roussillon ; forced them to raise the siege of Leucate : overthrew them at Canet and Sigean.in 163:>; relieved llhes, in Catalonia, in 1640 ; and took Perpignan and tSaluz/o in 1G42. He died in lli">li. in the 5iitli year of his a'port of the populace, and be exposed to the where he was received with the most unbound- malice and envy of disappointed ambition, ed applause, honored with a triumph, and dig- Sometime after Scipio died in the place of his nified with the appellation of Africanus. Here retreat, about ItM years before Christ, in the he enjoyed for some time the tranquillity and 43th year of his age ; and so great an aversion the honors which his exploits merited, but in did he express, as he expired, for the depravity him also as in other great men, fortune showed of the Romans, and the ingratitude of their sen- herself inconstant. Scipio offended the popu- ators, that he ordered his bones not to be con- lace in wishing to distinguish the senators from veyed to Rome. They were accordingly in- the rest of the people at the public exhibitions ; humated at Liternum, where his wife ./Emilia, and when he canvassed for the Ahtsulship for the daughter of Paulus jEmilins. who fell at the two of his friends, he had the moRification to battle of Canntr. raised a mausoleum on his see his application alighted, and the honors tomb, and placed upon it hfo statue, with that which he claimed, bestowed on a man of no of the poet Ennius, who jff been the coinpan- character, and recommended by neither abilities ion of his peace and of his retirement, nor meritorious actions. SCIPIO, Lucius Cornelius, surnamed Asiati HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SCI 499 SCI cus. accompanied his brother Africanus in his expeditions in Spain and Africa. He was re- warded with the consulship, A. U. C. 504, for his services to the state, and he was empowered to attack Antiochus, king of Syria, who had de- clared war against the Romans. Lucius was accompanied in this campaign by his brother Africanus; and by his own valor, and by the advice of the conqueror of Hannibal, he soon routed the enemy, and in a battle near the city of Sardes he killed 50,000 foot and 4,000 horse. Peace was soon after settled by the submis- sion of Antiochus, and the conqueror, at his re- turn home, obtained a triumph, and the sur- name of Asiaticus. He did not, however, long enjoy his prosperity ; Cato, after the death of Africanus, turned his fury against Asiaticus, and the two Petilli, his devoted favorites, pre- sented a petition to the people, in which Ihey prayed that an inquiry might be made to know what money had been received from Antiochus and his allies The petition was instantly re- ceived, and Asiaticus, charged to have suffered himself to be corrupted by Antiochus, was sum- moned to appear before the tribunal of Teren- tius Culeo, who was on this occasion created prastor. The judge, who was an inveterate enemy to the family of the Scipios, soon found Asiaticus, with his two lieutenants and his quaestor, guilty of having received, the first 6,000 pounds weight of gold, and 480 pounds weight of silver, and the others nearly an equal sum, from the mon- arch against whom, in the name of the Roman people, they were enjoined to make war. Im- mediately they were condemned to pay large fines ; but while the others gave security, Scipio declared that he had accounted to the public for all the money which he, had brought from Asia, and therefore that he was innocent. For this obstinacy Scipio was dragged to pri- son, but his cousin Nasica pleaded his cause be- fore the people, and the prsetor instantly ordered the goods i if the prisoner to be seized and con- fiscated. The sentence was executed, but the effects of Scipio were insufficient to pay the fine, and it was the greatest justification of his inno- cence, that whatever was found in his house had never been in the possession of Antiochus or his subjects. This, however, did not totally liber- ate him ; he was reduced to poverty, and re- fused to accept the (rfju: of his friends and of his clients. Some titr^^fcr he was appointed to settle the disputes b^^^en Eumenes and Seleu- cus.and at his return the Romans, ashamed of their severity towards him. rewarded his merit with such uncommon liberality, that Asiaticus was enabled to celebrate games in honor of his victory over Antiochus, for ten successive days, at liis own expense. SCIPIO Nasica was son of Cneius Scipio, and cousin to Scipio AfricanUs. He was refused the consulship, though supported by the inter- est and the fame of the conqueror of Hannibal ; but he afterwards obtained it, and in that hon- orable office conquered the Boii, and gained a triumph. He was also successful in an expe- dition which he undertook in Spain. When the statue of Cybele was brought to Rome from Phrygia, the Roman senate delegated one of their body, who was the most remarkL-jle for the purity of his manners and the innocence of his life, to go and meet the goddess in the har- bor of Ostia. Nasica was the object of their choice, and as such he was enjoined to bring the statue of the goddess to Rome with the greatest pomp and solemnity. Nasica also distinguished himself by the active part which he took in confuting the accusations laid against the two Scipios, Africanus and Asiaticus. There was also ano- ther of the same name, who distinguished him- self by his enmity against the Gracchi, to whom he was nearly related SCIPIO, Publius jEmilianus, son of Paulus, the conqueror of Perseus, was adopted by the son of Scipio Africanus. ^Emilianus first ap- peared in the Roman armies under his father, and afterwards distinguished himself as a legion ary tribune in the Spanish provinces, where he killed a Spaniard of gigantic stature, and ob tained a mural crown at the siege of Intercatia. He passed into Africa to demand a reinforce- ment from king Masinissa, the ally of Rome, and he was the spectator of a long and bloody battle which was fought between that monarch and the Carthaginians, and which soon produced the third Punic war. Some time after, ^Emili- anus was made edile, and next appointed con- sul, though under the age required for that im- portant office. He was empowered to finish the war with Carthage, and as he was permitted by the sen- ate to choose his colleague, he took with him his friend Lselius, whose father, of the same name, had formerly enjoyed the confidence and shared the victories of the first Africanus. The siege of Cartilage was already begun, but the operations or the Romans were not continued with vigor. Scipio had no sooner appeared be- fore the walls of the enemy, than every com- munication with the land was cut ofi', and that CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SCI 500 SCO they might not have the command of the sea, a stupendous mole was thrown across the harbor, with immense labor and expense. This, which might have disheartened the most active ene- my, rendered the Carthaginians more eager in the cause of freedom and independence. All the inhabitants, without distinction of rank, age, or sex, employed themselves without cessation to dig another harbor, and to build and equip another fleet. In a short time, in spite of the vigilance and activity of ^Emilianus, the Ro- mans were astonished to see another harbor formed, and 50 gallies suddenly issuing under sail, ready for the engagement. This unexpected fleet, by immediately attack- ing the Roman ships, might have gained the victory; but the delay of the Carthaginians proved fatal to their cause, and the enemy had sufficient time to prepare themselves. Scipio soon got possession of a small eminence in the harbor ; and, by the success of his subse- quent operations, he broke open one of the gates of the city, and entered the streets, where he made his way by fire and sword. The surren- der of above 50,000 men was followed by the re- duction of the citadel, and the total submission of Carthage, B. C. 147. The captive city was set on fire ; and though Scipio was obliged to demolish its very walls, to obey the orders of the Romans, yet he wept bit- terly over the melancholy and tragical scene ; and in bewailing the miseries of Carthage, he expressed his fears lest Rome, in her turn, in some future age, should exhibit such a dreadful conflagration.. The return of jEmilianus to Rome was that of another conqueror of Hanni- bal, and like him he was honored with a mag- nificent triumph, and received the surname of Africanus. He was chosen consul a second time, and appointed to finish the war which the Romans had hitherto carried on without success or vigorous exertions, against Numantia. The fall of Numantia was more noble than that of the capital of Africa, and the conqueror of Car- thage obtained the victory only when the ene- mies had been consumed by famine or by self- destruction, B. C. 133. For his conquests in Spain, ^Emilianus was honored with a second triumph, and with the surname of Jfumantinus. Yet his popularity was short; and by telling the people that the murder of their favorite, his brother-in-law, Gracchua, was lawful, since he was turtmlent, and inimical to the peace of the republic, Scipio incurred the displeasure of the tribunes, and was received with hisses. His authority for a mo- meat quelled their sedition, when he reproach- ed them for their cowardice, and exclaimed, " Factious wretches, do you think th.it your clamors can intimidate me ; me, whom the fury of your enemies never daunted? Is this the gratitude that you owe to my fattier Paulus, who conquered Macedonia, and to me ? With- out my family, you were slaves. Is this the respect you owe to your deliverers ? Is this your affection?" This firmness silenced the murmurs of the assembly, and some time after, Scipio retired from the .clamors of Rome to Caieta, where, with his friend Lasiuis, he passed the rest of his time in innocent pleasure and amusement, in diversions which had pleased them when children. He afterward returned to Rome, and again engaged in public affairs. This active part of Scipio was seen with pleasure by the friends of the republic, and not onlv the senate, but also the citizens, the Latinsj and neighboring states, conducted their illustrious friend and patron to his house. It seemed also the universal wish that the troubles might be quieted by the election of Scipio to the dictator- ship ; and many presume that that honor would be conferred upon him. In this, however, the expectations of Rome were frustrated : Scipio was found dead in his bed, to the astonishment of the world ; and those who inquired for the causes of this sudden death, perceived violent marks on his neck, and concluded that he had been strangled, B. C. 128. SCLA VONIA, a province in the south of the Austrian empire. It formed, under the Ro- mans, a part of the ancient Illyria, and derived its present name from a tribe of Sclavi. or Slavi, who settled here in the Glh century. It was overrun by the Turks, and continued in their possession about 170 years. The Franks, in their military successes before and during the age of Charlemagne, often encountered Sclavo- nic tribes, and, carrying them into captivity, the name of Slave, or Esclave, became synony- mous with captive. SCOTLAND ; a country of Europe forming the northern division of Great Britain, contain- ing 2-J,600 square miles, and 2,365,700 inhabi- tants. It is divided by the Grampian mountains into two parts, the Highlands and Lowlands. HIGHLAND COUNTIES. Inverness. Orkney (Isles) Caithness Sutherland Nairn Murray Banf Ross Cromarty Argyle deen :ardine ngus Perth Fife HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SCO 501 SCO LOWLAND COUNTIES. Kinross Ayr Clackmannan Wigton Stirling Lanark Dumbarton Peebles West Lothian Selkirk Mid Lothian Roxbprgh East Lothian Dumfries Berwick Kircudbright. Renfrew Scotland contains many beautiful lakes, or lochs. The southern part of Scotland is agree- ably diversified, but the northern contains many mountains, with few fertile valleys. Bennevis, one of the summits of the Grampian mountains, rises to the height of 4,387 feet. The chief towns are Glasgow, Edinburgh, Paisley, Aber- deen, Dundee, Greenock, Perth, Dumfermline, Inverness. Falkirk, Kilmarnock, and Montrose. Scotland is noted for its manufactures, the prin- cipal of which are cotton, linen, woollen, and iron. The Scotch are Presbyterians. The universities of Edinburgh, Glasgow, St. An- drew's, and Aberdeen, enjoy great celebrity; and by the number and excellence of common schools, the Scotch are well-informed. This part of the island of Great Britain was ancie'ritly called Caledonia, and the inhabitants Caledones, who were of Celtic original, and probably those tribes of the Britons, who had wandered the farthest northward. In the fourth century we find them distinguished into Scots and Picts. In 85, Agricola, the Roman gene- ral, attempted to conquer this part of the island, but did not effect the conquest of more than that part which is south of the Forth and Clyde. In 121 Adrian relinquished more, building a wall from the Solway Frith to the river Tyne. In 144 the Romans extended their boundaries again as far as the wall of Agricola: but Seve- rus, though he invaded the whole country in 208. thought proper to adhere to the boundary of Adrian. Upon the Romans quitting this island in 410, the Scots regained the possession of all that is now called Scotland, and made excursions very far southward, though without retaining their conquests. About 839 the Picts are said to have been entirely reduced by Kennet II, the first sole king of all Scotland. Donald, brother to Ken- net, reigned four years, and was succeeded by Constantine. his nepltw. son of Kennet, who being made prisoner by a party of Danes, was beheaded by the enemy in a cave, after- wards called the Devil's Cave. He was suc- ceeded by his brother Eth, who, after a reign of one year, was followed by Gregory, surnamed the Great. The king of Ireland being a minor, his authority was usurped by two factious no- blemen. Gregory therefore" passed over into that country as guardian of the young king, and after appointing a regency, he returned into Scotland, where he finished a life of action and of glory at Dun-o-deer, in the Garioch, in 892. and was buried with his ancestors at Icolm- kill. Donald VI, the worthy successor of Gregory, rendered considerable service to Alfred, king of England, in his wars with the Danes. He was succeeded by Constantine III, who, depart- ing from the policy of his predecessors, entered into an alliance with the Danes, in the hope of being able to extend his dominions by their help. But he was disappointed. After failing in an expedition against England, he resigned his crown to Malcolm, and spent the remainder of his life in the solitude of the cloister. The connection of the English and Scots against the Danes, was continued under Indulf, who defeated these freebooters in many bloody en- gagements. His successor Duff" resigned his principality of Cumberland to Colin, the son of Indulf; but the latter, not contented with his domain, excited various insurrections in the kingdom, and at last DufF was either slain or driven into exile. Colin indulged in the greatest licentiousness, and was succeeded by Kennet III, the son of Malcolm, who vigorously prosecuted the war against the Britons of Strathcluyd, till at last their principality was finally subjected to the dominion of the Scots. However, Kennet was assassinated, and the throne was usurped by Constantine the Bold, who fell in an engage- ment with Grime, the son of Duff, in !> bring a formidable force into the field, notwith- standing all the efforts he could make. The fortunes of Charles being now ruined in England, he was reduced to the desperate ex- pedient of seeking refuge in the heart of an army which was in open rebellion ag.xinst him. The immediate .consequences of this fatal step were orders expedited to his adherents to lay down their arms. Montrose obeyed, and retir- ed to France. The English parliament demand- ing of the Scottish army the person of the king, they preferred delivering him up rather than go to war in his defence. The kingdom was, however, divided into two parties, and the duke of Hamilton and the majority in parliament, in opposition to the church, succeeded in raising a numerous army to support the king against Cromwell and his adherents, who appeared to entertain designs totally hostile both to the king's person and government: with this army they set forward to invade England, and to reJ- tore the king to his ancient rights. But the violent party considered it the height of impiety to fight for an uncovenanted king. The Scotch troops, not daring to unite them- selves with the English royalists who had re- fused the covenant, both armies were easily destroyed by Cromwell, who, after exercising the severest vengeance against the friends of Charles in Scotland, returned in triumph to England, and brought Charles to public trial and execution. The covenanters now declar- ed for the young king, Charles II, then in Holland, on condition of his becoming the pu- pil of Presbyterianism, and taking the covenant. Montrose was despatched to the Orkneys, to make an attempt lor the king's restoration on better terms; but being attacked by a much superior force, he was defeated, and put to death in 1650. With him were executed Spotswood, Hay, Sibbald. and Ury of Urry, all friends to the royal cause. Charles II now sailed from Holland for the Scottish coast, and threw himself entirely into the hands of the covenanters, who required him to sign the covenant, and exhorted him to be faithful to that holy confederacy. Cromwell inarched into Scotland against tfie now royal covenanters, whom he attacked, and defeated at Dunbar. Notwithstanding this defeat, the roy- alists in Scotland increased. Charles was crowned at Scone on the 1st of January, 1651 ; but he was obliged to take the covenant, and to undergo other mortifications. Cromwell, however, succeeded in an attempt to cut off the royalists from all their communica- tions with the north and the Highlands ; and when they invaded England, defeated them at Worcester. Charles escaped, and at last took shipping from the coast of Sussex, and arrived safe at Feschamp in Normandy. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SCO 507 SCO After the restoration of Charles II, in 1GGO, the Parliament was opened with unusual splen- dor at Edinburgh ; and in the proceedings of this assembly, the royal prerogative was exalted to a pitch of despotism. Deprived at last of public worship, the persecuted Presbyterians rose in open rebellion. On the Pentland hills they were met by the king's forces, under Dal- ziel, and were routed with considerable slaugh- ter, at the first onset. Commotions and insur- rections multiplied during the whole reign of Charles II, who attempted, sometimes by gentle means, and sometimes by acts of severity, to crush Presbyterianism, and to induce the people to substitute another form of church govern- ment. Though the people of England, as well as the Parliament of Scotland, had made a surrender to the crown of all their constitutional rights, in 1685, the history of the reign of James VII proves how little dependence is to be placed on those professions. James was not ignorant of the intrigues and ambition of his son-in-law, the prince of Orange, with whom Monmouth, Argyle, Dalrymple, afterwards earl of Stair, Burnet, soon to be bishop of Sarum, and the English and Scotch exiles, found refuge. The insurrections occasioned by Argyle and Mon- mouth widened the breach between the unfor- tunate monarch and his disaffected subjects. James proposed to his Scottish Parliament a relaxation of the penal laws against the Roman Catholics ; but the proposal was received with such coldness, that the chancellor thought it prudent to drop the bill entirely. However, the court issued declarations in favor of Presbyte- rians, of Quakers, of Roman Catholics, and at last " suspended all penal and sanguinary laws for nonconformity to the religion established by law." The Presbyterians of Edinburgh, and the ministers all over Scotland, gladly accepted of this toleration, and thanked the king for his protection. In 1638, James, finding himself abandoned by his friends, fled ; and his constrained flight was pronounced an abdication of the throne of Scotland. Indifferent as to modes of religion, William treated with Presbyterians as well as Episcopalians. The throne was declar- ed vacant by the convention ; and William ac- cepted of the crown tendered to him by a deputa- tion from the states, and, with his spouse, took a coronation oath. By a majority of the votes in Parliament, William was "reluctantly prevail- ed on to repeal the constitution of the lords of articles, to abandon the patronage and the 43* supremacy over the church, and to re-establish Presbytery. William, after a fruitless attempt to gain the chieftains by pecuniary offers, issued a procla mation denouncing military execution against all who should not before the expiration of the year take an oath of fealty to him. William dying in 1702. the accession of queen Anne gave new hopes to the pretender, son of the late king James, and his adherents. William had never dissolved the Convention Parliament. The members of this Parliament assembled, and empowered the queen to nomi- nate commissioners for treating of an union. The commissioners repaired to London, to treat with those appointed in England. At length, the whole of the articles of the union were completed and signed by all the Scottish com- missioners excepting one, who was Lockhart of Carnwarth. Notwithstanding the strong op- position which this measure experienced, on Thursday the IGth of January, 1707, the whole articles of the union were, without any material alteration, approved by a legal majority in Par- liament ; and the lord high commissioner, touch- ing the act with the sceptre, sanctioned it with that consent of the crown, which was requisite to give it in Scotland the force of a law. The treaty of union, thus finally ratified by the Sco- tish Parliament, was immediately transmitted to London, where it was equally honored by the sanction of the Parliament and the royal consent. On the 28th of April, the Scottish Parliament was dissolved, never more to be as- sembled; and the Scots and English were hence forth to be one people. KINGS OF SCOTLAND. Fergus I. B. C. 330 Feritharis 305 Mainus 290 Dornadilla 261 Nolhatus 233 Reutherus 213 Reuthra 187 Thereus 173 Josina 161 Finnanus 137 Durstus 107 Evenus I. 98 Gillus 79 Evenus II. 77 Ederus 60 Evenus III. 12 Metallanus 5 Caractacus A. D. 32 Corbred I. 54 CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SCO Dardanus Corbred II. Luctacus Mogaldus Conarus Ethodius I. Satrael Donald I. Ethodius II. Achiro Nathalocus Findocus Donald II. Donald III. Crathilinthus Finchormarchus Romaclms Angusianus or Fethelmachus F.ugenius I. Fergus II. Eugenius II. Dongard Cons tan tine I. Congale 1. Goran I. Eugenius III. Congale II. Kinnatellus Aidan Kennet I. Eugenius IV. Ferchard II. Donald IV. Ferchard I. Maldwin Eugenius V. Eugenius VI. Amberchelet Eugenius VII. Mordac Etfinius Eugenius VIII. Fergus III. Solvatius Achaius Congale III. Dongal Alpin Kennet II. Donald V. Constantine II. Ethus Gregory Donald VI. Constantine III 503 70 72 104 107 142 161 193 197 216 230 242 252 262 263 277 320 368 371 373 376 413 419 451 457 479 501 545 548 568 569 604 606 622 632 646 664 684 GH7 697 698 715 730 761 763 766 767 819 824 831 834 854 858 874 876 892 903 SCO Malcolm I. 938 Indulphus 958 Duphus 9fW Cullenus 972 Kennet III. 973 Constantine IV. 994 Grimus 996 Malcolm II. 10U4 Duncan 1034 Macbeth 1040 Malcolm III. 1057 Donald VII. 1093 Duncan II. 1095 Donald VII. again 1095 Interregnum 1096 Edgar 101)7 Alexander I. 1107 David I. 1124 Malcolm IV. 1153 William 1165 Alexander II. 1214 Alexander III. 1240 Interregnum 1245 John Baliol 121)2 Robert I. 1306 David II. 1329 Edward Baliol 1332 David II. again 1341 Robert II. 1371 John Robert 1390 James I. 1405 James II. - 1437 James III. 1460 James IV. 1488 James V. 1513 Mary Stuart 1542 James VI. 1567 SCOTT, sir Walter, baronet, the eldest son of Walter Scott, was born in the city of Edin- burgh, Scotland, Aug. 15, 1771 . It is proper to remark that his mother was a lady of talent, the friend of Burns and Ramsay, and the author of some meritorious verses. Sir Walter was edu- cated at the high school of Edinburgh, and at the university. At an early age, he was cele- brated as a story-teller, " when the applause of his companions was his recompense for the dis- grace and punishments which the future ro- mance-writer incurred by being idle himself, and keeping others idle, during hours that should have be^n employed on their tasks." Sir Walter Scott's account of his birth and circumstances is characterized by his usual mod- esty. " My birth, without giving the least preten- sion to distinction, was that of a gentleman, and HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SCO 509 SCO connected me with several respectable families and accomplished persons. My education had been a good one. although I was deprived of its full benefit by indifferent health, just at the pe- riod when I ought to have been most sedulous in improving it. The young men with whom I was brought up, and lived most familiarly, were those who, from opportunities, birth and talents, might be expected to make the greatest advances in the prol'ession to which we were all destined ; and I have the pleasure still to pre- serve rny youthful intimacy with no inconside- rable number of them, whom their merit has carried forward to the highest honors of their profession. Neither was I in a situation to be embarrassed by the res angusta domi, which might have otherwise interrupted my progress in a profession in which progress is proverbially slow. I enjoyed a moderate degree of business for my standing, and the friendship of more than one person of consideration efficiently disposed to aid my views in life. The private fortune, also, which I might expect, and finally inherit- ed, from my family, did not, indeed, amount to affluence, but placed me considerably beyond all apprehension of want. I mention these partic- ulars merely because they are true. Many better men than myself have owed their rise from in- digence and obscurity to their own talents,which were, doubtless, much more adequate to the task of raising them than any which I possess. Al- though it would be absurd and ungracious in me to deny that I owe to literature many marks of distinction to which I could not otherwise have aspired, and particularly that of securing the acquaintance, and even the friendship, of many remarkable persons of the age, to whom I might not otherwise have made my way ; it would on the other hand, be ridiculous to affect gratitude to the public favor, either for my position in so- ciety, or the means of supporting it with decen- cy matters which had been otherwise secured under the usual chances of human affairs. Thus much I have thought it necessary to say, upon a subject which is, after all, of very little conse- quence to any one but myself." In 1792 he was called to the bar. Of his success in his profession, and the nature of his studies and pursuits, we will give his own ac- count, taken from one of his interesting prefaces. " It may be readily supposed that the attempts which I made in literature had been unfavorable to my success at the bar. The goddess Themis is, at Edinburgh, and I suppose every where else, of a peculiarly jealous disposition. She will not readily consent to share her authority, and sternly demands from her votaries not only that real duty be carefully attended to and dis- charged, but that. a certain air of business shall be observed even in the midst of total idleness. It is prudent, if not absolutely necessary, in a young barrister, to appear completely engrossed by his profession; however destitute of employ- ment, he may be, he ought to preserve, if pos- sible, the appearance of full occupation. He should at least seem perpetually engaged among his law papers, dusting them, as it were; and, as Ovid advises the fair, Si nullus erit pulvis, tamen excute nnlliim. Perhaps such extremity of attention is more es- pecially required, considering the great number of counsellors who are called to the bar, and how very small a proportion of them are finally dis- posed, or find encouragement, to follow the law as a profession. Hence the number of deserters is so great, that the least lingering look behind occasions a young novice to be set down as one of the intending fugitives. Certain it is, that the Scottish Themis was at this time peculiarly jealous of any flirtation with the Muses, on the part of those who had ranged themselves under her banners. This was probably owing to her consciousness of the superior attractions of her rivals. Of late, however, she has relaxed in some instances in this particular ; an eminent example of which has been shown in the case of my friend, Mr. Jeffrey, who, after long con- ducting one of the most influential literary pe- riodicals of the age, with unquestionable ability, has been, by the general consent of his brethren, recently elected to be their Dean of Faculty, or President, being the highest acknowledgment of his professional talents which they had it in their power to offer. But this is an incident much beyond the ideas of a period of thirty years' distance, when a barrister who really pos- sessed any turn for lighter literature, was at as much pains to conceal it, as if it had in reality been something to be ashamed of; and I could mention one instance in which literature and society have suffered loss, that jurisprudence might be enriched. Such, however, was not my case ; for the reader will not wonder that my open interference with matters of light literature di- minished my employment in the weightier mat- ters of the law. Nor did the solicitors, upon whose choice the council takes rank in his pro- fession, do me less than justice by regarding others among my contemporaries as fitter to discharge the duty due to their clients, than a young man who was taken up with running after ballads, whether Teutonic or national. My pro- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SCO 510 SCO fession and I, therefore, came to stand nearly upon the footincr on which honest Slender con- soled himself with having established with Mis- tress Anne Page : " There was no great love in the beginning, and it pleased Heaven to decrease it on farther acquaintance/' I became sensible that the time was come when I must either buckle myself resolutely to the " toil by day, the lamp by night," renouncing all the Delilans of my imagination, or bid adieu to the profession of the law, and hold another course. I confess my own inclination revolted from the more se- vere choice which might have been deemed by many the wiser alternative. As my transgres- sions had been numerous, my repentance must have been signalized by unusual sacrifices. I ought to have mentioned, that, since my four- teenth or fifteenth year, my health, originally delicate, had become extremely robust. From infancy I had labored under the infirmity of a severe lameness, but, as 1 believe is usually the case with men of spirit who suffer under personal inconveniences of this nature, I had, since the improvement of my health, in defiance of this incapacitating circumstance, distinguished my- self by the endurance of toil on foot or horseback, having often walked thirty miles a day, and rode upwards of a hundred, without stopping. In this manner I made many pleasant journeys through parts of the country then not very accessible, faining more amusement and instruction than have been able to acquire since I have travel- led in a more commodious manner. I practised most sylvan sports, also, with some success, and with great delight. But these pleasures must have been all resigned, or used with great mod- eration, had I determined to regain my station at the bar. It was even doubtful whether I could, with perfect character as a jurisconsult, retain a situation in a volunteer corps of cavalry, which I then held. The threats of invasion were at this time instant and menacing ; the call by Brit- ain on her children was universal, and was an- swered by many, who, like myself, consulted rather their will than their ability to bear arms. My services, however, were found useful in as- sisting to maintain the discipline of the corps, being the point on which their constitution ren- dered them most amenable to military criticism. In other respects the squadron was a fine one, consisting of handsome men, well mounted and armed at their own expense. My attention to the corps took up a great deal of time ; and while it occupied many of the happiest hours of my life, it furnished an additional reason for my re- lucUoce again to encounter the severe course of study indispensable to success in the juridical profession. On the other liand, my father, whose feelings might have been hurt by my quitting the bar, had been for two or three years dead ; so that I had no control to thwart my own inclination ; and my income being equal to all the comforts, and some of the elegancies, of life, I was not pressed to an irksome labor by necessity, that most powerful of motives; consequently,! was the more easily seduced to choose the employ- ment which was most agreeable. This was yet the easier, as in 1800 I had obtained the prefer- ment of Sheriff of Selkirkshire, about 300 a year in value, and which was the more agreeable to me, as in that county I had several friends and relations. But I did not abandon the pro- fession to which I had been educated, without certain prudential resolutions, which at the risk of some egotism, I will here mention ; not with- out the hope that they may be useful to voung persons who may stand in circumstances similar to those in which I then stood. In the first place, upon considering the lives and fortunes of per- sons who had given themselves up to literature, or to the task of pleasing the public, it seemed to me that the circumstances which chiefly af- fected their happiness and character were thoso from which Horace has bestowed upon authors the epithet of the irritable race. 'It requires no depth of philosophic reflection to perceive, that the petty warfare of Pope with the dunces of his period, could not have been carried on without his suffering the most acute torture, such as a man must endure from musquitoes,.by whose stings he suffers agony, although he can crush them in his grasp by myriads. Nor is it necessary to call to memory the many humiliating instances in which men of the greatest genius have, to avenge some pitiful quarrel, made themselves ridiculous during their lives, to become the still more degraded objects of pity to future times. Upon the whole, as I had no pretension to the genius of the distinguished persons who had fallen into such errors, I concluded there could be no occasion for imitating them in these mis- takes, or what I considered as such; and, in adopting literary pursuits as the principal occu- pation of my future life, I resolved, if possible, to avoid those weaknesses of temper which seem- ed to have most easily beset my more celebrated predecessors. With this view, it was my first resolution to keep, as far as was in my power, abreast of society ; continuing to maintain my place in general company, without yielding to the very natural temptation of narrowing myselt HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SCO 511 SCO to what is called literary society. By doing so, 1 imagined I should escape the besetting sin of listening to language which, from one motive or other, ascribes a very undue degree of conse- quence to literary pursuits; as if they were, in- deed, the business, rather than the amusement of life. The opposite course can only be com- pared to the injudicious conduct of one who pampers himself with cordial and luscious draughts, until he is unable to endure whole- some bitters. Like Gil Bias, therefore, I resolv- ed to stick by the society of my commis, instead of seeking that of a more literary cast; and to maintain my general interest in what was going on around me, reserving the man of letters for the desk and the library. My second resolution was a corollary from the first. I determined that, without shutting my ears to the voice of true criticism, I would pay no regard to that which assumes the form of satire. I therefore resolved to arm myself with the triple brass of Horace, against all the roving warfare of satire, parody, and sarcasm; to laugh if the jest was a good one; or, if otherwise, to let it hum and buzz it- self to sleep. It is to the observance of these rules (according to my best belief), that, after a life of thirty years engaged in literary labors of various kinds, I attribute my never having been entangled in any literary quarrel or controversy ; and, which is a more pleasing result, that I have been distinguished by the personal friendship of rny most approved "contemporaries of all par- ties. I adopted, at the same time, another reso- lution, on which it may doubtless be remarked, that it was well for me that I had it in my pow- er to do so, and that, therefore, it is a line of conduct which can be less generally applicable in other cases. Yet I fail not to record this part of my plan, convinced that, though it may not be in every one's power to adopt exactly the same resolution, he may nevertheless, by his own ex- ertions, in some shape or other, attain the object on which it was founded ; namely, to secure the means of subsistence, without relying exclusive- ly on literary talents. In this respect. I deter- mined that literature should be my staff, but not my crutch ; and that the profits of my labor, how- ever convenient otherwise, should not become necessary to my ordinary expenses. With this purpose I resolved, if the interest of my friends could so far favor me, to retire upon any of the respectable offices of the law, in which persons of that profession are glud to take refuge when they feel themselves, or are judged by others, incompetent to aspire to its higher offices and honors. Upon such an office an author might hope to retreat, without any perceptible altera- tion of circumstances, whenever the time should arrive that the public grew weary of his en- deavors to please, or he himself should tire of the occupation of authorship. At this period of my life I possessed so many friends capable of assisting me in this object of ambition, that I could hardly overrate my own prospects of ob- taining the moderate preferment to which I lim- ited my wishes: and, in fact, I obtained, in no long period, the reversion of a situation which completely met them." The preferment of which he here speaks was to the office of Sheriff of Selkirkshire, of about 300 a year in value. In 1806 he was appoint- ed a clerk of the session in Scotland. His first original productions were several ballads of great merit. Sir Walter thus notices the circum- stances which engaged him in literary pursuits. " During the last ten years of the eighteenth century, the art of poetry was at a remarkably low ebb in Britain. Hayley to whom fashion had some years before ascribed a higher degree of reputation than posterity has confirmed, had now lost his reputation for talent, though he still lived admired and respected as an amiable and accomplished man. The Bard of Memory slum- bered on his laurels, and he of Hope had scarce begun to attract his share of public attention. Cowper, a poet of deep feeling and bright ge- nius, was dead ; and even while alive, the hy- pochondria, which was his mental malady, im- peded his popularity. Burns, whose genius our southern neighbors could hardly yet compre- hend, had long confined himself to song- writing. Names which are now known and distinguished wherever the English language is spoken, were then only beginning to be mentioned; and, un- less among the small number of persons who habitually devote a part of their leisure to litera- ture, those of Southey, Wordsworth, and Cole- ridge, were but little known. The realms of Parnassus, like many a kingdom at the period, seemed to lie open to the first bold invader, whether he should be a daring usurper, or could show a legitimate title of sovereignly." " I had, indeed, tried the metrical translations which were occasionally recommended to us at the High School. I got credit for attempting to do what was enjoined, but very little for the mode in which the task was performed; and I used to feel not a little mortified when my ver- sions were placed in contrast with others of ad- mitted merit. At one period of my schoolboy days 1 was so far left to my own desires as to become guilty of verses on a thunder-storm, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SCO 512 SCO which were much approved of, until a malevo- lent critic sprung up, in the shape of an apoth- ecary's blue-buskiued wife, who affirmed that ray most sweet poetry was stolen from an old magazine. I never forgave the imputation, and even now I acknowledge some resentment against the poor woman's memory. She indeed accused me unjustly, when she said I had stolen my brooms ready made ; but as I had, like most premature poets, copied all the words and ideas of which my verses consisted, she was so far right, that there was not an original word or thought in the whole six lines 1 made one or two Taint attempts at verse, after I had under- gone this sort of daw-plucking at the hands of the apothecary's wife ; but some friend or other always advised me to put my Verses in the fire, and like Dorax in the play, I submitted, though ' with a swelling heart.' In short, excepting the usual tribute to a mistress's eyebrow, which is the language of passion raiher than poetry. I had not for ten years indulged the wish lo couple so much as love and dove, when, finding Lewis in possession of so much reputation, and conceiv- ing that, if I fell behind him in poetical powers, I considerably exceeded him in general infor- mation, I suddenly took it into my head to at- tempt the style by which he had raised himself to fame." Having now married, he resided at Ashie- steel, a delightful retirement, in an uncommon- ly beautiful situation, by the side of a fine river, whose streams were favorable for angling, and surrounded by hills abounding in game. His Lay of the Last Minstrel, and Marmion, poems of great originality and beauty, were produced in 1805 and 160S,and received at once into favor. The Lady of the Lake was published in 1810. Speaking of this poem, the author remarks : " I remember that about the same time a friend started in to ' hee/e up my hope,' like the min- strel in the old song. He was bred a farmer, but a man of powerful understanding, natural good taste, and warm poetical feeling, perfectly competent to supply the wants of an imperfect or irregular education. He was a passionate admirer of field sports, which we often pursued together. As this friend happened to dine with me at Ashiesteel one day, I took the opportunity of reading to him the first canto of the Lady of the Lake, in order to ascertain the effect the poein was likely to produce upon a person who was but too favorable a representative of readers at large. It is, of course, to be supposed, that I determined rather to guide my opinion by what my friend might appear to feel, than by what he might think fit to say. His reception of my re- citation, or prelection, was rather singular. He placed his hand across his brow, and listened with great attention through the whole account of the stag hunt, till the dogs threw themselves into the lake to follow their.master, who embarks with Ellen Douglas. He then started up with a sudden exclamation, struck his hand on the table, and declared, in a voice of censure calcu- lated for the occasion, that the dogs must have been totally ruined by being permitted to take the water after such a severe chase. I own I was much encouraged by the species of reverie which had possessed so zealous a follower of the sports as this ancient .Niinrod, who had been completely surprised out of all doubts of the reality of the tale." The Lady of the Lake was followed by the Vision of Don Roderick, Rokeby, Lord of the Isles, Harold the Dauntless, and the Bridal of Triermain. " The Lady of the Lake,"says Scott. " brought out on the usual terms of division of profits be- tween the author and publishers, was not long after purchased by them for 500, to which Messrs. Longman and Co. afterwards added 1013 in their own unsolicited kindness, in con- - sequence of the uncommon success of the work. It was handsomely given to supply the loss of a fine horse, which broke down suddenly while the author was riding with one of the worthy publishers." * * "The publishers of the Lay of the Last Minstrel, emboldened by the success of that poem, wil- lingly offered a thousand pounds for Alarmion. The transaction being no secret, afforded Lord Byron, who was then at general war with all who blacked paper, an opportunity to include me in his satire entitled English Bards and Scotch. Reriewers. I never could conceive how an ar- rangement between an author and his publish- ers," if satisfactory to the persons concerned, could afford matter of censure to any third par- ty. I had taken no unusual or ungenerous means of enhancing the value of my merchan- dise. I had never higgled a moment about the bargain, but accepted at once what 1 considered the handsome offer of my publishers. These gentlemen, at least, were not of opinion that they had been taken advantage of in the transaction, which indeed was one of their own framing; on the contrary, the sale of the poem was solar beyond their expectation, as to induce them to > supply the author's cellar with what is always an acceptable present to a young Scottish house- keeper, namely, a hogshead of excellent claret." HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SCO 513 SCO We must extract the account of his own change from poetry to prose. He is speaking of Rokeby. " The cause of my failure, had, however, a far deeper root. Tlie manner, or style, which, by its novelty, attracted the public in an unusual degree, had now, after having been three times before them, exhausted the patience of the read- er, and began in the fourth to lose its charms. The reviewers may be said to have apostrophiz- ed the author in the language of Parneli's Ed- win : " And here reverse the charm, he cried, And let it fairly now suffice, The gambol lias been shown." The licentious combination of rhymes, in a man- ner not perhaps very congenial to our language, had not been confined to the author. Indeed, in most similar cases, the inventors of such nov- elties have their reputation destroyed by their own imitators, as Actseon fell under his own dogs. The present author, like Bobadil, had taught his trick of fence to a hundred gentlemen (and ladies), who could fence very nearly, or quite, as well as himself. For this there was no remedy; the harmony became tiresome and or- dinary, and both the original inventor and his invention must have fallen into contempt, if he had not found out another road to public favor. What has been said of the metre only, must be considered to apply equally to the structure of the poem and of the style. The very best pas- sages of any popular style are not. perhaps, sus- ceptible of any imitation, but they may be ap- proached by men of talent: and those who are less able to copv them, at least lay hold of their peculiar features, so as to produce a burlesque instead of a serious copy. In either way, the effect of it is rendered cheap and common ; and, in the latter case ridiculous to boot. The evil consequences to an author's reputation are at least as fatal as those which befall a composer, when his melody falls into the hands of the street ballad-singer. Of the unfavorable specimens of imitation, the author's style gave room to a very large number, owing to an appearance of facility on which some of those who used the measure unquestionably leaned too far." " The effect of the more favorable imitations, composed by persons of talent, was almost equal- ly unfoitunate to the original minstrel, by show- ing that they could overshoot him with his own bow. In short the popularity which once at- tended the school, as it was called, was now fast decaying. Besides all this, to have kept his ground at the crisis when Rokeby appeared, its author ought to have put forth his utmost strength, and to have possessed at least all his original advantages, for a mighty and unexpect- ed rival was advancing on the stage a rival not in poetical powers only, but in that of at- tracting popularity, in which the present writer had preceded better men than himself. The reader will easily see that Byron is here meant, who after a little velitation of no great promise, now appeared as a serious candidate in the First Canto of Childc Harold. I was astonish- ed at the power evinced by that work, which neither the Hovrs of Idleness, nor the English Bards and Scotch Revieicers, had prepared me to expect from its author. There was a depth in his thought, an eafer abundance in his dic- tion, whicrfargued full confidence in the inex- haustible resources of which he felt himself possessed ; and there was some appearance of that labor of the file, which indicates that the author is conscious of the necessity of doing every justice to his work, that it may pass war- rant. Lord Byron was also a traveller, a man whose ideas were fired by having seen, in dis- tant scenes of difficulty and danger, the places whose very names are recorded in our bosoms as the shrines of ancient poetry. For his own misfortune, perhaps, but certainly to the high increase of his poetical character, nature had mixed in Lord Byron's system those passions which agitate the human heart with most vio- lence, and which may be said to have hurried his bright career to an early close. There would have been but little wisdom in measuring my force with so formidable an antagonist ; and I was as likely T.O tire of playing the second fiddle in the concert, as my audience of hearing me. Age also was advancing. I was growing in- sensible to those subjects of excitation of which youth is agitated. 1 had around me the most pleasant but least exciting of all society, that of kind friends and an affectionate family. My circle of employments was a narrow one ; it oc- cupied me constantly, and it became daily more difficult for me to interest myself in poetical composition : " How happily the days of Thalaba went by ! " Yet, though conscious that I must be, in (the opinion of good judges, inferior to the place I had for four or five years held in letters, and feeling alike that the latter was one to which I had only a temporary right, I could not brook the idea of relinquishing literary occupation, which had been so long my chief employment. Neither was I disposed"to choose the alternative of sinking into a mere editor and commentator, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SCO 514 SCO though that was a species of labor which I had practised, and to which I was attached. But I could uot endure to think that I might not, whether known or concealed, do something of more importance. My inmost thoughts were those of the Trojan captain in the galley race : Non jam prima peto Mnestheus, neque vincere certo : Uuanq:iam O, tied superent, quibus hoc, Neptune, de- disti: Eitremos pudeat rediisse : hoc vincite, cives, Et prohibete nefas." " Waverly, or ' Tis Sixty Years Since," a novel published in 1814, established the reputa- tion 01 the author, and was followed in rapid succession by many others. The authorship was acknowledged by Sir Walter Scott, at a public dinner in 1827. These Waverly novels exhibit a profound knowledge of human nature, an intimate acquaintance with history, national traditions, and manners, and a most surprising versatility. Ivanhoe, which appeared in 1820, without being the most finished of his works, presents the learning and powers of its author in a striking light. Never were the long gathered stores of most extensive erudition applied to the purposes of imaginative genius with so much easy, lavish, and luxurious power never was the illusion of fancy so complete made up of so many min- ute elements, and yet producing such entire- ness of effect. It is as if the veil of ages had been, in truth, swept back, and we ourselves had been, for a time, living, breathing, and mov- ing in the days of Coeur de Lion days how dif- ferent from our own ! the hot, tempestuous, chivalrous, passionate, fierce youth of Christen- dom. Every line in the picture'is true to the life every thing in the words, in the gesture every thing in the very faces of the personages called up before us, speaks of times of energetic volition uncontrolled action disturbance tumult the storms and whirlwinds of restless souh and ungoverned passions. It seems as if the atmosphere around them were all alive with the breath of trumpets, and the neighing of chargers, and the echo of war-cries. And yet, with a true and beautiful skilfulness, the author, has rested the main interest of his story, not upon these fiery externals, in themselves so full of attraction, and every way so characteristic of the age to which the story refers, but on the workings of that most poetical of passions which is ever deepest where it is most calm, quiet, and delicate, and which, less than any other is chang- ed, even in its modes of manifestation, in con- formity with the changes of time, manners, and circumstances. For the true interest of this romance of the days of Richard is placed nei- ther in Richard himself, nor in the Knight of Ivanhoe, the nominal hero, nor in any of the haughty Templars or barons who occupy along with them, the front of the scene, but in the still, devoted, sad, and unrequited tenderness of a Jewish damsel by far the most fine, and at the same time most romantic creation of female character the author has ever formed and se- cond, we suspect, to none that is to be found in the whole annals of poetry and romance. Besides writing his novels, Sir Walter Scott edited various works, and produced some vol- umes of history, and a life of Napoleon Bona- parte, to which, however, his party prejudices and hurried composition prevented him from doing justice. The failure of his bookseller, an unforeseen misfortune, darkened the close of Sir Walter's life by pecuniary embarrassment. His health suffered by the assiduity with which lie labored to relieve his fortunes. Shocks of paraly- sis warned him of his approaching fate, and, after having travelled without benefit to his health, this truly great and good man died at his seat at Abbotsford, in the year 1832. Sir Walter Scott was beloved by all who knew him, for, in private life, he had none of that affectation of eccentricity and haughtiness, which disfigures so many men of superior ge- nius. He was ever a welcome visiter in the dwellings of the poor and old. and in many of his lonely wanderings acquired that traditional in- formation which he reproduced in his immortal works. An old woman, it is said, with whom Sir Walter was intimate, having recognised some of her own lore in one of his earlier ro- mances, charged him with being the author. When Sir Walter denied the fact, the old lady exclaimed : " I'm no daft ! Do ye think 1 dinna ken by ain kail, amang ither folks broth ? " Hog-g, the poet, the friend of Sir Walter Scott, relates the following anecdote, illustrative of his benevolence. Although so shy of his name and literary assistance, which, indeed, he would not grant to any one, on any account, save to Lockhart, yet to poor men of literary merit his purse strings were always open, and as far as it was in his power to assist them. I actually knew several unsuccessful authors who depend- ed on his bounty for their daily bread. And then there was a delicacy in his way of doing it which was quite admirable. He gave them some old papers or old ballads to copy for him, pre- tending to be greatly interested in them, for which he sent them a supply every week, mak- ing them believe that they were reaping the HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SCY 515 SCY genuine fruit of their own labors. There was one day, when I was chatting with Ballantyne in his office, where I was generally a daily visiter, as well as my illustrious friend, I chanced to say, that I never in my life, knew a man like Scott, for I knew to a certainty he was at that time feeling himself a successful author, lend- ing pecuniary assistance to unsuccessful ones, and the best thing of all, he never let his left hand know what his right hand was doing. Bal- lantyne's face glowed with delight, and the tear stood in his eye. " You were never more right in your life," said he, "you never were more right in your life ! and I am glad that you know and so duly appreciate the merits of our noble, our invaluable friend. Look here/' and with that he turned up his day-book, and added, "some word, it seems, had reached Scott, that Maturin, the Irish poet, was lying in prison for a small debt, and here have I. by Mr. Scott's orders, been obliged to transmit him a bill of exchange for sixty pounds, and Maturin is never to know from whom or whence it came." I have said it oft, and now say it again for the last time, that those who knew Scott only from the few hundreds or, I might say, hundreds of thousands of volumes to which he has given birth and cir- culation through the world, knew only one half of the man, and that not the best half either. As a friend, he was sometimes stern, but always candid and sincere, and I always found his coun- sels of the highest value, if I could have follow- ed them. SCYTHIANS, inhabitants of the southern parts of Siberia, north-east of the Caspian Sea, whose tribes have in different ages overrun Asia and Europe. According to the chronicles of Eri, there existed a race of Scythian monarchs tlurinjr 101 1 years ; after which they moved southward, and occupied Mesopotamia, till then inhabited by an Arab race 293 years, and then extended their conquests over all nations, main- taining their dominion 1809 years, when their empire was divided by Assyrians from the east, who overran Media, Parthia, and Bactria like a mighty flood, about the epoch of the Hebrew deluge, led by Bel, who founded Babylon and the Assyrian empire on the ruins of the Scythian. The same chronicles, describe Noah as a Scythian chief, who fled to Armenia after his defeat ; and Bel, as the Nimrod of the Hebrews. The empire of the Scythians, by these chroni- cles, extended from the Indus, where they were called Indo-Scythians, to the confines of Europe, where they were called Celto-Scythians : the Scythians Arabs, and Egyptians, being the most 44 powerful known nations, till the former were lost in the Assyrians; or, according to the Hebrew historians, the people of Ashur. By the same authority we learn, that about 2000, B. C., the Scythians overran Thrace and Greece, founding the kingdoms of Sicyon, Argos, Athens, Co- rinth, and Thebes ; their original irruption into Thessaly.giving rise to the fable of the flood of Deucalien. According to Mr. O'Connor, the chief of the Scythians who conducted the first colony into Thrace, was Japan, or Oavan, the son of Jaforth, the son of Ardfier, the same as the Hebrew No- ah, who, according to him, was the last supreme chief of the Scythian empire ; this Japan left Armenia in the second year of the reign of his brother Og, with a colony called the Og-eag-eis; while another colony landed in the south from Egypt, built Athens, &c., and were called Pelas- goi. Cadmus, a Phoenician, afterwards brought a colony of Sidoniaii Scythians, and settled in Boeotia, about 1000 B. C. The Pelasgoi settled in Italy, and Saturn conducted another colony from Crete, to which country Evander emi- grated in 940, and ^Eneas, from Troy, in 883. Hence Greece was of Scythian origin, and Italy was peopled with their descendants. Scythes, who is the first king of this nation mentioned in history, is fabled by the Greeks to have been the offspring of Hercules and a monster. Sagillus is said to have sent his son Panasagorus, to assist the Amazons against Theseus, king of Athens ; but the heroines in- spiring the prince with disgust, he left them to the mercy of their enemies, by whom they were defeated. Maydes was a warlike prince, under whose conduct the Scythians invaded Media, and held the greater part of Upper Asia in sub- jection for the space of twenty-eight years. They also made an incursion into the land of the Philistines, and thence marched into Egypt ; but Psammeticus, king of that country, prevail- ed on them to return, and thus saved his domin- ions from plunder and desolation. Tomyris was a Scythian heroine, whom Cy- rus the Great demanded in marriage ; but she refusing him, that prince led his army against the Massagetes, who were under her dominion, and lost his life. Jancyrus was a haughty and magnanimous prince, who, when the Persian heralds demanded of him earth and water, sent to Darius a bird, a mouse, a frog, and five ar- rows, without any farther reply. The Persian monarch immediately supposed that this present was sent in token of submis- sion : but Gobrias, who knew the Scythians bet- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SEE 516 SEJ ter than his master, interpreted it to denote, that ed himself to be king Sebastian ; he told them the Persians must not expect to elude the effects that the Moors who took him prisoner did not of Scythian valor, unless they could fly like know him to be the king ; that the sorrow and birds, plunge under water like frogs, or bury repentance which seized him for having so rash- themselves in the earth like mice. ry undertaken that expedition, had nearly caus- This explanation was soon justified, and the ed his death; and that now after having suffered Scythians obtained a signal victory over the in a strange country, he came to re-demand the Persian arnfy. Saulius is said to have killed crown. He showed upon his body the same Anacharsis, a prince of the blood, for presuming marks which several had seen formerly on the to introduce the nocturnal rites of the mother of body of the king of Portugal, and discovered to the gods into Scythia. Aripithes had a numer- the "Venetians some secrets they had formerly ous progeny , and in particular a son named Scy- proposed to him by their ambassadors, to prove thes, wliose mother had caused him to be in- he was king Sebastian. The Spaniards, who structed in all the Grecian customs. had upon the report of his death invaded the When Scy thes, therefore, ascended the throne, crown of Portugal, treated him as a madman and he appeared to possess so great a predilection imposter, and obliged the Venetians to expel for the effeminate luxuries of the Greek?, that him from their dominions ; he was seized again his subjects, irritated at this preference, dethron- in Tuscany, and brought to Naples, where they ed him, and elected his brother Octamasades set him upon an ass, and led him through all king in his stead. Ariantes is said to have or- the streetsof the city, exposing him to the abuses dered all his soldiers to appear before him, and of the rabble. Some time after they shaved his every one to throw the tip of an arrow into a head, and placed him to row like a slave in a common heap, which amounted to so great a galley ; and afterwards being brought to Spain, bulk, that he caused it to be melted down and he died in a prison, at the same time that the cast into a large vessel, as a monument of the Portuguese, abhorring and detesting these bar- transaction. Atheas obtained from Philip, king barous dealings of the Spaniards, wished to have of Macedon, considerable succor against an in- him whom they knew to be their king, restored vasion with which he was threatened ; and when to them. SEBASTIAN, ST., a considerable town of the rth-east of Spain, containing 12,000 inhabi- the enemy, terrified by the preparations of Phil- ip, desisted from their design, he pretended that he owed him no recompense, because a war had tants. It has been repeatedly taken by the not taken place. In consequence of this, an ob- French ; it fell into their hands in the short war stinate battle ensued, in which the Scythians of 1719; in the revolutionary contest of 1794; were vanquished, and twenty thousand women and in Bonaparte's invasion in 180H. On the and children were made prisoners. last occasion it remained five years in their pos- SEBASTIAN, Don, kingof Portugal, theson session, and when the victory of Vittoria, by of John II, was bornin 1554. He succeeded John the British, (21st June, 1813) opened a prospect III, and was a man of great zeal for religion, and of its recapture, the French had time to throw of extraordinary courage, which inspired him into it a garrison capable of making a very ob- with the design of making an expedition into stinate defence. An attempt on the part of the Africa against the Moors in 1574. Taking with British, to take it by assault, on the 25th of him the principal nobility and gentry of Porlu- July , was repulsed with heavy loss. It became gal, he landed at Tangier on the 9th of July, necessary to make approaches with great cau 1578, and gave battle to Abdemelech at Alcacer, tion, and even to incur a severe sacrifice of live.* the 4th of Autrust the same year, where his army in the final attack, on the 31st of August, when ' - ' it fell into the hands of the British. SKJANUS, the favorite of Tiberius a native of Vulsinum in Tuscany, who distinguished himself in the court of Tiberius. His father's was defeated. Abdemelech, who was sick, died in a litter, .Mahomet perished in a bog, and the report was, that Sebastian himself was killed there in the 25th year of his age. Notwithstand- ing this, in 1598, a man at Venice declared him- name was Sorvius Strabo, a Roman knight, corn- self to be king Sebastian ; he resembled him so mander of the praetorian guards. His mother exactly in face, stature, and voice, that the Por- was descended from the Ionian family. Seia- tuguese that were in that city, and amongst them nus first gained the favor of Caius Coesar, the one of his servants, owned him for their king, grandson of Augustus, but afterwards he attach- Some days after he was seized, and conveyed ed himself to the interest and the views of Ti- before judges, before whom he always maintain- berius, who then sat on the imperial throne. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL SEJ 517 SEL The emperor, who was naturally of a suspicious temper, was free and open with Sejanus, and while he distrusted others, he communicated his greatest secrets to this fawning favorite. As commander of the prastorian guards, he was the second man in Rome, and in that im- portant office he made use of insinuation, and every mean artifice to make himself beloved and revered. His affability and condescension gained him the hearts of the common soldiers, and by appointing his own favorites and adhe- rents to places of trust and honor, all the officers and centurions of the army became devoted to his interest. The views of Sejanus in this were well known ; yet to advance them with more success, he attempted to gain the affections of the senators. In this he met with no opposi- tion. A man who has the disposal of places of hon- or and dignity, and who has the command of the public money, cannot but be the favorite of those who are in need of his assistance. It is even said, that Sejanus gained to his views all the wives of the senators, by a private and most secret promise of marriage to each of them, whenever he had made himself independent and sovereign of Rome. Yet, however successful with the best and noblest families in the empire, Sejanus had to combat numbers in the house of the emperor ; but these seeming obstacles were soon removed. All the children and grandchildren of Tiberius were sacrificed to the ambition of the favorite under various pretences ; and Drusus the son of the emperor, by striking Sejanus, made his de- struction sure and inevitable. Livia, the wife of Drusus, was gained by Sejanus, and though mother of many children, she was prevailed upon to assist her adulterer in the murder of her husband, and she consented to marry him when Drusus was dead. No sooner was Drusus poi- soned, than Sejanus openly declared his wish to marry Livia. This was strongly opposed by Tiberius ; and the emperor, by recommending Gennanicus to the senators for his successor, rendered Sejanus bold and determined. He was more urgent in his demands ; and when he could not gain the consent of the em- peror, he persuaded him to retire to solitude from the noise of Rome and the troubles of the gov- ernment. Tiberius, naturally fond of ease and luxury, yielded to his representations, and retir- ed to Campania, leaving Sejanus at the head of the empire. This was highly gratifying to the favorite, and he was now without a master. Pru- dence and moderation might have made him what he wished to be ; but Sejanus offended the whole empire when he declared that he was em- peror of Rome, and Tiberius only the dependent prince of the island of Caprese, where he had retired. Tiberius was, upon this, fully convinced of the designs of Sejanus ; and when he had been informed that his favorite had had the meanness and audacity to ridicule him, by introducing him on the stage, the emperor ordered him to be accused before the senate. Sejanus was deserted by all his pretended friends, as soon as by for- tune ; and the man who aspired to the empire, and who called himself the favorite of the peo- ple, the darling of the praetorian guards, and the companion of Tiberius, was seized without re- sistance, and the same day strangled in prison, A. D. 31. SELEUCUS I, one of the captains of Alex- ander the Great, surnamed Nicator, or Victori- ous, was son of Antiochus. After the king's death he received Babylon as his province ; but his ambitious views, and his attempt to destroy Eumenes as he passed through his territories, rendered him so unpopular, that he fled for safety to the court of his friend Ptolemy, king of Egypt. He was soon after enabled to recov- er Babylon, which Antigonus had seized in his absence, and he increased his dominions by the immediate conquest of Media, and some of the neighboring provinces. When he had strength- ened himself in his empire, Seleucus imitated the example of the rest of the generals of Alex- ander, and assumed the title of independent monarch. He afterwards made war against Antigonus, with the united forces of Ptolemy, Cassander. and Lysimachus ; and after this monarch had been conquered and slain, his ter- ritories were divided among his victorious ene- mies. When Seleucus became master of Syria, he built a city there, which he called Antioch, in honor of his father, and made it the capital of his dominions. He also made war against De- metrius and Lysimachus, though he had origi- nally married Stratonice, the daughter of the former, and had lived in the closest friendship with the latter. Seleucus was at last murdered by one of his servants called Ptolemy Ceraunus, a man on whom he had bestowed the greatest favors, and whom he had distinguished by acts of the most unbounded confidence. According to Arrian, Seleucus was the great- est and most powerful of the princes who in- herited the Macedonian empire after the death of Alexander. His benevolence has been com- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SEL 518 SEM mended ; and it has been observed, that he con- quered not to enslave nations, but to make them more happy. He founded no less than thirty- four cities in different parts of his empire, which he peopled with Greek colonies, whose national industry, learning, religion, and spirit, were communicated to the indolent and luxurious inhabitants of Asia. Seleucus was a great benefactor to the Greeks ; he restored to the Athenians the library and statues which Xerxes had carried away from their city when he invaded Greece, and among the latter were those of Harmodius and Aristogiton. Seleucus was murdered 280 years before the Christian era, in the 32d year of his reign, and the 78th, or according to others, the 73d year of his age, as he was going to conquer Macedo- nia, where he intended to finish his days in peace and tranquillity in that province where he was born. SELEUCUS II, surnamed Callinicus, suc- ceeded his father Antiochus Theus on the throne of Syria. He attempted to make war against Ptolemy, king of Egypt, but his fleet was ship- wrecked in a violent storm, and his armies soon after conquered by his enemy. He was at last taken prisoner by Arsaces, an officer who made himself powerful by the dissensions which reigned in the house of the Seleucidse, between the two brothers, Seleucus and Antiochus ; and after he had been a prisoner for some time in Parthia, he died of a fall from his horse, B. C. 226, after a reign of 20 years. Seleucus re- ceived the surname of Pogon, from his long beard, and that of Callinicus, ironically to ex- press his very unfortunate reign. He mar- ried Laodice, the sister of one of his generals, by whom he had two sons, Seleucus and Anti- ochus, and a daughter whom he gave in mar- riage to Mithridates, kincr of Pontus. SELEUCUS III, succeeded his father Seleu- cus II, on the throne of Syria, and received the surname of Ceraunus, by antiphrasis, as he was a very weak, timid, and irresolute monarch. He was murdered by two of his oincers after a reign of three years, B. C. 223, and his brother Antiochus, though only 15 years old, ascended the throne, and rendered himself so celebrated that he acquired the name of the Great. SELEUCUS IV, succeeded his father Antio- chus the Great, on the throne of Syria. He was surnamed Philopater, or, according to Jo- sephus, Soter. His empire had been weakened by the Romans when he became monarch, and the yearly tribute of a thousand talents to those victorious enemies, concurred in lessening his power and consequence among nations. Seleu- cus was poisoned after a reign of 12 years, B. C. 175. His son Demetrius had been sent to Rom?, there to receive his education, and he became a prince of great abilities. SELEUCUS V, succeeded his father Deme- trius Nicator, on the throne of Syria, in the 20th year of his age. He was put to death in the first year of his reign by Cleopatra his mother, who had also sacrificed her husband to her am- bition. He is not reckoned by many historians in the number of the Syrian monarchs. SELEUCUS VF, one of the Seleucidae, son of Antiochus Gryphus, killed his uncle Antio- chus Cyzicenus, who wished to obtain the crown of Syria. He was some time after banished from his kingdom by Antiochus Pius, son of Cyzicenus, and fled to Cilicia, where he was burnt in a palace by the inhabitants, B. C. 93. SELEUCUS, a prince of Syria, to whom the Egyptians offered the crown of which they bad robbed Auletes. Seleucus accepted it, but he soon disgusted his subjects, and received the surname of Cybiosactes, or Scullion, for his meanness and avarice. He was at last murdered by Berenice, whom he had married. SELEUCIA, a city in Mesopotamia, upon the river Tigris, built by king Seleucus Nica- nor, supposed to be Bagdad. There is also another Seleucia surnamed Pieria, and called by the Turks Kepse. near the mouth of the river Orontes. Besides these, there is yet another Seleucia, a city of Pisidia, upon the borders of Pamphylia, situated between Antioch on the north, and the city of Pamphylia on the south. Also another city called Seleucia, or rather Seleucos, situated in Syria, upon the riv- er Belus. near Apamea, built also by the king Seleucus. SEMIRAMIS, a celebrated queen of Assyria. Semiramis, when grown up, married Menones, the governor of Nineveh, and accompanied him to the siege of Bactria, where by her advice and prudent directions, she hastened the king's operations and took the city. These eminent services, but chiefly her uncommon beauty, en- deared her to Ninus. The monarch asked her of her husband, and offered him instead his daughter Sosana; but Menones, who tenderly loved Semiramis, refused, and when IVinushad a.dded threats to intreaties, he hung himself. No sooner was Menones dead, than Semiramis, who was of an aspiring soul, married Ninus, by whom she had a son called Ninyas. Ninus was so fond of Semiramis, that at her request he resigned the crowr^to her, and com- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SEN 519 SEN manded her to be proclaimed queen and sole empress of Assyria. Of this, however, be had cause to repent ; Semiratnis put him to death, the better to establish herself on the throne, and when she had no enemies to tear at home, she began to repair the capital of her empire, and by her means Babylon became the most superb and magnificent city in the world. She visited every part of her dominions, and left every where immortal monuments of her greatness and benevolence. To render the roads passable and communi- cation easy, she hollowed mountains and filled up valleys ; and water was conveyed at a great expense, by large and convenient aqueducts, to barren deserts and unfruitful plains. She was not less distinguished as a warrior ; many of the neighboring nations were conquered ; and when ESemiramis was once told, as she was dressing her hair, that Babylon had revolt- ed, she left her toilet with precipitation, and though only half dressed, she refused to have the rest of her head adorned before the sedition was quelled, and tranquillity re-established. Serniramis has been accused of licentiousness, and modern authors have drawn a parallel be- tween her and Catharine of Russia, there being a great resemblance between them in the princi- pal events of their lives, their masculine talents, and private immorality of conduct. The reign of Semiramis was at last terminated by a con- spiracy of her own son Ninyas, who is said to have put her to death with his own hand. Her fame was very great throughout the East. Af- ter her death she received immortal honors in Assyria. It is supposed that she lived nbout J'JG5 years befoie the Christian era, and that she died in the sixty-second year of her age, and the twenty-fifth of her reign. SENATE, (see Rome.) SENECA, M. Annceiis, a native of Corduba in Spain, who married Helvia, a woman of Spain, by whom lie had three sons, Seneca the losopher, Ajinrous Novatus, and Annaeus ela, the father of the poet Lucaa. Seneca made himself known by some declamations, of which he made a collection from the most cele- brated orators cf the age ; and from that cir- cumstance, and for distinction, he obtained the appellation of dcdamator. lie Jeft Corduba, and went to Rome, where he became a Roman knight. His son L. Annnsus Seneca, who was born about six years after Christ, was early distin- guished by his extraordinary talents. He was taught eloquence by his father, and received 44* ph M lessons in philosophy from the best Dnd most celebrated stoics of the age. As one of the followers of the Pythagorean doctrines, Seneca observed the utmost abstinence, and in his meals never ate the flesh of animals; but this he aban- doned at the representation of his father, when Tiberius threatened to punish some Jews and Egyptians who abstained from certain meats. in the character of a pleader, Seneca appear- ed with great advantage ; but the fear of Cali- gula, who aspired to the name of an eloquent speaker, and who consequently was jealous of his fame, deterred him from pursuing his fa- vorite study, and he sought a safer employment in canvassing for the honors and offices of the state. He was made quaestor, but the asper- sions which were thrown upon him on account of a shameful amour with Julia Livilla, removed him from Rome, and the emperor banished him for some time into Corsica. During his banish- ment, the philosopher wrote some spirited epis- tles to his mother, remarkable for elegance of language and for sublimity ; but he soon forgot his philosophy, and disgraced himself by his flatteries to the emperor, and in wishing to be recalled, even at the expense of his innocence and character. The disgrace of Messalina at Rome, and the marriage of Agrippina with Claudius proved favorable to Seneca ; and after lie had remained five years in Corsica, he was recalled by the empress to take care of the education of her son Nero, who was destined to succeed to the em- pire. In the honorable duty of preceptor, Sen- eca gained applause ; and as long as Nero fol- lowed his advice, Rome enjoyed tranquillity, and believed herself safe and happy under the administration of the son of Agrippina. In the corrupt age of Nero, the preceptor had to withstand the clamors of many wicked and profligate ministers ; and if he had been the fa- vorite of the emperor, and shared his pleasures, Ins debauchery, and extravagance, Nero would not perhaps have been so anxious to destroy a man whose example, from vicious inclinations, he could not follow, and whose salutary pre- cepts his licentious associates forbade him to obey. Seneca was too well acquainted with the natural disposition of Nero to think himself secure ; he had been accused of having amassed the most ample riches, and of having built sumptuous houses, and adorned beautiful gar- dens, during the four years in which he had attended Nero as a preceptor ; and therefore he desired his imperial pupil to accept of the rich- es, and the possessions which his attendance on CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SEN 520 SER his person had procured, and to permit him to re are to solitude and study. Nero refused, with aut'ul duplicity, and Sen- oca, to avoid further suspicions, kept himself at home for ime time, as if laboring under a disease. In the conspiracy of Piso, which hap- pened some time after, and in which some of the most noble of the Roman senators were con- cerned, Seneca's name was mentioned by Nata- lis ; and Nero, who was glad of an opportunity of sacrificing him to his secret jealousy, ordered him to destroy himself. Seneca, very probably, was not accessory to the conspiracy ; and the onlv thing which could be produced against him as a crimination, was trivial and unsatisfactory. Piso, as Natalis declared, had complained that lie never saw Seneca, and the philosopher had observed in answer, that it was not proper or conducive to their common interest, to see one another often. He further pleaded indisposi- tion, and said that his own life depended upon the safety of Piso's person. Seneca was at ta- ble with his wife Pauiina and two of his friends, when the messenger from Nero arrived. He heard the words which commanded him to de- stroy himself, with philosophical firmness, and even with joy ; and observed, that such a man- date might Jrive long been expected fiom a man who had murdered his own mother, and assas- sinated all his friends. He wished to dispose of his possessions as he plf.ased, but this was re- fused ; and when he heard this, he turned to his friends, who were weeping at his melancholy fate, and told them, that since he could not leave them what he believed his own, he would leave them at least his own life for an example, an innocent conduct which they might imitate, and by which they might acquire immortal fame. Against their tears and waitings he exclaimed with firmness, and asked them whether they had not learnt better to withstand the attacks of for- tune, and tbe violence of tyranny ? As for his wife, he attempted to calm her emotions; and when she seemed resolved to die with him, he said he was glad to find his exam- ple followed with so much constancy. Their veins were opened at the same moment ; but the life of Paulina was preserved, and Nero, who was partial to her, ordered the blood to be stopped, and from that moment, according to some authors, the philosopher's wife seemed to rejoice that she could still enjoy the comforts of life. Seneca's veins bled but slowly ; and it has been observed, that the sensible and animated conversation of his dying moments was collect- ed by his friends, and that it has been preserved among his works. To hasten his death, he drank a dose of poison, but it had no effect ; and therefore he ordered himself to be carried into a hot bath, to accelerate the operation of the draught, and to make the blood flow more free- ly. This was attended with no better success ; and as the soldiers were clamorous, he was carried into a stove, and suffocated by the steam, in the (ioth year of the Christian era. SURINGAPATAM, a celebrated city of the south of India. In the month of February, 17!)2, it was invested by the British and allied armies under Lord Cornwallis, amounting to 400,000 men. Terrified by such a host, Tippoo Sultan relinquished half his dominions, and paid three and a half millions sterling to the conquerors. Serinjnpatam was again invested in 1799, by the British and Nizam's forces, and was stormed on the 4th of May. By the conquest which was thus made, it became the property of the British, and is the residence of a judge, col- lector. &.C. SERTORIUS, Quintus,aRoman general, son of Quint us and Rhea, born at Nursia. His first campaign was under the great Mnrius. against the Teutones and Cimbri. He visited the ene- my's camp as a spv, and had the misfortune to lose one eye in the first battle he fought. When Marius and Cinna entered Home and slaugh- tered all their enemies, Sertorius accompanied them, but he expressed his sorrow and concern at the melancholy death of so many of his coun- trymen. He afterwards fled for safety into Spain, when Sylla had proscribed him. and in this distant province he behaved himself with so much address and valor that he was looked upon as the prince of the country. The L'isitanians universally revered and loved him. and the Roman gener.il did not show him- self less attentive to their interest, bv establish- ing public schools, and educating the children of the country in the polite arts, and the litera- ture of Greece and Rome. He had established a. senate, over which he presided with consular authority and the Romans who followed his standard, paid equal reverence to his |>erson. They were experimentally convinced of his va- lor and magnanimity as a general, and the art- fu! manner in which he imposed upon the cre- dulity of his adherents in the garb of religion, did not diminish his reputation. The success ofSertorius in Spain, and his popularity among the natives, alarmed the Romans. They sent some troops to oppose him, but with little success. Four armies were found HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SER 521 SEV insufficient to crush or even hurt Sertorius ; and Poinpey and Metellus, who never engaged an enemy without obtaining the victory, were driven with dishonor from the field. But the favorite of the Lusitanians was exposed to the dangers which usually attend greatness. Perpenna, one of his officers, who was jealous of his fame and tired of a superior, conspired against him. At a banquet the conspirators began to open their intentions by speaking with freedom and licentiousness in the presence of Sertorius, whose age and character had hith- erto claimed deference from others. Perpenna overturned a glass of wine, as a signal for the rest of the conspirators, and immediately Anto- nius, one of his officers, stabbed Sertorius, and the example was followed by all the rest, 73 years before Christ. Sertorius has been commended for his love of justice and moderation. The flattering de- scription which he heard of the Fortunate Is- lands when he passed into the west of Africa, almost tempted him to bid adieu to the world, and perhaps he would have retired from the noise of war, and the clamors of envy, to end his days in the bosom of a peaceful and solitary island, had not the stronger calls of ambition and the love of fame prevailed over the intruding reflections of a moment. It has been observed, that in his latter days Sertorius became indo- lent, and fond of luxury and wanton cruelty ; yet in affability, clemency, complaisance, gen- erosity, and military valor, he not only surpass- ed his contemporaries, but the rest of the Ro- mans. SERVIA, a province of European Turkey, containing 19.000 square miles, and 9(>0.000 in- habitants. It was subjugated by the Turks in 1365. The implacable hatred which the Ser- vians entertained towards their rulers led to an insurrection in the year 1801. In December, 1806, Czerni Georges, the Servian chieftain, besieged Belgrade, took it after an obstinate re- sistance, and in a great measure expelled the Turks from the country, which he ruled with the authority of a sovereign. The forces which were brought against him, he resisted with va- rious success until 1614, when he withdrew into Russia, and by a convention concluded be- tween his country and the Porte in 1815, the Servians acknowledged the sovereignty of the Sultan. SERVIUS TULLIUS, the sixth king of Rome, was son of Ocrisia, a slave of Corniculum, by Tullius, a man slain in the defence of his country against the Romans. Ocrisia was given by TarquLn to Tanaquil his wife, and she brought up her son in the king's family, and added the name of Servius to that which he had inherited from his father, to denote his slavery. Young Servius was educated in the palace of the monarch with great care, and though orig- inally a slave, he raised himself to so much consequence, that Tarquin gave him his daugh- ter in marriage. His own private merit and virtues recommended him to notice not less than the royal favors, and Servius became the favorite of the people and the darling of the sol- diers, by his liberality and complaisance, and was easily raised to the throne on the death of his father-in-law. Rome had no reason to re- pent of her choice. Servius endeared himself still more as a war- rior and as a legislator. He defeated the Veien- tes and the Tuscans, and by a proper act of pol- icy he established the census, which told him that Rome contained about eighty-four thousand inhabitants. He increased the number of the tribes, he beautified and adorned the city, and enlarged its boundaries by taking within its walls the hills Quirinalis, Viminalis, and Esqui- linus. He also divided the Roman people into tribes, and that he might not seem to neglect the wor- ship of the gods, he built several temples to the goddess of "Fortune, to whom he deemed him- self particularly indebted for obtaining the kingdom. He also built a temple to Diana on mount Aventine, and raised himself a palace on the hill Esquilinus. Servius married his two daughters to the grand -sons of his father- in-law ; the elder to Tarquin. and the younger to Aruns. This union, it might be supposed, tended to insure the peace of his family ; but if such were his expectations, he was unhappily deceived. The wife of Aruns, naturally fierce and im- petuous, murdered her own husband to unite herself to Tarquin, who had likewise assassina- ted his wife. These bloody measures were no sooner pursued, than Servius was murdered by his own son-in-law, and his daughter Tullia showed herself so destitute of filial gratitude and piety, that she ordered her chariot to be driven over the mangled body of her father, B. C.534. SEVERUS, Lucius Sepzimius, a Roman emperor, born at Leptis in Africa, of a noble family. He gradually exercised all the offices of the state and recommended himself to the notice of the world by an ambitious mind and a restless activity, that could, for the gratification CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SEV 522 SEV of avarice, endure the most complicated hard- ships. After the murder of Pertinax, Severus resolved to remove Didius Julian us, who had bought the imperial purple when exposed to sale by the licentiousness of the praetorians, and therefore he proclaimed himself emperor on the borders of Illyricum, where he was stationed against the barbarians. To support himself in this bold measure, he took, as his partner in the empire, Albinus, who was at the head of the Roman forces in Britain, and immediately marched towards Rome to crush Didius and all his partisans. He was received, as he advanced through the country, with universal acclamations, and Julianus himself was soon deserted by his favo- rites, and assassinated by his own soldiers. The reception of Severus at Rome, was sufficient to gratify his pride ; the streets were strewed with flowers, and the submissive senate were ever ready to grant whatever honors or titles tiie conqueror claimed. In professing that he had assumed the purple only to revenge the death of the virtuous Pertinax, Severus gained many adherents, and was enabled not only to disarm, but to banish the praetorians, whose insolence and avarice were become alarming, not only to the citizens but to the emperor. But while he was victorious at Rome, Seve- rus did not forget that there was another compe- titor for the imperial purple. Pescennius Niger was in the east at the head of a powerful army, and with the name and ensigns of Augustus. Many obstinate battles were fought between the troops and officers of the imperial rivals, till on the plains of Issus, which had been above five centuries before 1 covered with the blood of the Persian soldiers of Darius, Niger was totally ruined by the loss of 20,000 men. The head of Niger was cut off and sent to the conqueror, who punished in a most cruel manner, all the partisans of his unfortunate rival. Severus afterwards pillaged Byzantium, which had shut her gates against him ; and after he had con- quered several nations in the east, lie returned to Rome, resolved to destroy Albinus, with whom he had hitherto reluctantly shared the imperial power. He attempted to assassinate him by his emissaries; but when this had failed of success, Severus had recourse to arms, and the fate of the empire was again decided on the plains of Gaul. Albinus was defeated, and the conqueror was so elated with the recollection that he had now no longer a competitor for the purple, that he insulted the dead body of his rival, and ordered it to be thrown into the Rhone, after he had suffered it to putrefy before the door of his tent, and to be torn to pieces by his dogs. The family and the adherents of Albinus shared his fate ; and the return of Severus to the capital exhibited the bloody triumphs of Marius and Sylla. The richest of the citizens were sacri- ficed, and their money became the property of the emperor. The wicked Commodus received divine honors, and his murderers were punished in the most wanton manner. Tired of the inactive life which he led in Rome, Severus marched into the east, with his two sons Caracalla and Geta, and with uncom- mon success made himself master of Seleucia, Babylon, and Ctesiphon ; and advanced without opposition, far into the Parthian territories. From Parthia, the emperor marched towards the more southern provinces of Asia ; he entered Alexandria, and after he had granted a senate to that celebrated city, viewed with the most criticising and inquisitive curiosity, the monu- ments and ruins of Egypt. The revolt of Bri- tain recalled him from'the east. After he had reduced it under his power, lie built a wall across the northern part of the island, to defend it against the frequent invasions of the Caledo- nians. Hitherto successful against his enemies, Severus now found the peace of his family dis- turbed. Caracalla attempted to murder his father as he was concluding a treaty of peace with the Britons : and the emperor was sr> shock- ed at the undutifulness of his son, that on his return home he called him into his presence, and after he Ind upbraided him for his ingrati- tude and perfidy, lie offered him a drawn sword, adding, " If you are so ambitious of reigning alone, now imbrue your hands in the blood of your father, and let not the eves of the world be witnesses of your Wcint of filial tenderness." If these words checked Caracalla, yet he did not show himself concerned, and Sever us. worn out with infirmities, which the gout and the uneasiness of his mind increased, soon after died, exclaiming he had been every tiling man could wish, but that he was then nothing. Some say that he wished to poison himself, but that when this was denied, he eat to great excess, and soon after expired nt York, in the 211th year of the Christian era, in the Clitli year of his" age, after a reign of seventeen years, eight months, and three days. Severus has been so much admired for his military talents, that some have called him the most warlike of the Roman emperors. As a monarch, he was cruel, and it has been HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SEV 523 SFO observed that he never did an act of humanity, or forgave a fault. In his diet he was tempe- rate, and he always showed himself an open enemy to pomp and splendor. He loved the appellation of a man of letters, and he even composed a history of his own reign, which some have praised for its correctness and verac- ity. However cruel Severus may appear in his punishments and in his revenge, many have endeavored to exculpate him, and observed that there was need of severity in an empire whose morals were so corrupt. Of him, as of Augus- tus, some were found to say, that it would have been better for the world if he had never been born, or had never died. SEVERUS, Alexander Marcus Aurelius, a native of Phoenicia, adopted by Heliogabalus. His father's name was Genesius Marcianus, and his mother's Julia Mammaea, and he receiv- ed the surname of Alexander, because he was born in a temple sacred to Alexander the Great. He was carefully educated, and his mother, by paying particular attention to his morals and the character of his preceptors, preserved him from the vices and licentiousness of youth. At the death of Heliogabalus, who had been jealous of his virtues, Alexander, though only in the 14th year of his age, was proclaimed emperor, and his nomination was approved by the uni- versal shouts of the army, and the congratula- tions of the senate. He had not long been on the throne before the peace of the empire was disturbed by the incursions of the Persians. Alexander marched into the east without delay, and soon obtained a decisive victory over the barbarians. At his return to Rome, he was honored with a triumph, but the revolt of the Germans soon after called him away from the indolence of the capital. His expedition in Germany was at- tended with some success, but the virtues and the amiable qualities of Alexander, were forgot- ten in the stern strictness of the disciplinarian. His soldiers, fond of repose, murmured against his severity ; their clamors were fomented by the artifice of Maximinus. and Alexander was murdered in his tent, in the midst of his camp, after a reign of thirteen years and nine days,- on the 16th of March, A. D. 235. His mother Mammrea, shared his fate with all his friends; but this was no sooner known than the soldiers punished with immediate death, all such as had been concerned in the murder, except Maxi- SEVILLE, SEVILLA, anciently Hispalis, a city of Spain, in Andalusia, on the Guadal- quivir, capital of a province of the same name, containing 94,000 inhabitants. It is built in the Moorisli style. It opened its gates to the Moors, in 711, and continued in their possession more than five centuries. It was taken by the Christians in 1247, after one of the most obsti- nate sieges mentioned in Spanish hifetory. In 1729, a treaty was concluded here between Spain, England, France, and Holland. On the invasion of Spain by Bonaparte, in 1808, Sev- ille asserted the national independence, and re- ceived the junta when driven from Madrid. It surrendered, however, to the French, on the 1st February, 1810, and remained in their hands till 27th of August, 1812, when they were com- pelled to leave it in consequence, not of insur- rection on the part of the inhabitants, but of the general evacuation of the south of Spain, con- sequent on their defeat at Salamanca. SEYMOUR Edward, duke of Somerset, was the eldest son of Sir John Seymour, by Eliza- beth, daughter of Sir Henry Wentworth. In 1533, he accompanied the duke of Suffolk to France, and was knighted the same year. In 1544. he was appointed lieutenant-general of the north, and commanded an expedition against the Scots. The same year he was at the siege of Boulogne, where he defeated the French, who lay encamped before the place. By the king's will, he was nominated one of his exec- utors and governor of his son ; but Seymour soon after was declared protector of the king- dom. In 1548 he was appointed lord treasurer, created duke of Somerset, and made earl mar- shal of England. The same year he marched into Scotland, and gained the victory of Mus- selburgh; but though this raised his reputation, his fate was now fast approaching, to which the execution of his brother, the admiral, greatly contributed. His greatest enemy was the earl of Warwick, and though a marriage had been effected between their children, yet when that nobleman became duke of Northumberland, he accused Seymour of treason, and the latter was executed on Tower-hill, Jan. 22, 1552. SFORZA. James, called the Great, was born of mean parents, at Cotignola, in 1369. He entered the army as a common soldier, and by his good conduct rose to the rank of general, and afterwards was made constable of the king- dom of Naples. Pope John XXIII also ap- pointed him gonfalineer of the church, and created him a count. He compelled Alphonso of Arragon to raise the siege of Naples ; but in pursuing the flying enemy, he fell into the river near Pescara, and was drowned, in 1424 CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SHE 524 SHE His natural son, Francis Sforza, commanded with distinction in the service of Naples; after which he married the daughter of the duke of Milan, on whose death he was chosen general of the duchy ; but abused that trust, and usurped the sovereignty. He also made himself master of Genoa, and died in 1466. SHAKSPEARE, William, the greatest dra- matic poet that ever lived, was born at Stratford- upon-Avon, a market-town of Warwickshire, England, in 1564. His father was a dealer in wool. He was the youngest of eight children, and received but a common school education. He knew little Latin and less Greek, but pos- sessed some acquaintance with French and Italian. In his eighteenth year he married Anne Hathaway, who bore him several children. He came to London and became an actor and author, and was patronised by the earl of South- ampton and queen Elizabeth, who properly ap- preciated his merits. He finally became pro- prietor and manager of the Globe Theatre in Southwark, and retired on a small fortune. The date of his death is unknown. Aubrey calls him " a handsome, well-shaped man, verie good company, and of a verie pleasant, reddie, and smooth will." SHEFFIELD, John, duke of Buckingham- shire, was the son of Edward, earl of Mulgrave, and born in 1641). At the age of seventeen he served in the fleet, and afterwards had the com- mand of a troop of horse. In 1630, being then lord Mulgrave, he was sent to the relief of Tan- gier, which service he accomplished. He com- plied very much with the measures of James II, and yet concurred in the Revolution, for which he was created marquis of Normanby, and duke of Buckinghamshire. He died in 1720, and was buried in Westminster Abbey. SHELBY, Isaac, was born Dec. 11, 1750, near Hagerstown, Maryland. In 1776 he com- manded a company raised by the committee of safety of Virginia, and marched against the hostile Indians. After the conclusion of the revolutionary war, throughout which he be- haved with courage, he settled in Kentucky, of which he was chosen governer in 1792. In 1813 he emerged from private life and joined Gen. Harrison, on the frontier of Ohio with 4030 men. He died of apoplexy, July 18, 1826. SHERIDAN, Richard Brinsley, a celebrated wit, author, and statesman, was the son of Thomas Sheridan, and was born in Dublin. Oct 30, 1751. Having quitted the Dublin school, he was placed at Harrow, which he left in his eighteenth year. While yet at school his wit and humor began to appear. At an early age he married Miss Linley, a beautiful young lady, who, at the concerts and theatre of Bath, at- tracted universal admiration. He did not obtain her without difficulty, for he was forced to fight two duels with a Captain Matthews, which stand unequalled in the history of single com- bats for ferocity and determination. In 1775 his comedy of the Rivals was produced with success at Covent Garden Theatre. Although this comedy has not the wit of the School tor Scandal, it always elicits rapturous applause. In 1780 Mr. Sheridan was returned to parlia- ment for Stafford, and soon became distinguish- ed as a powerful speaker on the side of the opposition. When the Rockingham party came into power, he was made one of the under sec- retaries ; and, in the coalition administration, was appointed to the Treasury. That post, however, he did not hold long, and during the whole of Mr. Pitt's ascendency, the talents of Sheridan were displayed in combatting that statesman. On the trial of Mr. Hastings he acted a prominent part, and his eloquence had an electrifying effect upon his auditors. On the conclusion of Mr. Sheridan's speech on the Begum charge, on the impeachment of Mr. Hastings, the whole assembly, members, peers, and strangers, involuntarily joined in a tumult of applause, and adopted a mode of ex- pressing their approbation new and irregular in Westminster hall, by loudly and repeatedly clapping their hands. A motion was immedi- ately made and carried for an adjournment, that the members, who were in a state of delirious insensibility, from the talismanic influence of such powerful eloquence, might have time to collect their scattered senses for the exercise of a sober judgment. The motion was made by Mr. Pitt, who declared that this speech " sur- passed all the eloquence of ancient and modern times, and possessed every thing that genius or art could furnish, to agitate and control the human mind." "He has this day," said Mr. Burke, " sur- prised the thousands who hung with rapture on his accents, by such an array of talents, such an exhibition of capacity, such a display of powers, as are unparalleled in the annals of oratory ! a display that reflects the highest, honor upon 'himself a lustre upon letters renown upon parliament glory upon the country. Of all spocios of rhetoric, of every kind of elo- quence that has been witnessed or recorded, either in ancient or modern times : whatever the acuteness of the bar, the dignity of the HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SHE 525 SHE senate, the solidity of the judgment seat, and the sacred morality of the pulpit, have hitherto furnished, nothing has surpassed, nothing has equalled what we have this day heard in West- minster-hall. No holy seer of religion, no statesman, no orator, no man of any literary description whatever, has come up, iti one in- stance, to the pure sentiments of morality ; or, in the other, to the variety of knowledge, force of imagination, propriety and vivacity of allu- sion, beauty and elegance of diction, strength and copiousness of style, pathos and sublimity of conception, to which we have this day list- ened with ardor and admiration. From poetry up to eloquence, there is not a species of com- position of which a complete and perfect speci- men might not from that single speech be culled and collected." , A faint idea of the power of this speech may be formed from the following brief extract : " The Majesty of Justice, in the eyes of Mr. Hastings, is a beintr of terrific horror a dread- ful idol, placed in the gloom of graves, accessible only to cringing supplication, and which must be approached with offerings, and worshipped by sacrifice. The Majesty of Mr. Hastings is a being, whose decrees are written with blood, and whose oracles are at once secure and terri- ble. From such an idol I turn mine eyes with horror I turn them here to this dignified and high tribunal, where the Majesty of Justice really sits enthroned. Here I perceive the Majesty of Justice in her proper robes of truth and mercy chaste and simple accessible and patient awful without severity, inquisitive without meanness. 1 see here enthroned and sitting in judgment on a great and momentous cause, in which the happiness of millions is in- volved. Pardon me, my lords, if I presume to say, that in the decision of this great cause, you are to be envied as well as venerated. You possess the highest distinction of the human character ; for when you render your ultimate voice on this cause, illustrating the dignity of the ancestors from whom you spring justifying the solemn asseveration which you make vin- dicating the people of whom you are a part and manifesting the intelligence of the times in which you live you will do an act of mercy, and blessing to man, as no men but yourselves are able to grant." In 1792 Mr. Sheridan had the misfortune to lose his wife, who left one son, Thomas Sheri- dan. Three years afterwards he married Miss Ogle, daughter of the dean of Winchester. But neither the large fortune which this lady brought him, nor the receiver generalship of Cornwall, nor his interest in Drury Lane theatre,were abie to supply Sheridan's extravagances, and put him beyond the reach of pecuniary embarrass- ment. After the death of Mr. Fox, Sbe-idan was deprived of office. His intemperate Habits and indolence completed the ruin which the burning of Drury Lane theatre began. Yet this calamity was borne with equanimity. Some of his companions found Sheridan at a neigh- boring ale-house quietly surveying the raging flames which were rapidly consuming his pro- perty. On observing their astonishment. She- ridan coolly observed, " Why shouldn't a man enjoy his pot and pipe by his own fire-side." Intemperance had undermined his constitu- tion, and he died in miserable circumstances, July 7, 1816. His plays are the Rivals, Du- enna, School for Scandal, St. Patrick's Day, or the Scheming Lieutenant, a Trip to Scarbo- rough, the Camp, the Critic, or Tragedy Re- hearsed, Robinson Crusoe, or Harlequin Friday, and Pizarro, a tragedy translated from the Ger- man. Byron's monody on Sheridan concludes thus: Ye orators! whom yet our councils lead, Mourn for the veteran hero of your field ! The worthy rival of the wond'rous three ! Whose words were sparks of immortality ! Ye bards ! to whom the drama's muse is dear, He was your master emulate him here .' Ye men of wit and social eloquence ! He was your brother bear his ashes hence ! While powers of mind almost of boundless range, Complete in kind as various in their change ; While eloquence wit poesy and mirth, (That humbler harmonist of care on earth), Survive within our souls while lives our sense Of pride in merit's pfoud preeminence, Long shall we seek his likeness long in vain, And turn to all of him which may remain, Sighing that nature formed but one such man, And broke the die in moulding SHERIDAN ! Some of Sheridan's Lon mots will be long re- membered for their uncommon brilliancy. He once remarked that the tax upon mile-stones was unconstitutional ; li because." said he, " they are a race that cannot meet to remonstrate." Young Tom Sheridan once said to his father; " If ever I get into parliament, I mean to set up a sign on my head inscribed To let." " Ay," said Sheridan, " and add unfurnished." Sheridan was fond of practical jokes one of which he played off upon the duke of Devon- shire. Sheridan was in the habit of frequenting CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SHO 526 SI A Dolly's Chop-house, where he generally called for a devilled shin-bone of beef. One day, coming in rather later than usual, he was told that the only shin-bone in the larder was being cooked for his grace the duke of Devonshire. Sheridan, who was unacquainted with the duke, took a seat within ear-shot of him, and began a conversation with a friend in a loud tone of voice. " I always imagined," said he, " that Dolly's chop-house, was one of the neatest es- tablishments in London, but I made a discove- ry this morning which has convinced me that I was mistaken." Here the duke listened very attentively. " As I was passing the kitchen window," continued Sheridan, " I observed a turnspit-boy greedily gnawing a shin-bone of beef. Presently one of the cooks ran up to him, and giving him a blow on the neck, compelled him to drop his prize. ' You dirty little rascal,' said the cook, ' could'nt you find nothing else to eat here I ' ve got to cook this bone for the duke of Devonshire ! ' " Soon after the conclu- sion of this tale, a waiter entered the room, and advanced to his grace, with a covered dish. "Your bone, sir ! " " Take it away ! " roared the duke, with a face of great disgust, " I can't touch a morsel of it." " Stay, waited ! " said Sheridan ; <; bring it to me. If his grace can ' t eat it, I can. Fetch me a bottle of claret I don't wish a better luncheon." Two young sprigs of nobility once accosted Sheridan in Bond-street. " Sherry." said one of them familiarly, ' my friend and'l have been discussing the question whether you are knave or fool." " Why." said the wit, taking an arm of each and smiling " [ believe 1 am between both." SHERMAN, Roger, a signer of the Declara- tion of Independence, was born at Newton, Massachusetts, April 10, 1721, and was appren- ticed to a shoemaker. In 1743 the family re- moved to N. Milford in Connecticut, where he entered upon trade as a country merchant. Having, however, always displayed a desire for knowledge, he studied' with diligence, and in 1754 was admitted to the bar. In 1759 he was appointed judge of the court of common pleas in Litchfield. Two years afterwards he remov- rd to New Haven, and in 17(>5. was appointed judge of the court of common pleas and treasurer of Yale college. After holding a seat in the general assembly of Connecticut, he was sent to congress in 1774. After discharging several im- portant duties, and being made senator, he died July 23, 17i3,inthe seventy-third yearofhisaire. SHORE, (Jane), mistress of Edward IV, a woman of exquisite beauty and good sense, but who had not virtue enough to resist the tempta- tions of a beautiful man and a monarch. She was fated to incur the indignation of the duke of Gloucester, who had been made protector of the realm on the death of Edward. This un- fortunate woman was an enemy too humble to excite the protector's jealousy ; yet as he had accused hrr of witchcraft, of which she was innocent, he thought proper to make her an ex- ample for those faults of which she was really guilty. Jane Shore had been formerly deluded from her husband, who was a goldsmith in Lombard-street, and continued to live with Ed- ward, the most guiltless mistress in his aban- doned court. The charge against her was too notorious to be denied ; she pleaded guilty, and was accordingly condemned to walk bare-fool through the city, and do penance in St. PaulV church, in a white sheet, with a wax taper in her hand, before thousands of spectators. She lived above forty years after this sentence, and was reduced to the most extreme indigence. SHOVEL, Sir Cloudesley, an admiral, was born near Clay, in Norfolk, about l(!5t). In 1674 he was a lieutenant under Sir John Nar- borough, who sent Mr. Shovel to the dey of Tripoli with a requisition, which the Moor treated with contempt Sir John then despatch- ed the lieutenant on shore again, when the dey behaved much worse than before. On his re- turn, Shovel stated to the admiral the practica- bility of destroying the enemy's shipping . which service he performed the same night "without the loss of a man. For this exploit he was ap- pointed to the command of a ship. After the Revolution he was knighted, and made a rear-admiral, in which capacity he had a share in the victory of La Hogue. In 1703 he commanded a fleet in the Mediterranean, and the year following partook in the victory off Malaga. In 1705 he sailed for England, and in the night of October 22, fell by mistake upon the rocks of Scilly, where his ship was totally lost, with some others, and all on board perished. His body beincr found by the fisher- men, was stripped and buried; but the fact becoming known, the remains were brought to London, and interred in Westminster Abbey, where a monument was erected to his memory. SI AM. a country in the peninsula of Chin- India containing 190,000 square miles, and 3,70.0,000 inhabitants. The country is moun- tainous hut the soil fertile. The inhabitants are slothful, indolent, vain, and deceitful. Their religion is Buddhism. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SIC 527 SIC SIBERIA, a vast territory of Asia, including the whole northern part of that continent. The exploration of Siberia may be dated from the period when Russia emancipated herself from the yoke of the Tartar conquerors. At length the czars of Muscovy having acquired a knowledge of the country, began the system of colonizing it, by making it a place of banish- ment for public criminals, till the settlement being formed, the aversion to migrate thither was greatly abated. A body of wandering Russian troops having sought refuge from the Cossacks, whom they were sent to extirpate, in the eastern regions of this country, they there found established, a Tartar kingdom, of which Sibir was the capital. The khan or ruler having been totally defeat- ed, Germack, the conqueror, took possession of the kingdom but was afterwards surprised and cut off by an ambuscade of Tartars. In the course of fifty years, a few Cossacks and hun- ters had. by their intrepid exertions, added to Russia a territory larger in extent than all Eu- rope. However, in extending their conquest, they came in contact with the Chinese empire, the military force of which defeated the Rus- sians on the banks of the Amour, where they were obliged to terminate their progress, and which river forms the line of demarcation be- tween the two empires. SICILY. This island, which is part of the kingdom of Naples, is separated from Italy by the straits of Messina. It is 60 leagues long, and 36 broad, and contains 1,787,771 inhabi- tants. The principal cities are Palermo, Mazara, Syracuse, Messina, and Catania. The country is rich and fertile, and was formerly the granary of Italy; but is no longer so well cultivated. It produces grain, silk, wines, excellent fruits, wax, and honey. The Sicilians are polished, and fond of the fine arts, but fickle and revenge- ful. They profess the Roman Catholic religion. This island was anciently known by the names of Sicania, Sicilia, and Trinacria, from its triangular form It is situated between Italy and Africa, lying between 36 30 f and 38 20' of north latitude, and extending from the 13th to the IGth degree of east longitude. JEtna., now mount Gibello, emits flames, throws up stones and ashes, and alarms the inhabitants by its roaring , and its convulsions have frequently overturned cities, and covered the island with ruins. In the Tuscan Sea, near Sicily, lie the JEollan and Vulcanian isles, in which Vulcan is fabled to have had his forges, and ^Eolus to have confined the winds subject to his com- 45 mand. Sicily was peopled by Greeks from Chalcia, Achaia, Doris, and from Crete, Rhodes, and other islands, and by some colonies from Italy. At length, Syracuse, which was found- ed by a Corinthian, usurped the chief power, and continued for a long time the metropolis of Sicily. It was at first governed by kings ; and afterwards a democracy was established. It exhibits a perpetual alternation of slavery under tyrants, and of liberty under a popular government. Gelon is said to have introduced himself into Syracuse by his address, and to have gained the favor of the people, who in- vested him with absolute power, B. C. 483. He laid the foundation of that immense com- merce, which rendered Syracuse strong and opulent. He proposed to assist the Greeks against Xerxes, when the Carthaginians land- ed in Sicily an army of 300,000 men under the command of Hamilcar. However, Gelon, by means of an intercepted letter was enabled to send a body of cavalry, that put Hamilcar to death, dispersed the troops, and burnt the ships, while he attacked the other camp. An assembly of the Syracusans being convened, Gelon was invited to assume the title of king, and invested with supreme au- thority. The people also passed a decree, set- tling the crown, after his death, on his two brothers, Hiero and Thrasybulus. Gelon was succeeded by his elder brother, Hiero, B. C. 471, whom some represent as an excellent prince, and others as a covetous, obstinate, and cruel tyrant. Hiero was succeeded by his brother Thrasy- bulus, B. C. 459, a cruel and sanguinary tyrant, who massacred all those subjects who gave him the least cause of offence. Incensed at this oppressive conduct, the people took up arms, and expelled the tyrant, who retired to Italy. The Syracusans. attempting to subdue the neighboring cities, the latter requested the as- sistance of the Athenians, who had long wished to form an establishment in Sicily. Nicias, a prudent general, endeavored to dissuade the Athenians from such an undertaking ; but the senate and the people were hurried on by en- thusiasm, and determined to sell the Syracu- sans and their allies as slaves, and oblige the other cities of Sicily to pay an annual tribute to Athens. Accordingly, the Athenians set sail and arrived before Syracuse, which they be- sieged both by sea and land, B. C. 416. The Syracusans were about to surrender, when Gy- lippus, a Spartan general, arrived with assistance from Lacedaemon. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SIC 528 SIC Nicias found himself under the necessity of demanding a reinforcement from Athens, which despatched another fleet, commanded by De- mosthenes ; that eterprising general, induced Nicias to make an assault, which was not suc- cessful. At length the Athenian and Syracusan armaments met, and an engagement ensued, when the Athenians were completely defeated. Finding no other resource left than to endeavor to reach some towns in alliance with them, they began their march. However, the dead and the dyinp 1 retarded their progress ; and the enemy briskly pursued, and allowed them scarcely a moment of rest. Nicias and Demosthenes were made prisoners, and after being publicly scourg- ed, were thrown from a precipice. The soldiers were shut up in the quarries, where they received a scanty allowance of food, and were infected with the putrid bodies of their dead companions. Such was the issue of this war, after it had con- tinued nearly three years. Sicily was soon engaged in a new contest. The Egestines, who had invited the Athenians into Sicily, dreading the resentment of the Sy- racusans, offered to put their city into the hands of the Carthaginians, from whom they request- ed assistance against the inhabitants of Seli- nuntum. The Carthaginians committed the management of the war to Hannibal, the grand- sort of Hamilcar, who landed in Sicily with an army of 300,000 men. The Selinuntines de- fended their walls, their streets, their public squares, and even their houses, but were every where overpowered by numbers. Two thou- sand six hundred of them escaped to Agrigen- tum, and the rest were cut to pieces by the Carthaginians, who committed dreadful cruel- ties and atrocities The conquerors then marcn- ed to Himera, before which Hamilcar had been killed by Gelon, and which shared the same fate as Selinuntum. Hannibal ordered 3000 Himerians to be barbarously massacred on the spot where his grandfather had been defeated and killed ; and after thus terminating the cam- paign, he embarked his troops, and set. sail for Africa. The Carthaginians now returned to Sicily with 300,000 men, and attacked Agri- gentum. In the first sally, the besieged burnt the machines, and made a prodigious slaughter of the enemy. At length, Agrigentum being greatly distress- ed for want of provisions, the inhabitants resolv- ed to leave the city, which was taken possession of by the Carthaginians. The Agrigentines, who took refuge in Syracuse, filled that city with complaints against the Syracusan com- manders, as if they had betrayed Agrigentum into the hands of the enemy. This raised such dis- turbances in Syracuse, as afforded to Dionysius, a bold, eloquent, and aspiring man, an opportu- nity of seizing on the sovereign power. After procuring a guard of 1000 men, and being join- ed by part of the garrison in Gela, he possessed himself of the citadel, and publicly declared himself king of Syracuse, B. C. 404. But on the first defeat he experienced from the Cartha- ginians, the people revolted, and united with his enemies. Dionysius, however, found means not only to appease the revolt, but to conclude a peace with the Carthaginians. Dionysius again declared war with the Car- thaginians, from whom he took the most im- portant of the towns which they possessed in Sicily ; but who, nevertheless, appeared before Syracuse, to which they laid siege. The Car- thaginians being exhausted by a plague-, were obliged to raise the siege, and Dionysius suffer- ed them to retire unmolested, on condition that they paid him a large sum of money. He then turned his arms against Italy, andtook Rhegium, the inhabitants of which ho treated with his usual inhumanity. He was succeeded by his son Dionysius, who was surnamed the younger, B. C. 3Gl5, and who was a weak and irresolute prince. Dion, the brother of Aristonmche, the wife of Dionysius the elder, a friend and disciple of Plato, induced the young prince to banish the accomplices of his debaucheries and to recall Plato. Through a cabal of courtiers, Dion and Plato were disgraced, and obliged to retire to Athens. Dionysius notonly refused to Dion the revenue arising from his property, but compelled his wife Arete, who was much beloved by her husband, to espouse Timocrates one of his cour- tiers. These provocations incensed Dion, who collected a small band, and arriving at Syracuse whilst Dionysius was engaged with the war in Italy, declared that he came not to avenge his own private wrongs, but to emancipate Syra- cuse and Sicily from the yoke of the tyrant. Under this standard of liberty, Dion obtained Eossession of the greater part of the city ; and avirig defeated Dionysius in an engagement, compelled the tyrant to flee into Italy. Dion, having murdered one of his generals, was as- sassinated in his own house by his guest and friend Calippus. The death of Dion, and the flight of Calip- pus, recalled Dionysius, B. C. 350, who again reinstated himself in the possession of his do- minions, which he retained until he was again expelled by an army under Timoleon. This HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL SIC 529 SIC general overran Sicily as a conqueror, subdued the tyrants of several cities, whom he sent to Corinth to be companions of Dionysius, and de- feated the Carthaginians, who again appeared in the island. For the space of twenty years, the Syracu- sans enjoyed the fruits of Timoleon's services. About that time, Syracuse groaned under the tyranny of Agathocles, who exceeded all his predecessors in cruelty and other vices. .He was soon expelled from that city by Sosistratus, who had usurped the supreme power. He then retired into Italy ; and during his abode in that country, Sosistratus was obliged to abdicate the sovereignty, and quit Syracuse. Sosistratus and the other exiles had recourse to the Car- thaginians, who readily espoused their cause. Upon this, the Syracusans recalled Agatho- cles, whom they appointed commander-in^chief, and he defeated the combined armies of Sosis- tratus and the Carthaginians. Agathocles, therefore, began to exercise a sovereign power over his fellow-citizens, and took such measures as plainly showed that he aimed at monarchy. On discovering his design, the people transfer- red the command of their forces to a Corinthi- an ; and Agathocles saved his life only by stratagem. Agathocles re-appeared under the walls of Syracuse, at the head of a strong army, and, under pretence of a war with Erbita, a neigh- boring city, he collected a great number of sol- diers, whom he induced to pillage Syracuse, and to massacre the whole body of the nobility. In a few hours more than four thousand per- sons fell a sacrifice ; and the streets were cov- ered with slain. He ordered the pillage and massacre to be continued two days longer, after which he was proclaimed king by the few sur- vivors. The success of Agathocles gave uneasiness to the Carthaginians, who sent against him an ar- my under the command of Hamilcar. This general gained over him a complete victory, which obliged Agathocles to confine himself within Syracuse. Whilst the Carthaginians besieged that city, Agathocles embarked some of his best troops, B. C. 307, and, landing in Africa, burned the vessels which had conveyed his army. An engagement took place between the Syracusans and the Carthaginians, the lat- ter of whom were defeated with the loss of Hanno, their general. Syracuse was now reduced to great extremi- ty , 'but Agathocles having sent to the inhabit- ants of that city the head of Hanrio, the sight of it encouraged them to support with success a last assault. They afterwards attacked and en- tirely routed the Carthaginian army, took Ha- milcar prisoner, and sent his head to Acratho- cles. As the war was prolonged, Agathocles resolved to return to Sicily ; and having given the necessary orders during his absence, em- barked with him two thousand chosen men. and arrived at Syracuse. After restoring order to the government, and destroying a league which had been formed against him, he set out once more for Africa. But finding his affairs despe- rate in that country, he determined to abandon his troops, and making his escape put to sea. In the first transports of their fury, the soldiers massacred two of his sons whom he had left be- hind, and, having elected chiefs for themselves, concluded with the Carthaginians a peace, by which they were to be transported to Sicily, and put in possession of the city of Selinuntuin. At length, after a series of cruelties, Agatho cles was burnt on the funeral pile, B. C. 289. The government was next assumed by Moe- non, who was expelled by Hycetas. The latter took the modest title of prsetor,but was deprived of the sovereign power by Toenion, who was op- posed by Sosistratus. But being attacked by the Carthaginians, these chiefs united and call- ed into their assistance Pyrrhus, king of Epirua, who was then carrying on war against the Ro- mans. Pyrrhus re-conquered those cities which had thrown off the yoke. Hiero was appointed to command the Syracusan forces against the Carthaginians, B. C. 275, who had regained most of the places which they possessed before the arrival of the Epirots. He concluded a treaty with the Romans, the conditions of which were faithfully pei formed on both sides. The defeats whicli the Romans sustained at the lake Thrasymene and at Cannss, could not shake his constancy. He died at the atre of ninety. Hieio appointed his grandson Hieronymus king, B. C., 211, with a council of fifteen per- sons, called tutors. His vices and cruelty were such, that a conspiracy was formed against him. He was assassinated while passing through a narrow street, in 208 B. C., and the people showed so little concern for his person, that they suffered the body to rot in the place where it had fallen. Hieronymus was no sooner dead, than two of the conspirators hastened to pre vent the attempts of Andranodorus, and of others of the king's faction. However, he soon after, in conceit with Themistus, the husband of Harmonia, sister of the deceased king, formed a plot to exterminate the chief citizens of Syra- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SIC 530 SID C.USP. This being disclosed to the senate, An- dranodorus and Themistus were condemned, though absent, and put to death as they were entering the senate-house. Soon after this the guardians and tutors of the late king, and all the royal family, were put to death. The Carthaginians now obtained an ascen- dency in Syracuse. Two of the generals, Hip- pocrates and Epysides, caused the number of the prastors to be reduced to two, and made the choice fall on themselves. Marcellus, the Ro- man consul, appeared at the gates of Syracuse, B. C. 202, and demanded that the authors of the late massacre should be delivered into his hands ; but finding his demand treated with ridicule, he commenced hostilities, and attempted a general assault on the city. However, by the genius of Archimedes, an able mathematician, without employing the s%vord, two Roman armies were repulsed on this occasion. Marcellus was, therefore, obliged to convert the sieo-e into a blockade : and, at length, he obtained posses- sion of the city by an escalade. The soldiers entered the houses of the Syracusans, seized all the valuables, but offered no violence to the persons of the inhabitants. Acradina, the strongest quarter of the city, held out sometime longer, but was at length taken by means of an officer, who gave up to Marcellus one of the gates, B. C. 200. After the capture of Syracuse, Agrigenlum was besieged and taken. By order of the con- sul Lcevinus, the chiefs of the latter city were scourged and beheaded, and the people reduced to slavery and sold by auction. After this ter- rible example, no more cities resisted, and Sici- ly was converted into a province of Rome, B. C. 198. Sicily remained in the hands of the Ro- mans during many centuries. At length, in the 8th and 9th centuries, the Saracens conquered Sicily, and the island remained in their posses- sion 200 years. In the llth century the Nor- mans made the conquest of this country, and in 12GG, it submitted to Charles of Anjou, a French prince. In 1282, the massacre of the French, called the Sicilian Vespers, took place here, and after this catastrophe, the inhabitants transferred the sovereignty of their island to Spain, with whom it long remained, as well as that of the Neapo- litan territory, to which Sicily became united in 1430. Both were subject to the crown of Spain in 1700. In 1707 the Austrian* obtained pos- session of Naples and Sicily ; and by the peace of Utrecht, in 1713, while Naples was confirmed to them, Sicily was given to the duke of Savoy, with the title of king. In 1720, the Austrians prevailed on the new possessor of Sicily to ex- change it for Sardinia, and added the former to the kingdom of Naples. The war of 1734, how- ever transferred the crown of the two Sicilies to a branch of the royal family of Spain, and it re- mained in their hands till 1799, when the royal family were expelled from Naples. The latter took refuge in Sicily, were afterwards restored to Naples, but again compelled to take refuge in Sicily. The acquisition of Sicily is said to have been a primary object with Napoleon, but an attempt at invasion in 1810 was baffled by the British troops. In 1815, the overthrow of Murat led to the restoration of the legitimate family to the throne of Naples, which they now possess. See Naples. SIDNEY, Algernon, a republican, was the second son of Robert earl of Leicester, by Dor- othy, daughter of the earl of Northumberland, and was born about 1620. In the rebellion, he became a colonel in the army of the parliament, a member of the house of commons, and was nominated one of the king's judges, but did not sign the warrant for his execution. The same principles, however, which led him to oppose Charles, made him hostile to Cromwell and his son Richard. In 1659 he was one of the com- missioners sent to mediate between Denmark and Sweden. On the Restoration, Sidney re- mained abroad till 1077. when he received 3 conditional pardon ; but in 1083, being implica- ted in what was called the Rye-House plot, he was arraigned before the chiet justice, Jefferies, and found guilty, though the evidence was de- fective, and in every sense illegal. He suffered death with great firmness upon Tower Hill, on the seventh of December the same year. SIDNEY, Sir Philip, the author of the Arca- dia, Defence of Poesy, Astrophel and Stella, &c., was born Nov. 29, 1554. at Penshurst, in Kent, the seat of his father, Sir Henry Sidney, who was the friend of Edward VI, and, in the reign of Elizabeth, became lord deputy of Ire- land. The mother of Sir Philip was Mary, daughter of the duke of Northumberland. While at Paris, the French king made him gentleman of his bed-chamber ; but the distinction was rendered offensive by the massacre of the Pro- lestants, which took place while Sidney resided there, in the house of the English ambassador. When the danger was over, he went to Frank- fort, and next to Vienna, where he distinguish ed himself by his skill in martial exercises. Ii: 1570' he was sent ambassador to Vienna, osten HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SIL 531 SIX sibly to condole with the emperor, on the death of his father ; but secretly to promote a league among the protestant states against Spain, which object he achieved. In 1580 a tournament was held at court, where, though Sidney displayed his prowess to great advantage, the victory was adjudged to the earl of Oxford, which produced a challenge ; but the duel being prevented by the queen's commands, our hero retired to Wilton, the seat of his bro- ther-ia-law, the earl of Pembroke. In 1585 Sidney was named as a candidate for the king- dom of Poland, but the queen interposed her au- thority against it, " refusing," says an historian, " to iurther his advancement, out of fear that she should lose the jewel of her times." The Protestants of the Netherlands, having solicited the assistance of England to relieve them from the Spanish yoke, a military force was sent over under the command of sir Philip, who on his arrival at Flushing, was appointed colonel of all the Dutch regiments. Not long after, the earl of Leicester joined him with ad- ditional troops, and Sidney was promoted to the rank of general of the horse. On the 22d of September, 1586, he fell in with a convoy sent by the enemy to Zutphen, and though the English troops were inferior to the enemy , they gained the victory ; but it was dearly purchased by the loss of their commander, who, after one horse was shot under him, mounted another, and continued the fight, till he received a ball in the left thigh, which proved^ fatal. As he was borne from the field, languid with the loss of blood, he asked for water, but just as the bottle was put to his lips, seeing a dying soldier looking wistfully at it, he resign- ed it, saying " this man's necessity is greater than mine." He died on the 15th October, and his body was brought over and interred in St. Paul's cathedral. SILESIA, formerly a duchy of Bohemia, but now divided into two parts, belonging to Prus- sia and Austria. The geographical division is into Upper and Lower Silesia. Prussian Sile- sia contains 12,264 square miles, and 2,396,551 inhabitants. Austrian Silesia contains 350,000 inhabitants, and 2500 square miles. The abori- gines of Silesia appear to have been the Quadi and Lygii. It was ceded to the sons of Boles- laus II in the eleventh century ; and was sub- dued by the kings of Bohemia in the fourteenth century. Silesia passed with Bohemia to the house of Austria in the sixteenth century, and continued in its undisturbed possession until the death of Charles VI in 1740, led to a general attack on dominions considered comparatively defenceless when transmitted -to a female. Fre derick II endeavored to obtain the western part of Silesia. Austria, with the aid of England, took up arms. The contest terminated in the cession of part of Silesia to Prussia. The peace of Hubertsburg, in 1763, left Silesia conclusive- ly in the hands of Frederick. In 1807, it was overrun by the French ; but it was not separa- ted at the peace of Tilsit from the Prussian ter- | SLXTUS V, Pope, was born in 1521, in the signory of Montalto, where his father, Francis Peretti, was a gardener. At the age of four- teen, he was allowed to make his profession, and in 1545 he received priest's orders, and took the name of Father Montalto. His popularity as a preacher procured him many friends, and in 1555 he was appointed inquisitor-general at Venice j where, ho%vever, he gave so much of- fence by his severity, as to be obliged to return to Rome. Pius V made him general of his or- der, next bishop to St. Agatha, and in 1570 raised him to the purple. Hitherto Montalto had been remarked for his haughty demeanor, but now he assumed quite an opposite charac- ter, and appeared all humility, meekness, and condescension. He carried this hypocrisy so far, as to treat his family with neglect, telling them, " that he was dead to his relations and the world." He took no part in political conten- tions, and the other cardinals were so complete- ly imposed upon by him, that they called him " The ass of La Marca." In this way he went on several years, adding to his deceit, the pre- tence of bodily infirmities. At length Gregory XIII died, in 1585, and the election of a new pope was contested between three cardinals, whose respective interests were so equal, that they agreed to choose Montalto ; but when they informed him of their intention, he fell into such a fit of coughing, that they thought he would have expired. The election, however, took place, and no sooner was it announced, than the pope threw his staff into the middle of the chapel, and began the " Te Deum " with a loud voice, to the astonishment of all who heard him. He took the name of Sixtus V, and though he administered justice with rigorous severity, the relaxed state of manners called for it, and no one could tax him with partiality. Among other things, he caused the Vulgate edition of the Bible to be revised, and he even went so far as to have an Italian version of it printed, which excited great alarm among the bigoted catho- lics. Towards foreign powers he behaved with CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SMI 532 SMI spirit, and took away from their ambassadors the liberty of granting protections, saying, " That he was determined no one should reign at Rome but himself." His private character was free from reproach, and the only faults charged upon him were, the hypocritical course lie took to gain the papacy, and the inexorable rigor with which he acted while he enjoyed it. He died August 27, 15!)0. SMITH, John, was born at Willoughby, in Lincolnshire, England, in 1579. He early dis- played a roving disposition, and was fond of leats of daring. On the death of his father, he was apprenticed to a merchant of Lynn, whom he soon quitted to enter the service of a noble- man who was going to the continent. At Or- leans he was discharged with money to defray the expenses of his voyage home, but meeting with a Scotchman in the Low Countries where he had enlisted as a soldier, he was persuaded to go to Scotland, and promised the counte- nance of king James. Disappointed in his ex- pectations he returned to his native town, but rinding no agreeable companions, he built him- self a hut in the woods, and studied works on tile military art, occasionally amusing himself with his horse and lance. In 1596, he again set out on his travels, going first to Flanders and thence to France, where he fell in with some pilgrims at Marseilles, and set sail in their company for Italy. The pil- grims, however, attributing the storm which overtook them to the presence of a heretic, threw overboard Smith, who saved his life by swim- ming to the island of St. Mary, offNice. He was now befriended by a master of a vessel who took him to Alexandria whence he coasted the Le- vant, and assisted in the capture of a Venetian ship. With his share of the prize-money, he made the tour of Italy, and then entered the Austrian service, having command of a compa- ny, with which he accompanied the Transylva- nian army against the Turks. At the siege of Regal, the lord Turbisha, challenged any Christian commander to fight with him in presence of the ladies for their par- ticular amusement. The duty of encountering this champion devolved by lot upon Smith, who killed him, struck off" his head and bore it in tri- umph to the general of the Transylvanian army. A friend of Turbisha now sent Smith a chal- lenge which he accepted. They fought, as be- fore, in the presence of the ladies who witness- ed the defeat of the Turk, and his decapitation by Smith. The latter now sent word to the Ottomans, that, for the further gratification of their ladies, he would encounter any champion whom they might select. One Bonomalgro ac- cepted the challenge, and, in the combat which took place. Smith, although stricken to the ground, regained his saddle at a fortunate mo- ment, and severed the infidel's head from his body. These brilliant exploits procured him a sort of military triumph, after the manner of the Romans, a splendid horse and sabre, and a ma- jor's commission. On the capture of Regal the prince of Transylvania gave Smith his minia- ture set in gold, a pension, and a coat of arms with three Turks' heads in a shield. After this he was taken prisoner, and made the slave of the mistress of a pacha who resided at Constantinople. This lady, who fell in love with the Christian hero, sent him to her bro- Iher, a pacha on the borders of the sea of Azoph. This dignitary, suspecting the passion of the lady, treated Smith with great severity, but the latter found an opportunity to kill his tyrant, and, mounting the fine charger of his fallen foe, he made his way into Russia, whence he travelled through Germany, France, Spain, and Morocco, from which latter place he returned to England. On the 1'Jth of December. IWKJ, he sailed for America, with Gosnold's expedition, letters patent having been obtained and a coun- cil nominated for the colonv of Virginia. After some time the weight of the administration of the Jamestown settlement devolved upon Smith, who was ever active and energetic. But while exploring James river, he was taken pri- soner by the Indian chief Powhatan, and doomed to death ; from which he was only saved by the courageous interposition of Pocahontas, Pow- hatan's daughter, who procured his liberation. Smith, having been elected president of the colony, ably discharged the arduous duties im- posed upon him, although its inevitable difficul- ties were increased by mutiny, and the hostility of the Indians. In 1009 he returned to Eng- land ; but in 1614 he commanded an expedition of discovery to North Virginia, now New Eng- land. The next two vessels belonging to the council of Plymouth, of which he had obtained the command, were driven to England by stress of weather. He next took command of a small vessel which was seized by some French men- of-war under pretence of piracy ; but was re leased after being detained some time. He now travelled about endeavoring to enlist men of note in his schemes for colonizing America, but without success. He urged upon Queen Anne the propriety of rewarding Pocahontas, who had been brought to England ; and he published a HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SOB 533 SOB History of Virginia and an account of his va- rious voyages and hardships. He died in Lon- don, in 1031. in the 52d year of his age. SMITH, James, a signer of the Declaration of Independence, born in Ireland between 1715 and 1720. He was educated at the college of Philadelphia, studied law, and eventually settled at York. In 1774 he was a member of an as- sembly of delegates from all the counties of Pennsylvania, and, in Jan. 1775, of the Penn- sylvanian convention. Being elected a member of congress, he retained his seat in that body until Nov. 1776. He died in 1606. SMOLEXSKO, a considerable town of Eu- ropean Russia, and capital of the government of the same name. The Russians made, here, their first serious opposition to the advance of the French, in the campaign of 1812. An ob- stinate conflict took place on the IGtli and 17th of August, in which the town was bombarded, and set on fire. The Russians were compelled to fall back, and the French extinguished the flames ; on quitting it in their disastrous retreat in November following, they blew up part of the works. SMYRNA, in Turkish, Izmir, a city on the western coast of Natolia, situated at the foot of a gulf, about 50 miles from the sea, contain- intr 130.000 inhabitants. It was originally a colony from Ephesus, and soon attained such celebrity, that it was received as the thirteenth city of Ionia. This original city was destroy- ed by the Lydians ; and Antigonus and Lysim- achus rebuilt the city, though not on the same spot. It has since been considered as the em- porium of the Levant, but has been much in- jured by earthquakes, plagues, and fires. In April.1730.it was nearly destroyed by an earth- quake, and' by a fire, June 20, 1742; had the plague, 1743, 1752; the Armenian quarter was burnt. May 14. 1753; had the plague, 1758, 1760; dreadful fires, in 1763 and 1772; and earthquakes and fire, in 1778 ; in March, 1796, 4000 shops, two large mosques, two public ' baths, and all the magazines and provisions were destroyed by fire ; and in 1814, the plague swept off from 50,000 to 60,000 inhabitants. SOBIESKI, John, was elected king of Po- land in 1674. To him Europe owes a series of splendid victories which checked the progress and broke the iron power of the Moslem. To him at the battle of Vienna Austria was indebted for her deliverance at the hour of her extremity. With what abominable ingratitude has she re- paid her debt to Poland ! We cannot withhold from the reader a sketch of this momentousbattle. The Turks offered not the least opposition to the Poles as they crossed the bridge, and all the imperial troops were safely assembled on the western side of the Danube by the 7th of September, and amounted to about 70.000 men. They could hear from Tuln the roar of the Turkish cannon. Vienna was, in fact, reduced almost to its last gasp. Most of the garrison were either killed or wounded, and disease was making even greater ravages than the enemy's balls. " The grave continued open without ever closing its mouth." As early as the 22d of Au- gust the officers had estimated that they could not withstand a general attack three days. If the vizier had pursued his advantage, Vienna must have fallen into his hands. But it was his object to avoid taking it by storm, in which case the plunder would be carried off by the soldiers, whereas, if he could oblige it to sur- render, he might appropriate its spoil to his own use. So careless was he, too, in his confidence, that he had not yet ascertained that the Poles were arrived, till they were in his immediate vicinity ; and when the news was afterward brought to him that the King of Poland was advancing, " The King of Poland !" said he, laughing, "I know, indeed, that he has sent Lubomirski with a few squadrons." The governor, Staremhourg, who had assured the Duke of Lorraine that "Tie would not sur- render the place but with the last drop of his blood." began himself to despair of being longer able to hold out. A letter which he wrote at this period contained only these words : " No more time to lose, my lord, no more time to lose." The imperial army set out on the 9th of Sep- tember for Vienna, but they had a march of fourteen miles to make across a ridge of moun- tains over which the Germans could not drag their cannon, and were therefore obliged to leave them behind. The Poles were more per- severing, for they succeeded in getting over twenty-eight pieces, which were all they had to oppose to the 300 of the enemy. On the llth of September they reached Mount Calemberg, the last which separated them from the Turks. From this hill, the Christians were presented with one of the finest and most dread- ful prospects of the greatness of human power; an immense plain and all the islands of the Dan- ube covered with pavilions, whose magnificence seemed rather calculated for an encampment of pleasure than the hardships of war; an innu- merable multitude of horses, camels, and buffa- loes; 200,000 men all in motion; swarma of CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SOB 534 SOB Tartars dispersed along the foot of the mountain in their usual confusion ; the fire of the besiegers incessant and terrible, and that of the besieged such as they could contrive to make ; in fine, a great city, distinguishable only by the tops of the steeples and the fire and smoke that covered it. But Sobieski was not imposed on by this formidable sight. " This man," said he, " is badly encamped ; he knows nothing of war; we shall certainly beat him." The eagle eye of the experienced warrior was not mistaken. On the eve of the battle, he wrote to the queen in these words : " We can easily see that the general of an army who has "neither thought of intrenching himself nor concentrating his forces, but lies encamped there as if we were a hundred miles from him, is predestined to be beaten." Sunday, the 12th of September, 1683, was the important day, " big with the fate," of Leo- pold, that was to decide whether the Turkish crescent was to wave on the turrets of Vienna. The cannonade on the city began at the break of day, for which purpose the vizier on his part had withdrawn from his army the janizaries, all his infantry, and nearly all his artillery. The light cavalry, the Spahis, the Tartars, and other irregular troops, were the forces destined to encounter the enemy ; so egregiously did Kara Mustapha miscalculate the strength of his opponents. They were commanded by Ibrahim Pacha, who was regarded by the Turks as one of the greatest generals of the age ; but, unfor- tunately for them, he was one of those who dis- approved the war, and particularly the present plan of it. At eight in the morning there was some skirmishing; at eleven the Christian army was drawn up in array in the plain ; and Kara Mustapha, beginning to apprehend that the al- lies were more formidable than he anticipated, had changed his design, and came to command his troops in person. He was stationed in the centre, and Sobieski occupied the same situa- tion in his army. It was nearly five in the evening, and the engagement had only been partial ; for Sobies- ki's infantry had not come up, and the vizier was to be seen under a superb crimson tent, quietly sipping coffee, while the King of Poland was before him. At length the infantry arriv- ed, and Sobieski ordered them to seize an emi- nence which commanded the vizier's position. The promptitude and gallantry with which this mancBuvre was executed decided the fate of the day. Kara Mustapha, taken by surprise at this unexpected attack, ordered all his infantry to his right wing, and the movement put all the line in confusion. The king cried out that they were lost men ; he ordered the Duke of Lor- raine to attack the centre, which was now ex- posed and weakened, while he himself made his way through the confused Turks straight for the vizier's tent. He was instantly recog- * nised by the streamers which adorned the lances of his guard, " By Allah!" exclaimed the cham of the Tartars, " the king is with them!" An eclipse of the moon added to the consternation of theuperstitious Moslems. At this moment the Polish cavalry made a grand charge, and at the same time the Duke ot Lorraine with his troops added to the confusion , and the rout of the Turks became general. The vizier in vain tried to rally them. " And you," said he to the cham of the Tartars, who passed him among the fugitives, "cannot you help me?" "I know the King of Poland !" was the answer. " I told you that if we had to deal with him, all we could do would be to run away. Look at the sky ; see if God is not against us." The immense Turkish army was wholly broken up, and Vienna was saved. So sudden and general was the panic among the Turks, that by six o'clock Sobieski had taken possession of their camp. One of the vizier's stirrups, finely enamelled, was brought to him. " Take this stirrup," said he, " to the queen, and tell her, that the person to whom it belonged is defeated." Havino- strictly forbid- den his soldiers from plundering, they rested under the Turkish tents. Such were the events of the famous deliver- ance of Vienna as they were seen by a looker- on ; and the outline of the narrative is filled up by one who was the best informed, and not the least impartial, no less than the great hero him- self. " The victory has been so sudden and extraordinary," he writes to the queen, " that the city, as well as the camp, was in continual alarm, expecting to see the enemy return every moment. Night put an end to the pursuit, and besides, the Turks defended themselves with fury in their flight. All the troops have done their duty well ; they attribute the victory to God and us. At the moment when the enemy began to give ground (and the greatest shock was where I was stationed, opposite the vizier), all the cavalry of the rest of the army advanced towards me on the right wing, the centre and the left wing having as yet but little to do. The emperor is about a mile and a half distant. He is coming down the Danube in a chaloupe ; but I perceive he has no great wish to see me, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SOL 535 SOM perhaps on account of the etiquette. I am very glad to avoid these ceremonies ; we have been treated with nothing else up to this time. Our darling is brave in the highest degree." On the following day John made his entrance into Vienna. The breach made by the Turks, and through which they expected to march to the destruction of the city, was the road which admitted its deliverer. The citizens received him with undisguised expressions of gratitude ; and even the stern warrior Sobieski shed a tear of joy at receiving the thanks and acclama- tions of the victims whom he had rescued from destruction. " Never," said he, "did the crown yield me pleasure like this !'' The peo- ple could not help comparing him with their own disgraceful sovereign, and exclaiming, " Ah ! why is not this our master?" With dif- ficulty could the stern looks of the emperor's officers check these natural expressions of feel- ing. But Sobieski did not arrogate to himself only the glory of the victory ; he went to the cathedral to return thanks, and began to sing the Te Dcum himself. A sermon was after- wards delivered, and the preacher, in the taste of that age of conceits and far-fetched puerili- ties, chose the following text for the occasion : " There was a man sent from God, whose name was John. 1 ' He died of apoplexy after a reign of twenty- two years; and was justly considered the most accomplished sovereign that ever sat on the throne of Poland. SOCRATES, the most celebrated philosopher of all antiquity, was a native of Athens. Phi- losophy soon became the study of Socrates ; and under Archelaus and Anaxagoras he laid the foundation of that exemplary virtue which suc- ceeding ages have ever loved and venerated. He appeared like the rest of his countrymen in the field of battle ; he fought with boldness and intrepidity ; and to his courage two of his friends and disciples, Xenophon and Alcibiades, owed the preservation of their lives. But the char- acter of Socrates appears more conspicuous and dignified as a philosopher and moralist, than as a warrior. His principles were enforced by the unparalleled example of an affectionate hus- band, a tender parent, a warlike soldier, and a patriotic citizen in his own person. He was born 470 B. C. and died B. C. 400, being un- justly condemned to death. SOLOMON, one of the most illustqflus kings of Israel, was born A. M. 2971, and a^pceeded his father David. In the fourth year, of his reign, he commenced building his celebrated temple, which he completed in seven years. He also built the walls of Jerusalem, fortified several other cities, and contributed much to the prosperity of his dominions. He died in 3029, after forty years' reign. SOLON, one of the seven wise men of Greece, was born at Salamis, and educated at Athens After he had devoted part of his time to philo- sophical and political studies, Solon travelled over the greatest part of Greece, but at his re- turn home he was distressed with the dissen- sions which were kindled among his country men. All fixed their eyes upon Solon as a de- liverer, and he was unanimously elected archon and sovereign legislator. He flourished about 600 B.C. SOLYMAN II succeeded his father Selim I in 1520. Gazelles, governor of Syria, rebelling after the death of Selim, and having made him- self master of a part of Egypt, was defeated by Solyman's generals, who himself resolved to turn his arms against the Christians. Accord- ingly, in 1521 he took Belgrade, and the next year Rhodes. This victory was followed by the revolt of the Egyptians and some other na- tions, which were defeated by Ibraim Bassa; and Solyman,in the meantime, being advanced with his army into Hungary, won the battle of Mohacs, in 1526, where Lewis II king of Hun- gary , lost his life in a morass. He made several other expeditions into this kingdom, where he took Buda, Pest, Gran, and some other places, and died there himself at the siege of Zigeth or Sigeth, the 4th of September, 1566, being sev- enty-two years of age. In 1529 Solyman be- sieged Vienna, but without success; and in 1535, he took and plundered Tauris ; and his generals subdued several cities and provinces in Europe, Asia, and Africa. SOMERS, John, Lord, a lawyer and states- man, was born at Worcester, March 4, 1650 In 1C88, he was one of the counsel for the seven bishops; and being chosen a member of the con- vention parliament, he distinguished himself at the conference of the two houses, on the question about the abdication of the throne. When the new government was established, he became, successively, solicitor and attorney-general, and in 1693, lord-keeper. He was next raised to the peerage, appointed chancellor, and rewarded with lands in the county of Surrey. In 1700 he was deprived of the seals, and soon after im- peached by the commons ; but a misunderstand- ing arising between the two houses, the lords pronounced a verdict of acquittal. Lord Somers projected the union between England and Scot- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY SPA 536 SPA land, and was one of the managers appointed to carry that measure into effect. In 1708, he was made president of the council; but went out of office again in 1710 : after which he led a retired life, and died April 26, 1710. SONORA, one of the states of the Mexican confederacy, lying on the Pacific ocean, rich in the precious metals. It contains 188,000 inhab- itants. SPAIN, an extensive country of Europe, se- parated by the Pyrenees from France, and sur- rounded by the Mediterranean and the Atlantic seas, and the Bay of Biscay, contains 185,000 square miles and about 13,900,000 inhabitants. Spain is one of the most fertile countries in the world. Its wines, silks, oil, wool, metals, and minerals ; various fruits, as citrons, lemons, oranges, pomegranates, almonds and figs, and its famous horses, are as valuable as they are cele- brated. The principal mountains are the Pyre- nees between France and Spain ; Montserrat in Catalonia; the mountains of the Asturias, those of the kingdom of Leon and New Castile ; and the Sierra Morena in Andalusia. The principal rivers are the Duero, which rises in Old Castile, theTagus, the Guadiana, and the Guadalquivir, all flowing into the ocean. The Ebro, whose sources are in the frontiers of Arragon, dis- charges itself into the Mediterranean. The general divisions of the kingdom are as follows : 1. the kingdom of Navarre ; 2. the Vascongados, or Biscay ; 3. the principality of the Asturias ; 4. the kingdom of Galicia ; 5. the kingdom of Arragon; 6. the principality of Catalonia; 7. the kingdom of Leon ; 8. Old Castile ; 9. Es- tremadura; 10. New Castile; 11. the kingdom of Valencia ; 12. Andalusia (including the king- doms of Cordova, Seville, and Granada); 13. the kingdom of Murcia; 14. the Balearic isles. The clouds which cover the primitive history of Spain, do not begin to be dissipated, till the period when the Phoenicians arrived, and form- ed establishments in the country, before unciv- ilized and unknown. It is supposed that they landed inihe island of St. Peter, where they constructed the temple of Hercules, the remains of which are still to be seen when the sea ebbs more than usual. Soon afterwards, the town of Gades, or Uadir, was erected; Calpe and Abyla became renowned for the two columns denominated the pillars of Hercules, on which the Phoenicians engraved the inscription, Non plus ultra. The Greeks, the pupils of the Phoenicians in the art of navigation, did not fail to share with them the advantages of this discovery. They established an extensive commerce in Spain, and founded several cities, among the rest Ampurias and the unfortunate Saguntum ; but the Carthaginians, possessing still greater skill and power, soon made themselves masters of the whole peninsula ; and such they would have remained, had not the Romans, who alone were able to dispute with them this brilliant conquest, at length succeeded in their efforts to wrest it from them. In the hope of escaping from serv- itude, the Spaniards sometimes endeavored to defend themselves ; but more frequently deceiv- ed by the phantom of a generous alliance, they faithfully promoted the views of their different oppressors. Thus, three cities chose rather to perish than to surrender; Saguntum, from attachment to the Romans ; Astapa in Boetica, to the Cartha- ginians, and Nurnantia for the sake of liberty. Exhausted by all these calamities, Spain at length began to breathe, and by degrees to re- cruit her stiength under the peaceable domin- ion of the Romans. Induced by the fertility of her soil, and the richness and variety of her productions, that people founded numerous col- onies in Spain ; military roads were opened in every quarter ; aqueducts conveyed to the cities the tribute of the waters; triumphal arches re- minded the conquerors of their glory ; theatres and circuses effaced from the minds of the van- quished, the memory of their misfortunes. Sa- guntum saw its walls reared once more ; Meri- da, Tarragona, Cordova, Salamanca, Segovia, and other towns, admired the splendor of their new edifices, the glorious testimonies of the predilection of Rome for this country, the rival of Italy. This happy administration did not last long. Rome, when mistress of the world, soon became as odious as Carthage. Spain had its Clodius and its Verrcs ; and the most beautiful province of the empire of the Caesars was 'also the most wretched. The Asturians and Cantabrians alone preserved their independence, amid their mountains. Augustus undertook their subjuga- tion ; they defended themselves, nnd most of them perished sword in hand. The poets rf Rome celebrated this cruel victory, but posterity admires only its victims. Spain was subject to the Romans till toward the conclusion of the fourth century. The northern nations, after having ravaged the other countries of Europe, penetrated into Spain dur- ing the reign of Honorius : the Sucvi made themselves masters of Galicia, and part of Por- tugal ; the Alani and Vandals of Bcetica. Thft HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SPA 537 SPA Goths, following at the heels of these ferocious conquerors, compelled the Alani and Vandals to retire to Africa; the Suevi made a longer re- sistance, but, being at length conquered by Leovigildus, they ceased to be a distinct people, and all Spain received law from the Goths. This invasion of barbarous nations gave a mortal blow to the fine arts in a country cover- ed with their master-pieces: yet what numis- matic riches, how many monuments have es- caped the devastation ! The Goths, tranquil possessors of Spain, and enlightened by the gospel, began to be civilized; but the climate which softened their character, repose which enervated their courage, prepared an easy vic- tory for new conquerors. The cruelty of king Vitiza, who died in 711, and the weakness of Roderic, his successor, accelerated the fatal moment, and Spain fell a prey to enemies till then unknown. The Arabs, an ancient, wandering people, inhabiting the deserts, joining the Moors, so called from their native country. Mauritania, made an irrup- tion into the south of Spain, as the Goths had previously done in the north. The fate of Spain was decided in the unfor- tunate battle of Xerxes de la Frontera, where Roderic lost his throne and his life. The con- querors, finding no other obstacles, took posses- sion of all Spain, except those same Pyrenees which had so long preserved their ancient in- habitants from the Roman yoke. These moun- tains, and their caverns, afforded a refuge to such of the Spanish Goths as, collected by Pe- lagius,a prince of the blood-royal of that nation, were able to avoid the yoke of the Mussulmen. This second invasion, which might naturally be supposed to have left the native Spaniards no trace of their laws, their customs, and na- tional qualities, produced a contrary effect : so amply have the blessings bestowed on this hap- py country seemed always to compensate the inhabitants for the severity of fortune. The Moors were not long before they felt that influence which had softened the manners of the Goths, and taught them to relish the charms of a tranquil life. No sooner were the new conquerors happy, than they ceased to be barbarous. The principle of civilization was developed among them with extraordinary ra- pidity ; the love of letters ennobled their ideas, and purified their taste, without diminishing their courage. At Seville, at Grenada, at Cor- dova, schools and public libraries were opened ; and while Christian Europe was covered with the clouds of ignorance, the genius of Averroes, and a multitude of learned men, enlightened the civilized Mussulmans. Not content with patronizing the sciences, the Moorish kings, themselves, cultivated them. How brilliant were the reigns of the Abdarhamans and the Mahomets! Those princes united the private virtues with military qualities ; they were poets, historians, mathematicians, philosophers, and great cap- tains ; and many of them deserved a still more honorable appellation, that of the best of kings. At this new epoch of the history of Spain, a new taste was introduced into the arts and gave a direction to architecture in particular. The ancient structures of the Goths did not harmo- nize with the customs and the religion of the Moors. The latter, indifferent to external decorations, reserved all their ingenuity for the interior of their edifices. There they lavished whatever was calculated to delight the senses and to accord with a sedentary and voluptuous life. Hence the singular magnificence of their pala- ces and their mosques, that richness in their ornaments, that finish in the smallest details, which far surpass the beauty of the whole. The arts were thus developing themselves among the Moors, when a spark concealed in the As- turias, produced a new conflagration, which extended to all Spain, about 718. Pelagius having fled to the mountains, not only defended himself there with courage, but under the banners of the cross, ventured to conduct his troops into the countries contiguous to his retreat. This illustrious man, concerning whom we have, unfortunately, but few particu- lars, had collected all the nobles of the Asturias and the rest of Spain. This force, which long proved invincible, was the instrument of the conquests of different chiefs, the ablest of whom made themselves sovereigns. By them were founded the kingdoms of Castile, Leon, Arra- gon, and Navarre, successively conquered from the Moors. This war, which continued several centuries, has, alternately, the air of history and of ro- mance. It consists of battles, sieges, assaults, and still more frequently of tournaments, ban- quets, and challenges, given and accepted with equal audacity. In these celebrated lists, tri- umphed the heroes whose exploits are recorded in the Spanish romances, and of these, Rodrigo de Bivar, surnamed the Cid, particularly dis- tinguished himself. Equal in virtue, and supe- rior in power, to Bayard, he was, like him, the object of the veneration not only of his brethren CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SPA 538 SPA in arms, but also of the enemies of his country. Reduced to the single kingdom of Grenada, the Moors there maintained themselves for sev- eral centurie? ; but, at length, expelled from their last asylum, they were obliged to with- draw to Africa in 1492. This important event was reserved to crown the felicity of Ferdinand and Isabella, and the arms of Gonsalvo de Cor- dova, seconded by other chiefs of equal celeb- rity. Sovereigns of Spain and of the New World, Ferdinand and Isabella, after having attained the pinnacle of prosperity, had the mis- fortune to leave their immense possessions to a foreign dynasty. They formed the dowry of their daughter Joan, wife of Philip the fair, archduke of Austria, and mother of Charles V. Fortune, by her extraordinary favors, and Cardinal Ximenes, by a wise administration, hrew a lustre upon the reign of Charles V, at t ne and the same time emperor of Germany a nd king of Spain. The talents and genius of this prince, seemed to have destined him for universal monarchy ; and, to his own misfortune and that of the world, he aspired to it. Palled, however, with the pornp and pageantries of grandeur, he chose to end his days in retire- ment, and resigned the crown to his son Philip, in 155G. Don Philip concluded a truce with the crown of France, for five years, but was compelled to take up arms at the moment when most of the European states were rejoicing in the prospect of a durable repose. Soon after a most sanguin- ary war ensued, which lasted between two and three years, and depopulated some of the finest provinces of Spain. At length, the Christians obtained a decisive victory ; and, upon the death of the Moorish prince, the public tranquillity was restored. In 1588, in consequence of some depredations committed in Europe and America, by the Eng- lish, Philip resolved to take ample revenge on queen Elizabeth, and ordered the whole mari- time force of Spain to be assembled for a de- scent upon her dominions. (See Armada.) Philip III ascended the throne in 1597. After the death of Elizabeth, peace was concluded between England and Spain. During this reign, the Moors were, o.t several times, trans- ported into Africa; and Spain sustained a loss of about 600,000 useful subjects. Philip IV possessed good natural abilities; and though the greatest part of his reign was clouded by misfortunes or disappointments, he certainly was desirous of increasing the grandeur of the Spanish monarchy. The young king, Charles II, was inaugurated in 1666, and displayed pro- mising abilities. Charles II was twice married ; but he had the mortification of seeing himself without offspring. At length, he resolved to make a will in favor of the electoral house of Bavaria; but the young prince whom he had destined for his successor died soon after the .arrangement. Upon hearing that the different powers of Europe had actually made a partition of his territories, in order, as they said, to avoid a general war, the king was so incensed, that he left his crown, by a new will, to Philip, duke of Anjou, grandson of his eldest sister and of Louis XIV. He expired in the thirty-ninth year of his age, and the thirty-fifth of his reign ; and in him ended a branch of Austria which had given five sovereigns to the Spanish nation. Philip of Anjou was solemnly proclaimed on the 24th of November, 1700. During the ab- sence of the king in Italy with the French troops, a league was formed against the house af Bourbon, the object of which was to wrest the crown of Spain from Philip V, and to place it on the head of Charles, archduke of Austria, who was also descended from a princess of Spain. This competitor arrived in Portugal, which had also joined the league, and assumed the name of Charles III in 1704, and, being supported by the English, he immediately com- menced the campaign. The fate of these two princes, during the course of the war, was as various as singular; they expelled each other alternately from the capital. Philip V died after a turbulent reigri of forty- three years. Ferdinand VI succeeded him, in 1744. He died after a reign of fifteen years. As Ferdinand died without issue, the Spanish crown devolved on his brother Charles III in 1759, then king of Naples and the Two Sicilies, who transferred his Italian possessions to his third son, and hastened to Madrid, to receive the homage of his new subjects. Charles seem- ed to devote his whole attention to the internal economy of his dominions ; but his zeal for the family compact soon roused him into action, and induced him to proclaim war against Great Britain and Portugal in 1761. However, this war was unsuccessful, and on the tenth of Feb- ruary, 1763, a treaty of peace was concluded between the courts of Madrid, Lisbon, and Lon- don. When the war between Great Britain and her American colonies had subsisted for some time, and France had taken part with the latter, Spain was also induced to commence hostilities with England. . Accordingly, they laid siege to Gibraltar, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SPA 539 SPA and made some great naval preparations in 1782 ; but all their exertions proved vain and ineffectual. (See Gibraltar.) The sad catas- trophe of their armada before Gibraltar, the re- peated frustration of all their designs upon Ja- maica, and the very embarrassed state of their finances, induced the Spaniards to terminate so long, expensive, and sanguinary a war, and to conclude a peace with Great Britain in 1783. Charles IV ascended the throne of Spain in J78i), and declared war against France in ]793. After making every effort, his catholic majesty concluded a treaty. Spain was afterwards drawn into an alliance with the French republic, and persuaded to commence hostilities against Great Britain. In the summer of 17117, a Spa- nish fleet, of twenty-seven sail of the line, was appointed to form a junction with the French fleet at Brest ; and. after being reinforced by a numerous squadron of Dutch vessels, an at- tempt was to be made on some part of the Bri- tish dominions. However, before the intended junction could be effected, the Spanish fleet was met by admiral Jarvis, near cape St. Vin- cent, and an engagement ensued, in which, notwithstanding the great inequality, the En- glish captured four of the enemy's vessels. In 1801 the Spaniards declared war against Portugal, and entered Alentejo from different points, with an army of nearly 40,000 men. However, his catholic majesty embraced the earliest opportunity of terminating this affair. In 1804, the court of Madrid issued a declara- tion of war against England, and made great pre- parations for prosecuting hostilities with vigor and effect. After the junction of the French Brest fleet with that of Spain, at Ferrol, the united armament experienced several signal defeats from the victorious British navy, which terminated with the ever memorable battle of Trafalgar, Oct. 21, 1805. In 1807, a treaty was concluded between the sovereigns of France and Spain, the object of which was a partition of the kingdom of Por- tugal. After obtaining possesion of the capital of Portugal, and securing free access for his troops to every part of the peninsula, the em- peror of France waited for a favorable oppor- tunity of rendering'hiinself master of the whole. In 1808, Charles IV formed the design of re- moving the seat of government to Mexico, in America. No sooner had this transpired, than an attack was made on the palace of Godoy at Aranjuez ; and though the prince of peace ef- fected his escape, the king found it necessary to dismiss him from all his employments. The 46 populace, however, still remaining: in & state of insurrection at Aranjuez and Madrid, and the king being deprived of his prime minister, announced that lie had abdicated the throne in favor of his son, the prince of Asturias. The first act of Ferdinand VII was to issue an edict,in which he declared his intention of con- fiscating the property of the prince of peace. Murat, to whom the command of the French forces in Spain had been confided, no sooner heard of the occurrences at Aranjuez, than he hastened the march of his army towards the capital. Anxious to conciliate the favor of Bo- naparte, and allured ~by the promises of his ge- nerals, Murat and Savary, Ferdinand was in- duced to quit Madrid, and to repair to Bayonne, the place chosen by the emperor of France for the accomplishment of his designs. Murat employed every artifice to persuade Charles and his queen to depart for Bayonne ; and, after liberating the prince of peace, the royal party left the Spanish capital, and repair ed to the frontier of France. Although Ferdi- nand was induced, by the threat of death, to sign a resignation of the throne in favor of his father, by whom all its rights were transferred to the emperor Napoleon, in 1808. At Madrid the whole armed populace of the capital of Spain now rose against 10.000 French troops, with Murat at their head. A dreadful carnage took place, and terminated in the de- feat of the insurgents, and the disarming of the whole city. A junta was summoned to meet at Bayonne, where a new constitution for Spain was laid before them for their .acceptance ; Jo- seph Bonaparte, the new king, transferred from the throne of Maples to that of Spain, appeared in royal state. Thus was effected one of the most singular and unprincipled revolutions in a powerful kingdom, of which history affords a record. No sooner, however, was the French usurpation known, than an explosion of indignant patriot- ism burst forth from one extremity of Spain to the other. Provincial juntas were established, which gave a regular organization to the popu- lar efforts ; and the junta at Seville was the first to proclaim Ferdinand VII and war against France. The friendship and assistance of Great Britain were solicited, and immediately granted. A most desperate warfare now commenced. The success of the Spaniards was various, but the French, with king Joseph at their head, in a short time found themselves obliged to evacuate Madrid. A supreme junta was form- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SPA 540 SPA ed from the juntas of the different provinces ; and the solemn installation of this body took place at the palace of Aranjuez. The first act of the supreme junta was to appoint a new- council of war, consisting of five members ; and the national force was divided into three great bodies, for the purpose of acting in the east, in the west, and in the centre of the kingdom. Napoleon now determined in person to change the fortune of the war ; and having put his veteran troops in motion for Spain, he proceed- ed to Bayonne, and thence to the head-quarters of the French army at Vittoria. The military force of Spain was wholly una- ble to meet, upon equal terms, French armies commanded by the most consummate generals ; and the campaign which followed the arrival of Napoleon, was a series of victories to the one, and of defeats to the other. The French ap- peared intent on subjugating the whole coun- try ; but Napoleon was obliged to leave Spain, in consequence of a breach between France and Austria. His generals, however, conducted the war in Spain with so much ability, that the cause of Spanish independence was rendered almost desperate ; and in 1810, king Joseph issued a manifesto, in which he affected to consider the contest as decided. The cortes of Spain assembled at Cadiz. This body of national representatives was elect- ed by the provinces, cities, and provincial jun- tas ; and they were termed the General or Ex- traordinary Cortes, and to them was intrusted the sovereign power. They swore fealty to king Ferdinand VII, and declared the renuncia- tions at Bayonne null and void. They took the title of majesty, till the arrival of Ferdinand, and assumed the legislative power of the state. The war was still prosecuted by the Span- iards, but not with sufficient vigor; and the French actively employed their superiority of force in extending their conquests through a considerable part of Spain. In the course of two months, the Spaniards lost the fortresses of Tortosa, Olivenca, and Badajos, without any sufficient reason. The reduction of these place's was followed by that of Tarragona, in which every outrage and cruelty suffered in a town taken by storm, was inflicted upon the in- habitants ; and, -by this conquest, the French became possessed of the whole coast of Cata- lonia. However, Lord Wellington, with the British and Portuguese forces, recovered possession of Ciudad Rodrigo and Badajos, in 1812 ; and he soon after gave marshal Marmont a signal defeat at Salamanca. The effects of this great victory were felt in different parts of Spain : king Joseph, with the central French arnffy, found himself obliged again to leave Madrid ; and the French deserted the long continued blockade of Cadiz. The Spanish cortes pre- sented the august spectacle of a public signa- ture of the articles of that constitution which had so long been the object of their labors. Deputies from all parts of the monarchy were present in this solemnity. A commission was appointed to carry the constitution to the regen- cy. The deputies swore to obey the constitu- tion ; the regency took the oath of office ; and the constitution was solemnly proclaimed. The next important event was the battle of Vittoria, in 1813. The French retired by Pam- peluna ; and being driven from all their strong posts, they at length crossed the Bidassoa, and re-entered France. The allied forces took the strong castle of St. Sebastian, in the operations against which the British navy jjave effectual assistance. The progress of the allies in France afterwards, produced the capitulation of most of the French garrisons remaining in Spain ; and at length the state of affairs would no longer permit the detention of Ferdinand. The king proceeded to Valencia in 1814, where he was joined by most of the grandees, and many prelates. At this place, Ferdinand issued a royal proclamation, in which he declar- ed his intention not only not to swear or accede to the constitution, or to any decree of the cortes derogating from his prerogatives as sovereign, but to pronounce that constitution and those decrees null and of no effect. The decree for dissolving that body was received with enthu- siasm by the people of Madrid. A* great num- ber of persons were arrested, whose names comprised almost all those who had rendered themselves conspicuous during the reign of the cortes in favor of public liberty. Ferdinand was received in Madrid with every demonstra- tion of loyaltj 7 . The court of inquisition was re-established, though, it is said, in a milder and more equita- ble form ; arrests and prosecutions wore multi- plied ; and Spain was effectually thrown back to that degraded state among nations from which she seemed about to emerge. During the captivity of Ferdinand in France, the inhabi- tants of Mexico and South America were divid- ed into two parties ; the loyalists, who submit- ed to the regency, and the independents, who aimed to govern themselves. Ferdinand had no sooner been reseated on his throne than ho HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL SPI played his hatred of liberal principles, and declared the proceedings of the cortes, uncon- stitutional. The struggles of the Spaniards for freedom were long quieted. But since the death of Ferdinand in 1833, the queen regent has thrown herself into the army of the con- stitutionalists. SUCCESSION OF KINGS FROM FERDINAND THE GREAT. Ferdinand Ihe Great, under whom Castile and Leon were united, from 1027 to 1035 ; Sancho the Slrons 1065 : Alphoiwo the Valiant : AlpbonsoVII. 11U9; Aljjionso V111. 112J; Sancho 111. 1)57 : ) IX. 1158; HenrvT. 1214; Fen!.n..;,d Sanehn IV. 1284 :' Ferdinand IV. 1294; I. 1504 : Charles I. 1516 : Philip 11. 156/: Philip III. 1591 : Philip IV. 1621: Charles II. 1665: I'hilipV. resigned 1700: Lewis 1724 : Philip V. re-assumed, died 1725: Ferdinand VI. 1745: Charles III. 1759 : Charles IV. 1788 : who resigned the crown to hU ou Ferdi- nand VII. 1808 : Maria Isabella 1833. SPARTA or LACED^MON was one of the seven original principalities or kingdoms of Greece. Laconia, the country of which Sparta was the capital, was bounded N. by Arcadia, E. by the Argolic Gulf, S. by the Ionian Sea, and W. by Messenia. The city of 'Sparta was found- ed by Lelex, an Egyptian, B. C. 1520. The Heraclidae, when possessed of Greece, founded four kingdoms, of which Sparta (or Lacedsemon, as it was called from its fourth king) and Co- rinth were the most distinguished. For 900 years the Heraclida; furnished kings to Sparta. Lycurgus gave the Spartans their celebrated laws (See Lycurgus.) The helots were enslaved Messenians whose country fell into the hands of the Spartans. The bravery of the Spartans was displayed against the Persians, and, -unfor- tunately, against their own countrymen, in their civil wars. They were, however, unable to contend successfully against the Thebans under Epaminondas, and were defeated by him in the battles of Leuctra and Mantinea, the last of which was fatal to the victor. Like the rest of their countrymen, they fell beneath the power of Macedon. They were distinguished by fierceness, fortitude, austerity, and contempt of luxury. SPINOLA, Ambrose, a famous general, was born in Spain, of a noble Genoese family, in 1569. He commanded an army in Flanders, and in 1604 took Ostend ; for which he was made general of all the Spanish troops in the Low Countries, where he was opposed by Maurice of Nassau. In the war occasioned by the disputed succession to the duchy of Cleves and Juliers, Spinola took Aix-la-Chapelle, We- sel, and Breda. He died in 1630. 541 STA STAEL-HOLSTEIN, Anne Louisa Ger- maine Necker, baroness de, the most distm- Sjished female of her age, was the daughter of ecker, the minister of finance, and was born in Paris, in 1766. ner earliest productions were Sophia, a comedy, written in 1786, and the tragedies of Lady Jane Grey and Montmorency. In 1786 she married the Baron de Stael-Holstein, the Swedish ambassador. During the reign of terror, she left Paris, but on the recognition of the French republic by Sweden, her husband returned to France in his official capacity, bring- ing his wife with him. He died in 1798. At Paris, Madam de Stael first beheld Napoleon on hisreturn after the treaty of Campo-Formio. But her early feelings of admiration for him were soon changed into those of aversion and hatred. She was banished from France by Bonaparte. In her exile she published various works, among them two novels, Delphine and Corinne mi, Italic, the last the fruits of her tour in Italy. She visited Germany and Russia, and produced a work upon the former. At Geneva she married a young French officer by the name of de Rocca, but did not acknowledge the union until her death. In 1814 she returned to Paris, but Napoleon's return from Elba drove her to Coppet. She died July 14, 1817. STANHOPE, Charles, the third Earl, was born August 3, 1753. In 1774 he stood candi- date for Westminster, but without success. By the interest of the earl of Shelburne, however, he was brought into parliament for the borough of Wycombe, which he represented, till the death of his father, in 1786, called him to the Upper House. He distinguished himself at an early period of the French Revolution, by an open avowal of republican sentiments, and went so far as to lay aside the external ornaments of the peerage. He was also a frequent speaker, and on some occasions was left single in a minority. He died December 10, 1816. STARK, 'John, a brigadier-general in the revolutionary war, was born at Londonderry, New Hampshire, Aug. 17, 1728. In the French war of 1755 he served with distinction, and at the battle of Breed's hill, fought at the head of the New Hampshire troops. At Trenton and Princeton his voice was heard, but at Benning- ton he covered himself with glory. Previous to the battle, he addressed his troops in a style calculated to win their attention. " We must beat them, my boys," concluded he, "or this nicrht Mollv Stafk is a widow !" He died May 8, 1822. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. STE 542 STO STATEN ISLAND, situated S. of the city of New York, is 14 miles long, and con- tained, in 1830. 7,084 inhabitants. It constitutes the county of Richmond, N. Y. STEPHEN, king of England, usurped the throne on tfte d^ath of Henry I in the year 1135. In order to secure himself, he passed a charter, granting several privileges to the diffe- rent orders of the state. To the nobility, a permission to hunt in their own forests ; to the clergy, a speedy filling of all vacant benefices ; and to the people, restoration of the laws of Edward the Confessor. Matilda, however, as- serting her claim to the crown, landed upon the coast of Sussex, assisted by Robert, earl of Gloucester. The whole of Matilda's retinue, amounted to no more than one hundred and forty knights, who immediately took possession of Arundel castle ; but her forces every day seemed to gain ground. Meantime Stephen flew to besiege Arundel, where she had taken refuge, and where she was protected by the queen dowacrer, who secretly favored her pre- tensions. This fortress was too feeble to pro- mise a long defence, and would have been soon taken, had it not been represented to the king, that as it was a castle belonging to the queen dowager, it would be an infringement on the respect due to her to attempt taking it by force. Stephen, therefore, permitted Matilda to come forth in safety, and had her conveyed with se- curity to Bristol, another fortress equally strong with that from whence he permitted her to retire. Matilda's forces increased every day ; and a victory gained by the queen, threw Ste- phen from the throne and exalted Matilda in his room. Matilda, however, affected to treat the nobility with a degree of disdain, to which they had long been unaccustomed : so that the fickle nation once more began to pity their de- posed king. The bishop of Winchester fome'nt- ed these discontents ; and when he found the people ripe for a tumult, detached a party of his friends and vassals to block up the city of London, where the qiw?en then resided, and measures were taken to instigate the Londoners to a revolt, and to seize her person. Matilda having timely notice of this conspiracy, fled to Winchester, whither the bishop followed her. His party was soon sufficient to bid the queen open defiance ; and to besiege her in the very place where she first received his benediction. There she continued for some time, but the town being pressed by famine, she was obliged to escape, while her brother, the earl of Glou- cester, endeavoring to follow, was taken prison- er, and exchanged for Stephen, who still con- tinued a captive. Thus a sudden revolution once more took place ; Matilda was deposed, while Stephen was again- recognised as king. His reign, however, was soon terminated by hid death, which happened about a year after the treaty at Canterbury, when Henry, Matil- da's son, succeeded. STEUBEN, Frederic William Augustus, baron von ; a Prussian officer who entered the American service during our revolution, and in 1778 was appointed by Congress inspector-gen- eral of the forces, with the rank of major-gene- ral. He was in the trenches at Yorktown where he received the first offer of CornwaJlis to cap- itulate. Baron von Steuben was generous and hospitable, and introduced the strictest disci- pline into our army. He settled in Oneida county, New York, where he had received a grant of land, and, by the exertions of Wash- ington and Hamilton obtained an annuity of $'2500 from the general government. He died in 17: '5 of apoplexy. STEVENS, Edward, a native of Virginia, commanded a battalion of riflemen, in the battle of great bridge, near Norfolk, and behaved with gallantry at Brandy wine, Germantown,Camden, GuilforS Court-house, and Yorktown. After the war he was elected a senator of Virginia. He died in 1820. STEWART, Gilbert, a celebrated American portrait-painter v born at Newport, R. I., in 1757, died in Boston, July, 1828. He studied in Lon- don where he pursued his. profession with great success. STOCK HOLM, a handsome city, the capital of Sweden, situated at the junction of lake Ma- lar with an inlet of the Baltic, containing 73,526 inhabitants. It is built chiefly on three islands, and has numerous fine buildings. Stockholm was the scene of a dreadful crime perpetrated by Christian II. lie determined to destroy at once all the Swedish nobility, in order to re- venge the troubles they had occasioned, and to prevent the people from revolting in future, by depriving them of proper persons to conduct their operations. He cut off the chief men of the nation with the axe of the executioner. The entire senate were conducted to death before the eyes of the citizens of Stockholm, who beheld the bloody scene with apathy and unconcern. The peasantry viewed this massacre in no other light than as a just retribution for the oppres- sive conduct of the nobles, who had converted the monarchy into a kind of aristocracy. The cruelty of Christian is almost inconceivable ; he HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. STO 543 STO indiscriminately pillaged all ranks of people, erected every where scaffolds and gibbets, and brandished the scythe of death over every head. He did not consider it as a sufficient gratifica- tion to deprive his victims of life ; he took a pleasure in prolonging the duration of their suf- ferings by the sight of the preparations which preceded the execution, and he wished to give them as it were a full relish of D!! the bitterness of death. Among other instances of cruelty and barbarity, he obliged women to sew with their own hands the sacks in which they were to be tied up and drowned. STOCKTON, Richard, a signer of the Amer- ican Declaration of Independence, was born near Princeton, Oct. 1, 17SU. Having gradua- ted at New Jersey college, he made the tour of Great Britain, and returned to New Jersey in 1768. June 21, 1776, he was chosen by the provincial congress a delegate to the general congress assembled at Philadelphia. On Nov. 30 of the same year, he was seized in the night by the British and conveyed to New York, where he was treated with such severity that his con- stitution was broken, and afler languishing a long time, he died at Princeton, Feb. 28, 1781, in the 51st year of his age. STONE, Thomas, a signer of the Declara- tion of Independence, studied law at Frederick- town, Maryland, and took his seat in the gene- ral congress in May, 1775. He died on the 5th of October, 1787. STONY POINT. The following account of this interesting place is from the pen of \he Rev. J. N. Maffitt. " The scenery of the Hudson river bears na- ture's grandest "imprint. The hand that framed an universe of worlds has thrown together along the banks of this noble stream a wild assem- blage of rocks and mountains. The Palisades, as they are called, commence on the western side of the Hudson, just above Weehawk or Weehawken, and extend about twelve miles up the river. They are bold, abrupt demonstra- tions of omnipotence, moulded by Him whose power is not bounded by time or circumstance. The cannon of a thousand armies might roar out their ineffectual vengeance against this na- tural battery, which frowns over the broad bright stream at an elevation of from sixty to one hun- dred and fifty feet ; and the parapet would laugh in scorn at the power of battle. After the Palisades terminate, a country of hills and vales succeeds ; the former rounded up like loaves of sugar, and the latter indented like dimples on the cheek of beauty. Occasionally, 46* however, nature has projected into the stream one of her bold fronts a miniature formation of those " hills of fear," which cast their sombre shadows across the pass of the Highlands. One of these projections is Stony Point. It stands out in bold relief from the rural scenery just below, and challenges the attention of the passenger who has been relieved from the sublimity of the basaltic rocks of the Palisades only to pre- pare him for a wilder development of nature's craniology. But the impressions which crowd into the spectator's mind in this region are not all derived from river, mountain, or valley, tradition and history lend a melancholy glory to this revolutionary ground. On the right or eastern bank stretches away the celebrated " neutral ground " throughout the entire extent of West Chester county, where regulars, cow- boys, Virginia horse, and continentals, Whigs and Tories, appeared and disappeared like the actors of a wild and bloody tragedy. On the left, Stony Point is allied to associations of mili- tary achievements of unfading renown while farther up, the memory of Arnold's treason. Andre's capture, and untimely although merited fate, twines around the memorable rocks of West Point. Stony Point is about forty miles above New York and ten or fourteen below West Point. It is a rounded, gravelly hill, of small extent, jutting into the stream, and connected with the main land by a low morass which is partially overflowed with the tide waters. It was forti- fied in the revolutionary war, and, occupied by a small force, might have been considered as a remote outpost to the strong fortress of West Point. It was captured by the British in the year 1779, and strongly repaired and garrisoned by more than six hundred soldiers commanded by the brave Lieut. Col. Johnson. A few days before the sixteenth of July, in the same year, a tall, commanding personage, mounted on a strong charger, was seen on the eminences above Stony Point. He had a glass in his hand, aud appeared to study the charac- ter of the defences with an intensity of interest. Johnson, who was returning the gaze of the horseman with his spy-glass, turned to one of his staff and remarked that the apparition on the hill portended no good. Rumors were afloat about the intrenchments that the same tall fig- ure had been seen across the river on the high- est opposite eminence the day before, like a horseman painted against the sky. A cow-boy said that this figure was the apparition of Wash- ington, and that it never was seen excepting CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. STO 544 SUE just before a battle or a thunder storm. But while these idle rumors floated around the at- mosphere of the camp, the real Washington, from observations made with his own eyes, was concertina 1 a soldier-like plan for its surprise. On the "night ol the sixteenth of July, by the twinkling light of the stars that broke over and through the clouds, two columns of soldiers raighriiave been seen under the brow of the eminence in the rear of the fort. They were stern men the silent, thoughtful men of New- England. The eagle-eyed Wayne was at their hea'd, and his heart was like that of the lion. The regiments of Febigez and Meigs, with the youthful Major Hull's detachment formed the right column ; Butler's regiment, with two companies under Major Murphy, formed the left. The van of the right was formed of one hundred and fifty volunteers at whose head stood the brave floury ; one hundred volun- teers under Hewart composed the van of the left. And still further advanced, the noblest post of all, stood two " forlorn hopes " of twen- ty men each one commanded by Lieut. Gib- bins, and the other by Lieut. Knox. Wayne stepped from man to man through the van- guards, saw them take their flints from their pieces and fix the death- bayonet. At twenty minutes past eleven, the two cdlumns moved to the bloody work before them, one going to the left and the other to the right to make their at- tack on opposite sides. The inhabitants on the eastern side of the riv- er first heard a sharp crashing as the forlorn hope on either side broke in the double row of abattis ; the muskets of the sentinels flashed suddenly amidst the darkness, and in a moment the fortress vomited out flame and thunder as if a volcano had been ignited, and was tossing its lava upwards. The cry of battle not to be mis- taken, shrill, wild and "fearful, broke upon the dull ear of niirht. But all was in vain for the fortress. Under the showers of grape, and full in the red eye of battle, the two gloomy, still, unwavering columns moved on, and the two vanguards met in the centre of the work. The British made an instant surrender to avoid the extermination which awaited the deploy of the columns upon the intrenchments. Sixty-three British soldiers lay dead at their guns ; five hundred and forty-three were made prisoners, and the spoils were two standards, two flags, fifteen pieces of ordnance, and other materials of war. Of the sons of New England, ninety- eight were killed or wounded. Of Lieut. Gib- bin's forlorn hope seventeen were no more. Of Lieut. Knox's about the same number were slain. These spots, where the life-blood of the free has been poured out like water, and where the traces of the revolutionary ditch and mound still remain, are altars sacred to the high recollec- tions of freedom. Green be the turf over these departed patriots. The bold bluff of Stony Point is classic ground. Hither in future time shall the poet and the sentimentalist come to pay their tribute of affection and honor, where ' our fathers knelt In prayer ami battle tor a world.' " STRAFFORD, Earl of, Thomas Wentworth, eldest son of sir William Wentworth, of York- shire, was born in Chancery-lane, London, April 13, 1593. In 1614, he succeeded to the baronetcy, and the following year was nomina- ted keeper of the archives for the West Riding, in the room of sir John Saville. He was made president of the council of York, and next lord deputy of Ireland. In 1639 he was created earl of Straffbrd. made knight of the garter, and ap- pointed lord-lieutenant. All this increased the number and malignity of his enemies in the house of commons ; who, when the earl return- ed to tajte his seat in the house of lords, carried up an impeachment against him, and he was sent to the Tower. But though the prosecu- tors took four months to prepare their case, and pursued it with virulence, no evidence could be found to support the charges. Determined, howevej, not to let their victim escape, Pym and his associates brought in a bill of attainder, which, by excitincr the^mob to acts of outrage, they forced the peers to pass. The king like- wise yielded to his fears, against his conscience, and gave the roval assent to this illegal measure. He suffered on'Tower-hill, May 12, 1641. STRONG, Caleb, L. L. D. a governor of Massachusetts, was born in Northampton, Mass., in 1744 ; and was educated at Harvard college. In 1775 he was a member of the com- mittee of safety, and afterwards served in the legislature. In 18UO he was electedgovernor of his native state, and held the office for seven successive years. In 1812 he was reelected, and held the office till 1616. He died in 1820. He was upright, patriotic, and learned. SUEVI. In 'the time of Caesar, the Suevi were numbered among the most warlike na- tions of Germany, and agreed in customs and manners with the other inhabitants of that ex- tensive country. Their situation is said to have been between the Elbe and the Vistula. Tibe- rius transported some thousands of them into HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SUL 545 SUW Gaul, and assigned lands to otheis beyond the Danube. They formed a kingdom in the vi- cinity of the towns of Merida, Seville, and Car- thagena, which, in the year 585, was reduced to a province of the Gothic monarchy, by Leovi- gild, king of the Visigoths, after it had subsist- ed one hundred and seventy-four years. SULLIVAN, John, for a few years before the revolution, practised law in New Hampshire, and resigned his seat in the Congress of 1774, to enter the army, in which he was appointed brigadier- general in 1775. In the battle of Long-Island he was taken prisoner but soon exchanged, and entrusted with the command of the right division in the battle of Trenton. He also commanded the right wing at the bat- tles of Brandywine and Germantown. The differences between Count d' Estaing and Sul- livan caused the failure of the siege of Newport in August, 1777. In 1779 he defeated the Six Nations of Indians in New York. His exten- sive calls for military stores, and strictures on the conduct of Congress with regard to him, were followed by his resignation of his com- mand on the 9th of November. After the close of the war, in 176(5, he was elected president of New Hampshire and held the office for three years. In Oct. 1789, he was appointed judge of New Hampshire, and died, Jan. 23, 1795. SULLIVAN, James, brother of the prece- ding, was born at Berwick, Maine, April 22, 174-4, and studied law under his brother. He was for several years governor of Mas^achu- setts, and held some high judicial offices. He died Dec. 10, 1808. in the 65th year of his age. SULLY, Maximilian de Bethune, baron de Rosni, and duke of, was born at the castle of Rosni in 1559. At the age of eleven, the ba- ron, his father, presented him to the queen of Navarre, who gave him an appointment about the person of her son Henry, with whom Sully was educated. Soon after this the queen, on the invitation of Charles [X went to Paris, and died there, not without suspicion of poison ; which opinion received confirmation when the massacre of St. Bartholomew occurred soon af- terwards. In that carnage, Sully escaped by passing through the crowd as a student, to the college of Burgundy, where the principal lock- ed him up in a closet for three days. In 157(5, the king of Navarre eluded the vigilance of his guards,and arrived at Tours, accompanied by Sully, who, in the war that ensued, carried his valor almost to excess, which made Henry say to him one day, " I admire your courage, but wish you to reserve it for better occasions." In all the battles and sieges that followed, he bore a prominent part. Henry IV made him gov- ernor of Poitou, grand master of the ports and harbors of France, and erected, in his favor, the lands of Sully upon the Loire, into a duchy. On the murder of that great monarch, in 1610, the duke retired from court, and employed him- self in writing his memoirs. He died at his cas- tle at Villabon, Dec. 22, 1641. SUMATRA, an island in the eastern seas, the largest of the Sunda Isles, is divided ob- liquely by the equator, and contains about 160,000 square miles; it is fertile, but the interior is little known. SUMTER, Thomas, a distinguished partisan officer, during the American revolutionary war, whose operations were principally confined to South Carolina, where he died in his ninety- eighth year, June 1, 1832. In the halls of con- gress he served* his country, as well as in the field. " Sumter," says Lee, ' ; was younger than Marion, who was about forty-eight years of age, larger in fiame, better fitted, in strength of body, for the toils of war, and, like his compeer, devoted to the freedom of his country. His as- pect was manly and stern, denoting insupera- ble firmness and lofty courage. Determined to deserve success, he risked his own life and the lives of his associates without reserve." SUWAROFF - RIMN1TZKOLY, Peter Alexis Wasiliowitsch, Count of, prince Italin* ski, field-marshal and generalissimo of the Rus- sian armies, better known by the name of Su- warrow, was born of a Swedish family, about campaign in the years' war, and distinguished himself so much. .1 * - i~, ;* i * - 1730. lie made his first campaign in the seven that in 1762 he was appointed colonel of infan try. In 1768 he was made brigadier; soon af- ter which he was raised to the rank of major- general, and for his services in Poland, received the orders of St. Anne, St. George, and Alex- ander. In J773 he had a command against the Turks, whom he defeated at Turtukey ; on which occasion he wrote to marshal Roman- zow, as follows : " Honor and glory to. God ! Glory to you, Romanzow ! We are in posses- sion of Turtukey, and I am in it." On the re- newal of the war in 1787, Suwarrow defended Kinburn, and was wounded at the siege of Oc- zakow. September 22, 1789, he gained, in con- junction with the Austrian general, Saxe Co- burg, the victory of Rymnik, though the Turks mustered four to one against the allies. This achievement was followed by the taking of Ben- der and Belgrade, for his share in which, Su- warrow was created, by the emperor Joseph, a CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SWE 546 SWI count of the Roman empire, and by his own sovereign, a count of the empire of Russia, with the title of Rymnikski. In 1790, he took Ismai- low, where, though the plunder was immense, Suwarrow would" not take a single article for himself. On this conquest he wrote to prince Potemkin the following letter : " The Russian colors wave on the ramparts of Ismailow." Af- ter this, Suwarrow had a principal concern in the operations which produced the partition of Poland, for which he was made a field-marshal, and presented with an estate. When the em- peror Paul embarked in the confederacy against France, Suwarrow was appointed commander of the combined army in Italy, where he gained many advantages, particularly the battle of No- yi. After this he crossed the Alps, and march- ed into Switzerland, but being disappointed of reinforcements, he was obliged to retreat towards the lake of Constance. He was then recalled, and died of chagrin, May 18, 1800. SWEDEN, united with Norway, and some- times styled Scandinavia, comprises 291,224 square miles. Sweden itself contains 166,363 square miles, and 3,000,000 inhabitants. Some of the largest lakes are Wenner, and Wetter. The winters are long and cold ; the summers short and hot. The wealth of Sweden is prin- cipally derived from its mines of iron and cop- per ; the principal exports being iron, copper, alum, timber, and tar. The Swedes are viva- cious and intelligent, honest, temperate, and hospitable. The Goths, the ancient inhabitants of this country, joined by the Normans, Danes, Saxons, Vandals, &c. subdued the Roman em- pire, and all the southern nations of Europe. The introduction of Christianity, however, by Ansgarius, bishop of Bremen, in 829, seems to present the first certain period of the Swedish history. The history of Sweden, and indeed of all the northern nations, even during the first ages of Christianity, is confused and uninter- esting, and often doubtful, but sufficiently re- plete with murders, massacres, and ravages. That of Sweden is void of consistency, till about the middle of the fourteenth century, when it assumes an appearance more regular and con- sistent. The Swedes perished in the dissen- sions between their prelates and lay-barons, or between those and their sovereigns ; they were drained of the litlle riches they possessed, to support the indolent pomp of a few magnificent bishops ; and, what was still more fatal, the un- lucky situation of their internal affairs exposed them to the inroads and oppression of a foreign enemy. These were the Danes, who, by their neighborhood and power, were always able to avail themselves of the dissensions in Sweden. In this deplorable situation, Sweden remained for more than two centuries ; sometimes under the nominal subjection of its own princes, some- times united to the kingdom of Denmark. Denmark negotiated a treaty of peace with Sweden and Great Britain, in 1814. By this treaty Norway was surrendered to Sweden, in return for which Denmark received Swedish Pomerania, and the isle of Rugen. SUCCESSION OF KINGS FROM SlGISMUND I. Sigismund I. A. D. 1592 Charles IX. 1G06 Gustavus II (Adolphus). 1611 Christina, (aged 6) 1633 Charles X. 1654 Charles XI. 1660 Charles XII. (aged 15) 1699 Ulrica, sister to Charles, (aged 15) 1718 Adolphus of Holstein 1751 Gustavus III. 1771 Gustavus IV. 1792 Charles XIII. 1809 Charles X I V (Marshal Bernadotte ,) 1818 SWIFT, Jonathan, an eminent English au- thor, was born at Cashel, in the county of Tip- perary, November 30, 1667. He studied at Trinity college, Dublin, but neglecting the academical course, was refused the degree of Arts at the usual time, and only obtained it some years after as an especial favor. Having iu 1713 theology, he took orders, and was appointed to the deanery of St. Patrick's. In 1716 he privately married'Miss Johnson, the Stella of his poems, whom he treated with great coldness, refusing to acknowledge the union publicly. When he found her dying, he offered to acknowledge her as his wife : but she repli- ed, " It is too late." While this lady was liv- ing, he engaged the attentions of his pupil, Miss Vanhomriglf, who died in 1723, on learning his marriaore with Miss Johnson. In 1742 the mind of Swift was completely decayed, and he died in 1745, in his 78th year. Besides Jiis political writings, his most popular works are Tale of a Tub, Battle of the Books, Gulliver's Travels, &c. Without much conscience, or much consist- ency, Swift possessed a ready wit a sarcastic humor a thorough knowledge of the baser parts of human nature and a complete famili- arity with every thing that is low, homely, and fam'iliar in language. These were his gifts ;- and he soon felt for what end they were given. Almost all his works are libels ; generally upon HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SWI individuals, sometimes upon sects and parties, sometimes upon hum;m nature. Whatever be his end, 'however, personal abuse, direct, vehe- ment, unsparing invective, is his means. It is his sword and his shield, his panoply, and his chariot of war. In all his writings, according- j ly, there is nothing to raise or exalt our notions of human nature, but there is every thing to vilify and degrade them. We may learn from them, perhaps, to dread the consequence of base i actions, but never to love the feelings that lead to generous ones. There is no spirit, indeed, I of love or honor in any part of them ; but an | , unvaried and harassing display of insolence and animosity in the writer, and villany and folly in those of whom he is writing. Though a great polemic, he makes no use of general principles, nor enlarges his views to a wide or comprehensive conclusion. Every thing is par- ticular with him, and, for the most part, strictly personal. To make amends, however, he is quite without a competitor in personalities. With a quick and sagacious spirit, and a bold and popular manner, he joins an exact know- ledge of all the strong and weak parts of the cause he has to manage; and, without the least restraint of delicacy, either of taste or of feel- * ing, he seems always to think the most effectu- al blows the most advisable, and no advantage unlawful that is likely to be successful for the moment. Disregarding all the laws of polished Tiostility. he uses, atone and the same moment, his sword and his poisoned dagger his hands and his teeth and his envenomed breath, and does not even scruple, upon occasion, to imi- tate his own yahoos, by discharging on his un- happy victims a shower of filth, from which neither courage nor dexterity can afford any protection. Against such an antagonist it was, of course at no time, very easy to make head; and ac cordingly his invective seems, for the most part to have been as much dreaded, and as tremen- dous as the personal ridicule of Voltaire. Both were inexhaustible, well directed, and unspar- ing : but even when Voltaire drew blood, he did not mangle the victim, and was only mischiev ous when Swift, was brutal. Swift had a quarrel with a pompous, prag matical attorney, on whom he determined ti have satisfaction by his pen. Accordingly he turned yEsop's fable of the apples and the ordure into verse and when he came to the address of the latter to the former, " How we apples swim," he subjoined 547 SWI " Thus at the bar, Jhat booby Bettsworth, Tho' half a crown ontpays his sweat's worth, Who knows of laxv, nor text, nor margeant, Calls Singleton his brother Sergeant." Singleton was a first-rate lawyer. Bettsworth, stung to the quick, went very pompously to Swift, and holding out the paper, asked him, with a menacing voice and gesture ",Sir, are you the author of this infamous at- tack on me?" "Sit down, sir," says Swift, very calmly " do not be in a passion, but let me tell you a short story. When I was young, my dear father heaven rest his soul ! seeing that I had a turn for scribbling, and fearfnl of the consequences, one day told me that he was afraid that propensity would some time or other bring me into trouble. ' And, my dear son,' added he. ' let me give you a piece of advice. Should any libellous matter appear in any news- paper, and any fool or knave call on you to de- mand whether or not you are the writer say no ;' and therefore, sir, I say no to you." Bettsworth had no remedy, and went off grumbling saying Swift was like one of his own vile Yahoos, besmearing people with his filth, and out of the reach of punishment. SWITZERLAND. The Swiss confedera- cy, as its limits were determined by the con- gress of Vienna, contains an area of 15,000 square^ miles, and 2,037,030 persons. CANTONS. Zurich, Basle, Berne, Schaffhausen, Lucerne, Appenzell, Uri, St. Gall, Schweitz, Grisons, Underwalden, Aargau, Glarus, Thurgau, Zug, Tessin, Friburg, Pays de Vaud, Soleure, Valais, Neufchatel, Geneva. The rivers, mountains, and lakes of Switzer- land, present the most sublime scenes in na- ture. In a cavern near the lake of Lucerne, the three founders of the Helvetic confederacy, are said, in Swiss traditions, to sleep. The herdsmen call them the three Tell's. and say hat they lie there, in their antique garb, in .miet slumber ; and when Switzerland is in hei utmost need, they will awaken and regain the liberties of the land. When Uri's heechen-wooda wave red In the burnina hamlet's light, Then from the caverns ol the dead, Shall the sleepers wake in might t CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY SWI 543 swi With a leap, like Tell's proud leap, When away the helm he flung, And boldly up the steep From the flashing billow sprung ! They shall wake beside their forest-sea In the ancient garb they wore, When they linked the hands that made us free, On the Grutli's moonlight shore ; And their voices shall be heard, And be answered with a shout, Till the echoing Alps are stirred, And the signal-fires blaze out ! And the land shall see such deeds again, As those of that proud day, When Winkelried, on Sempack's plain, Through the serried spears made way! And when the rocks came down On the dark Morgartin dell, And the crowned helms o'erthrown Before our fathers full! For the Kuhreihen's* notes must never sound In a land that wears the chain, And the vines on Freedom's holy ground Untrampled must remain. And the yellow harvests wave, For no stranger's hand to reap, While within their silent cave The men of Grutli sleep! Nearly two thirds of (he Swiss are Protes- tants. Common schools are well supported, and there are universities at Basle and Geneva. The Swiss are hardy, industrious, temperate, and ardently attached to liberty. * The exaggerated accounts given of the riches and milder climate of Italy, occasioned the suc- cessive inroads of the Ceenomani, the Lteves, and Ananes, and the various troops of barbari- ans who gloried in the name of Gauls. In all these expeditions, the Helvetians took a consid- erable share, and afterwards joined the Cimbri and the Teutones against the Romans. How- ever, their want of discipline finally proved fa- tal to them ; and the arms of Marius and Sylla obtained over the combined forces of Germany the most complete and decisive victory. From this era, the Helvetians lived in friendship and alliance with the Romans, till the arts of Orge- torix, one of their chieftains, involved them in that unfortunate expedition, which ended in their being deprived of liberty and independ- ence, by Julius Caesar, in 57 'B. C. Helvetia thus became a province of Rome. The decline of the Roman power, and the irruption of the Goths, Vandals, Huns, and other northern * The Kuhreihen is the melody known by the name of the Ranz des Vachc-!, which was forbidden to he played by the royal band* in Paris, because it caused the Swiss guards to desert, and return to their native mountains, of which it powerfully reminded them. tribes, hastened the downfal of the unhappy Helvetians. Of those who settled in Helvetia, the chief were the Burgundians and the Ale- inanni, a German nation, who made their first appearance in 214, and settled in the duchy of Wirtemberg. On the downfal of the western nation, the Alemanni overran that part of Gaul since known by the name of Alsace ; and being joined by their countrymen in Germany, they entered the territories of the Ripuarian Franks, and put all to fire and sword. This unprovoked attack, summoning Clovis king of the Salian Franks to the defence of his allies, the Aleman- ni were entirely defeated in a general engage- ment, with the loss of their king ; and this na- tion acknowledged the sovereignty of Clovis, in 496, who gradually subdued, and afterwards civilized the greatest part of Helvetia. Under the Franks, it remained till 888, when, upon the death of Charles the Gross, it was seized by Raoul, and became part of the kingdom of Bur- fundy, which was given by Rodolf, the last ing of Burgundy, to Conrad II emperor of Germany, in 1032; from which time it was es- teemed a part of the empire ; but being unjust- ly treated by Albert, duke of Austria, the in- habitants revolted in 1308. In 1315, the seve- ral states of which this country was composed , made their league perpetual; and in 1649, their liberty was absolutely fixed by treaty. The peace of Arau, in 1712, terminated the intestine struggles of the Swiss, which long rent in sun- der the bonds of their union. Under the pro- tection of the Helvetic league, the whole terri- tory of Switzerland became, and for ages con- tinued, an industrious, a free, a blameless, and a happy nation, until they were attacked by their neighbors the French. In 1798, the direc- tory of trance, having become daring by the peace which they had dictated to the emperor, suddenly declared war against Switzerland. At length, the French, partly by force, and partly by treachery, succeeded in their attempt, and the directory, after changing the government from a federal into an united republic, continu- ed to levy contributions, and impose exactions, with the most unpardonable severity. Thus, after enjoy ing the sweets of independence since the commencement of the fourteenth century, the republics of Switzerland were overcome by a foreign enemy, and obliged to change the form of their government. The treaties of Luneville and of Amiens, held out to the Helvetic con- federacy a guarantee of her ancient freedom and independence, which were never fully real- ized. By the treaty of Vienna, in 1815, the in- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SYL 549 SYR tegrity of the nineteen cantons, as they existed in a political body, was recognised as the basis of the Helvetic system. To Switzerland were united the Valais, the territory of Geneva, and the principality of .Neufchatel, which form three new cantons ; and to the Helvetic confederation were added the bishopric of Basle, and the city and territory of Bienne, which form part of the canton of Berne. SYLLA, L. Cornelius a celebrated Roman, of a noble family. He first entered the army under the great Marius, whom he accompanied in Numidia, in the capacity of qusestor. He rendered himself conspicuous in military affairs, and Bocchus, one of the princes of Numidia, delivered Jugurtha into his hands for the Ro- man consul. The rising fame of Sylla gave umbrage to Marius, who was always jealous of an equal, as well as of a superior; but the ill language which he made use of, rather inflamed than extinguished the ambition of Sylla. He left the conqueror of Jugurtha, and carried arms under Catullus. Sometime after he obtained the prastorship, and was appointed by the Ro- man senate to place Ariobarzanes on the throne of Cappadocia, against the views and interest of Mithridates, king of Pontus. This he easily effected, one battle leaving him victorious; and before he quitted the plains of Asia, the Roman prstor had the satisfaction to receive in his camp the ambassadors of the king of Parthia, who wished to make a treaty of alliance with the Romans. At his return to Rome, he was commissioned to finish the war with the Marsi, and when this was successfully ended, he was rewarded with the consulship, in the fiftieth year of his age. In this capacity he wished to have the administration of the Mlthridatic war; but he found an obstinate adversary in Marius, and he attained the summit of his wishes only when he had entered Rome sword in hand. After he had slaughtered all his enemies, set a price upon the head of Marius, and put to death the tribune Sulpitius, who hud continually opposed his views, he marched towards Asia, and disregarded tlie flames of discord which he left behind him unextinguished. Mithridates was already master of the greatest part of Greece, and Sylla, when he reached the coast of Peloponnesus, was delayed by the siege of Athens, and of the Piraeus." His boldness suc- ceeded, the Pirceus surrendered, and the con- queror spared the city of Athens. Two cele- brated battles, at Cheromea and Orchomenos, rendered him master of Greece. He crossed the Hellespont, and attacked Mithridates in the very heart of his kingdom. The artful mon- arch, who well knew the valor and persever- ance of his adversary, made proposals of peace , and Sylla did not hesitate to put an end to a war which had rendered him master of so much territory, and which enabled him to return to Rome like a conqueror. Murcena was left at the head of the Roman forces in Asia, and Sylla hastened to Italy. In the plains of Campania, he was met by a few of his adherents, and he was soon informed, that if he wished to contend with Marius, he must encounter fifteen gene- rals, followed by twenty-five well disciplined legions. Pompey embraced his cause, and marched to his camp with three legions. Soon after he appeared in the field to advantage ; the confidence of Marius decayed with his power, and Sylla entered Rome like a tyrant and a conqueror. The streets were daily filled with dead bodies, and seven thousand citizens, to whom the conqueror had promised pardon, were suddenly massacred in the circus. The slaughter was continued, and no less than four thousand seven hundred of the most powerful and opulent were slain. Sylla at last died, in the greatest torments, of loathsome disease, about seventy-eight years, B. C., in the sixtieth year of his age. SYPHAX, a king of the Masssyli in Libya, married Sophonisba. the daughter of Asdrubal, and forsook the alliance of the Romans to join himself to the interest of his father-in-law, and of Carthage. He was conquered in a battle by Masinissa, the ally of Rome, and given to Sci- pio the Roman general. The conqueror carried him to Rome, where he adorned his triumph. Syphax died in prison, two hundred and one years B. C., and his possessions were given to Masinissa. SYRACUSE, now Siragosa, containing 13,800 souls; a celebrated city of Sicily, found- ed about seven hundred and thirty-two years before the Christian era, by Archi'as, a Corin- thian, and one of the Heraclidffi. It was under different governments; and after being freed from the tyranny of Thrasibulus, B. C. 446, it enjoyed security for sixty-one years, till the usurpation of the Dionysii, who were expelled by Timoleon, B. C. 343. In the age of the elder Dionysius, an army of one hundred thou- sand foot and ten thousand horse, and four hundred ships, were kept in constant pay. It fell into the hands of the Romans, under the consul Marcellus, after a siege of three years, B. C. 212. SYRIA, a country of Western Asia, border CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. TAL 550 TAL ing on the Mediterranean sea, forming part of the Ottoman empire, and containing about 50,UUO square miles, and 2,400,000 inhabitants. It was subjected to the monarchs of Persia, but after the death of Alexander the Great, Seleu- cus, surnamed Nicator, raised it into an empire, known in history by the name of the kingdom of Syria, or Babylon, B. C. 312. Seleucus died after a reign of thirty-two years, and his succes- sors, named the Seleucidse, ascended the throne in the following order: Antiochus, surnamed Soter, 2dO, B. C. ; Antiochus Theos, 261 ; Se- leucus Callinicus, 240 ; Seleucus Ceraunus, 226; Antiochus the Great, 223; Seleucus 1'hil- opator, 187; Antiochus Epiphanes, 175; Antio- chus Eupator, 164; Demetrius Soter, 162; Alexander Balas, 150; Demetrius Nicator, 146; Antiochus the Sixth 144; Diodotus Tryphon, 147; Antiochus Sidetes, 139; Demetrius Nica- tor restored, 130; Alexander Zebina, 127, who was dethroned by Antiochus Grypus, 123; Antiochus Cyzicenus, 112, who takes part of Syria, which he calls Coslesyria; Philip and Demetrius Eucerus, 93; and in Coelesyria, An- tiochus Pius; Aretas was king of Ccelesyria, 85; Tigranes, king of Armenia, 83 ; and Anti- ochus Asiaticus, 69, who was dethroned by Pompey, B. C. 65 ; in consequence of which Syria became a Roman province. In August, 1822, Syria. was greatly damaged by an exten- sive earthquake, when several cities were over- thrown, and above 20,000 persons were killed in a few seconds. TALAVERA, a town of Spain, situated on the Tagus, 35 miles W. of Toledo, famous for the battle fought here July 28, 1809, between the French under Soult, and the English under Wellington. The French army, amounted to 47,000 men, and the allied force, to 19,000 Brit- ish, and 38,000 Spaniards. In the afternoon of the 27th, the French opened a cannonade on the left of the British position, while their cav- alry attacked the Spanish infantry, and attempt- ed to win the town of Talavera; they were finally repulsed. At nine in the evening, the action ceased, but Soult, the French general, ordered a night attack to be made on the height occupied by general Hill, which he considered the key of the English position. Of this height the enemy gained a momentary possession, but the gallant general recovered it at the point of the bayonet. At day -break, the 28th, the French again attacked general Hill's position, and were repulsed , failing also in their other attempts, they rested about eleven, and. it is siid, cooked their dinners on the field. Some refreshments were then served out to the British troops. At noon, Soult ordered a general attack along the whole line, and directed his own three divisions against general Hill's position. They were driven back, and their retrograde movement exposed Sebastiani's right, which suffered se- verely. Their general at length rallied them, and some columns under Vilatte advanced to their support. General Anson's brigade, con- sisting of the 1st German light dragoons, and the 23d dragoons, with general Fane's brigade of heavy cavalry, were ordered to charge them. In this charge the British suffered dreadfully, and the 23d were almost annihilated ; they, however, deterred the enemy from any farther attempts against the hill. The attack upon the centre, which commenced at the same time, was gallantly resisted by general Campbell, supported by the Spaniards, who turned the flank of the assailants, while the English took their cannon. General Sherbroke repelled the force opposed to him by a charge of bayonets from the whole division; but the brigade of guards, advancing too far, exposed themselves to the fire of the hostile batteries and retiring columns. At this moment, when the fate of the battle appeared worse than doubtful, sir Arthur Wellesley secured the victory, by mov- ing from the heights a battalion of the 48th, which, with the assistance of Cotton's brigade of cavalry, enabled the guards to retreat under cover. At the close of the day, the enemy were repulsed at all points, and effectually de- feated. TALBOT, lord, born at Blechmore, in Shrop- shire, in 1373. In the first year of Henry V, he was appointed lieutenant of Ireland, where he suppressed a rebellion, and brought the chief, Donald M ; Guire, to England. He next served in France, to the conquest of which he greatly contributed. In the next reign he laid siege to Orleans, where his name struck terror into the French soldiers, till the appearance of Joan of Arc, as a supernatural being, turned the scale, and the English army retreated. The battle of Patay completed the disaster, and lord Talbot fell wounded into the hands of the en- emy. At the end of three years and a half, he was exchanged ; and again led the English to victory. He took a number of strong places, and carried his arms to the walls of Paris, for which he was created earl of Shrewsbury. In 1443 he concluded a treaty with the French HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. TAL 551 TAR king; and the following year went again to Ireland as lord .lieutenant; but in 1450 he was recalled to serve in France, where he ftll at the battle of Chastillon, in his eightieth year, July, 1453. TALLART Camille d'Hostum, count and duke de, marshal of France, was born in 1652, in Dauphiny. Me served uader I.onis XIV in Holland, in 1672. In 1G93, he was made lieu- tenant-general, and in 161W, was sent ambas- sador to England. The war being renewed, he assumed the command on the Rhine in 170*2. and the year following made himself master of Landau, after defeating the prince of Hesse; but in 1704 he lost the battle of Hochstet, and was taken prisoner by Marlborough, to whom he said, : ' Your grace has beaten the finest troops in Europe." The duke replied. ' You will ei- cepf, I hope, those who defeated them." Mar- shal Tallart remained in England till 1712, when he returned to Paris, and was created a duke. In 1736, he was made secretary of state. He died in 1728. . .* TALNF.RE. a celebrated town and fortress of Hindostan. province of Khandeish. At the conclusion of the late war with Holcar, it was stipulated that this fortress should be ceded to the British; but when' the troops were sent to take possession, tag governor refused to deliver it up; in cdnsequenca of which, a large force, under the command of sir Thomas Hislop, in- vested the fortress, in February, 1813. Soon after the batteries had opened, the governor sent to solicit terms, but was told he must yield un- conditionally ; a punishment for having dis- obeyed the orders of his chief, and refusing to acknowledge the British authority. 3\'o further submission having b?en offered, some guns were brought to the outer gate, and blew it rn. after which a corps of Europeans entered ; second gate was found open, and when the troops arrived at the third gate, the governor came out, and delivered himself up to the adju- tant-oeneral Conway. The troops continued to advance, and having passed the third and fourth gates without opposition, reached the gate of the citadel. Here they were opposed by the garrison, consisting of Arabs, who re- fused to yield, unless paid the arrears due to them. After some discussion, the wicket of the gate was opened, and lieutenant-colonel Macgregor, majors Macgregor and Gordon, with several other orEcers. and twelve grena- diers, were permitted to enter, but were imme- diately after "attacked by the Arabs, who killed the two majors, and wounded colonel Macgre- gor, with several other officers. During this time one. of the other gates was blown open by the troops under colonel Conway, and the storming party having entered, out the whole garrison, consisting of three hundred men, to the sword ; shortly after which the governor, a Hindoo, was hung pn one of the bastions as a punishment for his rebellion, and for having been the cause of the loss of so many brave officers and men. TARQULNIUS Lucius, surnamed Priscus, the 5th king of Rome. He distinguished him- self so much by his liberality and engaging manners, that Ancus MartiuP, the reigning monarch, nominated him the guardian of bis children. Tarquin reigned with moderation and popularity. He increased the number of the senate, and made himself friends by electing one hundred new senators from the plebeians. The glory of the Roman arms, which was sup-, ported with so much dignity by the former monarchs, was not neglected in this reign, and Tarquin showed that he possessed vitjor and military prudence in the victories which he ob- tained over the united forces of the Latins and Sabines, and in the conquest of the twelve na- tions of Etruria. He laid the foundations of the capital, and to the industry and the public spirit of this monarch, the Romans were indebt- ed for their aqueducts and subterranean sewers, whicli supplied the city with fresh and whole- some water, and removed all the filth and or- dure, which, in a great capital, too often breed pestilence and diseases. Tarquin was the first who introduced among the Romans the custom to canvass for omces~of trust and honor; he distinguished the monarch, the senators, and other inferior magistrates, with particular robe* and ornaments, with ivory chairs at spectacles, and the hatchets carried before the public mag Utrates, were, by his order, surrounded with bundles of sticks", to strike more terror, and to be viewed with greater reverence. Tarquin \vas assassinated by the two sons of his prede- cessor, in the 8<)th year of his age, thirty -eight of which he had salt on the throne, 57ti years before Christ. The second Tarquin, surnamed Superbus, was grandson of Tarquinius Priscus. He as- cended the throne of Rome after his father-in- law Servius Tullius, and was the seventh and last king cf Rome. He murdered his father- in-law, and seized the kingdom. The crown which be had obtained with violence, he en- deavored to keep by a continuation of tyranny. He paid no regard to the decisions of the sen CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. TAR 552 TEM ate, or the approbation of the public assemblies, and by wishing *j disregard both, he incurred the jealousy of the one, and the odium of the other. He was successful injiis military ope- rations, and the neighboring cities submitted; but while the siege of Ardea wus continued, the wantonness of the son of Tarquin at Rome, for ever stopped the progress of his arms; anil the Roma/is, whom a series of barbarity and oppression had hitherto provoked, no sooner saw Ahe virtuous Lucretia stab herself, not to survive' the loss of her honor, than the whole city and camp arose with" indignation against the monarch. The gates of Rome were shut against him, and Tarquin was for ever banished from his throne, in the year of Rome 244. Tar- Suin died in the 'Jtlth year of his age, about jurteen years after his expulsion from Rome. TARCHflNlUS Sextus, the eldest of the sons of Tarquin the proud, rendered himself known by a variety of adventures. When his father besieged Gabii, young Tarquin publicly declared that he was at variance with the mon- arch, and the report was the more easily believed when he came before Gabii with his body all mangled and bloody with stripes. Tin's was an agreement between the father and the son, and Tarquin had no sooner declared that this Eroceeded from the tyranny and oppression of is father, than the people of Gabii entrusted him with the command of their armies, fully convinced that Rome could never have a more inveterate enemy. When he had thus succeed- ed, he despatched a private messenger to his father, but the monarch gave no answer to be returned to his son. Sextus inquired more particularly about his father, and when he heard from the messenger that when the mes- sage was delivered, Tarquin cut off with a stick the tallest poppies in his garden, the son follow- ed the example by putting to death the most noble and powerful citizens of Gabii. The town soon fell into the hands of the Romans. Sextus was at last killed, bravely fighting in a battle during a war which the Latins sustained against Rome in the attempt of re-establishing the Tarquins on their throne. TARTARY. Nothing is known concerning the ancient state of this country. Some time before 1200, we find Ung Khan, prince of the tribe of the Koraits, a very powerful sovereign and the greatest part of Tartary tributary to him; but in 1202 he was defeated and put to death by Genghis Khan, of the tribe of the Mongols in the Mogulestan. This great man was acknowledged sovereign of this country, and of all the rest of Tartary in liOG : after which he extended his conquests in' the southern parts of Asia. In lx'2 the Mon- gols revolted from the descendants of Genghis Khan, and became subject to the Manchew Tartars, who now reign in China. At what time the Khalkas became independent is not known, but they were conquered by the Chinese Tartars in 165)6. The Eluths became a separate state about 1400, and continue independent to this day. TEKELI, Eraeric. Count of. who went into Transylvania in 1671, and with some others soon distinguished himself at Prince Abafti's court, where he became, in a. little time, first minister of state, and afterwards geneialissimo of the troops sent to assist the malcontents, with which he made himself master of several places in Upper and Lower Hungary. TELL, William, a Swiss patriot, was an in- habitant of Burgelm in Uri. * In 1307, Herman Gesler, the Austrian governor of that province, set his cap on a pole, to which all who passed were required to pay obeisance. This order Tell disobeyed v for which Gt/s!er commanded him, on pain of death, to shoot an arrow at an apple placed upon tlje head of his own son. Tell, who was an excellent marksi:>an. cleft the apple without hurting the child ; after which he declared, that if he had missed his aim, it was his intention to have directed another arrow through the heart of the tyrant. Gesler then caused Tell to be taken into a boat, ibr the pur- pose of convoying him out of the province ; but in crossing the lake a storm arose, and as the prisoner was an experienced steersman, he was entrusted with the helm, of which he was no sooner possessed than he steered close to a rock, leapt on shore, and sr>on afterwards shot Gesler np;ir Kusnachr. He then retired to StaurTacher, and on new year's day following, the Austrian rnverniuent "was overthrown. Tell perished in rin inundation in ! TEMPLARS and other orders of Knight- hood. The Knights Templars formed one of the most celebrated orders of Knighthood, and originated in the following manner. In the year 1110, Hugh de Paganes and Godfrey de St. Amor, with seven gentlemen, went to the Holy Lnna. where they determined to erect and enter into a brotherhood; and being at Jerusalem they consulted what they should do, that might be a service acceptable to God; and being informed that in the town of Zaff, there resided many thieves that used to rob the pilgrims that resorted to the Holy Sepulchre, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL TEM 553 TEM gre hal they resolved to make the passage more free by dispersing these robbers ; and for the encourage- ment of these gentlemen in so good an under- taking, the king of Jerusalem assigned them lodgings in his palace adjoining to Solomon's palace, from which place they were called Knights Templars. King Baldwin the second, third king of Je- rusalem, and Guarimond the Patriarch, finding their actions successful, furnished them with necessary provisions ; and though their charita- ble services made them acceptable unto all, yet for the first nine years they were in so great distress, they were forced to accept the charily of well disposed people. But many Christians resorted to them, and increased their numbers atly. When at war, their banner was one lf black, the other half white, signifying that they were white and fair to Christians, but black and terrible to their enemies. Pope Honorius, at the request of Stephen, patriarch of Jerusalem, prescribed unto them an order of life, whereby they were to wear a white gar- ment, to which Pope Eugenius added a red cross. They made their vows, in the presence of the before mentioned patriarch, of obedience, poverty, and chastity, and to live under the rule of the regular canons of St. Augustin. The Knights Templars (according to Dug- dale), wore linen coifs and red caps close over them : on their bodies shirts of mail, and swords girded on with a broad belt : over all they had a while cloak reaching to the ground, with a cross on their left shoulder. They used to wear their beards of great length, whereas most of the other orders shaved. The Templars being numerous and famous for their enterprises, not only for securing the passages, but for fighting both by sea and land against the infidels, they became" highly favored by the Christian princes, who assigned to them great revenues to be spent in God's service. In process of time, they became exceedingly wealthy and powerful, so that they grew proud, and withdrew themselves from their obedience to the Patriarch of Jerusalem, and attached themselves to the Pope. But in the end they did not receive that favor they expected from the Pope, for by him or through his Consent, upon some infamous crimes charged against them, their lands and possessions were seized upon, and otherwise disposed of, their order sup- pressed, and they themselves imprisoned, con- demned, and cruelly executed. According to the opinions of many authors, they were un- justly accused by subornation of witnesses, merely to gain their revenues, which, according to Dr. Heylin, were exceedingly great, having no less than sixteen thousand lordships in Eu- The first settrehient of this order in England (according to Dugdale) was in Holborn inTbon- don, but their chief residence, in the reign of king Henry II, was the Temple in Fleet-street which was erected by them, and the church, (built after the form of the Temple at Jerusalem) dedicated to God and our Blessed Lady, by Heradius, Patriarch of Jerusalem, in the" year 1185. On Wednesday after the feast of the Epipha- ny, in the year 1387, the first of Edward II, by the king's special command, and a bull from the Pope, the Knights Templars generally, throughout England, were seized and cast into prison ; and in a general council held at London, being convicted of various impieties, all their possessions were confiscated by the crown. This order was condemned in a general council at Vienna under Pope Clement V. in 1311, and by a general decree of the said Cle- ment, in the seventh year of his papacy, they were incorporated with the Knights Hospital- lers. The badge of the order was a patriarchal cross, enamelled red, and edged with gold, worn on the breast pendent to a ribbon. Having given the above notice of a celebrat- ed order, it will not be inappropriate briefly to review tlie other important orders which gave a lustre to the institution of knighthood. As regards those knights who. without any other addition, are thus staled, they are of the greatest antiquity. For according to the cus- tom of the Romans (a gowned nation), who bestowed on each entering upon man's estate a virile and plain, the Germans bestowed upon their young men, when fit to handle arms, ar- mor and weapons. Cornelius Tacitus speaks of this custom in the following words, which we copv from the Britannia. "The manner was not'for any one to take arms in hand, before the state allowed him as sufficient for martial service. And then in the very assembly of Counsell either some one of the'princes. or the father of the young man, or one of his kins folke, furnish him with a shield and a javelin. This with them standeth instead of a virile gowne, this is the first honor done to youth: before this they seeme to be but part of a pri- vate house, but" now within a while members of the common weale." Hence the origin of knights, or. as they are termed in the German language, Knccts ; which CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. TF.M 554 TEM was the simple form of creating a knight, used also in former times by the Lombards, the Franks, and the English, who are descended from the Germans. Paulas Diaconus says that- among the Lombards, " It is the custom tor the king's son not to dine with his father, unless he have previously received arms from some foreign king." It is also recorded in the annals of the French nation, that the kings of the Franks gave arms to their sons and others, and girded them with a sword. King Alfred of England, when he dubbed his nephew Athelstane a knight, gave" him a scarlet mantle set with precious stones, and a Saxon sword with a golden scabbard. In the course of time, the English, before the arrival of the Normans, received their knightly arms with religious ceremonies. In- gulphus says : " He that was to be consecrated unto lawful warfare, should the evening before, with a contrite heart, make confession of his sins unto the Bishop, Abbot, Monk, or Priest, and being absolved, give himself to prayer, and lodge all night in the church, and on his going to hear divine .service the next day, to offer his sword upon the altar : and after the gospel, the priest was to put the sword, being previously blessed, upon the knight's neck, with his bene- diction, and thus after he had heard mass again, or received the sacrament, he became a lawful knight." This custom did not become absolute among the Normans. Kings were afterward accustomed to send their sons to neighboring courts to receive the honors of knighthood. Thus Henry II sent to David, kinf Scots ; and Malcolm, king of Scots, to Henry II ; and Edward I of England to the king of Castile. It was at this time also that to the sword and girdle, already in use, gilt spurs were added as an extra orna- ment, whence to this day they are called in Latin E'/uites aurate. Moreover, they had the privilege of wearing and using a signet. In the succeeding age, knights were created from their wealth. Concerning the creation of knights, Matthew Fioreligus, in the time of Ed- ward I, has written as follows : " The king for to augment and make goodly show of his expedition into Scotland, eqiuaed public proclamation to be made throughout England, that whomever were to be m.u.- knights by hereditary succession, and had wherewith to maintain that degree. s!).>ul.i pre- sent themselves in Westminster, at the feast of Witsuntide there to receive every one, the ornaments of a knight (saving the equipage or furniture that belongeth to horses) out of the king's wardrobe. When as therefore there flock- ed thitherto the number of three hundred gallant youths, the sons of Earls, B irons, and Knights, purple liveries, fine silk scarfs, robes most richly embroidered with gold, were plentifully bestow- ed among them, according as was befitting each one : and because the king's palace (large though it were) was ' streited ' of room for so great a multitude assembled, they cut down the apple- trees about the new temple in London, laid the walls along, and there set up pavilions and tents, wherein these noble young gallants might array and set out themselves one by one in their gorgeous and golden garments. All the night long also, these foresaid youths, as many as the place would receive, watched and prayed in the said temple. But the Prince of Wales, by com- mandment of the king his father, held his wake,, together with the principal and goodliest men of this company, within the church of Westmin- ster. Now such sound was there of trumpets, so loud a .noise of minstrelsy, so mighty an ap- plause and cry of those that for joy shouted, that the chanting of the convent could be heard from one side of the quire to the othqr. "Well, the morrow after, the king dubbed his son knight, and gave him the girdle of knighthood in his own palace, and therewith l-estowed upon him the Duchy of Aquitaine. The prince then, thus created knight, went directly into Westminster church for to grace with the like glorious dignity his peers and companions. But so great was the press of people thronging from the high altar, that two knights were thronged to death, and very many of them fainted, and were reaHy to swoon, yea, although every one of them had three soldiers, at least to lead and protect him : the Prince himself, l.-y reason of the multitude pressing upon him, having divided the people by means o!' steeds of service, no otherwise than upon the hj- to him in French "sols fhtca- li.cr an twm (BcDieu" that is, be thou a knight in the name of God ; afterwards his majesty adds, " .-leaiiccs. ChcvuJirr" Arise, Sir Knight. The honor of knighthood was formerly so highly and sacredly "prized, that if any thing was promised on the faith and honor of a knight, it was always performed in the most scrupulous and punctilious manner, at whatever HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. TEM 555 TEM risk it was undertaken. When a knight was disgraced for having offended the laws, and sentenced to suffer death, he was first despoiled of his ensigns of knighthood, by taking off his military girdle, taking away his sword, cutting his spurs off with a hatchet, his gauntlets or gloves were then torn from him, and the es- cutcheon of his arms reversed. The first account (according to Sir William Segar) that we have of ceremonies in making a knight in England, was in the year 506, in the following manner : viz. a stage was erected in some cathedral, or spacious place near it, to which the gentleman was conducted to receive the honor of knighthood. Being seated on a chair decorated with green silk, it was demanded of him, if he were of good constitution, and able to undergo the fatigue required of a soldier ; also, whether he was a man of good morals, and what credible witnesses he could produce to affirm the snme. Then the bishop, or chief prelate of the church, administered the following oath : '' Sir, you that desire to receive the honor of knight- hood, swear, before God and this holy book, that you will not fight against his majesty, that now bestoweth the honor of knighthood upon you ; you shall also swear to maintain and defend all ladies, gentlemen, widows, and or- phans ; and you shall shun no adventure of your person in any way where you shall hap- pen to be." The oath being taken, two lords led him to the king, who drew his sword, and laid it upon his head, saying " God, and Saint George (or what- ever other saint the king pleased to name) make thee a good knight." After this, seven ladies dressed in white, came and girt a sword to his side, and four knights put on his spurs. These ceremonies being over, the queen took him by the right hand, and a duchess by the left, and led him to a rich seat, placed on an ascent, where they seated him, the king sitting on his right hand, and the queen on his left. Then the lords and ladies sat down upon other seats, three descents under the king ; and being all thus seated, were entertained with a delicate collation ; *.nd so the ceremony ended. If any knight absented himself dishonorably from his king's service, leaving his colors, going over to the enemy, betraying castles, forts, &c., for such crimes he was apprehended, and caused to be armed, and then seated on a scaffold erected in the church, where, after the king had sung some funeral psalms, as though he had been dead, they first took off the knight's 47* helmet to show his face, then his military gir- dle, broke his sword, cut off his spurs from his heels with a hatchet, pulled off his gauntlets, and afterwards his whole armor, and then re- versed his coat of arms. After this the heralds cried out, " this is a disloyal miscreant," and, with many other ignoble ceremonies, he was thrown down the stage with a rope. The famous order of the farter was instituted by king Edward III, Jan. 19, 1344. King Ed- ward, being of a military genius, and engaged in a war for recovering France, made it his business to draw the best soldiers of Europe into his interest. With this view he projected a restoration of king Arthur's round table ; and proclaimed a solemn tilting to invite foreigners of quality and courage to the exercise. The place for the solemnity being fixed at Windsor, lie published his royal letters of protection for the safe coming and returning of such foreign knights as intended to venture their reputation at those Justs and Tournaments which were to be held on the 19th of January, 1344. He provided a great supper to begin the so- lemnity, and then ordering this feast to be anu- ally kept at Whitsuntide, he for that purpose erected a particular building in the castle, wherein he placed a round table, of two hun- dred feet diameter, in imitation of kingAuthur's at Winchester, and thereat entertained the knights at his own expense of a hundred pounds per week. The prince (Edward) commended himself and his companions, to the patronage of St. George, who suffered martyrdom under the emperor Diocletian, and was a person of greater eminence both in the Eastern and Western churches, than any other military saint; and that his memory might be still continued, he gave them, for part of their daily dress, the image of the saint (sitting on horseback, attack- ing the dragon with a spear) hung to a blue ribbon, to be worn all the time about their necks. The said king issuing out his garter for the signal of a battle that was crowned with suc- cess, he instituted this order, giving the garter pre-eminence among its ensigns, whence the select number, whom he incorporated into a fraternity, were styled Equites Jlurea Perisceti- dis, viz. the knights of the Golden Garter. The habits and ensigns of this order, and the forms of investiture, are thus: They consist of the Garter, Surcoat, Mantle, Hood, George, Collar, Cap, and Feathers; the four first were assigned by the founder, and the rest by king Henry VIII. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. TEM 556 TEM The garter, appointed to be worn by the knights on the left leg between the knee and calf^ was instituted by the founder, as a tie of association, honor and military virtue, to bind the knights strictly to -himself and each other in friendship, and as an ensign of unity and combination, to promote the honor of God, and the interest of their prince and sovereign. He also caused to be wrought in gold letters this motto, Ho-ii soil qui mal y pense ; declaring thereby the equity of his intention, retorting shame and defiance upon him who should dare to think ill of the just enterprise in which he had engaged, for the support of his right to the crown. Thegarteris ofblue velvet bordered with gold (having the letters of the motto of the same), and is buckled on at the time of the election. The kaight's pantaloons are of pearl-colored silk. On the outside of the right knee is fixed a knot of open silver lace and ribbons inter- mixed, iu the form of a large rose; and, a little below the knee, is placed the garter. His shoes, which are of white shammy, with red heels, have each a knot on the exterior side. His doublet is cloth of silver, adorned before and behind, and down the sleeves, with several guards or rows of silver lace, each having a row of small buttons set down the middle. The cuffs are open and adorned with the before mentioned luce and ribbons set in small loops. At the bottom of the upper scum of each cutf, is fixed a knot of silver ribbons that fall over his gloves, which are of kid. laced at the top with silver, and adorned at the opening with a knot, like that on the cuff. His snrcoat is of crimson velvet, lined with white tafivta. His cap is of black velvet adorned with a diamond band, and a plume of white feathers, with a heron sprig in the middle. The mantle is of Bky-colored velvet, adorned oil the left shoul- der with St. George's cross encircled with the garter, wreathed en the edges with blue and gold. The hood is of crimson velvet and lined with white taffeta. The collar, which weighs thirty ounces troy, of gold, was introduced" by Henry VIII, and contains twenty-six garters enamelled, and as many kftots, alluding to the sovereign of the order, to which is pendent the figure of St. George and the dragon, which is a gold medal, and may be enriched with jewels at the pleasure of the owner. The offi- cers of the order are the prelate of the garter, the chancellor of the garter, the register of the garter, and black rod, the last otficer beinf instituted by the founder. Another famous order was that of the Knights of the Bath, so called from the ceremony of bathing, that the knights underwent previous to their inauguration. This order took iis origin iti France, and its antiquity in England j s traced back to the time of Henry IV, who on the day he was at the tower of London, dubbed forty-six esquires knights, who had watched and bathed the preceding night. To each of these he gave green side-coats reaching down to their ancles, with straight sleeves, and furred with minivere ; they also wore upon their left shoulder two cordons of white silk, with tassels hanging down. It was usual in former times to create knights of this order from the flower of the nobility, who hnd not previously received the order of knighthood, at the Coronation of kings and queens, and at their marriages, sometimes also, when their sons were invested princes of Wales, or dukes, or when they solemnly received the cincture or military girdle of knighthood, and that accompanied with many ceremonies, which at present are for the most part disused. By statute January 2d. ]^15, it was ordained that, " for the purpose of commemorating the auspicious termination of the long and arduous contest in which this empire (Great Britain) has been engaged," the order should be composed of these classes, \ iz. 1st. Class. To consist of Knights Grand Crosses; number not to exceed seventy-two, exclusive of the sovereign and princes of the blood royal ; one-sixtli of which may be apr- pointed for civil and diplomatic purposes. The remainder must have attained the rank of ma- jor-general in the army, or rear-admiral in the navy ; and must have been previously appointed to the Second Class. 2d. Class. Knights Commanders; number not to exceed, up ai the first institution, one hundred and eighty, exclusive of foreign offi- cers, holding British commissions, of which not exceeding ten may be admitted as honorary knights commanders. In the event of actions of signal distinction, or of future wars, the num- ber of this class may be increased. To be en- titled to the distinctive appellation of kn in ht- Iiood ; to have the same rights and privileges as Knights Bachelois, but to take precedence of them 3 ; to wrar the badge. &c. pendent by a ribbon round the neck, the star embroidered on the left side. No officer can be nominated, unless he shall have received a medal or other badge of honor, or shall have been especially mentioned in des- patches in the London Gazette, as having dis- tinguished himself in action. No person is now eligible to this class under HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. TEM 557 TEM the rank of major-general in the army, or rear- admiral of the navy. 3d. Class. Companions of the Order; not lim- ited in order ; not limited in number > they are to take precedence of Esquires, but not entitled to Hie appellation, style, &c. of Knights Bach- elors. To wear, the badge assigned to the Third Class, pendent by a narrow red ribbon to the button-hole. MOTTO OF THE ORDER Triajuncta inuno the Trinity. The Knights of the Thistle is a Scotch order. As to the origin of this ancient order, John Les- ly. bishop of Ross, in his History of Scotland, says, it took its beginning from a bright cross in Heaven, like that whereon St. Andrew the apos- tle suffered martyrdom, which appeared to Achaius. king of Scots, and Hungus, king of the Picts, the night before the battle was fought betwixt them and Athelstane, king of England, as they were on their knees at prayer ; "when St. Andrew, their tutelary saint, is said also to have appeared, and promised to these kings that they should always be victorious when that sign appeared ; and the next day these kings pre- vailing over king Athelstane in battle, they went in solemn procession, bare footed, to the kirk of St. Andrew, to return thanks to God and his apostle for their victory, vowing that they and their posterity would ever wear the figure of that cross in their ensigns and banners ; t!ie place where this battle was fought retains to this day the name of Athelstane's Ford, in Northumberland. James the Fifth, king of Scotland, in 1534. received the order of the Golden Fleece from the Emperor Charles V,'as also that of St. Michael from Francis the First, kintr of France, in 1035, and that of the Garter in 1536, from Henry VIII, king of England ; and in memory of the" recep- tion of these orders, keeping open court, he sol- emnized tlie several feasts of St. Andrew, the Golden Fleece. St. Michael, and St. George of England, that the several princes might know how much he honored their orders ; he set the arms of the princes (encircled with their or- ders) over the gate of his palace at Linlithgow, with the order of St. Andrew. About the time of the Reformation this order was scarcely used, the knights then being so zealous for the reformed religion, that they left their order ; and it was not resumed till the reign of king James VII, who created eight knights, and for their better regulation, signed a body of statutes, and appointed the royal chap- el at Holy rood House to be the chapel of the or- der as it still continues. Queen Anne restored this order to its ancient magnificence. The order of Knights of St. Patrick was in- stituted by king George III, Feb. 5, 1783, con- sisting of the sovereign, a grand master, a prince of the blood royal, thirteen knights, and seven officers. The first investiture of knights of this order was performed the llth of March, 1783, with much ceremony. MOTTO Quis scparabit? Who shall part us ? The order of knights of St. Michael and St. George was instituted April 27. 1818, for the United States of the Ionian Islands, and for the ancient sovereignty of Malta and its dependen- cies, consisting of eight knights grand crosses, twelve knights commanders, and twenty-four knights, exclusive of British subjects holding high and confidential, employ in the Ionian islands, and in the government of Malta and its dependencies. MOTTO. Jlvsjricium mclioris crt. RIBBON. Red with blue edges. The order of knights Bachelors is the most ancient, though the lowest crder of knights in England. It was accounted the first of all mil- itary dignity, and the foundation of all honors. The word Bachelor was added by king Henry III, and so styled, because this title of honor dies with the person to whom it is given, and descends not to his posterity. This title, which was anciently in high es- teem, is now conferred indiscriminately upon gownsmen, physicians, burghers, and artists, but it is still accounted a respectable degree of honor both in England and foreign countries. A knight may be made as soon as a child is baptized, the ceremony now in use being no other than kneeling down before the king, who, with a drawn sword, lightly touches him on the right shoulder, with these words, Sois chcralier au nom de Dicu ; and then, Arancez, chczalir.r. We shall now give an account of the KNIGHTS or THK ROUND TABLE. Arthur, king of the Britons, succeeded his father, Uther Pendra- gon, who was brother to Aurelius Arnbrosius, the third son of Constantine : he married Igren. duchess of Cornwall, by whom he had this son Arthur (born at Tindagal in Cornwall), who was the eleventh king of England from the de- parture of the Romans, and was crowned about the year 516. King Arthur, having expelled the Saxons from England, conquered Norway, Scotland, and the greatest part of France, where he was crowned at Paris ; and, returning home, lived with such splendor, that many princes and CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. TEM 558 TEM knights came from all parts to his court, to give proof of their valor in the exercise of arms. Upon this he erected a Fraternity of knights, which consisted of four and twenty ; of whom he was chief; and to avoid controversies about precedency, he caused a Round Table to be made, from which they were denominated Knights of the Round Table. The said table, according to tradition, hangs up in the castle of Winchester, where they used to meet, and the time of their meeting was at Whitsuntide. None were admitted but those who gave suf- ficient proofs of their valor and dexterity in arms. They were to be always well armed for horse or foot ; " they wore to protect and de- fend widows, maidens, and children, relieve the distressed, maintain the Christian faith, contri- bute to the Church, to protect pilgrims, advance honor, and suppress vice. To bury soldiers that wanted sepulchres, to ransom captives, deliver prisoners, and administer to. the cure of wounded soldiers, hurt in the service of their country. To record all noble enterprises, that the fame thereof may ever live to their honor and the renown of the noble order." That upon any complaint made to the king of injury or oppression, one of these knights. whom the king should appoint, was to revenge the same. If any foreign knight came to court, with desire to show his prowess, some one of these knights was to be ready in arms to answer him. If any lady, gentlewoman, or other op- pressed and injured person, did present a peti- tion, declaring the same, whether the injury was done here, or beyond sea, he or she should be graciously heard, and, without delay, one or more knights should be sent to take revenge. Every knight, for the advancement of chivalry, should be ready to inform and instruct young lords and gentlemen in the exercises of arms. According to Guillim, there was no robe or habit prescribed unto these knights, nor could he find with what ceremony they were made, neither what offices belonged to the said order, excepta register to record their noble enterprises. The Ordo Equestris, (Equestrian order) of the German empire is of considerable antiquity and highly honorable, being composed of persons of the most ancient and illustrious families in Ger- many, and in point of rank takes place next to the barons. It is supposed to have been de- rived from the ancient Roman Equestrian Or- der, which ranked next to the Senate. Formerly all those who were admitted into Ordo Equestris, wore round their neck a golden chain, with a medal pendent thereto, and which is still painted on the helmet placed over each coat of arms. But since a great number of so- cial and regular orders of knighthood have been introduced all over Europe, the chain has in general been laid aside, and is now only worn by the principal officers of the districts of the empire belonging to those Equitcs, and where they are formed into corporations as a free state, holding immediately under the emperor. Here, however, it is necessary to observe, that the im- perial patent is not sufficient to enable the Grantee to belong to this body corporate, un- less he holds a fee of the empire ; on the con- trary, without such a holding, the patent gives him only personal honor and precedency in courts of justice and all other places indiscrimi- nately, and that free from all hindrance or mo- lestation whatsoever. The Ordo Equestris are not under any particular restraint, or governed by any laws, statutes, or ordinances, other than such as concern the empire in general. The title is hereditary to all the children and de- scendants, in a right line of the grantee, both male and female, and is entirely patrimonial and feudal ; a circumstance elucidated and fully confirmed by an established rule of Empire, already mentioned, viz. That such grantee cannot belong to the body corporate of the Ordo Equestris, unless he holds a fee of the empire ; and if he doth not hold such a fee, that he gains nothing farther by his patent than personal honor and precedency. In June, 1757, the empress queen of Germa- ny instituted the MILITARV ORDER OF MARIA THERESA, which was at first composed of an unlimited number of knights, divided into two classes ; the first of which wear the badge of the order pendent to a broad striped watered ribbon, of which two fifths are black and three fifths yellow, sashwnys over the right shoulder, and across or star embroidered in. silver on the left breast of their outer garment. The second class wear the badge pendent to a narrow striped ribbon at the button-hole. This order continued from its first institution until the year 17G5, when the emperor added an in- termediate class, styled Knights Commanders, who wear the ribbon sash-ways but without any star on the outer garment. The badge of the order is a cross of gold enamelled white, edged with gold, on the centre are the arms of Austria encircled with the word Fortitudine, and on the reverse is a cipher of the letter M. T. F.. (Maria Theresa Fundator) in gold, on an enamelled ground. This order is conferred on military men only. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. TEM 559 TEM The ladies' order in honor of the Cross, is another German order. A conflagration, which happened at the emperor's palace in the year 1668, was the occasion of the foundation of this order. The badge of the order is a golden medal chased and pierced ; in the centre the imperial eagle, over all a cross surmounted with the letters I. H. S. and a small cross over the H, with this motto, Salus et Gloria Safety and Glory. Eleonora Di Gonzaga, widow of the emperor Ferdinand 111 instituted the order of Ladies Slaves to Virtue in 1662, and declared herself sovereign of it. The number that compose it is limited to thirty, all to be of the Romish re- ligion, and of the best nobility. The badge worn by the ladies of this order is a golden sun, encircled with a chaplet of laurel, e.namelled green, with this motto over it. Sola ubique tri- umphal. It is worn pendent at the breast to a small chain of gold, or a plain narrow black ribbon. The order of the Bear was instituted at the Abbey of St. Gall, in Switzerland, by the em- peror Frederic II, in the year 1213. St. Ursus, being the patron of it, communicated their name to the same ; it flourished from its institution until the revolution by which the House of Austria lost the Swiss cantons, when it was abolished. The order having been upwards of three centuries extinct, it is unnecessary to say any thing farther of it. The collar was a gold chain interlaced with oak leaves, to which hung the figure of a black bear on a medallion, hav- ing under it a hillock enamelled vest. The order of the Elephant is a Danish order of great celebrity. It was instituted by Chris- tian the First, on the marriage of his son John with Christina of Saxony, in the year 1748, since which time it has subsisted without inter- ruption or degradation. It is now conferred only on princes of the blood, foreign princes, or noblemen of the first rank. The knights of it are addressed by the title of Excellency. On ordinary occasions they wear the badge of the order pendent to a sky-blue watered ribbon, worn sashways over the right shoulder, and a star of eight points embroidered in silver on the left side of their outer garments. But on days of ceremony they wear it pendent to a collar of gold composed of Elephants and Towers. The badge is an elephant, on his back a castle en- amelled, and on the side of the elephant across of Danehrojr in diamonds. The Order of the Holy Ghost is the most il- lustrious order of knighthood in France. It was instituted by Henry the Third, in the year 1579, on Whitsunday, the festival on which he wae born in the year 1551. elected king of Poland 157'.}, and called to the throne of France in the year 1574. The number of persons that com- pose it is limited by the statutes to one hundred, exclusive of the Sovereign or Grand Master. Of these, four cardinals, five prelates, the chan- cellor, the master of the ceremonies, the trea- surer, the register, and the provost, are styled commanders, without being considered as knights, though they usually wear the badges or insignia of the order. All are to profess the Roman Catholic religion ; and the knights are to prove the nobility of their descent for a hun- dred years and upwards ; but no proofs of this kind are required of the commanders whose offices or honors are commonly sold at a regu- lated price. The king of France is sovereign or grand master of it ; and by the statutes this office is inalienably annexed to the crown, but he cannot exercise its functions until after his coronation, when he is installed, with much ceremony, as sovereign of the order. To be a knight of it, it is necessary for all except prin- ces of the blood, to have attained the age of thirty-three, and to have been admitted into the order of St. Michael, into which even the prin ces must enter at sixteen years old. The Dau phin only is excepted from this rule, he being received into both orders on the day of his birth. The commandeis are not knights of the order of St. Michael, and here arises the difference between their styles and titles and those bv which the knights are distinguished; the knights being called C/teraliers dcs Ordrcs du Roy ; and the commanders, if ecclesiastics, Coiiunfindcur de I' drdre du St. Esprit; if lay- men, Commandeur dcs Ordres du Roy. The Royal and Military Order of St. Louis was instituted by Louis XIV, in the year 1693, and by the statutes of it the oflice of the Sove- reign or Grand Master is annexed to the crown. It is conferred on naval and military officers, who have distinguished themselves in the ser- vice at any age. or at any time, but, unless they- have done so, they do not obtain it until they have served five and twenty years as commis- sioned officers .- after that period, they expectit as a matter of right, more than of favor ; hence it happens that the number of knights is great and unlimited. In this order are three classes ; the first consists of forty knights, who are styled Chevaliers Grand Croix Knights Grand Cross. They wore a flame-colored watered ribbon sash- ways, to which is pendent a cross of eight points CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY TEM 560 .TEM enamelled white, edged with gold ; in the an- gles four Fleurs de Lys, and on the middle.a circle, within which on one" side is the image of St. Louis in armor, with the royal mantle over it, holding in his left hand a crown of thorns, and in his right hand a crown of laurel, and the three passion nails all proper, with this inscrip- tion Ludovicus Magnus instltu.it anno 1693. On the reverse a sword erect, the point through a chaplet of laurel, bound witli a white ribbon, enamelled with this motto, Bellicce virtutis prcc- mium ; besides which they wear, embroidered on the left side of their outer garment, a gold star of eight points with Fleur de Lys at the an- gles and the figures of St. Louis, with-the motto on the centre. The second class are eighty in number, and are styled Chevaliers Comman- deurs, &c. These wear the ribbon and badge in the same manner as the knights of the former class, but have no star embroidered on their outer garment. The third class is not limited to any number : and the knights of it are styled simply Ckecaliers de Vordre Royale ct Mititaire de St. Louis. These wear the badge of the or- der pendent to a flame-colored watered ribbon, at the button-hole of their outer garment. The knights of the first class have pensions of from four to six thousand livres a year, and when a vacancy happens among them, it is filled by the next seniority of the second class. The knights of the second class have pensions of from three to four thousand livres a year, and the vacancies that happen among them are filled up by the king, from among the most fa- vored and deserving of the third class. The knights of the third class have no pensions of right, but it frequently happens that the poorest .and the most distinguished of them obtain small pecuniary favors, which they term Gratification. It is not necessary to be of a noble family to be admitted into this order ; nor does it ennoble the family of the person who obtains it, though it gives him the privileges of the JYoblesse; and if there be three knights of it, in regular suc- cession, in a plebeian family, it ennobles all the branches of it. All knights of this order must be Roman Catholics. The knights of the order of Bourbon were sometimes called knights of the Thistle, and knights of our Lady. They were in number twenty-six, were instituted by Louis the Good, Duke of Bourbon, in honor of the Virgin Mary, in the year 13?0, and became extinct soon after. Their m->tto was Mien or JHIons, and on the collar of their order the word ESHEKANCE. The collar was of gold, weighing ten marks, fastened with a goldeji buckle ; it consisted of whole lozenges, and .a double role of half lozen- ges, enamelled green", and rilled with Fleurs- de-Lisof gold, in the whole 'lozenges the word Espcrance, each letter withrn a lozenge, enam- elled red; and pendent to the collar was an oval, enamelled green and red, thereon the image of the Blessed Virgin, crowned with twelve stars of silver, a crescent of the same under her feet, her garments enamelled purple and sky-color, and at the bottom of the oval a Thistle Green. The order of the Death's Head was first in- stituted by the Duke of Wirtemberg, in" the year 1652, and both sexes were equally admitted to it, but, having soon fallen into disuse, it was revived again in the year 1709, by Louise Eliz- abeth, widow of Philip, Duke of Saxe Mers- burg, and' daughter of the original founder. The badge of this order is a Death's head, enamelled white, surmounted with a cross pattee black; above the cross pattee another cross composed of five large jewels, by which it hangs to a black ribbon edged with white, and on the ribbon these words, Memento Morii, worn at the breast. But on the death of any of the order, the survivors wear the badge pendent to a black ribbon over a white one, on which is the name of the deceased. Some of the orders of knighthood in Palestine and other parts of Asia were very celebrated. The order of the Holy Sepulchre in Jerusalem, according to Favin, was instituted by Baldwin I, king of Jerusalem, who made the regular canons (which then resided in a convent adjoin- ing to the Holy Sepulchre) knights of the said order ; they were to guard the Holy Sepulchre, to relieve and protect prilgrims. The Patriarch of Jerusalem was appointed their Grand Mas- ter, with power for conferring the order, and receiving the vow made by the knights, which was of chastity, poverty, and obedience. Their habit was white, and on their breast a gold cross potent, cantoned with four crosses of the same without enamel, pendent to a black ribbon. They wore tjte cross of yellow embroidery on the left side of their robe. * When the city of Je- rusalem was taken by the Saracens, the knights retired to Italy, and settled atFemgia.and were afterwards united to the knights of St. John of Jerusalem. Certain Christian merchants of Malfis in the kingdom of Naples, who tracled to Palestine, obtained leave from the Caliph of Egypt to dwell near the Holy Sepulchre of Christ, and to erect a small house for the entertainment of HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. TEM. 561 TEM themselves and p'ilgrims, which they named the Hospital* of Chrfstians, with a small oratory dedicated to the Virgin Mary. Their number increasing, they built another house for women, and dedicated it to St. Mary Magdalen. Their number still increasing, they built a more con- venient house, the others being too small, and dedicated it to St. John tlie Baptist. They enter- tained all pilgrims that came for devotion, and cured the diseased among them. They became eminent for their devotion, charity, and hospi- tality. St. John Baptist, being their patron, they were called Brethren Hospitallers of St. John Baptist of Jerusalem, to distinguish them from the knights of the Holy Sepulchre ; they took the black habit of the Hermits of St. Au- gustin, and on the- left side of the breast, they wore a cross of white, cloth, with eight points. In war they wore crimson, with a white cross, but in their monasteries and on the day of their profession the black garment only. This order increased in wealth after the suppression of the Templars, most of whose lands were given to them. They had in several parts of Christen- dom 20,000 manors ; in England the Lord Prior of the order was accounted the prime baron of the realm. Their first Great Master was Gerard de Sainct Uidier. by whom they were founded ; the last master that had his residence in the Holy Land was John de Villers, in whose time. being driven out of Palestine, they removed to Cyprus, and then to the isle of Rhodes, which thev possessed till the year 1523, when they were e'xpelled by Solyman the Magnificent, who took it by force, through want of succor by the Christian princes. The city was admirably defended by the knights, under the conduct of their Great Master, Philip de Villiers. After the loss of the isle of Rhodes, they re- moved to the island of Malta, which w^th Tri- poli and Gaza were granted to them in fee by the emperor Charles V., A. D. 1530, under the tender of one falcon yearly to the viceroy of Sicily, and to acknowledge the king of Spain and Sicily for their protectors. In this isle they continued a bulwark to those parts, and from this their settlement, were called Knights of Malta. In May, 1563, they were besieged by Soly- man, with a navy of ICO galleys full of Turkish soldiers, and 100 vessels with" precisions. The siege was sustained for four months by the bra- very of the kniorhts, and the conduct of their Great Master, John de Velete,so that the Turks were obliged to raise the siege, and leave 3000 of their men behind, and the greater part of their artillery, on the 8th qf September in the same year. Upon which day there is annually a processio'n at Malta, in memory of their deliv- erance. These knights were in number 1000; 500 to reside in the island of Malta, the remainder dis- persed at their seminaries in Spain, Germany, Italy, and France, and at any summons to make their personal appearance. A seminary they had in England till the suppression of it by Henry VIII ; yet they continued to appoint one to whom they gave the title of the Grand Prior of England. Out of the following nations, they chose the^r officers, xiz. Pro.vence, the Grand Prior; Auvergne, the Marshal of the Order; Italy, the Admiral of the Order; Arragon, the Conservator of the Order ; England they used to appoint the Great. Colonel of the cavalry ; Germany, the High Bailiff of the Order; Cas- tile, the High Chancellor of the Order. None were admitted into this order, but such as could prove their gentility for six descents : they swore to defend the church, to obey their superiors, and to live upon the revenues of their order only. There were sixteen called the Great Crosses, out of whom the officers of their order, as the Marshal, Admiral, Chancellor, &.c. were chosen, who, together jvith the Mas- ter, punished such as were convicted of any crime. When the Grand Master died, they suffered no vessel to go out of the island till another was chosen, lest the pope should interfere in their election, which was as follows : the several seminaries named two knights each, allowing also two for the English; and those sixteen from among themselves chose eight ; those eight chose a knight, a Priest, and a Friar Servant; and these three, out of the sixteen Great Crosses, elected the Great Master, who, being chosen, was styled, ' The most illustrious and most rev- erend "Prince, the Lord Friar N. N. Great Mas- ter of the Hospital of St. John of Jerusalem, Prince of Malta and Gaza.' The badge of the order was a gold cross of eight points, enamelled white, pendent -to a black watered ribbon, worn at the breast. This order having been composed of persons of dif- ferent countries, the badge was decorated so as to distinguish the country of the bearer, riz. Germany, by an Imperial crown and eagle; France, the crown and Fleurs-de-lis, &c. In 1798, the knights of Malta yielded their dominion to the French power, from whom it was soon after wrested by the British, in which CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. TEM 562 TEM crown it was finally vested by the peace of 1814. When the Holy land began to grow famous by the expeditions of Christian princes, the Order of the knights Hospitallers had its begin- ning, or rather its restoration, by Girardus ; for the origin is attributed to Schannes Hircanus Machabeus, or John, Patriarch of Alexandria, who, for his liberality to the poor, was surnamed Eleemosynarius. These knights, having their chief seat at first in the Hospital of St. John i Baptist at Jerusalem, which was re-edified by the same Girard, took that Saint for their pa- tron, but their rule from Pope Gelasius II ; and Honorious II assigned them a black mantle^ with a white cross. Raimundus de Podis, the first Master, devised the statutes of their order, and entitles himself Scrvus pauperum C'/irisU, ct Hospitalis t/iicrosolomitani Ctistodem. The Polish order of the White Eagle was first instituted in the year 1325, by Uladislaus V, but having soon fallen into disuse, it lay in oblivion till the year 1705, when Augustus. Elector of Saxony and king of Poland, revived it as an instrument to attach to his own interest and person several of the Polish nobility, who, he feared, were inclined to Stanislaus, Ins com- petitor. Motto, Projide, rcve, Icge. Alphonso Henriquez, king of Portugal, insti* luted the Order of the Wing of St. Michael, in the year 1172, in commemoration of a victory obtained by him over the Moors, whom lie imagined he overcame by the direct interposi- tion of St. Michael, who, according to the le- gend, appeared fighting in the king's right wing. The Order of St. George in Rome was insti- tuted, according to some, by pope Alexander VI, in the year 1498, or, according to Michaeli, by pope Paul III, to encourage naval men to defend the coast of the Adriatic against pirates. The badge of it was a cross of gold within a circle of the same, like an open crown. The Order of Si Peter and St. Paul, was in- stituted by Leo the Tenth, in the year 15520, to defend the sea-coasts of his territories against the Turks who threatened them. The Prussian Order of the. Black Eagle was instituted by Frederick I. at his coronation in the year 1701. By the statutes of it, the num- ber of knights, exclusive of the Princes of the blood, is limited to thirty, who must all be ad- mitted into the order of Generosity previous to their receiving this, unless they he sovereign princes ; the knights to prove their nobility by sixteen descents. The kings of Prussia are perpetual Grand Masters of it. There belong to it a Chancellor, who is also a knight, a Mas- ter of the Ceremonies, and a Treasurer. The ensign of the order is a gold cross of eight points enamelled blue, having at each angle a spread eagle enamelled black, and charged with a ci- pher of the letters F. 11. This each knight wears commonly pendent to a broad orange rib- bon, worn sash-wise over the left shoulder, and a silver star embroidered on the left side of their outer garment, whereon is an escutcheon con- taining a spread eagle, holding in one claw a chaplet of laurel, and in the other a thunderbolt, with this motto in gold letter round it, Suum cuique. The king chose the Black Eagle, being the ai;ms of Prussia ; and the color of the ribbon, on account of his mother, a Princess of Orange. First among the Russian orders is that of fit. Andrew. Peter the Great instituted this order in the year lUtlB, and chose for its patron St. Andrew, (on account of this Apostle's having been, according to tradition, tin; founder of Christianity among the Muscovites). His mo- tive for instituting this order was to animate his nobles and chief officers in their wars against the Turks; and he conferred it on those who had signalized themselves in his service. The Order of the- Sword in Cyprus was insti- tuted by Guy de Lusignan, about the end of the twelfth century, soon after he hud acquired the kingdom of Cyprus by purchase from Rich- ard Coeur de Lion. This order was on its insti- tution conferred on three hundred Barons, who were then created : it continued to nourish until it became extinct, on the Turks conquer- ing the island of Cyprus. Motto, Securitas Regm. The most celebrated Spanish order, was the Order of the Golden Flttce. This order was instituted at Bruges, in Flanders, the 10th of January, 14912 [the day of his marriuge with his third wife, Isabella of Portugal,] by Philip, Duke of Burgundy. The occasion of its insti- tution is a subject of controversy among anti- quaries : but it appears most probable, that, having determined to institute an order of knighthood, he chose for the badge of it the material of the staple manufactories of his coun- try, which was the fleece; and this emblem might have been the more agreeable to him from the figure it made in the heroic ages of the world, when the Argonautic expedition was undertaken for it. However this may be, it at first, eoiisisted of thirty knights, including the sovereign, who were of the first families in the Low Countries ; and though it has undergone HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. TEN 563 TEN some changes since its foundation, it has ever been ranked "among the most illustrious and distinguished orders of knighthood in Europe. At present there are two different branches of this order; of one of which the emperor is sovereign ; and the king of Spain of the other, of which we now speak. The number of knights is not limited, though it seldom exceeds seventy or eighty, of which, there are generally a good many of the French and Italian nobility ; but all must prove their noble descent from the twelfth century. Tliry wear usually a Golden fleece Cross, pendent to a broad plain red ribbon round their necks ; but en days of ceremony they v;enr the collar of the order, which is com- posed of double steels, interwoven witli Hint stone, emitting: sparks of f;ie, the whole enam- elled in their p$t}>er colors,, a't (he end whereof lungs on the breast th golden fleece. The fu- wil;j are joined two and two together, ;.s if the/ \ver.e double BB's, the cipher of Burgundy, au'd the flint stones the ancient arms of the Sov< - reigns of Burgundv of the first race : with their motto. ^ntcf/rit r.Iiar,i j!t:imna j.tictl. The mot- to of the order, is Prcftiun: nun Tile There aie four officers, viz. the chancellor, the treasurer, the: register, and a king at a: ed Toison d' or. The OKDF.K or jfr. MARK, was conferred by the duke of Venice, end by the sen:: persons of eminent quality, or sucli as had ue- :-envd well of the State, in the year .-2 V . the bodv of St. Mark v as ri i : vc-d fn.,;i Alexandria* ; V.iere it was buried) to the city of Venice. This saint has been taken for thoir tu- U'hr snail and guardian. His picture was nn- .icntly painted upon their ensigns and banners. Motto. I'as till, Murrr ErangdisUt .Metis. TEMPLE, Sir William, a celebrated states- man, born in London in 1623. In 1065, he went <>n a secret mission to Munster ; after which he vn.s employed in forming the triple alliance be- ' iweeri England, Sweden, and Holland. He next became tiie resident minister at the Hague, Hud in that capacity promoted the marriage of the printv of Orange and the princess Mary. In 1!;7D he was appointed secretary of state ; lint the next year he resigned that situation, and retired to his country seat in Surrey, where he was often visited by Charles II, James II, and \Vilii:.in III. lie died in 1700. TENNESSEE, one of the United States, bounded 3V. by Kentucky and Virginia; E. by North Carolina, TS. by Alabama, and Mississippi, and W. by Mississippi river. It contains 40,000 43 square miles, and had, in 1830, 829,510 inhabit- ants, of whom 183,359 were slaves. The Cumberland mountains divide this state into East and West Tennessee. The western part of this state is level or gen- tly undulating, the middle is broken by hills, and the eastern part is mountainous. Of this variety, Mr. Flint says, " There can be nothing of grand and imposing in scenery, nothing striking and picturesque in cascades and pre- cipitous sides of mountains covered with woods, nothing romantic and delightful in deep and sheltered valleys, through which wind still and clear streams, which is not found in this state. 1 ' The articles which are sent to the New Or- leans' market are cotton, indigo, corn, whiskey, hogs, horses, cattle, flour, gunpowder, salt-petie, poultry, bacon. lard, butter, apples, pork, coarse linen, tobacco, &c. The chief towns are Murfreeshprough, Nash- ville, Knoxville, Franklin, FayetteviTle. Shel- byville, Columbia. Clarksville", Carthage, and Gallatin. Colleges have been established at Greenville 1 , Knoxville, Nashville, and in Wash- ington county. The first permanent settlement of the whites was made by emigrants from Vir- ginia and North Carolina, in 1757 and 1758. The settlers were annoyed by the Indians, Cher- bkees. Choctaws, Chickasaws, and Shawnees, whose hostilities for a long time retarded the progress of the settlements. Tennessee formed part of North Carolina until 17W), and in 17 ( J(3, it was erected into a state. , TEWKESBUKY, a market town of Glou cestershire. It. was at this place that the last ^Id^SNHkght between the adherents of the and Lancaster. This battle, it : 'wn. proved fatal to tiie Lancastrians The field in which it was fought is still called the Bloody Meadow, and is situated about half a mile from the town. In the civil war in the reign of Charles I. Tewkesbury was the scene of inany severe c atests between the contend inof forces. TEXAS, fd^pilcny belonging to Mexico, since 1835, an hide --ident republic ; is bounded by the Red river v, north, by the Sabine on the east, and ' ' ico on the South. The west. Denied, between it and Mc\i:-o. It has a gulf coast of 250 miles, but no good harbors for large ships ; the bays b fa in. '7 shallow, and the mouths of the rivers obstructed by san:l burs. The main channel through Galvcston bar, however, has 13 feet CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. THE water. The principal rivers arc the Sane, Trinidad, San Jacinto, Brazos, de Dios, Colorado, Varca, Guadaloupe, San Antonio, and Neuces. There are no large towns. Houston, Goliad, Bexar, Gonza'.cs, Montezvnna, Matagorda, Vic- toria, Washington. San Felipe de Austin, Bra- zoria, Colombia, and Bolivar are the principal. Austin is now the capital of Texas. Gal- veston promises to be the most important sea- port, though it is liable to bo overflowed by high tides, when the sea is driven in by storms. Na- cogdoches, an old Spanish town, contains 1000 inhabitants It is generally a prairie country, flat' near the coast, and undulating in the inte- rior. There are few trees except on the banks of the streams, and in clusters on the prairies, which also afford excellent pasturage. The cli- mate is fine, and the soil productive. The in- habitants are generally from the United States. THEBES, a celebrated city, capital of BCEO- tia. situated on the banks of the river Isme- nus. The manner of its foundation is not pre- ciselj' known. Cadmus is supposed to have first begun to found it by building the citadel Cadinea. It was afterwards finished by Amphi- on and Zethus ; but, according to Varro, it owed its origin to Ogyges. The government of Thebes was monarchical, arid many of the sove- reigns are celebrated for their misfortunes, such s Lais, ( (Edipus, Polynices, Eteocles, &c. The ich Thebes supported against the A ve,s, is famous as well as that of the Epigo war which Thebes supported against the Ar- give,s, is famous as well as that of the Epigoni. Under Epaminondas, the Thebans, though be- fore dependent, became masters of Greece, and every thing was done according to their will and pleasure. When Alexander invaded Greece, he ordered Thebes to be totally demol- ished, because it had revolted against him, ex- cept the house where the poet Pindar had been born and educated. In this dreadful period, 6,000 of its inhabitants were slain, and :; i,!!i) sold for slaves. Thebes was afterwards repair- ed by Cassander, the son of Antipnter. but it never rose to its original consequence, and Stra- bo, in his age, mentions it merely as an incon- siderable village. The monarchical govern- ment was abolished there at the death of A';-n- thus, about 1 1!HJ years before Christ, and Thebes became a republic. TIIEliES, an ancient celebrated city of The- bais, in Egypt, culled also Hecatonipyfoa on ac- count of its hundred gates, and Diospolis. aa being sacred to Jupiter. It was ruined by Caiu- oyses, king of Persia. It- mat munificent ru- ins are those of Luxor and Karnac,of wliicti an 4 THE account is subjoined. Although there is a same- ness in the character of the Egyptian scenery, it is such as is to be seen in no other land. The Libyan and Arabian chains of mountains, per- fectly naked, stretch on each side of the Nile nearly to the first cataract, generally within a few miles of the river, and sometimes close t<* it, or forming its bank. At the loot of these naked masses of a light color, often appeal- groups of the most vivid and beautiful verdure, the palm and sycamore spreading over some lonely cottage, a herd of goats and buffaloes winding their way, or ac-imel silently gracing. The utter barrenness and desolation that ofteiv encompass scenes and spots of exquisite fruitfu'- ness and beauty, the tomb of the Hanton \vitli its scanty shade, and the white minaret with its palm and cypress placed on the very verge of a boundless desert, or amidst a burning expanse of sand, are almost peculiar to Egj-pt. Then you often pass from the rich banks of the Nile. covered with lime and orange-trees, where groups of Orientals are seated luxuriously in the shade, into a wild and howling waste, where all. even the broken monuments of pa>t ages. only inspire feelings of sadness and regret. " It was evening ere we arrived at Luxor, a p -or yet populous village, erected p-irtly amidst the ruins of the great temple. This edilice is near the water's ed.'.re, u t'u- edge of the water, that rippled at their feet. The weight of each statue was enormous, and would render the removal difficult ; or else :> traveller might well be tempted to ship one <>f them, as tht?y seemed to be no man's prrpertv. There are two most beautiful obelisk- the g-iteway, seventy feet high, or i.n re V.it.v much loftier, as a considcralile part i. ; I'in. .1 i-i rubbish. Their hieroglyphics are cut. deeper. ;m-l with greater deliouev, than those on any other obelisks in l'>vr>t. "A Frenchman, in the em- ployment of IX-ovetti ! j , ill, i I h< \vh' showed UH mudi p ! teilijrcnt m:,:i. dr hacf resided sixteen yean in rftrioui parts of .this country- His companion, Mori* Bonn.-l. !nd gone to (J;ii:-D {or ;> ;-nj>p!v of wi::i- and other e.)iniort.s. an.l he fi'if uolitary and im]>atient for his return : lie possess d a small e-.llertion of minerals and other curiosities, and hud nrmu- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL THE 5G5 THE factured a cool and delightful sort of palm-wine out of the juice of the tree, which was very grateful to us in the sultry heat of the day. Sixteen years' residence in Upper Egypt is really a trial of a man's patience and enthusiasm, and for two Frenchmen above all beings. SuJeirnan Aga, commander of the Pacha's Mamelukes at Esneh, a town two days' sail further, was not so resigned : this man was one of Bonaparte's colonefs, and on the ruin of his master's fortunes he came to Egypt, and offered his services to the Pacha, protesting at the same time he would never consent to change his religion. Mah- moud laughed, and said, he cared nothing about his religion, if he only served him well ; but lie must allow himself to be called by a Turkish name, and wear the costume. Suleiman Aga now lives in style as commandant at Esneh, and receives travellers very hospitably ; but his soul pines, amidst Egyptian beauty, for a suitable companion, and he implored a fellow traveller and friend of mine, to send him out an English or Italian wife : he swore he would pay implicit deference to his friend's advice, and marry the lady the moment she arrived. The women around him, he said, were so insipid ; and he would live there contented could he be but blessed with one whom he could converse with, and whose vivacity and intelligence would brighten his solitary hours. " It is difficult, to describe the stupendous 'and noble ruins of Thebes. Beyond all others they give you the idea of a ruined, yet imperishable city ; so vast is their extent, that you wander a long time confused and perplexed, and discover at every step some new object of interest. From the temple of Luxor to that of Karnac, the dis- tance is a mile and a half, and they were for- merly connected by a long avenue of sphinxes, the mutilated remains of which, the heads being broken off the greater part, still line the whole path. Arrived at the end of this avenue, you first pass under a very elegant arched gateway, seventy feet high, and quite isolated. About fifty yards farther you enter a temple of inferior dimensions, which Drovetli has been busy in excavating; you then advance into a spacious area, strewed with broken pillars, and surround- ed with vast and lofty masses of ruins, all parts of the great temple : a little on your right is the magnificent portico of Karnac. the vivid remem- brance of which will never leave him who has once gazed on it. Its numerous colonnades of pillars, of gigantic form and height, are in ex- cellent preservation, but without ornament; the ceiling and walks of the portico are gone ; the plat-stone still connects one of the rows of pil- lars, and is ornamented; and viewed from be- low, with a slender remain of the edifice still attached to it, it seems almost to hang in the sky. Passing hence, you wander amidst obe- lisks, porticoes, and statues, the latter without grace or beauty, but of a most colossal kind. If you ascend one of the hills of rubbish, and'look around, you see a gateway standing afar, con- ducting only to solitude ; detached and roofless pillars, while others lie broken at their feet, the busts of gigantic statues appearing above the earth, while the rest of the body is yet buried, or the head torn away, while others lie pros trate or broken into useless fragments. On the left spread the dreary deserts of the Thebais, to the edge of which the city extends. In front is a pointed and barren range of mountains : the Nile flows at the feet of the temple of Luxor; but the ruins extend far on the other side of the river, to the very feet of those formidable preci- pices, and into the wastes of sand ; the natural scenery around Thebes is as fine as can possibly be conceived. The remainder of the statue is still here, the beautiful bust of which Belzoni sent to the British Museum ; it was fallen and broken off long since. Drovetti is quite inex- cusable in causing one of the two beautiful obe- lisks at the entrance of the temple of Karnac to be thrown down and broken, that he might car- ry ofF the upper part : such an act is absolute sacrilege. One cannot help imagining that a vast deal yet remains to be discovered beneath this world of ruins, on both sides of the river ; but the pursuit requires incessant and undivided attention A traveller must lay his account to spend six months in excavating here, with a body of Arabs, who work very cheaply, and must put up with many privations, before he could expect to be richly compensated for his pains. <; The second visit we paid to Karnac was still more interesting. The moon had risen, and we passed through one or two Arab villages in the way, where fires were lighted in the open air, and the men, after the labors of the day, were seated in groups round them, smoking and conversing with great cheerfulness. It is sin- gular that in the most burning climates of the East, the inhabitants always love a good fire at night, and a traveller soon catches the habit ; yet the air was still very warm. There was no fear of interruption in exploring the ruins, as the Arabs dread to come here after daylight, as they often say these places were built by Afrit, the devil ; and the belief in apparitions prevails CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. THE 566 THE among most of the Orientals. \Ve again en- tered with delight the grand portico. It was a night of uncommon beauty, without a breath of wind stirring, and the moonlight fell vividly on some parts of Mie colonnades, while others! were shaded so as to add to, rather thun dimin- ish their grandeur. The obelisks, the statues, the lonely columns on the plain without, threw their long shadows on the mass of ruins around them, and the scene WHS in truth exquisitely mournful and beautiful." THEMISTOCLES,acelebrated general born at Athens. When Xerxes invaded Greece, Themistocles was at the head of the Athenian icpublic, and in this capacity the fleet wes en- trusted to his care. While the Lacedaemonians under Leonidas were opposing the Persians at Thermopylae, the naval operations of Themis- tocles, and of the combined fleet of the Pelopon- nesians were directed to destroy the armament of Xerxes, and to ruin his maritime power. This battle, which was f >ught near the island of Salamis, B. C. 480, was decisive ; the Greeks obtained the victory, and Themistocles the honor of having destroyed the formidable navy of Xerxes. Further to ensure the peace of his country, Themisiocles informed the Asiatic monarch, that the Greeks had conspired to cut the bridge which he had built across the Helles- pont, and to prevent his retreat into Asia. This met with equal success, Xerxes hastened away from Greece, and while he believed on the word of Themistocles, that his return would be disputed, he left his forces without a general, and his tleets an easy conquest to the victorious Greeks. These signal services to his country, endeared Themistocles to the Athenians, and he was universally called the most warlike and most courageous of all the Greeks who fought against the Persians. He was received with the most distinguished honors ; and by his prudent administration, Athens was soon fortified with strong walls, the Pireus was rebuilt, aria her harbors were filled with a numerous and power- ful navy, which rendered her the mistress of Greece. Yet in the midst of that glory, the conqueror of Xerxes incurred the displeasure of his countrymen, which had proved so fatal to many of his illustrious predecessors, lie was banished from the city, and after he had sought in vain a safe retreat among the republics of Greece, and the barbarians of Thrace, he threw himself into the arms of a monarch, whose fleets he had defeated, and whose father he had ruin- ed. Artaxerxes, the successor of Xerxes, re- ceived the illustrious Athenian with kindness. Themistocles died in the Goth year of his age, about 44i,' years before the Christian era. THEODORIC I, king of the Visigoths, in Spain, succeeded Vallia, in 41U. He laid siege to Aries, but was repulsed by Aetius; some time after he defeated Litorius. general of the Roman army, and led him prisoner to Toulouse. But when tae formidable forces of Attila, king of the Huns, put all the princes of the Gauls into a great consternation, he united his forces with Merovee, king of France, Aetius, and Gundi- caire, king of the Burgundians, and fought and defeated Attila. Theodoric was killed in the battle, in 451. THEODORIC II, son of the first, murdered his eldest brother Thorismond, in 453, and made himself master of the town of Narbonne, which was surrendered to him by Count Agrippin, in 46*J. Advancing into Spain, Rechaire, king of the Suevi, his brother-in-law, gave him battle ; but having worsted, and taken Rechaire in his retreat, Theodoric sentenced him to death, and was himself killed soon after by the contrivance of one of his brothers called Evaric, who as- cended the throne in 4GG. THEODOSIUS FLAVIU3,a Roman empe- ror, surnamed Magnus, from the greatness of his exploits. He was invested with the impe- rial purple by Gratian, and appointed over Thrace and the eastern provinces, which had been, in the possession of Valentinian. The first years of his reign were marked by different conquests over the barbarians. The Goths were defeated in Thrace, and 4000 of their chariots, with an immense number of prisoners of both sexes, were the reward of the victory. Some conspiracies v;ere formed against the emperor, but Thcodosius totally disregarded them ; and while he punished his competitors for the impe- rial purple, he thought himself sufficiently se- cure in the love and the affection of his sub- ject.-). He triumphed over the barbarians, and restored peace in every part of the empire. He died of a dropsy at Milan, in the GOth year of his age, after a reign of 1(5 years, the 17th of January, A. D. 305. Theodosius was the last of the emperors who was the sole master of the whole Roman empire. Hio want of clemency, however, in one instance, was too openly be- trayed, and when the people of Thessalonica hi.l unmeaningly, perhaps, killed cne of his officers, the emperor ordered his soldiers to put all the inhabitants to the sword, and no less than (i'JUO persons, without distinction of rank, age, or sex, were cruelly butchered in that town in the space of three- hours. This violence irrita- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. THE 567 THE led the ecclesiastics, and Theodosius was com- pelled by St. Ambrose to do open penance in the church, and publicly to make atonement for an act of barbarity which had excluded him from the bosom of the church, and the communion of the faithful. In his private character Theodo- sius was an example of soberness and temper- ance, his palace displayed becoming grandeur, but still with moderation. He never indulged luxury. or countenanced superfluities. He was fond of bodily exercise, and never gave himself up to pleasure and enervating enjoyments. The laws and regulations which heintroducedin the Roman empire, were of the mostsalutary nature. THEODOSIUS Second, succeeded his father Arcadius, as emperor of the western llo- man empire, though only in the eighth year of his age. The territories of Theodosius were invaded by the Persians, but the emperor soon appeared at the head of a numerous force, and the two hostile armies met on the frontiers of the empire. The consternation was universal on both sides ; without even a battle, the Per- sians fled, and no less than 100.000 were lost in the waters of the Euphrates. Theodosius raised the siege of A'isibis, where his operations failed of success, and he averted the fury oi'lhe Huns and Vandals by bribes and promises. He died on the y'Jth of July, in the 4!Jth year of his age, A. D. 450. THERAMENES, an Athenian philosopher and general in the age of Alcibiades. He was one of the thirty tyrants of Athens, but he had no share in the cruelties and oppression which disgraced their administration lie was accused by Critias, one of his colleagues, because he op- posed their views, and he was condemned to drink hemlock, though defended by his own in- nocence, and the friendly intercession of the philosopher Socrates. He drank the poison with great composure, and poured some of it on the ground, with the sarcastical exclamation of, " This is to the health of Critias." This hap- pened about 404 years before the Christian era. THERMOPYL/E, a small pass leading from Thessaly into Lociis and Phocis. It has a large ridge of mountains on the west, and the sea on the east, with deep and dangerous marshes, be- ing in the narrowest part only twenty-five feet in breadth. It is celebrated for a battle which was fought there, B. C. 460. on the 7th of Au- gust, between Xerxes, and the Greeks under Leonidas. Xerxes assembled his troops and encamped on the plains of Trachis. Xerxes having no particular quarrel with the Spartans, oppose him, but Timoleon his army back, and falling upon Syria, he took i-ludeJ their vigilance. Icetas, who had the Damascus. From thence, he suddenly returned possession of the city, was defeated, and Di- to Bagdad, in 1401, which had partly shaken onysi us, who despaired of success, gave himself off the yoke. He soon became master of it up into the hands of the Corinthian general, again, and gave it up to the fury of the soldiers, This success gained Timoleon adherents in Si- on whicli occasion eight hundred thousand in- cily ; many cities which hitherto had looked habitants are said to have been destroyed, and upon him as an irnposter, claimed his protec- the city was razed to the ground. About this tion ; and when he was at last master of Syra- time, five Mahometan princes, who had been cuse. by the total overthrow of Icelas, and of dispossessed by Bajazet of their dominions, sit- the Carthaginians, he razed the citadel which uated on the borders of the Euxine sea, implored had been the seat of tyranny, and erected on Tamerlane's assistance ; and at length he was the spot a common hall. When Syracuse was prevailed on to march his army into Asia Minor, thus delivered from tyranny, the conqueror ex- He be!$ before the civil war ra-red thirteen years among the family. Chruuan era. H,s body revived an honorable Soon after this, Tamerlane ravage! Svria, and bur,.,!, , a puM.c place, called, from him, Ti- from thence he reputed the Euphrates, and re- onuv.m; but the tears of a grateful nation turned to Samarkand. He conquered nearly m- convincing proof, of the pubhc re- as great an extent of territory as Jenghis Khan grel, than the institution of festivals and games He was scarcely settled in his newfy acquired HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. TOL 571 TOU empire, India, when he began to plan the con- vinfe of the same name,situnted on the Tagus, quest of China, but he died in the rnidst of his 32 miles S. W. of Madrid. Jt was successively glorious career. April 1, 1405. the seat of government under the Goths, the TIPPOO SA1B, the son of Hyder Ali, and Moors, and the kings of Castile. In the year equally distinguished for his vigilance and brav- 1085, this ancient capital fell into tiie hands of ery, in resisting the British during the war in the Christians, and became the residence of India. See India. their kings. It was besieged in IIU'J, 1 1 14. and TITUS Vespasian, son of Vespasian and 1227, but without success. At a subsequent Flavia Domitilln, became known by his valor date it was less fortunate, having been besieged in the Roman armies, particularly at the siege and taken in 1467, and in 1641. Great part of of Jerusalem. In the 79th year of the Christian the town was burnt on each occasion, which, era, he was invested with the imperial purple, with the removal of the government to Madrid, and the Roman people had every reason to ex- has been the cause of its decline, pect in him the barbarities of a Tiberius, and TOULON, a sea-port in the south-east of the debaucheries of a Nero. When raised to Fiance. The most remarkable event in its his- the throne, he thought himself bound to be the tory is the occupation of the town and harbor father of his people, the guardian of virtue, and by the British, in the autumn of 17!)3, the sub- the patron of liberty ; and Titus is, perhaps, the sequent siege by the republican troops of France, only monarch who, when invested with uncon- and the precipitate abandonment of the place trollable power, bade adieu to those vices, those by the British troops, on the lUth of December, luxuries, and indulgences, which, as a private 1793, after burning and carrying oft" nboul half man, he never ceased to gratify. All informers the squadron contained in the port. Bonaparte were banished from his presence, and even se- commanded part of the besieging artillery, and verely punished. A reform was made in the directed it with great judgment, judicial proceedings, and trials were no longer TOULOUSE; a city of France, capital of permitted to be postponed for years. To do good Upper Garonne, containing 55,319 inhabitants, to his subjects was the ambition of Titus; and In a historical light, it acquired an unfortunate it was at the recollection that he had done no title to notice, by an obstinate battie fought on service, or granted no favor one day, that he the 10th of April, 1814, between the British, exclaimed in the memorable words of, "My under lord Wellington, and the Fiench, under friends, I have lost a day !" Two of the sen- Soult; neither commander having been apprised ators conspired against his life, but the emperor of the abdication of Bonaparte. The British disregarded theirattempts. He made them his troops were successful, but suffered severely; friends by kindness, and, like another Nerva, their loss, in killed and wounded, was between presented them with a sword to destroy him. four and five thousand men. During his reign, Rome was three days on fire ; TOURNAMENTS. The following sketch the towns of Campania were destroyed by an of the origin and nvmnerof constructing a tour- eruption of Vesuvius; and the empire was visi- nament, from the History of Chivalry, we hope ted by a pestilence, which carried off an infinite will not prove uninteresting to our readers, number of inhabitants. In this time of public The first authentic mention of a tournament calamity, the emperor's benevolence and phi- is to be found in the Chronicle of Tours, which lanthrophy were conspicuous. The Romans, records the death of Geoffrey de Friuli in 1006; however, had not long to enjoy the fuvors of adding the words qni torncnmentu invenit who this magnificent prince. Titus was taken ill ; invented tournaments. From the appearance and as he retired into the country of the Sabines, of these exercises in Germany about the same to his father's house, his indisposition was in- time, we may conclude that this date is pretty creased by a burning fever. He died the 13th nearly correct; and that if tournaments were of September, A. D. 81, in the 4lst year of his not absolutely invented at that precise period, age, after a reign of two years, two months, they were then first regulated by distinct laws, and twenty days. In England they did not appear till several TLASCALA, a territory of the Mexican re- years later, when the Nor man manners intro- public, containing 60,000 "inhabitants. At the duced after the conquest had completely super- time of the conquest by the Spaniards, the city seded the customs of the Saxons. of Tlascala alone contained 300,000. Thus much has seemed necessary to me to TOLEDO, anciently Toletum, a handsome say concerning the origin of tournaments, as city of Spain, in New Castile, capital of a pro- theie are so many common fables on the sub CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY TOD 572 TOU ject which give far greater antiquity to the A- ercise than that which it is entitled to claim. The ceremonies and the splendor of the tour- nament of course differed in different ages and different countries; but the general principle was the same. It was a chivalrous game, orig- inally instituted for practising those exercises, and acquiring that skill which was likely to be useful in knightly warfare. A tournament was usually given upon the occasion of any great meeting, for either mili- tary or political purposes. Sometimes it was the king himself who sent his heralds through the land to announce to all noblemen and ladies, that on a certain day he would hold a grand tournament, where all brave knights might try their prowess. At other times a tournament was determined on by a body of independent knights ; and messengers were often sent into distant countries to invite all gallant gentlemen to honor the passage of arms. The spot fixed upon for the lists was usually in the immediate neighborhood of some abbey or castle, where the shields of the various cava- liers who purposed combatting, were exposed to view for several days previous to the meeting. A herald was also placed beneath the cloisters to answer all questions concerning the cham- pions, and to receive all complaints against any individual knight. If, upon investigation, the kings of arms and judges of the field found that a just accusation was laid against one of the knights proposing to appear, a peremptory com- mand excluded him from the lists ; and if he dated in despite thereof to present himself, he was driven forth with blows and ignominy. Round about the field appointed for the spec- tacle were raised galleries, scaffoldings, tents, and pavilions, decorated with all the "magnifi- cence of a luxurious age. Banners and scutch- eons, and bandrols, silks and cloth of gold, cov- ered tlie galleries and floated round 'the field ; while all th.it rich garments and precious stones, beauty and youth, could do to outshine the inanimate part of the scene, was to be found am..n^r the spectators. Here too was seen the venerable age of Chivalry all those old knights whose limbs were no longer competent to bear it of arms, surrounding tlie field to view the prowess of their children, and judge the deed* of the day. Heralds and pursuivants, in Un: gjy and many-colored garments which they peculiarly affected, fluttered over the field, and l,md.i of warlike music wen- stationed near to aniurittt the contest and to salute the victors. The knighU, as they appeared in the list*, were greeted by the heralds and the people ac- cording to their renown ; but the approbation of the female part of the spectators was the great stimulous to all the Chivalry of the field. Each knight, as a part of his duty, either felt or feigned" himself in love; and "it was upon these occasions that his lady might descend from the high state to which the mystic adora- tion of the day had raised her, and bestow upon her favored champion a glove, a riband, a brace- let, a jewel, which borne on his crest through the hard-contested field, was the chief object of his care, and the great excitement to his valor. Often, too, in the midst of the combat, if ac- cident or misfortune deprived the favored knight of tlie gage of his lady's affection, hei admira- tion or her pity won her to supply another token, sent by a page or squire, to raise again her lover's resolution, and animate him to new exertions. The old romance of Perce-forest gives a curious picture of the effects visible after a tournament, by the eagerness with which the fair spectators had encouraged the knights. " At the close of the tournament," says the writer, " the ladies were so stripped of their ornaments, that the greater part of them were bareheaded. Thus they went their ways with their hair floating on their shoulders more glossy than fine gold : and with their robes without the sleeves, for they had given to the knights to decorate them- selves, wimples and hoods, mantles and shifts, sleeves and bodies. When they found them- selves undressed to such a pitch, they were at first quite ashamed ; but as soon as they saw every one was in the same slate, they began to laugh at the whole adventure, for they had all bestowed their jewels and their clothes upon the knights with so good a will, that they had not perceived that they uncovered themselves." This is probably an exaggerated account of the enthusiasm which the events of a tourna- ment excited in the bosom of the fair ladies of that day ; but still, no doubt can be entertained, that they not only decorated their knights be- fore the tournament with some token of their approbation, but in the case of its loss, often sent him even a part of their dress in the midst of the conflict. The other spectators, also, though animated by less thrilling interests, took no small share in tlie feelings and hopes of the different parties. Each blow of the lance or sword, struck well and home, was greeted with loud acclamations; and valor met both its incitement and its reward. in liie expecting silence and tlie thundering HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. TOU 573 TOU plaudits with with each good champion's move- ments were waited for and seen. In the mean while, without giving encour- agement to any particular knight, the heralds strove to animate all by various quaint and characteristic exclamations, such as " The love of ladies!" " Death to the horses !" "Honor to the brave!" "Glory to be won by blood and sweat !" " Praise to the sons of the brave !" It would occupy too much space to enter into all the details of the tournament, or to notice all the laws by which it was governed. Every care was taken that the various knights should meet upon equal terms, and many a precaution was made use of to prevent accidents, and to render the sport both innocent and useful. ' But no regulations could be found sufficient to guard against the dangerous consequences of such fu- rious amusements ; and Ducange gives a long list of princes and nobles who lost their lives in these fatal exercises. The church often in- terfered, though in vain, to put them down; and many monarchs forbade them in their do- minions ; but the pomp with which they were accompanied, and the excitement they afforded to a people fond of every mental stimulus, ren- dered them far more permanent than might have been expected. The weapons in tournaments were, in almost all cases, restrained to blunted swords and head- less spears, daggers and battle-axes; but, as may well be imagined, these were not to be used without danger ; so that even those festivals that passed by without the absolute death of any of the champions, left, nevertheless, many to drag out a maimed and miserable existence, or to die after a ) f >ng and weary sickness. And yet the very peril of the sport gave to it an all-pow- erful interest, which we can best conceive, at present, from our feelings at some deep and thrilling tragedy. After the excitement, and the expectation, and the suspense, and the eagerness, came the triumph and the prize and the chosen queen of the field bestowed upon the champion whose feats were counted best, that reward, the value of which consisted more in the honor than the thing itself. Sometimes it was a jewel, some- times a coronet of flowers or of laurel ; but in all cases the award implied a risrht to one kiss from the lips of the lady appointed to bestow the prize. It seems to have been as frequent a practice to assign this prize on the field, as in the chateau or palace whither the court retired after the sports were concluded ; and we often find that the female part of the spectators were called to decide upon the merits of the several champions, and to declare the victor as well as confer the reward. Mirth and festivity ever closed the clay of the tournament, and song and sports brought in the night. Every thing that could interest or amuse a barbarous age was collected on the spot where one of these meetings was held. The minstrel or menestricr, the juggler, the saltimbank, the story-teller, were present in the hall to soothe or to entertain ; but stiH the foundation of tale and song was chivalry ; the objects of all praise were noble deeds and heroic actions ; and the very voice of love and tenderness, instead of seducing to sloth and effeminacy, was heard prompting to activity, to enterprise, and to honor to the defence of virtue, and the search for glory. It may be here necessary to remark, that there were several sorts of tournaments, which differed essentially from each other ; but I shall not pause upon these any longer than merely to point out the particular differences between them. The joust, which was certainly a kind of tournament, was always confined to two per- sons, though these persons encountered each other with blunted arms. The combat at outrance was, in fact, a duel, and only differed from the trial by battle in being voluntary, while the other was enforced by law. This contest was often the event of private quarrels, but was, by no means, always so; and, to use the language of Ducange, " though mortal, it took place ordinarily between two persons who most frequently did not know each other, or, at least, had no particular mis- understanding, but who sought alone to show forth their courage, generosity, and skill in arms." Sometimes, however, the combat at outrance was undertaken by a number of knights together, and often much blood was thus shed, without cause. The pas d'armes, or passage of arms, differed from general tournaments, inasmuch as a cer- tain number of knights fixed their shields and tents in a particular pass, or spot of ground, which they declared their intention to defend against all comers. The space before their tents was generally listed in, as for a tourna- ment ; and during the time fixed for the defence of the passage, the same concourse of spectators, heralds, and minstrels was assembled. The round table was another distinct sort of tournament, held in a circular amphitheatre, wherein the knights invited jousted against each other. The origin of this festival, which CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. TRA 574 TRA was held, I believe, for the last time by Edward III, is iittributed to Roger Mortimer, who, on receiving knighthood, feasted a hundred knights and a hundred ladies at a round table. The mornings were spent iu chivalrous games, the prize of which was u golden lion, and the evenings in banquets and festivities. This course of entertainments continued three days, with the most princely splendor ; after which Mor- timer, having won the prize himself, conducted liis guesU to Warwick, and dismissed them. From this account, taken from the history of the Priory of Wigmore, Monestrier deduces that those exercises called " round tables" were only tournaments, during which the lord or tiovereign giving the festival, entertained his guesU at a table which, to prevent all ceremony in respect to precedence, was in the form of a circle. Perhaps, however, this institution may have had a different and an earlier origin, though 1 find it mentioned in no author previous to the year 1271). Chivalry, which, in its pristine purity, knew no reward but honor, soon as it became com- bined with power appropriated to itself various privileges, which, injuring its simplicity, in the end brought about its fall. In the first place. the knight was, by the fact of his chivalry, the judge of all his equals, and consequently of ill) his inferiors. He was also, in most cases, the executor of his own decree, and it would indeed have required u different nature from humanity to secure such a jurisdiction from frequent per- version. The knight also took precedence of all persons who had not received chivalry, a. distinction well calculated to do away with that humility which was one of knighthood's strict- est laws. Added to this was the right of wear- ing particular dresses and colors, gold and jew- els, which were restrained to the knightly class, by very severe ordinances. Scarlet aid green were particularly reserved for the order of knighthood, as well as ermine, minever, and some other furs. Knights also possessed what was called privilege of clergy, that is to say, in cr.ie of accusation, they could claim to be tried before the ecclesiastical judge. Their arms were legally forbidden to all other classes, and the title of Sire, Monseigneur, Sir, Don, &c. were applied to them alone, till the distinction -was lost in the course of lime. TRAFALGAR, battle of, between the Brit- ish fleet, under lord Nelson, and the combined fleet of France and Spain, on the 21st of Octo- ber, ln!)."i. On the I'.tth, it was communicated to his lordship that this fleet had put to sea, and as he concluded that their destination was the Mediterranean, he immediately made all sail for the entrance of the Straits with the British squadron consisting of twenty-seven ships, three of them sixty-fours. On Monday, the 21st, at day-light, the enemy was discovered oft' Cape Trafalgar. The commander-in-chief immedi- ately made the signal for the fleet to bear up in two columns, as they formed in order of sail- ing; a mode of attack which he had previously directed, to avoid the inconvenience and delay, in forming a line of battle in the usual manner, while he gave out, as tlie signal, " England ex- pects every man to do his duty." Never was expectation more amply fulfilled, nor orders obeyed with more perfect regularity and effect. The enemy's line consisted of thirty-three ships, of which eighteen were French and fifteen Span- ish ; the French under admiral Villeneuve, who was also commander-in-cliiof, and the Spaniards under admiral Gravina. The action began at twelve o'clock, by the leading ships of the col- umns breaking through the enemy's line ; the Commander-in-chief about tlie tenth ship from the van, and admiral Collin death Nicerattis, the son of Nicias, Leon, a^id Antiphon, and banished Thrasybulus and Any- tus. After committing innumerable atrocities, they were deposed by the people, and ten de- cejnvirs elected in their stead. .TYRE, a city of Phoenicia, the site of which is now occupied bv the insisnificant village of Tour, 18 miles S. W. of Sidon. This city was built in 1048, B. C. by the Sidonians, who fled from the Edomites when they conquered Sidon, after having been expelled from their own country by David. It was taken by Nebuchad- nezzar in 572, after a siege of thirteen years. In 538 it came under the power of the Persians. In 332 it was taken, after a siege of six months, by Alexander the Great, and continued subject to the Seleucidoe, the Macedonian kings of Syria, till the Romans took possession of it in the year 65, B. C. After this it underwent the 49* revolutions of Syria tijl 1090, when it was taken by the Franks. In 1123, the sultan of Egypt took it from them, but they soon re- covered it, and kept it till 1259, when the Tar- tars, under Hulaku, took it, together with the rest of Syria ; but not keeping it long, it re- turned to the dominion of Egypt, till it was re- covered by the Christians, in 1263 ; but in 1292 it was finally conquered by the sultans of Egypt, with the fate of which it has since been con- nected. TYROL or TIROL an Austrian province bordering on Bavaria, lllyria, Austria, the Lom- bardo- Venetian kingdom, Switzerland and lake Constance, containing 1,650 square miles, and 774,457 inhabitants. It is mountainous, and, in most respects, resembles Switzerland. The in- habitants have the same invincible attachment to their country, sterile as it is, and though many of them gain their little wealth in foreign countries, they return to get rid of it at home. They are hardy, brave, honest, and cheerful. This country was conquered by the Romans, from whose hands it passed into those of the Franks, and afterwards belonged to the dukes of Bavaria. In 1359 it was attached to Austria, and, with the exception of the period from 1805 to 1814, has remained in her possession. TYRONE, earl of, a celebrated leader in the Irish rebellion, \yho, in 159G assumed the title of King of Ulster, and entered into a corres- pondence with Spain, whence he received a supply of arms and ammunition. During the violent contentions between Tyrone and the forces of the earl of Essex, then deputy of Ire- land, every enormity was committed by both parties ; but at length, in 1603, Tyrone's fol- lowers being reduced, he surrendered himself to the royal power. Thus the rebellion closed ; but the reduction of Ireland, through the gloomy tracks of famine, pestilence, and blood, cost England no less a sum than 1,198,717 . TYRREL, Walter, a French gentleman, who, when hunting in the New Forest with William Rufus, let fly an arrow, which, glanc- ing from a tree, struck the king in the breast, and instantly killed him. Tyrrel, fearful of suspicions, gained the sea shore, embarked for France and joined the crusade, as a penance for his involuntarv crime. TYRREL, Sir James, employed by Richard, duke of Gloucester, to murder his two nephews in the Tower. Tyrrel chose three associates, who, finding the young princes in bed, in a profound sleep, suffocated them with the bolster and pillows, and showed their naked bodies to CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. 580 UNI Tvrrel, who ordered them to be buried at the foot of the stairs, under a heap of stones. In the reign of Charles II the bones of two per- sons were found in the place indicated, which corresponded, by their 'size, to the ages of Ed- ward V and his" brother ; and being judged the undoubted remains of these unhappy princes, were deposited in Westminster Abbey, under a marble tomb. U. UKRAINE, i. e. the Frontier of an extensive country in the southern part of Russia, now forming the governments of Kiev, Podolia. Charkow, and Poltava. The surface is level and it is extremely fertile. ULM, formerly a free imperial city, is situat- ed at the confluence of the Danube with the Iller and Blau, and contains 11,888 inhabitants. After the battle of Blenheim, (in 1704), it sus- tained a siege. In 1600, it was the scene of military manccuvres, conducted, on the part of M-trc-iii, with great skill; and it^was here that in !(>">. tho errors of Mck, and the combina- tions of Bonaparte, led to the surrender of an Austrian army. In 1810, it was transferred from Bavaria to Wirtemberg, to which govern- ment it continues subject. UNITED STATES OF NORTH AME- RICA, The. originally colonies of Great Bri- tain, declared themselves independent in 1776. Brief historical notices of the different states have been given under separate heads, but a more extended historical view is requisite in the present article. The following dates of the settlement of the colonies, are given for reference. Virginia, 1607. New York, by the Dutch, 1614 ; occupied by the En-rli-h, ICM. Plymouth, 1620; incorporated with Massachu- setts in Iti'.'-J. nsctts, 1623. npshirc, 1623. New Jer.ey, by the Dutch, 162-1 ; occupied by tin- English in 1064. Dehwar.-. by the Dutch, 1627, occupied by the English in ICHhl. M iiii", I63l>; united with Massachusetts in 1677 Maryland. 1633. ('.iIlll'-'-ti'-Ml. ;' ',7 ; united with Connecticut in Providence, 1635; ) .. , ,,,.. 1, 1038; 5 unitcd 1644 ' Rhode Island, N. Carolina, 1630. Ji Carolina, 1670. Pennsylvania, 1682. Georgia, 1733 The English settlers in the northern parts of America, were influenced by different motives from those which actuated the tip:tiiiards who quitted their native country for the shores of the New World. The latter were urged on- ward by a reckless spirit of adventure, by the promptings of heated imaginations, and by the most insatiable cupidity. The former were im- pelled by far worthier motives. Many causes operated together in the mother country, to favor emigration among the resolute and hardy The people of England had been led to examine into the nature of the power to which they were subjected, and the monstrous doc- trines of prerogative and religious intolerance, were denounced by many who had courage to think and speak for themselves upon UuTsub- jects. The friends of republican institutions multiplied with great rapidity, the natural result of' the progress of literature, and the increase of wealth with the commons. In 162d the wealth of the house of commons far exceed- ed that of the house of lords. At the same time, the reformation which had been carried into effect by Henry VIII, while it had purged the country of the abuses of the Romish church, had established a form of worship which was regarded by many as little better than that which had given way before it. Those who refused to conform to the established form, contemptuously termed Puritans by their op- ponents, anxiously sought scope for the exercise of religious rights, and. since the immunities they demanded were not granted them at home, determined to seek refuge from persecution in a remote quarter of the globe. King James granted, in 1606, letters patent to two companies, called the London and Plymouth companies, by which possession was given them of the territories lying between the :i4th and 45th degrees of N. latitude ; the S. part to the London, and the Northern part to the Plymouth company : the king himself having undertaken to frame for them a code of laws. Three ships were provided by the London com- pany, on board of which were 105 persons, who were expected to remain at Roanoke, which was the place of their destination. The com- mand ot this squadron was given to cuptain Christopher Newport, who sailed from London on the 20th of December, 1606 ; and after a tedious and disastrous passage of four months, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. UNI 581 UNI by the circuitous route of the West Indies, on the 26th of April, discovered Cape Henry, the southern cape of the Chesapeake, a storm having driven him in a northerly direction from his place of destination. He soon after discovered nape Charles, and entered Chesapeake bay. Charmed with the appearance of the country, the company determined to commence a settle- ment, and soon explored the neighborhood. Passing above Old Point Comfort, a party pro- ceeded up a beautiful river, called by the Indians Powhatan, and bv the colonists, in honor of James I. James river. They made a settlement on a peninsula, and called it Jamestown. This was the first permanent settlement made by the English in Virginia. Shortly after, the company received supplies from England, and an accession to their num- bers, swelling the amount to 200. Two vessels were freighted for England ; one loaded with a yellow and brilliant sand, common in many places in the vicinity, but supposed by the colo- nists to contain a large proportion of gold : the other vessel was loaded with tobacco. The most efficient member of the council was cap- tain Smith (see Smltii) who was taken by the Indians while on an exploring expedition. He was led to the place of execution, and his head placed upon a stone, while Powhatan, the In- dian chieftain, stood over him with uplifted club, regardless of the earnest solicitations of his daughter Pocahontas. then about 13 years of age. The princess, finding her entreaties unavailing, fell upon Smith, folded him in her arms, and laid her face upon his, determined to meet death with him she could not save. Moved by this touching devotion, Powhatan relented, and, two days afterwards, sent Smith to James- town. In 1G09, the destruction of the whole colony was planned by the Indians, but their plans were defeated by the exertions of the princess Pocahontas, who, in a dark night, went to Jtimestuwn, and put the president upon his guard. Pocahontas married an English gentle- man by the name of Rolfe, embraced the Chris- tian religion, and was baptized bv the name of Rebecca. She died four years after at Graves- end, on her return with her husband from Eng- land. In 1619, 150 young women. " handsome and uncorrupt," were sent to Virginia and sold to the planters for 100, and 150 pounds of tobacco each ; tobacco being then valued at about three shillings the pound. At the same time 20 negroes were brought to Virginia in a Dutch vessel, and sold to the colonists, whence one may date the commencement of the slave- holding system. In 1614 captain Smith was sent from England to explore North Virginia. He ranged the coast from Penobscot to Cape Cod, making observa- tions on the shores, harbors, islands, and head- lands ; and made a map of the country, which on his return to England, he showed to prince Charles (afterwards Charles I), who gave it the name of New England. The Rev. Mr. Robin- son with his flock, of the reformed church of the north of England, removed to Amsterdam in 16dfi, and soon after to Leyden. A variety of motives led his congregation to turn their atten- tion to the New World : the principal were, the enjoyment of perfect liberty of conscience ; " the preservation of ecclesiastical affairs distinct from those of the state ; " and a hope of laying the foundation of an extensive empire, that should be purged from all religious impurities. Having made an arrangement with the Virginia com- pany, they sailed from Plymouth, Eng., on the 6th of September 16'20, and on the 10th of November, anchored in Cape Cod harbor. Perceiving that they were so far north as to be without the territory of the south Virginia com- pany, some hesitation arose : but the winter was at hand, and it was now too late to go in search of a settlement within the jurisdiction of that company. Previous to their landing, after prayer and thanksgiving, they formed themselves into a body politic, binding them- selves by a written covenant to be governed by the decisions of a majority. This instrument, was subscribed by 4 1 persons, who with their children and domestics, composed a company of 101 persons. Mr. John Carver was chosen, without one dissentient voice, governor for one year. Parties were sent on shore to make discove- ries. Some Indians were seen but could not be overtaken. A considerable quantity of corn was found in heaps of sand, secured in baskets, which served for seed the ensuing spring, and tended to save the adventurers from famine. On the Cth of December, Carver. Standish, Winslow, Bradford, and others, sailed to various places, to discover a suitable situation for a set- tlement. Monday, Dec.- 11, O. S. they landed at what was afterwards called Plymouth, and from the excellence of the harbour, and the favorable appearance of the land, resolved to commence a settlement here. In 1628 the council for New England, sold to Roswell Youn. and, although the military operations were occasionally unsuccessful, the bravery of the British and provincial troops prevailed, arid the fall of Quebec gave a death blow to the hopes of the French. We now come to the commencement of these acts which created that patriotic feeling in the colonies, which resulted in the Declaration of their iNnr.pKSDKNCF. In 1674 the parliament of Great Britain pass- ed an act, the preamble to which ran thus : "Whereas it is just and necessary that a revenue be raised in America, for defraying the ejffci . penscs of defending, protecting, and securing the same, &c." The act then proceeds to lay a, duty on clayed sugar, indigo, coffee, silk, mo- lasses, calicoes, &c., being the produce of a colony not under the dominion of his majesty. To this the colonists submitted ; though not with- out complaint and remonstrance. Before this the subject of taxing the American colonies had been in agitation. " There is something curi- ous," says Fox. " in discovering that even at this early period (1(^5) a question relative to North American liberty, and even to North American tazation, was considered as the test HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. UNI 583 UNI of principles friendly or adverse to arbitrary power at home. But the truth is, that, among the several controversies which have arisen, there is no other where the natural rights of man. on the one hand, and the authority of ar- tificial institutions, on the other, as applied res- pectively by the whigs and tories to the English constitution, are so fairly put in issue, nor by which the line of separation between the two parties is so strongly and distinctly marked." When a scheme for taxing the colonies was proposed to Sir Robert Walpole, he replied : " I will leave that for some of my successors who may have more courage than I have, and be less a friend to commerce than I am. It has been a maxim with me, during my administra- tion, to encourage the trade of the American colonies in the utmost latitude. Nay, it has been necessary to pass over some irregularities in their trade with Europe ; for, by encouraging them to an extensive, growing foreign com- merce, if they gain 500,000, 1 arn convinced that, in two years afterwards, full 250,000 of their gains will be in his majesty's exchequer, by the labor and product of this kingdom. This is taxing them more agreeably to their constitution and ours." Instead of a repeal of the act imposing the first tax, parliament, the next year, imposed a duty on stamps. Resolutions were passed by the popular branches of most of the colonial legislatures, against this duty. Massachusetts recommended a colonial congress, to consult for the general welfare. A congress from most of the colonies, consisting of twenty-eight mem- bers, met at New York ; remonstrated against the act of parliament ; petitioned for its repeal ; and made a declaration of the rights of the colo- nies ; declaring that taxation and representation were inseparable ; and that parliament had no right to take their money without their consent. Disturbances arose throughout the country. Business was conducted without stamped paper, and the validity of obligations was established by the courts. Meanwhile the colonists enter- ed into associations, to prevent the importation of British goods, till the stamp act should be re- pealed. When information of the almost universal opposition of the Americans to the stamp act, reached the ears of parliament, great agitation arose. Mr. Pitt said, " You have no right to tax America. I rejoice that America has resist- ed. Three millions of our fellow subjects so lost to every sense of virtue, as tamely to give up their liberties, would be fit instruments to make slaves of the rest." The act was repealed, .but the repeating act had this sweeping sen- tence, " that the parliament had, and of right ought krhave power to bind the colonies in~all cases whatsoever.'' In 1767, the chancellor of the exchequer brought into parliament a bill for imposing a duty to be collected in the colonies on glass, paper, painter's colors and tea. The bill having passed, was, the next year, sent to the colonies. A bill was also passed for establishing at Boston a board of commissioners, to manage the reve- nue arising from the duties. An act was also passed to compel the colonies to provide for the British troops and support them at their own expense. These various acts of parliament re- suscitated the flames of resentment and oppo- sition, which had been almost extinguished. The most spirited resolutions were passed by the colonies, among which the non-importation resolutions were the most important. On the 5th of March 1770, some British sol- diers, being insulted and pressed upon by a mob in King's now State street, Boston, fired upon the populace, killed three, and wounded six. Captain Preston, who commanded the party, and his men, were tried and acquitted with the exception of two who were brought in guilty of manslaughter. In 1773, but little tea having been imported into America, parliament enjoyed her supposed right without benefit, and the Americans denied it without injury. Affairs therefore remained in the same state, till the East India company, who had on hand about seventeen million pounds of tea, were allowed by parliament to export their tea into any part of the world, free of duty : hence to the colo- nists, lea, though with a duty of three pence, would be cheaper than before. The colonists were again violently excited The corresponding committees, which had been forming throughout the colonies for the last two years, excited resistance, declaring such as aided directly or indirectly in these violations of liber- ty, enemies to their country. The consequence was that the cargoes of tea, sent to New York and Philadelphia, were sent back : and those sent to Charleston, stored, but not offered for sale. The tea ships, intended for the supply of Boston, after the inhabitants had tried in vain to have them returned, they being consigned to the re- lations of governor Hutchinson, were entered by about 17 persons in the disguise of Indians, and three hundred and forty-two chests of tea were thrown into ih? dock, no other damage being done. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY UNI 584 UNI In 1774, parliament, receiving information of the treatment of the East Indian company with respect to their tea, were much exasperated. Though the opposition was general, the pro- vince of Massachusetts, and especially the town of Boston, were considered the fomenters of dis- obedience to their authority. Boston was there- fore selected as the mark against which to direct their vengeance. Hence a bill was passed, by which the port of Boston was precluded from the privilege of landing and discharging, or of lading and shipping, wares and merchandise. Another bill was also passed, essentially alter- ing the charter of the province, making the appointment of the council, justices, judges, sheriff:), &c. dependent on the crown, or its immediate agent. Another act directed the governor to send to another colony or to Great Britain for trial, any person indicted for murder or any other capital offence. When these acts arrived in America, they were circulated with rapidity throughout the continent. But one sen- timent of indignation and opposition governed the people. 1 he town of Boston recommended an universal association to stop importations. The house of burgesses in Virginia, which colony had ever been forward in seconding the spirit and measures of Massachusetts, ordered that the day on which the Boston port bill was to go into operation should be kept as a day of fasting and prayer. Pamphlets, news- paper discussions, addresses and essays, were multiplied without number, proving the wick- edness of the acts of parliament, and urging an union of the colonies for resistance. Massa- chusetts recommended a meeting of delegates from all the colonies, the assembly electing five for that purpose. On the fourth of September, the deputies of eleven colonies appeared at Philadelphia, organised themselves In- choosing Peyton tUndolph president, and diaries Thomp- son secretary, and agreed to vote by st:i!..-s. A non-importation, and non-consumption ;i la- |K-ople of Great Bril.iin were also made. After a few weeks they dis- solved ; recommending the 10th oft': May, if their grievances should remain im- ressed, for auwthcr ing red Oct. 5, . !,tiM governor of Maw chunelU, a* well as Commander-in-chief ..f ; ,il the roy.il fi.ro-s m .North America, issued writs for holding a general assembly in Salem. He afterward* countermanded the writs. Ninety members met, formed themselves into a provin- cial congress, adjourned to Concord, and chose John Hancock president. They afterwards ad- journed to Cambridge, and drew up a plan for placing the province in a posture of defence, by enlisting men. choosing general officers, &c. In January, 1775, the earl of Chatham brought forward a conciliatory bill in the house of peers, which was rejected, two to one. Lord North, the prime minister, introduced a bill for restraining the trade of the New England colonies. Receiv- ing information of the general opposition in the southern colonies, he introduced another bill, equally restraining their trade, but excepting North Carolina, Delaware, and New York. The time had now come for testing the nerve of the colonists. An attempt was made by the British troops to seize the military stores at Concord, April 19, but they had to encounter the armed opposition of the militia at Concord and Lexington. Boston, was now blockaded. Ticonderogaand Crown Point were taken. The battle of Banker's Hill followed, and an unsuc- cessful expedition against Canada preceded the Declaration of Independence. On May 10th, 1775, the continental congress met at Philadelphia, and on the 15th of June unaninAously elected George Washington, then a member from Virginia, commander-in-chief of the forces raised, and to be raised, for the defence of the colonies. June 7, 177C>, Richard Henry Lee of Virginia, made a motion in con- gress, for declaring the colonies free and inde- pendent. After much debate, on the FOURTH OF JULY, the thirteen colonies were declared FRKE AND INDEPENDENT, under the title of THE UMTED STATES OF AMERICA. An attempt was made in June and July, with 3000 British troops, under the command of general Clinton and sir Peter Parker, to destroy the fort on Sullivan's island, near Charleston (8. C.) The fort was defended by col. Moultrie, with about 400 men. After an action of 10 hours, the British were forced to retire with a loss of about '200 men. 10 Americans were killed, and 20 wounded. Soon after the evacuation of Boston by the British troops (March 17), Washington made his head quarters at the city of New York, with I he principal part of his army. British troops, t'> the amount of 2-1,000 men'under lord Howe, ;ind iiis brother, sir Win. Howe, landed ^ Ai:u'i:st, ~2) on Long Island, near the Narrows, about nine miles from the city. The American fciv.es, fit this time, amounted to upwards of 17,000 men, and those principally raw recruits. A battle was fought on Long Island (Auhn A chins vioe-presi- d'jrii. Mr. Jeiferson was selected fcr tin? iie- partment of state ; col. Hamilton was appointed secretary of the 1 treasury; Gen. Knox secreta- ry of war. and Mr. Edmund Randolph attorney- general of the United States. John Jay was made chief justice of the supreme court of the U. States ; John Rutledge, James Wilson. W ; illiam Gushing, Robert Harrison- r.nd John Blair were named associate judges. The Indi- an war and an insurrection in tne western part of Pennsylvania, on account of the tax on do- mestic spirits were favorably terrnirinted. Tin: insults and maritime depredations committed by ihe French, induced America to take up arms in defence of her rights, but a change of rulers in France prevented the effusion of blood. On the retirement of Washington. John Adams was elected to succeed him, and in ]<-(;!. Tho- mas Jefferson was chcsen the third president of the U. States. The claim of searching Ameri- can vessels, ;md impressing from thtni British seamen, and the British orders in council prohi- biting the exportation of the U. 'states, together with other outrages committed by the British, produced a declaration of war against Gieat Britain in June. 1812. The successes of the British were LOT few and trifling, while the American navy triumphed in a series of bril- liant exploits, and the gallant defence of JV'ew Grleans by general Andnw Jackson, downed the American arms with laurels. Peace was concluded at Ghent, Dec. 24, 1314, The bat- tle of .NYvv Orleans was fought the fUh of Jan. 1815. before the news o!' pi-ace readied tiie Uni- ted States. Gen Andrew Jackson commanded the Amer.can, and Sir Edward Packenham the British troops. The latter fell in the engage- ment, \\hicii ended in the entire defeat of the in- vaders. Since that period the country has en- joyed peace with all foreign power.?. Difficul- ties with sevenil Indian tribes have arisen, in consequence o f their being compelled to retire beyond the Mississippi, and the Seminoles of Florida, have resisted with more or.: any other. Though their master spirit, Osceola, lived Int a short time after his capture, his pro- phecy his been fulfilled, that " the Serninole: would keep the United States at bay for six years. During those years, Florida has been the cemetery of our small, but brave airay. The Presidents of the United States have been George Washington; John Adams; Thomas i; James Madison; James Monroe; John Q. Adams; Andrew Jackson; Martin Van liuren; William Henrv ILirri^a; svlio siirvivua his i:>- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. UNI 586 UNI atijriniiou but one month; and John Tyler; chosen Vice President; hut (:>v t!ie Constitution;) President; in consequence of Gen. Harrison's death. "I appeal to History!" says Philips. "Tell me, thou reverend chronicler of the grave, can all the illusions of ambition realized, can all the wealth of a universal commerce, can all the achievements of successful heroism, or all the establishments of this world's wisdom, secure to empire the permanency of its possessions? Alas ! Troy thought so once ; yet the land of Priam lives only in song! Thebes thought so once; yet her hundred gates have crumbled, and her very tombs are but as the dust they were vainly intended to commemorate ! So thought Palmyra where is she? So thought the countries of Demosthenes and the Spartan ; yet Leonidid is trampled by the timid slave, and Athens insulted by the servile, mindless, and enervate Ottoman ! In his hurried march, Time has but looked at their imagined immortality ; and all its vanities, from the palace to the tomb, have, with their ruins, erased the very impres- sion of his footsteps ! The days of their glory are as if they had never been ; and the island, that was then a speck, rude and neglected in the barren ocean, now rivals the ubiquity of their commerce, the glory of their arms, the fame of their philosophy, the eloquence of their senate, and the inspiration of their bards ! Who shall say, then, contemplating the past, that England, proud and potent as she appears, may not, one day, be what Athens is, and the young America yet soar to be what Athens was ! Who shall say, that, when the European column shall have mouldered, and the night of barbarism obscured its very ruins, that mighty continent may not emerge from the horizon, to rule, for its time, sovereign of the ascendant! "There lives in the bosom a feeling sublime, Of all, 'tis the strongest tie ; Unvarying through every change of lime, And only with life does it die. T i< the love that is borne for that lovely land, That smiled at the hour of our birth ; T is Uie love, thai Is planted by nature's hand, For our sacred native earth. 'T wan this that the patriot victor inspired, U a- -.truii; Hi llir *trrni!lh of his arm With tin- lii.lipxt zenl his brave bosom tired. And to danger and death gave a < harm. 'T was thin that Hie ihing hero blest, And hallowed lln- hour W!H-II he fell, That thrubl.nl in (he tina! throb of his breast, Ami hcavi-d in his bosom's last su.-ll. When a thousand swords, In a thousand hands To the sunbeam* of heaven shone blight , When the glowing hearts of Columbia's bands, Were firm in Columbia's riplit : When the blood of the West in the battle was poured, In defence of the nhts of th West ; When the blood of the East, stained the point of the sword, At the Eastern king's behest: Till the angel form of returning peace, O'er (he plain and the mountain smiled Bade the rude blast of war from its ravage to cease, And the sweet gale of plenty breathe mild. She smiled and the nation's mighty woes Ceased to stream from the nation's eyes : She smiled and a fabric of wisdom arose, And exalted its fame to the skies. Then firm be ks base as the giant rock ' Midst the ocean waves alone, That the beating rain and the tempest shock For numberless years has borne. And blasted the parricide arm that shall plan ThaUglonous structure's fall, But still may it sanction the rights of man ; And liberty, guardian to all. Then sweet 'lie the song that the minstrel should raise To the patriot victor's fame, And lively the tones of the hrart-gendered praise, That should wake from the harp at his name. Then holy the dirge that the minstrel should pour, O'er the fallen hero's grave, Whuse hand wields the sword for his country no more, Who has died the death of the brave." UNITED STATES, (or Provinces) of tha Plata; or the Argentine Republic. Buenos Ayres, or the confederacy of the Plata, is bound- ed north by Bolivia, east by Paraguay. Uruguay, and the A tlantic < by Patagonia, a iul west bv Chili and Bolitftjtt It extends from ^() to 41 S. Lat.. and fromW 3 to 70 W. Lon., hav- ing an area of !JOO,000 square miles, with about 80i),OOU inhabitants, a large proportion of whom are Indians. The territories lying within the limits above described, formerly composed a part of the Spanish vice-royalty of Buenos Ayres, to which Bolivia, Paraguay, and Uruguay also belonged. In 1810 the intendancy of Buenos Ayres broke out into an insurrection, and its example was followed by the other intendancies of the vice-ioyalty. In 1817, they declared themselves independent, under the" name of the United States of South America, which was afterwards changed into that of the Ar- gentine Republic or X'nited Provinces of the Plata. This republic consisted of 14 states or provinces. (.SVr /;,/, .;<>.- . /.y/v.v). UNITED STATES OF MEXICO, or United Mexican States. The Mexican confederacy, or, as it is generally called, Mexico, is bounded on the north by the United Slates; east by the Uni- ted States and the Gulf of Mexico; south by the Republic of Central America, and west by the Pacific Ocean. It extends from Lat. 16 to 42 HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. UNI 587 UTR N. and from Lon. 87 to 124 W. being about 2,000 miles in length from N. to S., and from 150 to 1,200 in breadth, with an area estimated at about 1,600,000 square miles. This confed- eracy consists of 19 states 5 territories and the federal district which contains the capital. The states are subdivided into districts as follows : Stotet If Territories Pop. Capilalt. Pop. Chiapas Yucatan 93,750 500,000 Chiapas Mt-rida 3,000 10,000 Tabasco. 75,000 Tabasco or II< mosa 5r - j 5,000 Oaxaca 600,000 Oaxaca 40,000 Vera Cruz 233,700 Vera Cruz 30,000 Puebla 680,000 Puebla 70,000 Mexico 1,000,000 Tlalpan . 6,000 Mechoacan dueretaro 450,000 2:)0,000 Valladolid > dueretaro 25,000 40,000 Guanaxuato 450,000 Guanaxuato eo,ooo Xalisco 800,000 Guadalaxara 00,000 Zacatecas 272,900 Zacatecas 25,000 San Luis Potosi 250,000 San Luis Potos i 40,000 New Leon 100,000 Monterey 15,000 Tamaulipas 150,000 Aguayo 6,000 Cohahuila 125,000 Monclova 3,000 Chihuahua 112,694 Chihuahua 30,000 Durango 175,000 Durango 25,000 Sonora and ) Cinaloa \ 180,000 Villa Fuerte 4,000 Federal District Mexico 180,000 Territory of j Tlascala \ Tlascala small town of New Mex- ico | 150,000 Santa Fe 3,500 of Colima 150,000 Colima small town of Upper Cali- fornia j 25,000 Monterey 2,500 of Lo we r Cali- fornia j 15,000 Loreto This part of North America was discovered by Fernando Cortez, a Spaniard, in 1519. He soon conquered the Aztecs, who were ignorant of the use of fire-arms, and the country became a Spanish province under the name of New Spain. Jt continued to be governed by a Span- ish viceroy until 1810, when the revolution began ; in 1813 the Mexican provinces declared themselves independent. The war continued with some interruptions and various success, until 1815), when the insurgents were complete- ly reduced. The struggle was renewed a few years afterwards, and "Iturbide, a Creole, who had been in the Spanish or royal interest, join- ing the patriots, the latter proved successful. In 1822 Iturbide caused himself to be proclaim- ed emperor, but he was soon after dethroned and banished, and in 1824, a constitution was adopted on the plan of that of the United States. The states of the confederacy, have each a 50 separate government, which manages its in- ternal concerns. The general government is administered by a president, chosen for four years by the legislatures of the states, and a congress, which is composed of a senate and a house of deputies, the former elected by the state legislatures, and the latter by the people, as in the United States. The official style of the republic is the United Mexican States (Estados Unidos Mexicanos). (See Mexico and Cortez). United States of Central America. (See Cen- tral America). URUGUAY. The republic of the Uruguay is bounded on the north and east by Brazil; south by the Atlantic, and west by the Uru- guay, which divides it from the states of Corri- entes and Entre Rios. It has an area of 80,000 square miles, and a population of 70,000 souls. This territory formerly belonged to the Spanish vice-royalty of the Plata, and was called the Banda Oriental (Eastern Frontier) from its geo- graphical position. It was afterwards claimed by Brazil, but in 1828, after a bloody war be- tween the Brazilians and Buenos Ayreans, the two parties agreed to its being erected into an independent state. Monte Video, the capital of the republic, is situated on the Plata, and is regularly built, but the houses are low and the streets are not paved. It has a good harbor, and formerly enjoyed an extensive commerce. The prosperity of the city has been much affected by the wars be- tween the neighboring states, and its population has much diminished. It now contains about 10,000 inhabitants. Maldonado and Colonia, are small towns on the Plata, with good harbors. UTRECHT, a city of the Netherlands, capital of a province of the same name, con- taining 30,000 inhabitants. The treaty of Utrecht was concluded in 1713, between the allies and the French. The first stipulation of this famous treaty was, that Philip, acknow- ledged king of Spain, should renounce all right to the crown of France, the union of two such powerful kingdoms being thought dangerous to the liberties of Europe. It was agreed that the duke of Berry, Philip's brother, and after him in succession, should also renounce his right to the crown of Spain, in case he became king of France. It was stipulated, that the duke of Savoy should possess the island of Sicily, with the title of king, together with Fenestrelles, and other places on the continent, which increase of dominion was in some measure made out of the spoils of the French monarchy. The CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. VAL 588 VAL Dutch had that barrier granted them, which they so long sought after ; and if the crown of France was deprived of some dominions to en- rich the duke of Savoy, on the other hand the house of Austria was taxed to supply the wants of the Hollanders, who were put in possession of the stronjfest towns in Flanders. With regard to England, its glory and its interests were se- cured. The fortifications of Dunkirk, a harbor that might be dangerous to their trade in time of war, were ordered to be demolished, and its port destroyed. Spain gave up all right to Gibraltar, and the island of Minorca. France resigned her pretensions to Hudson's bay, Nova Scotia, *nd Newfoundland : but was left in pos- session of Cape Breton, and the liberty of dry- ing fish upon the shore. Among these articles, glorious to the English nation, their setting free the French Protestants confined in the pri- sons and galleys for their religion, was not the least meritorious. For the emperor, it was stipulated, that he should possess the kingdom of Naples, the duchy of Milan, and the Spanish Netherlands. The king of Prussia was to have Upper Guelders; and a time was fixed for the emperor's acceding to those articles, as he had for some time obstinately refused to assist at the negotiation. V. VALENCIENNES, a fortified city of France, on the Scheldt, containing 16,918 inhabitants. In 1793, this town formed one of the first ob- jects of attack by the allies, after the defeat of Duraourier. The siege conducted under the command of the duke of York, was long and obstinate, and part of the town was laid in ashes before the capitulation. It was retaken by the French in 1794, escaped attack in the invasion by the allied powers in 1914 and 1815, and was definitively confirmed to France by the treaties of these years. VALENS, Flavius, a son of Gratian, born in Pannonia. His brother Valentinian, took him as his colleague on the throne, and ap- pointed him over the eastern parts of the Roman empire. By perseverance, Valens was enabled to distinguish himself in his wars against th- northern barbarians. But his lenil^ to these savage intruders, proved fatal to the Roman power; and by permitting some of the Goths to settle in the provinces of Thrace, and to have free access to every part of the country, Valens encouraged them to make depredations on his subjects, and to disturb their tranquillity. His eyes were opened too late ; he attempted to repel them, but he failed in the attempt. A bloody battle was fought, in which the barbarians obtained some advantage, and Valens was hur- ried away into a lonely house, which the Goths set on fire. Valens, unable to make his escape, was burnt alive in the 50th year of his age, after a reign of 13 years, A. D. 378. VALENTINIAN I, a son of Gratian, raised to the imperial throne by his merit and valor. He kept the western part of the empire for himself, and appointed over the east, his brother Valens. He gave the most convincing proof of his military valor in the victories which he obtained over the barbarians iu the provinces of Gaul, the deserts of Africa, and on the banks of the Rhine and Danube. The insolence of the Quadi he punished with great severity ; and when these desrterate nnd indigent barbarians had deprecated the conqueror's vengeance, Va- lentinian treated thorn with contempt, and up- braided them with every mark of resentment. While he spoke with such warmth, he broke a blood-vessel, and fell lifeless on the ground. He was conveyed into his palace by his attendants, and soon after died, after suffering the greatest agonies, from violent fits and contortions of his limbs, on the 17th of November, A. D. 375. He was then in the 55l.h year of his age, and had reigned twelve years. VALENTINIAN II. About six days after the death of Valenlinian. his second son, Valen- tinian II. was proclaimed emperor, though only five years old. He succeeded his brother, Gra- tian, A. D. 3^3. but his youth seemed to favor dissension, and the attempts and the usurpations of rebels. He was robbed of his throne by Max- iinus, four years after the death of Gratian ; and in this helpless situation he had recourse to Theo- dosius, who was then emperor of the east. He was successful in his applications ; Maxitnus was conquered by Theodosius. and Valentinian entered Rome in triumph, accompanied by his benefactor. He was some time after strangled by one of his officers, a native of Gaul, called Arbogastes. Valentinian reigned nine years. He was fond of imitating the virtues and exem- plary life of his friend and patron Theodosius, and if he had lived longer, the Romans might have enjoyed peace and security. VALENTINIAN III, was son of Constan- tius and Placidia, the daughter of Theodosius the Great, and therefore, as related to the impe- rial family, he was saluted emperor in his youth, and publicly acknowledged as such, at Rome, the 3d of October, A. D. 423, about the Gth year HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL VAL 539 VAN of his age. He was at first governed by his mother, and the intrigues of his generals and courtiers ; and when ne came to years of dis- cretion, he disgraced himself by violence, op- pression, and incontinence. He was murdered in the midst of Rome, A. D. 454, in the 3Gth year of his age, and thirty-first of his reign, by Petronius Maximus, to whose wife he had offered violence. VALERIANUS, Publius Licinius, a Roman. proclaimed emperor by the armies in Rhaetia, A. D. 254. He took his son Gallienus, as his colleague in the empire, and showed the malevo- lence of his heart by persecuting the Christians whom he had for a while tolerated. He also made war against the Goths and Scythians ; but in an expedition which he undertook against Sapor, king of Persia, his arms were attended with ill success. He was conquered in Meso- potamia, and when he wished to have a private conference with Sapor, the conqueror seized his person, carried him in triumph to his capital, and exposed him in all the cities of his empire, to the ridicule and insolence of his subjects. When the Persian monarch mounted on horse- back, Valerian served as a footstool, and the many other insults which he suffered, excited indignation even among the courtiers of Sapor. The monarch, at last, ordered him to be flayed alive, and salt to be thrown over his mangled body, so that he died in the greatest torments. His skin was tanned, and painted in red; and that the ignominy of the Roman empire might be lasting, it was nailed in one of the temples of Persia. Valerian died in the 71st year of his age, A. I). 260, after a reign of seven years. VALERIUS, Publius, a celebrated Roman, surnamed Poplicola, from his popularity. He was very active in assisting Brutus to expel the Tarquins, and he was the first that took an oath to support the liberty and independence of his country. He was honored with the consul- ship, on the expulsion of Collatinus, and he triumphed over the Etrurians, after he had gained the victory in the battle in which Brutus and the sons of Tarquin had fallen. Valerius died after he had been four times consul, and enjoyed the popularity, and received the thanks and the gratitude, which people redeemed from slavery and oppression usually pay to their de- liverers. To do him honor, his body was buried at the public expense. The Roman matrons mourned his death a whole year. VALERIUS, Corvinus, a tribune of the sol- diers under Camillas. When the Roman army was challenged by one of the Senones, re- markable for his strength and stature, Valerius undertook to engage him, and obtained an easy victory, by means of a crow that assisted him, and attacked the face of the Gaul, whence his surname of Corvinus. Valerius triumphed over the Etrurians, and the neighboring states that made war against Rome, and was six times hon- ored with the consulship. He died in the 100th year of his age, admired and regretted for many public and private virtues. VALETTE, John Parisot, the 48th grand Master of the order of St. John of Jerusalem. During his reign the knight's galleys took above fifty Turkish ships in less than five years, which so enraged Soliman II, that he resolved to lay siege to Malta, and drive the knights thence. He appointed Mustapha Bassa, general of the land, and Piali Bassa, commander of the sea forces, which set out from Constantinople in April, 1565, and arrived at Navarin, the llth of May. The fleet consisted of one hundred and fifty galleys, nine men of war, &c. On the 20th of May, the Turks built two forts at the mouth of the port of Malta, and placed fourteen pieces of cannon in them. After a few skir- mishes, they were forced to retire to la Marte, where they encamped the 27th of May ; the Bassa battered the fort of St. Elme, and after five assaults, took the castle on the 23d of June, but with the loss of 4000 of his best men. On the 28th, Mustapha laid siege to the isle of St. Michel, or city of Sengle, and the next day raised his batteries against the borough, which the grand Master had reinforced 'with 600 men. The Turks continued their batteries, and made a general assault the 21st of August, gained the walls, and planted seven standards over the gate de Bonne Enseigne : but the knights defeated them with great" slaughter. Mustapha made several other efforts, until the 13th of Septem- ber, when forty-nine Christian galleys arrived with, succor, and he then embarked with great precipitation and escaped by night. During the siege, most of the fortifications were ruined. The Turks lost 20,000 men, and about 9000 Christians died of their wounds. Valette re- built the city, which he called by his own name. He died in 15G8. VALMY, a village in the north-east of France, department of the Marne. An action was fought here in September, 1792, between the Frencli and Prussians. Kel'.erman con- ducted it on the part of the French, and re- ceived from it, at a future date, the title of duke of Valmy. VANDALS, The, according to the most CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. YEN 590 YEN credible historians, were originally a Gothic nation, who came out of Scandinavia with the other Goths, and settled in the countries now known by the names of Mecklenburg and Bran- denburg. Afterwards, another colony fixed their habitations in Pomerania ; and, in process of time, they extended themselves into Dal- matia, Illyricum, and Dacia. They attacked Greece, whence they went even to Spain ; and from that country, under the famous Genseric, passed over into Africa, where, for some time, they fixed the throne of their power. This prince reduced Carthage, Sardinia, Sicily, and all the islands between Italy and Africa. In 473, Genseric concluded a peace with the em- peror Zeno, whom he compelled to renounce all claim to the provinces of Africa. Justinian afterwards gained a complete victory over the Vandals, and re-united the provinces of Africa to the Greek empire. VANE, Sir Henry, a statesman, was born in Kent, in 1583. In 1039, he was made treasurer of the house-hold, and scon after, principal secretary of state ; but, on joining in the prose- cution of the earl of Strafford, he was removed from all his places. He died in 1GT>4. VANE, Sir Henry, eldest son of the preced- ing, was born in 1612. He became governor of Massachusetts, but his conduct was so fanatical, that the settlement would have been ruined had he not been compelled to quit the country. In 1640 he was elected into parliament, where he was the principal mover of the solemn league and covenant, and also of the self-denying ordi- nance; but he took no part in the king's trial, and he resisted Cromwell to such a degree, that the usurper sent him to Carisbrooke castle. On the death of Oliver, he labored to institute a perfect commonwealth, but the nation had al- ready suffered too much by such speculations, and the ancient order being restored, he was brought to trial for treason, and condemned to be beheaded, which was put in execution oa Tower-hill, June 14, IGoU VARUS, Quinlilius, a Roman pro-consul, descended from an illustrious family. He was appointed governor of Syria, and afterwards made commander of the armies in Germany. He was surprised bv the enemy, under Anni- nius, a crafty and dissimulating chief, and his army was cut to pieces. When he saw that every thing was lost, he killed himself, A. I). 10, and his example was followed by some of his officers. VEMDEE, a department in the west of France. It will be for ever memorable in the history of the French revolution, for the re- sistance made to the republican army in 179?, 1794, and 1795. It was attended for a time with great success, though commenced without any concert with the other royalists of France, and carried on for a season with very limited support from England. La Vendee was also the scene- of some sharp fighting in 1815. VENEZUELA, a new republic of South America, bounded north and east by the Carib- bean sea and the Atlantic ocean, south by Brazil, and west by New Granada. The northern part is mountainous, and the climate of the plains hot. The soil produces sugar, cofiee, indigo, cotton and tobacco. It was formerly a part of Colombia. VENICE, capital of the government of Venice, in the Lombardo- Venetian kingdom, is built on small islands, intersected with canals, on which the long, black gondolas are propelled by an oar in the stern. Its public buildings are numerous and splendid, but decayed. The number of inhabitants is 110,000 ; but the former spirit of the place is gone. With respect to* the first establishment of the Venetian govern- ment, A. D. 42J, it is said, that this multitude of people might have been thought a numerous seminary of philosophers; cultivating the duties of religion and virtue, and enjoying a perfect tranquillity. At this period the government seems to have been consular. It was afterwards changed into the tribunitian form, in 097, in which it continued for nearly three hundred years : but the tribunes, abusing their power, the ducal government was established. The first doge was Paulatis, who made the nation happv, powerful, and wealthy, and who was succeeded by Marcello, Hypato, Theodato, Galla, Domesco, Mouegaria, and Maurilio Gal- baio. During the dogeship of Mauritio, the Venetians declared themselves a free and inde- pendent people, acknowledging neither the eastern nor the western empire. To him suc- ceeded Giovanni and Obelerio, the ninth doge, under whom Venice was besieged and attacked by Pepiu, in 7d4, who, struck with the intrepid- ity of the Venetians, raised the siege, abandoned the enterprise, and concluded a peace with the republic. Under Pietro Tiibnno, the seven- teenth doge, in !>03, the Huns having defeated Berengarius, entered Italy, and, induced by the wealth of the Venetian republic, resolved to sack and pillage the city. However, the doge was so bravely seconded by his troops, that the barbaiians were completely broken and defeated, and the reputation of Venice for arms became famous over the world. Under the government HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. VEN 591 VEN of Ordelapho, the thirty-fourth doge, the Vene- tians subdued Croatia, in consequence of which, the republic assumed the title of lords of Croatia; but the Hungarians entering Dalmatia, in 1089, attacked and defeated the Venetians, and cruelly butchered their wounded and prisoners. Ziani, the thirty-ninth doge, was no sooner elected, than the republic was involved in a war with Frederic Barbarossa, from whose persecution the pope Alexander had retired to Venice. However, the doge engaged the enemy at sea, in 1173, and took, sunk, and destroyed, forty- eight of their ships, and returned in triumph to Venice. Under the doge-ship of Pietro Grado- nico, the forty-ninth of the Venetian princes, a war took place with the Genoese, in 1291, who defeated the Venetian fleet at sea, and took Dandolo, the commander, prisoner ; who, in the agony of despair, dashed out his brains against the side of the cabin where he was confined. After Bartolomeo Gradonico, the fifty-third Venetian prince, Andrea Dandolo next succeeded to the ducal chair, and war commenced with Genoa. The two hostile fleets met and engaged on the Sardinian coast, in 1347, and the whole Genoese armament was taken or destroyed, with the exception of the admiral's ship alone. This defeat caused the utmost consternation at Genoa ; and the Geno- ese, in their despair, requested that the duke of Milan would accept of the sovereignty of their dominions. Marino Faliero. the fifty-fifth doge, in 1353, formed the project of restoring the power to the people, through hatred of the nobles; but his design being discovered, he was tried in due form, and after acknowledging his crime, was beheaded in the hall of the great council. Thus the aristocracy of Venice was continued. During the sovereignty of Andrea Contarini, the sixtieth doge, war again occurred with Genoa, in 1373, and an obstinate naval engagement ensued, in which the Genoese were obliged to yield to the bravery of the Venetians, who captured the whole of their fleet. Andrea Contarini was succeeded by Michael Morosini, and. from this period, the meridian power and prosperity of Venice may be dated. During the government of Michael Steno, war was declared against Genoa, in 1403, and a dreadful battle took place between the hostile fleets, in which the Genoese lost seven ships, and nearly three thousand men. Under the government of Thomaso Moncenigo, the Venetians successfully exerted themselves against the Turks in the Morea, and against several petty sovereigns whose states they in- 50* vaded in Dalmatia and Friuli. They also bought Corinth, in addition to Patras and Zara, which they had already purchased. Under Francisco Foscari, the sixty-fifth duke of Venice, in 1423, the Venetians waged war against Milan, Florence, Genoa, or rather against all Italy ; and their general, Carmag- nola, being convicted of a treasonable corres- pondence with the enemy, was beheaded. Foscari ruled the state iu peace, and even with applause, during thirty -four years ; but, at the expiration of that period, his son hap- pening to die in exile, he became extremely melancholy, and unfit for the discharge of busi- ness. It was therefore determined, by a giunta of twenty-seven senators, that he should vacate the ducal chair, that a new doge should be elected to succeed him, and that a pension and certain honors should be allowed him in his retreat. Foscari died soon after of a broken heart, in consequence of this ungrateful treat- ment. He was succeeded by Pasquil Malipiero, in 1462, and Christophoro Mora, under Whose government hostilities were carried on against the Turks in the Morea; but, though the Vene- tians were assisted by an army of crusaders, the war proved unsuccessful. Mora was succeed- ed by Nicolao Trono, Nicola Marcello, Pietro Moncenigo, Andrea Vendramino, and Giovanni Moncenigo, during all of whose reigns a vigor- ous war was carried on with the Turks. After Marco Barbarico, his brother Agostino succeed- ed to the ducal chair, in I486, during whose sovereignty, Cyprus was annexed to the repub- lic, and the wealth, grandeur, and power of Venice, continued to increase. A league was now formed between the emperor. Spain, the pope, the Venetians, and the duke of Milan, against the king of Fiance. Under the doge- ship of Leonardo Loretano, the league of Cam- bray was formed, in which the pope, king of France, as duke of Milan, the king of Arragon and Naples, the republic of Florence, and the dukes of Ferrara and Savoy, agreed to a parti- tion of the Venetian states. At length, war was declared by France against Venice, in 1508 ; the progress of the confederates was rapid, and the republic was plunged into the deepest distress. However, in 1511, the siege of Padua was raised ; and after some time, a treaty was entered into between the pope and the Venetians, and the league was broken. The next year, the Venetians also took Cremona Bastia. and Brescia; the emperor now secretly signed the treaty with them, and Louis offered terms of peace. Upon the death of Louis, in CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. VEN 592 VER 1513, Francis I renewed the treaty with the Venetians ; and the emperor, the pope, Ferdi- nand king of Arragon, the Swiss, and Sforza, entered into another. However, after some advantages gained on each side, peace was re- established. Lorctano was succeeded by An- tonio Grimani, Andrea Gritti, Pietro Lando, Francisco Donato, Marco Antonio Trevisiano, Francisco Veniero, Lorenzo Priuli, Jeronimo Priuli, and Pietro Loretano, during whose government, in 1560, Selim, emperor of Con- stantinople, formed designs upon Cyprus. A treaty was soon after formed between Spain, the Pope, and the Venetians. On the death of Loretano, Ludovico Moncenigo, the eighty- fifth doge, succeeded to the government, in 1570. In the following August, the Turkish troops landed without resistance at Port Salina, in Cyprus, of which they at length made them- selves masters. A treaty was set on foot, host- ages were exchanged, and a capitulation was elected on honorable terms. Bragadino, the Venetian commander, after having his ears, nose, and lips cut off, was flayed alive, by order of Mustapha, the Turkish general. The republic of Venice had enjoyed but a short respite from the horrors of war, when it was visited by the pestilence, in 1576, which cut off twenty-two thousand men, thirty thousand women, and eleven thousand children. Mon- cenigo was succeeded by Sebastiano Veniero, Nicola da Ponti, Pasquali Cicogna, Marino Grimani, and Leonardo Denato, during whose government a rupture, and consequent paci- fication, with the pope took place. Leonardo Donato was succeeded by Marcantonio Munio, Giovanni Bembo. Nicolo Donato, and Antonio Priuli, the ninety-fourth doge. Antonio Priuli was succeeded by Francesco Contarinn, Giovan- ni Cornaro, Francesco Erizzo, and Francesco Molino, the ninety-ninth doge, during whose government the first siege of Candia took place, and the Venetians gained several naval victories. This was likewise the case during the dogeships of Carlo Contarino, Francesco Cornaro, Bertuccio Valiero, Giovanni Pesaro, and Dominico Contarino, the hundred and fourth doge, during whose government the memorable siege and capture of Candia took place. His successors were Nicolo Secredo, Luigi Contarino, and Marcunliniano'Guistini- anio, the hundred and seventh doge, durin88. VlMEIRA,avillage of Portuguese Estrema- dura, 3 miles from Torres Vedras, and 23 miles N . VV. of Lisbon. It is remarkable for a battle be- tween the British, under sir Arthur Wellesley, and the French, under Junot, 21st August, 1808. The French commenced the attack on various points with their usual impetuosity, and met with a resistance to which they had long been unaccustomed. The flower of their troops made a charge against general Ferguson's division, who received them with a tremendous volley, which brought them to the bayonet, and in one moment their front rank fell like grass before the mower's scythe. They gave way, and abandoned six pieces of cannon in their flight. Having failed in their other attacks, they com- menced a retreat, after sustaining a loss of 3000 men, and thirteen pieces of cannon. In this decisive victory not more than half the British army was engaged. VINCENT.Cape St., the south-west point of Portugal, noted for the naval victory gained off it, on the 14th February , 1797, by sir John Jervis. VIRGINIA, one of the U. States, bounded N. and N. E.by Pennsylvania, E. by Maryland and the Atlantic ocean, S. by North Cfj-olina and Tennessee, and W. by Kentucky and Ohio. It contains 1,239,796 inhabitants, of whom 240,987 are slaves. The principal rivers are the Potomac, Shenandoah, Rappahannock, York, James, Appomattox, Elizabeth, Staunton, Ken- awha, Ohio, Sandy, and Monongahela. The Blue Ridge extends through the central part of the State from S. W. to N. E. There are other ranges of mountains in the State. Iron, lime- stone, lead, coal, and chalk are found in abun- dance. The chief towns are Richmond, Nor- folk, Petersburg, Lynchburg, Fredericksburg, Winchester, Portsmouth, Williamsburg, and Sheperdstown. The university of Virginia is established at Charlottesville, besides which there are several other colleges. Of the earlier occurrences in the history of Virginia we have taken notice in the article United States. Though Charles the Second was highly gratified with a formal act of the Virginia assembly, declaring; that they were born under monarchy, and would never degen- erate from the condition of their births, by being subject to any other government;" and though he had given the fullest assurance that their form of government should never be changed ; none of the colonies suffered more than 'Vir- ginia from the despotism of a royal government. In violation of chartered rights, the colony wag divided into parts, and conveyed away by pro- prietary grants; not grants of uncultivated woodlands, but of plantations that had long been cultivated according to the encouragement and laws of kings and charters. Col. Nathaniel Bacon, having procured forces under pretext of chastising the hostile Indians, commenced a civil war, in the course of which great outrages were committed and Jamestown was burned. This rebellion forms a remarka- ble era in the history of Virginia. The death of Bacon was followed by the dispersion of his followers. In 1712 Virginia was divided into 49 parishes, and an act was passed determining the salary of each clergyman. The next year, Col. Alexander Spottswood, lieutenant governor of Virginia, made the first discovery of the pas- sage over the Appalachian mountains. The constitution of Virginia was adopted the day after the Declaration of Independence, but was recently revised and amended. Four presidents of the United States have been Virginians. VIRGINIA, a Roman maiden, whom her father, the centurion Virginius slew, when he found that he could in no other way, preserve her from the dishonorable designs of the decem- vir, Appius Claudius. The Roman people, rous- ed by the injustice of the decemvir, abolished the decemvirate and Appius put an end to his own life. VITELLIUS Aulus, a Roman raised by his vices to the throne. He was descended from one of the most illustrious families of Rome, and as such he gained an easy admission to the pal- ace of the emperors. He passed through all the offices of the state, and gained over the soldiery by donations and liberal promises. He was at the head of the Roman legions in Germany when Otho was proclaimed emperor, and the exaltation of his rival was no sooner heard in the camp, than he was likewise invested with the purple by his soldiers. He accepted with pleasure the dangerous office, and instantly marched against Otho. Three battles were fought, and in all Vitellius was conquered. A fourth, however, in the plains between Mantua and Cremona, left him master of the field, and of the Roman empire. He feasted his eyes in viewing the bodies of the slain and the ground covered with blood, and regardless of the insa- lubtity of the air, proceeding from so many car- casses, he told his attendants that the smell of a dead enemy was always sweet. His first care was not like that of a true conqueror, to allevi- ate the distresses of the conquered, or patronise HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. VIT 597 VOR the friends of the dead, but it was to insult their misfortunes, and to intoxicate himself with the companions of his debauchery in the field of battle. Each successive day exhibited a scene of greater extravagance, which, though it de- lighted his favorites, soon raised the indignation of the people. Vespasian was proclaimed em- peror by the army, and his minister Primus was sent to destroy the imperial glutton. Vitellius concealed himself under the bed of the porter of his palace, but this obscure retreat betrayed him, he was dragged naked through the streets, his hands were tied behind his back, and a drawn sword was placed under his chin to make him lift his head. After suffering the greatest insults from the populace, he was at last carried to the place of execution, and put to death with repeated blows. His head was cut off and fixed to a pole, and his mutilated body dragged with a hook and thrown into the Tiber, A. I). 69, af- ter a reign of one year, except twelve days. VITTORIA, battle of. was fought on the 21st of June, 1613, between the army of lord Well- ington, and thatof the French general Jourdan, in which the latter was defeated. On the 19th, the French rear-guard was driven back toward Vittoria ; and on the 21st a general engagement took place, in which the French forces, com- manded by Joseph Bonaparte, having marshal Jourdan as his major-general, were so com- pletely defeated, that they were under the ne- cessity of abandoning all their artillery, ammu- nition, baggage, and cattle. One hundred and fifty-one pieces of cannon, and four hundred and fifteen ammunition wagons were taken on the field ; and among the trophies was the baton of marshal Jourdan. The loss of the allies was about seven hundred killed, and four thousand wounded, but thatof the French was considera- bly greater. The operations commenced with a successful movement of sir Rowland Hill, to obtain the heights of Puebla, which the enemy had neglected to strengthen, and which they made strenuous but fruitless efforts to retake. Under cover of these heights, general Hill pass- ed the Zadora at La Puebla, and took a village in front of the enemy's line. The fourth and light division passed the Zadora immediately after general Hill had occupied the village Sa- bijana ; and almost as soon as these divisions had crossed, the earl of Dalhousie's column ar- rived at Mendonza ; and the third division, un- der sir Thomas Picton, crossed the bridge high- er up, followed by the 7th division. These four divisions, forming the centre of the army, were destined to attack the right of the enemy's cen- tre, while general Hill moved forward to attack the left. The enemy abandoned his position in the valley, and retreated in good order to wards Vittoria, but was soon obliged to leave the whole artillery, ammunition, and baggage to the con- querors. VOLSCI, or Volci, a people of Latium, whose territories were bounded on the south by the Tyrrhene sea, north, by the country of the Her- nici and Marsi, west, by the Latins and Rutu- lians, and east, by Campania. Their chief cities were Antium, Circeii, Anxur, Corioli, FregellfE, Arpinum, &c. Ancus, king of Rome, made war against them; and in the time of the republic they became formidable enemies, till they were at last conquered with the rest of the Latins. VORTIGERN, the chief of Britain, upon the Romans quitting that island, about 447. The Britons being threatened with an invasion from the Scots and Picts, they addressed him from all parts for relief, and at last made him summon a general council of the nation, to pro- vide against their approaching ruin. King Vor- tigern, in the name of all the Britains, sent am- bassadors to the Saxons, who. having first con- sulted their gods, readily complied with his de- sire. All things being fairly agreed on, and the isle of Thanetin Kent bestowed upon them, for their encouragement, they landed in the island in 450, under the command of Hengist and Horsa, who shortly after encountered the Picts, then advanced as far as Stamford in Lin- colnshire, and put them to flight. Thus the Britons, under king Vortigern, defeated the help of the Saxons. They soon Picts, by the quarrelled with the Britons, and wars ensued, which ended at last in the total overthrow and ruin of the natives. Vortigern now retired into Wales, and built a strong castle in Radnorshire. His son Vortimer reigned in his stead, who bore a strong hand against the Saxons ; but he dying before his father, Vortigern resumed the gov- ernment. He had two wives ; one of them daughter of Hengist. On being restored to the crown, he was disposed to conclude a new trea- ty with his father-in-law ; and both parties met without weapons. But Hengist's design being to murder, he ordered his men to be secretly armed, and gave them the watchword for execu- tion ; so that a quarrel being designedly raised, his men, upon the signal, stabbed each his next man ; and . no less than 300 perished by this treachery. They spared the life of Vortigern, but they kept him in custody till he granted Hengist, for his ransom, those provinces which CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. WAG 598 WAL were afterwards called Essex, Sussex, and Middlesex. W. VVAGRAM, battle of, fought between the French and Austrians, in Iti09. By the 4th of July, the French had completed the new bridge from the Isle of Lobau across a branch of the Danube, in which they were much favor- ed both by the ground and by an immense number or artillery. The Austrian army was drawn up on the eminence behind the river Russ, extending its right wing beyond Susses- brunn and Kagrau, and its left beyond Mark- grafen Neusiedel. The centre was posted near Wagram. The French, in the night between the 4th and 5th, crossed over to the left bank of the Danube, and large masses appeared very early in the morning in the plain. Not long before noon they attacked the line of the Aus- trian army on all its points ; but their greatest exertions were directed against the centre, pro- bably with a view of forcing it. These attacks, though repeated with the greatest impetuosity, and supported by an immense train of artil- lery, among which were many batteries of the heaviest calibre, proved this day abortive. The firing ceased at ten o'clock at nig^ht. The Aus- trian army had, on the whole ot its line, main- tained its positions, and made a considerable number of prisoners, among whom were many Saxon, Baderiese, Italian, and Portuguese sol- diers. On the 6th, in the morning, at four o'clock, the French renewed their attacks with still larger masses, and greater impetuosity than on the preceding day. Even thus their efforts against the centre and the right winnr were at- tended with so little success, and the latter had even gained such advantages as to justify the expectation of the completes! victory, when the French, with fresh divisions, and great superi- ority, suddenly penetrated the left wing, near Markgrafen Neusiedel, and succeeded, after an obstinate engagement, in compelling it to re- treat. One of the wings of the Austrian army being thereby exposed, the archduke Charles directed the army to retreat by the way of Siainmersdorf and the Bisamhill ; in conse- quence of which, the army now occupied a new position, covering the communication with Bohemia. This retreat was made in good order, and without material loss. In the cen- tre, as well as in the right wing, the French suffered very considerably, 6000 prisoners were taken from them, among whom were three generals. They likewise lost twelve cannon, with ammunition, and were in every respect so much weakened, that they did not attempt to pursue the A ustrian army any farther. Gen- eral Lasalle was amongst the dead. Though the preceding account of this battle, given offi- cially by the Austrians, may appear in some degree of a favorable nature, yet the results were very humiliating to Austria. WALCHEREN, an island of the Nether- lands. With a view to occasion a diversion on behalf of the Austrians, and also to attempt the capture or destruction of the French ves- sels lying in the Scheldt, a British army of fifty thousand men was landed in 1SOD, on the island of Walcheren ; but a considerable time having elapsed prior to the reduction of Flush- ing, the enemy collected a numerous force, raised several formidable batteries, and convey- ed their ships up the river, beyond fort Jjillo. Tiiat part of the country also, where the Eng- lish might have landed, was completely inun- dated. Walcheren, the only fruit of this ex- pensive and unfortunate expedition, was to have been retained by the conquerors, for the purpose of shutting up the mouth of the Scheldt, and of facilitating the introduction of British manufac- tures into Holland. This design, however,* was rendered abortive by the unhealthiness of the climate ; and after great numbers of the troops had fallen a sacrifice, the British army evacuated the island on the 9th of December, having previously destroyed the fortifications, arsenal, docks, and basin. Some old ships filled with stores were also sunk at the entrance of the Scheldt, to preclude an escape of the French fleet from the place of its retreat. WALES, a principality in the west of Great Britain from 130 to 180 miles long, and from 50 to broad, with an area of 8125 square miles, and 805,236 inhabitants. It is very mountain- ous. The ancient history of Wales is uncer- tain, on account of the number of petty princes who governed it. It was formerly inhabited by three different tribes of the Britons; the Si- lures, the Dimetce, and the Ordovices. These people do not appear ever to have been entirely subdued by the Romans ; though part of their country, as appears from the ruins of castles, was bridled by garrisons. Though the Saxons conquered the counties of Monmouth and Here- ford, yet they never penetrated farther, and the Welsh rema'ined an independent people, gov- erned by their own princes and their own laws. About the year 870, Roderic, king of Wales, divided his dominions among his three sons; HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. WAL 599 WAL and the names of these divisions were, Demetia, or South Wales ; Povesia, or Powis-land ; and Venedotia, or North Wales. This division gave a mortal blow to the independency of Wales. About the year 1112, Henry I of Eng- land planted a colony of Flemings on the fron- tiers of Wales, to serve as a barrier to England, none of the Welsh princes being powerful enough to oppose them. They made, however, many vigorous and brave attempts against the Norman kings of England, to maintain their liberties. In 1237, the crown of England was first supplied with a handle for the future con- quest of Wales; their old and infirm prince Llewellin, having put himself under subjection and homage to king Henry III. But no capitu- lation could satisfy the ambition of Edward I, who resolved to annex Wales to the crown of England; and Llewellin, prince of Wales, dis- daining the subjection to which old Llewellin had submitted, was opposed by the army of Edward, which penetrated as far as Flint, and taking possession of the isle of Anglesey, drove the Welsh to the mountains of Snowdon, and obliged them to submit to pay a tribute. The Welsh, however, made several efforts under young Llewellin ; but at last, in 1285, he was killed in battle. He was succeeded by his brother David, the last independent prince of Wales, who, falling into Edward's hands through treachery, was by him most barbarously and unjustly hanged ; and Edward, from that time, pretended that Wales was annexed to the crown of England. It was about this time, probably, that Edward perpetrated the inhuman massacre of the Welsh bards. Perceiving that his cru- elty was not sufficient to complete his conquest, he sent his queen to be delivered in Caernarvon castle, that the Welsh, having a prince born among themselves, might the more readily re- cognise his authority. This prince was the unhappy Edward II, and from him the title of prince of Wales has always since descended to the eldest sons of the English kings. WALL OF CHINA. One of the greatest curiosities of the artificial kind which China affords, and which may be reckoned one of the most astonishing remains of antiquity now in the world, is that prodigious wall which was built by the Chinese, to prevent the frequent incursions of the Tartars. This wall, Du Halde informs us, is higher and broader than the com- mon walls of the cities of China, being about 25 feet in height and broad enough for six horse- men to ride abreast upon the top of it, and is fortified all along with strong square towers, 51 at distances of about 200 paces, to the number of 3000, which, in the time of the Chinese mon- archs, before the Tartars subdued the country, were guarded by a million of soldiers. It tra- verses high mountains, deep valleys, and, by means of arches, wide rivers, from the province of Shen Si to Wanghay or the Yellow sea, a distance of 1500 miles. The foundation and corners are of granite, but the principal part is of blue bricks, cemented with pure white mor- tar, and although it has now stood above 2000 years, exposed to all winds and weathers, it is very little decayed, and the terrace on the top seems still as firm as ever. This amazing wall was built by the emperor Chiholamt, according to some authors, above 200 years before the birth of our Saviour ; and though of such stu- pendous length and bulk, and carried over moun- tains and valleys, it was completed in five years, if we may credit the Chinese tradition. WALLACE, Sir William, and BRUCE, Robert, were two distinguished heroes in Scot- tish history , who achieved the independence of their country in opposition to the unprincipled invasion of Edward I and II of England. Sir William Wallace was the son of a small land- holder, who possessed the estate of Ellerslie. near Paisley. It is probable that he had not greatly exceeded the age of opening manhood, at the time when his country was subdued by the English. Many of his first deeds of hero- ism, although imperfectly commemorated, in the rude and often doubtful tale of Henry, the blind minstrel, have unluckily been preserved by no records upon the evidence of which they might be received into the pages of authentic history. Within less than a year after the con- quest of Edward, when the whole country seemed to have acquiesced in his fate, he un- dertook the desperate enterprise of breaking her fetters, and by the success of his enterprises, made himself known so advantageously to his countrymen, that he was joined by many who were desirous to partake of his renown ; amongst the rest, by sir William Douglas, and some others of considerable rank. In May, 1297, he led his followers to attack Ormesby,the English justiciary, who was holding his court at Scone. Ormesby, with difficulty, made his escape into England, and the other officers followed his ex- ample. From the north-east, Wallace passed into the west, where his glory, and hatred of the English, procured him many adherents, amongst others, Robert Bruce, the grandson of him who had been competitor with Baliol for the crown. King Edward was then abroad, CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. YVAL 600 m WAL carrying on war in Guienne : but Warrene, who had been left gove*ir of Scotland, col- lecting an army of forty thousand men, and determined to re-establish his authority, sent them forward, under the command of sir Henry Fiercy and sir Robert Clifford. When the English army came up, many of the adherents of Wallace made submissions ; but he himself, with his chosen followers, retired into the north. Finding his forces increasing, he laid siege to Dundee, which he relinquished on hearing of the approach of the English army to the Forth, and hastened to oppose their passage, which they attempted at the bridge of Stirling. The English, under Cressingham, first crossed the river, when Wallace attacked them, and put them to the sword or drove them into the stream. Those on the other side, burning their tents and leaving their baggage, fled to Ber- wick. Wallace having gained this victory, hastened back to Dundee, which now surren- dered at his approach. He was then chosen regent by his followers, and all Scotland was cleared of the English. King Edsvard, return- ing from France, led a powerful army into Scotland, and advanced to Falkirk. Bruce was now serving in the Scottish army, and was not, as has been fabulously stated, in the army of Edward. Both armies engaged at Falkirk, July 22, 121)d, and the English gained the vic- tory, from their superiority of numbers and mil- itary skill, and the dissensions of their oppo- nents. Wallace, seeing all hope lost, rallied the broken remnants of his forces, and retreated beyond the Forth. All Scotland submitted to Edward ; but the dauntless spirit of Wallace never would surrender his country's indepen- dence. Whether he went abroad for a short time to France, or wandered in the fastnesses of the Highlands, cannot be certainly known ; but in 13IJ4, he was in Scotland, and Edward could never believe he had secure possession till Wallace was in his power. This was ef- fected by the treachery *f sir John Monteith ; and Wallace was conducted to London, ar- raigned, and tried as a traitor, and condemned, as guilty of high treason against Edward, al- though he had never acknowledged him as hU king, nor owed him allegiance. Wallace, still undaunted, during and after his trial, asserted the rights of his country, and bore his fate, which was inflicted with every circumstance of ignominy and cruelty, with the magnanimity with which he had lived. His head was placed on London-bridge, and his mangled limbs were distributed over the kingdom. It was reserved for Robert Bruce to accomplish what Wallace had so nobly attempted. In his youth he had acted upon apparently no regular plan ; and although he had at times served against Ed- ward, when the Scottish forces were able to make a successful resistance, he soon made submissions after their defeat, and thus avoided drawing down upon himself the implacable re- sentment of Edward. He appeared to have stifled his pretensions to the crown ; but imme- diately after the death of Wallace he determin- ed at once to asses! his own rights and his country's independence. Arriving at Dum- fries, from England, in February, 130(j, he had a quarrel with Comyn, of Badenoch, and stabbed him in the church of the Minorites, because he opposed his views. He now claimed the crown ; and resentment of the treachery of Edward, and of the death of Wallace, procured him nu- merous followers. He was accordingly crowned king of Scotland, at Scone, on the 25th of March, the same year. An army, sent by kinjf Edward, soon arrived at Perth ; and in a battle fought on the IDthof June, Bruce was defeated. He took refuge at Aberdeen, and afterwards went towards Argyle, and was so hard pressed by the English and their adherents, that he re- tired to the island of Rachrin, in the north of 1 Ireland, and was supposed to be dead ; but early in the next spring, he again displayed his ban- ner in the west of Scotland, and gained many advantages over the English, of which, the vic- tory at Loudon-hill was the most remarkable ; whilst his brother, sir Edward, and sir James Douglas, were equally active and successful. Bruce came north in the end of the same year, and on account of the unfavorable state of his health, which had been injured by unceasing hardships and privations, he remained some time inactive. On the $Sd of May, 1308, he gained the battle of Inverary, over the earl of Buchan and sir John Mowbray, which was the commencement of a career of success, which established him as king/ of Scotland. The whole of the fortresses of the kingdom were recovered, excepting Stirling, which was be- leagured by his brother Edward, who entered into a treaty with the governor, by which it was agreed that it should be surrendered if not relieved before the 24th of June, 1314. This led to the attempt of Edward II to relieve it by a powerful army, and brought on the battle of Bannockburn. Bruce 's army consisted of thirty thousand veterans, distinguished by their valor, the skill of their leaders, and animated by every motive which can promote heroic enterprise. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL WAL 601 WAR He drew them up with a hill on his right flank, and a morass on his left, to preTent being sur- rounded by the numerous army of Edward. Having a rivulet in front, he commanded deep pits to be dug along its banks, and sharp stakes to be planted in them, and caused the whole to be carefully covered with turf. The English arrived in the evening, when Bruce was riding in the front of his army. Sir Henry Bohun, who rode up to charge him with his spear, was brought to the ground by his battleaxe. Early next morning the action commenced. Sir Rob- ert Keith, at the head of the men-at-arms, de- stroyed the English archers. The English horse, under the earl of Gloucester, rushing on to the charge, fell into the pits Bruce had pre- pared for them. Sir James Douglas, who com- manded the Scottish cavalry, gave them no time to rally, but pushed them off the field. Whilst the infantry continued the fight, dis- couraged by these unfavorable events, they were thrown into a panic by the appearance of what they supposed another army advancing to surround them. This was a number of wag- oners and sumpter boys, whom king Robert had collected and supplied with military stand- ards, which gave them the appearance of an army .at a distance. The stratagem was decis- ive, and an universal rout and immense slaugh- ter ensued. This great and decisive battle se- cured the independence of Scotland, and fixed Bruce on the throne. He afterwards invaded England, and laid waste the northern counties. He also led an expedition into Ireland, in sup- port of his brother Edward, who had been crowned king of that country, in the course of which he gained several victories. Peace was at last concluded between England and Scot- land, at Northampton, in 132o ? , and on the 7th of June, 13-29, king Robert died, in the fifty- fiflh year of his age, and was buried at Dum- fenuline, where his tomb has lately been dis- covered. His heroic enterprises have been cel- ebrated by Barbour, who wrote his poetical his- tory in 1375, and have recently been the subject of one of the poems of sir Waller Scott. His grand-daughter was the wife of Robert the sec- ond, the first king of the house of Stuart, and from the issue of that marriage the present roy- al family is descended. WALPOLE. Sir Robert, earl of Orford, was born in 1676. In 1700 he married the daughter of sir John Shorter, and soon after became member for Castle Rising; but in 1702 he was chosen for King's Lynn, which he represented in several parliaments. In 1708 he was made secretary at war, and the year following trea- surer of the navy. He was one of the managers of the trial of Sacheverel ; but on the change of ministry, was committed to the Tower, and expelled the house, tor breach of trust and cor- ruption. The borough of Lynn, however, re- elected him. and he took an active part against ministers during the remainder of queen Ann's reign. Early in that of George I lie became prime minister, but some difference arising be- tween him and his colleagues, he resigned, and joined the opposition. In 1720, he accepted the paymastership of the forces, and not long after was appointed first lord of the treasury, and chancellor of the exchequer. In 1723, he was sworn sole secretary of state. In 1725, he received the Order of the Bath ; arid the year following that of the Garter. He continued in power, though assailed by powerful enemies, till 1742, when he resigned, and was created earl of Orford. He died in 1745. His brother, Horatio Walpole, lord Walpole, was born in 167d. He filled several offices under govern- ment, and in 1756, was created a peer, but died the year following. WALSINGHAM, Sir Francis, a statesman, was born in 1536, at Chiselhurst, in Kent. In 1573, he was appointed one of the secretaries of state, and knighted. In 15b3 he went on an embassy to James, king of Scotland, and three years afterwards sat as one of the commissioners on the trial of that monarch's unfortunate mo- ther. Sir Francis was next made chancellor of the duchy of Lancaster ; and he was also hon ored with the Order of the Garter. But with all these distinctions and services he died poor, April 0, 15!M), and was buried in St. Paul's Cathedral. WALTON, George, a signer of the Decla- ration of Independence, was born in Frederic county. Virginia, about the year 1740. He re- moved to Georgia, studied law, and was admit- ted to the bar in 1774. He took a prominent part in the affairs of the revolution, and was wounded in the defence of Savannah. lie was twice chosen governor of the state, held a seat in the senate of the United States, and filled a judicial station for several years. He died Feb. a. 1H04. WARBECK, Perkin, a renegado Jew of Tournay, who was persuaded to personate the duke of York, in the reign of Henry VII. His cause was warmly espoused by several men of rank, all of whom were arraigned and tried for high treason, and three were executed. His followers, at one period, amounted to 7000 ; but CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. WAR 602 WAS after a series of disastrous adventures, he was induced by Henry to surrender himself, and confess the whole of the imposture, on promise of pardon. A tier attempting once or twice to escape from custody, he was hanged at Tyburn, and several of his adherents suffered the same ignominious death. WARD, Artemas, a major-general in the American army, who commanded at Cambridge when Washington arrived. In 17d(j he was speaker of the house of representatives of Mas- sachusetts, and was afterwards elected to Con- gress. He died Oct. 28, 1800. WARREN, Joseph, a major-general in the American army, was born at Roxbury, Massa- chusetts, in 1740, and graduated at Harvard Uni- versity in 17oS. Having studied medicine he commenced tine practice of it in Boston with great success. Four days before the battle of Bunker-hill he received his military command, and on the retreat from the redoubt, was shot in the trendies, and expired at the age of thirty- five. WARSAW, capital of the kingdom of Po- land, on the west bank of the Vistula, contained, in 1830, 140,000 inhabitants, but owing to the siege of Warsaw in 1831, and the subsequent banishment of many of its patriotic citizens, its population is at present reduced to about 00,000. In the war with the Swedes, in the middle of the seventeenth century, Warsaw was occupied by these invaders, who made it the depot of their spo Is. When Charles XII advanced, at a subsequent period, to Warsaw, it surrendered to him without opposition. It was defended by Kosciusko against the Prussians, in 1794, who wete obliged to raise the siege. Warsaw at length submitted to Suwarrow and the Rus- sians. On the final paitition of Poland, in 17M5, this part of the country fell to the share of Prus- .sia, and Warsaw had no other rank than that of a capital of a province, until the end of 1806, when the overthrow of the power of Prussia led to the formation, by Bonaparte, of the inde- IH.-nd.-ril slate, called the Duchy of Warsaw. WARWICK, earl of, known by the appella- tion of the king-maker , was one of the most celebrated generals of his age. He put himself at tt head of the Yorkists, and gave battle t<. the Lancasterians at St. Albans, in which ho was defeated, in 14GI . He afterwards harangued the citizens of London, assembled in St. John's Fields, setting forth the title of Edward, the. eldest son of the duke of York, and inveighing against the tyranny and usurpation of the house of Lancaster. After the decisive battle of Tou- ton, and Edward was safely fixed on the throne, Warwick advised him to marry, and with his consent went over to France, to procure Bona of Savoy as queen. But while the earl was hastening the negotiation in France, the king married Elizabeth Woodville. Having thus given Warwick real cause of offence, he widen- ed the breach, by driving him from the council. Warwick, whose prudence was equal to his bravery, soon made use of both to assist his re- venge ; and formed such a combination agaiiist Edward, that he was, in turn, obliged to fly the kingdom, and king Henry was released "from prison, to be placed upon a dangerous throne. A parliament was called, which confirmed Hen- ry's title, with great solemnity, and Warwick was himself received among the people, under the title of the king-maker. Edward, how- ever, did not long remain abroad ; and, having made a descent at Ravenspur, in Yorkshire, he proceeded with an increasing army towards London. Nothing now, therefore, remained to Warwick, but to cut short a state of anxious suspense, by hazarding a battle. Edward's for- tune prevailed. They met at Barnet, and the Lancasterians were defeated, while Warwick himself, leading a chosen body of troops into the thickest of the fight, fell in the midst of his enemies, covered with wounds. WASHINGTON, capital of the United States, in the District of Columbia, is situated on the left bank of the Potomac, and contains 23,203 inhabitants. Its natural situation is plea- sant and healthy, and it is laid out on a plan, which, when completed, will render it one of 1(40 handsomest and most commodious cities in the world. Among the public edifices of the city are the Capitol, the President's House, the General Post Office, and four buildings for the executive departments of the national govern- ment. Columbian college is pleasantly situated a mile north of the President's house. The District of Columbia, in which Washington is situated, was ceded to the government by the states of Maryland and Virginia, and it became tlic seat of irovernment in 1800. {WASHINGTON, George, the third son of Augustine Washington, was born Feb. 22, 1732, on the banks of the Potomac, in the county of Westmoreland, Virginia. His father died when he was but 10 years old, and the care of his education devolved upon his mother. > That a mother should love such a son as George proved himself to bo, and that a son should love such a mother as Mrs. Washington certainly was, is not at all surprising. From his earliest .lays she had exerted her whole influence to imbue him with a love of" whatever was lovely and of good HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. WAS 603 WAS report," and her exertions had not been in vain. How well he repaid her for her care, may be seen in the following story. When about four- teen years of age he became strongly inclined to go to sea, with a view of enlisting in the service of the mother country, at that time en- gaged in a war with France and Spain. Ft was surprising that a youth so young, and who had been abroad so little, should have had the moral courage to quit country and friends on a purpose so full of danger. But so it was. He was resolved to go. Preparation had been made. A midshipman's birth had been pro- cured for him on board a British man-of-war, then lying in sight of his mother's house ; and even his trunk was on board. When the pre- cise time arrived that he was to go, he passed into the sitting-room of his mother, to take leave of her. She was sitting in tears. He approach- ed her, and putting his arms about her neck, affectionatelv kissed her. He was about to bid her "farewell;" but he hesitated. Her affec- tioji and affliction unmanned him. He was young and ambitious ; and at that early day the spirit of patriotism, which so nobly characterised him in after life, in respect to his country, was stirring within him. Yet, the feelings of his heart were stronger than any other ties ; and here, nobly sacrificing his pride and ambition, he relinquished his purpose, and stayed to com- fort her who gave him birth. His eMer brother having married a connexion of lord Fairfax, his lordship gave George Wash- ington, in his eighteenth year, the appointment of surveyor. Jn 1751 he was appointed one of the adjutant-generals of Virginia, with the rank of major. Soon afterwards he was sent by the governor of Viror'mia to carry a letter to the French commander on the Ohio, forbidding his encroachment on the lands belonging to Vir- ginia. The journey was about 400 miles, 200 of which lay through a trackless wilderness, inhabited by Indians. He left Williamsburg on the 31st of October, and delivered his letter on the 12th of December. Having received an answer he set out immediately on his return which proved dangerous and toilsome. The following is his own account of it : " As f was uneasy to get back, to make a re- port of my proceeding to his honor the gov- ernor, I determined to prosecute my journey the nearest way, through the woods, and on foot. I took my necessary papers, pulled off my clothes, and tied myself up in a watch-coat. Then, witli a gun in my hand, and pack on my back, in which were my papers and provisions, 51* I set out with Mr. Gist, fitted in the same man- ner. We fell in with a party of Indians, who had lain in wait for us. One of them fired not fifteen steps off, but fortunately missed; we walked on the remaining part of the night, without making any stop, that we might get the start so far as to be out of the reach of their pur- suit the next day , as we were well assured that they would follow our track as soon as it was light. The next day we continued travelling until quite dark and got to the river. We ex- pected to have found the river frozen, but it was not more than fifty yards from each shore. The ice, I suppose, had been broken up, for it was driving in vast quantities. There was no way of getting over but on a raft, which we set about making with one poor hatchet, and fin- ished just after sun-setting: this was one day's work. We got it launched, then went on board of it. and set off; but before we were halfway over, we were jammed in the ice, in such a manner that we expected every moment our rail to sink and ourselves to perish. I put out my setting pole to endeavor to stop the raft, that the ice might pass by, when the rapidity of the stream threw it with so much violence against the pole, that it jerked me out into ten feet wa- ter." At length, on the ICth of January, he arrived at Williamsburg; and delivered the im- portant letter to the governor. Having been appointed Colonel of a regiment raised to defend the rights of the colonists against the encroachments of the French. Wash- ington distinguished himself greatly by his de- fence of Fort Necessity, although he was finally forced to capitulate. Having resigned his com- mission, he retired in 1754, to Mount Vernon, on the Potomac, a country-seat which had been bequeathed him by his brother. In 1755 he ac- cepted the invitation of general Braddock to enter his family as a volunteer aid-de-camp, and accompanied him in the memorable and unfor- tunate expedition to the Ohio, the result of which would probably have been very different from what it was, had Braddock followed the prudent advice of his aid. When the troops fell into the Indian ambuscade, the officers were singled out by their savage foes and deliberate- ly shot, Washington being the only aid that was unwounded, and on him devolved the whole duty of carrying the orders of the commander- in-chief. Though he had two horses killed under him, and four balls through his coat, he escaped unhurt, while every other officer on horseback was either killed or wounded. Dr. Craik, the physician who attended him in his CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. WAS 604 WAS last sickness, was present at this battle, and iys, " I expected every moment to see him fall. Nothing but the superintending care of Providence could have saved him from the fate of all around him." After an action of three hours, the troops gave way in all directions, and Col. Washington and two others brought off Braddock who had been mortally wounded. Washington attempted to rally the retreating troops; but, as he said him- self, it was like attempting to stop the wild bears of the mountains. The conduct of the regular troops was most cowardly. The enemy were few in numbers, and had no expectation of victory. The preservation of Washington during this battle was almost miraculous. He was exposed more than any other officer, and was particularly the object of savage attacks on account of his superior bravery. After the defeat, a famous Indian warrior, who acted a distinguished part in that bloody tragedy, was heard to say that Washington was never born to be killed by a bullet; " for," said he, " I had seventeen fair shots at him with my rifle, and yet i could not bring him to the ground." After the expulsion of the French from Ohio, and the cessation of hostilities on the part of the Indians, Washington retired to his farm, and soon after married Mrs. Custis, a lady of large fortune, and many accomplishments. He continued to be an active member of the gene- ral assembly, and on the approach of hostilities with Great Britain, was chosen to the first Con- gress. On the 14th of June, 1775, he was cho- sen commander-in-chief of the armies of the United Colonies. He repaired immediately to the head-quarters of the American army at Cam- bridge, Massachusetts, and having forced the British to evacuate Boston, led his army to New York, where he was doomed to witness the de- feat of the Americans on Long Island, on the 27th of August, but the retreat of the army was conducted in a masterly manner. After the tattle of White Plains, the prospects of the Americana appeared hopeless, but the successes of Trenton and Princeton inspired the army with fresh courage. By these, Philadelphia was saved and New Jersey regaintd. On the ii.">th of August 1777, the British forces under lord Howe, which had sailed from New York, dis- embarked at the ferry of Elk river, and on the 10th of September, the battle of Brandy wine was fought and the Americans de! : this battle, the young marquis de 1 displayed great courage, and though severely wounded, continued many hours on foot and horseback, endeavoring to rally and encourage the troops. Major Ferguson, who commanded a rifle corps a day or two previous to this battle, was the hero of a very singular adventure which he thus describes in a letter to a friend. " We had not lain long, when a rebel officer, remarkable by a huss;ir dress, pressed toward our army, within a hundred yards of my right flank, not perceiving us. He was followed by another, dressed in dark green and blue, mount- ed on a bay horse, with a remarkably high cocked hat. I ordered three good shots to stand near, and lire at them ; but the idea disgusting me, I recalled the order. The hussar, in re- turning, made a circuit, but he passed within a hundred yards of us ; upon which I advanced from the woods towards him Upon my call ing, he stopped ; but, after looking at me, again proceeded. I again drew his attention, and made signs to him to stop, levelling my piece at him; but he slowly cantered away. By quick firing, I could have lodged half a dozen balls-in or about him, before he was out of my reach. 1 had only to determine ; but it was not pleasant to fire at the back of an unoffending individual, who was very coolly acquitting himself of his duty ; so I let it alone. The next day, the surgeon told me that the wounded rebel officers informed him that gen- eral Washington was all the morning with the ligjit troops, and only attended by a French officer in the hussar dress, he himself dressed and mounted as I have before described. I am not sorry I did not know who it was at the time." The battle of Brandy wine opened the way to Philadelphia for the British, who entered it on the 26th of September. After the unsatisfac- tory engagement at Germantown, the Ameri- can troops were quartered for the winter at Valley Forge, where their sufferings were ex- treme. One day , a quaker by the name of Potts had occasion to go to a certain place, which led him through a large grove at no great distance from head-quarters. As he was proceeding along, he thought he heard a noise. He stopped and listened. He did hear the sound of a human voice at some distance, but quite indistinctly. As it was in the direct course he was pursuing, he went on, but with some caution. At length he came within sight of a man whose back was turned towards him on his knees, in the attitude of prayer. Potts now stopped, and soon saw Wash- ington himself, the commander of the American HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. WAS 605 WAS armies, returning from bending before the God of hosts above. Potts himself was a pious man, and no sooner had he reached home, that in the fulness of his faith, he broke forth to his wife Sarah : "All's well! all's well! Yes, George Washington is sure to beat the British sure ! " " What's the matter with thee, Isaac? " replied the startled Sarah. " Thee seems to be much moved about something." " Well ! what if I am moved ? Who would not be moved at such a sight as I have seen to- day ? " " And what hast thou seen, Isaac ? " " Seen ! I ' ve seen a ma"n at prayer ! in the woods! George Washington himself! And now I say, just what I ftave said, 'All's well ! George Washington is sure to beat the British ! sure ! ' " In June, 1778, the British evacuated Phila- delphia, and retreated upon New York closely followed by Washington, who attacked them at Monmouth on the 24th, and fought them with advantage, although without gaining a decided victory. Washington having given his orders to La Fayette, was personally engaged inform- ing the line of the main body near the court house, and was speaking with col. Hartly of the Pennsylvania line, when a cannon ball struck just at his horse's feet, throwing the dirt in his face and over his clothes. The general contin- ued giving orders without noticing the derang- ment of his toilette. " Never," says La Fayette, " was general Washington greater in war than in this conflict : his presence stopped the retreat, his dispositions fixed the victory. His fine ap- pearance on horseback, his calm courage, roused by the animation produced by the vexation of the morning, gave him the air best calculated to excite enthusiasm." In 1781 Washington, in conjunction with count Rochambeau, planned an expedition against New York, which was abandoned with a" view of directing their operations to the south. Demonstrations, however, were made against the city, and sir Henry Clinton was not aware of the change in his intentions. The siege of Yorktown commenced on the 28th of September, and lord Cornwallis was compelled to surrender after much hard fighting, on the 19th. If we are called upon to admire the con- duct and successes of Washington in action, our admiration is no less due to his behavior in those intervals of repose when the American forces had time to reflect upon their wants, and brood over their supposed grievances. He quelled mutiny, but he pitied the sufferings that produced it ; and while he was resolved to en- force subordination, he was no less determined to administer ail the comfort which it was in his power to bestow. On the 25th of November, 1783. Washington made his public entry into the city of New York. On the 4th of December, the principal oificers of the army assembled at Francis' tavern in New York, to take a final leave of their be- loved commander-in-chief. Soon after his ex- cellency entered the room. His emotions were too strong to be concealed. Filling a glass, and turning to them he said ; " with a heart full of love and gratitude, I now take leave of you. I most devoutly wish that your latter days may be as prosperous and happy as your former ones have been glorious and honorable." Having drank, he added, " I cannot come to each of you, but shall be obliged to you if each of you will come and take me by the hand." General Knox, being nearest, turned to him. Incapable of utterance, Washington in tears grasped his hand, embraced and kissed him. In the same affectionate manner, he took leave of each succeeding officer. Leaving the room, he passed through the corps of light infantry, and walked to White Hall, where a barge waited to convey him to Paulus' Hook. The whole company followed in mute and solemn procession, with dejected countenances, testifying feelings of melancholy which no peii can describe. Having entered the barge, he turned to the company, and way- ing his hat, he bade them a silent adieu. They paid him the same affectionate compliment, and after the barge had left them they returned in the same solemn manner, to the place where they had assembled. /On the 23d of December, 1783. general Wash- ington resigned his commission to congress, then sitting at Annapolis^ On this interesting and solemn occasion he appeared in the hall of congress. As he rose to speak, every eye was fixed upon him. He began by expressing his humble joy at the accomplishment of his wish- es and exertions, in the independence of his country. Next, he recommended to congress and to the country the companions of his toils and trials, and concluded as follows : " I consider it an indispensable duty to close the last solemn act of my official life, by com- mending the interests of our dearest country to the protection of Almighty God, and those who have the superintendence of them to his holy keeping. " Having now finished the work assigned CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. WAS 606 WAS me, I retire 'from the great theatre of action, and, bidding an affectionate farewell to this august body, under whose orders I have long acted, I here offer my commission, and take my leave of all the employments of public life." Upon accepting his commission, congress, through their president, expressed in glowing language to Washington their high sense of his wisdom and energy, in conducting the war to so happv a termination, and invoked the choicest blessings on his future life. President Mifflin concluded as follows : " We join you in commending the interests of our dearest country to Almighty God, beseech- ing him to dispose the hearts and minds of its citizens to improve the opportunity afforded them of becoming a happy and respectable na- tion. And as for YOU, we address to Him our earnest prayers, that the life so beloved, may be fostered with all his care ; that your days may be as happy as they have been illustrious ; and that he will finally give you that reward which the world cannot give." A profound stillness now pervaded the assem- bly. The grandeur of the scene, the recollec- tion of the past, the felicity of the present, the hopes of the future, crowded fast upon all, while they united in invoking blessings upon the man who, under God, had achieved so much, and who now, in the character of a mere citizen, was hastening to a long desired repose, at his seat at Mount Vernon in Virginia. Congress voted the victorious general an equestrian statue, and the legislature of Virginia decreed to him " a sta- tue of the finest marble and best workmanship." But Washington was not permitted to remain in his dignified retirement ; for the nation, aware of the importance of securing his wisdom and influence, chose him the first president, under the new constitution of 178 ( J. His feelings on this occasion are expressed in a letter to a friend, of which the following is an extract: " I am unwilling in the evening of a life almost consumed in public cares, to quit a peaceful abode for an ocean of difficulties, without tlu: competency of political skill, abilities and incli- nation, which are necessary to manage the helm. I am sensible that I am embarking on a hazardous voyage, but what returns will be made Heaven alone can foretell. Integrity and firmness are all I can promise ; these, be the voyage long or short, shall never forsake me, although I may be deserted by all men, for of all consolations which are to be derived from these, under any circumstances, the world cannot de- Drive me." In the first presidency, the door of the presi- dent's house gathered but little rust on its hin- ges, while often was its latch lifted by the " broken soldier." Scarce a day passed that some veteran of the heroic time did not present himself at head quarters. The most battered of these types of the days of privation and trial was " kindly bid to stay," was offered refresh- ment, and a glass of something to the old gene- ral's health, and then dismissed with lighter hearts and heavier pouches. So passed the many ; but not so with one of Erin'fe sons. It was about the hour of the Thuesday levee, wh'en German John, the por- ter, opened to a hearty rap. expecting to admit at least a dignitary of the land, or foreign am- bassador, when who should march into the hall, but an old fellow, whose weather beaten coun- tenance, and well-worn apparel showed him to be no " carpet knight." His introduction was short, but to the purpose. He had come to head- quarters to see his honor's excellence, God bless him ! He was an old soldier. In vain the por- ter assured him that it would be impossible to see the president at that time ; a great company was momently expected ; the hall was not a fitting place ; 'would he not go to the stewards apartment and get something to drink ? To all which Pat replied lie was in no hurry ; that he would wait his honor's leisure ; and taking a chair composed and made himself comfortable. And now passed ministers of state, and foreign ministers, senators, judges, the great and the gay; meanwhile poor Pat stoutly maintained his post, gazing on the crowd till the levee ended. The president, about to retire to hia library, was informed that an obstinate Irish- man had taken possession of the hall, and would be satisfied with nothing short of an in- terview with the president himself. The chief good-naturedly turned into the hall. So soon as the old veteran saw his old commander, he roared out, " long life to your honor's excellency ! " at the same time hurling his hat to the ground, and erecting himself with military precision. " Your honor will not remember me ; though many is the day that I have marched under your orders, and many's the hard knock I ' ve had too. I belonged to Wayne's brigade Mad Antony, the British called him, and, by the powers, he was always mad enough for them, I was wounded in the battle of Germantown. Hurrah for America ! and it does my heart good to see your honor, and how is the dear lady and the little ones ? " Here the usually grave temperament ol HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. WAS 607 WAS Washington gave way, as with a smile he re- plied that he "was well, as was Mrs. Washing- ton ; but they were unfortunate in having no children ; then pressing a token into the soldier's hand, he ascended the staircase to his library. The Irishman followed with his eyes the retiring general, then looked again and again upon the token which he had received from his honor's men hand, pouched it. recovered his hat, which he placed with military exactness a little on one side, then took up his line of march, and as he passed the porter, he cried out, " there now, E)u Hessian fellow, you see his honor's excel- nce has not forgotten an old soldier." Throughout the eight years of his presiden- tial career, Washington did nothing to forfeit the esteem of his fellow citizens, who acknow- ledged him, " first in peace, first in war, and first in the hearts of his countrymen.') An Englishman in Philadelphia, speaking of the presidency of Washington, was expressing a desire to see him. While this conversation passed, " there he goes," cried the American, pointing to a tall, erect, dignified personage, passingon the other side of the street. " That general Washington ! " exclaimed the English- man ; " where is his guard ? " " Here ! '' replied the American, striking on his breast with em- phasis. On Friday, the 13th of December, 1790, ex- posure to wet produced an inflammatory disor- der of the throat, which terminated fatally on the night of Saturday. The deep and wide- spreading jjrief occasioned by this melancholy event, assembled a great concourse of people for the purpose of paying the last tribute of respect to the first of Americans. On Wednes- day, the 18th of December, attended by milita- ray honors and the ceremonies of religion, his body was deposited in the family vault at Mount Vernon. So short was his illness, that, at the seat of government, the intelligence of his death pre- ceded that of his indisposition. It was first communicated by a passenger in the stage to an acquaintance whom he met in the street, and the report quickly reached the house of repre- sentatives which'was then in session. A solemn silence prevailed for several minutes ; judge Marshal, then a member of the house, stated in his place the melancholy information which had been received. This informatian, he said, was not certain, but there was loo much reason to believe it true. " After receiving intelligence," he added, ; of a national calamity so heavy and afflicting, the house of representatives can be but ill fitted for public business." He therefore moved an adjournment, and the house adjourned. The expression of Washington's countenance was serious, but very pleasing : his eyes were a mild blue ; and the flush of health gave a glow to his cheeks. His step was always firm ; but after the toils of the long war, his body was a little bent as he walked, and his oiice smooth forehead and cheeks were marked with care-worn furrows. General Washington, in the prime of life, stood six feet two inches, and measured precisely six feet when attired for the grave. To a majestic height was added correspond- ing breadth and firmness ; and his whole per- son was so cast in nature's finest mould, as to resemble the classic remains of ancient statuary, where all the parts contribute to the purity and perfection of the whole. Bred in the vigorous school of the frontier warfare, " the earth his bed. his canopy the heavens," he ex- celled the hunter and the woodsman in their athletic habits, and in those trials of manhood which distinguished the hardy days of his early life : he was amazingly swift of foot, and could climb the mountain steep, and " not a sob his toil confess." It matters very little, says Phillips, what im- mediate spot may have been the birth-place of such a man as "Washington. No people can claim, no country can appropriate him. The boon of Providence to the human race, his fame is eternity, and his residence creation. Though it was the defeat of our arms, and the disgrace of our policy, I almost bless the convulsion in which he had his origin. If the heavens thun- dered, and the earth rocked, yet, when the storm had passed, how pure was the climate that it cleared ! how bright, in the brow of the firmament, was the planet w hich it revealed to us ! In the production of Washington, it does really appear as if Nature was endeavoring to improve upon herself, and that all the virtues of the ancient world were but so many studies preparatory to the patriot of the new. Indi- vidual instances, no doubt, there were, splendid exemplifications of some singular qualification : Ctesar was merciful, Scipio was continent, Hannibal was patient ; but it was reserved for Washington to blend them all in one, and, like the lovely masterpiece of the Grecian artist, to exhibit, in one glow of associated beauty, the pride of every model, and the perfection of every master. As a general, he marshalled th* peasant into a veteran, a-nd supplied by disci CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY WAT 608 WAT plmethe absence of experience; as a statesman, In,- enlarged the policy of the cabinet into the most comprehensive system of general advan- tage; and such was the wisdom of his views, and the philosophy of his councils, that, to the soldier and the statesman he almost added the character of the sage ! A conqueror, he was untainted with the crime of blood ; a revolu- tionist, lie was free from every stain of treason ; for aggression commenced the contest, and his country called him to the command. Liberty unsheathed his sword, necessity stained, victory returned it. If he had paused here, history might have doubted what station to assign him ; whether at the head of her citizens, or her sol- diers, her heroes, or her patriots. But the last glorious act crowns his career, and banishes all hesitation. Who like Washington, after having emancipated a hemisphere, resigned its crown, and preferred the retirement of domestic life to the adoration of a land he might be almost said to have created ! Happy , proud America ! The lightning of heaven yielded to your philosophy ! The temp- tations of earth could not seduce your patriot- ism ! '' WASHINGTON, William Augustine, a dis- tinguished cavalry officer in the American re- volution, was born in Virginia. He distinguish- ed himself particularly at Guilford, and Eutaw, where, however, he was made prisoner, and detained until the close of the war. During the the presidency of Adams, general Washington attached his relative to his staff with the rank of brigadier-general. He died in 1810. WATERLOO, a Belgic village on the road from Charleroi to Brussels, 10 miles from the lat- ter city, at the entrance of the forest of Soignies. WATERLOO, battle of, by French writers called Mont St. Jean, near which village it was fought in the spring of 1815. The Eu- ropean confederates having outlawed Napo- leon by a declaration at Vienna, assembled their forces to invade France by the east and north. A Prussian army of 60,000 was collected near Charleroie, under Blucher, and an English, Hanoverian, Dutch, and Flemish army of 100,000, under Wellington, in advance of Brus- sels. On the 13th of June, the French army of 110,000 men, under Napoleon, debouched from Givelte and Charleroi, attacked the Prus- sians at Ligny , and drove them back with great slaughter, making from ten to fifteen thousand prisoners. In the meantime the left wing of the French army on the 15th, attacked the Eng- lish position at Quatre Bras, cut to pieces some Scotch regiments, and compelled the remainder of the allies to retreat on Brussels. Marshal Wellington now assembled ali his foro?s in the strong position of Waterloo, the right of which was defended by the chateau of Hougomont ; the left and centre by acclivities of ground, and his rear protected by the immense forest of Soigny. After the affair of Ligny, Napoleon divided his force into two divisions, sending his right wing, of 30,000 men, under Grouchy, in pursuit of the Prussians, who made a stand at Wavre ; while with the left and centre he fol- lowed the English in the direction of Waterloo and Brussels, and finding Wellington in posi- tion at Mont St. Jean, lie bivouacked on the 17th on the grounds on the other side of the valley, while the English and allies were pre- paring for attack on the opposite side. At noon on the 18th, the French commenced their attack on the chateau of Hougomont, and endeavored by that position to gain the heights, and turn the right of the English army ; and here a scene of bloody contest was maintained for some hours, in which many thousands of the combatants lost their lives. Another attack was commenced in the centre in the bottom, beneath which is situated a farm called La Ha ye Siiinte. Here likewise a dreadful slaughter took place, chiefly of Hanoverians, and the French carried the po- sition. In the right the French ascended the acclivity, and advanced on the plain, but were checked by a charge, in which Sir Thomas Pic- ton was killed. On their left they advanced from Hougomont. within half a mile of the vil- lage of Mont St. Jean, but were here arrested by other charges, in which the prince of Orange was wounded. The enthusiastic courage of the French was every where opposed by the cool resolution of the English regiments, who formed themselves into squares, and received and re- pelled thq. attacks of the French cavalry. In this position the two armies remained, with Va- rious local success, till about four in the after- noon, when a body of Prussians under marshal Bulow approciched from Wavre, and secured the English position on the left. At six in the evening the issue remained doubtful ; the French considered the victory as their own, and an Hanoverian regiment actually fled from the field, and passed throngh Brussels. But mar- shal Wellington, assured of the speedy approach of marshal Blucher with a body of Prussian cavalry on the French right flank, maintained his principal position with inflexible determina- tion; and about eight o'clock the Prussian cav- alry, under Blucher, debouched from the woods HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. WES 609 WHI on the left, overthrew and captured the French right wing, and advanced along the valley, arid passed the centre, of the French position, carry- ing all before them. The French on the heights and on their left wing, perceiving themselves thus surrounded, were seized with a general panic, a cry of sauve quipeiit ran through their ranks ; the confusion was increased by a gene- ral charge of the British, and they fled in com- plete rout towards the French frontiers, leaving all their cannon and baggage in the hands of the victors. The loss of killed and wounded on both sides has been variously computed, but it cannot have been less than 00,000. This battle was followed by the most important political consequences. The main French army was thus dispersed without cannon and without am- munition. Grouchy, who, with his division, re- mained immovable during the battle at Wavre, about nine miles distant, on hearing of its re- sult, retreated towards Paris, and Napoleon, to diminish the effects of his disaster, repaired in- stantly to the same city, where the intrigues and conflicts of parties" determined him to re- sign the crown in favor of his son and embark for America. In the mean time, the Prussians advanced briskly in pursuit of the disordered French, and marshal Wellington having dis- posed of his wounded, followed without inter- ruption to the walls of Paris, where, after some negotiation, the Bourbons were restored. WAYNE, Anthony, a general in the Ameri- can revolution, born in Pennsylvania, Jan. 1, 1745. He was educated at a Philadelphia aca- demy. Having served his country in a civil capacity, he raised a company of volunteers in 1775, and was elected colonel. In the retreat from Canada he behaved with great prudence, and on Feb. 12, 1777 was made brigadier-gene- ral by the continental congress. He distin- guished himself at the battle of Brandywine, and succeeded in carrying Stony Point by as- sault. He was in continual service throughout the war, and, in 1792 was appointed by Wash- ington to succeed general St. Clair in the com- mand of the army employed against the Indians on the western frontier. Aug. 20, 1794, he gained a victory near Miami on the lakes, and successfully ended the war. He died in 1796. WEST POINT, a village of New York, and military post on the W r estbank of the Hudson, 53 miles above New York. It is the scene of the treachery of Arnold. Its military academy enjoys hio-h repute. WEST INDIES, the great Archipelago which lies between North and South America, commonly divided into The Bahamas, Great Antilles, Lesser Antilles, Caribbee islands, Vir- gin islands, Leeward islands, and Windward islands. Population of the West India Islands. Islands. Whites. Slaves. Total. Hayti, 800,000 Spanish Islands. Cuba, 311,051 286,942 704,487 Porto Rico, 133,100 31,874 323,838 English Islands. Antigua, 1,980 29,839 35,714 Anguilla, 365 2,388 3,080 Barbadoes, 14,959 81,902 102,007 Dominica, 840 15,392 19,838 Grenada, &c. 801 24,145 28,783 Jamaica, 37,000 > 322,421 414,421 Montserrat, 330 6,262 7,406 Nevis, 700 9,259 11959 St. Kitts, 1,612 19,310 23,922 St. Lucia, 972 13,348 18,051 St. Vincent, 1,301 23,000 27,114 Tobago, 322 12,000 1 4 04-2 Tortola, &c. 477 5,399 7*172 Trinidad, 4,201 24,006 44,163 Bahamas, 4,240 9,268 16,499 Bermudas, 3,905 4,370 9,250 French Islands. Martinique, 10,000 81,142 101,865 Guadeloupe, with Mari-) egalante, Desirade, > 12,800 88,000 111,000 Saintes, &c. ) Dutch Islands. St. Kustatius, with Saba, ? 12,000 18,000 Curacao, ? 6,500 11,000 S ^; (inpartto j ? 4,000 6,000 Danish Islands. Santa Cruz or St. Croix, 2,500 29,500 34,000 St. Thomas, 800 5,500 7,000 St. John, 150 2,600 3,000 Swedish Islands. St. Bartholomew, ? 6,000 12,000 WHIPPLE, William, a signer of the De- claration of Independence, born in Maine, in 1730. Having followed the sea for some time, he abandoned it in 1759, and commenced busi- ness in Portsmouth, New Hampshire, from which state he was sent to Congress, in 1776. He was placed at the head of one of the brigades of New Hampshire in the revolutionary war, after the close of which, he held several civil offices, and died in 1785. WHITFIELD, James, Archbishop of Balti- more, was born at Liverpool in England on the 3d of Nov. 1770, and died at Baltimore on the 19th of Oct. 1834. At the age of 17 he was be- reaved of his father and became the protector of his mother. To assuage her grief, and to restore her sinking health, he accompanied her to Italy. On his return from that country where he had been for some time engaged in mercantile pur- suits, he found himself in France at the time when Napoleon had decreed that every Eng- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. WIC 610 WIL lishman in France was a prisoner. He spent the greatest part of his exile in Lyons, where he became acquainted with Ambrose Marechal, the late archbishop of Baltimore, who was then pro- fessor of theology in the seminary in that city. The piety of his youth inclined his mind to the sacerdotal state, and he commenced the study of divinity under the direction of his learned and pious friend. He distinguished himself by his solid judgment and persevering industry. In the year 1801) he was ordained priest in the city of Lyons. After the death of his mother. he returned to England, and was employed in the discharge of parochial duties in the town of Crosby. When Dr. Marechal was elevated to the archi- episcopal see of Baltimore, he wrote to Mr. Whitfield, earnestly soliciting him to give his assistance to the flock which Providence had placed under his charge. He complied with the request of his former friend, and landed on our shores on the 8th of September, 1817. In 1825 he received the degree of Doctor of Divinity from the court of Rome. At the death of the Rev. Archbishop Marechal, his name was on the list which was first sent to Rome to receive the sanction of his Holiness, and he was soon after consecrated Archbishop of Baltimore in the Cathedral in that city. WHITFIELD, George, founder of the sect of Calvinistic Methodists, born 1714, and died at Newburyport, Massachusetts, 1770. where he lies interred. His eloquence in the pulpit was very remarkable. He was in early life associ- ated with the still more celebrated John Wes- ley, (born 1703, and died 1791,) but in after life they were separated by difference of opinion. WICKLIFFE, or Wycliffe, John, the " Morn- ing Star of the Reformation." was born at a vil- lage of the same name, in Yorkshire, in 1X24. He was nominated one of the king's commis- sioners, to require of the pope that he would not , interfere in ecclesiastical benefices. This trea- ty was carried on at Bruges ; but nothing was concluded, upon which the parliament passed an act against the papal usurpations. This en- couraged Wicklifte to go on in exposing the tyranny of the pope, who, in 1377, denounced the reformer asaheretic, and required thfiuvli- bishop of Canterbury and the bishop of London, to proceed in judgment upon him. Wickliffe, however, was supported by the duke of Lan- caster and earl Percy, who appeared with him at St Paul's, Feb. 1'J, 1378. High words en- ued on that occasion between the bishop of London and the temporal lords ; in consequence of which, the populace took the bishop's part, and plundered the duke's house in the Savoy. Wickliffe, being thus countenanced at court, undertook a translation of the Scriptures into English, which work he accomplished, and thereby increased the number of his enemies. Of this version, which was made from the Vul- gate, several copies are extant; but only the New Testament has been yet printed. In 1381 Wickliffe ventured to attack the doclrine of transubstantiation, in a piece entitled " De Blas- phemia,'' which being condemned at Oxford, lie went thither and made a declaration of his faith, and professing his resolution to defend it with his blood. The marriage of the king with Anne of Luxemburg, proved very advantageous to Wickliffe ; for she was a most exemplary Erincess, and a great friend to scriptural know- 'dge. By her means, the writings of the Eng- lish reformer, were sent to Germany, where they afterwards produced an abundant harvest. On leaving Oxford, Wicklifft- received a citation from the pope to appear at Rome ; but he an- swered, that " Christ had taught him to obey God rather than man." He died of the palsy. at Lutterworth, in 1384. WILKES, John, a political character, was born in Clerkenwell, where his father was a dis- tiller, in 17^:7. He obtained the rank of colonel of the Buckinghamshire militia, and a seat in parliament for Aylesbury ; but, on publishing a virulent papercalled the " North Briton,'' ho was expelled the House of Commons; and convict- ed in the court of King's Bench. Previous to this, however, he had gained a verdict in the Common Pleas against the secretary of state, for an illegal seizure of his papers by a general warrant. In the meantime, Wilkes incurred another prosecution for printing an obscene poem, called an " Essay on Woman ;" and for not appearing to receive judgment, was out- lawed. He then went to France, where Ire re- sided till 1768, when he was elected for Mid- dlesex ; but was prevented from taking his seat, and committed to the King's Bench prison, which occasioned dreadful riots in St. George's Fields. Upon this, Wilkes published anoOier libel, for which he was again expelled the House of Commons ; but was rechoson, and the elec- tion as repeatedly declared void. His popular- ity was now at its height, and a large subscrip- tion was made for the payment of his debts. In 1770 he was chosen an alderman of London, and in 1774 lord mayor. The same year he was re- turned again for Middlesex, when he was per- mitted to take his seat without farther opposi- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. WIL 611 WOL lion. In 1779, after three unsuccessful at- tempts, he was elected chamberlain of London. He died, Dec. 26, 1797. WILLIAM I, king of England, a descendant of Canute, was born 1027. In 1051 he paid a visit to Edward the Confessor, in England, and in 1058 he betrothed his daughter to Harold II. In 1066 he made a claim to the crown of Eng- land, invaded England, landed at Pevensey, in Sussex, defeated the English troops at Hastings, October 14, when Harold was slain, and Wil- liam assumed the title of Conqueror. He was crowned at Westminster, December 25), 10G6. In 1072 he repelled the attack of .Malcolm, king of Scotland, in Northumberland. In 107!) he was wounded by his son Robert, at Gerberot, in Normandy, and in 1086 he invaded France. He soon after fell from his horse, and contracted a rupture : he died at Hermentrude, near Rou- en, in Normandy, 1067. He was buried at Caen, and was succeeded in Normandy by his eldest son, Robert, and iri England by his sec- ond son. WILLIAM II, was born 1057, and crowned at Westminster. September 27, 1087. In 1090 he invaded Normandy with success. William was killed by accident, while hunting in the New Forest, in 1100. WILLIAM III. originally prince of Orange, landed at Torbay', Nov. 4.1 088, the epoch of the English revolution. He was crowned with his consort Mary, Feb. 16. 1681). William, being a Presbyterian, began his reign by repeal- ing those laws that enjoined uniformity of wor- ship; and though he could not entirely succeed, a tolerrtion was granted to such dissenters as should take the oaths of allegiance, and hold no private conventicles. In the mean time, James, whose authority was still acknowledged in Ireland, embarked at Brest for that country, and arrived at Kinsale. He soon made a pub- lic entry into Dublin, and was well received. After the unsuccessful siege of Londonderry, his army encountered the royal forces, com- manded by William in person, on the banks of the Boyne, in 1690, when the latter gained a splendid victory. At length, after a series of disasters, James died Sept. Hi, 1700. William, in the mean time, became fatigued with oppo- sing the laws which parliament were every day laying round his authority, and thus gave up the contest. He admitted ever} 7 restraint upon the perogative in England, upon condition of being properly supplied with the means of humbling the power of France. For the pro- secution of the war with France, the nation 52 mortgaged the taxes, and involved themselves in what is now called the national debt . Eng- land received in return, the empty reward of military glory in Flanders, and the conscious- ness of having given their allies, particularly the Dutch, frequent opportunities of being un- grateful. The wap with France continued during the greatest part of William's reign, but was at length concluded by the treaty of Rys- wick, in 1697. William was thrown from his horse, Feb. 21, 1702, when his collar-bone was fractured ; and this hastened his dissolution. He died in the following month, of an asthma and fever, in the 13th year of his reign. WILLIAMS Roger, was born in Wales in 1598, and having completed his collegiate edu- cation at Oxford, took orders in the established church, but soon embraced the doctrines of the Puritans in consequence of which he was obliged to come to America in 1631. His religious principles drew down upon him the indignation of the authorities of Massachusetts Bay, and he was banished. He settled at Providence, Rhode Island, where he founded a community in which intolerance was unknown. He died in April, 1683. WILLIAMS, William, a signer of the De- claration of Independence, was born at Lebanon in Connecticut, April 8, 1731, and died Aug, 2, 1811. He was educated at Harvard college. WILLIAMS, Otho Holland, a brigadier- general in the American army, born in Prince George's county Maryland, in 1748, and died in July, 1794. WILSON, James, a signer of the American Declaration of Independence, was born in Scot- land, in 1742, and came to Philadelphia in 176G. In 1789 he was appointed judge of the supreme court of the United States, and died Aug. 1798 WISCONSIN, see Northwest Territory. WOLCOTT, Oliver, a signer of the Decla- ration of Independence, was born in 1726, at Windsor, in Connecticut, and graduated at Yale college. He studied law, commenced its practice with success, and in 1776 was elected to the national congress. He served at the head of a volunteer corps in the army which forced Burgoyne to surrender. After serving ten years as lieutenant-governor, he was chosen governor of the state. He died Dec. 1, 1707. WOLFE, James, was the son of lieutenant- general Edward Wolfe, born at Westerham, in Kent, in 1725. He entered early into the army, and before he was twenty, distinguished himself at the battle of Lafeldt. At that of Minden, he gained additional laurels as lieu CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. WOL 612 WOT tenant-colonel of Kingsley's regiment, as he afterwards did at Louisbourg, from whence he Uad but just returned, when he was appointed .o command the expedition against C^uebec. The enterprise was hazardous, but general Wolfe surmounted all obstacles, and on the heights of Abraham encountered the enemy ; when, in the moment of victory, he received a ball in the wrist and another in the body, which obliged him to be carried into the rear. In his last agonies he was roused by the shout, " They run !' : on which he eagerly asked, " Who run ?" and being told the French, he said, 1 ttUMUK God : I die contented," and expired Sept. 13, 175!). WOLSEY, Thomas, a cardinal and states- man, was born in 1471 at Ipswich, where his father was a butcher. In 150^, being then chaplain to Henry VII, he was made dean of Lincoln ; and in the next reign he gained an absolute ascendency over the young monarch by flattering his passions and sharing in his amusements. He was accordingly made al- moner to the king, a privy councillor, canon of Windsor, registrar of the garter, and dean of York. Soon after this accumulation of honors, he was appointed chancellor of the garter, and rewarded with the grant of the revenues of the bishopric of Tournay in Flanders. In 1514 he was consecrated bishop of Lincoln, and within a few months afterwards was elevated to the see of York and the dignity of a cardinal. In 1510 he was appointed legate with the fullest powers, and at the same time was made lord chancellor. In 151!) he obtained the temporal- ities of the see of Bath and Wells, to which were added those of Worcester and Hereford, with the rich abbey of St. Alban's. Wolsey now aspired to the papacy, and on being disap- pointed of it, received, as a compensation from the emperor, a pension of nine thousand crowns of gold, while his own sovereign gave him the bishopric of Durham. On the death of Adrian VI he made another effort to gain the tiara, but without success. In 152d he exchanged Dur- ham for Winchester; but a cloud now arose, i by the king's dissatisfaction with his conduct in the business of t!v.>div cording] y while the cardinal sat in the court. <>f chanc'-ry, an indictment was preferred against him in the king's bench, on the statute of pro- visors, in consequence of which the great seal was taken from him. all his goods were seized, and articles of impeachment were soon exhibited in parliament. The prosecution, however, \v;i* stayed, and he received the king's pardon; but while IK was endeavoring to reconcile himself to his fallen state at Cawood castle, his capri- cious master caused him to be arrested for high lr-:tsiii, and hurried from Yorkshire towards London. The agitation and fatigue brought on a disorder, of which he died at the abbey of Leicester, Nov. , 1530. All who know any thing of his history, know that he was proud and ostentatious, and accus- tomed t>the use of gorgeous costume, in which he piqued himself in outshining all the otht r courtiers of H?nry VIII. One day. a prodiirnl nobleman, who was deeply in debt, and paid nobody, came hit ,> court fn a dress, the splen- dor of which outshone that of Wolsey. who being piqued, addressed the nobleman, ami said, " My lord, it would be more commendable in you to pay your debts, than to hv!- much money on your dress." " May it please your revere'nce," replied the nobleman, you are perfectly right: I humblv thank vou for the hint, and now make a bejrinning. to show how 1 value your kind :;<];:. inition. My father owed your deceased father a en vat for a calf s head : here is ai.r/>nirf 1, : , WORCESTER, the chief t..wn of \Voroos- tArshire. England. It salFenvi much (luring the wars between the li -uses of York and Lancas- ter; but the most remarkable event here was the famous battle be',\vee:i th- English army under Cromv. ; use of Charles 1 1 , in !<>>!); when the royalists hid 5,000 kiik-d and (S.OOO taken prisoners, mo.-l of whon, were sfild ns si '.ves t the American colonies. WORCESTER., a har.d~.Me town of Wor- cester count v, Mass. The third jermanent set- tlement was commenced in 1713. The town was incorporaled in 17^2. and on the erection of Worcester county, in 17:55. became the cap- ital. PopaUtkm in 1890, 4,271. \YOTTON.sir Henry, a statesman, was boni at Boughton-hall, in Kent, in 15Ts. He be- rime secretary to the earl of Essex, on whose full ho went abroad, and while at Florence was honored with the confidence of the grand duke; who sent him on a secret mission to James VJ of Scotland. He died in Idll't. WOTTOX. Nicholas, a statesman, was un- the preceding, and born in Kent, about 141t7. During the reign of Henry VH1 he was employed on different embassies ; and in that of Edward he was made secretary of state. In l.Vil, he went on a mission to the emperor of (lennany ; after which he became resident at the court of France. He died in London, in I'HkJ;. and, was buried at Canterbury. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL WYN 613 XEN WURMSER, Dagobert Sigismund, count, an Austrian general, was born in Alsace in 1724. In his youth he served in the French anny, and next in that of the emperor, when: he rose to the highest honors. In the revolu- tionary war he drove the republicans out of Alsace ; but at last was obliged to retreat before superior numbers. In 1794, however, he took Manheim ; and in 179G, defeated the French in Italy. At last being obliged to throw himself into Mantua, he was forced to capitulate. He died in Hungary in 171)7. WURTEMBEKG, or Wirtemberg, a king- dom in the western part of Germany, contain- ing 1 ,502.033 inhabitants. In the wars of the French revolution, Wirtemberg was repeatwlly traversed by the hostile armies ; its territory was, in 17SJG, the ground chosen for conflicts in the advance, as well as in the celebrated re- treat of Moreau. In 17!)9, it was the scene of the defeat of the French under Jourdan ; in 1800. of their renewed success under Moreau. VVYATT, sir Thomas, a statesman, was born at Allington-castle, in Kent, in 1503. His fa- ther, sir Henry Wyatt, was imprisoned in the Tower in the reign of Richard III, where he is said to have been preserved by a cat that fed him daily, for which reason all the portraits of him are painted with that animal in his arms or by his side. On the accession of Henry VII he was knighted ; and in the next reign made master of the Jewel-office. He died in 1533. Thomas became a great favorite with Henry VIII, and by one of his jests hastened on the reformation. The king having complained of the delay of the court of Rome in granting the divorce, sir Thomas exclaimed, " Lord ! that a man cannot repent, him of his sin without the pope's leave !" This witticism hastened the king's resolution, and he soon afterwards acted upon it as a maxim of sound reason. Wyatt, however, fell into some trouble afterwards by his freedom of speech, and was twice tried for sedition, but acquitted. He died at Sherbourne. in Dorsetshire, in 1541. WYNDHAM, sir William, a statesman, wns born at Orchard Wyndham, in Somersetshire, in 1637. In 1710, he was made secretary at war; and in 1713, chancellor of the exchequer. On the accession of George I he was dismissed from office ; and when the rebellion broke out in Scotland, he was sent to the Tower, but never brought to trial. He continued to act in opposition till his death, which happened at Wells, in 1740 ; when he was succeeded in his title and estate by his eldest son, Charles Wyndham, who became earl of Egremont, and died in 17*53. WYTHE. George, a signer of the Declara- tion of Independence, was born in Elizabeth county, Virginia, in 172(5. Until 30 he lived a life of continual dissipation, but at that age ap- plied himself assiduously to the study of the law, and commenced its practice with great dis- tinction. His labors in the cause of indepen- dence were strenuous and continued. He died, June 8, 1806, having filled the office of chan- cellor of the state of Virginia for several years. X. XANTIPPUS,a Lacedasmonian general who assisted the Carthaginians in the first Punic war. He defeated the Romans, 256, B. C. and took the celebrated Regulus prisoner. Such signal services deserved to be rewarded, but the Carthaginians looked with envious jealousy upon Aantippus, and he retired to Corinth after he had saved them from destruction. Some authors support that the Carthaginians ordered him to be assassinated, and his body to be thrown into the sea as he was returning home ; while others say that they had prepared a leaky ship to convey him to Corinth, which he artfully avoided. XENOPHON, an Athenian, son of Gryllus, celebrated as a general, an historian, and a phi- losopher. He was invited by Proxenus, one of his intimate friends, to accompany Cyrus the younger in an expedition against his brother Artaxerxes, king of Persia ; but he refused to comply without previously consulting his ven- erable master, and inquiring into the propriety of such a measure. Socrates strongly opposed it, and observed, that it might raise the resent- ment of his countrymen, as Sparta had made an alliance with the Persian monarch; but, however, before he proceeded further, he advis- ed him to consult the oracle of Apollo. Xeno- phon paid due deference to the injunctions of Socrates, but as he was ambitious of glory, and eager to engage in a distant expedition, he hastened with precipitation to Sardis, where he wns introduced to the young prince, and treated with great attention. In the army of Cyrus, Xenophon showed that he was a true disciple of Socrates, and that he had been educated in the warlike city of Athens. After the decisive battle in the p'lains of Cunaxa, and the fall of voting Cyrus, the prudence and vigor of his iinind'were called into action. The ten thou- sand Greeks who had followed the standard of CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. XER G14 XI M an ambitious prince, were now at the distance of above six hundred leagues from their native home, in a country surrounded on every side by a victorious enemy, without money, without provisions, and without a leader. Xenophon was selected from among the officers, to super- intend the re treat of his country men, and though he was often opposed by malevolence and envy, yet his persuasive eloquence and his activity, < mvinced the Greeks that no general could extricate them from every difficulty, belter than the disciple of Socrates. He rose superior to danger, and though under continual alarms from the sudden attacks of the Persians, he was nabled to cross rapid rivers, penetrate through vust deserts, gain the tops of mountains, till he could rest secure for awhile, and refresh his tired companions. This celebrated retreat was, at last, happily effected, the Greeks returned home after a march of two hundred and fifteen days, and an absence of fifteen months. Xeno- phon was no sooner returned from Cunaxa, than he sought new honors, in following the fortune of Agesilaus in Asia. lie enjoyed his confidence, he fought under his standard, and conquered with him in the Asiatic provinces, as well as at the battle of Coroneea. His fame, however, did not escape the aspersions of jeal- ousy, he was publicly banished from Athens for accompanying Cyrus against his brother, and being now without a home, he retired to Scillus, a small town in the neighborhood of Olympia. He died at Corinth in the 00th year of his age, 35!) years before- the Christian era. XERXES I, succeeded his father Darius on the throne of Persia, and though but the second son of the monarch, he was preferred to his elder brother Artabazanes. Xerxes continued the warlike preparations of his father, and added the revolted kingdom of Egypt to his extensive possessions. He afterwards invaded Europe, and entered Greece with an army, the most numerous which had ever been collected together in one expedition; but badly armed and disciplined, and encumbered with an useless utU-ndance of servants, women, and eunuchs, it was stopped at Thermopylae, by the valor of three hundred Spartans, and their allies, under king Leonidas. Xerxes, astonished that such a handful of men should dare to oppose his pro- gress, ordered some of his soldiers to bring them alive into his presence ; but for three successive days the most valiant of the Persian troops were repeatedly defeated in attempting to execute the monarch's injunctions, and the courage of Uie bpartans might perhaps have triumphed longer, if a Trachinian had not led a detach- ment to the top of the mountain, which sudden- ly fell upon the devoted Leonidas. The king, himself, nearly perished on this occasion, and it h:is been reported, that in the night, the des- perate Spartans sought, for awhile, the royal tent, which they found deserted, and wandered through the Persian army, slaughtering thou- sands~before them. The battle of Thermopylae was the beginning of the disgrace of Xerxes ; the more he advanced, it was to experience new disappointments; his fleet was defeated at Ar- temisiumand Salamis, and though he burnt the deserted city of Athens, and trusted to the art- ful insinuations of Themistocles, yet he found his myriads unable to conquer a nation that was superior to him in the knowledge of war and maritime affairs. Mortified with the ill success of his expedition, and apprehensive of imminent danger in an enemy's country, Xerxes hastened to Persia, and in thirty days he marched over all that territory which before he had passed with much pomp and parade in the space of six months. Mardonius, the best of his generals, was left behind with an army of 300,000 men, and the rest that had survived the ravages of war, of famine, and pestilence, followed their timid monarch into Thrace, where his steps were marked by the numerous birds of prey that hovered round him, and fed upon the dead car- casses of the Persians. When he reached the Hellespont, Xerxes found the bridge of boats which he had erected there, totally destroyed by the storms, and he crossed the straits in a small fishing vessel. Restored to his kingdom and safety, he forgot his dangers, his losses and his defeats, and gave himself up to riot and de- bauchery. His indolence and luxurious volup- tuousness offended his subjects, and Artabanus, the captain of his guards, conspired against him, and murdered him in his bed, in the 2lsi year of his reign, about 4CA years before the Chris- tian era. XIMENES, Francis, a Spanish cardinal, was born in 1437, at Torrelaguna, in Old Castille In 1507, the pope (rave him a cardinal's hat, ana soon after the king appointed him prime minis- ter, which office he discharged with the great- est honor. He was very successful in the con- version of the Moors, three thousand of whom were baptized in one day at Grenada. On the death of Ferdinand, in 1516, the cardinal was :i|>p'.inted regent of the kingdom ; and one of his first acts was to introduce a reformation in the government. He died, Nov. 8, 1517. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ZEN 615 ZEN YORK ; .3. city of England. It is an ancient city, and was the seat of several of the Roman emperors. The cathedral is a splendid speci- men of Gothic architecture, and was a century and a half in building. York in 1831 contained 28,359 inhabitants, and is regarded as the capi- tal of the north of England. YORKTOWN; a post-town, capital of York county, Virginia, on the south side of York riv- er, 21) miles N. W. of Norfolk, memorable for the capture of Cornwallis, Oct. 19, 1781. YPRKS, a city of Belgium. In 1793 and 1794, this town was exposed to bombardment, from both French and allies ; it fell eventually into the power of the former, and remained in their hands until the downfal of Napoleon, in 18J4. YUCATAN, the most easterly state of the Mexican confederacy, very fertile and valuable, and containing 4!!(>,000 inhabitants. It is in the form of a peninsula, jutting out into the gulf of Mexico. The English have a small settlement there for procuring logwood, which is the prin- cipal article of commerce. YVERDUN, a town of Switzerland, popula- tion 4 ,000. Here is the school of the celebrated Pestalozzi, which was established in the year 18J4. ZACATECAS.astate of Mexico, containing 2,353 square leagues, and 272.901 inhabitants It is mountainous and arid, but famous for its rich silver mines. ZAMOSK. a strong fortress in the south-east of Poland. In 1(!5(J it was unsuccessfully be- sieged by the Swedes; in 1715 it was surprised by the Saxons; and in the civil contests of 1771, the Poles were defeated in its vicinity, bv the Prussians. In 1812 it was one of the tew towns in which the French left a garrison, after their retreat from Russia. ZAMOSKI, John, great chancellorof Poland, and general of the army of that kingdom. He was sent ambassador into France for the duke of Anjou, whom the Polanders had chosen king. This prince beincr recalled to take possession of that he gave his niece to him in marriage, made him chancellor of the kingdom, and first gave him the command of eight thousand men in the 52* war of Muscovy, and afterwards of all the army of Poland. Zamoski acquitted himself in all these employments with much courage and great success. ZANGUEBAR, a large territory in the east- ern part of Africa. Its name means " the coast of the negroes," all the inhabitants being blacks. ZANTE, (anciently Zacynthus;) one of the seven Ionian islands in the'Mediterranean Sea; population 40.000. Zante, the capital, has a population of 20.000. Its harbor is spacious, and its environs are pleasant and picturesque. In 1820, several hundred houses were overthrown by an earthquake. The island was in posses- sion of the Venetians from the end of the four- teenth to the end of the eighteenth century. In 1797, it was taken by the French, and in 1799, by the Russians. In 1815, it became one of the members of the Ionian Republic. ZEALAND, a province of the Netherlands. Population in 182;), 12:U84. ZEALAND, the largest of the Danish islands, between the Cat- tegat and the Baltic. It contains the fortress of Elsinore, and its capital is Copenhagen. ZEALAND, NEW; two islands in the South Pacific Ocean, separated by Cook's Straits. They have recently become the theatre of an active commerce with the British colonies. ZENOBIA, Septimia, a celebrated princess of Palmyra, who married Odenatus. whom Gal- lienus acknowledged as his partner on the Ro- man throne. After the death of her husband, which, According to some authors, she is said to have hastened, Zenobia reigned in the east as regent of her infant children, who were hon- ored with the title of Caesars. She assumed the name of Augusta, and she appeared in imperial robes, and ordered herself to be styled the queen of the east. The troubles which at that time agitated the western parts of the empire, pre- vented the emperor from checking the inso- lence and ambition of this princess, who boasted to be sprung from the Ptolemies of Egypt. Au- relian was no sooner invested with the imperial purple, than he marched into the east, deter- mined to punish the pride of Zenobia. He well knew her valor, and he was not ignorant that in her wars against the Persians, she had dis- tinguished herself no less than Odenatus. She was the mistress of the east ; Egypt acknow- ledged her power, and all the provinces of Asia Minor were subject to her command. When Aurelian approached the plains of Syria, the Palmyrean queen appeared at the head of seven hundred thousand men. She bore the labors of the field like the meanest of her soldiers, and CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ZOP G16 ZUT walked on foot fearless of danger. Two battles were foucrht, the courage of the queen gained the superiority, but an imprudent evolution of the Palmyrean cavalry ruined her cause ; and while they pursued with spirit the flying ene- my, the Roman infantry suddenly fell upon the main body of Zenobia's army, and the defeat was inevitable. The queen 'tied to Palmyra, determined to support a siege. Aurelian fol- lowed her, and after he had almost exhausted his stores, he proposed terms of accommoda- tion, which were rejected with disdain by the warlike princess. Her hopes of victory, how- ever, soon vanished, and though she harassed the Romans night and day by continual sallies from her walls, and the working of her military engines, she despaired of success when she heard that the armies which were marching to her relief from Armenia, Persia, and the east, had partly been defeated and partly bribed from her allegiance. She fled from Palmyra in the night ; but Aurelian, who was apprized of her escape, pursued her, and she was caught as she was crossing the river Euphrates. She was brought into the presence of Aurelian, and though the soldiers were clamorous for her death, she was reserved to adorn the triumph of the conqueror. She was treated with great hu- manity, and Aurelian gave her large possessions near Tibur, where she was permitted to live the rest of her days in peace, with all the grandeur and majesty which became a queen of the east, and a warlike princess. Her children were pa- tronized by the emperor, and married to per- sons of the first distinction at Rome. Zenobia has been admired not only for her military abil- ities, but also for her literary talents. She has been praised for her great chastity and con- stancy, though she betrayed too often her pro- pensities to cruelty and intoxication when in the midst of her officers. She fell into the hands of Aurelian about the two hundred and seventy- third year of the Christian era. Z1ETEN, John Joachim Van, a Prussian general, was born in 10HO. He distinguished Himself greatly in the seven years' war, particu- larly at the battle of Prague, and the storming of the heights of Torgau. He died in 17-.\ Z1MISCC8, John, a noble Armenian, who contributed to the elevation of Nicephorus, but who, instead of being rewarded for his services, waa sent into disgraceful exile. He afterwards conspired with the empress, who in person opened the chamber-door of Nicephorus to the conspirators, who massacred him without op- position. Zimisces was then proclaimed empe- ror of the East, and afterwards signalized him- self in many engagements, but was at length taken off by poison, in the ninth year of'liis reign. ZIMMERMANN, John George, chevalier von, an eminent physician and miscellaneous writer, born at Brug, in the canton of Berne, in 1726. Having made choice of the medical profes- sion, he was appointed public physician to his native town, employing his leisure hours in writ- ing many pieces in prose and verse, the most popular of which is his work on Solitude. ZISCA, John, a courageous-German general, who headed the Hussites, and obtained an im- portant victory, but being slain, his skin was made into a drum, to animate the Hussites with the remembrance of his valor. ZOPYRUS. a Persian, son of Megabyzus, who, to show his attachment to Darius, the son of Hystaspes, while he besieged Babylon, cut off his ears and nose, and fled to the enemy, telling them that he had received such a treat- ment from his royal master because he had ad- vised him to raise the siege, as the city was im- pregnable. This was credited by the Babylo- nians, and Zopyrus was appointed commander of all their forces. When he had totally gp.ined their confidence, he betrayed the city into tho hands of Darius, for which he was liberally re- warded. The regard of Darius for Zopyrus could never be more strongly expressed than in what he used often to say, " that lie had rather have Zopyrus not mutilated than twenty Ba- bylons." ZOROASTER, a king of Bactria. supposed to have lived in the age of iVinus, king of As- syria, some time before the Trojan war. He was respected by liis subjects ana contempora- ries !br his abilities as a monarch, a lawgiver, and a philosopher, and though many of his doc- trines are puerile ;ind ridiculous, yet his follow- ers are still found in numbers in the wilds of Persia, and the extensive provinces of India. ZURICH, a canton of Swit/.erland. ZU- RICH a city of Switzerland. Population 14,000. In recent times, Zurich has been the theatre of many interesting political events, and the scene of many conflicts. Massena defeated here the ulli(M forces of Russia and Austria. ZUTPIIEN, an inland town of the Nether- liuuls, province of Gelderland. In the wars of Philip II. Zutphen was besieged in 1572, by the Spaniards, who refusing the citizens a capitu- hil.ion, entered the town by storm, and commit- ted frightful ravages. It was retaken in 1. ">!)!, and in this siege sir Philip Sidney was killed. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL, CHRONOLOGICAL VIEW. INCLUDING AMBASSADORS, ALLIANCES, ARCHITECTURE, BATTLES AND SIEGES, COM. MERGE, CONSPIRACIES, DISCOVERIES, EARTHdUAKES AND VOLCANIC ERUPTIONS, EMINENT PERSONS, ENCROACHMENTS OF THE SEA, FAMINES, FIRES, FROSTS, LAWS, COURTS OF JUSTICE, LIVING CHARACTERS OF EMINENCE, LONGEVITY, MASSACRES, MILITARY AND RELIGIOUS ORDERS, MUSIC, REBELLIONS, RIOTS, SEA FIGHTS, SCULP- TURE, STORMS, TAXATION, TREATIES, &x. &c. AGR ABDICATIONS : of Sylla as perpetual dic- tator of Rome, ante C : 79 ; of the emperor Dioclesian, A. D. 304 ; of Cbevaline king of the West Saxons, 593; Amurath II emperor of the Turks, 1447 ; of Charles V as emperor of Germany, and as Charles I of Spain, 1556 ; Christiana, queen of Sweden, 1654 ; Cassimer V, king of Poland, 1U68 ; James II of England, but really dethroned, 1688 ; Philip V of Spain, 1724, January 15th, but resumed the sceptre in about fourteen months allerwards, on the death of his son Louis, in whose favor he had abdi- cated ; Victor Amadeus king of Sardinia, 1730 ; Francis II resigns his title as ernperor of Ger- many, August 6th, 1800; Charles IV of Spain, March 19th, 1808; Gustavus Adolphus IV, king of Sweden, March 19th, 1809 ; Napoleon deposed, 1814, and atrain in 1815. AFFIRMATION of the Quakers first ac- cepted as an oath, 1702 alteration made ?:i it, December 13th, 1721. Made legally equal to an oath in most, if not all the states of the United Slates. AGRICULTURAL Societies formed in Great Britain, 1787. Many societies now exist in the United States. AGRICULTURE. The first mention of agriculture is found in the writings of Moses. From them we learn that Cain was a " tiller of the ground," and that, Noah " began to be a husbandman and planted a vineyard." The Chinese, Japanese, Chaldeans, Egyp- tians, and Phoenicians, appear to have held husbandry in high estimation, in the earliest ages. The Carthaginians were sensible of its bfessings, and ferried the art to a high degree of perfection. The implements of Grecian ar- chitecture were very few and simple ; the Ro- mans used a great 'many implements, but par- ticularly venerated the plough. AGR The agriculture of Great Britain was much improved after its conquest by the Normans, who were celebrated for their skill in agricul- ture. The implements then used were very similar to those of modern times. Many works on agriculture have been written in England at different periods, which have been of great importance both to the British nation and all the world. The establishment of a national board of agriculture, by Sir John Sinclair, has been of eminent service to British husbandry. French agriculture began to flourish early in the 17th century, under Henry IV. Many agricultural societies were established, and Bonaparte instituted professorships and gardens for the exhibition of the different modes of cul- ture and the dissemination of plants. He also enlarged and enriched the National Garden. The implements of agriculture in France are generally rude and unwieldy, and the opera- tions of husbandry unskilfully performed. No books on agriculture were written in Germany till the 17th century. The agricul- ture is there every where improving. Gov- ernment, as well as individuals, have formed institutions for the instruction of young people in the arts of husbandry. The culture of forests receives particular attention in Germany. Some of the implements of Great Britain have been introduced ; but generally speaking the agricul- tural tools are unwieldy and inefficient. In 1788, Arthur Young wrote a treatise upon rural economy in Italy. There is a great vari- ety in the culture of land, as the climate, soil, and surface of Italy are so various. Only one fifth of the surface is considered sterile. The im- plements and operations of agriculture in Loin- bardy are both' imperfect. The irrigation of lands is a remarkable feature in Italian hus- bandry. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. ALL 618 ALM The agriculture of the United States em- braces all the products of European cultivation, together with some, such as sugar and indigo, which are rarely ever cultivated in any part of Europe. The agricultural implements and farming operations of the United States are very similar to those of Great Britain. AIRGUNS, invented 1646. AIRPUMPS, invented by Otto Gnirick, in 1G54. A J AX, British ship of the line, burnt near the Island of Tenedos, and more than 350 men per- ished. Feb. 14th, 1807. ALIEN LAW of the United States, passed June 25th, 1798 ; repealed, 1800. ALIENS, British, ordered by the United States' Government, to report themselves to the marshals of the district where they respectively reside, July 10th, 1812. ALLIANCES, the most remarkable were between the confederate Greeks, against Troy, B. C. 1 19434. Between the Romans and the Carthaginians B. C. 508. Between the Athe- nians, Thebans, Corinthians and Argives, against the Lacedemonians. B. C. 395. It is. not a little remarkable, that in the long course of Roman conquest, not one well arranged and conducted alliance was formed and contributed to restrain her power. In modern ages, alliances in the true sense of the term, are recent. The Crusades were really a species of alliance, but with very little of the system of modern allian- ces. The League of Cambray. formed Dec. 10th, 1508, between Louis XII, king of France, the emperor of Germany, Maximilian I, and the Pope, Julius II, against the Venetians, was the first of those coalitions so disastrous or benefi- cial, as the case may be, which have so deeply influenced modern European policy. Those of most importance after the league of Cham- bray, have been, a league between Henry VIII of England, and the emperor Charles V acrninst Francis I, king of France. In 1:"2:>, by the Pope, the emperor and the Venetians, against the king of France. Of the present states of Germany, at Smajcalde, December 22d, 1530. to maintain the reformed Minion; between Francis I, king of France, and Sultan Solyrnan, against the emperor Charles V. |.~.3i;. The latter confederation renewed, 1 tween the emperor Charles V, and Pope Paul III, against the Protestants, I.'.M; beiw.-n Spain, Venice, and Pope Pius V, against Tur- key, 1570; between England, and the States General of Holland, 1578, against the Span- iards; union of Utrecht, 1579, which begins the republic of the Seven United Provinces; the Evangelical League, formed 1626. between the Protestant princes of Germany and Den- mark, to which Sweden allerwards acceded, against the emperor Ferdinand I. this was a very important compact, which, in 1648, pro- duced the treaty of Westphalia ; triple alliance between Britain, Sweden, and the States Gen- eral, aofuinst France 16U8 ; of the empire and Holland, against France, July 15, 167:2; league of Augsburg against France. July 11, 1686; the grand alliance between the ernperor Leo- pold I, the States General of Holland, and William III. king of England, against France, May 12th. 1680; first treaty of partition, be- tween France. England and Holland. August 19, 1698, second treaty of partition, 1700, March 3d, at Landen, and 25th at the Hague ; alii-, ance of Germany, England and Holland, on one side, and France, Spain and Portugal, on the other, 1701 ; barrier treaty of Antwerp, Nov. 15th, 1715, between Germany and Holland; quadruple alliance between Great Britain, France, Germany and Holland, August 2d, 1718 ; defensive alliance between Great Britain and Prussia, 1742; quadruple alliance of War- saw, January 8, 1745, between Great Britain. Austria, Holland, Poland; defensive alliance of Stockholm, May 29th, 1747, between Prus- sia, Poland and Sweden ; between Great Brit- ain and Prussia, February 16. 1756; renewed April 11, 1758 without any regular compact, France, Austria, Russia and Sweden, were at the epoch of the lost mentioned alliance be- tween Great Britain and Prussia, actually in the field against Prussia. To the United States, if not the world, the most important of all alli- ances or confederations was thatef the British North American colonies. This great union, not for war. but defence, after many incipient steps, was formed in 1775 ; announced to the world as free and independent. July 4th, 1776; received the general name of UNITED STATKS. by a resolution of Congress, Sept. J7?(i, and consummated by the adoption of a Federal con- stitution of government, March 3d, 1789. First coalition against France, by Great Britain. Prus- sia, Austria, Sardinia, &c. 1793; second coali- tion. April V-th, 1799; third, 1805. Holy Alli- ance between Francis I, emperor of Austria, Alexander emperor of Russia, and the king of I'rn--ia. and to which Denmarl, Sweden and the Netherlands, afterwards acceded, formed 1815. ALMANACS, first published by Martin I1-. kus at Buda 1470. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. AMB 619 ARC ALPHABETIC WRITING introduced into Europe by Cadmus, A. C. 1493. ALUM, first discovered at Rocha, in Syria, A. D. 1300; in Tuscany 1400; first made to perfection in England, 1608, discovered in Ireland, October 22d, 1757; in Anglesea, 1790. ALTAR, a place on which sacrifices were offered in ancient times, but in Christian churches the place where the communion is administered first used in the latter A. D. 135 ; consecrated 271 ; first in Britain, 634. A Ro- man altar dug up near Carlisle, England, April, 1803. AMBASSADORS and ministers plenipo- tentiary, have been from time immemorial, considered in some measure, privileged char- acters. Those of king David, about 1030, B. C. being insulted by the king of the Ammonites, led to a war destructive to the aggressors. The Roman ambassadors at Clusium B! C. 390, mixing with the inhabitants in battle with the Gauls, Brennus, king of the latter, considered their conduct an act of hostility on the part of their country, raised the siege of Clusium, marched towards Rome, defeated the Romans at Allia, and toak, plundered and burned Rome. In modern times the privileges of ambassadors have been more distinctly defined. In Eng- land during the protectorship of Oliver Crom- well, Don Pantaleon Sa, brother to the Portu- guese ambassador in London, committed a murder in open day, and sought refuge in his brother's house ; but the Protector refused to sanction such an asylum in a case of murder, and Sa was seized, confined, tried and hanged, 1653. About twenty years afterwards, the prince of Furstenburg was arrested at the diet of Ratisbon, f >r murder, by order of the emperor of Germany, and the case of Sa, given as a justification. In 1709. in England, the Russian ambassador was arrested for debt by a lace merchant, which led to an act of parliament exempting ambassadors, or their immediate suit, from arrest in civil cases. The following table shows the respective salaries paid to the British, and United States' ambassadors, at the principal states of Europe, amount reduced to dollars, and even numbers : Ens-Hsh Ambassadors. U. States Ambassadors. France . . $48,000 . . '. $9,000 Spain . . . 52,000 .... 9,000 Holland . . 52,000 .... 4,500 Russia . . . 52.000 .... 0,000 British in U. S. 26,000 U.S. in Eng. 9,000 The first ambassador from Russia to England, arrived in London 155(5. First from India to any part of Europe, was from Tippo Saib to France, 1 778. First from the United States was Silas Deane to France, 1770. First from the Ottoman emperor to GreatBritain, 1793. First from the new Spanish states of America, were received by the United States, and recipro- cated by ministers sent to Buenos Ayres, Mex- 1 AMPHITHEATRE at Rome, built A. D. G9. Fourteen modern chapels erected within its wa lls that of Verona next in size ; and that of Nismes next at Fidonia fell, and killed 50,000 people. Its ruins still exist at Castel Gimbelio. AMPHYCT IONIC COUNCIL, or General Assembly of Greece, established B. C. 1497. This is the first instance on record, of a free representation of independent states, meeting to deliberate and settle their concerns by the force of reason, in place of arms. ANATHEMA, first used by the Christians as a punishment, A. D. 387. ANATOMY as a science, restored about 1550; anatomy of plants observed 1680. ANIMAL MAGNETISM, an imposture that made its appearance in France, 1768, but soon disappeared there, and broke out in Eng- land, 1789. It has since been revived and has some believers in Europe. ANNUITIES or Pensions first granted in England, 1512, when 20Z. was given to a lady of the court for services done ; and in 1536, 6t. 13s. 4d. thought sufficient to maintain a gentle- woman : again in 1554, 13/. (is. Sd. deemed a competent sum to support a student at law. Annuities for life were regulated by law, 1777. APOTHECARIES, first mentioned in pro- fane history, ate. C. 1345; by Solomon in Ec- clesiastes, ate. C. 977. Exempted from civil offices in England, 17U2 ; act for better regulat- ing the practice of, passed 1815. APRICOTS first planted in England 1540. This fruit originally came from Epirus. ARCHITECTURE. The first habitations of man were such as nature afforded, just suf- ficient to satisfy his simple wants, huts, grottos and tents. As civilization advanced, men began to build more durable and commodious habita- tions. They fitted the stones or bricks together more neatly, but at first without any cement. After they had learned how to build houses, they began to erect temples for their gods, which were much larger, and better made than their own habitations. Architecture appears to have been one of the earliest inventions, and its works have been CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY ARC 620 ARU regulated by hereditary imitation. Whatever rude structure the climate or materials of any country had forced the earlier inhabitants to construct, the same form has been kept up in after years by their more refined posterity. Thus the Egyptian style of building derived its origin from the cavern and wound ; the Chinese from the tent ; the Grecian from the wooden cabin, and the Gothic from the bower of trees. Architecture at length became a fine art, and much pains was bestowed upon temples and palaces. Colonnades, halls and courts soon appeared, the rough trunk was transformed into the lofty column, and the nat- tural vault of a cavern into the splendid Pan- theon. The first nations who paid attention to archi- tecture were the Babylonians, who built the temple of Belus and the hanging gardens ; the Assyrians, who filled Nineveh with splendid buildings; the Phrenicians, whose cities were adorned with magnificent structures, and the Israelites, whose temple was considered won- derful. Of the Persian and Egyptian architec- ture, we have some remains, and they are all in a style of prodigal splendor and gigantic height. The Greeks first introduced a" more simple and dignified style of building, called the Doric order. The Ionic and Corinthian columns were soon added to the Doric. After the Pelo- ppnnesian war, this noble simplicity had again given place to excess of ornament, arid after the death of Alexander, 32:5, B. C., the art de- clined, and was afterwards but little cultivated in Greece. The Romans had paid some attention to architecture, hut did not equal the Greeks, till the time of Augustus, who encouraged Greek artists to erect splendid buildings In Rome. But when the seat of government, was removed to Constantinople, the art declined in Rome. About this time, the Roman or Composite col- umn originated, -which was employed in tem- ples and splendid buildings. Thiv-e beautiful works of art were almost entirely destroyed by the Goths and Vandals ; but Theodoric, a friend of the arts, endeavored to restore them and even erected 'several new ones. This is tin- era of the origin of modern art, and the style of building it introduced is called Gothic architecture. Architecture has experienced different desti- nies in different countries. It has risen and declined at different periods. In America, the Grecian architecture is prevailing, as it is better adapted than the Gothic to small buildings, and does not require splendid edifices to display its ^ARITHMETIC, by the Arabian figures, introduced into Europe by the Saracens of Spain, in the ninth and tenth centuries of the Christian era. ARMISTICE, or suspension of amis, be- tween two or more belligerent states, but with an agreement, that all things shall remain in stalu qw.o, to the termination of the agreement. The first armistice or provisional articles of peace between the United States and Great Britain, was signed November 30th, 1782; between Naples and the French general t :ham- pionet, January 7th, 171)9; atSteyer in Austria, between the Austrian government and general Moreau. December 25th, 1600 ; of Treviso, January IGtb, 16(11 ; at Tilsit, June 21i| 1607, between France. Russia, and Prussia. ARMS, or armorial ensigns, were of great antiquity, and in some form very general, but as now understood, coats of arms originated with the northern nations who overturned the Roman empire. ARMY, standing, a body of men exclusively set apart and employed in the profession of arms, as distinguished from militia. (Sci: militia). Philip II, king of Macedonia, formed the first regular standing army on record, and the effects were to change the political aspect of the world. The second standing army was that of Car- thage, from B. C. about 260 '202, under Ham- ilcar, Asdrubal and Hannibal. The Cartha- ginian army forced the more steady Romans to resist them by another standing army; the battle of Zama, B. C. 202, Oct. 19th, annihilated the former, and left the latter master of the world. There is nothing in history so remarkable, as that from the battle of Zama. except in the instance of Partliia, no regular force which deserved the name, was raised to resist the Roman arms. Those terrific legions, however, yielded to time, and were not followed by another attempt to form a system of organized armies, until under Charles VII. king of France. 1445. Since that epoch, the v. hole features of war have changed ; most nations have now a regular standing military force. The proportion between the troops in service and men able to bear arms in modern times, has been assumed as one to a hundred. ARUNDELIAN MARBLES. These cele- brated chronolnineal tables \\ere brought from Greece to England, in 1027, by Thomas, earl ol'Arundel. They were composed of a large HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. AST 621 AST number of marble slabs or blocks, which were, however, mutilated, and in part lost during the civil wars in England, in the middle of the 17th century. Fortunately they have been at different times, and partly whilst the collection was complete, edited bv Seldon, Iredeaux, Mat- taire, Chandler, &c. and though by some, their genuineness has been doubted, they are now by the best critics, considered real and invalu- able remains of the literature of ancient Greece. They contain a connected chronology in Greek capital letters, from the reign of Cecrops. king of Athens, B. C. 1582, to the archonship of Astyanax in Poros, and of Diognetus at Ath- ens, B. C.264. What remains entire are in the possession of the university of Oxford. ASPARAGUS first introduced into Eng- land, 1608. AS'PRONOMY. the science of the Heavens, the history of which dates backward into the morning of time. Observations on the appa- rent and real revolutions of the stars must have been made, and a really great advance in the science, long before any form of record pre- served the fruits of discovery. Some of the principal constellations, as they are now named, are mentioned in the book of Job. The Chal- deans observed and recorded eclipses, both lunar and solar, B. C. 71920, and then knew the Luni Solar period of 223 lunations, or 6585 days 8 hours nearly. It is probable, as far backwards in time as eight or nine cen- turies before the Christian era, that the real length of the tropical or solar year, was known in China, Indostan. Chaldea, and Egypt; and in China and Indostan, their authenticated records reach to B. C. 3102. The following brief tabular history of this noble science, was compiled from Rees' Cyclopedia, art. Astron- omv, and will save much reference. B. C. 721, March 19th, 8 h. 4()min. p. m. 1st lunar eclipse on record ; 720, March 5, 11 h. I m. p. m. 2ddo.; September 1,7 h. 40 m. p. in. 3d do. ; 648 the Thoth of the era of Nabonassar, was on February 1st, having shifted 25 days in one hundred years; 621, April 22d, 3 hours after midnight"; the fourtli eclipse of the moon on record ; 5S5, May 28th, an eclipse of the moon predicted by Thales, and brought the Lydian war to an end ; 502, November 19th, II h. 36 min. p. in. the sixth lunar eclipse on record, observed at Babylon; 491, April 25th, seventh lunar eclipse on record observed at Babylon ; 359, obliquity of the ecliptic, found, 23 W 10" ; 310, August 15th, solar eclipse, 11 digits 10', observed between Sicily and Africa, by the fleet of Agathocles. Comet seen in China same year ; 294, March 9th, conjunction of the moon with Spica Virginis, b W. from the equinoctial point, observed by Timocharis ; 285, Dionysius of Alexandria, began his sera June 2Gth, being the first who determined the real length of the solar year to be 3C5 days, 5 hours and 49 minutes; 282, Timocharis ob- served another conjunction of the moon with Spica Virginis, November Oth, 3 hours after midnight; 2(52, transit of Mercury over the Bull's Horn observed : Mercury 23 in Taurus, and the Sun 29 30' in Aries; 241, September 3d, Jupiter observed in 7 33' Virgo; 230, Era- tosthenes, observed the obliquity of the ecliptic to be 23 51' 20" ; 162, Hipparchus began his astronomical observations at Rhodes, and con- tinued them to 128, or 34 years; 146, this astronomer observed the vernal equinox. March 24th, at mid-day. A remarkable comet appeared in Greece ; 143, Hipparchus observed the au- tumnal equinox, September 26th, about sunset. 3epteir ; 141,, began his new lunar cycle ; 141 , January 17th, 2 hours before midnight an eclipse of the moon at Alexandria; 128, Hipparchus observed the vernal equinox to be on Thursday, March 23d, about sunset ; and the star Cor Leonis, 29 50' from the summer solstitial colune ; 127, May 2d, about sunrise, Hipparchus observed the sun 7 35' in Taurus, the moon 21 40' in Pisces, and their mean distance, to be 312 32*; and Spica Virginis 6 W. of the autumnal equinoc- tial point; 49, comet appeared in China; 44, great comet, supposed the same which appeared again A. D..531, 1106, and in 1680; 25, the Egyptians adopt the Julian year, and fix their Thoth, or New Year day, August 29th. A. D. 13, a comet appeared in China ; 39, conjunction of Saturn, Jupiter and Mars; 55, comet appeared in China ; 92, Agrippa observes in Armenia, a conjunction of the moon with the pleiades, November 29th, 5 hours before midnight ; 130, Ptolemy observed Mars in op- position, December 14th, 3 hours p. m. ; 132, September 25th, 2h. p. m. Ptolemy observed the autumnal equinox ; 133, May 6th, 11 h. 45 m. p. m. Ptolemy at Alexandria, observed an eclipse of the moon. May 17th 11 h. p. m. he observed Jupiter in 13 15' Taurus ; and Saturn in 9 4(y Sagitarius on June 4th, 4 h. p. m. ; J34, February 16, in the morning, Ptolemy ob- served Venus, 21 05' in Capricorn, and on Oct. 3d in the mornintr, Mercury in 20 12" of Virgo ; 138, Ptolemy observed Cor Leonis 2 30' of this sign, and 32 40' from the summer solstice : CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. AST 622 AST 140, Ptolemy observed Venus on July 18th, to be in 18 30' of Gemini, and 47 15' from the mean place of the sun. Observed the vernal equinox at Alexandria. March 22, 1 p. ni. ; 21:2, a comet appeared in China ; 222. August 29th, a conjunction of some of the planets observed at Alexandria ; 373, a comet appeared in China ; 400, a comet appeared in China ; 729, 2 comets appeared, one before sunrise, the other after sunset. This was no doubt a deception ; it was one comet apparently in different parts of the Heavens; 807, January 31st, 3 h. after mid- night, Jupiter was eclipsed by the moon. March I7ih, a spot observed on the sun ; 810, astron- omy revived under the Caliph Almamun, and the obliquity of the ecliptic found 23 34'; 819, degree of the meridian measured on the plains of Sinjar, near Babylon, and found to be 56| Arabian miles; 825, Benimula observed the obliquity of the ecliptic, to be 23 35'; 837, a comet appeared in China and in Europe, which moved in 25 days through JJ 25 ft, and disap- peared in y ; 880, September 1'Jth, 11 h. 45' a. m. Albategnius, or Mahomet of Aractus. an Arabian astronomer, observes the obliquity of the ecliptic to be 23 35'; 882, Sept. 19th, 1 h. 15' after midnight Albategnius observes the autumnal equinox ; and in 883, the sun's apo- gee in 22 J 27' of Gemini ; the first star of Aries distant from the equinoctial point 18 02'; 911, Thebit ben Chora, found the obliquity of the ecliptic, to be 23 33' 30" ; 999, Abou! Wafi, and Abu Hamed, found the obliquity of the eclip- tic, 23 35'; 1070, Arzachel. found the obli- quity of the ecliptic to be 23 34'; 107(5. the same astronomer found the sun's apogee, 17 50' in Gemini ; 1079. March 14th, 2 h. 9' p. m. the vernal equinox observed by Arznchel; 1186, September 16th, great conjunction of all the planets in Libra, about sunrise. Mercury 4 Iff; Venus 3 49* ; Mars 9 08' Jupiter 2 03' ; Sat- urn 8 OC'; 1252, Alphonso X, had those astro- nomical tables, which bear his name, published. In this school the sun's apogee was found 28 42 Devastations of Attila and the Huns; 451 , Defeat of Attila at Chalons. 476 the Roman empire of the west overturned. 1066 Battle of Hastings, gained by William the Conqueror. 109(5 First Crusade ; 1099, Capture of Jerusa- lem. 1147 Second Crusade. 1189 Third Crusade under Philip II, of France, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL BAT 625 BAT and Richard Cccur^le Lion ; 1191, Capture of Ptolemais ; 119*2 Victory of Ascalon over Saladm. 1202 Fourth Crusade ; Capture of Constanti- nople. 120G Victories of Genghis Khan ; Mongul Em- 1217 ! Fifth Crusade; 1223, Sixth Crusade led by the emperor Frederic II. 1248 Seventh Crusade under St. Louis. 1282 Sicilian Vespers ; massacre of the French in Sicily. 1314 Battle of Bannockburn. 1315 Battle of Morgarten won by the Swiss. 1346 Battle of Cressy, won by the English over the French. 1356 Battle of Poictiers ; capture of the French king by the Black Prince. 1361 Capture of Adrianople by the Turks, who establish themselves in Europe. 1369-1405 Victories and Empire of Timour or Tamerlane. 1383 Battle of Otterburn between Percy and Douglas. 1403 Battle of Shrewsbury ; 1405, of Monmouth. 1415 Battle of Agincourt won by Henry V, of England. 1445-85 Wars of the Red and White Roses in England; 1455, battle of St. Albans ; 1463, offlexham; 1471, of Tewksbury ; 1435, of Bosworth field. 1470 Battles of Granson and Morat won by the Swiss over Charles the Bold. 1513 Battle of Flodden field; Scots defeated by the English. 1515 Francis I of France, defeats the Swiss at Mariornan. 1521 Conquest of Mexico by Cortes. 1525 Francis I of France defeated and made prisoner by Charles V, at Pavia. 1526 Battle of Mohacz ; Moldavia and Walachia conquered by the Turks. 1528 Conquest of Peru by Pizarro. 152!) First siege of Vienna by the Turks. 1546 Religious war in Germany ; Smulcaldic league ; Protestants defeated "at Muhlherg. 1560 Religious wars in France ; 156SJ Battles of Jarnac and Moncontour. 1566 Beginning of the insurrection of the Neth- erlands; 1581. the United Provinces declare their independence on Spain. 157J Battle of Lepanto ; the Turkish fleet de- feated. 1588 Defeat and destruction of the Spanish Ar- mada. 1618-48 Thirty years' war ; 1631 , battle of Leip- sic, won by Gustavus Adolphus over the Imperialists; 1632 battle of Lutzen, death of Gustavus. 1642 Civil war in England; battle of Edgehill ; 1644 of Marston Moor; 1645, of Naseby; 1651, of Worcester. 1658 Battle of Gravelines. 1660 Restoration of the monarchy in England, and recall of the Stuarts. 1683 Siege of Vienna by the Turks ; raised by Sobieski. 1683 Descent of the prince of Orange upon England ; revolution ; 1690, battle of the Boyne. 1690 Battle of Fleurus. 1692, Battle of Stein- kirk; 1693, Battle of Nerwinden. 1692 Battle of La Hogue ; French fleet destroy- ed by the English. 1702 Sp'anish succession war ; 1704, Battle of Blenheim; 1706. of Rarnilies ; 1708, of Ou- denarde; 1709, of Malplaquet. 1709 Battle of Pultowa won by Peter the Great over Charles XII ; rise of Russia. 1715 Rebellion in Scotland ; battle of Preston Pans. 1716 Battle of Peterwardin gained by Eugene over the Turks. 1740-43 War of the Austrian Succession ; 1743, Battle of Dettengen ; 1 745, Battle of Fon- tenoy. 1745 Battle of Preston Pans ; 1746, of Falkirk : and Culloden. 1756-63 Seven years' war; 1757, Battle of Prague; ofRosbach; of Breslan ; 1758, of Crevelt; 1759 of Minden; of Cunersdorf ; capture of Quebec by the English. 1775 Battle of Bunker's hill; J776, Battle of Long Island. 1777 Battle of Brandy wine; of Germantown; of Saratoga. 1781 Battle of the Cowpens; of Guilford ; of Eutaw Springs ; Cornwallis surrenders at Yorktown. 1762 Attack on Gibraltar by the French and Spanish. 1792 Battle of Jemappes (Dumouriez). '93 of Fleury (Jourdan). 1794 Battle of Praga ; Suwarroffbutchers thirty thousand Poles. 1796 Bonaparte's Italian campaign ; battles of Montenotte ; Millesimo ; Lodi ; Roveredo ; Arcola, &c. '97 of Rivoli; Tagliamento. 1798 Campaio-n in Egypt ; battle of the Pyra- mids ; Nelson's victory at Aboukir. 1800 Battles of Montebello ; Marengo ; Hohen linden. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. HJ I! 626 BLA 1802 Servile war in St.Domin. P.IHLE IIIST9RY ceases 340 years before Christ. Beptoagint version nude' 'J-M ; J\r continent of Europe, 274. , CANON LAW first introduced into En- gland, 1140. CANONIZATION first used by papal au- thority, A. D. 993. CAPE BLANCO, on the coast of Africa, discovered. 1441. CAPE 1534 glai kept, 1758. CAPE DE VERD islands discovered, 1447. CARDS invented in France, first used for Charles VI amusement, 1380; they were forbid the use of in Castile in 1387; 128,000 packs were stiinped in England in 1775. CARDINALS were originally the parish priests at Rome; title began to be used, 308; college of, founded by Pope Pascal I, 817; did not elect the popes till MGO ; wore the red hat, to remind them that they ought to shed their blood, if required, for religion, and were declar- ed princes of the church, 1222 ; the cardinals set fire to the conclave, and separated, and a vacancy in the papal chair for two years, 1314; cardinal Carassa was hanged by order of Pius IV, 15GO; as was cardinal Poli, under Leo X; the title of eminence first given them by Pope Urban VIII, about 1630. CARRIAGES first introduced into Vienna, J515; into London. 1580. CARVING in marble invented. 13. C. 772. CAST-IRON, Leicester square, London,pav- ed with, 1817. CATALOGUES of English printed books, wen- first published 15<>f>; in Ireland. H>:!2. CELERY first introduced into England, by Marsh.il Tallard, during his captivity there, after the battle of Blenheim, in 1704. CELESTIAL SPHERE brought into Greece froiti Egvpt, by Eudoxus of Cnidus, "d-- CHAIN SHOT invented bv admiral tie Witt 1606. CHAIRS, sedan, first used in London; a fourteen years patent for selling them granted to Duncombe,1634. CHANCERY, court of, established in En- gland, 605; present one by William I, 10GG. The first person qualified for chancellor, by edu- cation, was sir Thomas More, 153U, the "office before being rnther that of a secretary of state, than the president of a court of justice ; first reference to a master in, owing to the ignorance of the chancellor, sir Christopher Hatton, 1588. CHARITY SCHOOLS first began in En- land, March 25, 1688; 6000 children met at t. Paul's, May 2, 1782; 1 GO schools within London, Westminster, and the bills of mortality, established between 1688 and 17G7, inclusive. CHERRIES brought to Rome, by Lucullus, 70 ; apricots were first introduced into England, from E;>irus ; peaches from Persia ; the finest plums from Damascus and Armenia ; pears and rigs from Greece and Egypt; citrons from Me- dia; pomegranates from Carthage, about 114 years before Christ. CHERRY TREES first planted in Britain, 100 before Christ; brought from Flanders and planted in Kent, with such success, that an orchard of 32 acres, produced in one year, 1000,1540. CHESS, the game of, invented G08. before Christ. CHEST, at Chatham, for the relief of sea- men, instituted, 1588. CHIARO-OBSCURO, the art of printing in, with three plates, to imitate drawings, first used, 1500. CHIMN1ES first introduced into buildings in England, 1200; only in the kitchen, or large hall, smoky ; where the family sat round a large stove, the funnel of which passed thiough the ceiling, 1300. CHINA WARE, made in England, at Chel- sea, in 1752; and in several parts of England, in 1760; by Mr. Wedgewood, 1762; at 'Dres- den, in Saxony, 1706. CHINA, first voyage to, from the United States, 1784 ; China porcelain first spoken of in history, 1591. CHOCOLATE, introduced into Europe, from Mexico, 1520. CHOLERA, progress of the. The severe epidemic, which under the name of the Cholera, Asiatic Cholera, Malignant Cholera, or Cholera Asphyxia, has within a few years afflicted many parts "of i!ie world, is reputed to have originated in August, 1817, at Jessore, the capital of a dis- trict in Bengal, lyinnr to the northeast of Cal- cutta. In the following September it invaded CitleuHii, soon after many other cities of Hin- dostan; and in a short time it extended its rav- ages into .yarious other countries of Asia. It HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CHO 629 cm his been estimated that during the 14 years from its commencement at Jessore, it carried off no less than 18 millions of the inhabitants of Hindostan ; and its ravages are said to have been still greater iu China. See the " Revue Encyclopedique " for June, 1831. In 1830, it invaded European Russia, and afterwards Po- land, Hungiry, Germany, Austria, and other countries of Europe. In 1831, in October, it broke out at Sunderland, in England ; in Feb- ruary, 1832, in London; soon afterwards in various places in the British Empire ; in Paris, near the last of March ; at Quebec and Montreal in June ; and at New York in July. The mor- tality in Paris was very great, but the official reports after the first fortnight embraced only a part of the deaths. The number of deaths, as reported, from the 26th of March to the loth of April, was 8,198; and in France, to the 1st of August, 6!),159. The number of cases in En- gland and Scotland, as reported, from the com- mencement of tiie disease to the 1st of Septem- ber, was 47,874 ; deaths, 17,684; in Ireland, to the 1-rth.of August, 22,865 cases, and 7,119 deaths. During its second appearance in Lon- , don, no reports were published. The number of cases in Hungiry has been stated at 435,330, and of deaths, at 188,000. The following table exhibits the number of cases of the Cholera and of deaths in various places which have been visited by it, as report- ed, and stated in different Journals. Great Britain and Ireland. Civse- Deaths. Dublin, 9,252 2,775 Glasgow, to AU2. 15, 4,164 1,993 Liverpool, " 31, 4,(i4J 1,397 London, to April 28, 2,53-2 1,334 Cork, 3,305 843 Limerick, 2,497 843 Dn.gheda, to July 28, 1,202 483 Edinburgh, " 25, 796 4G7 Paisley, " 25, 633 308 Belfast, 2,559 313 Greeni>ck, to July -25, 534 275 Hull, " 28, 72f. 250 Leeds, " 26, 544 212 York, " 25, 334 152 Plymouth, " 26, 354 147 Le'ith, " 25, 194 112 Wairington, " 26, 243 1 >!) Carlisle, " 25, 214 }'.>:)- Continent of Europe. St. Petersburg, 9,247 Op MOW.IW. 8,576 4,f>9'l Le.nberg, 4,922 Vienna, 3,934 1,893 Warsaw, 3,912 1,460 Berlin, 2,220 1,401 Prague, 3,234 1,333 KoniKsberg, 2,188 1,314 Niznei Novgorod, 1,897 982 Kazan, Breslau, Brtinn, Hamburg, Maudeburg, Elbing, Stettin, Halle, America. Quebec, to Sept. I, Montreal, " 2, New York, " 8, Do. Oct. 12, Philadelphia, Sept. 1, Baltimore, " 29, Cases. Death.. 1,487 857 1,276 671 1,540 604 874 455 576 346 434 283 366 250 303 152 2,218 4,385 1,843 5,842 3,197 3,471 2,240 740 710 1,146 Albany, " 8, 1,146 418 Norfolk, "11, 400 Rochester, " 3, 389 107 CHRISTIANITY was propagated in Spain in 36 ; in Britain, CO ; or as others say, in the 5th century ; in Franconia and Flanders, in the 7th century ; in Lombardy, Thuringia, and Hesse, in the 8th century; in Sweden, Den- mark, Poland and Russia, in the 9th century; in Hungary and Sclavonia, in the 10th century; in Vandalia and Prussia, in the Uth century; in Pomerania and Norway, in ihe 12th century ; in Livonia, Lithuania and part of Tarlary, in the 13th century; in Sclavonia, part of Turkey, and the Canary isles, in the 14th century ; iu Africa, at Guinea, Angola, and Congo, in the loth century ; made great progress in Prussia, fboth the Indies, and in China, by the Protestant faith, in the 16th century ; reinstated iu Greece, &c. &c. in the 17th century. CHRISTMAS- DAY first observed as a fes- tival. 98. CHURCH MUSIC introduced into worship, 350 ; choral service first used in England, at Canterbury, 677; changed throughout England, from the use of St. Paul's to that of Sarum, 1418 ; first performed in English, May 8, 1559. CHURCH YARDS first consecrated, 317; admitted into cities, 740. CINNAMON TRADE first began by the Dutch 1506; but had been known in the time of Augustus Caesar, and long before. CIRCUMNAVIGATORS. The first was Magellan, or rather by his fleet, as he was him- self slain on the voyage, 1520; Groalva, 1527; Alvaradi, 1537; Mendana, 1567; sir Francis Drake, 1577; Cavendish, 1586; Lemaire, 1(515; Quiros, 1625; Tassman, 1642; Cowley, 1683; Dampier, 1(589; Cooke, 1708; Clipperton and Sherlock, 1719; Anson; 1740; Byron, 1764; Wallis, 1760; Cook, 1763, 1772, 1776; contin- ued by King, 1780 ; and since by Portlocke, 1788; Bougainville, 1766; "La Peyrouse, 17S2- D'Entrecasteux, 1791. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. COL 630 COM CIRCUMNAVIGATORS of the U. States, the first ship with which this was performed, returned to Boston, in December. 1790. CLOCK MAKERS, three from Delft, first in England, 1568. CLOCKS, called water clocks, first used in Rome, 158 years before Christ ; clocks and dials first set up in churches, 913; clocks made to strike by the Arabians, 801 ; by the Italians, 1300; a striking clock in Westminster, 1368; the first portable one made 1530; none in En- gland that went tolerably, till that dated 1540, maker's name, N. O. now at Hampton court palace ; clocks with pendulums, &c. invented by one Fromantil, a Dutchman, about 1656 ; repeating clocks and watches invented by one Barlow, "1676. Till about 1031, neither clocks nor watches were general. CLOTH, coarse woollen, introduced into En- gland, 11U1 ; first made at Kendal, 1390; med- leys first made, 1614. CO ACHES first used in England, 1580 ; an act passed to prevent men riding in coaches as effeminate, in J601. Began to be common in London, 1G05.- Hackney chariots, not to ex- ceed 200, licensed 1814. COALS discovered near Newcastle, 1234 ; first dug at Newcastle, by a charter granted the town, by Henry III ; first used, 1280 ; dyers, brewers, &c. in the reign of Edward I, began to use sea coal for fire, in 1350 ; in general use in London, 1400. Coal, in the United States, is found in great abundance on both sides of the Appalachian mountains. A coal mine near Pittsburg, took fire, and burned many years; the fire was final- ly extinguished by the incumbent earth and rocks falling into the cavity. COFFEE, first brought into England by Na- thaniel Conopius, a Cretan, who mnde it his common beverage, at Baliol college, Oxford, in 1041 ; first brought to Marseilles, 1644. COFFEE TREES were conveyed from Mo- cha to Holland, in 1616; and carried to the West Indies in the year 1726; first cultivated at Surinam by the 'Dutch, 1718 ; its culture encouraged in the plantations, 1732. COIN, silver, coined at Rome, 26!) before Christ ; before then brass money was only used ; coin first used in Britain, 25 years before Christ. The Mint of the United States of America, es- tablished 1793, issued gold and silver coin ; the copper had been delivered before. COINING with a die first invented, 1617; first u?d in England, 1620. COLLEGES, as places of public instruction in which acapemical degrees were granted, were first known at Paris, A. D. 1215, and were completely established there 1231. The following list shows the names of the S'ncipal colleges and universities in Europe : mbridge began 626. according to some others, 900; revived, 1110; Dublin, 1591; Edinburgh, founded by James VI, 1580 ; Frankfort on the Oder, 1506 ; Geneva. 1365 ; Glasgow, Scotland, 1450; Gcetingen, Hanover, 1734; Leipsic, Sax- ony, 1409; Moscow, 1754 ; Oxford, in England, 886; Padua, Italy. 1197; Paris, 792*, Petersburg, Russia, 1747; Sorbonne, Fran.ce, 1253; Stras- burg, Germany, 1588; Venice, 1592; Vienna, 1236; Utrecht, Holland. 1636; Wurtemburg, Saxony, 1502. COMEDY, the first acted in Athens, on a scaffold, by Susarian and Dalon, 562 B. C. ; those of Terence first acted 154 B. C. ; the first in England 1551. COMMERCE. The first mention made of nations trading one with another appears in the book of Genesis, chap, xxxviii. 25, when Jo- seph's brethren sold him to a caravan of Ishma- elites, who were conveying spices, balm and myrrh into Egypt. The balm was from Gilead,* and the myrrh was the produce of Arabia. They were going through the land of Canaan to Egypt, which was then a highly cultivated kingdom. The central situation of Egypt has always made it the emporium of commerce. By cara- vans, the treasures of Asia and Africa were brought thither. Trade was always held in esteem, because of the wealth it brought. Of the maritime trade of the Egyptians, we have no tegular account, for they superstitiously neglected the sea for many ages. Tyre and Sidon, cities of Phoenicia, are next found rising into notice. Their country was not rich in its productions ; industry alone made their rocks productive ; they conveyed tbeir merchandise from port to port, and commerce by feeding industry was itself enriched. About eleven hundred years before Christ, in the time of David, the Phoenicians, in the true spirit of commerce, continually extended their voyages, and finding plenty of gold in Spain, 'tlMW formed a settlement for the purpose of trlBe, called Gadir, now Cadiz. Solomon saw the advantage of commerce, and caused ships to be built, which he sent to Ophir, and which brought back gold, silver, ivory, birds and other things, lie had also great traffic with Egypt, whence he obtained horses and fine linen. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. COM 631 COM About 869 years before Christ, Carthage was built, and became famous for her commerce throughout the civilized world. In 700 li. C. Corinth became distinguished as a maritime power, and made great improvements in the building of ships. In 588 B. C. Tyre became famous. We read an interesting account of her commerce and plendor in the 2oth, 27th, and 28th chapters of Ezekiel. But the Tyrians drew upon them- selves the vengeance of God, and they were subdued first by Nebuchadnezzar, and after- wards more completely by Alexander 332. B. C. The Phrenicians, after the destruction of Tyre, still pursued and enlarged the sphere of commerce, by means of Carthage, till that city was destroyed by the Romans 14G B. C. At this lime, the Grecian states came into view by their attention to naval affairs. Athens and Sparta in turn became famous, and remained so till their overthrow. Alexander paid great attention to commercial affairs, and built the cities of Alexandria and Berenice, at which places he carried on an ex- tensive trade with the west by means of the Mediterranean Sea; with the richer provinces of the east by the Red Sea ; and with the central countries of Asia, by the isthmus of Suez. He kept up large fleets, and his revenues were im- mense. The Romans were ignorant of the value of commerce, and as if they were determined to root it out, destroyed Corinth, which was one of the most commercial cities of Greece. Great stagnation of commerce now followed, which was felt by all the surrounding countries, till the time of Julius Cssar, who determined to revive it, and restored in one year both Corinth and Carthage. As the Romans were now masters of all around the Mediterranean, they began to favor commerce for their own sake. They therefore obtained supplies from all the regions round about, to minister either to their necessities or their luxuries. The return they made for these various and choice articles was in money, and therefore this interchange can hardly be called commerce. Indeed the Romans have never been a commercial people, they despised the character of a merchant, and wished to rule and obtain riches only by the sword. After the seat of government was removed to Constantinople, Theodoric became kingof Italy, and under his wise and peaceful reign, com- merce began a^in to flourish, though in a re- duced state. In the east, silk began to be a great article of commerce, and the Persians en- riched themselves very much in their trade with ships from India, which stopped at their ports. In the middle of the 5th century, the Turkish power began to rise and carried on trade be- tween China and Constantinople. In 732 Ven- ice began to pay attention to commerce, and carried on extensive traffic with the east. Many other states in Italy also carried on a large trade with different countries, in 10G3, Pisa and Ge- noa, became distinguished as commercial cities. At the accession of William the Conqueror to the throne of England, 100(5, we date the com- mencement of commerce in that country ; as much intercourse took place between Normandy and England. The Crusade we find giving the next spur to commerce. The Crusaders, finding in the east, luxuries that they could not procure at home, determined to supply themselves with these foreign elegances, conveniences and necessi- ties. Commerce therefore began to extend itself with rapidity. The discovery of the polarity of the loadstone gave new wings to commerce ; it was applied to navigation about the year 1200. In the time of king John, 1216, England became very rich and populous by trade, and the people flourished accordingly. In 1241, the German towns began to engage in commerce, and entered into a league for mu- tual defence. They were called the Hanse towns. They made themselves very rich and powerful. Edward I of England allowed them great privileges in trade, which were however curtailed under Edward VI. in the time of Elizabeth, another blow was struck at their commerce ; but in spite of all, they became 89 formidable that the governments of several states entered into a league against them, which result- ed in their power being weakened, and finally sunk, in 1622. About the year 1251, we find Florence rising into notice, in a commercial point of view. Its trade was immense, and its fabrics beautiful and costly. The merchants amassed great wealth, and became the bankers of all Europe. This state of splendor continued for centuries. Flanders was for some time the seat of the principal manufactories of Europe. As far back as the year !*6(), we find the Flemish- trading to great advantage. In 1253, they w*>re famous for their linens, and they continued eminent for their manufactures till 1584, wnen Antwerp was destroyed by (Jie duke of r^arma. This put an end to the prosperity of the country, and her CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY COM 632 COM fine manufactures were dispersed among other nations. Hitherto, the trade with India had been car- ried on by caravans, but in 1497, a passage being found round the Cape of Good Hope, the way was now open to wealth and luxury. In the year 1500, the Portuguese began to make settlements in Africa, and soon after Por- tugal became the centre of commerce, till 1580, when the kingdom was seized by the king of Spain. From the reign of John in 121 G to 1317, com- merce flourished in England. But at that time, quarrels between the English and Flemish were BO fierce, that all commercial intercourse were suspended. In 1331, it was again revived under Edward III who introduced the manufacture of woollen cloth. In the reign of Henry VIII, the reformation was of great service to commerce, and in the time of Edward VI, a trade was entered into with Russia. Queen Elizabeth greatly encour- aged commerce. She formed several trading companies, one to Russia, and another to Tur- key and the Levant. The East India Company began during her reign in 1660. Under her patronage also, settlements were first made in North America. These settlements soon be- came new channels for commerce and outlets for the manufactures of England. The East India Company was dissolved in 1655, but the injury to commerce was so great, that it was reestablished in 1657. Holland, at this lime was gaining great power, and her p$o- ple were famous for their trade. In 1689, the East India Company founded Calcutta, their principal settlement in Hindostan. The other two are Madras and Bombay. Under the house of Brunswick, the commerce of England increased with great rapidity. Many places of small importance sprang up and be- came rich and flourishing. The East India trade has been very success- ful, and has flourished notwithstanding the opposition it has encountered. The Company have not only had great mercantile transactions, but they also possess territory as large as half Europe. Their trade is great with the Spice Islands and with China. As for the commerce of our own country. fler independence was declared, our commer- cial resources began to develope themselves. Our ships penetrated to the most distant seas, and brought home with them the produce of erery clime. Our commercial prosperity is now established on an enduring basis. COMPANIES, SOCIETIES, &c. African Colonization Society, originated at Wnshing ton city, December 2lst. 1816; Auxiliary So- cieties, soon after formed in many parts of the United States. Agricultural Society of New York, 1797. Agricultural Society of Philadelphia, formed 1785; revived, 1804 ; incorporated, 1809. Antiquarian Society in Massachusetts, 1792. Bank of Englnnd, established, 1693. An ac- count of the liabilities and assets of the Bank of England, on the average of the quarter from the 23d of Sept. to the 16th of Dec. 1834, both inclusive. Liabilities. Assets. Circulation 18,304,000 Securities 26,362.000 Deposits 12,250,000 Bullion 6,720,000 30,560,000 Bank of Amsterdam, founded 1609. Bank of Venice, 1157. Bank of Rotterdam, 1035. For other Banks, see art. Banks. Bible Societies. Bible Society of Philadelphia, formed May 7th, 1808; first in New York, December 4, 1809 ; Salem in Massachusetts, instituted May 15, 1811 ; of Baltimore, 1810; the American Bible Society in New York, established May 8th. 1815. Boston Athenaeum, incorporated, 1807; Boston Episcopal Charitable Society, incorporated, 1724 ; Boston Female Asjlum, incorporated 1800; Boston Library, 1794. _ British Museum, established 1753. Companies first established in London, 1198; cooks' company London, incorporated, 1481 ; coopers' company, London, incorporated, 1501 ; cordwainers' company, London, in- corporated. 1410: curriers' company, London, incorporated, 1605; cutlers' company, Lon- don, incorporated, 1417. Deaf and dumb society, for the instruction of, instituted at Hartford, Connecticut, June 24, 1816. East India company, in England, established, 1600 ; their stock then consisting of 72UOO, when they fitted out four ships; and, meet- ing with "success, they have continued ever since ; India stock sold from 360 to 500 per cent. 1683; a new company established, 1698; the old one reestablished, and the two united, 1700; agreed to give government 400,000 per annum for four years, on condition that they might continue unmolested, 1769; in great confusion, and applied to parliament for assistance, 1773; judges sent from England, HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. CON 633 CON by government, faithfully to administer the laws there, to the company's servants, April 2, 1774; board of control instituted, 1784; charter of renewed, 18)3; modified lately. East India company, of Sweden, erected March. , 1731. South Sea company began, May 6. 1710; its bubble, 1720 ; its directors' estates to the value of 2,000,000, seized 1721 ; compounded with Mr. Knight, their cashier, for 10,000, who had absconded with 100,000, in 1720 ; and he returned to England, 1743. COMPASS, or the polarity of magnetised iron, one of the greatest, and as to the date of its discovery , most uncertain of human improve- ments. There is, however, good evidence to prove that the mariner's compass was in use in Europe as early as A. D. 1180 ; variation first observed by Columbus and his companions, 1492; its dip. about 1576. CONGRESS, continental, first met in Phila- delphia, September 5th, 1774 ; Oct. 8th, resolve t.o support Massachusetts. Second congress assembled May 10th, in Philadelphia; June 7, style the colonies " The Twelve United Colo- nies," Georgia not having yet acceded to the Union; June 22, 1775, appoint eight major generals ; May 5, 1776, declare the authority of England abolished ; July 4, declare independ- ence ; December 12, 1770, adjourn from Phila- delphia to meet at Baltimore ; 30th, resolve to send commissioners to Prussia, Austria, Spain, &.C.; September 18, 1777, on the approach of the British army, adjourn to meet in Lancaster, from where they again adjourn on the 30th of the same month to meet in Little York. Sep- tember 14th, 1778, appoint Benjamin Franklin minister to France, who was the first regularly constituted ambassador from the United Stales, the former foreign agents being styled commis- sioners; October 4th, 1782, resolve against a separate peace ; June 26th, 1783, adjourn to Princeton, and from thence to Annapolis, where they met November 26th ; April 1st, 1789, first assembled under the federal constitution ; Sep- tember 22, 1790, pass an act to remove to Wash- injad3r or Nun doubled for the first time by the Portuguese. 1440 ) Smcrral Riccr discovered by the Portu- 1445 $ guese. 144sJ. Cape I'erd discovered by Denis Fernan- dez, a Portuguese. 54 1448. Azores Islands discovered by Gonzallo Velio, a Portuguese. 1449. Cape Verde Islands discovered by An- tonio de Noli, a Genoese in the service of Portugal. 1471 . Island of St. Tltomas. under the Equator, discovered. 1484. Congo discovered by the Portuguese, under Diego Cam. I486 Cape of Good. Hope discovered by Bar- tholomew Diaz. It was originally called " The Cape of Tempests," and was also nam- ed " The Lion of the Sea," and " The Head of Africa." The appellation was changed by John II, King of Portugal, who augured fa- vorably of future discoveries frotn Diaz hav- ing reached the extremity of Africa. 1492. Lucaijos (or Bahama) Islands. These were the first points of discovery by Colum- bus. San Salvador, one of these Islands, was first seen by this great navigator, on the night of the llth or 12th of October, in this year. Cuba, Island of Hispaniola. or, St. Domingo, 1493. Jamaica Jamaica } discovered St. Christopher's > bus in his Dominica ) age. Cape of Good Hope doubl< discovered by Columbus in his first voyage. by Col urn second voy 1497. Cape of Good Hope doubled by Vasco di Gama, and the passage to India discovered. 1497. Newfoundland discovered by John Ca- bot, who first called it Prima Vista and Bac- calaos. The title of Prima Vista still belongs to one of its capes, and an adjacent island is still called Baccalao. 149d. Continent of America discovered by Co- lumbus. Malabar, Coast of discovered by Vasco di Gama. Mozambique, Island of discovered by Vas- co di Gama. 1499. America, Eastern Coasts of discovered by Ojede and Amerigo Vespucci. (It is con- tended by some that this preceded by a year the discovery of the American Continent by Columbus.) 1500. Brazil discovered 24lh April by Alva- rez de Cabral, a Portuguese, who was driven on its coast by a tempest. He called it the Lnnd nf the Holy Cross. It was subsequently called Brazil, on account of its red wood ; and was carefully explored by Amerigo Vespucci, from 1500 to 1504. 1501. Labrador and River St. Lawrence dis- covered by Cortereal, who sailed from Lis- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. DIS 636 DIS bon on a oyage of discovery for the Portu- guese. 1502. Gulf of Mexico. Some of the shores of tliis Gulf explored by Columbus on his last voyage. St. Helena, the Island of discovered by Jean de Nova, a Portuguese. 150(5. Ceylon discovered by the Portuguese. Ceylon was known to the Romans in the time of Claudius. 15(K). Madagascar, Island of discovered by Tristan da Cunha, and revisited by the Por- tuguese navigator Fernandez Pereira, in 1508. This island was first called St. Lawrence, having been discovered on the day of that saint. * 1508. Canada visited by Thomas Aubert. Known before to fishermen who had been thrown there by a tempest. Ascension Isle discovered by Tristan da Cunha. Sumatra, Island of discovered by Siquey- ra, a Portuguese. 1511. Sumatra more accurately examined by the Portuguese. ' Molucca Isles discovered by the Portu- guese. Sunda Isles discovered by Abreu, a Por- tuguese. 1512. Maldives. A Portuguese navigator, who was wrecked on these islands, found them in occasional possession of the Arabians. Florida discovered by Ponce de Leon, ,a Spanish navigator. 1513. Borneo and Java. The Portuguese be- came acquainted with these islands? 1513. South Sea. The Great Ocean was discov- ered this year from the mountains of Darien, by Nunez de Balboa, and subsequently navi- gated by Magellan. The supposition of the New World being part of India now ceased. 1515. Peru discovered by Perez de la Rua. 1516. Kio Janeiro discovered by Dias de Solis. l.'.li;. liin ill- In I'liitit discovered by the same. 1517. China, discovery of by sea, by Fernand Perez d'Andrada. 1517. Bengal discovered bv some Portuguese thrown on the ivusl by a tempest. 1518. Mexico discovered by the Spaniards Conquered by Cortes, in l.~.l:>. 151(1. Miirll'> DISTILLATION of spirituous liquors began in the I W\ century. In Ireland in 1590. IMS I'll, LING first practised in Spain by the Moors, 1150. DKi'itY LAM: THEATRE built i6G2 ; destroyed by fire IC.T',': rebuilt KiTJ; pulled down l?:l ; rebuilt I7:l; burnt H<)9 ; rebuilt 1111.1 M!,,.ii,'d to the public, November 10, 1812. DUELLING introduced into Europe as a public mode of trial, A. D. 1096; became com- mon as a manner of settling points of honor, about 1520. EARTHQUAKES and VOLCANIC ERUP- TIONS. B. C. 427 Eruption of Etna and Earthquake ravaged environs of Catania. 373 Helice and Bura destroyed by an earth- quake, attended by a frightful inundation. 144 Isle of lliera rose from the JEgean Sea during an earthquake. A. D. 79 Eruption of Vesuvius destroys Her- culaneum and Pompeii. 115 Antioch destroyed by an earthquake. 1137 Catania swallowed up by an earthquake. 1138 Ninth eruption of Vesuvius, after which it is quiescent for Ki8 years. 1302 Ischia ravaged by a volcanic eruption pre- ceded by violent earthquakes. 1538 Monte Nuovo, a hill 440 feet high, form- ed near Naples. 1573 Island of little Kameni rises near Hiera. 1631 Eruption of Vesuvius destroys Torre del Greco with 3,000 persons. 1GG6 New eruption of Vesuvius after a pause of 35 years ; since this period in constant ac- tivity with rarely an interval exceeding ten years. 1069 Eruption of Etna; Mount Rossi, 450 feet high, formed; 14 villages and towns, and part of Catania destroyed. 1GD2 Jamaica ravaged by an earthquake,. and many of the inhabitants swallowed up by rents in the ground ; three quarters of the houses of Port Royal with the ground they occupied sank with their tenants under water. 1693 Shocks of earthquake in Sicily, which levelled Catania, and 49 other places to the ground, and destroyed 100,000 persons. 1099 Earthquakes in Java, when no less than 208 severe shocks were counted ; the fish kill- ed in the rivers by the mud which filled them, and great numbers of wild animals destroyed. 1706 Eruption of Teneriffe, attended by shocks which caused many springs to disappear and hills to rise up from the plains. 1725 Eruption of the volcano Leirhnukur, in Iceland, during which a tract of high land sank down and formed a lake, and a hill rose from the bed of a lake. 1730-36 Five years' convulsion of Lancerote ; the earth was rent, and discharged pestilen- tial vapors; smoke and flames rose from the sea with loud explosions; fiery streams of lava of great extent devastated the land, chok- HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. EAR 639 ECL ed up rivers, and running into the sea, killed great numbers offish ; 30 volcanic cones from 300 to GOO ft. high from their base were formed. 1737 Earthquake in Kamschatka, which caused an inundation of the sea, formed new hills, lakes, and bays. 1746 Earthquake in Peru ; 200 shocks expe- rienced in the first 24 hours ; Lima destroyed ; several new bays formed ; nineteen ships sunk and four carried a great distance up the country by the rise of the sea ; several volca- noes burst forth in the vicinity, and poured forth torrents of water, which overflowed ex- tensive tracts. 1750 Conception or Fenco in Chili destroyed by an earthquake, and overwhelmed by the sea. 1753 Earthquake destroyed Lisbon (Nov. 1), and 60,000 persons perished in six minutes. The sea first retired, and then rolled in, rising 50 ft. above its usual level ; the largest moun- tains in Portugal rocked and split asunder, and sent forth flames and clouds of dust. The shock was felt nearly all over Europe, in the north part of Africa, rn the Atlantic, and even in the West Indies ; a vast wave swept over the coast of Spain, in some places, 60 feet in height, and near Morocco the earth opened, swallowed up about 10,000 persons with their herds, and then closed over them. 1759 The volcano of Jorullo in Mexico rose during an earthquake from the plain of Mal- p;iis, forming a hill 1600 feet high. 1766 Violent shocks agitate Venezuela occurring hourly for above a year. 1772 Eruption of the volcano Papandayang in Java : a tract of country 15 miles long by six broad was engulfed, 40 villages swallowed up or overwhelmed, and the cone of the volcano was reduced in height 4,000 feet. 1777 During the eruption of the volcano on the side of which the city of Guatimala was built, the ground gaped open and swallowed the whole city with its 8,000 families. 1783 Earthquake in Calabria destroyed all the towns and villages, 20 miles round Oppido, and 40.000 persons were swallowed up or overwhelmed ; the shocks continued for four years. 1783 Eruption of the volcano Asamayama in Niphon, preceded by an earthquake, during which the earth yawned and swallowed many towns. 1797 Earthquake in Quito destroyed many towns and villages. 1806 An island 6'J miles in circuit with several 54* low conical hills upon it rose from the sea among the Aleutian islands. 1811 Earthquake in South Carolina, and in the valley of the Mississippi ; the latter was con- vulsed to such a degree Between the mouths of the Ohio and the St. Francis as to create lakes and islands ; and deep chasms were formed in the ground, from which vast vol- umes of water, sand, and coal were thrown up to the height of GO or 70 feet. 1812 The ,city of Caraccas destroyed by an earthquake, and 10.000 persons buried under its ruins. 1815 Eruption of the volcano Tomboro in Sum- bava, attended by whirlwinds, which com- mitted great ravages, and by a sudden rising of the sea, which submerged towns ined the cause \ his country ; was t:.k-M prisoner nt Srivannh : December. 177- ; and \vn* drowrwrl 1-Vb. .-. 177.1. in an attempt to escape .from a Britisli pris-m ship. Allen, Paul, Amcricini poet, historian and edit.,r, born at Rhode Island, and died in Balti- more, August 19th, 182G, in the 55th year of his age. Allen, William Henry, born in Rhode Island, 1734 ; a gallant officer of the United Stales navy, killed in battle on board the Argus, Aug. 1813. Anacharsis, a Scythian philosopher who re- sided most part of his life in Greece, where he flourished, B. C. GOO. Anderson, J;>s. writer on commerce, died 17G4. Andrews, John, 1). D. provost of the Univer- sity of Pennsylvania, born in Cecil county, Maryland, 174G, died in Philadelphia. Anthony,Mark. Roman general and triumviri, born B. C" 86, killed himself in Egypt after the battle of Actium, 30 B. C. Anthony, Francis, English physician, born 1550, died 1623 ; he was the inventor, and made a fortune by vending a panacea, called Jurum potabile. A rbaces, founder of the Median monarchy, B. C. 820. Arc, Joan of, a much celebrated French woman, born in Lorraine about A. D. 1400, ruined the English cause in France, was finally taken prisoner by them, and burned to death by the English at Rowen, 1431. Arius. founder of the Arian sect, died A.D. 33G. Armstrong, John, Scots physician and poet, born at Castleton, Scotland, 1709, died 1779. Arne, Thomas Augustus, musician, flourished from about 1736, to his death, 1778. Arnold, Samuel, musical composer of emi- nence, born 1739, died 1802. Arundel,earl of, who brought the Arundelian marbles, from Greece to England ; died 1645. Asaph, St. bishop of Llan-Elvy, in North Wales, to which he gave his own name, flour- ished A. D. 590. Aspasia, a Greek courtezan, one of those very rare exnrnples of mental power and moral weak- ness, became the wife of Pericles, flourished at Athens, B. C. 430. Aspasia of Phocaea. successively wife to Cy- rus the younger, and of his brother Artaxerxes Mnemoii, has be^n confounded with Aspasia of Athens, though different in country and char- acter. Athanasius, St. a very celebrated Christian bishop, born it is supposed, about 29G. He was the Catholic champion in the Arian controver- sy ; ordained bishop of Alexandria, A. D. 327, which he held 46 years to his death, 373. Atticus, Pcmponius, the friend of Cicero, and an example n in id blood and violence, of the best ci.'ects of stoical philosophy, born B. C. 100, died 33. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. EMI 641 EMI Atterbury, Francis, eminent English prelate, born I6;J2, made bishop of Rochester, 1713 ; but in 1722 deprived and banished by act of parlia- ment ; died at Paris, 173L Bainbridge, Commodore William, a distin- guished commander in the American navy. He was born at Princeton, N. J. on the 7th of May, 1774; died at Philadelphia, July 27, 1833, in his 6Jth year. Banks, sir Joseph, English philosopher, a most distinguished man in science and litera- ture, and president of the royal society, born 1740. Baranzano Redemptus, deserves a place in history, as one of the founders of inductive science, was contemporary and correspondent of chancellor Bacon ; born in Piedmont, 1590, died at Montargis, 1622. Barberac, John, eminent jurisconsult, and writer on the laws of nations, born at Beziers, 1674, died 1747. Barclav, Robert, apologist for the quakers, born 1648. died 1690, aged only 42. Baretti, Italian lexicographer, author of an esteemed English and Italian Dictionary, was born at Turin, 1716; came to England and be- came one 'if the companions of Johnson, Burke, &c. died 1789, aged 73. Barneveldt, John Olden, grand pensionary of Holland, born 1547, became one of the greatest diplomatists of his age, but by adopting the opinions of Arminius, was involved in the relig- ious controversies which then distracted his country. By his influence in great part, Spain, in lli'J.), acknowledged the independence of the seven united provinces ; under frivolous charg- es he was beheaded, 1619, aged 72. Barrow, Isaac, eminent English divine and mathematician, born in London 1630, died 1677. Barthelerny, John James, eminent French writer, author of " the travels of the younger Anacharsis," born at Cassis in Provence 171(3, died April 30th, 1795, in his 80th year. Basil. St. bishop of Ancyra, died 378, aged 51. Bass, Edward, first bishop of Massachusetts, born I72.J, died 1803, aged 77. Bassi, Laura, an Italian lady of great literary acquirements, flourished 1732, to her death at Bologna, 1778. Baxter. Richard, eminent English non-con- formist divine, and religious writer, born 1U15, died 16!) I, aged 76. Bavard. John, eminent patriot in our revolu- tion, born in Maryland, 1738, died 1807, aged 68 years. Beatty, William, captain in the Maryland line under colonel Howard ; was particularly dis- tinguished in the battle of the Cowpens, and in other battles of the revolution, and iell in battle. Beccaria, Ctesar, marquis of Bonesana, author of the " treatise on crimes and punishments," born 1720, died November, 1794, a-lTsh law writer, flourish ed 1550-58. Brooke, Henry, author of" The Fool of Qual HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. EMI 643 EMI ity," an excellent novel, born in Ireland, 1700, died October, 18u3, aged 77. Brooke, Robert, burn at London, June 3d, 1602; an early emigrant to Maryland, arrived June 2 >th, 1650; " he was the first who did seat Patuxent, about 20 miles up the river, at Delia Brooke.'" He died, July 20th, 1655. Battel creek, in Calvert county, Maryland, is so named from the town of Battel, in Sussex, whence Mr. Brooke removed, when he set out for America. Browne, John, Scots M. D. author of the " Elements of Medicine," born 1735, died 1788, aged 53. Bruno, founder of the Carthusians, died A. D.I 101, aged 71. Buclian, Dr. William, author of " Domestic Medicine," &c. died Feb. 25th, 1805, aged 7(i. Buchanan, George. Scots poet and historian, born 1506, died 1582,' aged 76. Buchanan, George, M. D. one of the founders and first commissioners engaged in 1729, to set- tle and purchiise the land of the city of Balti- more, died 1745. Buchanan, Claudius, eminent missionary to the East Indies, died Feb. t)th, 1315. Burgh, James, author of " The dignity of Human Nature," died 1775, aged 61. Burrows, William, born October 6, 1785; a gallant officer in the United States navy, who fell a victim in the moment of his glory, 6th Sept. 1813, commanding the Enterprize, which engaged the Boxer ; he received a mortal wound early in the action, and when the sword of the enemy was presented to him, he exclaim"(i. ''I am satisfied I die content;" and soon after expired. Action forty-five min- utes. Burkitt, William, English divine, and author of " A Commentary on the New Testament," born in England 1650, died 1703, aged 53. Burlamaqui, John James, author of principles of Natural Laws; born at Geneva, 1694, died there 1750, aged 56. Burleigh, lord Exeter, made minister of state to queen Elizabeth, 1560, died 1598. Burnet, Gilbert, bishop of Salisbury, and author of" the History of the Reformation of the Church of England ;" " History of his own Times," &c. born in Scotland 1643; died March 17th, 1715, aged 72. Burton, Robert, author of" the Anatomy of Melancholy," died 1639, aged 63. Butler, Joseph, bishop ofDurham, and author of "the Analogy of Religion," &c. born in England 1692, died 1752, aged 60. Butler, Samuel, English poet, author of IIu- dibras. born in 16M, died JU8U, aged 80. Buller, Richard, officer of the revolutionary war, colonel of Morgan's rifle corps, and shared at Saratoga, and many other places, the renown of that admirable body. After a life of honor, colonel Butler fell, in the defeat of St. Clair's army, by the Indians, November 4, 1791. Butler, Thomas, brother of Richard, and a brave United States' officer, joined the army in 1776 ; was at Brandy wine battle on the llth of September of that year; served through the war, and was very severely wounded in the war with the Indians, at the battle where his brother fell. His latter years were imbittered by disputes with general Wilkinson, which was closed by death, Sept. 7th, 1805, aged 51. He would not yield to the general order, which re- quired officers and soldiers to cut the hair close to the head. Butler, Zebulon, was born at Lyme in Mas- sachusetts, 1731 ; entered into military service early in life, and served through the French war, from 1755 to 1763. When the revolution- ary war commenced, he was appointed colonel in the Connecticut line. Died July 28th, 1795, in his 64th year. Cadwallader, John, an early patriot of the American revolution, was born in Philadelphia, 1743; appointed brigadier general and had a share in the operations at Trenton and Prince- ton in the winter of 1776 7; died February 10th, 1786 in his 44th year. Calmet, a learned Benedictine, died in France October 25, 1757, aged 86. Calvert, George, baron of Baltimore, founder of Maryland, was of Flemish descent, born at Kipling, in Yorkshire, England, 1582, and edu- cated at Oxford; in 1619, he was made by Charles I, king of England, one of the principal secretaries of state ; resigned that office, 1624, made baron of Baltimore, 1625, obtained a pa- tent for Maryland, June 20th 1632, and died at London the same year. Camper, Adrian Gilles, revived Craniology, and was eminent as a comparative anatomist, flourished 1789. Canning, George, eminent English states- man, and late premier of England, died August 8th, 1827, aged 57. Carey, Wm.,D.D. of the English Baptist mis- sion at Serampore, was born Aug. 17, 1761. He was the son of a poor man, and commenced bu- siness in hie as a shoemaker. By industry and application he acquainted himself with Hebrew and various other languages. In 1793, he left CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY EMI 644 EMI spectable Irish family ; was of the Catholic reli- gion, and inherited a very Nov. 14, 1832 England for India. He translated the Scriptures into Bengalee, and into all the principal langua- ges of Moithern Hindostan, and compiled also a voluminous Bengalee Dictionary; died 18:54. Carroll, Charles, of Carrollton, the last sur- viving si Clark, Kev. Adam, LL. D., F. S. A., &c., a distinguished Methodist preacher and divine! a man of great talents and extensive learning, particulnily in the oriental languages and bibli- cal Ijentii.-r. and author of a well known and learned commentary on the Scriptures, and va- rious other publications. He was born in 1763, in the county of Londonderry, in Ireland, his father being of an English family, and his mo- ther a Scotchwoman. By invitation of Mr. John Wesley he became a pupil in Kingswood school then recently established, and was sent out by Mr. Wesley, an itinerant preacher, in 1782, at the early age of 19. He was greatly admired as a preacher : at first his youth attracted great numbers of hearers ; but afterwards the extent of his resources, from the gifts of nature and the fruits of study, commanded attention wher- ever he went ; and hardly any man ever drew so large congregations, or of so mixed a charac- ter. He continued to travel in various circuits, till 1805, when he took up his residence in Lon- don, where he passed a considerable part of his subsequent life. To his great talents and learn- ing he united the virtues of the humble Chris- tian ; was greatly respected by all denomina- tions; and though catholic in his feelings, he was strongly attached to the body of Christians with which he was connected ; died, August 26, 1834, at Bayswater, near London, of the cholera, aged 72. Clark, Abraham, one of the signers of the de- claration of independence, born in New Jersey, 15th February, 1726; died by a stroke of the sun, 1794, in the 69th year of his age. Clayton, John, an eminent English botanist, author of " The Flora Virginica," was born in England, about 1685 ; came an infant with his father to America, and in 1722, became clerk of the county of Gloucester, Virginia, which oflice he held 51 years, to his death, 1773, aged 88. Clerke, Charles, able English naval comman- der, the companion, friend and successor of cap- tain James Cook, died on the coast of Kams- chatka, August 22d, 1779, aged 39. Clinton, Charles, was born in the county of Longford, Ireland, 1690; came to America, 1729 ; died, 1773, aged nearly 83. Cloriviere, Joseph Peter Picot, director of the monastery of the Visitation in George-Town. D. C. horn at Broons, in Brittany, France, 4th No- vember, 1768. In the French Revolution, he sided with the royal party; reputed inventor of the famous infernal machine, and in conse- quence was compelled to leave his country ; be- came subsequently a priest in Baltimore and Charleston. South Carolina, in the former of which places' he took orders from aichbishop Carroll, in 1812; and in 1819 was appointed over the monastery in George-Town, \\herehe closed his life, on September 30th, 1826, aged 57 ; a distinguished and respectable man. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. EMI 645 EMI physi< Clum, Mrs. near Litr.hfield, England, died Jan. 28th, 1772, aged 13d, and had lived 103 years in one house. Colden, Cadwallader, mathematician and phi- losopher, born at Demse, in Scotland, February 17th, 1088; came to America, 1708, and to which he removed his family 1710, settled in New- York. He died, September '28th, 1776, on the day of the conflagration of New- York, aged Cole, William, a great botanist, born in Eng- land, 1026, died 1662, aged 36 Condillac, Stephen Bonnet de, French meta- ysician, died 1780. Confucius, Chinese philosopher, born, B. C. 555. Copernicus, Nicholas, restorer of the Pytha- gorean, or true system of the Universe, born at Thorn, in Prussia, February 19, 1473 ; he com- pleted his astronomical system, in 1530 ; not published until 1543, and then only under the authority, and at the 'expense of cardinal Ni- cholas Schcenburg. A copy of this treatise, the " .Istronomia Instaurata, s'ive de Reculutionilms Orbium Celestrum" reached the hand of its il- lustrious author, only a few hours before his death, May 22d, 1543, in his 71st year. Corneille, Thomas, brother to the more fa- mous Peter Corneille, French dramatist and his- torian, died 1709. Corn-a, de Serra Abbe, eminent Portuguese naturalist and statesman, was born at Serpa, in Portugal, 1754, several years ambassador from Portugal to the United "States, returned to his nativecountry, about 1818, and died. Correlli, signora, received the triumph of a coronation at "Rome, July 1776. Cosmo de Medicis, died 1464, aged 75. Crabbe, Rev. George, LL. B.. a distinguished poet. He was born at Aldborough, in Suffolk, December 24, 1754 ; and, after having received a very limited classical education, he was ap- prenticed to the business of a surgeon and apo- thecarv; but he had little fondness for his pro- fession ; and having cultivated a taste for poetry, he repaired to London, at about the age of 24, as a literary adventurer. After having attempt- ed in vain to gain the favorable notice of the public, the " youth to fortune and to fame un- known" ventured, without an introduction, to make application to the celebrated Edmund Burke, and committed to him al::r again'in the revolutionary war, and finally in the Indian war, under general St. Clair, on No- vember 4th, 1701, died November 26th, 1801, aged 66. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. EMI 646 EMI Darn ley, lord, king of Scotland, and father of James VI, murdered February 10. 15G7. Davenant, Charles, English statistical writer, and amongst the first of that class in that king- dom, died 1714. aged 58. Davidson, William, a native of Lancaster county, Pennsylvania, born 1746, and in 1750, removed by Ins parents to Mecklenburg, North Carolina. At the opening of the revolutionary war, he entered the army, in which he rose to the rank of general, and fell defending the pas- sage of Catawba River against Lord Corn- wallis. February 1st, 17cil. Daun, Leopold count, marshal of the German empire, and during the seven years' war, the most successful opponent of Frederic the great, died 17(i(i, aged 61. Day, John, printer, the first who introduced the Greek and Saxon characters into England, died 1584. Deane, Silas, member of congress, died in extreme poverty in England, 1781. Defoe, Daniel, author of Robinson Crusoe, died 1731. De 1'Isle, Joseph Nicholas, French astrono- mer, died 1772. De 1'Isle, Wm., French geographer, died 1726. De Lima, John Taverra. a native of Portugal, died 17138, aged 1!!8. Denharn,Sir John, poet, born in Dublin 1615, died KiG8, aged 53. Derham, William, English divine and ma- thematician, died in 1735, aged 78. Dickenson, John, distinguished American statesman and patriot, entered public office 1764, died in 1808. Didot, Francis Ambrose, eminent French printer, died July 10, 1804, aged 74. Digges, Dudley, English statesman, died 1639, aged 56. Doddridge, Philips, eminent English divine, died 1751, aged 49. Domat, John, eminent French judge and ju- rist, born 1625. died at Paris 16'Jfl, aged 71. Dow, Rev. Lorenzo, a celebrated but eccen- tric Methodist preacher. He was a native of Connecticut; and in his course of 30 years' preaching, he tnvelled over England and Ire- land, and visited almost every part of the I'nited States. II.- is supposed to have preached to mure penonslban any other man of his time. He died at Georgetown, D. C. Feb. 2d. 1-:M. Dr:i<-<>, the lawgiver, flourished B. C. 624. Drake, sir Franris, born 1545; set sail on bis voyage round the world 1577; died 1595, aged 50. Drayton, Michael, English poet, died 1631, aged 58. Draylon, William Henry, an American pat- , riot and political writer, author of " Freeman" born 1742, died a member of Congress, 1779, aged 37. Drelincourt, Charles, French Protestant di- vine, died 1669, aged 74. Drummond, William, poet, died 1649, aged 63. Dryden, John, eminent English poet, died 1700, aged 69. Dlucos, Charles Dineau, French historian and didactic writer, died 1772, aged 57. Duncan, king of Scotland, murdered by Mac- beth, A. D. 1054. Duncan, William, author of " Logic" died 1760 aged 43. Dunstan, St. archbishop of Canterbury, from 959 to 988, was one of the violent apostles of clerical celibacy. Dyer, John, English poet, born 1700, died 1758, aged 58. Edward, the black prince, English hero, son of Edward III, died in France, 1376, aged 46. Ellwood. Thomas, an eminent member of the society of Friends; at 21 he joined the society, and became as a preacher and writer, one of their most efficient members to his death, 1713, in his 74th year. Klstol, William, a Saxon scholar, died 1714. Epicurus, founder of the sect which bore hia name; born at Athens, B. C. ?42, died 271, aged 71 . ^Epimenides. a Cretan philosopher, contetn porarv with Solon, said to have lived 157 years Erastothenes, one of the greatest, mathema- ticians, of antiquity ; the first in Europe who measured a degree of the meridian, and the first who accurately determined the inclination of the earth's axis to the plane of the ecliptic, died B. C. HIS, aged 80. Eumenes of Pergamos, one of the rrrnerals of Alexander the Great, put to death B. C. 315. Euripides, one of the most ancient and great- est Greek tragic poets, died B. C. 405, aged 75. Eusebius, Pamphylus bishop Cajsarea, flour- ished A. D. 270-340. Eusebius, bishop of IS'icomedia, an Arian, flourished 3;>H-11. Eusebius. bishop of Emessa, theological wri- ter, flourish. (I 340-60. Kusebins, bishop of Verceil, theological wri- ter, flourished 354-70. These bishops of the same name and age are almost invariably confounded. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. v . * EMI 647 EMI Evelyn, John, English historian and poet, died 1698, aged 44. Evelyn, John, English natural philosopher, died 1706, aged 77. Evremont, Saint, died September 9lh, 17C3, agediM). Farenheit, Gabriel Daniel, inventor of the Thermometer which bears his name, born at Hamburg, flourished 1720. Fancourt. Samuel, the first who opened a circulating library in London ; he came to that city about 1740, and set up his library ; died in poverty 1768, aged 90. Farinello, eminent Italian opera singer, died in England, about 1780. Farquhar, George, dramatic writer, died 1707, ;iged 20. Falstnlf, Sir John, celebrated English general, flourished under the Henries IV , V and VI, and died about 1460. Fayette, Mary Magdalen Proche de la Vergne, countess of, dramatic, historical and biographi- cal writer, flourished at the court of Louis XIV 1(570-93. Ferdinando, Marc de Paleotti, hanged in England for murder, February 28th, 1718 ; he was brother to the duchess of Shrewsbury. Ferarr, Lawrence, Earl, committed to the tower of London for murdering his steward, Feb. 13, 1760; tried, found guilty April Id, and hanged at Tyburn May 5, 1760. *! Fletcher, Andrew, commonly canVsrf Fletcher of Salton, Scots political writer, died 1716, aged 63. Fleurv. Claude, French ecclesiastical writer, and coadjutor of Fenelon, as preceptors, died 1723, aged 83. Fontenelle, Bernard le Bovier de, author of Plurality of Worlds, born 1657, and lived to Jan. 17.17, or to nearly 100 years. Fordyce, James, brother of David, eminent Scots divine, and author of Sermons to Young Women, died 1796, aged 76. Forrest, Uriah, a brave officer of the Mary- land line, in the American revolutionary war, born in St. Mary's county, 1756; losing a leg in the battle of Germantown, was forced to re- tire from service. Forster, John Reinhold, author of Northern Voyages, bom in Polish Prussia 1729 ; circum- navigated the earth with captain Cook ; died Jamiary 9, 1779. aged 70. Fortescue, sir John, English law writer, flour- ished about 1460. Foster, sir Michael, eminent English crown lawyer, died 1763, aged 74. 55 Fothergill, Dr. John, born in Yorkshire, Eng- land, 1712, in 1748, published his treatise on putrid sore throat ; died 1780, aged 68. Fox, Richard, bishop of Exeter, eminent English statesman, died 1528, aged 68. Freneau, Philip, a poet of the American rev- olution ; died at Freehold, N. J., Dec. 18th, 1832, aged about 80. Frith, John, an early martyr to the reforma- tion in England, was burned about 1533; Frith's work on the Eucharist, is supposed to have been the first English treatise on the side of the reformed doctrines. Froisart, John, early French historian, died 1402, aged 69. Fromage, Peter, eminent French Catholic mis- sionary, born at Laon. 1678, died 1740, aged 62. Fuller, Rev. Dr. Thomas, eminent English divine and ecclesiastical writer, born 1608, died 1661, aged 53. Fust, or Faustus of Mentz, one of the earliest printers in Europe, died about 1466. Gallilei. Galhleo,oneof the greatest revivers of modern science, born at Pisa, 1564 ; made professor of mathematics in the university of Pisa, 1590; removed to Venice 1592, where he exercised the duties of a similar office, till 1611 ; in 1609, he had made the first Telescope, died 1642, in his 78th year. Ganesvoort, Gen. Peter, was born in Albany, N. Y. July 16th, 1749; joined ithe American army as a major, 1775, but raised to the rank of colonel the ensuing year; on August 2d, 1777, he was besieged with his command in fort Stan- wix, where Rome in Oneida county now stands, by Colonel St. Leger, with a body of British tories and Indians, who after a most gallant de- fence, were repelled and forced to retreat, on August 22d. He continued in the arrny to the close of the war, though from March 1782 in the immediate service of New York ; he was appointed by president Madison, a brigadier general, in which service he continued to his death, July 2d, 1812, aged 63. Garden, Alexander, eminent botanist, born in Scotland. 1730, removed to Charleston, S. Carolina, 1752, died in London 1791, aged 61. Garth, Dr. Samuel, English poet, flourished 1691-1719. Gascoigne, sir William, eminent English lawyer and judge, born 1350, died 1413, aged 63. Gassendi, Peter, eminent French astrono- mer and philosopher, one of the great restorers of inductive philosophy, died 1655. aged 63. Gay, John, eminent English poet, died 1732 aged 44. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. EMI 648 EMI Gebhard, Rev. John G. born Feb. 2it, 1730, at Waldorf, in Germany; educated at the uni- versity of Heidelberg, emigrated to America, 1771, died in the state of New York, August 17th, le2G, in the 77th year of his age, and the 55th of his ministry. Gebee, Claude, usually called Claude de Lor- raine, eminent landscape painter, died 1G82, aged 62. Gerard, French nobleman, and first grand master of the knio-hts of St. John of Jerusalem, flourished A. D. 1 100. Gessner, John Mathias, eminent German philologist, died 17(il, aged 70. Gessner, Solomon, German philologist, died 1G05, aged 40. Gibson. Col. John, an officer of the revolu- tionary war, born at Lancaster, Pennsylvania, May 23d, 1740, served under Gen. Forbes when that officer took Fort du Quesne ; entered the army as a colonel early in the war, and contin- ued through it; died at Braddock's Field, near Pittsburg, April 10th. 1822. aged nearly 82. Gibson, Col. George, an officer of the revo- lutionary army, a native of Lancaster, Pennsyl- vania, settled early In life at Pittsburg, joined the army as a colonel, and served to the end of 1778. In the war with the Indian tribes, Col. Gibson again commanded a legiment, and shar- ed the fatal dangers of St. Clair's campaign ami defeat, in the latter of which he received a mor- tal wound, which terminated an honorable and eventful life at Fort Jefferson, Dec. I Hh, 1794. Gilbert, sir Humphrey, half brother to s;r Walter Raleigh, and one of tlie earliest I'.nglish adventurers, who attempted to form a colony in America, born 1539; in 157G, published "A treatise to prove a passage by the north-west to Indies." In ]">?-<, lie obtained a patent to make a settlement in North America, and in that year made a voyage to Newfoundland, re- turned to Europe, and in ir>.S1,on his homeward bound voyage, from another trip to America, was lost with all his crew. (Jill, Dr. John, eminent scriptural commen- fit..r. died 1771, aged 74. Glanvii.Joseph, eminent English philosopher, ili-d l:-o. ;-.:-,(! -VS. r. John Rodolph, from whom the well I; no \v n :..!< lahi's i!s name, flourished KUi.'-Ci. .. Fr-.nei::. ciniiicii!. Kn^li.-h .M. 1). President of the College of Physicians, London," died 1G77, aged tiO. The man who was one of the f.niiKli-rs of UN- Royal Society, and eulo- gized by Bovrlnave and Halier. Glover, Ilichard,Eng. poet, died 1785, aged 73. Gluck, le Chevalier Christopher, eminent German musical composer, died at Vienna, 1787, aged 71. Godfrey, Thomas, inventor of the Quadrant commonly called Hadley's. By the latter he was cheated out of the credit of the invention ; bom in Philadelphia, where he died in Decem- ber, 1749. Godeau, eminent French ecclesiastical histo- rian, died 1G72, aged G7. Goethe, John Wolfgang von, died at Weimar, Germany, March 22, 1832, aged 82. He was an eminent author and a romantic poet, held in great repute by his countrymen and admirers ; and styled " tlie patriarch of German litera- ture ;" according to a writer in " The Foreign Quarterly Review," " the first man of his na- ticn and time ; " and according to Prince Fuck- ler Mu^kau, " the third in the great triumvi- rate with Homer and Shakspeare." He was born on the 28th of August, 1749, at Frankfort on the Maine. At the age of 15, he- went to the University of Leipsic ; and after passing four years there, he resided a\vhile in Alsace 3 , and then returned to his native city. About ihe year 177G. on the invitation of the Grand Duke, he vent to Weimar, where he pa^ed. the remainder of his life, loaded by his patrdn , .with .honors, ennobled, made a privy r, and for many years prime minister. Owi^^Si part to tlie liberal ; Granouuke, the little court of Weimar was a distinguished focus of German literature ; and in the eaflv years of the present century, this place reckoned among its residents more than twenty writers of note, at the head of whom were 'Goethe, Schiller, Wieland, Herder, and for a time, Kotzebue. SoVne of .the most cele- brated of the productions of Goethe ;:n> tlu' "Sorrows of Werther," "Faust," and " Wilhehii JMeister's Apprenticeship." The edition of his works published at Stuttgard and Tubingen, in 1830, comprises 40 volumes. He left his MSS. to the caie of Dr. Eckermann. whom he ap- pointed editor of hia posthumous productions; and an edition of his whole works now publish- ing, will comprise fifty-five volumes. lie main- tained for many years a tranquil empire over the literature of his country, which was 1 implic- itly acquiesced in by the candidates for literary lame ; yet his work.* have been mucii complain- ed of as clmracterized by unintelligible mysti- cism, and as of irreligious and immoral ten- dency. Gordon, Lord George, died in Newgate, Nov 1, 17-J3. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL EMI 649 EMI Gore, Capt. John, the friend and companion of Capt. Cook, was born in Virginia, 1735 ; early in life he entered the British navy, and made his first voyage round the world with Commo- dore Byron. In 1763, he was appointed second lieutenant of the Endeavour, under Captain Cook, and again circumnavigated the earth. In 177(5, he was appointed first lieutenant of the Resolution, and by the, successive deaths of Captains Cook and Clerke, returned to Europe, 'October, 1780, commander of the squadron. Ended his days as one of the captains of Green- wich Hospital, Aug. 10th, 1790, aged 55. GranvilIe,Geo., Eng. poet, died I735,aged68. Greene, Col. Christopher, a relation of Gen. Nathaniel Greene, and a native of Warwick, Rhode Island, was born 1737, and in May, 1775, entered the service as a lieutenant. He was with Montgomery at Quebec, where he became a prisoner. Soon after his exchange, he joined his reonrnent, to the comnKind of which he rose in 1777. He fell May 22d, 1781, in an action with some tories near New York. Greenville, Sir' Richard, commander of the first English colony sent to North America, was born 1540; in June, 1558, landed on the shores of the Roanoke, and left a small colony which was subsequently, it is probable, destroyed by the savages, as no trace of them could be ever afterwards discovered. Greenville shared with Howard, Drake, Raleigh, Hawkins 'and dFndii- gher, the renown of defeating the Spanish Ar- inada. In 1591, he was made Vice Admiral of a squadron sent out to the West Indies. In this expedition he fell in with a superior force, and in the action his ship was taken and him- self mortally wounded. Greenville, Sir Bevil, grandson of Admiral Greenville, was born 1596, and slain in the bat- tle of Lansdown, near Bath, 1(14:5. Grenville, Lord William Wyndham, was a distinguished statesman and powerful debater, born Oct. ii">, 1759. the third son of George Grenville, Prime Minister of England in 1763- 5. The secret of the authorship of " Junius " is said to have been entrusted to Lord Gren- ville, and that it would be disclosed 'after his death; and the office of making the disclosure, some have, supposed, has been confided to his nephew, Lord Nugent. He died at his seat, Dropmore, in Buckinghamshire, on the 12th of Janua^, 1834, aged 74. Grimston, sir Harbottle, English law writer, died 1683. Guido of Arezzo, musical composer, of the llth century. Guise, Francis de Lorraine, duke of, celebrat- ed' French general, murdered at Orleans. 1563. aged 44. "Guise, Henry de Lorraine, duke of, son of Francis, who with his brother Cardinal de Lor- raine, was murdered 1588, at the instigation of Henry III king of France. Gunter, Edmund, eminent English mathe- matician, author of the scale and chain which bears his name, died 1626, aged 45. Hale, sir Matthew, eminent English Judge, died 1676, aged 67. Hammond, James, eminent English elegiac poet, died 1740, aged 30. Harris, John, the first compiler of a dictionary of arts and sciences in England, died a beggar, 1719, aged 49. Hartley, David, eminent English metaphysi- cian, died 1757, aged 53. Harvey, Dr. William, who discovered the circulation of the blood, died June 3d, 1658, aged 80. Hauser, Caspar, a personage whose history i9 enveloped in mystery, died at Anspach, Bavaria, of wounds inflicted by an unknown assassin, Dec. 17th, 1833. On the 26th of May, 1828, a youth, apparently about 16 or 17 years of age. was found at one of the gates of Nurem- berg ; but he was unable to give any account of himself, nor could it be discovered who brought him there, whence he came, or who he was. He was 4 feet and 9 inches in height ; was very pale ; had a short delicate beard on his chin and upper lip ; his limbs were slender; his feet bore no marks of having been confined in shoes ; he scarcely knew how to use his fingers or hands; and his attempts to walk re- sembled the first efforts of a child. When spoken to he understood nothing that was said to him, and only replied in a few words of un- intelligible gibberish ; and his countenance was expressive of gross stupidity. He held in his hand a letter addressed to th captain of one of the cavalry companies of Nuremberg, dated ''Bavarian Frontiers; place nameless." Its purport was that the bearer had been left with the writer, who was a poor laborer, in October. 1812, and who, not knowing his parents, had brought him up in his house, without allowing him to stir out of it. A note accompanying the letter contained these words : " His father was one of the light cavalry : send him, when he is 17 years old, to Nuremberg, for his father was stationed there. He was born April 30, 1812 I arn a poor girl, and cannot support him : his father is dead." A pen being put into his CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. EMI 050 EMI hands, he wrot? in plain letters Caspar Haiiscr. ' He appeared to be hungry and thirsty, but man- ifested great aversion to eating or drinking any tiling that was ofi'ered to him except bread and water. He fell into the hands of persons who treated him kindly., and taught him the use of language ; and he manifested the most amiable and grate- ful disposition. But he could give no account of himself, except that, as far back as he could remember, he had always inhabited a small cell. continually seated on the ground, with his i'eet naked, and having no covering except a shirt and trousers, and he had never seen the sky. When he awoke from sleep he was accustomed to find near him some bread and a pitcher of water ; but he never saw the face of the person who brought them; and it was at Nuremberg that he first learnt there were other living crea- tures besides himself and the man with whom he had always been. Previous to his death Hauser resided at Anspach, where he had a little employment in the registrar-office, and Lord Stanhope had also provided for his sup- port. Some time before his assassination, an ineffectual attempt had been made upon his life by the same assassin, as is supposed, that finally inflicted the fatal blow with a dagger. Heath, Gen. William, born at Ro.vbury. Mas- sachusetts, in 1737, and died in his native place, Jan. 24th, 18!4, aged 77. Amongst the first to take up arms in favor of his insulted country, was appointed by the provincial congress of Massachusetts, in 1775, a brigadier general; was by the continental congress, in 177(5, raised to the rank of major general, and served through the war. Hedwig, John, eminent botanist, died 17f>7 aged G7. Herodotus, the father of history, horn at Hal- icarn.isstis in Curia, R. C. 481, flourished B. 0. 441) ; time <>f his dealh unknown. His hist' ry includes a period of '234 years, from B. C. 71;} to 47! I. H.-rvey, James, English divine and poet, nn- thor of" Meditations," &,. died I?:,*, nred 44. Hay ward, Thomas, one of the signers of the declaration of inde|x>ndence. born in South Carolina, 17lii: dird March. l~()!l. II, II. Aaron, dramatic English prK.died 17.">0, Hillhouse, James, a man very highly respect- ed for his private virtues and liis great and lonir continued public services; was born at . Mont" ville, Conn., Oct. 21, I754, nrid died at New Haven, Dec. 2U, 1832, in his 7!'th year. Hoadley, Benjamin, eminent English divine and bishop of Winchester, died 1701, aged 85. liobbes, Thomas, celebrated English writer, died 1670, aged ill. Hogarth. William, eminent English painter, died f7G4, aged 67. Holbein, Hans, eminent Swiss painter, died 1554, aged 56. Holt, sir John, eminent English lawyer and judge, died 1709, awed 07. Holwell, John 2ephaniah, commander, and one of the few survivors of a party of 146 En- glish, who were confined by the Nabob of Ben- gal in 175G, in what was called, " The Black Hole " at Calcutta. Mr. Holwell wrote an ac- count of this dreadful affair, which he survived 42 years, dying in 17<>8, aged 89. Home, Henry, Lord Kaimes. eminent critic, born in Scotland. 1696, died 1762, aged 80. Hooker, Rev. Richard, author of Ecclesias- tical Polity, died 16UO, aged 47. Hoole, John, English poet, translator of the Orlando Furioso, and Jerusalem Delivered, died 1803, aged 7ti. Hudson, Henry, eminent naval commander and discoverer in North America, flourished from 1607 to 1610. In the latter year, whilst navigating the bay which now bears his name, his crew mutinied, and put him. his son, and seven others on shore, where they no doubt perished. HumV. David, philosopher and historian, died August 2T)th, 1776, aged 05. Humphrey, Col. David, patriot of the Ameri- can revolution, born in Connecticut, 1752; in 1780 was appointed one of the aids to Gen. Washington, with whom he remained through the residue of the war. and at its termination accompanied him tn Virginia. Col. Humphrey was distinguished for his gallantry and military skill at the siege of York. He remained with Gen. Washington, until 17110. with the excep- tion of two years residence in France. In 17'JO, he was appointed minister to Portugal, and for the residue of his life was alternately in public and private life. He died, Feb. 21st, 1818, aged (JO* "Hunter, John, eminent surgeon, died very suddenly in St. George's hospital, 1793, aged 65. Hyde, Edward, Earl of Clarendon, grand- father to Queens Mary II and Anne, and author of a history of the grand rebellion, ^ied at Rouen, 1674, aged 66. Jane, the insane, daughter of Ferdinand and rubella, became mother of the emperors Charles V and Ferdinand I. The death of her husband HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. EMI 651 EMI affected her reason ; she became insane in 1506, and remained so to her death, 1555, 49 years. Jasper, sergeant, distinguished for gallantry in the revolutionary war; June 23th, 1776, in the celebrated attack of sir Peter Parker, on Fort Moultrio, he replaced the American flag after it was shot away by a cannon ball. He with the aid of sergeant Newton, waylaid, sur- prised and captured, a British guard often mtn, releasing an American of the name of Jones, whom they were conducting to certain death at Savannah. This extraordinary exploit \vas performed within about two miles from the British lines ; killed in the attack on Savannah Oct. 9, 1779. Jerome. St. died A. D. 420, aged 80. John, eminent Swiss naturalist, born at Zu- rich, 1709, died 1790, a^ed 81. Janes, sir William, English poet, statesman, and oriental scholar, born in London, 174(5, died in Indostan, April 27th, 1794., aged 47.. Julius Ctssar. much celebrated Roman gen- eral, born B. C. July 10th, 100; murdered March loth, 44, ao-ed 56, Justin, a Latin historian, flourished it is sup- posed under Antoninus Pius. Kaufman, Angelica, eminent female painter; died 1807, a 2 ed 67. Kenn -.k, VVilliam, dramatic writer, died 1777. Klopstock, Frederick Theoohilus, eminent German poet, born 1724, died 1803, aged 79. Kneller, sir Godfrey Theophilus, eminent German poet, aged 75. Laud, Archbishop, beheaded, 1645, aged 71. La Place, marquis, Peter Simon, author of the Mechanique Celiste," born 1740, died 1827. Lavater, the physiognomist, died in his native city, Zurich. Lawrence, sir Henry, a celebrated portrait painter, born at Bristol, England, 1769, died Jan. 9, 1830. Lee, Francis Lightfoot, one of the signers of the Declaration of^Independence, born Oct. 14, I~-:A. Lenox, Earl of, Recent of Scotland, murder- ed 1571. Leo IX, the first Pope who kept an army, 1054. Lever, sir Ashton, collector of a museum, died 1788. L'Enclos, Ninon de, died 1706, aged 80. Linnaeus, Charles Von, eminent botanist, died at Upsal in Sweden, January 10, 1778, aged 71. Liverpool, Lord, distinguished premier of Entrlaiid. born June 17tJi,1769, died December 18th, 1828. Livius, Titus, eminent Roman historian, died A. D- 18, aged 76. Long, Gabriel, the last of Gen. Morgan's captains, died at his residence in Cul pepper county, Virginia, Feb. 3d, 1827. It is said that this intrepid soldier fought in eighteen battles. Longinus, eminent critic, put to death by the Roman emperor Aurelian, A. D. 273. Loyala, Ignatius, founder of the Jesuits, died 1556, aged 65. Lucan. Latin epic poet, born at Corduba. in Spain, A. D. 37; put to death by Nero, 64, aged 27. Lucius, the first Christian king of Britain, reigned 77 years, founded the first church in London, which was made the see of an arch- bishop, afterwards removed to Canterbury. A. D. 179. Lucretius, Latin poet, born at Rome, B. C. 95, died 52, aged 43. Lyttleton, Lord, Eng. poet, died 1773, aged 73. Mackintosh, sir James, Kt., M. P., D. L. C., &c., was born October, 24, 1765, at Alldowrie in the county of Inverness, Scotland, and was educated at King's College, Aberdeen, where he had for a fellow-student the celebrated Rob- ert Hall. He died in London, May 30th, 18:52. Macklin, Charles, famous comedian, died July llth, 1797, aged 97. Magellan. Ferdinand, whose ship was the first which was navigated round the world ; killed on the voyage, 1520. Malbone. Edward G., an eminent miniature painter, died 1807. Malebranche, Nicholas, philosopher, born at Paris 1638, died 1715, aged 77. Malhefbe. Francis, French poet and critic, died 1028, aged 72. Malthus, celebrated English writer on politi- cal statistics, died Dec. 30, 1834. Margaret, Countess of Richmond and Derby. mother of king Henry VII, died June 29, 1509 i Margaret, Countess of Salisbury, daughter of the duke of Clarence, brother of Edward IV ; beheaded May 27th, 1541, aged 70. Marechal, Ambrose, Catholic archbishop of Baltimore, born at Orleans, France, 1768; died in Baltimore January 29th, 1828, aged 60. Maria Theresa, empress of Germany, mother of the unfortunate Maria Antoinette, queen of France, born 1717 ; married the duke of Lor- raine, 1736; succeeded her father, 1740; died 1780, aged 63. Marion, Gen. Francis, a brave and active officer in the southern war of the revolution, died in South Carolina, 1795. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. EMI 652 EMI M.irlbo rough, John Churchill, duke of, cele- brated English general, born at Ashe, in Dev- onshire, 1050; died 1723. aged 73. Martial, Marcus Valerius, Latin satiric poet, died A. D. 104, aged 75. Martin, Luther, eminent lawyer, first attor- ney general of Maryland, which. office he held during the war, and nearly forty years ; became a chief justice of the city court of Baltimore; died July 10th, 1826, in his 82d year. He was one of the Convention that formed the Consti- tution of the United States. Mary I, Queen of .England, daughter of Hen- ry VIII and Catharine of Arrngon. born 151(5; succeeded her brother Edward'V'l, 1553; di^d November, 1558, aged 42, leaving the dreadful character of "The Bloody Mary." Mary, of Medicis, queen of Henry IV, of France, died 1(542, aged 69. Mason, George, member of the Convention which framed the Constitution, which he refus- ed to sign ; member of Congress from Virginia, died 171*2, aged 07. Massinger, Philip, Entrlish dramatic writer, died 1G40, aged 56. Mather, Increase, eminent American divine, born at Dorchester, Massachusetts, 1635; died 1723, aged 84. Mather, Cotton, son of Increase Mather, also eminent divine and writer, born 1(502; died 1 Tinged (5. Maurice, elector of Saxony, and successful supporter of the Protestant cause in Germany, killed in the battle of Sieveuhausen, 1553, aged 32 years. Maurice, of Nassau, prince of Orano-e. and grandson by his mother, to Maurice of Saxonv, pre-eminent Dutch general, died 1(525, aged f>8. McKean, Thomas, one of the signers of the Declaration of American Independence ; colonel in the army of the revolution ; he prepared the constitution of the state of Delaware, which was adopted unanimously, July J.-'th. 1777; he re- ceived fioin the executive council of Pennsyl- vania his commission as chief justice, which office he held twenty-two years, and at the time of this appointment, he was speaker of the house .f assembly in Pennsylvania, president of Delaware, and a member of the congress, and soon after w;is < !eet-4. Her tragedy of "Percy," the most popular of her dramatic compositions, was brought out in 177^. and ran 14 nights successively; and her last tragedy, "The Fatal Falsehood," was pro- duced in 1779. Shortly after, her opinions on public theatres underwent a change, and, as she has stated in the preface to the third vol- ume of her works, ' she did not consider the stage, in its present state, as becoming the appearance or countenance of a Christian." ' Early in life she attracted general notice by a brilliant display of literary talent, and was honored by the intimate acquaintance of John- son and Burke, of Reynolds and Garrick, and of many other highly eminent individuals, who equally" appreciated 'her amiable qualities, and her superior intellect. But, under a deep con- viction, that to live to the glory of God. and to the good of our fellow creatures, is the great object of human existence, and the only one which c:m bring peace at the last, she quitted in the prime of her days, the bright circles of fashion and literature, and, retiring into the neighborhood of Bristol, devoted herself to a life of active Christian benevolence, and to the composition of various works, having for their object the religious improvement of-mankind. Her practical conduct beautifully exemplified the mor-il energy of her Christian principles." Her first prose publication was " Thoughts on the Manners of the Great," printed in 1788 ; followed in 17U1, by her " Estimate of the Re- ligion of the Fashionable World." In 1795, she commenced at Bath, in monthly numbers, " The Cheap Repository," a series of admirable tales for the common people, one of which is the well-known " Shepherd of Salisbury Plain."' The success of this seasonable publi- cation was extraordinary ; and within a year the gale reached the number of 1,000,000 cop- ies. Her " Strictures on the Modern System of Female Education" appeared in 1799 ; "Hints towards Forming the Character of a Young Princess," in 1605; " Ccelebs in search of a Wife," in 1809, (which passed through at least six editions in less than a year;) "Practical Piety," in 1811 ; " Christian Morals," in 1812; " Essay on the Character and Writings of St. Paul," in 1815; and " Moral Sketches of the Prevailing Opinions and Manners, Foreign and Domestic, with Reflections on Prayer." The collection of her works comprises 11 volumes octavo. Near the beginning of the present century, Mrs. More left Bath and retired to Barley Woo>', a c-)ttagt delightfully situated in the village of Wrington, the native place of John Locke. In 181!), she lost her last surviving sister Martha, and some years after being con- fined to her room, she quilted Barley Wood, for Clifton, where, and at Bristol, she had some val- uable friends, though not a single relation of whom she had anv knowledge in the world. She is said to have "realized upwards of 30,000 by her writings; and her charitable bequests exceeded 10.000. She died at Windsor-terrace, Clifton, in the year 1833, aged 88. Morgan. John, M. D. F. R. S. a learned phy- sician, born in 1733. In prosecuting his pro- fessional studies, he visited many of the most eminent universities of Europe, and while there, though very yonng, was so distinguished as to be elected a Fellow of the Royal Society. Be- fore his return home, he projected the plan of the rrodical school of Philadelphia to be con- nected with the college, which was effected (himself the first professor), and the first com- mencement was held in 1709 ; he was active in establishing the American Philosophical Soci- ety in 17(39; was director general of hospitals in the army of the United States ; he published several scientific tracts, died Oct. 15, 1789, in the 54th year of his age. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. EMI 654 EMI Morris, Robert, born in January 1733-4 O. S. in Lancashire, arrived in this country at the age of 13 years ; one of the signers of the dec- laration of independence, and during the war of the revolution, supported the credit of the United States ; established the first bank in Philadelphia, the bank of North America, 1761, which lent for the public service of the govern- ment within the first six months after its organ- ization, $480.000 ; without the financial talents and services of this distinguished man, it is probable all the physical force of the country would have proved unavailing to establish the independence of the United States ; when the paper of the congress of United America was worth nothing, the paper of Robert Morris sup- plied the deficiency ; his personal credit was decidedly better than the credit of the U. States government; he was one of the convention which framed the constitution of the U. States; a member of the first senate of the United States ; his most intimate friends were Washington, Hamilton, and Governor Morris. When offered the appointment of first secretary of the treas- ury by Washington, he declined, but recom- mended his friend Alexander Hamilton. His unfortunate land speculations iuibittered his old age, which ought to have been surrounded with all the ease and happiness that earllily gratitude could bestow ; died 8th May, 1806. Morris, Lewis, one of the signers of the dec- laration of independence, born at Morrisania, 1726; had three brothers, all distinguished; Staats, a number of parliament; Richard, judge of the admiralty, and chief justice of New York, and governor ; an orator, statesman and mem- ber of congress, died Jan. 1798, in the 72dyear of his age. Morrison, Robert, LL. D. senior member of the Chinese mission, died Aug. 1st, 183-1. He translated portions of the scriptures into Chi- nese, and was the author of a Chinese grammar and dictionary. Mozart, musical composer, born January 27, 1756, died December 17'.fc>. Murray, William Vans, born in Maryland 17C1 , died 1803, aged 42 ; he was a distinguished and eloquent member of congress ; minister to the Batuvian Republic, and with Chief Justice Ellsworth, and Mr. Davie, as envoy extraodi- nary, he assisted in negotiating the treaty of Paris, of 1800. Murray, William, earl of Mansfield, born in 17().'>, died in 171)3, chief justice of the king's bench of England, which he held with great reputation upwards of 30 years. Murray, Lindley, a grammarian, was born at Pennsylvania in 1745, and died in 1826. Napier, John, inventor of logarithms for the use of navigators, born in 1550, died in 1617. Nash, Francis, brigadier general in the Amer- ican revolution, killed at the battle of German- town, in 1777. Nayler, James, enthusiastic convert to qua- kerism, born in 1616; sentenced to be whipped and imprisoned for life, by parliament, for blas- phemy, but in two years was liberated, and died in 1G66. Necker, James, French financier, died in 1804, aged 72, a native of Geneva. Nelson, Robert, author of " The Companion for the Festival and Fasts," born in 1656, and died in 1715. Nepos, Cornelius, a Latin historian, who flourished in the time of Julius Ctesar. Newton, sir Thomas, author of " Disserta- tions on the prophecies,' 1 born 1703, and died in 17b2. Nisbet, Charles, D. D. of Scotland, presi- dent of the College of Carlisle in Pennsylvania, held that office with reputation until his death in 1804. Nonius, inventor of the angles of 45 degrees in every meridian, died 1577. Norwood. Rii'.JiaH, measured a degree in England 1632, which was the first accurate measure. Nugent, Thomas, L. L. D. author of a French Dictionary, died May 27, 1779. Occuni Sampson, A. Mohegan Indian, con- verted to Christianity; a missionary among le Western Indians; died 17*2. Oglethorpe, James, an able British general, and distinguished philanthropist, served under Prince Eugene, founder of the state of Georgia, and died in 1785, aged 07. O'Leary, Arthur, of Ireland, distinguished by his writings, religious and political ; a friend to freedom and toleration, died in lbC2, aged 73 years. Origen, born at Alexandria, and died in 254. Orleans, Duke of, son of Charles V, mur- dered by his uncle the Duke of Burgundy, in 1407. Orono, chief of the Penobscot tribe, labored to promote Christianity, died in 1801. aged 113 years ; his wife died in 'l 809, aged 115. Orpheus, ancient Greek poet, flourished be- fore Homer, a distinguished musician, poet and physician. Ossian^ a Gffilic poet, supposed to have flour- ished in the 3d century. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. EMI 655 EMI Otvvay, Thomas, poet, and dramatic writer, Dorn in 1(551, and died in 1685. Page. John, governor of the colony of Vir- ginia, an ardent patriot, member of congress after the adoption of'the federal constitution, and governor of the state of Virginia, died in 1808. Paine, Robert Treat, a distinguished poet, born in 1773, died in 1811. Paley, Dr. William, elegant writer on Ethics, oorn in 1743, died in 1805. Parr, Thomas, died in 1G75, aged 152 years, and lived in ten reigns. Parhurst, John, a learned divine, born in 1728, and died 1797, author of a Hebrew and English Lexicon. Parnell, Thomas, poet, born 1679, died 1717, author of the " Hermit." Pascal, Blaize, author of " Provincial Let- ters," born in 1623, died in 1662. Patrick, Saint, apnstle and saint of Ireland, supposed a native of Wales, died in 460. Patterson, William, senator of the United States, governor of New Jersey, and afterwards judge of the supreme court of the U. States, died in 1806. Paul, Saint, of Tarsus, put to death by Nero, A. D. 66. Pendleton, Edmund, eminent lawyer and statesman of Viro-inia, member of congress in 1774, died in 18D3. Penn, John, one of the signers of the decla- ration of independence, born in Virginia, May 7. 1741, died Oct. 2;>, 1803, in the 83d year of his age, a great and distinguished man." Pennant. Thomas, wrote a number of valua- ble books, and died in 1708. aged 72. Peronse, Ue La, celebrated French navigator, lost in J788. Perrault. Charles, died in 1783. aged 77. Perrier, M. Casimir. Prime Minister of France ; the son of a rich merchant; born Oct. 12, 1777, at Grenoble, and died at Paris, of cholera, May 16, 1832, aged 54. Perry, Oliver H.izard, a distinguished captain in the American navy, gained a signal victory over the British naval forces on Lake Erie in 1813, died in Ia20. Peter, Saint, chief of the apostles, son of John and brother of Andrew, a bold and powerful preacher. Nero caused him to be crucified, with his head down, A. D. 66. Pelronius, Arbiter, writer of antiquity, bled to death by order of Nero, A. 1). 65. Pike, Zebu Ion Montgomery, brigadier gen- eral of the United States, killed at York, in Up- per Canada, 1813. Pilate, Pontius, Roman governor of Judea, hanged himself A. D. S7. Piles. Roger de. eminent painter, bom 1635, and died in 1709. Pindar, poet, died 435 B. C., aged 80. Piron, Alexis, French poet and satirist, died in 1773, aged 64. Pitt, William, earl of Chatham, illustrious English statesman, born in 1708, died in 1778. Plato, died at Athens 347, B. C. Playfair, John, D. D. of Scotland, born 1749, professor of mathematics at Edinburgh, and died 1819. Pliny, the elder, the most learned of ancient writers, died in 7!), A. D. Pliny, the younger, born 62, died 116. Plutarch, philosopher and historian, born in Greece, died A. D. 140. Pocahontas, an Indian princess, celebrated in the annals of Virginia, married Mr. Rolfe, and from them descended families in Virginia; died in England in 1616. Person, Richard, professor of the Greek lan- guage, in the University of Cambridge, had the reputation of being the best Greek scholar in England, yet his learning scarcely produced him a living ; born in 175LJ, and died in 1808. Poila, John Baptist, invented the Camera Obscura, died in 1515. Portuguese, ambassador's brother, beheaded in England for murder, in 1654. Powhatan, a powerful Indian chief in Vir- ginia, hostile to the English ; he was the father of Pocahontas, and on her marriage became reconciled to the whites, and died in 1618. Pratt, Charles, earl of Camden , eminent Eng- lish lawyer and statesman, bora in 1713, died 1794. Pratt. Ephraim, of Plymouth, Mass., died in 1804, aged 116; he could then number nearly 1500 descendants. Price, Dr. Richard, divine and politician, died in 17Jl,aged68. Priestly, Dr. Joseph, a very celebrated dis- senting clergyman and philosopher; he died in 1804 in Pennsylvania, aged 71. Prior, Matthew, English poet and statesman, born 1664, and died in 1731. Prynne, William, eminent English lawyer and writer, under Charles I, born in 1600, tried by the star chamber 1633, stood in the pillory, May 1634; ag;.in 1637; took his seat in the long parliament, Nov. 28, 1640; died Oct. 24, 165. SUme, Sir Hance, eminent physician and naturalist, born in Ireland, in KiC.O, died in 17.V-2. Smith, Adam, author of "Wealth of Nations," died 1?:):), aged 07. Smith, Isaac, patriot officer of the revolution, member of rotvriess: jud<_n> of the supreme court of Xe\v .lei>ey.an died at the age of 21 years, though borne down by poverty and ill health. Wilberforce, William, one of the most cele- brated philanthropists of modern times, and whose able, zealous, long-continued, and ulti- mately successful exertions in favoi of the abo- lition of the slave-trade, have given him a high rank among the benefactois of the human race. He was born Aug. 24,1759, at Hull ; was edu- cated at St. John's College, Cambridge, where he formed an intimacy with William Pitt; was elected a member of parliament for Hull in 1780 ; for the county of York in 1784 ; and in 1787, he brought forward a motion for the abo- lition of the slave trade, and the question, after a long and laborious struggle, was finally car- ried during the ministry of Mr. Fox, June 10, 180G. In 17H7. Mr. Wilberforce published his celebrated " Practical View," a work which has been translated into most European languages, and of which about fifty editions have been printed in Great Britain and America. He died in London, July 28th, Ie:i3, in his 74th year. His remains were consigned to the sanctuary of the illustrious dead in Westminster Abbey ; and his " funeral train included the great and the good of all parties." Wilson, Thomas. LL. D. bishop of ?odor and Mann, a most excellent prelate, and an eminent writer in theology ; he died in 1755. Wilson, Alexander, a distinguished natural- ist ; author of the " American Ornithology ;"' he died in 1813, aged about 40. Windham, William, celebrated English ora- tor and statesman ; secretary of war, member of parliament, died in 1810. Winder, William H. eminent lawyer of Ma- ryland, brigadier grnefal in the army of the United States during the second war with Great Britain, died in ]24. Winthrop, John, first governor of Massachu- setts, emigrated with the first colonists, and died in 1(>4 ( .'. Winthrop, John, F. R. S. son of the preced- ing, governor of the colony of Connecticut, died iu ll)7(i ; a man of -great learning and talents. Winthrop. Fitz Ji.hn, F. II. S. son of the pre- ceding, and distinguished, like his father, for learning and piety; governor oT Connecticut ; died in 1707. Winthrop, John, LL. D., F. R. S , professor of mathematics and natural philosophy in the Harvard college, died 177!). Winthrop, James, LL. D., son of the preced- ing, distinguished for his devotion to literary pursuits; died in 18521. Wistcr, Caspar, M. D. an eminent physician, and professor of anatomy and surgery in the University at Philadelphia, died in 1818. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL EMI 661 ENC Wirt, Hon. William, was born at Bladens- burg, Md., on the 8th of November, 1772, and was the youngest of six children. In 1705, he married the eldest daughter of Dr. George Gil- mer, a distinguished physician, and took up his residence at Pen Park, the seat of his father-in- law, near Charlottesyille, and here hs was in- troduced to the acquaintance of Jefferson, Mad- ison, Monroe, and other persons of celebrity ; but he soon contracted habits of great dissipa- tion, from which he is said to have been recov- ered by a sermon which he heard from a blind preacher, James Waddell, whom he has cele- brated in his " British Spy." In 1799. his wife died, and he was soon after elected clerk of the House of Deleates. Having performed the Witherspoon, John, D. D. LL. D. distin- guished Scotch clergyman, one of the signers of the declaration of independence ; for many years president of Princeton college, both be- fore and after the revolution, which he retained until his death in 1784 ; born 5th Feb. 1722. Woollett, William, a most eminent engraver, the first in his profession, died in 1785. Wooster, David, major general in the Amer- ican revolutionary army ; killed in 1777. Wooverman, Dutch landscape painter, died in 1638, aged 68. Wren, riir Christopher, illustrious English architect, and builder of the Cathedral of St. Pauls, died 1723, aged 91. Yorke, Philip, Earlof Hardwck, chancellor duties of this office two years, he was, in 1802, of England, died in 1764, aged 74. appointed chancellor of the Eastern District of Yorke, Charles, son of the preceding, chan- cellor of England, and died suddenly Thursday appoint Virginia, and then took up his residence at Williamsburg ; and in the same year he married the daughter of Colonel Gamble of Richmond. He soon after resigned his chancellorship, and at the close of the year 1803, removed to Nor- folk, and entered upon the assiduous practice of his profession. Just before he removed to Norfolk, he wrote the letters published in the Richmond Argus, under the title of " The Brit- ish Spy," which were afterwards collected into a small volume, and have passed through ten editions. In 1896, he took up his residence at Richmond, and, in the following year, he greatly distinguished himself in the trial of Col. Burr. In 1812, he wrote the greater part of a series of essays, which were originally pub- lished in the Richmond Enquirer under the title of "The Old Bachelor," and have since, in a collected form, passed through several edi- tions. The " Life of Patrick Henry," his largest literary production, was first published in 1817. In 1816, he was appointed bv Mr. Madison the United States' Attorney for "the District of Virginia ; and in 1817, by Mr. Monroe, Attor- ney General of the Uaited States, a post which he occupied with distinguished reputation till 1819, through the entire administrations of Mon- roe and Adams. In 183'), he took up his resi- dence at Baltimore, for the remainder of his life. As a public and professional man, Mr. Wirt was ranked among the first of his time. He died at Washington City, Feb. 18, 1834, aged 62. Wisner, Benjamin B., a distinguished calvin- istic clergyman, of Boston ; died Feb. 9, 18)35, aged 40 years. He was several years Secretary of the American Board of Commissioners for Foreign Missions. after, in 1770 ; he was an elegant and profound scholar. Young, Edward, an English poet and divine, author of" Night Thoughts," died in 1765. Zeno, stoic philosopher, strangled himself 364 B. C. aged 98. Zimmerman, eminent physician and philoso- pher, author of a work on Solitude, died 1795. EMPEROR OF GERMANY, made elec- tive 996, renounced that title and assumed that of emperor of Austria, August 11, 1804. ENCROACHMENTS OF THE SEA. 950 The islands of Ammiano and Costanziaco in the Gulf of Venice swept away bv the sea. 1044-1309 Irruptions of the sea on the coast of Pomerania cause terrible ravages, and give rise to the popular story of the submersion of Vineta. 1106 Malamacco, a large town in the Venetian lagoons', engulfed by the sea. 1218 The gulf of Jahde near the mouth of the Weser formed by inundations. 1219-20-21-46 & 51. A succession of violent storms separated the island of Wieringen from the continent, and prepared the rupture of the isthmus which connected North Hol- land with Friesland. 1277-78-80-87 The fertile canton of Reiderland, with the town of Torum, and fifty market towns, villages, and monasteries, swallowed up by the sea, which formed the gulf of Dol- lart over their site, 1282 The ZuiderZee formed by the rupture of the isthmus uniting North Holland and Friee- land and many towns swept away. 1240 The Uland'of Northstrand separated from CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. EPS 662 EXC the continent, and a tract of the coast of Sleswic swallowed up. 1300-1500-1649 Violent storms carry off three- fourths of Heligoland. 1300 The town of Ciparum in Istria swallowed up by the sea. 13. 3 A large part of the island of Rugen, and several villages on the coast of Pomerania engulfed by the waves. 1337 Fourteen villages on Kadsand in Zeeland destroyed by an inundation. 1421 The sea engulfs the district of Bergse- weld, and overflows 22 villages, forming the large gulph of Biesbosch. 1475 A strip of land at the mouth of the Hum- ber with several villages carried away by the sea. 1510 The Baltic forms the mouth of the Frisch HafF 3600 yards wide. 1530-32 A part of the islands of North and South Beveland with several towns and many villages swallowed up. 1634 An inundation of the sea engulfs the island of Northstrand, destroying 1338 houses, tow- ers, and churches, and swallowing up 50,000 head of cattle, and 6,400 human beings. 1926 A violent storm changed the salt-pans of Araya in Cumana, into a large gulf. J770-1785 Heligoland divided into two isles by the encroachments of the sea. 1784 The lake of Aboukir on the coast of Egypt formed by a storm. 1803 The sea carried off the ruins of the priory at Crail in Scotland. ENGRAVING, on metal plates, first known in Europe B. C. 504, by a map on brass brought from Quonia by Anazao-oras of Samos ; and yet it was not until A.D. 1423, that impressions were taken on paper from engraved plates ; the art of taking impressions from engravings on cop- per as now used, 1511 ; in mezzotinto, and im- proved by prince Rupert, of Palatine, 1648; to represent wash, invented by Barable, a French- man. 1761 ; crayon engraving invented at Pa- ris by Bonnet, 17<'>'.). Engraving on wood invented in Flanders, 1423; revived by Alb. Durer, 1511 ; on glass invented 17!>9, at Puris, by Boudier. Engraving on steel became common about 1830. It is now preferred for fine work, to copper. Kngravinjr, Lithographic, invented by Sene- frldi-r. a (li-rman. about 1796. EPSOM MINERAL SPRJNG first discov- ered 1G30. ERA, that of Nabonassar, was 747 B. C. ; Phillipic, or death of Alexander, 324, B. C. ; of Seleucidfe,3iy B.C. ; the Christians made their e-a the birth of Christ, which was A. M. 4004, but did not use this reckoning till the year 600, using in the mean time the civil account of the empire ; the Mahometans began their Hegira (for so they term their computation) from the flight of tlieir prophet from Mecca, when he was driven thence by the PhilarchiE, A. D. 622 ; the Grecians reckon by Olympiads, the first of which is placed in the year of the world 3187 ; but this account perishing under the Constan- tinopolitan emperors, they reckoned by indic- tions, every indiction containing fifteen years, and the first beginning A. D. 313, which among chronologeis are still used ; the Romans reck- oned first from the building of their city, which was A. M 3251, and afterwards from the 16th year of the emperor Augustus, A. M. 3936, which reckoning was used among the Span- iards till the reign of Ferdinand the Catholic ; the Jews had divers epoeha ; as 1 st, from the creation of the world in the beginning of time; 2d, from the universal deluge, A. M. 1C56; 3d, from the confusion of tongues, A. M. 1771 ; 4th, from Abraham's journey out of Chaldea into Canaan, A. M. 2U08 ; 5lh, from the departure of the children of Israel out of Egypt, A. M. 2515; Gth, from the year of the jubilee, A. M. 2540 ; 7th, from the building of Solomon's tem- ple, A. M. 2999; and 8th, from the captivity of Babylon, A, M. 3397; but in historical com- putation of time, are used only the two most ordinary epochs, the world's creation, and Christ appearance in the flesh ; the Christian era began to be used in Italy, &c. in 525, and in England in 816. ETCHING on copper invented with aqua fortis, 1512. ETNA, celebrated volcanic mountain in the island of Sicily, risin^ to 10,936 English feet, which, on that parallel, is above the region of perpetual snow. The irruptions of this remark- able mountain reach beyond history ; in mod- ern times, beside many of lesser note, there were eruptions in 1169. 1408, 1444, 1535, 1669, and 16!)4, when the city of Catanea, with the adjacent country was destroyed, and 18,000 people perished; aerain in 161 '9 and 1787. EXCISE, the first used in England, 1643. EXCHEQUER, court of, instituted on the model of the Normans, 1074; exchequer bills invented, 1695; first circulated by the bank, 1706. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. FIR 663 FIR FAIRS and markets first instituted in Eng- land by Alfred, about 886. The first fairs took their rise from wakes; when the' number of people then assembled brought together a vari- ety of traders annually on these days. From these holidays they were called feriae, or fair. FANS, muffs, masks and false hair, first de- vised by the harlots in Italy, and brought into England from France, 1572. FAMINE which lasted seven years, 1708 B. C. ; at Rome, when many persons threw them- selves into the Tiber, 440 B. C. ; in Britain, so that the inhabitants ate the barks of trees, 272 A. C. ; one in Scotland, where thousands were starved, 306; in England and Wales, where 40,000 were starved, 310 ; all over Britain, 325 ; at Constantinople, 446 ; in Italy, where parents ate their children, 450; in Scotland, 576 ; all over England, Wales and Scotland, 739 ; an- other in Wales, 747; in Wales and Scotland, 71)2; again in Scotland, 803 ; again in Scotland, when thousands were starved, 823; a severe one in Wales, 836; in Scotland, which lasted four years, 954 ; famines in England, 864, 974, 976, 1005 ; in Scotland, which lasted two years, 1047 ; in England, 1050, 1087 ; in England and France, from 1193 to 1195; in England 1251, 1315, 1318, 1335, 1348 ; in England and France, called the dear summer, 1358; in England 1389 and 1438, so great that bread was made of fern root ; in 15(55 two millions were expended on the importation of corn ; one in 1748 ; another in 1798; in the province of Vellore, in 1810, by which 6000 people perished ; in the diocesa of Drontheim, in Norway, in consequence of the intercepting of supplies by Sweden;- 5000 persons perished, 1813. FESTIVALS of Christmas, Easter, Ascen- sion, and the Pentecost, or Whitsuntide, first ordered to be observed by all Christians, 68. Rogation days appointed 469; jubilees in t,li Romish church instituted by pope Boniface VI II 1300; (at first they were observed every hun- dred years, but future popes reduced them to 50. and then to every period of 25 years.) FEUDAL LAWS, the tenure of land, by suit and service, to the lord or owner of it, in- troduced into England by the Saxons. about 600; the slavery of this tenure increased under Wil- liam I, 1068. This was dividing the kingdom into baronies, giving them to certain persons, and requiring those persons to furnish the king with money ,and a staled number of soldiers. FIRES. Jijax, a British ship of the line, 56* burned offTenedos, Feb. 14th, 1807, when 350 men perished. Alexandria, Jan. 18th, 1827, a most distress- ing conflagration in a most inclement season. Congress made the sufferers a donation of $20,000. Bombay in the East Indies, Feb. 27th, 1803, when the city was almost entirely destroyed. Boston, March 21, 1673, castle at the harbor burned; August 8th, 1679, 80 houses, 70 ware- houses, and a number of vessels destroyed ; Feb. 2, 1798 theatre in Federal street destroyed ; Nov. 3d, 1818, the fine and spacious exchange consumed. Casan, in Russia, almost totally destroyed, Sept. 8th, 1815. Charleston, South Carolina, 200 houses of, consumed July loth, 1778. Constantinople, Sept. 4th, 1778, 2,000 house* consumed ; Oct. 22, 1782, 10,000 houses and 50 mosques destroyed ; July 8, 1783, 7,000 houses destroyed ; 1791, upwards of 30,000 houses in the course of the year ; Sept. 22d, 1818. great injury and many thousand houses consumed; Jan. 28th, 1820, destructive conflagration and insurrection. Copenhagen, one third of destroyed, June 9, 1795. Kingston, Jamaica, Feb. 8th, 1782, confla- gration at, when property was destroyed to the amount of 500 ,000. London, 982, a fire which destroyed great part of the city ; July 10, 1212, London Bridge, when 2000 people perished ; Sept 2. 1666, a fire broke out near the monument and burnt fom days and four nights, destroying 113,000 houses, the city gates, Guild Hall, &c. ; 86 churches, amongst which was St. Paul's cathedral, and 400 streets ; the ruins of this city were 436 acres; in 1676, 600 houses were burnt ; Dec. 4, 1716, 150 houses were burnt down at Wapping ; Dec. 23d, 1759, 50 houses were destroyed, dam- age estimated at 70,000 ; Sept. 18th, 1790, 20 persons lost their lives by fire; Sept. 14, 1791, several vessels and sixty houses destroyed; July 22d, and 23d, 1794, 680 houses were con- sumed, with an East India warehouse, in which 35.000 bajrs of saltpetre were consumed, and 40,000 worth of sugar were destroyed in one surrarhonse. The whole loss was estimated at above 1,000,000 sterling ; Aug. 17, 1794, Ast- ley's theatre and 19 houses were burnt ; Feb 11, 1800, three large warehouses of West India Goods, valued at 300,000 were destroyed; Oct. 6lh. same year, 30 houses and goods to the amount of 80,000 were burnt, and many Iive0 CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. FOU 664 FOU were lost ; Feb. 12th 1814, the custom-house, and a whole range of buildings destroyed ; May 23d, 1817, extensive damage done in Fleet street ; 1834, both houses of Parliament burned. JVeic Orleans, March 21st, 1788, a most ruin- ous conflagration, by which far the greater part of the city was reduced to ashes. wVeic York, Dec. 29, 1773, government house destroyed ; September 21st, 1776, a great fire by which about 1000 houses were consumed with Trinity Church, the Charity School, Lutheran Church, &c. ; Aug. 7, 1778, 300 houses destroy- ed ; Dec. 9th, 171)6, destructive fire in Maiden Lane, lx>tween GO and 70 Jfouses were destroyed ; Dec. 18, same year, about 40 houses were con- sumed ; 1 oss esti mated &t $106,700; May 19, in 1811,10(1 houses destroyed; Aug. 31st, 1816, 21 houses destroyed. It appears that from the isd of Jan. to the"3d Dec. 1828, property was de- stroyed by fires to the amount of $680,402. Philadclplua, Dec 26th 1794, German Luthe- ran or Zion church ; Jan. 27th, 1797, fire in the printing office and dwelling house of An- drew Brown, in Chesnut-street his wife and three children perished, and he lingered until the 4th of Feb. when he expired; Dec. 17th, 1799, Kickett's circus, &c., destroyed; April llth, 1811, a destructive fire in Locust-street ; May 8th, 1816, a very destructive fire in Coates- street. The most lamentable fire that ever oc- curred in Philadelphia was that of the Orphan Asylum, Jan. 23d, 1822, in which twenty-three of the orphans perished. Portsmouth, New Hampshire, 300 houses de- stroyed Dec. 26th, 1802. Vrnite, destructive fire at, Jan. 14, 1789. Washington City, Aug. 24th, 1814, the Capi- tol, President's House, many private houses, the bridge over the Potomac, dockyard, &c. by the British troops. FIRE ENGINE, to force water, invented 1663. FONTS for baptism, instituted, A. D. 167 FORT ST. GEORGE, in India, first settled by the English East India Company, 1620. FORTIFICATION, the present'mode intro- duced, about 1500. FOUNDING OF CITIES, TOWNS, KING- DOMS. STATES, &c. Aix la Chapelle built, 79). Albany, city, capital of New York, in Albany county: next to Jamestown. Virginia, the old- est town in the United States. Settled by the Dutch about 1614. Alexandria, in Egypt, built in 17 days, the walls whereof were six miles in circuit, 332 B.C. Amsterdam first settled, 1203; walled, 1482; taken possession of by the French, January 18, 1795. Annapolis, Virginia: made a post town in 1694 ; created from the village of Severn. Antioch built, 300 B. C. Antwerp first mentioned in history, 517; walled, 1256; pillaged by its garrison, 1576; ruined, 1585; declared a free port, 1784 ; sur- rendered to the French, 1794. Areopagus first erected at Athens, 1272 B. C, Argos, the kingdom of, began 1586 B. C. Arragon, erected into a kindom, 912. Ashford, post town. Windham county, Con- necticut ; incorporated in 1714. Assyria, kingdom of, began under Ninus, 2059 B. C ; lasted above 1264 years, ended with Sardanapalus ; out of its ruins were formed the Assyrians of Babylon, those of Nineveh, and the Medes. Athens, kingdom of, began 1556 B. C. Attleborough, post town, Bristol county, Massachusetts ; incorporated in 1694. Babylon, the city of, founded by Nimrod, 2640 ; walled, 1243'; taken by Cyrus, 588 ; by Darius, after 19 months siege, 511 B. C. Babylonish monarchy founded 2217 B. C. Bagdad built, 762. Balbec built 144; totally obliterated by an earthquake, 1759. Baltimore, city and port of entry in Baltimore county, Maryland. Founded in 1729. In 1765 contained but fifty houses. Erected into a city in 1797. Its medical college was founded in 1807. St. Mary's college, a Catholic institution, incorporated in 1806. Battle of Baltimore fought the 13th and 14th of September, 1814. Bnrnstahle, seaport and capital of Barnstable comitv. Mass., on Barnstable bay. Settled by the Rev. John Lathrop, October 11. 1639. Bavaria, dukedom of, founded 1180 ; made an electorate, 1028; erected into a kingdom by Boriapartp. 1,-'0r>. Beaufort, town. North Carolina, incorporated in 1723. Bennington, a post town in the county of Bennington, Vermont, founded in 1749. As the grant of the township was made by Gov. Wentworth of New Hampshire, it was called from his Christian name, Benning. Stark's victory gained here. August 16, 1777. Berne, in Switzerland, mode an imperial city, 12!!0; ancient government of, overturned by the French, re-established, Dec. 24, 1813. Bethlehem, borough and post town, Nortb- hampton county, Pennsylvania. Commenced HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. FOU 665 FOU in 1741 by the Moravians, who removed hither from Savannah, because the inhabitants com- pelled them to bear arms. Beverly, post town and seaport, Essex coun- ty, Massachusetts. This town was incorporat- ed in 1668, and the early settlers gathered to- gether and erected a church in 1657. Billerica, post town, Middlesex county, Mass. Founded in 1656. Bohemia, kingdom of, founded, 550. Bradenburgh created a marquisate, 925 ; cre- ated a dukedom, 1526. Braintree, town, Norfolk county, Massachu- setts. First church was gathered in 1639. It originally belonged to Boston, and was called Mount Wollaston. Bridgewater, post town, Plymouth county, Massachusetts. Settled 1651. Attacked by Indians and injured severely, May 8, 1676. Britanny, founded as a kingdom, 383 ; made a duchy, 874 ; annexed to the crown of France, 1150. British isles ; they were inhabited originally by a people called Britons, of the same stock with the ancient Gauls or Celt. The Ro- mans first invaded them under Julius Caesar, 54 B. C. but made no conquests. The emperor Claudius, and his generals Plautius, Vespasian, and Titus, subdued several provinces after 30 pitched battles with the natives, A. D. 43 and 44. The conquest was completed by Agricola in the reign of Domitian, 85. Brookfield, post town, Worcester county, Massachusetts. Settled in 1660. Township granted in 1667. August 2, 1675, two or three hundred ambuscaded Indians attacked a party of inhabitants, and killed several. Burnt by the Indians in 1675. Incorporated 1718. Brookline, town, Norfolk county, Massachu- setts. Incorporated 1705. Bruges founded, 700 ; fortified, 890. Brunswick built, 361. Burgundy, the dukedom of, established, 890 ; the kingdom founded, 413 ; again in 814 ; unit- ed to the German empire, 103o; disunited by a revolt, and divided into four sovereignties, 1074. Byzantium, now Constantinople, founded 715 B. C. Calcutta seized and settled by the English, 1689. Cambridge, England, once a city called Gran- ta, built by Carsiurus ; university chartered, 538 ; founded , 900 ; the town burnt by the Danes, 1010; university revived, 1110. Cambridge, post town, Middlesex county, Massachusetts. Name changed from Newtown to Cambridge in 1638, when Harvard Universi- ty was founded. Canterbury built, 912 B. C. ; paved, 1477. Carthage founded by the Tyrians, 1259 ; built by queen Dido, 1233 ; destroyed, 146 ; rebuilt, 123 B. C. Castile and Arragon kingdom begun, 1035. Charlestown, Middlesex county Massachu- setts. Founded in 1629 by a company of one hundred persons. Burned by the British, June 17, 1775. Chelmsford, now Lowell, post town, Middle- sex county, Massachusetts. Incorporated in 1655. It was attacked by Indians in 1676. Chelsea, Massachusetts, formerly a ward of Boston, under the name of Winnesimmet or Romney Marsh. Incorporated in 1738. Chichester built by Ciffa, 516 ; paved, 1576. China empire founded, 2100 B. C.; but its history does not extend above the Greek Olym- piads ; the first dynasty, when prince Yu reign- ed, 2207 B. C. ; before this time the Chinese chronology is imperfect. Cologne made an imperial city, 959 ; made archiepiscopal, 742; electoral, 1021. Concord, post town, Middlesex county, Mas- sachusetts. Settled in 1635. Constantinople changed its name from By- zantium, 329 ; was made the seat of an emperor, 1268 ; Cadies or justices introduced, to decide the disputes between the Greeks and Turks, 1390 ; taken by Mahomet II May 29, 1452, who put an end to the eastern empire, 1453 ; walled twenty miles round, 413. Copenhagen founded, 1169 ; made a citv, 1319 ; made the capital of Denmark, 1443. Corinth, kingdom of, established, 1355 B. C. Cork, in Ireland, built, 1170. Corsica dependent on Genoa till 1730 ; ceded to France, 1770; offered to Germany for 150,000 in 1781 ; surrendered its sovereignty to Great Britain, 1794 ; relinquished, in 1796. Cracow, in Poland, founded, 700. Cronstadt built by Peter the Great, of Russia, 1704. Danbury, post town, Fairfield county, Con- necticut. Founded about 1693. Dantzick founded, 1169 ; first walled in, 1398; admitted to a suffrage in the election of kings of Poland, 1632; put themselves under the pro- tection of Prussia, 1703 ; compelled to acknow- ledge Stanislaus kingof Poland, 1707 ; the king of Prussia seized upon the territory round the city, 1789. Dauphiny annexed to the kingdom of France 1349. J CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. FOU 666 FOU Dedham, post town, and capital of Norfolk rounly, Massachusetts. Commenced in 1637. Delft city founded, 1072. Denmark united to Norway, 1412; separated from it, 1521 ; crown made hereditary, 1660 ; Pomerania and the isle of Rugen annexed to it in exchange for Norway, by treaty, Jan. 14, Domingo, St. given up by the French gover- nor, Rochambeau, to the black troops, Nov. 19, 1803. Dorchester, town, Norfolk county, Massachu- setts. Settled 1630. Church gathered 1636. Dover castle built by Julius Caesar; town fortified. 1525. Dresden founded, 808. Dublin city walls built about 838 ; its first charter granted, 1173; its castle built, 1220; university founded, 1591 ; students admitted to its university, January, 1594. Dunkirk founded, 966. East Indies were discovered by the Romans, but authors differ as to the time ; but with certainty we know, that Alexander the Great made extensive conquests in this country, 327 B.C.; by the Portuguese, 1497; conquered in 1500, and settled by them in 1506. The first settlement was Goa. Edinburgh built, 950 ; fortified, and castle erected, 1074 ; made the metropolis of Scotland by James III, 1482; James II was the first king crowned there, 1437. Egypt, the kingdom of, began. 2188 B.C., and lasted 1633 years; reduced to a province, 31 A. D. ; and subdued by the Turks, in 1525 ; the French army entered it in 1798, and overthrew it, but were expelled by the English in 1801. Elbing, in Prussia, founded, 1240. Elsineur, in Denmark, built 2 B. C. Exeter, post town, Rockingham county, New Hampshire. Church and town founded in 1638. Falmouth, town, Cumberland county, Maine. Incorporated in 1718. Burned by the British, October 18, 17T5, when one hundred and thirty nine dwelling houses, and two hundred and thirty -eight stores were destroyed. Favetteville, post town, Cumberland county, North Carolina. Founded in 1785. Flanders erected into an earldom, 793 ; made part of France, 1795; annexed to Holland, 1813. Florence founded, 1408 B. C. Fribpurg, in Switzerland, founded, 1179. Gallipohs, post town and capital of Gallia county, Ohio. Land granted to French settlers in 1795. Geneva republic founded, 1512. Genoese republic founded, 101)6. Genoa an- nexed to the French empire, 1805. Transferred to the king of Sardinia, 1814. Georgetown, post town, Lincoln county, Maine. Incorporated in 1718. Georgia colony settled, June 22, 1732 ; incor- porated, July 31, 1752. Germany was divided anciently into several independent states, which made no figure in history till 25 B. C., when they withstood the attempts of the Romans to subdue them, who conquered some parts ; but by the repeated ef- forts of the Germans were entirely expelled about A. D. 290. In 432, the Huns, driven from China, conquered the greatest part of this extensive country ; but it was not totally stfb- dued till Charlemagne became master of the whole, A. D. 802. Goree Isle first planted by the Dutch, 1617. Grand Cairo built by the Saracens, 969. Gravesend erected to protect .the river Thames, 1513. Grecian empire founded by Alexander, 331 ; commenced, 81 1. Groningen built, 433 B. C. Guilford, borough, post town and seaport,New Haven county, Connecticut. Settled in 1639. Haddam, post town, Middlesex county, Con- necticut. Incorporated 16C8. Hadley, post town, Hampshire county, Mas- sachusetts. Settled in 1658. On September 1st, J658, the town was attacked bv Indians during the services of the Sabbath. The sava- ges were repelled by an aged man, who sudden ly appeared and headed the inhabitants, arft disappeared as suddenly after the victory This man, regarded as an angel at the tune, was . afterwards discovered to be Goffe, one of the regicide judges. Hamburgh founded, 804; walled, 811; dis- franchised, and incorporated with France, Jan. 1810 ; restored to independence by the allied sovereigns, 1814. Hanover, hitherto but a village, walled, 1556 ; obtained the privileges of a city, 1578 ; made the ninth electorate, 1632; annexed to West- phalia, by Bonaparte, March IS, 1^10 ; regained to England, Nov. 6, 1813; principality of Hil- desheim annexed to it, 1813; erected into a kingdom, 1814 ; assembly of the states of the new kingdom opened by the duke of Cambridge, Dec. 15, 1814 ; East Friesland and Harlingen added to it, 1815. Harrisburg, the metropolis of Pennsylvania, founded in 1786. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. FOU 667 FOU Harwich, post town, Barnslable county, Mas- sachusetts. Its Indian name was Satucket. Incorporated 1694. Heptarchy, in England, commenced, 455; ended, 824. Hingham, post town, Plymouth county, Mas- sachusetts. Settled in 1635. Holland, originally part of the territory of the BelgaEs, conquered by the Romans, 47 B. C. A sovereignty founded by Thierry, first count of Holland, A. D. 80S; continued till 1417, when it passed by surrender to the duke of Burgundy, A. D. 1534; being oppressed by the bishop of Utrecht, the people ceded the country to Spain. The Spanish tyranny being insupportable, they revolted and formed the republic, now called the United Provinces, by the union of Utrecht, 1579. The office of stallholder, or captain general of the United Provinces, made hereditary in the Prince of Orange's family, not excepting fe- males, 1747. A revolt formed, but prevented by the Prussians, 1787. Invaded by the French in 1793, who took possession of it, Jan. 1795, and expelled the stallholder. Erected into a kingdom by the command of Bonaparte, and the title of king given to his brother Louis, June 5, 1806. The throne abdicated by Louis, July 1, 1810. United to France by a decree of Bonaparte, July 9, 1310. Holliston, post town, Middlesex county, Massachusetts. Settled in 1710. Incorporated 1724. Visited in 1753 by a malignant fever, which carried off fifty-three persons out of a population of 400. Hull founded, 1296; incorporated by the name of Kingston, 1299. Ilium built, 1359 B. C- Ionian islands ceded to Britain, as a free and independent state, by the allied sovereigns in congress, Nov. 5, 1815. Ipswich, post town, and port of entry, Essex county. Massachusetls. Settled 1634. Ireland ; the original inhabitants of this coun- try are supposed to have been of the Celtic stock ; it was divided formerly among a num- ber of petty sovereigns. Ilalv, kingdom of. began, 476 ; ended, 964 ; began' again, 1805 ; and Bonaparte the Corsican crowned king, May 26. Jersey, Guernsey, Sark, and Alderney, were appendages of the duchy of Normandy, and united to the crown of England, by the first prince of the Norman line. Jerusalem built 1800 B. C. ; destroyed by Titus, 7U ; rebuilt by Adrian, 130; again de- stroyed, 136 ; taken by the Saracens, 637 ; taken by the Crusaders, July 14, 1099, when 70,000 infidels are said to have been massacred ; lakeu from the Christians by Saladin, 1190. Kent, kingdom of, began, 455 ; ended, 823. Liverpool was incorporated, 1299. London fortified by the Romans, 50 ; walled, and a palace built, 294 ; made a bishopric, 653 ; repaired by Alfred, 885 ; greatly damaged by a fire, 982, 1027, and 1130; not paved, 1090; houses of timber thatched with straw, but to prevent fire, ordered to be built with stone, and covered vvilh slates, 1192, but the order not ob- served ; a charter by king John to ihe London- ers to choose a mayor out of their own body, annually (this office formerly was for life,) to elect and remove their sheriffs at pleasure, and their common-councilmen annually, 1208; a common hunt first appointed, 1226; aldermen first appointed, 1242; the houses still thatched with straw, Cheapside lay out of the city, 1246 ; all built of wood, 1300; their privileges taken away, but restored on submission, 1366 ; the first lord mayor sworn at Westminster that went by water, 1433 ; the lord mayor's show instituted, 1453; a sheriff fined 50 for kneeling too near the lord mayor, when at prayers in St. Paul's cathedral, 1486; the Thames water first con- veyed into the city, 1582 ; the city chiefly built of wood, and in every respect very irregular, 1600 ; the New River brought to London, 1613 ; the lord mayor and sheriffs arrested at the suit of two pretended sheriffs, April 24, 1652; the greatest part of the city destroyed by fire, 1666 ; Pilkington and Shule. the city sheriffs, sent prisoners to the Tower, for continuing a poll after the lord mayor had adjourned it, 1682; the charter of the city declared forfeited to the crown, June 12, 1662; privileges taken away, but restored , 1688 ; built a mansion house, 1737 ; furnished and inhabited the same, 1752 ; r^mir- ed London bridge, 1758, when government granted them 15,000 and permitted them lo pull down the gates. 1760; began Blackfriars bridge, Oct. 31, 1760 ; the common council or dered to wear blue mazarine gowns, Sept. 14, 1761 ; lost their cause against the dissenters serving sheriffs, July 5, 1762; the city remon* strated on the king's paying no attention to their petition for a redress of grievances, and was censured, March, 1770; Brass Crosby, Esq. lord mayor, and alderman Oliver, sent to the Tower by the house of commons, for committing their messenger, March, 1771 ; trade gieatly injured by bankruptcies, 1772 ; regulation of admitting the livery at Guildhall, by Mr. Stone's scheme, 1774 ; the common councilmen discon CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY FOU 668 FOU tinued the wearing of their mazarine gowns in court, in 1775 ; the city abandoned to the mercy of an ungoverned mob, July 3, 1780; rebuilt the compters near Newgate, 1789; from the year 1768 to the year 177(3, the corporation of London expended the following sums for public uses, which show the opulence of the city : in new paving, repairing old pavements, lighting, cleansing, and purchasing old houses to widen streets, 200,000 ; 200,000 for the new bridge at Blackfriars ; several large sums for new roads, embanking the river, and other contingencies ; 200,000 for repairing the royal exchange ; the jail of Newgate cost 100,000. London is now supposed to contain 160,000 houses, 7000 streets, to cover 3000 acres, and to be in circumference 23 miles, and its population 1 ,200,000. Londonderry, post town, Rockingham coun- ty, New Hampshire. Settled by one hundred Scotch families, (who came from Londonderry, Ireland, their temporary residence,) in 1719. Lubec was founded, 1140. Lucca republic founded, 100. Lyons, in France, founded 43 B. C.; opposed the national convention, by whom it was be- ieged, 1793. Macedon, kingdom of, began, 814 B. C. Madrid built, 936 B. C., but remained an ob- scure village in 1515. Man, isle of, formerly subject to Norway; then to John and Henry III of England, and afterwards to Scotland ; governed by its lords, from 1043 ; conquered by Henry IV 1341. Medford, post town, Middlesex county, Mas- sachusetts. Settled in 1030. A ship of thirty tons built here in 1633. Michilimackinack. A fort built here by the French in 1073. Middletown, city, port of entry, and capital of Middlesex county, Connecticut, commenced 1651. Milan, the capital of thb celebrated dukedom is reputed to have been built by the Cauls. about 408 B. C. Modena made a duchy, 1451. Mogul empire The first conqueror was Jen- ghis Khan, a Tartarian prince, \vli j died, 1230. Morocco, empire of, anciently Mauritania, first known, 1008. Possessed by the Romans, 25 B. C., and reduced by them to a province, 50. From this time it underwent various revo- lutions, till the establishment of the Almova- rides. The second emperor of this family hnilt the capital, Morocco. About 1116, Abdallah, the leader of a sect of Mahometans, founded the dynasty of Almahides, which ended in the last sovereign's total defeat in Spain, 1312. At this period Fez and Tremecen, then provinces of the empire, shook off their dependence. Mo- rocco was afterwards seized by the king of Fez; but the descendants of Mahomet, about 1550, subdued and united again the three kingdoms, and formed what is at present the empire of Morocco. Moscow founded, 1156. Munich, in Bavaria, founded, 9G2; walled, 1157. Nuntucket, island of, Massachusetts. First settlement commenced at Madakit harbor, 1G59. Naples founded, 323 B. C. Naples, anciently Capua and Campania, kingdom of, began, 1020. Great part of'the country was inhabited, in ancient tinres, by the Etruscans, who built Nola and Capua. Netherlands declared themselves a free state, 15(55 and 1789; became a province to France in 1794 ; placed under the sovereignty of the house of Orange, 1814. Newcastle-upon-Tvne built, 1079; incorpo- rated by king John, 1213. New Haven, city, seaport, and semi-metrop- olis of Connecticut. Built 1G38. Its college was projected in 1654. Plundered by the Brit- ish, July 5, 1779. Made a city ]784. New London, city and port of entry, New London county, Connecticut. Settled in 1G48. Burnt by Benedict Arnold, after his treason, Sept. 6, 1781. Made a city 1784. New Orleans, city, port of entry and capital of Louisiana. Founded in 1717. Dreadful hurricane occurred in 1722. Newtown, Massachusetts, originally intended as a fortified place, and commenced in 1631. (See Cambridge.) Normandy erected into a dukedom, 876. Northumberland kingdom began, 547 ; ended, 828. Norwalk, post town. Fairfield county, Con- necticut. Settled in 1651. Burnt by the Brit- ish, July 12, 177!). Norway attached to Sweden, and Charles XIII of Sweden proclaimed king of, November 4,1814. Norwich, city, New London county, Connec- ticut. Settled in 1GGO. Made a city in 1784. Nottingham built, !','!. Ottoman empire begun, 1293. Oxford university, "founded by Alfred, 886; i's < i.-tle built, 1071 ; archdeaconry erected, 10'..2: Beaumont place finished, about 1128; chancellor's court established, 1244; bishoprick taken from Lincoln, and founded, 1541 ; firs* HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. FOU 669 FOU public lecture in Arabic read there, 1636; new theatre built, 1669 ; a terrible fire at,1644 ; again, 1671; library built, 1745; hospital begun, May 1, 1772; observatory built, 1772; visited by Geo. Ill, &c. Oct. 12, 1785. Padua built, 1269 B. C ; surrounded with a wall, &c. by the Venetians, 1019. Paris founded, 357; made the capital of France, 510 ; the city of, consumed by fire, 588 ; first paved with stones, 1186; barricadoes of, 1586, to oppose the entry of the duke of Guise ; again, Aug. 27, 1748, in opposition to the re- gency ; first parliament there, 1302. Persian empire founded, 536 B. C. Petersburg!], in Muscovy, built by the czar. Petfr 1, 1703. Pisa republic founded, 1403. Plymouth, seaport and capital of Plymouth county, Massachusetts. First company of Pil- grims la'nded Dec. 23, 1620. First house built Dec. 25, of the same year . Poland, once the country of the Vandals, who left it to invade the Roman empire ; it was made aduchy, 694 ; kingdom of, began, by the favor 01 Otho III, emperor of Germany, under Boleslaus, 999. Portland, city and port of entry, Cumberland county, Maine. Incorporated 1786. Portugal, kingdom of. began, 1139 ; united to Spain in 1580, and continued so till 1640, when they shook off the Spanish yoke. Providence, city and port of entry. Provi- dence county. Rhode Island. Settled by Roger Williams in IG36. Thirty houses destroyed by the Indians, March 2:t, 1676. Prussia, anciently possessed by the Venedi, whose kings were descended from Athirius, first king of the Heruli, OH the Baltic, 320 B. C. Ratisbon built, lle'7 B. C. Riga, founded in 112d, by a colony of Bre- meners. Roman empire began, 44 B. C.; ended, 63 A. D.; began in the west, 74 ; ended, 92 ; began in the east. 364 ; ended, 1553 ; it was 2000 miles broad, and '3000 in length. Rome, its foundation laid by Romulus, its first king, 753 B. C. according to most chronol- ogers; by sir Isaac Newton's chronology, 627, B.C. Rostock founded. 1169. Roxbury. town, Norfolk county, Massachu- setts. Settled in 1630. Russia, or Muscovy, anciently Sarmatia, and inhabited by the Scythians ; not renowned till the natives attempted to take Constantinople, A.D. 864. Sa*!em. seaport and capital of Essex county, Massachusetts. In 1678 contained but eighty- five houses. The first pavement finished, 1773. Sardinia conquered by the Spaniards. 1303, in whose possession it was till 1708, when it was taken by an English fleet, and given to the duke of Savoy, with the title of king. Savoy, part of Gallia Narbonensis, which submitted to the Romans, 118 B. C. Saybrook, post town, Middlesex county, Connecticut. Fort erected in 16:%. An eccle- siastical constitution, called the "Saybrook Platform," adopted by the Synod, Sept. 1708. Scotland, anciently Caledonia, history of, be- gan, 328 B. C., when Fergus I was sent over by the people of Ireland ; received the Christian faith, A. D. 203. Sicily first peopled from Italy, 1262 B. C. Southwark annexed to London, 1550. Spain, New, established, 1520. Spain was first civilized by the Phoenicians, who possessed great part of it; these called in the Carthaginians ; it was afterwards invaded by the Rhodians ; the Carthaginians however made new conquests, 209 ; and after the de- struction of ancient Tyre, became the most pow- erful in this country. Conquered by the Ro- mans, 216 B. C. Springfield, post town and capital of Hamp- den county, Massachusetts. Settled in 1636. Burnt by the Indians in 1675. Stockholm built, 1253. Sweden, anciently Scandinavia, kingdom of, began, 481. Switzerland inhabited formerly by the Hel- vettii, who were subdued by Caesar, 57 B. C. Syracuse, in the isle of Sicily, founded, 709 B.C. Thebes built by Cadmus, 493 B. C. Trenton, the metropolis of New Jersey. Founded by William Trent in 1724. Troy built, '14dO ; the kingdom of, began 1446 B.C. Vandals began their kingdom in Spain, 412; ended, 534. Venice. The first inhabitants of this country, were the Veneti ; conquered by the Gauls, and made a kingdom, about 356 ; conquered for the Romans, by Maicellus, 221 B. C. Vienna was very obscure till 1151; it was walled and enlarged by Henry I, of Austria, 1122, with the ransom of king Richard I, of England. Wallachia. incorporated with Russia, 1810. Wales first inhabited by Britons, on their being expelled England by the Saxons, 685- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. FRO 670 GAR divided into North Wales, South Wales, and Powis Land, 970 ; conquered and divided by William I. among the conquerors, 1001 ; Grif- 1th the last king died, 1137; the sovereign, from that time, was a prince only. Washington city, in America, founded, 1791. WaterfoVd, in Ireland, built 1162. Wirtcmberg erected into a county in 1078 ; into a duchy, at the diet of Worms, 1495 : into a kingdom, 1803. Woburn, post town, Middlesex county, Mas- sachusetts. Settled in 1642. York built, 1223 B. C. FROST, in Britain, lasted five months, 220. The Pontus sea was entirely frozen over for the space of 20 days, and the sea between Constan- tinople and the Scutari, 401 ; so severe a frost all over Britain, that the rivers were frozen up for above two months, 508 ; one so great that the Danube was quite frozen over, 55ti ; the Thames frozen for six weeks, when booths were built on it, 695 ; one that continued from Oct. 1, to February 26, 760; one in England which lasted nine weeks, 827; carriages were used on the Adriatic sea, 859; the Mediterranean sea was frozen over, and passable in carts, 860 ; most of the rivers in England frozen for two months, !H)8; the Thames frozen thirteen weeks, 923; one that lasted 120 days, which began December 22, 987 ; the Thames frozen five weeks, 998 ; a frost on midsummerdav, so vehement, that the corn and fruits were destroy- ed, 1035 ; the Thames frozen fourteen weeks, 10G3; a frost in England from November to April, 1076; several bridges in England being then of timber, broken down by a frost. 1114 ; a frost from January 14 to March 22,' 1205 ; one of fifteen weeks, 1207 ; the Mediterranean nea was frozen over, and the merchants passed with tlioir merchandise in carts, in 1234; the Cattegatt, or sea between Norway and Den- mark, was frozen, and that from Oxslo, in Nor- way, they travelled on the ice to Jutland, in 12!>4; the tea between Norway and the prom- ontory of Scagernit frozen over, and from Swe- den f. Gothland, 12!iO; tlie Baltic was covered with ice fourteen weeks, between the Danish and Swedish islands, in 1:506 ; the Baltic was passable for foot passengers and horsemen, for Hix weeks, in 1323; the era was frozen over, and passable from Stralsund to Denmark, in 1349; the Baltic was quite fro/en over from Pomerania to Denmark, in 1402; the whole sea between Gothland and Geland was frozen, and from Restock to Gezoer, in 1408; the ice bore riding on from Lubec to Prussia, and the Bal- tic was covered with ice from Mecklenburgh to Denmark, in 1423, 1426, and in 1459; the eea between Constantinople and Iskodar, was passable on ice in 1420; in 1709, the Adriatic sea was frozen and the olive trees killed in the south of Europe ; in 1779-80, the ice was driven out of the mouth of the Mississippi into the Mexican gulf a circumstance never known before or since ; in 1788, which lasted only from November to January, 1789, when the Thames was crossed opposite the custom house, the tower Execution dock, Putney, Brentford, &c. ; it was general throughout Europe, partic- ularly in Holland, at the same time ; the most severe on Dec. 25th, 1796, that had been felt in the memory of man ; severe one in January, 1814, when booths were erected on various parts of the Thames, and the antiquarian soci- ety of Newcastle recorded, that the rapid river Tyne was frozen to the depth of twenty inches ; severe frost at Quebec, Aug. 7, 1815. In the United States, lat. 42, January, 1835, thermom*. eter 30 degrees below zero, in Maine, 40 de- grees below. FRUITS of foreign countries first brought into Italy, 70 B. C., and flowers, sundry sorta before unknown, were brought into England in the reigns of Henry VII, and VIII, from about 1500 to 1578. Among others of less note, the musk and damask roses, of great use in medi- cine, and tulips. Several sorts of plum trees and currant plants; also saflron, woad, and other drugs for dyeing, attempted to be culti- vated, but without success. G. GAMUT in music invented by Guy L'Are tin, 1025. GANSEVOORT FORT, built 1812. GARDENING introduced into England from the Netherlands, from whence vegetables were imported, till 1509; the pale gooseberry, with salads, garden roots, cabbages, &c. brought from Flanders, and hops from Artois 1520; rye and wheat, from Tartary and Siberia, where they are yet indigenous; barley and oats un- known, but certainly not indigenous in Eng- land ; rice from Ethiopia; buckwheat. Asia; borage, Syria ; cresses, Crete ; cauliflower. Cy- pnis ; asparagus. Asia; chervil, Italy ; fennel, Canary Islamls; anni.se and parsley, Egypt; irurlir. the East ; shallots, Siberia; horserad- ish. China; kidney beans, Lust Indies; gourds, Astracan; lentils, France; potatoes, Brazil; tobacco, America; cabbage, lettuce, &c. Hoi HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. GRJ 671 HAN land. Jassamine comes from the East Indies ; the elder tree from Persia ; the tulip from Cappadocia ; the daffodil, from Italy ; the lily-, from Syria; the tube rose from Java and Cey- lon ; the carnation and pink, from Italy, etc. ; rananculus, from the Alps; apples, from Syria ; apricots, from Epirus ; artichokes, from Hol- land ; celery, from Flanders; cherries, fr^ni Pontus ; currants, from Zante ; damask and musk roses, from Damascus, as well as plums ; hops, from Artois and France ; gooseberries from Flanders ; gillidowers, carnations, the Provence rose, &c. from Thoulouse, in France ; oranges and lemons from Spain ; beans and peas from Spain. GAS. use of, introduced in London, for lighting shops and streets, 1814 ; first into the United States, at Baltimore, 1821. GAUZE, lawn, and thread manufactures, began at Paisley, in Scotland, in 175.9. which in 17d4 yielded 575,185, and employed 26,664 hands. In gauze alone, 35'J,900. GAZETTES, of Venetian' origin, and so called from the price being gazetta, a small piece of money ; the first published in England, was at Oxford". Nov. 7, 1G65. GEORGIUM SIDUS discovered by Hersch- el, 1781. GILDING with leaf gold on bole ammoniac, art of, invented by Maro-aritone, 1273 ; on wood, 1680. GIPSIES quitted Egypt when attacked by the Turks in 1515, and wandered over almost all Europe. GLASS, the art of making it, known to the Romans at least before 79 ; known to the Chi- nese about 200; introduced into England by Benedict, a monk, 674; glass windows began to be used in private houses in England, lie 1 ;) ; glass first made in England into bottles and vessels, 1557; the first plate glass for looking glasses and coach windows, made at Lambeth, 1673; in Lancashire. 1773; window glass first made in England, 1557. GLOBE of the earth, the first voyage round it was by sir Francis Drake, 1580 ; the second by Magellan, 1591 ; the third by sir Thomas Cavendish, 1538 ; by lord Anson in 1740 ; by captain Cook in 1763; and by Peyronse in 179:3-4. GRAPES brought to England and planted first at Blaxhall,m Suffolk, 1552 : cultivated in Flanders 1276. GREEN DYE for cotton, invented by Dr. R. Williams, 1777. GRISTMILLS invented in Ireland, 214. 57 GUINEAS were first coined, 1673, from gold brought from the coast of Guinea. GUNPOWDER invented, 1330 ; first made in England, 1418; first used in Spain, 1344. CUNS, great, invented, 1330; used by the Moors at the siege of Algesiraa, in Spain, in 1344 ; used at the battle of Cressy, in 1346 ; when Edward had 4 pieces of cannon, which gained him the battle; they were used at the siege of Calais, in 1347; in Denmark, 1354; at sea by Venice- against Genoa, 1377; first used in Spain, 1406; first made in England of brass, 1635; of iron, 1547 ; invented to shoot whales, J731 ; first used in England; at the siege of Berwick, 1405 ; bombs and mortars invented, 1634. H. HABEAS CORPUS ACT in England, pass- ed, 1641, and May 27, 1679; attempt made in the senate of the United States to suspend it, but rejected bv the house of representatives, 1806. HACKNEY COACHES first used, 20 in number, in London, 1G25. HAIR POWDER in use, 1590 ; a guinea per year tax on those who wear it, 1795. HANDKERCHIEFS first manufactured at Paisley, in Scotland. 1748, when 15,886 worth were made; in 1784 the manufacture yielded above 164.385. HANSEATIC LEAGUE. In the middle of the thirteenth century, the sea and land were infested with pirates and robbers. The German trade being exposed to accidents by land and sea, Hamburg and Lubeck in the year 1241, en- tered into a confederacy, in which they agreed to defend each other from all attacks and from every act of violence. This league was soon after joined by Brunswick ; it was named by way of eminence, the Hanse, meaning a league for mutual defence. Many other towns joined and in a short time, became so numerous that in 1260, a meeting of the members was held at Lubeck, and continued to meet there every three years. In the fourteenth century, this league attain- ed every where a high political importance, and enjoyed extensive and uncommon privileges, till at last it became the mistress of lands and seas and crov/ns. So it continued for a length of time, til! the travelling becoming more se- cure, and the circumstances that gave it rise being changed, the Hanseatic League began to fall, and in 1630, the last diet was held at Lu- beck. The largest number of the Hanse towns was eighty-five. * CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. HIE 672 HIE HATS invented at Paris, 1404 ; first made in London, 1510. HEMP and flax first planted in England, 1533. There are 180,()OUlb. of rough hemp use d in the cordage and sails of a first rale man of WJ HERALDRY had its rise, 1100. HERRING FISHERY, first practised by the Hollanders, 11(54; herring pickling first invented 131)7. HIEROGLYPHICS: Or sacred engraving, was the name given first to the sculptures and inscriptions on the monuments of Egypt it is now often used to denote simply picture icrit- injr, which is seen in its rudest state, upon the buffalo skins of our North American Indians, &c. But a new charm has been given to sim- ilar sculptures, and indeed to the study of anti- quity in general by Champollion's discovery of the key to these so long inexplicable mysteries. This indefatigable scholar, after many years of toil has at last succeeded in deciphering every inscription presented to him ! He discov- ers that these hieroglyphics were usually em- ployed as mere alp/tabetic letters; that when thus read, they give us regular composition in the Coptic or old Egyptian language. As the Coptic is understood by many learned men, we are in a fair way of knowing all that the Egyp- tian records so formed can teach. These monu- mental records of the earliest ages are of two kinds. A. The con- ( dcmotica and demode by Herodotus and MON, j Diodorus. called 4 cnchuria by the Rosetta inscription. I epistolographica by Clement of Alexan- B.The divided by Clement of Alexandria I dria Hieratic, or sacerdotal writing, i hirh may be called hierogrnphic. b. Hiero- . Cyrlologic, by means of glyph ic, the first letters of the al- compos- iihnlwt. ed of A..Symbol by imitii lion. the 2. Tropiral or metaphor- ical. ^.Enigmatical. Tbotieroflyphic writing is eminently monu- mental. It is from the nature of the signs which it employs a species of painting, and it presents a various and picturesque aspect, which distin- guishes it essentially from every other method of writing. The hieroglyphic characters do in fact exhibit images of almost every material object in creation. But the whole number of (! alphabetically, observed by Cham- pollion, after more than 20 years' study, was only 8fi4, viz. celestial bodies, 10; human fig- gures in various positions 120; human limbs, taken separately, GO ; wild quadrupeds. 24 ; do- mestic quadrupeds, 10; limbs cf animals, 22; birds, whole or in parts, 50 ; fishes, 10 ; reptiles, whole or in parts, 30; insects, 14; vegetables, plants, flowers and fruits, CO; buildings, 24; furniture, 100 ; coverings for feet and legs, head-dresses, weapons, ornaments and sceptres, 80 ; tools and instruments of various sorts, 150 ; vases, cups and the like, 30 ; geometrical figures, 20 ; fantastic forms, 50. The figures are ar- ranged in columns, vertical or horizontal, and grouped together, as circumstances requiied,so as to leave no spaces unnecessarily vacant. We cannot go into a larger detail of the other methods of Egyptian writing, which may be understood by an attentive examination of the table above, but give a familiar specimen of the phonetic and alphabetic.. To write the name BOSTON, (See cut fig. A.) for B. the Egyptians would look for some familiar object, the no me of which began with 1). say a censer, which id called in Egyptian Uerbe, and the engraving would be the more appropriate to use, from the church-going character of the inhabitants of Boston. &c. ; in looking round for an object whose name begins with O. the literary char- acter of the city would suggest the reed, an instrument of writing, anciently, and now so used in the East ; this, in Egyptian, is 01;e; for S. take a star ; Sum, for T. a hand, tot. for O, again, to have a variety, instead of the Egyptian tufted reed, as above, they might take an abbre- viation of it, the curled line ; forN. we have the vulture, noure, or, better, the sign for inunda- tion, neph. Fig. B. gives a perfectly Egyptian specimen of the symbolical style, in what is generally called an anaglyph. It is a female winged sphinx found upon a block of black gran- ite. "The sphynx was an emblem of strength, and wisdom, the bodv being that of a lion, and the head human. The name Tnunilnnot., (daugh- ter of Horus, a king of the eighteenth dynasty of Egypt.) is read in the oval. This then is a symbolical image of the queen herself; and the flowers of lotus, underneath, are evidently, though emblematically, taken for the Nile, and for the whole country of Egypt. The sphynx instead of a paw, lias a hand, -raised in the atti- tude of protection. The whole then seems to be in praise of a monarch, and to signify "a monument raised to the memory of queen Tmauhmot, styled the Guardian and Protec- tress of the land of Egypt, by her wisdom and strength." * /W W W VV AM AW MA /W AM WV AM AM Hieroglyphics, or Sacred Engraving. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL JUD 673 LAB HOUR GLASSES were invented in Alex- andria, 240, and introduced at Rome, 158 jears B.C. HUDSON'S BAY discovered by captain Hudson, 1G07. HUGUENOTS murdered at Paris, Aug. 24, 1672. HURRICANE, violent winds, particularly in the torrid zone, and in a manner particularly destructive in the West Indies : The following is a list of the most remarkable of these pheno- mena. 1G70, 1674, 1675, Barbados; 1091, An- tigua; 1700, 1702, Baibados; 1707,- Caribbee Islands in general ; 1712, Jamaica ; 1720, Bar- bados ; 1722, Jamaica, August 31 ; 1733,Carib- bee Islands in general; 1744, Jamaica; 1764, Martinico, Carthagena, and particularly over some of the Caribbee Islands; 1772, most of the Caribbee Islands; 1780, October 3d, Jamaica, 1828, February 18, violent gale at St. Ubes, Portugal, British ship Terror, and 100 men lost. I. INDIGO, first produced in Carolina 1747; cultivated in the open air at Vaucluse, in France, 1603. INOCULATION first tried on criminals, 1721. INSURANCE onshipping began in England, J560. INSURANCE OFFICES established in London, and its vicinity. 1696. INSURANCE POLICIES were first used in Florence in 1523 ; first society established at Hanover, 1530; that at Paris, 1740. INTEREST first mentioned as legal, 1199, at 10 per cent.; in 1300, at 20 per cent. ; in 1558, at 12 per cent. ; in 1571, at 10 per cent. ; in 1625, at 8 per cent. ; in 1749, the funds were reduced from 4 to 3 and 3 per cent. IRON discovered by the burning of mount Ida, 1406 B. C. ; first cast in England at Back- stead, Sussex, 1544 ; first discovered in Amer- ica, in Virginia, 1715; bullets first used in Eng- land, 1550. ITALIAN method of book-keeping, pub- lished in England, 1569. JEREMIAH wrote his Lamentations, 610 B.C. JOSHUA, book of, written 1415 B. C. JUDE, St. Wrote his epistle, 71 ; festival in- stituted, 1030. JUPITER'S SATELLITES discovered by Jansen. 1590. JURIES first instituted by Ethelred, 979; the plaintiff and defendant in those times used to feed them ; whence the common law of de- nying sustenance to a jury after hearing evi- dence. JUSTINIAN published his codex of the civil law, 529 ; and four years after, his work of the same kind, called the digest. K. KAMTSCHATKA discovered by the Rus- sians, 1739. KING of the Romans in Germany, first in- stituted. 1096. KINGDOMS, origin of, by Niinrod, at Bab- ylon, 2233 years B. C. KING'S SPEECH, the first delivered, 1107, by Henry I. KING'S EVIL, supposed to be cured by the touch of the kings of England. The first who touched for it was Edward the Confessor, 1058. It was dropped by George 1. KISSING the pope's foot first practised, 709. KNEE ordered to be bent at the name of Jesus, 1275. KNITTING stockings invented in Spain, about 1550. KNIVES first made in England, 1563. LABOR, price of A. D. 1352, 25 Edward III, wages paid to haymakers, was but one pen- ny a day. A mower of meadows 5d. per day, or Gd. an acre ; reapers of corn, in the first week of August, 2d. in the second 3 price of labor was fixed by the justices by proclamation. In time of harvest, a mower 4rf. a day ; without meat and drink Gd.', CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. LAW 074 LAW reaper or carter &/. a day ; without meat and drink M. ; woman laborer, and other laborers, yd. a day ; without meat and drink 4d. per day. By the 1 1th Henry VII, 1400, there was a like rate of wages, only with a little advance ; as, for instance, a freemason, master carpenter. rough mason, bricklayer, master tiler, plumber, glazier, carver, joiner, was allowed from Easter to Michaelmas to take C2;' in birds, fish, &c. by Mr. Hewson, surgeon, of London, 177!}. LAKE OF HARANTOREEN,;n the coun- ty of Kerry, Ireland, a mile in circuit, sunk into the ground with all its fish, March 25, 1792. LAMP f >r preventing explosion by fire-damp in coal mines, invented by sir Humphrey Daw, 161.-,. LAM) CARRIAGE, fish first brought to London by, 1761. LAND, piece of, in Findhnd, 400;) square ells in extent, sunk fifteen fathoms, but most of the inhabitants escaped, February, 17 the value of - '-. i;..V. L \\VS.COURTS OF JUSTICE, OATHS, TAXES Abjuration oath, first required,J701. Admiralty. c<>;irt of, erected I3o7; i rated June 22, 17Gd. ncorpo- Adultcry punished by cutting off the nose and ears, 1031 ; made capital, 1050. Affirmation of the Quakers first accepted as an oath. 1702: alteration made in it. December 13, iwi: African bill, to supply that trade with cali- coes, 17(>5. Agrarian law introduced at Rome, 48G B. C. By this law the public lands were divided be- tween all the citizens. Ale and ale-houses in England made mention of in the laws of Ina, king of Wessex ; first licensed. 1551. Aliens forbidden to hold chnrch livings, and juries for their trials to be half foreigners. 1430 , prevented from exeicising any trade or handi- craft by retail, 1483. Allegiance, oath of, first administered, 1GOG. Almanack stamps increased, 1781. Ambassadors first protected by a law, 1709; their protection restrained. 1773. American duties, act passed, 17G4 ; on tea, 1707. Arbitration act passed in England, 1698. Armorial bearings introduced into England, to distinguish nobles. 1100; taxed. 17!'8, 1808. ' Arrest, vexatious ones, prevented by an act, May 17, 1733; for less than 10 forbidden, 1779; for less than 20, or on a bill of ex- change for 15, June 14. IclO. Artificers' bill, to prevent their seduction, 1787. Assaying of crold and silver, legally establish- ed, 1354. " Assize of bread and ale in England establish- ed. 12(;05. The first person qualified for chancellor by education, was sir Thomas More, 1530, the office before being rather that of a secretary of state, than the president of a court of justice. Christenings taxed in England, 1783. Circuits, justiciary, established, 1176 ; in Scotland. 1712. Clergy forbidden drunkenness by law, in En- gland, 741. Clocks and watches taxed, 1797 ; repealed, 1798. Common pleas in England, court of, estab- lished 1215. Copy-right secured, by an act passed 1710; farther secured, in England, by an act passed in 1814. Corn, bill to permit the exportation of. passed 1314, to permit the importation when British wheat shall be at 80s. per quarter, 1815. Courts of justice instituted at Athens, 1272 B.C. Criminals ordered for transportation instead of execution, 1590 ; Henry VIII executed 72,000 during his reign. Cur'Vw beh pstah'-shed bv William the cor,- queror, 106; abolished in 1100. East-India company's act in England, passed, 1718. Exchequer chamber, court of, erected bv Ed- ward 111, 1359 ; improved by Elizabeth, 1584. Feodal or feudal laws, the tenure of land by suit and service to the lord or owner of it, in- troduced into England by the Saxons about 600. The slavery of this tenure increased under William I, 1068. This was dividing the king- dom into baronies, giving them to certain per- sons, and requiring those persons to furnish the king with money, and a stated number of sol- diers. It was discountenanced in France by Louis XI, about 1470; restored, and limited by Henry VII, 1495; abolished by statute, 12 Charles II, 1662. Fiery ordeal enforced in England, 1042. Forgery first punished with death in England, 1634. French tongue abolished in the English courts of justice, 1362. Game acts passed in England, 1496, 1670, 1753, 1784, 1785, and 1808. Gipsies expelled out of England, 1563. Gladiators, the combats of. abolished, 325. Hackney coaches established by act of parlia- ment, June 24, 1694 ; regulated 1784, 1786, 1800,1815. Hanover succession established by law, 1701. Harlots obliged to wear striped hoods of party colors, and their garments the wrontr side out- wards, 27 Edward III, 1355. Hat tax commenced, October 1, 1784 ; stamps for ditto, 1796; repealed, 1811. Juries first instituted, 970 ; trial by, in civil causes, in Scotland, passed into a law, March, 1815. Justices of the peace first appointed in Ens- land, 1076. Justinian published his codex of the civrl law, 529 ; and four years after, his work of the same kind, called the Digest. Land tax, the first in England, 991 , amount- ed annually to 82,000, in 1018 ; every hide of land taxed 3*. in 1109. Laws primitive. The laws of Moses were given, B.C. 1452; those of Minos in Crete, 1406; of Lycurgus, at Sparta, 884; those of Draco, and Solon at Athens, the former 623, the latter 580 ; of the Twelve Tables at Rome, 451 ; of Locri by Dalericus,450; and of Thurium,in Italy, by Charondas, 446. Latin tongue abolished in courts of law, 1731. Laws of the land first translated into Saxon, rv>P, published, 610. Laws of Edward the confessor composed, 1065. Legacies taxed, 1780 ; advanced, 1796, 1808. Licenses for public houses first granted, 1551; for brewers and exciseable articles enforced, 1784. Longitude, a reward promised by parliament for the discovery of, 1714. Lords lieutenants of counties instituted, July 24, 1549. Luxury restricted by an English law, where- in the prelates and nobility were confined to two courses every meal, and two kinds of food in every course, except on great festivals; it also prohibited all who did not enjoy a free es- tate of 100 per annum, from wearing furs, skins or silk ; and the use of foreign cloth was confined to the royal family alone, to all othert CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. LAW 676 LEA it was prohibited, 1337. An edict was issued by Charles VI, of France, which says, " Let no one presume to treat with more than a soup and two dishes," 1340. Ma. Hunt, Leigh, born in England, 1784. Hyde de Neuville, count, native of France minister to the United States. Irving, Washington, native of the city of New York, born about 1783. Jackson, Andrew, President of the Unitod States, born at Wraxaw. S. C. in 1767. Jerlery, Francis, celebrated lawyer, now Lord of Session born at Edinburgh, in 1773. Kemble, Charles, an actor of some merit, born in Wales, 1775. Livingston, Edward, born at Clermont, N. Y. in 1764. Lockhart, John G. native of Scotland, born about 17S4, son in law of Sir Walter Scotland editor of London Quarterly Review. Louis Philippe, king of the French, born at Paris, Oct. 6, 1773. Lyndhurst, Lord John Singleton Copley, born at Boston, 1773. Macomb, Alexander, major general, born at Detroit, 1782. Madison, James, born in Virginia, March 5, 1750, (old style.) where he now resides ; edu- cated at Princeton College, N. J. member of the Virginia Legislature, 1 775 ; one of the coun- CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. L1V 678 LON cil of Virginia, 177G ; elected a member of the congress of the revolution ; prominent member of the convention which framed the constitution of the United States. With Alexander Hamil- ton and John Jay, wrote the Federalist, being an able defence of the constitution ; elected a member of the first congress under the consti- tution, and remained many years a distinguish- ed member of that body ; became Secretary of State March 5, 1801, and President of the U. Stales March 4, 1809, and remained in that office eight years. Marshall, John, Chief Justice of the United States, native of Virginia, born 1755. Martineau, Harriet, popular writer on politi- cal economy, and the improvement of society ; native of England. Me Lane, Louis, born in Delaware, 1786. Metternich-Winebourg, prince, born in Aus- tria, in 1775. Montgomery, James, poet, born in Ayrshire, in 1771. Moore, Thomas, celebrated poet, native of Dublin. Opie, Mrs., born at Norwich, 1771. Peele, Sir Robert, Eng. statesman, born 1787. Percival, James G., a poet and scholar, born at Berlin, Conn. 1795. Rossini, Gioachimo, the first living musical composer, born in Romagna, in 1702. Sedgwick, Catherine, daughter of Hon. The- odore Sedgwick, a native of Stockbridge, Mas- sachusetts. Southey, Robert, a celebrated writer, born at Bristol, England, in 1774. Talleyrand, Perigord, prince de, a celebrated politician, born in France, 1754. Thorwaldsen, Albert, the first living sculp- tor, born at Copenhagen, in 1772. Trumbull, John, painter, born at Lebanon, Conn., in 175G. Van Buren, Martin, born at Kinderhook, N. Y. 1782. Webster, Daniel, born at Salisbury, N. H., 1782. Wellington, Duke of, Arthur Wellesley, born in Ireland, May 1709. Wilkie, David, painter, born in Fifeshire, Scotland in 1785. William, IV, king of England, born August, 21,17(r,. Wilson, John, professor at Edinburgh, born at Paisley, 1789. Wordsworth, William, poet, born in 1770. LOADSTONE, polar attraction of, known in France before JJ0. LOCUSTS, the country of Palestine infested with such swarms of, that they darkened the air, and after devouring the fruits of the earth, they died, and their intolerable stench caused a pestilential fever, 400. A similar circumstance occurred in France, 873; a large swarm of. flew over the city of Warsaw, June 17, 1816; swarms of, made their appearance near Aschers- leben, Juno 24, 1816. LOGLINE in navigation used. 1570. LOGWOOD first cut in the bay of Hondu- ras and Campeachy by the English, 1662. LpNGEVITY. Jane Simonds, 119, 1772, in Fishmonger's almshouse. Clun, widow 138, 1772, near Litchfiold Eng. McFindley, Charles, of Tipperary, 143, a cap- tain in reign of Charles I, 1773. Bealey, Wm. 130, 1774, in Londonderry, Ire- land. Gordon. Peter, 131, 1775, at Aucterless N. Britain. Movet, Mr., surgeon, 139, 1796, near Dum- fries. Brookrnan, Sarah, 166, 1776, Glastonbury, England. Cockey, Thomas, 132, 1778, Surrey, En, ; Solon, 82, 558; Periander, 87, 579; Plato. 81, 348; Thucydi- des. 80, 391 ; Zenocrates, 81, 314; Zenepnon, 89,359; Polybius. 81, 124 ; Socrates, poisoned, 70, 400; Anaxagoras, 72, 428; Euripides, 76, 407; ^Kschylus, 70, 456; Aristotle, 63, 322; Anaximander, 64, 547; Pindar, 69, 452 Greek authors 30 died above 100, 4; 90, 8 j 80, 1 1 ; 60, 7. Roman Varro, 87 years of age, died 28 years B. C. ; Lucian, 80, ; Epicurus, 73, 168; Cicero, 63, 43; Livy, by a violent death, 67, A. D. 17; Pliny, the elder, 56, 79, Pliny, the younger, by a violent death, 52, 113 ; Ovid, 59, 17 ; Horace, 57, ; Virgil, 51, B. C. 19. LONGEVITY OF MODERN AUTHORS. Adams, John, died July 4, 1826, aged 91 years HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. ' MAR 679 MAS Bacon, Roger, 1294, 80; Bacon, chancellor, 1025. 57; Boerhaave. 1738, 70; Boyle. 1691, 65; Brahc Tycho. 1001.55; Burnet,"l725, 85; Camden, 165,72; Copernicus, 1543. 71 ; Eras- mus, 1530, 69 ; Fnntenelle. 1557, ll'O; Fother- jnll, 1780, 08; Franklin, Benjamin, 1790,84; Fredeiftk II. 178(5. 74; Gallileo, 1623, 76; Grotius. 1645. 62 ; Hale, sir Matthew. 1070, 07; Hal'ler, 1777,69; Hales, 1761,84 ; Halley, 1742. 85; Hoadley, 1701, 83; Hobbes, 1079. !)2; "'Jefferson, Thomas, July 4th, 1826, 84; Johnson. Samuel, 1784, 75 -/Locke. 1704,73; Liebnitz, 1715, 69'; Milton, 1674, 06 ; Murray, Lindley, 1820, 80; Newton, 1727.84; Puffen- dorff, 1693. 02; Robertson, 1793. 72; Scaliger, J. J. 1609, 69 ; Scaliger, J. C. 1558. 74 ; Selden, 1654,70; Sherlocke, 1762. 84; Sloane, Hans, 1752. 92 ; Swede nborg, 1772. 83 ; Voltaire. 177!!, 85 ; Vossius, J. Gerard. 1649, 72; Vossius/Isaac, 1683, 70 ; Whiston. 1762. 95. LOOKING-GLASSES made only at Ven- ice, 1SOO. LOOMS, the power-loom invented by the Rev. Mr. Cartwright, a clergyman of Kent, in England. 1787. LOTTERIES, the first mentioned by histori- ans for sums of money, 1630; established 1693. M. MAGNIFYING- GLASSES invented by- Roger Bacon. 1260. MALT LIQUOR used in Egypt 450 B. C. MAMMOTH, a complete one discovered on the boarders of the Frozen Ocean. 1799; the skeleton of one found in the ice at the mouth of the river Lena, in Siberia, 1809; the skele- ton of an enormous one discovered in erecting a causeway in the county of Hout in Germany, 1814. MANUFACTURES OF ENGLAND, at the close of the last century, were computed at 82 millions. In the statistical researches pub- lished by the prefect of the Seine in 1823. the shawls and fancy tissues made at Paris are val- ued in round numbers at 15,000,000; the goldsmiths work and jewelry at 27.000.000; the clock and watch making at 19,000,000; the gilt bronzes at 50.000,000; and on these goods alone, the mere wages paid to workmen in the city, amount annually to 22,000.000 or $07.680,000. MARK, St. wrote his gospel, 44. MARRIAGE in Lent forbidden, 354 ; forbid- den the priests. 1015 ; first celebrated in church- es, 1226 ; banns of, first published in churches, about 1200; net of solemnizing it by justices of the peace, 1653 ; first celebration of a marriage in Virginia, 1608. MASSACRES, of all the Carthaginians in Sicily, 397 B. C. ; 2,000 Tyrians crucified, and 8,000 put to the sword for not surrendering 76 ; Tyre to Alexander, 331 B. C. The Jews of J70, Antioch fall upon the other inhabitants and massacre 100,000, for refusing to surrender their arms to Demetrius Nicanor. tyrant of Syria, ] 54 ; a dreadful slaughter of the Tuetones and Ambrones. nCar Aix, by Marius the Roman general, 20y,(jOO being left dead on the spot, 102; the Romans throughout Asia, women and children not excepted, cruelly massacred in one day, by order of Mithridates, king of Pontua, 89 ; a great number of Roman senators massa- cred by Cinna. Marius, and Sertorius, and sev eral of the patricians despatched themselves to avoid their horrid butcheries, 86 ; again, under Sylla, and Catiline his minister of vengeance. 82 and 79 ;. at Prceneste. Octavianus Ceesar ordered 300 Roman senators, and cither persons of distinction to be sacrificed to the manes of Julius Ccesar. 44 ; at the destruction of Jerusa- lem, 1,000.000 Jews were put to the sword, A. D_. 70 ; Cassius, a Roman general, under the emperor M. Aurelius, put to death 37,000 of the inhabitants of Seleucia, 197; at Alexandria, of many thousand citizens, by order of Antoninus 213; the emperor Probus put to death 700,000 of the inhabitants upon his reduction of Gaul, 277; of eighty Christian fathers, by order of the emperor Grat'ian. at Nicomedia ; they were put into a ship, which was set on fire, and driven out to sea, 370 ; of Thessalonica, when upwards of 7,000 persons, invited into the circus, were put to the sword by order of Theodosius, 390 ; Belisarius put to death above 30,000 citizens of Constantinople for a revolt, on account of two rapacious ministers set over them by Justinian, 532; of the Latins, by Andronicus, 1184 (at Constantinople) ; the Sicilians massacred the French throughout the whole island, without distinction of sex or age, on Easter-day, the first bell for vespers being the signal ; this hor- rid affair is known in history by the name of the Sicilian vespers, 1282; at Paris 1418; of the Swedish nobility at a feast, by order of Christian II. 1520; of 70,000 Huguenots, or French protestants, throughout the kingdom of France, attended with circumstances of the most horrid treachery and cruelty ; it began at Paris in the night of 'the festival "of St. Barthol- omew, August 25, 1572, by secret orders from Charles IX, king cf France, at the instigation CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY MAS 680 MET # of the queen dowager, Catharine de Medicis, MASSACRE OF THE GREEKS in the his mother, which is styled in history the mas- island of Scio, to the number of 20 or 30,000, sacre of S.t. Bartholomew ; of the Christians in June, 1822, by the Turks; and again of the Croatia, by the Turks, when 05,000 were slain, Greek garrison and inhabitants of the island of 15!>2; of a great number of protestants at Thorn, Hydra, 1824, which was, however, most severe- who were put to death under a pretended legal ly retaliated upon the Turks in a few d^iys, a sentence of the chancellor of Poland, for being body of Greek troops landing and putting the concerned in a tumult occasioned by a popish whole Turkish force to the sword; April 23d, procession. 1724; at Balavia, where 12,000 1820, the inhabitants and garrison of Missi- Chinese were killed by the natives, Oct., 1740 ; longhi, were murdered under circumstances of in England, 300 English nobles, by Hengist, accumulated horrors. A. D. 475 ; of the Danes, in the southern coun- MATTHEW, ST. wrote his gospel, 44. ties of England, in the night of November 13, MERCATOR'S CHART invented, 1550. 1002, and the 23d Etheldred II, at London; it METEORS. A very extraordinary exhibi- was the most bloody, the churches being no tion of these, called " Falling Stars," took place sanctuary; amongst the rest Gunilda, sister of in America, November 13th, 1833. It is thus Swein, king of Denmark, left in hostage for the described by an eyewitness : performance of a treaty but newly concluded ; We were about five miles southwest of Bos- of the Jews, (some few pressing into Westmin- ton, and a little before five in the morning, on ster Hall, at Richard I's cornation, were put to looking out of the window saw several stars death by the people, and a false alarm being shooting downward, leaving behind a long given, that the king had ordered a general mas- shining train. This excited our attention and sacre of them, the people in many parts of En- calling up a learned friend who was sleeping in gland, from an aversion to them, slew all they an adjacent room, we sallied forth. met; in York, 500, who had taken shelter in The scene was indeed beautiful, and almost the castle, killed themselves, rather than fall fearful. On all sides of us, nearly without ces- into the hands of the people,) 1189 ; of the En- sation, the meteors were streaming through glish, by the Dutch at Amboyna, 1024; of the the heavens; sometimes one alone, sometimes protestants in Ireland, when 40,000 were killed, two or three or more together. Some of them 1041 ; of the Macdonalds at Glencoe, in Scot- were small and soon disappeared; others were land, for not surrendering in time according to more brilliant, and had a longer and more glori- king William's proclamation, though without ous career. We were standing among some the king's knowledge, 1092; several dreadful trees, the strong shadows of which were often massacres in France during the revolution, thrown upon the ground, as the meteors hurried from 1789 to 1704 ; massacre of 000 negroes, by by. the French at St. Mark's, 1802 ; massacre at There was a boy with us whose exclamations Algiers, March 10, 1800; insurrection and were amusing arid descriptive. "See there, dreadful massacre at Madrid, May 2, 1808; see, see!" said he, " there goes a whole hand- dreadful massacre of the Mamelukes in the ful ! there 's one, cracked all to pieces ! Look citadel of Cairo, March 1, 1811. up there ; that one 's made a mark on the skv MASSACRES IN THE U. STATES, of like a piece of chalk !" the first settlers of Virginia, of whom 347 were It. may well be believed that our feelings be- murdered in one night, 1022, by the savages; came deeply interested, and that an exhibition at WUlwcbaiTe by the British and savages, July so wonderful, produced emotions amounting to 3d, 1778; by the British and savnges at Cherry awe. It seemed as if the very stars were leap- Valley, in New York, November 11th, 1778 ing from their places, and after a rapid flight, both these sanguinary acts were done under vanishing into air. If philosophy taught us the direction of colonel John Butler ; of the better, still the imagination could not be re Moravian Indians, by a party from the western strained, and the mind pressed forward to that part ol Pennsylvania, headed by colonel Wil- predicted hour when the heavenly bodies shall liamson, June, 17c-i ; American garrison of vanish like a scroll, and the glittering vault Chicago, tin tlu-ir retreat from the place, by the above, like a vesture, be finally rolled up. savuges, August 15th, 1812; of the American This phenomenon was seen nearly over the wounded prisoners at Fronchtown, on the river whole of North America, and far out" to sea. Raisin, January 22d, 1813, by the Indians, with Other similar phenomena have been observed the privity of the British. f rom timc to tinip in different countries. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. MET 631 MIL METEORIC STONES. A shower of them fell in Connecticut, December 14th, 1807. It was ou-ertfed about a quarter past six. The day had just dawned, and there was little light ex- cept from the moon, whioh was just setting. It seemed to be half the diameter of the full moon ; and passed, like a globe of fire, across the north- ern margin of the sky. It passed behind some clouds, and when it came out it flashed like heat lightning. It had a train of light, and ap- peared like a burning firebrand carried against the wind. It continued in sight about half a minute, and, in about an equal space after it faded, three loud and distinct reports, like those of a four pounder near at hand, were heard. Then followed a quick succession of smaller re- ports, seeming like what soldiers call a running rire. The appearance of the meteor was as if it took three successive threes, or leaps, and at each explosion a rushing of stones was heard through the air, some of which struck the ground with a heavy fall. The first fall was in the town of Huntington, near the house of Mr. Merwin Burr. He was standing in the road, in front of his house, when the stone fell, and struck a rock of granite about fifty feet from him. with a loud noise. The rock was stained a. dark lead color, and the stone was principally shivered into very small fragments, which were thrown around to a distance of twenty feet. The largest piece was about the size of a goose egg, and was still warm. . The stones of the second explosion fell about five miles distant, near Mr William Prince's residence, in Weston. He and his family were in bed, when they heard the explosion, and also heard a heavy body fall to the earth. They afterwards found a hole in the earth, about twenty-five feet from the house, like a newly dug post-hole, about one foot in diameter, and two feet deep, in which they found a meteoric stone buried, which weighed thirty-five pounds. Another mass fell half a mile distant, upon a rock, which it split in two, and was itself shiv- ered to pieces. Another piece, weighing thir- teen pounds, fell half a mile to the northeast, into a ploughed field. At the last explosion, a mass of stone fell in a field belonging to Mr. Elijah Seely, about thirty rods from his house. This stone falling on a ledge, was shivered to pieces. It ploughed up a large portion of the ground, and scattered the earth and stones to the distance of fifty or a hundred feet. Some cattle that were near, w%re very much frightened, and jumped into an en- closure. It was concluded that this last stone, before being broken, must have weighed about two hundred weight. These stones were all of a similar nature, and different from any com- monly found on this globe. When first found, they were easily icduced to powder by the fin- gers, but by exposure to the air they gradually hardened. Other showers of meteoric stones have been known, but this is one of the most remarkable. It is supposed that the meteor was more than a mile in diameter. MICROSCOPES first used, 1621 ; the double ones, 1624 ; solar microscopes invented, 1740. MILITARY and RELIGIOUS KNIGHTS, and TITLES OF HONOR. Admiral, the first in England, 1297. /Ediles first created at Rome, 971 B. C. Alexander, St. knighthood began in Russia, 1700. Aldermen of London first appointed, 1242. Andrew, St. order of knighthood instituted in Scotland, 80'); renewed in Scotland, 1452, 1005 ; in Russia, 1698. Baron,the title first by patent in England,1388. Baronets first created i England, 1011. Bath, order of knighthood, instituted in Eng- land at the coronation of Henry IV, 1399 ; re- newed, 1725. Cincinnatus order began in America, 1783. Common council of London first appointed. 1208. Consuls first made at Rome, 307 B. C. Creation by patents to titles first used by Ed ward III, 1344. Decemviri, first creation of, 450 B. C. Defender of the Faith, the title of, given to the king of England, 1520. Dennis, St. order began in France, 1267. Dey of Tunis first appointed. 1570. Dictators began at Rome, 498 B. C. Duke, title of, first given in England to Ed- ward, son of Edward III, March 17", 1336. Earl first used by king Alfred in 920, as a substitute for that of king. Earl, the first created in England, October 14. 1066. Electors of Germany began, 1298. Eminence, the title of, first given to cardinals, 1644. Esquire, first used to persons of fortune, not attendants on knights, 1345. Garter, order began, April 23, 1349; altera- tion in. 1557, and 1788. It is remaikable, that this is the only order which has been giaated to foreign princes. CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. MOU 682 MU3 r iiiuuria, ii.'*. King of England, tin- title first used,b20 ; of !land,1542; oftireat Britain. Kill,"). Golden Fleece, order of knighthood, began in Flanders. K Irel King of France, the title assumed by tlic king of England, and his arms quartered with the English, and the motto "Dieu etrnonDroit," first used, Feb. 21, 1340: relinquished Jan. 1, 1801. Kin" of the French began, 1791 ; abolished, 1792. Knighthood first used in England. 897. Legion of Honor, instituted by Bonaparte, continued by Louis XVIII, 1614. Lord mayors of London first appointed annu- ally, 1208. Louis, St. order of knighthood, began May 10,1698; abolished, 17!'l. Majesty, the title used to Henry VIII, of England. Poet Laureat, the first in England, 1487. Pope, the title first assumed, 154. MiSSI.-SHTI BUBBLE, in France, ceased June 27, 1720, when its amount was one hun- dred million pounds sterling. .MONASTERY, the first founded, where the Bister of St. Anthony retired, 70 ; the first founded in France, near Poictiers, by St. Mar- tin, ',UM; Constantine IV sends for a great number of friars and nuns to Ephesus. orders them to change their black habits for white, and to destroy their images; on their refusal, he orders their eyes to be put out, banishes them, and sells several monasteries, appropriat- ing the produce, 770; they were totally sup- pressed b^r act of parliament in lf>:'>9. MONEY, first mentioned as a medium of commerce in the twenty-third chapter of Gen- esis, when Abraham purchased a field as a sep- ulchre for Sarah, in the year of the world, 2131) ; first made at Argos, 894 B. C.; has in- creased eighteen times its value from 1290 to HMO; and twelve times its value from 1530 to 1600. MOUNT AUBURN. A retired and imia- mented pltu.e of sepulture, about, four miles from Boston, was publicly dedicated, as a cem- etery, Sept. 24, 1KU. There are upv. fifty acres enclosed, and the whole is under the direction of the Massachusetts Hortir-ultiiral nd it Society, which was incorporated for tin: pur- pone 9y the Massachusetts Legislature, June, Ilie lots however are purchased by in- dividuals and are permanently secured to them, and their legal representatives. The grounds are planted with shrubbery, flowers and trees, and are laid out in walks. Various i tombs and cenotaphs iiave been erect is probably as a " city of the dead "Destined to rival the tar lamed Pere la Chaise of I'aris. MULBERRY TREES first planted in Eng- land, 1009; in the English provinces of .North America, about 1750, for cultivating silk. MUSIC. According to Mosaic records, Jubal the son of Lanicch, played on musical instru- ments even before the deluge. At a later period, we find mention made of the harp, the trumpet and the drum. The oldest scng, is that which Meriiim sang after the passage of the lieu Se;i. Music readied its highest perfection among the Hebrews, at the lime of David and Solomon. The Greeks are said to have received the nr'. of music from Lydia and Arcadia. But it was not till the (Jth century that much of the science of music was understood. Labus, a (mvk, wh .> lived about 54(5 B. C., wrote something on tin- theory of music. In the time of Pericles, Da- inou is said to have been a distinguished teacher of music. In the time of Plato and Aristotle, many ini provements in music were nnde; lhc.se philos- ophers considering music useful ;;s a i:-eans have received their sa- cred music from the Etruscans, and their war- like music from the Greeks. Stringed instru- ments were introduced into Rome, 166 B. C. Under Nero, music was cultivated as a luxury. After his death, live hundred singers and musi- cians were dismissed. In the middle ages, the progress of music was promoted by its being consecrated to the service of religion, and education was not. thought com- plete without some knowledge of music. Guido, of Arezzo, made great improvements in the manner of writing the notes in music, and in the fifteenth century still farther improvement was made by Johannes de Muris. At the same period, music was treated scien- tifically in the Netherlands, France and Spain. The invention of the opera in the sixteenth century, has chiefly contributed to the splendor and variety of modern vocal music, and in the eighteenth century, there were immense im- provements made in musical instruments. , m I HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. NIA 683 NIA The merit of the advancement of vocal music is claimed by the Italians; that of instrumental music by the Germans and French. MUSICAL NOTES as now used, 1330. MUSKETS first used in France at the siege of Arras, 1414; in general use, "1521. MUSLINS from India, first in England, 1670 ; first manufactured there, 1781 . NATIONAL DEBT in England, first con- tracted in Henry VII's reign, 14,301. NEEDLES were first made in England by a native of India, 1545, the art lost at his death ; recovered by Christopher Greening, in 1560, who was settled with his three children, Eliza- beth, John, and Thomas, by Mr. Darner, ances- tor of the present earl of Dorchester, at Long Gredon, in Bucks, where the manufactory has been carried on from that time to the present daf. NEW STYLE first introduced into Europe, 1582; into Holland and the Protestant states, 1700; in England, 1752. NEWSPAPER, first published in England, entitled the " English Mercury," July 28, 1588 ; after the revolution, first daily paper was called the " Orange Intelligencer," and from that time to 1G!)2, there were twenty-six newspapers ; in 1700, there were eighteen weekly and one daily paper, the " London Courant; " in 17H5, there were published in London, Scotland, and Ire- land, one hundred and fifty-eight papers; in 1809, there were two hundred and seventeen newspapers in the United Kingdom ; the num- ber conveyed by post in England, in 1704, amounted to near 12,000,000 pe'r annum. The first printing press in North America, opened at Cambridge, 163i). Among the first books printed were an Indian version of the Bible, and Sandy's translation of Ovid. Two licensers were appointed in Massachusetts, 1G62; presses were forbidden in Virginia, 1(>83; the first printer in Connecticut, 1709. NIAGARA FALLS. It is said that the best station for viewing this magnificent natu- ral curiosity is on the Canada side of the river, though a greater variety of interest is said to be on the American side. The surface of the country about the Falls is flat and uninteresting, and from one side gives little indication of the approach to any remarkable scene ; the noise of the fall of waters, gradually increases, and the mist rises in dense volumes, forming clouds in the air. The illustrative engraving was drawn 58 upon the spot by Mr. Bake well, to whom we are indebted for the description ; a strict regard to pictorial proportion has been dispensed with, in order to present all the leading features in one view. From the hotel (A) there is a gra- dual descent to a very steep bank (B) about 140 feet high, which caps the limestone rock ; having descended, you walk over planks laid on the marshy ground, to the extent of 200 yards, which leads to the brink of the pre- cipice (c), where the whole scene bursts at once on the sight. You are here on a level with the river immediately before it rushes down the dreadful abyss. The loud, solemn, all-pervading roar of the waters is indescribably awful. The water from violent agitation is per- fectly white for some distance below the Falls, producing a thick cream colored foam which is seen floating down the stream in large apparent masses. The sublimity of the scene cannot be exceeded. We find ourselves suddenly in the presence of a Superior Power, and feel an im pressive consciousness of our own nothingness. This Fall (from its concave form called the Horse-shoe Fall) is GOO yards wide, and 158 feet perpendicular. The descent of the rapids im- mediately above the Falls ( d ) is 58 feet, making the whole 216 feet. Goat's Island (e) which divides the A'merican and Canada Falls, pre- sents a bare face of perpendicular rock ( h ), which extends about 500 yards north and south. The American Falls are about 200 yards in width, and 164 feet in height. A spiral stair- case (f) is erected, by which a descent can be made nearly to the bottom of the Falls. The ferry (g) is rather more than a quarter of a mile from the Falls, in a direct line. The small town of Manchester (i) is situated about half a mile above the Falls, and several large mills give a cheerful appearance to this part of the picture. Sucli is the comparative tranquillity of the water at the ferry, that you may be taken across by a boy to the landing place on the side immediately below the American Falls. The waters which expand to form the Ameri- can and Canada Falls, after uniting, are here contracted into a stream not more than 160 yards broad. The river is confined between perpen- diculnr rocks, and the quantity of water that falls is estimated to be 100,000,000 tons in an hour ! A railed platform ( m ) has been con- structed on the rocks extending over the water from the island to the commencement of the curve, which forms the concave central part of the Horse-shoe. In regard to the History of the Falls, we copy the following from an eloquent CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. PAI C)84 PAI article by the Rev. Mr. Greenwood, of Boston, written upon visitiugthe Falls in 1831. " These Falls are not without their history ; but like their depths, it is enveloped with clouds. Geolo- gists suppose, and with good apparent reason, that time was when the ^Niagara fell over the abrupt bank at Queenstown, between six and rioveri miles below the place of the present Falls, and that it has, in the lapse of unknown and incalculable years, been wearing away the gulf in the intermediate distance, and toiling and travellinor through the rock, back to its parent lake." NINEVEH destroyed by the Medes, G12B.C. NON-IMPORTATION law, March. 1811. NON-INTERCOURSE law conditionally repealing the embargo, March, 1809; against England and France, passed by congress, May 1, 1810; repealed as to France, Nov. 1810. NOOTKA, in the northwest of America, dis- covered, 177rt; settled by the English. 1789 ; captured by the Spaniards, 1790, but afterwards confirmed to the EnoTish by treaty. NORTHEAST PASSAGE to Russia dis- covered, 1553. NOTARY PUBLIC, began in the first cen- "NOTES and bills first stamped, 1782. NOVA ZEMBLA discovered, 1553. O OPERA, first in London, 1C92; by Handel, 1735; opera house burnt, 1789; new one built, 1790 ; another in the strand, 1810 ; opera house in Rome, roof fell in, January 18, 1762. ORATORIO, the first in London, was per- formed in Lincoln's-inn play-house, Portugal street, in 1732. ORGANS brought to Europe from the Greek empire, were first invented and applied to relig- ious devotion in churches. 758. ORRERY invented. Ki70. OTAHEITE, or George Ill's island, discov- ered June 18, 17(15. OWHYHE island discovered, 1778, where captain Cooke was killed. OXFORD UNIVERSITY, founded by Al- fred, 886. P. PADLOCKS invented at Nuremburg, 1540. PAINTING. The earliest account we have of the existence of painting is in the rei()0. PIAZZA PLANET, discovered 1801. ISTOLS first used by the cavalry, 1544. PITCH and tar made from pit-coal, discov- ered at Bristol, 1779. PLAGUE the whole world visited by one, 767 B. C. ; in Rome, when 10,000 persons died in a day, 78; in Chichestor, when 34,000 died, 1772; in Scotland, which swept away 40,000 inhabitant*, 954 ; in Unhand, 1025^ 1247,-and 1347, when 50,000 died in London, 1500 in Lei- cester, &<-.. in Germany, which cut off 00,000 |)-o|,],-. 13H; in Paris and London very dread- ful. J:iii7; again ]::?!>; in London, which killed :i;),(MH) persons, 1407; again, when more \yere destroyed than in fifteen yi-.-irs v.ar I .e fore, 1477; neain, when 30,000 dird In London, J 499; again 1548; again, 15! M ; which carried off* in London a fourth part of its inhabitants, l(i('4 ; it Con stan tinople, when 2i!0,00() persons died. Kill at London, when 35,417 died, 1025, and Ki.U at Lyons, in France, died 60,000, 1G32; again at London, which destroyed 68,000 persons, in 1005; at Messina, February, 1743; at Algiers, 1755 ; in Persia, when 80.000 persons perished at Bassorah, 1773; at Smyrna, that carried off about 20,000 inhabitants, 1784 ; and at Tunis, 32,000, 1784 ; in the Levant, 1786 ; at Alexan- dria, Smyrna, &c. 1791 ; in Egypt, in 171J2, where nearly 800.000 died; the yellow fever destroyed 2,000 at Philadelphia, in 17!)3; on the coast of Africa, particularly at Barbary, 3,000 died daily ; at Fez, 247,000 died in June, 1799; 1,800 died at Morocco, in 1800, in one day ; in Spain and at Gibraltar, where great numbers died in 1804 and 1805; at Malta, where it committed great ravages, 1813; in lesser Asia, Syria, and the adjacent islands, by which Smyrna is computed to have lost 30,000 persons, 1814 ; in the kingdom of Naples, where it committed considerable ravao-es, 1810. (See Cholera.) PLASTER OF PARIS, the way first found out for taking a likeness in, 1470. PLATE GLASS MANUFACTORY estab- lished at Lancashire, in 1773; first in France, less. PLAYS first performed in England, 1378; that by the parish clerks, in 1390. Suppressed by parliament, in 1047; restored 1659. POET LAUREAT, the first was Bernard Andrews, 148G; John Kay, 1490; Rev. John Skelton, died June 21st, 1529; Edmund Spen- cer died, 1598; Samuel Daniel, died 1019; Ben Johnson, 1619, died August 6th, 1037 ; sir Willian Davenant, died April 7th, 1008 ; John Dryden, esq. 106S, dismissed as a papist. 1688; Thomas Shadwelt, died December 1692; Na- hum Tate died August 12th, 1715; Nicholas Howe, died December 6, 1718; Rev. Laurence Eusden, died December 27th, 1757; William Whitehead, died April 14th, 1785; Reverend Thomas Wharton, K. D. died May 21st, 1790; Henry James Pye, Esq. his successor. POLICY of insurance in writing first used at Florence. 1509. POLIGAMY forbid by the Romans in 393. POMPKII. ruins of. By recent accounts from Naples it appears that the excavations are still carried on at Pompeii with activity. Dur- ing Ilie last, month, (November. 1M) the whole nfthe street leading from the 'Temple of For- tune to the gate of Isis, and which crosses the centre of the city, has been discovered. Great progress has also been made in the traverse streets, onepf which leads to the theatre, and the other to the temple of Augustin. At the HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. POP 687 PYR extremity of the first, an altar has been found, richly decorated with the protecting genius, represented in the form of a serpent. Two houses in the street of Fortune have, at length, been entirely excavated, and a great many very curious articles in bronze, iron, and ivory have been discovered. POPE, the title of, formerly given to all bish- ops. The emperor, in GOG, confined it to the bishops of Rome ; Hygenus was the first bishop of Rome that took the title, 154 ; the pope's supremacy over the Christian church established bv Boniface 111, G07 ; custom of kissing the pope's toe began 708; pope Stephen 111, was the first who was carried to the Lateran on men's shoulders, 752 ; the pope's temporal gran- deur commenced, 755; Sergius II, was the first pope that changed his name on his elec- tion, 844 ; John XIX, a layman, made pope by dint of money. 10524 ; the first pope that kept an urmy was Leo IX, 1054. Their assumed au- thority carried to such excesses as to excom- municate and depose sovereigns, and to claim the presentation of all church benefices, by Gregory VII. and his successors, from 1073 to 15ixf; pope Gregory obliged Henry IV, empe- ror of Germany, to stand three days in the depth of winter, barefooted at his castle-gate, to implore his pardon, 1077; pope Celestine III> kicked the emperor Henry I V's crown off his head, while kneeling, to show his prerogative of making and unmaking kings, 1191 ; the pope's authority first introduced into England, 107:); the pope demanded an annual sum for every cathedral and monastery in Christendom, but refused, 1226 ; collected the tenths of the whole kingdom of England, 1226 ; residence of tnc pope removed to Avignon, whpre *t con- tinued 7!) years. 1308; their demand on Eng- land refused -by parliament, 13*53; three at one time in 1414; Leo X made a cardinal at four- teen ye:irs old ; elected pope, March 11, 1513, aged 3<>; died 1521 ; Clement VII began to reign, who brought pluralities to their consum- mation, making his nephew. Hippolito, Cardi- nal de Medicis, commendatory universal, grant- ing to him all the vacant benefices in the world, for six months, and appointing him usu-fructu- ary from the first day of his possession, 1523; Rome sacked and Clement imprisoned. 1527; moved their residence to Avignon. 1531 ; kiss- ing the pope's toe, and some other ridiculous ceremonies abolished, and the order of Jesuits suppressed by the late pope Clement XIV, 1773 ; visited Vienna to solicit the emperor in favor of the church, March 1782; suppressed monasteries, 1782; destitute of all political in- fluence in Europe 1787. POST HORSES and stages established in England, 1483 POST OFFICES first established in Paris 14G2; in England, 1581 ; the mail conveyed in stage coaches in England, began in 1785. POTATOES first brought to England from America, by Hawkins, in 1563; introduced into Ireland by sir Walter Raleigh, in 1586, and were not known in Flanders till 1G50. POTTERY, great discoveries made in it by Mr. Wedgewood, 17G3. PRESBYTERIAN MEETING HOUSE, the first in England at Wandsworth, in Sur- rey, Nov. 20, 157-2. PRESSING SEAMEN commenced in 1355. PRIiNCE OF WALES, the title of, first given to the king's eldest son, 128G. PRINTING invented by J. Faust, 1441 ; first made public by John Gottenburgh, of Mentz, 1458; wooden types first used, 1470; brought into England by William Caxton, 1471, who had a press in Westminster Abbey till 1494; first patent granted for it, 15'J1 ; first introduced into Scotland, 1509 ; first used at Lyons, 1488 ; first set, up at Constantinople, in 17c ! 4 ; printing in colors invented, 1G2G. PROMETHEUS struck fire from flints about 1715; he being the first person is said to have stolen it from heaven. PUMPS in vented 1425. PYRAMIDS, colossal structures of the an- cient Egyptians. The cause of their erection is unknown. Some maintain that they werr consecrated to the sun ; others, that they servod as a kind of gnomon for astronomical observa- tion? , according to Diderot, for the presf>rva- tion and transmission of historical information ; according to others, and this was the prevailing opinion among the ancients, that they were designed as sepulchres, or chambers for mum- mies. Among the most renowned are those of Cheops and Cephrenes ; in building the former, 100,000 men were employed 20 years. There have been various statements regarding the size of these immense structures. Herodotus gives 800 feet as the height of the largest one, and says that this also is the length of its base on each side. Strabo makes it 625, Diodorus 000 feet. The French ascertained it to be 480 feet wide. The largest was built by Cheops, and is supposed to contain the bones of that king. The Egyptian Pyramids are quadrangular and hollo'vv, having a broad base, contracting CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. RED 688 REL gradually towards the top, sometimes terminat- ing in a point, sometimes in a plain surface. They are built of large though not very hard limestone. There are about 40 of them all ; these are included within the space of a few miles in the vicinity of Memphis. The group near Gises, are the most remarkable. That of Cheops, before mentioned, is one of them, and is the largest. QUADRANT, solar, introduced 290 B. C. QUICKSILVER, use of, discovered in refin- ing silver ore, 1540. Q.UILLS were first used for pens in 635. R. RAILROADS, first used near Newcastle npon Tyne, about 1650. RAIN, violent in Scotland, for five months, 553 ; a continual rain in Scotland, for 5 months, J)18; so violent in England the harvest did not begin till Michaelmas, 1330; so heavy that the corn was spoiled, 1335; from the beginning of October to December, 1338; from midsummer to Christmas, so that there was not one day or night dry together, 1348; in Wales, which de- stroyed 10.000 sheep, September 19, 1752; in Lnnguedoc, which destroyed the village of Bar le Due, April 20, 1770; in the island of Cuba, on the 21st of June, 1791, when 3,000 persons and 11,700 cattle of various kinds perished, by the torrents occasioned by the rain. Quantitv of rain which fell at Philadelphia in 1827 an'd 1^28, S3 indicated by the rain ^uac-e, was, in H27. :Kf>i) inches ; in 1628, 37.3!) inches. REBELLIONS remarkable in British his- tory : against William I, in favor of Edward AtheUng, by the Scots and Danes, A. D. 1069 ; against William II in favor of his brother Robert, 1083; <.f tin- Welsh, who defeated the Normans and EngKtth, 1095; in England, in favor of the empms Maude, 1139; prince Richard against his father Henry II, 118'J; of the barons^April 1215; compromised by the grant, of magna chartn,Juno 15, following; of the lords spiritual ami temporal tigainst Edward II, on account of his favorites the Gavestons, 1312; and again on account of the Spensers, 1321 ; of Walter, the tiler, of Deptford, vulgarly called Wat Tiler, occasioned by the brutal rudeness of a tax- gatherer, to ]>in daughter having killed the collector in his rage,Tie raised a party to oppose the tax itself, which was a grievous poll-tax, 1381 ; of Henry, duke of Lancaster, who caused Richard IT to be deposed, 139!) ;' in Ireland, when Roger, earl of March, the viceroy and presumptive heir to the crown, was slain, 1399; against Henry IV, by confederated lords, 1403; under the earl of Northumberland, who was defeated at Bramham More, and slain, 1458 ; of Jack Cade, in favor of the duke of York, 1450; in favor of the house of York, 1452, which ended in the imprisonment of Henry VI, and seating Edward IV, of York, on the throne, 1466; under Warwick and Clarence, 1470, which ended with the exptrfsion of Edward IV, and the restoration of Henry VI the same year ; under Edward IV, 1471, which ended with the death of Henry VI ; of the earl of Richmond, against Richard III, 1485, which ended with the death of Richard ; under Lambert Simnel, who pretended to be Richard Ill's nephew, I486, which ended the same year, in discover- ing that Simnel was a baker's son : he was par- doned ; under Perkin Warbeck, 14i'2. which ended in the execution of Warbeck, 1499 ; under Flamoc, 1497, owing to taxes, which ended with the ba,ttl of Blackheath; of the English, on account of destroying the monasteries, J53G, ended the same year; in favor of lady Jane Grey, against queen Mary. 1553, which ended in the death of lady Jane ; of the Roman Cath- olics against queen Elizabeth. 1559; under the earl of Essex, against Elizabeth, 1600. which ended in his death, 1(501; against Charles I, 1639. which ended, with his death, 1659; of the Scotch. 16(i6: under the duke of Mon month, 1685, which ended in his death; of the Scotch, under the old pretender, 1715 ; of the Scotch, under the young pretender. 1745. REFLECTING TELESCOPES invented, 1657. RELIGIOUS ORDERS, SECTS, &c. Albi- genses had their origin 1160 ; Anabaptists began 1525, arrived in England 1549; Anchorites^be- gan 1255; Angelites 494; Antinomian sect began 1538; Antonines began 329; Arian sect began 290; Armenian began 1229 ; Augustines began 389, first appeared in England 1350 ; Bartholo- mites sect founded at Genoa 1307 ; Begging fri- ars established in France 1587 ; Beguines began 1208; Benedictines founded 548; Bethleht-m- ites began 1248 ; Bohemian brethren, the sect of, began in Bohemia, 1467 ; Brigantines began 1370; Brownists s.>ct began 1660; Calvinists sect began 1546; Canons, regular, began 400: Capuchins began 1525 : Cardinals began 853, red hats given them 1242, the purple 1464, the title of eminence 1644 ; Carmelites began 1141 ; HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. REV 689 RIO Carthusians began 1084 ; St. Catharine's began 1373 ; Celestines began 1272 ; Chaplines began 12-13; Dominicans began 1215; Flagellantes, the sect of, arose 1259; Franciscans began 1206; settled in England, 1217; Gray friars began 1122 ; Hermits began 1257, revived 1425; Holy Trinity began 1211; Jacobites be- gan lli)3 ;" Jesuits' society began 1536; expel- led England 1604 ; Venice, 1606; Portugal, September. 1759 ; France, May 5, 1602 ; Spain, 1767; Naples, 1768; Rome and Prussia, 1773; order abolished, August 17. 1773 ; in Prussia and other states, 177l>; revived in Russia, 1784 ; restored in Rome and other states, 1814 ; all monks of the order of, banished from St. Peters- burg, January 2, 1816 ; Jesus, the sisters of, so- ciety began 162o ; Lutheran sect began 1517; Mahometan sect began 622 ; Manichees' sect began 343; Methodism commenced 1734; Mi- nors began 1009; Monks first associated 323; Moravians, or Unitas Fratruni, appeared in Bo- hemia 1457; in England 1737; Predestinarian sect began 371 ; Protestants began 1529 ; Puri- tans began 1545 ; Quakers' sect began 1650 ; Quietists began 1685; Swedenborgians' sect began 1780; Trappists order of monks solemnly installed at Port Ringeard, department of May - enne, January 21, 1815; Trinitarians, order of, instituted 1198; Unitarians began 1553; Ursu- lines established 1198. REPRISALS AT SEA were first granted, 1295. REVOLUTIONS remarkable in ancient his- tory. The Assyrian empire destroyed, and that of the Medes and Persians founded by Cyrus tne Great, 546 B. C.; the Macedonian empire 1 bunded on the destruction of the Persian, on the defeat of Darius Codomanus, by Alexander the Great, 331 B. C.; the Roman empire estab- lished on the ruins of the Macedonian, or Greek monarchy, by Julius Caesar, 47 B. C.; the east- ern empire founded by Constantine the Great, on the final overthrow of the Romans, A.. D. 306; the empire of the Western Franks began under Charlemagne, A. D. 302; this empire underwent a new revolution, and became the German empire, under Rodolph of Augsburg, the head of the house of Austria, A. D. 1273, from whom it is also called the monarchy of the Austrians ; the eastern empire passed into the hands of the Turks, A. D. 1300. Revolution in England, in 16GS; Poland, in 1704, 1709 and 1795; Turkey, in 1730 and 1803; Persia, in 1748 and 1753: Russia, 1682, 1740 and 1762; Sweden, in 1772 and 1809; America, in 1775; France, in 1789; Holland, 1795; Venice, May 17, 1797; Rome , February 26, 1797; South America, April 19, ItilO. RICE was cultivated in Ireland in 1585; in England 1600 ; had its first cultivation in South Carolina, by chance, 1702. RIOTS in British History. Some rioters, citizens of London, demolished the convent be- longing to Westminster Abbey ; the ringleaders were handed, and the rest had their hands and feet cut off, 6 Henry III, A. D. 1221. The goldsmiths' and tailors' company fought in the streets of London ; several were killed on each side : the sheriffs quelled it, and thirteen were hanged, 1262. A riot at Norwich ; the rioters burnt the cathedral and monastery ; the king went thither, and saw the ringleaders executed, 1271. A riot in London in June, 1628, and Dr. Lamb killed by the mob. Another, under pre- tence of pulling down bawdy houses ; four of the ringleaders hanged, 1688. Another at Guildhall, at the election of sheriffs, 1682 ; sev- eral considerable persons were concerned ; they seized the lord mayor; but the city-lieutenancy raised the militia and released him ; at Edin- burgh and Dumfries, on account of the union, 1707 ; in London on account of Dr. Sacheverel's trial ; several dissenting meeting houses broke open, the pulpit of one pulled down, and with the pews burnt in Lincoln's-inn fields, 1709; riots of the Whig and Tory mobs, called Or- mond and Newcastle mobs, 2 George 1, 1715 ; the riot act passed the same year, great mischief having been done by both parties in London ; the Mug-house riot in Salisbury court, between the Whigs and Tories, one person shot dead by the master of the house ; quelled by the guards, 1716. Rioters in Herefordshire demolished the turnpike : quelled after a smart engagement with the posse comitatus. 1735. Of the Spital- fields weavers, on account of employing work- men come over from Ireland, 1736. Between Irish, Welsh and English haymakers. 1736. At Edinburgh the mob rose, set fire to the prison door, took out captain Porte us (who had been pardoned for letting his soldiers fire and kill one of the mob at a former riot) and hanged him upon a sign-post, and then dispersed, 1736. Of the nailers in Worcestershire ; they marched to Birmingham, and obliged all the ironmongers to sign a paper allowing them an advanced price on nails, 1737. Of the Spitalfields weavers, 1765. Of the people in all parts of England, on account of the dearness of provisions, 1766 and 1767. A mob in St. George's fields, to see Mr. Wilkes in the King's Bench Prison, 1768. Damage of 20,000 done to the public prisons CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. RIO 690 ROS and private buildings in London, June 6, 1780, for which many were hanged. At Glasgow, umonir the cotton manufacturers, when several were Ttilled by the soldiers, September 4, 1787. A riot -at Maidstone, at the trial of A. O'Connor nnd others, May 32, 1793, at which the earl of Thanet, Mr. Ferguson and others, were active in endeavoring to rescue O'Connor, and for which they were tried and convicted. April 25, 1799. In different parts of England, owing to the high price of bread, September, 1800. Of weavers, near Manchester, May 24, 1808. At Liverpool, occasioned by a party of the 19th regiment of light dragoons having quarrelled with a press-gang, June 27, 1809. O. P. riot at Covent Garden Theatre, September, 1809, fir old prices ; terminated January 4. 1810. Jn Piccadilly, in consequence of the warrant of the speaker of the house of commons to commit sir Francis Burdett to the Tower, April (i-9, 1810. At the Liverpool theatre, in imitation of the O. P. at Covent Garden, July, 1810. At Bridport, on account of the price of bread, which was quelled by the exertions of the principal in- habitants, May G, 1816. At Biddeford, to pre- vent the exportation of a cargo of potatoes, May 20, 1816. At Bury, to destroy a machine called a spinning jenny, in which the rioters were de- feated by the magistrates and principal inhabi- tants, May 22, 1810. At Littleton and Ely, by a body of insurgent fenmen,on the same day quelled by the military, after bloodshed, May 24. At Halstead, Essex, to liberate four per- sons who had been taken up for destroying ma- chinery, May 23, 181G. At Preston, on account uf a diminution of wages, August 17, 1810. Among the convicts in Newgale, which WPS quelled by threats of withholding from them their allowance of food, August 2(5. 181(5. At Nottingham, by the Luddites, who destroyed more than thirty frames, October 12, 181(5. At Merthys-Tydvil, in Glamorganshire, by the workmen in the iron works, on account of a reduction of wages, October 18. 181G. By the colliers, at Calder iron works, near Glasgow, on account of a suspension of wages, in conse- quence of arrests for debt, which continued for several days, October 19. 181(5. In the town of Birmingham, October 28, 181G. In London, in consequence of a popular meeting in Sp:i fields. for the purpose of presenting a petition to the prince regent, from the distressed manufactur- ers nnd mechanics; the shops of several gun- smiths were attacked for arms, and in that of Mr. Beck with on Snowhill, a Mr. Platt, who happened to be in the shop, was shot in Uie body by one of the rioters, December 2/1816. Several of the rioters were apprehended, and one of the name of Watson wa^ tried for high treason and acquitted, June 1C, 1817. At Dun.- dee, on account of the sudden rise in the price of meal ; upwards of one hundred shops of va- rious descriptions were plundered, and the house of Mr. Lindsey, an extensive corn dealer, set on fire, December 7, 181G. At Preston, by the unemployed and distressed workmen, Sep- tember, 181(5. At Almwick in Wales, to pre- vent a vessel laden w*th flour from leavinc the wharf, March, 1817. ROADS in the Highlands of Scotland were begun by Gen. Wade, in 1726, and finished in 1737; in England first repaired by act of parliament. 1524. ROSARY, or beads, first used in Romish prayers, 1093. ROSBACH,in the upper circle of Saxony, totally disappeared, in October, 1792, supposed by an earthquake. ROSS'S EXPEDITION. The following account of this expedition is condensed from an excellent article upon the subject, which ap- peared in the People's Magazine in 1834. The news of the safe return of Captain Ross has been received both in Great Britain and the United States with unfeigned sensations of joy. The hardy navigator with his nephew. Com- mander Ross, and the whole of his party except three, two of whom died on the pa^ao!' oul. and one at a later period, arrived at Hull on Friday morning, the 18th of October, I-"-. It was in lfciJ9 that Captain Ross fitted oul his expedition to determine the practicability >->' a new passage, which hiid been confidently etited to exist, particularly r-v Prince Regent's Inlet, but in consequence of the loss of the fore- mast of his vessel, the Victory, he was obliged to relit nt Wideford, in Greenland. The ac- counts of his departure from thence on the 27th July, 1829, formed the last authentic intelli- gence received of the expedition By the sub- sequent details it will be perceived that he was picked up by the Isabelle of Hull, the very ship by a singular coincidence, in which he made his first voyage to the Arctic regions. By Captain Ross's ssccount it appears, that the' first season (that of 1^2!>.) was the mildest that had ever been recorded, and the : w.-is more clear of ice than had been experienced during any preceding voyages. On the Kith of August", Captain Ross readied the spot where the stores of his majesty's late ship, the Fury, were landed. * HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SAP 691 scu On the 1st of September, 1832, he visited Leopold South Island, now established to be the north-east point of America, in latitude 73, 56, and longitude 90 west. From the summit of the lofty mountain on the promontory he could see Prince Regent's Inlet, Barrow's Strait, and Lancaster Sound, which presented one impenetrable mass of ice, just as it had ap- peared in 1818. The circumstance that Captain Ross was res- cued by the ship he commanded in 1818, is a curious and happy conclusion of the voyage, the result of which has established that there is no new north-west passage south of seventy- four degrees. The true position of the magnetic pole has been discovered, and much valuable informa- tion obtained for the improvement of geograph- ical and philosophical knowledge. Captain Ross had a good opportunity of verifying his former survey of the coast of Baffin's Bay, which every master of a Greenland ship can testify to be most correct. On the whole it may be said that this expedi- tion has done more than any that preceded it ; and let it be remembered that Captain Ross and his nephew were volunteers, serving without nay, for the attainment of a great national ob- ject, in prosecuting which they have lost their all. RUM imported into England in 1789, was 3,300,000 gallons ; in 1796 there were import- ed 4,196,198 gallons. SAILCLOTH first made in England, 1590; cotton sailcloth made at Baltimore and at Pat- terson, N. J. and brought into use in the United States, 1824. SAINT HELENA first possessed by the English. 1600. SAINT LAWRENCE river discovered and explored by the French. 1~>0-;. SALT MINES in Staffordshire discovered, 1670; rock salt was discovered about 950; in Poland, in 1289. SALTPETRE first made in England, 1625. SANCTUARIES, or cities of refuge, were instituted bv the Jews immediately alter their establishment in Palestine about 14t)l) B. C. ; such use, or rather abuse, was made of the heathen temples, particularly those of Hercules; Christian churches commenced to be used as such, A. D. (J17; abolished in England. 1534. SAPPHO, a Greek poetess, who after the death of her husband, is said to have become enamoured of Phaon, and, in consequence of hw neglect, to have thrown herself into the sea. SATELLITE, moon or secondary planets ; of which there is known to exist, attending the Earth one, Jupiter four^ Saturn nine, if his two rings are included, and the Herschel six, mak- ing twenty in all eighteen globular, and the two rings of Saturn circular. Of these bodies, except the moon of the earth, the attendants of Jupiter were first discovered. Simon Marius, astronomer to the elector of Brandenburg, in November, 1609, observed three little stars moving round the body of Jupiter, and in 1610 discovered a fourth ; similar observations were made at the same time in Italy by Galileo. Satellite of Saturn, the fourth, was first dis- covered by Huygens, March 25th, 1655; four more were discovered by Cassini, between 1671- 84; and Dr. Herschel, 1787-89, discovered two more, and completed the list of the attendants of Saturn. Satellite of the Herschel, or Georgian planets, six in number, were all discovered by Dr. Her- schel, from January 1 1th, 1787, to March 26th, 1794. The existence of these satellites of the Georgian planet, rests upon the authority of Dr. Herschel alone. SAXON GREEN, in dying, invented 1744. SCARCITY-ROOT, a kind of parsnep, in- troduced and propagated in England, 1787. SCENES first introduced into theatres, 1533. SCULPTURE. The antiquity of sculpture is proved by referring to the Bible. In the book of Exodus, we read of Laban's images, of the golden calf made by Aaron, and of the stat- ues of the cherubim. Herodotus tells us that the Egyptians first carved figures of animals in stone." Almost all the sculpture of Egypt was employed for sacred purposes ; it was of stu- pendous magnitude. The pyramids, colossal statues, and sphynx are gigantic works of art, and strike those who behold them with aston- ishment. The eras of Egyptian sculpture ex- tend through the dominion of the Greeks and Romans. Under the latter, much improvement was made in the art. Hindoo sculpture strongly resembles that of Egypt, but is generally very inferior. Chinese sculpture also slightly resembles the Egyptian. Dtedalus may be considered the first sculptor in Greece, as before his time, the attempts at the art were rude and imperfect, though there were schools established at Sicyon, Egina. Corinth and Athens. Daedalus was born 1234 B. C. He formed something like a school of sculpture CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY SCU 692 SCU at Athens The- Irst statues were formed of wood, and metal was also used iu various parts for sculpture. About G4G B. C. statues in marble were exe- cuted, and a school called the Chian School, was founded by Malas. The marble was pro- cured from the Ionian islands, where a school was also established called the Ionian School. In 517 B. C., great improvements were intro- duced in the art of sculpture in marble. After the battle of Marathon, 4LH) B.C.. sculp- ture flourished and the schools produced many eminent artists, among whom was Phidias. He executed statues in bronze, marble, and a com- position mostly of ivory. His works were nu- merous and splendid, and he stands without a rival among the ancient masters. From this period till the fall of Greece, many eminent sculptors appeared, but after the death of Alex- ander, the arts began to decline, and continued in thi" state for nearly two hundred years, when Greece became a Roman province. Italian sculpture may be divided into two distinct classes, the Etruscan and the Roman. The sculptors were mostly Greeks, as the Ro- mans possessed only sufficient knowledge to value the genius of others. After Constantino, the annals of ancient art may be considered as closed. Schools for sculpture were formed in Italy in the eleventh and twelfth centuries, and before the close of the thirteenth, a school was founded by Nicolas Pisano, a native of Pisa. Before the close of the next century, sculpture was successfully practised throughout Italy. Donatello, born in 1:383, was a very eminent sculptor, and executed many magnificent stat- ues. His pupils were the chief masters of the fifteenth century. In the sixteenth century, Michael Angelo commenced his career. Many eminent sculptors were his contemporaries, among whom was Torrigiani. After Bernini in 1GIO, the art rapidly declined in Italy, till it was again revived b'y Canova. This distin- guished artist was born in Possagno, in the Venetian territory in 1757. His statues, mon- umental works, and tablets in relievo, are emi- nently beautiful He died in 182?, lamented by all who knew him. Thorwaldsen, the Dane, is the chief master of the modern school of sculpture. He was born at Copenhagen, in 1772. His designs are very original, and his taste and execution very fine. The first eminent French sculptor appears to have been Jean Goujon. At the conclusion of the sixteenth century, John of Bologna established a school for sculpture in France. At the head of this school stood Girardon and Puget. The former was an artist of great merit, but the lat- ter was a favorite with his countrymen, who compared him with Michael Angelo. He was born at Marseilles, in 1G62. The succeeding artists imitated his style. The French sculptors of the present day are more distinguished for science, than for fee-ling or invention. Their statues have correct pro- portions, but no sentiment nor expression. Berruguete. a pupil of Michael Angelo, found- ed the first regular school in Spain, of which Paul de Cespides' was the chief ornament. He was very eminent. In the seventeenth century, Hernandez executed many noble works. Pujol and Montaguez, were also celebrated artists. In the eighteenth century, Salvador and Philip di Castro contributed greatly to the improvement of sculpture in Spain. Before the seventeenth century, we find little said of German sculpture, and even subsequent- ly to that period, there are not many distin- guished artists. The art in Germany rather languishes, though there were some artists of great eminence at the commencement of the last century. When the Romans conquered Great Britain, the natives learned the art of sculpture from their conquerors, and for two hundred years after, continued to cast great works in bronze. In 1242, many statues of kings, queens and saints were executed for the adornment of a cathedral at Wells, but they are ill designed, and rude. Edward III encouraged sculpture and archi- tecture, and the cathedrals were filled with splendid monuments and statues. Westminster Abbey has many specimens of English art at this period. The first name of eminence in British art, is that of Gibbons about JGT>2. Charles I, em- ployed him in ornamenting his palaces, and his chapel at Windsor. His chief excellence lay in ornamental carving, of which there are exqui- site specimens at Chatsworth. the seat of the Duke of Devonshire. Cibber, born in 1C30, at Holstein. rose to great eminence. Roubilliac, though a Frenchman, is ranked among British sculptors, as .all his celebrated works weie exe- cuted in England. Thomas Banks was born in 1735. He studi- ed the art at Rome, and after practising there HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. SEA G93 SEA seven years, he returned to fill his own coun- try with his noble works. Joseph Nollekins flourished at the same time. He was famous for his busts, of which he executed great num- bers, from distinguished persons. John Bacon, born in 174D. was another eminent sculptor; his works are very numerous. Mrs. Darner born in 1748 deserves mention among the artists of the eighteenth century. Flaxman, born in 1755, is distinguished as a sculptor in modern days. He successfully awoke the dormant energies of sculpture, and restored the simple and grand style of antiquity. The school of sculpture now in England, headed by the celebrated Chantrey, is based upon sound principles, and will soon attain a high degree of excellence. Greenough, an American artist now in Italy, promises to add the name of an American, to those of other countries, renowned in the annals of sculpture. SEA FIGHTS IN MODERN TIMES. 893 Fight between England and the D;mes, when Alfred defeated 12;) ships of Dorsetshire. 1 38!) Eighty French ships taken by the English. 1416 The Duke of Bedford took 500 French and 3 Genoese vessels. 1449 The French fleet taken by the Earl of Warwick. 1571 Oct. 7, between the Christian powers and the Turks, in which the latter lost 25,000, with 4000 prisoners and 335 vessels. 1588 Between the English fleet and Spanish Armada. IG53 July 29th, the Dutch lost 30 men-of-war, and Admiral Tromp was killed. 1GG4 Dec. 4th, the Duke of York took 130 of the Bourdeaux fleet. 1G92 May 19th. the French fleet entirely de- feated, and 21 lanre men of war destroyed. 1702 Oct. 12, the Vigo fleet taken by the Dutch and English. 1704 Aug 24th, the French are beaten by the English and entirely relinquish to them the dominion of the sea. 1775 A British vessel captured by the Ameri- cans ; the first capture in the war of the rev- olution. 1779 Sept. 23. Paul Jones captured the British frigate Serapis. 1782 April 12, Admiral Rodney defeated the French going to attack Jamaica. 1794 June 1 , Lord Howe totally defeated the French fleet. 1797 Oct. 11, the Dutch fleet defeated by Ad- miral Duncan on the coast of Holland. 1798 Aug. 1, the famous battle of the Nile. The French fleet of 17 ships totally defeated by Nelson. 1801 April 2, the Danish fleet of 28 sail taken by Lord Nelson oiF Copenhagen. 1804 Stephen Decatur succeeded in obtaining possession of the frigate Philadelphia from the harbor of Tripoli. He then set fire to her, and 20 of the enemy were destroyed. Lieutenant Decatur did not lose a man. The same year in August and September, Com- modore Preble made several famous attacks upon the town, fortress and naval forces of Tripoli. 1805 Oct. 21 , French and Spanish fleets totally defeated off Cape Trafalgar, and Lord Nelson was killed in the action. 1308 June 14, French squadron in the harbor of Cadiz surrendered to the Spanish patriots. 181 1 May 10, rencontre between the British sloop of war Little Belt, and the United States frigate President, Commodore Rodgers. 1812 August 13, the British sloop of war Alert, taken by the United States frigate Essex, Captain Porter. Aug. 19, the British frigate Guerriere taken by the United States frigate Constitution, Captain Hull. Oct. 18, the British brig Frolic, by the United States sloop Wasp, Captain Jones; same day. the Wasp and Frolic were captured by the British 74 Poictiers, Capt. Beresford. Oct. 25, British frigate Macedonian, cap- tured by the frigate United States, Commo- dore Decatur. Dec. 29, British frigate Java, captured by the United States ship Constitution, Captain Bainbridge. 1813 Feb. 25, Peacock, British sloop of war, captured by the United States ship of war Hornet, of inferior force. The Peacock sunk with a great part of her crew. June 1, United States frigate Chesapeake, captured by the British ship Shannon; a most distinguished action in the naval history of the United States, in which the gallant commander, James Lawrence, fell. June 3. United States armed vessels Growl- er and Eagle, taken after a smart action, by the British gun-boats. Aug. 14. United States sloop of war Argus, taken by the sloop of war Pelican. Sept. 4, British ship Boxer taken by the Enterprize. Sept. 13, Commodore Oliver Perry, in a gallant action of the United Stales squadron CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. SIG 694 SOU under his command, captured the British fleet on Lake Erie. 1614 March 20, the United States frigate Essex, taken by the British frigate Phoebe, and sloop of war Cherub, after a desperate and sanguin- ary defence. April 21, United States ship Frolic, taken by a British squadron. April 21), British ship Epervier, taken by the United States ship Wasp. Sept. 1, British ship Avon, taken by the Wasp. 1815 Jan. 15, United States frigate President. Decatur commander, captured by a British squadron, consisting of the Endymion, Tene- dos and Pomone frigates, and the Majestic razee a distinguished and gallant action on the part of Decatur, who, after being captur- ed, refused indignantly to deliver his sword to any other than the commander of the squad- ron. Feb. 20, the British ships Cyane and Le- vant, taken by the United States frigate Constitution. March '23, the United States ship Hornet captures the British ship Penguin. 1627 Famous battle of Navarina ; the Turkish navy annihilated, by the combined English, French, and Russian fleets, under command of Admiral Sir E. Codrington. SEXTANT invented by Tycho Brahe, in 1550. SHIP. The first seen in Greece arrived at .Rhodes from Egypt, 1-135 B. C.; the first double decked one built in England was of 1000 tons burden, by order of Henry VI 1, 1509; it was called the Great Harry, and cost 14,000 ; be- fore this, twenty-four gun ships were the largest in the nivy, and these had no port-holes, the guns being on the upper decks only. Port-holes and other improvements were invented by De- charges, a French builder at Brest, in the reign of Louis XII, 1500: there were not above four merchant ships of 120 tons burden, before 1551 . SHIP BUILDING, the art of, attributed to the Egyptians, as the first inventors, the first ship being brought from Egypt to Greece by Danaus, 1485 B. C. The first ship of the bur- den of 800 tons was built in England in 1597 SHOEING OF HORSES introduced, 481 SHOES of the present fashion first worn in England, 1G33; but the buckle was not intro- .iurr.l till IliTlt. SIDE-SADDLES first used in England, 13SO. SIGNALS at sea first devised by James II, 1666. SIERRA LEONE coast discovered, 14GO, nearly destroyed by a French frigate in 1795. SILK, wrought, brought from Persia to Greece, 325 B.C. From India, A. D. 274; known at Rome in Tiberius's time, \vlien a law passed forbidding men to debase themselves by wearing silk, fit only for women; Heliogabulua first woie a garment all of silk, 220; silkworms were brought to Europe 300 years later; in J130, Greek manufacturers of silk brought by Roger, king of Sicily, to Europe, settled at Pa- lermo, where they taught the Sicilians, not only to breed up the silk- worms, but to spin and to weave silk ; which art was carried afterwards to Italy and to the south of France ; Venice in- veigled silk weavers from Greece and Palermo, in Sicily, 1207 ; silk mantles worn by some no- blemen ladies at a ball, at Kennelworth castle, in 128(J ; silk manufactured in England, 1004; first silk manufacture in France, 1521 ; silk worms and mulberry trees propagated by Henry IV through all France, 1559; broad silk manu- facture from raw silk introduced into England, 1G20 ; Lombe's famous oilk throwing machine, erected at Derby, in 1719. SILVER first coined at Rome, 2G9 B. C. SILVER PLATE, or vessels, first made use of in England, by Welfred, a Northumbrian bishop, 709; silver knives and forks, spoons and cups. 1300. SINGAPORE is an island with a town of the same name, near the south coast cf Malacca, which gives name to the narrow sea called the Straits of Sincapoura.long. 103, 30 east, lat. 1, 12 noith. This town which a few years since had only about 200 inhabitants, was stated in 1820 to have about 10,000, and to have become a place of considerable commerce. It belongs to the English. SLAVE TRADE from Congo and Angola, begun by the Portuguese in 1482: begun witli England, 1563 ; in South America, 1550 ; abol- ished by the Quakers, 1784 ; by the French convention, 1794; by the British parliament. 1807 ; by the Prince of the United Netherlands, 1614 ; in France by Bonaparte. March 29, 1815 . abolished in Pennsylvania, 1784 ; in 1768, there were 104,000 brought in the West Indies, at 15 each, amounting to . 1 ,582,000, sterling, chiefly by barter ; by the French convention, February 4, 1794. SOAP first made at London and Bristol, 1524. SOUTH SEA ACT passed, May G, 171(5; its bubble, 1720, by which many thousands were ruined. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. sov 695 sov SOVEREIGNS OF FRANCE. Henry III be S ant..D. 1039 Leo V beganA..D ,006 Charlemagne beg an A D, ,768 Henry IV 105ii Christopher 906 Louis 1 814 Henry V 1106 SergiusIII 907 Charles the Bald 843 Lotharius 1 1 , the Saxon 1125 Anastatius 910 Louis II, the Stammerer 877 Conrad III 1138 Lando 912 879 Frederick I (B irbarossa) 11 5* JohnX 91?! Charles the Fat 884 Henry VI .-. 1190 Leo VI 928 Hugh 888 Philip and Otho IV 1198 Stephen VIII Charles the Simple 898 Frederick II 12i2 John XI 931 Robert 9-?2 Conrad IV 1250 Leo VII 936 Ralph 923 William of Holland 1254 Stephen IX 940 LouisIV 996 Richard, I), of Corn wall 1257 Martin II 943 Lotharms Louis V 954 98S Rodolph of Hapsburgh Adolphus of Nassau J273 J292 A?apetII John XII 946 956 Hugh Capet 9S7 Albert I, of Austria 1298 BenedictV 965 Robert the I'ious 997 Henry VII 1308 John XIII 966 Henryl 1031 Louis of Bavaria, and Fred- Domne II 973 Philip I IfltiO erick of Austria 1314 Benedict VI 973 Louis VI, the Gross 11(18 Charles IV 1346 Benedict VII 974 Louis VII 1137 1378 John XIV 984 Philip II (Augustus) 1180 Robert 1400 John XV 985 Louis VIII 1223 Sigismund 1411 John XVI 986 Louis IX (St. Louis) 122ti Albert II, of Austria 1437 Gregory V 996 Philip III, the Bold 1270 Fredericklll 1440 Silvester II 999 Philip IV, the Fair r.ouis X, King of Navarre 1285 1314 Charles V 1493 1519 JohnXVH John XVIII 1003 1003 Philip, King; of Navarre 131(5 Ferdinandl 1558 gergiusIV 100ft Charles IV, the Fair, Kin? of Maximilian II 1504 Benedict VIII 1019 1322 Rodolph II 1576 John XIX 10v>4 Philip VI, the Fortunate .... 1328 Matthias 1612 Benedict IX 1033 John I, the Good '.... 1350 Ferdinand II 1G19 Gregory VI 1044 Charles V, the Wise 13(54 Ferdinand III 1637 Clement II 1047 CharlesVI 13*0 Leopold I 1(158 Damasiall 1048 Charles VII, the Victor Joseph I 1705 Leo IX 1049 Louis XI, the Prudent 1461 Charles VI 1711 Victor II 1055 Charles VIII, the Affable 1483 Charles VII, of Bavaria Stephen X 1057 Louis XII 1498 1515 Francis I, of Lorrain 1745 Nicholasll 1058 Henry II Francis II 1547 1559 Joseph II Leopold II 17(15 1790 Gregory VII Victor III 1073 1085 Charles IX IfiHO Francis II* 1792 Urban II 1087 I8i)6 Pascal II Henrv IV, the Great )59 Germanic Confederation 1815 Gelasius II 1118 Louis XIII Louis XIV, the Great 1610 1643 Upon the establishment of the Coofede- ration of the KV-. , hi!8u8 r-.-m'-ii ceased to Calixt.isII HonoriusII 1119 1125 Louis XV Louis XVI Republick Napoleon, Emperor of the 1715 1774 1792 be Emperor of Germany, anil became Km- peror of Austria, under the title of Francis I. In 1815, hei- il.-rl.ired hereditary head of the Germanic Confederation. Celestine 11 Lucius II Eugene III 1130 1143 1144 1145 French 1804 OF PAPAL STATES. Anastasiiis IV 1154 Louis XVIII 1814 Adrian I lenan . v .772 Adrian IV 1155 1824 Leo III Alexander III 1459 Louis Philippe I, King of the Stephen V 816 Lucius HI 1181 French 1830 Paschal I 817 Urban III 1185 OF GERMANY. Eugene II Valentine 820 824 Gregory VIII Clement HI 1187 1187 Charlemagne be gan A.B . 800 Gregory IV 827 Celestine III 1190 LouisI 814 SergiusII 843 Innocent III 1196 Louis II 843 Leo IV 847 Honorius III 1217 Carloman 87(5 Benedict III 855 Gregory IX 1227 Louis III, the Youneer 87(5 Nicholas 1 858 Celestine IV 1241 Charles the Fat 876 Adrian II InnocentIV 1243 Arnold 887 John VIII 873 Alexander IV 1254 Louis IV, the Infant 699 Alartin I 883 Urban IV 1262 ConradI 911 Adrian lit 884 Gregory X 1264 Henrv I, the Fowler 919 Stephen VI 885 Clement IV 1265 891 1276 Otholl 973 Stephen VII 897 Adrian V 1276 OthoIIl 983 Hotnanus Formosus 901 John XX 1276 Henry II, the Saint Conrad II, the Salick 1002 1024 John IX BenedictIV 901 905 Nicholas HI Martin IV 1277 1281 59 CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY sov 696 sov HonoriusIV Mchulus IV fcfmi.D. 1285 Ighorl be S an A . ... 12f8 Swatoslawl . D. 913 Swerker began .. 945 Eric IX . 972 Charles Swerkersou A.D. 1135 .... 1155 1101 Celestme V Boniface VIII.... Benedict X Clement V li*)5 Waldimir the Great ','. 1303 Swatopolk ... 1305 Jaroslaw I, of Kiew ', 1316 Isaslaw I .. 1015 Swerkerll .. 1018 EricX .. 1051 John I 1167 1199 1210 1216 1222 Alexander II Benedict XI Clement VI Innocent VI l'>7 Is watosla w II 1334 Wse wolod I ... 1342 Swatopolk II ...1353 Waldimirll .. 1078 Waldamar I 1093 Magnus Ladulos 1113 Birger .. 1125 Magnus (I .. 1250 . 1275 1290 1319 Urban V Gregory XI Urban VI Boniface IX Innocent VII Gregory XII Alexander V John XX II MartinV Eugene IV Nicholas V CalixtusIIl 1371 Jaropolkll 1378 Wsewolod II 1390 Isaslaw II I".". 1404 Jurjel, Duke .. 1406 Andrej 1132 Albert of Mecklen . 1138 Margaret 1146 Eric XIII ... 1149 Christopher III ... 1157 Chailes VIII 1363 ... 1369 . 1412 1449 1448 1483 J52i) 1523 15-0 1569 1592 ... 1604 .. 1611 ' 1032 IC54 1409 Michel I " 14)0 Wsewolod HI ... 1177 Christian II ... 1213 Gustavus Vasa ,.. 1217 Kric XIV ... 1238 John III . . . 1245 Sigismund ... 1262 Charles JX ... 1270 Gnstavus Adolphus ... ]275 Christiana ... 1281 CharlesX !!! 1431 Constantine 1447 Jaroslaw 11 ..1455 Alexander Newskoi I'/. 1458 Jaroslaw III Paul II fi^nrviii-:: Alexander VI... Piiislll 1464 Wasilejl 1471 Dimitrej ,.. 1492 Danilo 1503 Micliailow ..1503 June III ... 1294 Charles XI ... 1305 Charles XH ...1317 Ulrica Eleanora ... 1697 1719 172;> LeoX Adrian VI Clement VII.... 1513 Iwan I, of Moscow 1522 Semen 1523 Iwan II 1534 Dimitrej II ...1340 Adolphus Frederick ... 1758 1771 ','.'.'. 1359 C.ustavus IV, Auolphus .... 13C3 Charles XIII .... 1389 Charles John XI V(Berm 1425 1462 OF OTTOMAN E! 1792 Ife09 idotte) 1818 VIPIRE. A .P. 1300 J3Q .... 1359 1390 Julius HI Marcellinui 11 .. Paul IV PiusIV PiusV CreKoryXIII... 1551) Dimitrej III 1555 Wasilejll , 1556 Wasileilll ... 1566 W:silejIV 1572 Iwan YVasilejevitch . . . 1585 Feodore I . 1505 Otliman I be S a 1533 Orcan I 1584 Amnrath I Urban VII Gregory XIV... Innocent IX ... Clement VIII . . 1590 Boris Godnnow 1590 Wasilej Schuiskoi 1591 Michel Fedrowitsch 1592 Alejej Michel ...lOOli Mohammed I 1613 Amuratlill .... If 45 Mohammed 11* 1413 . 1421 1451 1481 {#::::::::: S^:::: Innocent X Alexander VII . Clement IX.... 1(505 Feodnre II ','.'.'. 1605 Iwan Alexander 1621 Peter the Great 1023 Catharine I 1044 Peter 11 .. 1682 Selim I .. 1685 Solyman 1 17'ii fsefim II ... 1727 Amnrath III 1730 Mohammed III ... 1512 ','. 1520 1566 1574 .... 1595 1(T,7 Iwan III ]ti70 Elizabeth ... 1740 Achrnet 1 1741 Mustapha '. 1762 Otliman II 1762 Amurath IV .. 1617 '....... 16)8 1623 1640 1648 1687 1691 1695 Innocent XI ... Alexander VIII InnoctntXIl.. Clement XI... Innocent XIII Benedict XIII. Clement XII .. Benedict XIV . Clement XIII . 7 April 20, a storm of hail in Cheshire and Lancashire did great damage ; some of the hailstones weighing half a pound. 1703 Nov. 27, the most terrible hurricane that ever happened in England, attended with lightning. Whole groves of trees were torn up by the roots, many houses and churches were unroofed, many ships were cast away and 15(K) seamen lost their lives. 737 Oct. 1 1 , a storm took place in India, when 20,000 vessels were cast away, 300,000 people were lost, and the water rose 40 feet higher than usu.i). 1751 Aug. 10, a storm at Jamaica occasioned 300,000 damage. 1772 July 1(3, a hailstorm at St. Jago, where the hailstones were as large as oranges. 1773 A most terrible storm near Boston. 1782 April 22, a storm in the East Indies, which destroyed 7000 inhabitants. 1784 Great damage done by a storm in New England. 1786 July 17, a hurricane in Devonshire, Eng- land, removed 13 elm trees 200 yards, where they remained and look root. 17111 A storm of thunder and lightning, which melled the bells of a church in Kent and did great damage. 1798 Sept. 25. 100,000 damage done by a storm at Halifax, Nova Scotia. 1810 Nov. 10, a tremendous storm at Boston, which deluged the country all around. 1914 Dec. 17, a violent gale prevailed through Great Britain and Ireland, by which great damage was done. 1815 September, a tremendous gale from the southeast swept the Atlantic coast of North America, and did great damage, particularly in New England. The sea water was carried in the form of spray '2.') miles inland It is called the Great September <;,i!,.. 181G A tremend >us gale of wind which did much damage to the shipping on the Kn^li.^i coast. 1818 A most destructive storm raged at Ilin- dMtan. lead A ievere gale in September from the southeast, in New England, and the middle states, along the coast. STUCCO WORK revived by D'Udine, about 1500. STYLE altered by pope Gregory, who took twelve days off the calendar in I5e2; the Gre- gorian style received at Paris, by taking off ten days. December 15, 1582 ; received at London, by taking eleven days off the calendar, Sept. 2, 1752. See article Dominical Letter. SUGAR first mentioned by Paul Eginetta, a physician, 625; produced in Sicily, 1148; first produced in Madeira, 141!); in the Canary islands, 1503 ; carried to the West Indies, by the Poituguese and Spaniards, 1510 ; cultivated at Barbados, 1641 ; sugar refining first discov- ered by a Venetian, 1503; practised first in England, in 1569. SUN, spots seen in, for the first time, 1611 ; r observed in 1779; several spots observed in the centre of the apparent size of the earth's diameter. June. 1810. SUNDAY SCHOOLS first established in Yorkshire, 1784 ; became general in England and Scotland, in 1789. SUNDIALS invented 558 B. C.; the first erected at Rome was that by Papirius Cursor, when time was divided into hours, 308 B. C.; first set up against churches. 613. SUPREMACY OF THE POPE above the emperor introduced, 607 ; the first prince that shook off the yoke of Rome, and settled the supremacy in himself, was Henry VI II, 1533. SURNAMES first introduced into England by the Normans, 1102; became common, 1200. SURVEY OF ENGLAND made, at first, by order of Alfred, DOO ; by William the Con-, queror. 1080 ; by Charles ll, 1668. SWEARING on the holy gospel first used A. D. 528. SYDNEY. The principal town in New Hol- land, founded in 1788, as a British settlement for the colony of convicts originally intended for Botany Bay. It is well built and is a flour ishing town. T. TANNING LEATHER, a new and expe- ditidiis method invented, 171:5. TAPESTRY invented by sir Francis Crane, 161!); for the encouragement of winch king James I jmve 2000 to build a house at Mort- kke. in Surrey, 1619. TAVERNS restrained by an act of Edward VI, 1552, to forty in London. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. TAX 699 TOA TAXATION of England from William I, to William III. William H Henry 1 Stephen Ueniy II Richard John Henry FI I Edward I Edward II Edward III Richard II Henry IV Henry V Henry VI Taxation. Reigns. 40 r J,0!M Edward IV ) 35 J,OW Edward V \ 3')3,00; war between Sweden and France, October 31st, 18l'5; war between England and Prussia, April. J>-( (!; war between Prussia and France, October, 1806; peace between France and the elector of Sax- ony, December 11, 1806; peace between Eng- land and Prussia. January 28. 1807; peace be- tween France and Russia, July 19th, 1807; war between England and Denmark, November 4, 1807; war between Russia and Sweden, Feb. 10, 1808; war between Denmark and Sweden, Feb. 29, 1808; war between Prussia and Swe- den, March 6th, ItfOS; war between Spain and France, June 6, 1808; peace between. England and Spain. June 6, 1808; peace between Swe- den and Russia, Sep., 17th, 180!) ; peace be- tween France and Austria, October 15th, 1809; peace between France aud Sweden, January HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. WAV 703 WAV G, 1810; peace between England and Russia, August 1, 1812 ; peace between England and Sweden, August 4-17th, 1812; war between "ngland and A;nerica, June 18th, 1812; war oetween Sweden and Denmark, September 13, 1813; peace between Sweden and Denmark, January 14. 1814; peace between France and the allies (England, Russia and Prussia) May 30th, 1814; peace between France and Spain, July 20th, 1814; peace between England and America, December 24th, 1814 ; peace between Saxony and Prussia, May 18th, 1815; wars with Spain,, between 1589 and 1593. cost queen Eliz- abeth 1, 300,000, besides the double subsidy of 280,000 granted by parliament. In the Irish rebellion, she spent 3,400,000 in ten years; the expenses of the war of 1756, cost England 90,000.000. The following is a list of wars between Eng- land and France, with the terms, of their dura- tion, since the one which commenced in 1 1 10 : 1 1 16, lasted twenty-five years ; 1 141, one year ; 1201, fifteen j 1224, nineteen ; 1294, five ; 1339, twenty -one; 1308, fifty-two; 1422, forty-nine ; J492, one month ; 1512, two years ; 1521, six ; 1549, one ; 1557, two ; 1502, two ; 1627, two ; 1666, one ; 1 689, ten ; 1702, eleven ; 1744, four ; 175(3, seven; 1778, five; 1793, which termi- nated March 27, 1802 ; 1803, which terminated Mav. 1814. WATCHES invented at Nuremberg, in Germany, 1477 ; first used in astronomical ob- servations, 1500. The emperor Charles V, was the first who had any thing that might be called a watch, though some call it a stnalftable-clock, 1530. Watches first brought to England from Germany, 1577. Sprincr pocket ones invented by Hooke, 1658. WATCR first cor.veyed to London by leaden pipes, 21st Henry III, 1237 ; it took nearly fifty years to complete it. WATERMILLS for grinding corn were in- vented by Behsarius, while besieged in Rome by the Goths, 555. The ancients parched their corn, and pounded it in mortars; afterwards mills were invented, which were turned by men and beasts with great labor ; and yet Pliny mentions wheels turned by water. WAV F. R L E Y , Author of In a former part of this work we have give/r the life of Sir Walter Scott. We now add the chronology of his vari- ous works, showing the date of their publication. 1799. Goetz de Berliohigen, a tragedy, trans- lated from Goethe. 1 volume. 1802. Minstrelsy of the Scottish Border, 3 volumes, 8vo. 1804. Sir Tristam, 1 volume, 8vo. 1805. The Lay of the Last Minstrel, 1 vol ume, 8vo. 1806. Ballads and Lyrical Poetry, 1 volume, 8vo. 1807. Marmion.l volume, 8vo. The Works of Dryden, 18 volumes, 8vo. 1809. Papers and Letters of Sir Ralph Sadler, 2 volumes, 8vo. Collection of Papers of Lord Somers, 13 volumes, 8vo. 1810. The Poetical Works of Miss Seaward, 3 volumes, 8vo. The Lady of the Lake, 1 vol- ume, 8vo. 181 1. The Vision of Don Roderick, 1 volume, 8vo. 1813. Rokeby, 1 volume, 8 vo. 1S14. The Works of Swift, 19 volumes, 8vo. The Bridal of Triermain, 1 volume, 8v<>. Mon- umental Antiquities on the Frontier of England and Scotland, 2 volumes 4to. Waverley, 3 vol- umes, 12mo. 1815. Letters of Paul, 1 volume, 8vo. The Battle of Waterloo, 2 volumes, 8vo. Guy Man- nering, 8 volumes, 12mo. 181'G. The Antiquary. 5 volumes,12mo. Tales of My Landlord, 1st series. The Black Dwarf and Old Mortality, 4 volumes, 12 mo. 1817. Rob Roy, 3 volumes, 12mo. 1818. Tales of My Landlord, 2d series. The Heart of Mid Lothian. 4 volumes, 8vo. 1819. Tales of My Landlord, 3d series. The Bride of Lamermuir, and the Legend of Mon- trose, 4 volumes. Provincial Antiquities and Picturesque Views of Scotland, 4 volumes, 12mo. Poems, &c. of P. Corey, 1 volume, 8vo. 1820. Ivanhoe, 2 volumes, 12mo. The Mo- nastery. 3 volumes, 12mo. The Abbot, 3 vol- umes, 12 mo. 1821 . Kenil worth, 3 volumes, 12mo. 1822. The Pirate, 3 volumes, 12mo. Nigel, 3 volumes, 12mo. ttalidown Hill, 1 volume, 8vo. 1823. Peverel of the Peak, 4 volumes, 12mo. Quentin Durward, 3 volumes, 12rno. 1824. St. Ronan's Well, 3 volumes, 12mo. Redgauntlet, 3 volumes, I2mo. 1825. Tales of tin Crusaders; the Betrothed and Talisman, 4 volumes. 12mo. 1826. Woodstock, " volumes, 12mo. 1827. Chronicles of the C:mongate, 1st series, 2 volumes, 12mo. Life of Napoleon, 3 volumes, 8vo. 1828. Anne of Geirstein. Third series of the Chronicles of the Canontrate. translated under the title of Charles the Bold, 3 volumes, 12mo. Memoirs of Madame la Rochejacquelin. 1 vol- ume, 8vo. Letters from Malchi Malgrowther CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY WOO 704 ZOD exports of that country, but that they have nov another woollen manufacture of most excellent beauty, such as that of the Corai, a people of Asia from whence the rams were brought at a mon by a Layman, &c. 3 volumes, - 1830. The Airsl.yre Tragedy, 1 volume, fevo. Tales of a Grandfather, 3d series, 3 volumes,8vo 18:51 Tales of a Grandfather, 4th series, 3 volumes, 8vo. Letters on Demonology, 1 vol- ume, 8vo. Last series of the Chronicles of the Canongate, 4 volumes, 8vo. T i ;,^..x, .,,IIT KO aridprl about four volumes in pnc f u,,,,,.... s -,.-,_ notices, essays, &c. inserted originally in the Supplement to the Encyclopedia Bntanica. The articles fur- nished aiso by Sir Walter Scott to the different Reviews, &c. would besides make up not less than 4 volumes, 8vo. ; and during the last four years he lias a revision of his works, added to the amount of 6 volumes, 8vo. in notes and - e - S ~* -- AND MEASURES invented, iv ooueii w . ctories commenced at Sedan in France, 1(546 ; the first made in Eng- land in 1331 ; medley cloths first made, Ibl4; ereatly improved by the Walloons, 1688 ; farst Led and dressed in England, in 1667. Its ex- port from Great Britain in 1787 was 3,t>b7,,9.> 12, 2 which the ministers of the crown and mam eminent men have been removed from their sty tions during the period to which these observa tions refer. After the death of Pitt, avowedly accelerated, if not actually caused, by his devo- tion to his country, how soon died his great op- ponent, Fox? Lord Granville is dead : Percival was murdered; Lord Liverpool stricken by a calamity which left his body living after the mind was dead ; Windham and Huskisson,both victims of accidents : Canning prematurely lost ; and Lord Londonderry fallen by his own hand : Nelson, and Moore, and Abercrombie in battle ; with a host of heroes equally deserving the tears and praises of their countrymen. Remember that such men as Thurlow, Ersk- ine, Gifford, Law, Kenyon, Grattan, Curran, . have lived and died within this century. In lite- 1 rature, and wit, and poetry, can we forget She- ', ridan, Murphy, Cumberland, Cowper, Byron, and ^cott ! in science, Banks and Davy ; in art, West and Lawrence ; or the stage, Siddons and Kemble. All these are gone, faded from the scenes which they exalted and adorned. We mention but the very leaders, but taking every branch of art and science into calculation, the aggregate amount of loss within the last thirty HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL 707 four years will, hereafter, when time and reflec- tion shall hive overcome jealousy and envy, be found vastly to exceed that which England has sustained during any other period of equal du- ration. But now let us look at things less questionable. In the present century, the bright career of the Duke of Wellington may be said to have been run ; for although his services before and up to the capture of Seringapatam, in 1799, had raised his character and spread his fame, it was in this century that his celebrated battle of Assaye was fought. From his arrival in Europe, until the year 1813, he gained that series of victories which have immortalized him. But that is not all that we have to illustrate our point ; besides the splendid days of Oporto, Vimiera, Talavera, Buzaco, Salamanca, Badajos, Vittoria, Nice, Toulouse, St. Jean de Luz, the Pyrenees, and WATERLOO, we are able to show that more general actions were fought, and more lives lost by the fortune of war from 1800 to 1815 than ever were fought in a period of ten times the same extent ; among them, Marengo, Alexan- dria, Austerlitz, Corunna, Aspen and Essling, Wagrara, Borossa, Elbuera, Borodino, Lulzen, Toplitz, Leipzic, Orthes, Ligny, besides others, amounting to nearly two hundred general actions. But, then, let us see what has taken place in civil life. England has been united with Ireland; the test and corporation acts have been repealed; thirty millions of taxes have been removed ; the Roman Catholics have been emancipated ; sla- very has been abolished ; parliament has been ref jrmed ; the poor-laws have been changed; the constitution of the church of Ireland has been altered ; several bishops have been reduced ; the East India Company's privileges have been ab- rogated ; the bank lias resumed cash payments ; bank notes are now a legal tender ; the game laws have been repealed, since which time poaching has increased in a ten-fold degree; beer houses have been permitted in order to better the morals of the lower classes, which are said to have produced drunkenness to an unparal- leled extent ; for humanity's sake, forgery has been made punishable with transportation and not death, since which forgery has increased very much in the same ratio as drunkenness and poaching. It would, however, greatly exceed our limits, as we have already said, to enter into minute details of the wonderful alterations which have been worked during the century ; we shall, therefore, select a few of those wi*ch strikes the senses most forcibly, and which, from circumstances and localities, are most familiar. Well then, say we, this introduction of steam, or rather its adaptation to vessels and locomo- tive carriages, has been and it is in its infancy yet one of the greatest strides ever made in so short a space of time. Next comes gas. Let any body read Mr. Davies Giddy 's, now Mr. Davies Gilbert's, formal denunciation in the House of Commons of the bare idea of obtaining light and profit from gas, and the case will be made as strong as we can wish it. Not only is the use of gas as a light universal, but if any body will take the trouble, or rather give them- selves the pleasure, of visiting the gallery of national sciences, in the Lowtner arcade, they will find cookery performed by gas in the most perfect and satisfactory manner. During this century England has acquired the Cape, Ceylon, Curacoa, "Demarara, St. Eusta- tius, Mauritius, Bourbon, Maderia, Malta, Mar- tinique, Senegal, and Surinam several of which have been ceded, but what are these? what are her conquests in Egypt ? what her successful warfare at Nepaul or in the Burmese country ? what her wonderful extension of ter- ritory in India ? what her sovereignty of the Ionian Islands ? what the recollections of the share she has borne in the actions of the world, under Providence, compared with the strides she has made in art, science, and mechanism since 1800? In 1800 would any man have believed and in 1800 men fancied they travelled at a most ex- traordinary pace would any man have believed that he could leave London in a stage-coach in the morning and eat his supper by eleven o'clock at night in Manchester ? or if his credulity could have been stretched so as to admit of such a possibility, would he have suffered himself to be told with impunity that if he chose, instead of supping at Manchester, he might proceed to Liverpool in one hour and three-quarters a distance of upwards of thirty miles that he might steam himself over to Dublin in time for breakfast the next morning, all of which he may now do, supposing the conveyance ready ? but, as it is, and without any hurry or trouble, a man breakfasts at the Bull and Mouth in London on the Monday, and breakfasts in Dublin on the Wednesday, according to the ordinary and es- tablished rules of stage coach, rail-road, and steam travelling. Within the present century, vaccination has superseded, nay, annihilated, that tremendous affliction the small-pox an event to which the wonderful decrease in the mortality of all classes, proportionably to the general increase of the CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. 708 population, may, in a great degree, be attributed, despite the evidence to the contrary afforded in the report of the parliamentary committee. Again, reducing as we must, our sphere of ob- servation, for want of room, let us look at the metropolis within the present century ; hovels and alleys have disappeared, and palaces and ter- races risen in their places. Look at those splen- did bridges, Waterloo and London the vast iron bridge across the Thames in the city, and the extremely useful one at Vauxhall see those stupendous works, the West India Docks, East India Docks, St. Catherine Docks, Surry Canal Docks, all erected within this century the mag- nificent Custom-house, the healthy and spacious Bedlam, the London University, the King's , J- lege. Within this century Ranelagh has van- ished from the earth, the Pantheon has become a bazaar, every theatre in London, except the opera house, which had just risen from a confla- gration, has been either burned or pulled down Covent garden, Drury lane, the English Opera House, the Surry theatre once, and Astley's twice, been burned and rebuilt the Haymarket pulled down, the Royalty pulled down, both re- built, and the latter, under the title of the Bruns- wick, destroyed in the twinkling of an eye. Carlton House, with all its splendor and gaieties, and all the associations of wit and mirth has, with the noble and joyous company which made its walls ring with festivity, van- ished. ThePrimce! Fox, Sheridan, Fitzpatrick, Hanger, Erskine, the Duke of Norfolk, and fifty others, are in their graves, the scene of their revels exists no more, splendid terraces and magnificent squares occupy its site. The wretched streets between Pall Mall and Oxford street have given place to grand and commodi- ous drives and promenades. The interior of St. James's Park, which was a swampy meadow for the dull diversion of smoke dried cows, has become a beautiful gar- den ; and Buckingham House, built in the full uniform of bad taste-" red with white facings" has given place to a palace much censured . originally, and lately much disfigured'; but which still is a palace worthy of the country. In the Regent's Park, groves, canals, villas, par- ades, dioramas, (what did we know of dioramas in 1800?) crescents, and terraces, ranges of splendid buildings, occupy a space previously monopolized by grazing cattle; while a naviga- ble canal, which circumvents London, and forms a military ditch round her assailable parts, in case of rebellion, brings all the commodities of the world floating to the very doors of ware houses in the most inland part of the tropolis. Of greater things, look at the Breakwater at Plymouth, at the Tunnel under the Thames, even unfinished as it is, and unprofitable as it ever will be, it is a triumph of science and per- severance look at those bridges hanging, as it were, in air, spanning arms of the sea, which, in 1800, no man vould have thoupht possible by such means. That pretty toy, the chain pier at Brighton, is a toy that no man would have im- agined in 1800. Who, in 1800. would have ex- pected to find water without digging for it? Who would have engraved upon stone ? Who would have thought of calculating sums by ma- chinery ? Who would have thought of stuffing cushions with iron for softness ? Who would have worn a caoutchouc cloak or Indian rubbe shoes to keep them from the wet ? We pass by the revolution in Greece, the wa in Poland ; we omit the discoveries in Africa which have let in the light to the very heart o that vast peninsula, and displayed the entir course of the mysterious Niger ; we omit th changes and discoveries in Asia, and pause fo a moment to contemplate the great strides o revolution in this Western Hemisphere. The peninsula of South America, within thi present century has passed from colonial vas salage, to a state of independence, with the ex ception of Brazil, and the small possession of two European powers in Guiana. Mexic and Guatimala have also thrown off the yoke and thus the continental portions of the new world, have become separated forever from tha kingdom to which they owed their discovery and under whose sway they existed for thre entire centuries. If we look to the United States, the revolu tions have been even greater and more aston isliing than in any other country. It is true tha our form of government is the same ; but ou territory is more than doubled ; our populatio is almost tripled, and our station among nat.'on has risen to that of the most commanding eleV a tion. Steam navigation, canals, and railroa'ds have their entire history within the present cen tury ; our large cities are doubled in their pop ulation ; and thousands of towns and villages have sprung up. studding to a vast extent wha' was before a wilderness, and seeming to the dis tant spectator to come into existence as the star emerge from the grey mist of twilight, an' sparkle in the sky. HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. 709 TO THE REVIEW FROM 1835 TO 1841. FRANCE, still continues under the sway of Louis Phillipe, though the elements of commo- tion occasionally display themselves Louis Na poleon, the youngest son of Louis Bonaparte, and Hortense Beauharmois, daughter of. Josephine, has twice attempted to raise a revolt in his own favor, both distinguished by their utter folly and hopelessness. On the second occasion, he char- tered a steamboat in England, to take him to the co:i^t of France, without informing the cap- tain of his intentions, and even leaving several of his devoted attendants, among whom was Count Montholon, ignorant of them. On landing, this infatuated young man proclaimed himself ruler of France, as the successor of Napoleon. An been trained to perch upon the head of oleon, by placing the bird's food upon it, and this stage trick, seems to have been his mainilependence for rousing the enthusiasm of liic French nation. The prepared omen, how- ever, failed of its effect ; and he was seized, tried, and condemned to imprisonment for life, in the fortress of Ham, where Polignac and the other ministers of Charles X. were confined. Within a Tew months after, the great pageant of remov- :iuins of Napoleon from St. Helena to t'aris, took place, presenting the singular spec- tacle, of the political canonization of the head of the Bonaparte family, while the nephew was in- ; for life, for urging his claim as heir to tlie verv man to whose bones all France was pay- lage, French government has permitted, at if not ordered, a ship of war, bearing their , to outrage the law of nations, and of human- by forcing upon the defenceless inhabitants Society and Sandwich Islands, at the can- 's mouth, French missionaries and French As both groups of Islands are under sh protection, it is astonishing that the gov- ent of that nation has patiently suffered this i their unoffending dependents to re- ' nted. TV a native of France, M. Daguerre, the world indebted for the wonderful discovery of the Sthod by which a reflected image may be im- assod in such a manner oti metallic plates, as be transferred from them to paper, rendering process of engraving unnecessary, in order ^ecure representations of objects of sight The instrument by which this result is produced, is called, (Vomits discoverer, the Daguerreotype. The French still retain possession of Algiers', though their conquest is disputed by the Arabs on its borders. It is a striking remark of the British Quarterly Review, in a late number, that while the French capital excels all other cities in the world for tiie perfection to which every re- finement of luxury is carried, the provinces have been stationary, if not retrogradmo- for manv years. While Turks, Egyptians, Hindoos, Cos^- sacs of the Don, and Siamese are travelling by stearn, the provincial roads of France are unim- proved, and almost impassable, and the peasantry in the remote provinces arc as destitute of edu- catifr-. and of comforts, as they were two cen- turies ago. Don Miguel has abandoned, at least for the present, Ins pretensions to the throne of POR- TUGAL, and it is quietly occupied by Maria De Gloria, daughter of Pedro II. Though born in 1819, she has been twice married, 'both times to German princes. Her present husband is one of the house of Saxe Cobourg. They have two children. The Queen Regent of SPAIN following the example of her sister, the Duchesse De Berri, and her cousin, the Empress Maria Louisa, has married a man of very inferior birth. Becoming enamored with the personal appearance of a soldier of her guards, she has abandoned the Re- gency, Spain, and her daughter, the Queen, then not ten years of age, leaving Espartero, a soldier of fortune, sole regent, who occupies the place of the kings of Spain in all ceremonies and processions. BELGIUM is in a state of repose under the sceptre of Leopold I. " the most fortunate of the fortunate house of Cobourg." HOLLAND has recently presented a very singular spectacle. Its King, William the first, born 1772, resigned his throne to his son, the Prince of Orange, in 1840, in order to marry a woman whose birth was too unequal to entitle her to share it. Since Mars has been out of business on the Continent, Cupid seems to have had his time fully occupied among the royal families. Besides this uncommon specimen of antiquated attachment, Constantine waived his right to the throne of the Czars, rather than give up his plebeian wife. Nicholas, and his son, the Grand Duke Alexander, the Princess Charlotte, and her cousin, Queen Victoria, have CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. 710 all made love matches, not to recur again to the cases cited under the head of Spain. The King of PRUSSIA, Frederick William the 3rd, has died and been succeeded by his son William the 4th, born in 1795, who is already patronising literature and science by filling the professorships of his universities with the most celebrated scholars. The following statement will shew the number of inhabitants in most of the German States : States. Population. The kingdom of Prussia, 14,271,530 The kingdom of Bavaria, 4,315,469 The kingdom of Wurtcmburg, 1 ,649,839 The kingdom of Saxony, 1,652,1 14 The Grand Duchy of Baden, 1,277,403 Electorate of Hesse, 704,700 Grand Duchy of Hesse (with Homburg) 907,671 Duchy of Nassau, 336,221 The Thuringian Union, 908,478 Free city of Frankfort on Maine, 54,000 Total, The Hanseatic cities of Lubeck, Ham- burg and Bremen, 245,500 Total, It is understood that Brunswick has exhibited an inclination to separate from the Northwestern Union, of which she is now a member, and to join the association, and the accession of the Grand Duchy of Luxemburg is likely soon to swell still higher the total population of the States thus united, which constitutes already the most industrious, enlightened, and prosperous people of Germany. Three of the German States have not yet ac- ceded to the association, but have formed a separate Commercial and Customs Union, viz : States. Population. The kingdom of Hanover, 1,772,107 The Grand Duchy of Oldenburg, 266,536 The Duchy of Brunswick, 251,000 Total. 2,289,648 And a few of the States of Germany have neither acceded to the association, nor formed any special union among themselves these are, .SVd/r.v. Population. The Duchies of Ilolstein and Lunenburg (belonging to the King of Denmark,) 471,276 The Grand Duchy of Mecklenburg Schwerin, 482,925 The. Grand Duchy of Mecklenburg Stre- l.tz, RUSSIA has marie no active demonstrations of late, except an ineffectual attempt to subdue tho inhabitants of Caucasus, which has been repelled by efforts of valor which border on the marvel- lous. Forts, defended most desperately by the Russians, have been scaled, and carried by storm, without the aid of cannon, and by the sword and musket alone, and it seems very uncertain whether Nicholas, with his immense power, will be able to conquer these wild, but brave patriots. In ITALY, there has not been much change. The Grand Duke of Lucca has turned Protestant, to the great sorrow of his Holiness Pope Gre- gory the 16th, whose power seems to be on the decline in Catholic countries, and increasing only in Protestant ones. It is certainly strange, that while no new convents are endowed on the Con- tinent, and old ones are in many places abolished, they should be increasing every year in Great Britain and the United States. In sketches of Turkey in 1831 and 1832, by Dr. DeKay, the following singular circumstance is related, immediately after a description of the ceremonies with which the present Sultan, then a child of nine years of age, was consigned to the care of his instructors. " We have seen how near the present royal dynasty was to becoming extinct in the person of the present Sultan, 1 ' (the late Mahmoud 2nd.) "To some enquiries touching the succession, in case of failure in the present reigning family, we learned, to our great astonishment, that the near- est heir to the throne, and the validity of whoso claim would be acknowledged by the Turks them- selves, was an old class mate in Edinburgh. Among the odd characters assembled in 1818 and 1819, within the gloomy lecture rooms of that venerable university, from various quarter* of the globe, was a queer fish, farniliarlv known under the name of Kitty. Ho sported on his cards "Sultan Gerry. Krim Gerry, Kitty Gerry an9 of Caucasus," and was remarkable for the astounding English with which he clothed his oriental ideas. He was represented to us as having been a Mussulman converted to Chris- tianity, and sent at the expense of the Emperor of Russia, to bo initiated into the learning of tna West." HISTORICAL AND BIOGRAPHICAL. 711 " I have since learned that he married a Scotch lassie, much against the wishes of her family, and took her with him to Russia, where he now resides. He is a lineal descendant of the ancient Khans of the Crimea, and we were informed by one of the officers of government here, that in default of male issue in the present royal line, he will certainly be called to the Otto- man throne. His immediate predecessor sold the sovereignty of the Crimea to Russia, and he is now a dependant upon its bounty. That gov- ernment with its usual long sighted policy, doubtless reserve him or some of his descendants, in order to make a claim upon the Turkish throne, and fill it with one of their own vassals." Mahmoud 2nd, has been succeeded by Abdool Metzib, the child alluded to above, who though but nineteen, is in a deep decline. If Dr. De Kay was correct in the singular story quoted from his book, a short time may witness a Christian Emperor of Constantinople. SOUTH AMERICA is still in commotion. Scarcely a single province remains undisturbed by political convulsions. New Grenada, Peru, and the Equador are rent by civil wars, promoted by the priests, who, in the former, particularly, are striving to re-establish monastic institutions, which had been abolished, at the request of the diocesan prelate, and by almost the unanimous vote of the legislature. The President, Mar- quez, says, that the remoter cause of these ca- lamities is to be found in the ignorance of the masses, &c., and recommends popular education as the remedy. Among the wonders of the age may be men- tioned the strong desire lately manifested in the Island of CUBA to repress the slave trade. William the 4th of Great Britain has de- scended to the grave, and the daughter of his brother, the Duke of Kent, has succeeded him by the title of Queen Victoria the 1st, while the Duke of Cumberland, a younger brother, became King of Hanover, females not being eligible to the crown of that kingdom. Her Majesty mar- ried her cousin, Prince Albert of Saxe Cobourg, and a Princess Royal is at present the heiress apparent of Great Britain. Her reign thus far has been distinguished by great events. The power of Great Britain has been exerted in a manner to produce effects to the end of the world. By the conquests ob- tained over the Pacha of Egypt at Beyrout and Acre, in Syria, the name of Great Britain is 60* known and respected throughout the East, and through its influence, toleration is extended to Europeans and Americans, and the whole Christian world seem to unite in demanding pro- tection for the persecuted children of Israel. Communications have taken place between the different Christian Potentates, having for their object the restoration to the Jews of the equality of rights which has been for many ages denied them. In Persia, too, English influence is strong, and in India, she is constantly extending her posses- sions. But the most wonderful event of latter days, is the war with China. Some English sailors, during a frolic in the neighborhood o: Canton, became involved in a quarrel, and in the course of it a Chinese was killed. The English- men took refuge in their ships, and it being im- possible to ascertain who among them had dealt the chance blow which had proved fatal, their commander refused to deliver up to certain death, persons who might have been entirely innocent of even accidentally producing the catastrophe. The port of Canton was immediately closed, all trade with foreigners forbidden, and various hardships and indignities offered to British sub- jects. This is stated by Dr. Parker, the Amer- ican Missionary Physician, who has had greater access to the Chinese than any other man, to be the origin of the quarrel, and not the opium trade, though that afterwards became involved with it. Steam ships, and other vessels of war, were sent by England to defend her subjects, and the result, thus far is, that the Island of Chusan has been taken, and occupied, though since abandoned on account of its unhealthiness ; all the defences of the great commercial emporium, Canton, destroyed, and the city itself entirely in the power of the invaders, and this important result has been achieved without the loss of a single man on the side of the English. Thus the barrier which has so long existed to the intro- duction of Christianity among the millions of China, is broken down. 7'he improvements ia steam vessels and the extended voyages which have been made with them since 1835, has formed a new era in the world; steam ships of war appear destined to supersede all other classes of armed vessels, and even coast fortifications. England kas now regular steam packets to Portugal, to Boston, and New York, and a line to India by the way of the Mediterranean and the Red Sea, and a CYCLOPEDIA OF HISTORY. 712 late account mentions that a si earn vessel is navigating the waters of Siam. There is also a regular line of steam packets from England to Brazil, Montevideo, and Buenos Ayres, and an- other to the West Indies. Tne time which has elapsed since the former edition of this work was published in 1335, has brought many changes, and some improvements to the United States. Within that period, Ar- kansas, and Michigan Territories have been ad- ded to the Union, as States, and Iowa and Wis- consin Territories created from what remained of tin; North Western Territory. The census, ordered by Congress, has been nearly completed, and as far as the result has transpired, is here given. POPULATION OF THE UNITED STATES. The following table is the first official account of the census of 1840, yet published. It was furnished to the Senate by the Secretary of State, in obedience to a resolution of that body, and or- dered to be printed : Slates ana While Free Col. All other Territories, population, persons, persons. Total. Mrne, 511(1,433 1,355 5(il,7'J3 New Iljmpstiire, 254,036 537 1 2S1.751 Miisachiwelts, 729,030 8,668 1 737,699 Kli.it,' Island, 105.5-7 3,238 '6 108,830 Connecticut, 31)1,856 8,105 ]7 309,948 Vermont, 291,2)8 730 291,1) IS New York, 2,378.8'.)0 50,027 4 2,428,921 New Jersey, 351,538 21,044 674 373,308 IVuis-yivania, 1,676.115 47,851 64 1,724,033 MBWMV, 58.561 16.919 2,605 78,085 Maryland, 317,717 62,020 29,495 469,232 \irjMi.a, 740,968 49,842 448.W.-7 l,2:u,7'.7 Nor. h Carolina, 484.870 22,732 245.817 753,419 South Carolina, 353,084 8,276 327,038 994.398 Geortra. 407,695 2,753 280,844 !>!)]. :);': Alabama, 335,185 2,039 253.532 51(0,756 Mi"i*>iupi, 179,074 1,366 195.211 375,651 IxMiisiana, 153,983 24,368 165,219 344590 T.Tiii-xiee, 640.627 5,524 1*3.059 829510 Kentucky, 537,542 7,309 182,072 7761923 <>"'". 1,5(12.122 17.342 3 1.5I9.-107 Ii'' 1 ""-'. 676,691 7.105 3 G.-J Sf.fi lllinoin. 471.351 3,598 331 47f,.|s:< Missouri. 323888 1,574 58,240 383.702 Arki..s:,s, 77.174 406 19,935 97,574 Mi.'duan. 211,500 707 212 "67 Pion.l:t Territory, 27.728 830 85,599 5l!TT W.*ong the Presidential chair, the imjjfssion made was doubly strong. The funeral ceremo- nies at Washington were very impressive. President Tyler, who was Vice President, suc- ceeded to the office of Chief Magistrate, issued a recommendation to the people of the L'nion to observe the 14th of May as a day of fasting and humiliation, in consequence of the afnY-u.m the nation had sustained. It was almost unanimously observed, and vcrv lew rier^ymcii in the country failed to improve the opportunity to impress upon the minds of their hearers tho weight of our national sins, and the solemn lesson given them of the vanity of all- earthly distinctions and honors. But the State of Ohio could not relinquish her claim to the remains of one; who, from the age of nineteen, had been devoted to her best interests. A committee of her most respectable inhabitants went on to Washington, a permitted to convey them to North Be.nd, where,' on theyMPid under which they are deposited, is to be erected a monument which shall point to the eye of the traveller as he navigates the Ohio, the spot, where rests the Patriot, Hero, and Christian, WILLIAM HKXKV Ifunnsuv. . i-iov OF THK UNIT;::) STATES. The following tables, will be found interesting, as they show the progress of po:> > country for six different p .-ing fi'ty years. It will be seen th.it the wiii'e population is now HISTORI C*L AND BIOGRAPHICAL. 717 tnan four times the number that it was in irhile the ratio of increase of the slaves, h great, is rather less than that of the $lt will surprise some, we ha', e no doubt, : that more than half of the free colored ta are in the slave States. .Lice Titic of the Population tics in 1830, and 1840. Census 1830. Census 1S40. 10.526,2 1^ 319,599 2,009,0-13 5,318 the present year. In the corresponding months of 183!), the" number of travellers was 109,217; in 1840, 118,005. From January 1st to July 1st, 1841. Between New York and Newark. 123.960 Elizabethtown, 11,674 17,008,112 Increase in 10 Years. 3,650,327, or about 35 per cent. 07,470, 21 477,325. . " 23| " White Population. 1830. 18-lO.Incr.p.c anil Territories. 6,865,700 9.555.922 39 sand Territories, 3,660,518 4,630,653 Free colored. &c. 137,32!) 170.704 *,&c. 182,270 215.365 of Population in the U Ejiizaoeuuu of the United '* Between New York and Rahway, 9,750 y New Brunswick, 15,144'; Between Newark and Elizabethtown, 6,093 \ Rahway, 2,156 " " New Brunswick, 2,452 Way passengers to and from places be- tween Elizabethtown and N. Brunswick, 3,846 14,160,575 386,0fls> 2,486,3* 6,100 White 3,172.118 4.813,841 7,-f,1.9Uti Free colored. 511,511- 110,072 186,446 238.161 319.539 2>t;.069 l.lb'1,364 1,539.064 2.009.043 2,486,368 I4.lMJ.i75 .1 ilie census for 1S40, the county of Carter, and the Parish of La Fayette, in Louisiana, e jio-iu'ation of the U. S. is now greater Eagtand and Wales in 1831 the latter was '4. AC WORKS 'ix OHIO. The loan effected id Commissioners of the State has juted among its public works as fol- Erie Canal, Canal, Canal, ey Canal, nprovement, re and Maumee Road, 15, ( id Granville Road, 5,000 581,000 00 SY RAIL ROAD. The following ! number of passengers who travel- road during the first six months of Total passengers, 175.083 The number of passengers carried in the Phila- delphia lines, for which a transit duty of 8 cents each is paid to the State of New Jersey : 1839 January 1st to July 1st, 35.320J 2t> ^^. 1840 January 1st to July 1st, 36,477 1841 January 1st to July 1st, 44,299i 16 ' COMPARISON- OF NEW YORK WITH THE PIIIN- 9 Sl'ves CIPAL CITIES OF EUROPE. The population of ivJ7,i : ,.c the city of New York, by the census of 1840, is 312,932. Only six of the European cities now surpass it, as follows: 1. London and suburbs, . . 1,650,000 2. Paris, .... 900,000 3. Constantinople, . . . 600,000 4. St. Petersburgh, . . . 450,000 5. Naples, .... 364,000 6. Vienna, .... 333,000 The cities next in population are Lisbon, Moscow, Berlin, ^Dublin, *Glasgow, Amsterdam, Madrid, *Manchester, ^Liverpool, Palermo, Lyons, ^Edinburgh, 260.000 250,000 240.000 204,000 202,000 201,000 201,000 187,000 185,000 173,000 165.000 162,000 154,000 * Wthe census of 1831, tins was about the population of these cities. The census of Great Hritain lor 1641, now being taken, will show a great increase. / L.' University of California SOUTHERN REGIONAL LIBRARY FACILITY 305 De Neve Drive - Parking Lot 17 Box 951388 LOS ANGELES, CALIFORNIA 90095-1388 Return this material to the library from which it was borrowed. ^sir ni